[coreboot-gerrit] Patch set updated for coreboot: 2d260c6 i945/gma: don't map the page table

Vladimir Serbinenko (phcoder@gmail.com) gerrit at coreboot.org
Wed Aug 20 21:15:40 CEST 2014


Vladimir Serbinenko (phcoder at gmail.com) just uploaded a new patch set to gerrit, which you can find at http://review.coreboot.org/6718

-gerrit

commit 2d260c6f93422211a9f48df99af9ebc4d94801ee
Author: Vladimir Serbinenko <phcoder at gmail.com>
Date:   Tue Aug 19 23:59:27 2014 +0200

    i945/gma: don't map the page table
    
    WAR AND PEACE
    
    By Leo Tolstoy/Tolstoi
    
    CONTENTS
    
    BOOK ONE: 1805
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    "Well, Prince, so Genoa and Lucca are now just family estates of the
    Buonapartes. But I warn you, if you don't tell me that this means war,
    if you still try to defend the infamies and horrors perpetrated by that
    Antichrist--I really believe he is Antichrist--I will have nothing more
    to do with you and you are no longer my friend, no longer my 'faithful
    slave,' as you call yourself! But how do you do? I see I have frightened
    you--sit down and tell me all the news."
    
    It was in July, 1805, and the speaker was the well-known Anna Pavlovna
    Scherer, maid of honor and favorite of the Empress Marya Fedorovna. With
    these words she greeted Prince Vasili Kuragin, a man of high rank and
    importance, who was the first to arrive at her reception. Anna Pavlovna
    had had a cough for some days. She was, as she said, suffering from la
    grippe; grippe being then a new word in St. Petersburg, used only by the
    elite.
    
    All her invitations without exception, written in French, and delivered
    by a scarlet-liveried footman that morning, ran as follows:
    
    "If you have nothing better to do, Count (or Prince), and if the
    prospect of spending an evening with a poor invalid is not too terrible,
    I shall be very charmed to see you tonight between 7 and 10--Annette
    Scherer."
    
    "Heavens! what a virulent attack!" replied the prince, not in the least
    disconcerted by this reception. He had just entered, wearing an
    embroidered court uniform, knee breeches, and shoes, and had stars on
    his breast and a serene expression on his flat face. He spoke in that
    refined French in which our grandfathers not only spoke but thought, and
    with the gentle, patronizing intonation natural to a man of importance
    who had grown old in society and at court. He went up to Anna Pavlovna,
    kissed her hand, presenting to her his bald, scented, and shining head,
    and complacently seated himself on the sofa.
    
    "First of all, dear friend, tell me how you are. Set your friend's mind
    at rest," said he without altering his tone, beneath the politeness and
    affected sympathy of which indifference and even irony could be
    discerned.
    
    "Can one be well while suffering morally? Can one be calm in times like
    these if one has any feeling?" said Anna Pavlovna. "You are staying the
    whole evening, I hope?"
    
    "And the fete at the English ambassador's? Today is Wednesday. I must
    put in an appearance there," said the prince. "My daughter is coming for
    me to take me there."
    
    "I thought today's fete had been canceled. I confess all these
    festivities and fireworks are becoming wearisome."
    
    "If they had known that you wished it, the entertainment would have been
    put off," said the prince, who, like a wound-up clock, by force of habit
    said things he did not even wish to be believed.
    
    "Don't tease! Well, and what has been decided about Novosiltsev's
    dispatch? You know everything."
    
    "What can one say about it?" replied the prince in a cold, listless
    tone. "What has been decided? They have decided that Buonaparte has
    burnt his boats, and I believe that we are ready to burn ours."
    
    Prince Vasili always spoke languidly, like an actor repeating a stale
    part. Anna Pavlovna Scherer on the contrary, despite her forty years,
    overflowed with animation and impulsiveness. To be an enthusiast had
    become her social vocation and, sometimes even when she did not feel
    like it, she became enthusiastic in order not to disappoint the
    expectations of those who knew her. The subdued smile which, though it
    did not suit her faded features, always played round her lips expressed,
    as in a spoiled child, a continual consciousness of her charming defect,
    which she neither wished, nor could, nor considered it necessary, to
    correct.
    
    In the midst of a conversation on political matters Anna Pavlovna burst
    out:
    
    "Oh, don't speak to me of Austria. Perhaps I don't understand things,
    but Austria never has wished, and does not wish, for war. She is
    betraying us! Russia alone must save Europe. Our gracious sovereign
    recognizes his high vocation and will be true to it. That is the one
    thing I have faith in! Our good and wonderful sovereign has to perform
    the noblest role on earth, and he is so virtuous and noble that God will
    not forsake him. He will fulfill his vocation and crush the hydra of
    revolution, which has become more terrible than ever in the person of
    this murderer and villain! We alone must avenge the blood of the just
    one.... Whom, I ask you, can we rely on?... England with her commercial
    spirit will not and cannot understand the Emperor Alexander's loftiness
    of soul. She has refused to evacuate Malta. She wanted to find, and
    still seeks, some secret motive in our actions. What answer did
    Novosiltsev get? None. The English have not understood and cannot
    understand the self-abnegation of our Emperor who wants nothing for
    himself, but only desires the good of mankind. And what have they
    promised? Nothing! And what little they have promised they will not
    perform! Prussia has always declared that Buonaparte is invincible, and
    that all Europe is powerless before him.... And I don't believe a word
    that Hardenburg says, or Haugwitz either. This famous Prussian
    neutrality is just a trap. I have faith only in God and the lofty
    destiny of our adored monarch. He will save Europe!"
    
    She suddenly paused, smiling at her own impetuosity.
    
    "I think," said the prince with a smile, "that if you had been sent
    instead of our dear Wintzingerode you would have captured the King of
    Prussia's consent by assault. You are so eloquent. Will you give me a
    cup of tea?"
    
    "In a moment. A propos," she added, becoming calm again, "I am expecting
    two very interesting men tonight, le Vicomte de Mortemart, who is
    connected with the Montmorencys through the Rohans, one of the best
    French families. He is one of the genuine emigres, the good ones. And
    also the Abbe Morio. Do you know that profound thinker? He has been
    received by the Emperor. Had you heard?"
    
    "I shall be delighted to meet them," said the prince. "But tell me," he
    added with studied carelessness as if it had only just occurred to him,
    though the question he was about to ask was the chief motive of his
    visit, "is it true that the Dowager Empress wants Baron Funke to be
    appointed first secretary at Vienna? The baron by all accounts is a poor
    creature."
    
    Prince Vasili wished to obtain this post for his son, but others were
    trying through the Dowager Empress Marya Fedorovna to secure it for the
    baron.
    
    Anna Pavlovna almost closed her eyes to indicate that neither she nor
    anyone else had a right to criticize what the Empress desired or was
    pleased with.
    
    "Baron Funke has been recommended to the Dowager Empress by her sister,"
    was all she said, in a dry and mournful tone.
    
    As she named the Empress, Anna Pavlovna's face suddenly assumed an
    expression of profound and sincere devotion and respect mingled with
    sadness, and this occurred every time she mentioned her illustrious
    patroness. She added that Her Majesty had deigned to show Baron Funke
    beaucoup d'estime, and again her face clouded over with sadness.
    
    The prince was silent and looked indifferent. But, with the womanly and
    courtierlike quickness and tact habitual to her, Anna Pavlovna wished
    both to rebuke him (for daring to speak as he had done of a man
    recommended to the Empress) and at the same time to console him, so she
    said:
    
    "Now about your family. Do you know that since your daughter came out
    everyone has been enraptured by her? They say she is amazingly
    beautiful."
    
    The prince bowed to signify his respect and gratitude.
    
    "I often think," she continued after a short pause, drawing nearer to
    the prince and smiling amiably at him as if to show that political and
    social topics were ended and the time had come for intimate
    conversation--"I often think how unfairly sometimes the joys of life are
    distributed. Why has fate given you two such splendid children? I don't
    speak of Anatole, your youngest. I don't like him," she added in a tone
    admitting of no rejoinder and raising her eyebrows. "Two such charming
    children. And really you appreciate them less than anyone, and so you
    don't deserve to have them."
    
    And she smiled her ecstatic smile.
    
    "I can't help it," said the prince. "Lavater would have said I lack the
    bump of paternity."
    
    "Don't joke; I mean to have a serious talk with you. Do you know I am
    dissatisfied with your younger son? Between ourselves" (and her face
    assumed its melancholy expression), "he was mentioned at Her Majesty's
    and you were pitied...."
    
    The prince answered nothing, but she looked at him significantly,
    awaiting a reply. He frowned.
    
    "What would you have me do?" he said at last. "You know I did all a
    father could for their education, and they have both turned out fools.
    Hippolyte is at least a quiet fool, but Anatole is an active one. That
    is the only difference between them." He said this smiling in a way more
    natural and animated than usual, so that the wrinkles round his mouth
    very clearly revealed something unexpectedly coarse and unpleasant.
    
    "And why are children born to such men as you? If you were not a father
    there would be nothing I could reproach you with," said Anna Pavlovna,
    looking up pensively.
    
    "I am your faithful slave and to you alone I can confess that my
    children are the bane of my life. It is the cross I have to bear. That
    is how I explain it to myself. It can't be helped!"
    
    He said no more, but expressed his resignation to cruel fate by a
    gesture. Anna Pavlovna meditated.
    
    "Have you never thought of marrying your prodigal son Anatole?" she
    asked. "They say old maids have a mania for matchmaking, and though I
    don't feel that weakness in myself as yet, I know a little person who is
    very unhappy with her father. She is a relation of yours, Princess Mary
    Bolkonskaya."
    
    Prince Vasili did not reply, though, with the quickness of memory and
    perception befitting a man of the world, he indicated by a movement of
    the head that he was considering this information.
    
    "Do you know," he said at last, evidently unable to check the sad
    current of his thoughts, "that Anatole is costing me forty thousand
    rubles a year? And," he went on after a pause, "what will it be in five
    years, if he goes on like this?" Presently he added: "That's what we
    fathers have to put up with.... Is this princess of yours rich?"
    
    "Her father is very rich and stingy. He lives in the country. He is the
    well-known Prince Bolkonski who had to retire from the army under the
    late Emperor, and was nicknamed 'the King of Prussia.' He is very clever
    but eccentric, and a bore. The poor girl is very unhappy. She has a
    brother; I think you know him, he married Lise Meinen lately. He is an
    aide-de-camp of Kutuzov's and will be here tonight."
    
    "Listen, dear Annette," said the prince, suddenly taking Anna Pavlovna's
    hand and for some reason drawing it downwards. "Arrange that affair for
    me and I shall always be your most devoted slave-slafe with an f, as a
    village elder of mine writes in his reports. She is rich and of good
    family and that's all I want."
    
    And with the familiarity and easy grace peculiar to him, he raised the
    maid of honor's hand to his lips, kissed it, and swung it to and fro as
    he lay back in his armchair, looking in another direction.
    
    "Attendez," said Anna Pavlovna, reflecting, "I'll speak to Lise, young
    Bolkonski's wife, this very evening, and perhaps the thing can be
    arranged. It shall be on your family's behalf that I'll start my
    apprenticeship as old maid."
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    Anna Pavlovna's drawing room was gradually filling. The highest
    Petersburg society was assembled there: people differing widely in age
    and character but alike in the social circle to which they belonged.
    Prince Vasili's daughter, the beautiful Helene, came to take her father
    to the ambassador's entertainment; she wore a ball dress and her badge
    as maid of honor. The youthful little Princess Bolkonskaya, known as la
    femme la plus seduisante de Petersbourg, * was also there. She had been
    married during the previous winter, and being pregnant did not go to any
    large gatherings, but only to small receptions. Prince Vasili's son,
    Hippolyte, had come with Mortemart, whom he introduced. The Abbe Morio
    and many others had also come.
    
    * The most fascinating woman in Petersburg.
    
    To each new arrival Anna Pavlovna said, "You have not yet seen my aunt,"
    or "You do not know my aunt?" and very gravely conducted him or her to a
    little old lady, wearing large bows of ribbon in her cap, who had come
    sailing in from another room as soon as the guests began to arrive; and
    slowly turning her eyes from the visitor to her aunt, Anna Pavlovna
    mentioned each one's name and then left them.
    
    Each visitor performed the ceremony of greeting this old aunt whom not
    one of them knew, not one of them wanted to know, and not one of them
    cared about; Anna Pavlovna observed these greetings with mournful and
    solemn interest and silent approval. The aunt spoke to each of them in
    the same words, about their health and her own, and the health of Her
    Majesty, "who, thank God, was better today." And each visitor, though
    politeness prevented his showing impatience, left the old woman with a
    sense of relief at having performed a vexatious duty and did not return
    to her the whole evening.
    
    The young Princess Bolkonskaya had brought some work in a gold-
    embroidered velvet bag. Her pretty little upper lip, on which a delicate
    dark down was just perceptible, was too short for her teeth, but it
    lifted all the more sweetly, and was especially charming when she
    occasionally drew it down to meet the lower lip. As is always the case
    with a thoroughly attractive woman, her defect--the shortness of her
    upper lip and her half-open mouth--seemed to be her own special and
    peculiar form of beauty. Everyone brightened at the sight of this pretty
    young woman, so soon to become a mother, so full of life and health, and
    carrying her burden so lightly. Old men and dull dispirited young ones
    who looked at her, after being in her company and talking to her a
    little while, felt as if they too were becoming, like her, full of life
    and health. All who talked to her, and at each word saw her bright smile
    and the constant gleam of her white teeth, thought that they were in a
    specially amiable mood that day.
    
    The little princess went round the table with quick, short, swaying
    steps, her workbag on her arm, and gaily spreading out her dress sat
    down on a sofa near the silver samovar, as if all she was doing was a
    pleasure to herself and to all around her. "I have brought my work,"
    said she in French, displaying her bag and addressing all present.
    "Mind, Annette, I hope you have not played a wicked trick on me," she
    added, turning to her hostess. "You wrote that it was to be quite a
    small reception, and just see how badly I am dressed." And she spread
    out her arms to show her short-waisted, lace-trimmed, dainty gray dress,
    girdled with a broad ribbon just below the breast.
    
    "Soyez tranquille, Lise, you will always be prettier than anyone else,"
    replied Anna Pavlovna.
    
    "You know," said the princess in the same tone of voice and still in
    French, turning to a general, "my husband is deserting me? He is going
    to get himself killed. Tell me what this wretched war is for?" she
    added, addressing Prince Vasili, and without waiting for an answer she
    turned to speak to his daughter, the beautiful Helene.
    
    "What a delightful woman this little princess is!" said Prince Vasili to
    Anna Pavlovna.
    
    One of the next arrivals was a stout, heavily built young man with
    close-cropped hair, spectacles, the light-colored breeches fashionable
    at that time, a very high ruffle, and a brown dress coat. This stout
    young man was an illegitimate son of Count Bezukhov, a well-known
    grandee of Catherine's time who now lay dying in Moscow. The young man
    had not yet entered either the military or civil service, as he had only
    just returned from abroad where he had been educated, and this was his
    first appearance in society. Anna Pavlovna greeted him with the nod she
    accorded to the lowest hierarchy in her drawing room. But in spite of
    this lowest-grade greeting, a look of anxiety and fear, as at the sight
    of something too large and unsuited to the place, came over her face
    when she saw Pierre enter. Though he was certainly rather bigger than
    the other men in the room, her anxiety could only have reference to the
    clever though shy, but observant and natural, expression which
    distinguished him from everyone else in that drawing room.
    
    "It is very good of you, Monsieur Pierre, to come and visit a poor
    invalid," said Anna Pavlovna, exchanging an alarmed glance with her aunt
    as she conducted him to her.
    
    Pierre murmured something unintelligible, and continued to look round as
    if in search of something. On his way to the aunt he bowed to the little
    princess with a pleased smile, as to an intimate acquaintance.
    
    Anna Pavlovna's alarm was justified, for Pierre turned away from the
    aunt without waiting to hear her speech about Her Majesty's health. Anna
    Pavlovna in dismay detained him with the words: "Do you know the Abbe
    Morio? He is a most interesting man."
    
    "Yes, I have heard of his scheme for perpetual peace, and it is very
    interesting but hardly feasible."
    
    "You think so?" rejoined Anna Pavlovna in order to say something and get
    away to attend to her duties as hostess. But Pierre now committed a
    reverse act of impoliteness. First he had left a lady before she had
    finished speaking to him, and now he continued to speak to another who
    wished to get away. With his head bent, and his big feet spread apart,
    he began explaining his reasons for thinking the abbe's plan chimerical.
    
    "We will talk of it later," said Anna Pavlovna with a smile.
    
    And having got rid of this young man who did not know how to behave, she
    resumed her duties as hostess and continued to listen and watch, ready
    to help at any point where the conversation might happen to flag. As the
    foreman of a spinning mill, when he has set the hands to work, goes
    round and notices here a spindle that has stopped or there one that
    creaks or makes more noise than it should, and hastens to check the
    machine or set it in proper motion, so Anna Pavlovna moved about her
    drawing room, approaching now a silent, now a too-noisy group, and by a
    word or slight rearrangement kept the conversational machine in steady,
    proper, and regular motion. But amid these cares her anxiety about
    Pierre was evident. She kept an anxious watch on him when he approached
    the group round Mortemart to listen to what was being said there, and
    again when he passed to another group whose center was the abbe.
    
    Pierre had been educated abroad, and this reception at Anna Pavlovna's
    was the first he had attended in Russia. He knew that all the
    intellectual lights of Petersburg were gathered there and, like a child
    in a toyshop, did not know which way to look, afraid of missing any
    clever conversation that was to be heard. Seeing the self-confident and
    refined expression on the faces of those present he was always expecting
    to hear something very profound. At last he came up to Morio. Here the
    conversation seemed interesting and he stood waiting for an opportunity
    to express his own views, as young people are fond of doing.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    Anna Pavlovna's reception was in full swing. The spindles hummed
    steadily and ceaselessly on all sides. With the exception of the aunt,
    beside whom sat only one elderly lady, who with her thin careworn face
    was rather out of place in this brilliant society, the whole company had
    settled into three groups. One, chiefly masculine, had formed round the
    abbe. Another, of young people, was grouped round the beautiful Princess
    Helene, Prince Vasili's daughter, and the little Princess Bolkonskaya,
    very pretty and rosy, though rather too plump for her age. The third
    group was gathered round Mortemart and Anna Pavlovna.
    
    The vicomte was a nice-looking young man with soft features and polished
    manners, who evidently considered himself a celebrity but out of
    politeness modestly placed himself at the disposal of the circle in
    which he found himself. Anna Pavlovna was obviously serving him up as a
    treat to her guests. As a clever maitre d'hotel serves up as a specially
    choice delicacy a piece of meat that no one who had seen it in the
    kitchen would have cared to eat, so Anna Pavlovna served up to her
    guests, first the vicomte and then the abbe, as peculiarly choice
    morsels. The group about Mortemart immediately began discussing the
    murder of the Duc d'Enghien. The vicomte said that the Duc d'Enghien had
    perished by his own magnanimity, and that there were particular reasons
    for Buonaparte's hatred of him.
    
    "Ah, yes! Do tell us all about it, Vicomte," said Anna Pavlovna, with a
    pleasant feeling that there was something a la Louis XV in the sound of
    that sentence: "Contez nous cela, Vicomte."
    
    The vicomte bowed and smiled courteously in token of his willingness to
    comply. Anna Pavlovna arranged a group round him, inviting everyone to
    listen to his tale.
    
    "The vicomte knew the duc personally," whispered Anna Pavlovna to one of
    the guests. "The vicomte is a wonderful raconteur," said she to another.
    "How evidently he belongs to the best society," said she to a third; and
    the vicomte was served up to the company in the choicest and most
    advantageous style, like a well-garnished joint of roast beef on a hot
    dish.
    
    The vicomte wished to begin his story and gave a subtle smile.
    
    "Come over here, Helene, dear," said Anna Pavlovna to the beautiful
    young princess who was sitting some way off, the center of another
    group.
    
    The princess smiled. She rose with the same unchanging smile with which
    she had first entered the room--the smile of a perfectly beautiful
    woman. With a slight rustle of her white dress trimmed with moss and
    ivy, with a gleam of white shoulders, glossy hair, and sparkling
    diamonds, she passed between the men who made way for her, not looking
    at any of them but smiling on all, as if graciously allowing each the
    privilege of admiring her beautiful figure and shapely shoulders, back,
    and bosom--which in the fashion of those days were very much exposed--
    and she seemed to bring the glamour of a ballroom with her as she moved
    toward Anna Pavlovna. Helene was so lovely that not only did she not
    show any trace of coquetry, but on the contrary she even appeared shy of
    her unquestionable and all too victorious beauty. She seemed to wish,
    but to be unable, to diminish its effect.
    
    "How lovely!" said everyone who saw her; and the vicomte lifted his
    shoulders and dropped his eyes as if startled by something extraordinary
    when she took her seat opposite and beamed upon him also with her
    unchanging smile.
    
    "Madame, I doubt my ability before such an audience," said he, smilingly
    inclining his head.
    
    The princess rested her bare round arm on a little table and considered
    a reply unnecessary. She smilingly waited. All the time the story was
    being told she sat upright, glancing now at her beautiful round arm,
    altered in shape by its pressure on the table, now at her still more
    beautiful bosom, on which she readjusted a diamond necklace. From time
    to time she smoothed the folds of her dress, and whenever the story
    produced an effect she glanced at Anna Pavlovna, at once adopted just
    the expression she saw on the maid of honor's face, and again relapsed
    into her radiant smile.
    
    The little princess had also left the tea table and followed Helene.
    
    "Wait a moment, I'll get my work.... Now then, what are you thinking
    of?" she went on, turning to Prince Hippolyte. "Fetch me my workbag."
    
    There was a general movement as the princess, smiling and talking
    merrily to everyone at once, sat down and gaily arranged herself in her
    seat.
    
    "Now I am all right," she said, and asking the vicomte to begin, she
    took up her work.
    
    Prince Hippolyte, having brought the workbag, joined the circle and
    moving a chair close to hers seated himself beside her.
    
    Le charmant Hippolyte was surprising by his extraordinary resemblance to
    his beautiful sister, but yet more by the fact that in spite of this
    resemblance he was exceedingly ugly. His features were like his
    sister's, but while in her case everything was lit up by a joyous, self-
    satisfied, youthful, and constant smile of animation, and by the
    wonderful classic beauty of her figure, his face on the contrary was
    dulled by imbecility and a constant expression of sullen self-
    confidence, while his body was thin and weak. His eyes, nose, and mouth
    all seemed puckered into a vacant, wearied grimace, and his arms and
    legs always fell into unnatural positions.
    
    "It's not going to be a ghost story?" said he, sitting down beside the
    princess and hastily adjusting his lorgnette, as if without this
    instrument he could not begin to speak.
    
    "Why no, my dear fellow," said the astonished narrator, shrugging his
    shoulders.
    
    "Because I hate ghost stories," said Prince Hippolyte in a tone which
    showed that he only understood the meaning of his words after he had
    uttered them.
    
    He spoke with such self-confidence that his hearers could not be sure
    whether what he said was very witty or very stupid. He was dressed in a
    dark-green dress coat, knee breeches of the color of cuisse de nymphe
    effrayee, as he called it, shoes, and silk stockings.
    
    The vicomte told his tale very neatly. It was an anecdote, then current,
    to the effect that the Duc d'Enghien had gone secretly to Paris to visit
    Mademoiselle George; that at her house he came upon Bonaparte, who also
    enjoyed the famous actress' favors, and that in his presence Napoleon
    happened to fall into one of the fainting fits to which he was subject,
    and was thus at the duc's mercy. The latter spared him, and this
    magnanimity Bonaparte subsequently repaid by death.
    
    The story was very pretty and interesting, especially at the point where
    the rivals suddenly recognized one another; and the ladies looked
    agitated.
    
    "Charming!" said Anna Pavlovna with an inquiring glance at the little
    princess.
    
    "Charming!" whispered the little princess, sticking the needle into her
    work as if to testify that the interest and fascination of the story
    prevented her from going on with it.
    
    The vicomte appreciated this silent praise and smiling gratefully
    prepared to continue, but just then Anna Pavlovna, who had kept a
    watchful eye on the young man who so alarmed her, noticed that he was
    talking too loudly and vehemently with the abbe, so she hurried to the
    rescue. Pierre had managed to start a conversation with the abbe about
    the balance of power, and the latter, evidently interested by the young
    man's simple-minded eagerness, was explaining his pet theory. Both were
    talking and listening too eagerly and too naturally, which was why Anna
    Pavlovna disapproved.
    
    "The means are... the balance of power in Europe and the rights of the
    people," the abbe was saying. "It is only necessary for one powerful
    nation like Russia--barbaric as she is said to be--to place herself
    disinterestedly at the head of an alliance having for its object the
    maintenance of the balance of power of Europe, and it would save the
    world!"
    
    "But how are you to get that balance?" Pierre was beginning.
    
    At that moment Anna Pavlovna came up and, looking severely at Pierre,
    asked the Italian how he stood Russian climate. The Italian's face
    instantly changed and assumed an offensively affected, sugary
    expression, evidently habitual to him when conversing with women.
    
    "I am so enchanted by the brilliancy of the wit and culture of the
    society, more especially of the feminine society, in which I have had
    the honor of being received, that I have not yet had time to think of
    the climate," said he.
    
    Not letting the abbe and Pierre escape, Anna Pavlovna, the more
    conveniently to keep them under observation, brought them into the
    larger circle.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Just then another visitor entered the drawing room: Prince Andrew
    Bolkonski, the little princess' husband. He was a very handsome young
    man, of medium height, with firm, clearcut features. Everything about
    him, from his weary, bored expression to his quiet, measured step,
    offered a most striking contrast to his quiet, little wife. It was
    evident that he not only knew everyone in the drawing room, but had
    found them to be so tiresome that it wearied him to look at or listen to
    them. And among all these faces that he found so tedious, none seemed to
    bore him so much as that of his pretty wife. He turned away from her
    with a grimace that distorted his handsome face, kissed Anna Pavlovna's
    hand, and screwing up his eyes scanned the whole company.
    
    "You are off to the war, Prince?" said Anna Pavlovna.
    
    "General Kutuzov," said Bolkonski, speaking French and stressing the
    last syllable of the general's name like a Frenchman, "has been pleased
    to take me as an aide-de-camp...."
    
    "And Lise, your wife?"
    
    "She will go to the country."
    
    "Are you not ashamed to deprive us of your charming wife?"
    
    "Andre," said his wife, addressing her husband in the same coquettish
    manner in which she spoke to other men, "the vicomte has been telling us
    such a tale about Mademoiselle George and Buonaparte!"
    
    Prince Andrew screwed up his eyes and turned away. Pierre, who from the
    moment Prince Andrew entered the room had watched him with glad,
    affectionate eyes, now came up and took his arm. Before he looked round
    Prince Andrew frowned again, expressing his annoyance with whoever was
    touching his arm, but when he saw Pierre's beaming face he gave him an
    unexpectedly kind and pleasant smile.
    
    "There now!... So you, too, are in the great world?" said he to Pierre.
    
    "I knew you would be here," replied Pierre. "I will come to supper with
    you. May I?" he added in a low voice so as not to disturb the vicomte
    who was continuing his story.
    
    "No, impossible!" said Prince Andrew, laughing and pressing Pierre's
    hand to show that there was no need to ask the question. He wished to
    say something more, but at that moment Prince Vasili and his daughter
    got up to go and the two young men rose to let them pass.
    
    "You must excuse me, dear Vicomte," said Prince Vasili to the Frenchman,
    holding him down by the sleeve in a friendly way to prevent his rising.
    "This unfortunate fete at the ambassador's deprives me of a pleasure,
    and obliges me to interrupt you. I am very sorry to leave your
    enchanting party," said he, turning to Anna Pavlovna.
    
    His daughter, Princess Helene, passed between the chairs, lightly
    holding up the folds of her dress, and the smile shone still more
    radiantly on her beautiful face. Pierre gazed at her with rapturous,
    almost frightened, eyes as she passed him.
    
    "Very lovely," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "Very," said Pierre.
    
    In passing Prince Vasili seized Pierre's hand and said to Anna Pavlovna:
    "Educate this bear for me! He has been staying with me a whole month and
    this is the first time I have seen him in society. Nothing is so
    necessary for a young man as the society of clever women."
    
    Anna Pavlovna smiled and promised to take Pierre in hand. She knew his
    father to be a connection of Prince Vasili's. The elderly lady who had
    been sitting with the old aunt rose hurriedly and overtook Prince Vasili
    in the anteroom. All the affectation of interest she had assumed had
    left her kindly and tear-worn face and it now expressed only anxiety and
    fear.
    
    "How about my son Boris, Prince?" said she, hurrying after him into the
    anteroom. "I can't remain any longer in Petersburg. Tell me what news I
    may take back to my poor boy."
    
    Although Prince Vasili listened reluctantly and not very politely to the
    elderly lady, even betraying some impatience, she gave him an
    ingratiating and appealing smile, and took his hand that he might not go
    away.
    
    "What would it cost you to say a word to the Emperor, and then he would
    be transferred to the Guards at once?" said she.
    
    "Believe me, Princess, I am ready to do all I can," answered Prince
    Vasili, "but it is difficult for me to ask the Emperor. I should advise
    you to appeal to Rumyantsev through Prince Golitsyn. That would be the
    best way."
    
    The elderly lady was a Princess Drubetskaya, belonging to one of the
    best families in Russia, but she was poor, and having long been out of
    society had lost her former influential connections. She had now come to
    Petersburg to procure an appointment in the Guards for her only son. It
    was, in fact, solely to meet Prince Vasili that she had obtained an
    invitation to Anna Pavlovna's reception and had sat listening to the
    vicomte's story. Prince Vasili's words frightened her, an embittered
    look clouded her once handsome face, but only for a moment; then she
    smiled again and clutched Prince Vasili's arm more tightly.
    
    "Listen to me, Prince," said she. "I have never yet asked you for
    anything and I never will again, nor have I ever reminded you of my
    father's friendship for you; but now I entreat you for God's sake to do
    this for my son--and I shall always regard you as a benefactor," she
    added hurriedly. "No, don't be angry, but promise! I have asked Golitsyn
    and he has refused. Be the kindhearted man you always were," she said,
    trying to smile though tears were in her eyes.
    
    "Papa, we shall be late," said Princess Helene, turning her beautiful
    head and looking over her classically molded shoulder as she stood
    waiting by the door.
    
    Influence in society, however, is a capital which has to be economized
    if it is to last. Prince Vasili knew this, and having once realized that
    if he asked on behalf of all who begged of him, he would soon be unable
    to ask for himself, he became chary of using his influence. But in
    Princess Drubetskaya's case he felt, after her second appeal, something
    like qualms of conscience. She had reminded him of what was quite true;
    he had been indebted to her father for the first steps in his career.
    Moreover, he could see by her manners that she was one of those women--
    mostly mothers--who, having once made up their minds, will not rest
    until they have gained their end, and are prepared if necessary to go on
    insisting day after day and hour after hour, and even to make scenes.
    This last consideration moved him.
    
    "My dear Anna Mikhaylovna," said he with his usual familiarity and
    weariness of tone, "it is almost impossible for me to do what you ask;
    but to prove my devotion to you and how I respect your father's memory,
    I will do the impossible--your son shall be transferred to the Guards.
    Here is my hand on it. Are you satisfied?"
    
    "My dear benefactor! This is what I expected from you--I knew your
    kindness!" He turned to go.
    
    "Wait--just a word! When he has been transferred to the Guards..." she
    faltered. "You are on good terms with Michael Ilarionovich Kutuzov...
    recommend Boris to him as adjutant! Then I shall be at rest, and
    then..."
    
    Prince Vasili smiled.
    
    "No, I won't promise that. You don't know how Kutuzov is pestered since
    his appointment as Commander in Chief. He told me himself that all the
    Moscow ladies have conspired to give him all their sons as adjutants."
    
    "No, but do promise! I won't let you go! My dear benefactor..."
    
    "Papa," said his beautiful daughter in the same tone as before, "we
    shall be late."
    
    "Well, au revoir! Good-bye! You hear her?"
    
    "Then tomorrow you will speak to the Emperor?"
    
    "Certainly; but about Kutuzov, I don't promise."
    
    "Do promise, do promise, Vasili!" cried Anna Mikhaylovna as he went,
    with the smile of a coquettish girl, which at one time probably came
    naturally to her, but was now very ill-suited to her careworn face.
    
    Apparently she had forgotten her age and by force of habit employed all
    the old feminine arts. But as soon as the prince had gone her face
    resumed its former cold, artificial expression. She returned to the
    group where the vicomte was still talking, and again pretended to
    listen, while waiting till it would be time to leave. Her task was
    accomplished.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    "And what do you think of this latest comedy, the coronation at Milan?"
    asked Anna Pavlovna, "and of the comedy of the people of Genoa and Lucca
    laying their petitions before Monsieur Buonaparte, and Monsieur
    Buonaparte sitting on a throne and granting the petitions of the
    nations? Adorable! It is enough to make one's head whirl! It is as if
    the whole world had gone crazy."
    
    Prince Andrew looked Anna Pavlovna straight in the face with a sarcastic
    smile.
    
    "'Dieu me la donne, gare a qui la touche!' * They say he was very fine
    when he said that," he remarked, repeating the words in Italian: "'Dio
    mi l'ha dato. Guai a chi la tocchi!'"
    
    * God has given it to me, let him who touches it beware!
    
    "I hope this will prove the last drop that will make the glass run
    over," Anna Pavlovna continued. "The sovereigns will not be able to
    endure this man who is a menace to everything."
    
    "The sovereigns? I do not speak of Russia," said the vicomte, polite but
    hopeless: "The sovereigns, madame... What have they done for Louis XVII,
    for the Queen, or for Madame Elizabeth? Nothing!" and he became more
    animated. "And believe me, they are reaping the reward of their betrayal
    of the Bourbon cause. The sovereigns! Why, they are sending ambassadors
    to compliment the usurper."
    
    And sighing disdainfully, he again changed his position.
    
    Prince Hippolyte, who had been gazing at the vicomte for some time
    through his lorgnette, suddenly turned completely round toward the
    little princess, and having asked for a needle began tracing the Conde
    coat of arms on the table. He explained this to her with as much gravity
    as if she had asked him to do it.
    
    "Baton de gueules, engrele de gueules d'azur--maison Conde," said he.
    
    The princess listened, smiling.
    
    "If Buonaparte remains on the throne of France a year longer," the
    vicomte continued, with the air of a man who, in a matter with which he
    is better acquainted than anyone else, does not listen to others but
    follows the current of his own thoughts, "things will have gone too far.
    By intrigues, violence, exile, and executions, French society--I mean
    good French society--will have been forever destroyed, and then..."
    
    He shrugged his shoulders and spread out his hands. Pierre wished to
    make a remark, for the conversation interested him, but Anna Pavlovna,
    who had him under observation, interrupted:
    
    "The Emperor Alexander," said she, with the melancholy which always
    accompanied any reference of hers to the Imperial family, "has declared
    that he will leave it to the French people themselves to choose their
    own form of government; and I believe that once free from the usurper,
    the whole nation will certainly throw itself into the arms of its
    rightful king," she concluded, trying to be amiable to the royalist
    emigrant.
    
    "That is doubtful," said Prince Andrew. "Monsieur le Vicomte quite
    rightly supposes that matters have already gone too far. I think it will
    be difficult to return to the old regime."
    
    "From what I have heard," said Pierre, blushing and breaking into the
    conversation, "almost all the aristocracy has already gone over to
    Bonaparte's side."
    
    "It is the Buonapartists who say that," replied the vicomte without
    looking at Pierre. "At the present time it is difficult to know the real
    state of French public opinion."
    
    "Bonaparte has said so," remarked Prince Andrew with a sarcastic smile.
    
    It was evident that he did not like the vicomte and was aiming his
    remarks at him, though without looking at him.
    
    "'I showed them the path to glory, but they did not follow it,'" Prince
    Andrew continued after a short silence, again quoting Napoleon's words.
    "'I opened my antechambers and they crowded in.' I do not know how far
    he was justified in saying so."
    
    "Not in the least," replied the vicomte. "After the murder of the duc
    even the most partial ceased to regard him as a hero. If to some
    people," he went on, turning to Anna Pavlovna, "he ever was a hero,
    after the murder of the duc there was one martyr more in heaven and one
    hero less on earth."
    
    Before Anna Pavlovna and the others had time to smile their appreciation
    of the vicomte's epigram, Pierre again broke into the conversation, and
    though Anna Pavlovna felt sure he would say something inappropriate, she
    was unable to stop him.
    
    "The execution of the Duc d'Enghien," declared Monsieur Pierre, "was a
    political necessity, and it seems to me that Napoleon showed greatness
    of soul by not fearing to take on himself the whole responsibility of
    that deed."
    
    "Dieu! Mon Dieu!" muttered Anna Pavlovna in a terrified whisper.
    
    "What, Monsieur Pierre... Do you consider that assassination shows
    greatness of soul?" said the little princess, smiling and drawing her
    work nearer to her.
    
    "Oh! Oh!" exclaimed several voices.
    
    "Capital!" said Prince Hippolyte in English, and began slapping his knee
    with the palm of his hand.
    
    The vicomte merely shrugged his shoulders. Pierre looked solemnly at his
    audience over his spectacles and continued.
    
    "I say so," he continued desperately, "because the Bourbons fled from
    the Revolution leaving the people to anarchy, and Napoleon alone
    understood the Revolution and quelled it, and so for the general good,
    he could not stop short for the sake of one man's life."
    
    "Won't you come over to the other table?" suggested Anna Pavlovna.
    
    But Pierre continued his speech without heeding her.
    
    "No," cried he, becoming more and more eager, "Napoleon is great because
    he rose superior to the Revolution, suppressed its abuses, preserved all
    that was good in it--equality of citizenship and freedom of speech and
    of the press--and only for that reason did he obtain power."
    
    "Yes, if having obtained power, without availing himself of it to commit
    murder he had restored it to the rightful king, I should have called him
    a great man," remarked the vicomte.
    
    "He could not do that. The people only gave him power that he might rid
    them of the Bourbons and because they saw that he was a great man. The
    Revolution was a grand thing!" continued Monsieur Pierre, betraying by
    this desperate and provocative proposition his extreme youth and his
    wish to express all that was in his mind.
    
    "What? Revolution and regicide a grand thing?... Well, after that... But
    won't you come to this other table?" repeated Anna Pavlovna.
    
    "Rousseau's Contrat Social," said the vicomte with a tolerant smile.
    
    "I am not speaking of regicide, I am speaking about ideas."
    
    "Yes: ideas of robbery, murder, and regicide," again interjected an
    ironical voice.
    
    "Those were extremes, no doubt, but they are not what is most important.
    What is important are the rights of man, emancipation from prejudices,
    and equality of citizenship, and all these ideas Napoleon has retained
    in full force."
    
    "Liberty and equality," said the vicomte contemptuously, as if at last
    deciding seriously to prove to this youth how foolish his words were,
    "high-sounding words which have long been discredited. Who does not love
    liberty and equality? Even our Saviour preached liberty and equality.
    Have people since the Revolution become happier? On the contrary. We
    wanted liberty, but Buonaparte has destroyed it."
    
    Prince Andrew kept looking with an amused smile from Pierre to the
    vicomte and from the vicomte to their hostess. In the first moment of
    Pierre's outburst Anna Pavlovna, despite her social experience, was
    horror-struck. But when she saw that Pierre's sacrilegious words had not
    exasperated the vicomte, and had convinced herself that it was
    impossible to stop him, she rallied her forces and joined the vicomte in
    a vigorous attack on the orator.
    
    "But, my dear Monsieur Pierre," said she, "how do you explain the fact
    of a great man executing a duc--or even an ordinary man who--is innocent
    and untried?"
    
    "I should like," said the vicomte, "to ask how monsieur explains the
    18th Brumaire; was not that an imposture? It was a swindle, and not at
    all like the conduct of a great man!"
    
    "And the prisoners he killed in Africa? That was horrible!" said the
    little princess, shrugging her shoulders.
    
    "He's a low fellow, say what you will," remarked Prince Hippolyte.
    
    Pierre, not knowing whom to answer, looked at them all and smiled. His
    smile was unlike the half-smile of other people. When he smiled, his
    grave, even rather gloomy, look was instantaneously replaced by another-
    -a childlike, kindly, even rather silly look, which seemed to ask
    forgiveness.
    
    The vicomte who was meeting him for the first time saw clearly that this
    young Jacobin was not so terrible as his words suggested. All were
    silent.
    
    "How do you expect him to answer you all at once?" said Prince Andrew.
    "Besides, in the actions of a statesman one has to distinguish between
    his acts as a private person, as a general, and as an emperor. So it
    seems to me."
    
    "Yes, yes, of course!" Pierre chimed in, pleased at the arrival of this
    reinforcement.
    
    "One must admit," continued Prince Andrew, "that Napoleon as a man was
    great on the bridge of Arcola, and in the hospital at Jaffa where he
    gave his hand to the plague-stricken; but... but there are other acts
    which it is difficult to justify."
    
    Prince Andrew, who had evidently wished to tone down the awkwardness of
    Pierre's remarks, rose and made a sign to his wife that it was time to
    go.
    
    Suddenly Prince Hippolyte started up making signs to everyone to attend,
    and asking them all to be seated began:
    
    "I was told a charming Moscow story today and must treat you to it.
    Excuse me, Vicomte--I must tell it in Russian or the point will be
    lost...." And Prince Hippolyte began to tell his story in such Russian
    as a Frenchman would speak after spending about a year in Russia.
    Everyone waited, so emphatically and eagerly did he demand their
    attention to his story.
    
    "There is in Moscow a lady, une dame, and she is very stingy. She must
    have two footmen behind her carriage, and very big ones. That was her
    taste. And she had a lady's maid, also big. She said..."
    
    Here Prince Hippolyte paused, evidently collecting his ideas with
    difficulty.
    
    "She said... Oh yes! She said, 'Girl,' to the maid, 'put on a livery,
    get up behind the carriage, and come with me while I make some calls.'"
    
    Here Prince Hippolyte spluttered and burst out laughing long before his
    audience, which produced an effect unfavorable to the narrator. Several
    persons, among them the elderly lady and Anna Pavlovna, did however
    smile.
    
    "She went. Suddenly there was a great wind. The girl lost her hat and
    her long hair came down...." Here he could contain himself no longer and
    went on, between gasps of laughter: "And the whole world knew...."
    
    And so the anecdote ended. Though it was unintelligible why he had told
    it, or why it had to be told in Russian, still Anna Pavlovna and the
    others appreciated Prince Hippolyte's social tact in so agreeably ending
    Pierre's unpleasant and unamiable outburst. After the anecdote the
    conversation broke up into insignificant small talk about the last and
    next balls, about theatricals, and who would meet whom, and when and
    where.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Having thanked Anna Pavlovna for her charming soiree, the guests began
    to take their leave.
    
    Pierre was ungainly. Stout, about the average height, broad, with huge
    red hands; he did not know, as the saying is, how to enter a drawing
    room and still less how to leave one; that is, how to say something
    particularly agreeable before going away. Besides this he was absent-
    minded. When he rose to go, he took up instead of his own, the general's
    three-cornered hat, and held it, pulling at the plume, till the general
    asked him to restore it. All his absent-mindedness and inability to
    enter a room and converse in it was, however, redeemed by his kindly,
    simple, and modest expression. Anna Pavlovna turned toward him and, with
    a Christian mildness that expressed forgiveness of his indiscretion,
    nodded and said: "I hope to see you again, but I also hope you will
    change your opinions, my dear Monsieur Pierre."
    
    When she said this, he did not reply and only bowed, but again everybody
    saw his smile, which said nothing, unless perhaps, "Opinions are
    opinions, but you see what a capital, good-natured fellow I am." And
    everyone, including Anna Pavlovna, felt this.
    
    Prince Andrew had gone out into the hall, and, turning his shoulders to
    the footman who was helping him on with his cloak, listened
    indifferently to his wife's chatter with Prince Hippolyte who had also
    come into the hall. Prince Hippolyte stood close to the pretty, pregnant
    princess, and stared fixedly at her through his eyeglass.
    
    "Go in, Annette, or you will catch cold," said the little princess,
    taking leave of Anna Pavlovna. "It is settled," she added in a low
    voice.
    
    Anna Pavlovna had already managed to speak to Lise about the match she
    contemplated between Anatole and the little princess' sister-in-law.
    
    "I rely on you, my dear," said Anna Pavlovna, also in a low tone. "Write
    to her and let me know how her father looks at the matter. Au revoir!"--
    and she left the hall.
    
    Prince Hippolyte approached the little princess and, bending his face
    close to her, began to whisper something.
    
    Two footmen, the princess' and his own, stood holding a shawl and a
    cloak, waiting for the conversation to finish. They listened to the
    French sentences which to them were meaningless, with an air of
    understanding but not wishing to appear to do so. The princess as usual
    spoke smilingly and listened with a laugh.
    
    "I am very glad I did not go to the ambassador's," said Prince Hippolyte
    "-so dull-. It has been a delightful evening, has it not? Delightful!"
    
    "They say the ball will be very good," replied the princess, drawing up
    her downy little lip. "All the pretty women in society will be there."
    
    "Not all, for you will not be there; not all," said Prince Hippolyte
    smiling joyfully; and snatching the shawl from the footman, whom he even
    pushed aside, he began wrapping it round the princess. Either from
    awkwardness or intentionally (no one could have said which) after the
    shawl had been adjusted he kept his arm around her for a long time, as
    though embracing her.
    
    Still smiling, she gracefully moved away, turning and glancing at her
    husband. Prince Andrew's eyes were closed, so weary and sleepy did he
    seem.
    
    "Are you ready?" he asked his wife, looking past her.
    
    Prince Hippolyte hurriedly put on his cloak, which in the latest fashion
    reached to his very heels, and, stumbling in it, ran out into the porch
    following the princess, whom a footman was helping into the carriage.
    
    "Princesse, au revoir," cried he, stumbling with his tongue as well as
    with his feet.
    
    The princess, picking up her dress, was taking her seat in the dark
    carriage, her husband was adjusting his saber; Prince Hippolyte, under
    pretense of helping, was in everyone's way.
    
    "Allow me, sir," said Prince Andrew in Russian in a cold, disagreeable
    tone to Prince Hippolyte who was blocking his path.
    
    "I am expecting you, Pierre," said the same voice, but gently and
    affectionately.
    
    The postilion started, the carriage wheels rattled. Prince Hippolyte
    laughed spasmodically as he stood in the porch waiting for the vicomte
    whom he had promised to take home.
    
    "Well, mon cher," said the vicomte, having seated himself beside
    Hippolyte in the carriage, "your little princess is very nice, very nice
    indeed, quite French," and he kissed the tips of his fingers. Hippolyte
    burst out laughing.
    
    "Do you know, you are a terrible chap for all your innocent airs,"
    continued the vicomte. "I pity the poor husband, that little officer who
    gives himself the airs of a monarch."
    
    Hippolyte spluttered again, and amid his laughter said, "And you were
    saying that the Russian ladies are not equal to the French? One has to
    know how to deal with them."
    
    Pierre reaching the house first went into Prince Andrew's study like one
    quite at home, and from habit immediately lay down on the sofa, took
    from the shelf the first book that came to his hand (it was Caesar's
    Commentaries), and resting on his elbow, began reading it in the middle.
    
    "What have you done to Mlle Scherer? She will be quite ill now," said
    Prince Andrew, as he entered the study, rubbing his small white hands.
    
    Pierre turned his whole body, making the sofa creak. He lifted his eager
    face to Prince Andrew, smiled, and waved his hand.
    
    "That abbe is very interesting but he does not see the thing in the
    right light.... In my opinion perpetual peace is possible but--I do not
    know how to express it... not by a balance of political power...."
    
    It was evident that Prince Andrew was not interested in such abstract
    conversation.
    
    "One can't everywhere say all one thinks, mon cher. Well, have you at
    last decided on anything? Are you going to be a guardsman or a
    diplomatist?" asked Prince Andrew after a momentary silence.
    
    Pierre sat up on the sofa, with his legs tucked under him.
    
    "Really, I don't yet know. I don't like either the one or the other."
    
    "But you must decide on something! Your father expects it."
    
    Pierre at the age of ten had been sent abroad with an abbe as tutor, and
    had remained away till he was twenty. When he returned to Moscow his
    father dismissed the abbe and said to the young man, "Now go to
    Petersburg, look round, and choose your profession. I will agree to
    anything. Here is a letter to Prince Vasili, and here is money. Write to
    me all about it, and I will help you in everything." Pierre had already
    been choosing a career for three months, and had not decided on
    anything. It was about this choice that Prince Andrew was speaking.
    Pierre rubbed his forehead.
    
    "But he must be a Freemason," said he, referring to the abbe whom he had
    met that evening.
    
    "That is all nonsense." Prince Andrew again interrupted him, "let us
    talk business. Have you been to the Horse Guards?"
    
    "No, I have not; but this is what I have been thinking and wanted to
    tell you. There is a war now against Napoleon. If it were a war for
    freedom I could understand it and should be the first to enter the army;
    but to help England and Austria against the greatest man in the world is
    not right."
    
    Prince Andrew only shrugged his shoulders at Pierre's childish words. He
    put on the air of one who finds it impossible to reply to such nonsense,
    but it would in fact have been difficult to give any other answer than
    the one Prince Andrew gave to this naive question.
    
    "If no one fought except on his own conviction, there would be no wars,"
    he said.
    
    "And that would be splendid," said Pierre.
    
    Prince Andrew smiled ironically.
    
    "Very likely it would be splendid, but it will never come about..."
    
    "Well, why are you going to the war?" asked Pierre.
    
    "What for? I don't know. I must. Besides that I am going..." He paused.
    "I am going because the life I am leading here does not suit me!"
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    The rustle of a woman's dress was heard in the next room. Prince Andrew
    shook himself as if waking up, and his face assumed the look it had had
    in Anna Pavlovna's drawing room. Pierre removed his feet from the sofa.
    The princess came in. She had changed her gown for a house dress as
    fresh and elegant as the other. Prince Andrew rose and politely placed a
    chair for her.
    
    "How is it," she began, as usual in French, settling down briskly and
    fussily in the easy chair, "how is it Annette never got married? How
    stupid you men all are not to have married her! Excuse me for saying so,
    but you have no sense about women. What an argumentative fellow you are,
    Monsieur Pierre!"
    
    "And I am still arguing with your husband. I can't understand why he
    wants to go to the war," replied Pierre, addressing the princess with
    none of the embarrassment so commonly shown by young men in their
    intercourse with young women.
    
    The princess started. Evidently Pierre's words touched her to the quick.
    
    "Ah, that is just what I tell him!" said she. "I don't understand it; I
    don't in the least understand why men can't live without wars. How is it
    that we women don't want anything of the kind, don't need it? Now you
    shall judge between us. I always tell him: Here he is Uncle's aide-de-
    camp, a most brilliant position. He is so well known, so much
    appreciated by everyone. The other day at the Apraksins' I heard a lady
    asking, 'Is that the famous Prince Andrew?' I did indeed." She laughed.
    "He is so well received everywhere. He might easily become aide-de-camp
    to the Emperor. You know the Emperor spoke to him most graciously.
    Annette and I were speaking of how to arrange it. What do you think?"
    
    Pierre looked at his friend and, noticing that he did not like the
    conversation, gave no reply.
    
    "When are you starting?" he asked.
    
    "Oh, don't speak of his going, don't! I won't hear it spoken of," said
    the princess in the same petulantly playful tone in which she had spoken
    to Hippolyte in the drawing room and which was so plainly ill-suited to
    the family circle of which Pierre was almost a member. "Today when I
    remembered that all these delightful associations must be broken off...
    and then you know, Andre..." (she looked significantly at her husband)
    "I'm afraid, I'm afraid!" she whispered, and a shudder ran down her
    back.
    
    Her husband looked at her as if surprised to notice that someone besides
    Pierre and himself was in the room, and addressed her in a tone of
    frigid politeness.
    
    "What is it you are afraid of, Lise? I don't understand," said he.
    
    "There, what egotists men all are: all, all egotists! Just for a whim of
    his own, goodness only knows why, he leaves me and locks me up alone in
    the country."
    
    "With my father and sister, remember," said Prince Andrew gently.
    
    "Alone all the same, without my friends.... And he expects me not to be
    afraid."
    
    Her tone was now querulous and her lip drawn up, giving her not a
    joyful, but an animal, squirrel-like expression. She paused as if she
    felt it indecorous to speak of her pregnancy before Pierre, though the
    gist of the matter lay in that.
    
    "I still can't understand what you are afraid of," said Prince Andrew
    slowly, not taking his eyes off his wife.
    
    The princess blushed, and raised her arms with a gesture of despair.
    
    "No, Andrew, I must say you have changed. Oh, how you have..."
    
    "Your doctor tells you to go to bed earlier," said Prince Andrew. "You
    had better go."
    
    The princess said nothing, but suddenly her short downy lip quivered.
    Prince Andrew rose, shrugged his shoulders, and walked about the room.
    
    Pierre looked over his spectacles with naive surprise, now at him and
    now at her, moved as if about to rise too, but changed his mind.
    
    "Why should I mind Monsieur Pierre being here?" exclaimed the little
    princess suddenly, her pretty face all at once distorted by a tearful
    grimace. "I have long wanted to ask you, Andrew, why you have changed so
    to me? What have I done to you? You are going to the war and have no
    pity for me. Why is it?"
    
    "Lise!" was all Prince Andrew said. But that one word expressed an
    entreaty, a threat, and above all conviction that she would herself
    regret her words. But she went on hurriedly:
    
    "You treat me like an invalid or a child. I see it all! Did you behave
    like that six months ago?"
    
    "Lise, I beg you to desist," said Prince Andrew still more emphatically.
    
    Pierre, who had been growing more and more agitated as he listened to
    all this, rose and approached the princess. He seemed unable to bear the
    sight of tears and was ready to cry himself.
    
    "Calm yourself, Princess! It seems so to you because... I assure you I
    myself have experienced... and so... because... No, excuse me! An
    outsider is out of place here... No, don't distress yourself... Good-
    bye!"
    
    Prince Andrew caught him by the hand.
    
    "No, wait, Pierre! The princess is too kind to wish to deprive me of the
    pleasure of spending the evening with you."
    
    "No, he thinks only of himself," muttered the princess without
    restraining her angry tears.
    
    "Lise!" said Prince Andrew dryly, raising his voice to the pitch which
    indicates that patience is exhausted.
    
    Suddenly the angry, squirrel-like expression of the princess' pretty
    face changed into a winning and piteous look of fear. Her beautiful eyes
    glanced askance at her husband's face, and her own assumed the timid,
    deprecating expression of a dog when it rapidly but feebly wags its
    drooping tail.
    
    "Mon Dieu, mon Dieu!" she muttered, and lifting her dress with one hand
    she went up to her husband and kissed him on the forehead.
    
    "Good night, Lise," said he, rising and courteously kissing her hand as
    he would have done to a stranger.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    The friends were silent. Neither cared to begin talking. Pierre
    continually glanced at Prince Andrew; Prince Andrew rubbed his forehead
    with his small hand.
    
    "Let us go and have supper," he said with a sigh, going to the door.
    
    They entered the elegant, newly decorated, and luxurious dining room.
    Everything from the table napkins to the silver, china, and glass bore
    that imprint of newness found in the households of the newly married.
    Halfway through supper Prince Andrew leaned his elbows on the table and,
    with a look of nervous agitation such as Pierre had never before seen on
    his face, began to talk--as one who has long had something on his mind
    and suddenly determines to speak out.
    
    "Never, never marry, my dear fellow! That's my advice: never marry till
    you can say to yourself that you have done all you are capable of, and
    until you have ceased to love the woman of your choice and have seen her
    plainly as she is, or else you will make a cruel and irrevocable
    mistake. Marry when you are old and good for nothing--or all that is
    good and noble in you will be lost. It will all be wasted on trifles.
    Yes! Yes! Yes! Don't look at me with such surprise. If you marry
    expecting anything from yourself in the future, you will feel at every
    step that for you all is ended, all is closed except the drawing room,
    where you will be ranged side by side with a court lackey and an
    idiot!... But what's the good?..." and he waved his arm.
    
    Pierre took off his spectacles, which made his face seem different and
    the good-natured expression still more apparent, and gazed at his friend
    in amazement.
    
    "My wife," continued Prince Andrew, "is an excellent woman, one of those
    rare women with whom a man's honor is safe; but, O God, what would I not
    give now to be unmarried! You are the first and only one to whom I
    mention this, because I like you."
    
    As he said this Prince Andrew was less than ever like that Bolkonski who
    had lolled in Anna Pavlovna's easy chairs and with half-closed eyes had
    uttered French phrases between his teeth. Every muscle of his thin face
    was now quivering with nervous excitement; his eyes, in which the fire
    of life had seemed extinguished, now flashed with brilliant light. It
    was evident that the more lifeless he seemed at ordinary times, the more
    impassioned he became in these moments of almost morbid irritation.
    
    "You don't understand why I say this," he continued, "but it is the
    whole story of life. You talk of Bonaparte and his career," said he
    (though Pierre had not mentioned Bonaparte), "but Bonaparte when he
    worked went step by step toward his goal. He was free, he had nothing
    but his aim to consider, and he reached it. But tie yourself up with a
    woman and, like a chained convict, you lose all freedom! And all you
    have of hope and strength merely weighs you down and torments you with
    regret. Drawing rooms, gossip, balls, vanity, and triviality--these are
    the enchanted circle I cannot escape from. I am now going to the war,
    the greatest war there ever was, and I know nothing and am fit for
    nothing. I am very amiable and have a caustic wit," continued Prince
    Andrew, "and at Anna Pavlovna's they listen to me. And that stupid set
    without whom my wife cannot exist, and those women... If you only knew
    what those society women are, and women in general! My father is right.
    Selfish, vain, stupid, trivial in everything--that's what women are when
    you see them in their true colors! When you meet them in society it
    seems as if there were something in them, but there's nothing, nothing,
    nothing! No, don't marry, my dear fellow; don't marry!" concluded Prince
    Andrew.
    
    "It seems funny to me," said Pierre, "that you, you should consider
    yourself incapable and your life a spoiled life. You have everything
    before you, everything. And you..."
    
    He did not finish his sentence, but his tone showed how highly he
    thought of his friend and how much he expected of him in the future.
    
    "How can he talk like that?" thought Pierre. He considered his friend a
    model of perfection because Prince Andrew possessed in the highest
    degree just the very qualities Pierre lacked, and which might be best
    described as strength of will. Pierre was always astonished at Prince
    Andrew's calm manner of treating everybody, his extraordinary memory,
    his extensive reading (he had read everything, knew everything, and had
    an opinion about everything), but above all at his capacity for work and
    study. And if Pierre was often struck by Andrew's lack of capacity for
    philosophical meditation (to which he himself was particularly
    addicted), he regarded even this not as a defect but as a sign of
    strength.
    
    Even in the best, most friendly and simplest relations of life, praise
    and commendation are essential, just as grease is necessary to wheels
    that they may run smoothly.
    
    "My part is played out," said Prince Andrew. "What's the use of talking
    about me? Let us talk about you," he added after a silence, smiling at
    his reassuring thoughts.
    
    That smile was immediately reflected on Pierre's face.
    
    "But what is there to say about me?" said Pierre, his face relaxing into
    a careless, merry smile. "What am I? An illegitimate son!" He suddenly
    blushed crimson, and it was plain that he had made a great effort to say
    this. "Without a name and without means... And it really..." But he did
    not say what "it really" was. "For the present I am free and am all
    right. Only I haven't the least idea what I am to do; I wanted to
    consult you seriously."
    
    Prince Andrew looked kindly at him, yet his glance--friendly and
    affectionate as it was--expressed a sense of his own superiority.
    
    "I am fond of you, especially as you are the one live man among our
    whole set. Yes, you're all right! Choose what you will; it's all the
    same. You'll be all right anywhere. But look here: give up visiting
    those Kuragins and leading that sort of life. It suits you so badly--all
    this debauchery, dissipation, and the rest of it!"
    
    "What would you have, my dear fellow?" answered Pierre, shrugging his
    shoulders. "Women, my dear fellow; women!"
    
    "I don't understand it," replied Prince Andrew. "Women who are comme il
    faut, that's a different matter; but the Kuragins' set of women, 'women
    and wine' I don't understand!"
    
    Pierre was staying at Prince Vasili Kuragin's and sharing the dissipated
    life of his son Anatole, the son whom they were planning to reform by
    marrying him to Prince Andrew's sister.
    
    "Do you know?" said Pierre, as if suddenly struck by a happy thought,
    "seriously, I have long been thinking of it.... Leading such a life I
    can't decide or think properly about anything. One's head aches, and one
    spends all one's money. He asked me for tonight, but I won't go."
    
    "You give me your word of honor not to go?"
    
    "On my honor!"
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    It was past one o'clock when Pierre left his friend. It was a cloudless,
    northern, summer night. Pierre took an open cab intending to drive
    straight home. But the nearer he drew to the house the more he felt the
    impossibility of going to sleep on such a night. It was light enough to
    see a long way in the deserted street and it seemed more like morning or
    evening than night. On the way Pierre remembered that Anatole Kuragin
    was expecting the usual set for cards that evening, after which there
    was generally a drinking bout, finishing with visits of a kind Pierre
    was very fond of.
    
    "I should like to go to Kuragin's," thought he.
    
    But he immediately recalled his promise to Prince Andrew not to go
    there. Then, as happens to people of weak character, he desired so
    passionately once more to enjoy that dissipation he was so accustomed to
    that he decided to go. The thought immediately occurred to him that his
    promise to Prince Andrew was of no account, because before he gave it he
    had already promised Prince Anatole to come to his gathering; "besides,"
    thought he, "all such 'words of honor' are conventional things with no
    definite meaning, especially if one considers that by tomorrow one may
    be dead, or something so extraordinary may happen to one that honor and
    dishonor will be all the same!" Pierre often indulged in reflections of
    this sort, nullifying all his decisions and intentions. He went to
    Kuragin's.
    
    Reaching the large house near the Horse Guards' barracks, in which
    Anatole lived, Pierre entered the lighted porch, ascended the stairs,
    and went in at the open door. There was no one in the anteroom; empty
    bottles, cloaks, and overshoes were lying about; there was a smell of
    alcohol, and sounds of voices and shouting in the distance.
    
    Cards and supper were over, but the visitors had not yet dispersed.
    Pierre threw off his cloak and entered the first room, in which were the
    remains of supper. A footman, thinking no one saw him, was drinking on
    the sly what was left in the glasses. From the third room came sounds of
    laughter, the shouting of familiar voices, the growling of a bear, and
    general commotion. Some eight or nine young men were crowding anxiously
    round an open window. Three others were romping with a young bear, one
    pulling him by the chain and trying to set him at the others.
    
    "I bet a hundred on Stevens!" shouted one.
    
    "Mind, no holding on!" cried another.
    
    "I bet on Dolokhov!" cried a third. "Kuragin, you part our hands."
    
    "There, leave Bruin alone; here's a bet on."
    
    "At one draught, or he loses!" shouted a fourth.
    
    "Jacob, bring a bottle!" shouted the host, a tall, handsome fellow who
    stood in the midst of the group, without a coat, and with his fine linen
    shirt unfastened in front. "Wait a bit, you fellows.... Here is Petya!
    Good man!" cried he, addressing Pierre.
    
    Another voice, from a man of medium height with clear blue eyes,
    particularly striking among all these drunken voices by its sober ring,
    cried from the window: "Come here; part the bets!" This was Dolokhov, an
    officer of the Semenov regiment, a notorious gambler and duelist, who
    was living with Anatole. Pierre smiled, looking about him merrily.
    
    "I don't understand. What's it all about?"
    
    "Wait a bit, he is not drunk yet! A bottle here," said Anatole, taking a
    glass from the table he went up to Pierre.
    
    "First of all you must drink!"
    
    Pierre drank one glass after another, looking from under his brows at
    the tipsy guests who were again crowding round the window, and listening
    to their chatter. Anatole kept on refilling Pierre's glass while
    explaining that Dolokhov was betting with Stevens, an English naval
    officer, that he would drink a bottle of rum sitting on the outer ledge
    of the third floor window with his legs hanging out.
    
    "Go on, you must drink it all," said Anatole, giving Pierre the last
    glass, "or I won't let you go!"
    
    "No, I won't," said Pierre, pushing Anatole aside, and he went up to the
    window.
    
    Dolokhov was holding the Englishman's hand and clearly and distinctly
    repeating the terms of the bet, addressing himself particularly to
    Anatole and Pierre.
    
    Dolokhov was of medium height, with curly hair and light-blue eyes. He
    was about twenty-five. Like all infantry officers he wore no mustache,
    so that his mouth, the most striking feature of his face, was clearly
    seen. The lines of that mouth were remarkably finely curved. The middle
    of the upper lip formed a sharp wedge and closed firmly on the firm
    lower one, and something like two distinct smiles played continually
    round the two corners of the mouth; this, together with the resolute,
    insolent intelligence of his eyes, produced an effect which made it
    impossible not to notice his face. Dolokhov was a man of small means and
    no connections. Yet, though Anatole spent tens of thousands of rubles,
    Dolokhov lived with him and had placed himself on such a footing that
    all who knew them, including Anatole himself, respected him more than
    they did Anatole. Dolokhov could play all games and nearly always won.
    However much he drank, he never lost his clearheadedness. Both Kuragin
    and Dolokhov were at that time notorious among the rakes and scapegraces
    of Petersburg.
    
    The bottle of rum was brought. The window frame which prevented anyone
    from sitting on the outer sill was being forced out by two footmen, who
    were evidently flurried and intimidated by the directions and shouts of
    the gentlemen around.
    
    Anatole with his swaggering air strode up to the window. He wanted to
    smash something. Pushing away the footmen he tugged at the frame, but
    could not move it. He smashed a pane.
    
    "You have a try, Hercules," said he, turning to Pierre.
    
    Pierre seized the crossbeam, tugged, and wrenched the oak frame out with
    a crash.
    
    "Take it right out, or they'll think I'm holding on," said Dolokhov.
    
    "Is the Englishman bragging?... Eh? Is it all right?" said Anatole.
    
    "First-rate," said Pierre, looking at Dolokhov, who with a bottle of rum
    in his hand was approaching the window, from which the light of the sky,
    the dawn merging with the afterglow of sunset, was visible.
    
    Dolokhov, the bottle of rum still in his hand, jumped onto the window
    sill. "Listen!" cried he, standing there and addressing those in the
    room. All were silent.
    
    "I bet fifty imperials"--he spoke French that the Englishman might
    understand him, but he did not speak it very well--"I bet fifty
    imperials... or do you wish to make it a hundred?" added he, addressing
    the Englishman.
    
    "No, fifty," replied the latter.
    
    "All right. Fifty imperials... that I will drink a whole bottle of rum
    without taking it from my mouth, sitting outside the window on this
    spot" (he stooped and pointed to the sloping ledge outside the window)
    "and without holding on to anything. Is that right?"
    
    "Quite right," said the Englishman.
    
    Anatole turned to the Englishman and taking him by one of the buttons of
    his coat and looking down at him--the Englishman was short--began
    repeating the terms of the wager to him in English.
    
    "Wait!" cried Dolokhov, hammering with the bottle on the window sill to
    attract attention. "Wait a bit, Kuragin. Listen! If anyone else does the
    same, I will pay him a hundred imperials. Do you understand?"
    
    The Englishman nodded, but gave no indication whether he intended to
    accept this challenge or not. Anatole did not release him, and though he
    kept nodding to show that he understood, Anatole went on translating
    Dolokhov's words into English. A thin young lad, an hussar of the Life
    Guards, who had been losing that evening, climbed on the window sill,
    leaned over, and looked down.
    
    "Oh! Oh! Oh!" he muttered, looking down from the window at the stones of
    the pavement.
    
    "Shut up!" cried Dolokhov, pushing him away from the window. The lad
    jumped awkwardly back into the room, tripping over his spurs.
    
    Placing the bottle on the window sill where he could reach it easily,
    Dolokhov climbed carefully and slowly through the window and lowered his
    legs. Pressing against both sides of the window, he adjusted himself on
    his seat, lowered his hands, moved a little to the right and then to the
    left, and took up the bottle. Anatole brought two candles and placed
    them on the window sill, though it was already quite light. Dolokhov's
    back in his white shirt, and his curly head, were lit up from both
    sides. Everyone crowded to the window, the Englishman in front. Pierre
    stood smiling but silent. One man, older than the others present,
    suddenly pushed forward with a scared and angry look and wanted to seize
    hold of Dolokhov's shirt.
    
    "I say, this is folly! He'll be killed," said this more sensible man.
    
    Anatole stopped him.
    
    "Don't touch him! You'll startle him and then he'll be killed. Eh?...
    What then?... Eh?"
    
    Dolokhov turned round and, again holding on with both hands, arranged
    himself on his seat.
    
    "If anyone comes meddling again," said he, emitting the words separately
    through his thin compressed lips, "I will throw him down there. Now
    then!"
    
    Saying this he again turned round, dropped his hands, took the bottle
    and lifted it to his lips, threw back his head, and raised his free hand
    to balance himself. One of the footmen who had stooped to pick up some
    broken glass remained in that position without taking his eyes from the
    window and from Dolokhov's back. Anatole stood erect with staring eyes.
    The Englishman looked on sideways, pursing up his lips. The man who had
    wished to stop the affair ran to a corner of the room and threw himself
    on a sofa with his face to the wall. Pierre hid his face, from which a
    faint smile forgot to fade though his features now expressed horror and
    fear. All were still. Pierre took his hands from his eyes. Dolokhov
    still sat in the same position, only his head was thrown further back
    till his curly hair touched his shirt collar, and the hand holding the
    bottle was lifted higher and higher and trembled with the effort. The
    bottle was emptying perceptibly and rising still higher and his head
    tilting yet further back. "Why is it so long?" thought Pierre. It seemed
    to him that more than half an hour had elapsed. Suddenly Dolokhov made a
    backward movement with his spine, and his arm trembled nervously; this
    was sufficient to cause his whole body to slip as he sat on the sloping
    ledge. As he began slipping down, his head and arm wavered still more
    with the strain. One hand moved as if to clutch the window sill, but
    refrained from touching it. Pierre again covered his eyes and thought he
    would never open them again. Suddenly he was aware of a stir all around.
    He looked up: Dolokhov was standing on the window sill, with a pale but
    radiant face.
    
    "It's empty."
    
    He threw the bottle to the Englishman, who caught it neatly. Dolokhov
    jumped down. He smelt strongly of rum.
    
    "Well done!... Fine fellow!... There's a bet for you!... Devil take
    you!" came from different sides.
    
    The Englishman took out his purse and began counting out the money.
    Dolokhov stood frowning and did not speak. Pierre jumped upon the window
    sill.
    
    "Gentlemen, who wishes to bet with me? I'll do the same thing!" he
    suddenly cried. "Even without a bet, there! Tell them to bring me a
    bottle. I'll do it.... Bring a bottle!"
    
    "Let him do it, let him do it," said Dolokhov, smiling.
    
    "What next? Have you gone mad?... No one would let you!... Why, you go
    giddy even on a staircase," exclaimed several voices.
    
    "I'll drink it! Let's have a bottle of rum!" shouted Pierre, banging the
    table with a determined and drunken gesture and preparing to climb out
    of the window.
    
    They seized him by his arms; but he was so strong that everyone who
    touched him was sent flying.
    
    "No, you'll never manage him that way," said Anatole. "Wait a bit and
    I'll get round him.... Listen! I'll take your bet tomorrow, but now we
    are all going to ----'s."
    
    "Come on then," cried Pierre. "Come on!... And we'll take Bruin with
    us."
    
    And he caught the bear, took it in his arms, lifted it from the ground,
    and began dancing round the room with it.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Prince Vasili kept the promise he had given to Princess Drubetskaya who
    had spoken to him on behalf of her only son Boris on the evening of Anna
    Pavlovna's soiree. The matter was mentioned to the Emperor, an exception
    made, and Boris transferred into the regiment of Semenov Guards with the
    rank of cornet. He received, however, no appointment to Kutuzov's staff
    despite all Anna Mikhaylovna's endeavors and entreaties. Soon after Anna
    Pavlovna's reception Anna Mikhaylovna returned to Moscow and went
    straight to her rich relations, the Rostovs, with whom she stayed when
    in the town and where her darling Bory, who had only just entered a
    regiment of the line and was being at once transferred to the Guards as
    a cornet, had been educated from childhood and lived for years at a
    time. The Guards had already left Petersburg on the tenth of August, and
    her son, who had remained in Moscow for his equipment, was to join them
    on the march to Radzivilov.
    
    It was St. Natalia's day and the name day of two of the Rostovs--the
    mother and the youngest daughter--both named Nataly. Ever since the
    morning, carriages with six horses had been coming and going
    continually, bringing visitors to the Countess Rostova's big house on
    the Povarskaya, so well known to all Moscow. The countess herself and
    her handsome eldest daughter were in the drawing-room with the visitors
    who came to congratulate, and who constantly succeeded one another in
    relays.
    
    The countess was a woman of about forty-five, with a thin Oriental type
    of face, evidently worn out with childbearing--she had had twelve. A
    languor of motion and speech, resulting from weakness, gave her a
    distinguished air which inspired respect. Princess Anna Mikhaylovna
    Drubetskaya, who as a member of the household was also seated in the
    drawing room, helped to receive and entertain the visitors. The young
    people were in one of the inner rooms, not considering it necessary to
    take part in receiving the visitors. The count met the guests and saw
    them off, inviting them all to dinner.
    
    "I am very, very grateful to you, mon cher," or "ma chere"--he called
    everyone without exception and without the slightest variation in his
    tone, "my dear," whether they were above or below him in rank--"I thank
    you for myself and for our two dear ones whose name day we are keeping.
    But mind you come to dinner or I shall be offended, ma chere! On behalf
    of the whole family I beg you to come, mon cher!" These words he
    repeated to everyone without exception or variation, and with the same
    expression on his full, cheerful, clean-shaven face, the same firm
    pressure of the hand and the same quick, repeated bows. As soon as he
    had seen a visitor off he returned to one of those who were still in the
    drawing room, drew a chair toward him or her, and jauntily spreading out
    his legs and putting his hands on his knees with the air of a man who
    enjoys life and knows how to live, he swayed to and fro with dignity,
    offered surmises about the weather, or touched on questions of health,
    sometimes in Russian and sometimes in very bad but self-confident
    French; then again, like a man weary but unflinching in the fulfillment
    of duty, he rose to see some visitors off and, stroking his scanty gray
    hairs over his bald patch, also asked them to dinner. Sometimes on his
    way back from the anteroom he would pass through the conservatory and
    pantry into the large marble dining hall, where tables were being set
    out for eighty people; and looking at the footmen, who were bringing in
    silver and china, moving tables, and unfolding damask table linen, he
    would call Dmitri Vasilevich, a man of good family and the manager of
    all his affairs, and while looking with pleasure at the enormous table
    would say: "Well, Dmitri, you'll see that things are all as they should
    be? That's right! The great thing is the serving, that's it." And with a
    complacent sigh he would return to the drawing room.
    
    "Marya Lvovna Karagina and her daughter!" announced the countess'
    gigantic footman in his bass voice, entering the drawing room. The
    countess reflected a moment and took a pinch from a gold snuffbox with
    her husband's portrait on it.
    
    "I'm quite worn out by these callers. However, I'll see her and no more.
    She is so affected. Ask her in," she said to the footman in a sad voice,
    as if saying: "Very well, finish me off."
    
    A tall, stout, and proud-looking woman, with a round-faced smiling
    daughter, entered the drawing room, their dresses rustling.
    
    "Dear Countess, what an age... She has been laid up, poor child... at
    the Razumovski's ball... and Countess Apraksina... I was so
    delighted..." came the sounds of animated feminine voices, interrupting
    one another and mingling with the rustling of dresses and the scraping
    of chairs. Then one of those conversations began which last out until,
    at the first pause, the guests rise with a rustle of dresses and say, "I
    am so delighted... Mamma's health... and Countess Apraksina..." and
    then, again rustling, pass into the anteroom, put on cloaks or mantles,
    and drive away. The conversation was on the chief topic of the day: the
    illness of the wealthy and celebrated beau of Catherine's day, Count
    Bezukhov, and about his illegitimate son Pierre, the one who had behaved
    so improperly at Anna Pavlovna's reception.
    
    "I am so sorry for the poor count," said the visitor. "He is in such bad
    health, and now this vexation about his son is enough to kill him!"
    
    "What is that?" asked the countess as if she did not know what the
    visitor alluded to, though she had already heard about the cause of
    Count Bezukhov's distress some fifteen times.
    
    "That's what comes of a modern education," exclaimed the visitor. "It
    seems that while he was abroad this young man was allowed to do as he
    liked, now in Petersburg I hear he has been doing such terrible things
    that he has been expelled by the police."
    
    "You don't say so!" replied the countess.
    
    "He chose his friends badly," interposed Anna Mikhaylovna. "Prince
    Vasili's son, he, and a certain Dolokhov have, it is said, been up to
    heaven only knows what! And they have had to suffer for it. Dolokhov has
    been degraded to the ranks and Bezukhov's son sent back to Moscow.
    Anatole Kuragin's father managed somehow to get his son's affair hushed
    up, but even he was ordered out of Petersburg."
    
    "But what have they been up to?" asked the countess.
    
    "They are regular brigands, especially Dolokhov," replied the visitor.
    "He is a son of Marya Ivanovna Dolokhova, such a worthy woman, but
    there, just fancy! Those three got hold of a bear somewhere, put it in a
    carriage, and set off with it to visit some actresses! The police tried
    to interfere, and what did the young men do? They tied a policeman and
    the bear back to back and put the bear into the Moyka Canal. And there
    was the bear swimming about with the policeman on his back!"
    
    "What a nice figure the policeman must have cut, my dear!" shouted the
    count, dying with laughter.
    
    "Oh, how dreadful! How can you laugh at it, Count?"
    
    Yet the ladies themselves could not help laughing.
    
    "It was all they could do to rescue the poor man," continued the
    visitor. "And to think it is Cyril Vladimirovich Bezukhov's son who
    amuses himself in this sensible manner! And he was said to be so well
    educated and clever. This is all that his foreign education has done for
    him! I hope that here in Moscow no one will receive him, in spite of his
    money. They wanted to introduce him to me, but I quite declined: I have
    my daughters to consider."
    
    "Why do you say this young man is so rich?" asked the countess, turning
    away from the girls, who at once assumed an air of inattention. "His
    children are all illegitimate. I think Pierre also is illegitimate."
    
    The visitor made a gesture with her hand.
    
    "I should think he has a score of them."
    
    Princess Anna Mikhaylovna intervened in the conversation, evidently
    wishing to show her connections and knowledge of what went on in
    society.
    
    "The fact of the matter is," said she significantly, and also in a half
    whisper, "everyone knows Count Cyril's reputation.... He has lost count
    of his children, but this Pierre was his favorite."
    
    "How handsome the old man still was only a year ago!" remarked the
    countess. "I have never seen a handsomer man."
    
    "He is very much altered now," said Anna Mikhaylovna. "Well, as I was
    saying, Prince Vasili is the next heir through his wife, but the count
    is very fond of Pierre, looked after his education, and wrote to the
    Emperor about him; so that in the case of his death--and he is so ill
    that he may die at any moment, and Dr. Lorrain has come from Petersburg-
    -no one knows who will inherit his immense fortune, Pierre or Prince
    Vasili. Forty thousand serfs and millions of rubles! I know it all very
    well for Prince Vasili told me himself. Besides, Cyril Vladimirovich is
    my mother's second cousin. He's also my Bory's godfather," she added, as
    if she attached no importance at all to the fact.
    
    "Prince Vasili arrived in Moscow yesterday. I hear he has come on some
    inspection business," remarked the visitor.
    
    "Yes, but between ourselves," said the princess, "that is a pretext. The
    fact is he has come to see Count Cyril Vladimirovich, hearing how ill he
    is."
    
    "But do you know, my dear, that was a capital joke," said the count; and
    seeing that the elder visitor was not listening, he turned to the young
    ladies. "I can just imagine what a funny figure that policeman cut!"
    
    And as he waved his arms to impersonate the policeman, his portly form
    again shook with a deep ringing laugh, the laugh of one who always eats
    well and, in particular, drinks well. "So do come and dine with us!" he
    said.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Silence ensued. The countess looked at her callers, smiling affably, but
    not concealing the fact that she would not be distressed if they now
    rose and took their leave. The visitor's daughter was already smoothing
    down her dress with an inquiring look at her mother, when suddenly from
    the next room were heard the footsteps of boys and girls running to the
    door and the noise of a chair falling over, and a girl of thirteen,
    hiding something in the folds of her short muslin frock, darted in and
    stopped short in the middle of the room. It was evident that she had not
    intended her flight to bring her so far. Behind her in the doorway
    appeared a student with a crimson coat collar, an officer of the Guards,
    a girl of fifteen, and a plump rosy-faced boy in a short jacket.
    
    The count jumped up and, swaying from side to side, spread his arms wide
    and threw them round the little girl who had run in.
    
    "Ah, here she is!" he exclaimed laughing. "My pet, whose name day it is.
    My dear pet!"
    
    "Ma chere, there is a time for everything," said the countess with
    feigned severity. "You spoil her, Ilya," she added, turning to her
    husband.
    
    "How do you do, my dear? I wish you many happy returns of your name
    day," said the visitor. "What a charming child," she added, addressing
    the mother.
    
    This black-eyed, wide-mouthed girl, not pretty but full of life--with
    childish bare shoulders which after her run heaved and shook her bodice,
    with black curls tossed backward, thin bare arms, little legs in lace-
    frilled drawers, and feet in low slippers--was just at that charming age
    when a girl is no longer a child, though the child is not yet a young
    woman. Escaping from her father she ran to hide her flushed face in the
    lace of her mother's mantilla--not paying the least attention to her
    severe remark--and began to laugh. She laughed, and in fragmentary
    sentences tried to explain about a doll which she produced from the
    folds of her frock.
    
    "Do you see?... My doll... Mimi... You see..." was all Natasha managed
    to utter (to her everything seemed funny). She leaned against her mother
    and burst into such a loud, ringing fit of laughter that even the prim
    visitor could not help joining in.
    
    "Now then, go away and take your monstrosity with you," said the mother,
    pushing away her daughter with pretended sternness, and turning to the
    visitor she added: "She is my youngest girl."
    
    Natasha, raising her face for a moment from her mother's mantilla,
    glanced up at her through tears of laughter, and again hid her face.
    
    The visitor, compelled to look on at this family scene, thought it
    necessary to take some part in it.
    
    "Tell me, my dear," said she to Natasha, "is Mimi a relation of yours? A
    daughter, I suppose?"
    
    Natasha did not like the visitor's tone of condescension to childish
    things. She did not reply, but looked at her seriously.
    
    Meanwhile the younger generation: Boris, the officer, Anna Mikhaylovna's
    son; Nicholas, the undergraduate, the count's eldest son; Sonya, the
    count's fifteen-year-old niece, and little Petya, his youngest boy, had
    all settled down in the drawing room and were obviously trying to
    restrain within the bounds of decorum the excitement and mirth that
    shone in all their faces. Evidently in the back rooms, from which they
    had dashed out so impetuously, the conversation had been more amusing
    than the drawing-room talk of society scandals, the weather, and
    Countess Apraksina. Now and then they glanced at one another, hardly
    able to suppress their laughter.
    
    The two young men, the student and the officer, friends from childhood,
    were of the same age and both handsome fellows, though not alike. Boris
    was tall and fair, and his calm and handsome face had regular, delicate
    features. Nicholas was short with curly hair and an open expression.
    Dark hairs were already showing on his upper lip, and his whole face
    expressed impetuosity and enthusiasm. Nicholas blushed when he entered
    the drawing room. He evidently tried to find something to say, but
    failed. Boris on the contrary at once found his footing, and related
    quietly and humorously how he had known that doll Mimi when she was
    still quite a young lady, before her nose was broken; how she had aged
    during the five years he had known her, and how her head had cracked
    right across the skull. Having said this he glanced at Natasha. She
    turned away from him and glanced at her younger brother, who was
    screwing up his eyes and shaking with suppressed laughter, and unable to
    control herself any longer, she jumped up and rushed from the room as
    fast as her nimble little feet would carry her. Boris did not laugh.
    
    "You were meaning to go out, weren't you, Mamma? Do you want the
    carriage?" he asked his mother with a smile.
    
    "Yes, yes, go and tell them to get it ready," she answered, returning
    his smile.
    
    Boris quietly left the room and went in search of Natasha. The plump boy
    ran after them angrily, as if vexed that their program had been
    disturbed.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    The only young people remaining in the drawing room, not counting the
    young lady visitor and the countess' eldest daughter (who was four years
    older than her sister and behaved already like a grown-up person), were
    Nicholas and Sonya, the niece. Sonya was a slender little brunette with
    a tender look in her eyes which were veiled by long lashes, thick black
    plaits coiling twice round her head, and a tawny tint in her complexion
    and especially in the color of her slender but graceful and muscular
    arms and neck. By the grace of her movements, by the softness and
    flexibility of her small limbs, and by a certain coyness and reserve of
    manner, she reminded one of a pretty, half-grown kitten which promises
    to become a beautiful little cat. She evidently considered it proper to
    show an interest in the general conversation by smiling, but in spite of
    herself her eyes under their thick long lashes watched her cousin who
    was going to join the army, with such passionate girlish adoration that
    her smile could not for a single instant impose upon anyone, and it was
    clear that the kitten had settled down only to spring up with more
    energy and again play with her cousin as soon as they too could, like
    Natasha and Boris, escape from the drawing room.
    
    "Ah yes, my dear," said the count, addressing the visitor and pointing
    to Nicholas, "his friend Boris has become an officer, and so for
    friendship's sake he is leaving the university and me, his old father,
    and entering the military service, my dear. And there was a place and
    everything waiting for him in the Archives Department! Isn't that
    friendship?" remarked the count in an inquiring tone.
    
    "But they say that war has been declared," replied the visitor.
    
    "They've been saying so a long while," said the count, "and they'll say
    so again and again, and that will be the end of it. My dear, there's
    friendship for you," he repeated. "He's joining the hussars."
    
    The visitor, not knowing what to say, shook her head.
    
    "It's not at all from friendship," declared Nicholas, flaring up and
    turning away as if from a shameful aspersion. "It is not from friendship
    at all; I simply feel that the army is my vocation."
    
    He glanced at his cousin and the young lady visitor; and they were both
    regarding him with a smile of approbation.
    
    "Schubert, the colonel of the Pavlograd Hussars, is dining with us
    today. He has been here on leave and is taking Nicholas back with him.
    It can't be helped!" said the count, shrugging his shoulders and
    speaking playfully of a matter that evidently distressed him.
    
    "I have already told you, Papa," said his son, "that if you don't wish
    to let me go, I'll stay. But I know I am no use anywhere except in the
    army; I am not a diplomat or a government clerk.--I don't know how to
    hide what I feel." As he spoke he kept glancing with the flirtatiousness
    of a handsome youth at Sonya and the young lady visitor.
    
    The little kitten, feasting her eyes on him, seemed ready at any moment
    to start her gambols again and display her kittenish nature.
    
    "All right, all right!" said the old count. "He always flares up! This
    Buonaparte has turned all their heads; they all think of how he rose
    from an ensign and became Emperor. Well, well, God grant it," he added,
    not noticing his visitor's sarcastic smile.
    
    The elders began talking about Bonaparte. Julie Karagina turned to young
    Rostov.
    
    "What a pity you weren't at the Arkharovs' on Thursday. It was so dull
    without you," said she, giving him a tender smile.
    
    The young man, flattered, sat down nearer to her with a coquettish
    smile, and engaged the smiling Julie in a confidential conversation
    without at all noticing that his involuntary smile had stabbed the heart
    of Sonya, who blushed and smiled unnaturally. In the midst of his talk
    he glanced round at her. She gave him a passionately angry glance, and
    hardly able to restrain her tears and maintain the artificial smile on
    her lips, she got up and left the room. All Nicholas' animation
    vanished. He waited for the first pause in the conversation, and then
    with a distressed face left the room to find Sonya.
    
    "How plainly all these young people wear their hearts on their sleeves!"
    said Anna Mikhaylovna, pointing to Nicholas as he went out. "Cousinage--
    dangereux voisinage;" * she added.
    
    * Cousinhood is a dangerous neighborhood.
    
    "Yes," said the countess when the brightness these young people had
    brought into the room had vanished; and as if answering a question no
    one had put but which was always in her mind, "and how much suffering,
    how much anxiety one has had to go through that we might rejoice in them
    now! And yet really the anxiety is greater now than the joy. One is
    always, always anxious! Especially just at this age, so dangerous both
    for girls and boys."
    
    "It all depends on the bringing up," remarked the visitor.
    
    "Yes, you're quite right," continued the countess. "Till now I have
    always, thank God, been my children's friend and had their full
    confidence," said she, repeating the mistake of so many parents who
    imagine that their children have no secrets from them. "I know I shall
    always be my daughters' first confidante, and that if Nicholas, with his
    impulsive nature, does get into mischief (a boy can't help it), he will
    all the same never be like those Petersburg young men."
    
    "Yes, they are splendid, splendid youngsters," chimed in the count, who
    always solved questions that seemed to him perplexing by deciding that
    everything was splendid. "Just fancy: wants to be an hussar. What's one
    to do, my dear?"
    
    "What a charming creature your younger girl is," said the visitor; "a
    little volcano!"
    
    "Yes, a regular volcano," said the count. "Takes after me! And what a
    voice she has; though she's my daughter, I tell the truth when I say
    she'll be a singer, a second Salomoni! We have engaged an Italian to
    give her lessons."
    
    "Isn't she too young? I have heard that it harms the voice to train it
    at that age."
    
    "Oh no, not at all too young!" replied the count. "Why, our mothers used
    to be married at twelve or thirteen."
    
    "And she's in love with Boris already. Just fancy!" said the countess
    with a gentle smile, looking at Boris and went on, evidently concerned
    with a thought that always occupied her: "Now you see if I were to be
    severe with her and to forbid it... goodness knows what they might be up
    to on the sly" (she meant that they would be kissing), "but as it is, I
    know every word she utters. She will come running to me of her own
    accord in the evening and tell me everything. Perhaps I spoil her, but
    really that seems the best plan. With her elder sister I was stricter."
    
    "Yes, I was brought up quite differently," remarked the handsome elder
    daughter, Countess Vera, with a smile.
    
    But the smile did not enhance Vera's beauty as smiles generally do; on
    the contrary it gave her an unnatural, and therefore unpleasant,
    expression. Vera was good-looking, not at all stupid, quick at learning,
    was well-brought up, and had a pleasant voice; what she said was true
    and appropriate, yet, strange to say, everyone--the visitors and
    countess alike--turned to look at her as if wondering why she had said
    it, and they all felt awkward.
    
    "People are always too clever with their eldest children and try to make
    something exceptional of them," said the visitor.
    
    "What's the good of denying it, my dear? Our dear countess was too
    clever with Vera," said the count. "Well, what of that? She's turned out
    splendidly all the same," he added, winking at Vera.
    
    The guests got up and took their leave, promising to return to dinner.
    
    "What manners! I thought they would never go," said the countess, when
    she had seen her guests out.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    When Natasha ran out of the drawing room she only went as far as the
    conservatory. There she paused and stood listening to the conversation
    in the drawing room, waiting for Boris to come out. She was already
    growing impatient, and stamped her foot, ready to cry at his not coming
    at once, when she heard the young man's discreet steps approaching
    neither quickly nor slowly. At this Natasha dashed swiftly among the
    flower tubs and hid there.
    
    Boris paused in the middle of the room, looked round, brushed a little
    dust from the sleeve of his uniform, and going up to a mirror examined
    his handsome face. Natasha, very still, peered out from her ambush,
    waiting to see what he would do. He stood a little while before the
    glass, smiled, and walked toward the other door. Natasha was about to
    call him but changed her mind. "Let him look for me," thought she.
    Hardly had Boris gone than Sonya, flushed, in tears, and muttering
    angrily, came in at the other door. Natasha checked her first impulse to
    run out to her, and remained in her hiding place, watching--as under an
    invisible cap--to see what went on in the world. She was experiencing a
    new and peculiar pleasure. Sonya, muttering to herself, kept looking
    round toward the drawing-room door. It opened and Nicholas came in.
    
    "Sonya, what is the matter with you? How can you?" said he, running up
    to her.
    
    "It's nothing, nothing; leave me alone!" sobbed Sonya.
    
    "Ah, I know what it is."
    
    "Well, if you do, so much the better, and you can go back to her!"
    
    "So-o-onya! Look here! How can you torture me and yourself like that,
    for a mere fancy?" said Nicholas taking her hand.
    
    Sonya did not pull it away, and left off crying. Natasha, not stirring
    and scarcely breathing, watched from her ambush with sparkling eyes.
    "What will happen now?" thought she.
    
    "Sonya! What is anyone in the world to me? You alone are everything!"
    said Nicholas. "And I will prove it to you."
    
    "I don't like you to talk like that."
    
    "Well, then, I won't; only forgive me, Sonya!" He drew her to him and
    kissed her.
    
    "Oh, how nice," thought Natasha; and when Sonya and Nicholas had gone
    out of the conservatory she followed and called Boris to her.
    
    "Boris, come here," said she with a sly and significant look. "I have
    something to tell you. Here, here!" and she led him into the
    conservatory to the place among the tubs where she had been hiding.
    
    Boris followed her, smiling.
    
    "What is the something?" asked he.
    
    She grew confused, glanced round, and, seeing the doll she had thrown
    down on one of the tubs, picked it up.
    
    "Kiss the doll," said she.
    
    Boris looked attentively and kindly at her eager face, but did not
    reply.
    
    "Don't you want to? Well, then, come here," said she, and went further
    in among the plants and threw down the doll. "Closer, closer!" she
    whispered.
    
    She caught the young officer by his cuffs, and a look of solemnity and
    fear appeared on her flushed face.
    
    "And me? Would you like to kiss me?" she whispered almost inaudibly,
    glancing up at him from under her brows, smiling, and almost crying from
    excitement.
    
    Boris blushed.
    
    "How funny you are!" he said, bending down to her and blushing still
    more, but he waited and did nothing.
    
    Suddenly she jumped up onto a tub to be higher than he, embraced him so
    that both her slender bare arms clasped him above his neck, and, tossing
    back her hair, kissed him full on the lips.
    
    Then she slipped down among the flowerpots on the other side of the tubs
    and stood, hanging her head.
    
    "Natasha," he said, "you know that I love you, but..."
    
    "You are in love with me?" Natasha broke in.
    
    "Yes, I am, but please don't let us do like that.... In another four
    years... then I will ask for your hand."
    
    Natasha considered.
    
    "Thirteen, fourteen, fifteen, sixteen," she counted on her slender
    little fingers. "All right! Then it's settled?"
    
    A smile of joy and satisfaction lit up her eager face.
    
    "Settled!" replied Boris.
    
    "Forever?" said the little girl. "Till death itself?"
    
    She took his arm and with a happy face went with him into the adjoining
    sitting room.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    After receiving her visitors, the countess was so tired that she gave
    orders to admit no more, but the porter was told to be sure to invite to
    dinner all who came "to congratulate." The countess wished to have a
    tête-à-tête talk with the friend of her childhood, Princess Anna
    Mikhaylovna, whom she had not seen properly since she returned from
    Petersburg. Anna Mikhaylovna, with her tear-worn but pleasant face, drew
    her chair nearer to that of the countess.
    
    "With you I will be quite frank," said Anna Mikhaylovna. "There are not
    many left of us old friends! That's why I so value your friendship."
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna looked at Vera and paused. The countess pressed her
    friend's hand.
    
    "Vera," she said to her eldest daughter who was evidently not a
    favorite, "how is it you have so little tact? Don't you see you are not
    wanted here? Go to the other girls, or..."
    
    The handsome Vera smiled contemptuously but did not seem at all hurt.
    
    "If you had told me sooner, Mamma, I would have gone," she replied as
    she rose to go to her own room.
    
    But as she passed the sitting room she noticed two couples sitting, one
    pair at each window. She stopped and smiled scornfully. Sonya was
    sitting close to Nicholas who was copying out some verses for her, the
    first he had ever written. Boris and Natasha were at the other window
    and ceased talking when Vera entered. Sonya and Natasha looked at Vera
    with guilty, happy faces.
    
    It was pleasant and touching to see these little girls in love; but
    apparently the sight of them roused no pleasant feeling in Vera.
    
    "How often have I asked you not to take my things?" she said. "You have
    a room of your own," and she took the inkstand from Nicholas.
    
    "In a minute, in a minute," he said, dipping his pen.
    
    "You always manage to do things at the wrong time," continued Vera. "You
    came rushing into the drawing room so that everyone felt ashamed of
    you."
    
    Though what she said was quite just, perhaps for that very reason no one
    replied, and the four simply looked at one another. She lingered in the
    room with the inkstand in her hand.
    
    "And at your age what secrets can there be between Natasha and Boris, or
    between you two? It's all nonsense!"
    
    "Now, Vera, what does it matter to you?" said Natasha in defense,
    speaking very gently.
    
    She seemed that day to be more than ever kind and affectionate to
    everyone.
    
    "Very silly," said Vera. "I am ashamed of you. Secrets indeed!"
    
    "All have secrets of their own," answered Natasha, getting warmer. "We
    don't interfere with you and Berg."
    
    "I should think not," said Vera, "because there can never be anything
    wrong in my behavior. But I'll just tell Mamma how you are behaving with
    Boris."
    
    "Natalya Ilynichna behaves very well to me," remarked Boris. "I have
    nothing to complain of."
    
    "Don't, Boris! You are such a diplomat that it is really tiresome," said
    Natasha in a mortified voice that trembled slightly. (She used the word
    "diplomat," which was just then much in vogue among the children, in the
    special sense they attached to it.) "Why does she bother me?" And she
    added, turning to Vera, "You'll never understand it, because you've
    never loved anyone. You have no heart! You are a Madame de Genlis and
    nothing more" (this nickname, bestowed on Vera by Nicholas, was
    considered very stinging), "and your greatest pleasure is to be
    unpleasant to people! Go and flirt with Berg as much as you please," she
    finished quickly.
    
    "I shall at any rate not run after a young man before visitors..."
    
    "Well, now you've done what you wanted," put in Nicholas--"said
    unpleasant things to everyone and upset them. Let's go to the nursery."
    
    All four, like a flock of scared birds, got up and left the room.
    
    "The unpleasant things were said to me," remarked Vera, "I said none to
    anyone."
    
    "Madame de Genlis! Madame de Genlis!" shouted laughing voices through
    the door.
    
    The handsome Vera, who produced such an irritating and unpleasant effect
    on everyone, smiled and, evidently unmoved by what had been said to her,
    went to the looking glass and arranged her hair and scarf. Looking at
    her own handsome face she seemed to become still colder and calmer.
    
    In the drawing room the conversation was still going on.
    
    "Ah, my dear," said the countess, "my life is not all roses either.
    Don't I know that at the rate we are living our means won't last long?
    It's all the Club and his easygoing nature. Even in the country do we
    get any rest? Theatricals, hunting, and heaven knows what besides! But
    don't let's talk about me; tell me how you managed everything. I often
    wonder at you, Annette--how at your age you can rush off alone in a
    carriage to Moscow, to Petersburg, to those ministers and great people,
    and know how to deal with them all! It's quite astonishing. How did you
    get things settled? I couldn't possibly do it."
    
    "Ah, my love," answered Anna Mikhaylovna, "God grant you never know what
    it is to be left a widow without means and with a son you love to
    distraction! One learns many things then," she added with a certain
    pride. "That lawsuit taught me much. When I want to see one of those big
    people I write a note: 'Princess So-and-So desires an interview with So
    and-So,' and then I take a cab and go myself two, three, or four times--
    till I get what I want. I don't mind what they think of me."
    
    "Well, and to whom did you apply about Bory?" asked the countess. "You
    see yours is already an officer in the Guards, while my Nicholas is
    going as a cadet. There's no one to interest himself for him. To whom
    did you apply?"
    
    "To Prince Vasili. He was so kind. He at once agreed to everything, and
    put the matter before the Emperor," said Princess Anna Mikhaylovna
    enthusiastically, quite forgetting all the humiliation she had endured
    to gain her end.
    
    "Has Prince Vasili aged much?" asked the countess. "I have not seen him
    since we acted together at the Rumyantsovs' theatricals. I expect he has
    forgotten me. He paid me attentions in those days," said the countess,
    with a smile.
    
    "He is just the same as ever," replied Anna Mikhaylovna, "overflowing
    with amiability. His position has not turned his head at all. He said to
    me, 'I am sorry I can do so little for you, dear Princess. I am at your
    command.' Yes, he is a fine fellow and a very kind relation. But,
    Nataly, you know my love for my son: I would do anything for his
    happiness! And my affairs are in such a bad way that my position is now
    a terrible one," continued Anna Mikhaylovna, sadly, dropping her voice.
    "My wretched lawsuit takes all I have and makes no progress. Would you
    believe it, I have literally not a penny and don't know how to equip
    Boris." She took out her handkerchief and began to cry. "I need five
    hundred rubles, and have only one twenty-five-ruble note. I am in such a
    state.... My only hope now is in Count Cyril Vladimirovich Bezukhov. If
    he will not assist his godson--you know he is Bory's godfather--and
    allow him something for his maintenance, all my trouble will have been
    thrown away.... I shall not be able to equip him."
    
    The countess' eyes filled with tears and she pondered in silence.
    
    "I often think, though, perhaps it's a sin," said the princess, "that
    here lives Count Cyril Vladimirovich Bezukhov so rich, all alone... that
    tremendous fortune... and what is his life worth? It's a burden to him,
    and Bory's life is only just beginning...."
    
    "Surely he will leave something to Boris," said the countess.
    
    "Heaven only knows, my dear! These rich grandees are so selfish. Still,
    I will take Boris and go to see him at once, and I shall speak to him
    straight out. Let people think what they will of me, it's really all the
    same to me when my son's fate is at stake." The princess rose. "It's now
    two o'clock and you dine at four. There will just be time."
    
    And like a practical Petersburg lady who knows how to make the most of
    time, Anna Mikhaylovna sent someone to call her son, and went into the
    anteroom with him.
    
    "Good-bye, my dear," said she to the countess who saw her to the door,
    and added in a whisper so that her son should not hear, "Wish me good
    luck."
    
    "Are you going to Count Cyril Vladimirovich, my dear?" said the count
    coming out from the dining hall into the anteroom, and he added: "If he
    is better, ask Pierre to dine with us. He has been to the house, you
    know, and danced with the children. Be sure to invite him, my dear. We
    will see how Taras distinguishes himself today. He says Count Orlov
    never gave such a dinner as ours will be!"
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    "My dear Boris," said Princess Anna Mikhaylovna to her son as Countess
    Rostova's carriage in which they were seated drove over the straw
    covered street and turned into the wide courtyard of Count Cyril
    Vladimirovich Bezukhov's house. "My dear Boris," said the mother,
    drawing her hand from beneath her old mantle and laying it timidly and
    tenderly on her son's arm, "be affectionate and attentive to him. Count
    Cyril Vladimirovich is your godfather after all, your future depends on
    him. Remember that, my dear, and be nice to him, as you so well know how
    to be."
    
    "If only I knew that anything besides humiliation would come of it..."
    answered her son coldly. "But I have promised and will do it for your
    sake."
    
    Although the hall porter saw someone's carriage standing at the
    entrance, after scrutinizing the mother and son (who without asking to
    be announced had passed straight through the glass porch between the
    rows of statues in niches) and looking significantly at the lady's old
    cloak, he asked whether they wanted the count or the princesses, and,
    hearing that they wished to see the count, said his excellency was worse
    today, and that his excellency was not receiving anyone.
    
    "We may as well go back," said the son in French.
    
    "My dear!" exclaimed his mother imploringly, again laying her hand on
    his arm as if that touch might soothe or rouse him.
    
    Boris said no more, but looked inquiringly at his mother without taking
    off his cloak.
    
    "My friend," said Anna Mikhaylovna in gentle tones, addressing the hall
    porter, "I know Count Cyril Vladimirovich is very ill... that's why I
    have come... I am a relation. I shall not disturb him, my friend... I
    only need see Prince Vasili Sergeevich: he is staying here, is he not?
    Please announce me."
    
    The hall porter sullenly pulled a bell that rang upstairs, and turned
    away.
    
    "Princess Drubetskaya to see Prince Vasili Sergeevich," he called to a
    footman dressed in knee breeches, shoes, and a swallow-tail coat, who
    ran downstairs and looked over from the halfway landing.
    
    The mother smoothed the folds of her dyed silk dress before a large
    Venetian mirror in the wall, and in her trodden-down shoes briskly
    ascended the carpeted stairs.
    
    "My dear," she said to her son, once more stimulating him by a touch,
    "you promised me!"
    
    The son, lowering his eyes, followed her quietly.
    
    They entered the large hall, from which one of the doors led to the
    apartments assigned to Prince Vasili.
    
    Just as the mother and son, having reached the middle of the hall, were
    about to ask their way of an elderly footman who had sprung up as they
    entered, the bronze handle of one of the doors turned and Prince Vasili
    came out--wearing a velvet coat with a single star on his breast, as was
    his custom when at home--taking leave of a good-looking, dark-haired
    man. This was the celebrated Petersburg doctor, Lorrain.
    
    "Then it is certain?" said the prince.
    
    "Prince, humanum est errare, * but..." replied the doctor, swallowing
    his r's, and pronouncing the Latin words with a French accent.
    
    * To err is human.
    
    "Very well, very well..."
    
    Seeing Anna Mikhaylovna and her son, Prince Vasili dismissed the doctor
    with a bow and approached them silently and with a look of inquiry. The
    son noticed that an expression of profound sorrow suddenly clouded his
    mother's face, and he smiled slightly.
    
    "Ah, Prince! In what sad circumstances we meet again! And how is our
    dear invalid?" said she, as though unaware of the cold offensive look
    fixed on her.
    
    Prince Vasili stared at her and at Boris questioningly and perplexed.
    Boris bowed politely. Prince Vasili without acknowledging the bow turned
    to Anna Mikhaylovna, answering her query by a movement of the head and
    lips indicating very little hope for the patient.
    
    "Is it possible?" exclaimed Anna Mikhaylovna. "Oh, how awful! It is
    terrible to think.... This is my son," she added, indicating Boris. "He
    wanted to thank you himself."
    
    Boris bowed again politely.
    
    "Believe me, Prince, a mother's heart will never forget what you have
    done for us."
    
    "I am glad I was able to do you a service, my dear Anna Mikhaylovna,"
    said Prince Vasili, arranging his lace frill, and in tone and manner,
    here in Moscow to Anna Mikhaylovna whom he had placed under an
    obligation, assuming an air of much greater importance than he had done
    in Petersburg at Anna Scherer's reception.
    
    "Try to serve well and show yourself worthy," added he, addressing Boris
    with severity. "I am glad.... Are you here on leave?" he went on in his
    usual tone of indifference.
    
    "I am awaiting orders to join my new regiment, your excellency," replied
    Boris, betraying neither annoyance at the prince's brusque manner nor a
    desire to enter into conversation, but speaking so quietly and
    respectfully that the prince gave him a searching glance.
    
    "Are you living with your mother?"
    
    "I am living at Countess Rostova's," replied Boris, again adding, "your
    excellency."
    
    "That is, with Ilya Rostov who married Nataly Shinshina," said Anna
    Mikhaylovna.
    
    "I know, I know," answered Prince Vasili in his monotonous voice. "I
    never could understand how Nataly made up her mind to marry that
    unlicked bear! A perfectly absurd and stupid fellow, and a gambler too,
    I am told."
    
    "But a very kind man, Prince," said Anna Mikhaylovna with a pathetic
    smile, as though she too knew that Count Rostov deserved this censure,
    but asked him not to be too hard on the poor old man. "What do the
    doctors say?" asked the princess after a pause, her worn face again
    expressing deep sorrow.
    
    "They give little hope," replied the prince.
    
    "And I should so like to thank Uncle once for all his kindness to me and
    Boris. He is his godson," she added, her tone suggesting that this fact
    ought to give Prince Vasili much satisfaction.
    
    Prince Vasili became thoughtful and frowned. Anna Mikhaylovna saw that
    he was afraid of finding in her a rival for Count Bezukhov's fortune,
    and hastened to reassure him.
    
    "If it were not for my sincere affection and devotion to Uncle," said
    she, uttering the word with peculiar assurance and unconcern, "I know
    his character: noble, upright... but you see he has no one with him
    except the young princesses.... They are still young...." She bent her
    head and continued in a whisper: "Has he performed his final duty,
    Prince? How priceless are those last moments! It can make things no
    worse, and it is absolutely necessary to prepare him if he is so ill. We
    women, Prince," and she smiled tenderly, "always know how to say these
    things. I absolutely must see him, however painful it may be for me. I
    am used to suffering."
    
    Evidently the prince understood her, and also understood, as he had done
    at Anna Pavlovna's, that it would be difficult to get rid of Anna
    Mikhaylovna.
    
    "Would not such a meeting be too trying for him, dear Anna Mikhaylovna?"
    said he. "Let us wait until evening. The doctors are expecting a
    crisis."
    
    "But one cannot delay, Prince, at such a moment! Consider that the
    welfare of his soul is at stake. Ah, it is awful: the duties of a
    Christian..."
    
    A door of one of the inner rooms opened and one of the princesses, the
    count's niece, entered with a cold, stern face. The length of her body
    was strikingly out of proportion to her short legs. Prince Vasili turned
    to her.
    
    "Well, how is he?"
    
    "Still the same; but what can you expect, this noise..." said the
    princess, looking at Anna Mikhaylovna as at a stranger.
    
    "Ah, my dear, I hardly knew you," said Anna Mikhaylovna with a happy
    smile, ambling lightly up to the count's niece. "I have come, and am at
    your service to help you nurse my uncle. I imagine what you have gone
    through," and she sympathetically turned up her eyes.
    
    The princess gave no reply and did not even smile, but left the room as
    Anna Mikhaylovna took off her gloves and, occupying the position she had
    conquered, settled down in an armchair, inviting Prince Vasili to take a
    seat beside her.
    
    "Boris," she said to her son with a smile, "I shall go in to see the
    count, my uncle; but you, my dear, had better go to Pierre meanwhile and
    don't forget to give him the Rostovs' invitation. They ask him to
    dinner. I suppose he won't go?" she continued, turning to the prince.
    
    "On the contrary," replied the prince, who had plainly become depressed,
    "I shall be only too glad if you relieve me of that young man.... Here
    he is, and the count has not once asked for him."
    
    He shrugged his shoulders. A footman conducted Boris down one flight of
    stairs and up another, to Pierre's rooms.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Pierre, after all, had not managed to choose a career for himself in
    Petersburg, and had been expelled from there for riotous conduct and
    sent to Moscow. The story told about him at Count Rostov's was true.
    Pierre had taken part in tying a policeman to a bear. He had now been
    for some days in Moscow and was staying as usual at his father's house.
    Though he expected that the story of his escapade would be already known
    in Moscow and that the ladies about his father--who were never favorably
    disposed toward him--would have used it to turn the count against him,
    he nevertheless on the day of his arrival went to his father's part of
    the house. Entering the drawing room, where the princesses spent most of
    their time, he greeted the ladies, two of whom were sitting at
    embroidery frames while a third read aloud. It was the eldest who was
    reading--the one who had met Anna Mikhaylovna. The two younger ones were
    embroidering: both were rosy and pretty and they differed only in that
    one had a little mole on her lip which made her much prettier. Pierre
    was received as if he were a corpse or a leper. The eldest princess
    paused in her reading and silently stared at him with frightened eyes;
    the second assumed precisely the same expression; while the youngest,
    the one with the mole, who was of a cheerful and lively disposition,
    bent over her frame to hide a smile probably evoked by the amusing scene
    she foresaw. She drew her wool down through the canvas and, scarcely
    able to refrain from laughing, stooped as if trying to make out the
    pattern.
    
    "How do you do, cousin?" said Pierre. "You don't recognize me?"
    
    "I recognize you only too well, too well."
    
    "How is the count? Can I see him?" asked Pierre, awkwardly as usual, but
    unabashed.
    
    "The count is suffering physically and mentally, and apparently you have
    done your best to increase his mental sufferings."
    
    "Can I see the count?" Pierre again asked.
    
    "Hm.... If you wish to kill him, to kill him outright, you can see
    him... Olga, go and see whether Uncle's beef tea is ready--it is almost
    time," she added, giving Pierre to understand that they were busy, and
    busy making his father comfortable, while evidently he, Pierre, was only
    busy causing him annoyance.
    
    Olga went out. Pierre stood looking at the sisters; then he bowed and
    said: "Then I will go to my rooms. You will let me know when I can see
    him."
    
    And he left the room, followed by the low but ringing laughter of the
    sister with the mole.
    
    Next day Prince Vasili had arrived and settled in the count's house. He
    sent for Pierre and said to him: "My dear fellow, if you are going to
    behave here as you did in Petersburg, you will end very badly; that is
    all I have to say to you. The count is very, very ill, and you must not
    see him at all."
    
    Since then Pierre had not been disturbed and had spent the whole time in
    his rooms upstairs.
    
    When Boris appeared at his door Pierre was pacing up and down his room,
    stopping occasionally at a corner to make menacing gestures at the wall,
    as if running a sword through an invisible foe, and glaring savagely
    over his spectacles, and then again resuming his walk, muttering
    indistinct words, shrugging his shoulders and gesticulating.
    
    "England is done for," said he, scowling and pointing his finger at
    someone unseen. "Mr. Pitt, as a traitor to the nation and to the rights
    of man, is sentenced to..." But before Pierre--who at that moment
    imagined himself to be Napoleon in person and to have just effected the
    dangerous crossing of the Straits of Dover and captured London--could
    pronounce Pitt's sentence, he saw a well-built and handsome young
    officer entering his room. Pierre paused. He had left Moscow when Boris
    was a boy of fourteen, and had quite forgotten him, but in his usual
    impulsive and hearty way he took Boris by the hand with a friendly
    smile.
    
    "Do you remember me?" asked Boris quietly with a pleasant smile. "I have
    come with my mother to see the count, but it seems he is not well."
    
    "Yes, it seems he is ill. People are always disturbing him," answered
    Pierre, trying to remember who this young man was.
    
    Boris felt that Pierre did not recognize him but did not consider it
    necessary to introduce himself, and without experiencing the least
    embarrassment looked Pierre straight in the face.
    
    "Count Rostov asks you to come to dinner today," said he, after a
    considerable pause which made Pierre feel uncomfortable.
    
    "Ah, Count Rostov!" exclaimed Pierre joyfully. "Then you are his son,
    Ilya? Only fancy, I didn't know you at first. Do you remember how we
    went to the Sparrow Hills with Madame Jacquot?... It's such an age..."
    
    "You are mistaken," said Boris deliberately, with a bold and slightly
    sarcastic smile. "I am Boris, son of Princess Anna Mikhaylovna
    Drubetskaya. Rostov, the father, is Ilya, and his son is Nicholas. I
    never knew any Madame Jacquot."
    
    Pierre shook his head and arms as if attacked by mosquitoes or bees.
    
    "Oh dear, what am I thinking about? I've mixed everything up. One has so
    many relatives in Moscow! So you are Boris? Of course. Well, now we know
    where we are. And what do you think of the Boulogne expedition? The
    English will come off badly, you know, if Napoleon gets across the
    Channel. I think the expedition is quite feasible. If only Villeneuve
    doesn't make a mess of things!"
    
    Boris knew nothing about the Boulogne expedition; he did not read the
    papers and it was the first time he had heard Villeneuve's name.
    
    "We here in Moscow are more occupied with dinner parties and scandal
    than with politics," said he in his quiet ironical tone. "I know nothing
    about it and have not thought about it. Moscow is chiefly busy with
    gossip," he continued. "Just now they are talking about you and your
    father."
    
    Pierre smiled in his good-natured way as if afraid for his companion's
    sake that the latter might say something he would afterwards regret. But
    Boris spoke distinctly, clearly, and dryly, looking straight into
    Pierre's eyes.
    
    "Moscow has nothing else to do but gossip," Boris went on. "Everybody is
    wondering to whom the count will leave his fortune, though he may
    perhaps outlive us all, as I sincerely hope he will..."
    
    "Yes, it is all very horrid," interrupted Pierre, "very horrid."
    
    Pierre was still afraid that this officer might inadvertently say
    something disconcerting to himself.
    
    "And it must seem to you," said Boris flushing slightly, but not
    changing his tone or attitude, "it must seem to you that everyone is
    trying to get something out of the rich man?"
    
    "So it does," thought Pierre.
    
    "But I just wish to say, to avoid misunderstandings, that you are quite
    mistaken if you reckon me or my mother among such people. We are very
    poor, but for my own part at any rate, for the very reason that your
    father is rich, I don't regard myself as a relation of his, and neither
    I nor my mother would ever ask or take anything from him."
    
    For a long time Pierre could not understand, but when he did, he jumped
    up from the sofa, seized Boris under the elbow in his quick, clumsy way,
    and, blushing far more than Boris, began to speak with a feeling of
    mingled shame and vexation.
    
    "Well, this is strange! Do you suppose I... who could think?... I know
    very well..."
    
    But Boris again interrupted him.
    
    "I am glad I have spoken out fully. Perhaps you did not like it? You
    must excuse me," said he, putting Pierre at ease instead of being put at
    ease by him, "but I hope I have not offended you. I always make it a
    rule to speak out... Well, what answer am I to take? Will you come to
    dinner at the Rostovs'?"
    
    And Boris, having apparently relieved himself of an onerous duty and
    extricated himself from an awkward situation and placed another in it,
    became quite pleasant again.
    
    "No, but I say," said Pierre, calming down, "you are a wonderful fellow!
    What you have just said is good, very good. Of course you don't know me.
    We have not met for such a long time... not since we were children. You
    might think that I... I understand, quite understand. I could not have
    done it myself, I should not have had the courage, but it's splendid. I
    am very glad to have made your acquaintance. It's queer," he added after
    a pause, "that you should have suspected me!" He began to laugh. "Well,
    what of it! I hope we'll get better acquainted," and he pressed Boris'
    hand. "Do you know, I have not once been in to see the count. He has not
    sent for me.... I am sorry for him as a man, but what can one do?"
    
    "And so you think Napoleon will manage to get an army across?" asked
    Boris with a smile.
    
    Pierre saw that Boris wished to change the subject, and being of the
    same mind he began explaining the advantages and disadvantages of the
    Boulogne expedition.
    
    A footman came in to summon Boris--the princess was going. Pierre, in
    order to make Boris' better acquaintance, promised to come to dinner,
    and warmly pressing his hand looked affectionately over his spectacles
    into Boris' eyes. After he had gone Pierre continued pacing up and down
    the room for a long time, no longer piercing an imaginary foe with his
    imaginary sword, but smiling at the remembrance of that pleasant,
    intelligent, and resolute young man.
    
    As often happens in early youth, especially to one who leads a lonely
    life, he felt an unaccountable tenderness for this young man and made up
    his mind that they would be friends.
    
    Prince Vasili saw the princess off. She held a handkerchief to her eyes
    and her face was tearful.
    
    "It is dreadful, dreadful!" she was saying, "but cost me what it may I
    shall do my duty. I will come and spend the night. He must not be left
    like this. Every moment is precious. I can't think why his nieces put it
    off. Perhaps God will help me to find a way to prepare him!... Adieu,
    Prince! May God support you..."
    
    "Adieu, ma bonne," answered Prince Vasili turning away from her.
    
    "Oh, he is in a dreadful state," said the mother to her son when they
    were in the carriage. "He hardly recognizes anybody."
    
    "I don't understand, Mamma--what is his attitude to Pierre?" asked the
    son.
    
    "The will will show that, my dear; our fate also depends on it."
    
    "But why do you expect that he will leave us anything?"
    
    "Ah, my dear! He is so rich, and we are so poor!"
    
    "Well, that is hardly a sufficient reason, Mamma..."
    
    "Oh, Heaven! How ill he is!" exclaimed the mother.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    After Anna Mikhaylovna had driven off with her son to visit Count Cyril
    Vladimirovich Bezukhov, Countess Rostova sat for a long time all alone
    applying her handkerchief to her eyes. At last she rang.
    
    "What is the matter with you, my dear?" she said crossly to the maid who
    kept her waiting some minutes. "Don't you wish to serve me? Then I'll
    find you another place."
    
    The countess was upset by her friend's sorrow and humiliating poverty,
    and was therefore out of sorts, a state of mind which with her always
    found expression in calling her maid "my dear" and speaking to her with
    exaggerated politeness.
    
    "I am very sorry, ma'am," answered the maid.
    
    "Ask the count to come to me."
    
    The count came waddling in to see his wife with a rather guilty look as
    usual.
    
    "Well, little countess? What a saute of game au madere we are to have,
    my dear! I tasted it. The thousand rubles I paid for Taras were not ill-
    spent. He is worth it!"
    
    He sat down by his wife, his elbows on his knees and his hands ruffling
    his gray hair.
    
    "What are your commands, little countess?"
    
    "You see, my dear... What's that mess?" she said, pointing to his
    waistcoat. "It's the saute, most likely," she added with a smile. "Well,
    you see, Count, I want some money."
    
    Her face became sad.
    
    "Oh, little countess!"... and the count began bustling to get out his
    pocketbook.
    
    "I want a great deal, Count! I want five hundred rubles," and taking out
    her cambric handkerchief she began wiping her husband's waistcoat.
    
    "Yes, immediately, immediately! Hey, who's there?" he called out in a
    tone only used by persons who are certain that those they call will rush
    to obey the summons. "Send Dmitri to me!"
    
    Dmitri, a man of good family who had been brought up in the count's
    house and now managed all his affairs, stepped softly into the room.
    
    "This is what I want, my dear fellow," said the count to the deferential
    young man who had entered. "Bring me..." he reflected a moment, "yes,
    bring me seven hundred rubles, yes! But mind, don't bring me such
    tattered and dirty notes as last time, but nice clean ones for the
    countess."
    
    "Yes, Dmitri, clean ones, please," said the countess, sighing deeply.
    
    "When would you like them, your excellency?" asked Dmitri. "Allow me to
    inform you... But, don't be uneasy," he added, noticing that the count
    was beginning to breathe heavily and quickly which was always a sign of
    approaching anger. "I was forgetting... Do you wish it brought at once?"
    
    "Yes, yes; just so! Bring it. Give it to the countess."
    
    "What a treasure that Dmitri is," added the count with a smile when the
    young man had departed. "There is never any 'impossible' with him.
    That's a thing I hate! Everything is possible."
    
    "Ah, money, Count, money! How much sorrow it causes in the world," said
    the countess. "But I am in great need of this sum."
    
    "You, my little countess, are a notorious spendthrift," said the count,
    and having kissed his wife's hand he went back to his study.
    
    When Anna Mikhaylovna returned from Count Bezukhov's the money, all in
    clean notes, was lying ready under a handkerchief on the countess'
    little table, and Anna Mikhaylovna noticed that something was agitating
    her.
    
    "Well, my dear?" asked the countess.
    
    "Oh, what a terrible state he is in! One would not know him, he is so
    ill! I was only there a few moments and hardly said a word..."
    
    "Annette, for heaven's sake don't refuse me," the countess began, with a
    blush that looked very strange on her thin, dignified, elderly face, and
    she took the money from under the handkerchief.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna instantly guessed her intention and stooped to be ready
    to embrace the countess at the appropriate moment.
    
    "This is for Boris from me, for his outfit."
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna was already embracing her and weeping. The countess
    wept too. They wept because they were friends, and because they were
    kindhearted, and because they--friends from childhood--had to think
    about such a base thing as money, and because their youth was over....
    But those tears were pleasant to them both.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    Countess Rostova, with her daughters and a large number of guests, was
    already seated in the drawing room. The count took the gentlemen into
    his study and showed them his choice collection of Turkish pipes. From
    time to time he went out to ask: "Hasn't she come yet?" They were
    expecting Marya Dmitrievna Akhrosimova, known in society as le terrible
    dragon, a lady distinguished not for wealth or rank, but for common
    sense and frank plainness of speech. Marya Dmitrievna was known to the
    Imperial family as well as to all Moscow and Petersburg, and both cities
    wondered at her, laughed privately at her rudenesses, and told good
    stories about her, while none the less all without exception respected
    and feared her.
    
    In the count's room, which was full of tobacco smoke, they talked of war
    that had been announced in a manifesto, and about the recruiting. None
    of them had yet seen the manifesto, but they all knew it had appeared.
    The count sat on the sofa between two guests who were smoking and
    talking. He neither smoked nor talked, but bending his head first to one
    side and then to the other watched the smokers with evident pleasure and
    listened to the conversation of his two neighbors, whom he egged on
    against each other.
    
    One of them was a sallow, clean-shaven civilian with a thin and wrinkled
    face, already growing old, though he was dressed like a most fashionable
    young man. He sat with his legs up on the sofa as if quite at home and,
    having stuck an amber mouthpiece far into his mouth, was inhaling the
    smoke spasmodically and screwing up his eyes. This was an old bachelor,
    Shinshin, a cousin of the countess', a man with "a sharp tongue" as they
    said in Moscow society. He seemed to be condescending to his companion.
    The latter, a fresh, rosy officer of the Guards, irreproachably washed,
    brushed, and buttoned, held his pipe in the middle of his mouth and with
    red lips gently inhaled the smoke, letting it escape from his handsome
    mouth in rings. This was Lieutenant Berg, an officer in the Semenov
    regiment with whom Boris was to travel to join the army, and about whom
    Natasha had teased her elder sister Vera, speaking of Berg as her
    "intended." The count sat between them and listened attentively. His
    favorite occupation when not playing boston, a card game he was very
    fond of, was that of listener, especially when he succeeded in setting
    two loquacious talkers at one another.
    
    "Well, then, old chap, mon tres honorable Alphonse Karlovich," said
    Shinshin, laughing ironically and mixing the most ordinary Russian
    expressions with the choicest French phrases--which was a peculiarity of
    his speech. "Vous comptez vous faire des rentes sur l'etat; * you want
    to make something out of your company?"
    
    * You expect to make an income out of the government.
    
    "No, Peter Nikolaevich; I only want to show that in the cavalry the
    advantages are far less than in the infantry. Just consider my own
    position now, Peter Nikolaevich..."
    
    Berg always spoke quietly, politely, and with great precision. His
    conversation always related entirely to himself; he would remain calm
    and silent when the talk related to any topic that had no direct bearing
    on himself. He could remain silent for hours without being at all put
    out of countenance himself or making others uncomfortable, but as soon
    as the conversation concerned himself he would begin to talk
    circumstantially and with evident satisfaction.
    
    "Consider my position, Peter Nikolaevich. Were I in the cavalry I should
    get not more than two hundred rubles every four months, even with the
    rank of lieutenant; but as it is I receive two hundred and thirty," said
    he, looking at Shinshin and the count with a joyful, pleasant smile, as
    if it were obvious to him that his success must always be the chief
    desire of everyone else.
    
    "Besides that, Peter Nikolaevich, by exchanging into the Guards I shall
    be in a more prominent position," continued Berg, "and vacancies occur
    much more frequently in the Foot Guards. Then just think what can be
    done with two hundred and thirty rubles! I even manage to put a little
    aside and to send something to my father," he went on, emitting a smoke
    ring.
    
    "La balance y est... * A German knows how to skin a flint, as the
    proverb says," remarked Shinshin, moving his pipe to the other side of
    his mouth and winking at the count.
    
    * So that squares matters.
    
    The count burst out laughing. The other guests seeing that Shinshin was
    talking came up to listen. Berg, oblivious of irony or indifference,
    continued to explain how by exchanging into the Guards he had already
    gained a step on his old comrades of the Cadet Corps; how in wartime the
    company commander might get killed and he, as senior in the company,
    might easily succeed to the post; how popular he was with everyone in
    the regiment, and how satisfied his father was with him. Berg evidently
    enjoyed narrating all this, and did not seem to suspect that others,
    too, might have their own interests. But all he said was so prettily
    sedate, and the naivete of his youthful egotism was so obvious, that he
    disarmed his hearers.
    
    "Well, my boy, you'll get along wherever you go--foot or horse--that
    I'll warrant," said Shinshin, patting him on the shoulder and taking his
    feet off the sofa.
    
    Berg smiled joyously. The count, by his guests, went into the drawing
    room.
    
    It was just the moment before a big dinner when the assembled guests,
    expecting the summons to zakuska, * avoid engaging in any long
    conversation but think it necessary to move about and talk, in order to
    show that they are not at all impatient for their food. The host and
    hostess look toward the door, and now and then glance at one another,
    and the visitors try to guess from these glances who, or what, they are
    waiting for--some important relation who has not yet arrived, or a dish
    that is not yet ready.
    
    * Hors d'oeuvres.
    
    Pierre had come just at dinnertime and was sitting awkwardly in the
    middle of the drawing room on the first chair he had come across,
    blocking the way for everyone. The countess tried to make him talk, but
    he went on naively looking around through his spectacles as if in search
    of somebody and answered all her questions in monosyllables. He was in
    the way and was the only one who did not notice the fact. Most of the
    guests, knowing of the affair with the bear, looked with curiosity at
    this big, stout, quiet man, wondering how such a clumsy, modest fellow
    could have played such a prank on a policeman.
    
    "You have only lately arrived?" the countess asked him.
    
    "Oui, madame," replied he, looking around him.
    
    "You have not yet seen my husband?"
    
    "Non, madame." He smiled quite inappropriately.
    
    "You have been in Paris recently, I believe? I suppose it's very
    interesting."
    
    "Very interesting."
    
    The countess exchanged glances with Anna Mikhaylovna. The latter
    understood that she was being asked to entertain this young man, and
    sitting down beside him she began to speak about his father; but he
    answered her, as he had the countess, only in monosyllables. The other
    guests were all conversing with one another. "The Razumovskis... It was
    charming... You are very kind... Countess Apraksina..." was heard on all
    sides. The countess rose and went into the ballroom.
    
    "Marya Dmitrievna?" came her voice from there.
    
    "Herself," came the answer in a rough voice, and Marya Dmitrievna
    entered the room.
    
    All the unmarried ladies and even the married ones except the very
    oldest rose. Marya Dmitrievna paused at the door. Tall and stout,
    holding high her fifty-year-old head with its gray curls, she stood
    surveying the guests, and leisurely arranged her wide sleeves as if
    rolling them up. Marya Dmitrievna always spoke in Russian.
    
    "Health and happiness to her whose name day we are keeping and to her
    children," she said, in her loud, full-toned voice which drowned all
    others. "Well, you old sinner," she went on, turning to the count who
    was kissing her hand, "you're feeling dull in Moscow, I daresay? Nowhere
    to hunt with your dogs? But what is to be done, old man? Just see how
    these nestlings are growing up," and she pointed to the girls. "You must
    look for husbands for them whether you like it or not...."
    
    "Well," said she, "how's my Cossack?" (Marya Dmitrievna always called
    Natasha a Cossack) and she stroked the child's arm as she came up
    fearless and gay to kiss her hand. "I know she's a scamp of a girl, but
    I like her."
    
    She took a pair of pear-shaped ruby earrings from her huge reticule and,
    having given them to the rosy Natasha, who beamed with the pleasure of
    her saint's-day fete, turned away at once and addressed herself to
    Pierre.
    
    "Eh, eh, friend! Come here a bit," said she, assuming a soft high tone
    of voice. "Come here, my friend..." and she ominously tucked up her
    sleeves still higher. Pierre approached, looking at her in a childlike
    way through his spectacles.
    
    "Come nearer, come nearer, friend! I used to be the only one to tell
    your father the truth when he was in favor, and in your case it's my
    evident duty." She paused. All were silent, expectant of what was to
    follow, for this was clearly only a prelude.
    
    "A fine lad! My word! A fine lad!... His father lies on his deathbed and
    he amuses himself setting a policeman astride a bear! For shame, sir,
    for shame! It would be better if you went to the war."
    
    She turned away and gave her hand to the count, who could hardly keep
    from laughing.
    
    "Well, I suppose it is time we were at table?" said Marya Dmitrievna.
    
    The count went in first with Marya Dmitrievna, the countess followed on
    the arm of a colonel of hussars, a man of importance to them because
    Nicholas was to go with him to the regiment; then came Anna Mikhaylovna
    with Shinshin. Berg gave his arm to Vera. The smiling Julie Karagina
    went in with Nicholas. After them other couples followed, filling the
    whole dining hall, and last of all the children, tutors, and governesses
    followed singly. The footmen began moving about, chairs scraped, the
    band struck up in the gallery, and the guests settled down in their
    places. Then the strains of the count's household band were replaced by
    the clatter of knives and forks, the voices of visitors, and the soft
    steps of the footmen. At one end of the table sat the countess with
    Marya Dmitrievna on her right and Anna Mikhaylovna on her left, the
    other lady visitors were farther down. At the other end sat the count,
    with the hussar colonel on his left and Shinshin and the other male
    visitors on his right. Midway down the long table on one side sat the
    grownup young people: Vera beside Berg, and Pierre beside Boris; and on
    the other side, the children, tutors, and governesses. From behind the
    crystal decanters and fruit vases, the count kept glancing at his wife
    and her tall cap with its light-blue ribbons, and busily filled his
    neighbors' glasses, not neglecting his own. The countess in turn,
    without omitting her duties as hostess, threw significant glances from
    behind the pineapples at her husband whose face and bald head seemed by
    their redness to contrast more than usual with his gray hair. At the
    ladies' end an even chatter of voices was heard all the time, at the
    men's end the voices sounded louder and louder, especially that of the
    colonel of hussars who, growing more and more flushed, ate and drank so
    much that the count held him up as a pattern to the other guests. Berg
    with tender smiles was saying to Vera that love is not an earthly but a
    heavenly feeling. Boris was telling his new friend Pierre who the guests
    were and exchanging glances with Natasha, who was sitting opposite.
    Pierre spoke little but examined the new faces, and ate a great deal. Of
    the two soups he chose turtle with savory patties and went on to the
    game without omitting a single dish or one of the wines. These latter
    the butler thrust mysteriously forward, wrapped in a napkin, from behind
    the next man's shoulders and whispered: "Dry Madeira"... "Hungarian"...
    or "Rhine wine" as the case might be. Of the four crystal glasses
    engraved with the count's monogram that stood before his plate, Pierre
    held out one at random and drank with enjoyment, gazing with ever-
    increasing amiability at the other guests. Natasha, who sat opposite,
    was looking at Boris as girls of thirteen look at the boy they are in
    love with and have just kissed for the first time. Sometimes that same
    look fell on Pierre, and that funny lively little girl's look made him
    inclined to laugh without knowing why.
    
    Nicholas sat at some distance from Sonya, beside Julie Karagina, to whom
    he was again talking with the same involuntary smile. Sonya wore a
    company smile but was evidently tormented by jealousy; now she turned
    pale, now blushed and strained every nerve to overhear what Nicholas and
    Julie were saying to one another. The governess kept looking round
    uneasily as if preparing to resent any slight that might be put upon the
    children. The German tutor was trying to remember all the dishes, wines,
    and kinds of dessert, in order to send a full description of the dinner
    to his people in Germany; and he felt greatly offended when the butler
    with a bottle wrapped in a napkin passed him by. He frowned, trying to
    appear as if he did not want any of that wine, but was mortified because
    no one would understand that it was not to quench his thirst or from
    greediness that he wanted it, but simply from a conscientious desire for
    knowledge.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    At the men's end of the table the talk grew more and more animated. The
    colonel told them that the declaration of war had already appeared in
    Petersburg and that a copy, which he had himself seen, had that day been
    forwarded by courier to the commander-in-chief.
    
    "And why the deuce are we going to fight Bonaparte?" remarked Shinshin.
    "He has stopped Austria's cackle and I fear it will be our turn next."
    
    The colonel was a stout, tall, plethoric German, evidently devoted to
    the service and patriotically Russian. He resented Shinshin's remark.
    
    "It is for the reasson, my goot sir," said he, speaking with a German
    accent, "for the reasson zat ze Emperor knows zat. He declares in ze
    manifessto zat he cannot fiew wiz indifference ze danger vreatening
    Russia and zat ze safety and dignity of ze Empire as vell as ze sanctity
    of its alliances..." he spoke this last word with particular emphasis as
    if in it lay the gist of the matter.
    
    Then with the unerring official memory that characterized him he
    repeated from the opening words of the manifesto:
    
    ... and the wish, which constitutes the Emperor's sole and absolute aim-
    -to establish peace in Europe on firm foundations--has now decided him
    to despatch part of the army abroad and to create a new condition for
    the attainment of that purpose.
    
    "Zat, my dear sir, is vy..." he concluded, drinking a tumbler of wine
    with dignity and looking to the count for approval.
    
    "Connaissez-vous le Proverbe: * 'Jerome, Jerome, do not roam, but turn
    spindles at home!'?" said Shinshin, puckering his brows and smiling.
    "Cela nous convient a merveille.*(2) Suvorov now--he knew what he was
    about; yet they beat him a plate couture,*(3) and where are we to find
    Suvorovs now? Je vous demande un peu,"*(4) said he, continually changing
    from French to Russian.
    
    *Do you know the proverb?
    
    *(2) That suits us down to the ground.
    
    *(3) Hollow.
    
    *(4) I just ask you that.
    
    "Ve must vight to the last tr-r-op of our plood!" said the colonel,
    thumping the table; "and ve must tie for our Emperor, and zen all vill
    pe vell. And ve must discuss it as little as po-o-ossible"... he dwelt
    particularly on the word possible... "as po-o-ossible," he ended, again
    turning to the count. "Zat is how ve old hussars look at it, and zere's
    an end of it! And how do you, a young man and a young hussar, how do you
    judge of it?" he added, addressing Nicholas, who when he heard that the
    war was being discussed had turned from his partner with eyes and ears
    intent on the colonel.
    
    "I am quite of your opinion," replied Nicholas, flaming up, turning his
    plate round and moving his wineglasses about with as much decision and
    desperation as though he were at that moment facing some great danger.
    "I am convinced that we Russians must die or conquer," he concluded,
    conscious--as were others--after the words were uttered that his remarks
    were too enthusiastic and emphatic for the occasion and were therefore
    awkward.
    
    "What you said just now was splendid!" said his partner Julie.
    
    Sonya trembled all over and blushed to her ears and behind them and down
    to her neck and shoulders while Nicholas was speaking.
    
    Pierre listened to the colonel's speech and nodded approvingly.
    
    "That's fine," said he.
    
    "The young man's a real hussar!" shouted the colonel, again thumping the
    table.
    
    "What are you making such a noise about over there?" Marya Dmitrievna's
    deep voice suddenly inquired from the other end of the table. "What are
    you thumping the table for?" she demanded of the hussar, "and why are
    you exciting yourself? Do you think the French are here?"
    
    "I am speaking ze truce," replied the hussar with a smile.
    
    "It's all about the war," the count shouted down the table. "You know my
    son's going, Marya Dmitrievna? My son is going."
    
    "I have four sons in the army but still I don't fret. It is all in God's
    hands. You may die in your bed or God may spare you in a battle,"
    replied Marya Dmitrievna's deep voice, which easily carried the whole
    length of the table.
    
    "That's true!"
    
    Once more the conversations concentrated, the ladies' at the one end and
    the men's at the other.
    
    "You won't ask," Natasha's little brother was saying; "I know you won't
    ask!"
    
    "I will," replied Natasha.
    
    Her face suddenly flushed with reckless and joyous resolution. She half
    rose, by a glance inviting Pierre, who sat opposite, to listen to what
    was coming, and turning to her mother:
    
    "Mamma!" rang out the clear contralto notes of her childish voice,
    audible the whole length of the table.
    
    "What is it?" asked the countess, startled; but seeing by her daughter's
    face that it was only mischief, she shook a finger at her sternly with a
    threatening and forbidding movement of her head.
    
    The conversation was hushed.
    
    "Mamma! What sweets are we going to have?" and Natasha's voice sounded
    still more firm and resolute.
    
    The countess tried to frown, but could not. Marya Dmitrievna shook her
    fat finger.
    
    "Cossack!" she said threateningly.
    
    Most of the guests, uncertain how to regard this sally, looked at the
    elders.
    
    "You had better take care!" said the countess.
    
    "Mamma! What sweets are we going to have?" Natasha again cried boldly,
    with saucy gaiety, confident that her prank would be taken in good part.
    
    Sonya and fat little Petya doubled up with laughter.
    
    "You see! I have asked," whispered Natasha to her little brother and to
    Pierre, glancing at him again.
    
    "Ice pudding, but you won't get any," said Marya Dmitrievna.
    
    Natasha saw there was nothing to be afraid of and so she braved even
    Marya Dmitrievna.
    
    "Marya Dmitrievna! What kind of ice pudding? I don't like ice cream."
    
    "Carrot ices."
    
    "No! What kind, Marya Dmitrievna? What kind?" she almost screamed; "I
    want to know!"
    
    Marya Dmitrievna and the countess burst out laughing, and all the guests
    joined in. Everyone laughed, not at Marya Dmitrievna's answer but at the
    incredible boldness and smartness of this little girl who had dared to
    treat Marya Dmitrievna in this fashion.
    
    Natasha only desisted when she had been told that there would be
    pineapple ice. Before the ices, champagne was served round. The band
    again struck up, the count and countess kissed, and the guests, leaving
    their seats, went up to "congratulate" the countess, and reached across
    the table to clink glasses with the count, with the children, and with
    one another. Again the footmen rushed about, chairs scraped, and in the
    same order in which they had entered but with redder faces, the guests
    returned to the drawing room and to the count's study.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    The card tables were drawn out, sets made up for boston, and the count's
    visitors settled themselves, some in the two drawing rooms, some in the
    sitting room, some in the library.
    
    The count, holding his cards fanwise, kept himself with difficulty from
    dropping into his usual after-dinner nap, and laughed at everything. The
    young people, at the countess' instigation, gathered round the
    clavichord and harp. Julie by general request played first. After she
    had played a little air with variations on the harp, she joined the
    other young ladies in begging Natasha and Nicholas, who were noted for
    their musical talent, to sing something. Natasha, who was treated as
    though she were grown up, was evidently very proud of this but at the
    same time felt shy.
    
    "What shall we sing?" she said.
    
    "'The Brook,'" suggested Nicholas.
    
    "Well, then, let's be quick. Boris, come here," said Natasha. "But where
    is Sonya?"
    
    She looked round and seeing that her friend was not in the room ran to
    look for her.
    
    Running into Sonya's room and not finding her there, Natasha ran to the
    nursery, but Sonya was not there either. Natasha concluded that she must
    be on the chest in the passage. The chest in the passage was the place
    of mourning for the younger female generation in the Rostov household.
    And there in fact was Sonya lying face downward on Nurse's dirty feather
    bed on the top of the chest, crumpling her gauzy pink dress under her,
    hiding her face with her slender fingers, and sobbing so convulsively
    that her bare little shoulders shook. Natasha's face, which had been so
    radiantly happy all that saint's day, suddenly changed: her eyes became
    fixed, and then a shiver passed down her broad neck and the corners of
    her mouth drooped.
    
    "Sonya! What is it? What is the matter?... Oo... Oo... Oo...!" And
    Natasha's large mouth widened, making her look quite ugly, and she began
    to wail like a baby without knowing why, except that Sonya was crying.
    Sonya tried to lift her head to answer but could not, and hid her face
    still deeper in the bed. Natasha wept, sitting on the blue-striped
    feather bed and hugging her friend. With an effort Sonya sat up and
    began wiping her eyes and explaining.
    
    "Nicholas is going away in a week's time, his... papers... have come...
    he told me himself... but still I should not cry," and she showed a
    paper she held in her hand--with the verses Nicholas had written,
    "still, I should not cry, but you can't... no one can understand... what
    a soul he has!"
    
    And she began to cry again because he had such a noble soul.
    
    "It's all very well for you... I am not envious... I love you and Boris
    also," she went on, gaining a little strength; "he is nice... there are
    no difficulties in your way.... But Nicholas is my cousin... one would
    have to... the Metropolitan himself... and even then it can't be done.
    And besides, if she tells Mamma" (Sonya looked upon the countess as her
    mother and called her so) "that I am spoiling Nicholas' career and am
    heartless and ungrateful, while truly... God is my witness," and she
    made the sign of the cross, "I love her so much, and all of you, only
    Vera... And what for? What have I done to her? I am so grateful to you
    that I would willingly sacrifice everything, only I have nothing...."
    
    Sonya could not continue, and again hid her face in her hands and in the
    feather bed. Natasha began consoling her, but her face showed that she
    understood all the gravity of her friend's trouble.
    
    "Sonya," she suddenly exclaimed, as if she had guessed the true reason
    of her friend's sorrow, "I'm sure Vera has said something to you since
    dinner? Hasn't she?"
    
    "Yes, these verses Nicholas wrote himself and I copied some others, and
    she found them on my table and said she'd show them to Mamma, and that I
    was ungrateful, and that Mamma would never allow him to marry me, but
    that he'll marry Julie. You see how he's been with her all day...
    Natasha, what have I done to deserve it?..."
    
    And again she began to sob, more bitterly than before. Natasha lifted
    her up, hugged her, and, smiling through her tears, began comforting
    her.
    
    "Sonya, don't believe her, darling! Don't believe her! Do you remember
    how we and Nicholas, all three of us, talked in the sitting room after
    supper? Why, we settled how everything was to be. I don't quite remember
    how, but don't you remember that it could all be arranged and how nice
    it all was? There's Uncle Shinshin's brother has married his first
    cousin. And we are only second cousins, you know. And Boris says it is
    quite possible. You know I have told him all about it. And he is so
    clever and so good!" said Natasha. "Don't you cry, Sonya, dear love,
    darling Sonya!" and she kissed her and laughed. "Vera's spiteful; never
    mind her! And all will come right and she won't say anything to Mamma.
    Nicholas will tell her himself, and he doesn't care at all for Julie."
    
    Natasha kissed her on the hair.
    
    Sonya sat up. The little kitten brightened, its eyes shone, and it
    seemed ready to lift its tail, jump down on its soft paws, and begin
    playing with the ball of worsted as a kitten should.
    
    "Do you think so?... Really? Truly?" she said, quickly smoothing her
    frock and hair.
    
    "Really, truly!" answered Natasha, pushing in a crisp lock that had
    strayed from under her friend's plaits.
    
    Both laughed.
    
    "Well, let's go and sing 'The Brook.'"
    
    "Come along!"
    
    "Do you know, that fat Pierre who sat opposite me is so funny!" said
    Natasha, stopping suddenly. "I feel so happy!"
    
    And she set off at a run along the passage.
    
    Sonya, shaking off some down which clung to her and tucking away the
    verses in the bosom of her dress close to her bony little chest, ran
    after Natasha down the passage into the sitting room with flushed face
    and light, joyous steps. At the visitors' request the young people sang
    the quartette, "The Brook," with which everyone was delighted. Then
    Nicholas sang a song he had just learned:
    
    At nighttime in the moon's fair glow How sweet, as fancies wander free,
    To feel that in this world there's one Who still is thinking but of
    thee!
    
    That while her fingers touch the harp Wafting sweet music o'er the lea,
    It is for thee thus swells her heart, Sighing its message out to thee...
    
    A day or two, then bliss unspoilt, But oh! till then I cannot live!...
    
    He had not finished the last verse before the young people began to get
    ready to dance in the large hall, and the sound of the feet and the
    coughing of the musicians were heard from the gallery.
    
    Pierre was sitting in the drawing-room where Shinshin had engaged him,
    as a man recently returned from abroad, in a political conversation in
    which several others joined but which bored Pierre. When the music began
    Natasha came in and walking straight up to Pierre said, laughing and
    blushing:
    
    "Mamma told me to ask you to join the dancers."
    
    "I am afraid of mixing the figures," Pierre replied; "but if you will be
    my teacher..." And lowering his big arm he offered it to the slender
    little girl.
    
    While the couples were arranging themselves and the musicians tuning up,
    Pierre sat down with his little partner. Natasha was perfectly happy;
    she was dancing with a grown-up man, who had been abroad. She was
    sitting in a conspicuous place and talking to him like a grown-up lady.
    She had a fan in her hand that one of the ladies had given her to hold.
    Assuming quite the pose of a society woman (heaven knows when and where
    she had learned it) she talked with her partner, fanning herself and
    smiling over the fan.
    
    "Dear, dear! Just look at her!" exclaimed the countess as she crossed
    the ballroom, pointing to Natasha.
    
    Natasha blushed and laughed.
    
    "Well, really, Mamma! Why should you? What is there to be surprised at?"
    
    In the midst of the third ecossaise there was a clatter of chairs being
    pushed back in the sitting room where the count and Marya Dmitrievna had
    been playing cards with the majority of the more distinguished and older
    visitors. They now, stretching themselves after sitting so long, and
    replacing their purses and pocketbooks, entered the ballroom. First came
    Marya Dmitrievna and the count, both with merry countenances. The count,
    with playful ceremony somewhat in ballet style, offered his bent arm to
    Marya Dmitrievna. He drew himself up, a smile of debonair gallantry lit
    up his face and as soon as the last figure of the ecossaise was ended,
    he clapped his hands to the musicians and shouted up to their gallery,
    addressing the first violin:
    
    "Semen! Do you know the Daniel Cooper?"
    
    This was the count's favorite dance, which he had danced in his youth.
    (Strictly speaking, Daniel Cooper was one figure of the anglaise.)
    
    "Look at Papa!" shouted Natasha to the whole company, and quite
    forgetting that she was dancing with a grown-up partner she bent her
    curly head to her knees and made the whole room ring with her laughter.
    
    And indeed everybody in the room looked with a smile of pleasure at the
    jovial old gentleman, who standing beside his tall and stout partner,
    Marya Dmitrievna, curved his arms, beat time, straightened his
    shoulders, turned out his toes, tapped gently with his foot, and, by a
    smile that broadened his round face more and more, prepared the
    onlookers for what was to follow. As soon as the provocatively gay
    strains of Daniel Cooper (somewhat resembling those of a merry peasant
    dance) began to sound, all the doorways of the ballroom were suddenly
    filled by the domestic serfs--the men on one side and the women on the
    other--who with beaming faces had come to see their master making merry.
    
    "Just look at the master! A regular eagle he is!" loudly remarked the
    nurse, as she stood in one of the doorways.
    
    The count danced well and knew it. But his partner could not and did not
    want to dance well. Her enormous figure stood erect, her powerful arms
    hanging down (she had handed her reticule to the countess), and only her
    stern but handsome face really joined in the dance. What was expressed
    by the whole of the count's plump figure, in Marya Dmitrievna found
    expression only in her more and more beaming face and quivering nose.
    But if the count, getting more and more into the swing of it, charmed
    the spectators by the unexpectedness of his adroit maneuvers and the
    agility with which he capered about on his light feet, Marya Dmitrievna
    produced no less impression by slight exertions--the least effort to
    move her shoulders or bend her arms when turning, or stamp her foot--
    which everyone appreciated in view of her size and habitual severity.
    The dance grew livelier and livelier. The other couples could not
    attract a moment's attention to their own evolutions and did not even
    try to do so. All were watching the count and Marya Dmitrievna. Natasha
    kept pulling everyone by sleeve or dress, urging them to "look at Papa!"
    though as it was they never took their eyes off the couple. In the
    intervals of the dance the count, breathing deeply, waved and shouted to
    the musicians to play faster. Faster, faster, and faster; lightly, more
    lightly, and yet more lightly whirled the count, flying round Marya
    Dmitrievna, now on his toes, now on his heels; until, turning his
    partner round to her seat, he executed the final pas, raising his soft
    foot backwards, bowing his perspiring head, smiling and making a wide
    sweep with his arm, amid a thunder of applause and laughter led by
    Natasha. Both partners stood still, breathing heavily and wiping their
    faces with their cambric handkerchiefs.
    
    "That's how we used to dance in our time, ma chere," said the count.
    
    "That was a Daniel Cooper!" exclaimed Marya Dmitrievna, tucking up her
    sleeves and puffing heavily.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    While in the Rostovs' ballroom the sixth anglaise was being danced, to a
    tune in which the weary musicians blundered, and while tired footmen and
    cooks were getting the supper, Count Bezukhov had a sixth stroke. The
    doctors pronounced recovery impossible. After a mute confession,
    communion was administered to the dying man, preparations made for the
    sacrament of unction, and in his house there was the bustle and thrill
    of suspense usual at such moments. Outside the house, beyond the gates,
    a group of undertakers, who hid whenever a carriage drove up, waited in
    expectation of an important order for an expensive funeral. The Military
    Governor of Moscow, who had been assiduous in sending aides-de-camp to
    inquire after the count's health, came himself that evening to bid a
    last farewell to the celebrated grandee of Catherine's court, Count
    Bezukhov.
    
    The magnificent reception room was crowded. Everyone stood up
    respectfully when the Military Governor, having stayed about half an
    hour alone with the dying man, passed out, slightly acknowledging their
    bows and trying to escape as quickly as possible from the glances fixed
    on him by the doctors, clergy, and relatives of the family. Prince
    Vasili, who had grown thinner and paler during the last few days,
    escorted him to the door, repeating something to him several times in
    low tones.
    
    When the Military Governor had gone, Prince Vasili sat down all alone on
    a chair in the ballroom, crossing one leg high over the other, leaning
    his elbow on his knee and covering his face with his hand. After sitting
    so for a while he rose, and, looking about him with frightened eyes,
    went with unusually hurried steps down the long corridor leading to the
    back of the house, to the room of the eldest princess.
    
    Those who were in the dimly lit reception room spoke in nervous
    whispers, and, whenever anyone went into or came from the dying man's
    room, grew silent and gazed with eyes full of curiosity or expectancy at
    his door, which creaked slightly when opened.
    
    "The limits of human life... are fixed and may not be o'erpassed," said
    an old priest to a lady who had taken a seat beside him and was
    listening naively to his words.
    
    "I wonder, is it not too late to administer unction?" asked the lady,
    adding the priest's clerical title, as if she had no opinion of her own
    on the subject.
    
    "Ah, madam, it is a great sacrament," replied the priest, passing his
    hand over the thin grizzled strands of hair combed back across his bald
    head.
    
    "Who was that? The Military Governor himself?" was being asked at the
    other side of the room. "How young-looking he is!"
    
    "Yes, and he is over sixty. I hear the count no longer recognizes
    anyone. They wished to administer the sacrament of unction."
    
    "I knew someone who received that sacrament seven times."
    
    The second princess had just come from the sickroom with her eyes red
    from weeping and sat down beside Dr. Lorrain, who was sitting in a
    graceful pose under a portrait of Catherine, leaning his elbow on a
    table.
    
    "Beautiful," said the doctor in answer to a remark about the weather.
    "The weather is beautiful, Princess; and besides, in Moscow one feels as
    if one were in the country."
    
    "Yes, indeed," replied the princess with a sigh. "So he may have
    something to drink?"
    
    Lorrain considered.
    
    "Has he taken his medicine?"
    
    "Yes."
    
    The doctor glanced at his watch.
    
    "Take a glass of boiled water and put a pinch of cream of tartar," and
    he indicated with his delicate fingers what he meant by a pinch.
    
    "Dere has neffer been a gase," a German doctor was saying to an aide-de-
    camp, "dat one liffs after de sird stroke."
    
    "And what a well-preserved man he was!" remarked the aide-de-camp. "And
    who will inherit his wealth?" he added in a whisper.
    
    "It von't go begging," replied the German with a smile.
    
    Everyone again looked toward the door, which creaked as the second
    princess went in with the drink she had prepared according to Lorrain's
    instructions. The German doctor went up to Lorrain.
    
    "Do you think he can last till morning?" asked the German, addressing
    Lorrain in French which he pronounced badly.
    
    Lorrain, pursing up his lips, waved a severely negative finger before
    his nose.
    
    "Tonight, not later," said he in a low voice, and he moved away with a
    decorous smile of self-satisfaction at being able clearly to understand
    and state the patient's condition.
    
    Meanwhile Prince Vasili had opened the door into the princess' room.
    
    In this room it was almost dark; only two tiny lamps were burning before
    the icons and there was a pleasant scent of flowers and burnt pastilles.
    The room was crowded with small pieces of furniture, whatnots,
    cupboards, and little tables. The quilt of a high, white feather bed was
    just visible behind a screen. A small dog began to bark.
    
    "Ah, is it you, cousin?"
    
    She rose and smoothed her hair, which was as usual so extremely smooth
    that it seemed to be made of one piece with her head and covered with
    varnish.
    
    "Has anything happened?" she asked. "I am so terrified."
    
    "No, there is no change. I only came to have a talk about business,
    Catiche," * muttered the prince, seating himself wearily on the chair
    she had just vacated. "You have made the place warm, I must say," he
    remarked. "Well, sit down: let's have a talk."
    
    *Catherine.
    
    "I thought perhaps something had happened," she said with her unchanging
    stonily severe expression; and, sitting down opposite the prince, she
    prepared to listen.
    
    "I wished to get a nap, mon cousin, but I can't."
    
    "Well, my dear?" said Prince Vasili, taking her hand and bending it
    downwards as was his habit.
    
    It was plain that this "well?" referred to much that they both
    understood without naming.
    
    The princess, who had a straight, rigid body, abnormally long for her
    legs, looked directly at Prince Vasili with no sign of emotion in her
    prominent gray eyes. Then she shook her head and glanced up at the icons
    with a sigh. This might have been taken as an expression of sorrow and
    devotion, or of weariness and hope of resting before long. Prince Vasili
    understood it as an expression of weariness.
    
    "And I?" he said; "do you think it is easier for me? I am as worn out as
    a post horse, but still I must have a talk with you, Catiche, a very
    serious talk."
    
    Prince Vasili said no more and his cheeks began to twitch nervously, now
    on one side, now on the other, giving his face an unpleasant expression
    which was never to be seen on it in a drawing room. His eyes too seemed
    strange; at one moment they looked impudently sly and at the next
    glanced round in alarm.
    
    The princess, holding her little dog on her lap with her thin bony
    hands, looked attentively into Prince Vasili's eyes evidently resolved
    not to be the first to break silence, if she had to wait till morning.
    
    "Well, you see, my dear princess and cousin, Catherine Semenovna,"
    continued Prince Vasili, returning to his theme, apparently not without
    an inner struggle; "at such a moment as this one must think of
    everything. One must think of the future, of all of you... I love you
    all, like children of my own, as you know."
    
    The princess continued to look at him without moving, and with the same
    dull expression.
    
    "And then of course my family has also to be considered," Prince Vasili
    went on, testily pushing away a little table without looking at her.
    "You know, Catiche, that we--you three sisters, Mamontov, and my wife--
    are the count's only direct heirs. I know, I know how hard it is for you
    to talk or think of such matters. It is no easier for me; but, my dear,
    I am getting on for sixty and must be prepared for anything. Do you know
    I have sent for Pierre? The count," pointing to his portrait,
    "definitely demanded that he should be called."
    
    Prince Vasili looked questioningly at the princess, but could not make
    out whether she was considering what he had just said or whether she was
    simply looking at him.
    
    "There is one thing I constantly pray God to grant, mon cousin," she
    replied, "and it is that He would be merciful to him and would allow his
    noble soul peacefully to leave this..."
    
    "Yes, yes, of course," interrupted Prince Vasili impatiently, rubbing
    his bald head and angrily pulling back toward him the little table that
    he had pushed away. "But... in short, the fact is... you know yourself
    that last winter the count made a will by which he left all his
    property, not to us his direct heirs, but to Pierre."
    
    "He has made wills enough!" quietly remarked the princess. "But he
    cannot leave the estate to Pierre. Pierre is illegitimate."
    
    "But, my dear," said Prince Vasili suddenly, clutching the little table
    and becoming more animated and talking more rapidly: "what if a letter
    has been written to the Emperor in which the count asks for Pierre's
    legitimation? Do you understand that in consideration of the count's
    services, his request would be granted?..."
    
    The princess smiled as people do who think they know more about the
    subject under discussion than those they are talking with.
    
    "I can tell you more," continued Prince Vasili, seizing her hand, "that
    letter was written, though it was not sent, and the Emperor knew of it.
    The only question is, has it been destroyed or not? If not, then as soon
    as all is over," and Prince Vasili sighed to intimate what he meant by
    the words all is over, "and the count's papers are opened, the will and
    letter will be delivered to the Emperor, and the petition will certainly
    be granted. Pierre will get everything as the legitimate son."
    
    "And our share?" asked the princess smiling ironically, as if anything
    might happen, only not that.
    
    "But, my poor Catiche, it is as clear as daylight! He will then be the
    legal heir to everything and you won't get anything. You must know, my
    dear, whether the will and letter were written, and whether they have
    been destroyed or not. And if they have somehow been overlooked, you
    ought to know where they are, and must find them, because..."
    
    "What next?" the princess interrupted, smiling sardonically and not
    changing the expression of her eyes. "I am a woman, and you think we are
    all stupid; but I know this: an illegitimate son cannot inherit... un
    batard!" * she added, as if supposing that this translation of the word
    would effectively prove to Prince Vasili the invalidity of his
    contention.
    
    * A bastard.
    
    "Well, really, Catiche! Can't you understand! You are so intelligent,
    how is it you don't see that if the count has written a letter to the
    Emperor begging him to recognize Pierre as legitimate, it follows that
    Pierre will not be Pierre but will become Count Bezukhov, and will then
    inherit everything under the will? And if the will and letter are not
    destroyed, then you will have nothing but the consolation of having been
    dutiful et tout ce qui s'ensuit! * That's certain."
    
    * And all that follows therefrom.
    
    "I know the will was made, but I also know that it is invalid; and you,
    mon cousin, seem to consider me a perfect fool," said the princess with
    the expression women assume when they suppose they are saying something
    witty and stinging.
    
    "My dear Princess Catherine Semenovna," began Prince Vasili impatiently,
    "I came here not to wrangle with you, but to talk about your interests
    as with a kinswoman, a good, kind, true relation. And I tell you for the
    tenth time that if the letter to the Emperor and the will in Pierre's
    favor are among the count's papers, then, my dear girl, you and your
    sisters are not heiresses! If you don't believe me, then believe an
    expert. I have just been talking to Dmitri Onufrich" (the family
    solicitor) "and he says the same."
    
    At this a sudden change evidently took place in the princess' ideas; her
    thin lips grew white, though her eyes did not change, and her voice when
    she began to speak passed through such transitions as she herself
    evidently did not expect.
    
    "That would be a fine thing!" said she. "I never wanted anything and I
    don't now."
    
    She pushed the little dog off her lap and smoothed her dress.
    
    "And this is gratitude--this is recognition for those who have
    sacrificed everything for his sake!" she cried. "It's splendid! Fine! I
    don't want anything, Prince."
    
    "Yes, but you are not the only one. There are your sisters..." replied
    Prince Vasili.
    
    But the princess did not listen to him.
    
    "Yes, I knew it long ago but had forgotten. I knew that I could expect
    nothing but meanness, deceit, envy, intrigue, and ingratitude--the
    blackest ingratitude--in this house..."
    
    "Do you or do you not know where that will is?" insisted Prince Vasili,
    his cheeks twitching more than ever.
    
    "Yes, I was a fool! I still believed in people, loved them, and
    sacrificed myself. But only the base, the vile succeed! I know who has
    been intriguing!"
    
    The princess wished to rise, but the prince held her by the hand. She
    had the air of one who has suddenly lost faith in the whole human race.
    She gave her companion an angry glance.
    
    "There is still time, my dear. You must remember, Catiche, that it was
    all done casually in a moment of anger, of illness, and was afterwards
    forgotten. Our duty, my dear, is to rectify his mistake, to ease his
    last moments by not letting him commit this injustice, and not to let
    him die feeling that he is rendering unhappy those who..."
    
    "Who sacrificed everything for him," chimed in the princess, who would
    again have risen had not the prince still held her fast, "though he
    never could appreciate it. No, mon cousin," she added with a sigh, "I
    shall always remember that in this world one must expect no reward, that
    in this world there is neither honor nor justice. In this world one has
    to be cunning and cruel."
    
    "Now come, come! Be reasonable. I know your excellent heart."
    
    "No, I have a wicked heart."
    
    "I know your heart," repeated the prince. "I value your friendship and
    wish you to have as good an opinion of me. Don't upset yourself, and let
    us talk sensibly while there is still time, be it a day or be it but an
    hour.... Tell me all you know about the will, and above all where it is.
    You must know. We will take it at once and show it to the count. He has,
    no doubt, forgotten it and will wish to destroy it. You understand that
    my sole desire is conscientiously to carry out his wishes; that is my
    only reason for being here. I came simply to help him and you."
    
    "Now I see it all! I know who has been intriguing--I know!" cried the
    princess.
    
    "That's not the point, my dear."
    
    "It's that protege of yours, that sweet Princess Drubetskaya, that Anna
    Mikhaylovna whom I would not take for a housemaid... the infamous, vile
    woman!"
    
    "Do not let us lose any time..."
    
    "Ah, don't talk to me! Last winter she wheedled herself in here and told
    the count such vile, disgraceful things about us, especially about
    Sophie--I can't repeat them--that it made the count quite ill and he
    would not see us for a whole fortnight. I know it was then he wrote this
    vile, infamous paper, but I thought the thing was invalid."
    
    "We've got to it at last--why did you not tell me about it sooner?"
    
    "It's in the inlaid portfolio that he keeps under his pillow," said the
    princess, ignoring his question. "Now I know! Yes; if I have a sin, a
    great sin, it is hatred of that vile woman!" almost shrieked the
    princess, now quite changed. "And what does she come worming herself in
    here for? But I will give her a piece of my mind. The time will come!"
    
    CHAPTER XXII
    
    While these conversations were going on in the reception room and the
    princess' room, a carriage containing Pierre (who had been sent for) and
    Anna Mikhaylovna (who found it necessary to accompany him) was driving
    into the court of Count Bezukhov's house. As the wheels rolled softly
    over the straw beneath the windows, Anna Mikhaylovna, having turned with
    words of comfort to her companion, realized that he was asleep in his
    corner and woke him up. Rousing himself, Pierre followed Anna
    Mikhaylovna out of the carriage, and only then began to think of the
    interview with his dying father which awaited him. He noticed that they
    had not come to the front entrance but to the back door. While he was
    getting down from the carriage steps two men, who looked like
    tradespeople, ran hurriedly from the entrance and hid in the shadow of
    the wall. Pausing for a moment, Pierre noticed several other men of the
    same kind hiding in the shadow of the house on both sides. But neither
    Anna Mikhaylovna nor the footman nor the coachman, who could not help
    seeing these people, took any notice of them. "It seems to be all
    right," Pierre concluded, and followed Anna Mikhaylovna. She hurriedly
    ascended the narrow dimly lit stone staircase, calling to Pierre, who
    was lagging behind, to follow. Though he did not see why it was
    necessary for him to go to the count at all, still less why he had to go
    by the back stairs, yet judging by Anna Mikhaylovna's air of assurance
    and haste, Pierre concluded that it was all absolutely necessary.
    Halfway up the stairs they were almost knocked over by some men who,
    carrying pails, came running downstairs, their boots clattering. These
    men pressed close to the wall to let Pierre and Anna Mikhaylovna pass
    and did not evince the least surprise at seeing them there.
    
    "Is this the way to the princesses' apartments?" asked Anna Mikhaylovna
    of one of them.
    
    "Yes," replied a footman in a bold loud voice, as if anything were now
    permissible; "the door to the left, ma'am."
    
    "Perhaps the count did not ask for me," said Pierre when he reached the
    landing. "I'd better go to my own room."
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna paused and waited for him to come up.
    
    "Ah, my friend!" she said, touching his arm as she had done her son's
    when speaking to him that afternoon, "believe me I suffer no less than
    you do, but be a man!"
    
    "But really, hadn't I better go away?" he asked, looking kindly at her
    over his spectacles.
    
    "Ah, my dear friend! Forget the wrongs that may have been done you.
    Think that he is your father... perhaps in the agony of death." She
    sighed. "I have loved you like a son from the first. Trust yourself to
    me, Pierre. I shall not forget your interests."
    
    Pierre did not understand a word, but the conviction that all this had
    to be grew stronger, and he meekly followed Anna Mikhaylovna who was
    already opening a door.
    
    This door led into a back anteroom. An old man, a servant of the
    princesses, sat in a corner knitting a stocking. Pierre had never been
    in this part of the house and did not even know of the existence of
    these rooms. Anna Mikhaylovna, addressing a maid who was hurrying past
    with a decanter on a tray as "my dear" and "my sweet," asked about the
    princess' health and then led Pierre along a stone passage. The first
    door on the left led into the princesses' apartments. The maid with the
    decanter in her haste had not closed the door (everything in the house
    was done in haste at that time), and Pierre and Anna Mikhaylovna in
    passing instinctively glanced into the room, where Prince Vasili and the
    eldest princess were sitting close together talking. Seeing them pass,
    Prince Vasili drew back with obvious impatience, while the princess
    jumped up and with a gesture of desperation slammed the door with all
    her might.
    
    This action was so unlike her usual composure and the fear depicted on
    Prince Vasili's face so out of keeping with his dignity that Pierre
    stopped and glanced inquiringly over his spectacles at his guide. Anna
    Mikhaylovna evinced no surprise, she only smiled faintly and sighed, as
    if to say that this was no more than she had expected.
    
    "Be a man, my friend. I will look after your interests," said she in
    reply to his look, and went still faster along the passage.
    
    Pierre could not make out what it was all about, and still less what
    "watching over his interests" meant, but he decided that all these
    things had to be. From the passage they went into a large, dimly lit
    room adjoining the count's reception room. It was one of those sumptuous
    but cold apartments known to Pierre only from the front approach, but
    even in this room there now stood an empty bath, and water had been
    spilled on the carpet. They were met by a deacon with a censer and by a
    servant who passed out on tiptoe without heeding them. They went into
    the reception room familiar to Pierre, with two Italian windows opening
    into the conservatory, with its large bust and full length portrait of
    Catherine the Great. The same people were still sitting here in almost
    the same positions as before, whispering to one another. All became
    silent and turned to look at the pale tear-worn Anna Mikhaylovna as she
    entered, and at the big stout figure of Pierre who, hanging his head,
    meekly followed her.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna's face expressed a consciousness that the decisive
    moment had arrived. With the air of a practical Petersburg lady she now,
    keeping Pierre close beside her, entered the room even more boldly than
    that afternoon. She felt that as she brought with her the person the
    dying man wished to see, her own admission was assured. Casting a rapid
    glance at all those in the room and noticing the count's confessor
    there, she glided up to him with a sort of amble, not exactly bowing yet
    seeming to grow suddenly smaller, and respectfully received the blessing
    first of one and then of another priest.
    
    "God be thanked that you are in time," said she to one of the priests;
    "all we relatives have been in such anxiety. This young man is the
    count's son," she added more softly. "What a terrible moment!"
    
    Having said this she went up to the doctor.
    
    "Dear doctor," said she, "this young man is the count's son. Is there
    any hope?"
    
    The doctor cast a rapid glance upwards and silently shrugged his
    shoulders. Anna Mikhaylovna with just the same movement raised her
    shoulders and eyes, almost closing the latter, sighed, and moved away
    from the doctor to Pierre. To him, in a particularly respectful and
    tenderly sad voice, she said:
    
    "Trust in His mercy!" and pointing out a small sofa for him to sit and
    wait for her, she went silently toward the door that everyone was
    watching and it creaked very slightly as she disappeared behind it.
    
    Pierre, having made up his mind to obey his monitress implicitly, moved
    toward the sofa she had indicated. As soon as Anna Mikhaylovna had
    disappeared he noticed that the eyes of all in the room turned to him
    with something more than curiosity and sympathy. He noticed that they
    whispered to one another, casting significant looks at him with a kind
    of awe and even servility. A deference such as he had never before
    received was shown him. A strange lady, the one who had been talking to
    the priests, rose and offered him her seat; an aide-de-camp picked up
    and returned a glove Pierre had dropped; the doctors became respectfully
    silent as he passed by, and moved to make way for him. At first Pierre
    wished to take another seat so as not to trouble the lady, and also to
    pick up the glove himself and to pass round the doctors who were not
    even in his way; but all at once he felt that this would not do, and
    that tonight he was a person obliged to perform some sort of awful rite
    which everyone expected of him, and that he was therefore bound to
    accept their services. He took the glove in silence from the aide-de-
    camp, and sat down in the lady's chair, placing his huge hands
    symmetrically on his knees in the naive attitude of an Egyptian statue,
    and decided in his own mind that all was as it should be, and that in
    order not to lose his head and do foolish things he must not act on his
    own ideas tonight, but must yield himself up entirely to the will of
    those who were guiding him.
    
    Not two minutes had passed before Prince Vasili with head erect
    majestically entered the room. He was wearing his long coat with three
    stars on his breast. He seemed to have grown thinner since the morning;
    his eyes seemed larger than usual when he glanced round and noticed
    Pierre. He went up to him, took his hand (a thing he never used to do),
    and drew it downwards as if wishing to ascertain whether it was firmly
    fixed on.
    
    "Courage, courage, my friend! He has asked to see you. That is well!"
    and he turned to go.
    
    But Pierre thought it necessary to ask: "How is..." and hesitated, not
    knowing whether it would be proper to call the dying man "the count,"
    yet ashamed to call him "father."
    
    "He had another stroke about half an hour ago. Courage, my friend..."
    
    Pierre's mind was in such a confused state that the word "stroke"
    suggested to him a blow from something. He looked at Prince Vasili in
    perplexity, and only later grasped that a stroke was an attack of
    illness. Prince Vasili said something to Lorrain in passing and went
    through the door on tiptoe. He could not walk well on tiptoe and his
    whole body jerked at each step. The eldest princess followed him, and
    the priests and deacons and some servants also went in at the door.
    Through that door was heard a noise of things being moved about, and at
    last Anna Mikhaylovna, still with the same expression, pale but resolute
    in the discharge of duty, ran out and touching Pierre lightly on the arm
    said:
    
    "The divine mercy is inexhaustible! Unction is about to be administered.
    Come."
    
    Pierre went in at the door, stepping on the soft carpet, and noticed
    that the strange lady, the aide-de-camp, and some of the servants, all
    followed him in, as if there were now no further need for permission to
    enter that room.
    
    CHAPTER XXIII
    
    Pierre well knew this large room divided by columns and an arch, its
    walls hung round with Persian carpets. The part of the room behind the
    columns, with a high silk-curtained mahogany bedstead on one side and on
    the other an immense case containing icons, was brightly illuminated
    with red light like a Russian church during evening service. Under the
    gleaming icons stood a long invalid chair, and in that chair on snowy-
    white smooth pillows, evidently freshly changed, Pierre saw--covered to
    the waist by a bright green quilt--the familiar, majestic figure of his
    father, Count Bezukhov, with that gray mane of hair above his broad
    forehead which reminded one of a lion, and the deep characteristically
    noble wrinkles of his handsome, ruddy face. He lay just under the icons;
    his large thick hands outside the quilt. Into the right hand, which was
    lying palm downwards, a wax taper had been thrust between forefinger and
    thumb, and an old servant, bending over from behind the chair, held it
    in position. By the chair stood the priests, their long hair falling
    over their magnificent glittering vestments, with lighted tapers in
    their hands, slowly and solemnly conducting the service. A little behind
    them stood the two younger princesses holding handkerchiefs to their
    eyes, and just in front of them their eldest sister, Catiche, with a
    vicious and determined look steadily fixed on the icons, as though
    declaring to all that she could not answer for herself should she glance
    round. Anna Mikhaylovna, with a meek, sorrowful, and all-forgiving
    expression on her face, stood by the door near the strange lady. Prince
    Vasili in front of the door, near the invalid chair, a wax taper in his
    left hand, was leaning his left arm on the carved back of a velvet chair
    he had turned round for the purpose, and was crossing himself with his
    right hand, turning his eyes upward each time he touched his forehead.
    His face wore a calm look of piety and resignation to the will of God.
    "If you do not understand these sentiments," he seemed to be saying, "so
    much the worse for you!"
    
    Behind him stood the aide-de-camp, the doctors, and the menservants; the
    men and women had separated as in church. All were silently crossing
    themselves, and the reading of the church service, the subdued chanting
    of deep bass voices, and in the intervals sighs and the shuffling of
    feet were the only sounds that could be heard. Anna Mikhaylovna, with an
    air of importance that showed that she felt she quite knew what she was
    about, went across the room to where Pierre was standing and gave him a
    taper. He lit it and, distracted by observing those around him, began
    crossing himself with the hand that held the taper.
    
    Sophie, the rosy, laughter-loving, youngest princess with the mole,
    watched him. She smiled, hid her face in her handkerchief, and remained
    with it hidden for awhile; then looking up and seeing Pierre she again
    began to laugh. She evidently felt unable to look at him without
    laughing, but could not resist looking at him: so to be out of
    temptation she slipped quietly behind one of the columns. In the midst
    of the service the voices of the priests suddenly ceased, they whispered
    to one another, and the old servant who was holding the count's hand got
    up and said something to the ladies. Anna Mikhaylovna stepped forward
    and, stooping over the dying man, beckoned to Lorrain from behind her
    back. The French doctor held no taper; he was leaning against one of the
    columns in a respectful attitude implying that he, a foreigner, in spite
    of all differences of faith, understood the full importance of the rite
    now being performed and even approved of it. He now approached the sick
    man with the noiseless step of one in full vigor of life, with his
    delicate white fingers raised from the green quilt the hand that was
    free, and turning sideways felt the pulse and reflected a moment. The
    sick man was given something to drink, there was a stir around him, then
    the people resumed their places and the service continued. During this
    interval Pierre noticed that Prince Vasili left the chair on which he
    had been leaning, and--with an air which intimated that he knew what he
    was about and if others did not understand him it was so much the worse
    for them--did not go up to the dying man, but passed by him, joined the
    eldest princess, and moved with her to the side of the room where stood
    the high bedstead with its silken hangings. On leaving the bed both
    Prince Vasili and the princess passed out by a back door, but returned
    to their places one after the other before the service was concluded.
    Pierre paid no more attention to this occurrence than to the rest of
    what went on, having made up his mind once for all that what he saw
    happening around him that evening was in some way essential.
    
    The chanting of the service ceased, and the voice of the priest was
    heard respectfully congratulating the dying man on having received the
    sacrament. The dying man lay as lifeless and immovable as before. Around
    him everyone began to stir: steps were audible and whispers, among which
    Anna Mikhaylovna's was the most distinct.
    
    Pierre heard her say:
    
    "Certainly he must be moved onto the bed; here it will be impossible..."
    
    The sick man was so surrounded by doctors, princesses, and servants that
    Pierre could no longer see the reddish-yellow face with its gray mane--
    which, though he saw other faces as well, he had not lost sight of for a
    single moment during the whole service. He judged by the cautious
    movements of those who crowded round the invalid chair that they had
    lifted the dying man and were moving him.
    
    "Catch hold of my arm or you'll drop him!" he heard one of the servants
    say in a frightened whisper. "Catch hold from underneath. Here!"
    exclaimed different voices; and the heavy breathing of the bearers and
    the shuffling of their feet grew more hurried, as if the weight they
    were carrying were too much for them.
    
    As the bearers, among whom was Anna Mikhaylovna, passed the young man he
    caught a momentary glimpse between their heads and backs of the dying
    man's high, stout, uncovered chest and powerful shoulders, raised by
    those who were holding him under the armpits, and of his gray, curly,
    leonine head. This head, with its remarkably broad brow and cheekbones,
    its handsome, sensual mouth, and its cold, majestic expression, was not
    disfigured by the approach of death. It was the same as Pierre
    remembered it three months before, when the count had sent him to
    Petersburg. But now this head was swaying helplessly with the uneven
    movements of the bearers, and the cold listless gaze fixed itself upon
    nothing.
    
    After a few minutes' bustle beside the high bedstead, those who had
    carried the sick man dispersed. Anna Mikhaylovna touched Pierre's hand
    and said, "Come." Pierre went with her to the bed on which the sick man
    had been laid in a stately pose in keeping with the ceremony just
    completed. He lay with his head propped high on the pillows. His hands
    were symmetrically placed on the green silk quilt, the palms downward.
    When Pierre came up the count was gazing straight at him, but with a
    look the significance of which could not be understood by mortal man.
    Either this look meant nothing but that as long as one has eyes they
    must look somewhere, or it meant too much. Pierre hesitated, not knowing
    what to do, and glanced inquiringly at his guide. Anna Mikhaylovna made
    a hurried sign with her eyes, glancing at the sick man's hand and moving
    her lips as if to send it a kiss. Pierre, carefully stretching his neck
    so as not to touch the quilt, followed her suggestion and pressed his
    lips to the large boned, fleshy hand. Neither the hand nor a single
    muscle of the count's face stirred. Once more Pierre looked
    questioningly at Anna Mikhaylovna to see what he was to do next. Anna
    Mikhaylovna with her eyes indicated a chair that stood beside the bed.
    Pierre obediently sat down, his eyes asking if he were doing right. Anna
    Mikhaylovna nodded approvingly. Again Pierre fell into the naively
    symmetrical pose of an Egyptian statue, evidently distressed that his
    stout and clumsy body took up so much room and doing his utmost to look
    as small as possible. He looked at the count, who still gazed at the
    spot where Pierre's face had been before he sat down. Anna Mikhaylovna
    indicated by her attitude her consciousness of the pathetic importance
    of these last moments of meeting between the father and son. This lasted
    about two minutes, which to Pierre seemed an hour. Suddenly the broad
    muscles and lines of the count's face began to twitch. The twitching
    increased, the handsome mouth was drawn to one side (only now did Pierre
    realize how near death his father was), and from that distorted mouth
    issued an indistinct, hoarse sound. Anna Mikhaylovna looked attentively
    at the sick man's eyes, trying to guess what he wanted; she pointed
    first to Pierre, then to some drink, then named Prince Vasili in an
    inquiring whisper, then pointed to the quilt. The eyes and face of the
    sick man showed impatience. He made an effort to look at the servant who
    stood constantly at the head of the bed.
    
    "Wants to turn on the other side," whispered the servant, and got up to
    turn the count's heavy body toward the wall.
    
    Pierre rose to help him.
    
    While the count was being turned over, one of his arms fell back
    helplessly and he made a fruitless effort to pull it forward. Whether he
    noticed the look of terror with which Pierre regarded that lifeless arm,
    or whether some other thought flitted across his dying brain, at any
    rate he glanced at the refractory arm, at Pierre's terror-stricken face,
    and again at the arm, and on his face a feeble, piteous smile appeared,
    quite out of keeping with his features, that seemed to deride his own
    helplessness. At sight of this smile Pierre felt an unexpected quivering
    in his breast and a tickling in his nose, and tears dimmed his eyes. The
    sick man was turned on to his side with his face to the wall. He sighed.
    
    "He is dozing," said Anna Mikhaylovna, observing that one of the
    princesses was coming to take her turn at watching. "Let us go."
    
    Pierre went out.
    
    CHAPTER XXIV
    
    There was now no one in the reception room except Prince Vasili and the
    eldest princess, who were sitting under the portrait of Catherine the
    Great and talking eagerly. As soon as they saw Pierre and his companion
    they became silent, and Pierre thought he saw the princess hide
    something as she whispered:
    
    "I can't bear the sight of that woman."
    
    "Catiche has had tea served in the small drawing room," said Prince
    Vasili to Anna Mikhaylovna. "Go and take something, my poor Anna
    Mikhaylovna, or you will not hold out."
    
    To Pierre he said nothing, merely giving his arm a sympathetic squeeze
    below the shoulder. Pierre went with Anna Mikhaylovna into the small
    drawing room.
    
    "There is nothing so refreshing after a sleepless night as a cup of this
    delicious Russian tea," Lorrain was saying with an air of restrained
    animation as he stood sipping tea from a delicate Chinese handleless cup
    before a table on which tea and a cold supper were laid in the small
    circular room. Around the table all who were at Count Bezukhov's house
    that night had gathered to fortify themselves. Pierre well remembered
    this small circular drawing room with its mirrors and little tables.
    During balls given at the house Pierre, who did not know how to dance,
    had liked sitting in this room to watch the ladies who, as they passed
    through in their ball dresses with diamonds and pearls on their bare
    shoulders, looked at themselves in the brilliantly lighted mirrors which
    repeated their reflections several times. Now this same room was dimly
    lighted by two candles. On one small table tea things and supper dishes
    stood in disorder, and in the middle of the night a motley throng of
    people sat there, not merrymaking, but somberly whispering, and
    betraying by every word and movement that they none of them forgot what
    was happening and what was about to happen in the bedroom. Pierre did
    not eat anything though he would very much have liked to. He looked
    inquiringly at his monitress and saw that she was again going on tiptoe
    to the reception room where they had left Prince Vasili and the eldest
    princess. Pierre concluded that this also was essential, and after a
    short interval followed her. Anna Mikhaylovna was standing beside the
    princess, and they were both speaking in excited whispers.
    
    "Permit me, Princess, to know what is necessary and what is not
    necessary," said the younger of the two speakers, evidently in the same
    state of excitement as when she had slammed the door of her room.
    
    "But, my dear princess," answered Anna Mikhaylovna blandly but
    impressively, blocking the way to the bedroom and preventing the other
    from passing, "won't this be too much for poor Uncle at a moment when he
    needs repose? Worldly conversation at a moment when his soul is already
    prepared..."
    
    Prince Vasili was seated in an easy chair in his familiar attitude, with
    one leg crossed high above the other. His cheeks, which were so flabby
    that they looked heavier below, were twitching violently; but he wore
    the air of a man little concerned in what the two ladies were saying.
    
    "Come, my dear Anna Mikhaylovna, let Catiche do as she pleases. You know
    how fond the count is of her."
    
    "I don't even know what is in this paper," said the younger of the two
    ladies, addressing Prince Vasili and pointing to an inlaid portfolio she
    held in her hand. "All I know is that his real will is in his writing
    table, and this is a paper he has forgotten...."
    
    She tried to pass Anna Mikhaylovna, but the latter sprang so as to bar
    her path.
    
    "I know, my dear, kind princess," said Anna Mikhaylovna, seizing the
    portfolio so firmly that it was plain she would not let go easily. "Dear
    princess, I beg and implore you, have some pity on him! Je vous en
    conjure..."
    
    The princess did not reply. Their efforts in the struggle for the
    portfolio were the only sounds audible, but it was evident that if the
    princess did speak, her words would not be flattering to Anna
    Mikhaylovna. Though the latter held on tenaciously, her voice lost none
    of its honeyed firmness and softness.
    
    "Pierre, my dear, come here. I think he will not be out of place in a
    family consultation; is it not so, Prince?"
    
    "Why don't you speak, cousin?" suddenly shrieked the princess so loud
    that those in the drawing room heard her and were startled. "Why do you
    remain silent when heaven knows who permits herself to interfere, making
    a scene on the very threshold of a dying man's room? Intriguer!" she
    hissed viciously, and tugged with all her might at the portfolio.
    
    But Anna Mikhaylovna went forward a step or two to keep her hold on the
    portfolio, and changed her grip.
    
    Prince Vasili rose. "Oh!" said he with reproach and surprise, "this is
    absurd! Come, let go I tell you."
    
    The princess let go.
    
    "And you too!"
    
    But Anna Mikhaylovna did not obey him.
    
    "Let go, I tell you! I will take the responsibility. I myself will go
    and ask him, I!... does that satisfy you?"
    
    "But, Prince," said Anna Mikhaylovna, "after such a solemn sacrament,
    allow him a moment's peace! Here, Pierre, tell them your opinion," said
    she, turning to the young man who, having come quite close, was gazing
    with astonishment at the angry face of the princess which had lost all
    dignity, and at the twitching cheeks of Prince Vasili.
    
    "Remember that you will answer for the consequences," said Prince Vasili
    severely. "You don't know what you are doing."
    
    "Vile woman!" shouted the princess, darting unexpectedly at Anna
    Mikhaylovna and snatching the portfolio from her.
    
    Prince Vasili bent his head and spread out his hands.
    
    At this moment that terrible door, which Pierre had watched so long and
    which had always opened so quietly, burst noisily open and banged
    against the wall, and the second of the three sisters rushed out
    wringing her hands.
    
    "What are you doing!" she cried vehemently. "He is dying and you leave
    me alone with him!"
    
    Her sister dropped the portfolio. Anna Mikhaylovna, stooping, quickly
    caught up the object of contention and ran into the bedroom. The eldest
    princess and Prince Vasili, recovering themselves, followed her. A few
    minutes later the eldest sister came out with a pale hard face, again
    biting her underlip. At sight of Pierre her expression showed an
    irrepressible hatred.
    
    "Yes, now you may be glad!" said she; "this is what you have been
    waiting for." And bursting into tears she hid her face in her
    handkerchief and rushed from the room.
    
    Prince Vasili came next. He staggered to the sofa on which Pierre was
    sitting and dropped onto it, covering his face with his hand. Pierre
    noticed that he was pale and that his jaw quivered and shook as if in an
    ague.
    
    "Ah, my friend!" said he, taking Pierre by the elbow; and there was in
    his voice a sincerity and weakness Pierre had never observed in it
    before. "How often we sin, how much we deceive, and all for what? I am
    near sixty, dear friend... I too... All will end in death, all! Death is
    awful..." and he burst into tears.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna came out last. She approached Pierre with slow, quiet
    steps.
    
    "Pierre!" she said.
    
    Pierre gave her an inquiring look. She kissed the young man on his
    forehead, wetting him with her tears. Then after a pause she said:
    
    "He is no more...."
    
    Pierre looked at her over his spectacles.
    
    "Come, I will go with you. Try to weep, nothing gives such relief as
    tears."
    
    She led him into the dark drawing room and Pierre was glad no one could
    see his face. Anna Mikhaylovna left him, and when she returned he was
    fast asleep with his head on his arm.
    
    In the morning Anna Mikhaylovna said to Pierre:
    
    "Yes, my dear, this is a great loss for us all, not to speak of you. But
    God will support you: you are young, and are now, I hope, in command of
    an immense fortune. The will has not yet been opened. I know you well
    enough to be sure that this will not turn your head, but it imposes
    duties on you, and you must be a man."
    
    Pierre was silent.
    
    "Perhaps later on I may tell you, my dear boy, that if I had not been
    there, God only knows what would have happened! You know, Uncle promised
    me only the day before yesterday not to forget Boris. But he had no
    time. I hope, my dear friend, you will carry out your father's wish?"
    
    Pierre understood nothing of all this and coloring shyly looked in
    silence at Princess Anna Mikhaylovna. After her talk with Pierre, Anna
    Mikhaylovna returned to the Rostovs' and went to bed. On waking in the
    morning she told the Rostovs and all her acquaintances the details of
    Count Bezukhov's death. She said the count had died as she would herself
    wish to die, that his end was not only touching but edifying. As to the
    last meeting between father and son, it was so touching that she could
    not think of it without tears, and did not know which had behaved better
    during those awful moments--the father who so remembered everything and
    everybody at last and had spoken such pathetic words to the son, or
    Pierre, whom it had been pitiful to see, so stricken was he with grief,
    though he tried hard to hide it in order not to sadden his dying father.
    "It is painful, but it does one good. It uplifts the soul to see such
    men as the old count and his worthy son," said she. Of the behavior of
    the eldest princess and Prince Vasili she spoke disapprovingly, but in
    whispers and as a great secret.
    
    CHAPTER XXV
    
    At Bald Hills, Prince Nicholas Andreevich Bolkonski's estate, the
    arrival of young Prince Andrew and his wife was daily expected, but this
    expectation did not upset the regular routine of life in the old
    prince's household. General in Chief Prince Nicholas Andreevich
    (nicknamed in society, "the King of Prussia") ever since the Emperor
    Paul had exiled him to his country estate had lived there continuously
    with his daughter, Princess Mary, and her companion, Mademoiselle
    Bourienne. Though in the new reign he was free to return to the
    capitals, he still continued to live in the country, remarking that
    anyone who wanted to see him could come the hundred miles from Moscow to
    Bald Hills, while he himself needed no one and nothing. He used to say
    that there are only two sources of human vice--idleness and
    superstition, and only two virtues--activity and intelligence. He
    himself undertook his daughter's education, and to develop these two
    cardinal virtues in her gave her lessons in algebra and geometry till
    she was twenty, and arranged her life so that her whole time was
    occupied. He was himself always occupied: writing his memoirs, solving
    problems in higher mathematics, turning snuffboxes on a lathe, working
    in the garden, or superintending the building that was always going on
    at his estate. As regularity is a prime condition facilitating activity,
    regularity in his household was carried to the highest point of
    exactitude. He always came to table under precisely the same conditions,
    and not only at the same hour but at the same minute. With those about
    him, from his daughter to his serfs, the prince was sharp and invariably
    exacting, so that without being a hardhearted man he inspired such fear
    and respect as few hardhearted men would have aroused. Although he was
    in retirement and had now no influence in political affairs, every high
    official appointed to the province in which the prince's estate lay
    considered it his duty to visit him and waited in the lofty antechamber
    just as the architect, gardener, or Princess Mary did, till the prince
    appeared punctually to the appointed hour. Everyone sitting in this
    antechamber experienced the same feeling of respect and even fear when
    the enormously high study door opened and showed the figure of a rather
    small old man, with powdered wig, small withered hands, and bushy gray
    eyebrows which, when he frowned, sometimes hid the gleam of his shrewd,
    youthfully glittering eyes.
    
    On the morning of the day that the young couple were to arrive, Princess
    Mary entered the antechamber as usual at the time appointed for the
    morning greeting, crossing herself with trepidation and repeating a
    silent prayer. Every morning she came in like that, and every morning
    prayed that the daily interview might pass off well.
    
    An old powdered manservant who was sitting in the antechamber rose
    quietly and said in a whisper: "Please walk in."
    
    Through the door came the regular hum of a lathe. The princess timidly
    opened the door which moved noiselessly and easily. She paused at the
    entrance. The prince was working at the lathe and after glancing round
    continued his work.
    
    The enormous study was full of things evidently in constant use. The
    large table covered with books and plans, the tall glass-fronted
    bookcases with keys in the locks, the high desk for writing while
    standing up, on which lay an open exercise book, and the lathe with
    tools laid ready to hand and shavings scattered around--all indicated
    continuous, varied, and orderly activity. The motion of the small foot
    shod in a Tartar boot embroidered with silver, and the firm pressure of
    the lean sinewy hand, showed that the prince still possessed the
    tenacious endurance and vigor of hardy old age. After a few more turns
    of the lathe he removed his foot from the pedal, wiped his chisel,
    dropped it into a leather pouch attached to the lathe, and, approaching
    the table, summoned his daughter. He never gave his children a blessing,
    so he simply held out his bristly cheek (as yet unshaven) and, regarding
    her tenderly and attentively, said severely:
    
    "Quite well? All right then, sit down." He took the exercise book
    containing lessons in geometry written by himself and drew up a chair
    with his foot.
    
    "For tomorrow!" said he, quickly finding the page and making a scratch
    from one paragraph to another with his hard nail.
    
    The princess bent over the exercise book on the table.
    
    "Wait a bit, here's a letter for you," said the old man suddenly, taking
    a letter addressed in a woman's hand from a bag hanging above the table,
    onto which he threw it.
    
    At the sight of the letter red patches showed themselves on the
    princess' face. She took it quickly and bent her head over it.
    
    "From Heloise?" asked the prince with a cold smile that showed his still
    sound, yellowish teeth.
    
    "Yes, it's from Julie," replied the princess with a timid glance and a
    timid smile.
    
    "I'll let two more letters pass, but the third I'll read," said the
    prince sternly; "I'm afraid you write much nonsense. I'll read the
    third!"
    
    "Read this if you like, Father," said the princess, blushing still more
    and holding out the letter.
    
    "The third, I said the third!" cried the prince abruptly, pushing the
    letter away, and leaning his elbows on the table he drew toward him the
    exercise book containing geometrical figures.
    
    "Well, madam," he began, stooping over the book close to his daughter
    and placing an arm on the back of the chair on which she sat, so that
    she felt herself surrounded on all sides by the acrid scent of old age
    and tobacco, which she had known so long. "Now, madam, these triangles
    are equal; please note that the angle ABC..."
    
    The princess looked in a scared way at her father's eyes glittering
    close to her; the red patches on her face came and went, and it was
    plain that she understood nothing and was so frightened that her fear
    would prevent her understanding any of her father's further
    explanations, however clear they might be. Whether it was the teacher's
    fault or the pupil's, this same thing happened every day: the princess'
    eyes grew dim, she could not see and could not hear anything, but was
    only conscious of her stern father's withered face close to her, of his
    breath and the smell of him, and could think only of how to get away
    quickly to her own room to make out the problem in peace. The old man
    was beside himself: moved the chair on which he was sitting noisily
    backward and forward, made efforts to control himself and not become
    vehement, but almost always did become vehement, scolded, and sometimes
    flung the exercise book away.
    
    The princess gave a wrong answer.
    
    "Well now, isn't she a fool!" shouted the prince, pushing the book aside
    and turning sharply away; but rising immediately, he paced up and down,
    lightly touched his daughter's hair and sat down again.
    
    He drew up his chair, and continued to explain.
    
    "This won't do, Princess; it won't do," said he, when Princess Mary,
    having taken and closed the exercise book with the next day's lesson,
    was about to leave: "Mathematics are most important, madam! I don't want
    to have you like our silly ladies. Get used to it and you'll like it,"
    and he patted her cheek. "It will drive all the nonsense out of your
    head."
    
    She turned to go, but he stopped her with a gesture and took an uncut
    book from the high desk.
    
    "Here is some sort of Key to the Mysteries that your Heloise has sent
    you. Religious! I don't interfere with anyone's belief... I have looked
    at it. Take it. Well, now go. Go."
    
    He patted her on the shoulder and himself closed the door after her.
    
    Princess Mary went back to her room with the sad, scared expression that
    rarely left her and which made her plain, sickly face yet plainer. She
    sat down at her writing table, on which stood miniature portraits and
    which was littered with books and papers. The princess was as untidy as
    her father was tidy. She put down the geometry book and eagerly broke
    the seal of her letter. It was from her most intimate friend from
    childhood; that same Julie Karagina who had been at the Rostovs' name-
    day party.
    
    Julie wrote in French:
    
    Dear and precious Friend, How terrible and frightful a thing is
    separation! Though I tell myself that half my life and half my happiness
    are wrapped up in you, and that in spite of the distance separating us
    our hearts are united by indissoluble bonds, my heart rebels against
    fate and in spite of the pleasures and distractions around me I cannot
    overcome a certain secret sorrow that has been in my heart ever since we
    parted. Why are we not together as we were last summer, in your big
    study, on the blue sofa, the confidential sofa? Why cannot I now, as
    three months ago, draw fresh moral strength from your look, so gentle,
    calm, and penetrating, a look I loved so well and seem to see before me
    as I write?
    
    Having read thus far, Princess Mary sighed and glanced into the mirror
    which stood on her right. It reflected a weak, ungraceful figure and
    thin face. Her eyes, always sad, now looked with particular hopelessness
    at her reflection in the glass. "She flatters me," thought the princess,
    turning away and continuing to read. But Julie did not flatter her
    friend, the princess' eyes--large, deep and luminous (it seemed as if at
    times there radiated from them shafts of warm light)--were so beautiful
    that very often in spite of the plainness of her face they gave her an
    attraction more powerful than that of beauty. But the princess never saw
    the beautiful expression of her own eyes--the look they had when she was
    not thinking of herself. As with everyone, her face assumed a forced
    unnatural expression as soon as she looked in a glass. She went on
    reading:
    
    All Moscow talks of nothing but war. One of my two brothers is already
    abroad, the other is with the Guards, who are starting on their march to
    the frontier. Our dear Emperor has left Petersburg and it is thought
    intends to expose his precious person to the chances of war. God grant
    that the Corsican monster who is destroying the peace of Europe may be
    overthrown by the angel whom it has pleased the Almighty, in His
    goodness, to give us as sovereign! To say nothing of my brothers, this
    war has deprived me of one of the associations nearest my heart. I mean
    young Nicholas Rostov, who with his enthusiasm could not bear to remain
    inactive and has left the university to join the army. I will confess to
    you, dear Mary, that in spite of his extreme youth his departure for the
    army was a great grief to me. This young man, of whom I spoke to you
    last summer, is so noble-minded and full of that real youthfulness which
    one seldom finds nowadays among our old men of twenty and, particularly,
    he is so frank and has so much heart. He is so pure and poetic that my
    relations with him, transient as they were, have been one of the
    sweetest comforts to my poor heart, which has already suffered so much.
    Someday I will tell you about our parting and all that was said then.
    That is still too fresh. Ah, dear friend, you are happy not to know
    these poignant joys and sorrows. You are fortunate, for the latter are
    generally the stronger! I know very well that Count Nicholas is too
    young ever to be more to me than a friend, but this sweet friendship,
    this poetic and pure intimacy, were what my heart needed. But enough of
    this! The chief news, about which all Moscow gossips, is the death of
    old Count Bezukhov, and his inheritance. Fancy! The three princesses
    have received very little, Prince Vasili nothing, and it is Monsieur
    Pierre who has inherited all the property and has besides been
    recognized as legitimate; so that he is now Count Bezukhov and possessor
    of the finest fortune in Russia. It is rumored that Prince Vasili played
    a very despicable part in this affair and that he returned to Petersburg
    quite crestfallen.
    
    I confess I understand very little about all these matters of wills and
    inheritance; but I do know that since this young man, whom we all used
    to know as plain Monsieur Pierre, has become Count Bezukhov and the
    owner of one of the largest fortunes in Russia, I am much amused to
    watch the change in the tone and manners of the mammas burdened by
    marriageable daughters, and of the young ladies themselves, toward him,
    though, between you and me, he always seemed to me a poor sort of
    fellow. As for the past two years people have amused themselves by
    finding husbands for me (most of whom I don't even know), the
    matchmaking chronicles of Moscow now speak of me as the future Countess
    Bezukhova. But you will understand that I have no desire for the post. A
    propos of marriages: do you know that a while ago that universal auntie
    Anna Mikhaylovna told me, under the seal of strict secrecy, of a plan of
    marriage for you. It is neither more nor less than with Prince Vasili's
    son Anatole, whom they wish to reform by marrying him to someone rich
    and distinguee, and it is on you that his relations' choice has fallen.
    I don't know what you will think of it, but I consider it my duty to let
    you know of it. He is said to be very handsome and a terrible
    scapegrace. That is all I have been able to find out about him.
    
    But enough of gossip. I am at the end of my second sheet of paper, and
    Mamma has sent for me to go and dine at the Apraksins'. Read the
    mystical book I am sending you; it has an enormous success here. Though
    there are things in it difficult for the feeble human mind to grasp, it
    is an admirable book which calms and elevates the soul. Adieu! Give my
    respects to monsieur your father and my compliments to Mademoiselle
    Bourienne. I embrace you as I love you.
    
    JULIE
    
    P.S. Let me have news of your brother and his charming little wife.
    
    The princess pondered awhile with a thoughtful smile and her luminous
    eyes lit up so that her face was entirely transformed. Then she suddenly
    rose and with her heavy tread went up to the table. She took a sheet of
    paper and her hand moved rapidly over it. This is the reply she wrote,
    also in French:
    
    Dear and precious Friend, Your letter of the 13th has given me great
    delight. So you still love me, my romantic Julie? Separation, of which
    you say so much that is bad, does not seem to have had its usual effect
    on you. You complain of our separation. What then should I say, if I
    dared complain, I who am deprived of all who are dear to me? Ah, if we
    had not religion to console us life would be very sad. Why do you
    suppose that I should look severely on your affection for that young
    man? On such matters I am only severe with myself. I understand such
    feelings in others, and if never having felt them I cannot approve of
    them, neither do I condemn them. Only it seems to me that Christian
    love, love of one's neighbor, love of one's enemy, is worthier, sweeter,
    and better than the feelings which the beautiful eyes of a young man can
    inspire in a romantic and loving young girl like yourself.
    
    The news of Count Bezukhov's death reached us before your letter and my
    father was much affected by it. He says the count was the last
    representative but one of the great century, and that it is his own turn
    now, but that he will do all he can to let his turn come as late as
    possible. God preserve us from that terrible misfortune!
    
    I cannot agree with you about Pierre, whom I knew as a child. He always
    seemed to me to have an excellent heart, and that is the quality I value
    most in people. As to his inheritance and the part played by Prince
    Vasili, it is very sad for both. Ah, my dear friend, our divine
    Saviour's words, that it is easier for a camel to go through the eye of
    a needle than for a rich man to enter the Kingdom of God, are terribly
    true. I pity Prince Vasili but am still more sorry for Pierre. So young,
    and burdened with such riches--to what temptations he will be exposed!
    If I were asked what I desire most on earth, it would be to be poorer
    than the poorest beggar. A thousand thanks, dear friend, for the volume
    you have sent me and which has such success in Moscow. Yet since you
    tell me that among some good things it contains others which our weak
    human understanding cannot grasp, it seems to me rather useless to spend
    time in reading what is unintelligible and can therefore bear no fruit.
    I never could understand the fondness some people have for confusing
    their minds by dwelling on mystical books that merely awaken their
    doubts and excite their imagination, giving them a bent for exaggeration
    quite contrary to Christian simplicity. Let us rather read the Epistles
    and Gospels. Let us not seek to penetrate what mysteries they contain;
    for how can we, miserable sinners that we are, know the terrible and
    holy secrets of Providence while we remain in this flesh which forms an
    impenetrable veil between us and the Eternal? Let us rather confine
    ourselves to studying those sublime rules which our divine Saviour has
    left for our guidance here below. Let us try to conform to them and
    follow them, and let us be persuaded that the less we let our feeble
    human minds roam, the better we shall please God, who rejects all
    knowledge that does not come from Him; and the less we seek to fathom
    what He has been pleased to conceal from us, the sooner will He
    vouchsafe its revelation to us through His divine Spirit.
    
    My father has not spoken to me of a suitor, but has only told me that he
    has received a letter and is expecting a visit from Prince Vasili. In
    regard to this project of marriage for me, I will tell you, dear sweet
    friend, that I look on marriage as a divine institution to which we must
    conform. However painful it may be to me, should the Almighty lay the
    duties of wife and mother upon me I shall try to perform them as
    faithfully as I can, without disquieting myself by examining my feelings
    toward him whom He may give me for husband.
    
    I have had a letter from my brother, who announces his speedy arrival at
    Bald Hills with his wife. This pleasure will be but a brief one,
    however, for he will leave us again to take part in this unhappy war
    into which we have been drawn, God knows how or why. Not only where you
    are--at the heart of affairs and of the world--is the talk all of war,
    even here amid fieldwork and the calm of nature--which townsfolk
    consider characteristic of the country--rumors of war are heard and
    painfully felt. My father talks of nothing but marches and
    countermarches, things of which I understand nothing; and the day before
    yesterday during my daily walk through the village I witnessed a
    heartrending scene.... It was a convoy of conscripts enrolled from our
    people and starting to join the army. You should have seen the state of
    the mothers, wives, and children of the men who were going and should
    have heard the sobs. It seems as though mankind has forgotten the laws
    of its divine Saviour, Who preached love and forgiveness of injuries--
    and that men attribute the greatest merit to skill in killing one
    another.
    
    Adieu, dear and kind friend; may our divine Saviour and His most Holy
    Mother keep you in their holy and all-powerful care!
    
    MARY
    
    "Ah, you are sending off a letter, Princess? I have already dispatched
    mine. I have written to my poor mother," said the smiling Mademoiselle
    Bourienne rapidly, in her pleasant mellow tones and with guttural r's.
    She brought into Princess Mary's strenuous, mournful, and gloomy world a
    quite different atmosphere, careless, lighthearted, and self-satisfied.
    
    "Princess, I must warn you," she added, lowering her voice and evidently
    listening to herself with pleasure, and speaking with exaggerated
    grasseyement, "the prince has been scolding Michael Ivanovich. He is in
    a very bad humor, very morose. Be prepared."
    
    "Ah, dear friend," replied Princess Mary, "I have asked you never to
    warn me of the humor my father is in. I do not allow myself to judge him
    and would not have others do so."
    
    The princess glanced at her watch and, seeing that she was five minutes
    late in starting her practice on the clavichord, went into the sitting
    room with a look of alarm. Between twelve and two o'clock, as the day
    was mapped out, the prince rested and the princess played the
    clavichord.
    
    CHAPTER XXVI
    
    The gray-haired valet was sitting drowsily listening to the snoring of
    the prince, who was in his large study. From the far side of the house
    through the closed doors came the sound of difficult passages--twenty
    times repeated--of a sonata by Dussek.
    
    Just then a closed carriage and another with a hood drove up to the
    porch. Prince Andrew got out of the carriage, helped his little wife to
    alight, and let her pass into the house before him. Old Tikhon, wearing
    a wig, put his head out of the door of the antechamber, reported in a
    whisper that the prince was sleeping, and hastily closed the door.
    Tikhon knew that neither the son's arrival nor any other unusual event
    must be allowed to disturb the appointed order of the day. Prince Andrew
    apparently knew this as well as Tikhon; he looked at his watch as if to
    ascertain whether his father's habits had changed since he was at home
    last, and, having assured himself that they had not, he turned to his
    wife.
    
    "He will get up in twenty minutes. Let us go across to Mary's room," he
    said.
    
    The little princess had grown stouter during this time, but her eyes and
    her short, downy, smiling lip lifted when she began to speak just as
    merrily and prettily as ever.
    
    "Why, this is a palace!" she said to her husband, looking around with
    the expression with which people compliment their host at a ball. "Let's
    come, quick, quick!" And with a glance round, she smiled at Tikhon, at
    her husband, and at the footman who accompanied them.
    
    "Is that Mary practicing? Let's go quietly and take her by surprise."
    
    Prince Andrew followed her with a courteous but sad expression.
    
    "You've grown older, Tikhon," he said in passing to the old man, who
    kissed his hand.
    
    Before they reached the room from which the sounds of the clavichord
    came, the pretty, fair haired Frenchwoman, Mademoiselle Bourienne,
    rushed out apparently beside herself with delight.
    
    "Ah! what joy for the princess!" exclaimed she: "At last! I must let her
    know."
    
    "No, no, please not... You are Mademoiselle Bourienne," said the little
    princess, kissing her. "I know you already through my sister-in-law's
    friendship for you. She was not expecting us?"
    
    They went up to the door of the sitting room from which came the sound
    of the oft-repeated passage of the sonata. Prince Andrew stopped and
    made a grimace, as if expecting something unpleasant.
    
    The little princess entered the room. The passage broke off in the
    middle, a cry was heard, then Princess Mary's heavy tread and the sound
    of kissing. When Prince Andrew went in the two princesses, who had only
    met once before for a short time at his wedding, were in each other's
    arms warmly pressing their lips to whatever place they happened to
    touch. Mademoiselle Bourienne stood near them pressing her hand to her
    heart, with a beatific smile and obviously equally ready to cry or to
    laugh. Prince Andrew shrugged his shoulders and frowned, as lovers of
    music do when they hear a false note. The two women let go of one
    another, and then, as if afraid of being too late, seized each other's
    hands, kissing them and pulling them away, and again began kissing each
    other on the face, and then to Prince Andrew's surprise both began to
    cry and kissed again. Mademoiselle Bourienne also began to cry. Prince
    Andrew evidently felt ill at ease, but to the two women it seemed quite
    natural that they should cry, and apparently it never entered their
    heads that it could have been otherwise at this meeting.
    
    "Ah! my dear!... Ah! Mary!" they suddenly exclaimed, and then laughed.
    "I dreamed last night..."--"You were not expecting us?..." "Ah! Mary,
    you have got thinner?..." "And you have grown stouter!..."
    
    "I knew the princess at once," put in Mademoiselle Bourienne.
    
    "And I had no idea!..." exclaimed Princess Mary. "Ah, Andrew, I did not
    see you."
    
    Prince Andrew and his sister, hand in hand, kissed one another, and he
    told her she was still the same crybaby as ever. Princess Mary had
    turned toward her brother, and through her tears the loving, warm,
    gentle look of her large luminous eyes, very beautiful at that moment,
    rested on Prince Andrew's face.
    
    The little princess talked incessantly, her short, downy upper lip
    continually and rapidly touching her rosy nether lip when necessary and
    drawing up again next moment when her face broke into a smile of
    glittering teeth and sparkling eyes. She told of an accident they had
    had on the Spasski Hill which might have been serious for her in her
    condition, and immediately after that informed them that she had left
    all her clothes in Petersburg and that heaven knew what she would have
    to dress in here; and that Andrew had quite changed, and that Kitty
    Odyntsova had married an old man, and that there was a suitor for Mary,
    a real one, but that they would talk of that later. Princess Mary was
    still looking silently at her brother and her beautiful eyes were full
    of love and sadness. It was plain that she was following a train of
    thought independent of her sister-in-law's words. In the midst of a
    description of the last Petersburg fete she addressed her brother:
    
    "So you are really going to the war, Andrew?" she said sighing.
    
    Lise sighed too.
    
    "Yes, and even tomorrow," replied her brother.
    
    "He is leaving me here, God knows why, when he might have had
    promotion..."
    
    Princess Mary did not listen to the end, but continuing her train of
    thought turned to her sister-in-law with a tender glance at her figure.
    
    "Is it certain?" she said.
    
    The face of the little princess changed. She sighed and said: "Yes,
    quite certain. Ah! it is very dreadful..."
    
    Her lip descended. She brought her face close to her sister-in-law's and
    unexpectedly again began to cry.
    
    "She needs rest," said Prince Andrew with a frown. "Don't you, Lise?
    Take her to your room and I'll go to Father. How is he? Just the same?"
    
    "Yes, just the same. Though I don't know what your opinion will be,"
    answered the princess joyfully.
    
    "And are the hours the same? And the walks in the avenues? And the
    lathe?" asked Prince Andrew with a scarcely perceptible smile which
    showed that, in spite of all his love and respect for his father, he was
    aware of his weaknesses.
    
    "The hours are the same, and the lathe, and also the mathematics and my
    geometry lessons," said Princess Mary gleefully, as if her lessons in
    geometry were among the greatest delights of her life.
    
    When the twenty minutes had elapsed and the time had come for the old
    prince to get up, Tikhon came to call the young prince to his father.
    The old man made a departure from his usual routine in honor of his
    son's arrival: he gave orders to admit him to his apartments while he
    dressed for dinner. The old prince always dressed in old-fashioned
    style, wearing an antique coat and powdered hair; and when Prince Andrew
    entered his father's dressing room (not with the contemptuous look and
    manner he wore in drawing rooms, but with the animated face with which
    he talked to Pierre), the old man was sitting on a large leather-covered
    chair, wrapped in a powdering mantle, entrusting his head to Tikhon.
    
    "Ah! here's the warrior! Wants to vanquish Buonaparte?" said the old
    man, shaking his powdered head as much as the tail, which Tikhon was
    holding fast to plait, would allow.
    
    "You at least must tackle him properly, or else if he goes on like this
    he'll soon have us, too, for his subjects! How are you?" And he held out
    his cheek.
    
    The old man was in a good temper after his nap before dinner. (He used
    to say that a nap "after dinner was silver--before dinner, golden.") He
    cast happy, sidelong glances at his son from under his thick, bushy
    eyebrows. Prince Andrew went up and kissed his father on the spot
    indicated to him. He made no reply on his father's favorite topic--
    making fun of the military men of the day, and more particularly of
    Bonaparte.
    
    "Yes, Father, I have come to you and brought my wife who is pregnant,"
    said Prince Andrew, following every movement of his father's face with
    an eager and respectful look. "How is your health?"
    
    "Only fools and rakes fall ill, my boy. You know me: I am busy from
    morning till night and abstemious, so of course I am well."
    
    "Thank God," said his son smiling.
    
    "God has nothing to do with it! Well, go on," he continued, returning to
    his hobby; "tell me how the Germans have taught you to fight Bonaparte
    by this new science you call 'strategy.'"
    
    Prince Andrew smiled.
    
    "Give me time to collect my wits, Father," said he, with a smile that
    showed that his father's foibles did not prevent his son from loving and
    honoring him. "Why, I have not yet had time to settle down!"
    
    "Nonsense, nonsense!" cried the old man, shaking his pigtail to see
    whether it was firmly plaited, and grasping his by the hand. "The house
    for your wife is ready. Princess Mary will take her there and show her
    over, and they'll talk nineteen to the dozen. That's their woman's way!
    I am glad to have her. Sit down and talk. About Mikhelson's army I
    understand--Tolstoy's too... a simultaneous expedition.... But what's
    the southern army to do? Prussia is neutral... I know that. What about
    Austria?" said he, rising from his chair and pacing up and down the room
    followed by Tikhon, who ran after him, handing him different articles of
    clothing. "What of Sweden? How will they cross Pomerania?"
    
    Prince Andrew, seeing that his father insisted, began--at first
    reluctantly, but gradually with more and more animation, and from habit
    changing unconsciously from Russian to French as he went on--to explain
    the plan of operation for the coming campaign. He explained how an army,
    ninety thousand strong, was to threaten Prussia so as to bring her out
    of her neutrality and draw her into the war; how part of that army was
    to join some Swedish forces at Stralsund; how two hundred and twenty
    thousand Austrians, with a hundred thousand Russians, were to operate in
    Italy and on the Rhine; how fifty thousand Russians and as many English
    were to land at Naples, and how a total force of five hundred thousand
    men was to attack the French from different sides. The old prince did
    not evince the least interest during this explanation, but as if he were
    not listening to it continued to dress while walking about, and three
    times unexpectedly interrupted. Once he stopped it by shouting: "The
    white one, the white one!"
    
    This meant that Tikhon was not handing him the waistcoat he wanted.
    Another time he interrupted, saying:
    
    "And will she soon be confined?" and shaking his head reproachfully
    said: "That's bad! Go on, go on."
    
    The third interruption came when Prince Andrew was finishing his
    description. The old man began to sing, in the cracked voice of old age:
    "Malbrook s'en va-t-en guerre. Dieu sait quand reviendra." *
    
    * "Marlborough is going to the wars; God knows when he'll return."
    
    His son only smiled.
    
    "I don't say it's a plan I approve of," said the son; "I am only telling
    you what it is. Napoleon has also formed his plan by now, not worse than
    this one."
    
    "Well, you've told me nothing new," and the old man repeated,
    meditatively and rapidly:
    
    "Dieu sait quand reviendra. Go to the dining room."
    
    CHAPTER XXVII
    
    At the appointed hour the prince, powdered and shaven, entered the
    dining room where his daughter-in-law, Princess Mary, and Mademoiselle
    Bourienne were already awaiting him together with his architect, who by
    a strange caprice of his employer's was admitted to table though the
    position of that insignificant individual was such as could certainly
    not have caused him to expect that honor. The prince, who generally kept
    very strictly to social distinctions and rarely admitted even important
    government officials to his table, had unexpectedly selected Michael
    Ivanovich (who always went into a corner to blow his nose on his checked
    handkerchief) to illustrate the theory that all men are equals, and had
    more than once impressed on his daughter that Michael Ivanovich was "not
    a whit worse than you or I." At dinner the prince usually spoke to the
    taciturn Michael Ivanovich more often than to anyone else.
    
    In the dining room, which like all the rooms in the house was
    exceedingly lofty, the members of the household and the footmen--one
    behind each chair--stood waiting for the prince to enter. The head
    butler, napkin on arm, was scanning the setting of the table, making
    signs to the footmen, and anxiously glancing from the clock to the door
    by which the prince was to enter. Prince Andrew was looking at a large
    gilt frame, new to him, containing the genealogical tree of the Princes
    Bolkonski, opposite which hung another such frame with a badly painted
    portrait (evidently by the hand of the artist belonging to the estate)
    of a ruling prince, in a crown--an alleged descendant of Rurik and
    ancestor of the Bolkonskis. Prince Andrew, looking again at that
    genealogical tree, shook his head, laughing as a man laughs who looks at
    a portrait so characteristic of the original as to be amusing.
    
    "How thoroughly like him that is!" he said to Princess Mary, who had
    come up to him.
    
    Princess Mary looked at her brother in surprise. She did not understand
    what he was laughing at. Everything her father did inspired her with
    reverence and was beyond question.
    
    "Everyone has his Achilles' heel," continued Prince Andrew. "Fancy, with
    his powerful mind, indulging in such nonsense!"
    
    Princess Mary could not understand the boldness of her brother's
    criticism and was about to reply, when the expected footsteps were heard
    coming from the study. The prince walked in quickly and jauntily as was
    his wont, as if intentionally contrasting the briskness of his manners
    with the strict formality of his house. At that moment the great clock
    struck two and another with a shrill tone joined in from the drawing
    room. The prince stood still; his lively glittering eyes from under
    their thick, bushy eyebrows sternly scanned all present and rested on
    the little princess. She felt, as courtiers do when the Tsar enters, the
    sensation of fear and respect which the old man inspired in all around
    him. He stroked her hair and then patted her awkwardly on the back of
    her neck.
    
    "I'm glad, glad, to see you," he said, looking attentively into her
    eyes, and then quickly went to his place and sat down. "Sit down, sit
    down! Sit down, Michael Ianovich!"
    
    He indicated a place beside him to his daughter-in-law. A footman moved
    the chair for her.
    
    "Ho, ho!" said the old man, casting his eyes on her rounded figure.
    "You've been in a hurry. That's bad!"
    
    He laughed in his usual dry, cold, unpleasant way, with his lips only
    and not with his eyes.
    
    "You must walk, walk as much as possible, as much as possible," he said.
    
    The little princess did not, or did not wish to, hear his words. She was
    silent and seemed confused. The prince asked her about her father, and
    she began to smile and talk. He asked about mutual acquaintances, and
    she became still more animated and chattered away giving him greetings
    from various people and retelling the town gossip.
    
    "Countess Apraksina, poor thing, has lost her husband and she has cried
    her eyes out," she said, growing more and more lively.
    
    As she became animated the prince looked at her more and more sternly,
    and suddenly, as if he had studied her sufficiently and had formed a
    definite idea of her, he turned away and addressed Michael Ivanovich.
    
    "Well, Michael Ivanovich, our Bonaparte will be having a bad time of it.
    Prince Andrew" (he always spoke thus of his son) "has been telling me
    what forces are being collected against him! While you and I never
    thought much of him."
    
    Michael Ivanovich did not at all know when "you and I" had said such
    things about Bonaparte, but understanding that he was wanted as a peg on
    which to hang the prince's favorite topic, he looked inquiringly at the
    young prince, wondering what would follow.
    
    "He is a great tactician!" said the prince to his son, pointing to the
    architect.
    
    And the conversation again turned on the war, on Bonaparte, and the
    generals and statesmen of the day. The old prince seemed convinced not
    only that all the men of the day were mere babies who did not know the A
    B C of war or of politics, and that Bonaparte was an insignificant
    little Frenchy, successful only because there were no longer any
    Potemkins or Suvorovs left to oppose him; but he was also convinced that
    there were no political difficulties in Europe and no real war, but only
    a sort of puppet show at which the men of the day were playing,
    pretending to do something real. Prince Andrew gaily bore with his
    father's ridicule of the new men, and drew him on and listened to him
    with evident pleasure.
    
    "The past always seems good," said he, "but did not Suvorov himself fall
    into a trap Moreau set him, and from which he did not know how to
    escape?"
    
    "Who told you that? Who?" cried the prince. "Suvorov!" And he jerked
    away his plate, which Tikhon briskly caught. "Suvorov!... Consider,
    Prince Andrew. Two... Frederick and Suvorov; Moreau!... Moreau would
    have been a prisoner if Suvorov had had a free hand; but he had the
    Hofs-kriegs-wurst-schnapps-Rath on his hands. It would have puzzled the
    devil himself! When you get there you'll find out what those Hofs-
    kriegs-wurst-Raths are! Suvorov couldn't manage them so what chance has
    Michael Kutuzov? No, my dear boy," he continued, "you and your generals
    won't get on against Buonaparte; you'll have to call in the French, so
    that birds of a feather may fight together. The German, Pahlen, has been
    sent to New York in America, to fetch the Frenchman, Moreau," he said,
    alluding to the invitation made that year to Moreau to enter the Russian
    service.... "Wonderful!... Were the Potemkins, Suvorovs, and Orlovs
    Germans? No, lad, either you fellows have all lost your wits, or I have
    outlived mine. May God help you, but we'll see what will happen.
    Buonaparte has become a great commander among them! Hm!..."
    
    "I don't at all say that all the plans are good," said Prince Andrew, "I
    am only surprised at your opinion of Bonaparte. You may laugh as much as
    you like, but all the same Bonaparte is a great general!"
    
    "Michael Ivanovich!" cried the old prince to the architect who, busy
    with his roast meat, hoped he had been forgotten: "Didn't I tell you
    Buonaparte was a great tactician? Here, he says the same thing."
    
    "To be sure, your excellency," replied the architect.
    
    The prince again laughed his frigid laugh.
    
    "Buonaparte was born with a silver spoon in his mouth. He has got
    splendid soldiers. Besides he began by attacking Germans. And only
    idlers have failed to beat the Germans. Since the world began everybody
    has beaten the Germans. They beat no one--except one another. He made
    his reputation fighting them."
    
    And the prince began explaining all the blunders which, according to
    him, Bonaparte had made in his campaigns and even in politics. His son
    made no rejoinder, but it was evident that whatever arguments were
    presented he was as little able as his father to change his opinion. He
    listened, refraining from a reply, and involuntarily wondered how this
    old man, living alone in the country for so many years, could know and
    discuss so minutely and acutely all the recent European military and
    political events.
    
    "You think I'm an old man and don't understand the present state of
    affairs?" concluded his father. "But it troubles me. I don't sleep at
    night. Come now, where has this great commander of yours shown his
    skill?" he concluded.
    
    "That would take too long to tell," answered the son.
    
    "Well, then go to your Buonaparte! Mademoiselle Bourienne, here's
    another admirer of that powder-monkey emperor of yours," he exclaimed in
    excellent French.
    
    "You know, Prince, I am not a Bonapartist!"
    
    "Dieu sait quand reviendra..." hummed the prince out of tune and, with a
    laugh still more so, he quitted the table.
    
    The little princess during the whole discussion and the rest of the
    dinner sat silent, glancing with a frightened look now at her father-in-
    law and now at Princess Mary. When they left the table she took her
    sister-in-law's arm and drew her into another room.
    
    "What a clever man your father is," said she; "perhaps that is why I am
    afraid of him."
    
    "Oh, he is so kind!" answered Princess Mary.
    
    CHAPTER XXVIII
    
    Prince Andrew was to leave next evening. The old prince, not altering
    his routine, retired as usual after dinner. The little princess was in
    her sister-in-law's room. Prince Andrew in a traveling coat without
    epaulettes had been packing with his valet in the rooms assigned to him.
    After inspecting the carriage himself and seeing the trunks put in, he
    ordered the horses to be harnessed. Only those things he always kept
    with him remained in his room; a small box, a large canteen fitted with
    silver plate, two Turkish pistols and a saber--a present from his father
    who had brought it from the siege of Ochakov. All these traveling
    effects of Prince Andrew's were in very good order: new, clean, and in
    cloth covers carefully tied with tapes.
    
    When starting on a journey or changing their mode of life, men capable
    of reflection are generally in a serious frame of mind. At such moments
    one reviews the past and plans for the future. Prince Andrew's face
    looked very thoughtful and tender. With his hands behind him he paced
    briskly from corner to corner of the room, looking straight before him
    and thoughtfully shaking his head. Did he fear going to the war, or was
    he sad at leaving his wife?--perhaps both, but evidently he did not wish
    to be seen in that mood, for hearing footsteps in the passage he
    hurriedly unclasped his hands, stopped at a table as if tying the cover
    of the small box, and assumed his usual tranquil and impenetrable
    expression. It was the heavy tread of Princess Mary that he heard.
    
    "I hear you have given orders to harness," she cried, panting (she had
    apparently been running), "and I did so wish to have another talk with
    you alone! God knows how long we may again be parted. You are not angry
    with me for coming? You have changed so, Andrusha," she added, as if to
    explain such a question.
    
    She smiled as she uttered his pet name, "Andrusha." It was obviously
    strange to her to think that this stern handsome man should be Andrusha-
    -the slender mischievous boy who had been her playfellow in childhood.
    
    "And where is Lise?" he asked, answering her question only by a smile.
    
    "She was so tired that she has fallen asleep on the sofa in my room. Oh,
    Andrew! What a treasure of a wife you have," said she, sitting down on
    the sofa, facing her brother. "She is quite a child: such a dear, merry
    child. I have grown so fond of her."
    
    Prince Andrew was silent, but the princess noticed the ironical and
    contemptuous look that showed itself on his face.
    
    "One must be indulgent to little weaknesses; who is free from them,
    Andrew? Don't forget that she has grown up and been educated in society,
    and so her position now is not a rosy one. We should enter into
    everyone's situation. Tout comprendre, c'est tout pardonner. * Think
    what it must be for her, poor thing, after what she has been used to, to
    be parted from her husband and be left alone in the country, in her
    condition! It's very hard."
    
    * To understand all is to forgive all.
    
    Prince Andrew smiled as he looked at his sister, as we smile at those we
    think we thoroughly understand.
    
    "You live in the country and don't think the life terrible," he replied.
    
    "I... that's different. Why speak of me? I don't want any other life,
    and can't, for I know no other. But think, Andrew: for a young society
    woman to be buried in the country during the best years of her life, all
    alone--for Papa is always busy, and I... well, you know what poor
    resources I have for entertaining a woman used to the best society.
    There is only Mademoiselle Bourienne...."
    
    "I don't like your Mademoiselle Bourienne at all," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "No? She is very nice and kind and, above all, she's much to be pitied.
    She has no one, no one. To tell the truth, I don't need her, and she's
    even in my way. You know I always was a savage, and now am even more so.
    I like being alone.... Father likes her very much. She and Michael
    Ivanovich are the two people to whom he is always gentle and kind,
    because he has been a benefactor to them both. As Sterne says: 'We don't
    love people so much for the good they have done us, as for the good we
    have done them.' Father took her when she was homeless after losing her
    own father. She is very good-natured, and my father likes her way of
    reading. She reads to him in the evenings and reads splendidly."
    
    "To be quite frank, Mary, I expect Father's character sometimes makes
    things trying for you, doesn't it?" Prince Andrew asked suddenly.
    
    Princess Mary was first surprised and then aghast at this question.
    
    "For me? For me?... Trying for me!..." said she.
    
    "He always was rather harsh; and now I should think he's getting very
    trying," said Prince Andrew, apparently speaking lightly of their father
    in order to puzzle or test his sister.
    
    "You are good in every way, Andrew, but you have a kind of intellectual
    pride," said the princess, following the train of her own thoughts
    rather than the trend of the conversation--"and that's a great sin. How
    can one judge Father? But even if one might, what feeling except
    veneration could such a man as my father evoke? And I am so contented
    and happy with him. I only wish you were all as happy as I am."
    
    Her brother shook his head incredulously.
    
    "The only thing that is hard for me... I will tell you the truth,
    Andrew... is Father's way of treating religious subjects. I don't
    understand how a man of his immense intellect can fail to see what is as
    clear as day, and can go so far astray. That is the only thing that
    makes me unhappy. But even in this I can see lately a shade of
    improvement. His satire has been less bitter of late, and there was a
    monk he received and had a long talk with."
    
    "Ah! my dear, I am afraid you and your monk are wasting your powder,"
    said Prince Andrew banteringly yet tenderly.
    
    "Ah! mon ami, I only pray, and hope that God will hear me. Andrew..."
    she said timidly after a moment's silence, "I have a great favor to ask
    of you."
    
    "What is it, dear?"
    
    "No--promise that you will not refuse! It will give you no trouble and
    is nothing unworthy of you, but it will comfort me. Promise,
    Andrusha!..." said she, putting her hand in her reticule but not yet
    taking out what she was holding inside it, as if what she held were the
    subject of her request and must not be shown before the request was
    granted.
    
    She looked timidly at her brother.
    
    "Even if it were a great deal of trouble..." answered Prince Andrew, as
    if guessing what it was about.
    
    "Think what you please! I know you are just like Father. Think as you
    please, but do this for my sake! Please do! Father's father, our
    grandfather, wore it in all his wars." (She still did not take out what
    she was holding in her reticule.) "So you promise?"
    
    "Of course. What is it?"
    
    "Andrew, I bless you with this icon and you must promise me you will
    never take it off. Do you promise?"
    
    "If it does not weigh a hundredweight and won't break my neck... To
    please you..." said Prince Andrew. But immediately, noticing the pained
    expression his joke had brought to his sister's face, he repented and
    added: "I am glad; really, dear, I am very glad."
    
    "Against your will He will save and have mercy on you and bring you to
    Himself, for in Him alone is truth and peace," said she in a voice
    trembling with emotion, solemnly holding up in both hands before her
    brother a small, oval, antique, dark-faced icon of the Saviour in a gold
    setting, on a finely wrought silver chain.
    
    She crossed herself, kissed the icon, and handed it to Andrew.
    
    "Please, Andrew, for my sake!..."
    
    Rays of gentle light shone from her large, timid eyes. Those eyes lit up
    the whole of her thin, sickly face and made it beautiful. Her brother
    would have taken the icon, but she stopped him. Andrew understood,
    crossed himself and kissed the icon. There was a look of tenderness, for
    he was touched, but also a gleam of irony on his face.
    
    "Thank you, my dear." She kissed him on the forehead and sat down again
    on the sofa. They were silent for a while.
    
    "As I was saying to you, Andrew, be kind and generous as you always used
    to be. Don't judge Lise harshly," she began. "She is so sweet, so good-
    natured, and her position now is a very hard one."
    
    "I do not think I have complained of my wife to you, Masha, or blamed
    her. Why do you say all this to me?"
    
    Red patches appeared on Princess Mary's face and she was silent as if
    she felt guilty.
    
    "I have said nothing to you, but you have already been talked to. And I
    am sorry for that," he went on.
    
    The patches grew deeper on her forehead, neck, and cheeks. She tried to
    say something but could not. Her brother had guessed right: the little
    princess had been crying after dinner and had spoken of her forebodings
    about her confinement, and how she dreaded it, and had complained of her
    fate, her father-in-law, and her husband. After crying she had fallen
    asleep. Prince Andrew felt sorry for his sister.
    
    "Know this, Masha: I can't reproach, have not reproached, and never
    shall reproach my wife with anything, and I cannot reproach myself with
    anything in regard to her; and that always will be so in whatever
    circumstances I may be placed. But if you want to know the truth... if
    you want to know whether I am happy? No! Is she happy? No! But why this
    is so I don't know..."
    
    As he said this he rose, went to his sister, and, stooping, kissed her
    forehead. His fine eyes lit up with a thoughtful, kindly, and
    unaccustomed brightness, but he was looking not at his sister but over
    her head toward the darkness of the open doorway.
    
    "Let us go to her, I must say good-by. Or--go and wake and I'll come in
    a moment. Petrushka!" he called to his valet: "Come here, take these
    away. Put this on the seat and this to the right."
    
    Princess Mary rose and moved to the door, then stopped and said:
    "Andrew, if you had faith you would have turned to God and asked Him to
    give you the love you do not feel, and your prayer would have been
    answered."
    
    "Well, may be!" said Prince Andrew. "Go, Masha; I'll come immediately."
    
    On the way to his sister's room, in the passage which connected one wing
    with the other, Prince Andrew met Mademoiselle Bourienne smiling
    sweetly. It was the third time that day that, with an ecstatic and
    artless smile, she had met him in secluded passages.
    
    "Oh! I thought you were in your room," she said, for some reason
    blushing and dropping her eyes.
    
    Prince Andrew looked sternly at her and an expression of anger suddenly
    came over his face. He said nothing to her but looked at her forehead
    and hair, without looking at her eyes, with such contempt that the
    Frenchwoman blushed and went away without a word. When he reached his
    sister's room his wife was already awake and her merry voice, hurrying
    one word after another, came through the open door. She was speaking as
    usual in French, and as if after long self-restraint she wished to make
    up for lost time.
    
    "No, but imagine the old Countess Zubova, with false curls and her mouth
    full of false teeth, as if she were trying to cheat old age.... Ha, ha,
    ha! Mary!"
    
    This very sentence about Countess Zubova and this same laugh Prince
    Andrew had already heard from his wife in the presence of others some
    five times. He entered the room softly. The little princess, plump and
    rosy, was sitting in an easy chair with her work in her hands, talking
    incessantly, repeating Petersburg reminiscences and even phrases. Prince
    Andrew came up, stroked her hair, and asked if she felt rested after
    their journey. She answered him and continued her chatter.
    
    The coach with six horses was waiting at the porch. It was an autumn
    night, so dark that the coachman could not see the carriage pole.
    Servants with lanterns were bustling about in the porch. The immense
    house was brilliant with lights shining through its lofty windows. The
    domestic serfs were crowding in the hall, waiting to bid good-by to the
    young prince. The members of the household were all gathered in the
    reception hall: Michael Ivanovich, Mademoiselle Bourienne, Princess
    Mary, and the little princess. Prince Andrew had been called to his
    father's study as the latter wished to say good-by to him alone. All
    were waiting for them to come out.
    
    When Prince Andrew entered the study the old man in his old-age
    spectacles and white dressing gown, in which he received no one but his
    son, sat at the table writing. He glanced round.
    
    "Going?" And he went on writing.
    
    "I've come to say good-by."
    
    "Kiss me here," and he touched his cheek: "Thanks, thanks!"
    
    "What do you thank me for?"
    
    "For not dilly-dallying and not hanging to a woman's apron strings. The
    Service before everything. Thanks, thanks!" And he went on writing, so
    that his quill spluttered and squeaked. "If you have anything to say,
    say it. These two things can be done together," he added.
    
    "About my wife... I am ashamed as it is to leave her on your hands..."
    
    "Why talk nonsense? Say what you want."
    
    "When her confinement is due, send to Moscow for an accoucheur.... Let
    him be here...."
    
    The old prince stopped writing and, as if not understanding, fixed his
    stern eyes on his son.
    
    "I know that no one can help if nature does not do her work," said
    Prince Andrew, evidently confused. "I know that out of a million cases
    only one goes wrong, but it is her fancy and mine. They have been
    telling her things. She has had a dream and is frightened."
    
    "Hm... Hm..." muttered the old prince to himself, finishing what he was
    writing. "I'll do it."
    
    He signed with a flourish and suddenly turning to his son began to
    laugh.
    
    "It's a bad business, eh?"
    
    "What is bad, Father?"
    
    "The wife!" said the old prince, briefly and significantly.
    
    "I don't understand!" said Prince Andrew.
    
    "No, it can't be helped, lad," said the prince. "They're all like that;
    one can't unmarry. Don't be afraid; I won't tell anyone, but you know it
    yourself."
    
    He seized his son by the hand with small bony fingers, shook it, looked
    straight into his son's face with keen eyes which seemed to see through
    him, and again laughed his frigid laugh.
    
    The son sighed, thus admitting that his father had understood him. The
    old man continued to fold and seal his letter, snatching up and throwing
    down the wax, the seal, and the paper, with his accustomed rapidity.
    
    "What's to be done? She's pretty! I will do everything. Make your mind
    easy," said he in abrupt sentences while sealing his letter.
    
    Andrew did not speak; he was both pleased and displeased that his father
    understood him. The old man got up and gave the letter to his son.
    
    "Listen!" said he; "don't worry about your wife: what can be done shall
    be. Now listen! Give this letter to Michael Ilarionovich. * I have
    written that he should make use of you in proper places and not keep you
    long as an adjutant: a bad position! Tell him I remember and like him.
    Write and tell me how he receives you. If he is all right--serve him.
    Nicholas Bolkonski's son need not serve under anyone if he is in
    disfavor. Now come here."
    
    *Kutuzov.
    
    He spoke so rapidly that he did not finish half his words, but his son
    was accustomed to understand him. He led him to the desk, raised the
    lid, drew out a drawer, and took out an exercise book filled with his
    bold, tall, close handwriting.
    
    "I shall probably die before you. So remember, these are my memoirs;
    hand them to the Emperor after my death. Now here is a Lombard bond and
    a letter; it is a premium for the man who writes a history of Suvorov's
    wars. Send it to the Academy. Here are some jottings for you to read
    when I am gone. You will find them useful."
    
    Andrew did not tell his father that he would no doubt live a long time
    yet. He felt that he must not say it.
    
    "I will do it all, Father," he said.
    
    "Well, now, good-by!" He gave his son his hand to kiss, and embraced
    him. "Remember this, Prince Andrew, if they kill you it will hurt me,
    your old father..." he paused unexpectedly, and then in a querulous
    voice suddenly shrieked: "but if I hear that you have not behaved like a
    son of Nicholas Bolkonski, I shall be ashamed!"
    
    "You need not have said that to me, Father," said the son with a smile.
    
    The old man was silent.
    
    "I also wanted to ask you," continued Prince Andrew, "if I'm killed and
    if I have a son, do not let him be taken away from you--as I said
    yesterday... let him grow up with you.... Please."
    
    "Not let the wife have him?" said the old man, and laughed.
    
    They stood silent, facing one another. The old man's sharp eyes were
    fixed straight on his son's. Something twitched in the lower part of the
    old prince's face.
    
    "We've said good-by. Go!" he suddenly shouted in a loud, angry voice,
    opening his door.
    
    "What is it? What?" asked both princesses when they saw for a moment at
    the door Prince Andrew and the figure of the old man in a white dressing
    gown, spectacled and wigless, shouting in an angry voice.
    
    Prince Andrew sighed and made no reply.
    
    "Well!" he said, turning to his wife.
    
    And this "Well!" sounded coldly ironic, as if he were saying,: "Now go
    through your performance."
    
    "Andrew, already!" said the little princess, turning pale and looking
    with dismay at her husband.
    
    He embraced her. She screamed and fell unconscious on his shoulder.
    
    He cautiously released the shoulder she leaned on, looked into her face,
    and carefully placed her in an easy chair.
    
    "Adieu, Mary," said he gently to his sister, taking her by the hand and
    kissing her, and then he left the room with rapid steps.
    
    The little princess lay in the armchair, Mademoiselle Bourienne chafing
    her temples. Princess Mary, supporting her sister-in-law, still looked
    with her beautiful eyes full of tears at the door through which Prince
    Andrew had gone and made the sign of the cross in his direction. From
    the study, like pistol shots, came the frequent sound of the old man
    angrily blowing his nose. Hardly had Prince Andrew gone when the study
    door opened quickly and the stern figure of the old man in the white
    dressing gown looked out.
    
    "Gone? That's all right!" said he; and looking angrily at the
    unconscious little princess, he shook his head reprovingly and slammed
    the door.
    
    BOOK TWO: 1805
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    In October, 1805, a Russian army was occupying the villages and towns of
    the Archduchy of Austria, and yet other regiments freshly arriving from
    Russia were settling near the fortress of Braunau and burdening the
    inhabitants on whom they were quartered. Braunau was the headquarters of
    the commander-in-chief, Kutuzov.
    
    On October 11, 1805, one of the infantry regiments that had just reached
    Braunau had halted half a mile from the town, waiting to be inspected by
    the commander-in-chief. Despite the un-Russian appearance of the
    locality and surroundings--fruit gardens, stone fences, tiled roofs, and
    hills in the distance--and despite the fact that the inhabitants (who
    gazed with curiosity at the soldiers) were not Russians, the regiment
    had just the appearance of any Russian regiment preparing for an
    inspection anywhere in the heart of Russia.
    
    On the evening of the last day's march an order had been received that
    the commander-in-chief would inspect the regiment on the march. Though
    the words of the order were not clear to the regimental commander, and
    the question arose whether the troops were to be in marching order or
    not, it was decided at a consultation between the battalion commanders
    to present the regiment in parade order, on the principle that it is
    always better to "bow too low than not bow low enough." So the soldiers,
    after a twenty-mile march, were kept mending and cleaning all night long
    without closing their eyes, while the adjutants and company commanders
    calculated and reckoned, and by morning the regiment--instead of the
    straggling, disorderly crowd it had been on its last march the day
    before--presented a well-ordered array of two thousand men each of whom
    knew his place and his duty, had every button and every strap in place,
    and shone with cleanliness. And not only externally was all in order,
    but had it pleased the commander-in-chief to look under the uniforms he
    would have found on every man a clean shirt, and in every knapsack the
    appointed number of articles, "awl, soap, and all," as the soldiers say.
    There was only one circumstance concerning which no one could be at
    ease. It was the state of the soldiers' boots. More than half the men's
    boots were in holes. But this defect was not due to any fault of the
    regimental commander, for in spite of repeated demands boots had not
    been issued by the Austrian commissariat, and the regiment had marched
    some seven hundred miles.
    
    The commander of the regiment was an elderly, choleric, stout, and
    thick-set general with grizzled eyebrows and whiskers, and wider from
    chest to back than across the shoulders. He had on a brand-new uniform
    showing the creases where it had been folded and thick gold epaulettes
    which seemed to stand rather than lie down on his massive shoulders. He
    had the air of a man happily performing one of the most solemn duties of
    his life. He walked about in front of the line and at every step pulled
    himself up, slightly arching his back. It was plain that the commander
    admired his regiment, rejoiced in it, and that his whole mind was
    engrossed by it, yet his strut seemed to indicate that, besides military
    matters, social interests and the fair sex occupied no small part of his
    thoughts.
    
    "Well, Michael Mitrich, sir?" he said, addressing one of the battalion
    commanders who smilingly pressed forward (it was plain that they both
    felt happy). "We had our hands full last night. However, I think the
    regiment is not a bad one, eh?"
    
    The battalion commander perceived the jovial irony and laughed.
    
    "It would not be turned off the field even on the Tsaritsin Meadow."
    
    "What?" asked the commander.
    
    At that moment, on the road from the town on which signalers had been
    posted, two men appeared on horse back. They were an aide-de-camp
    followed by a Cossack.
    
    The aide-de-camp was sent to confirm the order which had not been
    clearly worded the day before, namely, that the commander-in-chief
    wished to see the regiment just in the state in which it had been on the
    march: in their greatcoats, and packs, and without any preparation
    whatever.
    
    A member of the Hofkriegsrath from Vienna had come to Kutuzov the day
    before with proposals and demands for him to join up with the army of
    the Archduke Ferdinand and Mack, and Kutuzov, not considering this
    junction advisable, meant, among other arguments in support of his view,
    to show the Austrian general the wretched state in which the troops
    arrived from Russia. With this object he intended to meet the regiment;
    so the worse the condition it was in, the better pleased the commander-
    in-chief would be. Though the aide-de-camp did not know these
    circumstances, he nevertheless delivered the definite order that the men
    should be in their greatcoats and in marching order, and that the
    commander-in-chief would otherwise be dissatisfied. On hearing this the
    regimental commander hung his head, silently shrugged his shoulders, and
    spread out his arms with a choleric gesture.
    
    "A fine mess we've made of it!" he remarked.
    
    "There now! Didn't I tell you, Michael Mitrich, that if it was said 'on
    the march' it meant in greatcoats?" said he reproachfully to the
    battalion commander. "Oh, my God!" he added, stepping resolutely
    forward. "Company commanders!" he shouted in a voice accustomed to
    command. "Sergeants major!... How soon will he be here?" he asked the
    aide-de-camp with a respectful politeness evidently relating to the
    personage he was referring to.
    
    "In an hour's time, I should say."
    
    "Shall we have time to change clothes?"
    
    "I don't know, General...."
    
    The regimental commander, going up to the line himself, ordered the
    soldiers to change into their greatcoats. The company commanders ran off
    to their companies, the sergeants major began bustling (the greatcoats
    were not in very good condition), and instantly the squares that had up
    to then been in regular order and silent began to sway and stretch and
    hum with voices. On all sides soldiers were running to and fro, throwing
    up their knapsacks with a jerk of their shoulders and pulling the straps
    over their heads, unstrapping their overcoats and drawing the sleeves on
    with upraised arms.
    
    In half an hour all was again in order, only the squares had become gray
    instead of black. The regimental commander walked with his jerky steps
    to the front of the regiment and examined it from a distance.
    
    "Whatever is this? This!" he shouted and stood still. "Commander of the
    third company!"
    
    "Commander of the third company wanted by the general!... commander to
    the general... third company to the commander." The words passed along
    the lines and an adjutant ran to look for the missing officer.
    
    When the eager but misrepeated words had reached their destination in a
    cry of: "The general to the third company," the missing officer appeared
    from behind his company and, though he was a middle-aged man and not in
    the habit of running, trotted awkwardly stumbling on his toes toward the
    general. The captain's face showed the uneasiness of a schoolboy who is
    told to repeat a lesson he has not learned. Spots appeared on his nose,
    the redness of which was evidently due to intemperance, and his mouth
    twitched nervously. The general looked the captain up and down as he
    came up panting, slackening his pace as he approached.
    
    "You will soon be dressing your men in petticoats! What is this?"
    shouted the regimental commander, thrusting forward his jaw and pointing
    at a soldier in the ranks of the third company in a greatcoat of bluish
    cloth, which contrasted with the others. "What have you been after? The
    commander in chief is expected and you leave your place? Eh? I'll teach
    you to dress the men in fancy coats for a parade.... Eh...?"
    
    The commander of the company, with his eyes fixed on his superior,
    pressed two fingers more and more rigidly to his cap, as if in this
    pressure lay his only hope of salvation.
    
    "Well, why don't you speak? Whom have you got there dressed up as a
    Hungarian?" said the commander with an austere gibe.
    
    "Your excellency..."
    
    "Well, your excellency, what? Your excellency! But what about your
    excellency?... nobody knows."
    
    "Your excellency, it's the officer Dolokhov, who has been reduced to the
    ranks," said the captain softly.
    
    "Well? Has he been degraded into a field marshal, or into a soldier? If
    a soldier, he should be dressed in regulation uniform like the others."
    
    "Your excellency, you gave him leave yourself, on the march."
    
    "Gave him leave? Leave? That's just like you young men," said the
    regimental commander cooling down a little. "Leave indeed.... One says a
    word to you and you... What?" he added with renewed irritation, "I beg
    you to dress your men decently."
    
    And the commander, turning to look at the adjutant, directed his jerky
    steps down the line. He was evidently pleased at his own display of
    anger and walking up to the regiment wished to find a further excuse for
    wrath. Having snapped at an officer for an unpolished badge, at another
    because his line was not straight, he reached the third company.
    
    "H-o-o-w are you standing? Where's your leg? Your leg?" shouted the
    commander with a tone of suffering in his voice, while there were still
    five men between him and Dolokhov with his bluish-gray uniform.
    
    Dolokhov slowly straightened his bent knee, looking straight with his
    clear, insolent eyes in the general's face.
    
    "Why a blue coat? Off with it... Sergeant major! Change his coat... the
    ras..." he did not finish.
    
    "General, I must obey orders, but I am not bound to endure..." Dolokhov
    hurriedly interrupted.
    
    "No talking in the ranks!... No talking, no talking!"
    
    "Not bound to endure insults," Dolokhov concluded in loud, ringing
    tones.
    
    The eyes of the general and the soldier met. The general became silent,
    angrily pulling down his tight scarf.
    
    "I request you to have the goodness to change your coat," he said as he
    turned away.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    "He's coming!" shouted the signaler at that moment.
    
    The regimental commander, flushing, ran to his horse, seized the stirrup
    with trembling hands, threw his body across the saddle, righted himself,
    drew his saber, and with a happy and resolute countenance, opening his
    mouth awry, prepared to shout. The regiment fluttered like a bird
    preening its plumage and became motionless.
    
    "Att-ention!" shouted the regimental commander in a soul-shaking voice
    which expressed joy for himself, severity for the regiment, and welcome
    for the approaching chief.
    
    Along the broad country road, edged on both sides by trees, came a high,
    light blue Viennese caleche, slightly creaking on its springs and drawn
    by six horses at a smart trot. Behind the caleche galloped the suite and
    a convoy of Croats. Beside Kutuzov sat an Austrian general, in a white
    uniform that looked strange among the Russian black ones. The caleche
    stopped in front of the regiment. Kutuzov and the Austrian general were
    talking in low voices and Kutuzov smiled slightly as treading heavily he
    stepped down from the carriage just as if those two thousand men
    breathlessly gazing at him and the regimental commander did not exist.
    
    The word of command rang out, and again the regiment quivered, as with a
    jingling sound it presented arms. Then amidst a dead silence the feeble
    voice of the commander-in-chief was heard. The regiment roared, "Health
    to your ex... len... len... lency!" and again all became silent. At
    first Kutuzov stood still while the regiment moved; then he and the
    general in white, accompanied by the suite, walked between the ranks.
    
    From the way the regimental commander saluted the commander-in-chief and
    devoured him with his eyes, drawing himself up obsequiously, and from
    the way he walked through the ranks behind the generals, bending forward
    and hardly able to restrain his jerky movements, and from the way he
    darted forward at every word or gesture of the commander-in-chief, it
    was evident that he performed his duty as a subordinate with even
    greater zeal than his duty as a commander. Thanks to the strictness and
    assiduity of its commander the regiment, in comparison with others that
    had reached Braunau at the same time, was in splendid condition. There
    were only 217 sick and stragglers. Everything was in good order except
    the boots.
    
    Kutuzov walked through the ranks, sometimes stopping to say a few
    friendly words to officers he had known in the Turkish war, sometimes
    also to the soldiers. Looking at their boots he several times shook his
    head sadly, pointing them out to the Austrian general with an expression
    which seemed to say that he was not blaming anyone, but could not help
    noticing what a bad state of things it was. The regimental commander ran
    forward on each such occasion, fearing to miss a single word of the
    commander-in-chief's regarding the regiment. Behind Kutuzov, at a
    distance that allowed every softly spoken word to be heard, followed
    some twenty men of his suite. These gentlemen talked among themselves
    and sometimes laughed. Nearest of all to the commander-in-chief walked a
    handsome adjutant. This was Prince Bolkonski. Beside him was his comrade
    Nesvitski, a tall staff officer, extremely stout, with a kindly,
    smiling, handsome face and moist eyes. Nesvitski could hardly keep from
    laughter provoked by a swarthy hussar officer who walked beside him.
    This hussar, with a grave face and without a smile or a change in the
    expression of his fixed eyes, watched the regimental commander's back
    and mimicked his every movement. Each time the commander started and
    bent forward, the hussar started and bent forward in exactly the same
    manner. Nesvitski laughed and nudged the others to make them look at the
    wag.
    
    Kutuzov walked slowly and languidly past thousands of eyes which were
    starting from their sockets to watch their chief. On reaching the third
    company he suddenly stopped. His suite, not having expected this,
    involuntarily came closer to him.
    
    "Ah, Timokhin!" said he, recognizing the red-nosed captain who had been
    reprimanded on account of the blue greatcoat.
    
    One would have thought it impossible for a man to stretch himself more
    than Timokhin had done when he was reprimanded by the regimental
    commander, but now that the commander-in-chief addressed him he drew
    himself up to such an extent that it seemed he could not have sustained
    it had the commander-in-chief continued to look at him, and so Kutuzov,
    who evidently understood his case and wished him nothing but good,
    quickly turned away, a scarcely perceptible smile flitting over his
    scarred and puffy face.
    
    "Another Ismail comrade," said he. "A brave officer! Are you satisfied
    with him?" he asked the regimental commander.
    
    And the latter--unconscious that he was being reflected in the hussar
    officer as in a looking glass--started, moved forward, and answered:
    "Highly satisfied, your excellency!"
    
    "We all have our weaknesses," said Kutuzov smiling and walking away from
    him. "He used to have a predilection for Bacchus."
    
    The regimental commander was afraid he might be blamed for this and did
    not answer. The hussar at that moment noticed the face of the red-nosed
    captain and his drawn-in stomach, and mimicked his expression and pose
    with such exactitude that Nesvitski could not help laughing. Kutuzov
    turned round. The officer evidently had complete control of his face,
    and while Kutuzov was turning managed to make a grimace and then assume
    a most serious, deferential, and innocent expression.
    
    The third company was the last, and Kutuzov pondered, apparently trying
    to recollect something. Prince Andrew stepped forward from among the
    suite and said in French:
    
    "You told me to remind you of the officer Dolokhov, reduced to the ranks
    in this regiment."
    
    "Where is Dolokhov?" asked Kutuzov.
    
    Dolokhov, who had already changed into a soldier's gray greatcoat, did
    not wait to be called. The shapely figure of the fair-haired soldier,
    with his clear blue eyes, stepped forward from the ranks, went up to the
    commander in chief, and presented arms.
    
    "Have you a complaint to make?" Kutuzov asked with a slight frown.
    
    "This is Dolokhov," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "Ah!" said Kutuzov. "I hope this will be a lesson to you. Do your duty.
    The Emperor is gracious, and I shan't forget you if you deserve well."
    
    The clear blue eyes looked at the commander-in-chief just as boldly as
    they had looked at the regimental commander, seeming by their expression
    to tear open the veil of convention that separates a commander-in-chief
    so widely from a private.
    
    "One thing I ask of your excellency," Dolokhov said in his firm,
    ringing, deliberate voice. "I ask an opportunity to atone for my fault
    and prove my devotion to His Majesty the Emperor and to Russia!"
    
    Kutuzov turned away. The same smile of the eyes with which he had turned
    from Captain Timokhin again flitted over his face. He turned away with a
    grimace as if to say that everything Dolokhov had said to him and
    everything he could say had long been known to him, that he was weary of
    it and it was not at all what he wanted. He turned away and went to the
    carriage.
    
    The regiment broke up into companies, which went to their appointed
    quarters near Braunau, where they hoped to receive boots and clothes and
    to rest after their hard marches.
    
    "You won't bear me a grudge, Prokhor Ignatych?" said the regimental
    commander, overtaking the third company on its way to its quarters and
    riding up to Captain Timokhin who was walking in front. (The regimental
    commander's face now that the inspection was happily over beamed with
    irrepressible delight.) "It's in the Emperor's service... it can't be
    helped... one is sometimes a bit hasty on parade... I am the first to
    apologize, you know me!... He was very pleased!" And he held out his
    hand to the captain.
    
    "Don't mention it, General, as if I'd be so bold!" replied the captain,
    his nose growing redder as he gave a smile which showed where two front
    teeth were missing that had been knocked out by the butt end of a gun at
    Ismail.
    
    "And tell Mr. Dolokhov that I won't forget him--he may be quite easy.
    And tell me, please--I've been meaning to ask--how is he behaving
    himself, and in general..."
    
    "As far as the service goes he is quite punctilious, your excellency;
    but his character..." said Timokhin.
    
    "And what about his character?" asked the regimental commander.
    
    "It's different on different days," answered the captain. "One day he is
    sensible, well educated, and good-natured, and the next he's a wild
    beast.... In Poland, if you please, he nearly killed a Jew."
    
    "Oh, well, well!" remarked the regimental commander. "Still, one must
    have pity on a young man in misfortune. You know he has important
    connections... Well, then, you just..."
    
    "I will, your excellency," said Timokhin, showing by his smile that he
    understood his commander's wish.
    
    "Well, of course, of course!"
    
    The regimental commander sought out Dolokhov in the ranks and, reining
    in his horse, said to him:
    
    "After the next affair... epaulettes."
    
    Dolokhov looked round but did not say anything, nor did the mocking
    smile on his lips change.
    
    "Well, that's all right," continued the regimental commander. "A cup of
    vodka for the men from me," he added so that the soldiers could hear. "I
    thank you all! God be praised!" and he rode past that company and
    overtook the next one.
    
    "Well, he's really a good fellow, one can serve under him," said
    Timokhin to the subaltern beside him.
    
    "In a word, a hearty one..." said the subaltern, laughing (the
    regimental commander was nicknamed King of Hearts).
    
    The cheerful mood of their officers after the inspection infected the
    soldiers. The company marched on gaily. The soldiers' voices could be
    heard on every side.
    
    "And they said Kutuzov was blind of one eye?"
    
    "And so he is! Quite blind!"
    
    "No, friend, he is sharper-eyed than you are. Boots and leg bands... he
    noticed everything..."
    
    "When he looked at my feet, friend... well, thinks I..."
    
    "And that other one with him, the Austrian, looked as if he were smeared
    with chalk--as white as flour! I suppose they polish him up as they do
    the guns."
    
    "I say, Fedeshon!... Did he say when the battles are to begin? You were
    near him. Everybody said that Buonaparte himself was at Braunau."
    
    "Buonaparte himself!... Just listen to the fool, what he doesn't know!
    The Prussians are up in arms now. The Austrians, you see, are putting
    them down. When they've been put down, the war with Buonaparte will
    begin. And he says Buonaparte is in Braunau! Shows you're a fool. You'd
    better listen more carefully!"
    
    "What devils these quartermasters are! See, the fifth company is turning
    into the village already... they will have their buckwheat cooked before
    we reach our quarters."
    
    "Give me a biscuit, you devil!"
    
    "And did you give me tobacco yesterday? That's just it, friend! Ah,
    well, never mind, here you are."
    
    "They might call a halt here or we'll have to do another four miles
    without eating."
    
    "Wasn't it fine when those Germans gave us lifts! You just sit still and
    are drawn along."
    
    "And here, friend, the people are quite beggarly. There they all seemed
    to be Poles--all under the Russian crown--but here they're all regular
    Germans."
    
    "Singers to the front" came the captain's order.
    
    And from the different ranks some twenty men ran to the front. A
    drummer, their leader, turned round facing the singers, and flourishing
    his arm, began a long-drawn-out soldiers' song, commencing with the
    words: "Morning dawned, the sun was rising," and concluding: "On then,
    brothers, on to glory, led by Father Kamenski." This song had been
    composed in the Turkish campaign and now being sung in Austria, the only
    change being that the words "Father Kamenski" were replaced by "Father
    Kutuzov."
    
    Having jerked out these last words as soldiers do and waved his arms as
    if flinging something to the ground, the drummer--a lean, handsome
    soldier of forty--looked sternly at the singers and screwed up his eyes.
    Then having satisfied himself that all eyes were fixed on him, he raised
    both arms as if carefully lifting some invisible but precious object
    above his head and, holding it there for some seconds, suddenly flung it
    down and began:
    
    "Oh, my bower, oh, my bower...!"
    
    "Oh, my bower new...!" chimed in twenty voices, and the castanet player,
    in spite of the burden of his equipment, rushed out to the front and,
    walking backwards before the company, jerked his shoulders and
    flourished his castanets as if threatening someone. The soldiers,
    swinging their arms and keeping time spontaneously, marched with long
    steps. Behind the company the sound of wheels, the creaking of springs,
    and the tramp of horses' hoofs were heard. Kutuzov and his suite were
    returning to the town. The commander-in-chief made a sign that the men
    should continue to march at ease, and he and all his suite showed
    pleasure at the sound of the singing and the sight of the dancing
    soldier and the gay and smartly marching men. In the second file from
    the right flank, beside which the carriage passed the company, a blue-
    eyed soldier involuntarily attracted notice. It was Dolokhov marching
    with particular grace and boldness in time to the song and looking at
    those driving past as if he pitied all who were not at that moment
    marching with the company. The hussar cornet of Kutuzov's suite who had
    mimicked the regimental commander, fell back from the carriage and rode
    up to Dolokhov.
    
    Hussar cornet Zherkov had at one time, in Petersburg, belonged to the
    wild set led by Dolokhov. Zherkov had met Dolokhov abroad as a private
    and had not seen fit to recognize him. But now that Kutuzov had spoken
    to the gentleman ranker, he addressed him with the cordiality of an old
    friend.
    
    "My dear fellow, how are you?" said he through the singing, making his
    horse keep pace with the company.
    
    "How am I?" Dolokhov answered coldly. "I am as you see."
    
    The lively song gave a special flavor to the tone of free and easy
    gaiety with which Zherkov spoke, and to the intentional coldness of
    Dolokhov's reply.
    
    "And how do you get on with the officers?" inquired Zherkov.
    
    "All right. They are good fellows. And how have you wriggled onto the
    staff?"
    
    "I was attached; I'm on duty."
    
    Both were silent.
    
    "She let the hawk fly upward from her wide right sleeve," went the song,
    arousing an involuntary sensation of courage and cheerfulness. Their
    conversation would probably have been different but for the effect of
    that song.
    
    "Is it true that Austrians have been beaten?" asked Dolokhov.
    
    "The devil only knows! They say so."
    
    "I'm glad," answered Dolokhov briefly and clearly, as the song demanded.
    
    "I say, come round some evening and we'll have a game of faro!" said
    Zherkov.
    
    "Why, have you too much money?"
    
    "Do come."
    
    "I can't. I've sworn not to. I won't drink and won't play till I get
    reinstated."
    
    "Well, that's only till the first engagement."
    
    "We shall see."
    
    They were again silent.
    
    "Come if you need anything. One can at least be of use on the staff..."
    
    Dolokhov smiled. "Don't trouble. If I want anything, I won't beg--I'll
    take it!"
    
    "Well, never mind; I only..."
    
    "And I only..."
    
    "Good-bye."
    
    "Good health..."
    
    "It's a long, long way. To my native land..."
    
    Zherkov touched his horse with the spurs; it pranced excitedly from foot
    to foot uncertain with which to start, then settled down, galloped past
    the company, and overtook the carriage, still keeping time to the song.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    On returning from the review, Kutuzov took the Austrian general into his
    private room and, calling his adjutant, asked for some papers relating
    to the condition of the troops on their arrival, and the letters that
    had come from the Archduke Ferdinand, who was in command of the advanced
    army. Prince Andrew Bolkonski came into the room with the required
    papers. Kutuzov and the Austrian member of the Hofkriegsrath were
    sitting at the table on which a plan was spread out.
    
    "Ah!..." said Kutuzov glancing at Bolkonski as if by this exclamation he
    was asking the adjutant to wait, and he went on with the conversation in
    French.
    
    "All I can say, General," said he with a pleasant elegance of expression
    and intonation that obliged one to listen to each deliberately spoken
    word. It was evident that Kutuzov himself listened with pleasure to his
    own voice. "All I can say, General, is that if the matter depended on my
    personal wishes, the will of His Majesty the Emperor Francis would have
    been fulfilled long ago. I should long ago have joined the archduke. And
    believe me on my honour that to me personally it would be a pleasure to
    hand over the supreme command of the army into the hands of a better
    informed and more skillful general--of whom Austria has so many--and to
    lay down all this heavy responsibility. But circumstances are sometimes
    too strong for us, General."
    
    And Kutuzov smiled in a way that seemed to say, "You are quite at
    liberty not to believe me and I don't even care whether you do or not,
    but you have no grounds for telling me so. And that is the whole point."
    
    The Austrian general looked dissatisfied, but had no option but to reply
    in the same tone.
    
    "On the contrary," he said, in a querulous and angry tone that
    contrasted with his flattering words, "on the contrary, your
    excellency's participation in the common action is highly valued by His
    Majesty; but we think the present delay is depriving the splendid
    Russian troops and their commander of the laurels they have been
    accustomed to win in their battles," he concluded his evidently
    prearranged sentence.
    
    Kutuzov bowed with the same smile.
    
    "But that is my conviction, and judging by the last letter with which
    His Highness the Archduke Ferdinand has honored me, I imagine that the
    Austrian troops, under the direction of so skillful a leader as General
    Mack, have by now already gained a decisive victory and no longer need
    our aid," said Kutuzov.
    
    The general frowned. Though there was no definite news of an Austrian
    defeat, there were many circumstances confirming the unfavorable rumors
    that were afloat, and so Kutuzov's suggestion of an Austrian victory
    sounded much like irony. But Kutuzov went on blandly smiling with the
    same expression, which seemed to say that he had a right to suppose so.
    And, in fact, the last letter he had received from Mack's army informed
    him of a victory and stated strategically the position of the army was
    very favorable.
    
    "Give me that letter," said Kutuzov turning to Prince Andrew. "Please
    have a look at it"--and Kutuzov with an ironical smile about the corners
    of his mouth read to the Austrian general the following passage, in
    German, from the Archduke Ferdinand's letter:
    
    We have fully concentrated forces of nearly seventy thousand men with
    which to attack and defeat the enemy should he cross the Lech. Also, as
    we are masters of Ulm, we cannot be deprived of the advantage of
    commanding both sides of the Danube, so that should the enemy not cross
    the Lech, we can cross the Danube, throw ourselves on his line of
    communications, recross the river lower down, and frustrate his
    intention should he try to direct his whole force against our faithful
    ally. We shall therefore confidently await the moment when the Imperial
    Russian army will be fully equipped, and shall then, in conjunction with
    it, easily find a way to prepare for the enemy the fate he deserves.
    
    Kutuzov sighed deeply on finishing this paragraph and looked at the
    member of the Hofkriegsrath mildly and attentively.
    
    "But you know the wise maxim your excellency, advising one to expect the
    worst," said the Austrian general, evidently wishing to have done with
    jests and to come to business. He involuntarily looked round at the
    aide-de-camp.
    
    "Excuse me, General," interrupted Kutuzov, also turning to Prince
    Andrew. "Look here, my dear fellow, get from Kozlovski all the reports
    from our scouts. Here are two letters from Count Nostitz and here is one
    from His Highness the Archduke Ferdinand and here are these," he said,
    handing him several papers, "make a neat memorandum in French out of all
    this, showing all the news we have had of the movements of the Austrian
    army, and then give it to his excellency."
    
    Prince Andrew bowed his head in token of having understood from the
    first not only what had been said but also what Kutuzov would have liked
    to tell him. He gathered up the papers and with a bow to both, stepped
    softly over the carpet and went out into the waiting room.
    
    Though not much time had passed since Prince Andrew had left Russia, he
    had changed greatly during that period. In the expression of his face,
    in his movements, in his walk, scarcely a trace was left of his former
    affected languor and indolence. He now looked like a man who has time to
    think of the impression he makes on others, but is occupied with
    agreeable and interesting work. His face expressed more satisfaction
    with himself and those around him, his smile and glance were brighter
    and more attractive.
    
    Kutuzov, whom he had overtaken in Poland, had received him very kindly,
    promised not to forget him, distinguished him above the other adjutants,
    and had taken him to Vienna and given him the more serious commissions.
    From Vienna Kutuzov wrote to his old comrade, Prince Andrew's father.
    
    Your son bids fair to become an officer distinguished by his industry,
    firmness, and expedition. I consider myself fortunate to have such a
    subordinate by me.
    
    On Kutuzov's staff, among his fellow officers and in the army generally,
    Prince Andrew had, as he had had in Petersburg society, two quite
    opposite reputations. Some, a minority, acknowledged him to be different
    from themselves and from everyone else, expected great things of him,
    listened to him, admired, and imitated him, and with them Prince Andrew
    was natural and pleasant. Others, the majority, disliked him and
    considered him conceited, cold, and disagreeable. But among these people
    Prince Andrew knew how to take his stand so that they respected and even
    feared him.
    
    Coming out of Kutuzov's room into the waiting room with the papers in
    his hand Prince Andrew came up to his comrade, the aide-de-camp on duty,
    Kozlovski, who was sitting at the window with a book.
    
    "Well, Prince?" asked Kozlovski.
    
    "I am ordered to write a memorandum explaining why we are not
    advancing."
    
    "And why is it?"
    
    Prince Andrew shrugged his shoulders.
    
    "Any news from Mack?"
    
    "No."
    
    "If it were true that he has been beaten, news would have come."
    
    "Probably," said Prince Andrew moving toward the outer door.
    
    But at that instant a tall Austrian general in a greatcoat, with the
    order of Maria Theresa on his neck and a black bandage round his head,
    who had evidently just arrived, entered quickly, slamming the door.
    Prince Andrew stopped short.
    
    "Commander in Chief Kutuzov?" said the newly arrived general speaking
    quickly with a harsh German accent, looking to both sides and advancing
    straight toward the inner door.
    
    "The commander-in-chief is engaged," said Kozlovski, going hurriedly up
    to the unknown general and blocking his way to the door. "Whom shall I
    announce?"
    
    The unknown general looked disdainfully down at Kozlovski, who was
    rather short, as if surprised that anyone should not know him.
    
    "The commander-in-chief is engaged," repeated Kozlovski calmly.
    
    The general's face clouded, his lips quivered and trembled. He took out
    a notebook, hurriedly scribbled something in pencil, tore out the leaf,
    gave it to Kozlovski, stepped quickly to the window, and threw himself
    into a chair, gazing at those in the room as if asking, "Why do they
    look at me?" Then he lifted his head, stretched his neck as if he
    intended to say something, but immediately, with affected indifference,
    began to hum to himself, producing a queer sound which immediately broke
    off. The door of the private room opened and Kutuzov appeared in the
    doorway. The general with the bandaged head bent forward as though
    running away from some danger, and, making long, quick strides with his
    thin legs, went up to Kutuzov.
    
    "Vous voyez le malheureux Mack," he uttered in a broken voice.
    
    Kutuzov's face as he stood in the open doorway remained perfectly
    immobile for a few moments. Then wrinkles ran over his face like a wave
    and his forehead became smooth again, he bowed his head respectfully,
    closed his eyes, silently let Mack enter his room before him, and closed
    the door himself behind him.
    
    The report which had been circulated that the Austrians had been beaten
    and that the whole army had surrendered at Ulm proved to be correct.
    Within half an hour adjutants had been sent in various directions with
    orders which showed that the Russian troops, who had hitherto been
    inactive, would also soon have to meet the enemy.
    
    Prince Andrew was one of those rare staff officers whose chief interest
    lay in the general progress of the war. When he saw Mack and heard the
    details of his disaster he understood that half the campaign was lost,
    understood all the difficulties of the Russian army's position, and
    vividly imagined what awaited it and the part he would have to play.
    Involuntarily he felt a joyful agitation at the thought of the
    humiliation of arrogant Austria and that in a week's time he might,
    perhaps, see and take part in the first Russian encounter with the
    French since Suvorov met them. He feared that Bonaparte's genius might
    outweigh all the courage of the Russian troops, and at the same time
    could not admit the idea of his hero being disgraced.
    
    Excited and irritated by these thoughts Prince Andrew went toward his
    room to write to his father, to whom he wrote every day. In the corridor
    he met Nesvitski, with whom he shared a room, and the wag Zherkov; they
    were as usual laughing.
    
    "Why are you so glum?" asked Nesvitski noticing Prince Andrew's pale
    face and glittering eyes.
    
    "There's nothing to be gay about," answered Bolkonski.
    
    Just as Prince Andrew met Nesvitski and Zherkov, there came toward them
    from the other end of the corridor, Strauch, an Austrian general who on
    Kutuzov's staff in charge of the provisioning of the Russian army, and
    the member of the Hofkriegsrath who had arrived the previous evening.
    There was room enough in the wide corridor for the generals to pass the
    three officers quite easily, but Zherkov, pushing Nesvitski aside with
    his arm, said in a breathless voice,
    
    "They're coming!... they're coming!... Stand aside, make way, please
    make way!"
    
    The generals were passing by, looking as if they wished to avoid
    embarrassing attentions. On the face of the wag Zherkov there suddenly
    appeared a stupid smile of glee which he seemed unable to suppress.
    
    "Your excellency," said he in German, stepping forward and addressing
    the Austrian general, "I have the honor to congratulate you."
    
    He bowed his head and scraped first with one foot and then with the
    other, awkwardly, like a child at a dancing lesson.
    
    The member of the Hofkriegsrath looked at him severely but, seeing the
    seriousness of his stupid smile, could not but give him a moment's
    attention. He screwed up his eyes showing that he was listening.
    
    "I have the honor to congratulate you. General Mack has arrived, quite
    well, only a little bruised just here," he added, pointing with a
    beaming smile to his head.
    
    The general frowned, turned away, and went on.
    
    "Gott, wie naiv!" * said he angrily, after he had gone a few steps.
    
    * "Good God, what simplicity!"
    
    Nesvitski with a laugh threw his arms round Prince Andrew, but
    Bolkonski, turning still paler, pushed him away with an angry look and
    turned to Zherkov. The nervous irritation aroused by the appearance of
    Mack, the news of his defeat, and the thought of what lay before the
    Russian army found vent in anger at Zherkov's untimely jest.
    
    "If you, sir, choose to make a buffoon of yourself," he said sharply,
    with a slight trembling of the lower jaw, "I can't prevent your doing
    so; but I warn you that if you dare to play the fool in my presence, I
    will teach you to behave yourself."
    
    Nesvitski and Zherkov were so surprised by this outburst that they gazed
    at Bolkonski silently with wide-open eyes.
    
    "What's the matter? I only congratulated them," said Zherkov.
    
    "I am not jesting with you; please be silent!" cried Bolkonski, and
    taking Nesvitski's arm he left Zherkov, who did not know what to say.
    
    "Come, what's the matter, old fellow?" said Nesvitski trying to soothe
    him.
    
    "What's the matter?" exclaimed Prince Andrew standing still in his
    excitement. "Don't you understand that either we are officers serving
    our Tsar and our country, rejoicing in the successes and grieving at the
    misfortunes of our common cause, or we are merely lackeys who care
    nothing for their master's business. Quarante mille hommes massacres et
    l'armee de nos allies detruite, et vous trouvez la le mot pour rire," *
    he said, as if strengthening his views by this French sentence. "C'est
    bien pour un garcon de rien comme cet individu dont vous avez fait un
    ami, mais pas pour vous, pas pour vous. *(2) Only a hobbledehoy could
    amuse himself in this way," he added in Russian--but pronouncing the
    word with a French accent--having noticed that Zherkov could still hear
    him.
    
    * "Forty thousand men massacred and the army of our allies destroyed,
    and you find that a cause for jesting!"
    
    * (2) "It is all very well for that good-for-nothing fellow of whom you
    have made a friend, but not for you, not for you."
    
    He waited a moment to see whether the cornet would answer, but he turned
    and went out of the corridor.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    The Pavlograd Hussars were stationed two miles from Braunau. The
    squadron in which Nicholas Rostov served as a cadet was quartered in the
    German village of Salzeneck. The best quarters in the village were
    assigned to cavalry-captain Denisov, the squadron commander, known
    throughout the whole cavalry division as Vaska Denisov. Cadet Rostov,
    ever since he had overtaken the regiment in Poland, had lived with the
    squadron commander.
    
    On October 11, the day when all was astir at headquarters over the news
    of Mack's defeat, the camp life of the officers of this squadron was
    proceeding as usual. Denisov, who had been losing at cards all night,
    had not yet come home when Rostov rode back early in the morning from a
    foraging expedition. Rostov in his cadet uniform, with a jerk to his
    horse, rode up to the porch, swung his leg over the saddle with a supple
    youthful movement, stood for a moment in the stirrup as if loathe to
    part from his horse, and at last sprang down and called to his orderly.
    
    "Ah, Bondarenko, dear friend!" said he to the hussar who rushed up
    headlong to the horse. "Walk him up and down, my dear fellow," he
    continued, with that gay brotherly cordiality which goodhearted young
    people show to everyone when they are happy.
    
    "Yes, your excellency," answered the Ukrainian gaily, tossing his head.
    
    "Mind, walk him up and down well!"
    
    Another hussar also rushed toward the horse, but Bondarenko had already
    thrown the reins of the snaffle bridle over the horse's head. It was
    evident that the cadet was liberal with his tips and that it paid to
    serve him. Rostov patted the horse's neck and then his flank, and
    lingered for a moment.
    
    "Splendid! What a horse he will be!" he thought with a smile, and
    holding up his saber, his spurs jingling, he ran up the steps of the
    porch. His landlord, who in a waistcoat and a pointed cap, pitchfork in
    hand, was clearing manure from the cowhouse, looked out, and his face
    immediately brightened on seeing Rostov. "Schon gut Morgen! Schon gut
    Morgen!" * he said winking with a merry smile, evidently pleased to
    greet the young man.
    
    * "A very good morning! A very good morning!"
    
    "Schon fleissig?" * said Rostov with the same gay brotherly smile which
    did not leave his eager face. "Hoch Oestreicher! Hoch Russen! Kaiser
    Alexander hoch!" *(2) said he, quoting words often repeated by the
    German landlord.
    
    * "Busy already?"
    
    * (2) "Hurrah for the Austrians! Hurrah for the Russians! Hurrah for
    Emperor Alexander!"
    
    The German laughed, came out of the cowshed, pulled off his cap, and
    waving it above his head cried:
    
    "Und die ganze Welt hoch!" *
    
    * "And hurrah for the whole world!"
    
    Rostov waved his cap above his head like the German and cried laughing,
    "Und vivat die ganze Welt!" Though neither the German cleaning his
    cowshed nor Rostov back with his platoon from foraging for hay had any
    reason for rejoicing, they looked at each other with joyful delight and
    brotherly love, wagged their heads in token of their mutual affection,
    and parted smiling, the German returning to his cowshed and Rostov going
    to the cottage he occupied with Denisov.
    
    "What about your master?" he asked Lavrushka, Denisov's orderly, whom
    all the regiment knew for a rogue.
    
    "Hasn't been in since the evening. Must have been losing," answered
    Lavrushka. "I know by now, if he wins he comes back early to brag about
    it, but if he stays out till morning it means he's lost and will come
    back in a rage. Will you have coffee?"
    
    "Yes, bring some."
    
    Ten minutes later Lavrushka brought the coffee. "He's coming!" said he.
    "Now for trouble!" Rostov looked out of the window and saw Denisov
    coming home. Denisov was a small man with a red face, sparkling black
    eyes, and black tousled mustache and hair. He wore an unfastened cloak,
    wide breeches hanging down in creases, and a crumpled shako on the back
    of his head. He came up to the porch gloomily, hanging his head.
    
    "Lavwuska!" he shouted loudly and angrily, "take it off, blockhead!"
    
    "Well, I am taking it off," replied Lavrushka's voice.
    
    "Ah, you're up already," said Denisov, entering the room.
    
    "Long ago," answered Rostov, "I have already been for the hay, and have
    seen Fraulein Mathilde."
    
    "Weally! And I've been losing, bwother. I lost yesterday like a damned
    fool!" cried Denisov, not pronouncing his r's. "Such ill luck! Such ill
    luck. As soon as you left, it began and went on. Hullo there! Tea!"
    
    Puckering up his face though smiling, and showing his short strong
    teeth, he began with stubby fingers of both hands to ruffle up his thick
    tangled black hair.
    
    "And what devil made me go to that wat?" (an officer nicknamed "the
    rat") he said, rubbing his forehead and whole face with both hands.
    "Just fancy, he didn't let me win a single cahd, not one cahd."
    
    He took the lighted pipe that was offered to him, gripped it in his
    fist, and tapped it on the floor, making the sparks fly, while he
    continued to shout.
    
    "He lets one win the singles and collahs it as soon as one doubles it;
    gives the singles and snatches the doubles!"
    
    He scattered the burning tobacco, smashed the pipe, and threw it away.
    Then he remained silent for a while, and all at once looked cheerfully
    with his glittering, black eyes at Rostov.
    
    "If at least we had some women here; but there's nothing foh one to do
    but dwink. If we could only get to fighting soon. Hullo, who's there?"
    he said, turning to the door as he heard a tread of heavy boots and the
    clinking of spurs that came to a stop, and a respectful cough.
    
    "The squadron quartermaster!" said Lavrushka.
    
    Denisov's face puckered still more.
    
    "Wetched!" he muttered, throwing down a purse with some gold in it.
    "Wostov, deah fellow, just see how much there is left and shove the
    purse undah the pillow," he said, and went out to the quartermaster.
    
    Rostov took the money and, mechanically arranging the old and new coins
    in separate piles, began counting them.
    
    "Ah! Telyanin! How d'ye do? They plucked me last night," came Denisov's
    voice from the next room.
    
    "Where? At Bykov's, at the rat's... I knew it," replied a piping voice,
    and Lieutenant Telyanin, a small officer of the same squadron, entered
    the room.
    
    Rostov thrust the purse under the pillow and shook the damp little hand
    which was offered him. Telyanin for some reason had been transferred
    from the Guards just before this campaign. He behaved very well in the
    regiment but was not liked; Rostov especially detested him and was
    unable to overcome or conceal his groundless antipathy to the man.
    
    "Well, young cavalryman, how is my Rook behaving?" he asked. (Rook was a
    young horse Telyanin had sold to Rostov.)
    
    The lieutenant never looked the man he was speaking to straight in the
    face; his eyes continually wandered from one object to another.
    
    "I saw you riding this morning..." he added.
    
    "Oh, he's all right, a good horse," answered Rostov, though the horse
    for which he had paid seven hundred rubbles was not worth half that sum.
    "He's begun to go a little lame on the left foreleg," he added.
    
    "The hoof's cracked! That's nothing. I'll teach you what to do and show
    you what kind of rivet to use."
    
    "Yes, please do," said Rostov.
    
    "I'll show you, I'll show you! It's not a secret. And it's a horse
    you'll thank me for."
    
    "Then I'll have it brought round," said Rostov wishing to avoid
    Telyanin, and he went out to give the order.
    
    In the passage Denisov, with a pipe, was squatting on the threshold
    facing the quartermaster who was reporting to him. On seeing Rostov,
    Denisov screwed up his face and pointing over his shoulder with his
    thumb to the room where Telyanin was sitting, he frowned and gave a
    shudder of disgust.
    
    "Ugh! I don't like that fellow," he said, regardless of the
    quartermaster's presence.
    
    Rostov shrugged his shoulders as much as to say: "Nor do I, but what's
    one to do?" and, having given his order, he returned to Telyanin.
    
    Telyanin was sitting in the same indolent pose in which Rostov had left
    him, rubbing his small white hands.
    
    "Well there certainly are disgusting people," thought Rostov as he
    entered.
    
    "Have you told them to bring the horse?" asked Telyanin, getting up and
    looking carelessly about him.
    
    "I have."
    
    "Let us go ourselves. I only came round to ask Denisov about yesterday's
    order. Have you got it, Denisov?"
    
    "Not yet. But where are you off to?"
    
    "I want to teach this young man how to shoe a horse," said Telyanin.
    
    They went through the porch and into the stable. The lieutenant
    explained how to rivet the hoof and went away to his own quarters.
    
    When Rostov went back there was a bottle of vodka and a sausage on the
    table. Denisov was sitting there scratching with his pen on a sheet of
    paper. He looked gloomily in Rostov's face and said: "I am witing to
    her."
    
    He leaned his elbows on the table with his pen in his hand and,
    evidently glad of a chance to say quicker in words what he wanted to
    write, told Rostov the contents of his letter.
    
    "You see, my fwiend," he said, "we sleep when we don't love. We are
    childwen of the dust... but one falls in love and one is a God, one is
    pua' as on the first day of cweation... Who's that now? Send him to the
    devil, I'm busy!" he shouted to Lavrushka, who went up to him not in the
    least abashed.
    
    "Who should it be? You yourself told him to come. It's the quartermaster
    for the money."
    
    Denisov frowned and was about to shout some reply but stopped.
    
    "Wetched business," he muttered to himself. "How much is left in the
    puhse?" he asked, turning to Rostov.
    
    "Seven new and three old imperials."
    
    "Oh, it's wetched! Well, what are you standing there for, you sca'cwow?
    Call the quahtehmasteh," he shouted to Lavrushka.
    
    "Please, Denisov, let me lend you some: I have some, you know," said
    Rostov, blushing.
    
    "Don't like bowwowing from my own fellows, I don't," growled Denisov.
    
    "But if you won't accept money from me like a comrade, you will offend
    me. Really I have some," Rostov repeated.
    
    "No, I tell you."
    
    And Denisov went to the bed to get the purse from under the pillow.
    
    "Where have you put it, Wostov?"
    
    "Under the lower pillow."
    
    "It's not there."
    
    Denisov threw both pillows on the floor. The purse was not there.
    
    "That's a miwacle."
    
    "Wait, haven't you dropped it?" said Rostov, picking up the pillows one
    at a time and shaking them.
    
    He pulled off the quilt and shook it. The purse was not there.
    
    "Dear me, can I have forgotten? No, I remember thinking that you kept it
    under your head like a treasure," said Rostov. "I put it just here.
    Where is it?" he asked, turning to Lavrushka.
    
    "I haven't been in the room. It must be where you put it."
    
    "But it isn't?..."
    
    "You're always like that; you thwow a thing down anywhere and forget it.
    Feel in your pockets."
    
    "No, if I hadn't thought of it being a treasure," said Rostov, "but I
    remember putting it there."
    
    Lavrushka turned all the bedding over, looked under the bed and under
    the table, searched everywhere, and stood still in the middle of the
    room. Denisov silently watched Lavrushka's movements, and when the
    latter threw up his arms in surprise saying it was nowhere to be found
    Denisov glanced at Rostov.
    
    "Wostov, you've not been playing schoolboy twicks..."
    
    Rostov felt Denisov's gaze fixed on him, raised his eyes, and instantly
    dropped them again. All the blood which had seemed congested somewhere
    below his throat rushed to his face and eyes. He could not draw breath.
    
    "And there hasn't been anyone in the room except the lieutenant and
    yourselves. It must be here somewhere," said Lavrushka.
    
    "Now then, you devil's puppet, look alive and hunt for it!" shouted
    Denisov, suddenly, turning purple and rushing at the man with a
    threatening gesture. "If the purse isn't found I'll flog you, I'll flog
    you all."
    
    Rostov, his eyes avoiding Denisov, began buttoning his coat, buckled on
    his saber, and put on his cap.
    
    "I must have that purse, I tell you," shouted Denisov, shaking his
    orderly by the shoulders and knocking him against the wall.
    
    "Denisov, let him alone, I know who has taken it," said Rostov, going
    toward the door without raising his eyes. Denisov paused, thought a
    moment, and, evidently understanding what Rostov hinted at, seized his
    arm.
    
    "Nonsense!" he cried, and the veins on his forehead and neck stood out
    like cords. "You are mad, I tell you. I won't allow it. The purse is
    here! I'll flay this scoundwel alive, and it will be found."
    
    "I know who has taken it," repeated Rostov in an unsteady voice, and
    went to the door.
    
    "And I tell you, don't you dahe to do it!" shouted Denisov, rushing at
    the cadet to restrain him.
    
    But Rostov pulled away his arm and, with as much anger as though Denisov
    were his worst enemy, firmly fixed his eyes directly on his face.
    
    "Do you understand what you're saying?" he said in a trembling voice.
    "There was no one else in the room except myself. So that if it is not
    so, then..."
    
    He could not finish, and ran out of the room.
    
    "Ah, may the devil take you and evewybody," were the last words Rostov
    heard.
    
    Rostov went to Telyanin's quarters.
    
    "The master is not in, he's gone to headquarters," said Telyanin's
    orderly. "Has something happened?" he added, surprised at the cadet's
    troubled face.
    
    "No, nothing."
    
    "You've only just missed him," said the orderly.
    
    The headquarters were situated two miles away from Salzeneck, and
    Rostov, without returning home, took a horse and rode there. There was
    an inn in the village which the officers frequented. Rostov rode up to
    it and saw Telyanin's horse at the porch.
    
    In the second room of the inn the lieutenant was sitting over a dish of
    sausages and a bottle of wine.
    
    "Ah, you've come here too, young man!" he said, smiling and raising his
    eyebrows.
    
    "Yes," said Rostov as if it cost him a great deal to utter the word; and
    he sat down at the nearest table.
    
    Both were silent. There were two Germans and a Russian officer in the
    room. No one spoke and the only sounds heard were the clatter of knives
    and the munching of the lieutenant.
    
    When Telyanin had finished his lunch he took out of his pocket a double
    purse and, drawing its rings aside with his small, white, turned-up
    fingers, drew out a gold imperial, and lifting his eyebrows gave it to
    the waiter.
    
    "Please be quick," he said.
    
    The coin was a new one. Rostov rose and went up to Telyanin.
    
    "Allow me to look at your purse," he said in a low, almost inaudible,
    voice.
    
    With shifting eyes but eyebrows still raised, Telyanin handed him the
    purse.
    
    "Yes, it's a nice purse. Yes, yes," he said, growing suddenly pale, and
    added, "Look at it, young man."
    
    Rostov took the purse in his hand, examined it and the money in it, and
    looked at Telyanin. The lieutenant was looking about in his usual way
    and suddenly seemed to grow very merry.
    
    "If we get to Vienna I'll get rid of it there but in these wretched
    little towns there's nowhere to spend it," said he. "Well, let me have
    it, young man, I'm going."
    
    Rostov did not speak.
    
    "And you? Are you going to have lunch too? They feed you quite decently
    here," continued Telyanin. "Now then, let me have it."
    
    He stretched out his hand to take hold of the purse. Rostov let go of
    it. Telyanin took the purse and began carelessly slipping it into the
    pocket of his riding breeches, with his eyebrows lifted and his mouth
    slightly open, as if to say, "Yes, yes, I am putting my purse in my
    pocket and that's quite simple and is no one else's business."
    
    "Well, young man?" he said with a sigh, and from under his lifted brows
    he glanced into Rostov's eyes.
    
    Some flash as of an electric spark shot from Telyanin's eyes to Rostov's
    and back, and back again and again in an instant.
    
    "Come here," said Rostov, catching hold of Telyanin's arm and almost
    dragging him to the window. "That money is Denisov's; you took it..." he
    whispered just above Telyanin's ear.
    
    "What? What? How dare you? What?" said Telyanin.
    
    But these words came like a piteous, despairing cry and an entreaty for
    pardon. As soon as Rostov heard them, an enormous load of doubt fell
    from him. He was glad, and at the same instant began to pity the
    miserable man who stood before him, but the task he had begun had to be
    completed.
    
    "Heaven only knows what the people here may imagine," muttered Telyanin,
    taking up his cap and moving toward a small empty room. "We must have an
    explanation..."
    
    "I know it and shall prove it," said Rostov.
    
    "I..."
    
    Every muscle of Telyanin's pale, terrified face began to quiver, his
    eyes still shifted from side to side but with a downward look not rising
    to Rostov's face, and his sobs were audible.
    
    "Count!... Don't ruin a young fellow... here is this wretched money,
    take it..." He threw it on the table. "I have an old father and
    mother!..."
    
    Rostov took the money, avoiding Telyanin's eyes, and went out of the
    room without a word. But at the door he stopped and then retraced his
    steps. "O God," he said with tears in his eyes, "how could you do it?"
    
    "Count..." said Telyanin drawing nearer to him.
    
    "Don't touch me," said Rostov, drawing back. "If you need it, take the
    money," and he threw the purse to him and ran out of the inn.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    That same evening there was an animated discussion among the squadron's
    officers in Denisov's quarters.
    
    "And I tell you, Rostov, that you must apologize to the colonel!" said a
    tall, grizzly-haired staff captain, with enormous mustaches and many
    wrinkles on his large features, to Rostov who was crimson with
    excitement.
    
    The staff captain, Kirsten, had twice been reduced to the ranks for
    affairs of honor and had twice regained his commission.
    
    "I will allow no one to call me a liar!" cried Rostov. "He told me I
    lied, and I told him he lied. And there it rests. He may keep me on duty
    every day, or may place me under arrest, but no one can make me
    apologize, because if he, as commander of this regiment, thinks it
    beneath his dignity to give me satisfaction, then..."
    
    "You just wait a moment, my dear fellow, and listen," interrupted the
    staff captain in his deep bass, calmly stroking his long mustache. "You
    tell the colonel in the presence of other officers that an officer has
    stolen..."
    
    "I'm not to blame that the conversation began in the presence of other
    officers. Perhaps I ought not to have spoken before them, but I am not a
    diplomatist. That's why I joined the hussars, thinking that here one
    would not need finesse; and he tells me that I am lying--so let him give
    me satisfaction..."
    
    "That's all right. No one thinks you a coward, but that's not the point.
    Ask Denisov whether it is not out of the question for a cadet to demand
    satisfaction of his regimental commander?"
    
    Denisov sat gloomily biting his mustache and listening to the
    conversation, evidently with no wish to take part in it. He answered the
    staff captain's question by a disapproving shake of his head.
    
    "You speak to the colonel about this nasty business before other
    officers," continued the staff captain, "and Bogdanich" (the colonel was
    called Bogdanich) "shuts you up."
    
    "He did not shut me up, he said I was telling an untruth."
    
    "Well, have it so, and you talked a lot of nonsense to him and must
    apologize."
    
    "Not on any account!" exclaimed Rostov.
    
    "I did not expect this of you," said the staff captain seriously and
    severely. "You don't wish to apologize, but, man, it's not only to him
    but to the whole regiment--all of us--you're to blame all round. The
    case is this: you ought to have thought the matter over and taken
    advice; but no, you go and blurt it all straight out before the
    officers. Now what was the colonel to do? Have the officer tried and
    disgrace the whole regiment? Disgrace the whole regiment because of one
    scoundrel? Is that how you look at it? We don't see it like that. And
    Bogdanich was a brick: he told you you were saying what was not true.
    It's not pleasant, but what's to be done, my dear fellow? You landed
    yourself in it. And now, when one wants to smooth the thing over, some
    conceit prevents your apologizing, and you wish to make the whole affair
    public. You are offended at being put on duty a bit, but why not
    apologize to an old and honorable officer? Whatever Bogdanich may be,
    anyway he is an honorable and brave old colonel! You're quick at taking
    offense, but you don't mind disgracing the whole regiment!" The staff
    captain's voice began to tremble. "You have been in the regiment next to
    no time, my lad, you're here today and tomorrow you'll be appointed
    adjutant somewhere and can snap your fingers when it is said 'There are
    thieves among the Pavlograd officers!' But it's not all the same to us!
    Am I not right, Denisov? It's not the same!"
    
    Denisov remained silent and did not move, but occasionally looked with
    his glittering black eyes at Rostov.
    
    "You value your own pride and don't wish to apologize," continued the
    staff captain, "but we old fellows, who have grown up in and, God
    willing, are going to die in the regiment, we prize the honor of the
    regiment, and Bogdanich knows it. Oh, we do prize it, old fellow! And
    all this is not right, it's not right! You may take offense or not but I
    always stick to mother truth. It's not right!"
    
    And the staff captain rose and turned away from Rostov.
    
    "That's twue, devil take it!" shouted Denisov, jumping up. "Now then,
    Wostov, now then!"
    
    Rostov, growing red and pale alternately, looked first at one officer
    and then at the other.
    
    "No, gentlemen, no... you mustn't think... I quite understand. You're
    wrong to think that of me... I... for me... for the honor of the
    regiment I'd... Ah well, I'll show that in action, and for me the honor
    of the flag... Well, never mind, it's true I'm to blame, to blame all
    round. Well, what else do you want?..."
    
    "Come, that's right, Count!" cried the staff captain, turning round and
    clapping Rostov on the shoulder with his big hand.
    
    "I tell you," shouted Denisov, "he's a fine fellow."
    
    "That's better, Count," said the staff captain, beginning to address
    Rostov by his title, as if in recognition of his confession. "Go and
    apologize, your excellency. Yes, go!"
    
    "Gentlemen, I'll do anything. No one shall hear a word from me," said
    Rostov in an imploring voice, "but I can't apologize, by God I can't, do
    what you will! How can I go and apologize like a little boy asking
    forgiveness?"
    
    Denisov began to laugh.
    
    "It'll be worse for you. Bogdanich is vindictive and you'll pay for your
    obstinacy," said Kirsten.
    
    "No, on my word it's not obstinacy! I can't describe the feeling. I
    can't..."
    
    "Well, it's as you like," said the staff captain. "And what has become
    of that scoundrel?" he asked Denisov.
    
    "He has weported himself sick, he's to be stwuck off the list tomowwow,"
    muttered Denisov.
    
    "It is an illness, there's no other way of explaining it," said the
    staff captain.
    
    "Illness or not, he'd better not cwoss my path. I'd kill him!" shouted
    Denisov in a bloodthirsty tone.
    
    Just then Zherkov entered the room.
    
    "What brings you here?" cried the officers turning to the newcomer.
    
    "We're to go into action, gentlemen! Mack has surrendered with his whole
    army."
    
    "It's not true!"
    
    "I've seen him myself!"
    
    "What? Saw the real Mack? With hands and feet?"
    
    "Into action! Into action! Bring him a bottle for such news! But how did
    you come here?"
    
    "I've been sent back to the regiment all on account of that devil, Mack.
    An Austrian general complained of me. I congratulated him on Mack's
    arrival... What's the matter, Rostov? You look as if you'd just come out
    of a hot bath."
    
    "Oh, my dear fellow, we're in such a stew here these last two days."
    
    The regimental adjutant came in and confirmed the news brought by
    Zherkov. They were under orders to advance next day.
    
    "We're going into action, gentlemen!"
    
    "Well, thank God! We've been sitting here too long!"
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Kutuzov fell back toward Vienna, destroying behind him the bridges over
    the rivers Inn (at Braunau) and Traun (near Linz). On October 23 the
    Russian troops were crossing the river Enns. At midday the Russian
    baggage train, the artillery, and columns of troops were defiling
    through the town of Enns on both sides of the bridge.
    
    It was a warm, rainy, autumnal day. The wide expanse that opened out
    before the heights on which the Russian batteries stood guarding the
    bridge was at times veiled by a diaphanous curtain of slanting rain, and
    then, suddenly spread out in the sunlight, far-distant objects could be
    clearly seen glittering as though freshly varnished. Down below, the
    little town could be seen with its white, red-roofed houses, its
    cathedral, and its bridge, on both sides of which streamed jostling
    masses of Russian troops. At the bend of the Danube, vessels, an island,
    and a castle with a park surrounded by the waters of the confluence of
    the Enns and the Danube became visible, and the rocky left bank of the
    Danube covered with pine forests, with a mystic background of green
    treetops and bluish gorges. The turrets of a convent stood out beyond a
    wild virgin pine forest, and far away on the other side of the Enns the
    enemy's horse patrols could be discerned.
    
    Among the field guns on the brow of the hill the general in command of
    the rearguard stood with a staff officer, scanning the country through
    his fieldglass. A little behind them Nesvitski, who had been sent to the
    rearguard by the commander-in-chief, was sitting on the trail of a gun
    carriage. A Cossack who accompanied him had handed him a knapsack and a
    flask, and Nesvitski was treating some officers to pies and real
    doppelkummel. The officers gladly gathered round him, some on their
    knees, some squatting Turkish fashion on the wet grass.
    
    "Yes, the Austrian prince who built that castle was no fool. It's a fine
    place! Why are you not eating anything, gentlemen?" Nesvitski was
    saying.
    
    "Thank you very much, Prince," answered one of the officers, pleased to
    be talking to a staff officer of such importance. "It's a lovely place!
    We passed close to the park and saw two deer... and what a splendid
    house!"
    
    "Look, Prince," said another, who would have dearly liked to take
    another pie but felt shy, and therefore pretended to be examining the
    countryside--"See, our infantrymen have already got there. Look there in
    the meadow behind the village, three of them are dragging something.
    They'll ransack that castle," he remarked with evident approval.
    
    "So they will," said Nesvitski. "No, but what I should like," added he,
    munching a pie in his moist-lipped handsome mouth, "would be to slip in
    over there."
    
    He pointed with a smile to a turreted nunnery, and his eyes narrowed and
    gleamed.
    
    "That would be fine, gentlemen!"
    
    The officers laughed.
    
    "Just to flutter the nuns a bit. They say there are Italian girls among
    them. On my word I'd give five years of my life for it!"
    
    "They must be feeling dull, too," said one of the bolder officers,
    laughing.
    
    Meanwhile the staff officer standing in front pointed out something to
    the general, who looked through his field glass.
    
    "Yes, so it is, so it is," said the general angrily, lowering the field
    glass and shrugging his shoulders, "so it is! They'll be fired on at the
    crossing. And why are they dawdling there?"
    
    On the opposite side the enemy could be seen by the naked eye, and from
    their battery a milk-white cloud arose. Then came the distant report of
    a shot, and our troops could be seen hurrying to the crossing.
    
    Nesvitski rose, puffing, and went up to the general, smiling.
    
    "Would not your excellency like a little refreshment?" he said.
    
    "It's a bad business," said the general without answering him, "our men
    have been wasting time."
    
    "Hadn't I better ride over, your excellency?" asked Nesvitski.
    
    "Yes, please do," answered the general, and he repeated the order that
    had already once been given in detail: "and tell the hussars that they
    are to cross last and to fire the bridge as I ordered; and the
    inflammable material on the bridge must be reinspected."
    
    "Very good," answered Nesvitski.
    
    He called the Cossack with his horse, told him to put away the knapsack
    and flask, and swung his heavy person easily into the saddle.
    
    "I'll really call in on the nuns," he said to the officers who watched
    him smilingly, and he rode off by the winding path down the hill.
    
    "Now then, let's see how far it will carry, Captain. Just try!" said the
    general, turning to an artillery officer. "Have a little fun to pass the
    time."
    
    "Crew, to your guns!" commanded the officer.
    
    In a moment the men came running gaily from their campfires and began
    loading.
    
    "One!" came the command.
    
    Number one jumped briskly aside. The gun rang out with a deafening
    metallic roar, and a whistling grenade flew above the heads of our
    troops below the hill and fell far short of the enemy, a little smoke
    showing the spot where it burst.
    
    The faces of officers and men brightened up at the sound. Everyone got
    up and began watching the movements of our troops below, as plainly
    visible as if but a stone's throw away, and the movements of the
    approaching enemy farther off. At the same instant the sun came fully
    out from behind the clouds, and the clear sound of the solitary shot and
    the brilliance of the bright sunshine merged in a single joyous and
    spirited impression.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Two of the enemy's shots had already flown across the bridge, where
    there was a crush. Halfway across stood Prince Nesvitski, who had
    alighted from his horse and whose big body was jammed against the
    railings. He looked back laughing to the Cossack who stood a few steps
    behind him holding two horses by their bridles. Each time Prince
    Nesvitski tried to move on, soldiers and carts pushed him back again and
    pressed him against the railings, and all he could do was to smile.
    
    "What a fine fellow you are, friend!" said the Cossack to a convoy
    soldier with a wagon, who was pressing onto the infantrymen who were
    crowded together close to his wheels and his horses. "What a fellow! You
    can't wait a moment! Don't you see the general wants to pass?"
    
    But the convoyman took no notice of the word "general" and shouted at
    the soldiers who were blocking his way. "Hi there, boys! Keep to the
    left! Wait a bit." But the soldiers, crowded together shoulder to
    shoulder, their bayonets interlocking, moved over the bridge in a dense
    mass. Looking down over the rails Prince Nesvitski saw the rapid, noisy
    little waves of the Enns, which rippling and eddying round the piles of
    the bridge chased each other along. Looking on the bridge he saw equally
    uniform living waves of soldiers, shoulder straps, covered shakos,
    knapsacks, bayonets, long muskets, and, under the shakos, faces with
    broad cheekbones, sunken cheeks, and listless tired expressions, and
    feet that moved through the sticky mud that covered the planks of the
    bridge. Sometimes through the monotonous waves of men, like a fleck of
    white foam on the waves of the Enns, an officer, in a cloak and with a
    type of face different from that of the men, squeezed his way along;
    sometimes like a chip of wood whirling in the river, an hussar on foot,
    an orderly, or a townsman was carried through the waves of infantry; and
    sometimes like a log floating down the river, an officers' or company's
    baggage wagon, piled high, leather covered, and hemmed in on all sides,
    moved across the bridge.
    
    "It's as if a dam had burst," said the Cossack hopelessly. "Are there
    many more of you to come?"
    
    "A million all but one!" replied a waggish soldier in a torn coat, with
    a wink, and passed on followed by another, an old man.
    
    "If he" (he meant the enemy) "begins popping at the bridge now," said
    the old soldier dismally to a comrade, "you'll forget to scratch
    yourself."
    
    That soldier passed on, and after him came another sitting on a cart.
    
    "Where the devil have the leg bands been shoved to?" said an orderly,
    running behind the cart and fumbling in the back of it.
    
    And he also passed on with the wagon. Then came some merry soldiers who
    had evidently been drinking.
    
    "And then, old fellow, he gives him one in the teeth with the butt end
    of his gun..." a soldier whose greatcoat was well tucked up said gaily,
    with a wide swing of his arm.
    
    "Yes, the ham was just delicious..." answered another with a loud laugh.
    And they, too, passed on, so that Nesvitski did not learn who had been
    struck on the teeth, or what the ham had to do with it.
    
    "Bah! How they scurry. He just sends a ball and they think they'll all
    be killed," a sergeant was saying angrily and reproachfully.
    
    "As it flies past me, Daddy, the ball I mean," said a young soldier with
    an enormous mouth, hardly refraining from laughing, "I felt like dying
    of fright. I did, 'pon my word, I got that frightened!" said he, as if
    bragging of having been frightened.
    
    That one also passed. Then followed a cart unlike any that had gone
    before. It was a German cart with a pair of horses led by a German, and
    seemed loaded with a whole houseful of effects. A fine brindled cow with
    a large udder was attached to the cart behind. A woman with an unweaned
    baby, an old woman, and a healthy German girl with bright red cheeks
    were sitting on some feather beds. Evidently these fugitives were
    allowed to pass by special permission. The eyes of all the soldiers
    turned toward the women, and while the vehicle was passing at foot pace
    all the soldiers' remarks related to the two young ones. Every face bore
    almost the same smile, expressing unseemly thoughts about the women.
    
    "Just see, the German sausage is making tracks, too!"
    
    "Sell me the missis," said another soldier, addressing the German, who,
    angry and frightened, strode energetically along with downcast eyes.
    
    "See how smart she's made herself! Oh, the devils!"
    
    "There, Fedotov, you should be quartered on them!"
    
    "I have seen as much before now, mate!"
    
    "Where are you going?" asked an infantry officer who was eating an
    apple, also half smiling as he looked at the handsome girl.
    
    The German closed his eyes, signifying that he did not understand.
    
    "Take it if you like," said the officer, giving the girl an apple.
    
    The girl smiled and took it. Nesvitski like the rest of the men on the
    bridge did not take his eyes off the women till they had passed. When
    they had gone by, the same stream of soldiers followed, with the same
    kind of talk, and at last all stopped. As often happens, the horses of a
    convoy wagon became restive at the end of the bridge, and the whole
    crowd had to wait.
    
    "And why are they stopping? There's no proper order!" said the soldiers.
    "Where are you shoving to? Devil take you! Can't you wait? It'll be
    worse if he fires the bridge. See, here's an officer jammed in too"--
    different voices were saying in the crowd, as the men looked at one
    another, and all pressed toward the exit from the bridge.
    
    Looking down at the waters of the Enns under the bridge, Nesvitski
    suddenly heard a sound new to him, of something swiftly approaching...
    something big, that splashed into the water.
    
    "Just see where it carries to!" a soldier near by said sternly, looking
    round at the sound.
    
    "Encouraging us to get along quicker," said another uneasily.
    
    The crowd moved on again. Nesvitski realized that it was a cannon ball.
    
    "Hey, Cossack, my horse!" he said. "Now, then, you there! get out of the
    way! Make way!"
    
    With great difficulty he managed to get to his horse, and shouting
    continually he moved on. The soldiers squeezed themselves to make way
    for him, but again pressed on him so that they jammed his leg, and those
    nearest him were not to blame for they were themselves pressed still
    harder from behind.
    
    "Nesvitski, Nesvitski! you numskull!" came a hoarse voice from behind
    him.
    
    Nesvitski looked round and saw, some fifteen paces away but separated by
    the living mass of moving infantry, Vaska Denisov, red and shaggy, with
    his cap on the back of his black head and a cloak hanging jauntily over
    his shoulder.
    
    "Tell these devils, these fiends, to let me pass!" shouted Denisov
    evidently in a fit of rage, his coal-black eyes with their bloodshot
    whites glittering and rolling as he waved his sheathed saber in a small
    bare hand as red as his face.
    
    "Ah, Vaska!" joyfully replied Nesvitski. "What's up with you?"
    
    "The squadwon can't pass," shouted Vaska Denisov, showing his white
    teeth fiercely and spurring his black thoroughbred Arab, which twitched
    its ears as the bayonets touched it, and snorted, spurting white foam
    from his bit, tramping the planks of the bridge with his hoofs, and
    apparently ready to jump over the railings had his rider let him. "What
    is this? They're like sheep! Just like sheep! Out of the way!... Let us
    pass!... Stop there, you devil with the cart! I'll hack you with my
    saber!" he shouted, actually drawing his saber from its scabbard and
    flourishing it.
    
    The soldiers crowded against one another with terrified faces, and
    Denisov joined Nesvitski.
    
    "How's it you're not drunk today?" said Nesvitski when the other had
    ridden up to him.
    
    "They don't even give one time to dwink!" answered Vaska Denisov. "They
    keep dwagging the wegiment to and fwo all day. If they mean to fight,
    let's fight. But the devil knows what this is."
    
    "What a dandy you are today!" said Nesvitski, looking at Denisov's new
    cloak and saddlecloth.
    
    Denisov smiled, took out of his sabretache a handkerchief that diffused
    a smell of perfume, and put it to Nesvitski's nose.
    
    "Of course. I'm going into action! I've shaved, bwushed my teeth, and
    scented myself."
    
    The imposing figure of Nesvitski followed by his Cossack, and the
    determination of Denisov who flourished his sword and shouted
    frantically, had such an effect that they managed to squeeze through to
    the farther side of the bridge and stopped the infantry. Beside the
    bridge Nesvitski found the colonel to whom he had to deliver the order,
    and having done this he rode back.
    
    Having cleared the way Denisov stopped at the end of the bridge.
    Carelessly holding in his stallion that was neighing and pawing the
    ground, eager to rejoin its fellows, he watched his squadron draw
    nearer. Then the clang of hoofs, as of several horses galloping,
    resounded on the planks of the bridge, and the squadron, officers in
    front and men four abreast, spread across the bridge and began to emerge
    on his side of it.
    
    The infantry who had been stopped crowded near the bridge in the
    trampled mud and gazed with that particular feeling of ill-will,
    estrangement, and ridicule with which troops of different arms usually
    encounter one another at the clean, smart hussars who moved past them in
    regular order.
    
    "Smart lads! Only fit for a fair!" said one.
    
    "What good are they? They're led about just for show!" remarked another.
    
    "Don't kick up the dust, you infantry!" jested an hussar whose prancing
    horse had splashed mud over some foot soldiers.
    
    "I'd like to put you on a two days' march with a knapsack! Your fine
    cords would soon get a bit rubbed," said an infantryman, wiping the mud
    off his face with his sleeve. "Perched up there, you're more like a bird
    than a man."
    
    "There now, Zikin, they ought to put you on a horse. You'd look fine,"
    said a corporal, chaffing a thin little soldier who bent under the
    weight of his knapsack.
    
    "Take a stick between your legs, that'll suit you for a horse!" the
    hussar shouted back.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    The last of the infantry hurriedly crossed the bridge, squeezing
    together as they approached it as if passing through a funnel. At last
    the baggage wagons had all crossed, the crush was less, and the last
    battalion came onto the bridge. Only Denisov's squadron of hussars
    remained on the farther side of the bridge facing the enemy, who could
    be seen from the hill on the opposite bank but was not yet visible from
    the bridge, for the horizon as seen from the valley through which the
    river flowed was formed by the rising ground only half a mile away. At
    the foot of the hill lay wasteland over which a few groups of our
    Cossack scouts were moving. Suddenly on the road at the top of the high
    ground, artillery and troops in blue uniform were seen. These were the
    French. A group of Cossack scouts retired down the hill at a trot. All
    the officers and men of Denisov's squadron, though they tried to talk of
    other things and to look in other directions, thought only of what was
    there on the hilltop, and kept constantly looking at the patches
    appearing on the skyline, which they knew to be the enemy's troops. The
    weather had cleared again since noon and the sun was descending brightly
    upon the Danube and the dark hills around it. It was calm, and at
    intervals the bugle calls and the shouts of the enemy could be heard
    from the hill. There was no one now between the squadron and the enemy
    except a few scattered skirmishers. An empty space of some seven hundred
    yards was all that separated them. The enemy ceased firing, and that
    stern, threatening, inaccessible, and intangible line which separates
    two hostile armies was all the more clearly felt.
    
    "One step beyond that boundary line which resembles the line dividing
    the living from the dead lies uncertainty, suffering, and death. And
    what is there? Who is there?--there beyond that field, that tree, that
    roof lit up by the sun? No one knows, but one wants to know. You fear
    and yet long to cross that line, and know that sooner or later it must
    be crossed and you will have to find out what is there, just as you will
    inevitably have to learn what lies the other side of death. But you are
    strong, healthy, cheerful, and excited, and are surrounded by other such
    excitedly animated and healthy men." So thinks, or at any rate feels,
    anyone who comes in sight of the enemy, and that feeling gives a
    particular glamour and glad keenness of impression to everything that
    takes place at such moments.
    
    On the high ground where the enemy was, the smoke of a cannon rose, and
    a ball flew whistling over the heads of the hussar squadron. The
    officers who had been standing together rode off to their places. The
    hussars began carefully aligning their horses. Silence fell on the whole
    squadron. All were looking at the enemy in front and at the squadron
    commander, awaiting the word of command. A second and a third cannon
    ball flew past. Evidently they were firing at the hussars, but the balls
    with rapid rhythmic whistle flew over the heads of the horsemen and fell
    somewhere beyond them. The hussars did not look round, but at the sound
    of each shot, as at the word of command, the whole squadron with its
    rows of faces so alike yet so different, holding its breath while the
    ball flew past, rose in the stirrups and sank back again. The soldiers
    without turning their heads glanced at one another, curious to see their
    comrades' impression. Every face, from Denisov's to that of the bugler,
    showed one common expression of conflict, irritation, and excitement,
    around chin and mouth. The quartermaster frowned, looking at the
    soldiers as if threatening to punish them. Cadet Mironov ducked every
    time a ball flew past. Rostov on the left flank, mounted on his Rook--a
    handsome horse despite its game leg--had the happy air of a schoolboy
    called up before a large audience for an examination in which he feels
    sure he will distinguish himself. He was glancing at everyone with a
    clear, bright expression, as if asking them to notice how calmly he sat
    under fire. But despite himself, on his face too that same indication of
    something new and stern showed round the mouth.
    
    "Who's that curtseying there? Cadet Miwonov! That's not wight! Look at
    me," cried Denisov who, unable to keep still on one spot, kept turning
    his horse in front of the squadron.
    
    The black, hairy, snub-nosed face of Vaska Denisov, and his whole short
    sturdy figure with the sinewy hairy hand and stumpy fingers in which he
    held the hilt of his naked saber, looked just as it usually did,
    especially toward evening when he had emptied his second bottle; he was
    only redder than usual. With his shaggy head thrown back like birds when
    they drink, pressing his spurs mercilessly into the sides of his good
    horse, Bedouin, and sitting as though falling backwards in the saddle,
    he galloped to the other flank of the squadron and shouted in a hoarse
    voice to the men to look to their pistols. He rode up to Kirsten. The
    staff captain on his broad-backed, steady mare came at a walk to meet
    him. His face with its long mustache was serious as always, only his
    eyes were brighter than usual.
    
    "Well, what about it?" said he to Denisov. "It won't come to a fight.
    You'll see--we shall retire."
    
    "The devil only knows what they're about!" muttered Denisov. "Ah,
    Wostov," he cried noticing the cadet's bright face, "you've got it at
    last."
    
    And he smiled approvingly, evidently pleased with the cadet. Rostov felt
    perfectly happy. Just then the commander appeared on the bridge. Denisov
    galloped up to him.
    
    "Your excellency! Let us attack them! I'll dwive them off."
    
    "Attack indeed!" said the colonel in a bored voice, puckering up his
    face as if driving off a troublesome fly. "And why are you stopping
    here? Don't you see the skirmishers are retreating? Lead the squadron
    back."
    
    The squadron crossed the bridge and drew out of range of fire without
    having lost a single man. The second squadron that had been in the front
    line followed them across and the last Cossacks quitted the farther side
    of the river.
    
    The two Pavlograd squadrons, having crossed the bridge, retired up the
    hill one after the other. Their colonel, Karl Bogdanich Schubert, came
    up to Denisov's squadron and rode at a footpace not far from Rostov,
    without taking any notice of him although they were now meeting for the
    first time since their encounter concerning Telyanin. Rostov, feeling
    that he was at the front and in the power of a man toward whom he now
    admitted that he had been to blame, did not lift his eyes from the
    colonel's athletic back, his nape covered with light hair, and his red
    neck. It seemed to Rostov that Bogdanich was only pretending not to
    notice him, and that his whole aim now was to test the cadet's courage,
    so he drew himself up and looked around him merrily; then it seemed to
    him that Bogdanich rode so near in order to show him his courage. Next
    he thought that his enemy would send the squadron on a desperate attack
    just to punish him--Rostov. Then he imagined how, after the attack,
    Bogdanich would come up to him as he lay wounded and would magnanimously
    extend the hand of reconciliation.
    
    The high-shouldered figure of Zherkov, familiar to the Pavlograds as he
    had but recently left their regiment, rode up to the colonel. After his
    dismissal from headquarters Zherkov had not remained in the regiment,
    saying he was not such a fool as to slave at the front when he could get
    more rewards by doing nothing on the staff, and had succeeded in
    attaching himself as an orderly officer to Prince Bagration. He now came
    to his former chief with an order from the commander of the rear guard.
    
    "Colonel," he said, addressing Rostov's enemy with an air of gloomy
    gravity and glancing round at his comrades, "there is an order to stop
    and fire the bridge."
    
    "An order to who?" asked the colonel morosely.
    
    "I don't myself know 'to who,'" replied the cornet in a serious tone,
    "but the prince told me to 'go and tell the colonel that the hussars
    must return quickly and fire the bridge.'"
    
    Zherkov was followed by an officer of the suite who rode up to the
    colonel of hussars with the same order. After him the stout Nesvitski
    came galloping up on a Cossack horse that could scarcely carry his
    weight.
    
    "How's this, Colonel?" he shouted as he approached. "I told you to fire
    the bridge, and now someone has gone and blundered; they are all beside
    themselves over there and one can't make anything out."
    
    The colonel deliberately stopped the regiment and turned to Nesvitski.
    
    "You spoke to me of inflammable material," said he, "but you said
    nothing about firing it."
    
    "But, my dear sir," said Nesvitski as he drew up, taking off his cap and
    smoothing his hair wet with perspiration with his plump hand, "wasn't I
    telling you to fire the bridge, when inflammable material had been put
    in position?"
    
    "I am not your 'dear sir,' Mr. Staff Officer, and you did not tell me to
    burn the bridge! I know the service, and it is my habit orders strictly
    to obey. You said the bridge would be burned, but who would it burn, I
    could not know by the holy spirit!"
    
    "Ah, that's always the way!" said Nesvitski with a wave of the hand.
    "How did you get here?" said he, turning to Zherkov.
    
    "On the same business. But you are damp! Let me wring you out!"
    
    "You were saying, Mr. Staff Officer..." continued the colonel in an
    offended tone.
    
    "Colonel," interrupted the officer of the suite, "You must be quick or
    the enemy will bring up his guns to use grapeshot."
    
    The colonel looked silently at the officer of the suite, at the stout
    staff officer, and at Zherkov, and he frowned.
    
    "I will the bridge fire," he said in a solemn tone as if to announce
    that in spite of all the unpleasantness he had to endure he would still
    do the right thing.
    
    Striking his horse with his long muscular legs as if it were to blame
    for everything, the colonel moved forward and ordered the second
    squadron, that in which Rostov was serving under Denisov, to return to
    the bridge.
    
    "There, it's just as I thought," said Rostov to himself. "He wishes to
    test me!" His heart contracted and the blood rushed to his face. "Let
    him see whether I am a coward!" he thought.
    
    Again on all the bright faces of the squadron the serious expression
    appeared that they had worn when under fire. Rostov watched his enemy,
    the colonel, closely--to find in his face confirmation of his own
    conjecture, but the colonel did not once glance at Rostov, and looked as
    he always did when at the front, solemn and stern. Then came the word of
    command.
    
    "Look sharp! Look sharp!" several voices repeated around him.
    
    Their sabers catching in the bridles and their spurs jingling, the
    hussars hastily dismounted, not knowing what they were to do. The men
    were crossing themselves. Rostov no longer looked at the colonel, he had
    no time. He was afraid of falling behind the hussars, so much afraid
    that his heart stood still. His hand trembled as he gave his horse into
    an orderly's charge, and he felt the blood rush to his heart with a
    thud. Denisov rode past him, leaning back and shouting something. Rostov
    saw nothing but the hussars running all around him, their spurs catching
    and their sabers clattering.
    
    "Stretchers!" shouted someone behind him.
    
    Rostov did not think what this call for stretchers meant; he ran on,
    trying only to be ahead of the others; but just at the bridge, not
    looking at the ground, he came on some sticky, trodden mud, stumbled,
    and fell on his hands. The others outstripped him.
    
    "At boss zides, Captain," he heard the voice of the colonel, who, having
    ridden ahead, had pulled up his horse near the bridge, with a
    triumphant, cheerful face.
    
    Rostov wiping his muddy hands on his breeches looked at his enemy and
    was about to run on, thinking that the farther he went to the front the
    better. But Bogdanich, without looking at or recognizing Rostov, shouted
    to him:
    
    "Who's that running on the middle of the bridge? To the right! Come
    back, Cadet!" he cried angrily; and turning to Denisov, who, showing off
    his courage, had ridden on to the planks of the bridge:
    
    "Why run risks, Captain? You should dismount," he said.
    
    "Oh, every bullet has its billet," answered Vaska Denisov, turning in
    his saddle.
    
    Meanwhile Nesvitski, Zherkov, and the officer of the suite were standing
    together out of range of the shots, watching, now the small group of men
    with yellow shakos, dark-green jackets braided with cord, and blue
    riding breeches, who were swarming near the bridge, and then at what was
    approaching in the distance from the opposite side--the blue uniforms
    and groups with horses, easily recognizable as artillery.
    
    "Will they burn the bridge or not? Who'll get there first? Will they get
    there and fire the bridge or will the French get within grapeshot range
    and wipe them out?" These were the questions each man of the troops on
    the high ground above the bridge involuntarily asked himself with a
    sinking heart--watching the bridge and the hussars in the bright evening
    light and the blue tunics advancing from the other side with their
    bayonets and guns.
    
    "Ugh. The hussars will get it hot!" said Nesvitski; "they are within
    grapeshot range now."
    
    "He shouldn't have taken so many men," said the officer of the suite.
    
    "True enough," answered Nesvitski; "two smart fellows could have done
    the job just as well."
    
    "Ah, your excellency," put in Zherkov, his eyes fixed on the hussars,
    but still with that naive air that made it impossible to know whether he
    was speaking in jest or in earnest. "Ah, your excellency! How you look
    at things! Send two men? And who then would give us the Vladimir medal
    and ribbon? But now, even if they do get peppered, the squadron may be
    recommended for honors and he may get a ribbon. Our Bogdanich knows how
    things are done."
    
    "There now!" said the officer of the suite, "that's grapeshot."
    
    He pointed to the French guns, the limbers of which were being detached
    and hurriedly removed.
    
    On the French side, amid the groups with cannon, a cloud of smoke
    appeared, then a second and a third almost simultaneously, and at the
    moment when the first report was heard a fourth was seen. Then two
    reports one after another, and a third.
    
    "Oh! Oh!" groaned Nesvitski as if in fierce pain, seizing the officer of
    the suite by the arm. "Look! A man has fallen! Fallen, fallen!"
    
    "Two, I think."
    
    "If I were Tsar I would never go to war," said Nesvitski, turning away.
    
    The French guns were hastily reloaded. The infantry in their blue
    uniforms advanced toward the bridge at a run. Smoke appeared again but
    at irregular intervals, and grapeshot cracked and rattled onto the
    bridge. But this time Nesvitski could not see what was happening there,
    as a dense cloud of smoke arose from it. The hussars had succeeded in
    setting it on fire and the French batteries were now firing at them, no
    longer to hinder them but because the guns were trained and there was
    someone to fire at.
    
    The French had time to fire three rounds of grapeshot before the hussars
    got back to their horses. Two were misdirected and the shot went too
    high, but the last round fell in the midst of a group of hussars and
    knocked three of them over.
    
    Rostov, absorbed by his relations with Bogdanich, had paused on the
    bridge not knowing what to do. There was no one to hew down (as he had
    always imagined battles to himself), nor could he help to fire the
    bridge because he had not brought any burning straw with him like the
    other soldiers. He stood looking about him, when suddenly he heard a
    rattle on the bridge as if nuts were being spilt, and the hussar nearest
    to him fell against the rails with a groan. Rostov ran up to him with
    the others. Again someone shouted, "Stretchers!" Four men seized the
    hussar and began lifting him.
    
    "Oooh! For Christ's sake let me alone!" cried the wounded man, but still
    he was lifted and laid on the stretcher.
    
    Nicholas Rostov turned away and, as if searching for something, gazed
    into the distance, at the waters of the Danube, at the sky, and at the
    sun. How beautiful the sky looked; how blue, how calm, and how deep! How
    bright and glorious was the setting sun! With what soft glitter the
    waters of the distant Danube shone. And fairer still were the faraway
    blue mountains beyond the river, the nunnery, the mysterious gorges, and
    the pine forests veiled in the mist of their summits... There was peace
    and happiness... "I should wish for nothing else, nothing, if only I
    were there," thought Rostov. "In myself alone and in that sunshine there
    is so much happiness; but here... groans, suffering, fear, and this
    uncertainty and hurry... There--they are shouting again, and again are
    all running back somewhere, and I shall run with them, and it, death, is
    here above me and around... Another instant and I shall never again see
    the sun, this water, that gorge!..."
    
    At that instant the sun began to hide behind the clouds, and other
    stretchers came into view before Rostov. And the fear of death and of
    the stretchers, and love of the sun and of life, all merged into one
    feeling of sickening agitation.
    
    "O Lord God! Thou who art in that heaven, save, forgive, and protect
    me!" Rostov whispered.
    
    The hussars ran back to the men who held their horses; their voices
    sounded louder and calmer, the stretchers disappeared from sight.
    
    "Well, fwiend? So you've smelt powdah!" shouted Vaska Denisov just above
    his ear.
    
    "It's all over; but I am a coward--yes, a coward!" thought Rostov, and
    sighing deeply he took Rook, his horse, which stood resting one foot,
    from the orderly and began to mount.
    
    "Was that grapeshot?" he asked Denisov.
    
    "Yes and no mistake!" cried Denisov. "You worked like wegular bwicks and
    it's nasty work! An attack's pleasant work! Hacking away at the dogs!
    But this sort of thing is the very devil, with them shooting at you like
    a target."
    
    And Denisov rode up to a group that had stopped near Rostov, composed of
    the colonel, Nesvitski, Zherkov, and the officer from the suite.
    
    "Well, it seems that no one has noticed," thought Rostov. And this was
    true. No one had taken any notice, for everyone knew the sensation which
    the cadet under fire for the first time had experienced.
    
    "Here's something for you to report," said Zherkov. "See if I don't get
    promoted to a sublieutenancy."
    
    "Inform the prince that I the bridge fired!" said the colonel
    triumphantly and gaily.
    
    "And if he asks about the losses?"
    
    "A trifle," said the colonel in his bass voice: "two hussars wounded,
    and one knocked out," he added, unable to restrain a happy smile, and
    pronouncing the phrase "knocked out" with ringing distinctness.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    Pursued by the French army of a hundred thousand men under the command
    of Bonaparte, encountering a population that was unfriendly to it,
    losing confidence in its allies, suffering from shortness of supplies,
    and compelled to act under conditions of war unlike anything that had
    been foreseen, the Russian army of thirty-five thousand men commanded by
    Kutuzov was hurriedly retreating along the Danube, stopping where
    overtaken by the enemy and fighting rearguard actions only as far as
    necessary to enable it to retreat without losing its heavy equipment.
    There had been actions at Lambach, Amstetten, and Melk; but despite the
    courage and endurance--acknowledged even by the enemy--with which the
    Russians fought, the only consequence of these actions was a yet more
    rapid retreat. Austrian troops that had escaped capture at Ulm and had
    joined Kutuzov at Braunau now separated from the Russian army, and
    Kutuzov was left with only his own weak and exhausted forces. The
    defense of Vienna was no longer to be thought of. Instead of an
    offensive, the plan of which, carefully prepared in accord with the
    modern science of strategics, had been handed to Kutuzov when he was in
    Vienna by the Austrian Hofkriegsrath, the sole and almost unattainable
    aim remaining for him was to effect a junction with the forces that were
    advancing from Russia, without losing his army as Mack had done at Ulm.
    
    On the twenty-eighth of October Kutuzov with his army crossed to the
    left bank of the Danube and took up a position for the first time with
    the river between himself and the main body of the French. On the
    thirtieth he attacked Mortier's division, which was on the left bank,
    and broke it up. In this action for the first time trophies were taken:
    banners, cannon, and two enemy generals. For the first time, after a
    fortnight's retreat, the Russian troops had halted and after a fight had
    not only held the field but had repulsed the French. Though the troops
    were ill-clad, exhausted, and had lost a third of their number in
    killed, wounded, sick, and stragglers; though a number of sick and
    wounded had been abandoned on the other side of the Danube with a letter
    in which Kutuzov entrusted them to the humanity of the enemy; and though
    the big hospitals and the houses in Krems converted into military
    hospitals could no longer accommodate all the sick and wounded, yet the
    stand made at Krems and the victory over Mortier raised the spirits of
    the army considerably. Throughout the whole army and at headquarters
    most joyful though erroneous rumors were rife of the imaginary approach
    of columns from Russia, of some victory gained by the Austrians, and of
    the retreat of the frightened Bonaparte.
    
    Prince Andrew during the battle had been in attendance on the Austrian
    General Schmidt, who was killed in the action. His horse had been
    wounded under him and his own arm slightly grazed by a bullet. As a mark
    of the commander-in-chief's special favor he was sent with the news of
    this victory to the Austrian court, now no longer at Vienna (which was
    threatened by the French) but at Brunn. Despite his apparently delicate
    build Prince Andrew could endure physical fatigue far better than many
    very muscular men, and on the night of the battle, having arrived at
    Krems excited but not weary, with dispatches from Dokhturov to Kutuzov,
    he was sent immediately with a special dispatch to Brunn. To be so sent
    meant not only a reward but an important step toward promotion.
    
    The night was dark but starry, the road showed black in the snow that
    had fallen the previous day--the day of the battle. Reviewing his
    impressions of the recent battle, picturing pleasantly to himself the
    impression his news of a victory would create, or recalling the send-off
    given him by the commander-in-chief and his fellow officers, Prince
    Andrew was galloping along in a post chaise enjoying the feelings of a
    man who has at length begun to attain a long-desired happiness. As soon
    as he closed his eyes his ears seemed filled with the rattle of the
    wheels and the sensation of victory. Then he began to imagine that the
    Russians were running away and that he himself was killed, but he
    quickly roused himself with a feeling of joy, as if learning afresh that
    this was not so but that on the contrary the French had run away. He
    again recalled all the details of the victory and his own calm courage
    during the battle, and feeling reassured he dozed off.... The dark
    starry night was followed by a bright cheerful morning. The snow was
    thawing in the sunshine, the horses galloped quickly, and on both sides
    of the road were forests of different kinds, fields, and villages.
    
    At one of the post stations he overtook a convoy of Russian wounded. The
    Russian officer in charge of the transport lolled back in the front
    cart, shouting and scolding a soldier with coarse abuse. In each of the
    long German carts six or more pale, dirty, bandaged men were being
    jolted over the stony road. Some of them were talking (he heard Russian
    words), others were eating bread; the more severely wounded looked
    silently, with the languid interest of sick children, at the envoy
    hurrying past them.
    
    Prince Andrew told his driver to stop, and asked a soldier in what
    action they had been wounded. "Day before yesterday, on the Danube,"
    answered the soldier. Prince Andrew took out his purse and gave the
    soldier three gold pieces.
    
    "That's for them all," he said to the officer who came up.
    
    "Get well soon, lads!" he continued, turning to the soldiers. "There's
    plenty to do still."
    
    "What news, sir?" asked the officer, evidently anxious to start a
    conversation.
    
    "Good news!... Go on!" he shouted to the driver, and they galloped on.
    
    It was already quite dark when Prince Andrew rattled over the paved
    streets of Brunn and found himself surrounded by high buildings, the
    lights of shops, houses, and street lamps, fine carriages, and all that
    atmosphere of a large and active town which is always so attractive to a
    soldier after camp life. Despite his rapid journey and sleepless night,
    Prince Andrew when he drove up to the palace felt even more vigorous and
    alert than he had done the day before. Only his eyes gleamed feverishly
    and his thoughts followed one another with extraordinary clearness and
    rapidity. He again vividly recalled the details of the battle, no longer
    dim, but definite and in the concise form in which he imagined himself
    stating them to the Emperor Francis. He vividly imagined the casual
    questions that might be put to him and the answers he would give. He
    expected to be at once presented to the Emperor. At the chief entrance
    to the palace, however, an official came running out to meet him, and
    learning that he was a special messenger led him to another entrance.
    
    "To the right from the corridor, Euer Hochgeboren! There you will find
    the adjutant on duty," said the official. "He will conduct you to the
    Minister of War."
    
    The adjutant on duty, meeting Prince Andrew, asked him to wait, and went
    in to the Minister of War. Five minutes later he returned and bowing
    with particular courtesy ushered Prince Andrew before him along a
    corridor to the cabinet where the Minister of War was at work. The
    adjutant by his elaborate courtesy appeared to wish to ward off any
    attempt at familiarity on the part of the Russian messenger.
    
    Prince Andrew's joyous feeling was considerably weakened as he
    approached the door of the minister's room. He felt offended, and
    without his noticing it the feeling of offense immediately turned into
    one of disdain which was quite uncalled for. His fertile mind instantly
    suggested to him a point of view which gave him a right to despise the
    adjutant and the minister. "Away from the smell of powder, they probably
    think it easy to gain victories!" he thought. His eyes narrowed
    disdainfully, he entered the room of the Minister of War with peculiarly
    deliberate steps. This feeling of disdain was heightened when he saw the
    minister seated at a large table reading some papers and making pencil
    notes on them, and for the first two or three minutes taking no notice
    of his arrival. A wax candle stood at each side of the minister's bent
    bald head with its gray temples. He went on reading to the end, without
    raising his eyes at the opening of the door and the sound of footsteps.
    
    "Take this and deliver it," said he to his adjutant, handing him the
    papers and still taking no notice of the special messenger.
    
    Prince Andrew felt that either the actions of Kutuzov's army interested
    the Minister of War less than any of the other matters he was concerned
    with, or he wanted to give the Russian special messenger that
    impression. "But that is a matter of perfect indifference to me," he
    thought. The minister drew the remaining papers together, arranged them
    evenly, and then raised his head. He had an intellectual and distinctive
    head, but the instant he turned to Prince Andrew the firm, intelligent
    expression on his face changed in a way evidently deliberate and
    habitual to him. His face took on the stupid artificial smile (which
    does not even attempt to hide its artificiality) of a man who is
    continually receiving many petitioners one after another.
    
    "From General Field Marshal Kutuzov?" he asked. "I hope it is good news?
    There has been an encounter with Mortier? A victory? It was high time!"
    
    He took the dispatch which was addressed to him and began to read it
    with a mournful expression.
    
    "Oh, my God! My God! Schmidt!" he exclaimed in German. "What a calamity!
    What a calamity!"
    
    Having glanced through the dispatch he laid it on the table and looked
    at Prince Andrew, evidently considering something.
    
    "Ah what a calamity! You say the affair was decisive? But Mortier is not
    captured." Again he pondered. "I am very glad you have brought good
    news, though Schmidt's death is a heavy price to pay for the victory.
    His Majesty will no doubt wish to see you, but not today. I thank you!
    You must have a rest. Be at the levee tomorrow after the parade.
    However, I will let you know."
    
    The stupid smile, which had left his face while he was speaking,
    reappeared.
    
    "Au revoir! Thank you very much. His Majesty will probably desire to see
    you," he added, bowing his head.
    
    When Prince Andrew left the palace he felt that all the interest and
    happiness the victory had afforded him had been now left in the
    indifferent hands of the Minister of War and the polite adjutant. The
    whole tenor of his thoughts instantaneously changed; the battle seemed
    the memory of a remote event long past.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Prince Andrew stayed at Brunn with Bilibin, a Russian acquaintance of
    his in the diplomatic service.
    
    "Ah, my dear prince! I could not have a more welcome visitor," said
    Bilibin as he came out to meet Prince Andrew. "Franz, put the prince's
    things in my bedroom," said he to the servant who was ushering Bolkonski
    in. "So you're a messenger of victory, eh? Splendid! And I am sitting
    here ill, as you see."
    
    After washing and dressing, Prince Andrew came into the diplomat's
    luxurious study and sat down to the dinner prepared for him. Bilibin
    settled down comfortably beside the fire.
    
    After his journey and the campaign during which he had been deprived of
    all the comforts of cleanliness and all the refinements of life, Prince
    Andrew felt a pleasant sense of repose among luxurious surroundings such
    as he had been accustomed to from childhood. Besides it was pleasant,
    after his reception by the Austrians, to speak if not in Russian (for
    they were speaking French) at least with a Russian who would, he
    supposed, share the general Russian antipathy to the Austrians which was
    then particularly strong.
    
    Bilibin was a man of thirty-five, a bachelor, and of the same circle as
    Prince Andrew. They had known each other previously in Petersburg, but
    had become more intimate when Prince Andrew was in Vienna with Kutuzov.
    Just as Prince Andrew was a young man who gave promise of rising high in
    the military profession, so to an even greater extent Bilibin gave
    promise of rising in his diplomatic career. He still a young man but no
    longer a young diplomat, as he had entered the service at the age of
    sixteen, had been in Paris and Copenhagen, and now held a rather
    important post in Vienna. Both the foreign minister and our ambassador
    in Vienna knew him and valued him. He was not one of those many
    diplomats who are esteemed because they have certain negative qualities,
    avoid doing certain things, and speak French. He was one of those, who,
    liking work, knew how to do it, and despite his indolence would
    sometimes spend a whole night at his writing table. He worked well
    whatever the import of his work. It was not the question "What for?" but
    the question "How?" that interested him. What the diplomatic matter
    might be he did not care, but it gave him great pleasure to prepare a
    circular, memorandum, or report, skillfully, pointedly, and elegantly.
    Bilibin's services were valued not only for what he wrote, but also for
    his skill in dealing and conversing with those in the highest spheres.
    
    Bilibin liked conversation as he liked work, only when it could be made
    elegantly witty. In society he always awaited an opportunity to say
    something striking and took part in a conversation only when that was
    possible. His conversation was always sprinkled with wittily original,
    finished phrases of general interest. These sayings were prepared in the
    inner laboratory of his mind in a portable form as if intentionally, so
    that insignificant society people might carry them from drawing room to
    drawing room. And, in fact, Bilibin's witticisms were hawked about in
    the Viennese drawing rooms and often had an influence on matters
    considered important.
    
    His thin, worn, sallow face was covered with deep wrinkles, which always
    looked as clean and well washed as the tips of one's fingers after a
    Russian bath. The movement of these wrinkles formed the principal play
    of expression on his face. Now his forehead would pucker into deep folds
    and his eyebrows were lifted, then his eyebrows would descend and deep
    wrinkles would crease his cheeks. His small, deep-set eyes always
    twinkled and looked out straight.
    
    "Well, now tell me about your exploits," said he.
    
    Bolkonski, very modestly without once mentioning himself, described the
    engagement and his reception by the Minister of War.
    
    "They received me and my news as one receives a dog in a game of
    skittles," said he in conclusion.
    
    Bilibin smiled and the wrinkles on his face disappeared.
    
    "Cependant, mon cher," he remarked, examining his nails from a distance
    and puckering the skin above his left eye, "malgre la haute estime que
    je professe pour the Orthodox Russian army, j'avoue que votre victoire
    n'est pas des plus victorieuses." *
    
    * "But my dear fellow, with all my respect for the Orthodox Russian
    army, I must say that your victory was not particularly victorious."
    
    He went on talking in this way in French, uttering only those words in
    Russian on which he wished to put a contemptuous emphasis.
    
    "Come now! You with all your forces fall on the unfortunate Mortier and
    his one division, and even then Mortier slips through your fingers!
    Where's the victory?"
    
    "But seriously," said Prince Andrew, "we can at any rate say without
    boasting that it was a little better than at Ulm..."
    
    "Why didn't you capture one, just one, marshal for us?"
    
    "Because not everything happens as one expects or with the smoothness of
    a parade. We had expected, as I told you, to get at their rear by seven
    in the morning but had not reached it by five in the afternoon."
    
    "And why didn't you do it at seven in the morning? You ought to have
    been there at seven in the morning," returned Bilibin with a smile. "You
    ought to have been there at seven in the morning."
    
    "Why did you not succeed in impressing on Bonaparte by diplomatic
    methods that he had better leave Genoa alone?" retorted Prince Andrew in
    the same tone.
    
    "I know," interrupted Bilibin, "you're thinking it's very easy to take
    marshals, sitting on a sofa by the fire! That is true, but still why
    didn't you capture him? So don't be surprised if not only the Minister
    of War but also his Most August Majesty the Emperor and King Francis is
    not much delighted by your victory. Even I, a poor secretary of the
    Russian Embassy, do not feel any need in token of my joy to give my
    Franz a thaler, or let him go with his Liebchen to the Prater... True,
    we have no Prater here..."
    
    He looked straight at Prince Andrew and suddenly unwrinkled his
    forehead.
    
    "It is now my turn to ask you 'why?' mon cher," said Bolkonski. "I
    confess I do not understand: perhaps there are diplomatic subtleties
    here beyond my feeble intelligence, but I can't make it out. Mack loses
    a whole army, the Archduke Ferdinand and the Archduke Karl give no signs
    of life and make blunder after blunder. Kutuzov alone at last gains a
    real victory, destroying the spell of the invincibility of the French,
    and the Minister of War does not even care to hear the details."
    
    "That's just it, my dear fellow. You see it's hurrah for the Tsar, for
    Russia, for the Orthodox Greek faith! All that is beautiful, but what do
    we, I mean the Austrian court, care for your victories? Bring us nice
    news of a victory by the Archduke Karl or Ferdinand (one archduke's as
    good as another, as you know) and even if it is only over a fire brigade
    of Bonaparte's, that will be another story and we'll fire off some
    cannon! But this sort of thing seems done on purpose to vex us. The
    Archduke Karl does nothing, the Archduke Ferdinand disgraces himself.
    You abandon Vienna, give up its defense--as much as to say: 'Heaven is
    with us, but heaven help you and your capital!' The one general whom we
    all loved, Schmidt, you expose to a bullet, and then you congratulate us
    on the victory! Admit that more irritating news than yours could not
    have been conceived. It's as if it had been done on purpose, on purpose.
    Besides, suppose you did gain a brilliant victory, if even the Archduke
    Karl gained a victory, what effect would that have on the general course
    of events? It's too late now when Vienna is occupied by the French
    army!"
    
    "What? Occupied? Vienna occupied?"
    
    "Not only occupied, but Bonaparte is at Schonbrunn, and the count, our
    dear Count Vrbna, goes to him for orders."
    
    After the fatigues and impressions of the journey, his reception, and
    especially after having dined, Bolkonski felt that he could not take in
    the full significance of the words he heard.
    
    "Count Lichtenfels was here this morning," Bilibin continued, "and
    showed me a letter in which the parade of the French in Vienna was fully
    described: Prince Murat et tout le tremblement... You see that your
    victory is not a matter for great rejoicing and that you can't be
    received as a savior."
    
    "Really I don't care about that, I don't care at all," said Prince
    Andrew, beginning to understand that his news of the battle before Krems
    was really of small importance in view of such events as the fall of
    Austria's capital. "How is it Vienna was taken? What of the bridge and
    its celebrated bridgehead and Prince Auersperg? We heard reports that
    Prince Auersperg was defending Vienna?" he said.
    
    "Prince Auersperg is on this, on our side of the river, and is defending
    us--doing it very badly, I think, but still he is defending us. But
    Vienna is on the other side. No, the bridge has not yet been taken and I
    hope it will not be, for it is mined and orders have been given to blow
    it up. Otherwise we should long ago have been in the mountains of
    Bohemia, and you and your army would have spent a bad quarter of an hour
    between two fires."
    
    "But still this does not mean that the campaign is over," said Prince
    Andrew.
    
    "Well, I think it is. The bigwigs here think so too, but they daren't
    say so. It will be as I said at the beginning of the campaign, it won't
    be your skirmishing at Durrenstein, or gunpowder at all, that will
    decide the matter, but those who devised it," said Bilibin quoting one
    of his own mots, releasing the wrinkles on his forehead, and pausing.
    "The only question is what will come of the meeting between the Emperor
    Alexander and the King of Prussia in Berlin? If Prussia joins the
    Allies, Austria's hand will be forced and there will be war. If not it
    is merely a question of settling where the preliminaries of the new
    Campo Formio are to be drawn up."
    
    "What an extraordinary genius!" Prince Andrew suddenly exclaimed,
    clenching his small hand and striking the table with it, "and what luck
    the man has!"
    
    "Buonaparte?" said Bilibin inquiringly, puckering up his forehead to
    indicate that he was about to say something witty. "Buonaparte?" he
    repeated, accentuating the u: "I think, however, now that he lays down
    laws for Austria at Schonbrunn, il faut lui faire grace de l'u! * I
    shall certainly adopt an innovation and call him simply Bonaparte!"
    
    * "We must let him off the u!"
    
    "But joking apart," said Prince Andrew, "do you really think the
    campaign is over?"
    
    "This is what I think. Austria has been made a fool of, and she is not
    used to it. She will retaliate. And she has been fooled in the first
    place because her provinces have been pillaged--they say the Holy
    Russian army loots terribly--her army is destroyed, her capital taken,
    and all this for the beaux yeux * of His Sardinian Majesty. And
    therefore--this is between ourselves--I instinctively feel that we are
    being deceived, my instinct tells me of negotiations with France and
    projects for peace, a secret peace concluded separately."
    
    * Fine eyes.
    
    "Impossible!" cried Prince Andrew. "That would be too base."
    
    "If we live we shall see," replied Bilibin, his face again becoming
    smooth as a sign that the conversation was at an end.
    
    When Prince Andrew reached the room prepared for him and lay down in a
    clean shirt on the feather bed with its warmed and fragrant pillows, he
    felt that the battle of which he had brought tidings was far, far away
    from him. The alliance with Prussia, Austria's treachery, Bonaparte's
    new triumph, tomorrow's levee and parade, and the audience with the
    Emperor Francis occupied his thoughts.
    
    He closed his eyes, and immediately a sound of cannonading, of musketry
    and the rattling of carriage wheels seemed to fill his ears, and now
    again drawn out in a thin line the musketeers were descending the hill,
    the French were firing, and he felt his heart palpitating as he rode
    forward beside Schmidt with the bullets merrily whistling all around,
    and he experienced tenfold the joy of living, as he had not done since
    childhood.
    
    He woke up...
    
    "Yes, that all happened!" he said, and, smiling happily to himself like
    a child, he fell into a deep, youthful slumber.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Next day he woke late. Recalling his recent impressions, the first
    thought that came into his mind was that today he had to be presented to
    the Emperor Francis; he remembered the Minister of War, the polite
    Austrian adjutant, Bilibin, and last night's conversation. Having
    dressed for his attendance at court in full parade uniform, which he had
    not worn for a long time, he went into Bilibin's study fresh, animated,
    and handsome, with his hand bandaged. In the study were four gentlemen
    of the diplomatic corps. With Prince Hippolyte Kuragin, who was a
    secretary to the embassy, Bolkonski was already acquainted. Bilibin
    introduced him to the others.
    
    The gentlemen assembled at Bilibin's were young, wealthy, gay society
    men, who here, as in Vienna, formed a special set which Bilibin, their
    leader, called les notres. * This set, consisting almost exclusively of
    diplomats, evidently had its own interests which had nothing to do with
    war or politics but related to high society, to certain women, and to
    the official side of the service. These gentlemen received Prince Andrew
    as one of themselves, an honor they did not extend to many. From
    politeness and to start conversation, they asked him a few questions
    about the army and the battle, and then the talk went off into merry
    jests and gossip.
    
    * Ours.
    
    "But the best of it was," said one, telling of the misfortune of a
    fellow diplomat, "that the Chancellor told him flatly that his
    appointment to London was a promotion and that he was so to regard it.
    Can you fancy the figure he cut?..."
    
    "But the worst of it, gentlemen--I am giving Kuragin away to you--is
    that that man suffers, and this Don Juan, wicked fellow, is taking
    advantage of it!"
    
    Prince Hippolyte was lolling in a lounge chair with his legs over its
    arm. He began to laugh.
    
    "Tell me about that!" he said.
    
    "Oh, you Don Juan! You serpent!" cried several voices.
    
    "You, Bolkonski, don't know," said Bilibin turning to Prince Andrew,
    "that all the atrocities of the French army (I nearly said of the
    Russian army) are nothing compared to what this man has been doing among
    the women!"
    
    "La femme est la compagne de l'homme," * announced Prince Hippolyte, and
    began looking through a lorgnette at his elevated legs.
    
    * "Woman is man's companion."
    
    Bilibin and the rest of "ours" burst out laughing in Hippolyte's face,
    and Prince Andrew saw that Hippolyte, of whom--he had to admit--he had
    almost been jealous on his wife's account, was the butt of this set.
    
    "Oh, I must give you a treat," Bilibin whispered to Bolkonski. "Kuragin
    is exquisite when he discusses politics--you should see his gravity!"
    
    He sat down beside Hippolyte and wrinkling his forehead began talking to
    him about politics. Prince Andrew and the others gathered round these
    two.
    
    "The Berlin cabinet cannot express a feeling of alliance," began
    Hippolyte gazing round with importance at the others, "without
    expressing... as in its last note... you understand... Besides, unless
    His Majesty the Emperor derogates from the principle of our alliance...
    
    "Wait, I have not finished..." he said to Prince Andrew, seizing him by
    the arm, "I believe that intervention will be stronger than
    nonintervention. And..." he paused. "Finally one cannot impute the
    nonreceipt of our dispatch of November 18. That is how it will end." And
    he released Bolkonski's arm to indicate that he had now quite finished.
    
    "Demosthenes, I know thee by the pebble thou secretest in thy golden
    mouth!" said Bilibin, and the mop of hair on his head moved with
    satisfaction.
    
    Everybody laughed, and Hippolyte louder than anyone. He was evidently
    distressed, and breathed painfully, but could not restrain the wild
    laughter that convulsed his usually impassive features.
    
    "Well now, gentlemen," said Bilibin, "Bolkonski is my guest in this
    house and in Brunn itself. I want to entertain him as far as I can, with
    all the pleasures of life here. If we were in Vienna it would be easy,
    but here, in this wretched Moravian hole, it is more difficult, and I
    beg you all to help me. Brunn's attractions must be shown him. You can
    undertake the theater, I society, and you, Hippolyte, of course the
    women."
    
    "We must let him see Amelie, she's exquisite!" said one of "ours,"
    kissing his finger tips.
    
    "In general we must turn this bloodthirsty soldier to more humane
    interests," said Bilibin.
    
    "I shall scarcely be able to avail myself of your hospitality,
    gentlemen, it is already time for me to go," replied Prince Andrew
    looking at his watch.
    
    "Where to?"
    
    "To the Emperor."
    
    "Oh! Oh! Oh! Well, au revoir, Bolkonski! Au revoir, Prince! Come back
    early to dinner," cried several voices. "We'll take you in hand."
    
    "When speaking to the Emperor, try as far as you can to praise the way
    that provisions are supplied and the routes indicated," said Bilibin,
    accompanying him to the hall.
    
    "I should like to speak well of them, but as far as I know the facts, I
    can't," replied Bolkonski, smiling.
    
    "Well, talk as much as you can, anyway. He has a passion for giving
    audiences, but he does not like talking himself and can't do it, as you
    will see."
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    At the levee Prince Andrew stood among the Austrian officers as he had
    been told to, and the Emperor Francis merely looked fixedly into his
    face and just nodded to him with his long head. But after it was over,
    the adjutant he had seen the previous day ceremoniously informed
    Bolkonski that the Emperor desired to give him an audience. The Emperor
    Francis received him standing in the middle of the room. Before the
    conversation began Prince Andrew was struck by the fact that the Emperor
    seemed confused and blushed as if not knowing what to say.
    
    "Tell me, when did the battle begin?" he asked hurriedly.
    
    Prince Andrew replied. Then followed other questions just as simple:
    "Was Kutuzov well? When had he left Krems?" and so on. The Emperor spoke
    as if his sole aim were to put a given number of questions--the answers
    to these questions, as was only too evident, did not interest him.
    
    "At what o'clock did the battle begin?" asked the Emperor.
    
    "I cannot inform Your Majesty at what o'clock the battle began at the
    front, but at Durrenstein, where I was, our attack began after five in
    the afternoon," replied Bolkonski growing more animated and expecting
    that he would have a chance to give a reliable account, which he had
    ready in his mind, of all he knew and had seen. But the Emperor smiled
    and interrupted him.
    
    "How many miles?"
    
    "From where to where, Your Majesty?"
    
    "From Durrenstein to Krems."
    
    "Three and a half miles, Your Majesty."
    
    "The French have abandoned the left bank?"
    
    "According to the scouts the last of them crossed on rafts during the
    night."
    
    "Is there sufficient forage in Krems?"
    
    "Forage has not been supplied to the extent..."
    
    The Emperor interrupted him.
    
    "At what o'clock was General Schmidt killed?"
    
    "At seven o'clock, I believe."
    
    "At seven o'clock? It's very sad, very sad!"
    
    The Emperor thanked Prince Andrew and bowed. Prince Andrew withdrew and
    was immediately surrounded by courtiers on all sides. Everywhere he saw
    friendly looks and heard friendly words. Yesterday's adjutant reproached
    him for not having stayed at the palace, and offered him his own house.
    The Minister of War came up and congratulated him on the Maria Theresa
    Order of the third grade, which the Emperor was conferring on him. The
    Empress' chamberlain invited him to see Her Majesty. The archduchess
    also wished to see him. He did not know whom to answer, and for a few
    seconds collected his thoughts. Then the Russian ambassador took him by
    the shoulder, led him to the window, and began to talk to him.
    
    Contrary to Bilibin's forecast the news he had brought was joyfully
    received. A thanksgiving service was arranged, Kutuzov was awarded the
    Grand Cross of Maria Theresa, and the whole army received rewards.
    Bolkonski was invited everywhere, and had to spend the whole morning
    calling on the principal Austrian dignitaries. Between four and five in
    the afternoon, having made all his calls, he was returning to Bilibin's
    house thinking out a letter to his father about the battle and his visit
    to Brunn. At the door he found a vehicle half full of luggage. Franz,
    Bilibin's man, was dragging a portmanteau with some difficulty out of
    the front door.
    
    Before returning to Bilibin's Prince Andrew had gone to a bookshop to
    provide himself with some books for the campaign, and had spent some
    time in the shop.
    
    "What is it?" he asked.
    
    "Oh, your excellency!" said Franz, with difficulty rolling the
    portmanteau into the vehicle, "we are to move on still farther. The
    scoundrel is again at our heels!"
    
    "Eh? What?" asked Prince Andrew.
    
    Bilibin came out to meet him. His usually calm face showed excitement.
    
    "There now! Confess that this is delightful," said he. "This affair of
    the Thabor Bridge, at Vienna.... They have crossed without striking a
    blow!"
    
    Prince Andrew could not understand.
    
    "But where do you come from not to know what every coachman in the town
    knows?"
    
    "I come from the archduchess'. I heard nothing there."
    
    "And you didn't see that everybody is packing up?"
    
    "I did not... What is it all about?" inquired Prince Andrew impatiently.
    
    "What's it all about? Why, the French have crossed the bridge that
    Auersperg was defending, and the bridge was not blown up: so Murat is
    now rushing along the road to Brunn and will be here in a day or two."
    
    "What? Here? But why did they not blow up the bridge, if it was mined?"
    
    "That is what I ask you. No one, not even Bonaparte, knows why."
    
    Bolkonski shrugged his shoulders.
    
    "But if the bridge is crossed it means that the army too is lost? It
    will be cut off," said he.
    
    "That's just it," answered Bilibin. "Listen! The French entered Vienna
    as I told you. Very well. Next day, which was yesterday, those
    gentlemen, messieurs les marechaux, * Murat, Lannes, and Belliard, mount
    and ride to the bridge. (Observe that all three are Gascons.)
    'Gentlemen,' says one of them, 'you know the Thabor Bridge is mined and
    doubly mined and that there are menacing fortifications at its head and
    an army of fifteen thousand men has been ordered to blow up the bridge
    and not let us cross? But it will please our sovereign the Emperor
    Napoleon if we take this bridge, so let us three go and take it!' 'Yes,
    let's!' say the others. And off they go and take the bridge, cross it,
    and now with their whole army are on this side of the Danube, marching
    on us, you, and your lines of communication."
    
    * The marshalls.
    
    "Stop jesting," said Prince Andrew sadly and seriously. This news
    grieved him and yet he was pleased.
    
    As soon as he learned that the Russian army was in such a hopeless
    situation it occurred to him that it was he who was destined to lead it
    out of this position; that here was the Toulon that would lift him from
    the ranks of obscure officers and offer him the first step to fame!
    Listening to Bilibin he was already imagining how on reaching the army
    he would give an opinion at the war council which would be the only one
    that could save the army, and how he alone would be entrusted with the
    executing of the plan.
    
    "Stop this jesting," he said.
    
    "I am not jesting," Bilibin went on. "Nothing is truer or sadder. These
    gentlemen ride onto the bridge alone and wave white handkerchiefs; they
    assure the officer on duty that they, the marshals, are on their way to
    negotiate with Prince Auersperg. He lets them enter the tête-de-pont. *
    They spin him a thousand gasconades, saying that the war is over, that
    the Emperor Francis is arranging a meeting with Bonaparte, that they
    desire to see Prince Auersperg, and so on. The officer sends for
    Auersperg; these gentlemen embrace the officers, crack jokes, sit on the
    cannon, and meanwhile a French battalion gets to the bridge unobserved,
    flings the bags of incendiary material into the water, and approaches
    the tête-de-pont. At length appears the lieutenant general, our dear
    Prince Auersperg von Mautern himself. 'Dearest foe! Flower of the
    Austrian army, hero of the Turkish wars Hostilities are ended, we can
    shake one another's hand.... The Emperor Napoleon burns with impatience
    to make Prince Auersperg's acquaintance.' In a word, those gentlemen,
    Gascons indeed, so bewildered him with fine words, and he is so
    flattered by his rapidly established intimacy with the French marshals,
    and so dazzled by the sight of Murat's mantle and ostrich plumes, qu'il
    n'y voit que du feu, et oublie celui qu'il devait faire faire sur
    l'ennemi!" *(2) In spite of the animation of his speech, Bilibin did not
    forget to pause after this mot to give time for its due appreciation.
    "The French battalion rushes to the bridgehead, spikes the guns, and the
    bridge is taken! But what is best of all," he went on, his excitement
    subsiding under the delightful interest of his own story, "is that the
    sergeant in charge of the cannon which was to give the signal to fire
    the mines and blow up the bridge, this sergeant, seeing that the French
    troops were running onto the bridge, was about to fire, but Lannes
    stayed his hand. The sergeant, who was evidently wiser than his general,
    goes up to Auersperg and says: 'Prince, you are being deceived, here are
    the French!' Murat, seeing that all is lost if the sergeant is allowed
    to speak, turns to Auersperg with feigned astonishment (he is a true
    Gascon) and says: 'I don't recognize the world-famous Austrian
    discipline, if you allow a subordinate to address you like that!' It was
    a stroke of genius. Prince Auersperg feels his dignity at stake and
    orders the sergeant to be arrested. Come, you must own that this affair
    of the Thabor Bridge is delightful! It is not exactly stupidity, nor
    rascality...."
    
    * Bridgehead.
    
    * (2) That their fire gets into his eyes and he forgets that he ought to
    be firing at the enemy.
    
    "It may be treachery," said Prince Andrew, vividly imagining the gray
    overcoats, wounds, the smoke of gunpowder, the sounds of firing, and the
    glory that awaited him.
    
    "Not that either. That puts the court in too bad a light," replied
    Bilibin. "It's not treachery nor rascality nor stupidity: it is just as
    at Ulm... it is..."--he seemed to be trying to find the right
    expression. "C'est... c'est du Mack. Nous sommes mackes (It is... it is
    a bit of Mack. We are Macked)," he concluded, feeling that he had
    produced a good epigram, a fresh one that would be repeated. His
    hitherto puckered brow became smooth as a sign of pleasure, and with a
    slight smile he began to examine his nails.
    
    "Where are you off to?" he said suddenly to Prince Andrew who had risen
    and was going toward his room.
    
    "I am going away."
    
    "Where to?"
    
    "To the army."
    
    "But you meant to stay another two days?"
    
    "But now I am off at once."
    
    And Prince Andrew after giving directions about his departure went to
    his room.
    
    "Do you know, mon cher," said Bilibin following him, "I have been
    thinking about you. Why are you going?"
    
    And in proof of the conclusiveness of his opinion all the wrinkles
    vanished from his face.
    
    Prince Andrew looked inquiringly at him and gave no reply.
    
    "Why are you going? I know you think it your duty to gallop back to the
    army now that it is in danger. I understand that. Mon cher, it is
    heroism!"
    
    "Not at all," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "But as you are a philosopher, be a consistent one, look at the other
    side of the question and you will see that your duty, on the contrary,
    is to take care of yourself. Leave it to those who are no longer fit for
    anything else.... You have not been ordered to return and have not been
    dismissed from here; therefore, you can stay and go with us wherever our
    ill luck takes us. They say we are going to Olmutz, and Olmutz is a very
    decent town. You and I will travel comfortably in my caleche."
    
    "Do stop joking, Bilibin," cried Bolkonski.
    
    "I am speaking sincerely as a friend! Consider! Where and why are you
    going, when you might remain here? You are faced by one of two things,"
    and the skin over his left temple puckered, "either you will not reach
    your regiment before peace is concluded, or you will share defeat and
    disgrace with Kutuzov's whole army."
    
    And Bilibin unwrinkled his temple, feeling that the dilemma was
    insoluble.
    
    "I cannot argue about it," replied Prince Andrew coldly, but he thought:
    "I am going to save the army."
    
    "My dear fellow, you are a hero!" said Bilibin.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    That same night, having taken leave of the Minister of War, Bolkonski
    set off to rejoin the army, not knowing where he would find it and
    fearing to be captured by the French on the way to Krems.
    
    In Brunn everybody attached to the court was packing up, and the heavy
    baggage was already being dispatched to Olmutz. Near Hetzelsdorf Prince
    Andrew struck the high road along which the Russian army was moving with
    great haste and in the greatest disorder. The road was so obstructed
    with carts that it was impossible to get by in a carriage. Prince Andrew
    took a horse and a Cossack from a Cossack commander, and hungry and
    weary, making his way past the baggage wagons, rode in search of the
    commander-in-chief and of his own luggage. Very sinister reports of the
    position of the army reached him as he went along, and the appearance of
    the troops in their disorderly flight confirmed these rumors.
    
    "Cette armee russe que l'or de l'Angleterre a transportee des extremites
    de l'univers, nous allons lui faire eprouver le meme sort--(le sort de
    l'armee d'Ulm)." * He remembered these words in Bonaparte's address to
    his army at the beginning of the campaign, and they awoke in him
    astonishment at the genius of his hero, a feeling of wounded pride, and
    a hope of glory. "And should there be nothing left but to die?" he
    thought. "Well, if need be, I shall do it no worse than others."
    
    * "That Russian army which has been brought from the ends of the earth
    by English gold, we shall cause to share the same fate--(the fate of the
    army at Ulm)."
    
    He looked with disdain at the endless confused mass of detachments,
    carts, guns, artillery, and again baggage wagons and vehicles of all
    kinds overtaking one another and blocking the muddy road, three and
    sometimes four abreast. From all sides, behind and before, as far as ear
    could reach, there were the rattle of wheels, the creaking of carts and
    gun carriages, the tramp of horses, the crack of whips, shouts, the
    urging of horses, and the swearing of soldiers, orderlies, and officers.
    All along the sides of the road fallen horses were to be seen, some
    flayed, some not, and broken-down carts beside which solitary soldiers
    sat waiting for something, and again soldiers straggling from their
    companies, crowds of whom set off to the neighboring villages, or
    returned from them dragging sheep, fowls, hay, and bulging sacks. At
    each ascent or descent of the road the crowds were yet denser and the
    din of shouting more incessant. Soldiers floundering knee-deep in mud
    pushed the guns and wagons themselves. Whips cracked, hoofs slipped,
    traces broke, and lungs were strained with shouting. The officers
    directing the march rode backward and forward between the carts. Their
    voices were but feebly heard amid the uproar and one saw by their faces
    that they despaired of the possibility of checking this disorder.
    
    "Here is our dear Orthodox Russian army," thought Bolkonski, recalling
    Bilibin's words.
    
    Wishing to find out where the commander-in-chief was, he rode up to a
    convoy. Directly opposite to him came a strange one-horse vehicle,
    evidently rigged up by soldiers out of any available materials and
    looking like something between a cart, a cabriolet, and a caleche. A
    soldier was driving, and a woman enveloped in shawls sat behind the
    apron under the leather hood of the vehicle. Prince Andrew rode up and
    was just putting his question to a soldier when his attention was
    diverted by the desperate shrieks of the woman in the vehicle. An
    officer in charge of transport was beating the soldier who was driving
    the woman's vehicle for trying to get ahead of others, and the strokes
    of his whip fell on the apron of the equipage. The woman screamed
    piercingly. Seeing Prince Andrew she leaned out from behind the apron
    and, waving her thin arms from under the woolen shawl, cried:
    
    "Mr. Aide-de-camp! Mr. Aide-de-camp!... For heaven's sake... Protect me!
    What will become of us? I am the wife of the doctor of the Seventh
    Chasseurs.... They won't let us pass, we are left behind and have lost
    our people..."
    
    "I'll flatten you into a pancake!" shouted the angry officer to the
    soldier. "Turn back with your slut!"
    
    "Mr. Aide-de-camp! Help me!... What does it all mean?" screamed the
    doctor's wife.
    
    "Kindly let this cart pass. Don't you see it's a woman?" said Prince
    Andrew riding up to the officer.
    
    The officer glanced at him, and without replying turned again to the
    soldier. "I'll teach you to push on!... Back!"
    
    "Let them pass, I tell you!" repeated Prince Andrew, compressing his
    lips.
    
    "And who are you?" cried the officer, turning on him with tipsy rage,
    "who are you? Are you in command here? Eh? I am commander here, not you!
    Go back or I'll flatten you into a pancake," repeated he. This
    expression evidently pleased him.
    
    "That was a nice snub for the little aide-de-camp," came a voice from
    behind.
    
    Prince Andrew saw that the officer was in that state of senseless, tipsy
    rage when a man does not know what he is saying. He saw that his
    championship of the doctor's wife in her queer trap might expose him to
    what he dreaded more than anything in the world--to ridicule; but his
    instinct urged him on. Before the officer finished his sentence Prince
    Andrew, his face distorted with fury, rode up to him and raised his
    riding whip.
    
    "Kind...ly let--them--pass!"
    
    The officer flourished his arm and hastily rode away.
    
    "It's all the fault of these fellows on the staff that there's this
    disorder," he muttered. "Do as you like."
    
    Prince Andrew without lifting his eyes rode hastily away from the
    doctor's wife, who was calling him her deliverer, and recalling with a
    sense of disgust the minutest details of this humiliating scene he
    galloped on to the village where he was told that the commander-in-chief
    was.
    
    On reaching the village he dismounted and went to the nearest house,
    intending to rest if but for a moment, eat something, and try to sort
    out the stinging and tormenting thoughts that confused his mind. "This
    is a mob of scoundrels and not an army," he was thinking as he went up
    to the window of the first house, when a familiar voice called him by
    name.
    
    He turned round. Nesvitski's handsome face looked out of the little
    window. Nesvitski, moving his moist lips as he chewed something, and
    flourishing his arm, called him to enter.
    
    "Bolkonski! Bolkonski!... Don't you hear? Eh? Come quick..." he shouted.
    
    Entering the house, Prince Andrew saw Nesvitski and another adjutant
    having something to eat. They hastily turned round to him asking if he
    had any news. On their familiar faces he read agitation and alarm. This
    was particularly noticeable on Nesvitski's usually laughing countenance.
    
    "Where is the commander-in-chief?" asked Bolkonski.
    
    "Here, in that house," answered the adjutant.
    
    "Well, is it true that it's peace and capitulation?" asked Nesvitski.
    
    "I was going to ask you. I know nothing except that it was all I could
    do to get here."
    
    "And we, my dear boy! It's terrible! I was wrong to laugh at Mack, we're
    getting it still worse," said Nesvitski. "But sit down and have
    something to eat."
    
    "You won't be able to find either your baggage or anything else now,
    Prince. And God only knows where your man Peter is," said the other
    adjutant.
    
    "Where are headquarters?"
    
    "We are to spend the night in Znaim."
    
    "Well, I have got all I need into packs for two horses," said Nesvitski.
    "They've made up splendid packs for me--fit to cross the Bohemian
    mountains with. It's a bad lookout, old fellow! But what's the matter
    with you? You must be ill to shiver like that," he added, noticing that
    Prince Andrew winced as at an electric shock.
    
    "It's nothing," replied Prince Andrew.
    
    He had just remembered his recent encounter with the doctor's wife and
    the convoy officer.
    
    "What is the commander-in-chief doing here?" he asked.
    
    "I can't make out at all," said Nesvitski.
    
    "Well, all I can make out is that everything is abominable, abominable,
    quite abominable!" said Prince Andrew, and he went off to the house
    where the commander-in-chief was.
    
    Passing by Kutuzov's carriage and the exhausted saddle horses of his
    suite, with their Cossacks who were talking loudly together, Prince
    Andrew entered the passage. Kutuzov himself, he was told, was in the
    house with Prince Bagration and Weyrother. Weyrother was the Austrian
    general who had succeeded Schmidt. In the passage little Kozlovski was
    squatting on his heels in front of a clerk. The clerk, with cuffs turned
    up, was hastily writing at a tub turned bottom upwards. Kozlovski's face
    looked worn--he too had evidently not slept all night. He glanced at
    Prince Andrew and did not even nod to him.
    
    "Second line... have you written it?" he continued dictating to the
    clerk. "The Kiev Grenadiers, Podolian..."
    
    "One can't write so fast, your honor," said the clerk, glancing angrily
    and disrespectfully at Kozlovski.
    
    Through the door came the sounds of Kutuzov's voice, excited and
    dissatisfied, interrupted by another, an unfamiliar voice. From the
    sound of these voices, the inattentive way Kozlovski looked at him, the
    disrespectful manner of the exhausted clerk, the fact that the clerk and
    Kozlovski were squatting on the floor by a tub so near to the commander
    in chief, and from the noisy laughter of the Cossacks holding the horses
    near the window, Prince Andrew felt that something important and
    disastrous was about to happen.
    
    He turned to Kozlovski with urgent questions.
    
    "Immediately, Prince," said Kozlovski. "Dispositions for Bagration."
    
    "What about capitulation?"
    
    "Nothing of the sort. Orders are issued for a battle."
    
    Prince Andrew moved toward the door from whence voices were heard. Just
    as he was going to open it the sounds ceased, the door opened, and
    Kutuzov with his eagle nose and puffy face appeared in the doorway.
    Prince Andrew stood right in front of Kutuzov but the expression of the
    commander in chief's one sound eye showed him to be so preoccupied with
    thoughts and anxieties as to be oblivious of his presence. He looked
    straight at his adjutant's face without recognizing him.
    
    "Well, have you finished?" said he to Kozlovski.
    
    "One moment, your excellency."
    
    Bagration, a gaunt middle-aged man of medium height with a firm,
    impassive face of Oriental type, came out after the commander-in-chief.
    
    "I have the honor to present myself," repeated Prince Andrew rather
    loudly, handing Kutuzov an envelope.
    
    "Ah, from Vienna? Very good. Later, later!"
    
    Kutuzov went out into the porch with Bagration.
    
    "Well, good-by, Prince," said he to Bagration. "My blessing, and may
    Christ be with you in your great endeavor!"
    
    His face suddenly softened and tears came into his eyes. With his left
    hand he drew Bagration toward him, and with his right, on which he wore
    a ring, he made the sign of the cross over him with a gesture evidently
    habitual, offering his puffy cheek, but Bagration kissed him on the neck
    instead.
    
    "Christ be with you!" Kutuzov repeated and went toward his carriage.
    "Get in with me," said he to Bolkonski.
    
    "Your excellency, I should like to be of use here. Allow me to remain
    with Prince Bagration's detachment."
    
    "Get in," said Kutuzov, and noticing that Bolkonski still delayed, he
    added: "I need good officers myself, need them myself!"
    
    They got into the carriage and drove for a few minutes in silence.
    
    "There is still much, much before us," he said, as if with an old man's
    penetration he understood all that was passing in Bolkonski's mind. "If
    a tenth part of his detachment returns I shall thank God," he added as
    if speaking to himself.
    
    Prince Andrew glanced at Kutuzov's face only a foot distant from him and
    involuntarily noticed the carefully washed seams of the scar near his
    temple, where an Ismail bullet had pierced his skull, and the empty eye
    socket. "Yes, he has a right to speak so calmly of those men's death,"
    thought Bolkonski.
    
    "That is why I beg to be sent to that detachment," he said.
    
    Kutuzov did not reply. He seemed to have forgotten what he had been
    saying, and sat plunged in thought. Five minutes later, gently swaying
    on the soft springs of the carriage, he turned to Prince Andrew. There
    was not a trace of agitation on his face. With delicate irony he
    questioned Prince Andrew about the details of his interview with the
    Emperor, about the remarks he had heard at court concerning the Krems
    affair, and about some ladies they both knew.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    On November 1 Kutuzov had received, through a spy, news that the army he
    commanded was in an almost hopeless position. The spy reported that the
    French, after crossing the bridge at Vienna, were advancing in immense
    force upon Kutuzov's line of communication with the troops that were
    arriving from Russia. If Kutuzov decided to remain at Krems, Napoleon's
    army of one hundred and fifty thousand men would cut him off completely
    and surround his exhausted army of forty thousand, and he would find
    himself in the position of Mack at Ulm. If Kutuzov decided to abandon
    the road connecting him with the troops arriving from Russia, he would
    have to march with no road into unknown parts of the Bohemian mountains,
    defending himself against superior forces of the enemy and abandoning
    all hope of a junction with Buxhowden. If Kutuzov decided to retreat
    along the road from Krems to Olmutz, to unite with the troops arriving
    from Russia, he risked being forestalled on that road by the French who
    had crossed the Vienna bridge, and encumbered by his baggage and
    transport, having to accept battle on the march against an enemy three
    times as strong, who would hem him in from two sides.
    
    Kutuzov chose this latter course.
    
    The French, the spy reported, having crossed the Vienna bridge, were
    advancing by forced marches toward Znaim, which lay sixty-six miles off
    on the line of Kutuzov's retreat. If he reached Znaim before the French,
    there would be great hope of saving the army; to let the French
    forestall him at Znaim meant the exposure of his whole army to a
    disgrace such as that of Ulm, or to utter destruction. But to forestall
    the French with his whole army was impossible. The road for the French
    from Vienna to Znaim was shorter and better than the road for the
    Russians from Krems to Znaim.
    
    The night he received the news, Kutuzov sent Bagration's vanguard, four
    thousand strong, to the right across the hills from the Krems-Znaim to
    the Vienna-Znaim road. Bagration was to make this march without resting,
    and to halt facing Vienna with Znaim to his rear, and if he succeeded in
    forestalling the French he was to delay them as long as possible.
    Kutuzov himself with all his transport took the road to Znaim.
    
    Marching thirty miles that stormy night across roadless hills, with his
    hungry, ill-shod soldiers, and losing a third of his men as stragglers
    by the way, Bagration came out on the Vienna-Znaim road at Hollabrunn a
    few hours ahead of the French who were approaching Hollabrunn from
    Vienna. Kutuzov with his transport had still to march for some days
    before he could reach Znaim. Hence Bagration with his four thousand
    hungry, exhausted men would have to detain for days the whole enemy army
    that came upon him at Hollabrunn, which was clearly impossible. But a
    freak of fate made the impossible possible. The success of the trick
    that had placed the Vienna bridge in the hands of the French without a
    fight led Murat to try to deceive Kutuzov in a similar way. Meeting
    Bagration's weak detachment on the Znaim road he supposed it to be
    Kutuzov's whole army. To be able to crush it absolutely he awaited the
    arrival of the rest of the troops who were on their way from Vienna, and
    with this object offered a three days' truce on condition that both
    armies should remain in position without moving. Murat declared that
    negotiations for peace were already proceeding, and that he therefore
    offered this truce to avoid unnecessary bloodshed. Count Nostitz, the
    Austrian general occupying the advanced posts, believed Murat's emissary
    and retired, leaving Bagration's division exposed. Another emissary rode
    to the Russian line to announce the peace negotiations and to offer the
    Russian army the three days' truce. Bagration replied that he was not
    authorized either to accept or refuse a truce and sent his adjutant to
    Kutuzov to report the offer he had received.
    
    A truce was Kutuzov's sole chance of gaining time, giving Bagration's
    exhausted troops some rest, and letting the transport and heavy convoys
    (whose movements were concealed from the French) advance if but one
    stage nearer Znaim. The offer of a truce gave the only, and a quite
    unexpected, chance of saving the army. On receiving the news he
    immediately dispatched Adjutant General Wintzingerode, who was in
    attendance on him, to the enemy camp. Wintzingerode was not merely to
    agree to the truce but also to offer terms of capitulation, and
    meanwhile Kutuzov sent his adjutants back to hasten to the utmost the
    movements of the baggage trains of the entire army along the Krems-Znaim
    road. Bagration's exhausted and hungry detachment, which alone covered
    this movement of the transport and of the whole army, had to remain
    stationary in face of an enemy eight times as strong as itself.
    
    Kutuzov's expectations that the proposals of capitulation (which were in
    no way binding) might give time for part of the transport to pass, and
    also that Murat's mistake would very soon be discovered, proved correct.
    As soon as Bonaparte (who was at Schonbrunn, sixteen miles from
    Hollabrunn) received Murat's dispatch with the proposal of a truce and a
    capitulation, he detected a ruse and wrote the following letter to
    Murat:
    
    Schonbrunn, 25th Brumaire, 1805,
    
    at eight o'clock in the morning
    
    To PRINCE MURAT,
    
    I cannot find words to express to you my displeasure. You command only
    my advance guard, and have no right to arrange an armistice without my
    order. You are causing me to lose the fruits of a campaign. Break the
    armistice immediately and march on the enemy. Inform him that the
    general who signed that capitulation had no right to do so, and that no
    one but the Emperor of Russia has that right.
    
    If, however, the Emperor of Russia ratifies that convention, I will
    ratify it; but it is only a trick. March on, destroy the Russian
    army.... You are in a position to seize its baggage and artillery.
    
    The Russian Emperor's aide-de-camp is an impostor. Officers are nothing
    when they have no powers; this one had none.... The Austrians let
    themselves be tricked at the crossing of the Vienna bridge, you are
    letting yourself be tricked by an aide-de-camp of the Emperor.
    
    NAPOLEON
    
    Bonaparte's adjutant rode full gallop with this menacing letter to
    Murat. Bonaparte himself, not trusting to his generals, moved with all
    the Guards to the field of battle, afraid of letting a ready victim
    escape, and Bagration's four thousand men merrily lighted campfires,
    dried and warmed themselves, cooked their porridge for the first time
    for three days, and not one of them knew or imagined what was in store
    for him.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    Between three and four o'clock in the afternoon Prince Andrew, who had
    persisted in his request to Kutuzov, arrived at Grunth and reported
    himself to Bagration. Bonaparte's adjutant had not yet reached Murat's
    detachment and the battle had not yet begun. In Bagration's detachment
    no one knew anything of the general position of affairs. They talked of
    peace but did not believe in its possibility; others talked of a battle
    but also disbelieved in the nearness of an engagement. Bagration,
    knowing Bolkonski to be a favorite and trusted adjutant, received him
    with distinction and special marks of favor, explaining to him that
    there would probably be an engagement that day or the next, and giving
    him full liberty to remain with him during the battle or to join the
    rearguard and have an eye on the order of retreat, "which is also very
    important."
    
    "However, there will hardly be an engagement today," said Bagration as
    if to reassure Prince Andrew.
    
    "If he is one of the ordinary little staff dandies sent to earn a medal
    he can get his reward just as well in the rearguard, but if he wishes to
    stay with me, let him... he'll be of use here if he's a brave officer,"
    thought Bagration. Prince Andrew, without replying, asked the prince's
    permission to ride round the position to see the disposition of the
    forces, so as to know his bearings should he be sent to execute an
    order. The officer on duty, a handsome, elegantly dressed man with a
    diamond ring on his forefinger, who was fond of speaking French though
    he spoke it badly, offered to conduct Prince Andrew.
    
    On all sides they saw rain-soaked officers with dejected faces who
    seemed to be seeking something, and soldiers dragging doors, benches,
    and fencing from the village.
    
    "There now, Prince! We can't stop those fellows," said the staff officer
    pointing to the soldiers. "The officers don't keep them in hand. And
    there," he pointed to a sutler's tent, "they crowd in and sit. This
    morning I turned them all out and now look, it's full again. I must go
    there, Prince, and scare them a bit. It won't take a moment."
    
    "Yes, let's go in and I will get myself a roll and some cheese," said
    Prince Andrew who had not yet had time to eat anything.
    
    "Why didn't you mention it, Prince? I would have offered you something."
    
    They dismounted and entered the tent. Several officers, with flushed and
    weary faces, were sitting at the table eating and drinking.
    
    "Now what does this mean, gentlemen?" said the staff officer, in the
    reproachful tone of a man who has repeated the same thing more than
    once. "You know it won't do to leave your posts like this. The prince
    gave orders that no one should leave his post. Now you, Captain," and he
    turned to a thin, dirty little artillery officer who without his boots
    (he had given them to the canteen keeper to dry), in only his stockings,
    rose when they entered, smiling not altogether comfortably.
    
    "Well, aren't you ashamed of yourself, Captain Tushin?" he continued.
    "One would think that as an artillery officer you would set a good
    example, yet here you are without your boots! The alarm will be sounded
    and you'll be in a pretty position without your boots!" (The staff
    officer smiled.) "Kindly return to your posts, gentlemen, all of you,
    all!" he added in a tone of command.
    
    Prince Andrew smiled involuntarily as he looked at the artillery officer
    Tushin, who silent and smiling, shifting from one stockinged foot to the
    other, glanced inquiringly with his large, intelligent, kindly eyes from
    Prince Andrew to the staff officer.
    
    "The soldiers say it feels easier without boots," said Captain Tushin
    smiling shyly in his uncomfortable position, evidently wishing to adopt
    a jocular tone. But before he had finished he felt that his jest was
    unacceptable and had not come off. He grew confused.
    
    "Kindly return to your posts," said the staff officer trying to preserve
    his gravity.
    
    Prince Andrew glanced again at the artillery officer's small figure.
    There was something peculiar about it, quite unsoldierly, rather comic,
    but extremely attractive.
    
    The staff officer and Prince Andrew mounted their horses and rode on.
    
    Having ridden beyond the village, continually meeting and overtaking
    soldiers and officers of various regiments, they saw on their left some
    entrenchments being thrown up, the freshly dug clay of which showed up
    red. Several battalions of soldiers, in their shirt sleeves despite the
    cold wind, swarmed in these earthworks like a host of white ants;
    spadefuls of red clay were continually being thrown up from behind the
    bank by unseen hands. Prince Andrew and the officer rode up, looked at
    the entrenchment, and went on again. Just behind it they came upon some
    dozens of soldiers, continually replaced by others, who ran from the
    entrenchment. They had to hold their noses and put their horses to a
    trot to escape from the poisoned atmosphere of these latrines.
    
    "Voila l'agrement des camps, monsieur le Prince," * said the staff
    officer.
    
    * "This is a pleasure one gets in camp, Prince."
    
    They rode up the opposite hill. From there the French could already be
    seen. Prince Andrew stopped and began examining the position.
    
    "That's our battery," said the staff officer indicating the highest
    point. "It's in charge of the queer fellow we saw without his boots. You
    can see everything from there; let's go there, Prince."
    
    "Thank you very much, I will go on alone," said Prince Andrew, wishing
    to rid himself of this staff officer's company, "please don't trouble
    yourself further."
    
    The staff officer remained behind and Prince Andrew rode on alone.
    
    The farther forward and nearer the enemy he went, the more orderly and
    cheerful were the troops. The greatest disorder and depression had been
    in the baggage train he had passed that morning on the Znaim road seven
    miles away from the French. At Grunth also some apprehension and alarm
    could be felt, but the nearer Prince Andrew came to the French lines the
    more confident was the appearance of our troops. The soldiers in their
    greatcoats were ranged in lines, the sergeants major and company
    officers were counting the men, poking the last man in each section in
    the ribs and telling him to hold his hand up. Soldiers scattered over
    the whole place were dragging logs and brushwood and were building
    shelters with merry chatter and laughter; around the fires sat others,
    dressed and undressed, drying their shirts and leg bands or mending
    boots or overcoats and crowding round the boilers and porridge cookers.
    In one company dinner was ready, and the soldiers were gazing eagerly at
    the steaming boiler, waiting till the sample, which a quartermaster
    sergeant was carrying in a wooden bowl to an officer who sat on a log
    before his shelter, had been tasted.
    
    Another company, a lucky one for not all the companies had vodka,
    crowded round a pockmarked, broad-shouldered sergeant major who, tilting
    a keg, filled one after another the canteen lids held out to him. The
    soldiers lifted the canteen lids to their lips with reverential faces,
    emptied them, rolling the vodka in their mouths, and walked away from
    the sergeant major with brightened expressions, licking their lips and
    wiping them on the sleeves of their greatcoats. All their faces were as
    serene as if all this were happening at home awaiting peaceful
    encampment, and not within sight of the enemy before an action in which
    at least half of them would be left on the field. After passing a
    chasseur regiment and in the lines of the Kiev grenadiers--fine fellows
    busy with similar peaceful affairs--near the shelter of the regimental
    commander, higher than and different from the others, Prince Andrew came
    out in front of a platoon of grenadiers before whom lay a naked man. Two
    soldiers held him while two others were flourishing their switches and
    striking him regularly on his bare back. The man shrieked unnaturally. A
    stout major was pacing up and down the line, and regardless of the
    screams kept repeating:
    
    "It's a shame for a soldier to steal; a soldier must be honest,
    honorable, and brave, but if he robs his fellows there is no honor in
    him, he's a scoundrel. Go on! Go on!"
    
    So the swishing sound of the strokes, and the desperate but unnatural
    screams, continued.
    
    "Go on, go on!" said the major.
    
    A young officer with a bewildered and pained expression on his face
    stepped away from the man and looked round inquiringly at the adjutant
    as he rode by.
    
    Prince Andrew, having reached the front line, rode along it. Our front
    line and that of the enemy were far apart on the right and left flanks,
    but in the center where the men with a flag of truce had passed that
    morning, the lines were so near together that the men could see one
    another's faces and speak to one another. Besides the soldiers who
    formed the picket line on either side, there were many curious onlookers
    who, jesting and laughing, stared at their strange foreign enemies.
    
    Since early morning--despite an injunction not to approach the picket
    line--the officers had been unable to keep sight-seers away. The
    soldiers forming the picket line, like showmen exhibiting a curiosity,
    no longer looked at the French but paid attention to the sight-seers and
    grew weary waiting to be relieved. Prince Andrew halted to have a look
    at the French.
    
    "Look! Look there!" one soldier was saying to another, pointing to a
    Russian musketeer who had gone up to the picket line with an officer and
    was rapidly and excitedly talking to a French grenadier. "Hark to him
    jabbering! Fine, isn't it? It's all the Frenchy can do to keep up with
    him. There now, Sidorov!"
    
    "Wait a bit and listen. It's fine!" answered Sidorov, who was considered
    an adept at French.
    
    The soldier to whom the laughers referred was Dolokhov. Prince Andrew
    recognized him and stopped to listen to what he was saying. Dolokhov had
    come from the left flank where their regiment was stationed, with his
    captain.
    
    "Now then, go on, go on!" incited the officer, bending forward and
    trying not to lose a word of the speech which was incomprehensible to
    him. "More, please: more! What's he saying?"
    
    Dolokhov did not answer the captain; he had been drawn into a hot
    dispute with the French grenadier. They were naturally talking about the
    campaign. The Frenchman, confusing the Austrians with the Russians, was
    trying to prove that the Russians had surrendered and had fled all the
    way from Ulm, while Dolokhov maintained that the Russians had not
    surrendered but had beaten the French.
    
    "We have orders to drive you off here, and we shall drive you off," said
    Dolokhov.
    
    "Only take care you and your Cossacks are not all captured!" said the
    French grenadier.
    
    The French onlookers and listeners laughed.
    
    "We'll make you dance as we did under Suvorov...," * said Dolokhov.
    
    * "On vous fera danser."
    
    "Qu' est-ce qu'il chante?" * asked a Frenchman.
    
    * "What's he singing about?"
    
    "It's ancient history," said another, guessing that it referred to a
    former war. "The Emperor will teach your Suvara as he has taught the
    others..."
    
    "Bonaparte..." began Dolokhov, but the Frenchman interrupted him.
    
    "Not Bonaparte. He is the Emperor! Sacre nom...!" cried he angrily.
    
    "The devil skin your Emperor."
    
    And Dolokhov swore at him in coarse soldier's Russian and shouldering
    his musket walked away.
    
    "Let us go, Ivan Lukich," he said to the captain.
    
    "Ah, that's the way to talk French," said the picket soldiers. "Now,
    Sidorov, you have a try!"
    
    Sidorov, turning to the French, winked, and began to jabber meaningless
    sounds very fast: "Kari, mala, tafa, safi, muter, Kaska," he said,
    trying to give an expressive intonation to his voice.
    
    "Ho! ho! ho! Ha! ha! ha! ha! Ouh! ouh!" came peals of such healthy and
    good-humored laughter from the soldiers that it infected the French
    involuntarily, so much so that the only thing left to do seemed to be to
    unload the muskets, explode the ammunition, and all return home as
    quickly as possible.
    
    But the guns remained loaded, the loopholes in blockhouses and
    entrenchments looked out just as menacingly, and the unlimbered cannon
    confronted one another as before.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Having ridden round the whole line from right flank to left, Prince
    Andrew made his way up to the battery from which the staff officer had
    told him the whole field could be seen. Here he dismounted, and stopped
    beside the farthest of the four unlimbered cannon. Before the guns an
    artillery sentry was pacing up and down; he stood at attention when the
    officer arrived, but at a sign resumed his measured, monotonous pacing.
    Behind the guns were their limbers and still farther back picket ropes
    and artillerymen's bonfires. To the left, not far from the farthest
    cannon, was a small, newly constructed wattle shed from which came the
    sound of officers' voices in eager conversation.
    
    It was true that a view over nearly the whole Russian position and the
    greater part of the enemy's opened out from this battery. Just facing
    it, on the crest of the opposite hill, the village of Schon Grabern
    could be seen, and in three places to left and right the French troops
    amid the smoke of their campfires, the greater part of whom were
    evidently in the village itself and behind the hill. To the left from
    that village, amid the smoke, was something resembling a battery, but it
    was impossible to see it clearly with the naked eye. Our right flank was
    posted on a rather steep incline which dominated the French position.
    Our infantry were stationed there, and at the farthest point the
    dragoons. In the center, where Tushin's battery stood and from which
    Prince Andrew was surveying the position, was the easiest and most
    direct descent and ascent to the brook separating us from Schon Grabern.
    On the left our troops were close to a copse, in which smoked the
    bonfires of our infantry who were felling wood. The French line was
    wider than ours, and it was plain that they could easily outflank us on
    both sides. Behind our position was a steep and deep dip, making it
    difficult for artillery and cavalry to retire. Prince Andrew took out
    his notebook and, leaning on the cannon, sketched a plan of the
    position. He made some notes on two points, intending to mention them to
    Bagration. His idea was, first, to concentrate all the artillery in the
    center, and secondly, to withdraw the cavalry to the other side of the
    dip. Prince Andrew, being always near the commander in chief, closely
    following the mass movements and general orders, and constantly studying
    historical accounts of battles, involuntarily pictured to himself the
    course of events in the forthcoming action in broad outline. He imagined
    only important possibilities: "If the enemy attacks the right flank," he
    said to himself, "the Kiev grenadiers and the Podolsk chasseurs must
    hold their position till reserves from the center come up. In that case
    the dragoons could successfully make a flank counterattack. If they
    attack our center we, having the center battery on this high ground,
    shall withdraw the left flank under its cover, and retreat to the dip by
    echelons." So he reasoned.... All the time he had been beside the gun,
    he had heard the voices of the officers distinctly, but as often happens
    had not understood a word of what they were saying. Suddenly, however,
    he was struck by a voice coming from the shed, and its tone was so
    sincere that he could not but listen.
    
    "No, friend," said a pleasant and, as it seemed to Prince Andrew, a
    familiar voice, "what I say is that if it were possible to know what is
    beyond death, none of us would be afraid of it. That's so, friend."
    
    Another, a younger voice, interrupted him: "Afraid or not, you can't
    escape it anyhow."
    
    "All the same, one is afraid! Oh, you clever people," said a third manly
    voice interrupting them both. "Of course you artillery men are very
    wise, because you can take everything along with you--vodka and snacks."
    
    And the owner of the manly voice, evidently an infantry officer,
    laughed.
    
    "Yes, one is afraid," continued the first speaker, he of the familiar
    voice. "One is afraid of the unknown, that's what it is. Whatever we may
    say about the soul going to the sky... we know there is no sky but only
    an atmosphere."
    
    The manly voice again interrupted the artillery officer.
    
    "Well, stand us some of your herb vodka, Tushin," it said.
    
    "Why," thought Prince Andrew, "that's the captain who stood up in the
    sutler's hut without his boots." He recognized the agreeable,
    philosophizing voice with pleasure.
    
    "Some herb vodka? Certainly!" said Tushin. "But still, to conceive a
    future life..."
    
    He did not finish. Just then there was a whistle in the air; nearer and
    nearer, faster and louder, louder and faster, a cannon ball, as if it
    had not finished saying what was necessary, thudded into the ground near
    the shed with super human force, throwing up a mass of earth. The ground
    seemed to groan at the terrible impact.
    
    And immediately Tushin, with a short pipe in the corner of his mouth and
    his kind, intelligent face rather pale, rushed out of the shed followed
    by the owner of the manly voice, a dashing infantry officer who hurried
    off to his company, buttoning up his coat as he ran.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    Mounting his horse again Prince Andrew lingered with the battery,
    looking at the puff from the gun that had sent the ball. His eyes ran
    rapidly over the wide space, but he only saw that the hitherto
    motionless masses of the French now swayed and that there really was a
    battery to their left. The smoke above it had not yet dispersed. Two
    mounted Frenchmen, probably adjutants, were galloping up the hill. A
    small but distinctly visible enemy column was moving down the hill,
    probably to strengthen the front line. The smoke of the first shot had
    not yet dispersed before another puff appeared, followed by a report.
    The battle had begun! Prince Andrew turned his horse and galloped back
    to Grunth to find Prince Bagration. He heard the cannonade behind him
    growing louder and more frequent. Evidently our guns had begun to reply.
    From the bottom of the slope, where the parleys had taken place, came
    the report of musketry.
    
    Lemarrois had just arrived at a gallop with Bonaparte's stern letter,
    and Murat, humiliated and anxious to expiate his fault, had at once
    moved his forces to attack the center and outflank both the Russian
    wings, hoping before evening and before the arrival of the Emperor to
    crush the contemptible detachment that stood before him.
    
    "It has begun. Here it is!" thought Prince Andrew, feeling the blood
    rush to his heart. "But where and how will my Toulon present itself?"
    
    Passing between the companies that had been eating porridge and drinking
    vodka a quarter of an hour before, he saw everywhere the same rapid
    movement of soldiers forming ranks and getting their muskets ready, and
    on all their faces he recognized the same eagerness that filled his
    heart. "It has begun! Here it is, dreadful but enjoyable!" was what the
    face of each soldier and each officer seemed to say.
    
    Before he had reached the embankments that were being thrown up, he saw,
    in the light of the dull autumn evening, mounted men coming toward him.
    The foremost, wearing a Cossack cloak and lambskin cap and riding a
    white horse, was Prince Bagration. Prince Andrew stopped, waiting for
    him to come up; Prince Bagration reined in his horse and recognizing
    Prince Andrew nodded to him. He still looked ahead while Prince Andrew
    told him what he had seen.
    
    The feeling, "It has begun! Here it is!" was seen even on Prince
    Bagration's hard brown face with its half-closed, dull, sleepy eyes.
    Prince Andrew gazed with anxious curiosity at that impassive face and
    wished he could tell what, if anything, this man was thinking and
    feeling at that moment. "Is there anything at all behind that impassive
    face?" Prince Andrew asked himself as he looked. Prince Bagration bent
    his head in sign of agreement with what Prince Andrew told him, and
    said, "Very good!" in a tone that seemed to imply that everything that
    took place and was reported to him was exactly what he had foreseen.
    Prince Andrew, out of breath with his rapid ride, spoke quickly. Prince
    Bagration, uttering his words with an Oriental accent, spoke
    particularly slowly, as if to impress the fact that there was no need to
    hurry. However, he put his horse to a trot in the direction of Tushin's
    battery. Prince Andrew followed with the suite. Behind Prince Bagration
    rode an officer of the suite, the prince's personal adjutant, Zherkov,
    an orderly officer, the staff officer on duty, riding a fine bobtailed
    horse, and a civilian--an accountant who had asked permission to be
    present at the battle out of curiosity. The accountant, a stout, full-
    faced man, looked around him with a naive smile of satisfaction and
    presented a strange appearance among the hussars, Cossacks, and
    adjutants, in his camlet coat, as he jolted on his horse with a convoy
    officer's saddle.
    
    "He wants to see a battle," said Zherkov to Bolkonski, pointing to the
    accountant, "but he feels a pain in the pit of his stomach already."
    
    "Oh, leave off!" said the accountant with a beaming but rather cunning
    smile, as if flattered at being made the subject of Zherkov's joke, and
    purposely trying to appear stupider than he really was.
    
    "It is very strange, mon Monsieur Prince," said the staff officer. (He
    remembered that in French there is some peculiar way of addressing a
    prince, but could not get it quite right.)
    
    By this time they were all approaching Tushin's battery, and a ball
    struck the ground in front of them.
    
    "What's that that has fallen?" asked the accountant with a naive smile.
    
    "A French pancake," answered Zherkov.
    
    "So that's what they hit with?" asked the accountant. "How awful!"
    
    He seemed to swell with satisfaction. He had hardly finished speaking
    when they again heard an unexpectedly violent whistling which suddenly
    ended with a thud into something soft... f-f-flop! and a Cossack, riding
    a little to their right and behind the accountant, crashed to earth with
    his horse. Zherkov and the staff officer bent over their saddles and
    turned their horses away. The accountant stopped, facing the Cossack,
    and examined him with attentive curiosity. The Cossack was dead, but the
    horse still struggled.
    
    Prince Bagration screwed up his eyes, looked round, and, seeing the
    cause of the confusion, turned away with indifference, as if to say, "Is
    it worth while noticing trifles?" He reined in his horse with the care
    of a skillful rider and, slightly bending over, disengaged his saber
    which had caught in his cloak. It was an old-fashioned saber of a kind
    no longer in general use. Prince Andrew remembered the story of Suvorov
    giving his saber to Bagration in Italy, and the recollection was
    particularly pleasant at that moment. They had reached the battery at
    which Prince Andrew had been when he examined the battlefield.
    
    "Whose company?" asked Prince Bagration of an artilleryman standing by
    the ammunition wagon.
    
    He asked, "Whose company?" but he really meant, "Are you frightened
    here?" and the artilleryman understood him.
    
    "Captain Tushin's, your excellency!" shouted the red-haired, freckled
    gunner in a merry voice, standing to attention.
    
    "Yes, yes," muttered Bagration as if considering something, and he rode
    past the limbers to the farthest cannon.
    
    As he approached, a ringing shot issued from it deafening him and his
    suite, and in the smoke that suddenly surrounded the gun they could see
    the gunners who had seized it straining to roll it quickly back to its
    former position. A huge, broad-shouldered gunner, Number One, holding a
    mop, his legs far apart, sprang to the wheel; while Number Two with a
    trembling hand placed a charge in the cannon's mouth. The short, round-
    shouldered Captain Tushin, stumbling over the tail of the gun carriage,
    moved forward and, not noticing the general, looked out shading his eyes
    with his small hand.
    
    "Lift it two lines more and it will be just right," cried he in a feeble
    voice to which he tried to impart a dashing note, ill-suited to his weak
    figure. "Number Two!" he squeaked. "Fire, Medvedev!"
    
    Bagration called to him, and Tushin, raising three fingers to his cap
    with a bashful and awkward gesture not at all like a military salute but
    like a priest's benediction, approached the general. Though Tushin's
    guns had been intended to cannonade the valley, he was firing incendiary
    balls at the village of Schon Grabern visible just opposite, in front of
    which large masses of French were advancing.
    
    No one had given Tushin orders where and at what to fire, but after
    consulting his sergeant major, Zakharchenko, for whom he had great
    respect, he had decided that it would be a good thing to set fire to the
    village. "Very good!" said Bagration in reply to the officer's report,
    and began deliberately to examine the whole battlefield extended before
    him. The French had advanced nearest on our right. Below the height on
    which the Kiev regiment was stationed, in the hollow where the rivulet
    flowed, the soul-stirring rolling and crackling of musketry was heard,
    and much farther to the right beyond the dragoons, the officer of the
    suite pointed out to Bagration a French column that was outflanking us.
    To the left the horizon bounded by the adjacent wood. Prince Bagration
    ordered two battalions from the center to be sent to reinforce the right
    flank. The officer of the suite ventured to remark to the prince that if
    these battalions went away, the guns would remain without support.
    Prince Bagration turned to the officer and with his dull eyes looked at
    him in silence. It seemed to Prince Andrew that the officer's remark was
    just and that really no answer could be made to it. But at that moment
    an adjutant galloped up with a message from the commander of the
    regiment in the hollow and news that immense masses of the French were
    coming down upon them and that his regiment was in disorder and was
    retreating upon the Kiev grenadiers. Prince Bagration bowed his head in
    sign of assent and approval. He rode off at a walk to the right and sent
    an adjutant to the dragoons with orders to attack the French. But this
    adjutant returned half an hour later with the news that the commander of
    the dragoons had already retreated beyond the dip in the ground, as a
    heavy fire had been opened on him and he was losing men uselessly, and
    so had hastened to throw some sharpshooters into the wood.
    
    "Very good!" said Bagration.
    
    As he was leaving the battery, firing was heard on the left also, and as
    it was too far to the left flank for him to have time to go there
    himself, Prince Bagration sent Zherkov to tell the general in command
    (the one who had paraded his regiment before Kutuzov at Braunau) that he
    must retreat as quickly as possible behind the hollow in the rear, as
    the right flank would probably not be able to withstand the enemy's
    attack very long. About Tushin and the battalion that had been in
    support of his battery all was forgotten. Prince Andrew listened
    attentively to Bagration's colloquies with the commanding officers and
    the orders he gave them and, to his surprise, found that no orders were
    really given, but that Prince Bagration tried to make it appear that
    everything done by necessity, by accident, or by the will of subordinate
    commanders was done, if not by his direct command, at least in accord
    with his intentions. Prince Andrew noticed, however, that though what
    happened was due to chance and was independent of the commander's will,
    owing to the tact Bagration showed, his presence was very valuable.
    Officers who approached him with disturbed countenances became calm;
    soldiers and officers greeted him gaily, grew more cheerful in his
    presence, and were evidently anxious to display their courage before
    him.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    Prince Bagration, having reached the highest point of our right flank,
    began riding downhill to where the roll of musketry was heard but where
    on account of the smoke nothing could be seen. The nearer they got to
    the hollow the less they could see but the more they felt the nearness
    of the actual battlefield. They began to meet wounded men. One with a
    bleeding head and no cap was being dragged along by two soldiers who
    supported him under the arms. There was a gurgle in his throat and he
    was spitting blood. A bullet had evidently hit him in the throat or
    mouth. Another was walking sturdily by himself but without his musket,
    groaning aloud and swinging his arm which had just been hurt, while
    blood from it was streaming over his greatcoat as from a bottle. He had
    that moment been wounded and his face showed fear rather than suffering.
    Crossing a road they descended a steep incline and saw several men lying
    on the ground; they also met a crowd of soldiers some of whom were
    unwounded. The soldiers were ascending the hill breathing heavily, and
    despite the general's presence were talking loudly and gesticulating. In
    front of them rows of gray cloaks were already visible through the
    smoke, and an officer catching sight of Bagration rushed shouting after
    the crowd of retreating soldiers, ordering them back. Bagration rode up
    to the ranks along which shots crackled now here and now there, drowning
    the sound of voices and the shouts of command. The whole air reeked with
    smoke. The excited faces of the soldiers were blackened with it. Some
    were using their ramrods, others putting powder on the touchpans or
    taking charges from their pouches, while others were firing, though who
    they were firing at could not be seen for the smoke which there was no
    wind to carry away. A pleasant humming and whistling of bullets were
    often heard. "What is this?" thought Prince Andrew approaching the crowd
    of soldiers. "It can't be an attack, for they are not moving; it can't
    be a square--for they are not drawn up for that."
    
    The commander of the regiment, a thin, feeble-looking old man with a
    pleasant smile--his eyelids drooping more than half over his old eyes,
    giving him a mild expression, rode up to Bagration and welcomed him as a
    host welcomes an honored guest. He reported that his regiment had been
    attacked by French cavalry and that, though the attack had been
    repulsed, he had lost more than half his men. He said the attack had
    been repulsed, employing this military term to describe what had
    occurred to his regiment, but in reality he did not himself know what
    had happened during that half-hour to the troops entrusted to him, and
    could not say with certainty whether the attack had been repulsed or his
    regiment had been broken up. All he knew was that at the commencement of
    the action balls and shells began flying all over his regiment and
    hitting men and that afterwards someone had shouted "Cavalry!" and our
    men had begun firing. They were still firing, not at the cavalry which
    had disappeared, but at French infantry who had come into the hollow and
    were firing at our men. Prince Bagration bowed his head as a sign that
    this was exactly what he had desired and expected. Turning to his
    adjutant he ordered him to bring down the two battalions of the Sixth
    Chasseurs whom they had just passed. Prince Andrew was struck by the
    changed expression on Prince Bagration's face at this moment. It
    expressed the concentrated and happy resolution you see on the face of a
    man who on a hot day takes a final run before plunging into the water.
    The dull, sleepy expression was no longer there, nor the affectation of
    profound thought. The round, steady, hawk's eyes looked before him
    eagerly and rather disdainfully, not resting on anything although his
    movements were still slow and measured.
    
    The commander of the regiment turned to Prince Bagration, entreating him
    to go back as it was too dangerous to remain where they were. "Please,
    your excellency, for God's sake!" he kept saying, glancing for support
    at an officer of the suite who turned away from him. "There, you see!"
    and he drew attention to the bullets whistling, singing, and hissing
    continually around them. He spoke in the tone of entreaty and reproach
    that a carpenter uses to a gentleman who has picked up an ax: "We are
    used to it, but you, sir, will blister your hands." He spoke as if those
    bullets could not kill him, and his half-closed eyes gave still more
    persuasiveness to his words. The staff officer joined in the colonel's
    appeals, but Bagration did not reply; he only gave an order to cease
    firing and re-form, so as to give room for the two approaching
    battalions. While he was speaking, the curtain of smoke that had
    concealed the hollow, driven by a rising wind, began to move from right
    to left as if drawn by an invisible hand, and the hill opposite, with
    the French moving about on it, opened out before them. All eyes fastened
    involuntarily on this French column advancing against them and winding
    down over the uneven ground. One could already see the soldiers' shaggy
    caps, distinguish the officers from the men, and see the standard
    flapping against its staff.
    
    "They march splendidly," remarked someone in Bagration's suite.
    
    The head of the column had already descended into the hollow. The clash
    would take place on this side of it...
    
    The remains of our regiment which had been in action rapidly formed up
    and moved to the right; from behind it, dispersing the laggards, came
    two battalions of the Sixth Chasseurs in fine order. Before they had
    reached Bagration, the weighty tread of the mass of men marching in step
    could be heard. On their left flank, nearest to Bagration, marched a
    company commander, a fine round-faced man, with a stupid and happy
    expression--the same man who had rushed out of the wattle shed. At that
    moment he was clearly thinking of nothing but how dashing a fellow he
    would appear as he passed the commander.
    
    With the self-satisfaction of a man on parade, he stepped lightly with
    his muscular legs as if sailing along, stretching himself to his full
    height without the smallest effort, his ease contrasting with the heavy
    tread of the soldiers who were keeping step with him. He carried close
    to his leg a narrow unsheathed sword (small, curved, and not like a real
    weapon) and looked now at the superior officers and now back at the men
    without losing step, his whole powerful body turning flexibly. It was as
    if all the powers of his soul were concentrated on passing the commander
    in the best possible manner, and feeling that he was doing it well he
    was happy. "Left... left... left..." he seemed to repeat to himself at
    each alternate step; and in time to this, with stern but varied faces,
    the wall of soldiers burdened with knapsacks and muskets marched in
    step, and each one of these hundreds of soldiers seemed to be repeating
    to himself at each alternate step, "Left... left... left..." A fat major
    skirted a bush, puffing and falling out of step; a soldier who had
    fallen behind, his face showing alarm at his defection, ran at a trot,
    panting to catch up with his company. A cannon ball, cleaving the air,
    flew over the heads of Bagration and his suite, and fell into the column
    to the measure of "Left... left!" "Close up!" came the company
    commander's voice in jaunty tones. The soldiers passed in a semicircle
    round something where the ball had fallen, and an old trooper on the
    flank, a noncommissioned officer who had stopped beside the dead men,
    ran to catch up his line and, falling into step with a hop, looked back
    angrily, and through the ominous silence and the regular tramp of feet
    beating the ground in unison, one seemed to hear left... left... left.
    
    "Well done, lads!" said Prince Bagration.
    
    "Glad to do our best, your ex'len-lency!" came a confused shout from the
    ranks. A morose soldier marching on the left turned his eyes on
    Bagration as he shouted, with an expression that seemed to say: "We know
    that ourselves!" Another, without looking round, as though fearing to
    relax, shouted with his mouth wide open and passed on.
    
    The order was given to halt and down knapsacks.
    
    Bagration rode round the ranks that had marched past him and dismounted.
    He gave the reins to a Cossack, took off and handed over his felt coat,
    stretched his legs, and set his cap straight. The head of the French
    column, with its officers leading, appeared from below the hill.
    
    "Forward, with God!" said Bagration, in a resolute, sonorous voice,
    turning for a moment to the front line, and slightly swinging his arms,
    he went forward uneasily over the rough field with the awkward gait of a
    cavalryman. Prince Andrew felt that an invisible power was leading him
    forward, and experienced great happiness.
    
    The French were already near. Prince Andrew, walking beside Bagration,
    could clearly distinguish their bandoliers, red epaulets, and even their
    faces. (He distinctly saw an old French officer who, with gaitered legs
    and turned-out toes, climbed the hill with difficulty.) Prince Bagration
    gave no further orders and silently continued to walk on in front of the
    ranks. Suddenly one shot after another rang out from the French, smoke
    appeared all along their uneven ranks, and musket shots sounded. Several
    of our men fell, among them the round-faced officer who had marched so
    gaily and complacently. But at the moment the first report was heard,
    Bagration looked round and shouted, "Hurrah!"
    
    "Hurrah--ah!--ah!" rang a long-drawn shout from our ranks, and passing
    Bagration and racing one another they rushed in an irregular but joyous
    and eager crowd down the hill at their disordered foe.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    The attack of the Sixth Chasseurs secured the retreat of our right
    flank. In the center Tushin's forgotten battery, which had managed to
    set fire to the Schon Grabern village, delayed the French advance. The
    French were putting out the fire which the wind was spreading, and thus
    gave us time to retreat. The retirement of the center to the other side
    of the dip in the ground at the rear was hurried and noisy, but the
    different companies did not get mixed. But our left--which consisted of
    the Azov and Podolsk infantry and the Pavlograd hussars--was
    simultaneously attacked and outflanked by superior French forces under
    Lannes and was thrown into confusion. Bagration had sent Zherkov to the
    general commanding that left flank with orders to retreat immediately.
    
    Zherkov, not removing his hand from his cap, turned his horse about and
    galloped off. But no sooner had he left Bagration than his courage
    failed him. He was seized by panic and could not go where it was
    dangerous.
    
    Having reached the left flank, instead of going to the front where the
    firing was, he began to look for the general and his staff where they
    could not possibly be, and so did not deliver the order.
    
    The command of the left flank belonged by seniority to the commander of
    the regiment Kutuzov had reviewed at Braunau and in which Dolokhov was
    serving as a private. But the command of the extreme left flank had been
    assigned to the commander of the Pavlograd regiment in which Rostov was
    serving, and a misunderstanding arose. The two commanders were much
    exasperated with one another and, long after the action had begun on the
    right flank and the French were already advancing, were engaged in
    discussion with the sole object of offending one another. But the
    regiments, both cavalry and infantry, were by no means ready for the
    impending action. From privates to general they were not expecting a
    battle and were engaged in peaceful occupations, the cavalry feeding the
    horses and the infantry collecting wood.
    
    "He higher iss dan I in rank," said the German colonel of the hussars,
    flushing and addressing an adjutant who had ridden up, "so let him do
    what he vill, but I cannot sacrifice my hussars... Bugler, sount ze
    retreat!"
    
    But haste was becoming imperative. Cannon and musketry, mingling
    together, thundered on the right and in the center, while the capotes of
    Lannes' sharpshooters were already seen crossing the milldam and forming
    up within twice the range of a musket shot. The general in command of
    the infantry went toward his horse with jerky steps, and having mounted
    drew himself up very straight and tall and rode to the Pavlograd
    commander. The commanders met with polite bows but with secret
    malevolence in their hearts.
    
    "Once again, Colonel," said the general, "I can't leave half my men in
    the wood. I beg of you, I beg of you," he repeated, "to occupy the
    position and prepare for an attack."
    
    "I peg of you yourself not to mix in vot is not your business!" suddenly
    replied the irate colonel. "If you vere in the cavalry..."
    
    "I am not in the cavalry, Colonel, but I am a Russian general and if you
    are not aware of the fact..."
    
    "Quite avare, your excellency," suddenly shouted the colonel, touching
    his horse and turning purple in the face. "Vill you be so goot to come
    to ze front and see dat zis position iss no goot? I don't vish to
    destroy my men for your pleasure!"
    
    "You forget yourself, Colonel. I am not considering my own pleasure and
    I won't allow it to be said!"
    
    Taking the colonel's outburst as a challenge to his courage, the general
    expanded his chest and rode, frowning, beside him to the front line, as
    if their differences would be settled there amongst the bullets. They
    reached the front, several bullets sped over them, and they halted in
    silence. There was nothing fresh to be seen from the line, for from
    where they had been before it had been evident that it was impossible
    for cavalry to act among the bushes and broken ground, as well as that
    the French were outflanking our left. The general and colonel looked
    sternly and significantly at one another like two fighting cocks
    preparing for battle, each vainly trying to detect signs of cowardice in
    the other. Both passed the examination successfully. As there was
    nothing to be said, and neither wished to give occasion for it to be
    alleged that he had been the first to leave the range of fire, they
    would have remained there for a long time testing each other's courage
    had it not been that just then they heard the rattle of musketry and a
    muffled shout almost behind them in the wood. The French had attacked
    the men collecting wood in the copse. It was no longer possible for the
    hussars to retreat with the infantry. They were cut off from the line of
    retreat on the left by the French. However inconvenient the position, it
    was now necessary to attack in order to cut a way through for
    themselves.
    
    The squadron in which Rostov was serving had scarcely time to mount
    before it was halted facing the enemy. Again, as at the Enns bridge,
    there was nothing between the squadron and the enemy, and again that
    terrible dividing line of uncertainty and fear--resembling the line
    separating the living from the dead--lay between them. All were
    conscious of this unseen line, and the question whether they would cross
    it or not, and how they would cross it, agitated them all.
    
    The colonel rode to the front, angrily gave some reply to questions put
    to him by the officers, and, like a man desperately insisting on having
    his own way, gave an order. No one said anything definite, but the rumor
    of an attack spread through the squadron. The command to form up rang
    out and the sabers whizzed as they were drawn from their scabbards.
    Still no one moved. The troops of the left flank, infantry and hussars
    alike, felt that the commander did not himself know what to do, and this
    irresolution communicated itself to the men.
    
    "If only they would be quick!" thought Rostov, feeling that at last the
    time had come to experience the joy of an attack of which he had so
    often heard from his fellow hussars.
    
    "Fo'ward, with God, lads!" rang out Denisov's voice. "At a twot
    fo'ward!"
    
    The horses' croups began to sway in the front line. Rook pulled at the
    reins and started of his own accord.
    
    Before him, on the right, Rostov saw the front lines of his hussars and
    still farther ahead a dark line which he could not see distinctly but
    took to be the enemy. Shots could be heard, but some way off.
    
    "Faster!" came the word of command, and Rostov felt Rook's flanks
    drooping as he broke into a gallop.
    
    Rostov anticipated his horse's movements and became more and more
    elated. He had noticed a solitary tree ahead of him. This tree had been
    in the middle of the line that had seemed so terrible--and now he had
    crossed that line and not only was there nothing terrible, but
    everything was becoming more and more happy and animated. "Oh, how I
    will slash at him!" thought Rostov, gripping the hilt of his saber.
    
    "Hur-a-a-a-ah!" came a roar of voices. "Let anyone come my way now,"
    thought Rostov driving his spurs into Rook and letting him go at a full
    gallop so that he outstripped the others. Ahead, the enemy was already
    visible. Suddenly something like a birch broom seemed to sweep over the
    squadron. Rostov raised his saber, ready to strike, but at that instant
    the trooper Nikitenko, who was galloping ahead, shot away from him, and
    Rostov felt as in a dream that he continued to be carried forward with
    unnatural speed but yet stayed on the same spot. From behind him
    Bondarchuk, an hussar he knew, jolted against him and looked angrily at
    him. Bondarchuk's horse swerved and galloped past.
    
    "How is it I am not moving? I have fallen, I am killed!" Rostov asked
    and answered at the same instant. He was alone in the middle of a field.
    Instead of the moving horses and hussars' backs, he saw nothing before
    him but the motionless earth and the stubble around him. There was warm
    blood under his arm. "No, I am wounded and the horse is killed." Rook
    tried to rise on his forelegs but fell back, pinning his rider's leg.
    Blood was flowing from his head; he struggled but could not rise. Rostov
    also tried to rise but fell back, his sabretache having become entangled
    in the saddle. Where our men were, and where the French, he did not
    know. There was no one near.
    
    Having disentangled his leg, he rose. "Where, on which side, was now the
    line that had so sharply divided the two armies?" he asked himself and
    could not answer. "Can something bad have happened to me?" he wondered
    as he got up: and at that moment he felt that something superfluous was
    hanging on his benumbed left arm. The wrist felt as if it were not his.
    He examined his hand carefully, vainly trying to find blood on it. "Ah,
    here are people coming," he thought joyfully, seeing some men running
    toward him. "They will help me!" In front came a man wearing a strange
    shako and a blue cloak, swarthy, sunburned, and with a hooked nose. Then
    came two more, and many more running behind. One of them said something
    strange, not in Russian. In among the hindmost of these men wearing
    similar shakos was a Russian hussar. He was being held by the arms and
    his horse was being led behind him.
    
    "It must be one of ours, a prisoner. Yes. Can it be that they will take
    me too? Who are these men?" thought Rostov, scarcely believing his eyes.
    "Can they be French?" He looked at the approaching Frenchmen, and though
    but a moment before he had been galloping to get at them and hack them
    to pieces, their proximity now seemed so awful that he could not believe
    his eyes. "Who are they? Why are they running? Can they be coming at me?
    And why? To kill me? Me whom everyone is so fond of?" He remembered his
    mother's love for him, and his family's, and his friends', and the
    enemy's intention to kill him seemed impossible. "But perhaps they may
    do it!" For more than ten seconds he stood not moving from the spot or
    realizing the situation. The foremost Frenchman, the one with the hooked
    nose, was already so close that the expression of his face could be
    seen. And the excited, alien face of that man, his bayonet hanging down,
    holding his breath, and running so lightly, frightened Rostov. He seized
    his pistol and, instead of firing it, flung it at the Frenchman and ran
    with all his might toward the bushes. He did not now run with the
    feeling of doubt and conflict with which he had trodden the Enns bridge,
    but with the feeling of a hare fleeing from the hounds. One single
    sentiment, that of fear for his young and happy life, possessed his
    whole being. Rapidly leaping the furrows, he fled across the field with
    the impetuosity he used to show at catchplay, now and then turning his
    good-natured, pale, young face to look back. A shudder of terror went
    through him: "No, better not look," he thought, but having reached the
    bushes he glanced round once more. The French had fallen behind, and
    just as he looked round the first man changed his run to a walk and,
    turning, shouted something loudly to a comrade farther back. Rostov
    paused. "No, there's some mistake," thought he. "They can't have wanted
    to kill me." But at the same time, his left arm felt as heavy as if a
    seventy-pound weight were tied to it. He could run no more. The
    Frenchman also stopped and took aim. Rostov closed his eyes and stooped
    down. One bullet and then another whistled past him. He mustered his
    last remaining strength, took hold of his left hand with his right, and
    reached the bushes. Behind these were some Russian sharpshooters.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    The infantry regiments that had been caught unawares in the outskirts of
    the wood ran out of it, the different companies getting mixed, and
    retreated as a disorderly crowd. One soldier, in his fear, uttered the
    senseless cry, "Cut off!" that is so terrible in battle, and that word
    infected the whole crowd with a feeling of panic.
    
    "Surrounded! Cut off? We're lost!" shouted the fugitives.
    
    The moment he heard the firing and the cry from behind, the general
    realized that something dreadful had happened to his regiment, and the
    thought that he, an exemplary officer of many years' service who had
    never been to blame, might be held responsible at headquarters for
    negligence or inefficiency so staggered him that, forgetting the
    recalcitrant cavalry colonel, his own dignity as a general, and above
    all quite forgetting the danger and all regard for self-preservation, he
    clutched the crupper of his saddle and, spurring his horse, galloped to
    the regiment under a hail of bullets which fell around, but fortunately
    missed him. His one desire was to know what was happening and at any
    cost correct, or remedy, the mistake if he had made one, so that he, an
    exemplary officer of twenty-two years' service, who had never been
    censured, should not be held to blame.
    
    Having galloped safely through the French, he reached a field behind the
    copse across which our men, regardless of orders, were running and
    descending the valley. That moment of moral hesitation which decides the
    fate of battles had arrived. Would this disorderly crowd of soldiers
    attend to the voice of their commander, or would they, disregarding him,
    continue their flight? Despite his desperate shouts that used to seem so
    terrible to the soldiers, despite his furious purple countenance
    distorted out of all likeness to his former self, and the flourishing of
    his saber, the soldiers all continued to run, talking, firing into the
    air, and disobeying orders. The moral hesitation which decided the fate
    of battles was evidently culminating in a panic.
    
    The general had a fit of coughing as a result of shouting and of the
    powder smoke and stopped in despair. Everything seemed lost. But at that
    moment the French who were attacking, suddenly and without any apparent
    reason, ran back and disappeared from the outskirts, and Russian
    sharpshooters showed themselves in the copse. It was Timokhin's company,
    which alone had maintained its order in the wood and, having lain in
    ambush in a ditch, now attacked the French unexpectedly. Timokhin, armed
    only with a sword, had rushed at the enemy with such a desperate cry and
    such mad, drunken determination that, taken by surprise, the French had
    thrown down their muskets and run. Dolokhov, running beside Timokhin,
    killed a Frenchman at close quarters and was the first to seize the
    surrendering French officer by his collar. Our fugitives returned, the
    battalions re-formed, and the French who had nearly cut our left flank
    in half were for the moment repulsed. Our reserve units were able to
    join up, and the fight was at an end. The regimental commander and Major
    Ekonomov had stopped beside a bridge, letting the retreating companies
    pass by them, when a soldier came up and took hold of the commander's
    stirrup, almost leaning against him. The man was wearing a bluish coat
    of broadcloth, he had no knapsack or cap, his head was bandaged, and
    over his shoulder a French munition pouch was slung. He had an officer's
    sword in his hand. The soldier was pale, his blue eyes looked impudently
    into the commander's face, and his lips were smiling. Though the
    commander was occupied in giving instructions to Major Ekonomov, he
    could not help taking notice of the soldier.
    
    "Your excellency, here are two trophies," said Dolokhov, pointing to the
    French sword and pouch. "I have taken an officer prisoner. I stopped the
    company." Dolokhov breathed heavily from weariness and spoke in abrupt
    sentences. "The whole company can bear witness. I beg you will remember
    this, your excellency!"
    
    "All right, all right," replied the commander, and turned to Major
    Ekonomov.
    
    But Dolokhov did not go away; he untied the handkerchief around his
    head, pulled it off, and showed the blood congealed on his hair.
    
    "A bayonet wound. I remained at the front. Remember, your excellency!"
    
    Tushin's battery had been forgotten and only at the very end of the
    action did Prince Bagration, still hearing the cannonade in the center,
    send his orderly staff officer, and later Prince Andrew also, to order
    the battery to retire as quickly as possible. When the supports attached
    to Tushin's battery had been moved away in the middle of the action by
    someone's order, the battery had continued firing and was only not
    captured by the French because the enemy could not surmise that anyone
    could have the effrontery to continue firing from four quite undefended
    guns. On the contrary, the energetic action of that battery led the
    French to suppose that here--in the center--the main Russian forces were
    concentrated. Twice they had attempted to attack this point, but on each
    occasion had been driven back by grapeshot from the four isolated guns
    on the hillock.
    
    Soon after Prince Bagration had left him, Tushin had succeeded in
    setting fire to Schon Grabern.
    
    "Look at them scurrying! It's burning! Just see the smoke! Fine! Grand!
    Look at the smoke, the smoke!" exclaimed the artillerymen, brightening
    up.
    
    All the guns, without waiting for orders, were being fired in the
    direction of the conflagration. As if urging each other on, the soldiers
    cried at each shot: "Fine! That's good! Look at it... Grand!" The fire,
    fanned by the breeze, was rapidly spreading. The French columns that had
    advanced beyond the village went back; but as though in revenge for this
    failure, the enemy placed ten guns to the right of the village and began
    firing them at Tushin's battery.
    
    In their childlike glee, aroused by the fire and their luck in
    successfully cannonading the French, our artillerymen only noticed this
    battery when two balls, and then four more, fell among our guns, one
    knocking over two horses and another tearing off a munition-wagon
    driver's leg. Their spirits once roused were, however, not diminished,
    but only changed character. The horses were replaced by others from a
    reserve gun carriage, the wounded were carried away, and the four guns
    were turned against the ten-gun battery. Tushin's companion officer had
    been killed at the beginning of the engagement and within an hour
    seventeen of the forty men of the guns' crews had been disabled, but the
    artillerymen were still as merry and lively as ever. Twice they noticed
    the French appearing below them, and then they fired grapeshot at them.
    
    Little Tushin, moving feebly and awkwardly, kept telling his orderly to
    "refill my pipe for that one!" and then, scattering sparks from it, ran
    forward shading his eyes with his small hand to look at the French.
    
    "Smack at 'em, lads!" he kept saying, seizing the guns by the wheels and
    working the screws himself.
    
    Amid the smoke, deafened by the incessant reports which always made him
    jump, Tushin not taking his pipe from his mouth ran from gun to gun, now
    aiming, now counting the charges, now giving orders about replacing dead
    or wounded horses and harnessing fresh ones, and shouting in his feeble
    voice, so high pitched and irresolute. His face grew more and more
    animated. Only when a man was killed or wounded did he frown and turn
    away from the sight, shouting angrily at the men who, as is always the
    case, hesitated about lifting the injured or dead. The soldiers, for the
    most part handsome fellows and, as is always the case in an artillery
    company, a head and shoulders taller and twice as broad as their
    officer--all looked at their commander like children in an embarrassing
    situation, and the expression on his face was invariably reflected on
    theirs.
    
    Owing to the terrible uproar and the necessity for concentration and
    activity, Tushin did not experience the slightest unpleasant sense of
    fear, and the thought that he might be killed or badly wounded never
    occurred to him. On the contrary, he became more and more elated. It
    seemed to him that it was a very long time ago, almost a day, since he
    had first seen the enemy and fired the first shot, and that the corner
    of the field he stood on was well-known and familiar ground. Though he
    thought of everything, considered everything, and did everything the
    best of officers could do in his position, he was in a state akin to
    feverish delirium or drunkenness.
    
    From the deafening sounds of his own guns around him, the whistle and
    thud of the enemy's cannon balls, from the flushed and perspiring faces
    of the crew bustling round the guns, from the sight of the blood of men
    and horses, from the little puffs of smoke on the enemy's side (always
    followed by a ball flying past and striking the earth, a man, a gun, a
    horse), from the sight of all these things a fantastic world of his own
    had taken possession of his brain and at that moment afforded him
    pleasure. The enemy's guns were in his fancy not guns but pipes from
    which occasional puffs were blown by an invisible smoker.
    
    "There... he's puffing again," muttered Tushin to himself, as a small
    cloud rose from the hill and was borne in a streak to the left by the
    wind.
    
    "Now look out for the ball... we'll throw it back."
    
    "What do you want, your honor?" asked an artilleryman, standing close
    by, who heard him muttering.
    
    "Nothing... only a shell..." he answered.
    
    "Come along, our Matvevna!" he said to himself. "Matvevna" * was the
    name his fancy gave to the farthest gun of the battery, which was large
    and of an old pattern. The French swarming round their guns seemed to
    him like ants. In that world, the handsome drunkard Number One of the
    second gun's crew was "uncle"; Tushin looked at him more often than at
    anyone else and took delight in his every movement. The sound of
    musketry at the foot of the hill, now diminishing, now increasing,
    seemed like someone's breathing. He listened intently to the ebb and
    flow of these sounds.
    
    * Daughter of Matthew.
    
    "Ah! Breathing again, breathing!" he muttered to himself.
    
    He imagined himself as an enormously tall, powerful man who was throwing
    cannon balls at the French with both hands.
    
    "Now then, Matvevna, dear old lady, don't let me down!" he was saying as
    he moved from the gun, when a strange, unfamiliar voice called above his
    head: "Captain Tushin! Captain!"
    
    Tushin turned round in dismay. It was the staff officer who had turned
    him out of the booth at Grunth. He was shouting in a gasping voice:
    
    "Are you mad? You have twice been ordered to retreat, and you..."
    
    "Why are they down on me?" thought Tushin, looking in alarm at his
    superior.
    
    "I... don't..." he muttered, holding up two fingers to his cap. "I..."
    
    But the staff officer did not finish what he wanted to say. A cannon
    ball, flying close to him, caused him to duck and bend over his horse.
    He paused, and just as he was about to say something more, another ball
    stopped him. He turned his horse and galloped off.
    
    "Retire! All to retire!" he shouted from a distance.
    
    The soldiers laughed. A moment later, an adjutant arrived with the same
    order.
    
    It was Prince Andrew. The first thing he saw on riding up to the space
    where Tushin's guns were stationed was an unharnessed horse with a
    broken leg, that lay screaming piteously beside the harnessed horses.
    Blood was gushing from its leg as from a spring. Among the limbers lay
    several dead men. One ball after another passed over as he approached
    and he felt a nervous shudder run down his spine. But the mere thought
    of being afraid roused him again. "I cannot be afraid," thought he, and
    dismounted slowly among the guns. He delivered the order and did not
    leave the battery. He decided to have the guns removed from their
    positions and withdrawn in his presence. Together with Tushin, stepping
    across the bodies and under a terrible fire from the French, he attended
    to the removal of the guns.
    
    "A staff officer was here a minute ago, but skipped off," said an
    artilleryman to Prince Andrew. "Not like your honor!"
    
    Prince Andrew said nothing to Tushin. They were both so busy as to seem
    not to notice one another. When having limbered up the only two cannon
    that remained uninjured out of the four, they began moving down the hill
    (one shattered gun and one unicorn were left behind), Prince Andrew rode
    up to Tushin.
    
    "Well, till we meet again..." he said, holding out his hand to Tushin.
    
    "Good-bye, my dear fellow," said Tushin. "Dear soul! Good-bye, my dear
    fellow!" and for some unknown reason tears suddenly filled his eyes.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    The wind had fallen and black clouds, merging with the powder smoke,
    hung low over the field of battle on the horizon. It was growing dark
    and the glow of two conflagrations was the more conspicuous. The
    cannonade was dying down, but the rattle of musketry behind and on the
    right sounded oftener and nearer. As soon as Tushin with his guns,
    continually driving round or coming upon wounded men, was out of range
    of fire and had descended into the dip, he was met by some of the staff,
    among them the staff officer and Zherkov, who had been twice sent to
    Tushin's battery but had never reached it. Interrupting one another,
    they all gave, and transmitted, orders as to how to proceed,
    reprimanding and reproaching him. Tushin gave no orders, and, silently--
    fearing to speak because at every word he felt ready to weep without
    knowing why--rode behind on his artillery nag. Though the orders were to
    abandon the wounded, many of them dragged themselves after troops and
    begged for seats on the gun carriages. The jaunty infantry officer who
    just before the battle had rushed out of Tushin's wattle shed was laid,
    with a bullet in his stomach, on "Matvevna's" carriage. At the foot of
    the hill, a pale hussar cadet, supporting one hand with the other, came
    up to Tushin and asked for a seat.
    
    "Captain, for God's sake! I've hurt my arm," he said timidly. "For God's
    sake... I can't walk. For God's sake!"
    
    It was plain that this cadet had already repeatedly asked for a lift and
    been refused. He asked in a hesitating, piteous voice.
    
    "Tell them to give me a seat, for God's sake!"
    
    "Give him a seat," said Tushin. "Lay a cloak for him to sit on, lad," he
    said, addressing his favorite soldier. "And where is the wounded
    officer?"
    
    "He has been set down. He died," replied someone.
    
    "Help him up. Sit down, dear fellow, sit down! Spread out the cloak,
    Antonov."
    
    The cadet was Rostov. With one hand he supported the other; he was pale
    and his jaw trembled, shivering feverishly. He was placed on "Matvevna,"
    the gun from which they had removed the dead officer. The cloak they
    spread under him was wet with blood which stained his breeches and arm.
    
    "What, are you wounded, my lad?" said Tushin, approaching the gun on
    which Rostov sat.
    
    "No, it's a sprain."
    
    "Then what is this blood on the gun carriage?" inquired Tushin.
    
    "It was the officer, your honor, stained it," answered the artilleryman,
    wiping away the blood with his coat sleeve, as if apologizing for the
    state of his gun.
    
    It was all that they could do to get the guns up the rise aided by the
    infantry, and having reached the village of Gruntersdorf they halted. It
    had grown so dark that one could not distinguish the uniforms ten paces
    off, and the firing had begun to subside. Suddenly, near by on the
    right, shouting and firing were again heard. Flashes of shot gleamed in
    the darkness. This was the last French attack and was met by soldiers
    who had sheltered in the village houses. They all rushed out of the
    village again, but Tushin's guns could not move, and the artillerymen,
    Tushin, and the cadet exchanged silent glances as they awaited their
    fate. The firing died down and soldiers, talking eagerly, streamed out
    of a side street.
    
    "Not hurt, Petrov?" asked one.
    
    "We've given it 'em hot, mate! They won't make another push now," said
    another.
    
    "You couldn't see a thing. How they shot at their own fellows! Nothing
    could be seen. Pitch-dark, brother! Isn't there something to drink?"
    
    The French had been repulsed for the last time. And again and again in
    the complete darkness Tushin's guns moved forward, surrounded by the
    humming infantry as by a frame.
    
    In the darkness, it seemed as though a gloomy unseen river was flowing
    always in one direction, humming with whispers and talk and the sound of
    hoofs and wheels. Amid the general rumble, the groans and voices of the
    wounded were more distinctly heard than any other sound in the darkness
    of the night. The gloom that enveloped the army was filled with their
    groans, which seemed to melt into one with the darkness of the night.
    After a while the moving mass became agitated, someone rode past on a
    white horse followed by his suite, and said something in passing: "What
    did he say? Where to, now? Halt, is it? Did he thank us?" came eager
    questions from all sides. The whole moving mass began pressing closer
    together and a report spread that they were ordered to halt: evidently
    those in front had halted. All remained where they were in the middle of
    the muddy road.
    
    Fires were lighted and the talk became more audible. Captain Tushin,
    having given orders to his company, sent a soldier to find a dressing
    station or a doctor for the cadet, and sat down by a bonfire the
    soldiers had kindled on the road. Rostov, too, dragged himself to the
    fire. From pain, cold, and damp, a feverish shivering shook his whole
    body. Drowsiness was irresistibly mastering him, but he kept awake by an
    excruciating pain in his arm, for which he could find no satisfactory
    position. He kept closing his eyes and then again looking at the fire,
    which seemed to him dazzlingly red, and at the feeble, round-shouldered
    figure of Tushin who was sitting cross-legged like a Turk beside him.
    Tushin's large, kind, intelligent eyes were fixed with sympathy and
    commiseration on Rostov, who saw that Tushin with his whole heart wished
    to help him but could not.
    
    From all sides were heard the footsteps and talk of the infantry, who
    were walking, driving past, and settling down all around. The sound of
    voices, the tramping feet, the horses' hoofs moving in mud, the
    crackling of wood fires near and afar, merged into one tremulous rumble.
    
    It was no longer, as before, a dark, unseen river flowing through the
    gloom, but a dark sea swelling and gradually subsiding after a storm.
    Rostov looked at and listened listlessly to what passed before and
    around him. An infantryman came to the fire, squatted on his heels, held
    his hands to the blaze, and turned away his face.
    
    "You don't mind your honor?" he asked Tushin. "I've lost my company,
    your honor. I don't know where... such bad luck!"
    
    With the soldier, an infantry officer with a bandaged cheek came up to
    the bonfire, and addressing Tushin asked him to have the guns moved a
    trifle to let a wagon go past. After he had gone, two soldiers rushed to
    the campfire. They were quarreling and fighting desperately, each trying
    to snatch from the other a boot they were both holding on to.
    
    "You picked it up?... I dare say! You're very smart!" one of them
    shouted hoarsely.
    
    Then a thin, pale soldier, his neck bandaged with a bloodstained leg
    band, came up and in angry tones asked the artillerymen for water.
    
    "Must one die like a dog?" said he.
    
    Tushin told them to give the man some water. Then a cheerful soldier ran
    up, begging a little fire for the infantry.
    
    "A nice little hot torch for the infantry! Good luck to you, fellow
    countrymen. Thanks for the fire--we'll return it with interest," said
    he, carrying away into the darkness a glowing stick.
    
    Next came four soldiers, carrying something heavy on a cloak, and passed
    by the fire. One of them stumbled.
    
    "Who the devil has put the logs on the road?" snarled he.
    
    "He's dead--why carry him?" said another.
    
    "Shut up!"
    
    And they disappeared into the darkness with their load.
    
    "Still aching?" Tushin asked Rostov in a whisper.
    
    "Yes."
    
    "Your honor, you're wanted by the general. He is in the hut here," said
    a gunner, coming up to Tushin.
    
    "Coming, friend."
    
    Tushin rose and, buttoning his greatcoat and pulling it straight, walked
    away from the fire.
    
    Not far from the artillery campfire, in a hut that had been prepared for
    him, Prince Bagration sat at dinner, talking with some commanding
    officers who had gathered at his quarters. The little old man with the
    half-closed eyes was there greedily gnawing a mutton bone, and the
    general who had served blamelessly for twenty-two years, flushed by a
    glass of vodka and the dinner; and the staff officer with the signet
    ring, and Zherkov, uneasily glancing at them all, and Prince Andrew,
    pale, with compressed lips and feverishly glittering eyes.
    
    In a corner of the hut stood a standard captured from the French, and
    the accountant with the naive face was feeling its texture, shaking his
    head in perplexity--perhaps because the banner really interested him,
    perhaps because it was hard for him, hungry as he was, to look on at a
    dinner where there was no place for him. In the next hut there was a
    French colonel who had been taken prisoner by our dragoons. Our officers
    were flocking in to look at him. Prince Bagration was thanking the
    individual commanders and inquiring into details of the action and our
    losses. The general whose regiment had been inspected at Braunau was
    informing the prince that as soon as the action began he had withdrawn
    from the wood, mustered the men who were woodcutting, and, allowing the
    French to pass him, had made a bayonet charge with two battalions and
    had broken up the French troops.
    
    "When I saw, your excellency, that their first battalion was
    disorganized, I stopped in the road and thought: 'I'll let them come on
    and will meet them with the fire of the whole battalion'--and that's
    what I did."
    
    The general had so wished to do this and was so sorry he had not managed
    to do it that it seemed to him as if it had really happened. Perhaps it
    might really have been so? Could one possibly make out amid all that
    confusion what did or did not happen?
    
    "By the way, your excellency, I should inform you," he continued--
    remembering Dolokhov's conversation with Kutuzov and his last interview
    with the gentleman-ranker--"that Private Dolokhov, who was reduced to
    the ranks, took a French officer prisoner in my presence and
    particularly distinguished himself."
    
    "I saw the Pavlograd hussars attack there, your excellency," chimed in
    Zherkov, looking uneasily around. He had not seen the hussars all that
    day, but had heard about them from an infantry officer. "They broke up
    two squares, your excellency."
    
    Several of those present smiled at Zherkov's words, expecting one of his
    usual jokes, but noticing that what he was saying redounded to the glory
    of our arms and of the day's work, they assumed a serious expression,
    though many of them knew that what he was saying was a lie devoid of any
    foundation. Prince Bagration turned to the old colonel:
    
    "Gentlemen, I thank you all; all arms have behaved heroically: infantry,
    cavalry, and artillery. How was it that two guns were abandoned in the
    center?" he inquired, searching with his eyes for someone. (Prince
    Bagration did not ask about the guns on the left flank; he knew that all
    the guns there had been abandoned at the very beginning of the action.)
    "I think I sent you?" he added, turning to the staff officer on duty.
    
    "One was damaged," answered the staff officer, "and the other I can't
    understand. I was there all the time giving orders and had only just
    left.... It is true that it was hot there," he added, modestly.
    
    Someone mentioned that Captain Tushin was bivouacking close to the
    village and had already been sent for.
    
    "Oh, but you were there?" said Prince Bagration, addressing Prince
    Andrew.
    
    "Of course, we only just missed one another," said the staff officer,
    with a smile to Bolkonski.
    
    "I had not the pleasure of seeing you," said Prince Andrew, coldly and
    abruptly.
    
    All were silent. Tushin appeared at the threshold and made his way
    timidly from behind the backs of the generals. As he stepped past the
    generals in the crowded hut, feeling embarrassed as he always was by the
    sight of his superiors, he did not notice the staff of the banner and
    stumbled over it. Several of those present laughed.
    
    "How was it a gun was abandoned?" asked Bagration, frowning, not so much
    at the captain as at those who were laughing, among whom Zherkov laughed
    loudest.
    
    Only now, when he was confronted by the stern authorities, did his guilt
    and the disgrace of having lost two guns and yet remaining alive present
    themselves to Tushin in all their horror. He had been so excited that he
    had not thought about it until that moment. The officers' laughter
    confused him still more. He stood before Bagration with his lower jaw
    trembling and was hardly able to mutter: "I don't know... your
    excellency... I had no men... your excellency."
    
    "You might have taken some from the covering troops."
    
    Tushin did not say that there were no covering troops, though that was
    perfectly true. He was afraid of getting some other officer into
    trouble, and silently fixed his eyes on Bagration as a schoolboy who has
    blundered looks at an examiner.
    
    The silence lasted some time. Prince Bagration, apparently not wishing
    to be severe, found nothing to say; the others did not venture to
    intervene. Prince Andrew looked at Tushin from under his brows and his
    fingers twitched nervously.
    
    "Your excellency!" Prince Andrew broke the silence with his abrupt
    voice, "you were pleased to send me to Captain Tushin's battery. I went
    there and found two thirds of the men and horses knocked out, two guns
    smashed, and no supports at all."
    
    Prince Bagration and Tushin looked with equal intentness at Bolkonski,
    who spoke with suppressed agitation.
    
    "And, if your excellency will allow me to express my opinion," he
    continued, "we owe today's success chiefly to the action of that battery
    and the heroic endurance of Captain Tushin and his company," and without
    awaiting a reply, Prince Andrew rose and left the table.
    
    Prince Bagration looked at Tushin, evidently reluctant to show distrust
    in Bolkonski's emphatic opinion yet not feeling able fully to credit it,
    bent his head, and told Tushin that he could go. Prince Andrew went out
    with him.
    
    "Thank you; you saved me, my dear fellow!" said Tushin.
    
    Prince Andrew gave him a look, but said nothing and went away. He felt
    sad and depressed. It was all so strange, so unlike what he had hoped.
    
    "Who are they? Why are they here? What do they want? And when will all
    this end?" thought Rostov, looking at the changing shadows before him.
    The pain in his arm became more and more intense. Irresistible
    drowsiness overpowered him, red rings danced before his eyes, and the
    impression of those voices and faces and a sense of loneliness merged
    with the physical pain. It was they, these soldiers--wounded and
    unwounded--it was they who were crushing, weighing down, and twisting
    the sinews and scorching the flesh of his sprained arm and shoulder. To
    rid himself of them he closed his eyes.
    
    For a moment he dozed, but in that short interval innumerable things
    appeared to him in a dream: his mother and her large white hand, Sonya's
    thin little shoulders, Natasha's eyes and laughter, Denisov with his
    voice and mustache, and Telyanin and all that affair with Telyanin and
    Bogdanich. That affair was the same thing as this soldier with the harsh
    voice, and it was that affair and this soldier that were so agonizingly,
    incessantly pulling and pressing his arm and always dragging it in one
    direction. He tried to get away from them, but they would not for an
    instant let his shoulder move a hair's breadth. It would not ache--it
    would be well--if only they did not pull it, but it was impossible to
    get rid of them.
    
    He opened his eyes and looked up. The black canopy of night hung less
    than a yard above the glow of the charcoal. Flakes of falling snow were
    fluttering in that light. Tushin had not returned, the doctor had not
    come. He was alone now, except for a soldier who was sitting naked at
    the other side of the fire, warming his thin yellow body.
    
    "Nobody wants me!" thought Rostov. "There is no one to help me or pity
    me. Yet I was once at home, strong, happy, and loved." He sighed and,
    doing so, groaned involuntarily.
    
    "Eh, is anything hurting you?" asked the soldier, shaking his shirt out
    over the fire, and not waiting for an answer he gave a grunt and added:
    "What a lot of men have been crippled today--frightful!"
    
    Rostov did not listen to the soldier. He looked at the snowflakes
    fluttering above the fire and remembered a Russian winter at his warm,
    bright home, his fluffy fur coat, his quickly gliding sleigh, his
    healthy body, and all the affection and care of his family. "And why did
    I come here?" he wondered.
    
    Next day the French army did not renew their attack, and the remnant of
    Bagration's detachment was reunited to Kutuzov's army.
    
    BOOK THREE: 1805
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    Prince Vasili was not a man who deliberately thought out his plans.
    Still less did he think of injuring anyone for his own advantage. He was
    merely a man of the world who had got on and to whom getting on had
    become a habit. Schemes and devices for which he never rightly accounted
    to himself, but which formed the whole interest of his life, were
    constantly shaping themselves in his mind, arising from the
    circumstances and persons he met. Of these plans he had not merely one
    or two in his head but dozens, some only beginning to form themselves,
    some approaching achievement, and some in course of disintegration. He
    did not, for instance, say to himself: "This man now has influence, I
    must gain his confidence and friendship and through him obtain a special
    grant." Nor did he say to himself: "Pierre is a rich man, I must entice
    him to marry my daughter and lend me the forty thousand rubles I need."
    But when he came across a man of position his instinct immediately told
    him that this man could be useful, and without any premeditation Prince
    Vasili took the first opportunity to gain his confidence, flatter him,
    become intimate with him, and finally make his request.
    
    He had Pierre at hand in Moscow and procured for him an appointment as
    Gentleman of the Bedchamber, which at that time conferred the status of
    Councilor of State, and insisted on the young man accompanying him to
    Petersburg and staying at his house. With apparent absent-mindedness,
    yet with unhesitating assurance that he was doing the right thing,
    Prince Vasili did everything to get Pierre to marry his daughter. Had he
    thought out his plans beforehand he could not have been so natural and
    shown such unaffected familiarity in intercourse with everybody both
    above and below him in social standing. Something always drew him toward
    those richer and more powerful than himself and he had rare skill in
    seizing the most opportune moment for making use of people.
    
    Pierre, on unexpectedly becoming Count Bezukhov and a rich man, felt
    himself after his recent loneliness and freedom from cares so beset and
    preoccupied that only in bed was he able to be by himself. He had to
    sign papers, to present himself at government offices, the purpose of
    which was not clear to him, to question his chief steward, to visit his
    estate near Moscow, and to receive many people who formerly did not even
    wish to know of his existence but would now have been offended and
    grieved had he chosen not to see them. These different people--
    businessmen, relations, and acquaintances alike--were all disposed to
    treat the young heir in the most friendly and flattering manner: they
    were all evidently firmly convinced of Pierre's noble qualities. He was
    always hearing such words as: "With your remarkable kindness," or, "With
    your excellent heart," "You are yourself so honorable Count," or, "Were
    he as clever as you," and so on, till he began sincerely to believe in
    his own exceptional kindness and extraordinary intelligence, the more so
    as in the depth of his heart it had always seemed to him that he really
    was very kind and intelligent. Even people who had formerly been
    spiteful toward him and evidently unfriendly now became gentle and
    affectionate. The angry eldest princess, with the long waist and hair
    plastered down like a doll's, had come into Pierre's room after the
    funeral. With drooping eyes and frequent blushes she told him she was
    very sorry about their past misunderstandings and did not now feel she
    had a right to ask him for anything, except only for permission, after
    the blow she had received, to remain for a few weeks longer in the house
    she so loved and where she had sacrificed so much. She could not refrain
    from weeping at these words. Touched that this statuesque princess could
    so change, Pierre took her hand and begged her forgiveness, without
    knowing what for. From that day the eldest princess quite changed toward
    Pierre and began knitting a striped scarf for him.
    
    "Do this for my sake, mon cher; after all, she had to put up with a
    great deal from the deceased," said Prince Vasili to him, handing him a
    deed to sign for the princess' benefit.
    
    Prince Vasili had come to the conclusion that it was necessary to throw
    this bone--a bill for thirty thousand rubles--to the poor princess that
    it might not occur to her to speak of his share in the affair of the
    inlaid portfolio. Pierre signed the deed and after that the princess
    grew still kinder. The younger sisters also became affectionate to him,
    especially the youngest, the pretty one with the mole, who often made
    him feel confused by her smiles and her own confusion when meeting him.
    
    It seemed so natural to Pierre that everyone should like him, and it
    would have seemed so unnatural had anyone disliked him, that he could
    not but believe in the sincerity of those around him. Besides, he had no
    time to ask himself whether these people were sincere or not. He was
    always busy and always felt in a state of mild and cheerful
    intoxication. He felt as though he were the center of some important and
    general movement; that something was constantly expected of him, that if
    he did not do it he would grieve and disappoint many people, but if he
    did this and that, all would be well; and he did what was demanded of
    him, but still that happy result always remained in the future.
    
    More than anyone else, Prince Vasili took possession of Pierre's affairs
    and of Pierre himself in those early days. From the death of Count
    Bezukhov he did not let go his hold of the lad. He had the air of a man
    oppressed by business, weary and suffering, who yet would not, for
    pity's sake, leave this helpless youth who, after all, was the son of
    his old friend and the possessor of such enormous wealth, to the caprice
    of fate and the designs of rogues. During the few days he spent in
    Moscow after the death of Count Bezukhov, he would call Pierre, or go to
    him himself, and tell him what ought to be done in a tone of weariness
    and assurance, as if he were adding every time: "You know I am
    overwhelmed with business and it is purely out of charity that I trouble
    myself about you, and you also know quite well that what I propose is
    the only thing possible."
    
    "Well, my dear fellow, tomorrow we are off at last," said Prince Vasili
    one day, closing his eyes and fingering Pierre's elbow, speaking as if
    he were saying something which had long since been agreed upon and could
    not now be altered. "We start tomorrow and I'm giving you a place in my
    carriage. I am very glad. All our important business here is now
    settled, and I ought to have been off long ago. Here is something I have
    received from the chancellor. I asked him for you, and you have been
    entered in the diplomatic corps and made a Gentleman of the Bedchamber.
    The diplomatic career now lies open before you."
    
    Notwithstanding the tone of wearied assurance with which these words
    were pronounced, Pierre, who had so long been considering his career,
    wished to make some suggestion. But Prince Vasili interrupted him in the
    special deep cooing tone, precluding the possibility of interrupting his
    speech, which he used in extreme cases when special persuasion was
    needed.
    
    "Mais, mon cher, I did this for my own sake, to satisfy my conscience,
    and there is nothing to thank me for. No one has ever complained yet of
    being too much loved; and besides, you are free, you could throw it up
    tomorrow. But you will see everything for yourself when you get to
    Petersburg. It is high time for you to get away from these terrible
    recollections." Prince Vasili sighed. "Yes, yes, my boy. And my valet
    can go in your carriage. Ah! I was nearly forgetting," he added. "You
    know, mon cher, your father and I had some accounts to settle, so I have
    received what was due from the Ryazan estate and will keep it; you won't
    require it. We'll go into the accounts later."
    
    By "what was due from the Ryazan estate" Prince Vasili meant several
    thousand rubles quitrent received from Pierre's peasants, which the
    prince had retained for himself.
    
    In Petersburg, as in Moscow, Pierre found the same atmosphere of
    gentleness and affection. He could not refuse the post, or rather the
    rank (for he did nothing), that Prince Vasili had procured for him, and
    acquaintances, invitations, and social occupations were so numerous
    that, even more than in Moscow, he felt a sense of bewilderment, bustle,
    and continual expectation of some good, always in front of him but never
    attained.
    
    Of his former bachelor acquaintances many were no longer in Petersburg.
    The Guards had gone to the front; Dolokhov had been reduced to the
    ranks; Anatole was in the army somewhere in the provinces; Prince Andrew
    was abroad; so Pierre had not the opportunity to spend his nights as he
    used to like to spend them, or to open his mind by intimate talks with a
    friend older than himself and whom he respected. His whole time was
    taken up with dinners and balls and was spent chiefly at Prince Vasili's
    house in the company of the stout princess, his wife, and his beautiful
    daughter Helene.
    
    Like the others, Anna Pavlovna Scherer showed Pierre the change of
    attitude toward him that had taken place in society.
    
    Formerly in Anna Pavlovna's presence, Pierre had always felt that what
    he was saying was out of place, tactless and unsuitable, that remarks
    which seemed to him clever while they formed in his mind became foolish
    as soon as he uttered them, while on the contrary Hippolyte's stupidest
    remarks came out clever and apt. Now everything Pierre said was
    charmant. Even if Anna Pavlovna did not say so, he could see that she
    wished to and only refrained out of regard for his modesty.
    
    In the beginning of the winter of 1805-6 Pierre received one of Anna
    Pavlovna's usual pink notes with an invitation to which was added: "You
    will find the beautiful Helene here, whom it is always delightful to
    see."
    
    When he read that sentence, Pierre felt for the first time that some
    link which other people recognized had grown up between himself and
    Helene, and that thought both alarmed him, as if some obligation were
    being imposed on him which he could not fulfill, and pleased him as an
    entertaining supposition.
    
    Anna Pavlovna's "At Home" was like the former one, only the novelty she
    offered her guests this time was not Mortemart, but a diplomatist fresh
    from Berlin with the very latest details of the Emperor Alexander's
    visit to Potsdam, and of how the two august friends had pledged
    themselves in an indissoluble alliance to uphold the cause of justice
    against the enemy of the human race. Anna Pavlovna received Pierre with
    a shade of melancholy, evidently relating to the young man's recent loss
    by the death of Count Bezukhov (everyone constantly considered it a duty
    to assure Pierre that he was greatly afflicted by the death of the
    father he had hardly known), and her melancholy was just like the august
    melancholy she showed at the mention of her most august Majesty the
    Empress Marya Fedorovna. Pierre felt flattered by this. Anna Pavlovna
    arranged the different groups in her drawing room with her habitual
    skill. The large group, in which were Prince Vasili and the generals,
    had the benefit of the diplomat. Another group was at the tea table.
    Pierre wished to join the former, but Anna Pavlovna--who was in the
    excited condition of a commander on a battlefield to whom thousands of
    new and brilliant ideas occur which there is hardly time to put in
    action--seeing Pierre, touched his sleeve with her finger, saying:
    
    "Wait a bit, I have something in view for you this evening." (She
    glanced at Helene and smiled at her.) "My dear Helene, be charitable to
    my poor aunt who adores you. Go and keep her company for ten minutes.
    And that it will not be too dull, here is the dear count who will not
    refuse to accompany you."
    
    The beauty went to the aunt, but Anna Pavlovna detained Pierre, looking
    as if she had to give some final necessary instructions.
    
    "Isn't she exquisite?" she said to Pierre, pointing to the stately
    beauty as she glided away. "And how she carries herself! For so young a
    girl, such tact, such masterly perfection of manner! It comes from her
    heart. Happy the man who wins her! With her the least worldly of men
    would occupy a most brilliant position in society. Don't you think so? I
    only wanted to know your opinion," and Anna Pavlovna let Pierre go.
    
    Pierre, in reply, sincerely agreed with her as to Helene's perfection of
    manner. If he ever thought of Helene, it was just of her beauty and her
    remarkable skill in appearing silently dignified in society.
    
    The old aunt received the two young people in her corner, but seemed
    desirous of hiding her adoration for Helene and inclined rather to show
    her fear of Anna Pavlovna. She looked at her niece, as if inquiring what
    she was to do with these people. On leaving them, Anna Pavlovna again
    touched Pierre's sleeve, saying: "I hope you won't say that it is dull
    in my house again," and she glanced at Helene.
    
    Helene smiled, with a look implying that she did not admit the
    possibility of anyone seeing her without being enchanted. The aunt
    coughed, swallowed, and said in French that she was very pleased to see
    Helene, then she turned to Pierre with the same words of welcome and the
    same look. In the middle of a dull and halting conversation, Helene
    turned to Pierre with the beautiful bright smile that she gave to
    everyone. Pierre was so used to that smile, and it had so little meaning
    for him, that he paid no attention to it. The aunt was just speaking of
    a collection of snuffboxes that had belonged to Pierre's father, Count
    Bezukhov, and showed them her own box. Princess Helene asked to see the
    portrait of the aunt's husband on the box lid.
    
    "That is probably the work of Vinesse," said Pierre, mentioning a
    celebrated miniaturist, and he leaned over the table to take the
    snuffbox while trying to hear what was being said at the other table.
    
    He half rose, meaning to go round, but the aunt handed him the snuffbox,
    passing it across Helene's back. Helene stooped forward to make room,
    and looked round with a smile. She was, as always at evening parties,
    wearing a dress such as was then fashionable, cut very low at front and
    back. Her bust, which had always seemed like marble to Pierre, was so
    close to him that his shortsighted eyes could not but perceive the
    living charm of her neck and shoulders, so near to his lips that he need
    only have bent his head a little to have touched them. He was conscious
    of the warmth of her body, the scent of perfume, and the creaking of her
    corset as she moved. He did not see her marble beauty forming a complete
    whole with her dress, but all the charm of her body only covered by her
    garments. And having once seen this he could not help being aware of it,
    just as we cannot renew an illusion we have once seen through.
    
    "So you have never noticed before how beautiful I am?" Helene seemed to
    say. "You had not noticed that I am a woman? Yes, I am a woman who may
    belong to anyone--to you too," said her glance. And at that moment
    Pierre felt that Helene not only could, but must, be his wife, and that
    it could not be otherwise.
    
    He knew this at that moment as surely as if he had been standing at the
    altar with her. How and when this would be he did not know, he did not
    even know if it would be a good thing (he even felt, he knew not why,
    that it would be a bad thing), but he knew it would happen.
    
    Pierre dropped his eyes, lifted them again, and wished once more to see
    her as a distant beauty far removed from him, as he had seen her every
    day until then, but he could no longer do it. He could not, any more
    than a man who has been looking at a tuft of steppe grass through the
    mist and taking it for a tree can again take it for a tree after he has
    once recognized it to be a tuft of grass. She was terribly close to him.
    She already had power over him, and between them there was no longer any
    barrier except the barrier of his own will.
    
    "Well, I will leave you in your little corner," came Anna Pavlovna's
    voice, "I see you are all right there."
    
    And Pierre, anxiously trying to remember whether he had done anything
    reprehensible, looked round with a blush. It seemed to him that everyone
    knew what had happened to him as he knew it himself.
    
    A little later when he went up to the large circle, Anna Pavlovna said
    to him: "I hear you are refitting your Petersburg house?"
    
    This was true. The architect had told him that it was necessary, and
    Pierre, without knowing why, was having his enormous Petersburg house
    done up.
    
    "That's a good thing, but don't move from Prince Vasili's. It is good to
    have a friend like the prince," she said, smiling at Prince Vasili. "I
    know something about that. Don't I? And you are still so young. You need
    advice. Don't be angry with me for exercising an old woman's privilege."
    
    She paused, as women always do, expecting something after they have
    mentioned their age. "If you marry it will be a different thing," she
    continued, uniting them both in one glance. Pierre did not look at
    Helene nor she at him. But she was just as terribly close to him. He
    muttered something and colored.
    
    When he got home he could not sleep for a long time for thinking of what
    had happened. What had happened? Nothing. He had merely understood that
    the woman he had known as a child, of whom when her beauty was mentioned
    he had said absent-mindedly: "Yes, she's good looking," he had
    understood that this woman might belong to him.
    
    "But she's stupid. I have myself said she is stupid," he thought. "There
    is something nasty, something wrong, in the feeling she excites in me. I
    have been told that her brother Anatole was in love with her and she
    with him, that there was quite a scandal and that that's why he was sent
    away. Hippolyte is her brother... Prince Vasili is her father... It's
    bad...." he reflected, but while he was thinking this (the reflection
    was still incomplete), he caught himself smiling and was conscious that
    another line of thought had sprung up, and while thinking of her
    worthlessness he was also dreaming of how she would be his wife, how she
    would love him become quite different, and how all he had thought and
    heard of her might be false. And he again saw her not as the daughter of
    Prince Vasili, but visualized her whole body only veiled by its gray
    dress. "But no! Why did this thought never occur to me before?" and
    again he told himself that it was impossible, that there would be
    something unnatural, and as it seemed to him dishonorable, in this
    marriage. He recalled her former words and looks and the words and looks
    of those who had seen them together. He recalled Anna Pavlovna's words
    and looks when she spoke to him about his house, recalled thousands of
    such hints from Prince Vasili and others, and was seized by terror lest
    he had already, in some way, bound himself to do something that was
    evidently wrong and that he ought not to do. But at the very time he was
    expressing this conviction to himself, in another part of his mind her
    image rose in all its womanly beauty.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    In November, 1805, Prince Vasili had to go on a tour of inspection in
    four different provinces. He had arranged this for himself so as to
    visit his neglected estates at the same time and pick up his son Anatole
    where his regiment was stationed, and take him to visit Prince Nicholas
    Bolkonski in order to arrange a match for him with the daughter of that
    rich old man. But before leaving home and undertaking these new affairs,
    Prince Vasili had to settle matters with Pierre, who, it is true, had
    latterly spent whole days at home, that is, in Prince Vasili's house
    where he was staying, and had been absurd, excited, and foolish in
    Helene's presence (as a lover should be), but had not yet proposed to
    her.
    
    "This is all very fine, but things must be settled," said Prince Vasili
    to himself, with a sorrowful sigh, one morning, feeling that Pierre who
    was under such obligations to him ("But never mind that") was not
    behaving very well in this matter. "Youth, frivolity... well, God be
    with him," thought he, relishing his own goodness of heart, "but it must
    be brought to a head. The day after tomorrow will be Lelya's name day. I
    will invite two or three people, and if he does not understand what he
    ought to do then it will be my affair--yes, my affair. I am her father."
    
    Six weeks after Anna Pavlovna's "At Home" and after the sleepless night
    when he had decided that to marry Helene would be a calamity and that he
    ought to avoid her and go away, Pierre, despite that decision, had not
    left Prince Vasili's and felt with terror that in people's eyes he was
    every day more and more connected with her, that it was impossible for
    him to return to his former conception of her, that he could not break
    away from her, and that though it would be a terrible thing he would
    have to unite his fate with hers. He might perhaps have been able to
    free himself but that Prince Vasili (who had rarely before given
    receptions) now hardly let a day go by without having an evening party
    at which Pierre had to be present unless he wished to spoil the general
    pleasure and disappoint everyone's expectation. Prince Vasili, in the
    rare moments when he was at home, would take Pierre's hand in passing
    and draw it downwards, or absent-mindedly hold out his wrinkled, clean-
    shaven cheek for Pierre to kiss and would say: "Till tomorrow," or, "Be
    in to dinner or I shall not see you," or, "I am staying in for your
    sake," and so on. And though Prince Vasili, when he stayed in (as he
    said) for Pierre's sake, hardly exchanged a couple of words with him,
    Pierre felt unable to disappoint him. Every day he said to himself one
    and the same thing: "It is time I understood her and made up my mind
    what she really is. Was I mistaken before, or am I mistaken now? No, she
    is not stupid, she is an excellent girl," he sometimes said to himself
    "she never makes a mistake, never says anything stupid. She says little,
    but what she does say is always clear and simple, so she is not stupid.
    She never was abashed and is not abashed now, so she cannot be a bad
    woman!" He had often begun to make reflections or think aloud in her
    company, and she had always answered him either by a brief but
    appropriate remark--showing that it did not interest her--or by a silent
    look and smile which more palpably than anything else showed Pierre her
    superiority. She was right in regarding all arguments as nonsense in
    comparison with that smile.
    
    She always addressed him with a radiantly confiding smile meant for him
    alone, in which there was something more significant than in the general
    smile that usually brightened her face. Pierre knew that everyone was
    waiting for him to say a word and cross a certain line, and he knew that
    sooner or later he would step across it, but an incomprehensible terror
    seized him at the thought of that dreadful step. A thousand times during
    that month and a half while he felt himself drawn nearer and nearer to
    that dreadful abyss, Pierre said to himself: "What am I doing? I need
    resolution. Can it be that I have none?"
    
    He wished to take a decision, but felt with dismay that in this matter
    he lacked that strength of will which he had known in himself and really
    possessed. Pierre was one of those who are only strong when they feel
    themselves quite innocent, and since that day when he was overpowered by
    a feeling of desire while stooping over the snuffbox at Anna Pavlovna's,
    an unacknowledged sense of the guilt of that desire paralyzed his will.
    
    On Helene's name day, a small party of just their own people--as his
    wife said--met for supper at Prince Vasili's. All these friends and
    relations had been given to understand that the fate of the young girl
    would be decided that evening. The visitors were seated at supper.
    Princess Kuragina, a portly imposing woman who had once been handsome,
    was sitting at the head of the table. On either side of her sat the more
    important guests--an old general and his wife, and Anna Pavlovna
    Scherer. At the other end sat the younger and less important guests, and
    there too sat the members of the family, and Pierre and Helene, side by
    side. Prince Vasili was not having any supper: he went round the table
    in a merry mood, sitting down now by one, now by another, of the guests.
    To each of them he made some careless and agreeable remark except to
    Pierre and Helene, whose presence he seemed not to notice. He enlivened
    the whole party. The wax candles burned brightly, the silver and crystal
    gleamed, so did the ladies' toilets and the gold and silver of the men's
    epaulets; servants in scarlet liveries moved round the table, the
    clatter of plates, knives, and glasses mingled with the animated hum of
    several conversations. At one end of the table, the old chamberlain was
    heard assuring an old baroness that he loved her passionately, at which
    she laughed; at the other could be heard the story of the misfortunes of
    some Mary Viktorovna or other. At the center of the table, Prince Vasili
    attracted everybody's attention. With a facetious smile on his face, he
    was telling the ladies about last Wednesday's meeting of the Imperial
    Council, at which Sergey Kuzmich Vyazmitinov, the new military governor
    general of Petersburg, had received and read the then famous rescript of
    the Emperor Alexander from the army to Sergey Kuzmich, in which the
    Emperor said that he was receiving from all sides declarations of the
    people's loyalty, that the declaration from Petersburg gave him
    particular pleasure, and that he was proud to be at the head of such a
    nation and would endeavor to be worthy of it. This rescript began with
    the words: "Sergey Kuzmich, From all sides reports reach me," etc.
    
    "Well, and so he never got farther than: 'Sergey Kuzmich'?" asked one of
    the ladies.
    
    "Exactly, not a hair's breadth farther," answered Prince Vasili,
    laughing, "'Sergey Kuzmich... From all sides... From all sides... Sergey
    Kuzmich...' Poor Vyazmitinov could not get any farther! He began the
    rescript again and again, but as soon as he uttered 'Sergey' he sobbed,
    'Kuz-mi-ch,' tears, and 'From all sides' was smothered in sobs and he
    could get no farther. And again his handkerchief, and again: 'Sergey
    Kuzmich, From all sides,'... and tears, till at last somebody else was
    asked to read it."
    
    "Kuzmich... From all sides... and then tears," someone repeated
    laughing.
    
    "Don't be unkind," cried Anna Pavlovna from her end of the table holding
    up a threatening finger. "He is such a worthy and excellent man, our
    dear Vyazmitinov...."
    
    Everybody laughed a great deal. At the head of the table, where the
    honored guests sat, everyone seemed to be in high spirits and under the
    influence of a variety of exciting sensations. Only Pierre and Helene
    sat silently side by side almost at the bottom of the table, a
    suppressed smile brightening both their faces, a smile that had nothing
    to do with Sergey Kuzmich--a smile of bashfulness at their own feelings.
    But much as all the rest laughed, talked, and joked, much as they
    enjoyed their Rhine wine, saute, and ices, and however they avoided
    looking at the young couple, and heedless and unobservant as they seemed
    of them, one could feel by the occasional glances they gave that the
    story about Sergey Kuzmich, the laughter, and the food were all a
    pretense, and that the whole attention of that company was directed to--
    Pierre and Helene. Prince Vasili mimicked the sobbing of Sergey Kuzmich
    and at the same time his eyes glanced toward his daughter, and while he
    laughed the expression on his face clearly said: "Yes... it's getting
    on, it will all be settled today." Anna Pavlovna threatened him on
    behalf of "our dear Vyazmitinov," and in her eyes, which, for an
    instant, glanced at Pierre, Prince Vasili read a congratulation on his
    future son-in-law and on his daughter's happiness. The old princess
    sighed sadly as she offered some wine to the old lady next to her and
    glanced angrily at her daughter, and her sigh seemed to say: "Yes,
    there's nothing left for you and me but to sip sweet wine, my dear, now
    that the time has come for these young ones to be thus boldly,
    provocatively happy." "And what nonsense all this is that I am saying!"
    thought a diplomatist, glancing at the happy faces of the lovers.
    "That's happiness!"
    
    Into the insignificant, trifling, and artificial interests uniting that
    society had entered the simple feeling of the attraction of a healthy
    and handsome young man and woman for one another. And this human feeling
    dominated everything else and soared above all their affected chatter.
    Jests fell flat, news was not interesting, and the animation was
    evidently forced. Not only the guests but even the footmen waiting at
    table seemed to feel this, and they forgot their duties as they looked
    at the beautiful Helene with her radiant face and at the red, broad, and
    happy though uneasy face of Pierre. It seemed as if the very light of
    the candles was focused on those two happy faces alone.
    
    Pierre felt that he was the center of it all, and this both pleased and
    embarrassed him. He was like a man entirely absorbed in some occupation.
    He did not see, hear, or understand anything clearly. Only now and then
    detached ideas and impressions from the world of reality shot
    unexpectedly through his mind.
    
    "So it is all finished!" he thought. "And how has it all happened? How
    quickly! Now I know that not because of her alone, nor of myself alone,
    but because of everyone, it must inevitably come about. They are all
    expecting it, they are so sure that it will happen that I cannot, I
    cannot, disappoint them. But how will it be? I do not know, but it will
    certainly happen!" thought Pierre, glancing at those dazzling shoulders
    close to his eyes.
    
    Or he would suddenly feel ashamed of he knew not what. He felt it
    awkward to attract everyone's attention and to be considered a lucky man
    and, with his plain face, to be looked on as a sort of Paris possessed
    of a Helen. "But no doubt it always is and must be so!" he consoled
    himself. "And besides, what have I done to bring it about? How did it
    begin? I traveled from Moscow with Prince Vasili. Then there was
    nothing. So why should I not stay at his house? Then I played cards with
    her and picked up her reticule and drove out with her. How did it begin,
    when did it all come about?" And here he was sitting by her side as her
    betrothed, seeing, hearing, feeling her nearness, her breathing, her
    movements, her beauty. Then it would suddenly seem to him that it was
    not she but he was so unusually beautiful, and that that was why they
    all looked so at him, and flattered by this general admiration he would
    expand his chest, raise his head, and rejoice at his good fortune.
    Suddenly he heard a familiar voice repeating something to him a second
    time. But Pierre was so absorbed that he did not understand what was
    said.
    
    "I am asking you when you last heard from Bolkonski," repeated Prince
    Vasili a third time. "How absent-minded you are, my dear fellow."
    
    Prince Vasili smiled, and Pierre noticed that everyone was smiling at
    him and Helene. "Well, what of it, if you all know it?" thought Pierre.
    "What of it? It's the truth!" and he himself smiled his gentle childlike
    smile, and Helene smiled too.
    
    "When did you get the letter? Was it from Olmutz?" repeated Prince
    Vasili, who pretended to want to know this in order to settle a dispute.
    
    "How can one talk or think of such trifles?" thought Pierre.
    
    "Yes, from Olmutz," he answered, with a sigh.
    
    After supper Pierre with his partner followed the others into the
    drawing room. The guests began to disperse, some without taking leave of
    Helene. Some, as if unwilling to distract her from an important
    occupation, came up to her for a moment and made haste to go away,
    refusing to let her see them off. The diplomatist preserved a mournful
    silence as he left the drawing room. He pictured the vanity of his
    diplomatic career in comparison with Pierre's happiness. The old general
    grumbled at his wife when she asked how his leg was. "Oh, the old fool,"
    he thought. "That Princess Helene will be beautiful still when she's
    fifty."
    
    "I think I may congratulate you," whispered Anna Pavlovna to the old
    princess, kissing her soundly. "If I hadn't this headache I'd have
    stayed longer."
    
    The old princess did not reply, she was tormented by jealousy of her
    daughter's happiness.
    
    While the guests were taking their leave Pierre remained for a long time
    alone with Helene in the little drawing room where they were sitting. He
    had often before, during the last six weeks, remained alone with her,
    but had never spoken to her of love. Now he felt that it was inevitable,
    but he could not make up his mind to take the final step. He felt
    ashamed; he felt that he was occupying someone else's place here beside
    Helene. "This happiness is not for you," some inner voice whispered to
    him. "This happiness is for those who have not in them what there is in
    you."
    
    But, as he had to say something, he began by asking her whether she was
    satisfied with the party. She replied in her usual simple manner that
    this name day of hers had been one of the pleasantest she had ever had.
    
    Some of the nearest relatives had not yet left. They were sitting in the
    large drawing room. Prince Vasili came up to Pierre with languid
    footsteps. Pierre rose and said it was getting late. Prince Vasili gave
    him a look of stern inquiry, as though what Pierre had just said was so
    strange that one could not take it in. But then the expression of
    severity changed, and he drew Pierre's hand downwards, made him sit
    down, and smiled affectionately.
    
    "Well, Lelya?" he asked, turning instantly to his daughter and
    addressing her with the careless tone of habitual tenderness natural to
    parents who have petted their children from babyhood, but which Prince
    Vasili had only acquired by imitating other parents.
    
    And he again turned to Pierre.
    
    "Sergey Kuzmich--From all sides-" he said, unbuttoning the top button of
    his waistcoat.
    
    Pierre smiled, but his smile showed that he knew it was not the story
    about Sergey Kuzmich that interested Prince Vasili just then, and Prince
    Vasili saw that Pierre knew this. He suddenly muttered something and
    went away. It seemed to Pierre that even the prince was disconcerted.
    The sight of the discomposure of that old man of the world touched
    Pierre: he looked at Helene and she too seemed disconcerted, and her
    look seemed to say: "Well, it is your own fault."
    
    "The step must be taken but I cannot, I cannot!" thought Pierre, and he
    again began speaking about indifferent matters, about Sergey Kuzmich,
    asking what the point of the story was as he had not heard it properly.
    Helene answered with a smile that she too had missed it.
    
    When Prince Vasili returned to the drawing room, the princess, his wife,
    was talking in low tones to the elderly lady about Pierre.
    
    "Of course, it is a very brilliant match, but happiness, my dear..."
    
    "Marriages are made in heaven," replied the elderly lady.
    
    Prince Vasili passed by, seeming not to hear the ladies, and sat down on
    a sofa in a far corner of the room. He closed his eyes and seemed to be
    dozing. His head sank forward and then he roused himself.
    
    "Aline," he said to his wife, "go and see what they are about."
    
    The princess went up to the door, passed by it with a dignified and
    indifferent air, and glanced into the little drawing room. Pierre and
    Helene still sat talking just as before.
    
    "Still the same," she said to her husband.
    
    Prince Vasili frowned, twisting his mouth, his cheeks quivered and his
    face assumed the coarse, unpleasant expression peculiar to him. Shaking
    himself, he rose, threw back his head, and with resolute steps went past
    the ladies into the little drawing room. With quick steps he went
    joyfully up to Pierre. His face was so unusually triumphant that Pierre
    rose in alarm on seeing it.
    
    "Thank God!" said Prince Vasili. "My wife has told me everything!" (He
    put one arm around Pierre and the other around his daughter.)--"My dear
    boy... Lelya... I am very pleased." (His voice trembled.) "I loved your
    father... and she will make you a good wife... God bless you!..."
    
    He embraced his daughter, and then again Pierre, and kissed him with his
    malodorous mouth. Tears actually moistened his cheeks.
    
    "Princess, come here!" he shouted.
    
    The old princess came in and also wept. The elderly lady was using her
    handkerchief too. Pierre was kissed, and he kissed the beautiful
    Helene's hand several times. After a while they were left alone again.
    
    "All this had to be and could not be otherwise," thought Pierre, "so it
    is useless to ask whether it is good or bad. It is good because it's
    definite and one is rid of the old tormenting doubt." Pierre held the
    hand of his betrothed in silence, looking at her beautiful bosom as it
    rose and fell.
    
    "Helene!" he said aloud and paused.
    
    "Something special is always said in such cases," he thought, but could
    not remember what it was that people say. He looked at her face. She
    drew nearer to him. Her face flushed.
    
    "Oh, take those off... those..." she said, pointing to his spectacles.
    
    Pierre took them off, and his eyes, besides the strange look eyes have
    from which spectacles have just been removed, had also a frightened and
    inquiring look. He was about to stoop over her hand and kiss it, but
    with a rapid, almost brutal movement of her head, she intercepted his
    lips and met them with her own. Her face struck Pierre, by its altered,
    unpleasantly excited expression.
    
    "It is too late now, it's done; besides I love her," thought Pierre.
    
    "Je vous aime!" * he said, remembering what has to be said at such
    moments: but his words sounded so weak that he felt ashamed of himself.
    
    * "I love you."
    
    Six weeks later he was married, and settled in Count Bezukhov's large,
    newly furnished Petersburg house, the happy possessor, as people said,
    of a wife who was a celebrated beauty and of millions of money.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    Old Prince Nicholas Bolkonski received a letter from Prince Vasili in
    November, 1805, announcing that he and his son would be paying him a
    visit. "I am starting on a journey of inspection, and of course I shall
    think nothing of an extra seventy miles to come and see you at the same
    time, my honored benefactor," wrote Prince Vasili. "My son Anatole is
    accompanying me on his way to the army, so I hope you will allow him
    personally to express the deep respect that, emulating his father, he
    feels for you."
    
    "It seems that there will be no need to bring Mary out, suitors are
    coming to us of their own accord," incautiously remarked the little
    princess on hearing the news.
    
    Prince Nicholas frowned, but said nothing.
    
    A fortnight after the letter Prince Vasili's servants came one evening
    in advance of him, and he and his son arrived next day.
    
    Old Bolkonski had always had a poor opinion of Prince Vasili's
    character, but more so recently, since in the new reigns of Paul and
    Alexander Prince Vasili had risen to high position and honors. And now,
    from the hints contained in his letter and given by the little princess,
    he saw which way the wind was blowing, and his low opinion changed into
    a feeling of contemptuous ill will. He snorted whenever he mentioned
    him. On the day of Prince Vasili's arrival, Prince Bolkonski was
    particularly discontented and out of temper. Whether he was in a bad
    temper because Prince Vasili was coming, or whether his being in a bad
    temper made him specially annoyed at Prince Vasili's visit, he was in a
    bad temper, and in the morning Tikhon had already advised the architect
    not to go to the prince with his report.
    
    "Do you hear how he's walking?" said Tikhon, drawing the architect's
    attention to the sound of the prince's footsteps. "Stepping flat on his
    heels--we know what that means...."
    
    However, at nine o'clock the prince, in his velvet coat with a sable
    collar and cap, went out for his usual walk. It had snowed the day
    before and the path to the hothouse, along which the prince was in the
    habit of walking, had been swept: the marks of the broom were still
    visible in the snow and a shovel had been left sticking in one of the
    soft snowbanks that bordered both sides of the path. The prince went
    through the conservatories, the serfs' quarters, and the outbuildings,
    frowning and silent.
    
    "Can a sleigh pass?" he asked his overseer, a venerable man, resembling
    his master in manners and looks, who was accompanying him back to the
    house.
    
    "The snow is deep. I am having the avenue swept, your honor."
    
    The prince bowed his head and went up to the porch. "God be thanked,"
    thought the overseer, "the storm has blown over!"
    
    "It would have been hard to drive up, your honor," he added. "I heard,
    your honor, that a minister is coming to visit your honor."
    
    The prince turned round to the overseer and fixed his eyes on him,
    frowning.
    
    "What? A minister? What minister? Who gave orders?" he said in his
    shrill, harsh voice. "The road is not swept for the princess my
    daughter, but for a minister! For me, there are no ministers!"
    
    "Your honor, I thought..."
    
    "You thought!" shouted the prince, his words coming more and more
    rapidly and indistinctly. "You thought!... Rascals! Blackguards!... I'll
    teach you to think!" and lifting his stick he swung it and would have
    hit Alpatych, the overseer, had not the latter instinctively avoided the
    blow. "Thought... Blackguards..." shouted the prince rapidly.
    
    But although Alpatych, frightened at his own temerity in avoiding the
    stroke, came up to the prince, bowing his bald head resignedly before
    him, or perhaps for that very reason, the prince, though he continued to
    shout: "Blackguards!... Throw the snow back on the road!" did not lift
    his stick again but hurried into the house.
    
    Before dinner, Princess Mary and Mademoiselle Bourienne, who knew that
    the prince was in a bad humor, stood awaiting him; Mademoiselle
    Bourienne with a radiant face that said: "I know nothing, I am the same
    as usual," and Princess Mary pale, frightened, and with downcast eyes.
    What she found hardest to bear was to know that on such occasions she
    ought to behave like Mademoiselle Bourienne, but could not. She thought:
    "If I seem not to notice he will think that I do not sympathize with
    him; if I seem sad and out of spirits myself, he will say (as he has
    done before) that I'm in the dumps."
    
    The prince looked at his daughter's frightened face and snorted.
    
    "Fool... or dummy!" he muttered.
    
    "And the other one is not here. They've been telling tales," he thought-
    -referring to the little princess who was not in the dining room.
    
    "Where is the princess?" he asked. "Hiding?"
    
    "She is not very well," answered Mademoiselle Bourienne with a bright
    smile, "so she won't come down. It is natural in her state."
    
    "Hm! Hm!" muttered the prince, sitting down.
    
    His plate seemed to him not quite clean, and pointing to a spot he flung
    it away. Tikhon caught it and handed it to a footman. The little
    princess was not unwell, but had such an overpowering fear of the prince
    that, hearing he was in a bad humor, she had decided not to appear.
    
    "I am afraid for the baby," she said to Mademoiselle Bourienne: "Heaven
    knows what a fright might do."
    
    In general at Bald Hills the little princess lived in constant fear, and
    with a sense of antipathy to the old prince which she did not realize
    because the fear was so much the stronger feeling. The prince
    reciprocated this antipathy, but it was overpowered by his contempt for
    her. When the little princess had grown accustomed to life at Bald
    Hills, she took a special fancy to Mademoiselle Bourienne, spent whole
    days with her, asked her to sleep in her room, and often talked with her
    about the old prince and criticized him.
    
    "So we are to have visitors, mon prince?" remarked Mademoiselle
    Bourienne, unfolding her white napkin with her rosy fingers. "His
    Excellency Prince Vasili Kuragin and his son, I understand?" she said
    inquiringly.
    
    "Hm!--his excellency is a puppy.... I got him his appointment in the
    service," said the prince disdainfully. "Why his son is coming I don't
    understand. Perhaps Princess Elizabeth and Princess Mary know. I don't
    want him." (He looked at his blushing daughter.) "Are you unwell today?
    Eh? Afraid of the 'minister' as that idiot Alpatych called him this
    morning?"
    
    "No, mon pere."
    
    Though Mademoiselle Bourienne had been so unsuccessful in her choice of
    a subject, she did not stop talking, but chattered about the
    conservatories and the beauty of a flower that had just opened, and
    after the soup the prince became more genial.
    
    After dinner, he went to see his daughter-in-law. The little princess
    was sitting at a small table, chattering with Masha, her maid. She grew
    pale on seeing her father-in-law.
    
    She was much altered. She was now plain rather than pretty. Her cheeks
    had sunk, her lip was drawn up, and her eyes drawn down.
    
    "Yes, I feel a kind of oppression," she said in reply to the prince's
    question as to how she felt.
    
    "Do you want anything?"
    
    "No, merci, mon pere."
    
    "Well, all right, all right."
    
    He left the room and went to the waiting room where Alpatych stood with
    bowed head.
    
    "Has the snow been shoveled back?"
    
    "Yes, your excellency. Forgive me for heaven's sake... It was only my
    stupidity."
    
    "All right, all right," interrupted the prince, and laughing his
    unnatural way, he stretched out his hand for Alpatych to kiss, and then
    proceeded to his study.
    
    Prince Vasili arrived that evening. He was met in the avenue by coachmen
    and footmen, who, with loud shouts, dragged his sleighs up to one of the
    lodges over the road purposely laden with snow.
    
    Prince Vasili and Anatole had separate rooms assigned to them.
    
    Anatole, having taken off his overcoat, sat with arms akimbo before a
    table on a corner of which he smilingly and absent-mindedly fixed his
    large and handsome eyes. He regarded his whole life as a continual round
    of amusement which someone for some reason had to provide for him. And
    he looked on this visit to a churlish old man and a rich and ugly
    heiress in the same way. All this might, he thought, turn out very well
    and amusingly. "And why not marry her if she really has so much money?
    That never does any harm," thought Anatole.
    
    He shaved and scented himself with the care and elegance which had
    become habitual to him and, his handsome head held high, entered his
    father's room with the good-humored and victorious air natural to him.
    Prince Vasili's two valets were busy dressing him, and he looked round
    with much animation and cheerfully nodded to his son as the latter
    entered, as if to say: "Yes, that's how I want you to look."
    
    "I say, Father, joking apart, is she very hideous?" Anatole asked, as if
    continuing a conversation the subject of which had often been mentioned
    during the journey.
    
    "Enough! What nonsense! Above all, try to be respectful and cautious
    with the old prince."
    
    "If he starts a row I'll go away," said Prince Anatole. "I can't bear
    those old men! Eh?"
    
    "Remember, for you everything depends on this."
    
    In the meantime, not only was it known in the maidservants' rooms that
    the minister and his son had arrived, but the appearance of both had
    been minutely described. Princess Mary was sitting alone in her room,
    vainly trying to master her agitation.
    
    "Why did they write, why did Lise tell me about it? It can never
    happen!" she said, looking at herself in the glass. "How shall I enter
    the drawing room? Even if I like him I can't now be myself with him."
    The mere thought of her father's look filled her with terror. The little
    princess and Mademoiselle Bourienne had already received from Masha, the
    lady's maid, the necessary report of how handsome the minister's son
    was, with his rosy cheeks and dark eyebrows, and with what difficulty
    the father had dragged his legs upstairs while the son had followed him
    like an eagle, three steps at a time. Having received this information,
    the little princess and Mademoiselle Bourienne, whose chattering voices
    had reached her from the corridor, went into Princess Mary's room.
    
    "You know they've come, Marie?" said the little princess, waddling in,
    and sinking heavily into an armchair.
    
    She was no longer in the loose gown she generally wore in the morning,
    but had on one of her best dresses. Her hair was carefully done and her
    face was animated, which, however, did not conceal its sunken and faded
    outlines. Dressed as she used to be in Petersburg society, it was still
    more noticeable how much plainer she had become. Some unobtrusive touch
    had been added to Mademoiselle Bourienne's toilet which rendered her
    fresh and pretty face yet more attractive.
    
    "What! Are you going to remain as you are, dear princess?" she began.
    "They'll be announcing that the gentlemen are in the drawing room and we
    shall have to go down, and you have not smartened yourself up at all!"
    
    The little princess got up, rang for the maid, and hurriedly and merrily
    began to devise and carry out a plan of how Princess Mary should be
    dressed. Princess Mary's self-esteem was wounded by the fact that the
    arrival of a suitor agitated her, and still more so by both her
    companions' not having the least conception that it could be otherwise.
    To tell them that she felt ashamed for herself and for them would be to
    betray her agitation, while to decline their offers to dress her would
    prolong their banter and insistence. She flushed, her beautiful eyes
    grew dim, red blotches came on her face, and it took on the unattractive
    martyrlike expression it so often wore, as she submitted herself to
    Mademoiselle Bourienne and Lise. Both these women quite sincerely tried
    to make her look pretty. She was so plain that neither of them could
    think of her as a rival, so they began dressing her with perfect
    sincerity, and with the naive and firm conviction women have that dress
    can make a face pretty.
    
    "No really, my dear, this dress is not pretty," said Lise, looking
    sideways at Princess Mary from a little distance. "You have a maroon
    dress, have it fetched. Really! You know the fate of your whole life may
    be at stake. But this one is too light, it's not becoming!"
    
    It was not the dress, but the face and whole figure of Princess Mary
    that was not pretty, but neither Mademoiselle Bourienne nor the little
    princess felt this; they still thought that if a blue ribbon were placed
    in the hair, the hair combed up, and the blue scarf arranged lower on
    the best maroon dress, and so on, all would be well. They forgot that
    the frightened face and the figure could not be altered, and that
    however they might change the setting and adornment of that face, it
    would still remain piteous and plain. After two or three changes to
    which Princess Mary meekly submitted, just as her hair had been arranged
    on the top of her head (a style that quite altered and spoiled her
    looks) and she had put on a maroon dress with a pale-blue scarf, the
    little princess walked twice round her, now adjusting a fold of the
    dress with her little hand, now arranging the scarf and looking at her
    with her head bent first on one side and then on the other.
    
    "No, it will not do," she said decidedly, clasping her hands. "No, Mary,
    really this dress does not suit you. I prefer you in your little gray
    everyday dress. Now please, do it for my sake. Katie," she said to the
    maid, "bring the princess her gray dress, and you'll see, Mademoiselle
    Bourienne, how I shall arrange it," she added, smiling with a foretaste
    of artistic pleasure.
    
    But when Katie brought the required dress, Princess Mary remained
    sitting motionless before the glass, looking at her face, and saw in the
    mirror her eyes full of tears and her mouth quivering, ready to burst
    into sobs.
    
    "Come, dear princess," said Mademoiselle Bourienne, "just one more
    little effort."
    
    The little princess, taking the dress from the maid, came up to Princess
    Mary.
    
    "Well, now we'll arrange something quite simple and becoming," she said.
    
    The three voices, hers, Mademoiselle Bourienne's, and Katie's, who was
    laughing at something, mingled in a merry sound, like the chirping of
    birds.
    
    "No, leave me alone," said Princess Mary.
    
    Her voice sounded so serious and so sad that the chirping of the birds
    was silenced at once. They looked at the beautiful, large, thoughtful
    eyes full of tears and of thoughts, gazing shiningly and imploringly at
    them, and understood that it was useless and even cruel to insist.
    
    "At least, change your coiffure," said the little princess. "Didn't I
    tell you," she went on, turning reproachfully to Mademoiselle Bourienne,
    "Mary's is a face which such a coiffure does not suit in the least. Not
    in the least! Please change it."
    
    "Leave me alone, please leave me alone! It is all quite the same to me,"
    answered a voice struggling with tears.
    
    Mademoiselle Bourienne and the little princess had to own to themselves
    that Princess Mary in this guise looked very plain, worse than usual,
    but it was too late. She was looking at them with an expression they
    both knew, an expression thoughtful and sad. This expression in Princess
    Mary did not frighten them (she never inspired fear in anyone), but they
    knew that when it appeared on her face, she became mute and was not to
    be shaken in her determination.
    
    "You will change it, won't you?" said Lise. And as Princess Mary gave no
    answer, she left the room.
    
    Princess Mary was left alone. She did not comply with Lise's request,
    she not only left her hair as it was, but did not even look in her
    glass. Letting her arms fall helplessly, she sat with downcast eyes and
    pondered. A husband, a man, a strong dominant and strangely attractive
    being rose in her imagination, and carried her into a totally different
    happy world of his own. She fancied a child, her own--such as she had
    seen the day before in the arms of her nurse's daughter--at her own
    breast, the husband standing by and gazing tenderly at her and the
    child. "But no, it is impossible, I am too ugly," she thought.
    
    "Please come to tea. The prince will be out in a moment," came the
    maid's voice at the door.
    
    She roused herself, and felt appalled at what she had been thinking, and
    before going down she went into the room where the icons hung and, her
    eyes fixed on the dark face of a large icon of the Saviour lit by a
    lamp, she stood before it with folded hands for a few moments. A painful
    doubt filled her soul. Could the joy of love, of earthly love for a man,
    be for her? In her thoughts of marriage Princess Mary dreamed of
    happiness and of children, but her strongest, most deeply hidden longing
    was for earthly love. The more she tried to hide this feeling from
    others and even from herself, the stronger it grew. "O God," she said,
    "how am I to stifle in my heart these temptations of the devil? How am I
    to renounce forever these vile fancies, so as peacefully to fulfill Thy
    will?" And scarcely had she put that question than God gave her the
    answer in her own heart. "Desire nothing for thyself, seek nothing, be
    not anxious or envious. Man's future and thy own fate must remain hidden
    from thee, but live so that thou mayest be ready for anything. If it be
    God's will to prove thee in the duties of marriage, be ready to fulfill
    His will." With this consoling thought (but yet with a hope for the
    fulfillment of her forbidden earthly longing) Princess Mary sighed, and
    having crossed herself went down, thinking neither of her gown and
    coiffure nor of how she would go in nor of what she would say. What
    could all that matter in comparison with the will of God, without Whose
    care not a hair of man's head can fall?
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    When Princess Mary came down, Prince Vasili and his son were already in
    the drawing room, talking to the little princess and Mademoiselle
    Bourienne. When she entered with her heavy step, treading on her heels,
    the gentlemen and Mademoiselle Bourienne rose and the little princess,
    indicating her to the gentlemen, said: "Voila Marie!" Princess Mary saw
    them all and saw them in detail. She saw Prince Vasili's face, serious
    for an instant at the sight of her, but immediately smiling again, and
    the little princess curiously noting the impression "Marie" produced on
    the visitors. And she saw Mademoiselle Bourienne, with her ribbon and
    pretty face, and her unusually animated look which was fixed on him, but
    him she could not see, she only saw something large, brilliant, and
    handsome moving toward her as she entered the room. Prince Vasili
    approached first, and she kissed the bold forehead that bent over her
    hand and answered his question by saying that, on the contrary, she
    remembered him quite well. Then Anatole came up to her. She still could
    not see him. She only felt a soft hand taking hers firmly, and she
    touched with her lips a white forehead, over which was beautiful light-
    brown hair smelling of pomade. When she looked up at him she was struck
    by his beauty. Anatole stood with his right thumb under a button of his
    uniform, his chest expanded and his back drawn in, slightly swinging one
    foot, and, with his head a little bent, looked with beaming face at the
    princess without speaking and evidently not thinking about her at all.
    Anatole was not quick-witted, nor ready or eloquent in conversation, but
    he had the faculty, so invaluable in society, of composure and
    imperturbable self-possession. If a man lacking in self-confidence
    remains dumb on a first introduction and betrays a consciousness of the
    impropriety of such silence and an anxiety to find something to say, the
    effect is bad. But Anatole was dumb, swung his foot, and smilingly
    examined the princess' hair. It was evident that he could be silent in
    this way for a very long time. "If anyone finds this silence
    inconvenient, let him talk, but I don't want to," he seemed to say.
    Besides this, in his behavior to women Anatole had a manner which
    particularly inspires in them curiosity, awe, and even love--a
    supercilious consciousness of his own superiority. It was as if he said
    to them: "I know you, I know you, but why should I bother about you?
    You'd be only too glad, of course." Perhaps he did not really think this
    when he met women--even probably he did not, for in general he thought
    very little--but his looks and manner gave that impression. The princess
    felt this, and as if wishing to show him that she did not even dare
    expect to interest him, she turned to his father. The conversation was
    general and animated, thanks to Princess Lise's voice and little downy
    lip that lifted over her white teeth. She met Prince Vasili with that
    playful manner often employed by lively chatty people, and consisting in
    the assumption that between the person they so address and themselves
    there are some semi-private, long-established jokes and amusing
    reminiscences, though no such reminiscences really exist--just as none
    existed in this case. Prince Vasili readily adopted her tone and the
    little princess also drew Anatole, whom she hardly knew, into these
    amusing recollections of things that had never occurred. Mademoiselle
    Bourienne also shared them and even Princess Mary felt herself
    pleasantly made to share in these merry reminiscences.
    
    "Here at least we shall have the benefit of your company all to
    ourselves, dear prince," said the little princess (of course, in French)
    to Prince Vasili. "It's not as at Annette's * receptions where you
    always ran away; you remember cette chere Annette!"
    
    * Anna Pavlovna.
    
    "Ah, but you won't talk politics to me like Annette!"
    
    "And our little tea table?"
    
    "Oh, yes!"
    
    "Why is it you were never at Annette's?" the little princess asked
    Anatole. "Ah, I know, I know," she said with a sly glance, "your brother
    Hippolyte told me about your goings on. Oh!" and she shook her finger at
    him, "I have even heard of your doings in Paris!"
    
    "And didn't Hippolyte tell you?" asked Prince Vasili, turning to his son
    and seizing the little princess' arm as if she would have run away and
    he had just managed to catch her, "didn't he tell you how he himself was
    pining for the dear princess, and how she showed him the door? Oh, she
    is a pearl among women, Princess," he added, turning to Princess Mary.
    
    When Paris was mentioned, Mademoiselle Bourienne for her part seized the
    opportunity of joining in the general current of recollections.
    
    She took the liberty of inquiring whether it was long since Anatole had
    left Paris and how he had liked that city. Anatole answered the
    Frenchwoman very readily and, looking at her with a smile, talked to her
    about her native land. When he saw the pretty little Bourienne, Anatole
    came to the conclusion that he would not find Bald Hills dull either.
    "Not at all bad!" he thought, examining her, "not at all bad, that
    little companion! I hope she will bring her along with her when we're
    married, la petite est gentille." *
    
    * The little one is charming.
    
    The old prince dressed leisurely in his study, frowning and considering
    what he was to do. The coming of these visitors annoyed him. "What are
    Prince Vasili and that son of his to me? Prince Vasili is a shallow
    braggart and his son, no doubt, is a fine specimen," he grumbled to
    himself. What angered him was that the coming of these visitors revived
    in his mind an unsettled question he always tried to stifle, one about
    which he always deceived himself. The question was whether he could ever
    bring himself to part from his daughter and give her to a husband. The
    prince never directly asked himself that question, knowing beforehand
    that he would have to answer it justly, and justice clashed not only
    with his feelings but with the very possibility of life. Life without
    Princess Mary, little as he seemed to value her, was unthinkable to him.
    "And why should she marry?" he thought. "To be unhappy for certain.
    There's Lise, married to Andrew--a better husband one would think could
    hardly be found nowadays--but is she contented with her lot? And who
    would marry Marie for love? Plain and awkward! They'll take her for her
    connections and wealth. Are there no women living unmarried, and even
    the happier for it?" So thought Prince Bolkonski while dressing, and yet
    the question he was always putting off demanded an immediate answer.
    Prince Vasili had brought his son with the evident intention of
    proposing, and today or tomorrow he would probably ask for an answer.
    His birth and position in society were not bad. "Well, I've nothing
    against it," the prince said to himself, "but he must be worthy of her.
    And that is what we shall see."
    
    "That is what we shall see! That is what we shall see!" he added aloud.
    
    He entered the drawing room with his usual alert step, glancing rapidly
    round the company. He noticed the change in the little princess' dress,
    Mademoiselle Bourienne's ribbon, Princess Mary's unbecoming coiffure,
    Mademoiselle Bourienne's and Anatole's smiles, and the loneliness of his
    daughter amid the general conversation. "Got herself up like a fool!" he
    thought, looking irritably at her. "She is shameless, and he ignores
    her!"
    
    He went straight up to Prince Vasili.
    
    "Well! How d'ye do? How d'ye do? Glad to see you!"
    
    "Friendship laughs at distance," began Prince Vasili in his usual rapid,
    self-confident, familiar tone. "Here is my second son; please love and
    befriend him."
    
    Prince Bolkonski surveyed Anatole.
    
    "Fine young fellow! Fine young fellow!" he said. "Well, come and kiss
    me," and he offered his cheek.
    
    Anatole kissed the old man, and looked at him with curiosity and perfect
    composure, waiting for a display of the eccentricities his father had
    told him to expect.
    
    Prince Bolkonski sat down in his usual place in the corner of the sofa
    and, drawing up an armchair for Prince Vasili, pointed to it and began
    questioning him about political affairs and news. He seemed to listen
    attentively to what Prince Vasili said, but kept glancing at Princess
    Mary.
    
    "And so they are writing from Potsdam already?" he said, repeating
    Prince Vasili's last words. Then rising, he suddenly went up to his
    daughter.
    
    "Is it for visitors you've got yourself up like that, eh?" said he.
    "Fine, very fine! You have done up your hair in this new way for the
    visitors, and before the visitors I tell you that in future you are
    never to dare to change your way of dress without my consent."
    
    "It was my fault, mon pere," interceded the little princess, with a
    blush.
    
    "You must do as you please," said Prince Bolkonski, bowing to his
    daughter-in-law, "but she need not make a fool of herself, she's plain
    enough as it is."
    
    And he sat down again, paying no more attention to his daughter, who was
    reduced to tears.
    
    "On the contrary, that coiffure suits the princess very well," said
    Prince Vasili.
    
    "Now you, young prince, what's your name?" said Prince Bolkonski,
    turning to Anatole, "come here, let us talk and get acquainted."
    
    "Now the fun begins," thought Anatole, sitting down with a smile beside
    the old prince.
    
    "Well, my dear boy, I hear you've been educated abroad, not taught to
    read and write by the deacon, like your father and me. Now tell me, my
    dear boy, are you serving in the Horse Guards?" asked the old man,
    scrutinizing Anatole closely and intently.
    
    "No, I have been transferred to the line," said Anatole, hardly able to
    restrain his laughter.
    
    "Ah! That's a good thing. So, my dear boy, you wish to serve the Tsar
    and the country? It is wartime. Such a fine fellow must serve. Well, are
    you off to the front?"
    
    "No, Prince, our regiment has gone to the front, but I am attached...
    what is it I am attached to, Papa?" said Anatole, turning to his father
    with a laugh.
    
    "A splendid soldier, splendid! 'What am I attached to!' Ha, ha, ha!"
    laughed Prince Bolkonski, and Anatole laughed still louder. Suddenly
    Prince Bolkonski frowned.
    
    "You may go," he said to Anatole.
    
    Anatole returned smiling to the ladies.
    
    "And so you've had him educated abroad, Prince Vasili, haven't you?"
    said the old prince to Prince Vasili.
    
    "I have done my best for him, and I can assure you the education there
    is much better than ours."
    
    "Yes, everything is different nowadays, everything is changed. The lad's
    a fine fellow, a fine fellow! Well, come with me now." He took Prince
    Vasili's arm and led him to his study. As soon as they were alone
    together, Prince Vasili announced his hopes and wishes to the old
    prince.
    
    "Well, do you think I shall prevent her, that I can't part from her?"
    said the old prince angrily. "What an idea! I'm ready for it tomorrow!
    Only let me tell you, I want to know my son-in-law better. You know my
    principles--everything aboveboard? I will ask her tomorrow in your
    presence; if she is willing, then he can stay on. He can stay and I'll
    see." The old prince snorted. "Let her marry, it's all the same to me!"
    he screamed in the same piercing tone as when parting from his son.
    
    "I will tell you frankly," said Prince Vasili in the tone of a crafty
    man convinced of the futility of being cunning with so keen-sighted a
    companion. "You know, you see right through people. Anatole is no
    genius, but he is an honest, goodhearted lad; an excellent son or
    kinsman."
    
    "All right, all right, we'll see!"
    
    As always happens when women lead lonely lives for any length of time
    without male society, on Anatole's appearance all the three women of
    Prince Bolkonski's household felt that their life had not been real till
    then. Their powers of reasoning, feeling, and observing immediately
    increased tenfold, and their life, which seemed to have been passed in
    darkness, was suddenly lit up by a new brightness, full of significance.
    
    Princess Mary grew quite unconscious of her face and coiffure. The
    handsome open face of the man who might perhaps be her husband absorbed
    all her attention. He seemed to her kind, brave, determined, manly, and
    magnanimous. She felt convinced of that. Thousands of dreams of a future
    family life continually rose in her imagination. She drove them away and
    tried to conceal them.
    
    "But am I not too cold with him?" thought the princess. "I try to be
    reserved because in the depth of my soul I feel too near to him already,
    but then he cannot know what I think of him and may imagine that I do
    not like him."
    
    And Princess Mary tried, but could not manage, to be cordial to her new
    guest. "Poor girl, she's devilish ugly!" thought Anatole.
    
    Mademoiselle Bourienne, also roused to great excitement by Anatole's
    arrival, thought in another way. Of course, she, a handsome young woman
    without any definite position, without relations or even a country, did
    not intend to devote her life to serving Prince Bolkonski, to reading
    aloud to him and being friends with Princess Mary. Mademoiselle
    Bourienne had long been waiting for a Russian prince who, able to
    appreciate at a glance her superiority to the plain, badly dressed,
    ungainly Russian princesses, would fall in love with her and carry her
    off; and here at last was a Russian prince. Mademoiselle Bourienne knew
    a story, heard from her aunt but finished in her own way, which she
    liked to repeat to herself. It was the story of a girl who had been
    seduced, and to whom her poor mother (sa pauvre mere) appeared, and
    reproached her for yielding to a man without being married. Mademoiselle
    Bourienne was often touched to tears as in imagination she told this
    story to him, her seducer. And now he, a real Russian prince, had
    appeared. He would carry her away and then sa pauvre mere would appear
    and he would marry her. So her future shaped itself in Mademoiselle
    Bourienne's head at the very time she was talking to Anatole about
    Paris. It was not calculation that guided her (she did not even for a
    moment consider what she should do), but all this had long been familiar
    to her, and now that Anatole had appeared it just grouped itself around
    him and she wished and tried to please him as much as possible.
    
    The little princess, like an old war horse that hears the trumpet,
    unconsciously and quite forgetting her condition, prepared for the
    familiar gallop of coquetry, without any ulterior motive or any
    struggle, but with naive and lighthearted gaiety.
    
    Although in female society Anatole usually assumed the role of a man
    tired of being run after by women, his vanity was flattered by the
    spectacle of his power over these three women. Besides that, he was
    beginning to feel for the pretty and provocative Mademoiselle Bourienne
    that passionate animal feeling which was apt to master him with great
    suddenness and prompt him to the coarsest and most reckless actions.
    
    After tea, the company went into the sitting room and Princess Mary was
    asked to play on the clavichord. Anatole, laughing and in high spirits,
    came and leaned on his elbows, facing her and beside Mademoiselle
    Bourienne. Princess Mary felt his look with a painfully joyous emotion.
    Her favorite sonata bore her into a most intimately poetic world and the
    look she felt upon her made that world still more poetic. But Anatole's
    expression, though his eyes were fixed on her, referred not to her but
    to the movements of Mademoiselle Bourienne's little foot, which he was
    then touching with his own under the clavichord. Mademoiselle Bourienne
    was also looking at Princess Mary, and in her lovely eyes there was a
    look of fearful joy and hope that was also new to the princess.
    
    "How she loves me!" thought Princess Mary. "How happy I am now, and how
    happy I may be with such a friend and such a husband! Husband? Can it be
    possible?" she thought, not daring to look at his face, but still
    feeling his eyes gazing at her.
    
    In the evening, after supper, when all were about to retire, Anatole
    kissed Princess Mary's hand. She did not know how she found the courage,
    but she looked straight into his handsome face as it came near to her
    shortsighted eyes. Turning from Princess Mary he went up and kissed
    Mademoiselle Bourienne's hand. (This was not etiquette, but then he did
    everything so simply and with such assurance!) Mademoiselle Bourienne
    flushed, and gave the princess a frightened look.
    
    "What delicacy!" thought the princess. "Is it possible that Amelie"
    (Mademoiselle Bourienne) "thinks I could be jealous of her, and not
    value her pure affection and devotion to me?" She went up to her and
    kissed her warmly. Anatole went up to kiss the little princess' hand.
    
    "No! No! No! When your father writes to tell me that you are behaving
    well I will give you my hand to kiss. Not till then!" she said. And
    smilingly raising a finger at him, she left the room.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    They all separated, but, except Anatole who fell asleep as soon as he
    got into bed, all kept awake a long time that night.
    
    "Is he really to be my husband, this stranger who is so kind--yes, kind,
    that is the chief thing," thought Princess Mary; and fear, which she had
    seldom experienced, came upon her. She feared to look round, it seemed
    to her that someone was there standing behind the screen in the dark
    corner. And this someone was he--the devil--and he was also this man
    with the white forehead, black eyebrows, and red lips.
    
    She rang for her maid and asked her to sleep in her room.
    
    Mademoiselle Bourienne walked up and down the conservatory for a long
    time that evening, vainly expecting someone, now smiling at someone, now
    working herself up to tears with the imaginary words of her pauvre mere
    rebuking her for her fall.
    
    The little princess grumbled to her maid that her bed was badly made.
    She could not lie either on her face or on her side. Every position was
    awkward and uncomfortable, and her burden oppressed her now more than
    ever because Anatole's presence had vividly recalled to her the time
    when she was not like that and when everything was light and gay. She
    sat in an armchair in her dressing jacket and nightcap and Katie, sleepy
    and disheveled, beat and turned the heavy feather bed for the third
    time, muttering to herself.
    
    "I told you it was all lumps and holes!" the little princess repeated.
    "I should be glad enough to fall asleep, so it's not my fault!" and her
    voice quivered like that of a child about to cry.
    
    The old prince did not sleep either. Tikhon, half asleep, heard him
    pacing angrily about and snorting. The old prince felt as though he had
    been insulted through his daughter. The insult was the more pointed
    because it concerned not himself but another, his daughter, whom he
    loved more than himself. He kept telling himself that he would consider
    the whole matter and decide what was right and how he should act, but
    instead of that he only excited himself more and more.
    
    "The first man that turns up--she forgets her father and everything
    else, runs upstairs and does up her hair and wags her tail and is unlike
    herself! Glad to throw her father over! And she knew I should notice it.
    Fr... fr... fr! And don't I see that that idiot had eyes only for
    Bourienne--I shall have to get rid of her. And how is it she has not
    pride enough to see it? If she has no pride for herself she might at
    least have some for my sake! She must be shown that the blockhead thinks
    nothing of her and looks only at Bourienne. No, she has no pride... but
    I'll let her see...."
    
    The old prince knew that if he told his daughter she was making a
    mistake and that Anatole meant to flirt with Mademoiselle Bourienne,
    Princess Mary's self-esteem would be wounded and his point (not to be
    parted from her) would be gained, so pacifying himself with this
    thought, he called Tikhon and began to undress.
    
    "What devil brought them here?" thought he, while Tikhon was putting the
    nightshirt over his dried-up old body and gray-haired chest. "I never
    invited them. They came to disturb my life--and there is not much of it
    left."
    
    "Devil take 'em!" he muttered, while his head was still covered by the
    shirt.
    
    Tikhon knew his master's habit of sometimes thinking aloud, and
    therefore met with unaltered looks the angrily inquisitive expression of
    the face that emerged from the shirt.
    
    "Gone to bed?" asked the prince.
    
    Tikhon, like all good valets, instinctively knew the direction of his
    master's thoughts. He guessed that the question referred to Prince
    Vasili and his son.
    
    "They have gone to bed and put out their lights, your excellency."
    
    "No good... no good..." said the prince rapidly, and thrusting his feet
    into his slippers and his arms into the sleeves of his dressing gown, he
    went to the couch on which he slept.
    
    Though no words had passed between Anatole and Mademoiselle Bourienne,
    they quite understood one another as to the first part of their romance,
    up to the appearance of the pauvre mere; they understood that they had
    much to say to one another in private and so they had been seeking an
    opportunity since morning to meet one another alone. When Princess Mary
    went to her father's room at the usual hour, Mademoiselle Bourienne and
    Anatole met in the conservatory.
    
    Princess Mary went to the door of the study with special trepidation. It
    seemed to her that not only did everybody know that her fate would be
    decided that day, but that they also knew what she thought about it. She
    read this in Tikhon's face and in that of Prince Vasili's valet, who
    made her a low bow when she met him in the corridor carrying hot water.
    
    The old prince was very affectionate and careful in his treatment of his
    daughter that morning. Princess Mary well knew this painstaking
    expression of her father's. His face wore that expression when his dry
    hands clenched with vexation at her not understanding a sum in
    arithmetic, when rising from his chair he would walk away from her,
    repeating in a low voice the same words several times over.
    
    He came to the point at once, treating her ceremoniously.
    
    "I have had a proposition made me concerning you," he said with an
    unnatural smile. "I expect you have guessed that Prince Vasili has not
    come and brought his pupil with him" (for some reason Prince Bolkonski
    referred to Anatole as a "pupil") "for the sake of my beautiful eyes.
    Last night a proposition was made me on your account and, as you know my
    principles, I refer it to you."
    
    "How am I to understand you, mon pere?" said the princess, growing pale
    and then blushing.
    
    "How understand me!" cried her father angrily. "Prince Vasili finds you
    to his taste as a daughter-in-law and makes a proposal to you on his
    pupil's behalf. That's how it's to be understood! 'How understand
    it'!... And I ask you!"
    
    "I do not know what you think, Father," whispered the princess.
    
    "I? I? What of me? Leave me out of the question. I'm not going to get
    married. What about you? That's what I want to know."
    
    The princess saw that her father regarded the matter with disapproval,
    but at that moment the thought occurred to her that her fate would be
    decided now or never. She lowered her eyes so as not to see the gaze
    under which she felt that she could not think, but would only be able to
    submit from habit, and she said: "I wish only to do your will, but if I
    had to express my own desire..." She had no time to finish. The old
    prince interrupted her.
    
    "That's admirable!" he shouted. "He will take you with your dowry and
    take Mademoiselle Bourienne into the bargain. She'll be the wife, while
    you..."
    
    The prince stopped. He saw the effect these words had produced on his
    daughter. She lowered her head and was ready to burst into tears.
    
    "Now then, now then, I'm only joking!" he said. "Remember this,
    Princess, I hold to the principle that a maiden has a full right to
    choose. I give you freedom. Only remember that your life's happiness
    depends on your decision. Never mind me!"
    
    "But I do not know, Father!"
    
    "There's no need to talk! He receives his orders and will marry you or
    anybody; but you are free to choose.... Go to your room, think it over,
    and come back in an hour and tell me in his presence: yes or no. I know
    you will pray over it. Well, pray if you like, but you had better think
    it over. Go! Yes or no, yes or no, yes or no!" he still shouted when the
    princess, as if lost in a fog, had already staggered out of the study.
    
    Her fate was decided and happily decided. But what her father had said
    about Mademoiselle Bourienne was dreadful. It was untrue to be sure, but
    still it was terrible, and she could not help thinking of it. She was
    going straight on through the conservatory, neither seeing nor hearing
    anything, when suddenly the well-known whispering of Mademoiselle
    Bourienne aroused her. She raised her eyes, and two steps away saw
    Anatole embracing the Frenchwoman and whispering something to her. With
    a horrified expression on his handsome face, Anatole looked at Princess
    Mary, but did not at once take his arm from the waist of Mademoiselle
    Bourienne who had not yet seen her.
    
    "Who's that? Why? Wait a moment!" Anatole's face seemed to say. Princess
    Mary looked at them in silence. She could not understand it. At last
    Mademoiselle Bourienne gave a scream and ran away. Anatole bowed to
    Princess Mary with a gay smile, as if inviting her to join in a laugh at
    this strange incident, and then shrugging his shoulders went to the door
    that led to his own apartments.
    
    An hour later, Tikhon came to call Princess Mary to the old prince; he
    added that Prince Vasili was also there. When Tikhon came to her
    Princess Mary was sitting on the sofa in her room, holding the weeping
    Mademoiselle Bourienne in her arms and gently stroking her hair. The
    princess' beautiful eyes with all their former calm radiance were
    looking with tender affection and pity at Mademoiselle Bourienne's
    pretty face.
    
    "No, Princess, I have lost your affection forever!" said Mademoiselle
    Bourienne.
    
    "Why? I love you more than ever," said Princess Mary, "and I will try to
    do all I can for your happiness."
    
    "But you despise me. You who are so pure can never understand being so
    carried away by passion. Oh, only my poor mother..."
    
    "I quite understand," answered Princess Mary, with a sad smile. "Calm
    yourself, my dear. I will go to my father," she said, and went out.
    
    Prince Vasili, with one leg thrown high over the other and a snuffbox in
    his hand, was sitting there with a smile of deep emotion on his face, as
    if stirred to his heart's core and himself regretting and laughing at
    his own sensibility, when Princess Mary entered. He hurriedly took a
    pinch of snuff.
    
    "Ah, my dear, my dear!" he began, rising and taking her by both hands.
    Then, sighing, he added: "My son's fate is in your hands. Decide, my
    dear, good, gentle Marie, whom I have always loved as a daughter!"
    
    He drew back and a real tear appeared in his eye.
    
    "Fr... fr..." snorted Prince Bolkonski. "The prince is making a
    proposition to you in his pupil's--I mean, his son's--name. Do you wish
    or not to be Prince Anatole Kuragin's wife? Reply: yes or no," he
    shouted, "and then I shall reserve the right to state my opinion also.
    Yes, my opinion, and only my opinion," added Prince Bolkonski, turning
    to Prince Vasili and answering his imploring look. "Yes, or no?"
    
    "My desire is never to leave you, Father, never to separate my life from
    yours. I don't wish to marry," she answered positively, glancing at
    Prince Vasili and at her father with her beautiful eyes.
    
    "Humbug! Nonsense! Humbug, humbug, humbug!" cried Prince Bolkonski,
    frowning and taking his daughter's hand; he did not kiss her, but only
    bending his forehead to hers just touched it, and pressed her hand so
    that she winced and uttered a cry.
    
    Prince Vasili rose.
    
    "My dear, I must tell you that this is a moment I shall never, never
    forget. But, my dear, will you not give us a little hope of touching
    this heart, so kind and generous? Say 'perhaps'... The future is so
    long. Say 'perhaps.'"
    
    "Prince, what I have said is all there is in my heart. I thank you for
    the honor, but I shall never be your son's wife."
    
    "Well, so that's finished, my dear fellow! I am very glad to have seen
    you. Very glad! Go back to your rooms, Princess. Go!" said the old
    prince. "Very, very glad to have seen you," repeated he, embracing
    Prince Vasili.
    
    "My vocation is a different one," thought Princess Mary. "My vocation is
    to be happy with another kind of happiness, the happiness of love and
    self-sacrifice. And cost what it may, I will arrange poor Amelie's
    happiness, she loves him so passionately, and so passionately repents. I
    will do all I can to arrange the match between them. If he is not rich I
    will give her the means; I will ask my father and Andrew. I shall be so
    happy when she is his wife. She is so unfortunate, a stranger, alone,
    helpless! And, oh God, how passionately she must love him if she could
    so far forget herself! Perhaps I might have done the same!..." thought
    Princess Mary.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    It was long since the Rostovs had news of Nicholas. Not till midwinter
    was the count at last handed a letter addressed in his son's
    handwriting. On receiving it, he ran on tiptoe to his study in alarm and
    haste, trying to escape notice, closed the door, and began to read the
    letter.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna, who always knew everything that passed in the house,
    on hearing of the arrival of the letter went softly into the room and
    found the count with it in his hand, sobbing and laughing at the same
    time.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna, though her circumstances had improved, was still
    living with the Rostovs.
    
    "My dear friend?" said she, in a tone of pathetic inquiry, prepared to
    sympathize in any way.
    
    The count sobbed yet more.
    
    "Nikolenka... a letter... wa... a... s... wounded... my darling boy...
    the countess... promoted to be an officer... thank God... How tell the
    little countess!"
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna sat down beside him, with her own handkerchief wiped
    the tears from his eyes and from the letter, then having dried her own
    eyes she comforted the count, and decided that at dinner and till
    teatime she would prepare the countess, and after tea, with God's help,
    would inform her.
    
    At dinner Anna Mikhaylovna talked the whole time about the war news and
    about Nikolenka, twice asked when the last letter had been received from
    him, though she knew that already, and remarked that they might very
    likely be getting a letter from him that day. Each time that these hints
    began to make the countess anxious and she glanced uneasily at the count
    and at Anna Mikhaylovna, the latter very adroitly turned the
    conversation to insignificant matters. Natasha, who, of the whole
    family, was the most gifted with a capacity to feel any shades of
    intonation, look, and expression, pricked up her ears from the beginning
    of the meal and was certain that there was some secret between her
    father and Anna Mikhaylovna, that it had something to do with her
    brother, and that Anna Mikhaylovna was preparing them for it. Bold as
    she was, Natasha, who knew how sensitive her mother was to anything
    relating to Nikolenka, did not venture to ask any questions at dinner,
    but she was too excited to eat anything and kept wriggling about on her
    chair regardless of her governess' remarks. After dinner, she rushed
    head long after Anna Mikhaylovna and, dashing at her, flung herself on
    her neck as soon as she overtook her in the sitting room.
    
    "Auntie, darling, do tell me what it is!"
    
    "Nothing, my dear."
    
    "No, dearest, sweet one, honey, I won't give up--I know you know
    something."
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna shook her head.
    
    "You are a little slyboots," she said.
    
    "A letter from Nikolenka! I'm sure of it!" exclaimed Natasha, reading
    confirmation in Anna Mikhaylovna's face.
    
    "But for God's sake, be careful, you know how it may affect your mamma."
    
    "I will, I will, only tell me! You won't? Then I will go and tell at
    once."
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna, in a few words, told her the contents of the letter,
    on condition that she should tell no one.
    
    "No, on my true word of honor," said Natasha, crossing herself, "I won't
    tell anyone!" and she ran off at once to Sonya.
    
    "Nikolenka... wounded... a letter," she announced in gleeful triumph.
    
    "Nicholas!" was all Sonya said, instantly turning white.
    
    Natasha, seeing the impression the news of her brother's wound produced
    on Sonya, felt for the first time the sorrowful side of the news.
    
    She rushed to Sonya, hugged her, and began to cry.
    
    "A little wound, but he has been made an officer; he is well now, he
    wrote himself," said she through her tears.
    
    "There now! It's true that all you women are crybabies," remarked Petya,
    pacing the room with large, resolute strides. "Now I'm very glad, very
    glad indeed, that my brother has distinguished himself so. You are all
    blubberers and understand nothing."
    
    Natasha smiled through her tears.
    
    "You haven't read the letter?" asked Sonya.
    
    "No, but she said that it was all over and that he's now an officer."
    
    "Thank God!" said Sonya, crossing herself. "But perhaps she deceived
    you. Let us go to Mamma."
    
    Petya paced the room in silence for a time.
    
    "If I'd been in Nikolenka's place I would have killed even more of those
    Frenchmen," he said. "What nasty brutes they are! I'd have killed so
    many that there'd have been a heap of them."
    
    "Hold your tongue, Petya, what a goose you are!"
    
    "I'm not a goose, but they are who cry about trifles," said Petya.
    
    "Do you remember him?" Natasha suddenly asked, after a moment's silence.
    
    Sonya smiled.
    
    "Do I remember Nicholas?"
    
    "No, Sonya, but do you remember so that you remember him perfectly,
    remember everything?" said Natasha, with an expressive gesture,
    evidently wishing to give her words a very definite meaning. "I remember
    Nikolenka too, I remember him well," she said. "But I don't remember
    Boris. I don't remember him a bit."
    
    "What! You don't remember Boris?" asked Sonya in surprise.
    
    "It's not that I don't remember--I know what he is like, but not as I
    remember Nikolenka. Him--I just shut my eyes and remember, but Boris...
    No!" (She shut her eyes.) "No! there's nothing at all."
    
    "Oh, Natasha!" said Sonya, looking ecstatically and earnestly at her
    friend as if she did not consider her worthy to hear what she meant to
    say and as if she were saying it to someone else, with whom joking was
    out of the question, "I am in love with your brother once for all and,
    whatever may happen to him or to me, shall never cease to love him as
    long as I live."
    
    Natasha looked at Sonya with wondering and inquisitive eyes, and said
    nothing. She felt that Sonya was speaking the truth, that there was such
    love as Sonya was speaking of. But Natasha had not yet felt anything
    like it. She believed it could be, but did not understand it.
    
    "Shall you write to him?" she asked.
    
    Sonya became thoughtful. The question of how to write to Nicholas, and
    whether she ought to write, tormented her. Now that he was already an
    officer and a wounded hero, would it be right to remind him of herself
    and, as it might seem, of the obligations to her he had taken on
    himself?
    
    "I don't know. I think if he writes, I will write too," she said,
    blushing.
    
    "And you won't feel ashamed to write to him?"
    
    Sonya smiled.
    
    "No."
    
    "And I should be ashamed to write to Boris. I'm not going to."
    
    "Why should you be ashamed?"
    
    "Well, I don't know. It's awkward and would make me ashamed."
    
    "And I know why she'd be ashamed," said Petya, offended by Natasha's
    previous remark. "It's because she was in love with that fat one in
    spectacles" (that was how Petya described his namesake, the new Count
    Bezukhov) "and now she's in love with that singer" (he meant Natasha's
    Italian singing master), "that's why she's ashamed!"
    
    "Petya, you're a stupid!" said Natasha.
    
    "Not more stupid than you, madam," said the nine-year-old Petya, with
    the air of an old brigadier.
    
    The countess had been prepared by Anna Mikhaylovna's hints at dinner. On
    retiring to her own room, she sat in an armchair, her eyes fixed on a
    miniature portrait of her son on the lid of a snuffbox, while the tears
    kept coming into her eyes. Anna Mikhaylovna, with the letter, came on
    tiptoe to the countess' door and paused.
    
    "Don't come in," she said to the old count who was following her. "Come
    later." And she went in, closing the door behind her.
    
    The count put his ear to the keyhole and listened.
    
    At first he heard the sound of indifferent voices, then Anna
    Mikhaylovna's voice alone in a long speech, then a cry, then silence,
    then both voices together with glad intonations, and then footsteps.
    Anna Mikhaylovna opened the door. Her face wore the proud expression of
    a surgeon who has just performed a difficult operation and admits the
    public to appreciate his skill.
    
    "It is done!" she said to the count, pointing triumphantly to the
    countess, who sat holding in one hand the snuffbox with its portrait and
    in the other the letter, and pressing them alternately to her lips.
    
    When she saw the count, she stretched out her arms to him, embraced his
    bald head, over which she again looked at the letter and the portrait,
    and in order to press them again to her lips, she slightly pushed away
    the bald head. Vera, Natasha, Sonya, and Petya now entered the room, and
    the reading of the letter began. After a brief description of the
    campaign and the two battles in which he had taken part, and his
    promotion, Nicholas said that he kissed his father's and mother's hands
    asking for their blessing, and that he kissed Vera, Natasha, and Petya.
    Besides that, he sent greetings to Monsieur Schelling, Madame Schoss,
    and his old nurse, and asked them to kiss for him "dear Sonya, whom he
    loved and thought of just the same as ever." When she heard this Sonya
    blushed so that tears came into her eyes and, unable to bear the looks
    turned upon her, ran away into the dancing hall, whirled round it at
    full speed with her dress puffed out like a balloon, and, flushed and
    smiling, plumped down on the floor. The countess was crying.
    
    "Why are you crying, Mamma?" asked Vera. "From all he says one should be
    glad and not cry."
    
    This was quite true, but the count, the countess, and Natasha looked at
    her reproachfully. "And who is it she takes after?" thought the
    countess.
    
    Nicholas' letter was read over hundreds of times, and those who were
    considered worthy to hear it had to come to the countess, for she did
    not let it out of her hands. The tutors came, and the nurses, and
    Dmitri, and several acquaintances, and the countess reread the letter
    each time with fresh pleasure and each time discovered in it fresh
    proofs of Nikolenka's virtues. How strange, how extraordinary, how
    joyful it seemed, that her son, the scarcely perceptible motion of whose
    tiny limbs she had felt twenty years ago within her, that son about whom
    she used to have quarrels with the too indulgent count, that son who had
    first learned to say "pear" and then "granny," that this son should now
    be away in a foreign land amid strange surroundings, a manly warrior
    doing some kind of man's work of his own, without help or guidance. The
    universal experience of ages, showing that children do grow
    imperceptibly from the cradle to manhood, did not exist for the
    countess. Her son's growth toward manhood, at each of its stages, had
    seemed as extraordinary to her as if there had never existed the
    millions of human beings who grew up in the same way. As twenty years
    before, it seemed impossible that the little creature who lived
    somewhere under her heart would ever cry, suck her breast, and begin to
    speak, so now she could not believe that that little creature could be
    this strong, brave man, this model son and officer that, judging by this
    letter, he now was.
    
    "What a style! How charmingly he describes!" said she, reading the
    descriptive part of the letter. "And what a soul! Not a word about
    himself.... Not a word! About some Denisov or other, though he himself,
    I dare say, is braver than any of them. He says nothing about his
    sufferings. What a heart! How like him it is! And how he has remembered
    everybody! Not forgetting anyone. I always said when he was only so
    high--I always said...."
    
    For more than a week preparations were being made, rough drafts of
    letters to Nicholas from all the household were written and copied out,
    while under the supervision of the countess and the solicitude of the
    count, money and all things necessary for the uniform and equipment of
    the newly commissioned officer were collected. Anna Mikhaylovna,
    practical woman that she was, had even managed by favor with army
    authorities to secure advantageous means of communication for herself
    and her son. She had opportunities of sending her letters to the Grand
    Duke Constantine Pavlovich, who commanded the Guards. The Rostovs
    supposed that The Russian Guards, Abroad, was quite a definite address,
    and that if a letter reached the Grand Duke in command of the Guards
    there was no reason why it should not reach the Pavlograd regiment,
    which was presumably somewhere in the same neighborhood. And so it was
    decided to send the letters and money by the Grand Duke's courier to
    Boris and Boris was to forward them to Nicholas. The letters were from
    the old count, the countess, Petya, Vera, Natasha, and Sonya, and
    finally there were six thousand rubles for his outfit and various other
    things the old count sent to his son.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    On the twelfth of November, Kutuzov's active army, in camp before
    Olmutz, was preparing to be reviewed next day by the two Emperors--the
    Russian and the Austrian. The Guards, just arrived from Russia, spent
    the night ten miles from Olmutz and next morning were to come straight
    to the review, reaching the field at Olmutz by ten o'clock.
    
    That day Nicholas Rostov received a letter from Boris, telling him that
    the Ismaylov regiment was quartered for the night ten miles from Olmutz
    and that he wanted to see him as he had a letter and money for him.
    Rostov was particularly in need of money now that the troops, after
    their active service, were stationed near Olmutz and the camp swarmed
    with well-provisioned sutlers and Austrian Jews offering all sorts of
    tempting wares. The Pavlograds held feast after feast, celebrating
    awards they had received for the campaign, and made expeditions to
    Olmutz to visit a certain Caroline the Hungarian, who had recently
    opened a restaurant there with girls as waitresses. Rostov, who had just
    celebrated his promotion to a cornetcy and bought Denisov's horse,
    Bedouin, was in debt all round, to his comrades and the sutlers. On
    receiving Boris' letter he rode with a fellow officer to Olmutz, dined
    there, drank a bottle of wine, and then set off alone to the Guards'
    camp to find his old playmate. Rostov had not yet had time to get his
    uniform. He had on a shabby cadet jacket, decorated with a soldier's
    cross, equally shabby cadet's riding breeches lined with worn leather,
    and an officer's saber with a sword knot. The Don horse he was riding
    was one he had bought from a Cossack during the campaign, and he wore a
    crumpled hussar cap stuck jauntily back on one side of his head. As he
    rode up to the camp he thought how he would impress Boris and all his
    comrades of the Guards by his appearance--that of a fighting hussar who
    had been under fire.
    
    The Guards had made their whole march as if on a pleasure trip, parading
    their cleanliness and discipline. They had come by easy stages, their
    knapsacks conveyed on carts, and the Austrian authorities had provided
    excellent dinners for the officers at every halting place. The regiments
    had entered and left the town with their bands playing, and by the Grand
    Duke's orders the men had marched all the way in step (a practice on
    which the Guards prided themselves), the officers on foot and at their
    proper posts. Boris had been quartered, and had marched all the way,
    with Berg who was already in command of a company. Berg, who had
    obtained his captaincy during the campaign, had gained the confidence of
    his superiors by his promptitude and accuracy and had arranged his money
    matters very satisfactorily. Boris, during the campaign, had made the
    acquaintance of many persons who might prove useful to him, and by a
    letter of recommendation he had brought from Pierre had become
    acquainted with Prince Andrew Bolkonski, through whom he hoped to obtain
    a post on the commander-in-chief's staff. Berg and Boris, having rested
    after yesterday's march, were sitting, clean and neatly dressed, at a
    round table in the clean quarters allotted to them, playing chess. Berg
    held a smoking pipe between his knees. Boris, in the accurate way
    characteristic of him, was building a little pyramid of chessmen with
    his delicate white fingers while awaiting Berg's move, and watched his
    opponent's face, evidently thinking about the game as he always thought
    only of whatever he was engaged on.
    
    "Well, how are you going to get out of that?" he remarked.
    
    "We'll try to," replied Berg, touching a pawn and then removing his
    hand.
    
    At that moment the door opened.
    
    "Here he is at last!" shouted Rostov. "And Berg too! Oh, you
    petisenfans, allay cushay dormir!" he exclaimed, imitating his Russian
    nurse's French, at which he and Boris used to laugh long ago.
    
    "Dear me, how you have changed!"
    
    Boris rose to meet Rostov, but in doing so did not omit to steady and
    replace some chessmen that were falling. He was about to embrace his
    friend, but Nicholas avoided him. With that peculiar feeling of youth,
    that dread of beaten tracks, and wish to express itself in a manner
    different from that of its elders which is often insincere, Nicholas
    wished to do something special on meeting his friend. He wanted to pinch
    him, push him, do anything but kiss him--a thing everybody did. But
    notwithstanding this, Boris embraced him in a quiet, friendly way and
    kissed him three times.
    
    They had not met for nearly half a year and, being at the age when young
    men take their first steps on life's road, each saw immense changes in
    the other, quite a new reflection of the society in which they had taken
    those first steps. Both had changed greatly since they last met and both
    were in a hurry to show the changes that had taken place in them.
    
    "Oh, you damned dandies! Clean and fresh as if you'd been to a fete, not
    like us sinners of the line," cried Rostov, with martial swagger and
    with baritone notes in his voice, new to Boris, pointing to his own mud-
    bespattered breeches. The German landlady, hearing Rostov's loud voice,
    popped her head in at the door.
    
    "Eh, is she pretty?" he asked with a wink.
    
    "Why do you shout so? You'll frighten them!" said Boris. "I did not
    expect you today," he added. "I only sent you the note yesterday by
    Bolkonski--an adjutant of Kutuzov's, who's a friend of mine. I did not
    think he would get it to you so quickly.... Well, how are you? Been
    under fire already?" asked Boris.
    
    Without answering, Rostov shook the soldier's Cross of St. George
    fastened to the cording of his uniform and, indicating a bandaged arm,
    glanced at Berg with a smile.
    
    "As you see," he said.
    
    "Indeed? Yes, yes!" said Boris, with a smile. "And we too have had a
    splendid march. You know, of course, that His Imperial Highness rode
    with our regiment all the time, so that we had every comfort and every
    advantage. What receptions we had in Poland! What dinners and balls! I
    can't tell you. And the Tsarevich was very gracious to all our
    officers."
    
    And the two friends told each other of their doings, the one of his
    hussar revels and life in the fighting line, the other of the pleasures
    and advantages of service under members of the Imperial family.
    
    "Oh, you Guards!" said Rostov. "I say, send for some wine."
    
    Boris made a grimace.
    
    "If you really want it," said he.
    
    He went to his bed, drew a purse from under the clean pillow, and sent
    for wine.
    
    "Yes, and I have some money and a letter to give you," he added.
    
    Rostov took the letter and, throwing the money on the sofa, put both
    arms on the table and began to read. After reading a few lines, he
    glanced angrily at Berg, then, meeting his eyes, hid his face behind the
    letter.
    
    "Well, they've sent you a tidy sum," said Berg, eying the heavy purse
    that sank into the sofa. "As for us, Count, we get along on our pay. I
    can tell you for myself..."
    
    "I say, Berg, my dear fellow," said Rostov, "when you get a letter from
    home and meet one of your own people whom you want to talk everything
    over with, and I happen to be there, I'll go at once, to be out of your
    way! Do go somewhere, anywhere... to the devil!" he exclaimed, and
    immediately seizing him by the shoulder and looking amiably into his
    face, evidently wishing to soften the rudeness of his words, he added,
    "Don't be hurt, my dear fellow; you know I speak from my heart as to an
    old acquaintance."
    
    "Oh, don't mention it, Count! I quite understand," said Berg, getting up
    and speaking in a muffled and guttural voice.
    
    "Go across to our hosts: they invited you," added Boris.
    
    Berg put on the cleanest of coats, without a spot or speck of dust,
    stood before a looking glass and brushed the hair on his temples
    upwards, in the way affected by the Emperor Alexander, and, having
    assured himself from the way Rostov looked at it that his coat had been
    noticed, left the room with a pleasant smile.
    
    "Oh dear, what a beast I am!" muttered Rostov, as he read the letter.
    
    "Why?"
    
    "Oh, what a pig I am, not to have written and to have given them such a
    fright! Oh, what a pig I am!" he repeated, flushing suddenly. "Well,
    have you sent Gabriel for some wine? All right let's have some!"
    
    In the letter from his parents was enclosed a letter of recommendation
    to Bagration which the old countess at Anna Mikhaylovna's advice had
    obtained through an acquaintance and sent to her son, asking him to take
    it to its destination and make use of it.
    
    "What nonsense! Much I need it!" said Rostov, throwing the letter under
    the table.
    
    "Why have you thrown that away?" asked Boris.
    
    "It is some letter of recommendation... what the devil do I want it
    for!"
    
    "Why 'What the devil'?" said Boris, picking it up and reading the
    address. "This letter would be of great use to you."
    
    "I want nothing, and I won't be anyone's adjutant."
    
    "Why not?" inquired Boris.
    
    "It's a lackey's job!"
    
    "You are still the same dreamer, I see," remarked Boris, shaking his
    head.
    
    "And you're still the same diplomatist! But that's not the point...
    Come, how are you?" asked Rostov.
    
    "Well, as you see. So far everything's all right, but I confess I should
    much like to be an adjutant and not remain at the front."
    
    "Why?"
    
    "Because when once a man starts on military service, he should try to
    make as successful a career of it as possible."
    
    "Oh, that's it!" said Rostov, evidently thinking of something else.
    
    He looked intently and inquiringly into his friend's eyes, evidently
    trying in vain to find the answer to some question.
    
    Old Gabriel brought in the wine.
    
    "Shouldn't we now send for Berg?" asked Boris. "He would drink with you.
    I can't."
    
    "Well, send for him... and how do you get on with that German?" asked
    Rostov, with a contemptuous smile.
    
    "He is a very, very nice, honest, and pleasant fellow," answered Boris.
    
    Again Rostov looked intently into Boris' eyes and sighed. Berg returned,
    and over the bottle of wine conversation between the three officers
    became animated. The Guardsmen told Rostov of their march and how they
    had been made much of in Russia, Poland, and abroad. They spoke of the
    sayings and doings of their commander, the Grand Duke, and told stories
    of his kindness and irascibility. Berg, as usual, kept silent when the
    subject did not relate to himself, but in connection with the stories of
    the Grand Duke's quick temper he related with gusto how in Galicia he
    had managed to deal with the Grand Duke when the latter made a tour of
    the regiments and was annoyed at the irregularity of a movement. With a
    pleasant smile Berg related how the Grand Duke had ridden up to him in a
    violent passion, shouting: "Arnauts!" ("Arnauts" was the Tsarevich's
    favorite expression when he was in a rage) and called for the company
    commander.
    
    "Would you believe it, Count, I was not at all alarmed, because I knew I
    was right. Without boasting, you know, I may say that I know the Army
    Orders by heart and know the Regulations as well as I do the Lord's
    Prayer. So, Count, there never is any negligence in my company, and so
    my conscience was at ease. I came forward...." (Berg stood up and showed
    how he presented himself, with his hand to his cap, and really it would
    have been difficult for a face to express greater respect and self-
    complacency than his did.) "Well, he stormed at me, as the saying is,
    stormed and stormed and stormed! It was not a matter of life but rather
    of death, as the saying is. 'Albanians!' and 'devils!' and 'To
    Siberia!'" said Berg with a sagacious smile. "I knew I was in the right
    so I kept silent; was not that best, Count?... 'Hey, are you dumb?' he
    shouted. Still I remained silent. And what do you think, Count? The next
    day it was not even mentioned in the Orders of the Day. That's what
    keeping one's head means. That's the way, Count," said Berg, lighting
    his pipe and emitting rings of smoke.
    
    "Yes, that was fine," said Rostov, smiling.
    
    But Boris noticed that he was preparing to make fun of Berg, and
    skillfully changed the subject. He asked him to tell them how and where
    he got his wound. This pleased Rostov and he began talking about it, and
    as he went on became more and more animated. He told them of his Schon
    Grabern affair, just as those who have taken part in a battle generally
    do describe it, that is, as they would like it to have been, as they
    have heard it described by others, and as sounds well, but not at all as
    it really was. Rostov was a truthful young man and would on no account
    have told a deliberate lie. He began his story meaning to tell
    everything just as it happened, but imperceptibly, involuntarily, and
    inevitably he lapsed into falsehood. If he had told the truth to his
    hearers--who like himself had often heard stories of attacks and had
    formed a definite idea of what an attack was and were expecting to hear
    just such a story--they would either not have believed him or, still
    worse, would have thought that Rostov was himself to blame since what
    generally happens to the narrators of cavalry attacks had not happened
    to him. He could not tell them simply that everyone went at a trot and
    that he fell off his horse and sprained his arm and then ran as hard as
    he could from a Frenchman into the wood. Besides, to tell everything as
    it really happened, it would have been necessary to make an effort of
    will to tell only what happened. It is very difficult to tell the truth,
    and young people are rarely capable of it. His hearers expected a story
    of how beside himself and all aflame with excitement, he had flown like
    a storm at the square, cut his way in, slashed right and left, how his
    saber had tasted flesh and he had fallen exhausted, and so on. And so he
    told them all that.
    
    In the middle of his story, just as he was saying: "You cannot imagine
    what a strange frenzy one experiences during an attack," Prince Andrew,
    whom Boris was expecting, entered the room. Prince Andrew, who liked to
    help young men, was flattered by being asked for his assistance and
    being well disposed toward Boris, who had managed to please him the day
    before, he wished to do what the young man wanted. Having been sent with
    papers from Kutuzov to the Tsarevich, he looked in on Boris, hoping to
    find him alone. When he came in and saw an hussar of the line recounting
    his military exploits (Prince Andrew could not endure that sort of man),
    he gave Boris a pleasant smile, frowned as with half-closed eyes he
    looked at Rostov, bowed slightly and wearily, and sat down languidly on
    the sofa: he felt it unpleasant to have dropped in on bad company.
    Rostov flushed up on noticing this, but he did not care, this was a mere
    stranger. Glancing, however, at Boris, he saw that he too seemed ashamed
    of the hussar of the line.
    
    In spite of Prince Andrew's disagreeable, ironical tone, in spite of the
    contempt with which Rostov, from his fighting army point of view,
    regarded all these little adjutants on the staff of whom the newcomer
    was evidently one, Rostov felt confused, blushed, and became silent.
    Boris inquired what news there might be on the staff, and what, without
    indiscretion, one might ask about our plans.
    
    "We shall probably advance," replied Bolkonski, evidently reluctant to
    say more in the presence of a stranger.
    
    Berg took the opportunity to ask, with great politeness, whether, as was
    rumored, the allowance of forage money to captains of companies would be
    doubled. To this Prince Andrew answered with a smile that he could give
    no opinion on such an important government order, and Berg laughed
    gaily.
    
    "As to your business," Prince Andrew continued, addressing Boris, "we
    will talk of it later" (and he looked round at Rostov). "Come to me
    after the review and we will do what is possible."
    
    And, having glanced round the room, Prince Andrew turned to Rostov,
    whose state of unconquerable childish embarrassment now changing to
    anger he did not condescend to notice, and said: "I think you were
    talking of the Schon Grabern affair? Were you there?"
    
    "I was there," said Rostov angrily, as if intending to insult the aide-
    de-camp.
    
    Bolkonski noticed the hussar's state of mind, and it amused him. With a
    slightly contemptuous smile, he said: "Yes, there are many stories now
    told about that affair!"
    
    "Yes, stories!" repeated Rostov loudly, looking with eyes suddenly grown
    furious, now at Boris, now at Bolkonski. "Yes, many stories! But our
    stories are the stories of men who have been under the enemy's fire! Our
    stories have some weight, not like the stories of those fellows on the
    staff who get rewards without doing anything!"
    
    "Of whom you imagine me to be one?" said Prince Andrew, with a quiet and
    particularly amiable smile.
    
    A strange feeling of exasperation and yet of respect for this man's
    self-possession mingled at that moment in Rostov's soul.
    
    "I am not talking about you," he said, "I don't know you and, frankly, I
    don't want to. I am speaking of the staff in general."
    
    "And I will tell you this," Prince Andrew interrupted in a tone of quiet
    authority, "you wish to insult me, and I am ready to agree with you that
    it would be very easy to do so if you haven't sufficient self-respect,
    but admit that the time and place are very badly chosen. In a day or two
    we shall all have to take part in a greater and more serious duel, and
    besides, Drubetskoy, who says he is an old friend of yours, is not at
    all to blame that my face has the misfortune to displease you. However,"
    he added rising, "you know my name and where to find me, but don't
    forget that I do not regard either myself or you as having been at all
    insulted, and as a man older than you, my advice is to let the matter
    drop. Well then, on Friday after the review I shall expect you,
    Drubetskoy. Au revoir!" exclaimed Prince Andrew, and with a bow to them
    both he went out.
    
    Only when Prince Andrew was gone did Rostov think of what he ought to
    have said. And he was still more angry at having omitted to say it. He
    ordered his horse at once and, coldly taking leave of Boris, rode home.
    Should he go to headquarters next day and challenge that affected
    adjutant, or really let the matter drop, was the question that worried
    him all the way. He thought angrily of the pleasure he would have at
    seeing the fright of that small and frail but proud man when covered by
    his pistol, and then he felt with surprise that of all the men he knew
    there was none he would so much like to have for a friend as that very
    adjutant whom he so hated.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    The day after Rostov had been to see Boris, a review was held of the
    Austrian and Russian troops, both those freshly arrived from Russia and
    those who had been campaigning under Kutuzov. The two Emperors, the
    Russian with his heir the Tsarevich, and the Austrian with the Archduke,
    inspected the allied army of eighty thousand men.
    
    From early morning the smart clean troops were on the move, forming up
    on the field before the fortress. Now thousands of feet and bayonets
    moved and halted at the officers' command, turned with banners flying,
    formed up at intervals, and wheeled round other similar masses of
    infantry in different uniforms; now was heard the rhythmic beat of hoofs
    and the jingling of showy cavalry in blue, red, and green braided
    uniforms, with smartly dressed bandsmen in front mounted on black, roan,
    or gray horses; then again, spreading out with the brazen clatter of the
    polished shining cannon that quivered on the gun carriages and with the
    smell of linstocks, came the artillery which crawled between the
    infantry and cavalry and took up its appointed position. Not only the
    generals in full parade uniforms, with their thin or thick waists drawn
    in to the utmost, their red necks squeezed into their stiff collars, and
    wearing scarves and all their decorations, not only the elegant, pomaded
    officers, but every soldier with his freshly washed and shaven face and
    his weapons clean and polished to the utmost, and every horse groomed
    till its coat shone like satin and every hair of its wetted mane lay
    smooth--felt that no small matter was happening, but an important and
    solemn affair. Every general and every soldier was conscious of his own
    insignificance, aware of being but a drop in that ocean of men, and yet
    at the same time was conscious of his strength as a part of that
    enormous whole.
    
    From early morning strenuous activities and efforts had begun and by ten
    o'clock all had been brought into due order. The ranks were drawn up on
    the vast field. The whole army was extended in three lines: the cavalry
    in front, behind it the artillery, and behind that again the infantry.
    
    A space like a street was left between each two lines of troops. The
    three parts of that army were sharply distinguished: Kutuzov's fighting
    army (with the Pavlograds on the right flank of the front); those
    recently arrived from Russia, both Guards and regiments of the line; and
    the Austrian troops. But they all stood in the same lines, under one
    command, and in a like order.
    
    Like wind over leaves ran an excited whisper: "They're coming! They're
    coming!" Alarmed voices were heard, and a stir of final preparation
    swept over all the troops.
    
    From the direction of Olmutz in front of them, a group was seen
    approaching. And at that moment, though the day was still, a light gust
    of wind blowing over the army slightly stirred the streamers on the
    lances and the unfolded standards fluttered against their staffs. It
    looked as if by that slight motion the army itself was expressing its
    joy at the approach of the Emperors. One voice was heard shouting: "Eyes
    front!" Then, like the crowing of cocks at sunrise, this was repeated by
    others from various sides and all became silent.
    
    In the deathlike stillness only the tramp of horses was heard. This was
    the Emperors' suites. The Emperors rode up to the flank, and the
    trumpets of the first cavalry regiment played the general march. It
    seemed as though not the trumpeters were playing, but as if the army
    itself, rejoicing at the Emperors' approach, had naturally burst into
    music. Amid these sounds, only the youthful kindly voice of the Emperor
    Alexander was clearly heard. He gave the words of greeting, and the
    first regiment roared "Hurrah!" so deafeningly, continuously, and
    joyfully that the men themselves were awed by their multitude and the
    immensity of the power they constituted.
    
    Rostov, standing in the front lines of Kutuzov's army which the Tsar
    approached first, experienced the same feeling as every other man in
    that army: a feeling of self-forgetfulness, a proud consciousness of
    might, and a passionate attraction to him who was the cause of this
    triumph.
    
    He felt that at a single word from that man all this vast mass (and he
    himself an insignificant atom in it) would go through fire and water,
    commit crime, die, or perform deeds of highest heroism, and so he could
    not but tremble and his heart stand still at the imminence of that word.
    
    "Hurrah! Hurrah! Hurrah!" thundered from all sides, one regiment after
    another greeting the Tsar with the strains of the march, and then
    "Hurrah!"... Then the general march, and again "Hurrah! Hurrah!" growing
    ever stronger and fuller and merging into a deafening roar.
    
    Till the Tsar reached it, each regiment in its silence and immobility
    seemed like a lifeless body, but as soon as he came up it became alive,
    its thunder joining the roar of the whole line along which he had
    already passed. Through the terrible and deafening roar of those voices,
    amid the square masses of troops standing motionless as if turned to
    stone, hundreds of riders composing the suites moved carelessly but
    symmetrically and above all freely, and in front of them two men--the
    Emperors. Upon them the undivided, tensely passionate attention of that
    whole mass of men was concentrated.
    
    The handsome young Emperor Alexander, in the uniform of the Horse
    Guards, wearing a cocked hat with its peaks front and back, with his
    pleasant face and resonant though not loud voice, attracted everyone's
    attention.
    
    Rostov was not far from the trumpeters, and with his keen sight had
    recognized the Tsar and watched his approach. When he was within twenty
    paces, and Nicholas could clearly distinguish every detail of his
    handsome, happy young face, he experienced a feeling of tenderness and
    ecstasy such as he had never before known. Every trait and every
    movement of the Tsar's seemed to him enchanting.
    
    Stopping in front of the Pavlograds, the Tsar said something in French
    to the Austrian Emperor and smiled.
    
    Seeing that smile, Rostov involuntarily smiled himself and felt a still
    stronger flow of love for his sovereign. He longed to show that love in
    some way and knowing that this was impossible was ready to cry. The Tsar
    called the colonel of the regiment and said a few words to him.
    
    "Oh God, what would happen to me if the Emperor spoke to me?" thought
    Rostov. "I should die of happiness!"
    
    The Tsar addressed the officers also: "I thank you all, gentlemen, I
    thank you with my whole heart." To Rostov every word sounded like a
    voice from heaven. How gladly would he have died at once for his Tsar!
    
    "You have earned the St. George's standards and will be worthy of them."
    
    "Oh, to die, to die for him," thought Rostov.
    
    The Tsar said something more which Rostov did not hear, and the
    soldiers, straining their lungs, shouted "Hurrah!"
    
    Rostov too, bending over his saddle, shouted "Hurrah!" with all his
    might, feeling that he would like to injure himself by that shout, if
    only to express his rapture fully.
    
    The Tsar stopped a few minutes in front of the hussars as if undecided.
    
    "How can the Emperor be undecided?" thought Rostov, but then even this
    indecision appeared to him majestic and enchanting, like everything else
    the Tsar did.
    
    That hesitation lasted only an instant. The Tsar's foot, in the narrow
    pointed boot then fashionable, touched the groin of the bobtailed bay
    mare he rode, his hand in a white glove gathered up the reins, and he
    moved off accompanied by an irregularly swaying sea of aides-de-camp.
    Farther and farther he rode away, stopping at other regiments, till at
    last only his white plumes were visible to Rostov from amid the suites
    that surrounded the Emperors.
    
    Among the gentlemen of the suite, Rostov noticed Bolkonski, sitting his
    horse indolently and carelessly. Rostov recalled their quarrel of
    yesterday and the question presented itself whether he ought or ought
    not to challenge Bolkonski. "Of course not!" he now thought. "Is it
    worth thinking or speaking of it at such a moment? At a time of such
    love, such rapture, and such self-sacrifice, what do any of our quarrels
    and affronts matter? I love and forgive everybody now."
    
    When the Emperor had passed nearly all the regiments, the troops began a
    ceremonial march past him, and Rostov on Bedouin, recently purchased
    from Denisov, rode past too, at the rear of his squadron--that is, alone
    and in full view of the Emperor.
    
    Before he reached him, Rostov, who was a splendid horseman, spurred
    Bedouin twice and successfully put him to the showy trot in which the
    animal went when excited. Bending his foaming muzzle to his chest, his
    tail extended, Bedouin, as if also conscious of the Emperor's eye upon
    him, passed splendidly, lifting his feet with a high and graceful
    action, as if flying through the air without touching the ground.
    
    Rostov himself, his legs well back and his stomach drawn in and feeling
    himself one with his horse, rode past the Emperor with a frowning but
    blissful face "like a vewy devil," as Denisov expressed it.
    
    "Fine fellows, the Pavlograds!" remarked the Emperor.
    
    "My God, how happy I should be if he ordered me to leap into the fire
    this instant!" thought Rostov.
    
    When the review was over, the newly arrived officers, and also
    Kutuzov's, collected in groups and began to talk about the awards, about
    the Austrians and their uniforms, about their lines, about Bonaparte,
    and how badly the latter would fare now, especially if the Essen corps
    arrived and Prussia took our side.
    
    But the talk in every group was chiefly about the Emperor Alexander. His
    every word and movement was described with ecstasy.
    
    They all had but one wish: to advance as soon as possible against the
    enemy under the Emperor's command. Commanded by the Emperor himself they
    could not fail to vanquish anyone, be it whom it might: so thought
    Rostov and most of the officers after the review.
    
    All were then more confident of victory than the winning of two battles
    would have made them.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    The day after the review, Boris, in his best uniform and with his
    comrade Berg's best wishes for success, rode to Olmutz to see Bolkonski,
    wishing to profit by his friendliness and obtain for himself the best
    post he could--preferably that of adjutant to some important personage,
    a position in the army which seemed to him most attractive. "It is all
    very well for Rostov, whose father sends him ten thousand rubles at a
    time, to talk about not wishing to cringe to anybody and not be anyone's
    lackey, but I who have nothing but my brains have to make a career and
    must not miss opportunities, but must avail myself of them!" he
    reflected.
    
    He did not find Prince Andrew in Olmutz that day, but the appearance of
    the town where the headquarters and the diplomatic corps were stationed
    and the two Emperors were living with their suites, households, and
    courts only strengthened his desire to belong to that higher world.
    
    He knew no one, and despite his smart Guardsman's uniform, all these
    exalted personages passing in the streets in their elegant carriages
    with their plumes, ribbons, and medals, both courtiers and military men,
    seemed so immeasurably above him, an insignificant officer of the
    Guards, that they not only did not wish to, but simply could not, be
    aware of his existence. At the quarters of the commander-in-chief,
    Kutuzov, where he inquired for Bolkonski, all the adjutants and even the
    orderlies looked at him as if they wished to impress on him that a great
    many officers like him were always coming there and that everybody was
    heartily sick of them. In spite of this, or rather because of it, next
    day, November 15, after dinner he again went to Olmutz and, entering the
    house occupied by Kutuzov, asked for Bolkonski. Prince Andrew was in and
    Boris was shown into a large hall probably formerly used for dancing,
    but in which five beds now stood, and furniture of various kinds: a
    table, chairs, and a clavichord. One adjutant, nearest the door, was
    sitting at the table in a Persian dressing gown, writing. Another, the
    red, stout Nesvitski, lay on a bed with his arms under his head,
    laughing with an officer who had sat down beside him. A third was
    playing a Viennese waltz on the clavichord, while a fourth, lying on the
    clavichord, sang the tune. Bolkonski was not there. None of these
    gentlemen changed his position on seeing Boris. The one who was writing
    and whom Boris addressed turned round crossly and told him Bolkonski was
    on duty and that he should go through the door on the left into the
    reception room if he wished to see him. Boris thanked him and went to
    the reception room, where he found some ten officers and generals.
    
    When he entered, Prince Andrew, his eyes drooping contemptuously (with
    that peculiar expression of polite weariness which plainly says, "If it
    were not my duty I would not talk to you for a moment"), was listening
    to an old Russian general with decorations, who stood very erect, almost
    on tiptoe, with a soldier's obsequious expression on his purple face,
    reporting something.
    
    "Very well, then, be so good as to wait," said Prince Andrew to the
    general, in Russian, speaking with the French intonation he affected
    when he wished to speak contemptuously, and noticing Boris, Prince
    Andrew, paying no more heed to the general who ran after him imploring
    him to hear something more, nodded and turned to him with a cheerful
    smile.
    
    At that moment Boris clearly realized what he had before surmised, that
    in the army, besides the subordination and discipline prescribed in the
    military code, which he and the others knew in the regiment, there was
    another, more important, subordination, which made this tight-laced,
    purple-faced general wait respectfully while Captain Prince Andrew, for
    his own pleasure, chose to chat with Lieutenant Drubetskoy. More than
    ever was Boris resolved to serve in future not according to the written
    code, but under this unwritten law. He felt now that merely by having
    been recommended to Prince Andrew he had already risen above the general
    who at the front had the power to annihilate him, a lieutenant of the
    Guards. Prince Andrew came up to him and took his hand.
    
    "I am very sorry you did not find me in yesterday. I was fussing about
    with Germans all day. We went with Weyrother to survey the dispositions.
    When Germans start being accurate, there's no end to it!"
    
    Boris smiled, as if he understood what Prince Andrew was alluding to as
    something generally known. But it was the first time he had heard
    Weyrother's name, or even the term "dispositions."
    
    "Well, my dear fellow, so you still want to be an adjutant? I have been
    thinking about you."
    
    "Yes, I was thinking"--for some reason Boris could not help blushing--
    "of asking the commander-in-chief. He has had a letter from Prince
    Kuragin about me. I only wanted to ask because I fear the Guards won't
    be in action," he added as if in apology.
    
    "All right, all right. We'll talk it over," replied Prince Andrew. "Only
    let me report this gentleman's business, and I shall be at your
    disposal."
    
    While Prince Andrew went to report about the purple-faced general, that
    gentleman--evidently not sharing Boris' conception of the advantages of
    the unwritten code of subordination--looked so fixedly at the
    presumptuous lieutenant who had prevented his finishing what he had to
    say to the adjutant that Boris felt uncomfortable. He turned away and
    waited impatiently for Prince Andrew's return from the commander-in-
    chief's room.
    
    "You see, my dear fellow, I have been thinking about you," said Prince
    Andrew when they had gone into the large room where the clavichord was.
    "It's no use your going to the commander-in-chief. He would say a lot of
    pleasant things, ask you to dinner" ("That would not be bad as regards
    the unwritten code," thought Boris), "but nothing more would come of it.
    There will soon be a battalion of us aides-de-camp and adjutants! But
    this is what we'll do: I have a good friend, an adjutant general and an
    excellent fellow, Prince Dolgorukov; and though you may not know it, the
    fact is that now Kutuzov with his staff and all of us count for nothing.
    Everything is now centered round the Emperor. So we will go to
    Dolgorukov; I have to go there anyhow and I have already spoken to him
    about you. We shall see whether he cannot attach you to himself or find
    a place for you somewhere nearer the sun."
    
    Prince Andrew always became specially keen when he had to guide a young
    man and help him to worldly success. Under cover of obtaining help of
    this kind for another, which from pride he would never accept for
    himself, he kept in touch with the circle which confers success and
    which attracted him. He very readily took up Boris' cause and went with
    him to Dolgorukov.
    
    It was late in the evening when they entered the palace at Olmutz
    occupied by the Emperors and their retinues.
    
    That same day a council of war had been held in which all the members of
    the Hofkriegsrath and both Emperors took part. At that council, contrary
    to the views of the old generals Kutuzov and Prince Schwartzenberg, it
    had been decided to advance immediately and give battle to Bonaparte.
    The council of war was just over when Prince Andrew accompanied by Boris
    arrived at the palace to find Dolgorukov. Everyone at headquarters was
    still under the spell of the day's council, at which the party of the
    young had triumphed. The voices of those who counseled delay and advised
    waiting for something else before advancing had been so completely
    silenced and their arguments confuted by such conclusive evidence of the
    advantages of attacking that what had been discussed at the council--the
    coming battle and the victory that would certainly result from it--no
    longer seemed to be in the future but in the past. All the advantages
    were on our side. Our enormous forces, undoubtedly superior to
    Napoleon's, were concentrated in one place, the troops inspired by the
    Emperors' presence were eager for action. The strategic position where
    the operations would take place was familiar in all its details to the
    Austrian General Weyrother: a lucky accident had ordained that the
    Austrian army should maneuver the previous year on the very fields where
    the French had now to be fought; the adjacent locality was known and
    shown in every detail on the maps, and Bonaparte, evidently weakened,
    was undertaking nothing.
    
    Dolgorukov, one of the warmest advocates of an attack, had just returned
    from the council, tired and exhausted but eager and proud of the victory
    that had been gained. Prince Andrew introduced his protege, but Prince
    Dolgorukov politely and firmly pressing his hand said nothing to Boris
    and, evidently unable to suppress the thoughts which were uppermost in
    his mind at that moment, addressed Prince Andrew in French.
    
    "Ah, my dear fellow, what a battle we have gained! God grant that the
    one that will result from it will be as victorious! However, dear
    fellow," he said abruptly and eagerly, "I must confess to having been
    unjust to the Austrians and especially to Weyrother. What exactitude,
    what minuteness, what knowledge of the locality, what foresight for
    every eventuality, every possibility even to the smallest detail! No, my
    dear fellow, no conditions better than our present ones could have been
    devised. This combination of Austrian precision with Russian valor--what
    more could be wished for?"
    
    "So the attack is definitely resolved on?" asked Bolkonski.
    
    "And do you know, my dear fellow, it seems to me that Bonaparte has
    decidedly lost bearings, you know that a letter was received from him
    today for the Emperor." Dolgorukov smiled significantly.
    
    "Is that so? And what did he say?" inquired Bolkonski.
    
    "What can he say? Tra-di-ri-di-ra and so on... merely to gain time. I
    tell you he is in our hands, that's certain! But what was most amusing,"
    he continued, with a sudden, good-natured laugh, "was that we could not
    think how to address the reply! If not as 'Consul' and of course not as
    'Emperor,' it seemed to me it should be to 'General Bonaparte.'"
    
    "But between not recognizing him as Emperor and calling him General
    Bonaparte, there is a difference," remarked Bolkonski.
    
    "That's just it," interrupted Dolgorukov quickly, laughing. "You know
    Bilibin--he's a very clever fellow. He suggested addressing him as
    'Usurper and Enemy of Mankind.'"
    
    Dolgorukov laughed merrily.
    
    "Only that?" said Bolkonski.
    
    "All the same, it was Bilibin who found a suitable form for the address.
    He is a wise and clever fellow."
    
    "What was it?"
    
    "To the Head of the French Government... Au chef du gouvernement
    francais," said Dolgorukov, with grave satisfaction. "Good, wasn't it?"
    
    "Yes, but he will dislike it extremely," said Bolkonski.
    
    "Oh yes, very much! My brother knows him, he's dined with him--the
    present Emperor--more than once in Paris, and tells me he never met a
    more cunning or subtle diplomatist--you know, a combination of French
    adroitness and Italian play-acting! Do you know the tale about him and
    Count Markov? Count Markov was the only man who knew how to handle him.
    You know the story of the handkerchief? It is delightful!"
    
    And the talkative Dolgorukov, turning now to Boris, now to Prince
    Andrew, told how Bonaparte wishing to test Markov, our ambassador,
    purposely dropped a handkerchief in front of him and stood looking at
    Markov, probably expecting Markov to pick it up for him, and how Markov
    immediately dropped his own beside it and picked it up without touching
    Bonaparte's.
    
    "Delightful!" said Bolkonski. "But I have come to you, Prince, as a
    petitioner on behalf of this young man. You see..." but before Prince
    Andrew could finish, an aide-de-camp came in to summon Dolgorukov to the
    Emperor.
    
    "Oh, what a nuisance," said Dolgorukov, getting up hurriedly and
    pressing the hands of Prince Andrew and Boris. "You know I should be
    very glad to do all in my power both for you and for this dear young
    man." Again he pressed the hand of the latter with an expression of
    good-natured, sincere, and animated levity. "But you see... another
    time!"
    
    Boris was excited by the thought of being so close to the higher powers
    as he felt himself to be at that moment. He was conscious that here he
    was in contact with the springs that set in motion the enormous
    movements of the mass of which in his regiment he felt himself a tiny,
    obedient, and insignificant atom. They followed Prince Dolgorukov out
    into the corridor and met--coming out of the door of the Emperor's room
    by which Dolgorukov had entered--a short man in civilian clothes with a
    clever face and sharply projecting jaw which, without spoiling his face,
    gave him a peculiar vivacity and shiftiness of expression. This short
    man nodded to Dolgorukov as to an intimate friend and stared at Prince
    Andrew with cool intensity, walking straight toward him and evidently
    expecting him to bow or to step out of his way. Prince Andrew did
    neither: a look of animosity appeared on his face and the other turned
    away and went down the side of the corridor.
    
    "Who was that?" asked Boris.
    
    "He is one of the most remarkable, but to me most unpleasant of men--the
    Minister of Foreign Affairs, Prince Adam Czartoryski.... It is such men
    as he who decide the fate of nations," added Bolkonski with a sigh he
    could not suppress, as they passed out of the palace.
    
    Next day, the army began its campaign, and up to the very battle of
    Austerlitz, Boris was unable to see either Prince Andrew or Dolgorukov
    again and remained for a while with the Ismaylov regiment.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    At dawn on the sixteenth of November, Denisov's squadron, in which
    Nicholas Rostov served and which was in Prince Bagration's detachment,
    moved from the place where it had spent the night, advancing into action
    as arranged, and after going behind other columns for about two thirds
    of a mile was stopped on the highroad. Rostov saw the Cossacks and then
    the first and second squadrons of hussars and infantry battalions and
    artillery pass by and go forward and then Generals Bagration and
    Dolgorukov ride past with their adjutants. All the fear before action
    which he had experienced as previously, all the inner struggle to
    conquer that fear, all his dreams of distinguishing himself as a true
    hussar in this battle, had been wasted. Their squadron remained in
    reserve and Nicholas Rostov spent that day in a dull and wretched mood.
    At nine in the morning, he heard firing in front and shouts of hurrah,
    and saw wounded being brought back (there were not many of them), and at
    last he saw how a whole detachment of French cavalry was brought in,
    convoyed by a sotnya of Cossacks. Evidently the affair was over and,
    though not big, had been a successful engagement. The men and officers
    returning spoke of a brilliant victory, of the occupation of the town of
    Wischau and the capture of a whole French squadron. The day was bright
    and sunny after a sharp night frost, and the cheerful glitter of that
    autumn day was in keeping with the news of victory which was conveyed,
    not only by the tales of those who had taken part in it, but also by the
    joyful expression on the faces of soldiers, officers, generals, and
    adjutants, as they passed Rostov going or coming. And Nicholas, who had
    vainly suffered all the dread that precedes a battle and had spent that
    happy day in inactivity, was all the more depressed.
    
    "Come here, Wostov. Let's dwink to dwown our gwief!" shouted Denisov,
    who had settled down by the roadside with a flask and some food.
    
    The officers gathered round Denisov's canteen, eating and talking.
    
    "There! They are bringing another!" cried one of the officers,
    indicating a captive French dragoon who was being brought in on foot by
    two Cossacks.
    
    One of them was leading by the bridle a fine large French horse he had
    taken from the prisoner.
    
    "Sell us that horse!" Denisov called out to the Cossacks.
    
    "If you like, your honor!"
    
    The officers got up and stood round the Cossacks and their prisoner. The
    French dragoon was a young Alsatian who spoke French with a German
    accent. He was breathless with agitation, his face was red, and when he
    heard some French spoken he at once began speaking to the officers,
    addressing first one, then another. He said he would not have been
    taken, it was not his fault but the corporal's who had sent him to seize
    some horsecloths, though he had told him the Russians were there. And at
    every word he added: "But don't hurt my little horse!" and stroked the
    animal. It was plain that he did not quite grasp where he was. Now he
    excused himself for having been taken prisoner and now, imagining
    himself before his own officers, insisted on his soldierly discipline
    and zeal in the service. He brought with him into our rearguard all the
    freshness of atmosphere of the French army, which was so alien to us.
    
    The Cossacks sold the horse for two gold pieces, and Rostov, being the
    richest of the officers now that he had received his money, bought it.
    
    "But don't hurt my little horse!" said the Alsatian good-naturedly to
    Rostov when the animal was handed over to the hussar.
    
    Rostov smilingly reassured the dragoon and gave him money.
    
    "Alley! Alley!" said the Cossack, touching the prisoner's arm to make
    him go on.
    
    "The Emperor! The Emperor!" was suddenly heard among the hussars.
    
    All began to run and bustle, and Rostov saw coming up the road behind
    him several riders with white plumes in their hats. In a moment everyone
    was in his place, waiting.
    
    Rostov did not know or remember how he ran to his place and mounted.
    Instantly his regret at not having been in action and his dejected mood
    amid people of whom he was weary had gone, instantly every thought of
    himself had vanished. He was filled with happiness at his nearness to
    the Emperor. He felt that this nearness by itself made up to him for the
    day he had lost. He was happy as a lover when the longed-for moment of
    meeting arrives. Not daring to look round and without looking round, he
    was ecstatically conscious of his approach. He felt it not only from the
    sound of the hoofs of the approaching cavalcade, but because as he drew
    near everything grew brighter, more joyful, more significant, and more
    festive around him. Nearer and nearer to Rostov came that sun shedding
    beams of mild and majestic light around, and already he felt himself
    enveloped in those beams, he heard his voice, that kindly, calm, and
    majestic voice that was yet so simple! And as if in accord with Rostov's
    feeling, there was a deathly stillness amid which was heard the
    Emperor's voice.
    
    "The Pavlograd hussars?" he inquired.
    
    "The reserves, sire!" replied a voice, a very human one compared to that
    which had said: "The Pavlograd hussars?"
    
    The Emperor drew level with Rostov and halted. Alexander's face was even
    more beautiful than it had been three days before at the review. It
    shone with such gaiety and youth, such innocent youth, that it suggested
    the liveliness of a fourteen-year-old boy, and yet it was the face of
    the majestic Emperor. Casually, while surveying the squadron, the
    Emperor's eyes met Rostov's and rested on them for not more than two
    seconds. Whether or no the Emperor understood what was going on in
    Rostov's soul (it seemed to Rostov that he understood everything), at
    any rate his light-blue eyes gazed for about two seconds into Rostov's
    face. A gentle, mild light poured from them. Then all at once he raised
    his eyebrows, abruptly touched his horse with his left foot, and
    galloped on.
    
    The younger Emperor could not restrain his wish to be present at the
    battle and, in spite of the remonstrances of his courtiers, at twelve
    o'clock left the third column with which he had been and galloped toward
    the vanguard. Before he came up with the hussars, several adjutants met
    him with news of the successful result of the action.
    
    This battle, which consisted in the capture of a French squadron, was
    represented as a brilliant victory over the French, and so the Emperor
    and the whole army, especially while the smoke hung over the
    battlefield, believed that the French had been defeated and were
    retreating against their will. A few minutes after the Emperor had
    passed, the Pavlograd division was ordered to advance. In Wischau
    itself, a petty German town, Rostov saw the Emperor again. In the market
    place, where there had been some rather heavy firing before the
    Emperor's arrival, lay several killed and wounded soldiers whom there
    had not been time to move. The Emperor, surrounded by his suite of
    officers and courtiers, was riding a bobtailed chestnut mare, a
    different one from that which he had ridden at the review, and bending
    to one side he gracefully held a gold lorgnette to his eyes and looked
    at a soldier who lay prone, with blood on his uncovered head. The
    wounded soldier was so dirty, coarse, and revolting that his proximity
    to the Emperor shocked Rostov. Rostov saw how the Emperor's rather round
    shoulders shuddered as if a cold shiver had run down them, how his left
    foot began convulsively tapping the horse's side with the spur, and how
    the well-trained horse looked round unconcerned and did not stir. An
    adjutant, dismounting, lifted the soldier under the arms to place him on
    a stretcher that had been brought. The soldier groaned.
    
    "Gently, gently! Can't you do it more gently?" said the Emperor
    apparently suffering more than the dying soldier, and he rode away.
    
    Rostov saw tears filling the Emperor's eyes and heard him, as he was
    riding away, say to Czartoryski: "What a terrible thing war is: what a
    terrible thing! Quelle terrible chose que la guerre!"
    
    The troops of the vanguard were stationed before Wischau, within sight
    of the enemy's lines, which all day long had yielded ground to us at the
    least firing. The Emperor's gratitude was announced to the vanguard,
    rewards were promised, and the men received a double ration of vodka.
    The campfires crackled and the soldiers' songs resounded even more
    merrily than on the previous night. Denisov celebrated his promotion to
    the rank of major, and Rostov, who had already drunk enough, at the end
    of the feast proposed the Emperor's health. "Not 'our Sovereign, the
    Emperor,' as they say at official dinners," said he, "but the health of
    our Sovereign, that good, enchanting, and great man! Let us drink to his
    health and to the certain defeat of the French!"
    
    "If we fought before," he said, "not letting the French pass, as at
    Schon Grabern, what shall we not do now when he is at the front? We will
    all die for him gladly! Is it not so, gentlemen? Perhaps I am not saying
    it right, I have drunk a good deal--but that is how I feel, and so do
    you too! To the health of Alexander the First! Hurrah!"
    
    "Hurrah!" rang the enthusiastic voices of the officers.
    
    And the old cavalry captain, Kirsten, shouted enthusiastically and no
    less sincerely than the twenty-year-old Rostov.
    
    When the officers had emptied and smashed their glasses, Kirsten filled
    others and, in shirt sleeves and breeches, went glass in hand to the
    soldiers' bonfires and with his long gray mustache, his white chest
    showing under his open shirt, he stood in a majestic pose in the light
    of the campfire, waving his uplifted arm.
    
    "Lads! here's to our Sovereign, the Emperor, and victory over our
    enemies! Hurrah!" he exclaimed in his dashing, old, hussar's baritone.
    
    The hussars crowded round and responded heartily with loud shouts.
    
    Late that night, when all had separated, Denisov with his short hand
    patted his favorite, Rostov, on the shoulder.
    
    "As there's no one to fall in love with on campaign, he's fallen in love
    with the Tsar," he said.
    
    "Denisov, don't make fun of it!" cried Rostov. "It is such a lofty,
    beautiful feeling, such a..."
    
    "I believe it, I believe it, fwiend, and I share and appwove..."
    
    "No, you don't understand!"
    
    And Rostov got up and went wandering among the campfires, dreaming of
    what happiness it would be to die--not in saving the Emperor's life (he
    did not even dare to dream of that), but simply to die before his eyes.
    He really was in love with the Tsar and the glory of the Russian arms
    and the hope of future triumph. And he was not the only man to
    experience that feeling during those memorable days preceding the battle
    of Austerlitz: nine tenths of the men in the Russian army were then in
    love, though less ecstatically, with their Tsar and the glory of the
    Russian arms.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    The next day the Emperor stopped at Wischau, and Villier, his physician,
    was repeatedly summoned to see him. At headquarters and among the troops
    near by the news spread that the Emperor was unwell. He ate nothing and
    had slept badly that night, those around him reported. The cause of this
    indisposition was the strong impression made on his sensitive mind by
    the sight of the killed and wounded.
    
    At daybreak on the seventeenth, a French officer who had come with a
    flag of truce, demanding an audience with the Russian Emperor, was
    brought into Wischau from our outposts. This officer was Savary. The
    Emperor had only just fallen asleep and so Savary had to wait. At midday
    he was admitted to the Emperor, and an hour later he rode off with
    Prince Dolgorukov to the advanced post of the French army.
    
    It was rumored that Savary had been sent to propose to Alexander a
    meeting with Napoleon. To the joy and pride of the whole army, a
    personal interview was refused, and instead of the Sovereign, Prince
    Dolgorukov, the victor at Wischau, was sent with Savary to negotiate
    with Napoleon if, contrary to expectations, these negotiations were
    actuated by a real desire for peace.
    
    Toward evening Dolgorukov came back, went straight to the Tsar, and
    remained alone with him for a long time.
    
    On the eighteenth and nineteenth of November, the army advanced two
    days' march and the enemy's outposts after a brief interchange of shots
    retreated. In the highest army circles from midday on the nineteenth, a
    great, excitedly bustling activity began which lasted till the morning
    of the twentieth, when the memorable battle of Austerlitz was fought.
    
    Till midday on the nineteenth, the activity--the eager talk, running to
    and fro, and dispatching of adjutants--was confined to the Emperor's
    headquarters. But on the afternoon of that day, this activity reached
    Kutuzov's headquarters and the staffs of the commanders of columns. By
    evening, the adjutants had spread it to all ends and parts of the army,
    and in the night from the nineteenth to the twentieth, the whole eighty
    thousand allied troops rose from their bivouacs to the hum of voices,
    and the army swayed and started in one enormous mass six miles long.
    
    The concentrated activity which had begun at the Emperor's headquarters
    in the morning and had started the whole movement that followed was like
    the first movement of the main wheel of a large tower clock. One wheel
    slowly moved, another was set in motion, and a third, and wheels began
    to revolve faster and faster, levers and cogwheels to work, chimes to
    play, figures to pop out, and the hands to advance with regular motion
    as a result of all that activity.
    
    Just as in the mechanism of a clock, so in the mechanism of the military
    machine, an impulse once given leads to the final result; and just as
    indifferently quiescent till the moment when motion is transmitted to
    them are the parts of the mechanism which the impulse has not yet
    reached. Wheels creak on their axles as the cogs engage one another and
    the revolving pulleys whirr with the rapidity of their movement, but a
    neighboring wheel is as quiet and motionless as though it were prepared
    to remain so for a hundred years; but the moment comes when the lever
    catches it and obeying the impulse that wheel begins to creak and joins
    in the common motion the result and aim of which are beyond its ken.
    
    Just as in a clock, the result of the complicated motion of innumerable
    wheels and pulleys is merely a slow and regular movement of the hands
    which show the time, so the result of all the complicated human
    activities of 160,000 Russians and French--all their passions, desires,
    remorse, humiliations, sufferings, outbursts of pride, fear, and
    enthusiasm--was only the loss of the battle of Austerlitz, the so-called
    battle of the three Emperors--that is to say, a slow movement of the
    hand on the dial of human history.
    
    Prince Andrew was on duty that day and in constant attendance on the
    commander-in-chief.
    
    At six in the evening, Kutuzov went to the Emperor's headquarters and
    after staying but a short time with the Tsar went to see the grand
    marshal of the court, Count Tolstoy.
    
    Bolkonski took the opportunity to go in to get some details of the
    coming action from Dolgorukov. He felt that Kutuzov was upset and
    dissatisfied about something and that at headquarters they were
    dissatisfied with him, and also that at the Emperor's headquarters
    everyone adopted toward him the tone of men who know something others do
    not know: he therefore wished to speak to Dolgorukov.
    
    "Well, how d'you do, my dear fellow?" said Dolgorukov, who was sitting
    at tea with Bilibin. "The fete is for tomorrow. How is your old fellow?
    Out of sorts?"
    
    "I won't say he is out of sorts, but I fancy he would like to be heard."
    
    "But they heard him at the council of war and will hear him when he
    talks sense, but to temporize and wait for something now when Bonaparte
    fears nothing so much as a general battle is impossible."
    
    "Yes, you have seen him?" said Prince Andrew. "Well, what is Bonaparte
    like? How did he impress you?"
    
    "Yes, I saw him, and am convinced that he fears nothing so much as a
    general engagement," repeated Dolgorukov, evidently prizing this general
    conclusion which he had arrived at from his interview with Napoleon. "If
    he weren't afraid of a battle why did he ask for that interview? Why
    negotiate, and above all why retreat, when to retreat is so contrary to
    his method of conducting war? Believe me, he is afraid, afraid of a
    general battle. His hour has come! Mark my words!"
    
    "But tell me, what is he like, eh?" said Prince Andrew again.
    
    "He is a man in a gray overcoat, very anxious that I should call him
    'Your Majesty,' but who, to his chagrin, got no title from me! That's
    the sort of man he is, and nothing more," replied Dolgorukov, looking
    round at Bilibin with a smile.
    
    "Despite my great respect for old Kutuzov," he continued, "we should be
    a nice set of fellows if we were to wait about and so give him a chance
    to escape, or to trick us, now that we certainly have him in our hands!
    No, we mustn't forget Suvorov and his rule--not to put yourself in a
    position to be attacked, but yourself to attack. Believe me in war the
    energy of young men often shows the way better than all the experience
    of old Cunctators."
    
    "But in what position are we going to attack him? I have been at the
    outposts today and it is impossible to say where his chief forces are
    situated," said Prince Andrew.
    
    He wished to explain to Dolgorukov a plan of attack he had himself
    formed.
    
    "Oh, that is all the same," Dolgorukov said quickly, and getting up he
    spread a map on the table. "All eventualities have been foreseen. If he
    is standing before Brunn..."
    
    And Prince Dolgorukov rapidly but indistinctly explained Weyrother's
    plan of a flanking movement.
    
    Prince Andrew began to reply and to state his own plan, which might have
    been as good as Weyrother's, but for the disadvantage that Weyrother's
    had already been approved. As soon as Prince Andrew began to demonstrate
    the defects of the latter and the merits of his own plan, Prince
    Dolgorukov ceased to listen to him and gazed absent-mindedly not at the
    map, but at Prince Andrew's face.
    
    "There will be a council of war at Kutuzov's tonight, though; you can
    say all this there," remarked Dolgorukov.
    
    "I will do so," said Prince Andrew, moving away from the map.
    
    "Whatever are you bothering about, gentlemen?" said Bilibin, who, till
    then, had listened with an amused smile to their conversation and now
    was evidently ready with a joke. "Whether tomorrow brings victory or
    defeat, the glory of our Russian arms is secure. Except your Kutuzov,
    there is not a single Russian in command of a column! The commanders
    are: Herr General Wimpfen, le Comte de Langeron, le Prince de
    Lichtenstein, le Prince, de Hohenlohe, and finally Prishprish, and so on
    like all those Polish names."
    
    "Be quiet, backbiter!" said Dolgorukov. "It is not true; there are now
    two Russians, Miloradovich, and Dokhturov, and there would be a third,
    Count Arakcheev, if his nerves were not too weak."
    
    "However, I think General Kutuzov has come out," said Prince Andrew. "I
    wish you good luck and success, gentlemen!" he added and went out after
    shaking hands with Dolgorukov and Bilibin.
    
    On the way home, Prince Andrew could not refrain from asking Kutuzov,
    who was sitting silently beside him, what he thought of tomorrow's
    battle.
    
    Kutuzov looked sternly at his adjutant and, after a pause, replied: "I
    think the battle will be lost, and so I told Count Tolstoy and asked him
    to tell the Emperor. What do you think he replied? 'But, my dear
    general, I am engaged with rice and cutlets, look after military matters
    yourself!' Yes... That was the answer I got!"
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    Shortly after nine o'clock that evening, Weyrother drove with his plans
    to Kutuzov's quarters where the council of war was to be held. All the
    commanders of columns were summoned to the commander-in-chief's and with
    the exception of Prince Bagration, who declined to come, were all there
    at the appointed time.
    
    Weyrother, who was in full control of the proposed battle, by his
    eagerness and briskness presented a marked contrast to the dissatisfied
    and drowsy Kutuzov, who reluctantly played the part of chairman and
    president of the council of war. Weyrother evidently felt himself to be
    at the head of a movement that had already become unrestrainable. He was
    like a horse running downhill harnessed to a heavy cart. Whether he was
    pulling it or being pushed by it he did not know, but rushed along at
    headlong speed with no time to consider what this movement might lead
    to. Weyrother had been twice that evening to the enemy's picket line to
    reconnoiter personally, and twice to the Emperors, Russian and Austrian,
    to report and explain, and to his headquarters where he had dictated the
    dispositions in German, and now, much exhausted, he arrived at
    Kutuzov's.
    
    He was evidently so busy that he even forgot to be polite to the
    commander in chief. He interrupted him, talked rapidly and indistinctly,
    without looking at the man he was addressing, and did not reply to
    questions put to him. He was bespattered with mud and had a pitiful,
    weary, and distracted air, though at the same time he was haughty and
    self-confident.
    
    Kutuzov was occupying a nobleman's castle of modest dimensions near
    Ostralitz. In the large drawing room which had become the commander in
    chief's office were gathered Kutuzov himself, Weyrother, and the members
    of the council of war. They were drinking tea, and only awaited Prince
    Bagration to begin the council. At last Bagration's orderly came with
    the news that the prince could not attend. Prince Andrew came in to
    inform the commander-in-chief of this and, availing himself of
    permission previously given him by Kutuzov to be present at the council,
    he remained in the room.
    
    "Since Prince Bagration is not coming, we may begin," said Weyrother,
    hurriedly rising from his seat and going up to the table on which an
    enormous map of the environs of Brunn was spread out.
    
    Kutuzov, with his uniform unbuttoned so that his fat neck bulged over
    his collar as if escaping, was sitting almost asleep in a low chair,
    with his podgy old hands resting symmetrically on its arms. At the sound
    of Weyrother's voice, he opened his one eye with an effort.
    
    "Yes, yes, if you please! It is already late," said he, and nodding his
    head he let it droop and again closed his eye.
    
    If at first the members of the council thought that Kutuzov was
    pretending to sleep, the sounds his nose emitted during the reading that
    followed proved that the commander-in-chief at that moment was absorbed
    by a far more serious matter than a desire to show his contempt for the
    dispositions or anything else--he was engaged in satisfying the
    irresistible human need for sleep. He really was asleep. Weyrother, with
    the gesture of a man too busy to lose a moment, glanced at Kutuzov and,
    having convinced himself that he was asleep, took up a paper and in a
    loud, monotonous voice began to read out the dispositions for the
    impending battle, under a heading which he also read out:
    
    "Dispositions for an attack on the enemy position behind Kobelnitz and
    Sokolnitz, November 30, 1805."
    
    The dispositions were very complicated and difficult. They began as
    follows:
    
    "As the enemy's left wing rests on wooded hills and his right extends
    along Kobelnitz and Sokolnitz behind the ponds that are there, while we,
    on the other hand, with our left wing by far outflank his right, it is
    advantageous to attack the enemy's latter wing especially if we occupy
    the villages of Sokolnitz and Kobelnitz, whereby we can both fall on his
    flank and pursue him over the plain between Schlappanitz and the
    Thuerassa forest, avoiding the defiles of Schlappanitz and Bellowitz
    which cover the enemy's front. For this object it is necessary that...
    The first column marches... The second column marches... The third
    column marches..." and so on, read Weyrother.
    
    The generals seemed to listen reluctantly to the difficult dispositions.
    The tall, fair-haired General Buxhowden stood, leaning his back against
    the wall, his eyes fixed on a burning candle, and seemed not to listen
    or even to wish to be thought to listen. Exactly opposite Weyrother,
    with his glistening wide-open eyes fixed upon him and his mustache
    twisted upwards, sat the ruddy Miloradovich in a military pose, his
    elbows turned outwards, his hands on his knees, and his shoulders
    raised. He remained stubbornly silent, gazing at Weyrother's face, and
    only turned away his eyes when the Austrian chief of staff finished
    reading. Then Miloradovich looked round significantly at the other
    generals. But one could not tell from that significant look whether he
    agreed or disagreed and was satisfied or not with the arrangements. Next
    to Weyrother sat Count Langeron who, with a subtle smile that never left
    his typically southern French face during the whole time of the reading,
    gazed at his delicate fingers which rapidly twirled by its corners a
    gold snuffbox on which was a portrait. In the middle of one of the
    longest sentences, he stopped the rotary motion of the snuffbox, raised
    his head, and with inimical politeness lurking in the corners of his
    thin lips interrupted Weyrother, wishing to say something. But the
    Austrian general, continuing to read, frowned angrily and jerked his
    elbows, as if to say: "You can tell me your views later, but now be so
    good as to look at the map and listen." Langeron lifted his eyes with an
    expression of perplexity, turned round to Miloradovich as if seeking an
    explanation, but meeting the latter's impressive but meaningless gaze
    drooped his eyes sadly and again took to twirling his snuffbox.
    
    "A geography lesson!" he muttered as if to himself, but loud enough to
    be heard.
    
    Przebyszewski, with respectful but dignified politeness, held his hand
    to his ear toward Weyrother, with the air of a man absorbed in
    attention. Dohkturov, a little man, sat opposite Weyrother, with an
    assiduous and modest mien, and stooping over the outspread map
    conscientiously studied the dispositions and the unfamiliar locality. He
    asked Weyrother several times to repeat words he had not clearly heard
    and the difficult names of villages. Weyrother complied and Dohkturov
    noted them down.
    
    When the reading which lasted more than an hour was over, Langeron again
    brought his snuffbox to rest and, without looking at Weyrother or at
    anyone in particular, began to say how difficult it was to carry out
    such a plan in which the enemy's position was assumed to be known,
    whereas it was perhaps not known, since the enemy was in movement.
    Langeron's objections were valid but it was obvious that their chief aim
    was to show General Weyrother--who had read his dispositions with as
    much self-confidence as if he were addressing school children--that he
    had to do, not with fools, but with men who could teach him something in
    military matters.
    
    When the monotonous sound of Weyrother's voice ceased, Kutuzov opened
    his eye as a miller wakes up when the soporific drone of the mill wheel
    is interrupted. He listened to what Langeron said, as if remarking, "So
    you are still at that silly business!" quickly closed his eye again, and
    let his head sink still lower.
    
    Langeron, trying as virulently as possible to sting Weyrother's vanity
    as author of the military plan, argued that Bonaparte might easily
    attack instead of being attacked, and so render the whole of this plan
    perfectly worthless. Weyrother met all objections with a firm and
    contemptuous smile, evidently prepared beforehand to meet all objections
    be they what they might.
    
    "If he could attack us, he would have done so today," said he.
    
    "So you think he is powerless?" said Langeron.
    
    "He has forty thousand men at most," replied Weyrother, with the smile
    of a doctor to whom an old wife wishes to explain the treatment of a
    case.
    
    "In that case he is inviting his doom by awaiting our attack," said
    Langeron, with a subtly ironical smile, again glancing round for support
    to Miloradovich who was near him.
    
    But Miloradovich was at that moment evidently thinking of anything
    rather than of what the generals were disputing about.
    
    "Ma foi!" said he, "tomorrow we shall see all that on the battlefield."
    
    Weyrother again gave that smile which seemed to say that to him it was
    strange and ridiculous to meet objections from Russian generals and to
    have to prove to them what he had not merely convinced himself of, but
    had also convinced the sovereign Emperors of.
    
    "The enemy has quenched his fires and a continual noise is heard from
    his camp," said he. "What does that mean? Either he is retreating, which
    is the only thing we need fear, or he is changing his position." (He
    smiled ironically.) "But even if he also took up a position in the
    Thuerassa, he merely saves us a great deal of trouble and all our
    arrangements to the minutest detail remain the same."
    
    "How is that?..." began Prince Andrew, who had for long been waiting an
    opportunity to express his doubts.
    
    Kutuzov here woke up, coughed heavily, and looked round at the generals.
    
    "Gentlemen, the dispositions for tomorrow--or rather for today, for it
    is past midnight--cannot now be altered," said he. "You have heard them,
    and we shall all do our duty. But before a battle, there is nothing more
    important..." he paused, "than to have a good sleep."
    
    He moved as if to rise. The generals bowed and retired. It was past
    midnight. Prince Andrew went out.
    
    The council of war, at which Prince Andrew had not been able to express
    his opinion as he had hoped to, left on him a vague and uneasy
    impression. Whether Dolgorukov and Weyrother, or Kutuzov, Langeron, and
    the others who did not approve of the plan of attack, were right--he did
    not know. "But was it really not possible for Kutuzov to state his views
    plainly to the Emperor? Is it possible that on account of court and
    personal considerations tens of thousands of lives, and my life, my
    life," he thought, "must be risked?"
    
    "Yes, it is very likely that I shall be killed tomorrow," he thought.
    And suddenly, at this thought of death, a whole series of most distant,
    most intimate, memories rose in his imagination: he remembered his last
    parting from his father and his wife; he remembered the days when he
    first loved her. He thought of her pregnancy and felt sorry for her and
    for himself, and in a nervously emotional and softened mood he went out
    of the hut in which he was billeted with Nesvitski and began to walk up
    and down before it.
    
    The night was foggy and through the fog the moonlight gleamed
    mysteriously. "Yes, tomorrow, tomorrow!" he thought. "Tomorrow
    everything may be over for me! All these memories will be no more, none
    of them will have any meaning for me. Tomorrow perhaps, even certainly,
    I have a presentiment that for the first time I shall have to show all I
    can do." And his fancy pictured the battle, its loss, the concentration
    of fighting at one point, and the hesitation of all the commanders. And
    then that happy moment, that Toulon for which he had so long waited,
    presents itself to him at last. He firmly and clearly expresses his
    opinion to Kutuzov, to Weyrother, and to the Emperors. All are struck by
    the justness of his views, but no one undertakes to carry them out, so
    he takes a regiment, a division-stipulates that no one is to interfere
    with his arrangements--leads his division to the decisive point, and
    gains the victory alone. "But death and suffering?" suggested another
    voice. Prince Andrew, however, did not answer that voice and went on
    dreaming of his triumphs. The dispositions for the next battle are
    planned by him alone. Nominally he is only an adjutant on Kutuzov's
    staff, but he does everything alone. The next battle is won by him
    alone. Kutuzov is removed and he is appointed... "Well and then?" asked
    the other voice. "If before that you are not ten times wounded, killed,
    or betrayed, well... what then?..." "Well then," Prince Andrew answered
    himself, "I don't know what will happen and don't want to know, and
    can't, but if I want this--want glory, want to be known to men, want to
    be loved by them, it is not my fault that I want it and want nothing but
    that and live only for that. Yes, for that alone! I shall never tell
    anyone, but, oh God! what am I to do if I love nothing but fame and
    men's esteem? Death, wounds, the loss of family--I fear nothing. And
    precious and dear as many persons are to me--father, sister, wife--those
    dearest to me--yet dreadful and unnatural as it seems, I would give them
    all at once for a moment of glory, of triumph over men, of love from men
    I don't know and never shall know, for the love of these men here," he
    thought, as he listened to voices in Kutuzov's courtyard. The voices
    were those of the orderlies who were packing up; one voice, probably a
    coachman's, was teasing Kutuzov's old cook whom Prince Andrew knew, and
    who was called Tit. He was saying, "Tit, I say, Tit!"
    
    "Well?" returned the old man.
    
    "Go, Tit, thresh a bit!" said the wag.
    
    "Oh, go to the devil!" called out a voice, drowned by the laughter of
    the orderlies and servants.
    
    "All the same, I love and value nothing but triumph over them all, I
    value this mystic power and glory that is floating here above me in this
    mist!"
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    That same night, Rostov was with a platoon on skirmishing duty in front
    of Bagration's detachment. His hussars were placed along the line in
    couples and he himself rode along the line trying to master the
    sleepiness that kept coming over him. An enormous space, with our army's
    campfires dimly glowing in the fog, could be seen behind him; in front
    of him was misty darkness. Rostov could see nothing, peer as he would
    into that foggy distance: now something gleamed gray, now there was
    something black, now little lights seemed to glimmer where the enemy
    ought to be, now he fancied it was only something in his own eyes. His
    eyes kept closing, and in his fancy appeared--now the Emperor, now
    Denisov, and now Moscow memories--and he again hurriedly opened his eyes
    and saw close before him the head and ears of the horse he was riding,
    and sometimes, when he came within six paces of them, the black figures
    of hussars, but in the distance was still the same misty darkness. "Why
    not?... It might easily happen," thought Rostov, "that the Emperor will
    meet me and give me an order as he would to any other officer; he'll
    say: 'Go and find out what's there.' There are many stories of his
    getting to know an officer in just such a chance way and attaching him
    to himself! What if he gave me a place near him? Oh, how I would guard
    him, how I would tell him the truth, how I would unmask his deceivers!"
    And in order to realize vividly his love devotion to the sovereign,
    Rostov pictured to himself an enemy or a deceitful German, whom he would
    not only kill with pleasure but whom he would slap in the face before
    the Emperor. Suddenly a distant shout aroused him. He started and opened
    his eyes.
    
    "Where am I? Oh yes, in the skirmishing line... pass and watchword--
    shaft, Olmutz. What a nuisance that our squadron will be in reserve
    tomorrow," he thought. "I'll ask leave to go to the front, this may be
    my only chance of seeing the Emperor. It won't be long now before I am
    off duty. I'll take another turn and when I get back I'll go to the
    general and ask him." He readjusted himself in the saddle and touched up
    his horse to ride once more round his hussars. It seemed to him that it
    was getting lighter. To the left he saw a sloping descent lit up, and
    facing it a black knoll that seemed as steep as a wall. On this knoll
    there was a white patch that Rostov could not at all make out: was it a
    glade in the wood lit up by the moon, or some unmelted snow, or some
    white houses? He even thought something moved on that white spot. "I
    expect it's snow... that spot... a spot--une tache," he thought. "There
    now... it's not a tache... Natasha... sister, black eyes... Na...
    tasha... (Won't she be surprised when I tell her how I've seen the
    Emperor?) Natasha... take my sabretache..."--"Keep to the right, your
    honor, there are bushes here," came the voice of an hussar, past whom
    Rostov was riding in the act of falling asleep. Rostov lifted his head
    that had sunk almost to his horse's mane and pulled up beside the
    hussar. He was succumbing to irresistible, youthful, childish
    drowsiness. "But what was I thinking? I mustn't forget. How shall I
    speak to the Emperor? No, that's not it--that's tomorrow. Oh yes!
    Natasha... sabretache... saber them... Whom? The hussars... Ah, the
    hussars with mustaches. Along the Tverskaya Street rode the hussar with
    mustaches... I thought about him too, just opposite Guryev's house...
    Old Guryev.... Oh, but Denisov's a fine fellow. But that's all nonsense.
    The chief thing is that the Emperor is here. How he looked at me and
    wished to say something, but dared not.... No, it was I who dared not.
    But that's nonsense, the chief thing is not to forget the important
    thing I was thinking of. Yes, Na-tasha, sabretache, oh, yes, yes! That's
    right!" And his head once more sank to his horse's neck. All at once it
    seemed to him that he was being fired at. "What? What? What?... Cut them
    down! What?..." said Rostov, waking up. At the moment he opened his eyes
    he heard in front of him, where the enemy was, the long-drawn shouts of
    thousands of voices. His horse and the horse of the hussar near him
    pricked their ears at these shouts. Over there, where the shouting came
    from, a fire flared up and went out again, then another, and all along
    the French line on the hill fires flared up and the shouting grew louder
    and louder. Rostov could hear the sound of French words but could not
    distinguish them. The din of many voices was too great; all he could
    hear was: "ahahah!" and "rrrr!"
    
    "What's that? What do you make of it?" said Rostov to the hussar beside
    him. "That must be the enemy's camp!"
    
    The hussar did not reply.
    
    "Why, don't you hear it?" Rostov asked again, after waiting for a reply.
    
    "Who can tell, your honor?" replied the hussar reluctantly.
    
    "From the direction, it must be the enemy," repeated Rostov.
    
    "It may be he or it may be nothing," muttered the hussar. "It's dark...
    Steady!" he cried to his fidgeting horse.
    
    Rostov's horse was also getting restive: it pawed the frozen ground,
    pricking its ears at the noise and looking at the lights. The shouting
    grew still louder and merged into a general roar that only an army of
    several thousand men could produce. The lights spread farther and
    farther, probably along the line of the French camp. Rostov no longer
    wanted to sleep. The gay triumphant shouting of the enemy army had a
    stimulating effect on him. "Vive l'Empereur! L'Empereur!" he now heard
    distinctly.
    
    "They can't be far off, probably just beyond the stream," he said to the
    hussar beside him.
    
    The hussar only sighed without replying and coughed angrily. The sound
    of horse's hoofs approaching at a trot along the line of hussars was
    heard, and out of the foggy darkness the figure of a sergeant of hussars
    suddenly appeared, looming huge as an elephant.
    
    "Your honor, the generals!" said the sergeant, riding up to Rostov.
    
    Rostov, still looking round toward the fires and the shouts, rode with
    the sergeant to meet some mounted men who were riding along the line.
    One was on a white horse. Prince Bagration and Prince Dolgorukov with
    their adjutants had come to witness the curious phenomenon of the lights
    and shouts in the enemy's camp. Rostov rode up to Bagration, reported to
    him, and then joined the adjutants listening to what the generals were
    saying.
    
    "Believe me," said Prince Dolgorukov, addressing Bagration, "it is
    nothing but a trick! He has retreated and ordered the rearguard to
    kindle fires and make a noise to deceive us."
    
    "Hardly," said Bagration. "I saw them this evening on that knoll; if
    they had retreated they would have withdrawn from that too.... Officer!"
    said Bagration to Rostov, "are the enemy's skirmishers still there?"
    
    "They were there this evening, but now I don't know, your excellency.
    Shall I go with some of my hussars to see?" replied Rostov.
    
    Bagration stopped and, before replying, tried to see Rostov's face in
    the mist.
    
    "Well, go and see," he said, after a pause.
    
    "Yes, sir."
    
    Rostov spurred his horse, called to Sergeant Fedchenko and two other
    hussars, told them to follow him, and trotted downhill in the direction
    from which the shouting came. He felt both frightened and pleased to be
    riding alone with three hussars into that mysterious and dangerous misty
    distance where no one had been before him. Bagration called to him from
    the hill not to go beyond the stream, but Rostov pretended not to hear
    him and did not stop but rode on and on, continually mistaking bushes
    for trees and gullies for men and continually discovering his mistakes.
    Having descended the hill at a trot, he no longer saw either our own or
    the enemy's fires, but heard the shouting of the French more loudly and
    distinctly. In the valley he saw before him something like a river, but
    when he reached it he found it was a road. Having come out onto the road
    he reined in his horse, hesitating whether to ride along it or cross it
    and ride over the black field up the hillside. To keep to the road which
    gleamed white in the mist would have been safer because it would be
    easier to see people coming along it. "Follow me!" said he, crossed the
    road, and began riding up the hill at a gallop toward the point where
    the French pickets had been standing that evening.
    
    "Your honor, there he is!" cried one of the hussars behind him. And
    before Rostov had time to make out what the black thing was that had
    suddenly appeared in the fog, there was a flash, followed by a report,
    and a bullet whizzing high up in the mist with a plaintive sound passed
    out of hearing. Another musket missed fire but flashed in the pan.
    Rostov turned his horse and galloped back. Four more reports followed at
    intervals, and the bullets passed somewhere in the fog singing in
    different tones. Rostov reined in his horse, whose spirits had risen,
    like his own, at the firing, and went back at a footpace. "Well, some
    more! Some more!" a merry voice was saying in his soul. But no more
    shots came.
    
    Only when approaching Bagration did Rostov let his horse gallop again,
    and with his hand at the salute rode up to the general.
    
    Dolgorukov was still insisting that the French had retreated and had
    only lit fires to deceive us.
    
    "What does that prove?" he was saying as Rostov rode up. "They might
    retreat and leave the pickets."
    
    "It's plain that they have not all gone yet, Prince," said Bagration.
    "Wait till tomorrow morning, we'll find out everything tomorrow."
    
    "The picket is still on the hill, your excellency, just where it was in
    the evening," reported Rostov, stooping forward with his hand at the
    salute and unable to repress the smile of delight induced by his ride
    and especially by the sound of the bullets.
    
    "Very good, very good," said Bagration. "Thank you, officer."
    
    "Your excellency," said Rostov, "may I ask a favor?"
    
    "What is it?"
    
    "Tomorrow our squadron is to be in reserve. May I ask to be attached to
    the first squadron?"
    
    "What's your name?"
    
    "Count Rostov."
    
    "Oh, very well, you may stay in attendance on me."
    
    "Count Ilya Rostov's son?" asked Dolgorukov.
    
    But Rostov did not reply.
    
    "Then I may reckon on it, your excellency?"
    
    "I will give the order."
    
    "Tomorrow very likely I may be sent with some message to the Emperor,"
    thought Rostov.
    
    "Thank God!"
    
    The fires and shouting in the enemy's army were occasioned by the fact
    that while Napoleon's proclamation was being read to the troops the
    Emperor himself rode round his bivouacs. The soldiers, on seeing him,
    lit wisps of straw and ran after him, shouting, "Vive l'Empereur!"
    Napoleon's proclamation was as follows:
    
    Soldiers! The Russian army is advancing against you to avenge the
    Austrian army of Ulm. They are the same battalions you broke at
    Hollabrunn and have pursued ever since to this place. The position we
    occupy is a strong one, and while they are marching to go round me on
    the right they will expose a flank to me. Soldiers! I will myself direct
    your battalions. I will keep out of fire if you with your habitual valor
    carry disorder and confusion into the enemy's ranks, but should victory
    be in doubt, even for a moment, you will see your Emperor exposing
    himself to the first blows of the enemy, for there must be no doubt of
    victory, especially on this day when what is at stake is the honor of
    the French infantry, so necessary to the honor of our nation.
    
    Do not break your ranks on the plea of removing the wounded! Let every
    man be fully imbued with the thought that we must defeat these hirelings
    of England, inspired by such hatred of our nation! This victory will
    conclude our campaign and we can return to winter quarters, where fresh
    French troops who are being raised in France will join us, and the peace
    I shall conclude will be worthy of my people, of you, and of myself.
    
    NAPOLEON
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    At five in the morning it was still quite dark. The troops of the
    center, the reserves, and Bagration's right flank had not yet moved, but
    on the left flank the columns of infantry, cavalry, and artillery, which
    were to be the first to descend the heights to attack the French right
    flank and drive it into the Bohemian mountains according to plan, were
    already up and astir. The smoke of the campfires, into which they were
    throwing everything superfluous, made the eyes smart. It was cold and
    dark. The officers were hurriedly drinking tea and breakfasting, the
    soldiers, munching biscuit and beating a tattoo with their feet to warm
    themselves, gathering round the fires throwing into the flames the
    remains of sheds, chairs, tables, wheels, tubs, and everything that they
    did not want or could not carry away with them. Austrian column guides
    were moving in and out among the Russian troops and served as heralds of
    the advance. As soon as an Austrian officer showed himself near a
    commanding officer's quarters, the regiment began to move: the soldiers
    ran from the fires, thrust their pipes into their boots, their bags into
    the carts, got their muskets ready, and formed rank. The officers
    buttoned up their coats, buckled on their swords and pouches, and moved
    along the ranks shouting. The train drivers and orderlies harnessed and
    packed the wagons and tied on the loads. The adjutants and battalion and
    regimental commanders mounted, crossed themselves, gave final
    instructions, orders, and commissions to the baggage men who remained
    behind, and the monotonous tramp of thousands of feet resounded. The
    column moved forward without knowing where and unable, from the masses
    around them, the smoke and the increasing fog, to see either the place
    they were leaving or that to which they were going.
    
    A soldier on the march is hemmed in and borne along by his regiment as
    much as a sailor is by his ship. However far he has walked, whatever
    strange, unknown, and dangerous places he reaches, just as a sailor is
    always surrounded by the same decks, masts, and rigging of his ship, so
    the soldier always has around him the same comrades, the same ranks, the
    same sergeant major Ivan Mitrich, the same company dog Jack, and the
    same commanders. The sailor rarely cares to know the latitude in which
    his ship is sailing, but on the day of battle--heaven knows how and
    whence--a stern note of which all are conscious sounds in the moral
    atmosphere of an army, announcing the approach of something decisive and
    solemn, and awakening in the men an unusual curiosity. On the day of
    battle the soldiers excitedly try to get beyond the interests of their
    regiment, they listen intently, look about, and eagerly ask concerning
    what is going on around them.
    
    The fog had grown so dense that though it was growing light they could
    not see ten paces ahead. Bushes looked like gigantic trees and level
    ground like cliffs and slopes. Anywhere, on any side, one might
    encounter an enemy invisible ten paces off. But the columns advanced for
    a long time, always in the same fog, descending and ascending hills,
    avoiding gardens and enclosures, going over new and unknown ground, and
    nowhere encountering the enemy. On the contrary, the soldiers became
    aware that in front, behind, and on all sides, other Russian columns
    were moving in the same direction. Every soldier felt glad to know that
    to the unknown place where he was going, many more of our men were going
    too.
    
    "There now, the Kurskies have also gone past," was being said in the
    ranks.
    
    "It's wonderful what a lot of our troops have gathered, lads! Last night
    I looked at the campfires and there was no end of them. A regular
    Moscow!"
    
    Though none of the column commanders rode up to the ranks or talked to
    the men (the commanders, as we saw at the council of war, were out of
    humor and dissatisfied with the affair, and so did not exert themselves
    to cheer the men but merely carried out the orders), yet the troops
    marched gaily, as they always do when going into action, especially to
    an attack. But when they had marched for about an hour in the dense fog,
    the greater part of the men had to halt and an unpleasant consciousness
    of some dislocation and blunder spread through the ranks. How such a
    consciousness is communicated is very difficult to define, but it
    certainly is communicated very surely, and flows rapidly, imperceptibly,
    and irrepressibly, as water does in a creek. Had the Russian army been
    alone without any allies, it might perhaps have been a long time before
    this consciousness of mismanagement became a general conviction, but as
    it was, the disorder was readily and naturally attributed to the stupid
    Germans, and everyone was convinced that a dangerous muddle had been
    occasioned by the sausage eaters.
    
    "Why have we stopped? Is the way blocked? Or have we already come up
    against the French?"
    
    "No, one can't hear them. They'd be firing if we had."
    
    "They were in a hurry enough to start us, and now here we stand in the
    middle of a field without rhyme or reason. It's all those damned
    Germans' muddling! What stupid devils!"
    
    "Yes, I'd send them on in front, but no fear, they're crowding up
    behind. And now here we stand hungry."
    
    "I say, shall we soon be clear? They say the cavalry are blocking the
    way," said an officer.
    
    "Ah, those damned Germans! They don't know their own country!" said
    another.
    
    "What division are you?" shouted an adjutant, riding up.
    
    "The Eighteenth."
    
    "Then why are you here? You should have gone on long ago, now you won't
    get there till evening."
    
    "What stupid orders! They don't themselves know what they are doing!"
    said the officer and rode off.
    
    Then a general rode past shouting something angrily, not in Russian.
    
    "Tafa-lafa! But what he's jabbering no one can make out," said a
    soldier, mimicking the general who had ridden away. "I'd shoot them, the
    scoundrels!"
    
    "We were ordered to be at the place before nine, but we haven't got
    halfway. Fine orders!" was being repeated on different sides.
    
    And the feeling of energy with which the troops had started began to
    turn into vexation and anger at the stupid arrangements and at the
    Germans.
    
    The cause of the confusion was that while the Austrian cavalry was
    moving toward our left flank, the higher command found that our center
    was too far separated from our right flank and the cavalry were all
    ordered to turn back to the right. Several thousand cavalry crossed in
    front of the infantry, who had to wait.
    
    At the front an altercation occurred between an Austrian guide and a
    Russian general. The general shouted a demand that the cavalry should be
    halted, the Austrian argued that not he, but the higher command, was to
    blame. The troops meanwhile stood growing listless and dispirited. After
    an hour's delay they at last moved on, descending the hill. The fog that
    was dispersing on the hill lay still more densely below, where they were
    descending. In front in the fog a shot was heard and then another, at
    first irregularly at varying intervals--trata... tat--and then more and
    more regularly and rapidly, and the action at the Goldbach Stream began.
    
    Not expecting to come on the enemy down by the stream, and having
    stumbled on him in the fog, hearing no encouraging word from their
    commanders, and with a consciousness of being too late spreading through
    the ranks, and above all being unable to see anything in front or around
    them in the thick fog, the Russians exchanged shots with the enemy
    lazily and advanced and again halted, receiving no timely orders from
    the officers or adjutants who wandered about in the fog in those unknown
    surroundings unable to find their own regiments. In this way the action
    began for the first, second, and third columns, which had gone down into
    the valley. The fourth column, with which Kutuzov was, stood on the
    Pratzen Heights.
    
    Below, where the fight was beginning, there was still thick fog; on the
    higher ground it was clearing, but nothing could be seen of what was
    going on in front. Whether all the enemy forces were, as we supposed,
    six miles away, or whether they were near by in that sea of mist, no one
    knew till after eight o'clock.
    
    It was nine o'clock in the morning. The fog lay unbroken like a sea down
    below, but higher up at the village of Schlappanitz where Napoleon stood
    with his marshals around him, it was quite light. Above him was a clear
    blue sky, and the sun's vast orb quivered like a huge hollow, crimson
    float on the surface of that milky sea of mist. The whole French army,
    and even Napoleon himself with his staff, were not on the far side of
    the streams and hollows of Sokolnitz and Schlappanitz beyond which we
    intended to take up our position and begin the action, but were on this
    side, so close to our own forces that Napoleon with the naked eye could
    distinguish a mounted man from one on foot. Napoleon, in the blue cloak
    which he had worn on his Italian campaign, sat on his small gray Arab
    horse a little in front of his marshals. He gazed silently at the hills
    which seemed to rise out of the sea of mist and on which the Russian
    troops were moving in the distance, and he listened to the sounds of
    firing in the valley. Not a single muscle of his face--which in those
    days was still thin--moved. His gleaming eyes were fixed intently on one
    spot. His predictions were being justified. Part of the Russian force
    had already descended into the valley toward the ponds and lakes and
    part were leaving these Pratzen Heights which he intended to attack and
    regarded as the key to the position. He saw over the mist that in a
    hollow between two hills near the village of Pratzen, the Russian
    columns, their bayonets glittering, were moving continuously in one
    direction toward the valley and disappearing one after another into the
    mist. From information he had received the evening before, from the
    sound of wheels and footsteps heard by the outposts during the night, by
    the disorderly movement of the Russian columns, and from all
    indications, he saw clearly that the allies believed him to be far away
    in front of them, and that the columns moving near Pratzen constituted
    the center of the Russian army, and that that center was already
    sufficiently weakened to be successfully attacked. But still he did not
    begin the engagement.
    
    Today was a great day for him--the anniversary of his coronation. Before
    dawn he had slept for a few hours, and refreshed, vigorous, and in good
    spirits, he mounted his horse and rode out into the field in that happy
    mood in which everything seems possible and everything succeeds. He sat
    motionless, looking at the heights visible above the mist, and his cold
    face wore that special look of confident, self-complacent happiness that
    one sees on the face of a boy happily in love. The marshals stood behind
    him not venturing to distract his attention. He looked now at the
    Pratzen Heights, now at the sun floating up out of the mist.
    
    When the sun had entirely emerged from the fog, and fields and mist were
    aglow with dazzling light--as if he had only awaited this to begin the
    action--he drew the glove from his shapely white hand, made a sign with
    it to the marshals, and ordered the action to begin. The marshals,
    accompanied by adjutants, galloped off in different directions, and a
    few minutes later the chief forces of the French army moved rapidly
    toward those Pratzen Heights which were being more and more denuded by
    Russian troops moving down the valley to their left.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    At eight o'clock Kutuzov rode to Pratzen at the head of the fourth
    column, Miloradovich's, the one that was to take the place of
    Przebyszewski's and Langeron's columns which had already gone down into
    the valley. He greeted the men of the foremost regiment and gave them
    the order to march, thereby indicating that he intended to lead that
    column himself. When he had reached the village of Pratzen he halted.
    Prince Andrew was behind, among the immense number forming the
    commander-in-chief's suite. He was in a state of suppressed excitement
    and irritation, though controlledly calm as a man is at the approach of
    a long-awaited moment. He was firmly convinced that this was the day of
    his Toulon, or his bridge of Arcola. How it would come about he did not
    know, but he felt sure it would do so. The locality and the position of
    our troops were known to him as far as they could be known to anyone in
    our army. His own strategic plan, which obviously could not now be
    carried out, was forgotten. Now, entering into Weyrother's plan, Prince
    Andrew considered possible contingencies and formed new projects such as
    might call for his rapidity of perception and decision.
    
    To the left down below in the mist, the musketry fire of unseen forces
    could be heard. It was there Prince Andrew thought the fight would
    concentrate. "There we shall encounter difficulties, and there," thought
    he, "I shall be sent with a brigade or division, and there, standard in
    hand, I shall go forward and break whatever is in front of me."
    
    He could not look calmly at the standards of the passing battalions.
    Seeing them he kept thinking, "That may be the very standard with which
    I shall lead the army."
    
    In the morning all that was left of the night mist on the heights was a
    hoar frost now turning to dew, but in the valleys it still lay like a
    milk-white sea. Nothing was visible in the valley to the left into which
    our troops had descended and from whence came the sounds of firing.
    Above the heights was the dark clear sky, and to the right the vast orb
    of the sun. In front, far off on the farther shore of that sea of mist,
    some wooded hills were discernible, and it was there the enemy probably
    was, for something could be descried. On the right the Guards were
    entering the misty region with a sound of hoofs and wheels and now and
    then a gleam of bayonets; to the left beyond the village similar masses
    of cavalry came up and disappeared in the sea of mist. In front and
    behind moved infantry. The commander-in-chief was standing at the end of
    the village letting the troops pass by him. That morning Kutuzov seemed
    worn and irritable. The infantry passing before him came to a halt
    without any command being given, apparently obstructed by something in
    front.
    
    "Do order them to form into battalion columns and go round the village!"
    he said angrily to a general who had ridden up. "Don't you understand,
    your excellency, my dear sir, that you must not defile through narrow
    village streets when we are marching against the enemy?"
    
    "I intended to re-form them beyond the village, your excellency,"
    answered the general.
    
    Kutuzov laughed bitterly.
    
    "You'll make a fine thing of it, deploying in sight of the enemy! Very
    fine!"
    
    "The enemy is still far away, your excellency. According to the
    dispositions..."
    
    "The dispositions!" exclaimed Kutuzov bitterly. "Who told you that?...
    Kindly do as you are ordered."
    
    "Yes, sir."
    
    "My dear fellow," Nesvitski whispered to Prince Andrew, "the old man is
    as surly as a dog."
    
    An Austrian officer in a white uniform with green plumes in his hat
    galloped up to Kutuzov and asked in the Emperor's name had the fourth
    column advanced into action.
    
    Kutuzov turned round without answering and his eye happened to fall upon
    Prince Andrew, who was beside him. Seeing him, Kutuzov's malevolent and
    caustic expression softened, as if admitting that what was being done
    was not his adjutant's fault, and still not answering the Austrian
    adjutant, he addressed Bolkonski.
    
    "Go, my dear fellow, and see whether the third division has passed the
    village. Tell it to stop and await my orders."
    
    Hardly had Prince Andrew started than he stopped him.
    
    "And ask whether sharpshooters have been posted," he added. "What are
    they doing? What are they doing?" he murmured to himself, still not
    replying to the Austrian.
    
    Prince Andrew galloped off to execute the order.
    
    Overtaking the battalions that continued to advance, he stopped the
    third division and convinced himself that there really were no
    sharpshooters in front of our columns. The colonel at the head of the
    regiment was much surprised at the commander-in-chief's order to throw
    out skirmishers. He had felt perfectly sure that there were other troops
    in front of him and that the enemy must be at least six miles away.
    There was really nothing to be seen in front except a barren descent
    hidden by dense mist. Having given orders in the commander-in-chief's
    name to rectify this omission, Prince Andrew galloped back. Kutuzov
    still in the same place, his stout body resting heavily in the saddle
    with the lassitude of age, sat yawning wearily with closed eyes. The
    troops were no longer moving, but stood with the butts of their muskets
    on the ground.
    
    "All right, all right!" he said to Prince Andrew, and turned to a
    general who, watch in hand, was saying it was time they started as all
    the left-flank columns had already descended.
    
    "Plenty of time, your excellency," muttered Kutuzov in the midst of a
    yawn. "Plenty of time," he repeated.
    
    Just then at a distance behind Kutuzov was heard the sound of regiments
    saluting, and this sound rapidly came nearer along the whole extended
    line of the advancing Russian columns. Evidently the person they were
    greeting was riding quickly. When the soldiers of the regiment in front
    of which Kutuzov was standing began to shout, he rode a little to one
    side and looked round with a frown. Along the road from Pratzen galloped
    what looked like a squadron of horsemen in various uniforms. Two of them
    rode side by side in front, at full gallop. One in a black uniform with
    white plumes in his hat rode a bobtailed chestnut horse, the other who
    was in a white uniform rode a black one. These were the two Emperors
    followed by their suites. Kutuzov, affecting the manners of an old
    soldier at the front, gave the command "Attention!" and rode up to the
    Emperors with a salute. His whole appearance and manner were suddenly
    transformed. He put on the air of a subordinate who obeys without
    reasoning. With an affectation of respect which evidently struck
    Alexander unpleasantly, he rode up and saluted.
    
    This unpleasant impression merely flitted over the young and happy face
    of the Emperor like a cloud of haze across a clear sky and vanished.
    After his illness he looked rather thinner that day than on the field of
    Olmutz where Bolkonski had seen him for the first time abroad, but there
    was still the same bewitching combination of majesty and mildness in his
    fine gray eyes, and on his delicate lips the same capacity for varying
    expression and the same prevalent appearance of goodhearted innocent
    youth.
    
    At the Olmutz review he had seemed more majestic; here he seemed
    brighter and more energetic. He was slightly flushed after galloping two
    miles, and reining in his horse he sighed restfully and looked round at
    the faces of his suite, young and animated as his own. Czartoryski,
    Novosiltsev, Prince Volkonsky, Strogonov, and the others, all richly
    dressed gay young men on splendid, well-groomed, fresh, only slightly
    heated horses, exchanging remarks and smiling, had stopped behind the
    Emperor. The Emperor Francis, a rosy, long faced young man, sat very
    erect on his handsome black horse, looking about him in a leisurely and
    preoccupied manner. He beckoned to one of his white adjutants and asked
    some question--"Most likely he is asking at what o'clock they started,"
    thought Prince Andrew, watching his old acquaintance with a smile he
    could not repress as he recalled his reception at Brunn. In the
    Emperors' suite were the picked young orderly officers of the Guard and
    line regiments, Russian and Austrian. Among them were grooms leading the
    Tsar's beautiful relay horses covered with embroidered cloths.
    
    As when a window is opened a whiff of fresh air from the fields enters a
    stuffy room, so a whiff of youthfulness, energy, and confidence of
    success reached Kutuzov's cheerless staff with the galloping advent of
    all these brilliant young men.
    
    "Why aren't you beginning, Michael Ilarionovich?" said the Emperor
    Alexander hurriedly to Kutuzov, glancing courteously at the same time at
    the Emperor Francis.
    
    "I am waiting, Your Majesty," answered Kutuzov, bending forward
    respectfully.
    
    The Emperor, frowning slightly, bent his ear forward as if he had not
    quite heard.
    
    "Waiting, Your Majesty," repeated Kutuzov. (Prince Andrew noted that
    Kutuzov's upper lip twitched unnaturally as he said the word "waiting.")
    "Not all the columns have formed up yet, Your Majesty."
    
    The Tsar heard but obviously did not like the reply; he shrugged his
    rather round shoulders and glanced at Novosiltsev who was near him, as
    if complaining of Kutuzov.
    
    "You know, Michael Ilarionovich, we are not on the Empress' Field where
    a parade does not begin till all the troops are assembled," said the
    Tsar with another glance at the Emperor Francis, as if inviting him if
    not to join in at least to listen to what he was saying. But the Emperor
    Francis continued to look about him and did not listen.
    
    "That is just why I do not begin, sire," said Kutuzov in a resounding
    voice, apparently to preclude the possibility of not being heard, and
    again something in his face twitched--"That is just why I do not begin,
    sire, because we are not on parade and not on the Empress' Field," said
    clearly and distinctly.
    
    In the Emperor's suite all exchanged rapid looks that expressed
    dissatisfaction and reproach. "Old though he may be, he should not, he
    certainly should not, speak like that," their glances seemed to say.
    
    The Tsar looked intently and observantly into Kutuzov's eye waiting to
    hear whether he would say anything more. But Kutuzov, with respectfully
    bowed head, seemed also to be waiting. The silence lasted for about a
    minute.
    
    "However, if you command it, Your Majesty," said Kutuzov, lifting his
    head and again assuming his former tone of a dull, unreasoning, but
    submissive general.
    
    He touched his horse and having called Miloradovich, the commander of
    the column, gave him the order to advance.
    
    The troops again began to move, and two battalions of the Novgorod and
    one of the Apsheron regiment went forward past the Emperor.
    
    As this Apsheron battalion marched by, the red-faced Miloradovich,
    without his greatcoat, with his Orders on his breast and an enormous
    tuft of plumes in his cocked hat worn on one side with its corners front
    and back, galloped strenuously forward, and with a dashing salute reined
    in his horse before the Emperor.
    
    "God be with you, general!" said the Emperor.
    
    "Ma foi, sire, nous ferons ce qui sera dans notre possibilite, sire," *
    he answered gaily, raising nevertheless ironic smiles among the
    gentlemen of the Tsar's suite by his poor French.
    
    * "Indeed, Sire, we shall do everything it is possible to do, Sire."
    
    Miloradovich wheeled his horse sharply and stationed himself a little
    behind the Emperor. The Apsheron men, excited by the Tsar's presence,
    passed in step before the Emperors and their suites at a bold, brisk
    pace.
    
    "Lads!" shouted Miloradovich in a loud, self-confident, and cheery
    voice, obviously so elated by the sound of firing, by the prospect of
    battle, and by the sight of the gallant Apsherons, his comrades in
    Suvorov's time, now passing so gallantly before the Emperors, that he
    forgot the sovereigns' presence. "Lads, it's not the first village
    you've had to take," cried he.
    
    "Glad to do our best!" shouted the soldiers.
    
    The Emperor's horse started at the sudden cry. This horse that had
    carried the sovereign at reviews in Russia bore him also here on the
    field of Austerlitz, enduring the heedless blows of his left foot and
    pricking its ears at the sound of shots just as it had done on the
    Empress' Field, not understanding the significance of the firing, nor of
    the nearness of the Emperor Francis' black cob, nor of all that was
    being said, thought, and felt that day by its rider.
    
    The Emperor turned with a smile to one of his followers and made a
    remark to him, pointing to the gallant Apsherons.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Kutuzov accompanied by his adjutants rode at a walking pace behind the
    carabineers.
    
    When he had gone less than half a mile in the rear of the column he
    stopped at a solitary, deserted house that had probably once been an
    inn, where two roads parted. Both of them led downhill and troops were
    marching along both.
    
    The fog had begun to clear and enemy troops were already dimly visible
    about a mile and a half off on the opposite heights. Down below, on the
    left, the firing became more distinct. Kutuzov had stopped and was
    speaking to an Austrian general. Prince Andrew, who was a little behind
    looking at them, turned to an adjutant to ask him for a field glass.
    
    "Look, look!" said this adjutant, looking not at the troops in the
    distance, but down the hill before him. "It's the French!"
    
    The two generals and the adjutant took hold of the field glass, trying
    to snatch it from one another. The expression on all their faces
    suddenly changed to one of horror. The French were supposed to be a mile
    and a half away, but had suddenly and unexpectedly appeared just in
    front of us.
    
    "It's the enemy?... No!... Yes, see it is!... for certain.... But how is
    that?" said different voices.
    
    With the naked eye Prince Andrew saw below them to the right, not more
    than five hundred paces from where Kutuzov was standing, a dense French
    column coming up to meet the Apsherons.
    
    "Here it is! The decisive moment has arrived. My turn has come," thought
    Prince Andrew, and striking his horse he rode up to Kutuzov.
    
    "The Apsherons must be stopped, your excellency," cried he. But at that
    very instant a cloud of smoke spread all round, firing was heard quite
    close at hand, and a voice of naive terror barely two steps from Prince
    Andrew shouted, "Brothers! All's lost!" And at this as if at a command,
    everyone began to run.
    
    Confused and ever-increasing crowds were running back to where five
    minutes before the troops had passed the Emperors. Not only would it
    have been difficult to stop that crowd, it was even impossible not to be
    carried back with it oneself. Bolkonski only tried not to lose touch
    with it, and looked around bewildered and unable to grasp what was
    happening in front of him. Nesvitski with an angry face, red and unlike
    himself, was shouting to Kutuzov that if he did not ride away at once he
    would certainly be taken prisoner. Kutuzov remained in the same place
    and without answering drew out a handkerchief. Blood was flowing from
    his cheek. Prince Andrew forced his way to him.
    
    "You are wounded?" he asked, hardly able to master the trembling of his
    lower jaw.
    
    "The wound is not here, it is there!" said Kutuzov, pressing the
    handkerchief to his wounded cheek and pointing to the fleeing soldiers.
    "Stop them!" he shouted, and at the same moment, probably realizing that
    it was impossible to stop them, spurred his horse and rode to the right.
    
    A fresh wave of the flying mob caught him and bore him back with it.
    
    The troops were running in such a dense mass that once surrounded by
    them it was difficult to get out again. One was shouting, "Get on! Why
    are you hindering us?" Another in the same place turned round and fired
    in the air; a third was striking the horse Kutuzov himself rode. Having
    by a great effort got away to the left from that flood of men, Kutuzov,
    with his suite diminished by more than half, rode toward a sound of
    artillery fire near by. Having forced his way out of the crowd of
    fugitives, Prince Andrew, trying to keep near Kutuzov, saw on the slope
    of the hill amid the smoke a Russian battery that was still firing and
    Frenchmen running toward it. Higher up stood some Russian infantry,
    neither moving forward to protect the battery nor backward with the
    fleeing crowd. A mounted general separated himself from the infantry and
    approached Kutuzov. Of Kutuzov's suite only four remained. They were all
    pale and exchanged looks in silence.
    
    "Stop those wretches!" gasped Kutuzov to the regimental commander,
    pointing to the flying soldiers; but at that instant, as if to punish
    him for those words, bullets flew hissing across the regiment and across
    Kutuzov's suite like a flock of little birds.
    
    The French had attacked the battery and, seeing Kutuzov, were firing at
    him. After this volley the regimental commander clutched at his leg;
    several soldiers fell, and a second lieutenant who was holding the flag
    let it fall from his hands. It swayed and fell, but caught on the
    muskets of the nearest soldiers. The soldiers started firing without
    orders.
    
    "Oh! Oh! Oh!" groaned Kutuzov despairingly and looked around....
    "Bolkonski!" he whispered, his voice trembling from a consciousness of
    the feebleness of age, "Bolkonski!" he whispered, pointing to the
    disordered battalion and at the enemy, "what's that?"
    
    But before he had finished speaking, Prince Andrew, feeling tears of
    shame and anger choking him, had already leapt from his horse and run to
    the standard.
    
    "Forward, lads!" he shouted in a voice piercing as a child's.
    
    "Here it is!" thought he, seizing the staff of the standard and hearing
    with pleasure the whistle of bullets evidently aimed at him. Several
    soldiers fell.
    
    "Hurrah!" shouted Prince Andrew, and, scarcely able to hold up the heavy
    standard, he ran forward with full confidence that the whole battalion
    would follow him.
    
    And really he only ran a few steps alone. One soldier moved and then
    another and soon the whole battalion ran forward shouting "Hurrah!" and
    overtook him. A sergeant of the battalion ran up and took the flag that
    was swaying from its weight in Prince Andrew's hands, but he was
    immediately killed. Prince Andrew again seized the standard and,
    dragging it by the staff, ran on with the battalion. In front he saw our
    artillerymen, some of whom were fighting, while others, having abandoned
    their guns, were running toward him. He also saw French infantry
    soldiers who were seizing the artillery horses and turning the guns
    round. Prince Andrew and the battalion were already within twenty paces
    of the cannon. He heard the whistle of bullets above him unceasingly and
    to right and left of him soldiers continually groaned and dropped. But
    he did not look at them: he looked only at what was going on in front of
    him--at the battery. He now saw clearly the figure of a red-haired
    gunner with his shako knocked awry, pulling one end of a mop while a
    French soldier tugged at the other. He could distinctly see the
    distraught yet angry expression on the faces of these two men, who
    evidently did not realize what they were doing.
    
    "What are they about?" thought Prince Andrew as he gazed at them. "Why
    doesn't the red-haired gunner run away as he is unarmed? Why doesn't the
    Frenchman stab him? He will not get away before the Frenchman remembers
    his bayonet and stabs him...."
    
    And really another French soldier, trailing his musket, ran up to the
    struggling men, and the fate of the red-haired gunner, who had
    triumphantly secured the mop and still did not realize what awaited him,
    was about to be decided. But Prince Andrew did not see how it ended. It
    seemed to him as though one of the soldiers near him hit him on the head
    with the full swing of a bludgeon. It hurt a little, but the worst of it
    was that the pain distracted him and prevented his seeing what he had
    been looking at.
    
    "What's this? Am I falling? My legs are giving way," thought he, and
    fell on his back. He opened his eyes, hoping to see how the struggle of
    the Frenchmen with the gunners ended, whether the red-haired gunner had
    been killed or not and whether the cannon had been captured or saved.
    But he saw nothing. Above him there was now nothing but the sky--the
    lofty sky, not clear yet still immeasurably lofty, with gray clouds
    gliding slowly across it. "How quiet, peaceful, and solemn; not at all
    as I ran," thought Prince Andrew--"not as we ran, shouting and fighting,
    not at all as the gunner and the Frenchman with frightened and angry
    faces struggled for the mop: how differently do those clouds glide
    across that lofty infinite sky! How was it I did not see that lofty sky
    before? And how happy I am to have found it at last! Yes! All is vanity,
    all falsehood, except that infinite sky. There is nothing, nothing, but
    that. But even it does not exist, there is nothing but quiet and peace.
    Thank God!..."
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    On our right flank commanded by Bagration, at nine o'clock the battle
    had not yet begun. Not wishing to agree to Dolgorukov's demand to
    commence the action, and wishing to avert responsibility from himself,
    Prince Bagration proposed to Dolgorukov to send to inquire of the
    commander-in-chief. Bagration knew that as the distance between the two
    flanks was more than six miles, even if the messenger were not killed
    (which he very likely would be), and found the commander-in-chief (which
    would be very difficult), he would not be able to get back before
    evening.
    
    Bagration cast his large, expressionless, sleepy eyes round his suite,
    and the boyish face Rostov, breathless with excitement and hope, was the
    first to catch his eye. He sent him.
    
    "And if I should meet His Majesty before I meet the commander-in-chief,
    your excellency?" said Rostov, with his hand to his cap.
    
    "You can give the message to His Majesty," said Dolgorukov, hurriedly
    interrupting Bagration.
    
    On being relieved from picket duty Rostov had managed to get a few
    hours' sleep before morning and felt cheerful, bold, and resolute, with
    elasticity of movement, faith in his good fortune, and generally in that
    state of mind which makes everything seem possible, pleasant, and easy.
    
    All his wishes were being fulfilled that morning: there was to be a
    general engagement in which he was taking part, more than that, he was
    orderly to the bravest general, and still more, he was going with a
    message to Kutuzov, perhaps even to the sovereign himself. The morning
    was bright, he had a good horse under him, and his heart was full of joy
    and happiness. On receiving the order he gave his horse the rein and
    galloped along the line. At first he rode along the line of Bagration's
    troops, which had not yet advanced into action but were standing
    motionless; then he came to the region occupied by Uvarov's cavalry and
    here he noticed a stir and signs of preparation for battle; having
    passed Uvarov's cavalry he clearly heard the sound of cannon and
    musketry ahead of him. The firing grew louder and louder.
    
    In the fresh morning air were now heard, not two or three musket shots
    at irregular intervals as before, followed by one or two cannon shots,
    but a roll of volleys of musketry from the slopes of the hill before
    Pratzen, interrupted by such frequent reports of cannon that sometimes
    several of them were not separated from one another but merged into a
    general roar.
    
    He could see puffs of musketry smoke that seemed to chase one another
    down the hillsides, and clouds of cannon smoke rolling, spreading, and
    mingling with one another. He could also, by the gleam of bayonets
    visible through the smoke, make out moving masses of infantry and narrow
    lines of artillery with green caissons.
    
    Rostov stopped his horse for a moment on a hillock to see what was going
    on, but strain his attention as he would he could not understand or make
    out anything of what was happening: there in the smoke men of some sort
    were moving about, in front and behind moved lines of troops; but why,
    whither, and who they were, it was impossible to make out. These sights
    and sounds had no depressing or intimidating effect on him; on the
    contrary, they stimulated his energy and determination.
    
    "Go on! Go on! Give it them!" he mentally exclaimed at these sounds, and
    again proceeded to gallop along the line, penetrating farther and
    farther into the region where the army was already in action.
    
    "How it will be there I don't know, but all will be well!" thought
    Rostov.
    
    After passing some Austrian troops he noticed that the next part of the
    line (the Guards) was already in action.
    
    "So much the better! I shall see it close," he thought.
    
    He was riding almost along the front line. A handful of men came
    galloping toward him. They were our uhlans who with disordered ranks
    were returning from the attack. Rostov got out of their way,
    involuntarily noticed that one of them was bleeding, and galloped on.
    
    "That is no business of mine," he thought. He had not ridden many
    hundred yards after that before he saw to his left, across the whole
    width of the field, an enormous mass of cavalry in brilliant white
    uniforms, mounted on black horses, trotting straight toward him and
    across his path. Rostov put his horse to full gallop to get out of the
    way of these men, and he would have got clear had they continued at the
    same speed, but they kept increasing their pace, so that some of the
    horses were already galloping. Rostov heard the thud of their hoofs and
    the jingle of their weapons and saw their horses, their figures, and
    even their faces, more and more distinctly. They were our Horse Guards,
    advancing to attack the French cavalry that was coming to meet them.
    
    The Horse Guards were galloping, but still holding in their horses.
    Rostov could already see their faces and heard the command: "Charge!"
    shouted by an officer who was urging his thoroughbred to full speed.
    Rostov, fearing to be crushed or swept into the attack on the French,
    galloped along the front as hard as his horse could go, but still was
    not in time to avoid them.
    
    The last of the Horse Guards, a huge pockmarked fellow, frowned angrily
    on seeing Rostov before him, with whom he would inevitably collide. This
    Guardsman would certainly have bowled Rostov and his Bedouin over
    (Rostov felt himself quite tiny and weak compared to these gigantic men
    and horses) had it not occurred to Rostov to flourish his whip before
    the eyes of the Guardsman's horse. The heavy black horse, sixteen hands
    high, shied, throwing back its ears; but the pockmarked Guardsman drove
    his huge spurs in violently, and the horse, flourishing its tail and
    extending its neck, galloped on yet faster. Hardly had the Horse Guards
    passed Rostov before he heard them shout, "Hurrah!" and looking back saw
    that their foremost ranks were mixed up with some foreign cavalry with
    red epaulets, probably French. He could see nothing more, for
    immediately afterwards cannon began firing from somewhere and smoke
    enveloped everything.
    
    At that moment, as the Horse Guards, having passed him, disappeared in
    the smoke, Rostov hesitated whether to gallop after them or to go where
    he was sent. This was the brilliant charge of the Horse Guards that
    amazed the French themselves. Rostov was horrified to hear later that of
    all that mass of huge and handsome men, of all those brilliant, rich
    youths, officers and cadets, who had galloped past him on their
    thousand-ruble horses, only eighteen were left after the charge.
    
    "Why should I envy them? My chance is not lost, and maybe I shall see
    the Emperor immediately!" thought Rostov and galloped on.
    
    When he came level with the Foot Guards he noticed that about them and
    around them cannon balls were flying, of which he was aware not so much
    because he heard their sound as because he saw uneasiness on the
    soldiers' faces and unnatural warlike solemnity on those of the
    officers.
    
    Passing behind one of the lines of a regiment of Foot Guards he heard a
    voice calling him by name.
    
    "Rostov!"
    
    "What?" he answered, not recognizing Boris.
    
    "I say, we've been in the front line! Our regiment attacked!" said Boris
    with the happy smile seen on the faces of young men who have been under
    fire for the first time.
    
    Rostov stopped.
    
    "Have you?" he said. "Well, how did it go?"
    
    "We drove them back!" said Boris with animation, growing talkative. "Can
    you imagine it?" and he began describing how the Guards, having taken up
    their position and seeing troops before them, thought they were
    Austrians, and all at once discovered from the cannon balls discharged
    by those troops that they were themselves in the front line and had
    unexpectedly to go into action. Rostov without hearing Boris to the end
    spurred his horse.
    
    "Where are you off to?" asked Boris.
    
    "With a message to His Majesty."
    
    "There he is!" said Boris, thinking Rostov had said "His Highness," and
    pointing to the Grand Duke who with his high shoulders and frowning
    brows stood a hundred paces away from them in his helmet and Horse
    Guards' jacket, shouting something to a pale, white uniformed Austrian
    officer.
    
    "But that's the Grand Duke, and I want the commander-in-chief or the
    Emperor," said Rostov, and was about to spur his horse.
    
    "Count! Count!" shouted Berg who ran up from the other side as eager as
    Boris. "Count! I am wounded in my right hand" (and he showed his
    bleeding hand with a handkerchief tied round it) "and I remained at the
    front. I held my sword in my left hand, Count. All our family--the von
    Bergs--have been knights!"
    
    He said something more, but Rostov did not wait to hear it and rode
    away.
    
    Having passed the Guards and traversed an empty space, Rostov, to avoid
    again getting in front of the first line as he had done when the Horse
    Guards charged, followed the line of reserves, going far round the place
    where the hottest musket fire and cannonade were heard. Suddenly he
    heard musket fire quite close in front of him and behind our troops,
    where he could never have expected the enemy to be.
    
    "What can it be?" he thought. "The enemy in the rear of our army?
    Impossible!" And suddenly he was seized by a panic of fear for himself
    and for the issue of the whole battle. "But be that what it may," he
    reflected, "there is no riding round it now. I must look for the
    commander in chief here, and if all is lost it is for me to perish with
    the rest."
    
    The foreboding of evil that had suddenly come over Rostov was more and
    more confirmed the farther he rode into the region behind the village of
    Pratzen, which was full of troops of all kinds.
    
    "What does it mean? What is it? Whom are they firing at? Who is firing?"
    Rostov kept asking as he came up to Russian and Austrian soldiers
    running in confused crowds across his path.
    
    "The devil knows! They've killed everybody! It's all up now!" he was
    told in Russian, German, and Czech by the crowd of fugitives who
    understood what was happening as little as he did.
    
    "Kill the Germans!" shouted one.
    
    "May the devil take them--the traitors!"
    
    "Zum Henker diese Russen!" * muttered a German.
    
    * "Hang these Russians!"
    
    Several wounded men passed along the road, and words of abuse, screams,
    and groans mingled in a general hubbub, then the firing died down.
    Rostov learned later that Russian and Austrian soldiers had been firing
    at one another.
    
    "My God! What does it all mean?" thought he. "And here, where at any
    moment the Emperor may see them.... But no, these must be only a handful
    of scoundrels. It will soon be over, it can't be that, it can't be! Only
    to get past them quicker, quicker!"
    
    The idea of defeat and flight could not enter Rostov's head. Though he
    saw French cannon and French troops on the Pratzen Heights just where he
    had been ordered to look for the commander-in-chief, he could not, did
    not wish to, believe that.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    Rostov had been ordered to look for Kutuzov and the Emperor near the
    village of Pratzen. But neither they nor a single commanding officer
    were there, only disorganized crowds of troops of various kinds. He
    urged on his already weary horse to get quickly past these crowds, but
    the farther he went the more disorganized they were. The highroad on
    which he had come out was thronged with caleches, carriages of all
    sorts, and Russian and Austrian soldiers of all arms, some wounded and
    some not. This whole mass droned and jostled in confusion under the
    dismal influence of cannon balls flying from the French batteries
    stationed on the Pratzen Heights.
    
    "Where is the Emperor? Where is Kutuzov?" Rostov kept asking everyone he
    could stop, but got no answer from anyone.
    
    At last seizing a soldier by his collar he forced him to answer.
    
    "Eh, brother! They've all bolted long ago!" said the soldier, laughing
    for some reason and shaking himself free.
    
    Having left that soldier who was evidently drunk, Rostov stopped the
    horse of a batman or groom of some important personage and began to
    question him. The man announced that the Tsar had been driven in a
    carriage at full speed about an hour before along that very road and
    that he was dangerously wounded.
    
    "It can't be!" said Rostov. "It must have been someone else."
    
    "I saw him myself," replied the man with a self-confident smile of
    derision. "I ought to know the Emperor by now, after the times I've seen
    him in Petersburg. I saw him just as I see you.... There he sat in the
    carriage as pale as anything. How they made the four black horses fly!
    Gracious me, they did rattle past! It's time I knew the Imperial horses
    and Ilya Ivanych. I don't think Ilya drives anyone except the Tsar!"
    
    Rostov let go of the horse and was about to ride on, when a wounded
    officer passing by addressed him:
    
    "Who is it you want?" he asked. "The commander-in-chief? He was killed
    by a cannon ball--struck in the breast before our regiment."
    
    "Not killed--wounded!" another officer corrected him.
    
    "Who? Kutuzov?" asked Rostov.
    
    "Not Kutuzov, but what's his name--well, never mind... there are not
    many left alive. Go that way, to that village, all the commanders are
    there," said the officer, pointing to the village of Hosjeradek, and he
    walked on.
    
    Rostov rode on at a footpace not knowing why or to whom he was now
    going. The Emperor was wounded, the battle lost. It was impossible to
    doubt it now. Rostov rode in the direction pointed out to him, in which
    he saw turrets and a church. What need to hurry? What was he now to say
    to the Tsar or to Kutuzov, even if they were alive and unwounded?
    
    "Take this road, your honor, that way you will be killed at once!" a
    soldier shouted to him. "They'd kill you there!"
    
    "Oh, what are you talking about?" said another. "Where is he to go? That
    way is nearer."
    
    Rostov considered, and then went in the direction where they said he
    would be killed.
    
    "It's all the same now. If the Emperor is wounded, am I to try to save
    myself?" he thought. He rode on to the region where the greatest number
    of men had perished in fleeing from Pratzen. The French had not yet
    occupied that region, and the Russians--the uninjured and slightly
    wounded--had left it long ago. All about the field, like heaps of manure
    on well-kept plowland, lay from ten to fifteen dead and wounded to each
    couple of acres. The wounded crept together in twos and threes and one
    could hear their distressing screams and groans, sometimes feigned--or
    so it seemed to Rostov. He put his horse to a trot to avoid seeing all
    these suffering men, and he felt afraid--afraid not for his life, but
    for the courage he needed and which he knew would not stand the sight of
    these unfortunates.
    
    The French, who had ceased firing at this field strewn with dead and
    wounded where there was no one left to fire at, on seeing an adjutant
    riding over it trained a gun on him and fired several shots. The
    sensation of those terrible whistling sounds and of the corpses around
    him merged in Rostov's mind into a single feeling of terror and pity for
    himself. He remembered his mother's last letter. "What would she feel,"
    thought he, "if she saw me here now on this field with the cannon aimed
    at me?"
    
    In the village of Hosjeradek there were Russian troops retiring from the
    field of battle, who though still in some confusion were less
    disordered. The French cannon did not reach there and the musketry fire
    sounded far away. Here everyone clearly saw and said that the battle was
    lost. No one whom Rostov asked could tell him where the Emperor or
    Kutuzov was. Some said the report that the Emperor was wounded was
    correct, others that it was not, and explained the false rumor that had
    spread by the fact that the Emperor's carriage had really galloped from
    the field of battle with the pale and terrified Ober-Hofmarschal Count
    Tolstoy, who had ridden out to the battlefield with others in the
    Emperor's suite. One officer told Rostov that he had seen someone from
    headquarters behind the village to the left, and thither Rostov rode,
    not hoping to find anyone but merely to ease his conscience. When he had
    ridden about two miles and had passed the last of the Russian troops, he
    saw, near a kitchen garden with a ditch round it, two men on horseback
    facing the ditch. One with a white plume in his hat seemed familiar to
    Rostov; the other on a beautiful chestnut horse (which Rostov fancied he
    had seen before) rode up to the ditch, struck his horse with his spurs,
    and giving it the rein leaped lightly over. Only a little earth crumbled
    from the bank under the horse's hind hoofs. Turning the horse sharply,
    he again jumped the ditch, and deferentially addressed the horseman with
    the white plumes, evidently suggesting that he should do the same. The
    rider, whose figure seemed familiar to Rostov and involuntarily riveted
    his attention, made a gesture of refusal with his head and hand and by
    that gesture Rostov instantly recognized his lamented and adored
    monarch.
    
    "But it can't be he, alone in the midst of this empty field!" thought
    Rostov. At that moment Alexander turned his head and Rostov saw the
    beloved features that were so deeply engraved on his memory. The Emperor
    was pale, his cheeks sunken and his eyes hollow, but the charm, the
    mildness of his features, was all the greater. Rostov was happy in the
    assurance that the rumors about the Emperor being wounded were false. He
    was happy to be seeing him. He knew that he might and even ought to go
    straight to him and give the message Dolgorukov had ordered him to
    deliver.
    
    But as a youth in love trembles, is unnerved, and dares not utter the
    thoughts he has dreamed of for nights, but looks around for help or a
    chance of delay and flight when the longed-for moment comes and he is
    alone with her, so Rostov, now that he had attained what he had longed
    for more than anything else in the world, did not know how to approach
    the Emperor, and a thousand reasons occurred to him why it would be
    inconvenient, unseemly, and impossible to do so.
    
    "What! It is as if I were glad of a chance to take advantage of his
    being alone and despondent! A strange face may seem unpleasant or
    painful to him at this moment of sorrow; besides, what can I say to him
    now, when my heart fails me and my mouth feels dry at the mere sight of
    him?" Not one of the innumerable speeches addressed to the Emperor that
    he had composed in his imagination could he now recall. Those speeches
    were intended for quite other conditions, they were for the most part to
    be spoken at a moment of victory and triumph, generally when he was
    dying of wounds and the sovereign had thanked him for heroic deeds, and
    while dying he expressed the love his actions had proved.
    
    "Besides how can I ask the Emperor for his instructions for the right
    flank now that it is nearly four o'clock and the battle is lost? No,
    certainly I must not approach him, I must not intrude on his
    reflections. Better die a thousand times than risk receiving an unkind
    look or bad opinion from him," Rostov decided; and sorrowfully and with
    a heart full despair he rode away, continually looking back at the Tsar,
    who still remained in the same attitude of indecision.
    
    While Rostov was thus arguing with himself and riding sadly away,
    Captain von Toll chanced to ride to the same spot, and seeing the
    Emperor at once rode up to him, offered his services, and assisted him
    to cross the ditch on foot. The Emperor, wishing to rest and feeling
    unwell, sat down under an apple tree and von Toll remained beside him.
    Rostov from a distance saw with envy and remorse how von Toll spoke long
    and warmly to the Emperor and how the Emperor, evidently weeping,
    covered his eyes with his hand and pressed von Toll's hand.
    
    "And I might have been in his place!" thought Rostov, and hardly
    restraining his tears of pity for the Emperor, he rode on in utter
    despair, not knowing where to or why he was now riding.
    
    His despair was all the greater from feeling that his own weakness was
    the cause of his grief.
    
    He might... not only might but should, have gone up to the sovereign. It
    was a unique chance to show his devotion to the Emperor and he had not
    made use of it.... "What have I done?" thought he. And he turned round
    and galloped back to the place where he had seen the Emperor, but there
    was no one beyond the ditch now. Only some carts and carriages were
    passing by. From one of the drivers he learned that Kutuzov's staff were
    not far off, in the village the vehicles were going to. Rostov followed
    them. In front of him walked Kutuzov's groom leading horses in
    horsecloths. Then came a cart, and behind that walked an old, bandy-
    legged domestic serf in a peaked cap and sheepskin coat.
    
    "Tit! I say, Tit!" said the groom.
    
    "What?" answered the old man absent-mindedly.
    
    "Go, Tit! Thresh a bit!"
    
    "Oh, you fool!" said the old man, spitting angrily. Some time passed in
    silence, and then the same joke was repeated.
    
    Before five in the evening the battle had been lost at all points. More
    than a hundred cannon were already in the hands of the French.
    
    Przebyszewski and his corps had laid down their arms. Other columns
    after losing half their men were retreating in disorderly confused
    masses.
    
    The remains of Langeron's and Dokhturov's mingled forces were crowding
    around the dams and banks of the ponds near the village of Augesd.
    
    After five o'clock it was only at the Augesd Dam that a hot cannonade
    (delivered by the French alone) was still to be heard from numerous
    batteries ranged on the slopes of the Pratzen Heights, directed at our
    retreating forces.
    
    In the rearguard, Dokhturov and others rallying some battalions kept up
    a musketry fire at the French cavalry that was pursuing our troops. It
    was growing dusk. On the narrow Augesd Dam where for so many years the
    old miller had been accustomed to sit in his tasseled cap peacefully
    angling, while his grandson, with shirt sleeves rolled up, handled the
    floundering silvery fish in the watering can, on that dam over which for
    so many years Moravians in shaggy caps and blue jackets had peacefully
    driven their two-horse carts loaded with wheat and had returned dusty
    with flour whitening their carts--on that narrow dam amid the wagons and
    the cannon, under the horses' hoofs and between the wagon wheels, men
    disfigured by fear of death now crowded together, crushing one another,
    dying, stepping over the dying and killing one another, only to move on
    a few steps and be killed themselves in the same way.
    
    Every ten seconds a cannon ball flew compressing the air around, or a
    shell burst in the midst of that dense throng, killing some and
    splashing with blood those near them.
    
    Dolokhov--now an officer--wounded in the arm, and on foot, with the
    regimental commander on horseback and some ten men of his company,
    represented all that was left of that whole regiment. Impelled by the
    crowd, they had got wedged in at the approach to the dam and, jammed in
    on all sides, had stopped because a horse in front had fallen under a
    cannon and the crowd were dragging it out. A cannon ball killed someone
    behind them, another fell in front and splashed Dolokhov with blood. The
    crowd, pushing forward desperately, squeezed together, moved a few
    steps, and again stopped.
    
    "Move on a hundred yards and we are certainly saved, remain here another
    two minutes and it is certain death," thought each one.
    
    Dolokhov who was in the midst of the crowd forced his way to the edge of
    the dam, throwing two soldiers off their feet, and ran onto the slippery
    ice that covered the millpool.
    
    "Turn this way!" he shouted, jumping over the ice which creaked under
    him; "turn this way!" he shouted to those with the gun. "It bears!..."
    
    The ice bore him but it swayed and creaked, and it was plain that it
    would give way not only under a cannon or a crowd, but very soon even
    under his weight alone. The men looked at him and pressed to the bank,
    hesitating to step onto the ice. The general on horseback at the
    entrance to the dam raised his hand and opened his mouth to address
    Dolokhov. Suddenly a cannon ball hissed so low above the crowd that
    everyone ducked. It flopped into something moist, and the general fell
    from his horse in a pool of blood. Nobody gave him a look or thought of
    raising him.
    
    "Get onto the ice, over the ice! Go on! Turn! Don't you hear? Go on!"
    innumerable voices suddenly shouted after the ball had struck the
    general, the men themselves not knowing what, or why, they were
    shouting.
    
    One of the hindmost guns that was going onto the dam turned off onto the
    ice. Crowds of soldiers from the dam began running onto the frozen pond.
    The ice gave way under one of the foremost soldiers, and one leg slipped
    into the water. He tried to right himself but fell in up to his waist.
    The nearest soldiers shrank back, the gun driver stopped his horse, but
    from behind still came the shouts: "Onto the ice, why do you stop? Go
    on! Go on!" And cries of horror were heard in the crowd. The soldiers
    near the gun waved their arms and beat the horses to make them turn and
    move on. The horses moved off the bank. The ice, that had held under
    those on foot, collapsed in a great mass, and some forty men who were on
    it dashed, some forward and some back, drowning one another.
    
    Still the cannon balls continued regularly to whistle and flop onto the
    ice and into the water and oftenest of all among the crowd that covered
    the dam, the pond, and the bank.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    On the Pratzen Heights, where he had fallen with the flagstaff in his
    hand, lay Prince Andrew Bolkonski bleeding profusely and unconsciously
    uttering a gentle, piteous, and childlike moan.
    
    Toward evening he ceased moaning and became quite still. He did not know
    how long his unconsciousness lasted. Suddenly he again felt that he was
    alive and suffering from a burning, lacerating pain in his head.
    
    "Where is it, that lofty sky that I did not know till now, but saw
    today?" was his first thought. "And I did not know this suffering
    either," he thought. "Yes, I did not know anything, anything at all till
    now. But where am I?"
    
    He listened and heard the sound of approaching horses, and voices
    speaking French. He opened his eyes. Above him again was the same lofty
    sky with clouds that had risen and were floating still higher, and
    between them gleamed blue infinity. He did not turn his head and did not
    see those who, judging by the sound of hoofs and voices, had ridden up
    and stopped near him.
    
    It was Napoleon accompanied by two aides-de-camp. Bonaparte riding over
    the battlefield had given final orders to strengthen the batteries
    firing at the Augesd Dam and was looking at the killed and wounded left
    on the field.
    
    "Fine men!" remarked Napoleon, looking at a dead Russian grenadier, who,
    with his face buried in the ground and a blackened nape, lay on his
    stomach with an already stiffened arm flung wide.
    
    "The ammunition for the guns in position is exhausted, Your Majesty,"
    said an adjutant who had come from the batteries that were firing at
    Augesd.
    
    "Have some brought from the reserve," said Napoleon, and having gone on
    a few steps he stopped before Prince Andrew, who lay on his back with
    the flagstaff that had been dropped beside him. (The flag had already
    been taken by the French as a trophy.)
    
    "That's a fine death!" said Napoleon as he gazed at Bolkonski.
    
    Prince Andrew understood that this was said of him and that it was
    Napoleon who said it. He heard the speaker addressed as Sire. But he
    heard the words as he might have heard the buzzing of a fly. Not only
    did they not interest him, but he took no notice of them and at once
    forgot them. His head was burning, he felt himself bleeding to death,
    and he saw above him the remote, lofty, and everlasting sky. He knew it
    was Napoleon--his hero--but at that moment Napoleon seemed to him such a
    small, insignificant creature compared with what was passing now between
    himself and that lofty infinite sky with the clouds flying over it. At
    that moment it meant nothing to him who might be standing over him, or
    what was said of him; he was only glad that people were standing near
    him and only wished that they would help him and bring him back to life,
    which seemed to him so beautiful now that he had today learned to
    understand it so differently. He collected all his strength, to stir and
    utter a sound. He feebly moved his leg and uttered a weak, sickly groan
    which aroused his own pity.
    
    "Ah! He is alive," said Napoleon. "Lift this young man up and carry him
    to the dressing station."
    
    Having said this, Napoleon rode on to meet Marshal Lannes, who, hat in
    hand, rode up smiling to the Emperor to congratulate him on the victory.
    
    Prince Andrew remembered nothing more: he lost consciousness from the
    terrible pain of being lifted onto the stretcher, the jolting while
    being moved, and the probing of his wound at the dressing station. He
    did not regain consciousness till late in the day, when with other
    wounded and captured Russian officers he was carried to the hospital.
    During this transfer he felt a little stronger and was able to look
    about him and even speak.
    
    The first words he heard on coming to his senses were those of a French
    convoy officer, who said rapidly: "We must halt here: the Emperor will
    pass here immediately; it will please him to see these gentlemen
    prisoners."
    
    "There are so many prisoners today, nearly the whole Russian army, that
    he is probably tired of them," said another officer.
    
    "All the same! They say this one is the commander of all the Emperor
    Alexander's Guards," said the first one, indicating a Russian officer in
    the white uniform of the Horse Guards.
    
    Bolkonski recognized Prince Repnin whom he had met in Petersburg
    society. Beside him stood a lad of nineteen, also a wounded officer of
    the Horse Guards.
    
    Bonaparte, having come up at a gallop, stopped his horse.
    
    "Which is the senior?" he asked, on seeing the prisoners.
    
    They named the colonel, Prince Repnin.
    
    "You are the commander of the Emperor Alexander's regiment of Horse
    Guards?" asked Napoleon.
    
    "I commanded a squadron," replied Repnin.
    
    "Your regiment fulfilled its duty honorably," said Napoleon.
    
    "The praise of a great commander is a soldier's highest reward," said
    Repnin.
    
    "I bestow it with pleasure," said Napoleon. "And who is that young man
    beside you?"
    
    Prince Repnin named Lieutenant Sukhtelen.
    
    After looking at him Napoleon smiled.
    
    "He's very young to come to meddle with us."
    
    "Youth is no hindrance to courage," muttered Sukhtelen in a failing
    voice.
    
    "A splendid reply!" said Napoleon. "Young man, you will go far!"
    
    Prince Andrew, who had also been brought forward before the Emperor's
    eyes to complete the show of prisoners, could not fail to attract his
    attention. Napoleon apparently remembered seeing him on the battlefield
    and, addressing him, again used the epithet "young man" that was
    connected in his memory with Prince Andrew.
    
    "Well, and you, young man," said he. "How do you feel, mon brave?"
    
    Though five minutes before, Prince Andrew had been able to say a few
    words to the soldiers who were carrying him, now with his eyes fixed
    straight on Napoleon, he was silent.... So insignificant at that moment
    seemed to him all the interests that engrossed Napoleon, so mean did his
    hero himself with his paltry vanity and joy in victory appear, compared
    to the lofty, equitable, and kindly sky which he had seen and
    understood, that he could not answer him.
    
    Everything seemed so futile and insignificant in comparison with the
    stern and solemn train of thought that weakness from loss of blood,
    suffering, and the nearness of death aroused in him. Looking into
    Napoleon's eyes Prince Andrew thought of the insignificance of
    greatness, the unimportance of life which no one could understand, and
    the still greater unimportance of death, the meaning of which no one
    alive could understand or explain.
    
    The Emperor without waiting for an answer turned away and said to one of
    the officers as he went: "Have these gentlemen attended to and taken to
    my bivouac; let my doctor, Larrey, examine their wounds. Au revoir,
    Prince Repnin!" and he spurred his horse and galloped away.
    
    His face shone with self-satisfaction and pleasure.
    
    The soldiers who had carried Prince Andrew had noticed and taken the
    little gold icon Princess Mary had hung round her brother's neck, but
    seeing the favor the Emperor showed the prisoners, they now hastened to
    return the holy image.
    
    Prince Andrew did not see how and by whom it was replaced, but the
    little icon with its thin gold chain suddenly appeared upon his chest
    outside his uniform.
    
    "It would be good," thought Prince Andrew, glancing at the icon his
    sister had hung round his neck with such emotion and reverence, "it
    would be good if everything were as clear and simple as it seems to
    Mary. How good it would be to know where to seek for help in this life,
    and what to expect after it beyond the grave! How happy and calm I
    should be if I could now say: 'Lord, have mercy on me!'... But to whom
    should I say that? Either to a Power indefinable, incomprehensible,
    which I not only cannot address but which I cannot even express in
    words--the Great All or Nothing-" said he to himself, "or to that God
    who has been sewn into this amulet by Mary! There is nothing certain,
    nothing at all except the unimportance of everything I understand, and
    the greatness of something incomprehensible but all-important."
    
    The stretchers moved on. At every jolt he again felt unendurable pain;
    his feverishness increased and he grew delirious. Visions of his father,
    wife, sister, and future son, and the tenderness he had felt the night
    before the battle, the figure of the insignificant little Napoleon, and
    above all this the lofty sky, formed the chief subjects of his delirious
    fancies.
    
    The quiet home life and peaceful happiness of Bald Hills presented
    itself to him. He was already enjoying that happiness when that little
    Napoleon had suddenly appeared with his unsympathizing look of
    shortsighted delight at the misery of others, and doubts and torments
    had followed, and only the heavens promised peace. Toward morning all
    these dreams melted and merged into the chaos and darkness of
    unconciousness and oblivion which in the opinion of Napoleon's doctor,
    Larrey, was much more likely to end in death than in convalescence.
    
    "He is a nervous, bilious subject," said Larrey, "and will not recover."
    
    And Prince Andrew, with others fatally wounded, was left to the care of
    the inhabitants of the district.
    
    BOOK FOUR: 1806
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    Early in the year 1806 Nicholas Rostov returned home on leave. Denisov
    was going home to Voronezh and Rostov persuaded him to travel with him
    as far as Moscow and to stay with him there. Meeting a comrade at the
    last post station but one before Moscow, Denisov had drunk three bottles
    of wine with him and, despite the jolting ruts across the snow-covered
    road, did not once wake up on the way to Moscow, but lay at the bottom
    of the sleigh beside Rostov, who grew more and more impatient the nearer
    they got to Moscow.
    
    "How much longer? How much longer? Oh, these insufferable streets,
    shops, bakers' signboards, street lamps, and sleighs!" thought Rostov,
    when their leave permits had been passed at the town gate and they had
    entered Moscow.
    
    "Denisov! We're here! He's asleep," he added, leaning forward with his
    whole body as if in that position he hoped to hasten the speed of the
    sleigh.
    
    Denisov gave no answer.
    
    "There's the corner at the crossroads, where the cabman, Zakhar, has his
    stand, and there's Zakhar himself and still the same horse! And here's
    the little shop where we used to buy gingerbread! Can't you hurry up?
    Now then!"
    
    "Which house is it?" asked the driver.
    
    "Why, that one, right at the end, the big one. Don't you see? That's our
    house," said Rostov. "Of course, it's our house! Denisov, Denisov! We're
    almost there!"
    
    Denisov raised his head, coughed, and made no answer.
    
    "Dmitri," said Rostov to his valet on the box, "those lights are in our
    house, aren't they?"
    
    "Yes, sir, and there's a light in your father's study."
    
    "Then they've not gone to bed yet? What do you think? Mind now, don't
    forget to put out my new coat," added Rostov, fingering his new
    mustache. "Now then, get on," he shouted to the driver. "Do wake up,
    Vaska!" he went on, turning to Denisov, whose head was again nodding.
    "Come, get on! You shall have three rubles for vodka--get on!" Rostov
    shouted, when the sleigh was only three houses from his door. It seemed
    to him the horses were not moving at all. At last the sleigh bore to the
    right, drew up at an entrance, and Rostov saw overhead the old familiar
    cornice with a bit of plaster broken off, the porch, and the post by the
    side of the pavement. He sprang out before the sleigh stopped, and ran
    into the hall. The house stood cold and silent, as if quite regardless
    of who had come to it. There was no one in the hall. "Oh God! Is
    everyone all right?" he thought, stopping for a moment with a sinking
    heart, and then immediately starting to run along the hall and up the
    warped steps of the familiar staircase. The well-known old door handle,
    which always angered the countess when it was not properly cleaned,
    turned as loosely as ever. A solitary tallow candle burned in the
    anteroom.
    
    Old Michael was asleep on the chest. Prokofy, the footman, who was so
    strong that he could lift the back of the carriage from behind, sat
    plaiting slippers out of cloth selvedges. He looked up at the opening
    door and his expression of sleepy indifference suddenly changed to one
    of delighted amazement.
    
    "Gracious heavens! The young count!" he cried, recognizing his young
    master. "Can it be? My treasure!" and Prokofy, trembling with
    excitement, rushed toward the drawing-room door, probably in order to
    announce him, but, changing his mind, came back and stooped to kiss the
    young man's shoulder.
    
    "All well?" asked Rostov, drawing away his arm.
    
    "Yes, God be thanked! Yes! They've just finished supper. Let me have a
    look at you, your excellency."
    
    "Is everything quite all right?"
    
    "The Lord be thanked, yes!"
    
    Rostov, who had completely forgotten Denisov, not wishing anyone to
    forestall him, threw off his fur coat and ran on tiptoe through the
    large dark ballroom. All was the same: there were the same old card
    tables and the same chandelier with a cover over it; but someone had
    already seen the young master, and, before he had reached the drawing
    room, something flew out from a side door like a tornado and began
    hugging and kissing him. Another and yet another creature of the same
    kind sprang from a second door and a third; more hugging, more kissing,
    more outcries, and tears of joy. He could not distinguish which was
    Papa, which Natasha, and which Petya. Everyone shouted, talked, and
    kissed him at the same time. Only his mother was not there, he noticed
    that.
    
    "And I did not know... Nicholas... My darling!..."
    
    "Here he is... our own... Kolya, * dear fellow... How he has changed!...
    Where are the candles?... Tea!..."
    
    * Nicholas.
    
    "And me, kiss me!"
    
    "Dearest... and me!"
    
    Sonya, Natasha, Petya, Anna Mikhaylovna, Vera, and the old count were
    all hugging him, and the serfs, men and maids, flocked into the room,
    exclaiming and oh-ing and ah-ing.
    
    Petya, clinging to his legs, kept shouting, "And me too!"
    
    Natasha, after she had pulled him down toward her and covered his face
    with kisses, holding him tight by the skirt of his coat, sprang away and
    pranced up and down in one place like a goat and shrieked piercingly.
    
    All around were loving eyes glistening with tears of joy, and all around
    were lips seeking a kiss.
    
    Sonya too, all rosy red, clung to his arm and, radiant with bliss,
    looked eagerly toward his eyes, waiting for the look for which she
    longed. Sonya now was sixteen and she was very pretty, especially at
    this moment of happy, rapturous excitement. She gazed at him, not taking
    her eyes off him, and smiling and holding her breath. He gave her a
    grateful look, but was still expectant and looking for someone. The old
    countess had not yet come. But now steps were heard at the door, steps
    so rapid that they could hardly be his mother's.
    
    Yet it was she, dressed in a new gown which he did not know, made since
    he had left. All the others let him go, and he ran to her. When they
    met, she fell on his breast, sobbing. She could not lift her face, but
    only pressed it to the cold braiding of his hussar's jacket. Denisov,
    who had come into the room unnoticed by anyone, stood there and wiped
    his eyes at the sight.
    
    "Vasili Denisov, your son's friend," he said, introducing himself to the
    count, who was looking inquiringly at him.
    
    "You are most welcome! I know, I know," said the count, kissing and
    embracing Denisov. "Nicholas wrote us... Natasha, Vera, look! Here is
    Denisov!"
    
    The same happy, rapturous faces turned to the shaggy figure of Denisov.
    
    "Darling Denisov!" screamed Natasha, beside herself with rapture,
    springing to him, putting her arms round him, and kissing him. This
    escapade made everybody feel confused. Denisov blushed too, but smiled
    and, taking Natasha's hand, kissed it.
    
    Denisov was shown to the room prepared for him, and the Rostovs all
    gathered round Nicholas in the sitting room.
    
    The old countess, not letting go of his hand and kissing it every
    moment, sat beside him: the rest, crowding round him, watched every
    movement, word, or look of his, never taking their blissfully adoring
    eyes off him. His brother and sisters struggled for the places nearest
    to him and disputed with one another who should bring him his tea,
    handkerchief, and pipe.
    
    Rostov was very happy in the love they showed him; but the first moment
    of meeting had been so beatific that his present joy seemed
    insufficient, and he kept expecting something more, more and yet more.
    
    Next morning, after the fatigues of their journey, the travelers slept
    till ten o'clock.
    
    In the room next their bedroom there was a confusion of sabers,
    satchels, sabretaches, open portmanteaus, and dirty boots. Two freshly
    cleaned pairs with spurs had just been placed by the wall. The servants
    were bringing in jugs and basins, hot water for shaving, and their well-
    brushed clothes. There was a masculine odor and a smell of tobacco.
    
    "Hallo, Gwiska--my pipe!" came Vasili Denisov's husky voice. "Wostov,
    get up!"
    
    Rostov, rubbing his eyes that seemed glued together, raised his
    disheveled head from the hot pillow.
    
    "Why, is it late?"
    
    "Late! It's nearly ten o'clock," answered Natasha's voice. A rustle of
    starched petticoats and the whispering and laughter of girls' voices
    came from the adjoining room. The door was opened a crack and there was
    a glimpse of something blue, of ribbons, black hair, and merry faces. It
    was Natasha, Sonya, and Petya, who had come to see whether they were
    getting up.
    
    "Nicholas! Get up!" Natasha's voice was again heard at the door.
    
    "Directly!"
    
    Meanwhile, Petya, having found and seized the sabers in the outer room,
    with the delight boys feel at the sight of a military elder brother, and
    forgetting that it was unbecoming for the girls to see men undressed,
    opened the bedroom door.
    
    "Is this your saber?" he shouted.
    
    The girls sprang aside. Denisov hid his hairy legs under the blanket,
    looking with a scared face at his comrade for help. The door, having let
    Petya in, closed again. A sound of laughter came from behind it.
    
    "Nicholas! Come out in your dressing gown!" said Natasha's voice.
    
    "Is this your saber?" asked Petya. "Or is it yours?" he said, addressing
    the black-mustached Denisov with servile deference.
    
    Rostov hurriedly put something on his feet, drew on his dressing gown,
    and went out. Natasha had put on one spurred boot and was just getting
    her foot into the other. Sonya, when he came in, was twirling round and
    was about to expand her dresses into a balloon and sit down. They were
    dressed alike, in new pale-blue frocks, and were both fresh, rosy, and
    bright. Sonya ran away, but Natasha, taking her brother's arm, led him
    into the sitting room, where they began talking. They hardly gave one
    another time to ask questions and give replies concerning a thousand
    little matters which could not interest anyone but themselves. Natasha
    laughed at every word he said or that she said herself, not because what
    they were saying was amusing, but because she felt happy and was unable
    to control her joy which expressed itself by laughter.
    
    "Oh, how nice, how splendid!" she said to everything.
    
    Rostov felt that, under the influence of the warm rays of love, that
    childlike smile which had not once appeared on his face since he left
    home now for the first time after eighteen months again brightened his
    soul and his face.
    
    "No, but listen," she said, "now you are quite a man, aren't you? I'm
    awfully glad you're my brother." She touched his mustache. "I want to
    know what you men are like. Are you the same as we? No?"
    
    "Why did Sonya run away?" asked Rostov.
    
    "Ah, yes! That's a whole long story! How are you going to speak to her--
    thou or you?"
    
    "As may happen," said Rostov.
    
    "No, call her you, please! I'll tell you all about it some other time.
    No, I'll tell you now. You know Sonya's my dearest friend. Such a friend
    that I burned my arm for her sake. Look here!"
    
    She pulled up her muslin sleeve and showed him a red scar on her long,
    slender, delicate arm, high above the elbow on that part that is covered
    even by a ball dress.
    
    "I burned this to prove my love for her. I just heated a ruler in the
    fire and pressed it there!"
    
    Sitting on the sofa with the little cushions on its arms, in what used
    to be his old schoolroom, and looking into Natasha's wildly bright eyes,
    Rostov re-entered that world of home and childhood which had no meaning
    for anyone else, but gave him some of the best joys of his life; and the
    burning of an arm with a ruler as a proof of love did not seem to him
    senseless, he understood and was not surprised at it.
    
    "Well, and is that all?" he asked.
    
    "We are such friends, such friends! All that ruler business was just
    nonsense, but we are friends forever. She, if she loves anyone, does it
    for life, but I don't understand that, I forget quickly."
    
    "Well, what then?"
    
    "Well, she loves me and you like that."
    
    Natasha suddenly flushed.
    
    "Why, you remember before you went away?... Well, she says you are to
    forget all that.... She says: 'I shall love him always, but let him be
    free.' Isn't that lovely and noble! Yes, very noble? Isn't it?" asked
    Natasha, so seriously and excitedly that it was evident that what she
    was now saying she had talked of before, with tears.
    
    Rostov became thoughtful.
    
    "I never go back on my word," he said. "Besides, Sonya is so charming
    that only a fool would renounce such happiness."
    
    "No, no!" cried Natasha, "she and I have already talked it over. We knew
    you'd say so. But it won't do, because you see, if you say that--if you
    consider yourself bound by your promise--it will seem as if she had not
    meant it seriously. It makes it as if you were marrying her because you
    must, and that wouldn't do at all."
    
    Rostov saw that it had been well considered by them. Sonya had already
    struck him by her beauty on the preceding day. Today, when he had caught
    a glimpse of her, she seemed still more lovely. She was a charming girl
    of sixteen, evidently passionately in love with him (he did not doubt
    that for an instant). Why should he not love her now, and even marry
    her, Rostov thought, but just now there were so many other pleasures and
    interests before him! "Yes, they have taken a wise decision," he
    thought, "I must remain free."
    
    "Well then, that's excellent," said he. "We'll talk it over later on.
    Oh, how glad I am to have you!"
    
    "Well, and are you still true to Boris?" he continued.
    
    "Oh, what nonsense!" cried Natasha, laughing. "I don't think about him
    or anyone else, and I don't want anything of the kind."
    
    "Dear me! Then what are you up to now?"
    
    "Now?" repeated Natasha, and a happy smile lit up her face. "Have you
    seen Duport?"
    
    "No."
    
    "Not seen Duport--the famous dancer? Well then, you won't understand.
    That's what I'm up to."
    
    Curving her arms, Natasha held out her skirts as dancers do, ran back a
    few steps, turned, cut a caper, brought her little feet sharply
    together, and made some steps on the very tips of her toes.
    
    "See, I'm standing! See!" she said, but could not maintain herself on
    her toes any longer. "So that's what I'm up to! I'll never marry anyone,
    but will be a dancer. Only don't tell anyone."
    
    Rostov laughed so loud and merrily that Denisov, in his bedroom, felt
    envious and Natasha could not help joining in.
    
    "No, but don't you think it's nice?" she kept repeating.
    
    "Nice! And so you no longer wish to marry Boris?"
    
    Natasha flared up. "I don't want to marry anyone. And I'll tell him so
    when I see him!"
    
    "Dear me!" said Rostov.
    
    "But that's all rubbish," Natasha chattered on. "And is Denisov nice?"
    she asked.
    
    "Yes, indeed!"
    
    "Oh, well then, good-by: go and dress. Is he very terrible, Denisov?"
    
    "Why terrible?" asked Nicholas. "No, Vaska is a splendid fellow."
    
    "You call him Vaska? That's funny! And is he very nice?"
    
    "Very."
    
    "Well then, be quick. We'll all have breakfast together."
    
    And Natasha rose and went out of the room on tiptoe, like a ballet
    dancer, but smiling as only happy girls of fifteen can smile. When
    Rostov met Sonya in the drawing room, he reddened. He did not know how
    to behave with her. The evening before, in the first happy moment of
    meeting, they had kissed each other, but today they felt it could not be
    done; he felt that everybody, including his mother and sisters, was
    looking inquiringly at him and watching to see how he would behave with
    her. He kissed her hand and addressed her not as thou but as you--Sonya.
    But their eyes met and said thou, and exchanged tender kisses. Her looks
    asked him to forgive her for having dared, by Natasha's intermediacy, to
    remind him of his promise, and then thanked him for his love. His looks
    thanked her for offering him his freedom and told her that one way or
    another he would never cease to love her, for that would be impossible.
    
    "How strange it is," said Vera, selecting a moment when all were silent,
    "that Sonya and Nicholas now say you to one another and meet like
    strangers."
    
    Vera's remark was correct, as her remarks always were, but, like most of
    her observations, it made everyone feel uncomfortable, not only Sonya,
    Nicholas, and Natasha, but even the old countess, who--dreading this
    love affair which might hinder Nicholas from making a brilliant match--
    blushed like a girl.
    
    Denisov, to Rostov's surprise, appeared in the drawing room with pomaded
    hair, perfumed, and in a new uniform, looking just as smart as he made
    himself when going into battle, and he was more amiable to the ladies
    and gentlemen than Rostov had ever expected to see him.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    On his return to Moscow from the army, Nicholas Rostov was welcomed by
    his home circle as the best of sons, a hero, and their darling
    Nikolenka; by his relations as a charming, attractive, and polite young
    man; by his acquaintances as a handsome lieutenant of hussars, a good
    dancer, and one of the best matches in the city.
    
    The Rostovs knew everybody in Moscow. The old count had money enough
    that year, as all his estates had been remortgaged, and so Nicholas,
    acquiring a trotter of his own, very stylish riding breeches of the
    latest cut, such as no one else yet had in Moscow, and boots of the
    latest fashion, with extremely pointed toes and small silver spurs,
    passed his time very gaily. After a short period of adapting himself to
    the old conditions of life, Nicholas found it very pleasant to be at
    home again. He felt that he had grown up and matured very much. His
    despair at failing in a Scripture examination, his borrowing money from
    Gavril to pay a sleigh driver, his kissing Sonya on the sly--he now
    recalled all this as childishness he had left immeasurably behind. Now
    he was a lieutenant of hussars, in a jacket laced with silver, and
    wearing the Cross of St. George, awarded to soldiers for bravery in
    action, and in the company of well-known, elderly, and respected racing
    men was training a trotter of his own for a race. He knew a lady on one
    of the boulevards whom he visited of an evening. He led the mazurka at
    the Arkharovs' ball, talked about the war with Field Marshal Kamenski,
    visited the English Club, and was on intimate terms with a colonel of
    forty to whom Denisov had introduced him.
    
    His passion for the Emperor had cooled somewhat in Moscow. But still, as
    he did not see him and had no opportunity of seeing him, he often spoke
    about him and about his love for him, letting it be understood that he
    had not told all and that there was something in his feelings for the
    Emperor not everyone could understand, and with his whole soul he shared
    the adoration then common in Moscow for the Emperor, who was spoken of
    as the "angel incarnate."
    
    During Rostov's short stay in Moscow, before rejoining the army, he did
    not draw closer to Sonya, but rather drifted away from her. She was very
    pretty and sweet, and evidently deeply in love with him, but he was at
    the period of youth when there seems so much to do that there is no time
    for that sort of thing and a young man fears to bind himself and prizes
    his freedom which he needs for so many other things. When he thought of
    Sonya, during this stay in Moscow, he said to himself, "Ah, there will
    be, and there are, many more such girls somewhere whom I do not yet
    know. There will be time enough to think about love when I want to, but
    now I have no time." Besides, it seemed to him that the society of women
    was rather derogatory to his manhood. He went to balls and into ladies'
    society with an affectation of doing so against his will. The races, the
    English Club, sprees with Denisov, and visits to a certain house--that
    was another matter and quite the thing for a dashing young hussar!
    
    At the beginning of March, old Count Ilya Rostov was very busy arranging
    a dinner in honor of Prince Bagration at the English Club.
    
    The count walked up and down the hall in his dressing gown, giving
    orders to the club steward and to the famous Feoktist, the club's head
    cook, about asparagus, fresh cucumbers, strawberries, veal, and fish for
    this dinner. The count had been a member and on the committee of the
    club from the day it was founded. To him the club entrusted the
    arrangement of the festival in honor of Bagration, for few men knew so
    well how to arrange a feast on an open-handed, hospitable scale, and
    still fewer men would be so well able and willing to make up out of
    their own resources what might be needed for the success of the fete.
    The club cook and the steward listened to the count's orders with
    pleased faces, for they knew that under no other management could they
    so easily extract a good profit for themselves from a dinner costing
    several thousand rubles.
    
    "Well then, mind and have cocks' comb in the turtle soup, you know!"
    
    "Shall we have three cold dishes then?" asked the cook.
    
    The count considered.
    
    "We can't have less--yes, three... the mayonnaise, that's one," said he,
    bending down a finger.
    
    "Then am I to order those large sterlets?" asked the steward.
    
    "Yes, it can't be helped if they won't take less. Ah, dear me! I was
    forgetting. We must have another entree. Ah, goodness gracious!" he
    clutched at his head. "Who is going to get me the flowers? Dmitri! Eh,
    Dmitri! Gallop off to our Moscow estate," he said to the factotum who
    appeared at his call. "Hurry off and tell Maksim, the gardener, to set
    the serfs to work. Say that everything out of the hothouses must be
    brought here well wrapped up in felt. I must have two hundred pots here
    on Friday."
    
    Having given several more orders, he was about to go to his "little
    countess" to have a rest, but remembering something else of importance,
    he returned again, called back the cook and the club steward, and again
    began giving orders. A light footstep and the clinking of spurs were
    heard at the door, and the young count, handsome, rosy, with a dark
    little mustache, evidently rested and made sleeker by his easy life in
    Moscow, entered the room.
    
    "Ah, my boy, my head's in a whirl!" said the old man with a smile, as if
    he felt a little confused before his son. "Now, if you would only help a
    bit! I must have singers too. I shall have my own orchestra, but
    shouldn't we get the gypsy singers as well? You military men like that
    sort of thing."
    
    "Really, Papa, I believe Prince Bagration worried himself less before
    the battle of Schon Grabern than you do now," said his son with a smile.
    
    The old count pretended to be angry.
    
    "Yes, you talk, but try it yourself!"
    
    And the count turned to the cook, who, with a shrewd and respectful
    expression, looked observantly and sympathetically at the father and
    son.
    
    "What have the young people come to nowadays, eh, Feoktist?" said he.
    "Laughing at us old fellows!"
    
    "That's so, your excellency, all they have to do is to eat a good
    dinner, but providing it and serving it all up, that's not their
    business!"
    
    "That's it, that's it!" exclaimed the count, and gaily seizing his son
    by both hands, he cried, "Now I've got you, so take the sleigh and pair
    at once, and go to Bezukhov's, and tell him 'Count Ilya has sent you to
    ask for strawberries and fresh pineapples.' We can't get them from
    anyone else. He's not there himself, so you'll have to go in and ask the
    princesses; and from there go on to the Rasgulyay--the coachman Ipatka
    knows--and look up the gypsy Ilyushka, the one who danced at Count
    Orlov's, you remember, in a white Cossack coat, and bring him along to
    me."
    
    "And am I to bring the gypsy girls along with him?" asked Nicholas,
    laughing. "Dear, dear!..."
    
    At that moment, with noiseless footsteps and with the businesslike,
    preoccupied, yet meekly Christian look which never left her face, Anna
    Mikhaylovna entered the hall. Though she came upon the count in his
    dressing gown every day, he invariably became confused and begged her to
    excuse his costume.
    
    "No matter at all, my dear count," she said, meekly closing her eyes.
    "But I'll go to Bezukhov's myself. Pierre has arrived, and now we shall
    get anything we want from his hothouses. I have to see him in any case.
    He has forwarded me a letter from Boris. Thank God, Boris is now on the
    staff."
    
    The count was delighted at Anna Mikhaylovna's taking upon herself one of
    his commissions and ordered the small closed carriage for her.
    
    "Tell Bezukhov to come. I'll put his name down. Is his wife with him?"
    he asked.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna turned up her eyes, and profound sadness was depicted
    on her face.
    
    "Ah, my dear friend, he is very unfortunate," she said. "If what we hear
    is true, it is dreadful. How little we dreamed of such a thing when we
    were rejoicing at his happiness! And such a lofty angelic soul as young
    Bezukhov! Yes, I pity him from my heart, and shall try to give him what
    consolation I can."
    
    "Wh-what is the matter?" asked both the young and old Rostov.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna sighed deeply.
    
    "Dolokhov, Mary Ivanovna's son," she said in a mysterious whisper, "has
    compromised her completely, they say. Pierre took him up, invited him to
    his house in Petersburg, and now... she has come here and that daredevil
    after her!" said Anna Mikhaylovna, wishing to show her sympathy for
    Pierre, but by involuntary intonations and a half smile betraying her
    sympathy for the "daredevil," as she called Dolokhov. "They say Pierre
    is quite broken by his misfortune."
    
    "Dear, dear! But still tell him to come to the club--it will all blow
    over. It will be a tremendous banquet."
    
    Next day, the third of March, soon after one o'clock, two hundred and
    fifty members of the English Club and fifty guests were awaiting the
    guest of honor and hero of the Austrian campaign, Prince Bagration, to
    dinner.
    
    On the first arrival of the news of the battle of Austerlitz, Moscow had
    been bewildered. At that time, the Russians were so used to victories
    that on receiving news of the defeat some would simply not believe it,
    while others sought some extraordinary explanation of so strange an
    event. In the English Club, where all who were distinguished, important,
    and well informed foregathered when the news began to arrive in
    December, nothing was said about the war and the last battle, as though
    all were in a conspiracy of silence. The men who set the tone in
    conversation--Count Rostopchin, Prince Yuri Dolgorukov, Valuev, Count
    Markov, and Prince Vyazemski--did not show themselves at the club, but
    met in private houses in intimate circles, and the Moscovites who took
    their opinions from others--Ilya Rostov among them--remained for a while
    without any definite opinion on the subject of the war and without
    leaders. The Moscovites felt that something was wrong and that to
    discuss the bad news was difficult, and so it was best to be silent. But
    after a while, just as a jury comes out of its room, the bigwigs who
    guided the club's opinion reappeared, and everybody began speaking
    clearly and definitely. Reasons were found for the incredible, unheard-
    of, and impossible event of a Russian defeat, everything became clear,
    and in all corners of Moscow the same things began to be said. These
    reasons were the treachery of the Austrians, a defective commissariat,
    the treachery of the Pole Przebyszewski and of the Frenchman Langeron,
    Kutuzov's incapacity, and (it was whispered) the youth and inexperience
    of the sovereign, who had trusted worthless and insignificant people.
    But the army, the Russian army, everyone declared, was extraordinary and
    had achieved miracles of valor. The soldiers, officers, and generals
    were heroes. But the hero of heroes was Prince Bagration, distinguished
    by his Schon Grabern affair and by the retreat from Austerlitz, where he
    alone had withdrawn his column unbroken and had all day beaten back an
    enemy force twice as numerous as his own. What also conduced to
    Bagration's being selected as Moscow's hero was the fact that he had no
    connections in the city and was a stranger there. In his person, honor
    was shown to a simple fighting Russian soldier without connections and
    intrigues, and to one who was associated by memories of the Italian
    campaign with the name of Suvorov. Moreover, paying such honor to
    Bagration was the best way of expressing disapproval and dislike of
    Kutuzov.
    
    "Had there been no Bagration, it would have been necessary to invent
    him," said the wit Shinshin, parodying the words of Voltaire. Kutuzov no
    one spoke of, except some who abused him in whispers, calling him a
    court weathercock and an old satyr.
    
    All Moscow repeated Prince Dolgorukov's saying: "If you go on modeling
    and modeling you must get smeared with clay," suggesting consolation for
    our defeat by the memory of former victories; and the words of
    Rostopchin, that French soldiers have to be incited to battle by
    highfalutin words, and Germans by logical arguments to show them that it
    is more dangerous to run away than to advance, but that Russian soldiers
    only need to be restrained and held back! On all sides, new and fresh
    anecdotes were heard of individual examples of heroism shown by our
    officers and men at Austerlitz. One had saved a standard, another had
    killed five Frenchmen, a third had loaded five cannon singlehanded. Berg
    was mentioned, by those who did not know him, as having, when wounded in
    the right hand, taken his sword in the left, and gone forward. Of
    Bolkonski, nothing was said, and only those who knew him intimately
    regretted that he had died so young, leaving a pregnant wife with his
    eccentric father.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    On that third of March, all the rooms in the English Club were filled
    with a hum of conversation, like the hum of bees swarming in springtime.
    The members and guests of the club wandered hither and thither, sat,
    stood, met, and separated, some in uniform and some in evening dress,
    and a few here and there with powdered hair and in Russian kaftans.
    Powdered footmen, in livery with buckled shoes and smart stockings,
    stood at every door anxiously noting visitors' every movement in order
    to offer their services. Most of those present were elderly, respected
    men with broad, self-confident faces, fat fingers, and resolute gestures
    and voices. This class of guests and members sat in certain habitual
    places and met in certain habitual groups. A minority of those present
    were casual guests--chiefly young men, among whom were Denisov, Rostov,
    and Dolokhov--who was now again an officer in the Semenov regiment. The
    faces of these young people, especially those who were military men,
    bore that expression of condescending respect for their elders which
    seems to say to the older generation, "We are prepared to respect and
    honor you, but all the same remember that the future belongs to us."
    
    Nesvitski was there as an old member of the club. Pierre, who at his
    wife's command had let his hair grow and abandoned his spectacles, went
    about the rooms fashionably dressed but looking sad and dull. Here, as
    elsewhere, he was surrounded by an atmosphere of subservience to his
    wealth, and being in the habit of lording it over these people, he
    treated them with absent-minded contempt.
    
    By his age he should have belonged to the younger men, but by his wealth
    and connections he belonged to the groups of old and honored guests, and
    so he went from one group to another. Some of the most important old men
    were the center of groups which even strangers approached respectfully
    to hear the voices of well-known men. The largest circles formed round
    Count Rostopchin, Valuev, and Naryshkin. Rostopchin was describing how
    the Russians had been overwhelmed by flying Austrians and had had to
    force their way through them with bayonets.
    
    Valuev was confidentially telling that Uvarov had been sent from
    Petersburg to ascertain what Moscow was thinking about Austerlitz.
    
    In the third circle, Naryshkin was speaking of the meeting of the
    Austrian Council of War at which Suvorov crowed like a cock in reply to
    the nonsense talked by the Austrian generals. Shinshin, standing close
    by, tried to make a joke, saying that Kutuzov had evidently failed to
    learn from Suvorov even so simple a thing as the art of crowing like a
    cock, but the elder members glanced severely at the wit, making him feel
    that in that place and on that day, it was improper to speak so of
    Kutuzov.
    
    Count Ilya Rostov, hurried and preoccupied, went about in his soft boots
    between the dining and drawing rooms, hastily greeting the important and
    unimportant, all of whom he knew, as if they were all equals, while his
    eyes occasionally sought out his fine well-set-up young son, resting on
    him and winking joyfully at him. Young Rostov stood at a window with
    Dolokhov, whose acquaintance he had lately made and highly valued. The
    old count came up to them and pressed Dolokhov's hand.
    
    "Please come and visit us... you know my brave boy... been together out
    there... both playing the hero... Ah, Vasili Ignatovich... How d'ye do,
    old fellow?" he said, turning to an old man who was passing, but before
    he had finished his greeting there was a general stir, and a footman who
    had run in announced, with a frightened face: "He's arrived!"
    
    Bells rang, the stewards rushed forward, and--like rye shaken together
    in a shovel--the guests who had been scattered about in different rooms
    came together and crowded in the large drawing room by the door of the
    ballroom.
    
    Bagration appeared in the doorway of the anteroom without hat or sword,
    which, in accord with the club custom, he had given up to the hall
    porter. He had no lambskin cap on his head, nor had he a loaded whip
    over his shoulder, as when Rostov had seen him on the eve of the battle
    of Austerlitz, but wore a tight new uniform with Russian and foreign
    Orders, and the Star of St. George on his left breast. Evidently just
    before coming to the dinner he had had his hair and whiskers trimmed,
    which changed his appearance for the worse. There was something naively
    festive in his air, which, in conjunction with his firm and virile
    features, gave him a rather comical expression. Bekleshev and Theodore
    Uvarov, who had arrived with him, paused at the doorway to allow him, as
    the guest of honor, to enter first. Bagration was embarrassed, not
    wishing to avail himself of their courtesy, and this caused some delay
    at the doors, but after all he did at last enter first. He walked shyly
    and awkwardly over the parquet floor of the reception room, not knowing
    what to do with his hands; he was more accustomed to walk over a plowed
    field under fire, as he had done at the head of the Kursk regiment at
    Schon Grabern--and he would have found that easier. The committeemen met
    him at the first door and, expressing their delight at seeing such a
    highly honored guest, took possession of him as it were, without waiting
    for his reply, surrounded him, and led him to the drawing room. It was
    at first impossible to enter the drawing-room door for the crowd of
    members and guests jostling one another and trying to get a good look at
    Bagration over each other's shoulders, as if he were some rare animal.
    Count Ilya Rostov, laughing and repeating the words, "Make way, dear
    boy! Make way, make way!" pushed through the crowd more energetically
    than anyone, led the guests into the drawing room, and seated them on
    the center sofa. The bigwigs, the most respected members of the club,
    beset the new arrivals. Count Ilya, again thrusting his way through the
    crowd, went out of the drawing room and reappeared a minute later with
    another committeeman, carrying a large silver salver which he presented
    to Prince Bagration. On the salver lay some verses composed and printed
    in the hero's honor. Bagration, on seeing the salver, glanced around in
    dismay, as though seeking help. But all eyes demanded that he should
    submit. Feeling himself in their power, he resolutely took the salver
    with both hands and looked sternly and reproachfully at the count who
    had presented it to him. Someone obligingly took the dish from Bagration
    (or he would, it seemed, have held it till evening and have gone in to
    dinner with it) and drew his attention to the verses.
    
    "Well, I will read them, then!" Bagration seemed to say, and, fixing his
    weary eyes on the paper, began to read them with a fixed and serious
    expression. But the author himself took the verses and began reading
    them aloud. Bagration bowed his head and listened:
    
    Bring glory then to Alexander's reign And on the throne our Titus
    shield. A dreaded foe be thou, kindhearted as a man, A Rhipheus at home,
    a Caesar in the field! E'en fortunate Napoleon Knows by experience, now,
    Bagration, And dare not Herculean Russians trouble...
    
    But before he had finished reading, a stentorian major-domo announced
    that dinner was ready! The door opened, and from the dining room came
    the resounding strains of the polonaise:
    
    Conquest's joyful thunder waken, Triumph, valiant Russians, now!...
    
    and Count Rostov, glancing angrily at the author who went on reading his
    verses, bowed to Bagration. Everyone rose, feeling that dinner was more
    important than verses, and Bagration, again preceding all the rest, went
    in to dinner. He was seated in the place of honor between two
    Alexanders--Bekleshev and Naryshkin--which was a significant allusion to
    the name of the sovereign. Three hundred persons took their seats in the
    dining room, according to their rank and importance: the more important
    nearer to the honored guest, as naturally as water flows deepest where
    the land lies lowest.
    
    Just before dinner, Count Ilya Rostov presented his son to Bagration,
    who recognized him and said a few words to him, disjointed and awkward,
    as were all the words he spoke that day, and Count Ilya looked joyfully
    and proudly around while Bagration spoke to his son.
    
    Nicholas Rostov, with Denisov and his new acquaintance, Dolokhov, sat
    almost at the middle of the table. Facing them sat Pierre, beside Prince
    Nesvitski. Count Ilya Rostov with the other members of the committee sat
    facing Bagration and, as the very personification of Moscow hospitality,
    did the honors to the prince.
    
    His efforts had not been in vain. The dinner, both the Lenten and the
    other fare, was splendid, yet he could not feel quite at ease till the
    end of the meal. He winked at the butler, whispered directions to the
    footmen, and awaited each expected dish with some anxiety. Everything
    was excellent. With the second course, a gigantic sterlet (at sight of
    which Ilya Rostov blushed with self-conscious pleasure), the footmen
    began popping corks and filling the champagne glasses. After the fish,
    which made a certain sensation, the count exchanged glances with the
    other committeemen. "There will be many toasts, it's time to begin," he
    whispered, and taking up his glass, he rose. All were silent, waiting
    for what he would say.
    
    "To the health of our Sovereign, the Emperor!" he cried, and at the same
    moment his kindly eyes grew moist with tears of joy and enthusiasm. The
    band immediately struck up "Conquest's joyful thunder waken..." All rose
    and cried "Hurrah!" Bagration also rose and shouted "Hurrah!" in exactly
    the same voice in which he had shouted it on the field at Schon Grabern.
    Young Rostov's ecstatic voice could be heard above the three hundred
    others. He nearly wept. "To the health of our Sovereign, the Emperor!"
    he roared, "Hurrah!" and emptying his glass at one gulp he dashed it to
    the floor. Many followed his example, and the loud shouting continued
    for a long time. When the voices subsided, the footmen cleared away the
    broken glass and everybody sat down again, smiling at the noise they had
    made and exchanging remarks. The old count rose once more, glanced at a
    note lying beside his plate, and proposed a toast, "To the health of the
    hero of our last campaign, Prince Peter Ivanovich Bagration!" and again
    his blue eyes grew moist. "Hurrah!" cried the three hundred voices
    again, but instead of the band a choir began singing a cantata composed
    by Paul Ivanovich Kutuzov:
    
    Russians! O'er all barriers on! Courage conquest guarantees; Have we not
    Bagration? He brings foe men to their knees,... etc.
    
    As soon as the singing was over, another and another toast was proposed
    and Count Ilya Rostov became more and more moved, more glass was
    smashed, and the shouting grew louder. They drank to Bekleshev,
    Naryshkin, Uvarov, Dolgorukov, Apraksin, Valuev, to the committee, to
    all the club members and to all the club guests, and finally to Count
    Ilya Rostov separately, as the organizer of the banquet. At that toast,
    the count took out his handkerchief and, covering his face, wept
    outright.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Pierre sat opposite Dolokhov and Nicholas Rostov. As usual, he ate and
    drank much, and eagerly. But those who knew him intimately noticed that
    some great change had come over him that day. He was silent all through
    dinner and looked about, blinking and scowling, or, with fixed eyes and
    a look of complete absent-mindedness, kept rubbing the bridge of his
    nose. His face was depressed and gloomy. He seemed to see and hear
    nothing of what was going on around him and to be absorbed by some
    depressing and unsolved problem.
    
    The unsolved problem that tormented him was caused by hints given by the
    princess, his cousin, at Moscow, concerning Dolokhov's intimacy with his
    wife, and by an anonymous letter he had received that morning, which in
    the mean jocular way common to anonymous letters said that he saw badly
    through his spectacles, but that his wife's connection with Dolokhov was
    a secret to no one but himself. Pierre absolutely disbelieved both the
    princess' hints and the letter, but he feared now to look at Dolokhov,
    who was sitting opposite him. Every time he chanced to meet Dolokhov's
    handsome insolent eyes, Pierre felt something terrible and monstrous
    rising in his soul and turned quickly away. Involuntarily recalling his
    wife's past and her relations with Dolokhov, Pierre saw clearly that
    what was said in the letter might be true, or might at least seem to be
    true had it not referred to his wife. He involuntarily remembered how
    Dolokhov, who had fully recovered his former position after the
    campaign, had returned to Petersburg and come to him. Availing himself
    of his friendly relations with Pierre as a boon companion, Dolokhov had
    come straight to his house, and Pierre had put him up and lent him
    money. Pierre recalled how Helene had smilingly expressed disapproval of
    Dolokhov's living at their house, and how cynically Dolokhov had praised
    his wife's beauty to him and from that time till they came to Moscow had
    not left them for a day.
    
    "Yes, he is very handsome," thought Pierre, "and I know him. It would be
    particularly pleasant to him to dishonor my name and ridicule me, just
    because I have exerted myself on his behalf, befriended him, and helped
    him. I know and understand what a spice that would add to the pleasure
    of deceiving me, if it really were true. Yes, if it were true, but I do
    not believe it. I have no right to, and can't, believe it." He
    remembered the expression Dolokhov's face assumed in his moments of
    cruelty, as when tying the policeman to the bear and dropping them into
    the water, or when he challenged a man to a duel without any reason, or
    shot a post-boy's horse with a pistol. That expression was often on
    Dolokhov's face when looking at him. "Yes, he is a bully," thought
    Pierre, "to kill a man means nothing to him. It must seem to him that
    everyone is afraid of him, and that must please him. He must think that
    I, too, am afraid of him--and in fact I am afraid of him," he thought,
    and again he felt something terrible and monstrous rising in his soul.
    Dolokhov, Denisov, and Rostov were now sitting opposite Pierre and
    seemed very gay. Rostov was talking merrily to his two friends, one of
    whom was a dashing hussar and the other a notorious duelist and rake,
    and every now and then he glanced ironically at Pierre, whose
    preoccupied, absent-minded, and massive figure was a very noticeable one
    at the dinner. Rostov looked inimically at Pierre, first because Pierre
    appeared to his hussar eyes as a rich civilian, the husband of a beauty,
    and in a word--an old woman; and secondly because Pierre in his
    preoccupation and absent-mindedness had not recognized Rostov and had
    not responded to his greeting. When the Emperor's health was drunk,
    Pierre, lost in thought, did not rise or lift his glass.
    
    "What are you about?" shouted Rostov, looking at him in an ecstasy of
    exasperation. "Don't you hear it's His Majesty the Emperor's health?"
    
    Pierre sighed, rose submissively, emptied his glass, and, waiting till
    all were seated again, turned with his kindly smile to Rostov.
    
    "Why, I didn't recognize you!" he said. But Rostov was otherwise
    engaged; he was shouting "Hurrah!"
    
    "Why don't you renew the acquaintance?" said Dolokhov to Rostov.
    
    "Confound him, he's a fool!" said Rostov.
    
    "One should make up to the husbands of pretty women," said Denisov.
    
    Pierre did not catch what they were saying, but knew they were talking
    about him. He reddened and turned away.
    
    "Well, now to the health of handsome women!" said Dolokhov, and with a
    serious expression, but with a smile lurking at the corners of his
    mouth, he turned with his glass to Pierre.
    
    "Here's to the health of lovely women, Peterkin--and their lovers!" he
    added.
    
    Pierre, with downcast eyes, drank out of his glass without looking at
    Dolokhov or answering him. The footman, who was distributing leaflets
    with Kutuzov's cantata, laid one before Pierre as one of the principal
    guests. He was just going to take it when Dolokhov, leaning across,
    snatched it from his hand and began reading it. Pierre looked at
    Dolokhov and his eyes dropped, the something terrible and monstrous that
    had tormented him all dinnertime rose and took possession of him. He
    leaned his whole massive body across the table.
    
    "How dare you take it?" he shouted.
    
    Hearing that cry and seeing to whom it was addressed, Nesvitski and the
    neighbor on his right quickly turned in alarm to Bezukhov.
    
    "Don't! Don't! What are you about?" whispered their frightened voices.
    
    Dolokhov looked at Pierre with clear, mirthful, cruel eyes, and that
    smile of his which seemed to say, "Ah! This is what I like!"
    
    "You shan't have it!" he said distinctly.
    
    Pale, with quivering lips, Pierre snatched the copy.
    
    "You...! you... scoundrel! I challenge you!" he ejaculated, and, pushing
    back his chair, he rose from the table.
    
    At the very instant he did this and uttered those words, Pierre felt
    that the question of his wife's guilt which had been tormenting him the
    whole day was finally and indubitably answered in the affirmative. He
    hated her and was forever sundered from her. Despite Denisov's request
    that he would take no part in the matter, Rostov agreed to be Dolokhov's
    second, and after dinner he discussed the arrangements for the duel with
    Nesvitski, Bezukhov's second. Pierre went home, but Rostov with Dolokhov
    and Denisov stayed on at the club till late, listening to the gypsies
    and other singers.
    
    "Well then, till tomorrow at Sokolniki," said Dolokhov, as he took leave
    of Rostov in the club porch.
    
    "And do you feel quite calm?" Rostov asked.
    
    Dolokhov paused.
    
    "Well, you see, I'll tell you the whole secret of dueling in two words.
    If you are going to fight a duel, and you make a will and write
    affectionate letters to your parents, and if you think you may be
    killed, you are a fool and are lost for certain. But go with the firm
    intention of killing your man as quickly and surely as possible, and
    then all will be right, as our bear huntsman at Kostroma used to tell
    me. 'Everyone fears a bear,' he says, 'but when you see one your fear's
    all gone, and your only thought is not to let him get away!' And that's
    how it is with me. A demain, mon cher." *
    
    * Till tomorrow, my dear fellow.
    
    Next day, at eight in the morning, Pierre and Nesvitski drove to the
    Sokolniki forest and found Dolokhov, Denisov, and Rostov already there.
    Pierre had the air of a man preoccupied with considerations which had no
    connection with the matter in hand. His haggard face was yellow. He had
    evidently not slept that night. He looked about distractedly and screwed
    up his eyes as if dazzled by the sun. He was entirely absorbed by two
    considerations: his wife's guilt, of which after his sleepless night he
    had not the slightest doubt, and the guiltlessness of Dolokhov, who had
    no reason to preserve the honor of a man who was nothing to him.... "I
    should perhaps have done the same thing in his place," thought Pierre.
    "It's even certain that I should have done the same, then why this duel,
    this murder? Either I shall kill him, or he will hit me in the head, or
    elbow, or knee. Can't I go away from here, run away, bury myself
    somewhere?" passed through his mind. But just at moments when such
    thoughts occurred to him, he would ask in a particularly calm and
    absent-minded way, which inspired the respect of the onlookers, "Will it
    be long? Are things ready?"
    
    When all was ready, the sabers stuck in the snow to mark the barriers,
    and the pistols loaded, Nesvitski went up to Pierre.
    
    "I should not be doing my duty, Count," he said in timid tones, "and
    should not justify your confidence and the honor you have done me in
    choosing me for your second, if at this grave, this very grave, moment I
    did not tell you the whole truth. I think there is no sufficient ground
    for this affair, or for blood to be shed over it.... You were not right,
    not quite in the right, you were impetuous..."
    
    "Oh yes, it is horribly stupid," said Pierre.
    
    "Then allow me to express your regrets, and I am sure your opponent will
    accept them," said Nesvitski (who like the others concerned in the
    affair, and like everyone in similar cases, did not yet believe that the
    affair had come to an actual duel). "You know, Count, it is much more
    honorable to admit one's mistake than to let matters become irreparable.
    There was no insult on either side. Allow me to convey...."
    
    "No! What is there to talk about?" said Pierre. "It's all the same....
    Is everything ready?" he added. "Only tell me where to go and where to
    shoot," he said with an unnaturally gentle smile.
    
    He took the pistol in his hand and began asking about the working of the
    trigger, as he had not before held a pistol in his hand--a fact that he
    did not wish to confess.
    
    "Oh yes, like that, I know, I only forgot," said he.
    
    "No apologies, none whatever," said Dolokhov to Denisov (who on his side
    had been attempting a reconciliation), and he also went up to the
    appointed place.
    
    The spot chosen for the duel was some eighty paces from the road, where
    the sleighs had been left, in a small clearing in the pine forest
    covered with melting snow, the frost having begun to break up during the
    last few days. The antagonists stood forty paces apart at the farther
    edge of the clearing. The seconds, measuring the paces, left tracks in
    the deep wet snow between the place where they had been standing and
    Nesvitski's and Dolokhov's sabers, which were stuck into the ground ten
    paces apart to mark the barrier. It was thawing and misty; at forty
    paces' distance nothing could be seen. For three minutes all had been
    ready, but they still delayed and all were silent.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    "Well begin!" said Dolokhov.
    
    "All right," said Pierre, still smiling in the same way. A feeling of
    dread was in the air. It was evident that the affair so lightly begun
    could no longer be averted but was taking its course independently of
    men's will.
    
    Denisov first went to the barrier and announced: "As the adve'sawies
    have wefused a weconciliation, please pwoceed. Take your pistols, and at
    the word thwee begin to advance.
    
    "O-ne! T-wo! Thwee!" he shouted angrily and stepped aside.
    
    The combatants advanced along the trodden tracks, nearer and nearer to
    one another, beginning to see one another through the mist. They had the
    right to fire when they liked as they approached the barrier. Dolokhov
    walked slowly without raising his pistol, looking intently with his
    bright, sparkling blue eyes into his antagonist's face. His mouth wore
    its usual semblance of a smile.
    
    "So I can fire when I like!" said Pierre, and at the word "three," he
    went quickly forward, missing the trodden path and stepping into the
    deep snow. He held the pistol in his right hand at arm's length,
    apparently afraid of shooting himself with it. His left hand he held
    carefully back, because he wished to support his right hand with it and
    knew he must not do so. Having advanced six paces and strayed off the
    track into the snow, Pierre looked down at his feet, then quickly
    glanced at Dolokhov and, bending his finger as he had been shown, fired.
    Not at all expecting so loud a report, Pierre shuddered at the sound and
    then, smiling at his own sensations, stood still. The smoke, rendered
    denser by the mist, prevented him from seeing anything for an instant,
    but there was no second report as he had expected. He only heard
    Dolokhov's hurried steps, and his figure came in view through the smoke.
    He was pressing one hand to his left side, while the other clutched his
    drooping pistol. His face was pale. Rostov ran toward him and said
    something.
    
    "No-o-o!" muttered Dolokhov through his teeth, "no, it's not over." And
    after stumbling a few staggering steps right up to the saber, he sank on
    the snow beside it. His left hand was bloody; he wiped it on his coat
    and supported himself with it. His frowning face was pallid and
    quivered.
    
    "Plea..." began Dolokhov, but could not at first pronounce the word.
    
    "Please," he uttered with an effort.
    
    Pierre, hardly restraining his sobs, began running toward Dolokhov and
    was about to cross the space between the barriers, when Dolokhov cried:
    
    "To your barrier!" and Pierre, grasping what was meant, stopped by his
    saber. Only ten paces divided them. Dolokhov lowered his head to the
    snow, greedily bit at it, again raised his head, adjusted himself, drew
    in his legs and sat up, seeking a firm center of gravity. He sucked and
    swallowed the cold snow, his lips quivered but his eyes, still smiling,
    glittered with effort and exasperation as he mustered his remaining
    strength. He raised his pistol and aimed.
    
    "Sideways! Cover yourself with your pistol!" ejaculated Nesvitski.
    
    "Cover yourself!" even Denisov cried to his adversary.
    
    Pierre, with a gentle smile of pity and remorse, his arms and legs
    helplessly spread out, stood with his broad chest directly facing
    Dolokhov looked sorrowfully at him. Denisov, Rostov, and Nesvitski
    closed their eyes. At the same instant they heard a report and
    Dolokhov's angry cry.
    
    "Missed!" shouted Dolokhov, and he lay helplessly, face downwards on the
    snow.
    
    Pierre clutched his temples, and turning round went into the forest,
    trampling through the deep snow, and muttering incoherent words:
    
    "Folly... folly! Death... lies..." he repeated, puckering his face.
    
    Nesvitski stopped him and took him home.
    
    Rostov and Denisov drove away with the wounded Dolokhov.
    
    The latter lay silent in the sleigh with closed eyes and did not answer
    a word to the questions addressed to him. But on entering Moscow he
    suddenly came to and, lifting his head with an effort, took Rostov, who
    was sitting beside him, by the hand. Rostov was struck by the totally
    altered and unexpectedly rapturous and tender expression on Dolokhov's
    face.
    
    "Well? How do you feel?" he asked.
    
    "Bad! But it's not that, my friend-" said Dolokhov with a gasping voice.
    "Where are we? In Moscow, I know. I don't matter, but I have killed her,
    killed... She won't get over it! She won't survive...."
    
    "Who?" asked Rostov.
    
    "My mother! My mother, my angel, my adored angel mother," and Dolokhov
    pressed Rostov's hand and burst into tears.
    
    When he had become a little quieter, he explained to Rostov that he was
    living with his mother, who, if she saw him dying, would not survive it.
    He implored Rostov to go on and prepare her.
    
    Rostov went on ahead to do what was asked, and to his great surprise
    learned that Dolokhov the brawler, Dolokhov the bully, lived in Moscow
    with an old mother and a hunchback sister, and was the most affectionate
    of sons and brothers.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Pierre had of late rarely seen his wife alone. Both in Petersburg and in
    Moscow their house was always full of visitors. The night after the duel
    he did not go to his bedroom but, as he often did, remained in his
    father's room, that huge room in which Count Bezukhov had died.
    
    He lay down on the sofa meaning to fall asleep and forget all that had
    happened to him, but could not do so. Such a storm of feelings,
    thoughts, and memories suddenly arose within him that he could not fall
    asleep, nor even remain in one place, but had to jump up and pace the
    room with rapid steps. Now he seemed to see her in the early days of
    their marriage, with bare shoulders and a languid, passionate look on
    her face, and then immediately he saw beside her Dolokhov's handsome,
    insolent, hard, and mocking face as he had seen it at the banquet, and
    then that same face pale, quivering, and suffering, as it had been when
    he reeled and sank on the snow.
    
    "What has happened?" he asked himself. "I have killed her lover, yes,
    killed my wife's lover. Yes, that was it! And why? How did I come to do
    it?"--"Because you married her," answered an inner voice.
    
    "But in what was I to blame?" he asked. "In marrying her without loving
    her; in deceiving yourself and her." And he vividly recalled that moment
    after supper at Prince Vasili's, when he spoke those words he had found
    so difficult to utter: "I love you." "It all comes from that! Even then
    I felt it," he thought. "I felt then that it was not so, that I had no
    right to do it. And so it turns out."
    
    He remembered his honeymoon and blushed at the recollection.
    Particularly vivid, humiliating, and shameful was the recollection of
    how one day soon after his marriage he came out of the bedroom into his
    study a little before noon in his silk dressing gown and found his head
    steward there, who, bowing respectfully, looked into his face and at his
    dressing gown and smiled slightly, as if expressing respectful
    understanding of his employer's happiness.
    
    "But how often I have felt proud of her, proud of her majestic beauty
    and social tact," thought he; "been proud of my house, in which she
    received all Petersburg, proud of her unapproachability and beauty. So
    this is what I was proud of! I then thought that I did not understand
    her. How often when considering her character I have told myself that I
    was to blame for not understanding her, for not understanding that
    constant composure and complacency and lack of all interests or desires,
    and the whole secret lies in the terrible truth that she is a depraved
    woman. Now I have spoken that terrible word to myself all has become
    clear.
    
    "Anatole used to come to borrow money from her and used to kiss her
    naked shoulders. She did not give him the money, but let herself be
    kissed. Her father in jest tried to rouse her jealousy, and she replied
    with a calm smile that she was not so stupid as to be jealous: 'Let him
    do what he pleases,' she used to say of me. One day I asked her if she
    felt any symptoms of pregnancy. She laughed contemptuously and said she
    was not a fool to want to have children, and that she was not going to
    have any children by me."
    
    Then he recalled the coarseness and bluntness of her thoughts and the
    vulgarity of the expressions that were natural to her, though she had
    been brought up in the most aristocratic circles.
    
    "I'm not such a fool.... Just you try it on.... Allez-vous promener," *
    she used to say. Often seeing the success she had with young and old men
    and women Pierre could not understand why he did not love her.
    
    * "You clear out of this."
    
    "Yes, I never loved her," said he to himself; "I knew she was a depraved
    woman," he repeated, "but dared not admit it to myself. And now there's
    Dolokhov sitting in the snow with a forced smile and perhaps dying,
    while meeting my remorse with some forced bravado!"
    
    Pierre was one of those people who, in spite of an appearance of what is
    called weak character, do not seek a confidant in their troubles. He
    digested his sufferings alone.
    
    "It is all, all her fault," he said to himself; "but what of that? Why
    did I bind myself to her? Why did I say 'Je vous aime' * to her, which
    was a lie, and worse than a lie? I am guilty and must endure... what? A
    slur on my name? A misfortune for life? Oh, that's nonsense," he
    thought. "The slur on my name and honor--that's all apart from myself."
    
    * I love you.
    
    "Louis XVI was executed because they said he was dishonorable and a
    criminal," came into Pierre's head, "and from their point of view they
    were right, as were those too who canonized him and died a martyr's
    death for his sake. Then Robespierre was beheaded for being a despot.
    Who is right and who is wrong? No one! But if you are alive--live:
    tomorrow you'll die as I might have died an hour ago. And is it worth
    tormenting oneself, when one has only a moment of life in comparison
    with eternity?"
    
    But at the moment when he imagined himself calmed by such reflections,
    she suddenly came into his mind as she was at the moments when he had
    most strongly expressed his insincere love for her, and he felt the
    blood rush to his heart and had again to get up and move about and break
    and tear whatever came to his hand. "Why did I tell her that 'Je vous
    aime'?" he kept repeating to himself. And when he had said it for the
    tenth time, Moliere's words: "Mais que diable allait-il faire dans cette
    galere?"* occurred to him, and he began to laugh at himself.
    
    * "But what the devil was he doing in that galley?"
    
    In the night he called his valet and told him to pack up to go to
    Petersburg. He could not imagine how he could speak to her now. He
    resolved to go away next day and leave a letter informing her of his
    intention to part from her forever.
    
    Next morning when the valet came into the room with his coffee, Pierre
    was lying asleep on the ottoman with an open book in his hand.
    
    He woke up and looked round for a while with a startled expression,
    unable to realize where he was.
    
    "The countess told me to inquire whether your excellency was at home,"
    said the valet.
    
    But before Pierre could decide what answer he would send, the countess
    herself in a white satin dressing gown embroidered with silver and with
    simply dressed hair (two immense plaits twice round her lovely head like
    a coronet) entered the room, calm and majestic, except that there was a
    wrathful wrinkle on her rather prominent marble brow. With her
    imperturbable calm she did not begin to speak in front of the valet. She
    knew of the duel and had come to speak about it. She waited till the
    valet had set down the coffee things and left the room. Pierre looked at
    her timidly over his spectacles, and like a hare surrounded by hounds
    who lays back her ears and continues to crouch motionless before her
    enemies, he tried to continue reading. But feeling this to be senseless
    and impossible, he again glanced timidly at her. She did not sit down
    but looked at him with a contemptuous smile, waiting for the valet to
    go.
    
    "Well, what's this now? What have you been up to now, I should like to
    know?" she asked sternly.
    
    "I? What have I...?" stammered Pierre.
    
    "So it seems you're a hero, eh? Come now, what was this duel about? What
    is it meant to prove? What? I ask you."
    
    Pierre turned over heavily on the ottoman and opened his mouth, but
    could not reply.
    
    "If you won't answer, I'll tell you..." Helene went on. "You believe
    everything you're told. You were told..." Helene laughed, "that Dolokhov
    was my lover," she said in French with her coarse plainness of speech,
    uttering the word amant as casually as any other word, "and you believed
    it! Well, what have you proved? What does this duel prove? That you're a
    fool, que vous etes un sot, but everybody knew that. What will be the
    result? That I shall be the laughingstock of all Moscow, that everyone
    will say that you, drunk and not knowing what you were about, challenged
    a man you are jealous of without cause." Helene raised her voice and
    became more and more excited, "A man who's a better man than you in
    every way..."
    
    "Hm... Hm...!" growled Pierre, frowning without looking at her, and not
    moving a muscle.
    
    "And how could you believe he was my lover? Why? Because I like his
    company? If you were cleverer and more agreeable, I should prefer
    yours."
    
    "Don't speak to me... I beg you," muttered Pierre hoarsely.
    
    "Why shouldn't I speak? I can speak as I like, and I tell you plainly
    that there are not many wives with husbands such as you who would not
    have taken lovers (des amants), but I have not done so," said she.
    
    Pierre wished to say something, looked at her with eyes whose strange
    expression she did not understand, and lay down again. He was suffering
    physically at that moment, there was a weight on his chest and he could
    not breathe. He knew that he must do something to put an end to this
    suffering, but what he wanted to do was too terrible.
    
    "We had better separate," he muttered in a broken voice.
    
    "Separate? Very well, but only if you give me a fortune," said Helene.
    "Separate! That's a thing to frighten me with!"
    
    Pierre leaped up from the sofa and rushed staggering toward her.
    
    "I'll kill you!" he shouted, and seizing the marble top of a table with
    a strength he had never before felt, he made a step toward her
    brandishing the slab.
    
    Helene's face became terrible, she shrieked and sprang aside. His
    father's nature showed itself in Pierre. He felt the fascination and
    delight of frenzy. He flung down the slab, broke it, and swooping down
    on her with outstretched hands shouted, "Get out!" in such a terrible
    voice that the whole house heard it with horror. God knows what he would
    have done at that moment had Helene not fled from the room.
    
    A week later Pierre gave his wife full power to control all his estates
    in Great Russia, which formed the larger part of his property, and left
    for Petersburg alone.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Two months had elapsed since the news of the battle of Austerlitz and
    the loss of Prince Andrew had reached Bald Hills, and in spite of the
    letters sent through the embassy and all the searches made, his body had
    not been found nor was he on the list of prisoners. What was worst of
    all for his relations was the fact that there was still a possibility of
    his having been picked up on the battlefield by the people of the place
    and that he might now be lying, recovering or dying, alone among
    strangers and unable to send news of himself. The gazettes from which
    the old prince first heard of the defeat at Austerlitz stated, as usual
    very briefly and vaguely, that after brilliant engagements the Russians
    had had to retreat and had made their withdrawal in perfect order. The
    old prince understood from this official report that our army had been
    defeated. A week after the gazette report of the battle of Austerlitz
    came a letter from Kutuzov informing the prince of the fate that had
    befallen his son.
    
    "Your son," wrote Kutuzov, "fell before my eyes, a standard in his hand
    and at the head of a regiment--he fell as a hero, worthy of his father
    and his fatherland. To the great regret of myself and of the whole army
    it is still uncertain whether he is alive or not. I comfort myself and
    you with the hope that your son is alive, for otherwise he would have
    been mentioned among the officers found on the field of battle, a list
    of whom has been sent me under flag of truce."
    
    After receiving this news late in the evening, when he was alone in his
    study, the old prince went for his walk as usual next morning, but he
    was silent with his steward, the gardener, and the architect, and though
    he looked very grim he said nothing to anyone.
    
    When Princess Mary went to him at the usual hour he was working at his
    lathe and, as usual, did not look round at her.
    
    "Ah, Princess Mary!" he said suddenly in an unnatural voice, throwing
    down his chisel. (The wheel continued to revolve by its own impetus, and
    Princess Mary long remembered the dying creak of that wheel, which
    merged in her memory with what followed.)
    
    She approached him, saw his face, and something gave way within her. Her
    eyes grew dim. By the expression of her father's face, not sad, not
    crushed, but angry and working unnaturally, she saw that hanging over
    her and about to crush her was some terrible misfortune, the worst in
    life, one she had not yet experienced, irreparable and incomprehensible-
    -the death of one she loved.
    
    "Father! Andrew!"--said the ungraceful, awkward princess with such an
    indescribable charm of sorrow and self-forgetfulness that her father
    could not bear her look but turned away with a sob.
    
    "Bad news! He's not among the prisoners nor among the killed! Kutuzov
    writes..." and he screamed as piercingly as if he wished to drive the
    princess away by that scream... "Killed!"
    
    The princess did not fall down or faint. She was already pale, but on
    hearing these words her face changed and something brightened in her
    beautiful, radiant eyes. It was as if joy--a supreme joy apart from the
    joys and sorrows of this world--overflowed the great grief within her.
    She forgot all fear of her father, went up to him, took his hand, and
    drawing him down put her arm round his thin, scraggy neck.
    
    "Father," she said, "do not turn away from me, let us weep together."
    
    "Scoundrels! Blackguards!" shrieked the old man, turning his face away
    from her. "Destroying the army, destroying the men! And why? Go, go and
    tell Lise."
    
    The princess sank helplessly into an armchair beside her father and
    wept. She saw her brother now as he had been at the moment when he took
    leave of her and of Lise, his look tender yet proud. She saw him tender
    and amused as he was when he put on the little icon. "Did he believe?
    Had he repented of his unbelief? Was he now there? There in the realms
    of eternal peace and blessedness?" she thought.
    
    "Father, tell me how it happened," she asked through her tears.
    
    "Go! Go! Killed in battle, where the best of Russian men and Russia's
    glory were led to destruction. Go, Princess Mary. Go and tell Lise. I
    will follow."
    
    When Princess Mary returned from her father, the little princess sat
    working and looked up with that curious expression of inner, happy calm
    peculiar to pregnant women. It was evident that her eyes did not see
    Princess Mary but were looking within... into herself... at something
    joyful and mysterious taking place within her.
    
    "Mary," she said, moving away from the embroidery frame and lying back,
    "give me your hand." She took her sister-in-law's hand and held it below
    her waist.
    
    Her eyes were smiling expectantly, her downy lip rose and remained
    lifted in childlike happiness.
    
    Princess Mary knelt down before her and hid her face in the folds of her
    sister-in-law's dress.
    
    "There, there! Do you feel it? I feel so strange. And do you know, Mary,
    I am going to love him very much," said Lise, looking with bright and
    happy eyes at her sister-in-law.
    
    Princess Mary could not lift her head, she was weeping.
    
    "What is the matter, Mary?"
    
    "Nothing... only I feel sad... sad about Andrew," she said, wiping away
    her tears on her sister-in-law's knee.
    
    Several times in the course of the morning Princess Mary began trying to
    prepare her sister-in-law, and every time began to cry. Unobservant as
    was the little princess, these tears, the cause of which she did not
    understand, agitated her. She said nothing but looked about uneasily as
    if in search of something. Before dinner the old prince, of whom she was
    always afraid, came into her room with a peculiarly restless and malign
    expression and went out again without saying a word. She looked at
    Princess Mary, then sat thinking for a while with that expression of
    attention to something within her that is only seen in pregnant women,
    and suddenly began to cry.
    
    "Has anything come from Andrew?" she asked.
    
    "No, you know it's too soon for news. But my father is anxious and I
    feel afraid."
    
    "So there's nothing?"
    
    "Nothing," answered Princess Mary, looking firmly with her radiant eyes
    at her sister-in-law.
    
    She had determined not to tell her and persuaded her father to hide the
    terrible news from her till after her confinement, which was expected
    within a few days. Princess Mary and the old prince each bore and hid
    their grief in their own way. The old prince would not cherish any hope:
    he made up his mind that Prince Andrew had been killed, and though he
    sent an official to Austria to seek for traces of his son, he ordered a
    monument from Moscow which he intended to erect in his own garden to his
    memory, and he told everybody that his son had been killed. He tried not
    to change his former way of life, but his strength failed him. He walked
    less, ate less, slept less, and became weaker every day. Princess Mary
    hoped. She prayed for her brother as living and was always awaiting news
    of his return.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    "Dearest," said the little princess after breakfast on the morning of
    the nineteenth March, and her downy little lip rose from old habit, but
    as sorrow was manifest in every smile, the sound of every word, and even
    every footstep in that house since the terrible news had come, so now
    the smile of the little princess--influenced by the general mood though
    without knowing its cause--was such as to remind one still more of the
    general sorrow.
    
    "Dearest, I'm afraid this morning's fruschtique *--as Foka the cook
    calls it--has disagreed with me."
    
    * Fruhstuck: breakfast.
    
    "What is the matter with you, my darling? You look pale. Oh, you are
    very pale!" said Princess Mary in alarm, running with her soft,
    ponderous steps up to her sister-in-law.
    
    "Your excellency, should not Mary Bogdanovna be sent for?" said one of
    the maids who was present. (Mary Bogdanovna was a midwife from the
    neighboring town, who had been at Bald Hills for the last fortnight.)
    
    "Oh yes," assented Princess Mary, "perhaps that's it. I'll go. Courage,
    my angel." She kissed Lise and was about to leave the room.
    
    "Oh, no, no!" And besides the pallor and the physical suffering on the
    little princess' face, an expression of childish fear of inevitable pain
    showed itself.
    
    "No, it's only indigestion?... Say it's only indigestion, say so, Mary!
    Say..." And the little princess began to cry capriciously like a
    suffering child and to wring her little hands even with some
    affectation. Princess Mary ran out of the room to fetch Mary Bogdanovna.
    
    "Mon Dieu! Mon Dieu! Oh!" she heard as she left the room.
    
    The midwife was already on her way to meet her, rubbing her small, plump
    white hands with an air of calm importance.
    
    "Mary Bogdanovna, I think it's beginning!" said Princess Mary looking at
    the midwife with wide-open eyes of alarm.
    
    "Well, the Lord be thanked, Princess," said Mary Bogdanovna, not
    hastening her steps. "You young ladies should not know anything about
    it."
    
    "But how is it the doctor from Moscow is not here yet?" said the
    princess. (In accordance with Lise's and Prince Andrew's wishes they had
    sent in good time to Moscow for a doctor and were expecting him at any
    moment.)
    
    "No matter, Princess, don't be alarmed," said Mary Bogdanovna. "We'll
    manage very well without a doctor."
    
    Five minutes later Princess Mary from her room heard something heavy
    being carried by. She looked out. The men servants were carrying the
    large leather sofa from Prince Andrew's study into the bedroom. On their
    faces was a quiet and solemn look.
    
    Princess Mary sat alone in her room listening to the sounds in the
    house, now and then opening her door when someone passed and watching
    what was going on in the passage. Some women passing with quiet steps in
    and out of the bedroom glanced at the princess and turned away. She did
    not venture to ask any questions, and shut the door again, now sitting
    down in her easy chair, now taking her prayer book, now kneeling before
    the icon stand. To her surprise and distress she found that her prayers
    did not calm her excitement. Suddenly her door opened softly and her old
    nurse, Praskovya Savishna, who hardly ever came to that room as the old
    prince had forbidden it, appeared on the threshold with a shawl round
    her head.
    
    "I've come to sit with you a bit, Masha," said the nurse, "and here I've
    brought the prince's wedding candles to light before his saint, my
    angel," she said with a sigh.
    
    "Oh, nurse, I'm so glad!"
    
    "God is merciful, birdie."
    
    The nurse lit the gilt candles before the icons and sat down by the door
    with her knitting. Princess Mary took a book and began reading. Only
    when footsteps or voices were heard did they look at one another, the
    princess anxious and inquiring, the nurse encouraging. Everyone in the
    house was dominated by the same feeling that Princess Mary experienced
    as she sat in her room. But owing to the superstition that the fewer the
    people who know of it the less a woman in travail suffers, everyone
    tried to pretend not to know; no one spoke of it, but apart from the
    ordinary staid and respectful good manners habitual in the prince's
    household, a common anxiety, a softening of the heart, and a
    consciousness that something great and mysterious was being accomplished
    at that moment made itself felt.
    
    There was no laughter in the maids' large hall. In the men servants'
    hall all sat waiting, silently and alert. In the outlying serfs'
    quarters torches and candles were burning and no one slept. The old
    prince, stepping on his heels, paced up and down his study and sent
    Tikhon to ask Mary Bogdanovna what news.--"Say only that 'the prince
    told me to ask,' and come and tell me her answer."
    
    "Inform the prince that labor has begun," said Mary Bogdanovna, giving
    the messenger a significant look.
    
    Tikhon went and told the prince.
    
    "Very good!" said the prince closing the door behind him, and Tikhon did
    not hear the slightest sound from the study after that.
    
    After a while he re-entered it as if to snuff the candles, and, seeing
    the prince was lying on the sofa, looked at him, noticed his perturbed
    face, shook his head, and going up to him silently kissed him on the
    shoulder and left the room without snuffing the candles or saying why he
    had entered. The most solemn mystery in the world continued its course.
    Evening passed, night came, and the feeling of suspense and softening of
    heart in the presence of the unfathomable did not lessen but increased.
    No one slept.
    
    It was one of those March nights when winter seems to wish to resume its
    sway and scatters its last snows and storms with desperate fury. A relay
    of horses had been sent up the highroad to meet the German doctor from
    Moscow who was expected every moment, and men on horseback with lanterns
    were sent to the crossroads to guide him over the country road with its
    hollows and snow-covered pools of water.
    
    Princess Mary had long since put aside her book: she sat silent, her
    luminous eyes fixed on her nurse's wrinkled face (every line of which
    she knew so well), on the lock of gray hair that escaped from under the
    kerchief, and the loose skin that hung under her chin.
    
    Nurse Savishna, knitting in hand, was telling in low tones, scarcely
    hearing or understanding her own words, what she had told hundreds of
    times before: how the late princess had given birth to Princess Mary in
    Kishenev with only a Moldavian peasant woman to help instead of a
    midwife.
    
    "God is merciful, doctors are never needed," she said.
    
    Suddenly a gust of wind beat violently against the casement of the
    window, from which the double frame had been removed (by order of the
    prince, one window frame was removed in each room as soon as the larks
    returned), and, forcing open a loosely closed latch, set the damask
    curtain flapping and blew out the candle with its chill, snowy draft.
    Princess Mary shuddered; her nurse, putting down the stocking she was
    knitting, went to the window and leaning out tried to catch the open
    casement. The cold wind flapped the ends of her kerchief and her loose
    locks of gray hair.
    
    "Princess, my dear, there's someone driving up the avenue!" she said,
    holding the casement and not closing it. "With lanterns. Most likely the
    doctor."
    
    "Oh, my God! thank God!" said Princess Mary. "I must go and meet him, he
    does not know Russian."
    
    Princess Mary threw a shawl over her head and ran to meet the newcomer.
    As she was crossing the anteroom she saw through the window a carriage
    with lanterns, standing at the entrance. She went out on the stairs. On
    a banister post stood a tallow candle which guttered in the draft. On
    the landing below, Philip, the footman, stood looking scared and holding
    another candle. Still lower, beyond the turn of the staircase, one could
    hear the footstep of someone in thick felt boots, and a voice that
    seemed familiar to Princess Mary was saying something.
    
    "Thank God!" said the voice. "And Father?"
    
    "Gone to bed," replied the voice of Demyan the house steward, who was
    downstairs.
    
    Then the voice said something more, Demyan replied, and the steps in the
    felt boots approached the unseen bend of the staircase more rapidly.
    
    "It's Andrew!" thought Princess Mary. "No it can't be, that would be too
    extraordinary," and at the very moment she thought this, the face and
    figure of Prince Andrew, in a fur cloak the deep collar of which covered
    with snow, appeared on the landing where the footman stood with the
    candle. Yes, it was he, pale, thin, with a changed and strangely
    softened but agitated expression on his face. He came up the stairs and
    embraced his sister.
    
    "You did not get my letter?" he asked, and not waiting for a reply--
    which he would not have received, for the princess was unable to speak--
    he turned back, rapidly mounted the stairs again with the doctor who had
    entered the hall after him (they had met at the last post station), and
    again embraced his sister.
    
    "What a strange fate, Masha darling!" And having taken off his cloak and
    felt boots, he went to the little princess' apartment.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    The little princess lay supported by pillows, with a white cap on her
    head (the pains had just left her). Strands of her black hair lay round
    her inflamed and perspiring cheeks, her charming rosy mouth with its
    downy lip was open and she was smiling joyfully. Prince Andrew entered
    and paused facing her at the foot of the sofa on which she was lying.
    Her glittering eyes, filled with childlike fear and excitement, rested
    on him without changing their expression. "I love you all and have done
    no harm to anyone; why must I suffer so? Help me!" her look seemed to
    say. She saw her husband, but did not realize the significance of his
    appearance before her now. Prince Andrew went round the sofa and kissed
    her forehead.
    
    "My darling!" he said--a word he had never used to her before. "God is
    merciful...."
    
    She looked at him inquiringly and with childlike reproach.
    
    "I expected help from you and I get none, none from you either!" said
    her eyes. She was not surprised at his having come; she did not realize
    that he had come. His coming had nothing to do with her sufferings or
    with their relief. The pangs began again and Mary Bogdanovna advised
    Prince Andrew to leave the room.
    
    The doctor entered. Prince Andrew went out and, meeting Princess Mary,
    again joined her. They began talking in whispers, but their talk broke
    off at every moment. They waited and listened.
    
    "Go, dear," said Princess Mary.
    
    Prince Andrew went again to his wife and sat waiting in the room next to
    hers. A woman came from the bedroom with a frightened face and became
    confused when she saw Prince Andrew. He covered his face with his hands
    and remained so for some minutes. Piteous, helpless, animal moans came
    through the door. Prince Andrew got up, went to the door, and tried to
    open it. Someone was holding it shut.
    
    "You can't come in! You can't!" said a terrified voice from within.
    
    He began pacing the room. The screaming ceased, and a few more seconds
    went by. Then suddenly a terrible shriek--it could not be hers, she
    could not scream like that--came from the bedroom. Prince Andrew ran to
    the door; the scream ceased and he heard the wail of an infant.
    
    "What have they taken a baby in there for?" thought Prince Andrew in the
    first second. "A baby? What baby...? Why is there a baby there? Or is
    the baby born?"
    
    Then suddenly he realized the joyful significance of that wail; tears
    choked him, and leaning his elbows on the window sill be began to cry,
    sobbing like a child. The door opened. The doctor with his shirt sleeves
    tucked up, without a coat, pale and with a trembling jaw, came out of
    the room. Prince Andrew turned to him, but the doctor gave him a
    bewildered look and passed by without a word. A woman rushed out and
    seeing Prince Andrew stopped, hesitating on the threshold. He went into
    his wife's room. She was lying dead, in the same position he had seen
    her in five minutes before and, despite the fixed eyes and the pallor of
    the cheeks, the same expression was on her charming childlike face with
    its upper lip covered with tiny black hair.
    
    "I love you all, and have done no harm to anyone; and what have you done
    to me?"--said her charming, pathetic, dead face.
    
    In a corner of the room something red and tiny gave a grunt and squealed
    in Mary Bogdanovna's trembling white hands.
    
    Two hours later Prince Andrew, stepping softly, went into his father's
    room. The old man already knew everything. He was standing close to the
    door and as soon as it opened his rough old arms closed like a vise
    round his son's neck, and without a word he began to sob like a child.
    
    Three days later the little princess was buried, and Prince Andrew went
    up the steps to where the coffin stood, to give her the farewell kiss.
    And there in the coffin was the same face, though with closed eyes. "Ah,
    what have you done to me?" it still seemed to say, and Prince Andrew
    felt that something gave way in his soul and that he was guilty of a sin
    he could neither remedy nor forget. He could not weep. The old man too
    came up and kissed the waxen little hands that lay quietly crossed one
    on the other on her breast, and to him, too, her face seemed to say:
    "Ah, what have you done to me, and why?" And at the sight the old man
    turned angrily away.
    
    Another five days passed, and then the young Prince Nicholas Andreevich
    was baptized. The wet nurse supported the coverlet with her chin, while
    the priest with a goose feather anointed the boy's little red and
    wrinkled soles and palms.
    
    His grandfather, who was his godfather, trembling and afraid of dropping
    him, carried the infant round the battered tin font and handed him over
    to the godmother, Princess Mary. Prince Andrew sat in another room,
    faint with fear lest the baby should be drowned in the font, and awaited
    the termination of the ceremony. He looked up joyfully at the baby when
    the nurse brought it to him and nodded approval when she told him that
    the wax with the baby's hair had not sunk in the font but had floated.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Rostov's share in Dolokhov's duel with Bezukhov was hushed up by the
    efforts of the old count, and instead of being degraded to the ranks as
    he expected he was appointed an adjutant to the governor general of
    Moscow. As a result he could not go to the country with the rest of the
    family, but was kept all summer in Moscow by his new duties. Dolokhov
    recovered, and Rostov became very friendly with him during his
    convalescence. Dolokhov lay ill at his mother's who loved him
    passionately and tenderly, and old Mary Ivanovna, who had grown fond of
    Rostov for his friendship to her Fedya, often talked to him about her
    son.
    
    "Yes, Count," she would say, "he is too noble and pure-souled for our
    present, depraved world. No one now loves virtue; it seems like a
    reproach to everyone. Now tell me, Count, was it right, was it
    honorable, of Bezukhov? And Fedya, with his noble spirit, loved him and
    even now never says a word against him. Those pranks in Petersburg when
    they played some tricks on a policeman, didn't they do it together? And
    there! Bezukhov got off scotfree, while Fedya had to bear the whole
    burden on his shoulders. Fancy what he had to go through! It's true he
    has been reinstated, but how could they fail to do that? I think there
    were not many such gallant sons of the fatherland out there as he. And
    now--this duel! Have these people no feeling, or honor? Knowing him to
    be an only son, to challenge him and shoot so straight! It's well God
    had mercy on us. And what was it for? Who doesn't have intrigues
    nowadays? Why, if he was so jealous, as I see things he should have
    shown it sooner, but he lets it go on for months. And then to call him
    out, reckoning on Fedya not fighting because he owed him money! What
    baseness! What meanness! I know you understand Fedya, my dear count;
    that, believe me, is why I am so fond of you. Few people do understand
    him. He is such a lofty, heavenly soul!"
    
    Dolokhov himself during his convalescence spoke to Rostov in a way no
    one would have expected of him.
    
    "I know people consider me a bad man!" he said. "Let them! I don't care
    a straw about anyone but those I love; but those I love, I love so that
    I would give my life for them, and the others I'd throttle if they stood
    in my way. I have an adored, a priceless mother, and two or three
    friends--you among them--and as for the rest I only care about them in
    so far as they are harmful or useful. And most of them are harmful,
    especially the women. Yes, dear boy," he continued, "I have met loving,
    noble, high-minded men, but I have not yet met any women--countesses or
    cooks--who were not venal. I have not yet met that divine purity and
    devotion I look for in women. If I found such a one I'd give my life for
    her! But those!..." and he made a gesture of contempt. "And believe me,
    if I still value my life it is only because I still hope to meet such a
    divine creature, who will regenerate, purify, and elevate me. But you
    don't understand it."
    
    "Oh, yes, I quite understand," answered Rostov, who was under his new
    friend's influence.
    
    In the autumn the Rostovs returned to Moscow. Early in the winter
    Denisov also came back and stayed with them. The first half of the
    winter of 1806, which Nicholas Rostov spent in Moscow, was one of the
    happiest, merriest times for him and the whole family. Nicholas brought
    many young men to his parents' house. Vera was a handsome girl of
    twenty; Sonya a girl of sixteen with all the charm of an opening flower;
    Natasha, half grown up and half child, was now childishly amusing, now
    girlishly enchanting.
    
    At that time in the Rostovs' house there prevailed an amorous atmosphere
    characteristic of homes where there are very young and very charming
    girls. Every young man who came to the house--seeing those
    impressionable, smiling young faces (smiling probably at their own
    happiness), feeling the eager bustle around him, and hearing the fitful
    bursts of song and music and the inconsequent but friendly prattle of
    young girls ready for anything and full of hope--experienced the same
    feeling; sharing with the young folk of the Rostovs' household a
    readiness to fall in love and an expectation of happiness.
    
    Among the young men introduced by Rostov one of the first was Dolokhov,
    whom everyone in the house liked except Natasha. She almost quarreled
    with her brother about him. She insisted that he was a bad man, and that
    in the duel with Bezukhov, Pierre was right and Dolokhov wrong, and
    further that he was disagreeable and unnatural.
    
    "There's nothing for me to understand," she cried out with resolute
    self-will, "he is wicked and heartless. There now, I like your Denisov
    though he is a rake and all that, still I like him; so you see I do
    understand. I don't know how to put it... with this one everything is
    calculated, and I don't like that. But Denisov..."
    
    "Oh, Denisov is quite different," replied Nicholas, implying that even
    Denisov was nothing compared to Dolokhov--"you must understand what a
    soul there is in Dolokhov, you should see him with his mother. What a
    heart!"
    
    "Well, I don't know about that, but I am uncomfortable with him. And do
    you know he has fallen in love with Sonya?"
    
    "What nonsense..."
    
    "I'm certain of it; you'll see."
    
    Natasha's prediction proved true. Dolokhov, who did not usually care for
    the society of ladies, began to come often to the house, and the
    question for whose sake he came (though no one spoke of it) was soon
    settled. He came because of Sonya. And Sonya, though she would never
    have dared to say so, knew it and blushed scarlet every time Dolokhov
    appeared.
    
    Dolokhov often dined at the Rostovs', never missed a performance at
    which they were present, and went to Iogel's balls for young people
    which the Rostovs always attended. He was pointedly attentive to Sonya
    and looked at her in such a way that not only could she not bear his
    glances without coloring, but even the old countess and Natasha blushed
    when they saw his looks.
    
    It was evident that this strange, strong man was under the irresistible
    influence of the dark, graceful girl who loved another.
    
    Rostov noticed something new in Dolokhov's relations with Sonya, but he
    did not explain to himself what these new relations were. "They're
    always in love with someone," he thought of Sonya and Natasha. But he
    was not as much at ease with Sonya and Dolokhov as before and was less
    frequently at home.
    
    In the autumn of 1806 everybody had again begun talking of the war with
    Napoleon with even greater warmth than the year before. Orders were
    given to raise recruits, ten men in every thousand for the regular army,
    and besides this, nine men in every thousand for the militia. Everywhere
    Bonaparte was anathematized and in Moscow nothing but the coming war was
    talked of. For the Rostov family the whole interest of these
    preparations for war lay in the fact that Nicholas would not hear of
    remaining in Moscow, and only awaited the termination of Denisov's
    furlough after Christmas to return with him to their regiment. His
    approaching departure did not prevent his amusing himself, but rather
    gave zest to his pleasures. He spent the greater part of his time away
    from home, at dinners, parties, and balls.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    On the third day after Christmas Nicholas dined at home, a thing he had
    rarely done of late. It was a grand farewell dinner, as he and Denisov
    were leaving to join their regiment after Epiphany. About twenty people
    were present, including Dolokhov and Denisov.
    
    Never had love been so much in the air, and never had the amorous
    atmosphere made itself so strongly felt in the Rostovs' house as at this
    holiday time. "Seize the moments of happiness, love and be loved! That
    is the only reality in the world, all else is folly. It is the one thing
    we are interested in here," said the spirit of the place.
    
    Nicholas, having as usual exhausted two pairs of horses, without
    visiting all the places he meant to go to and where he had been invited,
    returned home just before dinner. As soon as he entered he noticed and
    felt the tension of the amorous air in the house, and also noticed a
    curious embarrassment among some of those present. Sonya, Dolokhov, and
    the old countess were especially disturbed, and to a lesser degree
    Natasha. Nicholas understood that something must have happened between
    Sonya and Dolokhov before dinner, and with the kindly sensitiveness
    natural to him was very gentle and wary with them both at dinner. On
    that same evening there was to be one of the balls that Iogel (the
    dancing master) gave for his pupils during the holidays.
    
    "Nicholas, will you come to Iogel's? Please do!" said Natasha. "He asked
    you, and Vasili Dmitrich * is also going."
    
    * Denisov.
    
    "Where would I not go at the countess' command!" said Denisov, who at
    the Rostovs' had jocularly assumed the role of Natasha's knight. "I'm
    even weady to dance the pas de chale."
    
    "If I have time," answered Nicholas. "But I promised the Arkharovs; they
    have a party."
    
    "And you?" he asked Dolokhov, but as soon as he had asked the question
    he noticed that it should not have been put.
    
    "Perhaps," coldly and angrily replied Dolokhov, glancing at Sonya, and,
    scowling, he gave Nicholas just such a look as he had given Pierre at
    the club dinner.
    
    "There is something up," thought Nicholas, and he was further confirmed
    in this conclusion by the fact that Dolokhov left immediately after
    dinner. He called Natasha and asked her what was the matter.
    
    "And I was looking for you," said Natasha running out to him. "I told
    you, but you would not believe it," she said triumphantly. "He has
    proposed to Sonya!"
    
    Little as Nicholas had occupied himself with Sonya of late, something
    seemed to give way within him at this news. Dolokhov was a suitable and
    in some respects a brilliant match for the dowerless, orphan girl. From
    the point of view of the old countess and of society it was out of the
    question for her to refuse him. And therefore Nicholas' first feeling on
    hearing the news was one of anger with Sonya.... He tried to say,
    "That's capital; of course she'll forget her childish promises and
    accept the offer," but before he had time to say it Natasha began again.
    
    "And fancy! she refused him quite definitely!" adding, after a pause,
    "she told him she loved another."
    
    "Yes, my Sonya could not have done otherwise!" thought Nicholas.
    
    "Much as Mamma pressed her, she refused, and I know she won't change
    once she has said..."
    
    "And Mamma pressed her!" said Nicholas reproachfully.
    
    "Yes," said Natasha. "Do you know, Nicholas--don't be angry--but I know
    you will not marry her. I know, heaven knows how, but I know for certain
    that you won't marry her."
    
    "Now you don't know that at all!" said Nicholas. "But I must talk to
    her. What a darling Sonya is!" he added with a smile.
    
    "Ah, she is indeed a darling! I'll send her to you."
    
    And Natasha kissed her brother and ran away.
    
    A minute later Sonya came in with a frightened, guilty, and scared look.
    Nicholas went up to her and kissed her hand. This was the first time
    since his return that they had talked alone and about their love.
    
    "Sophie," he began, timidly at first and then more and more boldly, "if
    you wish to refuse one who is not only a brilliant and advantageous
    match but a splendid, noble fellow... he is my friend..."
    
    Sonya interrupted him.
    
    "I have already refused," she said hurriedly.
    
    "If you are refusing for my sake, I am afraid that I..."
    
    Sonya again interrupted. She gave him an imploring, frightened look.
    
    "Nicholas, don't tell me that!" she said.
    
    "No, but I must. It may be arrogant of me, but still it is best to say
    it. If you refuse him on my account, I must tell you the whole truth. I
    love you, and I think I love you more than anyone else...."
    
    "That is enough for me," said Sonya, blushing.
    
    "No, but I have been in love a thousand times and shall fall in love
    again, though for no one have I such a feeling of friendship,
    confidence, and love as I have for you. Then I am young. Mamma does not
    wish it. In a word, I make no promise. And I beg you to consider
    Dolokhov's offer," he said, articulating his friend's name with
    difficulty.
    
    "Don't say that to me! I want nothing. I love you as a brother and
    always shall, and I want nothing more."
    
    "You are an angel: I am not worthy of you, but I am afraid of misleading
    you."
    
    And Nicholas again kissed her hand.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    Iogel's were the most enjoyable balls in Moscow. So said the mothers as
    they watched their young people executing their newly learned steps, and
    so said the youths and maidens themselves as they danced till they were
    ready to drop, and so said the grown-up young men and women who came to
    these balls with an air of condescension and found them most enjoyable.
    That year two marriages had come of these balls. The two pretty young
    Princesses Gorchakov met suitors there and were married and so further
    increased the fame of these dances. What distinguished them from others
    was the absence of host or hostess and the presence of the good-natured
    Iogel, flying about like a feather and bowing according to the rules of
    his art, as he collected the tickets from all his visitors. There was
    the fact that only those came who wished to dance and amuse themselves
    as girls of thirteen and fourteen do who are wearing long dresses for
    the first time. With scarcely any exceptions they all were, or seemed to
    be, pretty--so rapturous were their smiles and so sparkling their eyes.
    Sometimes the best of the pupils, of whom Natasha, who was exceptionally
    graceful, was first, even danced the pas de chale, but at this last ball
    only the ecossaise, the anglaise, and the mazurka, which was just coming
    into fashion, were danced. Iogel had taken a ballroom in Bezukhov's
    house, and the ball, as everyone said, was a great success. There were
    many pretty girls and the Rostov girls were among the prettiest. They
    were both particularly happy and gay. That evening, proud of Dolokhov's
    proposal, her refusal, and her explanation with Nicholas, Sonya twirled
    about before she left home so that the maid could hardly get her hair
    plaited, and she was transparently radiant with impulsive joy.
    
    Natasha no less proud of her first long dress and of being at a real
    ball was even happier. They were both dressed in white muslin with pink
    ribbons.
    
    Natasha fell in love the very moment she entered the ballroom. She was
    not in love with anyone in particular, but with everyone. Whatever
    person she happened to look at she was in love with for that moment.
    
    "Oh, how delightful it is!" she kept saying, running up to Sonya.
    
    Nicholas and Denisov were walking up and down, looking with kindly
    patronage at the dancers.
    
    "How sweet she is--she will be a weal beauty!" said Denisov.
    
    "Who?"
    
    "Countess Natasha," answered Denisov.
    
    "And how she dances! What gwace!" he said again after a pause.
    
    "Who are you talking about?"
    
    "About your sister," ejaculated Denisov testily.
    
    Rostov smiled.
    
    "My dear count, you were one of my best pupils--you must dance," said
    little Iogel coming up to Nicholas. "Look how many charming young
    ladies-" He turned with the same request to Denisov who was also a
    former pupil of his.
    
    "No, my dear fellow, I'll be a wallflower," said Denisov. "Don't you
    wecollect what bad use I made of your lessons?"
    
    "Oh no!" said Iogel, hastening to reassure him. "You were only
    inattentive, but you had talent--oh yes, you had talent!"
    
    The band struck up the newly introduced mazurka. Nicholas could not
    refuse Iogel and asked Sonya to dance. Denisov sat down by the old
    ladies and, leaning on his saber and beating time with his foot, told
    them something funny and kept them amused, while he watched the young
    people dancing, Iogel with Natasha, his pride and his best pupil, were
    the first couple. Noiselessly, skillfully stepping with his little feet
    in low shoes, Iogel flew first across the hall with Natasha, who, though
    shy, went on carefully executing her steps. Denisov did not take his
    eyes off her and beat time with his saber in a way that clearly
    indicated that if he was not dancing it was because he would not and not
    because he could not. In the middle of a figure he beckoned to Rostov
    who was passing:
    
    "This is not at all the thing," he said. "What sort of Polish mazuwka is
    this? But she does dance splendidly."
    
    Knowing that Denisov had a reputation even in Poland for the masterly
    way in which he danced the mazurka, Nicholas ran up to Natasha:
    
    "Go and choose Denisov. He is a real dancer, a wonder!" he said.
    
    When it came to Natasha's turn to choose a partner, she rose and,
    tripping rapidly across in her little shoes trimmed with bows, ran
    timidly to the corner where Denisov sat. She saw that everybody was
    looking at her and waiting. Nicholas saw that Denisov was refusing
    though he smiled delightedly. He ran up to them.
    
    "Please, Vasili Dmitrich," Natasha was saying, "do come!"
    
    "Oh no, let me off, Countess," Denisov replied.
    
    "Now then, Vaska," said Nicholas.
    
    "They coax me as if I were Vaska the cat!" said Denisov jokingly.
    
    "I'll sing for you a whole evening," said Natasha.
    
    "Oh, the faiwy! She can do anything with me!" said Denisov, and he
    unhooked his saber. He came out from behind the chairs, clasped his
    partner's hand firmly, threw back his head, and advanced his foot,
    waiting for the beat. Only on horse back and in the mazurka was
    Denisov's short stature not noticeable and he looked the fine fellow he
    felt himself to be. At the right beat of the music he looked sideways at
    his partner with a merry and triumphant air, suddenly stamped with one
    foot, bounded from the floor like a ball, and flew round the room taking
    his partner with him. He glided silently on one foot half across the
    room, and seeming not to notice the chairs was dashing straight at them,
    when suddenly, clinking his spurs and spreading out his legs, he stopped
    short on his heels, stood so a second, stamped on the spot clanking his
    spurs, whirled rapidly round, and, striking his left heel against his
    right, flew round again in a circle. Natasha guessed what he meant to
    do, and abandoning herself to him followed his lead hardly knowing how.
    First he spun her round, holding her now with his left, now with his
    right hand, then falling on one knee he twirled her round him, and again
    jumping up, dashed so impetuously forward that it seemed as if he would
    rush through the whole suite of rooms without drawing breath, and then
    he suddenly stopped and performed some new and unexpected steps. When at
    last, smartly whirling his partner round in front of her chair, he drew
    up with a click of his spurs and bowed to her, Natasha did not even make
    him a curtsy. She fixed her eyes on him in amazement, smiling as if she
    did not recognize him.
    
    "What does this mean?" she brought out.
    
    Although Iogel did not acknowledge this to be the real mazurka, everyone
    was delighted with Denisov's skill, he was asked again and again as a
    partner, and the old men began smilingly to talk about Poland and the
    good old days. Denisov, flushed after the mazurka and mopping himself
    with his handkerchief, sat down by Natasha and did not leave her for the
    rest of the evening.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    For two days after that Rostov did not see Dolokhov at his own or at
    Dolokhov's home: on the third day he received a note from him:
    
    As I do not intend to be at your house again for reasons you know of,
    and am going to rejoin my regiment, I am giving a farewell supper
    tonight to my friends--come to the English Hotel.
    
    About ten o'clock Rostov went to the English Hotel straight from the
    theater, where he had been with his family and Denisov. He was at once
    shown to the best room, which Dolokhov had taken for that evening. Some
    twenty men were gathered round a table at which Dolokhov sat between two
    candles. On the table was a pile of gold and paper money, and he was
    keeping the bank. Rostov had not seen him since his proposal and Sonya's
    refusal and felt uncomfortable at the thought of how they would meet.
    
    Dolokhov's clear, cold glance met Rostov as soon as he entered the door,
    as though he had long expected him.
    
    "It's a long time since we met," he said. "Thanks for coming. I'll just
    finish dealing, and then Ilyushka will come with his chorus."
    
    "I called once or twice at your house," said Rostov, reddening.
    
    Dolokhov made no reply.
    
    "You may punt," he said.
    
    Rostov recalled at that moment a strange conversation he had once had
    with Dolokhov. "None but fools trust to luck in play," Dolokhov had then
    said.
    
    "Or are you afraid to play with me?" Dolokhov now asked as if guessing
    Rostov's thought.
    
    Beneath his smile Rostov saw in him the mood he had shown at the club
    dinner and at other times, when as if tired of everyday life he had felt
    a need to escape from it by some strange, and usually cruel, action.
    
    Rostov felt ill at ease. He tried, but failed, to find some joke with
    which to reply to Dolokhov's words. But before he had thought of
    anything, Dolokhov, looking straight in his face, said slowly and
    deliberately so that everyone could hear:
    
    "Do you remember we had a talk about cards... 'He's a fool who trusts to
    luck, one should make certain,' and I want to try."
    
    "To try his luck or the certainty?" Rostov asked himself.
    
    "Well, you'd better not play," Dolokhov added, and springing a new pack
    of cards said: "Bank, gentlemen!"
    
    Moving the money forward he prepared to deal. Rostov sat down by his
    side and at first did not play. Dolokhov kept glancing at him.
    
    "Why don't you play?" he asked.
    
    And strange to say Nicholas felt that he could not help taking up a
    card, putting a small stake on it, and beginning to play.
    
    "I have no money with me," he said.
    
    "I'll trust you."
    
    Rostov staked five rubles on a card and lost, staked again, and again
    lost. Dolokhov "killed," that is, beat, ten cards of Rostov's running.
    
    "Gentlemen," said Dolokhov after he had dealt for some time. "Please
    place your money on the cards or I may get muddled in the reckoning."
    
    One of the players said he hoped he might be trusted.
    
    "Yes, you might, but I am afraid of getting the accounts mixed. So I ask
    you to put the money on your cards," replied Dolokhov. "Don't stint
    yourself, we'll settle afterwards," he added, turning to Rostov.
    
    The game continued; a waiter kept handing round champagne.
    
    All Rostov's cards were beaten and he had eight hundred rubles scored up
    against him. He wrote "800 rubles" on a card, but while the waiter
    filled his glass he changed his mind and altered it to his usual stake
    of twenty rubles.
    
    "Leave it," said Dolokhov, though he did not seem to be even looking at
    Rostov, "you'll win it back all the sooner. I lose to the others but win
    from you. Or are you afraid of me?" he asked again.
    
    Rostov submitted. He let the eight hundred remain and laid down a seven
    of hearts with a torn corner, which he had picked up from the floor. He
    well remembered that seven afterwards. He laid down the seven of hearts,
    on which with a broken bit of chalk he had written "800 rubles" in clear
    upright figures; he emptied the glass of warm champagne that was handed
    him, smiled at Dolokhov's words, and with a sinking heart, waiting for a
    seven to turn up, gazed at Dolokhov's hands which held the pack. Much
    depended on Rostov's winning or losing on that seven of hearts. On the
    previous Sunday the old count had given his son two thousand rubles, and
    though he always disliked speaking of money difficulties had told
    Nicholas that this was all he could let him have till May, and asked him
    to be more economical this time. Nicholas had replied that it would be
    more than enough for him and that he gave his word of honor not to take
    anything more till the spring. Now only twelve hundred rubles was left
    of that money, so that this seven of hearts meant for him not only the
    loss of sixteen hundred rubles, but the necessity of going back on his
    word. With a sinking heart he watched Dolokhov's hands and thought, "Now
    then, make haste and let me have this card and I'll take my cap and
    drive home to supper with Denisov, Natasha, and Sonya, and will
    certainly never touch a card again." At that moment his home life, jokes
    with Petya, talks with Sonya, duets with Natasha, piquet with his
    father, and even his comfortable bed in the house on the Povarskaya rose
    before him with such vividness, clearness, and charm that it seemed as
    if it were all a lost and unappreciated bliss, long past. He could not
    conceive that a stupid chance, letting the seven be dealt to the right
    rather than to the left, might deprive him of all this happiness, newly
    appreciated and newly illumined, and plunge him into the depths of
    unknown and undefined misery. That could not be, yet he awaited with a
    sinking heart the movement of Dolokhov's hands. Those broad, reddish
    hands, with hairy wrists visible from under the shirt cuffs, laid down
    the pack and took up a glass and a pipe that were handed him.
    
    "So you are not afraid to play with me?" repeated Dolokhov, and as if
    about to tell a good story he put down the cards, leaned back in his
    chair, and began deliberately with a smile:
    
    "Yes, gentlemen, I've been told there's a rumor going about Moscow that
    I'm a sharper, so I advise you to be careful."
    
    "Come now, deal!" exclaimed Rostov.
    
    "Oh, those Moscow gossips!" said Dolokhov, and he took up the cards with
    a smile.
    
    "Aah!" Rostov almost screamed lifting both hands to his head. The seven
    he needed was lying uppermost, the first card in the pack. He had lost
    more than he could pay.
    
    "Still, don't ruin yourself!" said Dolokhov with a side glance at Rostov
    as he continued to deal.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    An hour and a half later most of the players were but little interested
    in their own play.
    
    The whole interest was concentrated on Rostov. Instead of sixteen
    hundred rubles he had a long column of figures scored against him, which
    he had reckoned up to ten thousand, but that now, as he vaguely
    supposed, must have risen to fifteen thousand. In reality it already
    exceeded twenty thousand rubles. Dolokhov was no longer listening to
    stories or telling them, but followed every movement of Rostov's hands
    and occasionally ran his eyes over the score against him. He had decided
    to play until that score reached forty-three thousand. He had fixed on
    that number because forty-three was the sum of his and Sonya's joint
    ages. Rostov, leaning his head on both hands, sat at the table which was
    scrawled over with figures, wet with spilled wine, and littered with
    cards. One tormenting impression did not leave him: that those broad-
    boned reddish hands with hairy wrists visible from under the shirt
    sleeves, those hands which he loved and hated, held him in their power.
    
    "Six hundred rubles, ace, a corner, a nine... winning it back's
    impossible... Oh, how pleasant it was at home!... The knave, double or
    quits... it can't be!... And why is he doing this to me?" Rostov
    pondered. Sometimes he staked a large sum, but Dolokhov refused to
    accept it and fixed the stake himself. Nicholas submitted to him, and at
    one moment prayed to God as he had done on the battlefield at the bridge
    over the Enns, and then guessed that the card that came first to hand
    from the crumpled heap under the table would save him, now counted the
    cords on his coat and took a card with that number and tried staking the
    total of his losses on it, then he looked round for aid from the other
    players, or peered at the now cold face of Dolokhov and tried to read
    what was passing in his mind.
    
    "He knows of course what this loss means to me. He can't want my ruin.
    Wasn't he my friend? Wasn't I fond of him? But it's not his fault.
    What's he to do if he has such luck?... And it's not my fault either,"
    he thought to himself, "I have done nothing wrong. Have I killed anyone,
    or insulted or wished harm to anyone? Why such a terrible misfortune?
    And when did it begin? Such a little while ago I came to this table with
    the thought of winning a hundred rubles to buy that casket for Mamma's
    name day and then going home. I was so happy, so free, so lighthearted!
    And I did not realize how happy I was! When did that end and when did
    this new, terrible state of things begin? What marked the change? I sat
    all the time in this same place at this table, chose and placed cards,
    and watched those broad-boned agile hands in the same way. When did it
    happen and what has happened? I am well and strong and still the same
    and in the same place. No, it can't be! Surely it will all end in
    nothing!"
    
    He was flushed and bathed in perspiration, though the room was not hot.
    His face was terrible and piteous to see, especially from its helpless
    efforts to seem calm.
    
    The score against him reached the fateful sum of forty-three thousand.
    Rostov had just prepared a card, by bending the corner of which he meant
    to double the three thousand just put down to his score, when Dolokhov,
    slamming down the pack of cards, put it aside and began rapidly adding
    up the total of Rostov's debt, breaking the chalk as he marked the
    figures in his clear, bold hand.
    
    "Supper, it's time for supper! And here are the gypsies!"
    
    Some swarthy men and women were really entering from the cold outside
    and saying something in their gypsy accents. Nicholas understood that it
    was all over; but he said in an indifferent tone:
    
    "Well, won't you go on? I had a splendid card all ready," as if it were
    the fun of the game which interested him most.
    
    "It's all up! I'm lost!" thought he. "Now a bullet through my brain--
    that's all that's left me!" And at the same time he said in a cheerful
    voice:
    
    "Come now, just this one more little card!"
    
    "All right!" said Dolokhov, having finished the addition. "All right!
    Twenty-one rubles," he said, pointing to the figure twenty-one by which
    the total exceeded the round sum of forty-three thousand; and taking up
    a pack he prepared to deal. Rostov submissively unbent the corner of his
    card and, instead of the six thousand he had intended, carefully wrote
    twenty-one.
    
    "It's all the same to me," he said. "I only want to see whether you will
    let me win this ten, or beat it."
    
    Dolokhov began to deal seriously. Oh, how Rostov detested at that moment
    those hands with their short reddish fingers and hairy wrists, which
    held him in their power.... The ten fell to him.
    
    "You owe forty-three thousand, Count," said Dolokhov, and stretching
    himself he rose from the table. "One does get tired sitting so long," he
    added.
    
    "Yes, I'm tired too," said Rostov.
    
    Dolokhov cut him short, as if to remind him that it was not for him to
    jest.
    
    "When am I to receive the money, Count?"
    
    Rostov, flushing, drew Dolokhov into the next room.
    
    "I cannot pay it all immediately. Will you take an I.O.U.?" he said.
    
    "I say, Rostov," said Dolokhov clearly, smiling and looking Nicholas
    straight in the eyes, "you know the saying, 'Lucky in love, unlucky at
    cards.' Your cousin is in love with you, I know."
    
    "Oh, it's terrible to feel oneself so in this man's power," thought
    Rostov. He knew what a shock he would inflict on his father and mother
    by the news of this loss, he knew what a relief it would be to escape it
    all, and felt that Dolokhov knew that he could save him from all this
    shame and sorrow, but wanted now to play with him as a cat does with a
    mouse.
    
    "Your cousin..." Dolokhov started to say, but Nicholas interrupted him.
    
    "My cousin has nothing to do with this and it's not necessary to mention
    her!" he exclaimed fiercely.
    
    "Then when am I to have it?"
    
    "Tomorrow," replied Rostov and left the room.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    To say "tomorrow" and keep up a dignified tone was not difficult, but to
    go home alone, see his sisters, brother, mother, and father, confess and
    ask for money he had no right to after giving his word of honor, was
    terrible.
    
    At home, they had not yet gone to bed. The young people, after returning
    from the theater, had had supper and were grouped round the clavichord.
    As soon as Nicholas entered, he was enfolded in that poetic atmosphere
    of love which pervaded the Rostov household that winter and, now after
    Dolokhov's proposal and Iogel's ball, seemed to have grown thicker round
    Sonya and Natasha as the air does before a thunderstorm. Sonya and
    Natasha, in the light-blue dresses they had worn at the theater, looking
    pretty and conscious of it, were standing by the clavichord, happy and
    smiling. Vera was playing chess with Shinshin in the drawing room. The
    old countess, waiting for the return of her husband and son, sat playing
    patience with the old gentlewoman who lived in their house. Denisov,
    with sparkling eyes and ruffled hair, sat at the clavichord striking
    chords with his short fingers, his legs thrown back and his eyes rolling
    as he sang, with his small, husky, but true voice, some verses called
    "Enchantress," which he had composed, and to which he was trying to fit
    music:
    
    Enchantress, say, to my forsaken lyre What magic power is this recalls
    me still? What spark has set my inmost soul on fire, What is this bliss
    that makes my fingers thrill?
    
    He was singing in passionate tones, gazing with his sparkling black-
    agate eyes at the frightened and happy Natasha.
    
    "Splendid! Excellent!" exclaimed Natasha. "Another verse," she said,
    without noticing Nicholas.
    
    "Everything's still the same with them," thought Nicholas, glancing into
    the drawing room, where he saw Vera and his mother with the old lady.
    
    "Ah, and here's Nicholas!" cried Natasha, running up to him.
    
    "Is Papa at home?" he asked.
    
    "I am so glad you've come!" said Natasha, without answering him. "We are
    enjoying ourselves! Vasili Dmitrich is staying a day longer for my sake!
    Did you know?"
    
    "No, Papa is not back yet," said Sonya.
    
    "Nicholas, have you come? Come here, dear!" called the old countess from
    the drawing room.
    
    Nicholas went to her, kissed her hand, and sitting down silently at her
    table began to watch her hands arranging the cards. From the dancing
    room, they still heard the laughter and merry voices trying to persuade
    Natasha to sing.
    
    "All wight! All wight!" shouted Denisov. "It's no good making excuses
    now! It's your turn to sing the ba'cawolla--I entweat you!"
    
    The countess glanced at her silent son.
    
    "What is the matter?" she asked.
    
    "Oh, nothing," said he, as if weary of being continually asked the same
    question. "Will Papa be back soon?"
    
    "I expect so."
    
    "Everything's the same with them. They know nothing about it! Where am I
    to go?" thought Nicholas, and went again into the dancing room where the
    clavichord stood.
    
    Sonya was sitting at the clavichord, playing the prelude to Denisov's
    favorite barcarolle. Natasha was preparing to sing. Denisov was looking
    at her with enraptured eyes.
    
    Nicholas began pacing up and down the room.
    
    "Why do they want to make her sing? How can she sing? There's nothing to
    be happy about!" thought he.
    
    Sonya struck the first chord of the prelude.
    
    "My God, I'm a ruined and dishonored man! A bullet through my brain is
    the only thing left me--not singing!" his thoughts ran on. "Go away? But
    where to? It's one--let them sing!"
    
    He continued to pace the room, looking gloomily at Denisov and the girls
    and avoiding their eyes.
    
    "Nikolenka, what is the matter?" Sonya's eyes fixed on him seemed to
    ask. She noticed at once that something had happened to him.
    
    Nicholas turned away from her. Natasha too, with her quick instinct, had
    instantly noticed her brother's condition. But, though she noticed it,
    she was herself in such high spirits at that moment, so far from sorrow,
    sadness, or self-reproach, that she purposely deceived herself as young
    people often do. "No, I am too happy now to spoil my enjoyment by
    sympathy with anyone's sorrow," she felt, and she said to herself: "No,
    I must be mistaken, he must be feeling happy, just as I am."
    
    "Now, Sonya!" she said, going to the very middle of the room, where she
    considered the resonance was best.
    
    Having lifted her head and let her arms droop lifelessly, as ballet
    dancers do, Natasha, rising energetically from her heels to her toes,
    stepped to the middle of the room and stood still.
    
    "Yes, that's me!" she seemed to say, answering the rapt gaze with which
    Denisov followed her.
    
    "And what is she so pleased about?" thought Nicholas, looking at his
    sister. "Why isn't she dull and ashamed?"
    
    Natasha took the first note, her throat swelled, her chest rose, her
    eyes became serious. At that moment she was oblivious of her
    surroundings, and from her smiling lips flowed sounds which anyone may
    produce at the same intervals and hold for the same time, but which
    leave you cold a thousand times and the thousand and first time thrill
    you and make you weep.
    
    Natasha, that winter, had for the first time begun to sing seriously,
    mainly because Denisov so delighted in her singing. She no longer sang
    as a child, there was no longer in her singing that comical, childish,
    painstaking effect that had been in it before; but she did not yet sing
    well, as all the connoisseurs who heard her said: "It is not trained,
    but it is a beautiful voice that must be trained." Only they generally
    said this some time after she had finished singing. While that untrained
    voice, with its incorrect breathing and labored transitions, was
    sounding, even the connoisseurs said nothing, but only delighted in it
    and wished to hear it again. In her voice there was a virginal
    freshness, an unconsciousness of her own powers, and an as yet untrained
    velvety softness, which so mingled with her lack of art in singing that
    it seemed as if nothing in that voice could be altered without spoiling
    it.
    
    "What is this?" thought Nicholas, listening to her with widely opened
    eyes. "What has happened to her? How she is singing today!" And suddenly
    the whole world centered for him on anticipation of the next note, the
    next phrase, and everything in the world was divided into three beats:
    "Oh mio crudele affetto."... One, two, three... one, two, three...
    One... "Oh mio crudele affetto."... One, two, three... One. "Oh, this
    senseless life of ours!" thought Nicholas. "All this misery, and money,
    and Dolokhov, and anger, and honor--it's all nonsense... but this is
    real.... Now then, Natasha, now then, dearest! Now then, darling! How
    will she take that si? She's taken it! Thank God!" And without noticing
    that he was singing, to strengthen the si he sung a second, a third
    below the high note. "Ah, God! How fine! Did I really take it? How
    fortunate!" he thought.
    
    Oh, how that chord vibrated, and how moved was something that was finest
    in Rostov's soul! And this something was apart from everything else in
    the world and above everything in the world. "What were losses, and
    Dolokhov, and words of honor?... All nonsense! One might kill and rob
    and yet be happy..."
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    It was long since Rostov had felt such enjoyment from music as he did
    that day. But no sooner had Natasha finished her barcarolle than reality
    again presented itself. He got up without saying a word and went
    downstairs to his own room. A quarter of an hour later the old count
    came in from his club, cheerful and contented. Nicholas, hearing him
    drive up, went to meet him.
    
    "Well--had a good time?" said the old count, smiling gaily and proudly
    at his son.
    
    Nicholas tried to say "Yes," but could not: and he nearly burst into
    sobs. The count was lighting his pipe and did not notice his son's
    condition.
    
    "Ah, it can't be avoided!" thought Nicholas, for the first and last
    time. And suddenly, in the most casual tone, which made him feel ashamed
    of himself, he said, as if merely asking his father to let him have the
    carriage to drive to town:
    
    "Papa, I have come on a matter of business. I was nearly forgetting. I
    need some money."
    
    "Dear me!" said his father, who was in a specially good humor. "I told
    you it would not be enough. How much?"
    
    "Very much," said Nicholas flushing, and with a stupid careless smile,
    for which he was long unable to forgive himself, "I have lost a little,
    I mean a good deal, a great deal--forty three thousand."
    
    "What! To whom?... Nonsense!" cried the count, suddenly reddening with
    an apoplectic flush over neck and nape as old people do.
    
    "I promised to pay tomorrow," said Nicholas.
    
    "Well!..." said the old count, spreading out his arms and sinking
    helplessly on the sofa.
    
    "It can't be helped It happens to everyone!" said the son, with a bold,
    free, and easy tone, while in his soul he regarded himself as a
    worthless scoundrel whose whole life could not atone for his crime. He
    longed to kiss his father's hands and kneel to beg his forgiveness, but
    said, in a careless and even rude voice, that it happens to everyone!
    
    The old count cast down his eyes on hearing his son's words and began
    bustlingly searching for something.
    
    "Yes, yes," he muttered, "it will be difficult, I fear, difficult to
    raise... happens to everybody! Yes, who has not done it?"
    
    And with a furtive glance at his son's face, the count went out of the
    room.... Nicholas had been prepared for resistance, but had not at all
    expected this.
    
    "Papa! Pa-pa!" he called after him, sobbing, "forgive me!" And seizing
    his father's hand, he pressed it to his lips and burst into tears.
    
    While father and son were having their explanation, the mother and
    daughter were having one not less important. Natasha came running to her
    mother, quite excited.
    
    "Mamma!... Mamma!... He has made me..."
    
    "Made what?"
    
    "Made, made me an offer, Mamma! Mamma!" she exclaimed.
    
    The countess did not believe her ears. Denisov had proposed. To whom? To
    this chit of a girl, Natasha, who not so long ago was playing with dolls
    and who was still having lessons.
    
    "Don't, Natasha! What nonsense!" she said, hoping it was a joke.
    
    "Nonsense, indeed! I am telling you the fact," said Natasha indignantly.
    "I come to ask you what to do, and you call it 'nonsense!'"
    
    The countess shrugged her shoulders.
    
    "If it is true that Monsieur Denisov has made you a proposal, tell him
    he is a fool, that's all!"
    
    "No, he's not a fool!" replied Natasha indignantly and seriously.
    
    "Well then, what do you want? You're all in love nowadays. Well, if you
    are in love, marry him!" said the countess, with a laugh of annoyance.
    "Good luck to you!"
    
    "No, Mamma, I'm not in love with him, I suppose I'm not in love with
    him."
    
    "Well then, tell him so."
    
    "Mamma, are you cross? Don't be cross, dear! Is it my fault?"
    
    "No, but what is it, my dear? Do you want me to go and tell him?" said
    the countess smiling.
    
    "No, I will do it myself, only tell me what to say. It's all very well
    for you," said Natasha, with a responsive smile. "You should have seen
    how he said it! I know he did not mean to say it, but it came out
    accidently."
    
    "Well, all the same, you must refuse him."
    
    "No, I mustn't. I am so sorry for him! He's so nice."
    
    "Well then, accept his offer. It's high time for you to be married,"
    answered the countess sharply and sarcastically.
    
    "No, Mamma, but I'm so sorry for him. I don't know how I'm to say it."
    
    "And there's nothing for you to say. I shall speak to him myself," said
    the countess, indignant that they should have dared to treat this little
    Natasha as grown up.
    
    "No, not on any account! I will tell him myself, and you'll listen at
    the door," and Natasha ran across the drawing room to the dancing hall,
    where Denisov was sitting on the same chair by the clavichord with his
    face in his hands.
    
    He jumped up at the sound of her light step.
    
    "Nataly," he said, moving with rapid steps toward her, "decide my fate.
    It is in your hands."
    
    "Vasili Dmitrich, I'm so sorry for you!... No, but you are so nice...
    but it won't do...not that... but as a friend, I shall always love you."
    
    Denisov bent over her hand and she heard strange sounds she did not
    understand. She kissed his rough curly black head. At this instant, they
    heard the quick rustle of the countess' dress. She came up to them.
    
    "Vasili Dmitrich, I thank you for the honor," she said, with an
    embarrassed voice, though it sounded severe to Denisov--"but my daughter
    is so young, and I thought that, as my son's friend, you would have
    addressed yourself first to me. In that case you would not have obliged
    me to give this refusal."
    
    "Countess..." said Denisov, with downcast eyes and a guilty face. He
    tried to say more, but faltered.
    
    Natasha could not remain calm, seeing him in such a plight. She began to
    sob aloud.
    
    "Countess, I have done w'ong," Denisov went on in an unsteady voice,
    "but believe me, I so adore your daughter and all your family that I
    would give my life twice over..." He looked at the countess, and seeing
    her severe face said: "Well, good-by, Countess," and kissing her hand,
    he left the room with quick resolute strides, without looking at
    Natasha.
    
    Next day Rostov saw Denisov off. He did not wish to stay another day in
    Moscow. All Denisov's Moscow friends gave him a farewell entertainment
    at the gypsies', with the result that he had no recollection of how he
    was put in the sleigh or of the first three stages of his journey.
    
    After Denisov's departure, Rostov spent another fortnight in Moscow,
    without going out of the house, waiting for the money his father could
    not at once raise, and he spent most of his time in the girls' room.
    
    Sonya was more tender and devoted to him than ever. It was as if she
    wanted to show him that his losses were an achievement that made her
    love him all the more, but Nicholas now considered himself unworthy of
    her.
    
    He filled the girls' albums with verses and music, and having at last
    sent Dolokhov the whole forty-three thousand rubles and received his
    receipt, he left at the end of November, without taking leave of any of
    his acquaintances, to overtake his regiment which was already in Poland.
    
    BOOK FIVE: 1806 - 07
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    After his interview with his wife Pierre left for Petersburg. At the
    Torzhok post station, either there were no horses or the postmaster
    would not supply them. Pierre was obliged to wait. Without undressing,
    he lay down on the leather sofa in front of a round table, put his big
    feet in their overboots on the table, and began to reflect.
    
    "Will you have the portmanteaus brought in? And a bed got ready, and
    tea?" asked his valet.
    
    Pierre gave no answer, for he neither heard nor saw anything. He had
    begun to think of the last station and was still pondering on the same
    question--one so important that he took no notice of what went on around
    him. Not only was he indifferent as to whether he got to Petersburg
    earlier or later, or whether he secured accommodation at this station,
    but compared to the thoughts that now occupied him it was a matter of
    indifference whether he remained there for a few hours or for the rest
    of his life.
    
    The postmaster, his wife, the valet, and a peasant woman selling Torzhok
    embroidery came into the room offering their services. Without changing
    his careless attitude, Pierre looked at them over his spectacles unable
    to understand what they wanted or how they could go on living without
    having solved the problems that so absorbed him. He had been engrossed
    by the same thoughts ever since the day he returned from Sokolniki after
    the duel and had spent that first agonizing, sleepless night. But now,
    in the solitude of the journey, they seized him with special force. No
    matter what he thought about, he always returned to these same questions
    which he could not solve and yet could not cease to ask himself. It was
    as if the thread of the chief screw which held his life together were
    stripped, so that the screw could not get in or out, but went on turning
    uselessly in the same place.
    
    The postmaster came in and began obsequiously to beg his excellency to
    wait only two hours, when, come what might, he would let his excellency
    have the courier horses. It was plain that he was lying and only wanted
    to get more money from the traveler.
    
    "Is this good or bad?" Pierre asked himself. "It is good for me, bad for
    another traveler, and for himself it's unavoidable, because he needs
    money for food; the man said an officer had once given him a thrashing
    for letting a private traveler have the courier horses. But the officer
    thrashed him because he had to get on as quickly as possible. And I,"
    continued Pierre, "shot Dolokhov because I considered myself injured,
    and Louis XVI was executed because they considered him a criminal, and a
    year later they executed those who executed him--also for some reason.
    What is bad? What is good? What should one love and what hate? What does
    one live for? And what am I? What is life, and what is death? What power
    governs all?"
    
    There was no answer to any of these questions, except one, and that not
    a logical answer and not at all a reply to them. The answer was: "You'll
    die and all will end. You'll die and know all, or cease asking." But
    dying was also dreadful.
    
    The Torzhok peddler woman, in a whining voice, went on offering her
    wares, especially a pair of goatskin slippers. "I have hundreds of
    rubles I don't know what to do with, and she stands in her tattered
    cloak looking timidly at me," he thought. "And what does she want the
    money for? As if that money could add a hair's breadth to happiness or
    peace of mind. Can anything in the world make her or me less a prey to
    evil and death?--death which ends all and must come today or tomorrow--
    at any rate, in an instant as compared with eternity." And again he
    twisted the screw with the stripped thread, and again it turned
    uselessly in the same place.
    
    His servant handed him a half-cut novel, in the form of letters, by
    Madame de Souza. He began reading about the sufferings and virtuous
    struggles of a certain Emilie de Mansfeld. "And why did she resist her
    seducer when she loved him?" he thought. "God could not have put into
    her heart an impulse that was against His will. My wife--as she once
    was--did not struggle, and perhaps she was right. Nothing has been found
    out, nothing discovered," Pierre again said to himself. "All we can know
    is that we know nothing. And that's the height of human wisdom."
    
    Everything within and around him seemed confused, senseless, and
    repellent. Yet in this very repugnance to all his circumstances Pierre
    found a kind of tantalizing satisfaction.
    
    "I make bold to ask your excellency to move a little for this
    gentleman," said the postmaster, entering the room followed by another
    traveler, also detained for lack of horses.
    
    The newcomer was a short, large-boned, yellow-faced, wrinkled old man,
    with gray bushy eyebrows overhanging bright eyes of an indefinite
    grayish color.
    
    Pierre took his feet off the table, stood up, and lay down on a bed that
    had been got ready for him, glancing now and then at the newcomer, who,
    with a gloomy and tired face, was wearily taking off his wraps with the
    aid of his servant, and not looking at Pierre. With a pair of felt boots
    on his thin bony legs, and keeping on a worn, nankeen-covered, sheepskin
    coat, the traveler sat down on the sofa, leaned back his big head with
    its broad temples and close-cropped hair, and looked at Bezukhov. The
    stern, shrewd, and penetrating expression of that look struck Pierre. He
    felt a wish to speak to the stranger, but by the time he had made up his
    mind to ask him a question about the roads, the traveler had closed his
    eyes. His shriveled old hands were folded and on the finger of one of
    them Pierre noticed a large cast iron ring with a seal representing a
    death's head. The stranger sat without stirring, either resting or, as
    it seemed to Pierre, sunk in profound and calm meditation. His servant
    was also a yellow, wrinkled old man, without beard or mustache,
    evidently not because he was shaven but because they had never grown.
    This active old servant was unpacking the traveler's canteen and
    preparing tea. He brought in a boiling samovar. When everything was
    ready, the stranger opened his eyes, moved to the table, filled a
    tumbler with tea for himself and one for the beardless old man to whom
    he passed it. Pierre began to feel a sense of uneasiness, and the need,
    even the inevitability, of entering into conversation with this
    stranger.
    
    The servant brought back his tumbler turned upside down, * with an
    unfinished bit of nibbled sugar, and asked if anything more would be
    wanted.
    
    * To indicate he did not want more tea.
    
    "No. Give me the book," said the stranger.
    
    The servant handed him a book which Pierre took to be a devotional work,
    and the traveler became absorbed in it. Pierre looked at him. All at
    once the stranger closed the book, putting in a marker, and again,
    leaning with his arms on the back of the sofa, sat in his former
    position with his eyes shut. Pierre looked at him and had not time to
    turn away when the old man, opening his eyes, fixed his steady and
    severe gaze straight on Pierre's face.
    
    Pierre felt confused and wished to avoid that look, but the bright old
    eyes attracted him irresistibly.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    "I have the pleasure of addressing Count Bezukhov, if I am not
    mistaken," said the stranger in a deliberate and loud voice.
    
    Pierre looked silently and inquiringly at him over his spectacles.
    
    "I have heard of you, my dear sir," continued the stranger, "and of your
    misfortune." He seemed to emphasize the last word, as if to say--"Yes,
    misfortune! Call it what you please, I know that what happened to you in
    Moscow was a misfortune."--"I regret it very much, my dear sir."
    
    Pierre flushed and, hurriedly putting his legs down from the bed, bent
    forward toward the old man with a forced and timid smile.
    
    "I have not referred to this out of curiosity, my dear sir, but for
    greater reasons."
    
    He paused, his gaze still on Pierre, and moved aside on the sofa by way
    of inviting the other to take a seat beside him. Pierre felt reluctant
    to enter into conversation with this old man, but, submitting to him
    involuntarily, came up and sat down beside him.
    
    "You are unhappy, my dear sir," the stranger continued. "You are young
    and I am old. I should like to help you as far as lies in my power."
    
    "Oh, yes!" said Pierre, with a forced smile. "I am very grateful to you.
    Where are you traveling from?"
    
    The stranger's face was not genial, it was even cold and severe, but in
    spite of this, both the face and words of his new acquaintance were
    irresistibly attractive to Pierre.
    
    "But if for reason you don't feel inclined to talk to me," said the old
    man, "say so, my dear sir." And he suddenly smiled, in an unexpected and
    tenderly paternal way.
    
    "Oh no, not at all! On the contrary, I am very glad to make your
    acquaintance," said Pierre. And again, glancing at the stranger's hands,
    he looked more closely at the ring, with its skull--a masonic sign.
    
    "Allow me to ask," he said, "are you a Mason?"
    
    "Yes, I belong to the Brotherhood of the Freemasons," said the stranger,
    looking deeper and deeper into Pierre's eyes. "And in their name and my
    own I hold out a brotherly hand to you."
    
    "I am afraid," said Pierre, smiling, and wavering between the confidence
    the personality of the Freemason inspired in him and his own habit of
    ridiculing the masonic beliefs--"I am afraid I am very far from
    understanding--how am I to put it?--I am afraid my way of looking at the
    world is so opposed to yours that we shall not understand one another."
    
    "I know your outlook," said the Mason, "and the view of life you
    mention, and which you think is the result of your own mental efforts,
    is the one held by the majority of people, and is the invariable fruit
    of pride, indolence, and ignorance. Forgive me, my dear sir, but if I
    had not known it I should not have addressed you. Your view of life is a
    regrettable delusion."
    
    "Just as I may suppose you to be deluded," said Pierre, with a faint
    smile.
    
    "I should never dare to say that I know the truth," said the Mason,
    whose words struck Pierre more and more by their precision and firmness.
    "No one can attain to truth by himself. Only by laying stone on stone
    with the cooperation of all, by the millions of generations from our
    forefather Adam to our own times, is that temple reared which is to be a
    worthy dwelling place of the Great God," he added, and closed his eyes.
    
    "I ought to tell you that I do not believe... do not believe in God,"
    said Pierre, regretfully and with an effort, feeling it essential to
    speak the whole truth.
    
    The Mason looked intently at Pierre and smiled as a rich man with
    millions in hand might smile at a poor fellow who told him that he, poor
    man, had not the five rubles that would make him happy.
    
    "Yes, you do not know Him, my dear sir," said the Mason. "You cannot
    know Him. You do not know Him and that is why you are unhappy."
    
    "Yes, yes, I am unhappy," assented Pierre. "But what am I to do?"
    
    "You know Him not, my dear sir, and so you are very unhappy. You do not
    know Him, but He is here, He is in me, He is in my words, He is in thee,
    and even in those blasphemous words thou hast just uttered!" pronounced
    the Mason in a stern and tremulous voice.
    
    He paused and sighed, evidently trying to calm himself.
    
    "If He were not," he said quietly, "you and I would not be speaking of
    Him, my dear sir. Of what, of whom, are we speaking? Whom hast thou
    denied?" he suddenly asked with exulting austerity and authority in his
    voice. "Who invented Him, if He did not exist? Whence came thy
    conception of the existence of such an incomprehensible Being? didst
    thou, and why did the whole world, conceive the idea of the existence of
    such an incomprehensible Being, a Being all-powerful, eternal, and
    infinite in all His attributes?..."
    
    He stopped and remained silent for a long time.
    
    Pierre could not and did not wish to break this silence.
    
    "He exists, but to understand Him is hard," the Mason began again,
    looking not at Pierre but straight before him, and turning the leaves of
    his book with his old hands which from excitement he could not keep
    still. "If it were a man whose existence thou didst doubt I could bring
    him to thee, could take him by the hand and show him to thee. But how
    can I, an insignificant mortal, show His omnipotence, His infinity, and
    all His mercy to one who is blind, or who shuts his eyes that he may not
    see or understand Him and may not see or understand his own vileness and
    sinfulness?" He paused again. "Who art thou? Thou dreamest that thou art
    wise because thou couldst utter those blasphemous words," he went on,
    with a somber and scornful smile. "And thou art more foolish and
    unreasonable than a little child, who, playing with the parts of a
    skillfully made watch, dares to say that, as he does not understand its
    use, he does not believe in the master who made it. To know Him is
    hard.... For ages, from our forefather Adam to our own day, we labor to
    attain that knowledge and are still infinitely far from our aim; but in
    our lack of understanding we see only our weakness and His
    greatness...."
    
    Pierre listened with swelling heart, gazing into the Mason's face with
    shining eyes, not interrupting or questioning him, but believing with
    his whole soul what the stranger said. Whether he accepted the wise
    reasoning contained in the Mason's words, or believed as a child
    believes, in the speaker's tone of conviction and earnestness, or the
    tremor of the speaker's voice--which sometimes almost broke--or those
    brilliant aged eyes grown old in this conviction, or the calm firmness
    and certainty of his vocation, which radiated from his whole being (and
    which struck Pierre especially by contrast with his own dejection and
    hopelessness)--at any rate, Pierre longed with his whole soul to believe
    and he did believe, and felt a joyful sense of comfort, regeneration,
    and return to life.
    
    "He is not to be apprehended by reason, but by life," said the Mason.
    
    "I do not understand," said Pierre, feeling with dismay doubts
    reawakening. He was afraid of any want of clearness, any weakness, in
    the Mason's arguments; he dreaded not to be able to believe in him. "I
    don't understand," he said, "how it is that the mind of man cannot
    attain the knowledge of which you speak."
    
    The Mason smiled with his gentle fatherly smile.
    
    "The highest wisdom and truth are like the purest liquid we may wish to
    imbibe," he said. "Can I receive that pure liquid into an impure vessel
    and judge of its purity? Only by the inner purification of myself can I
    retain in some degree of purity the liquid I receive."
    
    "Yes, yes, that is so," said Pierre joyfully.
    
    "The highest wisdom is not founded on reason alone, not on those worldly
    sciences of physics, history, chemistry, and the like, into which
    intellectual knowledge is divided. The highest wisdom is one. The
    highest wisdom has but one science--the science of the whole--the
    science explaining the whole creation and man's place in it. To receive
    that science it is necessary to purify and renew one's inner self, and
    so before one can know, it is necessary to believe and to perfect one's
    self. And to attain this end, we have the light called conscience that
    God has implanted in our souls."
    
    "Yes, yes," assented Pierre.
    
    "Look then at thy inner self with the eyes of the spirit, and ask
    thyself whether thou art content with thyself. What hast thou attained
    relying on reason only? What art thou? You are young, you are rich, you
    are clever, you are well educated. And what have you done with all these
    good gifts? Are you content with yourself and with your life?"
    
    "No, I hate my life," Pierre muttered, wincing.
    
    "Thou hatest it. Then change it, purify thyself; and as thou art
    purified, thou wilt gain wisdom. Look at your life, my dear sir. How
    have you spent it? In riotous orgies and debauchery, receiving
    everything from society and giving nothing in return. You have become
    the possessor of wealth. How have you used it? What have you done for
    your neighbor? Have you ever thought of your tens of thousands of
    slaves? Have you helped them physically and morally? No! You have
    profited by their toil to lead a profligate life. That is what you have
    done. Have you chosen a post in which you might be of service to your
    neighbor? No! You have spent your life in idleness. Then you married, my
    dear sir--took on yourself responsibility for the guidance of a young
    woman; and what have you done? You have not helped her to find the way
    of truth, my dear sir, but have thrust her into an abyss of deceit and
    misery. A man offended you and you shot him, and you say you do not know
    God and hate your life. There is nothing strange in that, my dear sir!"
    
    After these words, the Mason, as if tired by his long discourse, again
    leaned his arms on the back of the sofa and closed his eyes. Pierre
    looked at that aged, stern, motionless, almost lifeless face and moved
    his lips without uttering a sound. He wished to say, "Yes, a vile, idle,
    vicious life!" but dared not break the silence.
    
    The Mason cleared his throat huskily, as old men do, and called his
    servant.
    
    "How about the horses?" he asked, without looking at Pierre.
    
    "The exchange horses have just come," answered the servant. "Will you
    not rest here?"
    
    "No, tell them to harness."
    
    "Can he really be going away leaving me alone without having told me
    all, and without promising to help me?" thought Pierre, rising with
    downcast head; and he began to pace the room, glancing occasionally at
    the Mason. "Yes, I never thought of it, but I have led a contemptible
    and profligate life, though I did not like it and did not want to,"
    thought Pierre. "But this man knows the truth and, if he wished to,
    could disclose it to me."
    
    Pierre wished to say this to the Mason, but did not dare to. The
    traveler, having packed his things with his practiced hands, began
    fastening his coat. When he had finished, he turned to Bezukhov, and
    said in a tone of indifferent politeness:
    
    "Where are you going to now, my dear sir?"
    
    "I?... I'm going to Petersburg," answered Pierre, in a childlike,
    hesitating voice. "I thank you. I agree with all you have said. But do
    not suppose me to be so bad. With my whole soul I wish to be what you
    would have me be, but I have never had help from anyone.... But it is I,
    above all, who am to blame for everything. Help me, teach me, and
    perhaps I may..."
    
    Pierre could not go on. He gulped and turned away.
    
    The Mason remained silent for a long time, evidently considering.
    
    "Help comes from God alone," he said, "but such measure of help as our
    Order can bestow it will render you, my dear sir. You are going to
    Petersburg. Hand this to Count Willarski" (he took out his notebook and
    wrote a few words on a large sheet of paper folded in four). "Allow me
    to give you a piece of advice. When you reach the capital, first of all
    devote some time to solitude and self-examination and do not resume your
    former way of life. And now I wish you a good journey, my dear sir," he
    added, seeing that his servant had entered... "and success."
    
    The traveler was Joseph Alexeevich Bazdeev, as Pierre saw from the
    postmaster's book. Bazdeev had been one of the best-known Freemasons and
    Martinists, even in Novikov's time. For a long while after he had gone,
    Pierre did not go to bed or order horses but paced up and down the room,
    pondering over his vicious past, and with a rapturous sense of beginning
    anew pictured to himself the blissful, irreproachable, virtuous future
    that seemed to him so easy. It seemed to him that he had been vicious
    only because he had somehow forgotten how good it is to be virtuous. Not
    a trace of his former doubts remained in his soul. He firmly believed in
    the possibility of the brotherhood of men united in the aim of
    supporting one another in the path of virtue, and that is how
    Freemasonry presented itself to him.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    On reaching Petersburg Pierre did not let anyone know of his arrival, he
    went nowhere and spent whole days in reading Thomas a Kempis, whose book
    had been sent him by someone unknown. One thing he continually realized
    as he read that book: the joy, hitherto unknown to him, of believing in
    the possibility of attaining perfection, and in the possibility of
    active brotherly love among men, which Joseph Alexeevich had revealed to
    him. A week after his arrival, the young Polish count, Willarski, whom
    Pierre had known slightly in Petersburg society, came into his room one
    evening in the official and ceremonious manner in which Dolokhov's
    second had called on him, and, having closed the door behind him and
    satisfied himself that there was nobody else in the room, addressed
    Pierre.
    
    "I have come to you with a message and an offer, Count," he said without
    sitting down. "A person of very high standing in our Brotherhood has
    made application for you to be received into our Order before the usual
    term and has proposed to me to be your sponsor. I consider it a sacred
    duty to fulfill that person's wishes. Do you wish to enter the
    Brotherhood of Freemasons under my sponsorship?"
    
    The cold, austere tone of this man, whom he had almost always before met
    at balls, amiably smiling in the society of the most brilliant women,
    surprised Pierre.
    
    "Yes, I do wish it," said he.
    
    Willarski bowed his head.
    
    "One more question, Count," he said, "which I beg you to answer in all
    sincerity--not as a future Mason but as an honest man: have you
    renounced your former convictions--do you believe in God?"
    
    Pierre considered.
    
    "Yes... yes, I believe in God," he said.
    
    "In that case..." began Willarski, but Pierre interrupted him.
    
    "Yes, I do believe in God," he repeated.
    
    "In that case we can go," said Willarski. "My carriage is at your
    service."
    
    Willarski was silent throughout the drive. To Pierre's inquiries as to
    what he must do and how he should answer, Willarski only replied that
    brothers more worthy than he would test him and that Pierre had only to
    tell the truth.
    
    Having entered the courtyard of a large house where the Lodge had its
    headquarters, and having ascended a dark staircase, they entered a small
    well-lit anteroom where they took off their cloaks without the aid of a
    servant. From there they passed into another room. A man in strange
    attire appeared at the door. Willarski, stepping toward him, said
    something to him in French in an undertone and then went up to a small
    wardrobe in which Pierre noticed garments such as he had never seen
    before. Having taken a kerchief from the cupboard, Willarski bound
    Pierre's eyes with it and tied it in a knot behind, catching some hairs
    painfully in the knot. Then he drew his face down, kissed him, and
    taking him by the hand led him forward. The hairs tied in the knot hurt
    Pierre and there were lines of pain on his face and a shamefaced smile.
    His huge figure, with arms hanging down and with a puckered, though
    smiling face, moved after Willarski with uncertain, timid steps.
    
    Having led him about ten paces, Willarski stopped.
    
    "Whatever happens to you," he said, "you must bear it all manfully if
    you have firmly resolved to join our Brotherhood." (Pierre nodded
    affirmatively.) "When you hear a knock at the door, you will uncover
    your eyes," added Willarski. "I wish you courage and success," and,
    pressing Pierre's hand, he went out.
    
    Left alone, Pierre went on smiling in the same way. Once or twice he
    shrugged his shoulders and raised his hand to the kerchief, as if
    wishing to take it off, but let it drop again. The five minutes spent
    with his eyes bandaged seemed to him an hour. His arms felt numb, his
    legs almost gave way, it seemed to him that he was tired out. He
    experienced a variety of most complex sensations. He felt afraid of what
    would happen to him and still more afraid of showing his fear. He felt
    curious to know what was going to happen and what would be revealed to
    him; but most of all, he felt joyful that the moment had come when he
    would at last start on that path of regeneration and on the actively
    virtuous life of which he had been dreaming since he met Joseph
    Alexeevich. Loud knocks were heard at the door. Pierre took the bandage
    off his eyes and glanced around him. The room was in black darkness,
    only a small lamp was burning inside something white. Pierre went nearer
    and saw that the lamp stood on a black table on which lay an open book.
    The book was the Gospel, and the white thing with the lamp inside was a
    human skull with its cavities and teeth. After reading the first words
    of the Gospel: "In the beginning was the Word and the Word was with
    God," Pierre went round the table and saw a large open box filled with
    something. It was a coffin with bones inside. He was not at all
    surprised by what he saw. Hoping to enter on an entirely new life quite
    unlike the old one, he expected everything to be unusual, even more
    unusual than what he was seeing. A skull, a coffin, the Gospel--it
    seemed to him that he had expected all this and even more. Trying to
    stimulate his emotions he looked around. "God, death, love, the
    brotherhood of man," he kept saying to himself, associating these words
    with vague yet joyful ideas. The door opened and someone came in.
    
    By the dim light, to which Pierre had already become accustomed, he saw
    a rather short man. Having evidently come from the light into the
    darkness, the man paused, then moved with cautious steps toward the
    table and placed on it his small leather-gloved hands.
    
    This short man had on a white leather apron which covered his chest and
    part of his legs; he had on a kind of necklace above which rose a high
    white ruffle, outlining his rather long face which was lit up from
    below.
    
    "For what have you come hither?" asked the newcomer, turning in Pierre's
    direction at a slight rustle made by the latter. "Why have you, who do
    not believe in the truth of the light and who have not seen the light,
    come here? What do you seek from us? Wisdom, virtue, enlightenment?"
    
    At the moment the door opened and the stranger came in, Pierre felt a
    sense of awe and veneration such as he had experienced in his boyhood at
    confession; he felt himself in the presence of one socially a complete
    stranger, yet nearer to him through the brotherhood of man. With bated
    breath and beating heart he moved toward the Rhetor (by which name the
    brother who prepared a seeker for entrance into the Brotherhood was
    known). Drawing nearer, he recognized in the Rhetor a man he knew,
    Smolyaninov, and it mortified him to think that the newcomer was an
    acquaintance--he wished him simply a brother and a virtuous instructor.
    For a long time he could not utter a word, so that the Rhetor had to
    repeat his question.
    
    "Yes... I... I... desire regeneration," Pierre uttered with difficulty.
    
    "Very well," said Smolyaninov, and went on at once: "Have you any idea
    of the means by which our holy Order will help you to reach your aim?"
    said he quietly and quickly.
    
    "I... hope... for guidance... help... in regeneration," said Pierre,
    with a trembling voice and some difficulty in utterance due to his
    excitement and to being unaccustomed to speak of abstract matters in
    Russian.
    
    "What is your conception of Freemasonry?"
    
    "I imagine that Freemasonry is the fraternity and equality of men who
    have virtuous aims," said Pierre, feeling ashamed of the inadequacy of
    his words for the solemnity of the moment, as he spoke. "I imagine..."
    
    "Good!" said the Rhetor quickly, apparently satisfied with this answer.
    "Have you sought for means of attaining your aim in religion?"
    
    "No, I considered it erroneous and did not follow it," said Pierre, so
    softly that the Rhetor did not hear him and asked him what he was
    saying. "I have been an atheist," answered Pierre.
    
    "You are seeking for truth in order to follow its laws in your life,
    therefore you seek wisdom and virtue. Is that not so?" said the Rhetor,
    after a moment's pause.
    
    "Yes, yes," assented Pierre.
    
    The Rhetor cleared his throat, crossed his gloved hands on his breast,
    and began to speak.
    
    "Now I must disclose to you the chief aim of our Order," he said, "and
    if this aim coincides with yours, you may enter our Brotherhood with
    profit. The first and chief object of our Order, the foundation on which
    it rests and which no human power can destroy, is the preservation and
    handing on to posterity of a certain important mystery... which has come
    down to us from the remotest ages, even from the first man--a mystery on
    which perhaps the fate of mankind depends. But since this mystery is of
    such a nature that nobody can know or use it unless he be prepared by
    long and diligent self-purification, not everyone can hope to attain it
    quickly. Hence we have a secondary aim, that of preparing our members as
    much as possible to reform their hearts, to purify and enlighten their
    minds, by means handed on to us by tradition from those who have striven
    to attain this mystery, and thereby to render them capable of receiving
    it.
    
    "By purifying and regenerating our members we try, thirdly, to improve
    the whole human race, offering it in our members an example of piety and
    virtue, and thereby try with all our might to combat the evil which
    sways the world. Think this over and I will come to you again."
    
    "To combat the evil which sways the world..." Pierre repeated, and a
    mental image of his future activity in this direction rose in his mind.
    He imagined men such as he had himself been a fortnight ago, and he
    addressed an edifying exhortation to them. He imagined to himself
    vicious and unfortunate people whom he would assist by word and deed,
    imagined oppressors whose victims he would rescue. Of the three objects
    mentioned by the Rhetor, this last, that of improving mankind,
    especially appealed to Pierre. The important mystery mentioned by the
    Rhetor, though it aroused his curiosity, did not seem to him essential,
    and the second aim, that of purifying and regenerating himself, did not
    much interest him because at that moment he felt with delight that he
    was already perfectly cured of his former faults and was ready for all
    that was good.
    
    Half an hour later, the Rhetor returned to inform the seeker of the
    seven virtues, corresponding to the seven steps of Solomon's temple,
    which every Freemason should cultivate in himself. These virtues were:
    1. Discretion, the keeping of the secrets of the Order. 2. Obedience to
    those of higher ranks in the Order. 3. Morality. 4. Love of mankind. 5.
    Courage. 6. Generosity. 7. The love of death.
    
    "In the seventh place, try, by the frequent thought of death," the
    Rhetor said, "to bring yourself to regard it not as a dreaded foe, but
    as a friend that frees the soul grown weary in the labors of virtue from
    this distressful life, and leads it to its place of recompense and
    peace."
    
    "Yes, that must be so," thought Pierre, when after these words the
    Rhetor went away, leaving him to solitary meditation. "It must be so,
    but I am still so weak that I love my life, the meaning of which is only
    now gradually opening before me." But five of the other virtues which
    Pierre recalled, counting them on his fingers, he felt already in his
    soul: courage, generosity, morality, love of mankind, and especially
    obedience--which did not even seem to him a virtue, but a joy. (He now
    felt so glad to be free from his own lawlessness and to submit his will
    to those who knew the indubitable truth.) He forgot what the seventh
    virtue was and could not recall it.
    
    The third time the Rhetor came back more quickly and asked Pierre
    whether he was still firm in his intention and determined to submit to
    all that would be required of him.
    
    "I am ready for everything," said Pierre.
    
    "I must also inform you," said the Rhetor, "that our Order delivers its
    teaching not in words only but also by other means, which may perhaps
    have a stronger effect on the sincere seeker after wisdom and virtue
    than mere words. This chamber with what you see therein should already
    have suggested to your heart, if it is sincere, more than words could
    do. You will perhaps also see in your further initiation a like method
    of enlightenment. Our Order imitates the ancient societies that
    explained their teaching by hieroglyphics. A hieroglyph," said the
    Rhetor, "is an emblem of something not cognizable by the senses but
    which possesses qualities resembling those of the symbol."
    
    Pierre knew very well what a hieroglyph was, but dared not speak. He
    listened to the Rhetor in silence, feeling from all he said that his
    ordeal was about to begin.
    
    "If you are resolved, I must begin your initiation," said the Rhetor
    coming closer to Pierre. "In token of generosity I ask you to give me
    all your valuables."
    
    "But I have nothing here," replied Pierre, supposing that he was asked
    to give up all he possessed.
    
    "What you have with you: watch, money, rings...."
    
    Pierre quickly took out his purse and watch, but could not manage for
    some time to get the wedding ring off his fat finger. When that had been
    done, the Rhetor said:
    
    "In token of obedience, I ask you to undress."
    
    Pierre took off his coat, waistcoat, and left boot according to the
    Rhetor's instructions. The Mason drew the shirt back from Pierre's left
    breast, and stooping down pulled up the left leg of his trousers to
    above the knee. Pierre hurriedly began taking off his right boot also
    and was going to tuck up the other trouser leg to save this stranger the
    trouble, but the Mason told him that was not necessary and gave him a
    slipper for his left foot. With a childlike smile of embarrassment,
    doubt, and self-derision, which appeared on his face against his will,
    Pierre stood with his arms hanging down and legs apart, before his
    brother Rhetor, and awaited his further commands.
    
    "And now, in token of candor, I ask you to reveal to me your chief
    passion," said the latter.
    
    "My passion! I have had so many," replied Pierre.
    
    "That passion which more than all others caused you to waver on the path
    of virtue," said the Mason.
    
    Pierre paused, seeking a reply.
    
    "Wine? Gluttony? Idleness? Laziness? Irritability? Anger? Women?" He
    went over his vices in his mind, not knowing to which of them to give
    the pre-eminence.
    
    "Women," he said in a low, scarcely audible voice.
    
    The Mason did not move and for a long time said nothing after this
    answer. At last he moved up to Pierre and, taking the kerchief that lay
    on the table, again bound his eyes.
    
    "For the last time I say to you--turn all your attention upon yourself,
    put a bridle on your senses, and seek blessedness, not in passion but in
    your own heart. The source of blessedness is not without us but
    within...."
    
    Pierre had already long been feeling in himself that refreshing source
    of blessedness which now flooded his heart with glad emotion.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Soon after this there came into the dark chamber to fetch Pierre, not
    the Rhetor but Pierre's sponsor, Willarski, whom he recognized by his
    voice. To fresh questions as to the firmness of his resolution Pierre
    replied: "Yes, yes, I agree," and with a beaming, childlike smile, his
    fat chest uncovered, stepping unevenly and timidly in one slippered and
    one booted foot, he advanced, while Willarski held a sword to his bare
    chest. He was conducted from that room along passages that turned
    backwards and forwards and was at last brought to the doors of the
    Lodge. Willarski coughed, he was answered by the masonic knock with
    mallets, the doors opened before them. A bass voice (Pierre was still
    blindfolded) questioned him as to who he was, when and where he was
    born, and so on. Then he was again led somewhere still blindfolded, and
    as they went along he was told allegories of the toils of his
    pilgrimage, of holy friendship, of the Eternal Architect of the
    universe, and of the courage with which he should endure toils and
    dangers. During these wanderings, Pierre noticed that he was spoken of
    now as the "Seeker," now as the "Sufferer," and now as the "Postulant,"
    to the accompaniment of various knockings with mallets and swords. As he
    was being led up to some object he noticed a hesitation and uncertainty
    among his conductors. He heard those around him disputing in whispers
    and one of them insisting that he should be led along a certain carpet.
    After that they took his right hand, placed it on something, and told
    him to hold a pair of compasses to his left breast with the other hand
    and to repeat after someone who read aloud an oath of fidelity to the
    laws of the Order. The candles were then extinguished and some spirit
    lighted, as Pierre knew by the smell, and he was told that he would now
    see the lesser light. The bandage was taken off his eyes and, by the
    faint light of the burning spirit, Pierre, as in a dream, saw several
    men standing before him, wearing aprons like the Rhetor's and holding
    swords in their hands pointed at his breast. Among them stood a man
    whose white shirt was stained with blood. On seeing this, Pierre moved
    forward with his breast toward the swords, meaning them to pierce it.
    But the swords were drawn back from him and he was at once blindfolded
    again.
    
    "Now thou hast seen the lesser light," uttered a voice. Then the candles
    were relit and he was told that he would see the full light; the bandage
    was again removed and more than ten voices said together: "Sic transit
    gloria mundi."
    
    Pierre gradually began to recover himself and looked about at the room
    and at the people in it. Round a long table covered with black sat some
    twelve men in garments like those he had already seen. Some of them
    Pierre had met in Petersburg society. In the President's chair sat a
    young man he did not know, with a peculiar cross hanging from his neck.
    On his right sat the Italian abbe whom Pierre had met at Anna Pavlovna's
    two years before. There were also present a very distinguished dignitary
    and a Swiss who had formerly been tutor at the Kuragins'. All maintained
    a solemn silence, listening to the words of the President, who held a
    mallet in his hand. Let into the wall was a star-shaped light. At one
    side of the table was a small carpet with various figures worked upon
    it, at the other was something resembling an altar on which lay a
    Testament and a skull. Round it stood seven large candlesticks like
    those used in churches. Two of the brothers led Pierre up to the altar,
    placed his feet at right angles, and bade him lie down, saying that he
    must prostrate himself at the Gates of the Temple.
    
    "He must first receive the trowel," whispered one of the brothers.
    
    "Oh, hush, please!" said another.
    
    Pierre, perplexed, looked round with his shortsighted eyes without
    obeying, and suddenly doubts arose in his mind. "Where am I? What am I
    doing? Aren't they laughing at me? Shan't I be ashamed to remember
    this?" But these doubts only lasted a moment. Pierre glanced at the
    serious faces of those around, remembered all he had already gone
    through, and realized that he could not stop halfway. He was aghast at
    his hesitation and, trying to arouse his former devotional feeling,
    prostrated himself before the Gates of the Temple. And really, the
    feeling of devotion returned to him even more strongly than before. When
    he had lain there some time, he was told to get up, and a white leather
    apron, such as the others wore, was put on him: he was given a trowel
    and three pairs of gloves, and then the Grand Master addressed him. He
    told him that he should try to do nothing to stain the whiteness of that
    apron, which symbolized strength and purity; then of the unexplained
    trowel, he told him to toil with it to cleanse his own heart from vice,
    and indulgently to smooth with it the heart of his neighbor. As to the
    first pair of gloves, a man's, he said that Pierre could not know their
    meaning but must keep them. The second pair of man's gloves he was to
    wear at the meetings, and finally of the third, a pair of women's
    gloves, he said: "Dear brother, these woman's gloves are intended for
    you too. Give them to the woman whom you shall honor most of all. This
    gift will be a pledge of your purity of heart to her whom you select to
    be your worthy helpmeet in Masonry." And after a pause, he added: "But
    beware, dear brother, that these gloves do not deck hands that are
    unclean." While the Grand Master said these last words it seemed to
    Pierre that he grew embarrassed. Pierre himself grew still more
    confused, blushed like a child till tears came to his eyes, began
    looking about him uneasily, and an awkward pause followed.
    
    This silence was broken by one of the brethren, who led Pierre up to the
    rug and began reading to him from a manuscript book an explanation of
    all the figures on it: the sun, the moon, a hammer, a plumb line, a
    trowel, a rough stone and a squared stone, a pillar, three windows, and
    so on. Then a place was assigned to Pierre, he was shown the signs of
    the Lodge, told the password, and at last was permitted to sit down. The
    Grand Master began reading the statutes. They were very long, and
    Pierre, from joy, agitation, and embarrassment, was not in a state to
    understand what was being read. He managed to follow only the last words
    of the statutes and these remained in his mind.
    
    "In our temples we recognize no other distinctions," read the Grand
    Master, "but those between virtue and vice. Beware of making any
    distinctions which may infringe equality. Fly to a brother's aid whoever
    he may be, exhort him who goeth astray, raise him that falleth, never
    bear malice or enmity toward thy brother. Be kindly and courteous.
    Kindle in all hearts the flame of virtue. Share thy happiness with thy
    neighbor, and may envy never dim the purity of that bliss. Forgive thy
    enemy, do not avenge thyself except by doing him good. Thus fulfilling
    the highest law thou shalt regain traces of the ancient dignity which
    thou hast lost."
    
    He finished and, getting up, embraced and kissed Pierre, who, with tears
    of joy in his eyes, looked round him, not knowing how to answer the
    congratulations and greetings from acquaintances that met him on all
    sides. He acknowledged no acquaintances but saw in all these men only
    brothers, and burned with impatience to set to work with them.
    
    The Grand Master rapped with his mallet. All the Masons sat down in
    their places, and one of them read an exhortation on the necessity of
    humility.
    
    The Grand Master proposed that the last duty should be performed, and
    the distinguished dignitary who bore the title of "Collector of Alms"
    went round to all the brothers. Pierre would have liked to subscribe all
    he had, but fearing that it might look like pride subscribed the same
    amount as the others.
    
    The meeting was at an end, and on reaching home Pierre felt as if he had
    returned from a long journey on which he had spent dozens of years, had
    become completely changed, and had quite left behind his former habits
    and way of life.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    The day after he had been received into the Lodge, Pierre was sitting at
    home reading a book and trying to fathom the significance of the Square,
    one side of which symbolized God, another moral things, a third physical
    things, and the fourth a combination of these. Now and then his
    attention wandered from the book and the Square and he formed in
    imagination a new plan of life. On the previous evening at the Lodge, he
    had heard that a rumor of his duel had reached the Emperor and that it
    would be wiser for him to leave Petersburg. Pierre proposed going to his
    estates in the south and there attending to the welfare of his serfs. He
    was joyfully planning this new life, when Prince Vasili suddenly entered
    the room.
    
    "My dear fellow, what have you been up to in Moscow? Why have you
    quarreled with Helene, mon cher? You are under a delusion," said Prince
    Vasili, as he entered. "I know all about it, and I can tell you
    positively that Helene is as innocent before you as Christ was before
    the Jews."
    
    Pierre was about to reply, but Prince Vasili interrupted him.
    
    "And why didn't you simply come straight to me as to a friend? I know
    all about it and understand it all," he said. "You behaved as becomes a
    man who values his honor, perhaps too hastily, but we won't go into
    that. But consider the position in which you are placing her and me in
    the eyes of society, and even of the court," he added, lowering his
    voice. "She is living in Moscow and you are here. Remember, dear boy,"
    and he drew Pierre's arm downwards, "it is simply a misunderstanding. I
    expect you feel it so yourself. Let us write her a letter at once, and
    she'll come here and all will be explained, or else, my dear boy, let me
    tell you it's quite likely you'll have to suffer for it."
    
    Prince Vasili gave Pierre a significant look.
    
    "I know from reliable sources that the Dowager Empress is taking a keen
    interest in the whole affair. You know she is very gracious to Helene."
    
    Pierre tried several times to speak, but, on one hand, Prince Vasili did
    not let him and, on the other, Pierre himself feared to begin to speak
    in the tone of decided refusal and disagreement in which he had firmly
    resolved to answer his father-in-law. Moreover, the words of the masonic
    statutes, "be kindly and courteous," recurred to him. He blinked, went
    red, got up and sat down again, struggling with himself to do what was
    for him the most difficult thing in life--to say an unpleasant thing to
    a man's face, to say what the other, whoever he might be, did not
    expect. He was so used to submitting to Prince Vasili's tone of careless
    self-assurance that he felt he would be unable to withstand it now, but
    he also felt that on what he said now his future depended--whether he
    would follow the same old road, or that new path so attractively shown
    him by the Masons, on which he firmly believed he would be reborn to a
    new life.
    
    "Now, dear boy," said Prince Vasili playfully, "say 'yes,' and I'll
    write to her myself, and we will kill the fatted calf."
    
    But before Prince Vasili had finished his playful speech, Pierre,
    without looking at him, and with a kind of fury that made him like his
    father, muttered in a whisper:
    
    "Prince, I did not ask you here. Go, please go!" And he jumped up and
    opened the door for him.
    
    "Go!" he repeated, amazed at himself and glad to see the look of
    confusion and fear that showed itself on Prince Vasili's face.
    
    "What's the matter with you? Are you ill?"
    
    "Go!" the quivering voice repeated. And Prince Vasili had to go without
    receiving any explanation.
    
    A week later, Pierre, having taken leave of his new friends, the Masons,
    and leaving large sums of money with them for alms, went away to his
    estates. His new brethren gave him letters to the Kiev and Odessa Masons
    and promised to write to him and guide him in his new activity.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    The duel between Pierre and Dolokhov was hushed up and, in spite of the
    Emperor's severity regarding duels at that time, neither the principals
    nor their seconds suffered for it. But the story of the duel, confirmed
    by Pierre's rupture with his wife, was the talk of society. Pierre who
    had been regarded with patronizing condescension when he was an
    illegitimate son, and petted and extolled when he was the best match in
    Russia, had sunk greatly in the esteem of society after his marriage--
    when the marriageable daughters and their mothers had nothing to hope
    from him--especially as he did not know how, and did not wish, to court
    society's favor. Now he alone was blamed for what had happened, he was
    said to be insanely jealous and subject like his father to fits of
    bloodthirsty rage. And when after Pierre's departure Helene returned to
    Petersburg, she was received by all her acquaintances not only
    cordially, but even with a shade of deference due to her misfortune.
    When conversation turned on her husband Helene assumed a dignified
    expression, which with characteristic tact she had acquired though she
    did not understand its significance. This expression suggested that she
    had resolved to endure her troubles uncomplainingly and that her husband
    was a cross laid upon her by God. Prince Vasili expressed his opinion
    more openly. He shrugged his shoulders when Pierre was mentioned and,
    pointing to his forehead, remarked:
    
    "A bit touched--I always said so."
    
    "I said from the first," declared Anna Pavlovna referring to Pierre, "I
    said at the time and before anyone else" (she insisted on her priority)
    "that that senseless young man was spoiled by the depraved ideas of
    these days. I said so even at the time when everybody was in raptures
    about him, when he had just returned from abroad, and when, if you
    remember, he posed as a sort of Marat at one of my soirees. And how has
    it ended? I was against this marriage even then and foretold all that
    has happened."
    
    Anna Pavlovna continued to give on free evenings the same kind of
    soirees as before--such as she alone had the gift of arranging--at which
    was to be found "the cream of really good society, the bloom of the
    intellectual essence of Petersburg," as she herself put it. Besides this
    refined selection of society Anna Pavlovna's receptions were also
    distinguished by the fact that she always presented some new and
    interesting person to the visitors and that nowhere else was the state
    of the political thermometer of legitimate Petersburg court society so
    dearly and distinctly indicated.
    
    Toward the end of 1806, when all the sad details of Napoleon's
    destruction of the Prussian army at Jena and Auerstadt and the surrender
    of most of the Prussian fortresses had been received, when our troops
    had already entered Prussia and our second war with Napoleon was
    beginning, Anna Pavlovna gave one of her soirees. The "cream of really
    good society" consisted of the fascinating Helene, forsaken by her
    husband, Mortemart, the delightful Prince Hippolyte who had just
    returned from Vienna, two diplomatists, the old aunt, a young man
    referred to in that drawing room as "a man of great merit" (un homme de
    beaucoup de merite), a newly appointed maid of honor and her mother, and
    several other less noteworthy persons.
    
    The novelty Anna Pavlovna was setting before her guests that evening was
    Boris Drubetskoy, who had just arrived as a special messenger from the
    Prussian army and was aide-de-camp to a very important personage.
    
    The temperature shown by the political thermometer to the company that
    evening was this:
    
    "Whatever the European sovereigns and commanders may do to countenance
    Bonaparte, and to cause me, and us in general, annoyance and
    mortification, our opinion of Bonaparte cannot alter. We shall not cease
    to express our sincere views on that subject, and can only say to the
    King of Prussia and others: 'So much the worse for you. Tu l'as voulu,
    George Dandin,' that's all we have to say about it!"
    
    When Boris, who was to be served up to the guests, entered the drawing
    room, almost all the company had assembled, and the conversation, guided
    by Anna Pavlovna, was about our diplomatic relations with Austria and
    the hope of an alliance with her.
    
    Boris, grown more manly and looking fresh, rosy and self-possessed,
    entered the drawing room elegantly dressed in the uniform of an aide-de-
    camp and was duly conducted to pay his respects to the aunt and then
    brought back to the general circle.
    
    Anna Pavlovna gave him her shriveled hand to kiss and introduced him to
    several persons whom he did not know, giving him a whispered description
    of each.
    
    "Prince Hippolyte Kuragin, M. Krug, the charge d'affaires from
    Copenhagen--a profound intellect," and simply, "Mr. Shitov--a man of
    great merit"--this of the man usually so described.
    
    Thanks to Anna Mikhaylovna's efforts, his own tastes, and the
    peculiarities of his reserved nature, Boris had managed during his
    service to place himself very advantageously. He was aide-de-camp to a
    very important personage, had been sent on a very important mission to
    Prussia, and had just returned from there as a special messenger. He had
    become thoroughly conversant with that unwritten code with which he had
    been so pleased at Olmutz and according to which an ensign might rank
    incomparably higher than a general, and according to which what was
    needed for success in the service was not effort or work, or courage, or
    perseverance, but only the knowledge of how to get on with those who can
    grant rewards, and he was himself often surprised at the rapidity of his
    success and at the inability of others to understand these things. In
    consequence of this discovery his whole manner of life, all his
    relations with old friends, all his plans for his future, were
    completely altered. He was not rich, but would spend his last groat to
    be better dressed than others, and would rather deprive himself of many
    pleasures than allow himself to be seen in a shabby equipage or appear
    in the streets of Petersburg in an old uniform. He made friends with and
    sought the acquaintance of only those above him in position and who
    could therefore be of use to him. He liked Petersburg and despised
    Moscow. The remembrance of the Rostovs' house and of his childish love
    for Natasha was unpleasant to him and he had not once been to see the
    Rostovs since the day of his departure for the army. To be in Anna
    Pavlovna's drawing room he considered an important step up in the
    service, and he at once understood his role, letting his hostess make
    use of whatever interest he had to offer. He himself carefully scanned
    each face, appraising the possibilities of establishing intimacy with
    each of those present, and the advantages that might accrue. He took the
    seat indicated to him beside the fair Helene and listened to the general
    conversation.
    
    "Vienna considers the bases of the proposed treaty so unattainable that
    not even a continuity of most brilliant successes would secure them, and
    she doubts the means we have of gaining them. That is the actual phrase
    used by the Vienna cabinet," said the Danish charge d'affaires.
    
    "The doubt is flattering," said "the man of profound intellect," with a
    subtle smile.
    
    "We must distinguish between the Vienna cabinet and the Emperor of
    Austria," said Mortemart. "The Emperor of Austria can never have thought
    of such a thing, it is only the cabinet that says it."
    
    "Ah, my dear vicomte," put in Anna Pavlovna, "L'Urope" (for some reason
    she called it Urope as if that were a specially refined French
    pronunciation which she could allow herself when conversing with a
    Frenchman), "L'Urope ne sera jamais notre alliee sincere." *
    
    * "Europe will never be our sincere ally."
    
    After that Anna Pavlovna led up to the courage and firmness of the King
    of Prussia, in order to draw Boris into the conversation.
    
    Boris listened attentively to each of the speakers, awaiting his turn,
    but managed meanwhile to look round repeatedly at his neighbor, the
    beautiful Helene, whose eyes several times met those of the handsome
    young aide-de-camp with a smile.
    
    Speaking of the position of Prussia, Anna Pavlovna very naturally asked
    Boris to tell them about his journey to Glogau and in what state he
    found the Prussian army. Boris, speaking with deliberation, told them in
    pure, correct French many interesting details about the armies and the
    court, carefully abstaining from expressing an opinion of his own about
    the facts he was recounting. For some time he engrossed the general
    attention, and Anna Pavlovna felt that the novelty she had served up was
    received with pleasure by all her visitors. The greatest attention of
    all to Boris' narrative was shown by Helene. She asked him several
    questions about his journey and seemed greatly interested in the state
    of the Prussian army. As soon as he had finished she turned to him with
    her usual smile.
    
    "You absolutely must come and see me," she said in a tone that implied
    that, for certain considerations he could not know of, this was
    absolutely necessary.
    
    "On Tuesday between eight and nine. It will give me great pleasure."
    
    Boris promised to fulfill her wish and was about to begin a conversation
    with her, when Anna Pavlovna called him away on the pretext that her
    aunt wished to hear him.
    
    "You know her husband, of course?" said Anna Pavlovna, closing her eyes
    and indicating Helene with a sorrowful gesture. "Ah, she is such an
    unfortunate and charming woman! Don't mention him before her--please
    don't! It is too painful for her!"
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    When Boris and Anna Pavlovna returned to the others Prince Hippolyte had
    the ear of the company.
    
    Bending forward in his armchair he said: "Le Roi de Prusse!" and having
    said this laughed. Everyone turned toward him.
    
    "Le Roi de Prusse?" Hippolyte said interrogatively, again laughing, and
    then calmly and seriously sat back in his chair. Anna Pavlovna waited
    for him to go on, but as he seemed quite decided to say no more she
    began to tell of how at Potsdam the impious Bonaparte had stolen the
    sword of Frederick the Great.
    
    "It is the sword of Frederick the Great which I..." she began, but
    Hippolyte interrupted her with the words: "Le Roi de Prusse..." and
    again, as soon as all turned toward him, excused himself and said no
    more.
    
    Anna Pavlovna frowned. Mortemart, Hippolyte's friend, addressed him
    firmly.
    
    "Come now, what about your Roi de Prusse?"
    
    Hippolyte laughed as if ashamed of laughing.
    
    "Oh, it's nothing. I only wished to say..." (he wanted to repeat a joke
    he had heard in Vienna and which he had been trying all that evening to
    get in) "I only wished to say that we are wrong to fight pour le Roi de
    Prusse!"
    
    Boris smiled circumspectly, so that it might be taken as ironical or
    appreciative according to the way the joke was received. Everybody
    laughed.
    
    "Your joke is too bad, it's witty but unjust," said Anna Pavlovna,
    shaking her little shriveled finger at him.
    
    "We are not fighting pour le Roi de Prusse, but for right principles.
    Oh, that wicked Prince Hippolyte!" she said.
    
    The conversation did not flag all evening and turned chiefly on the
    political news. It became particularly animated toward the end of the
    evening when the rewards bestowed by the Emperor were mentioned.
    
    "You know N-- N-- received a snuffbox with the portrait last year?" said
    "the man of profound intellect." "Why shouldn't S-- S-- get the same
    distinction?"
    
    "Pardon me! A snuffbox with the Emperor's portrait is a reward but not a
    distinction," said the diplomatist--"a gift, rather."
    
    "There are precedents, I may mention Schwarzenberg."
    
    "It's impossible," replied another.
    
    "Will you bet? The ribbon of the order is a different matter...."
    
    When everybody rose to go, Helene who had spoken very little all the
    evening again turned to Boris, asking him in a tone of caressing
    significant command to come to her on Tuesday.
    
    "It is of great importance to me," she said, turning with a smile toward
    Anna Pavlovna, and Anna Pavlovna, with the same sad smile with which she
    spoke of her exalted patroness, supported Helene's wish.
    
    It seemed as if from some words Boris had spoken that evening about the
    Prussian army, Helene had suddenly found it necessary to see him. She
    seemed to promise to explain that necessity to him when he came on
    Tuesday.
    
    But on Tuesday evening, having come to Helene's splendid salon, Boris
    received no clear explanation of why it had been necessary for him to
    come. There were other guests and the countess talked little to him, and
    only as he kissed her hand on taking leave said unexpectedly and in a
    whisper, with a strangely unsmiling face: "Come to dinner tomorrow... in
    the evening. You must come.... Come!"
    
    During that stay in Petersburg, Boris became an intimate in the
    countess' house.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    The war was flaming up and nearing the Russian frontier. Everywhere one
    heard curses on Bonaparte, "the enemy of mankind." Militiamen and
    recruits were being enrolled in the villages, and from the seat of war
    came contradictory news, false as usual and therefore variously
    interpreted. The life of old Prince Bolkonski, Prince Andrew, and
    Princess Mary had greatly changed since 1805.
    
    In 1806 the old prince was made one of the eight commanders in chief
    then appointed to supervise the enrollment decreed throughout Russia.
    Despite the weakness of age, which had become particularly noticeable
    since the time when he thought his son had been killed, he did not think
    it right to refuse a duty to which he had been appointed by the Emperor
    himself, and this fresh opportunity for action gave him new energy and
    strength. He was continually traveling through the three provinces
    entrusted to him, was pedantic in the fulfillment of his duties, severe
    to cruel with his subordinates, and went into everything down to the
    minutest details himself. Princess Mary had ceased taking lessons in
    mathematics from her father, and when the old prince was at home went to
    his study with the wet nurse and little Prince Nicholas (as his
    grandfather called him). The baby Prince Nicholas lived with his wet
    nurse and nurse Savishna in the late princess' rooms and Princess Mary
    spent most of the day in the nursery, taking a mother's place to her
    little nephew as best she could. Mademoiselle Bourienne, too, seemed
    passionately fond of the boy, and Princess Mary often deprived herself
    to give her friend the pleasure of dandling the little angel--as she
    called her nephew--and playing with him.
    
    Near the altar of the church at Bald Hills there was a chapel over the
    tomb of the little princess, and in this chapel was a marble monument
    brought from Italy, representing an angel with outspread wings ready to
    fly upwards. The angel's upper lip was slightly raised as though about
    to smile, and once on coming out of the chapel Prince Andrew and
    Princess Mary admitted to one another that the angel's face reminded
    them strangely of the little princess. But what was still stranger,
    though of this Prince Andrew said nothing to his sister, was that in the
    expression the sculptor had happened to give the angel's face, Prince
    Andrew read the same mild reproach he had read on the face of his dead
    wife: "Ah, why have you done this to me?"
    
    Soon after Prince Andrew's return the old prince made over to him a
    large estate, Bogucharovo, about twenty-five miles from Bald Hills.
    Partly because of the depressing memories associated with Bald Hills,
    partly because Prince Andrew did not always feel equal to bearing with
    his father's peculiarities, and partly because he needed solitude,
    Prince Andrew made use of Bogucharovo, began building and spent most of
    his time there.
    
    After the Austerlitz campaign Prince Andrew had firmly resolved not to
    continue his military service, and when the war recommenced and
    everybody had to serve, he took a post under his father in the
    recruitment so as to avoid active service. The old prince and his son
    seemed to have changed roles since the campaign of 1805. The old man,
    roused by activity, expected the best results from the new campaign,
    while Prince Andrew on the contrary, taking no part in the war and
    secretly regretting this, saw only the dark side.
    
    On February 26, 1807, the old prince set off on one of his circuits.
    Prince Andrew remained at Bald Hills as usual during his father's
    absence. Little Nicholas had been unwell for four days. The coachman who
    had driven the old prince to town returned bringing papers and letters
    for Prince Andrew.
    
    Not finding the young prince in his study the valet went with the
    letters to Princess Mary's apartments, but did not find him there. He
    was told that the prince had gone to the nursery.
    
    "If you please, your excellency, Petrusha has brought some papers," said
    one of the nursemaids to Prince Andrew who was sitting on a child's
    little chair while, frowning and with trembling hands, he poured drops
    from a medicine bottle into a wineglass half full of water.
    
    "What is it?" he said crossly, and, his hand shaking unintentionally, he
    poured too many drops into the glass. He threw the mixture onto the
    floor and asked for some more water. The maid brought it.
    
    There were in the room a child's cot, two boxes, two armchairs, a table,
    a child's table, and the little chair on which Prince Andrew was
    sitting. The curtains were drawn, and a single candle was burning on the
    table, screened by a bound music book so that the light did not fall on
    the cot.
    
    "My dear," said Princess Mary, addressing her brother from beside the
    cot where she was standing, "better wait a bit... later..."
    
    "Oh, leave off, you always talk nonsense and keep putting things off--
    and this is what comes of it!" said Prince Andrew in an exasperated
    whisper, evidently meaning to wound his sister.
    
    "My dear, really... it's better not to wake him... he's asleep," said
    the princess in a tone of entreaty.
    
    Prince Andrew got up and went on tiptoe up to the little bed, wineglass
    in hand.
    
    "Perhaps we'd really better not wake him," he said hesitating.
    
    "As you please... really... I think so... but as you please," said
    Princess Mary, evidently intimidated and confused that her opinion had
    prevailed. She drew her brother's attention to the maid who was calling
    him in a whisper.
    
    It was the second night that neither of them had slept, watching the boy
    who was in a high fever. These last days, mistrusting their household
    doctor and expecting another for whom they had sent to town, they had
    been trying first one remedy and then another. Worn out by sleeplessness
    and anxiety they threw their burden of sorrow on one another and
    reproached and disputed with each other.
    
    "Petrusha has come with papers from your father," whispered the maid.
    
    Prince Andrew went out.
    
    "Devil take them!" he muttered, and after listening to the verbal
    instructions his father had sent and taking the correspondence and his
    father's letter, he returned to the nursery.
    
    "Well?" he asked.
    
    "Still the same. Wait, for heaven's sake. Karl Ivanich always says that
    sleep is more important than anything," whispered Princess Mary with a
    sigh.
    
    Prince Andrew went up to the child and felt him. He was burning hot.
    
    "Confound you and your Karl Ivanich!" He took the glass with the drops
    and again went up to the cot.
    
    "Andrew, don't!" said Princess Mary.
    
    But he scowled at her angrily though also with suffering in his eyes,
    and stooped glass in hand over the infant.
    
    "But I wish it," he said. "I beg you--give it him!"
    
    Princess Mary shrugged her shoulders but took the glass submissively and
    calling the nurse began giving the medicine. The child screamed
    hoarsely. Prince Andrew winced and, clutching his head, went out and sat
    down on a sofa in the next room.
    
    He still had all the letters in his hand. Opening them mechanically he
    began reading. The old prince, now and then using abbreviations, wrote
    in his large elongated hand on blue paper as follows:
    
    Have just this moment received by special messenger very joyful news--if
    it's not false. Bennigsen seems to have obtained a complete victory over
    Buonaparte at Eylau. In Petersburg everyone is rejoicing, and the
    rewards sent to the army are innumerable. Though he is a German--I
    congratulate him! I can't make out what the commander at Korchevo--a
    certain Khandrikov--is up to; till now the additional men and provisions
    have not arrived. Gallop off to him at once and say I'll have his head
    off if everything is not here in a week. Have received another letter
    about the Preussisch-Eylau battle from Petenka--he took part in it--and
    it's all true. When mischief-makers don't meddle even a German beats
    Buonaparte. He is said to be fleeing in great disorder. Mind you gallop
    off to Korchevo without delay and carry out instructions!
    
    Prince Andrew sighed and broke the seal of another envelope. It was a
    closely written letter of two sheets from Bilibin. He folded it up
    without reading it and reread his father's letter, ending with the
    words: "Gallop off to Korchevo and carry out instructions!"
    
    "No, pardon me, I won't go now till the child is better," thought he,
    going to the door and looking into the nursery.
    
    Princess Mary was still standing by the cot, gently rocking the baby.
    
    "Ah yes, and what else did he say that's unpleasant?" thought Prince
    Andrew, recalling his father's letter. "Yes, we have gained a victory
    over Bonaparte, just when I'm not serving. Yes, yes, he's always poking
    fun at me.... Ah, well! Let him!" And he began reading Bilibin's letter
    which was written in French. He read without understanding half of it,
    read only to forget, if but for a moment, what he had too long been
    thinking of so painfully to the exclusion of all else.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    Bilibin was now at army headquarters in a diplomatic capacity, and
    though he wrote in French and used French jests and French idioms, he
    described the whole campaign with a fearless self-censure and self-
    derision genuinely Russian. Bilibin wrote that the obligation of
    diplomatic discretion tormented him, and he was happy to have in Prince
    Andrew a reliable correspondent to whom he could pour out the bile he
    had accumulated at the sight of all that was being done in the army. The
    letter was old, having been written before the battle at Preussisch-
    Eylau.
    
    "Since the day of our brilliant success at Austerlitz," wrote Bilibin,
    "as you know, my dear prince, I never leave headquarters. I have
    certainly acquired a taste for war, and it is just as well for me; what
    I have seen during these last three months is incredible.
    
    "I begin ab ovo. 'The enemy of the human race,' as you know, attacks the
    Prussians. The Prussians are our faithful allies who have only betrayed
    us three times in three years. We take up their cause, but it turns out
    that 'the enemy of the human race' pays no heed to our fine speeches and
    in his rude and savage way throws himself on the Prussians without
    giving them time to finish the parade they had begun, and in two twists
    of the hand he breaks them to smithereens and installs himself in the
    palace at Potsdam.
    
    "'I most ardently desire,' writes the King of Prussia to Bonaparte,
    'that Your Majesty should be received and treated in my palace in a
    manner agreeable to yourself, and in so far as circumstances allowed, I
    have hastened to take all steps to that end. May I have succeeded!' The
    Prussian generals pride themselves on being polite to the French and lay
    down their arms at the first demand.
    
    "The head of the garrison at Glogau, with ten thousand men, asks the
    King of Prussia what he is to do if he is summoned to surrender.... All
    this is absolutely true.
    
    "In short, hoping to settle matters by taking up a warlike attitude, it
    turns out that we have landed ourselves in war, and what is more, in war
    on our own frontiers, with and for the King of Prussia. We have
    everything in perfect order, only one little thing is lacking, namely, a
    commander in chief. As it was considered that the Austerlitz success
    might have been more decisive had the commander-in-chief not been so
    young, all our octogenarians were reviewed, and of Prozorovski and
    Kamenski the latter was preferred. The general comes to us, Suvorov-
    like, in a kibitka, and is received with acclamations of joy and
    triumph.
    
    "On the 4th, the first courier arrives from Petersburg. The mails are
    taken to the field marshal's room, for he likes to do everything
    himself. I am called in to help sort the letters and take those meant
    for us. The field marshal looks on and waits for letters addressed to
    him. We search, but none are to be found. The field marshal grows
    impatient and sets to work himself and finds letters from the Emperor to
    Count T., Prince V., and others. Then he bursts into one of his wild
    furies and rages at everyone and everything, seizes the letters, opens
    them, and reads those from the Emperor addressed to others. 'Ah! So
    that's the way they treat me! No confidence in me! Ah, ordered to keep
    an eye on me! Very well then! Get along with you!' So he writes the
    famous order of the day to General Bennigsen:
    
    'I am wounded and cannot ride and consequently cannot command the army.
    You have brought your army corps to Pultusk, routed: here it is exposed,
    and without fuel or forage, so something must be done, and, as you
    yourself reported to Count Buxhowden yesterday, you must think of
    retreating to our frontier--which do today.'
    
    "'From all my riding,' he writes to the Emperor, 'I have got a saddle
    sore which, coming after all my previous journeys, quite prevents my
    riding and commanding so vast an army, so I have passed on the command
    to the general next in seniority, Count Buxhowden, having sent him my
    whole staff and all that belongs to it, advising him if there is a lack
    of bread, to move farther into the interior of Prussia, for only one
    day's ration of bread remains, and in some regiments none at all, as
    reported by the division commanders, Ostermann and Sedmoretzki, and all
    that the peasants had has been eaten up. I myself will remain in
    hospital at Ostrolenka till I recover. In regard to which I humbly
    submit my report, with the information that if the army remains in its
    present bivouac another fortnight there will not be a healthy man left
    in it by spring.
    
    "'Grant leave to retire to his country seat to an old man who is already
    in any case dishonored by being unable to fulfill the great and glorious
    task for which he was chosen. I shall await your most gracious
    permission here in hospital, that I may not have to play the part of a
    secretary rather than commander in the army. My removal from the army
    does not produce the slightest stir--a blind man has left it. There are
    thousands such as I in Russia.'
    
    "The field marshal is angry with the Emperor and he punishes us all,
    isn't it logical?
    
    "This is the first act. Those that follow are naturally increasingly
    interesting and entertaining. After the field marshal's departure it
    appears that we are within sight of the enemy and must give battle.
    Buxhowden is commander-in-chief by seniority, but General Bennigsen does
    not quite see it; more particularly as it is he and his corps who are
    within sight of the enemy and he wishes to profit by the opportunity to
    fight a battle 'on his own hand' as the Germans say. He does so. This is
    the battle of Pultusk, which is considered a great victory but in my
    opinion was nothing of the kind. We civilians, as you know, have a very
    bad way of deciding whether a battle was won or lost. Those who retreat
    after a battle have lost it is what we say; and according to that it is
    we who lost the battle of Pultusk. In short, we retreat after the battle
    but send a courier to Petersburg with news of a victory, and General
    Bennigsen, hoping to receive from Petersburg the post of commander in
    chief as a reward for his victory, does not give up the command of the
    army to General Buxhowden. During this interregnum we begin a very
    original and interesting series of maneuvers. Our aim is no longer, as
    it should be, to avoid or attack the enemy, but solely to avoid General
    Buxhowden who by right of seniority should be our chief. So
    energetically do we pursue this aim that after crossing an unfordable
    river we burn the bridges to separate ourselves from our enemy, who at
    the moment is not Bonaparte but Buxhowden. General Buxhowden was all but
    attacked and captured by a superior enemy force as a result of one of
    these maneuvers that enabled us to escape him. Buxhowden pursues us--we
    scuttle. He hardly crosses the river to our side before we recross to
    the other. At last our enemy, Buxhowden, catches us and attacks. Both
    generals are angry, and the result is a challenge on Buxhowden's part
    and an epileptic fit on Bennigsen's. But at the critical moment the
    courier who carried the news of our victory at Pultusk to Petersburg
    returns bringing our appointment as commander-in-chief, and our first
    foe, Buxhowden, is vanquished; we can now turn our thoughts to the
    second, Bonaparte. But as it turns out, just at that moment a third
    enemy rises before us--namely the Orthodox Russian soldiers, loudly
    demanding bread, meat, biscuits, fodder, and whatnot! The stores are
    empty, the roads impassable. The Orthodox begin looting, and in a way of
    which our last campaign can give you no idea. Half the regiments form
    bands and scour the countryside and put everything to fire and sword.
    The inhabitants are totally ruined, the hospitals overflow with sick,
    and famine is everywhere. Twice the marauders even attack our
    headquarters, and the commander-in-chief has to ask for a battalion to
    disperse them. During one of these attacks they carried off my empty
    portmanteau and my dressing gown. The Emperor proposes to give all
    commanders of divisions the right to shoot marauders, but I much fear
    this will oblige one half the army to shoot the other."
    
    At first Prince Andrew read with his eyes only, but after a while, in
    spite of himself (although he knew how far it was safe to trust
    Bilibin), what he had read began to interest him more and more. When he
    had read thus far, he crumpled the letter up and threw it away. It was
    not what he had read that vexed him, but the fact that the life out
    there in which he had now no part could perturb him. He shut his eyes,
    rubbed his forehead as if to rid himself of all interest in what he had
    read, and listened to what was passing in the nursery. Suddenly he
    thought he heard a strange noise through the door. He was seized with
    alarm lest something should have happened to the child while he was
    reading the letter. He went on tiptoe to the nursery door and opened it.
    
    Just as he went in he saw that the nurse was hiding something from him
    with a scared look and that Princess Mary was no longer by the cot.
    
    "My dear," he heard what seemed to him her despairing whisper behind
    him.
    
    As often happens after long sleeplessness and long anxiety, he was
    seized by an unreasoning panic--it occurred to him that the child was
    dead. All that he saw and heard seemed to confirm this terror.
    
    "All is over," he thought, and a cold sweat broke out on his forehead.
    He went to the cot in confusion, sure that he would find it empty and
    that the nurse had been hiding the dead baby. He drew the curtain aside
    and for some time his frightened, restless eyes could not find the baby.
    At last he saw him: the rosy boy had tossed about till he lay across the
    bed with his head lower than the pillow, and was smacking his lips in
    his sleep and breathing evenly.
    
    Prince Andrew was as glad to find the boy like that, as if he had
    already lost him. He bent over him and, as his sister had taught him,
    tried with his lips whether the child was still feverish. The soft
    forehead was moist. Prince Andrew touched the head with his hand; even
    the hair was wet, so profusely had the child perspired. He was not dead,
    but evidently the crisis was over and he was convalescent. Prince Andrew
    longed to snatch up, to squeeze, to hold to his heart, this helpless
    little creature, but dared not do so. He stood over him, gazing at his
    head and at the little arms and legs which showed under the blanket. He
    heard a rustle behind him and a shadow appeared under the curtain of the
    cot. He did not look round, but still gazing at the infant's face
    listened to his regular breathing. The dark shadow was Princess Mary,
    who had come up to the cot with noiseless steps, lifted the curtain, and
    dropped it again behind her. Prince Andrew recognized her without
    looking and held out his hand to her. She pressed it.
    
    "He has perspired," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "I was coming to tell you so."
    
    The child moved slightly in his sleep, smiled, and rubbed his forehead
    against the pillow.
    
    Prince Andrew looked at his sister. In the dim shadow of the curtain her
    luminous eyes shone more brightly than usual from the tears of joy that
    were in them. She leaned over to her brother and kissed him, slightly
    catching the curtain of the cot. Each made the other a warning gesture
    and stood still in the dim light beneath the curtain as if not wishing
    to leave that seclusion where they three were shut off from all the
    world. Prince Andrew was the first to move away, ruffling his hair
    against the muslin of the curtain.
    
    "Yes, this is the one thing left me now," he said with a sigh.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Soon after his admission to the masonic Brotherhood, Pierre went to the
    Kiev province, where he had the greatest number of serfs, taking with
    him full directions which he had written down for his own guidance as to
    what he should do on his estates.
    
    When he reached Kiev he sent for all his stewards to the head office and
    explained to them his intentions and wishes. He told them that steps
    would be taken immediately to free his serfs--and that till then they
    were not to be overburdened with labor, women while nursing their babies
    were not to be sent to work, assistance was to be given to the serfs,
    punishments were to be admonitory and not corporal, and hospitals,
    asylums, and schools were to be established on all the estates. Some of
    the stewards (there were semiliterate foremen among them) listened with
    alarm, supposing these words to mean that the young count was displeased
    with their management and embezzlement of money, some after their first
    fright were amused by Pierre's lisp and the new words they had not heard
    before, others simply enjoyed hearing how the master talked, while the
    cleverest among them, including the chief steward, understood from this
    speech how they could best handle the master for their own ends.
    
    The chief steward expressed great sympathy with Pierre's intentions, but
    remarked that besides these changes it would be necessary to go into the
    general state of affairs which was far from satisfactory.
    
    Despite Count Bezukhov's enormous wealth, since he had come into an
    income which was said to amount to five hundred thousand rubles a year,
    Pierre felt himself far poorer than when his father had made him an
    allowance of ten thousand rubles. He had a dim perception of the
    following budget:
    
    About 80,000 went in payments on all the estates to the Land Bank, about
    30,000 went for the upkeep of the estate near Moscow, the town house,
    and the allowance to the three princesses; about 15,000 was given in
    pensions and the same amount for asylums; 150,000 alimony was sent to
    the countess; about 70,000 went for interest on debts. The building of a
    new church, previously begun, had cost about 10,000 in each of the last
    two years, and he did not know how the rest, about 100,000 rubles, was
    spent, and almost every year he was obliged to borrow. Besides this the
    chief steward wrote every year telling him of fires and bad harvests, or
    of the necessity of rebuilding factories and workshops. So the first
    task Pierre had to face was one for which he had very little aptitude or
    inclination--practical business.
    
    He discussed estate affairs every day with his chief steward. But he
    felt that this did not forward matters at all. He felt that these
    consultations were detached from real affairs and did not link up with
    them or make them move. On the one hand, the chief steward put the state
    of things to him in the very worst light, pointing out the necessity of
    paying off the debts and undertaking new activities with serf labor, to
    which Pierre did not agree. On the other hand, Pierre demanded that
    steps should be taken to liberate the serfs, which the steward met by
    showing the necessity of first paying off the loans from the Land Bank,
    and the consequent impossibility of a speedy emancipation.
    
    The steward did not say it was quite impossible, but suggested selling
    the forests in the province of Kostroma, the land lower down the river,
    and the Crimean estate, in order to make it possible: all of which
    operations according to him were connected with such complicated
    measures--the removal of injunctions, petitions, permits, and so on--
    that Pierre became quite bewildered and only replied:
    
    "Yes, yes, do so."
    
    Pierre had none of the practical persistence that would have enabled him
    to attend to the business himself and so he disliked it and only tried
    to pretend to the steward that he was attending to it. The steward for
    his part tried to pretend to the count that he considered these
    consultations very valuable for the proprietor and troublesome to
    himself.
    
    In Kiev Pierre found some people he knew, and strangers hastened to make
    his acquaintance and joyfully welcomed the rich newcomer, the largest
    landowner of the province. Temptations to Pierre's greatest weakness--
    the one to which he had confessed when admitted to the Lodge--were so
    strong that he could not resist them. Again whole days, weeks, and
    months of his life passed in as great a rush and were as much occupied
    with evening parties, dinners, lunches, and balls, giving him no time
    for reflection, as in Petersburg. Instead of the new life he had hoped
    to lead he still lived the old life, only in new surroundings.
    
    Of the three precepts of Freemasonry Pierre realized that he did not
    fulfill the one which enjoined every Mason to set an example of moral
    life, and that of the seven virtues he lacked two--morality and the love
    of death. He consoled himself with the thought that he fulfilled another
    of the precepts--that of reforming the human race--and had other
    virtues--love of his neighbor, and especially generosity.
    
    In the spring of 1807 he decided to return to Petersburg. On the way he
    intended to visit all his estates and see for himself how far his orders
    had been carried out and in what state were the serfs whom God had
    entrusted to his care and whom he intended to benefit.
    
    The chief steward, who considered the young count's attempts almost
    insane--unprofitable to himself, to the count, and to the serfs--made
    some concessions. Continuing to represent the liberation of the serfs as
    impracticable, he arranged for the erection of large buildings--schools,
    hospitals, and asylums--on all the estates before the master arrived.
    Everywhere preparations were made not for ceremonious welcomes (which he
    knew Pierre would not like), but for just such gratefully religious
    ones, with offerings of icons and the bread and salt of hospitality, as,
    according to his understanding of his master, would touch and delude
    him.
    
    The southern spring, the comfortable rapid traveling in a Vienna
    carriage, and the solitude of the road, all had a gladdening effect on
    Pierre. The estates he had not before visited were each more picturesque
    than the other; the serfs everywhere seemed thriving and touchingly
    grateful for the benefits conferred on them. Everywhere were receptions,
    which though they embarrassed Pierre awakened a joyful feeling in the
    depth of his heart. In one place the peasants presented him with bread
    and salt and an icon of Saint Peter and Saint Paul, asking permission,
    as a mark of their gratitude for the benefits he had conferred on them,
    to build a new chantry to the church at their own expense in honor of
    Peter and Paul, his patron saints. In another place the women with
    infants in arms met him to thank him for releasing them from hard work.
    On a third estate the priest, bearing a cross, came to meet him
    surrounded by children whom, by the count's generosity, he was
    instructing in reading, writing, and religion. On all his estates Pierre
    saw with his own eyes brick buildings erected or in course of erection,
    all on one plan, for hospitals, schools, and almshouses, which were soon
    to be opened. Everywhere he saw the stewards' accounts, according to
    which the serfs' manorial labor had been diminished, and heard the
    touching thanks of deputations of serfs in their full-skirted blue
    coats.
    
    What Pierre did not know was that the place where they presented him
    with bread and salt and wished to build a chantry in honor of Peter and
    Paul was a market village where a fair was held on St. Peter's day, and
    that the richest peasants (who formed the deputation) had begun the
    chantry long before, but that nine tenths of the peasants in that
    villages were in a state of the greatest poverty. He did not know that
    since the nursing mothers were no longer sent to work on his land, they
    did still harder work on their own land. He did not know that the priest
    who met him with the cross oppressed the peasants by his exactions, and
    that the pupils' parents wept at having to let him take their children
    and secured their release by heavy payments. He did not know that the
    brick buildings, built to plan, were being built by serfs whose manorial
    labor was thus increased, though lessened on paper. He did not know that
    where the steward had shown him in the accounts that the serfs' payments
    had been diminished by a third, their obligatory manorial work had been
    increased by a half. And so Pierre was delighted with his visit to his
    estates and quite recovered the philanthropic mood in which he had left
    Petersburg, and wrote enthusiastic letters to his "brother-instructor"
    as he called the Grand Master.
    
    "How easy it is, how little effort it needs, to do so much good,"
    thought Pierre, "and how little attention we pay to it!"
    
    He was pleased at the gratitude he received, but felt abashed at
    receiving it. This gratitude reminded him of how much more he might do
    for these simple, kindly people.
    
    The chief steward, a very stupid but cunning man who saw perfectly
    through the naive and intelligent count and played with him as with a
    toy, seeing the effect these prearranged receptions had on Pierre,
    pressed him still harder with proofs of the impossibility and above all
    the uselessness of freeing the serfs, who were quite happy as it was.
    
    Pierre in his secret soul agreed with the steward that it would be
    difficult to imagine happier people, and that God only knew what would
    happen to them when they were free, but he insisted, though reluctantly,
    on what he thought right. The steward promised to do all in his power to
    carry out the count's wishes, seeing clearly that not only would the
    count never be able to find out whether all measures had been taken for
    the sale of the land and forests and to release them from the Land Bank,
    but would probably never even inquire and would never know that the
    newly erected buildings were standing empty and that the serfs continued
    to give in money and work all that other people's serfs gave--that is to
    say, all that could be got out of them.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Returning from his journey through South Russia in the happiest state of
    mind, Pierre carried out an intention he had long had of visiting his
    friend Bolkonski, whom he had not seen for two years.
    
    Bogucharovo lay in a flat uninteresting part of the country among fields
    and forests of fir and birch, which were partly cut down. The house lay
    behind a newly dug pond filled with water to the brink and with banks
    still bare of grass. It was at the end of a village that stretched along
    the highroad in the midst of a young copse in which were a few fir
    trees.
    
    The homestead consisted of a threshing floor, outhouses, stables, a
    bathhouse, a lodge, and a large brick house with semicircular facade
    still in course of construction. Round the house was a garden newly laid
    out. The fences and gates were new and solid; two fire pumps and a water
    cart, painted green, stood in a shed; the paths were straight, the
    bridges were strong and had handrails. Everything bore an impress of
    tidiness and good management. Some domestic serfs Pierre met, in reply
    to inquiries as to where the prince lived, pointed out a small newly
    built lodge close to the pond. Anton, a man who had looked after Prince
    Andrew in his boyhood, helped Pierre out of his carriage, said that the
    prince was at home, and showed him into a clean little anteroom.
    
    Pierre was struck by the modesty of the small though clean house after
    the brilliant surroundings in which he had last met his friend in
    Petersburg.
    
    He quickly entered the small reception room with its still-unplastered
    wooden walls redolent of pine, and would have gone farther, but Anton
    ran ahead on tiptoe and knocked at a door.
    
    "Well, what is it?" came a sharp, unpleasant voice.
    
    "A visitor," answered Anton.
    
    "Ask him to wait," and the sound was heard of a chair being pushed back.
    
    Pierre went with rapid steps to the door and suddenly came face to face
    with Prince Andrew, who came out frowning and looking old. Pierre
    embraced him and lifting his spectacles kissed his friend on the cheek
    and looked at him closely.
    
    "Well, I did not expect you, I am very glad," said Prince Andrew.
    
    Pierre said nothing; he looked fixedly at his friend with surprise. He
    was struck by the change in him. His words were kindly and there was a
    smile on his lips and face, but his eyes were dull and lifeless and in
    spite of his evident wish to do so he could not give them a joyous and
    glad sparkle. Prince Andrew had grown thinner, paler, and more manly-
    looking, but what amazed and estranged Pierre till he got used to it
    were his inertia and a wrinkle on his brow indicating prolonged
    concentration on some one thought.
    
    As is usually the case with people meeting after a prolonged separation,
    it was long before their conversation could settle on anything. They put
    questions and gave brief replies about things they knew ought to be
    talked over at length. At last the conversation gradually settled on
    some of the topics at first lightly touched on: their past life, plans
    for the future, Pierre's journeys and occupations, the war, and so on.
    The preoccupation and despondency which Pierre had noticed in his
    friend's look was now still more clearly expressed in the smile with
    which he listened to Pierre, especially when he spoke with joyful
    animation of the past or the future. It was as if Prince Andrew would
    have liked to sympathize with what Pierre was saying, but could not. The
    latter began to feel that it was in bad taste to speak of his
    enthusiasms, dreams, and hopes of happiness or goodness, in Prince
    Andrew's presence. He was ashamed to express his new masonic views,
    which had been particularly revived and strengthened by his late tour.
    He checked himself, fearing to seem naive, yet he felt an irresistible
    desire to show his friend as soon as possible that he was now a quite
    different, and better, Pierre than he had been in Petersburg.
    
    "I can't tell you how much I have lived through since then. I hardly
    know myself again."
    
    "Yes, we have altered much, very much, since then," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "Well, and you? What are your plans?"
    
    "Plans!" repeated Prince Andrew ironically. "My plans?" he said, as if
    astonished at the word. "Well, you see, I'm building. I mean to settle
    here altogether next year...."
    
    Pierre looked silently and searchingly into Prince Andrew's face, which
    had grown much older.
    
    "No, I meant to ask..." Pierre began, but Prince Andrew interrupted him.
    
    "But why talk of me?... Talk to me, yes, tell me about your travels and
    all you have been doing on your estates."
    
    Pierre began describing what he had done on his estates, trying as far
    as possible to conceal his own part in the improvements that had been
    made. Prince Andrew several times prompted Pierre's story of what he had
    been doing, as though it were all an old-time story, and he listened not
    only without interest but even as if ashamed of what Pierre was telling
    him.
    
    Pierre felt uncomfortable and even depressed in his friend's company and
    at last became silent.
    
    "I'll tell you what, my dear fellow," said Prince Andrew, who evidently
    also felt depressed and constrained with his visitor, "I am only
    bivouacking here and have just come to look round. I am going back to my
    sister today. I will introduce you to her. But of course you know her
    already," he said, evidently trying to entertain a visitor with whom he
    now found nothing in common. "We will go after dinner. And would you now
    like to look round my place?"
    
    They went out and walked about till dinnertime, talking of the political
    news and common acquaintances like people who do not know each other
    intimately. Prince Andrew spoke with some animation and interest only of
    the new homestead he was constructing and its buildings, but even here,
    while on the scaffolding, in the midst of a talk explaining the future
    arrangements of the house, he interrupted himself:
    
    "However, this is not at all interesting. Let us have dinner, and then
    we'll set off."
    
    At dinner, conversation turned on Pierre's marriage.
    
    "I was very much surprised when I heard of it," said Prince Andrew.
    
    Pierre blushed, as he always did when it was mentioned, and said
    hurriedly: "I will tell you some time how it all happened. But you know
    it is all over, and forever."
    
    "Forever?" said Prince Andrew. "Nothing's forever."
    
    "But you know how it all ended, don't you? You heard of the duel?"
    
    "And so you had to go through that too!"
    
    "One thing I thank God for is that I did not kill that man," said
    Pierre.
    
    "Why so?" asked Prince Andrew. "To kill a vicious dog is a very good
    thing really."
    
    "No, to kill a man is bad--wrong."
    
    "Why is it wrong?" urged Prince Andrew. "It is not given to man to know
    what is right and what is wrong. Men always did and always will err, and
    in nothing more than in what they consider right and wrong."
    
    "What does harm to another is wrong," said Pierre, feeling with pleasure
    that for the first time since his arrival Prince Andrew was roused, had
    begun to talk, and wanted to express what had brought him to his present
    state.
    
    "And who has told you what is bad for another man?" he asked.
    
    "Bad! Bad!" exclaimed Pierre. "We all know what is bad for ourselves."
    
    "Yes, we know that, but the harm I am conscious of in myself is
    something I cannot inflict on others," said Prince Andrew, growing more
    and more animated and evidently wishing to express his new outlook to
    Pierre. He spoke in French. "I only know two very real evils in life:
    remorse and illness. The only good is the absence of those evils. To
    live for myself avoiding those two evils is my whole philosophy now."
    
    "And love of one's neighbor, and self-sacrifice?" began Pierre. "No, I
    can't agree with you! To live only so as not to do evil and not to have
    to repent is not enough. I lived like that, I lived for myself and
    ruined my life. And only now when I am living, or at least trying"
    (Pierre's modesty made him correct himself) "to live for others, only
    now have I understood all the happiness of life. No, I shall not agree
    with you, and you do not really believe what you are saying." Prince
    Andrew looked silently at Pierre with an ironic smile.
    
    "When you see my sister, Princess Mary, you'll get on with her," he
    said. "Perhaps you are right for yourself," he added after a short
    pause, "but everyone lives in his own way. You lived for yourself and
    say you nearly ruined your life and only found happiness when you began
    living for others. I experienced just the reverse. I lived for glory.--
    And after all what is glory? The same love of others, a desire to do
    something for them, a desire for their approval.--So I lived for others,
    and not almost, but quite, ruined my life. And I have become calmer
    since I began to live only for myself."
    
    "But what do you mean by living only for yourself?" asked Pierre,
    growing excited. "What about your son, your sister, and your father?"
    
    "But that's just the same as myself--they are not others," explained
    Prince Andrew. "The others, one's neighbors, le prochain, as you and
    Princess Mary call it, are the chief source of all error and evil. Le
    prochain--your Kiev peasants to whom you want to do good."
    
    And he looked at Pierre with a mocking, challenging expression. He
    evidently wished to draw him on.
    
    "You are joking," replied Pierre, growing more and more excited. "What
    error or evil can there be in my wishing to do good, and even doing a
    little--though I did very little and did it very badly? What evil can
    there be in it if unfortunate people, our serfs, people like ourselves,
    were growing up and dying with no idea of God and truth beyond
    ceremonies and meaningless prayers and are now instructed in a
    comforting belief in future life, retribution, recompense, and
    consolation? What evil and error are there in it, if people were dying
    of disease without help while material assistance could so easily be
    rendered, and I supplied them with a doctor, a hospital, and an asylum
    for the aged? And is it not a palpable, unquestionable good if a
    peasant, or a woman with a baby, has no rest day or night and I give
    them rest and leisure?" said Pierre, hurrying and lisping. "And I have
    done that though badly and to a small extent; but I have done something
    toward it and you cannot persuade me that it was not a good action, and
    more than that, you can't make me believe that you do not think so
    yourself. And the main thing is," he continued, "that I know, and know
    for certain, that the enjoyment of doing this good is the only sure
    happiness in life."
    
    "Yes, if you put it like that it's quite a different matter," said
    Prince Andrew. "I build a house and lay out a garden, and you build
    hospitals. The one and the other may serve as a pastime. But what's
    right and what's good must be judged by one who knows all, but not by
    us. Well, you want an argument," he added, "come on then."
    
    They rose from the table and sat down in the entrance porch which served
    as a veranda.
    
    "Come, let's argue then," said Prince Andrew, "You talk of schools," he
    went on, crooking a finger, "education and so forth; that is, you want
    to raise him" (pointing to a peasant who passed by them taking off his
    cap) "from his animal condition and awaken in him spiritual needs, while
    it seems to me that animal happiness is the only happiness possible, and
    that is just what you want to deprive him of. I envy him, but you want
    to make him what I am, without giving him my means. Then you say,
    'lighten his toil.' But as I see it, physical labor is as essential to
    him, as much a condition of his existence, as mental activity is to you
    or me. You can't help thinking. I go to bed after two in the morning,
    thoughts come and I can't sleep but toss about till dawn, because I
    think and can't help thinking, just as he can't help plowing and mowing;
    if he didn't, he would go to the drink shop or fall ill. Just as I could
    not stand his terrible physical labor but should die of it in a week, so
    he could not stand my physical idleness, but would grow fat and die. The
    third thing--what else was it you talked about?" and Prince Andrew
    crooked a third finger. "Ah, yes, hospitals, medicine. He has a fit, he
    is dying, and you come and bleed him and patch him up. He will drag
    about as a cripple, a burden to everybody, for another ten years. It
    would be far easier and simpler for him to die. Others are being born
    and there are plenty of them as it is. It would be different if you
    grudged losing a laborer--that's how I regard him--but you want to cure
    him from love of him. And he does not want that. And besides, what a
    notion that medicine ever cured anyone! Killed them, yes!" said he,
    frowning angrily and turning away from Pierre.
    
    Prince Andrew expressed his ideas so clearly and distinctly that it was
    evident he had reflected on this subject more than once, and he spoke
    readily and rapidly like a man who has not talked for a long time. His
    glance became more animated as his conclusions became more hopeless.
    
    "Oh, that is dreadful, dreadful!" said Pierre. "I don't understand how
    one can live with such ideas. I had such moments myself not long ago, in
    Moscow and when traveling, but at such times I collapsed so that I don't
    live at all--everything seems hateful to me... myself most of all. Then
    I don't eat, don't wash... and how is it with you?..."
    
    "Why not wash? That is not cleanly," said Prince Andrew; "on the
    contrary one must try to make one's life as pleasant as possible. I'm
    alive, that is not my fault, so I must live out my life as best I can
    without hurting others."
    
    "But with such ideas what motive have you for living? One would sit
    without moving, undertaking nothing...."
    
    "Life as it is leaves one no peace. I should be thankful to do nothing,
    but here on the one hand the local nobility have done me the honor to
    choose me to be their marshal; it was all I could do to get out of it.
    They could not understand that I have not the necessary qualifications
    for it--the kind of good-natured, fussy shallowness necessary for the
    position. Then there's this house, which must be built in order to have
    a nook of one's own in which to be quiet. And now there's this
    recruiting."
    
    "Why aren't you serving in the army?"
    
    "After Austerlitz!" said Prince Andrew gloomily. "No, thank you very
    much! I have promised myself not to serve again in the active Russian
    army. And I won't--not even if Bonaparte were here at Smolensk
    threatening Bald Hills--even then I wouldn't serve in the Russian army!
    Well, as I was saying," he continued, recovering his composure, "now
    there's this recruiting. My father is chief in command of the Third
    District, and my only way of avoiding active service is to serve under
    him."
    
    "Then you are serving?"
    
    "I am."
    
    He paused a little while.
    
    "And why do you serve?"
    
    "Why, for this reason! My father is one of the most remarkable men of
    his time. But he is growing old, and though not exactly cruel he has too
    energetic a character. He is so accustomed to unlimited power that he is
    terrible, and now he has this authority of a commander-in-chief of the
    recruiting, granted by the Emperor. If I had been two hours late a
    fortnight ago he would have had a paymaster's clerk at Yukhnovna
    hanged," said Prince Andrew with a smile. "So I am serving because I
    alone have any influence with my father, and now and then can save him
    from actions which would torment him afterwards."
    
    "Well, there you see!"
    
    "Yes, but it is not as you imagine," Prince Andrew continued. "I did
    not, and do not, in the least care about that scoundrel of a clerk who
    had stolen some boots from the recruits; I should even have been very
    glad to see him hanged, but I was sorry for my father--that again is for
    myself."
    
    Prince Andrew grew more and more animated. His eyes glittered feverishly
    while he tried to prove to Pierre that in his actions there was no
    desire to do good to his neighbor.
    
    "There now, you wish to liberate your serfs," he continued; "that is a
    very good thing, but not for you--I don't suppose you ever had anyone
    flogged or sent to Siberia--and still less for your serfs. If they are
    beaten, flogged, or sent to Siberia, I don't suppose they are any the
    worse off. In Siberia they lead the same animal life, and the stripes on
    their bodies heal, and they are happy as before. But it is a good thing
    for proprietors who perish morally, bring remorse upon themselves,
    stifle this remorse and grow callous, as a result of being able to
    inflict punishments justly and unjustly. It is those people I pity, and
    for their sake I should like to liberate the serfs. You may not have
    seen, but I have seen, how good men brought up in those traditions of
    unlimited power, in time when they grow more irritable, become cruel and
    harsh, are conscious of it, but cannot restrain themselves and grow more
    and more miserable."
    
    Prince Andrew spoke so earnestly that Pierre could not help thinking
    that these thoughts had been suggested to Prince Andrew by his father's
    case.
    
    He did not reply.
    
    "So that's what I'm sorry for--human dignity, peace of mind, purity, and
    not the serfs' backs and foreheads, which, beat and shave as you may,
    always remain the same backs and foreheads."
    
    "No, no! A thousand times no! I shall never agree with you," said
    Pierre.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    In the evening Andrew and Pierre got into the open carriage and drove to
    Bald Hills. Prince Andrew, glancing at Pierre, broke the silence now and
    then with remarks which showed that he was in a good temper.
    
    Pointing to the fields, he spoke of the improvements he was making in
    his husbandry.
    
    Pierre remained gloomily silent, answering in monosyllables and
    apparently immersed in his own thoughts.
    
    He was thinking that Prince Andrew was unhappy, had gone astray, did not
    see the true light, and that he, Pierre, ought to aid, enlighten, and
    raise him. But as soon as he thought of what he should say, he felt that
    Prince Andrew with one word, one argument, would upset all his teaching,
    and he shrank from beginning, afraid of exposing to possible ridicule
    what to him was precious and sacred.
    
    "No, but why do you think so?" Pierre suddenly began, lowering his head
    and looking like a bull about to charge, "why do you think so? You
    should not think so."
    
    "Think? What about?" asked Prince Andrew with surprise.
    
    "About life, about man's destiny. It can't be so. I myself thought like
    that, and do you know what saved me? Freemasonry! No, don't smile.
    Freemasonry is not a religious ceremonial sect, as I thought it was:
    Freemasonry is the best expression of the best, the eternal, aspects of
    humanity."
    
    And he began to explain Freemasonry as he understood it to Prince
    Andrew. He said that Freemasonry is the teaching of Christianity freed
    from the bonds of State and Church, a teaching of equality, brotherhood,
    and love.
    
    "Only our holy brotherhood has the real meaning of life, all the rest is
    a dream," said Pierre. "Understand, my dear fellow, that outside this
    union all is filled with deceit and falsehood and I agree with you that
    nothing is left for an intelligent and good man but to live out his
    life, like you, merely trying not to harm others. But make our
    fundamental convictions your own, join our brotherhood, give yourself up
    to us, let yourself be guided, and you will at once feel yourself, as I
    have felt myself, a part of that vast invisible chain the beginning of
    which is hidden in heaven," said Pierre.
    
    Prince Andrew, looking straight in front of him, listened in silence to
    Pierre's words. More than once, when the noise of the wheels prevented
    his catching what Pierre said, he asked him to repeat it, and by the
    peculiar glow that came into Prince Andrew's eyes and by his silence,
    Pierre saw that his words were not in vain and that Prince Andrew would
    not interrupt him or laugh at what he said.
    
    They reached a river that had overflowed its banks and which they had to
    cross by ferry. While the carriage and horses were being placed on it,
    they also stepped on the raft.
    
    Prince Andrew, leaning his arms on the raft railing, gazed silently at
    the flooding waters glittering in the setting sun.
    
    "Well, what do you think about it?" Pierre asked. "Why are you silent?"
    
    "What do I think about it? I am listening to you. It's all very well....
    You say: join our brotherhood and we will show you the aim of life, the
    destiny of man, and the laws which govern the world. But who are we?
    Men. How is it you know everything? Why do I alone not see what you see?
    You see a reign of goodness and truth on earth, but I don't see it."
    
    Pierre interrupted him.
    
    "Do you believe in a future life?" he asked.
    
    "A future life?" Prince Andrew repeated, but Pierre, giving him no time
    to reply, took the repetition for a denial, the more readily as he knew
    Prince Andrew's former atheistic convictions.
    
    "You say you can't see a reign of goodness and truth on earth. Nor could
    I, and it cannot be seen if one looks on our life here as the end of
    everything. On earth, here on this earth" (Pierre pointed to the
    fields), "there is no truth, all is false and evil; but in the universe,
    in the whole universe there is a kingdom of truth, and we who are now
    the children of earth are--eternally--children of the whole universe.
    Don't I feel in my soul that I am part of this vast harmonious whole?
    Don't I feel that I form one link, one step, between the lower and
    higher beings, in this vast harmonious multitude of beings in whom the
    Deity--the Supreme Power if you prefer the term--is manifest? If I see,
    clearly see, that ladder leading from plant to man, why should I suppose
    it breaks off at me and does not go farther and farther? I feel that I
    cannot vanish, since nothing vanishes in this world, but that I shall
    always exist and always have existed. I feel that beyond me and above me
    there are spirits, and that in this world there is truth."
    
    "Yes, that is Herder's theory," said Prince Andrew, "but it is not that
    which can convince me, dear friend--life and death are what convince.
    What convinces is when one sees a being dear to one, bound up with one's
    own life, before whom one was to blame and had hoped to make it right"
    (Prince Andrew's voice trembled and he turned away), "and suddenly that
    being is seized with pain, suffers, and ceases to exist.... Why? It
    cannot be that there is no answer. And I believe there is.... That's
    what convinces, that is what has convinced me," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "Yes, yes, of course," said Pierre, "isn't that what I'm saying?"
    
    "No. All I say is that it is not argument that convinces me of the
    necessity of a future life, but this: when you go hand in hand with
    someone and all at once that person vanishes there, into nowhere, and
    you yourself are left facing that abyss, and look in. And I have looked
    in...."
    
    "Well, that's it then! You know that there is a there and there is a
    Someone? There is the future life. The Someone is--God."
    
    Prince Andrew did not reply. The carriage and horses had long since been
    taken off, onto the farther bank, and reharnessed. The sun had sunk half
    below the horizon and an evening frost was starring the puddles near the
    ferry, but Pierre and Andrew, to the astonishment of the footmen,
    coachmen, and ferrymen, still stood on the raft and talked.
    
    "If there is a God and future life, there is truth and good, and man's
    highest happiness consists in striving to attain them. We must live, we
    must love, and we must believe that we live not only today on this scrap
    of earth, but have lived and shall live forever, there, in the Whole,"
    said Pierre, and he pointed to the sky.
    
    Prince Andrew stood leaning on the railing of the raft listening to
    Pierre, and he gazed with his eyes fixed on the red reflection of the
    sun gleaming on the blue waters. There was perfect stillness. Pierre
    became silent. The raft had long since stopped and only the waves of the
    current beat softly against it below. Prince Andrew felt as if the sound
    of the waves kept up a refrain to Pierre's words, whispering:
    
    "It is true, believe it."
    
    He sighed, and glanced with a radiant, childlike, tender look at
    Pierre's face, flushed and rapturous, but yet shy before his superior
    friend.
    
    "Yes, if it only were so!" said Prince Andrew. "However, it is time to
    get on," he added, and, stepping off the raft, he looked up at the sky
    to which Pierre had pointed, and for the first time since Austerlitz saw
    that high, everlasting sky he had seen while lying on that battlefield;
    and something that had long been slumbering, something that was best
    within him, suddenly awoke, joyful and youthful, in his soul. It
    vanished as soon as he returned to the customary conditions of his life,
    but he knew that this feeling which he did not know how to develop
    existed within him. His meeting with Pierre formed an epoch in Prince
    Andrew's life. Though outwardly he continued to live in the same old
    way, inwardly he began a new life.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    It was getting dusk when Prince Andrew and Pierre drove up to the front
    entrance of the house at Bald Hills. As they approached the house,
    Prince Andrew with a smile drew Pierre's attention to a commotion going
    on at the back porch. A woman, bent with age, with a wallet on her back,
    and a short, long-haired, young man in a black garment had rushed back
    to the gate on seeing the carriage driving up. Two women ran out after
    them, and all four, looking round at the carriage, ran in dismay up the
    steps of the back porch.
    
    "Those are Mary's 'God's folk,'" said Prince Andrew. "They have mistaken
    us for my father. This is the one matter in which she disobeys him. He
    orders these pilgrims to be driven away, but she receives them."
    
    "But what are 'God's folk'?" asked Pierre.
    
    Prince Andrew had no time to answer. The servants came out to meet them,
    and he asked where the old prince was and whether he was expected back
    soon.
    
    The old prince had gone to the town and was expected back any minute.
    
    Prince Andrew led Pierre to his own apartments, which were always kept
    in perfect order and readiness for him in his father's house; he himself
    went to the nursery.
    
    "Let us go and see my sister," he said to Pierre when he returned. "I
    have not found her yet, she is hiding now, sitting with her 'God's
    folk.' It will serve her right, she will be confused, but you will see
    her 'God's folk.' It's really very curious."
    
    "What are 'God's folk'?" asked Pierre.
    
    "Come, and you'll see for yourself."
    
    Princess Mary really was disconcerted and red patches came on her face
    when they went in. In her snug room, with lamps burning before the icon
    stand, a young lad with a long nose and long hair, wearing a monk's
    cassock, sat on the sofa beside her, behind a samovar. Near them, in an
    armchair, sat a thin, shriveled, old woman, with a meek expression on
    her childlike face.
    
    "Andrew, why didn't you warn me?" said the princess, with mild reproach,
    as she stood before her pilgrims like a hen before her chickens.
    
    "Charmee de vous voir. Je suis tres contente de vous voir," * she said
    to Pierre as he kissed her hand. She had known him as a child, and now
    his friendship with Andrew, his misfortune with his wife, and above all
    his kindly, simple face disposed her favorably toward him. She looked at
    him with her beautiful radiant eyes and seemed to say, "I like you very
    much, but please don't laugh at my people." After exchanging the first
    greetings, they sat down.
    
    * "Delighted to see you. I am very glad to see you."
    
    "Ah, and Ivanushka is here too!" said Prince Andrew, glancing with a
    smile at the young pilgrim.
    
    "Andrew!" said Princess Mary, imploringly. "Il faut que vous sachiez que
    c'est une femme," * said Prince Andrew to Pierre.
    
    "Andrew, au nom de Dieu!" *(2) Princess Mary repeated.
    
    * "You must know that this is a woman."
    
    * (2) "For heaven's sake."
    
    It was evident that Prince Andrew's ironical tone toward the pilgrims
    and Princess Mary's helpless attempts to protect them were their
    customary long-established relations on the matter.
    
    "Mais, ma bonne amie," said Prince Andrew, "vous devriez au contraire
    m'être reconnaissante de ce que j'explique a Pierre votre intimité avec
    ce jeune homme." *
    
    * "But, my dear, you ought on the contrary to be grateful to me for
    explaining to Pierre your intimacy with this young man."
    
    "Really?" said Pierre, gazing over his spectacles with curiosity and
    seriousness (for which Princess Mary was specially grateful to him) into
    Ivanushka's face, who, seeing that she was being spoken about, looked
    round at them all with crafty eyes.
    
    Princess Mary's embarrassment on her people's account was quite
    unnecessary. They were not in the least abashed. The old woman, lowering
    her eyes but casting side glances at the newcomers, had turned her cup
    upside down and placed a nibbled bit of sugar beside it, and sat quietly
    in her armchair, though hoping to be offered another cup of tea.
    Ivanushka, sipping out of her saucer, looked with sly womanish eyes from
    under her brows at the young men.
    
    "Where have you been? To Kiev?" Prince Andrew asked the old woman.
    
    "I have, good sir," she answered garrulously. "Just at Christmastime I
    was deemed worthy to partake of the holy and heavenly sacrament at the
    shrine of the saint. And now I'm from Kolyazin, master, where a great
    and wonderful blessing has been revealed."
    
    "And was Ivanushka with you?"
    
    "I go by myself, benefactor," said Ivanushka, trying to speak in a bass
    voice. "I only came across Pelageya in Yukhnovo..."
    
    Pelageya interrupted her companion; she evidently wished to tell what
    she had seen.
    
    "In Kolyazin, master, a wonderful blessing has been revealed."
    
    "What is it? Some new relics?" asked Prince Andrew.
    
    "Andrew, do leave off," said Princess Mary. "Don't tell him, Pelageya."
    
    "No... why not, my dear, why shouldn't I? I like him. He is kind, he is
    one of God's chosen, he's a benefactor, he once gave me ten rubles, I
    remember. When I was in Kiev, Crazy Cyril says to me (he's one of God's
    own and goes barefoot summer and winter), he says, 'Why are you not
    going to the right place? Go to Kolyazin where a wonder-working icon of
    the Holy Mother of God has been revealed.' On hearing those words I said
    good-by to the holy folk and went."
    
    All were silent, only the pilgrim woman went on in measured tones,
    drawing in her breath.
    
    "So I come, master, and the people say to me: 'A great blessing has been
    revealed, holy oil trickles from the cheeks of our blessed Mother, the
    Holy Virgin Mother of God'...."
    
    "All right, all right, you can tell us afterwards," said Princess Mary,
    flushing.
    
    "Let me ask her," said Pierre. "Did you see it yourselves?" he inquired.
    
    "Oh, yes, master, I was found worthy. Such a brightness on the face like
    the light of heaven, and from the blessed Mother's cheek it drops and
    drops...."
    
    "But, dear me, that must be a fraud!" said Pierre, naively, who had
    listened attentively to the pilgrim.
    
    "Oh, master, what are you saying?" exclaimed the horrified Pelageya,
    turning to Princess Mary for support.
    
    "They impose on the people," he repeated.
    
    "Lord Jesus Christ!" exclaimed the pilgrim woman, crossing herself. "Oh,
    don't speak so, master! There was a general who did not believe, and
    said, 'The monks cheat,' and as soon as he'd said it he went blind. And
    he dreamed that the Holy Virgin Mother of the Kiev catacombs came to him
    and said, 'Believe in me and I will make you whole.' So he begged: 'Take
    me to her, take me to her.' It's the real truth I'm telling you, I saw
    it myself. So he was brought, quite blind, straight to her, and he goes
    up to her and falls down and says, 'Make me whole,' says he, 'and I'll
    give thee what the Tsar bestowed on me.' I saw it myself, master, the
    star is fixed into the icon. Well, and what do you think? He received
    his sight! It's a sin to speak so. God will punish you," she said
    admonishingly, turning to Pierre.
    
    "How did the star get into the icon?" Pierre asked.
    
    "And was the Holy Mother promoted to the rank of general?" said Prince
    Andrew, with a smile.
    
    Pelageya suddenly grew quite pale and clasped her hands.
    
    "Oh, master, master, what a sin! And you who have a son!" she began, her
    pallor suddenly turning to a vivid red. "Master, what have you said? God
    forgive you!" And she crossed herself. "Lord forgive him! My dear, what
    does it mean?..." she asked, turning to Princess Mary. She got up and,
    almost crying, began to arrange her wallet. She evidently felt
    frightened and ashamed to have accepted charity in a house where such
    things could be said, and was at the same time sorry to have now to
    forgo the charity of this house.
    
    "Now, why need you do it?" said Princess Mary. "Why did you come to
    me?..."
    
    "Come, Pelageya, I was joking," said Pierre. "Princesse, ma parole, je
    n'ai pas voulu l'offenser. * I did not mean anything, I was only
    joking," he said, smiling shyly and trying to efface his offense. "It
    was all my fault, and Andrew was only joking."
    
    * "Princess, on my word, I did not wish to offend her."
    
    Pelageya stopped doubtfully, but in Pierre's face there was such a look
    of sincere penitence, and Prince Andrew glanced so meekly now at her and
    now at Pierre, that she was gradually reassured.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    The pilgrim woman was appeased and, being encouraged to talk, gave a
    long account of Father Amphilochus, who led so holy a life that his
    hands smelled of incense, and how on her last visit to Kiev some monks
    she knew let her have the keys of the catacombs, and how she, taking
    some dried bread with her, had spent two days in the catacombs with the
    saints. "I'd pray awhile to one, ponder awhile, then go on to another.
    I'd sleep a bit and then again go and kiss the relics, and there was
    such peace all around, such blessedness, that one don't want to come
    out, even into the light of heaven again."
    
    Pierre listened to her attentively and seriously. Prince Andrew went out
    of the room, and then, leaving "God's folk" to finish their tea,
    Princess Mary took Pierre into the drawing room.
    
    "You are very kind," she said to him.
    
    "Oh, I really did not mean to hurt her feelings. I understand them so
    well and have the greatest respect for them."
    
    Princess Mary looked at him silently and smiled affectionately.
    
    "I have known you a long time, you see, and am as fond of you as of a
    brother," she said. "How do you find Andrew?" she added hurriedly, not
    giving him time to reply to her affectionate words. "I am very anxious
    about him. His health was better in the winter, but last spring his
    wound reopened and the doctor said he ought to go away for a cure. And I
    am also very much afraid for him spiritually. He has not a character
    like us women who, when we suffer, can weep away our sorrows. He keeps
    it all within him. Today he is cheerful and in good spirits, but that is
    the effect of your visit--he is not often like that. If you could
    persuade him to go abroad. He needs activity, and this quiet regular
    life is very bad for him. Others don't notice it, but I see it."
    
    Toward ten o'clock the men servants rushed to the front door, hearing
    the bells of the old prince's carriage approaching. Prince Andrew and
    Pierre also went out into the porch.
    
    "Who's that?" asked the old prince, noticing Pierre as he got out of the
    carriage.
    
    "Ah! Very glad! Kiss me," he said, having learned who the young stranger
    was.
    
    The old prince was in a good temper and very gracious to Pierre.
    
    Before supper, Prince Andrew, coming back to his father's study, found
    him disputing hotly with his visitor. Pierre was maintaining that a time
    would come when there would be no more wars. The old prince disputed it
    chaffingly, but without getting angry.
    
    "Drain the blood from men's veins and put in water instead, then there
    will be no more war! Old women's nonsense--old women's nonsense!" he
    repeated, but still he patted Pierre affectionately on the shoulder, and
    then went up to the table where Prince Andrew, evidently not wishing to
    join in the conversation, was looking over the papers his father had
    brought from town. The old prince went up to him and began to talk
    business.
    
    "The marshal, a Count Rostov, hasn't sent half his contingent. He came
    to town and wanted to invite me to dinner--I gave him a pretty
    dinner!... And there, look at this.... Well, my boy," the old prince
    went on, addressing his son and patting Pierre on the shoulder. "A fine
    fellow--your friend--I like him! He stirs me up. Another says clever
    things and one doesn't care to listen, but this one talks rubbish yet
    stirs an old fellow up. Well, go! Get along! Perhaps I'll come and sit
    with you at supper. We'll have another dispute. Make friends with my
    little fool, Princess Mary," he shouted after Pierre, through the door.
    
    Only now, on his visit to Bald Hills, did Pierre fully realize the
    strength and charm of his friendship with Prince Andrew. That charm was
    not expressed so much in his relations with him as with all his family
    and with the household. With the stern old prince and the gentle, timid
    Princess Mary, though he had scarcely known them, Pierre at once felt
    like an old friend. They were all fond of him already. Not only Princess
    Mary, who had been won by his gentleness with the pilgrims, gave him her
    most radiant looks, but even the one-year-old "Prince Nicholas" (as his
    grandfather called him) smiled at Pierre and let himself be taken in his
    arms, and Michael Ivanovich and Mademoiselle Bourienne looked at him
    with pleasant smiles when he talked to the old prince.
    
    The old prince came in to supper; this was evidently on Pierre's
    account. And during the two days of the young man's visit he was
    extremely kind to him and told him to visit them again.
    
    When Pierre had gone and the members of the household met together, they
    began to express their opinions of him as people always do after a new
    acquaintance has left, but as seldom happens, no one said anything but
    what was good of him.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    When returning from his leave, Rostov felt, for the first time, how
    close was the bond that united him to Denisov and the whole regiment.
    
    On approaching it, Rostov felt as he had done when approaching his home
    in Moscow. When he saw the first hussar with the unbuttoned uniform of
    his regiment, when he recognized red-haired Dementyev and saw the picket
    ropes of the roan horses, when Lavrushka gleefully shouted to his
    master, "The count has come!" and Denisov, who had been asleep on his
    bed, ran all disheveled out of the mud hut to embrace him, and the
    officers collected round to greet the new arrival, Rostov experienced
    the same feeling as when his mother, his father, and his sister had
    embraced him, and tears of joy choked him so that he could not speak.
    The regiment was also a home, and as unalterably dear and precious as
    his parents' house.
    
    When he had reported himself to the commander of the regiment and had
    been reassigned to his former squadron, had been on duty and had gone
    out foraging, when he had again entered into all the little interests of
    the regiment and felt himself deprived of liberty and bound in one
    narrow, unchanging frame, he experienced the same sense of peace, of
    moral support, and the same sense of being at home here in his own
    place, as he had felt under the parental roof. But here was none of all
    that turmoil of the world at large, where he did not know his right
    place and took mistaken decisions; here was no Sonya with whom he ought,
    or ought not, to have an explanation; here was no possibility of going
    there or not going there; here there were not twenty-four hours in the
    day which could be spent in such a variety of ways; there was not that
    innumerable crowd of people of whom not one was nearer to him or farther
    from him than another; there were none of those uncertain and undefined
    money relations with his father, and nothing to recall that terrible
    loss to Dolokhov. Here, in the regiment, all was clear and simple. The
    whole world was divided into two unequal parts: one, our Pavlograd
    regiment; the other, all the rest. And the rest was no concern of his.
    In the regiment, everything was definite: who was lieutenant, who
    captain, who was a good fellow, who a bad one, and most of all, who was
    a comrade. The canteenkeeper gave one credit, one's pay came every four
    months, there was nothing to think out or decide, you had only to do
    nothing that was considered bad in the Pavlograd regiment and, when
    given an order, to do what was clearly, distinctly, and definitely
    ordered--and all would be well.
    
    Having once more entered into the definite conditions of this regimental
    life, Rostov felt the joy and relief a tired man feels on lying down to
    rest. Life in the regiment, during this campaign, was all the pleasanter
    for him, because, after his loss to Dolokhov (for which, in spite of all
    his family's efforts to console him, he could not forgive himself), he
    had made up his mind to atone for his fault by serving, not as he had
    done before, but really well, and by being a perfectly first-rate
    comrade and officer--in a word, a splendid man altogether, a thing which
    seemed so difficult out in the world, but so possible in the regiment.
    
    After his losses, he had determined to pay back his debt to his parents
    in five years. He received ten thousand rubles a year, but now resolved
    to take only two thousand and leave the rest to repay the debt to his
    parents.
    
    Our army, after repeated retreats and advances and battles at Pultusk
    and Preussisch-Eylau, was concentrated near Bartenstein. It was awaiting
    the Emperor's arrival and the beginning of a new campaign.
    
    The Pavlograd regiment, belonging to that part of the army which had
    served in the 1805 campaign, had been recruiting up to strength in
    Russia, and arrived too late to take part in the first actions of the
    campaign. It had been neither at Pultusk nor at Preussisch-Eylau and,
    when it joined the army in the field in the second half of the campaign,
    was attached to Platov's division.
    
    Platov's division was acting independently of the main army. Several
    times parts of the Pavlograd regiment had exchanged shots with the
    enemy, had taken prisoners, and once had even captured Marshal Oudinot's
    carriages. In April the Pavlograds were stationed immovably for some
    weeks near a totally ruined and deserted German village.
    
    A thaw had set in, it was muddy and cold, the ice on the river broke,
    and the roads became impassable. For days neither provisions for the men
    nor fodder for the horses had been issued. As no transports could
    arrive, the men dispersed about the abandoned and deserted villages,
    searching for potatoes, but found few even of these.
    
    Everything had been eaten up and the inhabitants had all fled--if any
    remained, they were worse than beggars and nothing more could be taken
    from them; even the soldiers, usually pitiless enough, instead of taking
    anything from them, often gave them the last of their rations.
    
    The Pavlograd regiment had had only two men wounded in action, but had
    lost nearly half its men from hunger and sickness. In the hospitals,
    death was so certain that soldiers suffering from fever, or the swelling
    that came from bad food, preferred to remain on duty, and hardly able to
    drag their legs went to the front rather than to the hospitals. When
    spring came on, the soldiers found a plant just showing out of the
    ground that looked like asparagus, which, for some reason, they called
    "Mashka's sweet root." It was very bitter, but they wandered about the
    fields seeking it and dug it out with their sabers and ate it, though
    they were ordered not to do so, as it was a noxious plant. That spring a
    new disease broke out among the soldiers, a swelling of the arms, legs,
    and face, which the doctors attributed to eating this root. But in spite
    of all this, the soldiers of Denisov's squadron fed chiefly on "Mashka's
    sweet root," because it was the second week that the last of the
    biscuits were being doled out at the rate of half a pound a man and the
    last potatoes received had sprouted and frozen.
    
    The horses also had been fed for a fortnight on straw from the thatched
    roofs and had become terribly thin, though still covered with tufts of
    felty winter hair.
    
    Despite this destitution, the soldiers and officers went on living just
    as usual. Despite their pale swollen faces and tattered uniforms, the
    hussars formed line for roll call, kept things in order, groomed their
    horses, polished their arms, brought in straw from the thatched roofs in
    place of fodder, and sat down to dine round the caldrons from which they
    rose up hungry, joking about their nasty food and their hunger. As
    usual, in their spare time, they lit bonfires, steamed themselves before
    them naked; smoked, picked out and baked sprouting rotten potatoes, told
    and listened to stories of Potemkin's and Suvorov's campaigns, or to
    legends of Alesha the Sly, or the priest's laborer Mikolka.
    
    The officers, as usual, lived in twos and threes in the roofless, half-
    ruined houses. The seniors tried to collect straw and potatoes and, in
    general, food for the men. The younger ones occupied themselves as
    before, some playing cards (there was plenty of money, though there was
    no food), some with more innocent games, such as quoits and skittles.
    The general trend of the campaign was rarely spoken of, partly because
    nothing certain was known about it, partly because there was a vague
    feeling that in the main it was going badly.
    
    Rostov lived, as before, with Denisov, and since their furlough they had
    become more friendly than ever. Denisov never spoke of Rostov's family,
    but by the tender friendship his commander showed him, Rostov felt that
    the elder hussar's luckless love for Natasha played a part in
    strengthening their friendship. Denisov evidently tried to expose Rostov
    to danger as seldom as possible, and after an action greeted his safe
    return with evident joy. On one of his foraging expeditions, in a
    deserted and ruined village to which he had come in search of
    provisions, Rostov found a family consisting of an old Pole and his
    daughter with an infant in arms. They were half clad, hungry, too weak
    to get away on foot and had no means of obtaining a conveyance. Rostov
    brought them to his quarters, placed them in his own lodging, and kept
    them for some weeks while the old man was recovering. One of his
    comrades, talking of women, began chaffing Rostov, saying that he was
    more wily than any of them and that it would not be a bad thing if he
    introduced to them the pretty Polish girl he had saved. Rostov took the
    joke as an insult, flared up, and said such unpleasant things to the
    officer that it was all Denisov could do to prevent a duel. When the
    officer had gone away, Denisov, who did not himself know what Rostov's
    relations with the Polish girl might be, began to upbraid him for his
    quickness of temper, and Rostov replied:
    
    "Say what you like.... She is like a sister to me, and I can't tell you
    how it offended me... because... well, for that reason...."
    
    Denisov patted him on the shoulder and began rapidly pacing the room
    without looking at Rostov, as was his way at moments of deep feeling.
    
    "Ah, what a mad bweed you Wostovs are!" he muttered, and Rostov noticed
    tears in his eyes.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    In April the troops were enlivened by news of the Emperor's arrival, but
    Rostov had no chance of being present at the review he held at
    Bartenstein, as the Pavlograds were at the outposts far beyond that
    place.
    
    They were bivouacking. Denisov and Rostov were living in an earth hut,
    dug out for them by the soldiers and roofed with branches and turf. The
    hut was made in the following manner, which had then come into vogue. A
    trench was dug three and a half feet wide, four feet eight inches deep,
    and eight feet long. At one end of the trench, steps were cut out and
    these formed the entrance and vestibule. The trench itself was the room,
    in which the lucky ones, such as the squadron commander, had a board,
    lying on piles at the end opposite the entrance, to serve as a table. On
    each side of the trench, the earth was cut out to a breadth of about two
    and a half feet, and this did duty for bedsteads and couches. The roof
    was so constructed that one could stand up in the middle of the trench
    and could even sit up on the beds if one drew close to the table.
    Denisov, who was living luxuriously because the soldiers of his squadron
    liked him, had also a board in the roof at the farther end, with a piece
    of (broken but mended) glass in it for a window. When it was very cold,
    embers from the soldiers' campfire were placed on a bent sheet of iron
    on the steps in the "reception room"--as Denisov called that part of the
    hut--and it was then so warm that the officers, of whom there were
    always some with Denisov and Rostov, sat in their shirt sleeves.
    
    In April, Rostov was on orderly duty. One morning, between seven and
    eight, returning after a sleepless night, he sent for embers, changed
    his rain-soaked underclothes, said his prayers, drank tea, got warm,
    then tidied up the things on the table and in his own corner, and, his
    face glowing from exposure to the wind and with nothing on but his
    shirt, lay down on his back, putting his arms under his head. He was
    pleasantly considering the probability of being promoted in a few days
    for his last reconnoitering expedition, and was awaiting Denisov, who
    had gone out somewhere and with whom he wanted a talk.
    
    Suddenly he heard Denisov shouting in a vibrating voice behind the hut,
    evidently much excited. Rostov moved to the window to see whom he was
    speaking to, and saw the quartermaster, Topcheenko.
    
    "I ordered you not to let them eat that Mashka woot stuff!" Denisov was
    shouting. "And I saw with my own eyes how Lazarchuk bwought some fwom
    the fields."
    
    "I have given the order again and again, your honor, but they don't
    obey," answered the quartermaster.
    
    Rostov lay down again on his bed and thought complacently: "Let him fuss
    and bustle now, my job's done and I'm lying down--capitally!" He could
    hear that Lavrushka--that sly, bold orderly of Denisov's--was talking,
    as well as the quartermaster. Lavrushka was saying something about
    loaded wagons, biscuits, and oxen he had seen when he had gone out for
    provisions.
    
    Then Denisov's voice was heard shouting farther and farther away.
    "Saddle! Second platoon!"
    
    "Where are they off to now?" thought Rostov.
    
    Five minutes later, Denisov came into the hut, climbed with muddy boots
    on the bed, lit his pipe, furiously scattered his things about, took his
    leaded whip, buckled on his saber, and went out again. In answer to
    Rostov's inquiry where he was going, he answered vaguely and crossly
    that he had some business.
    
    "Let God and our gweat monarch judge me afterwards!" said Denisov going
    out, and Rostov heard the hoofs of several horses splashing through the
    mud. He did not even trouble to find out where Denisov had gone. Having
    got warm in his corner, he fell asleep and did not leave the hut till
    toward evening. Denisov had not yet returned. The weather had cleared
    up, and near the next hut two officers and a cadet were playing svayka,
    laughing as they threw their missiles which buried themselves in the
    soft mud. Rostov joined them. In the middle of the game, the officers
    saw some wagons approaching with fifteen hussars on their skinny horses
    behind them. The wagons escorted by the hussars drew up to the picket
    ropes and a crowd of hussars surrounded them.
    
    "There now, Denisov has been worrying," said Rostov, "and here are the
    provisions."
    
    "So they are!" said the officers. "Won't the soldiers be glad!"
    
    A little behind the hussars came Denisov, accompanied by two infantry
    officers with whom he was talking.
    
    Rostov went to meet them.
    
    "I warn you, Captain," one of the officers, a short thin man, evidently
    very angry, was saying.
    
    "Haven't I told you I won't give them up?" replied Denisov.
    
    "You will answer for it, Captain. It is mutiny--seizing the transport of
    one's own army. Our men have had nothing to eat for two days."
    
    "And mine have had nothing for two weeks," said Denisov.
    
    "It is robbery! You'll answer for it, sir!" said the infantry officer,
    raising his voice.
    
    "Now, what are you pestewing me for?" cried Denisov, suddenly losing his
    temper. "I shall answer for it and not you, and you'd better not buzz
    about here till you get hurt. Be off! Go!" he shouted at the officers.
    
    "Very well, then!" shouted the little officer, undaunted and not riding
    away. "If you are determined to rob, I'll..."
    
    "Go to the devil! quick ma'ch, while you're safe and sound!" and Denisov
    turned his horse on the officer.
    
    "Very well, very well!" muttered the officer, threateningly, and turning
    his horse he trotted away, jolting in his saddle.
    
    "A dog astwide a fence! A weal dog astwide a fence!" shouted Denisov
    after him (the most insulting expression a cavalryman can address to a
    mounted infantryman) and riding up to Rostov, he burst out laughing.
    
    "I've taken twansports from the infantwy by force!" he said. "After all,
    can't let our men starve."
    
    The wagons that had reached the hussars had been consigned to an
    infantry regiment, but learning from Lavrushka that the transport was
    unescorted, Denisov with his hussars had seized it by force. The
    soldiers had biscuits dealt out to them freely, and they even shared
    them with the other squadrons.
    
    The next day the regimental commander sent for Denisov, and holding his
    fingers spread out before his eyes said:
    
    "This is how I look at this affair: I know nothing about it and won't
    begin proceedings, but I advise you to ride over to the staff and settle
    the business there in the commissariat department and if possible sign a
    receipt for such and such stores received. If not, as the demand was
    booked against an infantry regiment, there will be a row and the affair
    may end badly."
    
    From the regimental commander's, Denisov rode straight to the staff with
    a sincere desire to act on this advice. In the evening he came back to
    his dugout in a state such as Rostov had never yet seen him in. Denisov
    could not speak and gasped for breath. When Rostov asked what was the
    matter, he only uttered some incoherent oaths and threats in a hoarse,
    feeble voice.
    
    Alarmed at Denisov's condition, Rostov suggested that he should undress,
    drink some water, and send for the doctor.
    
    "Twy me for wobbewy... oh! Some more water... Let them twy me, but I'll
    always thwash scoundwels... and I'll tell the Empewo'... Ice..." he
    muttered.
    
    The regimental doctor, when he came, said it was absolutely necessary to
    bleed Denisov. A deep saucer of black blood was taken from his hairy arm
    and only then was he able to relate what had happened to him.
    
    "I get there," began Denisov. "'Now then, where's your chief's
    quarters?' They were pointed out. 'Please to wait.' 'I've widden twenty
    miles and have duties to attend to and no time to wait. Announce me.'
    Vewy well, so out comes their head chief--also took it into his head to
    lecture me: 'It's wobbewy!'--'Wobbewy,' I say, 'is not done by man who
    seizes pwovisions to feed his soldiers, but by him who takes them to
    fill his own pockets!' 'Will you please be silent?' 'Vewy good!' Then he
    says: 'Go and give a weceipt to the commissioner, but your affair will
    be passed on to headquarters.' I go to the commissioner. I enter, and at
    the table... who do you think? No, but wait a bit!... Who is it that's
    starving us?" shouted Denisov, hitting the table with the fist of his
    newly bled arm so violently that the table nearly broke down and the
    tumblers on it jumped about. "Telyanin! 'What? So it's you who's
    starving us to death! Is it? Take this and this!' and I hit him so pat,
    stwaight on his snout... 'Ah, what a... what a...!' and I sta'ted
    fwashing him... Well, I've had a bit of fun I can tell you!" cried
    Denisov, gleeful and yet angry, his white teeth showing under his black
    mustache. "I'd have killed him if they hadn't taken him away!"
    
    "But what are you shouting for? Calm yourself," said Rostov. "You've set
    your arm bleeding afresh. Wait, we must tie it up again."
    
    Denisov was bandaged up again and put to bed. Next day he woke calm and
    cheerful.
    
    But at noon the adjutant of the regiment came into Rostov's and
    Denisov's dugout with a grave and serious face and regretfully showed
    them a paper addressed to Major Denisov from the regimental commander in
    which inquiries were made about yesterday's occurrence. The adjutant
    told them that the affair was likely to take a very bad turn: that a
    court-martial had been appointed, and that in view of the severity with
    which marauding and insubordination were now regarded, degradation to
    the ranks would be the best that could be hoped for.
    
    The case, as represented by the offended parties, was that, after
    seizing the transports, Major Denisov, being drunk, went to the chief
    quartermaster and without any provocation called him a thief, threatened
    to strike him, and on being led out had rushed into the office and given
    two officials a thrashing, and dislocated the arm of one of them.
    
    In answer to Rostov's renewed questions, Denisov said, laughing, that he
    thought he remembered that some other fellow had got mixed up in it, but
    that it was all nonsense and rubbish, and he did not in the least fear
    any kind of trial, and that if those scoundrels dared attack him he
    would give them an answer that they would not easily forget.
    
    Denisov spoke contemptuously of the whole matter, but Rostov knew him
    too well not to detect that (while hiding it from others) at heart he
    feared a court-martial and was worried over the affair, which was
    evidently taking a bad turn. Every day, letters of inquiry and notices
    from the court arrived, and on the first of May, Denisov was ordered to
    hand the squadron over to the next in seniority and appear before the
    staff of his division to explain his violence at the commissariat
    office. On the previous day Platov reconnoitered with two Cossack
    regiments and two squadrons of hussars. Denisov, as was his wont, rode
    out in front of the outposts, parading his courage. A bullet fired by a
    French sharpshooter hit him in the fleshy part of his leg. Perhaps at
    another time Denisov would not have left the regiment for so slight a
    wound, but now he took advantage of it to excuse himself from appearing
    at the staff and went into hospital.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    In June the battle of Friedland was fought, in which the Pavlograds did
    not take part, and after that an armistice was proclaimed. Rostov, who
    felt his friend's absence very much, having no news of him since he left
    and feeling very anxious about his wound and the progress of his
    affairs, took advantage of the armistice to get leave to visit Denisov
    in hospital.
    
    The hospital was in a small Prussian town that had been twice devastated
    by Russian and French troops. Because it was summer, when it is so
    beautiful out in the fields, the little town presented a particularly
    dismal appearance with its broken roofs and fences, its foul streets,
    tattered inhabitants, and the sick and drunken soldiers wandering about.
    
    The hospital was in a brick building with some of the window frames and
    panes broken and a courtyard surrounded by the remains of a wooden fence
    that had been pulled to pieces. Several bandaged soldiers, with pale
    swollen faces, were sitting or walking about in the sunshine in the
    yard.
    
    Directly Rostov entered the door he was enveloped by a smell of
    putrefaction and hospital air. On the stairs he met a Russian army
    doctor smoking a cigar. The doctor was followed by a Russian assistant.
    
    "I can't tear myself to pieces," the doctor was saying. "Come to Makar
    Alexeevich in the evening. I shall be there."
    
    The assistant asked some further questions.
    
    "Oh, do the best you can! Isn't it all the same?" The doctor noticed
    Rostov coming upstairs.
    
    "What do you want, sir?" said the doctor. "What do you want? The bullets
    having spared you, do you want to try typhus? This is a pesthouse, sir."
    
    "How so?" asked Rostov.
    
    "Typhus, sir. It's death to go in. Only we two, Makeev and I" (he
    pointed to the assistant), "keep on here. Some five of us doctors have
    died in this place.... When a new one comes he is done for in a week,"
    said the doctor with evident satisfaction. "Prussian doctors have been
    invited here, but our allies don't like it at all."
    
    Rostov explained that he wanted to see Major Denisov of the hussars, who
    was wounded.
    
    "I don't know. I can't tell you, sir. Only think! I am alone in charge
    of three hospitals with more than four hundred patients! It's well that
    the charitable Prussian ladies send us two pounds of coffee and some
    lint each month or we should be lost!" he laughed. "Four hundred, sir,
    and they're always sending me fresh ones. There are four hundred? Eh?"
    he asked, turning to the assistant.
    
    The assistant looked fagged out. He was evidently vexed and impatient
    for the talkative doctor to go.
    
    "Major Denisov," Rostov said again. "He was wounded at Molliten."
    
    "Dead, I fancy. Eh, Makeev?" queried the doctor, in a tone of
    indifference.
    
    The assistant, however, did not confirm the doctor's words.
    
    "Is he tall and with reddish hair?" asked the doctor.
    
    Rostov described Denisov's appearance.
    
    "There was one like that," said the doctor, as if pleased. "That one is
    dead, I fancy. However, I'll look up our list. We had a list. Have you
    got it, Makeev?"
    
    "Makar Alexeevich has the list," answered the assistant. "But if you'll
    step into the officers' wards you'll see for yourself," he added,
    turning to Rostov.
    
    "Ah, you'd better not go, sir," said the doctor, "or you may have to
    stay here yourself."
    
    But Rostov bowed himself away from the doctor and asked the assistant to
    show him the way.
    
    "Only don't blame me!" the doctor shouted up after him.
    
    Rostov and the assistant went into the dark corridor. The smell was so
    strong there that Rostov held his nose and had to pause and collect his
    strength before he could go on. A door opened to the right, and an
    emaciated sallow man on crutches, barefoot and in underclothing, limped
    out and, leaning against the doorpost, looked with glittering envious
    eyes at those who were passing. Glancing in at the door, Rostov saw that
    the sick and wounded were lying on the floor on straw and overcoats.
    
    "May I go in and look?"
    
    "What is there to see?" said the assistant.
    
    But, just because the assistant evidently did not want him to go in,
    Rostov entered the soldiers' ward. The foul air, to which he had already
    begun to get used in the corridor, was still stronger here. It was a
    little different, more pungent, and one felt that this was where it
    originated.
    
    In the long room, brightly lit up by the sun through the large windows,
    the sick and wounded lay in two rows with their heads to the walls, and
    leaving a passage in the middle. Most of them were unconscious and paid
    no attention to the newcomers. Those who were conscious raised
    themselves or lifted their thin yellow faces, and all looked intently at
    Rostov with the same expression of hope, of relief, reproach, and envy
    of another's health. Rostov went to the middle of the room and looking
    through the open doors into the two adjoining rooms saw the same thing
    there. He stood still, looking silently around. He had not at all
    expected such a sight. Just before him, almost across the middle of the
    passage on the bare floor, lay a sick man, probably a Cossack to judge
    by the cut of his hair. The man lay on his back, his huge arms and legs
    outstretched. His face was purple, his eyes were rolled back so that
    only the whites were seen, and on his bare legs and arms which were
    still red, the veins stood out like cords. He was knocking the back of
    his head against the floor, hoarsely uttering some word which he kept
    repeating. Rostov listened and made out the word. It was "drink, drink,
    a drink!" Rostov glanced round, looking for someone who would put this
    man back in his place and bring him water.
    
    "Who looks after the sick here?" he asked the assistant.
    
    Just then a commissariat soldier, a hospital orderly, came in from the
    next room, marching stiffly, and drew up in front of Rostov.
    
    "Good day, your honor!" he shouted, rolling his eyes at Rostov and
    evidently mistaking him for one of the hospital authorities.
    
    "Get him to his place and give him some water," said Rostov, pointing to
    the Cossack.
    
    "Yes, your honor," the soldier replied complacently, and rolling his
    eyes more than ever he drew himself up still straighter, but did not
    move.
    
    "No, it's impossible to do anything here," thought Rostov, lowering his
    eyes, and he was going out, but became aware of an intense look fixed on
    him on his right, and he turned. Close to the corner, on an overcoat,
    sat an old, unshaven, gray-bearded soldier as thin as a skeleton, with a
    stern sallow face and eyes intently fixed on Rostov. The man's neighbor
    on one side whispered something to him, pointing at Rostov, who noticed
    that the old man wanted to speak to him. He drew nearer and saw that the
    old man had only one leg bent under him, the other had been amputated
    above the knee. His neighbor on the other side, who lay motionless some
    distance from him with his head thrown back, was a young soldier with a
    snub nose. His pale waxen face was still freckled and his eyes were
    rolled back. Rostov looked at the young soldier and a cold chill ran
    down his back.
    
    "Why, this one seems..." he began, turning to the assistant.
    
    "And how we've been begging, your honor," said the old soldier, his jaw
    quivering. "He's been dead since morning. After all we're men, not
    dogs."
    
    "I'll send someone at once. He shall be taken away--taken away at once,"
    said the assistant hurriedly. "Let us go, your honor."
    
    "Yes, yes, let us go," said Rostov hastily, and lowering his eyes and
    shrinking, he tried to pass unnoticed between the rows of reproachful
    envious eyes that were fixed upon him, and went out of the room.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    Going along the corridor, the assistant led Rostov to the officers'
    wards, consisting of three rooms, the doors of which stood open. There
    were beds in these rooms and the sick and wounded officers were lying or
    sitting on them. Some were walking about the rooms in hospital dressing
    gowns. The first person Rostov met in the officers' ward was a thin
    little man with one arm, who was walking about the first room in a
    nightcap and hospital dressing gown, with a pipe between his teeth.
    Rostov looked at him, trying to remember where he had seen him before.
    
    "See where we've met again!" said the little man. "Tushin, Tushin, don't
    you remember, who gave you a lift at Schon Grabern? And I've had a bit
    cut off, you see..." he went on with a smile, pointing to the empty
    sleeve of his dressing gown. "Looking for Vasili Dmitrich Denisov? My
    neighbor," he added, when he heard who Rostov wanted. "Here, here," and
    Tushin led him into the next room, from whence came sounds of several
    laughing voices.
    
    "How can they laugh, or even live at all here?" thought Rostov, still
    aware of that smell of decomposing flesh that had been so strong in the
    soldiers' ward, and still seeming to see fixed on him those envious
    looks which had followed him out from both sides, and the face of that
    young soldier with eyes rolled back.
    
    Denisov lay asleep on his bed with his head under the blanket, though it
    was nearly noon.
    
    "Ah, Wostov? How are you, how are you?" he called out, still in the same
    voice as in the regiment, but Rostov noticed sadly that under this
    habitual ease and animation some new, sinister, hidden feeling showed
    itself in the expression of Denisov's face and the intonations of his
    voice.
    
    His wound, though a slight one, had not yet healed even now, six weeks
    after he had been hit. His face had the same swollen pallor as the faces
    of the other hospital patients, but it was not this that struck Rostov.
    What struck him was that Denisov did not seem glad to see him, and
    smiled at him unnaturally. He did not ask about the regiment, nor about
    the general state of affairs, and when Rostov spoke of these matters did
    not listen.
    
    Rostov even noticed that Denisov did not like to be reminded of the
    regiment, or in general of that other free life which was going on
    outside the hospital. He seemed to try to forget that old life and was
    only interested in the affair with the commissariat officers. On
    Rostov's inquiry as to how the matter stood, he at once produced from
    under his pillow a paper he had received from the commission and the
    rough draft of his answer to it. He became animated when he began
    reading his paper and specially drew Rostov's attention to the stinging
    rejoinders he made to his enemies. His hospital companions, who had
    gathered round Rostov--a fresh arrival from the world outside--gradually
    began to disperse as soon as Denisov began reading his answer. Rostov
    noticed by their faces that all those gentlemen had already heard that
    story more than once and were tired of it. Only the man who had the next
    bed, a stout Uhlan, continued to sit on his bed, gloomily frowning and
    smoking a pipe, and little one-armed Tushin still listened, shaking his
    head disapprovingly. In the middle of the reading, the Uhlan interrupted
    Denisov.
    
    "But what I say is," he said, turning to Rostov, "it would be best
    simply to petition the Emperor for pardon. They say great rewards will
    now be distributed, and surely a pardon would be granted...."
    
    "Me petition the Empewo'!" exclaimed Denisov, in a voice to which he
    tried hard to give the old energy and fire, but which sounded like an
    expression of irritable impotence. "What for? If I were a wobber I would
    ask mercy, but I'm being court-martialed for bwinging wobbers to book.
    Let them twy me, I'm not afwaid of anyone. I've served the Tsar and my
    countwy honowably and have not stolen! And am I to be degwaded?...
    Listen, I'm w'iting to them stwaight. This is what I say: 'If I had
    wobbed the Tweasuwy...'"
    
    "It's certainly well written," said Tushin, "but that's not the point,
    Vasili Dmitrich," and he also turned to Rostov. "One has to submit, and
    Vasili Dmitrich doesn't want to. You know the auditor told you it was a
    bad business."
    
    "Well, let it be bad," said Denisov.
    
    "The auditor wrote out a petition for you," continued Tushin, "and you
    ought to sign it and ask this gentleman to take it. No doubt he"
    (indicating Rostov) "has connections on the staff. You won't find a
    better opportunity."
    
    "Haven't I said I'm not going to gwovel?" Denisov interrupted him, went
    on reading his paper.
    
    Rostov had not the courage to persuade Denisov, though he instinctively
    felt that the way advised by Tushin and the other officers was the
    safest, and though he would have been glad to be of service to Denisov.
    He knew his stubborn will and straightforward hasty temper.
    
    When the reading of Denisov's virulent reply, which took more than an
    hour, was over, Rostov said nothing, and he spent the rest of the day in
    a most dejected state of mind amid Denisov's hospital comrades, who had
    gathered round him, telling them what he knew and listening to their
    stories. Denisov was moodily silent all the evening.
    
    Late in the evening, when Rostov was about to leave, he asked Denisov
    whether he had no commission for him.
    
    "Yes, wait a bit," said Denisov, glancing round at the officers, and
    taking his papers from under his pillow he went to the window, where he
    had an inkpot, and sat down to write.
    
    "It seems it's no use knocking one's head against a wall!" he said,
    coming from the window and giving Rostov a large envelope. In it was the
    petition to the Emperor drawn up by the auditor, in which Denisov,
    without alluding to the offenses of the commissariat officials, simply
    asked for pardon.
    
    "Hand it in. It seems..."
    
    He did not finish, but gave a painfully unnatural smile.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    Having returned to the regiment and told the commander the state of
    Denisov's affairs, Rostov rode to Tilsit with the letter to the Emperor.
    
    On the thirteenth of June the French and Russian Emperors arrived in
    Tilsit. Boris Drubetskoy had asked the important personage on whom he
    was in attendance, to include him in the suite appointed for the stay at
    Tilsit.
    
    "I should like to see the great man," he said, alluding to Napoleon,
    whom hitherto he, like everyone else, had always called Buonaparte.
    
    "You are speaking of Buonaparte?" asked the general, smiling.
    
    Boris looked at his general inquiringly and immediately saw that he was
    being tested.
    
    "I am speaking, Prince, of the Emperor Napoleon," he replied. The
    general patted him on the shoulder, with a smile.
    
    "You will go far," he said, and took him to Tilsit with him.
    
    Boris was among the few present at the Niemen on the day the two
    Emperors met. He saw the raft, decorated with monograms, saw Napoleon
    pass before the French Guards on the farther bank of the river, saw the
    pensive face of the Emperor Alexander as he sat in silence in a tavern
    on the bank of the Niemen awaiting Napoleon's arrival, saw both Emperors
    get into boats, and saw how Napoleon--reaching the raft first--stepped
    quickly forward to meet Alexander and held out his hand to him, and how
    they both retired into the pavilion. Since he had begun to move in the
    highest circles Boris had made it his habit to watch attentively all
    that went on around him and to note it down. At the time of the meeting
    at Tilsit he asked the names of those who had come with Napoleon and
    about the uniforms they wore, and listened attentively to words spoken
    by important personages. At the moment the Emperors went into the
    pavilion he looked at his watch, and did not forget to look at it again
    when Alexander came out. The interview had lasted an hour and fifty-
    three minutes. He noted this down that same evening, among other facts
    he felt to be of historic importance. As the Emperor's suite was a very
    small one, it was a matter of great importance, for a man who valued his
    success in the service, to be at Tilsit on the occasion of this
    interview between the two Emperors, and having succeeded in this, Boris
    felt that henceforth his position was fully assured. He had not only
    become known, but people had grown accustomed to him and accepted him.
    Twice he had executed commissions to the Emperor himself, so that the
    latter knew his face, and all those at court, far from cold-shouldering
    him as at first when they considered him a newcomer, would now have been
    surprised had he been absent.
    
    Boris lodged with another adjutant, the Polish Count Zhilinski.
    Zhilinski, a Pole brought up in Paris, was rich, and passionately fond
    of the French, and almost every day of the stay at Tilsit, French
    officers of the Guard and from French headquarters were dining and
    lunching with him and Boris.
    
    On the evening of the twenty-fourth of June, Count Zhilinski arranged a
    supper for his French friends. The guest of honor was an aide-de-camp of
    Napoleon's, there were also several French officers of the Guard, and a
    page of Napoleon's, a young lad of an old aristocratic French family.
    That same day, Rostov, profiting by the darkness to avoid being
    recognized in civilian dress, came to Tilsit and went to the lodging
    occupied by Boris and Zhilinski.
    
    Rostov, in common with the whole army from which he came, was far from
    having experienced the change of feeling toward Napoleon and the French-
    -who from being foes had suddenly become friends--that had taken place
    at headquarters and in Boris. In the army, Bonaparte and the French were
    still regarded with mingled feelings of anger, contempt, and fear. Only
    recently, talking with one of Platov's Cossack officers, Rostov had
    argued that if Napoleon were taken prisoner he would be treated not as a
    sovereign, but as a criminal. Quite lately, happening to meet a wounded
    French colonel on the road, Rostov had maintained with heat that peace
    was impossible between a legitimate sovereign and the criminal
    Bonaparte. Rostov was therefore unpleasantly struck by the presence of
    French officers in Boris' lodging, dressed in uniforms he had been
    accustomed to see from quite a different point of view from the outposts
    of the flank. As soon as he noticed a French officer, who thrust his
    head out of the door, that warlike feeling of hostility which he always
    experienced at the sight of the enemy suddenly seized him. He stopped at
    the threshold and asked in Russian whether Drubetskoy lived there.
    Boris, hearing a strange voice in the anteroom, came out to meet him. An
    expression of annoyance showed itself for a moment on his face on first
    recognizing Rostov.
    
    "Ah, it's you? Very glad, very glad to see you," he said, however,
    coming toward him with a smile. But Rostov had noticed his first
    impulse.
    
    "I've come at a bad time I think. I should not have come, but I have
    business," he said coldly.
    
    "No, I only wonder how you managed to get away from your regiment. Dans
    un moment je suis a vous," * he said, answering someone who called him.
    
    * "In a minute I shall be at your disposal."
    
    "I see I'm intruding," Rostov repeated.
    
    The look of annoyance had already disappeared from Boris' face: having
    evidently reflected and decided how to act, he very quietly took both
    Rostov's hands and led him into the next room. His eyes, looking
    serenely and steadily at Rostov, seemed to be veiled by something, as if
    screened by blue spectacles of conventionality. So it seemed to Rostov.
    
    "Oh, come now! As if you could come at a wrong time!" said Boris, and he
    led him into the room where the supper table was laid and introduced him
    to his guests, explaining that he was not a civilian, but an hussar
    officer, and an old friend of his.
    
    "Count Zhilinski--le Comte N. N.--le Capitaine S. S.," said he, naming
    his guests. Rostov looked frowningly at the Frenchmen, bowed
    reluctantly, and remained silent.
    
    Zhilinski evidently did not receive this new Russian person very
    willingly into his circle and did not speak to Rostov. Boris did not
    appear to notice the constraint the newcomer produced and, with the same
    pleasant composure and the same veiled look in his eyes with which he
    had met Rostov, tried to enliven the conversation. One of the Frenchmen,
    with the politeness characteristic of his countrymen, addressed the
    obstinately taciturn Rostov, saying that the latter had probably come to
    Tilsit to see the Emperor.
    
    "No, I came on business," replied Rostov, briefly.
    
    Rostov had been out of humor from the moment he noticed the look of
    dissatisfaction on Boris' face, and as always happens to those in a bad
    humor, it seemed to him that everyone regarded him with aversion and
    that he was in everybody's way. He really was in their way, for he alone
    took no part in the conversation which again became general. The looks
    the visitors cast on him seemed to say: "And what is he sitting here
    for?" He rose and went up to Boris.
    
    "Anyhow, I'm in your way," he said in a low tone. "Come and talk over my
    business and I'll go away."
    
    "Oh, no, not at all," said Boris. "But if you are tired, come and lie
    down in my room and have a rest."
    
    "Yes, really..."
    
    They went into the little room where Boris slept. Rostov, without
    sitting down, began at once, irritably (as if Boris were to blame in
    some way) telling him about Denisov's affair, asking him whether,
    through his general, he could and would intercede with the Emperor on
    Denisov's behalf and get Denisov's petition handed in. When he and Boris
    were alone, Rostov felt for the first time that he could not look Boris
    in the face without a sense of awkwardness. Boris, with one leg crossed
    over the other and stroking his left hand with the slender fingers of
    his right, listened to Rostov as a general listens to the report of a
    subordinate, now looking aside and now gazing straight into Rostov's
    eyes with the same veiled look. Each time this happened Rostov felt
    uncomfortable and cast down his eyes.
    
    "I have heard of such cases and know that His Majesty is very severe in
    such affairs. I think it would be best not to bring it before the
    Emperor, but to apply to the commander of the corps.... But in general,
    I think..."
    
    "So you don't want to do anything? Well then, say so!" Rostov almost
    shouted, not looking Boris in the face.
    
    Boris smiled.
    
    "On the contrary, I will do what I can. Only I thought..."
    
    At that moment Zhilinski's voice was heard calling Boris.
    
    "Well then, go, go, go..." said Rostov, and refusing supper and
    remaining alone in the little room, he walked up and down for a long
    time, hearing the lighthearted French conversation from the next room.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    Rostov had come to Tilsit the day least suitable for a petition on
    Denisov's behalf. He could not himself go to the general in attendance
    as he was in mufti and had come to Tilsit without permission to do so,
    and Boris, even had he wished to, could not have done so on the
    following day. On that day, June 27, the preliminaries of peace were
    signed. The Emperors exchanged decorations: Alexander received the Cross
    of the Legion of Honor and Napoleon the Order of St. Andrew of the First
    Degree, and a dinner had been arranged for the evening, given by a
    battalion of the French Guards to the Preobrazhensk battalion. The
    Emperors were to be present at that banquet.
    
    Rostov felt so ill at ease and uncomfortable with Boris that, when the
    latter looked in after supper, he pretended to be asleep, and early next
    morning went away, avoiding Boris. In his civilian clothes and a round
    hat, he wandered about the town, staring at the French and their
    uniforms and at the streets and houses where the Russian and French
    Emperors were staying. In a square he saw tables being set up and
    preparations made for the dinner; he saw the Russian and French colors
    draped from side to side of the streets, with huge monograms A and N. In
    the windows of the houses also flags and bunting were displayed.
    
    "Boris doesn't want to help me and I don't want to ask him. That's
    settled," thought Nicholas. "All is over between us, but I won't leave
    here without having done all I can for Denisov and certainly not without
    getting his letter to the Emperor. The Emperor!... He is here!" thought
    Rostov, who had unconsciously returned to the house where Alexander
    lodged.
    
    Saddled horses were standing before the house and the suite were
    assembling, evidently preparing for the Emperor to come out.
    
    "I may see him at any moment," thought Rostov. "If only I were to hand
    the letter direct to him and tell him all... could they really arrest me
    for my civilian clothes? Surely not! He would understand on whose side
    justice lies. He understands everything, knows everything. Who can be
    more just, more magnanimous than he? And even if they did arrest me for
    being here, what would it matter?" thought he, looking at an officer who
    was entering the house the Emperor occupied. "After all, people do go
    in.... It's all nonsense! I'll go in and hand the letter to the Emperor
    myself so much the worse for Drubetskoy who drives me to it!" And
    suddenly with a determination he himself did not expect, Rostov felt for
    the letter in his pocket and went straight to the house.
    
    "No, I won't miss my opportunity now, as I did after Austerlitz," he
    thought, expecting every moment to meet the monarch, and conscious of
    the blood that rushed to his heart at the thought. "I will fall at his
    feet and beseech him. He will lift me up, will listen, and will even
    thank me. 'I am happy when I can do good, but to remedy injustice is the
    greatest happiness,'" Rostov fancied the sovereign saying. And passing
    people who looked after him with curiosity, he entered the porch of the
    Emperor's house.
    
    A broad staircase led straight up from the entry, and to the right he
    saw a closed door. Below, under the staircase, was a door leading to the
    lower floor.
    
    "Whom do you want?" someone inquired.
    
    "To hand in a letter, a petition, to His Majesty," said Nicholas, with a
    tremor in his voice.
    
    "A petition? This way, to the officer on duty" (he was shown the door
    leading downstairs), "only it won't be accepted."
    
    On hearing this indifferent voice, Rostov grew frightened at what he was
    doing; the thought of meeting the Emperor at any moment was so
    fascinating and consequently so alarming that he was ready to run away,
    but the official who had questioned him opened the door, and Rostov
    entered.
    
    A short stout man of about thirty, in white breeches and high boots and
    a batiste shirt that he had evidently only just put on, standing in that
    room, and his valet was buttoning on to the back of his breeches a new
    pair of handsome silk-embroidered braces that, for some reason,
    attracted Rostov's attention. This man was speaking to someone in the
    adjoining room.
    
    "A good figure and in her first bloom," he was saying, but on seeing
    Rostov, he stopped short and frowned.
    
    "What is it? A petition?"
    
    "What is it?" asked the person in the other room.
    
    "Another petitioner," answered the man with the braces.
    
    "Tell him to come later. He'll be coming out directly, we must go."
    
    "Later... later! Tomorrow. It's too late..."
    
    Rostov turned and was about to go, but the man in the braces stopped
    him.
    
    "Whom have you come from? Who are you?"
    
    "I come from Major Denisov," answered Rostov.
    
    "Are you an officer?"
    
    "Lieutenant Count Rostov."
    
    "What audacity! Hand it in through your commander. And go along with
    you... go," and he continued to put on the uniform the valet handed him.
    
    Rostov went back into the hall and noticed that in the porch there were
    many officers and generals in full parade uniform, whom he had to pass.
    
    Cursing his temerity, his heart sinking at the thought of finding
    himself at any moment face to face with the Emperor and being put to
    shame and arrested in his presence, fully alive now to the impropriety
    of his conduct and repenting of it, Rostov, with downcast eyes, was
    making his way out of the house through the brilliant suite when a
    familiar voice called him and a hand detained him.
    
    "What are you doing here, sir, in civilian dress?" asked a deep voice.
    
    It was a cavalry general who had obtained the Emperor's special favor
    during this campaign, and who had formerly commanded the division in
    which Rostov was serving.
    
    Rostov, in dismay, began justifying himself, but seeing the kindly,
    jocular face of the general, he took him aside and in an excited voice
    told him the whole affair, asking him to intercede for Denisov, whom the
    general knew. Having heard Rostov to the end, the general shook his head
    gravely.
    
    "I'm sorry, sorry for that fine fellow. Give me the letter."
    
    Hardly had Rostov handed him the letter and finished explaining
    Denisov's case, when hasty steps and the jingling of spurs were heard on
    the stairs, and the general, leaving him, went to the porch. The
    gentlemen of the Emperor's suite ran down the stairs and went to their
    horses. Hayne, the same groom who had been at Austerlitz, led up the
    Emperor's horse, and the faint creak of a footstep Rostov knew at once
    was heard on the stairs. Forgetting the danger of being recognized,
    Rostov went close to the porch, together with some inquisitive
    civilians, and again, after two years, saw those features he adored:
    that same face and same look and step, and the same union of majesty and
    mildness.... And the feeling of enthusiasm and love for his sovereign
    rose again in Rostov's soul in all its old force. In the uniform of the
    Preobrazhensk regiment--white chamois-leather breeches and high boots--
    and wearing a star Rostov did not know (it was that of the Legion
    d'honneur), the monarch came out into the porch, putting on his gloves
    and carrying his hat under his arm. He stopped and looked about him,
    brightening everything around by his glance. He spoke a few words to
    some of the generals, and, recognizing the former commander of Rostov's
    division, smiled and beckoned to him.
    
    All the suite drew back and Rostov saw the general talking for some time
    to the Emperor.
    
    The Emperor said a few words to him and took a step toward his horse.
    Again the crowd of members of the suite and street gazers (among whom
    was Rostov) moved nearer to the Emperor. Stopping beside his horse, with
    his hand on the saddle, the Emperor turned to the cavalry general and
    said in a loud voice, evidently wishing to be heard by all:
    
    "I cannot do it, General. I cannot, because the law is stronger than I,"
    and he raised his foot to the stirrup.
    
    The general bowed his head respectfully, and the monarch mounted and
    rode down the street at a gallop. Beside himself with enthusiasm, Rostov
    ran after him with the crowd.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    The Emperor rode to the square where, facing one another, a battalion of
    the Preobrazhensk regiment stood on the right and a battalion of the
    French Guards in their bearskin caps on the left.
    
    As the Tsar rode up to one flank of the battalions, which presented
    arms, another group of horsemen galloped up to the opposite flank, and
    at the head of them Rostov recognized Napoleon. It could be no one else.
    He came at a gallop, wearing a small hat, a blue uniform open over a
    white vest, and the St. Andrew ribbon over his shoulder. He was riding a
    very fine thoroughbred gray Arab horse with a crimson gold-embroidered
    saddlecloth. On approaching Alexander he raised his hat, and as he did
    so, Rostov, with his cavalryman's eye, could not help noticing that
    Napoleon did not sit well or firmly in the saddle. The battalions
    shouted "Hurrah!" and "Vive l'Empereur!" Napoleon said something to
    Alexander, and both Emperors dismounted and took each other's hands.
    Napoleon's face wore an unpleasant and artificial smile. Alexander was
    saying something affable to him.
    
    In spite of the trampling of the French gendarmes' horses, which were
    pushing back the crowd, Rostov kept his eyes on every movement of
    Alexander and Bonaparte. It struck him as a surprise that Alexander
    treated Bonaparte as an equal and that the latter was quite at ease with
    the Tsar, as if such relations with an Emperor were an everyday matter
    to him.
    
    Alexander and Napoleon, with the long train of their suites, approached
    the right flank of the Preobrazhensk battalion and came straight up to
    the crowd standing there. The crowd unexpectedly found itself so close
    to the Emperors that Rostov, standing in the front row, was afraid he
    might be recognized.
    
    "Sire, I ask your permission to present the Legion of Honor to the
    bravest of your soldiers," said a sharp, precise voice, articulating
    every letter.
    
    This was said by the undersized Napoleon, looking up straight into
    Alexander's eyes. Alexander listened attentively to what was said to him
    and, bending his head, smiled pleasantly.
    
    "To him who has borne himself most bravely in this last war," added
    Napoleon, accentuating each syllable, as with a composure and assurance
    exasperating to Rostov, he ran his eyes over the Russian ranks drawn up
    before him, who all presented arms with their eyes fixed on their
    Emperor.
    
    "Will Your Majesty allow me to consult the colonel?" said Alexander and
    took a few hasty steps toward Prince Kozlovski, the commander of the
    battalion.
    
    Bonaparte meanwhile began taking the glove off his small white hand,
    tore it in doing so, and threw it away. An aide-de-camp behind him
    rushed forward and picked it up.
    
    "To whom shall it be given?" the Emperor Alexander asked Koslovski, in
    Russian in a low voice.
    
    "To whomever Your Majesty commands."
    
    The Emperor knit his brows with dissatisfaction and, glancing back,
    remarked:
    
    "But we must give him an answer."
    
    Kozlovski scanned the ranks resolutely and included Rostov in his
    scrutiny.
    
    "Can it be me?" thought Rostov.
    
    "Lazarev!" the colonel called, with a frown, and Lazarev, the first
    soldier in the rank, stepped briskly forward.
    
    "Where are you off to? Stop here!" voices whispered to Lazarev who did
    not know where to go. Lazarev stopped, casting a sidelong look at his
    colonel in alarm. His face twitched, as often happens to soldiers called
    before the ranks.
    
    Napoleon slightly turned his head, and put his plump little hand out
    behind him as if to take something. The members of his suite, guessing
    at once what he wanted, moved about and whispered as they passed
    something from one to another, and a page--the same one Rostov had seen
    the previous evening at Boris'--ran forward and, bowing respectfully
    over the outstretched hand and not keeping it waiting a moment, laid in
    it an Order on a red ribbon. Napoleon, without looking, pressed two
    fingers together and the badge was between them. Then he approached
    Lazarev (who rolled his eyes and persistently gazed at his own monarch),
    looked round at the Emperor Alexander to imply that what he was now
    doing was done for the sake of his ally, and the small white hand
    holding the Order touched one of Lazarev's buttons. It was as if
    Napoleon knew that it was only necessary for his hand to deign to touch
    that soldier's breast for the soldier to be forever happy, rewarded, and
    distinguished from everyone else in the world. Napoleon merely laid the
    cross on Lazarev's breast and, dropping his hand, turned toward
    Alexander as though sure that the cross would adhere there. And it
    really did.
    
    Officious hands, Russian and French, immediately seized the cross and
    fastened it to the uniform. Lazarev glanced morosely at the little man
    with white hands who was doing something to him and, still standing
    motionless presenting arms, looked again straight into Alexander's eyes,
    as if asking whether he should stand there, or go away, or do something
    else. But receiving no orders, he remained for some time in that rigid
    position.
    
    The Emperors remounted and rode away. The Preobrazhensk battalion,
    breaking rank, mingled with the French Guards and sat down at the tables
    prepared for them.
    
    Lazarev sat in the place of honor. Russian and French officers embraced
    him, congratulated him, and pressed his hands. Crowds of officers and
    civilians drew near merely to see him. A rumble of Russian and French
    voices and laughter filled the air round the tables in the square. Two
    officers with flushed faces, looking cheerful and happy, passed by
    Rostov.
    
    "What d'you think of the treat? All on silver plate," one of them was
    saying. "Have you seen Lazarev?"
    
    "I have."
    
    "Tomorrow, I hear, the Preobrazhenskis will give them a dinner."
    
    "Yes, but what luck for Lazarev! Twelve hundred francs' pension for
    life."
    
    "Here's a cap, lads!" shouted a Preobrazhensk soldier, donning a shaggy
    French cap.
    
    "It's a fine thing! First-rate!"
    
    "Have you heard the password?" asked one Guards' officer of another.
    "The day before yesterday it was 'Napoleon, France, bravoure';
    yesterday, 'Alexandre, Russie, grandeur.' One day our Emperor gives it
    and next day Napoleon. Tomorrow our Emperor will send a St. George's
    Cross to the bravest of the French Guards. It has to be done. He must
    respond in kind."
    
    Boris, too, with his friend Zhilinski, came to see the Preobrazhensk
    banquet. On his way back, he noticed Rostov standing by the corner of a
    house.
    
    "Rostov! How d'you do? We missed one another," he said, and could not
    refrain from asking what was the matter, so strangely dismal and
    troubled was Rostov's face.
    
    "Nothing, nothing," replied Rostov.
    
    "You'll call round?"
    
    "Yes, I will."
    
    Rostov stood at that corner for a long time, watching the feast from a
    distance. In his mind, a painful process was going on which he could not
    bring to a conclusion. Terrible doubts rose in his soul. Now he
    remembered Denisov with his changed expression, his submission, and the
    whole hospital, with arms and legs torn off and its dirt and disease. So
    vividly did he recall that hospital stench of dead flesh that he looked
    round to see where the smell came from. Next he thought of that self-
    satisfied Bonaparte, with his small white hand, who was now an Emperor,
    liked and respected by Alexander. Then why those severed arms and legs
    and those dead men?... Then again he thought of Lazarev rewarded and
    Denisov punished and unpardoned. He caught himself harboring such
    strange thoughts that he was frightened.
    
    The smell of the food the Preobrazhenskis were eating and a sense of
    hunger recalled him from these reflections; he had to get something to
    eat before going away. He went to a hotel he had noticed that morning.
    There he found so many people, among them officers who, like himself,
    had come in civilian clothes, that he had difficulty in getting a
    dinner. Two officers of his own division joined him. The conversation
    naturally turned on the peace. The officers, his comrades, like most of
    the army, were dissatisfied with the peace concluded after the battle of
    Friedland. They said that had we held out a little longer Napoleon would
    have been done for, as his troops had neither provisions nor ammunition.
    Nicholas ate and drank (chiefly the latter) in silence. He finished a
    couple of bottles of wine by himself. The process in his mind went on
    tormenting him without reaching a conclusion. He feared to give way to
    his thoughts, yet could not get rid of them. Suddenly, on one of the
    officers' saying that it was humiliating to look at the French, Rostov
    began shouting with uncalled-for wrath, and therefore much to the
    surprise of the officers:
    
    "How can you judge what's best?" he cried, the blood suddenly rushing to
    his face. "How can you judge the Emperor's actions? What right have we
    to argue? We cannot comprehend either the Emperor's aims or his
    actions!"
    
    "But I never said a word about the Emperor!" said the officer,
    justifying himself, and unable to understand Rostov's outburst, except
    on the supposition that he was drunk.
    
    But Rostov did not listen to him.
    
    "We are not diplomatic officials, we are soldiers and nothing more," he
    went on. "If we are ordered to die, we must die. If we're punished, it
    means that we have deserved it, it's not for us to judge. If the Emperor
    pleases to recognize Bonaparte as Emperor and to conclude an alliance
    with him, it means that that is the right thing to do. If once we begin
    judging and arguing about everything, nothing sacred will be left! That
    way we shall be saying there is no God--nothing!" shouted Nicholas,
    banging the table--very little to the point as it seemed to his
    listeners, but quite relevantly to the course of his own thoughts.
    
    "Our business is to do our duty, to fight and not to think! That's
    all...." said he.
    
    "And to drink," said one of the officers, not wishing to quarrel.
    
    "Yes, and to drink," assented Nicholas. "Hullo there! Another bottle!"
    he shouted.
    
    In 1808 the Emperor Alexander went to Erfurt for a fresh interview with
    the Emperor Napoleon, and in the upper circles of Petersburg there was
    much talk of the grandeur of this important meeting.
    
    CHAPTER XXII
    
    In 1809 the intimacy between "the world's two arbiters," as Napoleon and
    Alexander were called, was such that when Napoleon declared war on
    Austria a Russian corps crossed the frontier to co-operate with our old
    enemy Bonaparte against our old ally the Emperor of Austria, and in
    court circles the possibility of marriage between Napoleon and one of
    Alexander's sisters was spoken of. But besides considerations of foreign
    policy, the attention of Russian society was at that time keenly
    directed on the internal changes that were being undertaken in all the
    departments of government.
    
    Life meanwhile--real life, with its essential interests of health and
    sickness, toil and rest, and its intellectual interests in thought,
    science, poetry, music, love, friendship, hatred, and passions--went on
    as usual, independently of and apart from political friendship or enmity
    with Napoleon Bonaparte and from all the schemes of reconstruction.
    
    BOOK SIX: 1808 - 10
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    Prince Andrew had spent two years continuously in the country.
    
    All the plans Pierre had attempted on his estates--and constantly
    changing from one thing to another had never accomplished--were carried
    out by Prince Andrew without display and without perceptible difficulty.
    
    He had in the highest degree a practical tenacity which Pierre lacked,
    and without fuss or strain on his part this set things going.
    
    On one of his estates the three hundred serfs were liberated and became
    free agricultural laborers--this being one of the first examples of the
    kind in Russia. On other estates the serfs' compulsory labor was
    commuted for a quitrent. A trained midwife was engaged for Bogucharovo
    at his expense, and a priest was paid to teach reading and writing to
    the children of the peasants and household serfs.
    
    Prince Andrew spent half his time at Bald Hills with his father and his
    son, who was still in the care of nurses. The other half he spent in
    "Bogucharovo Cloister," as his father called Prince Andrew's estate.
    Despite the indifference to the affairs of the world he had expressed to
    Pierre, he diligently followed all that went on, received many books,
    and to his surprise noticed that when he or his father had visitors from
    Petersburg, the very vortex of life, these people lagged behind himself-
    -who never left the country--in knowledge of what was happening in home
    and foreign affairs.
    
    Besides being occupied with his estates and reading a great variety of
    books, Prince Andrew was at this time busy with a critical survey of our
    last two unfortunate campaigns, and with drawing up a proposal for a
    reform of the army rules and regulations.
    
    In the spring of 1809 he went to visit the Ryazan estates which had been
    inherited by his son, whose guardian he was.
    
    Warmed by the spring sunshine he sat in the caleche looking at the new
    grass, the first leaves on the birches, and the first puffs of white
    spring clouds floating across the clear blue sky. He was not thinking of
    anything, but looked absent-mindedly and cheerfully from side to side.
    
    They crossed the ferry where he had talked with Pierre the year before.
    They went through the muddy village, past threshing floors and green
    fields of winter rye, downhill where snow still lodged near the bridge,
    uphill where the clay had been liquefied by the rain, past strips of
    stubble land and bushes touched with green here and there, and into a
    birch forest growing on both sides of the road. In the forest it was
    almost hot, no wind could be felt. The birches with their sticky green
    leaves were motionless, and lilac-colored flowers and the first blades
    of green grass were pushing up and lifting last year's leaves. The
    coarse evergreen color of the small fir trees scattered here and there
    among the birches was an unpleasant reminder of winter. On entering the
    forest the horses began to snort and sweated visibly.
    
    Peter the footman made some remark to the coachman; the latter assented.
    But apparently the coachman's sympathy was not enough for Peter, and he
    turned on the box toward his master.
    
    "How pleasant it is, your excellency!" he said with a respectful smile.
    
    "What?"
    
    "It's pleasant, your excellency!"
    
    "What is he talking about?" thought Prince Andrew. "Oh, the spring, I
    suppose," he thought as he turned round. "Yes, really everything is
    green already.... How early! The birches and cherry and alders too are
    coming out.... But the oaks show no sign yet. Ah, here is one oak!"
    
    At the edge of the road stood an oak. Probably ten times the age of the
    birches that formed the forest, it was ten times as thick and twice as
    tall as they. It was an enormous tree, its girth twice as great as a man
    could embrace, and evidently long ago some of its branches had been
    broken off and its bark scarred. With its huge ungainly limbs sprawling
    unsymmetrically, and its gnarled hands and fingers, it stood an aged,
    stern, and scornful monster among the smiling birch trees. Only the
    dead-looking evergreen firs dotted about in the forest, and this oak,
    refused to yield to the charm of spring or notice either the spring or
    the sunshine.
    
    "Spring, love, happiness!" this oak seemed to say. "Are you not weary of
    that stupid, meaningless, constantly repeated fraud? Always the same and
    always a fraud? There is no spring, no sun, no happiness! Look at those
    cramped dead firs, ever the same, and at me too, sticking out my broken
    and barked fingers just where they have grown, whether from my back or
    my sides: as they have grown so I stand, and I do not believe in your
    hopes and your lies."
    
    As he passed through the forest Prince Andrew turned several times to
    look at that oak, as if expecting something from it. Under the oak, too,
    were flowers and grass, but it stood among them scowling, rigid,
    misshapen, and grim as ever.
    
    "Yes, the oak is right, a thousand times right," thought Prince Andrew.
    "Let others--the young--yield afresh to that fraud, but we know life,
    our life is finished!"
    
    A whole sequence of new thoughts, hopeless but mournfully pleasant, rose
    in his soul in connection with that tree. During this journey he, as it
    were, considered his life afresh and arrived at his old conclusion,
    restful in its hopelessness: that it was not for him to begin anything
    anew--but that he must live out his life, content to do no harm, and not
    disturbing himself or desiring anything.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    Prince Andrew had to see the Marshal of the Nobility for the district in
    connection with the affairs of the Ryazan estate of which he was
    trustee. This Marshal was Count Ilya Rostov, and in the middle of May
    Prince Andrew went to visit him.
    
    It was now hot spring weather. The whole forest was already clothed in
    green. It was dusty and so hot that on passing near water one longed to
    bathe.
    
    Prince Andrew, depressed and preoccupied with the business about which
    he had to speak to the Marshal, was driving up the avenue in the grounds
    of the Rostovs' house at Otradnoe. He heard merry girlish cries behind
    some trees on the right and saw a group of girls running to cross the
    path of his caleche. Ahead of the rest and nearer to him ran a dark-
    haired, remarkably slim, pretty girl in a yellow chintz dress, with a
    white handkerchief on her head from under which loose locks of hair
    escaped. The girl was shouting something but, seeing that he was a
    stranger, ran back laughing without looking at him.
    
    Suddenly, he did not know why, he felt a pang. The day was so beautiful,
    the sun so bright, everything around so gay, but that slim pretty girl
    did not know, or wish to know, of his existence and was contented and
    cheerful in her own separate--probably foolish--but bright and happy
    life. "What is she so glad about? What is she thinking of? Not of the
    military regulations or of the arrangement of the Ryazan serfs'
    quitrents. Of what is she thinking? Why is she so happy?" Prince Andrew
    asked himself with instinctive curiosity.
    
    In 1809 Count Ilya Rostov was living at Otradnoe just as he had done in
    former years, that is, entertaining almost the whole province with
    hunts, theatricals, dinners, and music. He was glad to see Prince
    Andrew, as he was to see any new visitor, and insisted on his staying
    the night.
    
    During the dull day, in the course of which he was entertained by his
    elderly hosts and by the more important of the visitors (the old count's
    house was crowded on account of an approaching name day), Prince Andrew
    repeatedly glanced at Natasha, gay and laughing among the younger
    members of the company, and asked himself each time, "What is she
    thinking about? Why is she so glad?"
    
    That night, alone in new surroundings, he was long unable to sleep. He
    read awhile and then put out his candle, but relit it. It was hot in the
    room, the inside shutters of which were closed. He was cross with the
    stupid old man (as he called Rostov), who had made him stay by assuring
    him that some necessary documents had not yet arrived from town, and he
    was vexed with himself for having stayed.
    
    He got up and went to the window to open it. As soon as he opened the
    shutters the moonlight, as if it had long been watching for this, burst
    into the room. He opened the casement. The night was fresh, bright, and
    very still. Just before the window was a row of pollard trees, looking
    black on one side and with a silvery light on the other. Beneath the
    trees grew some kind of lush, wet, bushy vegetation with silver-lit
    leaves and stems here and there. Farther back beyond the dark trees a
    roof glittered with dew, to the right was a leafy tree with brilliantly
    white trunk and branches, and above it shone the moon, nearly at its
    full, in a pale, almost starless, spring sky. Prince Andrew leaned his
    elbows on the window ledge and his eyes rested on that sky.
    
    His room was on the first floor. Those in the rooms above were also
    awake. He heard female voices overhead.
    
    "Just once more," said a girlish voice above him which Prince Andrew
    recognized at once.
    
    "But when are you coming to bed?" replied another voice.
    
    "I won't, I can't sleep, what's the use? Come now for the last time."
    
    Two girlish voices sang a musical passage--the end of some song.
    
    "Oh, how lovely! Now go to sleep, and there's an end of it."
    
    "You go to sleep, but I can't," said the first voice, coming nearer to
    the window. She was evidently leaning right out, for the rustle of her
    dress and even her breathing could be heard. Everything was stone-still,
    like the moon and its light and the shadows. Prince Andrew, too, dared
    not stir, for fear of betraying his unintentional presence.
    
    "Sonya! Sonya!" he again heard the first speaker. "Oh, how can you
    sleep? Only look how glorious it is! Ah, how glorious! Do wake up,
    Sonya!" she said almost with tears in her voice. "There never, never was
    such a lovely night before!"
    
    Sonya made some reluctant reply.
    
    "Do just come and see what a moon!... Oh, how lovely! Come here....
    Darling, sweetheart, come here! There, you see? I feel like sitting down
    on my heels, putting my arms round my knees like this, straining tight,
    as tight as possible, and flying away! Like this...."
    
    "Take care, you'll fall out."
    
    He heard the sound of a scuffle and Sonya's disapproving voice: "It's
    past one o'clock."
    
    "Oh, you only spoil things for me. All right, go, go!"
    
    Again all was silent, but Prince Andrew knew she was still sitting
    there. From time to time he heard a soft rustle and at times a sigh.
    
    "O God, O God! What does it mean?" she suddenly exclaimed. "To bed then,
    if it must be!" and she slammed the casement.
    
    "For her I might as well not exist!" thought Prince Andrew while he
    listened to her voice, for some reason expecting yet fearing that she
    might say something about him. "There she is again! As if it were on
    purpose," thought he.
    
    In his soul there suddenly arose such an unexpected turmoil of youthful
    thoughts and hopes, contrary to the whole tenor of his life, that unable
    to explain his condition to himself he lay down and fell asleep at once.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    Next morning, having taken leave of no one but the count, and not
    waiting for the ladies to appear, Prince Andrew set off for home.
    
    It was already the beginning of June when on his return journey he drove
    into the birch forest where the gnarled old oak had made so strange and
    memorable an impression on him. In the forest the harness bells sounded
    yet more muffled than they had done six weeks before, for now all was
    thick, shady, and dense, and the young firs dotted about in the forest
    did not jar on the general beauty but, lending themselves to the mood
    around, were delicately green with fluffy young shoots.
    
    The whole day had been hot. Somewhere a storm was gathering, but only a
    small cloud had scattered some raindrops lightly, sprinkling the road
    and the sappy leaves. The left side of the forest was dark in the shade,
    the right side glittered in the sunlight, wet and shiny and scarcely
    swayed by the breeze. Everything was in blossom, the nightingales
    trilled, and their voices reverberated now near, now far away.
    
    "Yes, here in this forest was that oak with which I agreed," thought
    Prince Andrew. "But where is it?" he again wondered, gazing at the left
    side of the road, and without recognizing it he looked with admiration
    at the very oak he sought. The old oak, quite transfigured, spreading
    out a canopy of sappy dark-green foliage, stood rapt and slightly
    trembling in the rays of the evening sun. Neither gnarled fingers nor
    old scars nor old doubts and sorrows were any of them in evidence now.
    Through the hard century-old bark, even where there were no twigs,
    leaves had sprouted such as one could hardly believe the old veteran
    could have produced.
    
    "Yes, it is the same oak," thought Prince Andrew, and all at once he was
    seized by an unreasoning springtime feeling of joy and renewal. All the
    best moments of his life suddenly rose to his memory. Austerlitz with
    the lofty heavens, his wife's dead reproachful face, Pierre at the
    ferry, that girl thrilled by the beauty of the night, and that night
    itself and the moon, and.... all this rushed suddenly to his mind.
    
    "No, life is not over at thirty-one!" Prince Andrew suddenly decided
    finally and decisively. "It is not enough for me to know what I have in
    me--everyone must know it: Pierre, and that young girl who wanted to fly
    away into the sky, everyone must know me, so that my life may not be
    lived for myself alone while others live so apart from it, but so that
    it may be reflected in them all, and they and I may live in harmony!"
    
    On reaching home Prince Andrew decided to go to Petersburg that autumn
    and found all sorts of reasons for this decision. A whole series of
    sensible and logical considerations showing it to be essential for him
    to go to Petersburg, and even to re-enter the service, kept springing up
    in his mind. He could not now understand how he could ever even have
    doubted the necessity of taking an active share in life, just as a month
    before he had not understood how the idea of leaving the quiet country
    could ever enter his head. It now seemed clear to him that all his
    experience of life must be senselessly wasted unless he applied it to
    some kind of work and again played an active part in life. He did not
    even remember how formerly, on the strength of similar wretched logical
    arguments, it had seemed obvious that he would be degrading himself if
    he now, after the lessons he had had in life, allowed himself to believe
    in the possibility of being useful and in the possibility of happiness
    or love. Now reason suggested quite the opposite. After that journey to
    Ryazan he found the country dull; his former pursuits no longer
    interested him, and often when sitting alone in his study he got up,
    went to the mirror, and gazed a long time at his own face. Then he would
    turn away to the portrait of his dead Lise, who with hair curled a la
    grecque looked tenderly and gaily at him out of the gilt frame. She did
    not now say those former terrible words to him, but looked simply,
    merrily, and inquisitively at him. And Prince Andrew, crossing his arms
    behind him, long paced the room, now frowning, now smiling, as he
    reflected on those irrational, inexpressible thoughts, secret as a
    crime, which altered his whole life and were connected with Pierre, with
    fame, with the girl at the window, the oak, and woman's beauty and love.
    And if anyone came into his room at such moments he was particularly
    cold, stern, and above all unpleasantly logical.
    
    "My dear," Princess Mary entering at such a moment would say, "little
    Nicholas can't go out today, it's very cold."
    
    "If it were hot," Prince Andrew would reply at such times very dryly to
    his sister, "he could go out in his smock, but as it is cold he must
    wear warm clothes, which were designed for that purpose. That is what
    follows from the fact that it is cold; and not that a child who needs
    fresh air should remain at home," he would add with extreme logic, as if
    punishing someone for those secret illogical emotions that stirred
    within him.
    
    At such moments Princess Mary would think how intellectual work dries
    men up.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Prince Andrew arrived in Petersburg in August, 1809. It was the time
    when the youthful Speranski was at the zenith of his fame and his
    reforms were being pushed forward with the greatest energy. That same
    August the Emperor was thrown from his caleche, injured his leg, and
    remained three weeks at Peterhof, receiving Speranski every day and no
    one else. At that time the two famous decrees were being prepared that
    so agitated society--abolishing court ranks and introducing examinations
    to qualify for the grades of Collegiate Assessor and State Councilor--
    and not merely these but a whole state constitution, intended to change
    the existing order of government in Russia: legal, administrative, and
    financial, from the Council of State down to the district tribunals. Now
    those vague liberal dreams with which the Emperor Alexander had ascended
    the throne, and which he had tried to put into effect with the aid of
    his associates, Czartoryski, Novosiltsev, Kochubey, and Strogonov--whom
    he himself in jest had called his Comite de salut public--were taking
    shape and being realized.
    
    Now all these men were replaced by Speranski on the civil side, and
    Arakcheev on the military. Soon after his arrival Prince Andrew, as a
    gentleman of the chamber, presented himself at court and at a levee. The
    Emperor, though he met him twice, did not favor him with a single word.
    It had always seemed to Prince Andrew before that he was antipathetic to
    the Emperor and that the latter disliked his face and personality
    generally, and in the cold, repellent glance the Emperor gave him, he
    now found further confirmation of this surmise. The courtiers explained
    the Emperor's neglect of him by His Majesty's displeasure at Bolkonski's
    not having served since 1805.
    
    "I know myself that one cannot help one's sympathies and antipathies,"
    thought Prince Andrew, "so it will not do to present my proposal for the
    reform of the army regulations to the Emperor personally, but the
    project will speak for itself."
    
    He mentioned what he had written to an old field marshal, a friend of
    his father's. The field marshal made an appointment to see him, received
    him graciously, and promised to inform the Emperor. A few days later
    Prince Andrew received notice that he was to go to see the Minister of
    War, Count Arakcheev.
    
    On the appointed day Prince Andrew entered Count Arakcheev's waiting
    room at nine in the morning.
    
    He did not know Arakcheev personally, had never seen him, and all he had
    heard of him inspired him with but little respect for the man.
    
    "He is Minister of War, a man trusted by the Emperor, and I need not
    concern myself about his personal qualities: he has been commissioned to
    consider my project, so he alone can get it adopted," thought Prince
    Andrew as he waited among a number of important and unimportant people
    in Count Arakcheev's waiting room.
    
    During his service, chiefly as an adjutant, Prince Andrew had seen the
    anterooms of many important men, and the different types of such rooms
    were well known to him. Count Arakcheev's anteroom had quite a special
    character. The faces of the unimportant people awaiting their turn for
    an audience showed embarrassment and servility; the faces of those of
    higher rank expressed a common feeling of awkwardness, covered by a mask
    of unconcern and ridicule of themselves, their situation, and the person
    for whom they were waiting. Some walked thoughtfully up and down, others
    whispered and laughed. Prince Andrew heard the nickname "Sila
    Andreevich" and the words, "Uncle will give it to us hot," in reference
    to Count Arakcheev. One general (an important personage), evidently
    feeling offended at having to wait so long, sat crossing and uncrossing
    his legs and smiling contemptuously to himself.
    
    But the moment the door opened one feeling alone appeared on all faces--
    that of fear. Prince Andrew for the second time asked the adjutant on
    duty to take in his name, but received an ironical look and was told
    that his turn would come in due course. After some others had been shown
    in and out of the minister's room by the adjutant on duty, an officer
    who struck Prince Andrew by his humiliated and frightened air was
    admitted at that terrible door. This officer's audience lasted a long
    time. Then suddenly the grating sound of a harsh voice was heard from
    the other side of the door, and the officer--with pale face and
    trembling lips--came out and passed through the waiting room, clutching
    his head.
    
    After this Prince Andrew was conducted to the door and the officer on
    duty said in a whisper, "To the right, at the window."
    
    Prince Andrew entered a plain tidy room and saw at the table a man of
    forty with a long waist, a long closely cropped head, deep wrinkles,
    scowling brows above dull greenish-hazel eyes and an overhanging red
    nose. Arakcheev turned his head toward him without looking at him.
    
    "What is your petition?" asked Arakcheev.
    
    "I am not petitioning, your excellency," returned Prince Andrew quietly.
    
    Arakcheev's eyes turned toward him.
    
    "Sit down," said he. "Prince Bolkonski?"
    
    "I am not petitioning about anything. His Majesty the Emperor has
    deigned to send your excellency a project submitted by me..."
    
    "You see, my dear sir, I have read your project," interrupted Arakcheev,
    uttering only the first words amiably and then--again without looking at
    Prince Andrew--relapsing gradually into a tone of grumbling contempt.
    "You are proposing new military laws? There are many laws but no one to
    carry out the old ones. Nowadays everybody designs laws, it is easier
    writing than doing."
    
    "I came at His Majesty the Emperor's wish to learn from your excellency
    how you propose to deal with the memorandum I have presented," said
    Prince Andrew politely.
    
    "I have endorsed a resolution on your memorandum and sent it to the
    committee. I do not approve of it," said Arakcheev, rising and taking a
    paper from his writing table. "Here!" and he handed it to Prince Andrew.
    
    Across the paper was scrawled in pencil, without capital letters,
    misspelled, and without punctuation: "Unsoundly constructed because
    resembles an imitation of the French military code and from the Articles
    of War needlessly deviating."
    
    "To what committee has the memorandum been referred?" inquired Prince
    Andrew.
    
    "To the Committee on Army Regulations, and I have recommended that your
    honor should be appointed a member, but without a salary."
    
    Prince Andrew smiled.
    
    "I don't want one."
    
    "A member without salary," repeated Arakcheev. "I have the honor... Eh!
    Call the next one! Who else is there?" he shouted, bowing to Prince
    Andrew.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    While waiting for the announcement of his appointment to the committee
    Prince Andrew looked up his former acquaintances, particularly those he
    knew to be in power and whose aid he might need. In Petersburg he now
    experienced the same feeling he had had on the eve of a battle, when
    troubled by anxious curiosity and irresistibly attracted to the ruling
    circles where the future, on which the fate of millions depended, was
    being shaped. From the irritation of the older men, the curiosity of the
    uninitiated, the reserve of the initiated, the hurry and preoccupation
    of everyone, and the innumerable committees and commissions of whose
    existence he learned every day, he felt that now, in 1809, here in
    Petersburg a vast civil conflict was in preparation, the commander in
    chief of which was a mysterious person he did not know, but who was
    supposed to be a man of genius--Speranski. And this movement of
    reconstruction of which Prince Andrew had a vague idea, and Speranski
    its chief promoter, began to interest him so keenly that the question of
    the army regulations quickly receded to a secondary place in his
    consciousness.
    
    Prince Andrew was most favorably placed to secure good reception in the
    highest and most diverse Petersburg circles of the day. The reforming
    party cordially welcomed and courted him, in the first place because he
    was reputed to be clever and very well read, and secondly because by
    liberating his serfs he had obtained the reputation of being a liberal.
    The party of the old and dissatisfied, who censured the innovations,
    turned to him expecting his sympathy in their disapproval of the
    reforms, simply because he was the son of his father. The feminine
    society world welcomed him gladly, because he was rich, distinguished, a
    good match, and almost a newcomer, with a halo of romance on account of
    his supposed death and the tragic loss of his wife. Besides this the
    general opinion of all who had known him previously was that he had
    greatly improved during these last five years, having softened and grown
    more manly, lost his former affectation, pride, and contemptuous irony,
    and acquired the serenity that comes with years. People talked about
    him, were interested in him, and wanted to meet him.
    
    The day after his interview with Count Arakcheev, Prince Andrew spent
    the evening at Count Kochubey's. He told the count of his interview with
    Sila Andreevich (Kochubey spoke of Arakcheev by that nickname with the
    same vague irony Prince Andrew had noticed in the Minister of War's
    anteroom).
    
    "Mon cher, even in this case you can't do without Michael Mikhaylovich
    Speranski. He manages everything. I'll speak to him. He has promised to
    come this evening."
    
    "What has Speranski to do with the army regulations?" asked Prince
    Andrew.
    
    Kochubey shook his head smilingly, as if surprised at Bolkonski's
    simplicity.
    
    "We were talking to him about you a few days ago," Kochubey continued,
    "and about your freed plowmen."
    
    "Oh, is it you, Prince, who have freed your serfs?" said an old man of
    Catherine's day, turning contemptuously toward Bolkonski.
    
    "It was a small estate that brought in no profit," replied Prince
    Andrew, trying to extenuate his action so as not to irritate the old man
    uselessly.
    
    "Afraid of being late..." said the old man, looking at Kochubey.
    
    "There's one thing I don't understand," he continued. "Who will plow the
    land if they are set free? It is easy to write laws, but difficult to
    rule.... Just the same as now--I ask you, Count--who will be heads of
    the departments when everybody has to pass examinations?"
    
    "Those who pass the examinations, I suppose," replied Kochubey, crossing
    his legs and glancing round.
    
    "Well, I have Pryanichnikov serving under me, a splendid man, a
    priceless man, but he's sixty. Is he to go up for examination?"
    
    "Yes, that's a difficulty, as education is not at all general, but..."
    
    Count Kochubey did not finish. He rose, took Prince Andrew by the arm,
    and went to meet a tall, bald, fair man of about forty with a large open
    forehead and a long face of unusual and peculiar whiteness, who was just
    entering. The newcomer wore a blue swallow-tail coat with a cross
    suspended from his neck and a star on his left breast. It was Speranski.
    Prince Andrew recognized him at once, and felt a throb within him, as
    happens at critical moments of life. Whether it was from respect, envy,
    or anticipation, he did not know. Speranski's whole figure was of a
    peculiar type that made him easily recognizable. In the society in which
    Prince Andrew lived he had never seen anyone who together with awkward
    and clumsy gestures possessed such calmness and self-assurance; he had
    never seen so resolute yet gentle an expression as that in those half-
    closed, rather humid eyes, or so firm a smile that expressed nothing;
    nor had he heard such a refined, smooth, soft voice; above all he had
    never seen such delicate whiteness of face or hands--hands which were
    broad, but very plump, soft, and white. Such whiteness and softness
    Prince Andrew had only seen on the faces of soldiers who had been long
    in hospital. This was Speranski, Secretary of State, reporter to the
    Emperor and his companion at Erfurt, where he had more than once met and
    talked with Napoleon.
    
    Speranski did not shift his eyes from one face to another as people
    involuntarily do on entering a large company and was in no hurry to
    speak. He spoke slowly, with assurance that he would be listened to, and
    he looked only at the person with whom he was conversing.
    
    Prince Andrew followed Speranski's every word and movement with
    particular attention. As happens to some people, especially to men who
    judge those near to them severely, he always on meeting anyone new--
    especially anyone whom, like Speranski, he knew by reputation--expected
    to discover in him the perfection of human qualities.
    
    Speranski told Kochubey he was sorry he had been unable to come sooner
    as he had been detained at the palace. He did not say that the Emperor
    had kept him, and Prince Andrew noticed this affectation of modesty.
    When Kochubey introduced Prince Andrew, Speranski slowly turned his eyes
    to Bolkonski with his customary smile and looked at him in silence.
    
    "I am very glad to make your acquaintance. I had heard of you, as
    everyone has," he said after a pause.
    
    Kochubey said a few words about the reception Arakcheev had given
    Bolkonski. Speranski smiled more markedly.
    
    "The chairman of the Committee on Army Regulations is my good friend
    Monsieur Magnitski," he said, fully articulating every word and
    syllable, "and if you like I can put you in touch with him." He paused
    at the full stop. "I hope you will find him sympathetic and ready to co-
    operate in promoting all that is reasonable."
    
    A circle soon formed round Speranski, and the old man who had talked
    about his subordinate Pryanichnikov addressed a question to him.
    
    Prince Andrew without joining in the conversation watched every movement
    of Speranski's: this man, not long since an insignificant divinity
    student, who now, Bolkonski thought, held in his hands--those plump
    white hands--the fate of Russia. Prince Andrew was struck by the
    extraordinarily disdainful composure with which Speranski answered the
    old man. He appeared to address condescending words to him from an
    immeasurable height. When the old man began to speak too loud, Speranski
    smiled and said he could not judge of the advantage or disadvantage of
    what pleased the sovereign.
    
    Having talked for a little while in the general circle, Speranski rose
    and coming up to Prince Andrew took him along to the other end of the
    room. It was clear that he thought it necessary to interest himself in
    Bolkonski.
    
    "I had no chance to talk with you, Prince, during the animated
    conversation in which that venerable gentleman involved me," he said
    with a mildly contemptuous smile, as if intimating by that smile that he
    and Prince Andrew understood the insignificance of the people with whom
    he had just been talking. This flattered Prince Andrew. "I have known of
    you for a long time: first from your action with regard to your serfs, a
    first example, of which it is very desirable that there should be more
    imitators; and secondly because you are one of those gentlemen of the
    chamber who have not considered themselves offended by the new decree
    concerning the ranks allotted to courtiers, which is causing so much
    gossip and tittle-tattle."
    
    "No," said Prince Andrew, "my father did not wish me to take advantage
    of the privilege. I began the service from the lower grade."
    
    "Your father, a man of the last century, evidently stands above our
    contemporaries who so condemn this measure which merely reestablishes
    natural justice."
    
    "I think, however, that these condemnations have some ground," returned
    Prince Andrew, trying to resist Speranski's influence, of which he began
    to be conscious. He did not like to agree with him in everything and
    felt a wish to contradict. Though he usually spoke easily and well, he
    felt a difficulty in expressing himself now while talking with
    Speranski. He was too much absorbed in observing the famous man's
    personality.
    
    "Grounds of personal ambition maybe," Speranski put in quietly.
    
    "And of state interest to some extent," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "What do you mean?" asked Speranski quietly, lowering his eyes.
    
    "I am an admirer of Montesquieu," replied Prince Andrew, "and his idea
    that le principe des monarchies est l'honneur me parait incontestable.
    Certains droits et privileges de la noblesse me paraissent etre des
    moyens de soutenir ce sentiment." *
    
    * "The principle of monarchies is honor seems to me incontestable.
    Certain rights and privileges for the aristocracy appear to me a means
    of maintaining that sentiment."
    
    The smile vanished from Speranski's white face, which was much improved
    by the change. Probably Prince Andrew's thought interested him.
    
    "Si vous envisagez la question sous ce point de vue," * he began,
    pronouncing French with evident difficulty, and speaking even slower
    than in Russian but quite calmly.
    
    * "If you regard the question from that point of view."
    
    Speranski went on to say that honor, l'honneur, cannot be upheld by
    privileges harmful to the service; that honor, l'honneur, is either a
    negative concept of not doing what is blameworthy or it is a source of
    emulation in pursuit of commendation and rewards, which recognize it.
    His arguments were concise, simple, and clear.
    
    "An institution upholding honor, the source of emulation, is one similar
    to the Legion d'honneur of the great Emperor Napoleon, not harmful but
    helpful to the success of the service, but not a class or court
    privilege."
    
    "I do not dispute that, but it cannot be denied that court privileges
    have attained the same end," returned Prince Andrew. "Every courtier
    considers himself bound to maintain his position worthily."
    
    "Yet you do not care to avail yourself of the privilege, Prince," said
    Speranski, indicating by a smile that he wished to finish amiably an
    argument which was embarrassing for his companion. "If you will do me
    the honor of calling on me on Wednesday," he added, "I will, after
    talking with Magnitski, let you know what may interest you, and shall
    also have the pleasure of a more detailed chat with you."
    
    Closing his eyes, he bowed a la francaise, without taking leave, and
    trying to attract as little attention as possible, he left the room.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    During the first weeks of his stay in Petersburg Prince Andrew felt the
    whole trend of thought he had formed during his life of seclusion quite
    overshadowed by the trifling cares that engrossed him in that city.
    
    On returning home in the evening he would jot down in his notebook four
    or five necessary calls or appointments for certain hours. The mechanism
    of life, the arrangement of the day so as to be in time everywhere,
    absorbed the greater part of his vital energy. He did nothing, did not
    even think or find time to think, but only talked, and talked
    successfully, of what he had thought while in the country.
    
    He sometimes noticed with dissatisfaction that he repeated the same
    remark on the same day in different circles. But he was so busy for
    whole days together that he had no time to notice that he was thinking
    of nothing.
    
    As he had done on their first meeting at Kochubey's, Speranski produced
    a strong impression on Prince Andrew on the Wednesday, when he received
    him tête-à-tête at his own house and talked to him long and
    confidentially.
    
    To Bolkonski so many people appeared contemptible and insignificant
    creatures, and he so longed to find in someone the living ideal of that
    perfection toward which he strove, that he readily believed that in
    Speranski he had found this ideal of a perfectly rational and virtuous
    man. Had Speranski sprung from the same class as himself and possessed
    the same breeding and traditions, Bolkonski would soon have discovered
    his weak, human, unheroic sides; but as it was, Speranski's strange and
    logical turn of mind inspired him with respect all the more because he
    did not quite understand him. Moreover, Speranski, either because he
    appreciated the other's capacity or because he considered it necessary
    to win him to his side, showed off his dispassionate calm reasonableness
    before Prince Andrew and flattered him with that subtle flattery which
    goes hand in hand with self-assurance and consists in a tacit assumption
    that one's companion is the only man besides oneself capable of
    understanding the folly of the rest of mankind and the reasonableness
    and profundity of one's own ideas.
    
    During their long conversation on Wednesday evening, Speranski more than
    once remarked: "We regard everything that is above the common level of
    rooted custom..." or, with a smile: "But we want the wolves to be fed
    and the sheep to be safe..." or: "They cannot understand this..." and
    all in a way that seemed to say: "We, you and I, understand what they
    are and who we are."
    
    This first long conversation with Speranski only strengthened in Prince
    Andrew the feeling he had experienced toward him at their first meeting.
    He saw in him a remarkable, clear-thinking man of vast intellect who by
    his energy and persistence had attained power, which he was using solely
    for the welfare of Russia. In Prince Andrew's eyes Speranski was the man
    he would himself have wished to be--one who explained all the facts of
    life reasonably, considered important only what was rational, and was
    capable of applying the standard of reason to everything. Everything
    seemed so simple and clear in Speranski's exposition that Prince Andrew
    involuntarily agreed with him about everything. If he replied and
    argued, it was only because he wished to maintain his independence and
    not submit to Speranski's opinions entirely. Everything was right and
    everything was as it should be: only one thing disconcerted Prince
    Andrew. This was Speranski's cold, mirrorlike look, which did not allow
    one to penetrate to his soul, and his delicate white hands, which Prince
    Andrew involuntarily watched as one does watch the hands of those who
    possess power. This mirrorlike gaze and those delicate hands irritated
    Prince Andrew, he knew not why. He was unpleasantly struck, too, by the
    excessive contempt for others that he observed in Speranski, and by the
    diversity of lines of argument he used to support his opinions. He made
    use of every kind of mental device, except analogy, and passed too
    boldly, it seemed to Prince Andrew, from one to another. Now he would
    take up the position of a practical man and condemn dreamers; now that
    of a satirist, and laugh ironically at his opponents; now grow severely
    logical, or suddenly rise to the realm of metaphysics. (This last
    resource was one he very frequently employed.) He would transfer a
    question to metaphysical heights, pass on to definitions of space, time,
    and thought, and, having deduced the refutation he needed, would again
    descend to the level of the original discussion.
    
    In general the trait of Speranski's mentality which struck Prince Andrew
    most was his absolute and unshakable belief in the power and authority
    of reason. It was evident that the thought could never occur to him
    which to Prince Andrew seemed so natural, namely, that it is after all
    impossible to express all one thinks; and that he had never felt the
    doubt, "Is not all I think and believe nonsense?" And it was just this
    peculiarity of Speranski's mind that particularly attracted Prince
    Andrew.
    
    During the first period of their acquaintance Bolkonski felt a
    passionate admiration for him similar to that which he had once felt for
    Bonaparte. The fact that Speranski was the son of a village priest, and
    that stupid people might meanly despise him on account of his humble
    origin (as in fact many did), caused Prince Andrew to cherish his
    sentiment for him the more, and unconsciously to strengthen it.
    
    On that first evening Bolkonski spent with him, having mentioned the
    Commission for the Revision of the Code of Laws, Speranski told him
    sarcastically that the Commission had existed for a hundred and fifty
    years, had cost millions, and had done nothing except that Rosenkampf
    had stuck labels on the corresponding paragraphs of the different codes.
    
    "And that is all the state has for the millions it has spent," said he.
    "We want to give the Senate new juridical powers, but we have no laws.
    That is why it is a sin for men like you, Prince, not to serve in these
    times!"
    
    Prince Andrew said that for that work an education in jurisprudence was
    needed which he did not possess.
    
    "But nobody possesses it, so what would you have? It is a vicious circle
    from which we must break a way out."
    
    A week later Prince Andrew was a member of the Committee on Army
    Regulations and--what he had not at all expected--was chairman of a
    section of the committee for the revision of the laws. At Speranski's
    request he took the first part of the Civil Code that was being drawn up
    and, with the aid of the Code Napoleon and the Institutes of Justinian,
    he worked at formulating the section on Personal Rights.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Nearly two years before this, in 1808, Pierre on returning to Petersburg
    after visiting his estates had involuntarily found himself in a leading
    position among the Petersburg Freemasons. He arranged dining and funeral
    lodge meetings, enrolled new members, and busied himself uniting various
    lodges and acquiring authentic charters. He gave money for the erection
    of temples and supplemented as far as he could the collection of alms,
    in regard to which the majority of members were stingy and irregular. He
    supported almost singlehanded a poorhouse the order had founded in
    Petersburg.
    
    His life meanwhile continued as before, with the same infatuations and
    dissipations. He liked to dine and drink well, and though he considered
    it immoral and humiliating could not resist the temptations of the
    bachelor circles in which he moved.
    
    Amid the turmoil of his activities and distractions, however, Pierre at
    the end of a year began to feel that the more firmly he tried to rest
    upon it, the more masonic ground on which he stood gave way under him.
    At the same time he felt that the deeper the ground sank under him the
    closer bound he involuntarily became to the order. When he had joined
    the Freemasons he had experienced the feeling of one who confidently
    steps onto the smooth surface of a bog. When he put his foot down it
    sank in. To make quite sure of the firmness of the ground, he put his
    other foot down and sank deeper still, became stuck in it, and
    involuntarily waded knee-deep in the bog.
    
    Joseph Alexeevich was not in Petersburg--he had of late stood aside from
    the affairs of the Petersburg lodges, and lived almost entirely in
    Moscow. All the members of the lodges were men Pierre knew in ordinary
    life, and it was difficult for him to regard them merely as Brothers in
    Freemasonry and not as Prince B. or Ivan Vasilevich D., whom he knew in
    society mostly as weak and insignificant men. Under the masonic aprons
    and insignia he saw the uniforms and decorations at which they aimed in
    ordinary life. Often after collecting alms, and reckoning up twenty to
    thirty rubles received for the most part in promises from a dozen
    members, of whom half were as well able to pay as himself, Pierre
    remembered the masonic vow in which each Brother promised to devote all
    his belongings to his neighbor, and doubts on which he tried not to
    dwell arose in his soul.
    
    He divided the Brothers he knew into four categories. In the first he
    put those who did not take an active part in the affairs of the lodges
    or in human affairs, but were exclusively occupied with the mystical
    science of the order: with questions of the threefold designation of
    God, the three primordial elements--sulphur, mercury, and salt--or the
    meaning of the square and all the various figures of the temple of
    Solomon. Pierre respected this class of Brothers to which the elder ones
    chiefly belonged, including, Pierre thought, Joseph Alexeevich himself,
    but he did not share their interests. His heart was not in the mystical
    aspect of Freemasonry.
    
    In the second category Pierre reckoned himself and others like him,
    seeking and vacillating, who had not yet found in Freemasonry a straight
    and comprehensible path, but hoped to do so.
    
    In the third category he included those Brothers (the majority) who saw
    nothing in Freemasonry but the external forms and ceremonies, and prized
    the strict performance of these forms without troubling about their
    purport or significance. Such were Willarski and even the Grand Master
    of the principal lodge.
    
    Finally, to the fourth category also a great many Brothers belonged,
    particularly those who had lately joined. These according to Pierre's
    observations were men who had no belief in anything, nor desire for
    anything, but joined the Freemasons merely to associate with the wealthy
    young Brothers who were influential through their connections or rank,
    and of whom there were very many in the lodge.
    
    Pierre began to feel dissatisfied with what he was doing. Freemasonry,
    at any rate as he saw it here, sometimes seemed to him based merely on
    externals. He did not think of doubting Freemasonry itself, but
    suspected that Russian Masonry had taken a wrong path and deviated from
    its original principles. And so toward the end of the year he went
    abroad to be initiated into the higher secrets of the order.
    
    In the summer of 1809 Pierre returned to Petersburg. Our Freemasons knew
    from correspondence with those abroad that Bezukhov had obtained the
    confidence of many highly placed persons, had been initiated into many
    mysteries, had been raised to a higher grade, and was bringing back with
    him much that might conduce to the advantage of the masonic cause in
    Russia. The Petersburg Freemasons all came to see him, tried to
    ingratiate themselves with him, and it seemed to them all that he was
    preparing something for them and concealing it.
    
    A solemn meeting of the lodge of the second degree was convened, at
    which Pierre promised to communicate to the Petersburg Brothers what he
    had to deliver to them from the highest leaders of their order. The
    meeting was a full one. After the usual ceremonies Pierre rose and began
    his address.
    
    "Dear Brothers," he began, blushing and stammering, with a written
    speech in his hand, "it is not sufficient to observe our mysteries in
    the seclusion of our lodge--we must act--act! We are drowsing, but we
    must act." Pierre raised his notebook and began to read.
    
    "For the dissemination of pure truth and to secure the triumph of
    virtue," he read, "we must cleanse men from prejudice, diffuse
    principles in harmony with the spirit of the times, undertake the
    education of the young, unite ourselves in indissoluble bonds with the
    wisest men, boldly yet prudently overcome superstitions, infidelity, and
    folly, and form of those devoted to us a body linked together by unity
    of purpose and possessed of authority and power.
    
    "To attain this end we must secure a preponderance of virtue over vice
    and must endeavor to secure that the honest man may, even in this world,
    receive a lasting reward for his virtue. But in these great endeavors we
    are gravely hampered by the political institutions of today. What is to
    be done in these circumstances? To favor revolutions, overthrow
    everything, repel force by force?... No! We are very far from that.
    Every violent reform deserves censure, for it quite fails to remedy evil
    while men remain what they are, and also because wisdom needs no
    violence.
    
    "The whole plan of our order should be based on the idea of preparing
    men of firmness and virtue bound together by unity of conviction--aiming
    at the punishment of vice and folly, and patronizing talent and virtue:
    raising worthy men from the dust and attaching them to our Brotherhood.
    Only then will our order have the power unobtrusively to bind the hands
    of the protectors of disorder and to control them without their being
    aware of it. In a word, we must found a form of government holding
    universal sway, which should be diffused over the whole world without
    destroying the bonds of citizenship, and beside which all other
    governments can continue in their customary course and do everything
    except what impedes the great aim of our order, which is to obtain for
    virtue the victory over vice. This aim was that of Christianity itself.
    It taught men to be wise and good and for their own benefit to follow
    the example and instruction of the best and wisest men.
    
    "At that time, when everything was plunged in darkness, preaching alone
    was of course sufficient. The novelty of Truth endowed her with special
    strength, but now we need much more powerful methods. It is now
    necessary that man, governed by his senses, should find in virtue a
    charm palpable to those senses. It is impossible to eradicate the
    passions; but we must strive to direct them to a noble aim, and it is
    therefore necessary that everyone should be able to satisfy his passions
    within the limits of virtue. Our order should provide means to that end.
    
    "As soon as we have a certain number of worthy men in every state, each
    of them again training two others and all being closely united,
    everything will be possible for our order, which has already in secret
    accomplished much for the welfare of mankind."
    
    This speech not only made a strong impression, but created excitement in
    the lodge. The majority of the Brothers, seeing in it dangerous designs
    of Illuminism, * met it with a coldness that surprised Pierre. The Grand
    Master began answering him, and Pierre began developing his views with
    more and more warmth. It was long since there had been so stormy a
    meeting. Parties were formed, some accusing Pierre of Illuminism, others
    supporting him. At that meeting he was struck for the first time by the
    endless variety of men's minds, which prevents a truth from ever
    presenting itself identically to two persons. Even those members who
    seemed to be on his side understood him in their own way with
    limitations and alterations he could not agree to, as what he always
    wanted most was to convey his thought to others just as he himself
    understood it.
    
    * The Illuminati sought to substitute republican for monarchical
    institutions.
    
    At the end of the meeting the Grand Master with irony and ill-will
    reproved Bezukhov for his vehemence and said it was not love of virtue
    alone, but also a love of strife that had moved him in the dispute.
    Pierre did not answer him and asked briefly whether his proposal would
    be accepted. He was told that it would not, and without waiting for the
    usual formalities he left the lodge and went home.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    Again Pierre was overtaken by the depression he so dreaded. For three
    days after the delivery of his speech at the lodge he lay on a sofa at
    home receiving no one and going nowhere.
    
    It was just then that he received a letter from his wife, who implored
    him to see her, telling him how grieved she was about him and how she
    wished to devote her whole life to him.
    
    At the end of the letter she informed him that in a few days she would
    return to Petersburg from abroad.
    
    Following this letter one of the masonic Brothers whom Pierre respected
    less than the others forced his way in to see him and, turning the
    conversation upon Pierre's matrimonial affairs, by way of fraternal
    advice expressed the opinion that his severity to his wife was wrong and
    that he was neglecting one of the first rules of Freemasonry by not
    forgiving the penitent.
    
    At the same time his mother-in-law, Prince Vasili's wife, sent to him
    imploring him to come if only for a few minutes to discuss a most
    important matter. Pierre saw that there was a conspiracy against him and
    that they wanted to reunite him with his wife, and in the mood he then
    was, this was not even unpleasant to him. Nothing mattered to him.
    Nothing in life seemed to him of much importance, and under the
    influence of the depression that possessed him he valued neither his
    liberty nor his resolution to punish his wife.
    
    "No one is right and no one is to blame; so she too is not to blame," he
    thought.
    
    If he did not at once give his consent to a reunion with his wife, it
    was only because in his state of depression he did not feel able to take
    any step. Had his wife come to him, he would not have turned her away.
    Compared to what preoccupied him, was it not a matter of indifference
    whether he lived with his wife or not?
    
    Without replying either to his wife or his mother-in-law, Pierre late
    one night prepared for a journey and started for Moscow to see Joseph
    Alexeevich. This is what he noted in his diary:
    
    Moscow, 17th November
    
    I have just returned from my benefactor, and hasten to write down what I
    have experienced. Joseph Alexeevich is living poorly and has for three
    years been suffering from a painful disease of the bladder. No one has
    ever heard him utter a groan or a word of complaint. From morning till
    late at night, except when he eats his very plain food, he is working at
    science. He received me graciously and made me sit down on the bed on
    which he lay. I made the sign of the Knights of the East and of
    Jerusalem, and he responded in the same manner, asking me with a mild
    smile what I had learned and gained in the Prussian and Scottish lodges.
    I told him everything as best I could, and told him what I had proposed
    to our Petersburg lodge, of the bad reception I had encountered, and of
    my rupture with the Brothers. Joseph Alexeevich, having remained silent
    and thoughtful for a good while, told me his view of the matter, which
    at once lit up for me my whole past and the future path I should follow.
    He surprised me by asking whether I remembered the threefold aim of the
    order: (1) The preservation and study of the mystery. (2) The
    purification and reformation of oneself for its reception, and (3) The
    improvement of the human race by striving for such purification. Which
    is the principal aim of these three? Certainly self-reformation and
    self-purification. Only to this aim can we always strive independently
    of circumstances. But at the same time just this aim demands the
    greatest efforts of us; and so, led astray by pride, losing sight of
    this aim, we occupy ourselves either with the mystery which in our
    impurity we are unworthy to receive, or seek the reformation of the
    human race while ourselves setting an example of baseness and
    profligacy. Illuminism is not a pure doctrine, just because it is
    attracted by social activity and puffed up by pride. On this ground
    Joseph Alexeevich condemned my speech and my whole activity, and in the
    depth of my soul I agreed with him. Talking of my family affairs he said
    to me, "the chief duty of a true Mason, as I have told you, lies in
    perfecting himself. We often think that by removing all the difficulties
    of our life we shall more quickly reach our aim, but on the contrary, my
    dear sir, it is only in the midst of worldly cares that we can attain
    our three chief aims: (1) Self-knowledge--for man can only know himself
    by comparison, (2) Self-perfecting, which can only be attained by
    conflict, and (3) The attainment of the chief virtue--love of death.
    Only the vicissitudes of life can show us its vanity and develop our
    innate love of death or of rebirth to a new life." These words are all
    the more remarkable because, in spite of his great physical sufferings,
    Joseph Alexeevich is never weary of life though he loves death, for
    which--in spite of the purity and loftiness of his inner man--he does
    not yet feel himself sufficiently prepared. My benefactor then explained
    to me fully the meaning of the Great Square of creation and pointed out
    to me that the numbers three and seven are the basis of everything. He
    advised me not to avoid intercourse with the Petersburg Brothers, but to
    take up only second-grade posts in the lodge, to try, while diverting
    the Brothers from pride, to turn them toward the true path self-
    knowledge and self-perfecting. Besides this he advised me for myself
    personally above all to keep a watch over myself, and to that end he
    gave me a notebook, the one I am now writing in and in which I will in
    future note down all my actions.
    
    Petersburg, 23rd November
    
    I am again living with my wife. My mother-in-law came to me in tears and
    said that Helene was here and that she implored me to hear her; that she
    was innocent and unhappy at my desertion, and much more. I knew that if
    I once let myself see her I should not have strength to go on refusing
    what she wanted. In my perplexity I did not know whose aid and advice to
    seek. Had my benefactor been here he would have told me what to do. I
    went to my room and reread Joseph Alexeevich's letters and recalled my
    conversations with him, and deduced from it all that I ought not to
    refuse a supplicant, and ought to reach a helping hand to everyone--
    especially to one so closely bound to me--and that I must bear my cross.
    But if I forgive her for the sake of doing right, then let union with
    her have only a spiritual aim. That is what I decided, and what I wrote
    to Joseph Alexeevich. I told my wife that I begged her to forget the
    past, to forgive me whatever wrong I may have done her, and that I had
    nothing to forgive. It gave me joy to tell her this. She need not know
    how hard it was for me to see her again. I have settled on the upper
    floor of this big house and am experiencing a happy feeling of
    regeneration.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    At that time, as always happens, the highest society that met at court
    and at the grand balls was divided into several circles, each with its
    own particular tone. The largest of these was the French circle of the
    Napoleonic alliance, the circle of Count Rumyantsev and Caulaincourt. In
    this group Helene, as soon as she had settled in Petersburg with her
    husband, took a very prominent place. She was visited by the members of
    the French embassy and by many belonging to that circle and noted for
    their intellect and polished manners.
    
    Helene had been at Erfurt during the famous meeting of the Emperors and
    had brought from there these connections with the Napoleonic
    notabilities. At Erfurt her success had been brilliant. Napoleon himself
    had noticed her in the theater and said of her: "C'est un superbe
    animal." * Her success as a beautiful and elegant woman did not surprise
    Pierre, for she had become even handsomer than before. What did surprise
    him was that during these last two years his wife had succeeded in
    gaining the reputation "d' une femme charmante, aussi spirituelle que
    belle." *(2) The distinguished Prince de Ligne wrote her eight-page
    letters. Bilibin saved up his epigrams to produce them in Countess
    Bezukhova's presence. To be received in the Countess Bezukhova's salon
    was regarded as a diploma of intellect. Young men read books before
    attending Helene's evenings, to have something to say in her salon, and
    secretaries of the embassy, and even ambassadors, confided diplomatic
    secrets to her, so that in a way Helene was a power. Pierre, who knew
    she was very stupid, sometimes attended, with a strange feeling of
    perplexity and fear, her evenings and dinner parties, where politics,
    poetry, and philosophy were discussed. At these parties his feelings
    were like those of a conjuror who always expects his trick to be found
    out at any moment. But whether because stupidity was just what was
    needed to run such a salon, or because those who were deceived found
    pleasure in the deception, at any rate it remained unexposed and Helene
    Bezukhova's reputation as a lovely and clever woman became so firmly
    established that she could say the emptiest and stupidest things and
    everybody would go into raptures over every word of hers and look for a
    profound meaning in it of which she herself had no conception.
    
    * "That's a superb animal."
    
    * (2) "Of a charming woman, as witty as she is lovely."
    
    Pierre was just the husband needed for a brilliant society woman. He was
    that absent-minded crank, a grand seigneur husband who was in no one's
    way, and far from spoiling the high tone and general impression of the
    drawing room, he served, by the contrast he presented to her, as an
    advantageous background to his elegant and tactful wife. Pierre during
    the last two years, as a result of his continual absorption in abstract
    interests and his sincere contempt for all else, had acquired in his
    wife's circle, which did not interest him, that air of unconcern,
    indifference, and benevolence toward all, which cannot be acquired
    artificially and therefore inspires involuntary respect. He entered his
    wife's drawing room as one enters a theater, was acquainted with
    everybody, equally pleased to see everyone, and equally indifferent to
    them all. Sometimes he joined in a conversation which interested him
    and, regardless of whether any "gentlemen of the embassy" were present
    or not, lispingly expressed his views, which were sometimes not at all
    in accord with the accepted tone of the moment. But the general opinion
    concerning the queer husband of "the most distinguished woman in
    Petersburg" was so well established that no one took his freaks
    seriously.
    
    Among the many young men who frequented her house every day, Boris
    Drubetskoy, who had already achieved great success in the service, was
    the most intimate friend of the Bezukhov household since Helene's return
    from Erfurt. Helene spoke of him as "mon page" and treated him like a
    child. Her smile for him was the same as for everybody, but sometimes
    that smile made Pierre uncomfortable. Toward him Boris behaved with a
    particularly dignified and sad deference. This shade of deference also
    disturbed Pierre. He had suffered so painfully three years before from
    the mortification to which his wife had subjected him that he now
    protected himself from the danger of its repetition, first by not being
    a husband to his wife, and secondly by not allowing himself to suspect.
    
    "No, now that she has become a bluestocking she has finally renounced
    her former infatuations," he told himself. "There has never been an
    instance of a bluestocking being carried away by affairs of the heart"--
    a statement which, though gathered from an unknown source, he believed
    implicitly. Yet strange to say Boris' presence in his wife's drawing
    room (and he was almost always there) had a physical effect upon Pierre;
    it constricted his limbs and destroyed the unconsciousness and freedom
    of his movements.
    
    "What a strange antipathy," thought Pierre, "yet I used to like him very
    much."
    
    In the eyes of the world Pierre was a great gentleman, the rather blind
    and absurd husband of a distinguished wife, a clever crank who did
    nothing but harmed nobody and was a first-rate, good-natured fellow. But
    a complex and difficult process of internal development was taking place
    all this time in Pierre's soul, revealing much to him and causing him
    many spiritual doubts and joys.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Pierre went on with his diary, and this is what he wrote in it during
    that time:
    
    24th November
    
    Got up at eight, read the Scriptures, then went to my duties. (By Joseph
    Alexeevich's advice Pierre had entered the service of the state and
    served on one of the committees.) Returned home for dinner and dined
    alone--the countess had many visitors I do not like. I ate and drank
    moderately and after dinner copied out some passages for the Brothers.
    In the evening I went down to the countess and told a funny story about
    B., and only remembered that I ought not to have done so when everybody
    laughed loudly at it.
    
    I am going to bed with a happy and tranquil mind. Great God, help me to
    walk in Thy paths, (1) to conquer anger by calmness and deliberation,
    (2) to vanquish lust by self-restraint and repulsion, (3) to withdraw
    from worldliness, but not avoid (a) the service of the state, (b) family
    duties, (c) relations with my friends, and the management of my affairs.
    
    27th November
    
    I got up late. On waking I lay long in bed yielding to sloth. O God,
    help and strengthen me that I may walk in Thy ways! Read the Scriptures,
    but without proper feeling. Brother Urusov came and we talked about
    worldly vanities. He told me of the Emperor's new projects. I began to
    criticize them, but remembered my rules and my benefactor's words--that
    a true Freemason should be a zealous worker for the state when his aid
    is required and a quiet onlooker when not called on to assist. My tongue
    is my enemy. Brothers G. V. and O. visited me and we had a preliminary
    talk about the reception of a new Brother. They laid on me the duty of
    Rhetor. I feel myself weak and unworthy. Then our talk turned to the
    interpretation of the seven pillars and steps of the Temple, the seven
    sciences, the seven virtues, the seven vices, and the seven gifts of the
    Holy Spirit. Brother O. was very eloquent. In the evening the admission
    took place. The new decoration of the Premises contributed much to the
    magnificence of the spectacle. It was Boris Drubetskoy who was admitted.
    I nominated him and was the Rhetor. A strange feeling agitated me all
    the time I was alone with him in the dark chamber. I caught myself
    harboring a feeling of hatred toward him which I vainly tried to
    overcome. That is why I should really like to save him from evil and
    lead him into the path of truth, but evil thoughts of him did not leave
    me. It seemed to me that his object in entering the Brotherhood was
    merely to be intimate and in favor with members of our lodge. Apart from
    the fact that he had asked me several times whether N. and S. were
    members of our lodge (a question to which I could not reply) and that
    according to my observation he is incapable of feeling respect for our
    holy order and is too preoccupied and satisfied with the outer man to
    desire spiritual improvement, I had no cause to doubt him, but he seemed
    to me insincere, and all the time I stood alone with him in the dark
    temple it seemed to me that he was smiling contemptuously at my words,
    and I wished really to stab his bare breast with the sword I held to it.
    I could not be eloquent, nor could I frankly mention my doubts to the
    Brothers and to the Grand Master. Great Architect of Nature, help me to
    find the true path out of the labyrinth of lies!
    
    After this, three pages were left blank in the diary, and then the
    following was written:
    
    I have had a long and instructive talk alone with Brother V., who
    advised me to hold fast by Brother A. Though I am unworthy, much was
    revealed to me. Adonai is the name of the creator of the world. Elohim
    is the name of the ruler of all. The third name is the name unutterable
    which means the All. Talks with Brother V. strengthen, refresh, and
    support me in the path of virtue. In his presence doubt has no place.
    The distinction between the poor teachings of mundane science and our
    sacred all-embracing teaching is clear to me. Human sciences dissect
    everything to comprehend it, and kill everything to examine it. In the
    holy science of our order all is one, all is known in its entirety and
    life. The Trinity--the three elements of matter--are sulphur, mercury,
    and salt. Sulphur is of an oily and fiery nature; in combination with
    salt by its fiery nature it arouses a desire in the latter by means of
    which it attracts mercury, seizes it, holds it, and in combination
    produces other bodies. Mercury is a fluid, volatile, spiritual essence.
    Christ, the Holy Spirit, Him!...
    
    3rd December
    
    Awoke late, read the Scriptures but was apathetic. Afterwards went and
    paced up and down the large hall. I wished to meditate, but instead my
    imagination pictured an occurrence of four years ago, when Dolokhov,
    meeting me in Moscow after our duel, said he hoped I was enjoying
    perfect peace of mind in spite of my wife's absence. At the time I gave
    him no answer. Now I recalled every detail of that meeting and in my
    mind gave him the most malevolent and bitter replies. I recollected
    myself and drove away that thought only when I found myself glowing with
    anger, but I did not sufficiently repent. Afterwards Boris Drubetskoy
    came and began relating various adventures. His coming vexed me from the
    first, and I said something disagreeable to him. He replied. I flared up
    and said much that was unpleasant and even rude to him. He became
    silent, and I recollected myself only when it was too late. My God, I
    cannot get on with him at all. The cause of this is my egotism. I set
    myself above him and so become much worse than he, for he is lenient to
    my rudeness while I on the contrary nourish contempt for him. O God,
    grant that in his presence I may rather see my own vileness, and behave
    so that he too may benefit. After dinner I fell asleep and as I was
    drowsing off I clearly heard a voice saying in my left ear, "Thy day!"
    
    I dreamed that I was walking in the dark and was suddenly surrounded by
    dogs, but I went on undismayed. Suddenly a smallish dog seized my left
    thigh with its teeth and would not let go. I began to throttle it with
    my hands. Scarcely had I torn it off before another, a bigger one, began
    biting me. I lifted it up, but the higher I lifted it the bigger and
    heavier it grew. And suddenly Brother A. came and, taking my arm, led me
    to a building to enter which we had to pass along a narrow plank. I
    stepped on it, but it bent and gave way and I began to clamber up a
    fence which I could scarcely reach with my hands. After much effort I
    dragged myself up, so that my leg hung down on one side and my body on
    the other. I looked round and saw Brother A. standing on the fence and
    pointing me to a broad avenue and garden, and in the garden was a large
    and beautiful building. I woke up. O Lord, great Architect of Nature,
    help me to tear from myself these dogs--my passions especially the last,
    which unites in itself the strength of all the former ones, and aid me
    to enter that temple of virtue to a vision of which I attained in my
    dream.
    
    7th December
    
    I dreamed that Joseph Alexeevich was sitting in my house, and that I was
    very glad and wished to entertain him. It seemed as if I chattered
    incessantly with other people and suddenly remembered that this could
    not please him, and I wished to come close to him and embrace him. But
    as soon as I drew near I saw that his face had changed and grown young,
    and he was quietly telling me something about the teaching of our order,
    but so softly that I could not hear it. Then it seemed that we all left
    the room and something strange happened. We were sitting or lying on the
    floor. He was telling me something, and I wished to show him my
    sensibility, and not listening to what he was saying I began picturing
    to myself the condition of my inner man and the grace of God sanctifying
    me. And tears came into my eyes, and I was glad he noticed this. But he
    looked at me with vexation and jumped up, breaking off his remarks. I
    felt abashed and asked whether what he had been saying did not concern
    me; but he did not reply, gave me a kind look, and then we suddenly
    found ourselves in my bedroom where there is a double bed. He lay down
    on the edge of it and I burned with longing to caress him and lie down
    too. And he said, "Tell me frankly what is your chief temptation? Do you
    know it? I think you know it already." Abashed by this question, I
    replied that sloth was my chief temptation. He shook his head
    incredulously; and even more abashed, I said that though I was living
    with my wife as he advised, I was not living with her as her husband. To
    this he replied that one should not deprive a wife of one's embraces and
    gave me to understand that that was my duty. But I replied that I should
    be ashamed to do it, and suddenly everything vanished. And I awoke and
    found in my mind the text from the Gospel: "The life was the light of
    men. And the light shineth in darkness; and the darkness comprehended it
    not." Joseph Alexeevich's face had looked young and bright. That day I
    received a letter from my benefactor in which he wrote about "conjugal
    duties."
    
    9th December
    
    I had a dream from which I awoke with a throbbing heart. I saw that I
    was in Moscow in my house, in the big sitting room, and Joseph
    Alexeevich came in from the drawing room. I seemed to know at once that
    the process of regeneration had already taken place in him, and I rushed
    to meet him. I embraced him and kissed his hands, and he said, "Hast
    thou noticed that my face is different?" I looked at him, still holding
    him in my arms, and saw that his face was young, but that he had no hair
    on his head and his features were quite changed. And I said, "I should
    have known you had I met you by chance," and I thought to myself, "Am I
    telling the truth?" And suddenly I saw him lying like a dead body; then
    he gradually recovered and went with me into my study carrying a large
    book of sheets of drawing paper; I said, "I drew that," and he answered
    by bowing his head. I opened the book, and on all the pages there were
    excellent drawings. And in my dream I knew that these drawings
    represented the love adventures of the soul with its beloved. And on its
    pages I saw a beautiful representation of a maiden in transparent
    garments and with a transparent body, flying up to the clouds. And I
    seemed to know that this maiden was nothing else than a representation
    of the Song of Songs. And looking at those drawings I dreamed I felt
    that I was doing wrong, but could not tear myself away from them. Lord,
    help me! My God, if Thy forsaking me is Thy doing, Thy will be done; but
    if I am myself the cause, teach me what I should do! I shall perish of
    my debauchery if Thou utterly desertest me!
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    The Rostovs' monetary affairs had not improved during the two years they
    had spent in the country.
    
    Though Nicholas Rostov had kept firmly to his resolution and was still
    serving modestly in an obscure regiment, spending comparatively little,
    the way of life at Otradnoe--Mitenka's management of affairs, in
    particular--was such that the debts inevitably increased every year. The
    only resource obviously presenting itself to the old count was to apply
    for an official post, so he had come to Petersburg to look for one and
    also, as he said, to let the lassies enjoy themselves for the last time.
    
    Soon after their arrival in Petersburg Berg proposed to Vera and was
    accepted.
    
    Though in Moscow the Rostovs belonged to the best society without
    themselves giving it a thought, yet in Petersburg their circle of
    acquaintances was a mixed and indefinite one. In Petersburg they were
    provincials, and the very people they had entertained in Moscow without
    inquiring to what set they belonged, here looked down on them.
    
    The Rostovs lived in the same hospitable way in Petersburg as in Moscow,
    and the most diverse people met at their suppers. Country neighbors from
    Otradnoe, impoverished old squires and their daughters, Peronskaya a
    maid of honor, Pierre Bezukhov, and the son of their district postmaster
    who had obtained a post in Petersburg. Among the men who very soon
    became frequent visitors at the Rostovs' house in Petersburg were Boris,
    Pierre whom the count had met in the street and dragged home with him,
    and Berg who spent whole days at the Rostovs' and paid the eldest
    daughter, Countess Vera, the attentions a young man pays when he intends
    to propose.
    
    Not in vain had Berg shown everybody his right hand wounded at
    Austerlitz and held a perfectly unnecessary sword in his left. He
    narrated that episode so persistently and with so important an air that
    everyone believed in the merit and usefulness of his deed, and he had
    obtained two decorations for Austerlitz.
    
    In the Finnish war he also managed to distinguish himself. He had picked
    up the scrap of a grenade that had killed an aide-de-camp standing near
    the commander-in-chief and had taken it to his commander. Just as he had
    done after Austerlitz, he related this occurrence at such length and so
    insistently that everyone again believed it had been necessary to do
    this, and he received two decorations for the Finnish war also. In 1809
    he was a captain in the Guards, wore medals, and held some special
    lucrative posts in Petersburg.
    
    Though some skeptics smiled when told of Berg's merits, it could not be
    denied that he was a painstaking and brave officer, on excellent terms
    with his superiors, and a moral young man with a brilliant career before
    him and an assured position in society.
    
    Four years before, meeting a German comrade in the stalls of a Moscow
    theater, Berg had pointed out Vera Rostova to him and had said in
    German, "das soll mein Weib werden," * and from that moment had made up
    his mind to marry her. Now in Petersburg, having considered the Rostovs'
    position and his own, he decided that the time had come to propose.
    
    * "That girl shall be my wife."
    
    Berg's proposal was at first received with a perplexity that was not
    flattering to him. At first it seemed strange that the son of an obscure
    Livonian gentleman should propose marriage to a Countess Rostova; but
    Berg's chief characteristic was such a naive and good natured egotism
    that the Rostovs involuntarily came to think it would be a good thing,
    since he himself was so firmly convinced that it was good, indeed
    excellent. Moreover, the Rostovs' affairs were seriously embarrassed, as
    the suitor could not but know; and above all, Vera was twenty-four, had
    been taken out everywhere, and though she was certainly good-looking and
    sensible, no one up to now had proposed to her. So they gave their
    consent.
    
    "You see," said Berg to his comrade, whom he called "friend" only
    because he knew that everyone has friends, "you see, I have considered
    it all, and should not marry if I had not thought it all out or if it
    were in any way unsuitable. But on the contrary, my papa and mamma are
    now provided for--I have arranged that rent for them in the Baltic
    Provinces--and I can live in Petersburg on my pay, and with her fortune
    and my good management we can get along nicely. I am not marrying for
    money--I consider that dishonorable--but a wife should bring her share
    and a husband his. I have my position in the service, she has
    connections and some means. In our times that is worth something, isn't
    it? But above all, she is a handsome, estimable girl, and she loves
    me..."
    
    Berg blushed and smiled.
    
    "And I love her, because her character is sensible and very good. Now
    the other sister, though they are the same family, is quite different--
    an unpleasant character and has not the same intelligence. She is so...
    you know?... Unpleasant... But my fiancee!... Well, you will be coming,"
    he was going to say, "to dine," but changed his mind and said "to take
    tea with us," and quickly doubling up his tongue he blew a small round
    ring of tobacco smoke, perfectly embodying his dream of happiness.
    
    After the first feeling of perplexity aroused in the parents by Berg's
    proposal, the holiday tone of joyousness usual at such times took
    possession of the family, but the rejoicing was external and insincere.
    In the family's feeling toward this wedding a certain awkwardness and
    constraint was evident, as if they were ashamed of not having loved Vera
    sufficiently and of being so ready to get her off their hands. The old
    count felt this most. He would probably have been unable to state the
    cause of his embarrassment, but it resulted from the state of his
    affairs. He did not know at all how much he had, what his debts amounted
    to, or what dowry he could give Vera. When his daughters were born he
    had assigned to each of them, for her dowry, an estate with three
    hundred serfs; but one of these estates had already been sold, and the
    other was mortgaged and the interest so much in arrears that it would
    have to be sold, so that it was impossible to give it to Vera. Nor had
    he any money.
    
    Berg had already been engaged a month, and only a week remained before
    the wedding, but the count had not yet decided in his own mind the
    question of the dowry, nor spoken to his wife about it. At one time the
    count thought of giving her the Ryazan estate or of selling a forest, at
    another time of borrowing money on a note of hand. A few days before the
    wedding Berg entered the count's study early one morning and, with a
    pleasant smile, respectfully asked his future father-in-law to let him
    know what Vera's dowry would be. The count was so disconcerted by this
    long-foreseen inquiry that without consideration he gave the first reply
    that came into his head. "I like your being businesslike about it.... I
    like it. You shall be satisfied...."
    
    And patting Berg on the shoulder he got up, wishing to end the
    conversation. But Berg, smiling pleasantly, explained that if he did not
    know for certain how much Vera would have and did not receive at least
    part of the dowry in advance, he would have to break matters off.
    
    "Because, consider, Count--if I allowed myself to marry now without
    having definite means to maintain my wife, I should be acting badly...."
    
    The conversation ended by the count, who wished to be generous and to
    avoid further importunity, saying that he would give a note of hand for
    eighty thousand rubles. Berg smiled meekly, kissed the count on the
    shoulder, and said that he was very grateful, but that it was impossible
    for him to arrange his new life without receiving thirty thousand in
    ready money. "Or at least twenty thousand, Count," he added, "and then a
    note of hand for only sixty thousand."
    
    "Yes, yes, all right!" said the count hurriedly. "Only excuse me, my
    dear fellow, I'll give you twenty thousand and a note of hand for eighty
    thousand as well. Yes, yes! Kiss me."
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    Natasha was sixteen and it was the year 1809, the very year to which she
    had counted on her fingers with Boris after they had kissed four years
    ago. Since then she had not seen him. Before Sonya and her mother, if
    Boris happened to be mentioned, she spoke quite freely of that episode
    as of some childish, long-forgotten matter that was not worth
    mentioning. But in the secret depths of her soul the question whether
    her engagement to Boris was a jest or an important, binding promise
    tormented her.
    
    Since Boris left Moscow in 1805 to join the army he had not seen the
    Rostovs. He had been in Moscow several times, and had passed near
    Otradnoe, but had never been to see them.
    
    Sometimes it occurred to Natasha that he did not wish to see her, and
    this conjecture was confirmed by the sad tone in which her elders spoke
    of him.
    
    "Nowadays old friends are not remembered," the countess would say when
    Boris was mentioned.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna also had of late visited them less frequently, seemed
    to hold herself with particular dignity, and always spoke rapturously
    and gratefully of the merits of her son and the brilliant career on
    which he had entered. When the Rostovs came to Petersburg Boris called
    on them.
    
    He drove to their house in some agitation. The memory of Natasha was his
    most poetic recollection. But he went with the firm intention of letting
    her and her parents feel that the childish relations between himself and
    Natasha could not be binding either on her or on him. He had a brilliant
    position in society thanks to his intimacy with Countess Bezukhova, a
    brilliant position in the service thanks to the patronage of an
    important personage whose complete confidence he enjoyed, and he was
    beginning to make plans for marrying one of the richest heiresses in
    Petersburg, plans which might very easily be realized. When he entered
    the Rostovs' drawing room Natasha was in her own room. When she heard of
    his arrival she almost ran into the drawing room, flushed and beaming
    with a more than cordial smile.
    
    Boris remembered Natasha in a short dress, with dark eyes shining from
    under her curls and boisterous, childish laughter, as he had known her
    four years before; and so he was taken aback when quite a different
    Natasha entered, and his face expressed rapturous astonishment. This
    expression on his face pleased Natasha.
    
    "Well, do you recognize your little madcap playmate?" asked the
    countess.
    
    Boris kissed Natasha's hand and said that he was astonished at the
    change in her.
    
    "How handsome you have grown!"
    
    "I should think so!" replied Natasha's laughing eyes.
    
    "And is Papa older?" she asked.
    
    Natasha sat down and, without joining in Boris' conversation with the
    countess, silently and minutely studied her childhood's suitor. He felt
    the weight of that resolute and affectionate scrutiny and glanced at her
    occasionally.
    
    Boris' uniform, spurs, tie, and the way his hair was brushed were all
    comme il faut and in the latest fashion. This Natasha noticed at once.
    He sat rather sideways in the armchair next to the countess, arranging
    with his right hand the cleanest of gloves that fitted his left hand
    like a skin, and he spoke with a particularly refined compression of his
    lips about the amusements of the highest Petersburg society, recalling
    with mild irony old times in Moscow and Moscow acquaintances. It was not
    accidentally, Natasha felt, that he alluded, when speaking of the
    highest aristocracy, to an ambassador's ball he had attended, and to
    invitations he had received from N.N. and S.S.
    
    All this time Natasha sat silent, glancing up at him from under her
    brows. This gaze disturbed and confused Boris more and more. He looked
    round more frequently toward her, and broke off in what he was saying.
    He did not stay more than ten minutes, then rose and took his leave. The
    same inquisitive, challenging, and rather mocking eyes still looked at
    him. After his first visit Boris said to himself that Natasha attracted
    him just as much as ever, but that he must not yield to that feeling,
    because to marry her, a girl almost without fortune, would mean ruin to
    his career, while to renew their former relations without intending to
    marry her would be dishonorable. Boris made up his mind to avoid meeting
    Natasha, but despite that resolution he called again a few days later
    and began calling often and spending whole days at the Rostovs'. It
    seemed to him that he ought to have an explanation with Natasha and tell
    her that the old times must be forgotten, that in spite of everything...
    she could not be his wife, that he had no means, and they would never
    let her marry him. But he failed to do so and felt awkward about
    entering on such an explanation. From day to day he became more and more
    entangled. It seemed to her mother and Sonya that Natasha was in love
    with Boris as of old. She sang him his favorite songs, showed him her
    album, making him write in it, did not allow him to allude to the past,
    letting it be understood how delightful was the present; and every day
    he went away in a fog, without having said what he meant to, and not
    knowing what he was doing or why he came, or how it would all end. He
    left off visiting Helene and received reproachful notes from her every
    day, and yet he continued to spend whole days with the Rostovs.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    One night when the old countess, in nightcap and dressing jacket,
    without her false curls, and with her poor little knob of hair showing
    under her white cotton cap, knelt sighing and groaning on a rug and
    bowing to the ground in prayer, her door creaked and Natasha, also in a
    dressing jacket with slippers on her bare feet and her hair in
    curlpapers, ran in. The countess--her prayerful mood dispelled--looked
    round and frowned. She was finishing her last prayer: "Can it be that
    this couch will be my grave?" Natasha, flushed and eager, seeing her
    mother in prayer, suddenly checked her rush, half sat down, and
    unconsciously put out her tongue as if chiding herself. Seeing that her
    mother was still praying she ran on tiptoe to the bed and, rapidly
    slipping one little foot against the other, pushed off her slippers and
    jumped onto the bed the countess had feared might become her grave. This
    couch was high, with a feather bed and five pillows each smaller than
    the one below. Natasha jumped on it, sank into the feather bed, rolled
    over to the wall, and began snuggling up the bedclothes as she settled
    down, raising her knees to her chin, kicking out and laughing almost
    inaudibly, now covering herself up head and all, and now peeping at her
    mother. The countess finished her prayers and came to the bed with a
    stern face, but seeing, that Natasha's head was covered, she smiled in
    her kind, weak way.
    
    "Now then, now then!" said she.
    
    "Mamma, can we have a talk? Yes?" said Natasha. "Now, just one on your
    throat and another... that'll do!" And seizing her mother round the
    neck, she kissed her on the throat. In her behavior to her mother
    Natasha seemed rough, but she was so sensitive and tactful that however
    she clasped her mother she always managed to do it without hurting her
    or making her feel uncomfortable or displeased.
    
    "Well, what is it tonight?" said the mother, having arranged her pillows
    and waited until Natasha, after turning over a couple of times, had
    settled down beside her under the quilt, spread out her arms, and
    assumed a serious expression.
    
    These visits of Natasha's at night before the count returned from his
    club were one of the greatest pleasures of both mother, and daughter.
    
    "What is it tonight?--But I have to tell you..."
    
    Natasha put her hand on her mother's mouth.
    
    "About Boris... I know," she said seriously; "that's what I have come
    about. Don't say it--I know. No, do tell me!" and she removed her hand.
    "Tell me, Mamma! He's nice?"
    
    "Natasha, you are sixteen. At your age I was married. You say Boris is
    nice. He is very nice, and I love him like a son. But what then?... What
    are you thinking about? You have quite turned his head, I can see
    that...."
    
    As she said this the countess looked round at her daughter. Natasha was
    lying looking steadily straight before her at one of the mahogany
    sphinxes carved on the corners of the bedstead, so that the countess
    only saw her daughter's face in profile. That face struck her by its
    peculiarly serious and concentrated expression.
    
    Natasha was listening and considering.
    
    "Well, what then?" said she.
    
    "You have quite turned his head, and why? What do you want of him? You
    know you can't marry him."
    
    "Why not?" said Natasha, without changing her position.
    
    "Because he is young, because he is poor, because he is a relation...
    and because you yourself don't love him."
    
    "How do you know?"
    
    "I know. It is not right, darling!"
    
    "But if I want to..." said Natasha.
    
    "Leave off talking nonsense," said the countess.
    
    "But if I want to..."
    
    "Natasha, I am in earnest..."
    
    Natasha did not let her finish. She drew the countess' large hand to
    her, kissed it on the back and then on the palm, then again turned it
    over and began kissing first one knuckle, then the space between the
    knuckles, then the next knuckle, whispering, "January, February, March,
    April, May. Speak, Mamma, why don't you say anything? Speak!" said she,
    turning to her mother, who was tenderly gazing at her daughter and in
    that contemplation seemed to have forgotten all she had wished to say.
    
    "It won't do, my love! Not everyone will understand this friendship
    dating from your childish days, and to see him so intimate with you may
    injure you in the eyes of other young men who visit us, and above all it
    torments him for nothing. He may already have found a suitable and
    wealthy match, and now he's half crazy."
    
    "Crazy?" repeated Natasha.
    
    "I'll tell you some things about myself. I had a cousin..."
    
    "I know! Cyril Matveich... but he is old."
    
    "He was not always old. But this is what I'll do, Natasha, I'll have a
    talk with Boris. He need not come so often...."
    
    "Why not, if he likes to?"
    
    "Because I know it will end in nothing...."
    
    "How can you know? No, Mamma, don't speak to him! What nonsense!" said
    Natasha in the tone of one being deprived of her property. "Well, I
    won't marry, but let him come if he enjoys it and I enjoy it." Natasha
    smiled and looked at her mother. "Not to marry, but just so," she added.
    
    "How so, my pet?"
    
    "Just so. There's no need for me to marry him. But... just so."
    
    "Just so, just so," repeated the countess, and shaking all over, she
    went off into a good humored, unexpected, elderly laugh.
    
    "Don't laugh, stop!" cried Natasha. "You're shaking the whole bed!
    You're awfully like me, just such another giggler.... Wait..." and she
    seized the countess' hands and kissed a knuckle of the little finger,
    saying, "June," and continued, kissing, "July, August," on the other
    hand. "But, Mamma, is he very much in love? What do you think? Was
    anybody ever so much in love with you? And he's very nice, very, very
    nice. Only not quite my taste--he is so narrow, like the dining-room
    clock.... Don't you understand? Narrow, you know--gray, light gray..."
    
    "What rubbish you're talking!" said the countess.
    
    Natasha continued: "Don't you really understand? Nicholas would
    understand.... Bezukhov, now, is blue, dark-blue and red, and he is
    square."
    
    "You flirt with him too," said the countess, laughing.
    
    "No, he is a Freemason, I have found out. He is fine, dark-blue and
    red.... How can I explain it to you?"
    
    "Little countess!" the count's voice called from behind the door.
    "You're not asleep?" Natasha jumped up, snatched up her slippers, and
    ran barefoot to her own room.
    
    It was a long time before she could sleep. She kept thinking that no one
    could understand all that she understood and all there was in her.
    
    "Sonya?" she thought, glancing at that curled-up, sleeping little kitten
    with her enormous plait of hair. "No, how could she? She's virtuous. She
    fell in love with Nicholas and does not wish to know anything more. Even
    Mamma does not understand. It is wonderful how clever I am and how...
    charming she is," she went on, speaking of herself in the third person,
    and imagining it was some very wise man--the wisest and best of men--who
    was saying it of her. "There is everything, everything in her,"
    continued this man. "She is unusually intelligent, charming... and then
    she is pretty, uncommonly pretty, and agile--she swims and rides
    splendidly... and her voice! One can really say it's a wonderful voice!"
    
    She hummed a scrap from her favorite opera by Cherubini, threw herself
    on her bed, laughed at the pleasant thought that she would immediately
    fall asleep, called Dunyasha the maid to put out the candle, and before
    Dunyasha had left the room had already passed into yet another happier
    world of dreams, where everything was as light and beautiful as in
    reality, and even more so because it was different.
    
    Next day the countess called Boris aside and had a talk with him, after
    which he ceased coming to the Rostovs'.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    On the thirty-first of December, New Year's Eve, 1809 - 10 an old
    grandee of Catherine's day was giving a ball and midnight supper. The
    diplomatic corps and the Emperor himself were to be present.
    
    The grandee's well-known mansion on the English Quay glittered with
    innumerable lights. Police were stationed at the brightly lit entrance
    which was carpeted with red baize, and not only gendarmes but dozens of
    police officers and even the police master himself stood at the porch.
    Carriages kept driving away and fresh ones arriving, with red-liveried
    footmen and footmen in plumed hats. From the carriages emerged men
    wearing uniforms, stars, and ribbons, while ladies in satin and ermine
    cautiously descended the carriage steps which were let down for them
    with a clatter, and then walked hurriedly and noiselessly over the baize
    at the entrance.
    
    Almost every time a new carriage drove up a whisper ran through the
    crowd and caps were doffed.
    
    "The Emperor?... No, a minister.... prince... ambassador. Don't you see
    the plumes?..." was whispered among the crowd.
    
    One person, better dressed than the rest, seemed to know everyone and
    mentioned by name the greatest dignitaries of the day.
    
    A third of the visitors had already arrived, but the Rostovs, who were
    to be present, were still hurrying to get dressed.
    
    There had been many discussions and preparations for this ball in the
    Rostov family, many fears that the invitation would not arrive, that the
    dresses would not be ready, or that something would not be arranged as
    it should be.
    
    Marya Ignatevna Peronskaya, a thin and shallow maid of honor at the
    court of the Dowager Empress, who was a friend and relation of the
    countess and piloted the provincial Rostovs in Petersburg high society,
    was to accompany them to the ball.
    
    They were to call for her at her house in the Taurida Gardens at ten
    o'clock, but it was already five minutes to ten, and the girls were not
    yet dressed.
    
    Natasha was going to her first grand ball. She had got up at eight that
    morning and had been in a fever of excitement and activity all day. All
    her powers since morning had been concentrated on ensuring that they
    all--she herself, Mamma, and Sonya--should be as well dressed as
    possible. Sonya and her mother put themselves entirely in her hands. The
    countess was to wear a claret-colored velvet dress, and the two girls
    white gauze over pink silk slips, with roses on their bodices and their
    hair dressed a la grecque.
    
    Everything essential had already been done; feet, hands, necks, and ears
    washed, perfumed, and powdered, as befits a ball; the openwork silk
    stockings and white satin shoes with ribbons were already on; the
    hairdressing was almost done. Sonya was finishing dressing and so was
    the countess, but Natasha, who had bustled about helping them all, was
    behindhand. She was still sitting before a looking-glass with a dressing
    jacket thrown over her slender shoulders. Sonya stood ready dressed in
    the middle of the room and, pressing the head of a pin till it hurt her
    dainty finger, was fixing on a last ribbon that squeaked as the pin went
    through it.
    
    "That's not the way, that's not the way, Sonya!" cried Natasha turning
    her head and clutching with both hands at her hair which the maid who
    was dressing it had not time to release. "That bow is not right. Come
    here!"
    
    Sonya sat down and Natasha pinned the ribbon on differently.
    
    "Allow me, Miss! I can't do it like that," said the maid who was holding
    Natasha's hair.
    
    "Oh, dear! Well then, wait. That's right, Sonya."
    
    "Aren't you ready? It is nearly ten," came the countess' voice.
    
    "Directly! Directly! And you, Mamma?"
    
    "I have only my cap to pin on."
    
    "Don't do it without me!" called Natasha. "You won't do it right."
    
    "But it's already ten."
    
    They had decided to be at the ball by half past ten, and Natasha had
    still to get dressed and they had to call at the Taurida Gardens.
    
    When her hair was done, Natasha, in her short petticoat from under which
    her dancing shoes showed, and in her mother's dressing jacket, ran up to
    Sonya, scrutinized her, and then ran to her mother. Turning her mother's
    head this way and that, she fastened on the cap and, hurriedly kissing
    her gray hair, ran back to the maids who were turning up the hem of her
    skirt.
    
    The cause of the delay was Natasha's skirt, which was too long. Two
    maids were turning up the hem and hurriedly biting off the ends of
    thread. A third with pins in her mouth was running about between the
    countess and Sonya, and a fourth held the whole of the gossamer garment
    up high on one uplifted hand.
    
    "Mavra, quicker, darling!"
    
    "Give me my thimble, Miss, from there..."
    
    "Whenever will you be ready?" asked the count coming to the door. "Here
    is some scent. Peronskaya must be tired of waiting."
    
    "It's ready, Miss," said the maid, holding up the shortened gauze dress
    with two fingers, and blowing and shaking something off it, as if by
    this to express a consciousness of the airiness and purity of what she
    held.
    
    Natasha began putting on the dress.
    
    "In a minute! In a minute! Don't come in, Papa!" she cried to her father
    as he opened the door--speaking from under the filmy skirt which still
    covered her whole face.
    
    Sonya slammed the door to. A minute later they let the count in. He was
    wearing a blue swallow-tail coat, shoes and stockings, and was perfumed
    and his hair pomaded.
    
    "Oh, Papa! how nice you look! Charming!" cried Natasha, as she stood in
    the middle of the room smoothing out the folds of the gauze.
    
    "If you please, Miss! allow me," said the maid, who on her knees was
    pulling the skirt straight and shifting the pins from one side of her
    mouth to the other with her tongue.
    
    "Say what you like," exclaimed Sonya, in a despairing voice as she
    looked at Natasha, "say what you like, it's still too long."
    
    Natasha stepped back to look at herself in the pier glass. The dress was
    too long.
    
    "Really, madam, it is not at all too long," said Mavra, crawling on her
    knees after her young lady.
    
    "Well, if it's too long we'll tack it up... we'll tack it up in one
    minute," said the resolute Dunyasha taking a needle that was stuck on
    the front of her little shawl and, still kneeling on the floor, set to
    work once more.
    
    At that moment, with soft steps, the countess came in shyly, in her cap
    and velvet gown.
    
    "Oo-oo, my beauty!" exclaimed the count, "she looks better than any of
    you!"
    
    He would have embraced her but, blushing, she stepped aside fearing to
    be rumpled.
    
    "Mamma, your cap, more to this side," said Natasha. "I'll arrange it,"
    and she rushed forward so that the maids who were tacking up her skirt
    could not move fast enough and a piece of gauze was torn off.
    
    "Oh goodness! What has happened? Really it was not my fault!"
    
    "Never mind, I'll run it up, it won't show," said Dunyasha.
    
    "What a beauty--a very queen!" said the nurse as she came to the door.
    "And Sonya! They are lovely!"
    
    At a quarter past ten they at last got into their carriages and started.
    But they had still to call at the Taurida Gardens.
    
    Peronskaya was quite ready. In spite of her age and plainness she had
    gone through the same process as the Rostovs, but with less flurry--for
    to her it was a matter of routine. Her ugly old body was washed,
    perfumed, and powdered in just the same way. She had washed behind her
    ears just as carefully, and when she entered her drawing room in her
    yellow dress, wearing her badge as maid of honor, her old lady's maid
    was as full of rapturous admiration as the Rostovs' servants had been.
    
    She praised the Rostovs' toilets. They praised her taste and toilet, and
    at eleven o'clock, careful of their coiffures and dresses, they settled
    themselves in their carriages and drove off.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    Natasha had not had a moment free since early morning and had not once
    had time to think of what lay before her.
    
    In the damp chill air and crowded closeness of the swaying carriage, she
    for the first time vividly imagined what was in store for her there at
    the ball, in those brightly lighted rooms--with music, flowers, dances,
    the Emperor, and all the brilliant young people of Petersburg. The
    prospect was so splendid that she hardly believed it would come true, so
    out of keeping was it with the chill darkness and closeness of the
    carriage. She understood all that awaited her only when, after stepping
    over the red baize at the entrance, she entered the hall, took off her
    fur cloak, and, beside Sonya and in front of her mother, mounted the
    brightly illuminated stairs between the flowers. Only then did she
    remember how she must behave at a ball, and tried to assume the majestic
    air she considered indispensable for a girl on such an occasion. But,
    fortunately for her, she felt her eyes growing misty, she saw nothing
    clearly, her pulse beat a hundred to the minute, and the blood throbbed
    at her heart. She could not assume that pose, which would have made her
    ridiculous, and she moved on almost fainting from excitement and trying
    with all her might to conceal it. And this was the very attitude that
    became her best. Before and behind them other visitors were entering,
    also talking in low tones and wearing ball dresses. The mirrors on the
    landing reflected ladies in white, pale-blue, and pink dresses, with
    diamonds and pearls on their bare necks and arms.
    
    Natasha looked in the mirrors and could not distinguish her reflection
    from the others. All was blended into one brilliant procession. On
    entering the ballroom the regular hum of voices, footsteps, and
    greetings deafened Natasha, and the light and glitter dazzled her still
    more. The host and hostess, who had already been standing at the door
    for half an hour repeating the same words to the various arrivals,
    "Charme de vous voir," * greeted the Rostovs and Peronskaya in the same
    manner.
    
    * "Delighted to see you."
    
    The two girls in their white dresses, each with a rose in her black
    hair, both curtsied in the same way, but the hostess' eye involuntarily
    rested longer on the slim Natasha. She looked at her and gave her alone
    a special smile in addition to her usual smile as hostess. Looking at
    her she may have recalled the golden, irrecoverable days of her own
    girlhood and her own first ball. The host also followed Natasha with his
    eyes and asked the count which was his daughter.
    
    "Charming!" said he, kissing the tips of his fingers.
    
    In the ballroom guests stood crowding at the entrance doors awaiting the
    Emperor. The countess took up a position in one of the front rows of
    that crowd. Natasha heard and felt that several people were asking about
    her and looking at her. She realized that those noticing her liked her,
    and this observation helped to calm her.
    
    "There are some like ourselves and some worse," she thought.
    
    Peronskaya was pointing out to the countess the most important people at
    the ball.
    
    "That is the Dutch ambassador, do you see? That gray-haired man," she
    said, indicating an old man with a profusion of silver-gray curly hair,
    who was surrounded by ladies laughing at something he said.
    
    "Ah, here she is, the Queen of Petersburg, Countess Bezukhova," said
    Peronskaya, indicating Helene who had just entered. "How lovely! She is
    quite equal to Marya Antonovna. See how the men, young and old, pay
    court to her. Beautiful and clever... they say Prince--is quite mad
    about her. But see, those two, though not good-looking, are even more
    run after."
    
    She pointed to a lady who was crossing the room followed by a very plain
    daughter.
    
    "She is a splendid match, a millionairess," said Peronskaya. "And look,
    here come her suitors."
    
    "That is Bezukhova's brother, Anatole Kuragin," she said, indicating a
    handsome officer of the Horse Guards who passed by them with head erect,
    looking at something over the heads of the ladies. "He's handsome, isn't
    he? I hear they will marry him to that rich girl. But your cousin,
    Drubetskoy, is also very attentive to her. They say she has millions. Oh
    yes, that's the French ambassador himself!" she replied to the countess'
    inquiry about Caulaincourt. "Looks as if he were a king! All the same,
    the French are charming, very charming. No one more charming in society.
    Ah, here she is! Yes, she is still the most beautiful of them all, our
    Marya Antonovna! And how simply she is dressed! Lovely! And that stout
    one in spectacles is the universal Freemason," she went on, indicating
    Pierre. "Put him beside his wife and he looks a regular buffoon!"
    
    Pierre, swaying his stout body, advanced, making way through the crowd
    and nodding to right and left as casually and good-naturedly as if he
    were passing through a crowd at a fair. He pushed through, evidently
    looking for someone.
    
    Natasha looked joyfully at the familiar face of Pierre, "the buffoon,"
    as Peronskaya had called him, and knew he was looking for them, and for
    her in particular. He had promised to be at the ball and introduce
    partners to her.
    
    But before he reached them Pierre stopped beside a very handsome, dark
    man of middle height, and in a white uniform, who stood by a window
    talking to a tall man wearing stars and a ribbon. Natasha at once
    recognized the shorter and younger man in the white uniform: it was
    Bolkonski, who seemed to her to have grown much younger, happier, and
    better-looking.
    
    "There's someone else we know--Bolkonski, do you see, Mamma?" said
    Natasha, pointing out Prince Andrew. "You remember, he stayed a night
    with us at Otradnoe."
    
    "Oh, you know him?" said Peronskaya. "I can't bear him. Il fait a
    present la pluie et le beau temps. * He's too proud for anything. Takes
    after his father. And he's hand in glove with Speranski, writing some
    project or other. Just look how he treats the ladies! There's one
    talking to him and he has turned away," she said, pointing at him. "I'd
    give it to him if he treated me as he does those ladies."
    
    * "He is all the rage just now."
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Suddenly everybody stirred, began talking, and pressed forward and then
    back, and between the two rows, which separated, the Emperor entered to
    the sounds of music that had immediately struck up. Behind him walked
    his host and hostess. He walked in rapidly, bowing to right and left as
    if anxious to get the first moments of the reception over. The band
    played the polonaise in vogue at that time on account of the words that
    had been set to it, beginning: "Alexander, Elisaveta, all our hearts you
    ravish quite..." The Emperor passed on to the drawing room, the crowd
    made a rush for the doors, and several persons with excited faces
    hurried there and back again. Then the crowd hastily retired from the
    drawing-room door, at which the Emperor reappeared talking to the
    hostess. A young man, looking distraught, pounced down on the ladies,
    asking them to move aside. Some ladies, with faces betraying complete
    forgetfulness of all the rules of decorum, pushed forward to the
    detriment of their toilets. The men began to choose partners and take
    their places for the polonaise.
    
    Everyone moved back, and the Emperor came smiling out of the drawing
    room leading his hostess by the hand but not keeping time to the music.
    The host followed with Marya Antonovna Naryshkina; then came
    ambassadors, ministers, and various generals, whom Peronskaya diligently
    named. More than half the ladies already had partners and were taking
    up, or preparing to take up, their positions for the polonaise. Natasha
    felt that she would be left with her mother and Sonya among a minority
    of women who crowded near the wall, not having been invited to dance.
    She stood with her slender arms hanging down, her scarcely defined bosom
    rising and falling regularly, and with bated breath and glittering,
    frightened eyes gazed straight before her, evidently prepared for the
    height of joy or misery. She was not concerned about the Emperor or any
    of those great people whom Peronskaya was pointing out--she had but one
    thought: "Is it possible no one will ask me, that I shall not be among
    the first to dance? Is it possible that not one of all these men will
    notice me? They do not even seem to see me, or if they do they look as
    if they were saying, 'Ah, she's not the one I'm after, so it's not worth
    looking at her!' No, it's impossible," she thought. "They must know how
    I long to dance, how splendidly I dance, and how they would enjoy
    dancing with me."
    
    The strains of the polonaise, which had continued for a considerable
    time, had begun to sound like a sad reminiscence to Natasha's ears. She
    wanted to cry. Peronskaya had left them. The count was at the other end
    of the room. She and the countess and Sonya were standing by themselves
    as in the depths of a forest amid that crowd of strangers, with no one
    interested in them and not wanted by anyone. Prince Andrew with a lady
    passed by, evidently not recognizing them. The handsome Anatole was
    smilingly talking to a partner on his arm and looked at Natasha as one
    looks at a wall. Boris passed them twice and each time turned away. Berg
    and his wife, who were not dancing, came up to them.
    
    This family gathering seemed humiliating to Natasha--as if there were
    nowhere else for the family to talk but here at the ball. She did not
    listen to or look at Vera, who was telling her something about her own
    green dress.
    
    At last the Emperor stopped beside his last partner (he had danced with
    three) and the music ceased. A worried aide-de-camp ran up to the
    Rostovs requesting them to stand farther back, though as it was they
    were already close to the wall, and from the gallery resounded the
    distinct, precise, enticingly rhythmical strains of a waltz. The Emperor
    looked smilingly down the room. A minute passed but no one had yet begun
    dancing. An aide-de-camp, the Master of Ceremonies, went up to Countess
    Bezukhova and asked her to dance. She smilingly raised her hand and laid
    it on his shoulder without looking at him. The aide-de-camp, an adept in
    his art, grasping his partner firmly round her waist, with confident
    deliberation started smoothly, gliding first round the edge of the
    circle, then at the corner of the room he caught Helene's left hand and
    turned her, the only sound audible, apart from the ever-quickening
    music, being the rhythmic click of the spurs on his rapid, agile feet,
    while at every third beat his partner's velvet dress spread out and
    seemed to flash as she whirled round. Natasha gazed at them and was
    ready to cry because it was not she who was dancing that first turn of
    the waltz.
    
    Prince Andrew, in the white uniform of a cavalry colonel, wearing
    stockings and dancing shoes, stood looking animated and bright in the
    front row of the circle not far from the Rostovs. Baron Firhoff was
    talking to him about the first sitting of the Council of State to be
    held next day. Prince Andrew, as one closely connected with Speranski
    and participating in the work of the legislative commission, could give
    reliable information about that sitting, concerning which various rumors
    were current. But not listening to what Firhoff was saying, he was
    gazing now at the sovereign and now at the men intending to dance who
    had not yet gathered courage to enter the circle.
    
    Prince Andrew was watching these men abashed by the Emperor's presence,
    and the women who were breathlessly longing to be asked to dance.
    
    Pierre came up to him and caught him by the arm.
    
    "You always dance. I have a protegee, the young Rostova, here. Ask her,"
    he said.
    
    "Where is she?" asked Bolkonski. "Excuse me!" he added, turning to the
    baron, "we will finish this conversation elsewhere--at a ball one must
    dance." He stepped forward in the direction Pierre indicated. The
    despairing, dejected expression of Natasha's face caught his eye. He
    recognized her, guessed her feelings, saw that it was her debut,
    remembered her conversation at the window, and with an expression of
    pleasure on his face approached Countess Rostova.
    
    "Allow me to introduce you to my daughter," said the countess, with
    heightened color.
    
    "I have the pleasure of being already acquainted, if the countess
    remembers me," said Prince Andrew with a low and courteous bow quite
    belying Peronskaya's remarks about his rudeness, and approaching Natasha
    he held out his arm to grasp her waist before he had completed his
    invitation. He asked her to waltz. That tremulous expression on
    Natasha's face, prepared either for despair or rapture, suddenly
    brightened into a happy, grateful, childlike smile.
    
    "I have long been waiting for you," that frightened happy little girl
    seemed to say by the smile that replaced the threatened tears, as she
    raised her hand to Prince Andrew's shoulder. They were the second couple
    to enter the circle. Prince Andrew was one of the best dancers of his
    day and Natasha danced exquisitely. Her little feet in their white satin
    dancing shoes did their work swiftly, lightly, and independently of
    herself, while her face beamed with ecstatic happiness. Her slender bare
    arms and neck were not beautiful--compared to Helene's her shoulders
    looked thin and her bosom undeveloped. But Helene seemed, as it were,
    hardened by a varnish left by the thousands of looks that had scanned
    her person, while Natasha was like a girl exposed for the first time,
    who would have felt very much ashamed had she not been assured that this
    was absolutely necessary.
    
    Prince Andrew liked dancing, and wishing to escape as quickly as
    possible from the political and clever talk which everyone addressed to
    him, wishing also to break up the circle of restraint he disliked,
    caused by the Emperor's presence, he danced, and had chosen Natasha
    because Pierre pointed her out to him and because she was the first
    pretty girl who caught his eye; but scarcely had he embraced that
    slender supple figure and felt her stirring so close to him and smiling
    so near him than the wine of her charm rose to his head, and he felt
    himself revived and rejuvenated when after leaving her he stood
    breathing deeply and watching the other dancers.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    After Prince Andrew, Boris came up to ask Natasha for a dance, and then
    the aide-de-camp who had opened the ball, and several other young men,
    so that, flushed and happy, and passing on her superfluous partners to
    Sonya, she did not cease dancing all the evening. She noticed and saw
    nothing of what occupied everyone else. Not only did she fail to notice
    that the Emperor talked a long time with the French ambassador, and how
    particularly gracious he was to a certain lady, or that Prince So-and-so
    and So-and-so did and said this and that, and that Helene had great
    success and was honored by the special attention of So-and-so, but she
    did not even see the Emperor, and only noticed that he had gone because
    the ball became livelier after his departure. For one of the merry
    cotillions before supper Prince Andrew was again her partner. He
    reminded her of their first encounter in the Otradnoe avenue, and how
    she had been unable to sleep that moonlight night, and told her how he
    had involuntarily overheard her. Natasha blushed at that recollection
    and tried to excuse herself, as if there had been something to be
    ashamed of in what Prince Andrew had overheard.
    
    Like all men who have grown up in society, Prince Andrew liked meeting
    someone there not of the conventional society stamp. And such was
    Natasha, with her surprise, her delight, her shyness, and even her
    mistakes in speaking French. With her he behaved with special care and
    tenderness, sitting beside her and talking of the simplest and most
    unimportant matters; he admired her shy grace. In the middle of the
    cotillion, having completed one of the figures, Natasha, still out of
    breath, was returning to her seat when another dancer chose her. She was
    tired and panting and evidently thought of declining, but immediately
    put her hand gaily on the man's shoulder, smiling at Prince Andrew.
    
    "I'd be glad to sit beside you and rest: I'm tired; but you see how they
    keep asking me, and I'm glad of it, I'm happy and I love everybody, and
    you and I understand it all," and much, much more was said in her smile.
    When her partner left her Natasha ran across the room to choose two
    ladies for the figure.
    
    "If she goes to her cousin first and then to another lady, she will be
    my wife," said Prince Andrew to himself quite to his own surprise, as he
    watched her. She did go first to her cousin.
    
    "What rubbish sometimes enters one's head!" thought Prince Andrew, "but
    what is certain is that that girl is so charming, so original, that she
    won't be dancing here a month before she will be married.... Such as she
    are rare here," he thought, as Natasha, readjusting a rose that was
    slipping on her bodice, settled herself beside him.
    
    When the cotillion was over the old count in his blue coat came up to
    the dancers. He invited Prince Andrew to come and see them, and asked
    his daughter whether she was enjoying herself. Natasha did not answer at
    once but only looked up with a smile that said reproachfully: "How can
    you ask such a question?"
    
    "I have never enjoyed myself so much before!" she said, and Prince
    Andrew noticed how her thin arms rose quickly as if to embrace her
    father and instantly dropped again. Natasha was happier than she had
    ever been in her life. She was at that height of bliss when one becomes
    completely kind and good and does not believe in the possibility of
    evil, unhappiness, or sorrow.
    
    At that ball Pierre for the first time felt humiliated by the position
    his wife occupied in court circles. He was gloomy and absent-minded. A
    deep furrow ran across his forehead, and standing by a window he stared
    over his spectacles seeing no one.
    
    On her way to supper Natasha passed him.
    
    Pierre's gloomy, unhappy look struck her. She stopped in front of him.
    She wished to help him, to bestow on him the superabundance of her own
    happiness.
    
    "How delightful it is, Count!" said she. "Isn't it?"
    
    Pierre smiled absent-mindedly, evidently not grasping what she said.
    
    "Yes, I am very glad," he said.
    
    "How can people be dissatisfied with anything?" thought Natasha.
    "Especially such a capital fellow as Bezukhov!" In Natasha's eyes all
    the people at the ball alike were good, kind, and splendid people,
    loving one another; none of them capable of injuring another--and so
    they ought all to be happy.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    Next day Prince Andrew thought of the ball, but his mind did not dwell
    on it long. "Yes, it was a very brilliant ball," and then... "Yes, that
    little Rostova is very charming. There's something fresh, original, un-
    Petersburg-like about her that distinguishes her." That was all he
    thought about yesterday's ball, and after his morning tea he set to
    work.
    
    But either from fatigue or want of sleep he was ill-disposed for work
    and could get nothing done. He kept criticizing his own work, as he
    often did, and was glad when he heard someone coming.
    
    The visitor was Bitski, who served on various committees, frequented all
    the societies in Petersburg, and a passionate devotee of the new ideas
    and of Speranski, and a diligent Petersburg newsmonger--one of those men
    who choose their opinions like their clothes according to the fashion,
    but who for that very reason appear to be the warmest partisans. Hardly
    had he got rid of his hat before he ran into Prince Andrew's room with a
    preoccupied air and at once began talking. He had just heard particulars
    of that morning's sitting of the Council of State opened by the Emperor,
    and he spoke of it enthusiastically. The Emperor's speech had been
    extraordinary. It had been a speech such as only constitutional monarchs
    deliver. "The Sovereign plainly said that the Council and Senate are
    estates of the realm, he said that the government must rest not on
    authority but on secure bases. The Emperor said that the fiscal system
    must be reorganized and the accounts published," recounted Bitski,
    emphasizing certain words and opening his eyes significantly.
    
    "Ah, yes! Today's events mark an epoch, the greatest epoch in our
    history," he concluded.
    
    Prince Andrew listened to the account of the opening of the Council of
    State, which he had so impatiently awaited and to which he had attached
    such importance, and was surprised that this event, now that it had
    taken place, did not affect him, and even seemed quite insignificant. He
    listened with quiet irony to Bitski's enthusiastic account of it. A very
    simple thought occurred to him: "What does it matter to me or to Bitski
    what the Emperor was pleased to say at the Council? Can all that make me
    any happier or better?"
    
    And this simple reflection suddenly destroyed all the interest Prince
    Andrew had felt in the impending reforms. He was going to dine that
    evening at Speranski's, "with only a few friends," as the host had said
    when inviting him. The prospect of that dinner in the intimate home
    circle of the man he so admired had greatly interested Prince Andrew,
    especially as he had not yet seen Speranski in his domestic
    surroundings, but now he felt disinclined to go to it.
    
    At the appointed hour, however, he entered the modest house Speranski
    owned in the Taurida Gardens. In the parqueted dining room this small
    house, remarkable for its extreme cleanliness (suggesting that of a
    monastery), Prince Andrew, who was rather late, found the friendly
    gathering of Speranski's intimate acquaintances already assembled at
    five o'clock. There were no ladies present except Speranski's little
    daughter (long-faced like her father) and her governess. The other
    guests were Gervais, Magnitski, and Stolypin. While still in the
    anteroom Prince Andrew heard loud voices and a ringing staccato laugh--a
    laugh such as one hears on the stage. Someone--it sounded like
    Speranski--was distinctly ejaculating ha-ha-ha. Prince Andrew had never
    before heard Speranski's famous laugh, and this ringing, high-pitched
    laughter from a statesman made a strange impression on him.
    
    He entered the dining room. The whole company were standing between two
    windows at a small table laid with hors-d'oeuvres. Speranski, wearing a
    gray swallow-tail coat with a star on the breast, and evidently still
    the same waistcoat and high white stock he had worn at the meeting of
    the Council of State, stood at the table with a beaming countenance. His
    guests surrounded him. Magnitski, addressing himself to Speranski, was
    relating an anecdote, and Speranski was laughing in advance at what
    Magnitski was going to say. When Prince Andrew entered the room
    Magnitski's words were again crowned by laughter. Stolypin gave a deep
    bass guffaw as he munched a piece of bread and cheese. Gervais laughed
    softly with a hissing chuckle, and Speranski in a high-pitched staccato
    manner.
    
    Still laughing, Speranski held out his soft white hand to Prince Andrew.
    
    "Very pleased to see you, Prince," he said. "One moment..." he went on,
    turning to Magnitski and interrupting his story. "We have agreed that
    this is a dinner for recreation, with not a word about business!" and
    turning again to the narrator he began to laugh afresh.
    
    Prince Andrew looked at the laughing Speranski with astonishment,
    regret, and disillusionment. It seemed to him that this was not
    Speranski but someone else. Everything that had formerly appeared
    mysterious and fascinating in Speranski suddenly became plain and
    unattractive.
    
    At dinner the conversation did not cease for a moment and seemed to
    consist of the contents of a book of funny anecdotes. Before Magnitski
    had finished his story someone else was anxious to relate something
    still funnier. Most of the anecdotes, if not relating to the state
    service, related to people in the service. It seemed that in this
    company the insignificance of those people was so definitely accepted
    that the only possible attitude toward them was one of good humored
    ridicule. Speranski related how at the Council that morning a deaf
    dignitary, when asked his opinion, replied that he thought so too.
    Gervais gave a long account of an official revision, remarkable for the
    stupidity of everybody concerned. Stolypin, stuttering, broke into the
    conversation and began excitedly talking of the abuses that existed
    under the former order of things--threatening to give a serious turn to
    the conversation. Magnitski starting quizzing Stolypin about his
    vehemence. Gervais intervened with a joke, and the talk reverted to its
    former lively tone.
    
    Evidently Speranski liked to rest after his labors and find amusement in
    a circle of friends, and his guests, understanding his wish, tried to
    enliven him and amuse themselves. But their gaiety seemed to Prince
    Andrew mirthless and tiresome. Speranski's high-pitched voice struck him
    unpleasantly, and the incessant laughter grated on him like a false
    note. Prince Andrew did not laugh and feared that he would be a damper
    on the spirits of the company, but no one took any notice of his being
    out of harmony with the general mood. They all seemed very gay.
    
    He tried several times to join in the conversation, but his remarks were
    tossed aside each time like a cork thrown out of the water, and he could
    not jest with them.
    
    There was nothing wrong or unseemly in what they said, it was witty and
    might have been funny, but it lacked just that something which is the
    salt of mirth, and they were not even aware that such a thing existed.
    
    After dinner Speranski's daughter and her governess rose. He patted the
    little girl with his white hand and kissed her. And that gesture, too,
    seemed unnatural to Prince Andrew.
    
    The men remained at table over their port--English fashion. In the midst
    of a conversation that was started about Napoleon's Spanish affairs,
    which they all agreed in approving, Prince Andrew began to express a
    contrary opinion. Speranski smiled and, with an evident wish to prevent
    the conversation from taking an unpleasant course, told a story that had
    no connection with the previous conversation. For a few moments all were
    silent.
    
    Having sat some time at table, Speranski corked a bottle of wine and,
    remarking, "Nowadays good wine rides in a carriage and pair," passed it
    to the servant and got up. All rose and continuing to talk loudly went
    into the drawing room. Two letters brought by a courier were handed to
    Speranski and he took them to his study. As soon as he had left the room
    the general merriment stopped and the guests began to converse sensibly
    and quietly with one another.
    
    "Now for the recitation!" said Speranski on returning from his study. "A
    wonderful talent!" he said to Prince Andrew, and Magnitski immediately
    assumed a pose and began reciting some humorous verses in French which
    he had composed about various well-known Petersburg people. He was
    interrupted several times by applause. When the verses were finished
    Prince Andrew went up to Speranski and took his leave.
    
    "Where are you off to so early?" asked Speranski.
    
    "I promised to go to a reception."
    
    They said no more. Prince Andrew looked closely into those mirrorlike,
    impenetrable eyes, and felt that it had been ridiculous of him to have
    expected anything from Speranski and from any of his own activities
    connected with him, or ever to have attributed importance to what
    Speranski was doing. That precise, mirthless laughter rang in Prince
    Andrew's ears long after he had left the house.
    
    When he reached home Prince Andrew began thinking of his life in
    Petersburg during those last four months as if it were something new. He
    recalled his exertions and solicitations, and the history of his project
    of army reform, which had been accepted for consideration and which they
    were trying to pass over in silence simply because another, a very poor
    one, had already been prepared and submitted to the Emperor. He thought
    of the meetings of a committee of which Berg was a member. He remembered
    how carefully and at what length everything relating to form and
    procedure was discussed at those meetings, and how sedulously and
    promptly all that related to the gist of the business was evaded. He
    recalled his labors on the Legal Code, and how painstakingly he had
    translated the articles of the Roman and French codes into Russian, and
    he felt ashamed of himself. Then he vividly pictured to himself
    Bogucharovo, his occupations in the country, his journey to Ryazan; he
    remembered the peasants and Dron the village elder, and mentally
    applying to them the Personal Rights he had divided into paragraphs, he
    felt astonished that he could have spent so much time on such useless
    work.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    Next day Prince Andrew called at a few houses he had not visited before,
    and among them at the Rostovs' with whom he had renewed acquaintance at
    the ball. Apart from considerations of politeness which demanded the
    call, he wanted to see that original, eager girl who had left such a
    pleasant impression on his mind, in her own home.
    
    Natasha was one of the first to meet him. She was wearing a dark-blue
    house dress in which Prince Andrew thought her even prettier than in her
    ball dress. She and all the Rostov family welcomed him as an old friend,
    simply and cordially. The whole family, whom he had formerly judged
    severely, now seemed to him to consist of excellent, simple, and kindly
    people. The old count's hospitality and good nature, which struck one
    especially in Petersburg as a pleasant surprise, were such that Prince
    Andrew could not refuse to stay to dinner. "Yes," he thought, "they are
    capital people, who of course have not the slightest idea what a
    treasure they possess in Natasha; but they are kindly folk and form the
    best possible setting for this strikingly poetic, charming girl,
    overflowing with life!"
    
    In Natasha Prince Andrew was conscious of a strange world completely
    alien to him and brimful of joys unknown to him, a different world, that
    in the Otradnoe avenue and at the window that moonlight night had
    already begun to disconcert him. Now this world disconcerted him no
    longer and was no longer alien to him, but he himself having entered it
    found in it a new enjoyment.
    
    After dinner Natasha, at Prince Andrew's request, went to the clavichord
    and began singing. Prince Andrew stood by a window talking to the ladies
    and listened to her. In the midst of a phrase he ceased speaking and
    suddenly felt tears choking him, a thing he had thought impossible for
    him. He looked at Natasha as she sang, and something new and joyful
    stirred in his soul. He felt happy and at the same time sad. He had
    absolutely nothing to weep about yet he was ready to weep. What about?
    His former love? The little princess? His disillusionments?... His hopes
    for the future?... Yes and no. The chief reason was a sudden, vivid
    sense of the terrible contrast between something infinitely great and
    illimitable within him and that limited and material something that he,
    and even she, was. This contrast weighed on and yet cheered him while
    she sang.
    
    As soon as Natasha had finished she went up to him and asked how he
    liked her voice. She asked this and then became confused, feeling that
    she ought not to have asked it. He smiled, looking at her, and said he
    liked her singing as he liked everything she did.
    
    Prince Andrew left the Rostovs' late in the evening. He went to bed from
    habit, but soon realized that he could not sleep. Having lit his candle
    he sat up in bed, then got up, then lay down again not at all troubled
    by his sleeplessness: his soul was as fresh and joyful as if he had
    stepped out of a stuffy room into God's own fresh air. It did not enter
    his head that he was in love with Natasha; he was not thinking about
    her, but only picturing her to himself, and in consequence all life
    appeared in a new light. "Why do I strive, why do I toil in this narrow,
    confined frame, when life, all life with all its joys, is open to me?"
    said he to himself. And for the first time for a very long while he
    began making happy plans for the future. He decided that he must attend
    to his son's education by finding a tutor and putting the boy in his
    charge, then he ought to retire from the service and go abroad, and see
    England, Switzerland and Italy. "I must use my freedom while I feel so
    much strength and youth in me," he said to himself. "Pierre was right
    when he said one must believe in the possibility of happiness in order
    to be happy, and now I do believe in it. Let the dead bury their dead,
    but while one has life one must live and be happy!" thought he.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    One morning Colonel Berg, whom Pierre knew as he knew everybody in
    Moscow and Petersburg, came to see him. Berg arrived in an immaculate
    brand-new uniform, with his hair pomaded and brushed forward over his
    temples as the Emperor Alexander wore his hair.
    
    "I have just been to see the countess, your wife. Unfortunately she
    could not grant my request, but I hope, Count, I shall be more fortunate
    with you," he said with a smile.
    
    "What is it you wish, Colonel? I am at your service."
    
    "I have now quite settled in my new rooms, Count" (Berg said this with
    perfect conviction that this information could not but be agreeable),
    "and so I wish to arrange just a small party for my own and my wife's
    friends." (He smiled still more pleasantly.) "I wished to ask the
    countess and you to do me the honor of coming to tea and to supper."
    
    Only Countess Helene, considering the society of such people as the
    Bergs beneath her, could be cruel enough to refuse such an invitation.
    Berg explained so clearly why he wanted to collect at his house a small
    but select company, and why this would give him pleasure, and why though
    he grudged spending money on cards or anything harmful, he was prepared
    to run into some expense for the sake of good society--that Pierre could
    not refuse, and promised to come.
    
    "But don't be late, Count, if I may venture to ask; about ten minutes to
    eight, please. We shall make up a rubber. Our general is coming. He is
    very good to me. We shall have supper, Count. So you will do me the
    favor."
    
    Contrary to his habit of being late, Pierre on that day arrived at the
    Bergs' house, not at ten but at fifteen minutes to eight.
    
    Having prepared everything necessary for the party, the Bergs were ready
    for their guests' arrival.
    
    In their new, clean, and light study with its small busts and pictures
    and new furniture sat Berg and his wife. Berg, closely buttoned up in
    his new uniform, sat beside his wife explaining to her that one always
    could and should be acquainted with people above one, because only then
    does one get satisfaction from acquaintances.
    
    "You can get to know something, you can ask for something. See how I
    managed from my first promotion." (Berg measured his life not by years
    but by promotions.) "My comrades are still nobodies, while I am only
    waiting for a vacancy to command a regiment, and have the happiness to
    be your husband." (He rose and kissed Vera's hand, and on the way to her
    straightened out a turned-up corner of the carpet.) "And how have I
    obtained all this? Chiefly by knowing how to choose my aquaintances. It
    goes without saying that one must be conscientious and methodical."
    
    Berg smiled with a sense of his superiority over a weak woman, and
    paused, reflecting that this dear wife of his was after all but a weak
    woman who could not understand all that constitutes a man's dignity,
    what it was ein Mann zu sein. * Vera at the same time smiling with a
    sense of superiority over her good, conscientious husband, who all the
    same understood life wrongly, as according to Vera all men did. Berg,
    judging by his wife, thought all women weak and foolish. Vera, judging
    only by her husband and generalizing from that observation, supposed
    that all men, though they understand nothing and are conceited and
    selfish, ascribe common sense to themselves alone.
    
    * To be a man.
    
    Berg rose and embraced his wife carefully, so as not to crush her lace
    fichu for which he had paid a good price, kissing her straight on the
    lips.
    
    "The only thing is, we mustn't have children too soon," he continued,
    following an unconscious sequence of ideas.
    
    "Yes," answered Vera, "I don't at all want that. We must live for
    society."
    
    "Princess Yusupova wore one exactly like this," said Berg, pointing to
    the fichu with a happy and kindly smile.
    
    Just then Count Bezukhov was announced. Husband and wife glanced at one
    another, both smiling with self-satisfaction, and each mentally claiming
    the honor of this visit.
    
    "This is what comes of knowing how to make acquaintances," thought Berg.
    "This is what comes of knowing how to conduct oneself."
    
    "But please don't interrupt me when I am entertaining the guests," said
    Vera, "because I know what interests each of them and what to say to
    different people."
    
    Berg smiled again.
    
    "It can't be helped: men must sometimes have masculine conversation,"
    said he.
    
    They received Pierre in their small, new drawing-room, where it was
    impossible to sit down anywhere without disturbing its symmetry,
    neatness, and order; so it was quite comprehensible and not strange that
    Berg, having generously offered to disturb the symmetry of an armchair
    or of the sofa for his dear guest, but being apparently painfully
    undecided on the matter himself, eventually left the visitor to settle
    the question of selection. Pierre disturbed the symmetry by moving a
    chair for himself, and Berg and Vera immediately began their evening
    party, interrupting each other in their efforts to entertain their
    guest.
    
    Vera, having decided in her own mind that Pierre ought to be entertained
    with conversation about the French embassy, at once began accordingly.
    Berg, having decided that masculine conversation was required,
    interrupted his wife's remarks and touched on the question of the war
    with Austria, and unconsciously jumped from the general subject to
    personal considerations as to the proposals made him to take part in the
    Austrian campaign and the reasons why he had declined them. Though the
    conversation was very incoherent and Vera was angry at the intrusion of
    the masculine element, both husband and wife felt with satisfaction
    that, even if only one guest was present, their evening had begun very
    well and was as like as two peas to every other evening party with its
    talk, tea, and lighted candles.
    
    Before long Boris, Berg's old comrade, arrived. There was a shade of
    condescension and patronage in his treatment of Berg and Vera. After
    Boris came a lady with the colonel, then the general himself, then the
    Rostovs, and the party became unquestionably exactly like all other
    evening parties. Berg and Vera could not repress their smiles of
    satisfaction at the sight of all this movement in their drawing room, at
    the sound of the disconnected talk, the rustling of dresses, and the
    bowing and scraping. Everything was just as everybody always has it,
    especially so the general, who admired the apartment, patted Berg on the
    shoulder, and with parental authority superintended the setting out of
    the table for boston. The general sat down by Count Ilya Rostov, who was
    next to himself the most important guest. The old people sat with the
    old, the young with the young, and the hostess at the tea table, on
    which stood exactly the same kind of cakes in a silver cake basket as
    the Panins had at their party. Everything was just as it was everywhere
    else.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    Pierre, as one of the principal guests, had to sit down to boston with
    Count Rostov, the general, and the colonel. At the card table he
    happened to be directly facing Natasha, and was struck by a curious
    change that had come over her since the ball. She was silent, and not
    only less pretty than at the ball, but only redeemed from plainness by
    her look of gentle indifference to everything around.
    
    "What's the matter with her?" thought Pierre, glancing at her. She was
    sitting by her sister at the tea table, and reluctantly, without looking
    at him, made some reply to Boris who sat down beside her. After playing
    out a whole suit and to his partner's delight taking five tricks,
    Pierre, hearing greetings and the steps of someone who had entered the
    room while he was picking up his tricks, glanced again at Natasha.
    
    "What has happened to her?" he asked himself with still greater
    surprise.
    
    Prince Andrew was standing before her, saying something to her with a
    look of tender solicitude. She, having raised her head, was looking up
    at him, flushed and evidently trying to master her rapid breathing. And
    the bright glow of some inner fire that had been suppressed was again
    alight in her. She was completely transformed and from a plain girl had
    again become what she had been at the ball.
    
    Prince Andrew went up to Pierre, and the latter noticed a new and
    youthful expression in his friend's face.
    
    Pierre changed places several times during the game, sitting now with
    his back to Natasha and now facing her, but during the whole of the six
    rubbers he watched her and his friend.
    
    "Something very important is happening between them," thought Pierre,
    and a feeling that was both joyful and painful agitated him and made him
    neglect the game.
    
    After six rubbers the general got up, saying that it was no use playing
    like that, and Pierre was released. Natasha on one side was talking with
    Sonya and Boris, and Vera with a subtle smile was saying something to
    Prince Andrew. Pierre went up to his friend and, asking whether they
    were talking secrets, sat down beside them. Vera, having noticed Prince
    Andrew's attentions to Natasha, decided that at a party, a real evening
    party, subtle allusions to the tender passion were absolutely necessary
    and, seizing a moment when Prince Andrew was alone, began a conversation
    with him about feelings in general and about her sister. With so
    intellectual a guest as she considered Prince Andrew to be, she felt
    that she had to employ her diplomatic tact.
    
    When Pierre went up to them he noticed that Vera was being carried away
    by her self-satisfied talk, but that Prince Andrew seemed embarrassed, a
    thing that rarely happened with him.
    
    "What do you think?" Vera was saying with an arch smile. "You are so
    discerning, Prince, and understand people's characters so well at a
    glance. What do you think of Natalie? Could she be constant in her
    attachments? Could she, like other women" (Vera meant herself), "love a
    man once for all and remain true to him forever? That is what I consider
    true love. What do you think, Prince?"
    
    "I know your sister too little," replied Prince Andrew, with a sarcastic
    smile under which he wished to hide his embarrassment, "to be able to
    solve so delicate a question, and then I have noticed that the less
    attractive a woman is the more constant she is likely to be," he added,
    and looked up at Pierre who was just approaching them.
    
    "Yes, that is true, Prince. In our days," continued Vera--mentioning
    "our days" as people of limited intelligence are fond of doing,
    imagining that they have discovered and appraised the peculiarities of
    "our days" and that human characteristics change with the times--"in our
    days a girl has so much freedom that the pleasure of being courted often
    stifles real feeling in her. And it must be confessed that Natalie is
    very susceptible." This return to the subject of Natalie caused Prince
    Andrew to knit his brows with discomfort: he was about to rise, but Vera
    continued with a still more subtle smile:
    
    "I think no one has been more courted than she," she went on, "but till
    quite lately she never cared seriously for anyone. Now you know, Count,"
    she said to Pierre, "even our dear cousin Boris, who, between ourselves,
    was very far gone in the land of tenderness..." (alluding to a map of
    love much in vogue at that time).
    
    Prince Andrew frowned and remained silent.
    
    "You are friendly with Boris, aren't you?" asked Vera.
    
    "Yes, I know him..."
    
    "I expect he has told you of his childish love for Natasha?"
    
    "Oh, there was childish love?" suddenly asked Prince Andrew, blushing
    unexpectedly.
    
    "Yes, you know between cousins intimacy often leads to love. Le
    cousinage est un dangereux voisinage. * Don't you think so?"
    
    * "Cousinhood is a dangerous neighborhood."
    
    "Oh, undoubtedly!" said Prince Andrew, and with sudden and unnatural
    liveliness he began chaffing Pierre about the need to be very careful
    with his fifty-year-old Moscow cousins, and in the midst of these
    jesting remarks he rose, taking Pierre by the arm, and drew him aside.
    
    "Well?" asked Pierre, seeing his friend's strange animation with
    surprise, and noticing the glance he turned on Natasha as he rose.
    
    "I must... I must have a talk with you," said Prince Andrew. "You know
    that pair of women's gloves?" (He referred to the masonic gloves given
    to a newly initiated Brother to present to the woman he loved.) "I...
    but no, I will talk to you later on," and with a strange light in his
    eyes and restlessness in his movements, Prince Andrew approached Natasha
    and sat down beside her. Pierre saw how Prince Andrew asked her
    something and how she flushed as she replied.
    
    But at that moment Berg came to Pierre and began insisting that he
    should take part in an argument between the general and the colonel on
    the affairs in Spain.
    
    Berg was satisfied and happy. The smile of pleasure never left his face.
    The party was very successful and quite like other parties he had seen.
    Everything was similar: the ladies' subtle talk, the cards, the general
    raising his voice at the card table, and the samovar and the tea cakes;
    only one thing was lacking that he had always seen at the evening
    parties he wished to imitate. They had not yet had a loud conversation
    among the men and a dispute about something important and clever. Now
    the general had begun such a discussion and so Berg drew Pierre to it.
    
    CHAPTER XXII
    
    Next day, having been invited by the count, Prince Andrew dined with the
    Rostovs and spent the rest of the day there.
    
    Everyone in the house realized for whose sake Prince Andrew came, and
    without concealing it he tried to be with Natasha all day. Not only in
    the soul of the frightened yet happy and enraptured Natasha, but in the
    whole house, there was a feeling of awe at something important that was
    bound to happen. The countess looked with sad and sternly serious eyes
    at Prince Andrew when he talked to Natasha and timidly started some
    artificial conversation about trifles as soon as he looked her way.
    Sonya was afraid to leave Natasha and afraid of being in the way when
    she was with them. Natasha grew pale, in a panic of expectation, when
    she remained alone with him for a moment. Prince Andrew surprised her by
    his timidity. She felt that he wanted to say something to her but could
    not bring himself to do so.
    
    In the evening, when Prince Andrew had left, the countess went up to
    Natasha and whispered: "Well, what?"
    
    "Mamma! For heaven's sake don't ask me anything now! One can't talk
    about that," said Natasha.
    
    But all the same that night Natasha, now agitated and now frightened,
    lay a long time in her mother's bed gazing straight before her. She told
    her how he had complimented her, how he told her he was going abroad,
    asked her where they were going to spend the summer, and then how he had
    asked her about Boris.
    
    "But such a... such a... never happened to me before!" she said. "Only I
    feel afraid in his presence. I am always afraid when I'm with him. What
    does that mean? Does it mean that it's the real thing? Yes? Mamma, are
    you asleep?"
    
    "No, my love; I am frightened myself," answered her mother. "Now go!"
    
    "All the same I shan't sleep. What silliness, to sleep! Mummy! Mummy!
    such a thing never happened to me before," she said, surprised and
    alarmed at the feeling she was aware of in herself. "And could we ever
    have thought!..."
    
    It seemed to Natasha that even at the time she first saw Prince Andrew
    at Otradnoe she had fallen in love with him. It was as if she feared
    this strange, unexpected happiness of meeting again the very man she had
    then chosen (she was firmly convinced she had done so) and of finding
    him, as it seemed, not indifferent to her.
    
    "And it had to happen that he should come specially to Petersburg while
    we are here. And it had to happen that we should meet at that ball. It
    is fate. Clearly it is fate that everything led up to this! Already
    then, directly I saw him I felt something peculiar."
    
    "What else did he say to you? What are those verses? Read them..." said
    her mother, thoughtfully, referring to some verses Prince Andrew had
    written in Natasha's album.
    
    "Mamma, one need not be ashamed of his being a widower?"
    
    "Don't, Natasha! Pray to God. 'Marriages are made in heaven,'" said her
    mother.
    
    "Darling Mummy, how I love you! How happy I am!" cried Natasha, shedding
    tears of joy and excitement and embracing her mother.
    
    At that very time Prince Andrew was sitting with Pierre and telling him
    of his love for Natasha and his firm resolve to make her his wife.
    
    That day Countess Helene had a reception at her house. The French
    ambassador was there, and a foreign prince of the blood who had of late
    become a frequent visitor of hers, and many brilliant ladies and
    gentlemen. Pierre, who had come downstairs, walked through the rooms and
    struck everyone by his preoccupied, absent-minded, and morose air.
    
    Since the ball he had felt the approach of a fit of nervous depression
    and had made desperate efforts to combat it. Since the intimacy of his
    wife with the royal prince, Pierre had unexpectedly been made a
    gentleman of the bedchamber, and from that time he had begun to feel
    oppressed and ashamed in court society, and dark thoughts of the vanity
    of all things human came to him oftener than before. At the same time
    the feeling he had noticed between his protegee Natasha and Prince
    Andrew accentuated his gloom by the contrast between his own position
    and his friend's. He tried equally to avoid thinking about his wife, and
    about Natasha and Prince Andrew; and again everything seemed to him
    insignificant in comparison with eternity; again the question: for what?
    presented itself; and he forced himself to work day and night at masonic
    labors, hoping to drive away the evil spirit that threatened him. Toward
    midnight, after he had left the countess' apartments, he was sitting
    upstairs in a shabby dressing gown, copying out the original transaction
    of the Scottish lodge of Freemasons at a table in his low room cloudy
    with tobacco smoke, when someone came in. It was Prince Andrew.
    
    "Ah, it's you!" said Pierre with a preoccupied, dissatisfied air. "And
    I, you see, am hard at it." He pointed to his manuscript book with that
    air of escaping from the ills of life with which unhappy people look at
    their work.
    
    Prince Andrew, with a beaming, ecstatic expression of renewed life on
    his face, paused in front of Pierre and, not noticing his sad look,
    smiled at him with the egotism of joy.
    
    "Well, dear heart," said he, "I wanted to tell you about it yesterday
    and I have come to do so today. I never experienced anything like it
    before. I am in love, my friend!"
    
    Suddenly Pierre heaved a deep sigh and dumped his heavy person down on
    the sofa beside Prince Andrew.
    
    "With Natasha Rostova, yes?" said he.
    
    "Yes, yes! Who else should it be? I should never have believed it, but
    the feeling is stronger than I. Yesterday I tormented myself and
    suffered, but I would not exchange even that torment for anything in the
    world, I have not lived till now. At last I live, but I can't live
    without her! But can she love me?... I am too old for her.... Why don't
    you speak?"
    
    "I? I? What did I tell you?" said Pierre suddenly, rising and beginning
    to pace up and down the room. "I always thought it.... That girl is such
    a treasure... she is a rare girl.... My dear friend, I entreat you,
    don't philosophize, don't doubt, marry, marry, marry.... And I am sure
    there will not be a happier man than you."
    
    "But what of her?"
    
    "She loves you."
    
    "Don't talk rubbish..." said Prince Andrew, smiling and looking into
    Pierre's eyes.
    
    "She does, I know," Pierre cried fiercely.
    
    "But do listen," returned Prince Andrew, holding him by the arm. "Do you
    know the condition I am in? I must talk about it to someone."
    
    "Well, go on, go on. I am very glad," said Pierre, and his face really
    changed, his brow became smooth, and he listened gladly to Prince
    Andrew. Prince Andrew seemed, and really was, quite a different, quite a
    new man. Where was his spleen, his contempt for life, his
    disillusionment? Pierre was the only person to whom he made up his mind
    to speak openly; and to him he told all that was in his soul. Now he
    boldly and lightly made plans for an extended future, said he could not
    sacrifice his own happiness to his father's caprice, and spoke of how he
    would either make his father consent to this marriage and love her, or
    would do without his consent; then he marveled at the feeling that had
    mastered him as at something strange, apart from and independent of
    himself.
    
    "I should not have believed anyone who told me that I was capable of
    such love," said Prince Andrew. "It is not at all the same feeling that
    I knew in the past. The whole world is now for me divided into two
    halves: one half is she, and there all is joy, hope, light: the other
    half is everything where she is not, and there is all gloom and
    darkness...."
    
    "Darkness and gloom," reiterated Pierre: "yes, yes, I understand that."
    
    "I cannot help loving the light, it is not my fault. And I am very
    happy! You understand me? I know you are glad for my sake."
    
    "Yes, yes," Pierre assented, looking at his friend with a touched and
    sad expression in his eyes. The brighter Prince Andrew's lot appeared to
    him, the gloomier seemed his own.
    
    CHAPTER XXIII
    
    Prince Andrew needed his father's consent to his marriage, and to obtain
    this he started for the country next day.
    
    His father received his son's communication with external composure, but
    inward wrath. He could not comprehend how anyone could wish to alter his
    life or introduce anything new into it, when his own life was already
    ending. "If only they would let me end my days as I want to," thought
    the old man, "then they might do as they please." With his son, however,
    he employed the diplomacy he reserved for important occasions and,
    adopting a quiet tone, discussed the whole matter.
    
    In the first place the marriage was not a brilliant one as regards
    birth, wealth, or rank. Secondly, Prince Andrew was no longer as young
    as he had been and his health was poor (the old man laid special stress
    on this), while she was very young. Thirdly, he had a son whom it would
    be a pity to entrust to a chit of a girl. "Fourthly and finally," the
    father said, looking ironically at his son, "I beg you to put it off for
    a year: go abroad, take a cure, look out as you wanted to for a German
    tutor for Prince Nicholas. Then if your love or passion or obstinacy--as
    you please--is still as great, marry! And that's my last word on it.
    Mind, the last..." concluded the prince, in a tone which showed that
    nothing would make him alter his decision.
    
    Prince Andrew saw clearly that the old man hoped that his feelings, or
    his fiancee's, would not stand a year's test, or that he (the old prince
    himself) would die before then, and he decided to conform to his
    father's wish--to propose, and postpone the wedding for a year.
    
    Three weeks after the last evening he had spent with the Rostovs, Prince
    Andrew returned to Petersburg.
    
    Next day after her talk with her mother Natasha expected Bolkonski all
    day, but he did not come. On the second and third day it was the same.
    Pierre did not come either and Natasha, not knowing that Prince Andrew
    had gone to see his father, could not explain his absence to herself.
    
    Three weeks passed in this way. Natasha had no desire to go out anywhere
    and wandered from room to room like a shadow, idle and listless; she
    wept secretly at night and did not go to her mother in the evenings. She
    blushed continually and was irritable. It seemed to her that everybody
    knew about her disappointment and was laughing at her and pitying her.
    Strong as was her inward grief, this wound to her vanity intensified her
    misery.
    
    Once she came to her mother, tried to say something, and suddenly began
    to cry. Her tears were those of an offended child who does not know why
    it is being punished.
    
    The countess began to soothe Natasha, who after first listening to her
    mother's words, suddenly interrupted her:
    
    "Leave off, Mamma! I don't think, and don't want to think about it! He
    just came and then left off, left off..."
    
    Her voice trembled, and she again nearly cried, but recovered and went
    on quietly:
    
    "And I don't at all want to get married. And I am afraid of him; I have
    now become quite calm, quite calm."
    
    The day after this conversation Natasha put on the old dress which she
    knew had the peculiar property of conducing to cheerfulness in the
    mornings, and that day she returned to the old way of life which she had
    abandoned since the ball. Having finished her morning tea she went to
    the ballroom, which she particularly liked for its loud resonance, and
    began singing her solfeggio. When she had finished her first exercise
    she stood still in the middle of the room and sang a musical phrase that
    particularly pleased her. She listened joyfully (as though she had not
    expected it) to the charm of the notes reverberating, filling the whole
    empty ballroom, and slowly dying away; and all at once she felt
    cheerful. "What's the good of making so much of it? Things are nice as
    it is," she said to herself, and she began walking up and down the room,
    not stepping simply on the resounding parquet but treading with each
    step from the heel to the toe (she had on a new and favorite pair of
    shoes) and listening to the regular tap of the heel and creak of the toe
    as gladly as she had to the sounds of her own voice. Passing a mirror
    she glanced into it. "There, that's me!" the expression of her face
    seemed to say as she caught sight of herself. "Well, and very nice too!
    I need nobody."
    
    A footman wanted to come in to clear away something in the room but she
    would not let him, and having closed the door behind him continued her
    walk. That morning she had returned to her favorite mood--love of, and
    delight in, herself. "How charming that Natasha is!" she said again,
    speaking as some third, collective, male person. "Pretty, a good voice,
    young, and in nobody's way if only they leave her in peace." But however
    much they left her in peace she could not now be at peace, and
    immediately felt this.
    
    In the hall the porch door opened, and someone asked, "At home?" and
    then footsteps were heard. Natasha was looking at the mirror, but did
    not see herself. She listened to the sounds in the hall. When she saw
    herself, her face was pale. It was he. She knew this for certain, though
    she hardly heard his voice through the closed doors.
    
    Pale and agitated, Natasha ran into the drawing room.
    
    "Mamma! Bolkonski has come!" she said. "Mamma, it is awful, it is
    unbearable! I don't want... to be tormented? What am I to do?..."
    
    Before the countess could answer, Prince Andrew entered the room with an
    agitated and serious face. As soon as he saw Natasha his face
    brightened. He kissed the countess' hand and Natasha's, and sat down
    beside the sofa.
    
    "It is long since we had the pleasure..." began the countess, but Prince
    Andrew interrupted her by answering her intended question, obviously in
    haste to say what he had to.
    
    "I have not been to see you all this time because I have been at my
    father's. I had to talk over a very important matter with him. I only
    got back last night," he said glancing at Natasha; "I want to have a
    talk with you, Countess," he added after a moment's pause.
    
    The countess lowered her eyes, sighing deeply.
    
    "I am at your disposal," she murmured.
    
    Natasha knew that she ought to go away, but was unable to do so:
    something gripped her throat, and regardless of manners she stared
    straight at Prince Andrew with wide-open eyes.
    
    "At once? This instant!... No, it can't be!" she thought.
    
    Again he glanced at her, and that glance convinced her that she was not
    mistaken. Yes, at once, that very instant, her fate would be decided.
    
    "Go, Natasha! I will call you," said the countess in a whisper.
    
    Natasha glanced with frightened imploring eyes at Prince Andrew and at
    her mother and went out.
    
    "I have come, Countess, to ask for your daughter's hand," said Prince
    Andrew.
    
    The countess' face flushed hotly, but she said nothing.
    
    "Your offer..." she began at last sedately. He remained silent, looking
    into her eyes. "Your offer..." (she grew confused) "is agreeable to us,
    and I accept your offer. I am glad. And my husband... I hope... but it
    will depend on her...."
    
    "I will speak to her when I have your consent.... Do you give it to me?"
    said Prince Andrew.
    
    "Yes," replied the countess. She held out her hand to him, and with a
    mixed feeling of estrangement and tenderness pressed her lips to his
    forehead as he stooped to kiss her hand. She wished to love him as a
    son, but felt that to her he was a stranger and a terrifying man. "I am
    sure my husband will consent," said the countess, "but your father..."
    
    "My father, to whom I have told my plans, has made it an express
    condition of his consent that the wedding is not to take place for a
    year. And I wished to tell you of that," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "It is true that Natasha is still young, but--so long as that?..."
    
    "It is unavoidable," said Prince Andrew with a sigh.
    
    "I will send her to you," said the countess, and left the room.
    
    "Lord have mercy upon us!" she repeated while seeking her daughter.
    
    Sonya said that Natasha was in her bedroom. Natasha was sitting on the
    bed, pale and dry eyed, and was gazing at the icons and whispering
    something as she rapidly crossed herself. Seeing her mother she jumped
    up and flew to her.
    
    "Well, Mamma?... Well?..."
    
    "Go, go to him. He is asking for your hand," said the countess, coldly
    it seemed to Natasha. "Go... go," said the mother, sadly and
    reproachfully, with a deep sigh, as her daughter ran away.
    
    Natasha never remembered how she entered the drawing room. When she came
    in and saw him she paused. "Is it possible that this stranger has now
    become everything to me?" she asked herself, and immediately answered,
    "Yes, everything! He alone is now dearer to me than everything in the
    world." Prince Andrew came up to her with downcast eyes.
    
    "I have loved you from the very first moment I saw you. May I hope?"
    
    He looked at her and was struck by the serious impassioned expression of
    her face. Her face said: "Why ask? Why doubt what you cannot but know?
    Why speak, when words cannot express what one feels?"
    
    She drew near to him and stopped. He took her hand and kissed it.
    
    "Do you love me?"
    
    "Yes, yes!" Natasha murmured as if in vexation. Then she sighed loudly
    and, catching her breath more and more quickly, began to sob.
    
    "What is it? What's the matter?"
    
    "Oh, I am so happy!" she replied, smiled through her tears, bent over
    closer to him, paused for an instant as if asking herself whether she
    might, and then kissed him.
    
    Prince Andrew held her hands, looked into her eyes, and did not find in
    his heart his former love for her. Something in him had suddenly
    changed; there was no longer the former poetic and mystic charm of
    desire, but there was pity for her feminine and childish weakness, fear
    at her devotion and trustfulness, and an oppressive yet joyful sense of
    the duty that now bound him to her forever. The present feeling, though
    not so bright and poetic as the former, was stronger and more serious.
    
    "Did your mother tell you that it cannot be for a year?" asked Prince
    Andrew, still looking into her eyes.
    
    "Is it possible that I--the 'chit of a girl,' as everybody called me,"
    thought Natasha--"is it possible that I am now to be the wife and the
    equal of this strange, dear, clever man whom even my father looks up to?
    Can it be true? Can it be true that there can be no more playing with
    life, that now I am grown up, that on me now lies a responsibility for
    my every word and deed? Yes, but what did he ask me?"
    
    "No," she replied, but she had not understood his question.
    
    "Forgive me!" he said. "But you are so young, and I have already been
    through so much in life. I am afraid for you, you do not yet know
    yourself."
    
    Natasha listened with concentrated attention, trying but failing to take
    in the meaning of his words.
    
    "Hard as this year which delays my happiness will be," continued Prince
    Andrew, "it will give you time to be sure of yourself. I ask you to make
    me happy in a year, but you are free: our engagement shall remain a
    secret, and should you find that you do not love me, or should you come
    to love..." said Prince Andrew with an unnatural smile.
    
    "Why do you say that?" Natasha interrupted him. "You know that from the
    very day you first came to Otradnoe I have loved you," she cried, quite
    convinced that she spoke the truth.
    
    "In a year you will learn to know yourself...."
    
    "A whole year!" Natasha repeated suddenly, only now realizing that the
    marriage was to be postponed for a year. "But why a year? Why a
    year?..."
    
    Prince Andrew began to explain to her the reasons for this delay.
    Natasha did not hear him.
    
    "And can't it be helped?" she asked. Prince Andrew did not reply, but
    his face expressed the impossibility of altering that decision.
    
    "It's awful! Oh, it's awful! awful!" Natasha suddenly cried, and again
    burst into sobs. "I shall die, waiting a year: it's impossible, it's
    awful!" She looked into her lover's face and saw in it a look of
    commiseration and perplexity.
    
    "No, no! I'll do anything!" she said, suddenly checking her tears. "I am
    so happy."
    
    The father and mother came into the room and gave the betrothed couple
    their blessing.
    
    From that day Prince Andrew began to frequent the Rostovs' as Natasha's
    affianced lover.
    
    CHAPTER XXIV
    
    No betrothal ceremony took place and Natasha's engagement to Bolkonski
    was not announced; Prince Andrew insisted on that. He said that as he
    was responsible for the delay he ought to bear the whole burden of it;
    that he had given his word and bound himself forever, but that he did
    not wish to bind Natasha and gave her perfect freedom. If after six
    months she felt that she did not love him she would have full right to
    reject him. Naturally neither Natasha nor her parents wished to hear of
    this, but Prince Andrew was firm. He came every day to the Rostovs', but
    did not behave to Natasha as an affianced lover: he did not use the
    familiar thou, but said you to her, and kissed only her hand. After
    their engagement, quite different, intimate, and natural relations
    sprang up between them. It was as if they had not known each other till
    now. Both liked to recall how they had regarded each other when as yet
    they were nothing to one another; they felt themselves now quite
    different beings: then they were artificial, now natural and sincere. At
    first the family felt some constraint in intercourse with Prince Andrew;
    he seemed a man from another world, and for a long time Natasha trained
    the family to get used to him, proudly assuring them all that he only
    appeared to be different, but was really just like all of them, and that
    she was not afraid of him and no one else ought to be. After a few days
    they grew accustomed to him, and without restraint in his presence
    pursued their usual way of life, in which he took his part. He could
    talk about rural economy with the count, fashions with the countess and
    Natasha, and about albums and fancywork with Sonya. Sometimes the
    household both among themselves and in his presence expressed their
    wonder at how it had all happened, and at the evident omens there had
    been of it: Prince Andrew's coming to Otradnoe and their coming to
    Petersburg, and the likeness between Natasha and Prince Andrew which her
    nurse had noticed on his first visit, and Andrew's encounter with
    Nicholas in 1805, and many other incidents betokening that it had to be.
    
    In the house that poetic dullness and quiet reigned which always
    accompanies the presence of a betrothed couple. Often when all sitting
    together everyone kept silent. Sometimes the others would get up and go
    away and the couple, left alone, still remained silent. They rarely
    spoke of their future life. Prince Andrew was afraid and ashamed to
    speak of it. Natasha shared this as she did all his feelings, which she
    constantly divined. Once she began questioning him about his son. Prince
    Andrew blushed, as he often did now--Natasha particularly liked it in
    him--and said that his son would not live with them.
    
    "Why not?" asked Natasha in a frightened tone.
    
    "I cannot take him away from his grandfather, and besides..."
    
    "How I should have loved him!" said Natasha, immediately guessing his
    thought; "but I know you wish to avoid any pretext for finding fault
    with us."
    
    Sometimes the old count would come up, kiss Prince Andrew, and ask his
    advice about Petya's education or Nicholas' service. The old countess
    sighed as she looked at them; Sonya was always getting frightened lest
    she should be in the way and tried to find excuses for leaving them
    alone, even when they did not wish it. When Prince Andrew spoke (he
    could tell a story very well), Natasha listened to him with pride; when
    she spoke she noticed with fear and joy that he gazed attentively and
    scrutinizingly at her. She asked herself in perplexity: "What does he
    look for in me? He is trying to discover something by looking at me!
    What if what he seeks in me is not there?" Sometimes she fell into one
    of the mad, merry moods characteristic of her, and then she particularly
    loved to hear and see how Prince Andrew laughed. He seldom laughed, but
    when he did he abandoned himself entirely to his laughter, and after
    such a laugh she always felt nearer to him. Natasha would have been
    completely happy if the thought of the separation awaiting her and
    drawing near had not terrified her, just as the mere thought of it made
    him turn pale and cold.
    
    On the eve of his departure from Petersburg Prince Andrew brought with
    him Pierre, who had not been to the Rostovs' once since the ball. Pierre
    seemed disconcerted and embarrassed. He was talking to the countess, and
    Natasha sat down beside a little chess table with Sonya, thereby
    inviting Prince Andrew to come too. He did so.
    
    "You have known Bezukhov a long time?" he asked. "Do you like him?"
    
    "Yes, he's a dear, but very absurd."
    
    And as usual when speaking of Pierre, she began to tell anecdotes of his
    absent-mindedness, some of which had even been invented about him.
    
    "Do you know I have entrusted him with our secret? I have known him from
    childhood. He has a heart of gold. I beg you, Natalie," Prince Andrew
    said with sudden seriousness--"I am going away and heaven knows what may
    happen. You may cease to... all right, I know I am not to say that. Only
    this, then: whatever may happen to you when I am not here..."
    
    "What can happen?"
    
    "Whatever trouble may come," Prince Andrew continued, "I beg you,
    Mademoiselle Sophie, whatever may happen, to turn to him alone for
    advice and help! He is a most absent-minded and absurd fellow, but he
    has a heart of gold."
    
    Neither her father, nor her mother, nor Sonya, nor Prince Andrew himself
    could have foreseen how the separation from her lover would act on
    Natasha. Flushed and agitated she went about the house all that day,
    dry-eyed, occupied with most trivial matters as if not understanding
    what awaited her. She did not even cry when, on taking leave, he kissed
    her hand for the last time. "Don't go!" she said in a tone that made him
    wonder whether he really ought not to stay and which he remembered long
    afterwards. Nor did she cry when he was gone; but for several days she
    sat in her room dry-eyed, taking no interest in anything and only saying
    now and then, "Oh, why did he go away?"
    
    But a fortnight after his departure, to the surprise of those around
    her, she recovered from her mental sickness just as suddenly and became
    her old self again, but with a change in her moral physiognomy, as a
    child gets up after a long illness with a changed expression of face.
    
    CHAPTER XXV
    
    During that year after his son's departure, Prince Nicholas Bolkonski's
    health and temper became much worse. He grew still more irritable, and
    it was Princess Mary who generally bore the brunt of his frequent fits
    of unprovoked anger. He seemed carefully to seek out her tender spots so
    as to torture her mentally as harshly as possible. Princess Mary had two
    passions and consequently two joys--her nephew, little Nicholas, and
    religion--and these were the favorite subjects of the prince's attacks
    and ridicule. Whatever was spoken of he would bring round to the
    superstitiousness of old maids, or the petting and spoiling of children.
    "You want to make him"--little Nicholas--"into an old maid like
    yourself! A pity! Prince Andrew wants a son and not an old maid," he
    would say. Or, turning to Mademoiselle Bourienne, he would ask her in
    Princess Mary's presence how she liked our village priests and icons and
    would joke about them.
    
    He continually hurt Princess Mary's feelings and tormented her, but it
    cost her no effort to forgive him. Could he be to blame toward her, or
    could her father, whom she knew loved her in spite of it all, be unjust?
    And what is justice? The princess never thought of that proud word
    "justice." All the complex laws of man centered for her in one clear and
    simple law--the law of love and self-sacrifice taught us by Him who
    lovingly suffered for mankind though He Himself was God. What had she to
    do with the justice or injustice of other people? She had to endure and
    love, and that she did.
    
    During the winter Prince Andrew had come to Bald Hills and had been gay,
    gentle, and more affectionate than Princess Mary had known him for a
    long time past. She felt that something had happened to him, but he said
    nothing to her about his love. Before he left he had a long talk with
    his father about something, and Princess Mary noticed that before his
    departure they were dissatisfied with one another.
    
    Soon after Prince Andrew had gone, Princess Mary wrote to her friend
    Julie Karagina in Petersburg, whom she had dreamed (as all girls dream)
    of marrying to her brother, and who was at that time in mourning for her
    own brother, killed in Turkey.
    
    Sorrow, it seems, is our common lot, my dear, tender friend Julie.
    
    Your loss is so terrible that I can only explain it to myself as a
    special providence of God who, loving you, wishes to try you and your
    excellent mother. Oh, my friend! Religion, and religion alone, can--I
    will not say comfort us--but save us from despair. Religion alone can
    explain to us what without its help man cannot comprehend: why, for what
    cause, kind and noble beings able to find happiness in life--not merely
    harming no one but necessary to the happiness of others--are called away
    to God, while cruel, useless, harmful persons, or such as are a burden
    to themselves and to others, are left living. The first death I saw, and
    one I shall never forget--that of my dear sister-in-law--left that
    impression on me. Just as you ask destiny why your splendid brother had
    to die, so I asked why that angel Lise, who not only never wronged
    anyone, but in whose soul there were never any unkind thoughts, had to
    die. And what do you think, dear friend? Five years have passed since
    then, and already I, with my petty understanding, begin to see clearly
    why she had to die, and in what way that death was but an expression of
    the infinite goodness of the Creator, whose every action, though
    generally incomprehensible to us, is but a manifestation of His infinite
    love for His creatures. Perhaps, I often think, she was too angelically
    innocent to have the strength to perform all a mother's duties. As a
    young wife she was irreproachable; perhaps she could not have been so as
    a mother. As it is, not only has she left us, and particularly Prince
    Andrew, with the purest regrets and memories, but probably she will
    there receive a place I dare not hope for myself. But not to speak of
    her alone, that early and terrible death has had the most beneficent
    influence on me and on my brother in spite of all our grief. Then, at
    the moment of our loss, these thoughts could not occur to me; I should
    then have dismissed them with horror, but now they are very clear and
    certain. I write all this to you, dear friend, only to convince you of
    the Gospel truth which has become for me a principle of life: not a
    single hair of our heads will fall without His will. And His will is
    governed only by infinite love for us, and so whatever befalls us is for
    our good.
    
    You ask whether we shall spend next winter in Moscow. In spite of my
    wish to see you, I do not think so and do not want to do so. You will be
    surprised to hear that the reason for this is Buonaparte! The case is
    this: my father's health is growing noticeably worse, he cannot stand
    any contradiction and is becoming irritable. This irritability is, as
    you know, chiefly directed to political questions. He cannot endure the
    notion that Buonaparte is negotiating on equal terms with all the
    sovereigns of Europe and particularly with our own, the grandson of the
    Great Catherine! As you know, I am quite indifferent to politics, but
    from my father's remarks and his talks with Michael Ivanovich I know all
    that goes on in the world and especially about the honors conferred on
    Buonaparte, who only at Bald Hills in the whole world, it seems, is not
    accepted as a great man, still less as Emperor of France. And my father
    cannot stand this. It seems to me that it is chiefly because of his
    political views that my father is reluctant to speak of going to Moscow;
    for he foresees the encounters that would result from his way of
    expressing his views regardless of anybody. All the benefit he might
    derive from a course of treatment he would lose as a result of the
    disputes about Buonaparte which would be inevitable. In any case it will
    be decided very shortly.
    
    Our family life goes on in the old way except for my brother Andrew's
    absence. He, as I wrote you before, has changed very much of late. After
    his sorrow he only this year quite recovered his spirits. He has again
    become as I used to know him when a child: kind, affectionate, with that
    heart of gold to which I know no equal. He has realized, it seems to me,
    that life is not over for him. But together with this mental change he
    has grown physically much weaker. He has become thinner and more
    nervous. I am anxious about him and glad he is taking this trip abroad
    which the doctors recommended long ago. I hope it will cure him. You
    write that in Petersburg he is spoken of as one of the most active,
    cultivated, and capable of the young men. Forgive my vanity as a
    relation, but I never doubted it. The good he has done to everybody
    here, from his peasants up to the gentry, is incalculable. On his
    arrival in Petersburg he received only his due. I always wonder at the
    way rumors fly from Petersburg to Moscow, especially such false ones as
    that you write about--I mean the report of my brother's betrothal to the
    little Rostova. I do not think my brother will ever marry again, and
    certainly not her; and this is why: first, I know that though he rarely
    speaks about the wife he has lost, the grief of that loss has gone too
    deep in his heart for him ever to decide to give her a successor and our
    little angel a stepmother. Secondly because, as far as I know, that girl
    is not the kind of girl who could please Prince Andrew. I do not think
    he would choose her for a wife, and frankly I do not wish it. But I am
    running on too long and am at the end of my second sheet. Good-bye, my
    dear friend. May God keep you in His holy and mighty care. My dear
    friend, Mademoiselle Bourienne, sends you kisses.
    
    MARY
    
    CHAPTER XXVI
    
    In the middle of the summer Princess Mary received an unexpected letter
    from Prince Andrew in Switzerland in which he gave her strange and
    surprising news. He informed her of his engagement to Natasha Rostova.
    The whole letter breathed loving rapture for his betrothed and tender
    and confiding affection for his sister. He wrote that he had never loved
    as he did now and that only now did he understand and know what life
    was. He asked his sister to forgive him for not having told her of his
    resolve when he had last visited Bald Hills, though he had spoken of it
    to his father. He had not done so for fear Princess Mary should ask her
    father to give his consent, irritating him and having to bear the brunt
    of his displeasure without attaining her object. "Besides," he wrote,
    "the matter was not then so definitely settled as it is now. My father
    then insisted on a delay of a year and now already six months, half of
    that period, have passed, and my resolution is firmer than ever. If the
    doctors did not keep me here at the spas I should be back in Russia, but
    as it is I have to postpone my return for three months. You know me and
    my relations with Father. I want nothing from him. I have been and
    always shall be independent; but to go against his will and arouse his
    anger, now that he may perhaps remain with us such a short time, would
    destroy half my happiness. I am now writing to him about the same
    question, and beg you to choose a good moment to hand him the letter and
    to let me know how he looks at the whole matter and whether there is
    hope that he may consent to reduce the term by four months."
    
    After long hesitations, doubts, and prayers, Princess Mary gave the
    letter to her father. The next day the old prince said to her quietly:
    
    "Write and tell your brother to wait till I am dead.... It won't be
    long--I shall soon set him free."
    
    The princess was about to reply, but her father would not let her speak
    and, raising his voice more and more, cried:
    
    "Marry, marry, my boy!... A good family!... Clever people, eh? Rich, eh?
    Yes, a nice stepmother little Nicholas will have! Write and tell him
    that he may marry tomorrow if he likes. She will be little Nicholas'
    stepmother and I'll marry Bourienne!... Ha, ha, ha! He mustn't be
    without a stepmother either! Only one thing, no more women are wanted in
    my house--let him marry and live by himself. Perhaps you will go and
    live with him too?" he added, turning to Princess Mary. "Go in heaven's
    name! Go out into the frost... the frost... the frost!"
    
    After this outburst the prince did not speak any more about the matter.
    But repressed vexation at his son's poor-spirited behavior found
    expression in his treatment of his daughter. To his former pretexts for
    irony a fresh one was now added--allusions to stepmothers and
    amiabilities to Mademoiselle Bourienne.
    
    "Why shouldn't I marry her?" he asked his daughter. "She'll make a
    splendid princess!"
    
    And latterly, to her surprise and bewilderment, Princess Mary noticed
    that her father was really associating more and more with the
    Frenchwoman. She wrote to Prince Andrew about the reception of his
    letter, but comforted him with hopes of reconciling their father to the
    idea.
    
    Little Nicholas and his education, her brother Andrew, and religion were
    Princess Mary's joys and consolations; but besides that, since everyone
    must have personal hopes, Princess Mary in the profoundest depths of her
    heart had a hidden dream and hope that supplied the chief consolation of
    her life. This comforting dream and hope were given her by God's folk--
    the half-witted and other pilgrims who visited her without the prince's
    knowledge. The longer she lived, the more experience and observation she
    had of life, the greater was her wonder at the short-sightedness of men
    who seek enjoyment and happiness here on earth: toiling, suffering,
    struggling, and harming one another, to obtain that impossible,
    visionary, sinful happiness. Prince Andrew had loved his wife, she died,
    but that was not enough: he wanted to bind his happiness to another
    woman. Her father objected to this because he wanted a more
    distinguished and wealthier match for Andrew. And they all struggled and
    suffered and tormented one another and injured their souls, their
    eternal souls, for the attainment of benefits which endure but for an
    instant. Not only do we know this ourselves, but Christ, the Son of God,
    came down to earth and told us that this life is but for a moment and is
    a probation; yet we cling to it and think to find happiness in it. "How
    is it that no one realizes this?" thought Princess Mary. "No one except
    these despised God's folk who, wallet on back, come to me by the back
    door, afraid of being seen by the prince, not for fear of ill-usage by
    him but for fear of causing him to sin. To leave family, home, and all
    the cares of worldly welfare, in order without clinging to anything to
    wander in hempen rags from place to place under an assumed name, doing
    no one any harm but praying for all--for those who drive one away as
    well as for those who protect one: higher than that life and truth there
    is no life or truth!"
    
    There was one pilgrim, a quiet pockmarked little woman of fifty called
    Theodosia, who for over thirty years had gone about barefoot and worn
    heavy chains. Princess Mary was particularly fond of her. Once, when in
    a room with a lamp dimly lit before the icon Theodosia was talking of
    her life, the thought that Theodosia alone had found the true path of
    life suddenly came to Princess Mary with such force that she resolved to
    become a pilgrim herself. When Theodosia had gone to sleep Princess Mary
    thought about this for a long time, and at last made up her mind that,
    strange as it might seem, she must go on a pilgrimage. She disclosed
    this thought to no one but to her confessor, Father Akinfi, the monk,
    and he approved of her intention. Under guise of a present for the
    pilgrims, Princess Mary prepared a pilgrim's complete costume for
    herself: a coarse smock, bast shoes, a rough coat, and a black kerchief.
    Often, approaching the chest of drawers containing this secret treasure,
    Princess Mary paused, uncertain whether the time had not already come to
    put her project into execution.
    
    Often, listening to the pilgrims' tales, she was so stimulated by their
    simple speech, mechanical to them but to her so full of deep meaning,
    that several times she was on the point of abandoning everything and
    running away from home. In imagination she already pictured herself by
    Theodosia's side, dressed in coarse rags, walking with a staff, a wallet
    on her back, along the dusty road, directing her wanderings from one
    saint's shrine to another, free from envy, earthly love, or desire, and
    reaching at last the place where there is no more sorrow or sighing, but
    eternal joy and bliss.
    
    "I shall come to a place and pray there, and before having time to get
    used to it or getting to love it, I shall go farther. I will go on till
    my legs fail, and I'll lie down and die somewhere, and shall at last
    reach that eternal, quiet haven, where there is neither sorrow nor
    sighing..." thought Princess Mary.
    
    But afterwards, when she saw her father and especially little Koko
    (Nicholas), her resolve weakened. She wept quietly, and felt that she
    was a sinner who loved her father and little nephew more than God.
    
    BOOK SEVEN: 1810 - 11
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    The Bible legend tells us that the absence of labor--idleness--was a
    condition of the first man's blessedness before the Fall. Fallen man has
    retained a love of idleness, but the curse weighs on the race not only
    because we have to seek our bread in the sweat of our brows, but because
    our moral nature is such that we cannot be both idle and at ease. An
    inner voice tells us we are in the wrong if we are idle. If man could
    find a state in which he felt that though idle he was fulfilling his
    duty, he would have found one of the conditions of man's primitive
    blessedness. And such a state of obligatory and irreproachable idleness
    is the lot of a whole class--the military. The chief attraction of
    military service has consisted and will consist in this compulsory and
    irreproachable idleness.
    
    Nicholas Rostov experienced this blissful condition to the full when,
    after 1807, he continued to serve in the Pavlograd regiment, in which he
    already commanded the squadron he had taken over from Denisov.
    
    Rostov had become a bluff, good-natured fellow, whom his Moscow
    acquaintances would have considered rather bad form, but who was liked
    and respected by his comrades, subordinates, and superiors, and was well
    contented with his life. Of late, in 1809, he found in letters from home
    more frequent complaints from his mother that their affairs were falling
    into greater and greater disorder, and that it was time for him to come
    back to gladden and comfort his old parents.
    
    Reading these letters, Nicholas felt a dread of their wanting to take
    him away from surroundings in which, protected from all the
    entanglements of life, he was living so calmly and quietly. He felt that
    sooner or later he would have to re-enter that whirlpool of life, with
    its embarrassments and affairs to be straightened out, its accounts with
    stewards, quarrels, and intrigues, its ties, society, and with Sonya's
    love and his promise to her. It was all dreadfully difficult and
    complicated; and he replied to his mother in cold, formal letters in
    French, beginning: "My dear Mamma," and ending: "Your obedient son,"
    which said nothing of when he would return. In 1810 he received letters
    from his parents, in which they told him of Natasha's engagement to
    Bolkonski, and that the wedding would be in a year's time because the
    old prince made difficulties. This letter grieved and mortified
    Nicholas. In the first place he was sorry that Natasha, for whom he
    cared more than for anyone else in the family, should be lost to the
    home; and secondly, from his hussar point of view, he regretted not to
    have been there to show that fellow Bolkonski that connection with him
    was no such great honor after all, and that if he loved Natasha he might
    dispense with permission from his dotard father. For a moment he
    hesitated whether he should not apply for leave in order to see Natasha
    before she was married, but then came the maneuvers, and considerations
    about Sonya and about the confusion of their affairs, and Nicholas again
    put it off. But in the spring of that year, he received a letter from
    his mother, written without his father's knowledge, and that letter
    persuaded him to return. She wrote that if he did not come and take
    matters in hand, their whole property would be sold by auction and they
    would all have to go begging. The count was so weak, and trusted Mitenka
    so much, and was so good-natured, that everybody took advantage of him
    and things were going from bad to worse. "For God's sake, I implore you,
    come at once if you do not wish to make me and the whole family
    wretched," wrote the countess.
    
    This letter touched Nicholas. He had that common sense of a matter-of-
    fact man which showed him what he ought to do.
    
    The right thing now was, if not to retire from the service, at any rate
    to go home on leave. Why he had to go he did not know; but after his
    after-dinner nap he gave orders to saddle Mars, an extremely vicious
    gray stallion that had not been ridden for a long time, and when he
    returned with the horse all in a lather, he informed Lavrushka
    (Denisov's servant who had remained with him) and his comrades who
    turned up in the evening that he was applying for leave and was going
    home. Difficult and strange as it was for him to reflect that he would
    go away without having heard from the staff--and this interested him
    extremely--whether he was promoted to a captaincy or would receive the
    Order of St. Anne for the last maneuvers; strange as it was to think
    that he would go away without having sold his three roans to the Polish
    Count Golukhovski, who was bargaining for the horses Rostov had betted
    he would sell for two thousand rubles; incomprehensible as it seemed
    that the ball the hussars were giving in honor of the Polish
    Mademoiselle Przazdziecka (out of rivalry to the uhlans who had given
    one in honor of their Polish Mademoiselle Borzozowska) would take place
    without him--he knew he must go away from this good, bright world to
    somewhere where everything was stupid and confused. A week later he
    obtained his leave. His hussar comrades--not only those of his own
    regiment, but the whole brigade--gave Rostov a dinner to which the
    subscription was fifteen rubles a head, and at which there were two
    bands and two choirs of singers. Rostov danced the Trepak with Major
    Basov; the tipsy officers tossed, embraced, and dropped Rostov; the
    soldiers of the third squadron tossed him too, and shouted "hurrah!" and
    then they put him in his sleigh and escorted him as far as the first
    post station.
    
    During the first half of the journey--from Kremenchug to Kiev--all
    Rostov's thoughts, as is usual in such cases, were behind him, with the
    squadron; but when he had gone more than halfway he began to forget his
    three roans and Dozhoyveyko, his quartermaster, and to wonder anxiously
    how things would be at Otradnoe and what he would find there. Thoughts
    of home grew stronger the nearer he approached it--far stronger, as
    though this feeling of his was subject to the law by which the force of
    attraction is in inverse proportion to the square of the distance. At
    the last post station before Otradnoe he gave the driver a three-ruble
    tip, and on arriving he ran breathlessly, like a boy, up the steps of
    his home.
    
    After the rapture of meeting, and after that odd feeling of unsatisfied
    expectation--the feeling that "everything is just the same, so why did I
    hurry?"--Nicholas began to settle down in his old home world. His father
    and mother were much the same, only a little older. What was new in them
    was a certain uneasiness and occasional discord, which there used not to
    be, and which, as Nicholas soon found out, was due to the bad state of
    their affairs. Sonya was nearly twenty; she had stopped growing prettier
    and promised nothing more than she was already, but that was enough. She
    exhaled happiness and love from the time Nicholas returned, and the
    faithful, unalterable love of this girl had a gladdening effect on him.
    Petya and Natasha surprised Nicholas most. Petya was a big handsome boy
    of thirteen, merry, witty, and mischievous, with a voice that was
    already breaking. As for Natasha, for a long while Nicholas wondered and
    laughed whenever he looked at her.
    
    "You're not the same at all," he said.
    
    "How? Am I uglier?"
    
    "On the contrary, but what dignity? A princess!" he whispered to her.
    
    "Yes, yes, yes!" cried Natasha, joyfully.
    
    She told him about her romance with Prince Andrew and of his visit to
    Otradnoe and showed him his last letter.
    
    "Well, are you glad?" Natasha asked. "I am so tranquil and happy now."
    
    "Very glad," answered Nicholas. "He is an excellent fellow.... And are
    you very much in love?"
    
    "How shall I put it?" replied Natasha. "I was in love with Boris, with
    my teacher, and with Denisov, but this is quite different. I feel at
    peace and settled. I know that no better man than he exists, and I am
    calm and contented now. Not at all as before."
    
    Nicholas expressed his disapproval of the postponement of the marriage
    for a year; but Natasha attacked her brother with exasperation, proving
    to him that it could not be otherwise, and that it would be a bad thing
    to enter a family against the father's will, and that she herself wished
    it so.
    
    "You don't at all understand," she said.
    
    Nicholas was silent and agreed with her.
    
    Her brother often wondered as he looked at her. She did not seem at all
    like a girl in love and parted from her affianced husband. She was even-
    tempered and calm and quite as cheerful as of old. This amazed Nicholas
    and even made him regard Bolkonski's courtship skeptically. He could not
    believe that her fate was sealed, especially as he had not seen her with
    Prince Andrew. It always seemed to him that there was something not
    quite right about this intended marriage.
    
    "Why this delay? Why no betrothal?" he thought. Once, when he had
    touched on this topic with his mother, he discovered, to his surprise
    and somewhat to his satisfaction, that in the depth of her soul she too
    had doubts about this marriage.
    
    "You see he writes," said she, showing her son a letter of Prince
    Andrew's, with that latent grudge a mother always has in regard to a
    daughter's future married happiness, "he writes that he won't come
    before December. What can be keeping him? Illness, probably! His health
    is very delicate. Don't tell Natasha. And don't attach importance to her
    being so bright: that's because she's living through the last days of
    her girlhood, but I know what she is like every time we receive a letter
    from him! However, God grant that everything turns out well!" (She
    always ended with these words.) "He is an excellent man!"
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    After reaching home Nicholas was at first serious and even dull. He was
    worried by the impending necessity of interfering in the stupid business
    matters for which his mother had called him home. To throw off this
    burden as quickly as possible, on the third day after his arrival he
    went, angry and scowling and without answering questions as to where he
    was going, to Mitenka's lodge and demanded an account of everything. But
    what an account of everything might be Nicholas knew even less than the
    frightened and bewildered Mitenka. The conversation and the examination
    of the accounts with Mitenka did not last long. The village elder, a
    peasant delegate, and the village clerk, who were waiting in the
    passage, heard with fear and delight first the young count's voice
    roaring and snapping and rising louder and louder, and then words of
    abuse, dreadful words, ejaculated one after the other.
    
    "Robber!... Ungrateful wretch!... I'll hack the dog to pieces! I'm not
    my father!... Robbing us!..." and so on.
    
    Then with no less fear and delight they saw how the young count, red in
    the face and with bloodshot eyes, dragged Mitenka out by the scruff of
    the neck and applied his foot and knee to his behind with great agility
    at convenient moments between the words, shouting, "Be off! Never let me
    see your face here again, you villain!"
    
    Mitenka flew headlong down the six steps and ran away into the
    shrubbery. (This shrubbery was a well-known haven of refuge for culprits
    at Otradnoe. Mitenka himself, returning tipsy from the town, used to
    hide there, and many of the residents at Otradnoe, hiding from Mitenka,
    knew of its protective qualities.)
    
    Mitenka's wife and sisters-in-law thrust their heads and frightened
    faces out of the door of a room where a bright samovar was boiling and
    where the steward's high bedstead stood with its patchwork quilt.
    
    The young count paid no heed to them, but, breathing hard, passed by
    with resolute strides and went into the house.
    
    The countess, who heard at once from the maids what had happened at the
    lodge, was calmed by the thought that now their affairs would certainly
    improve, but on the other hand felt anxious as to the effect this
    excitement might have on her son. She went several times to his door on
    tiptoe and listened, as he lighted one pipe after another.
    
    Next day the old count called his son aside and, with an embarrassed
    smile, said to him:
    
    "But you know, my dear boy, it's a pity you got excited! Mitenka has
    told me all about it."
    
    "I knew," thought Nicholas, "that I should never understand anything in
    this crazy world."
    
    "You were angry that he had not entered those 700 rubles. But they were
    carried forward--and you did not look at the other page."
    
    "Papa, he is a blackguard and a thief! I know he is! And what I have
    done, I have done; but, if you like, I won't speak to him again."
    
    "No, my dear boy" (the count, too, felt embarrassed. He knew he had
    mismanaged his wife's property and was to blame toward his children, but
    he did not know how to remedy it). "No, I beg you to attend to the
    business. I am old. I..."
    
    "No, Papa. Forgive me if I have caused you unpleasantness. I understand
    it all less than you do."
    
    "Devil take all these peasants, and money matters, and carryings forward
    from page to page," he thought. "I used to understand what a 'corner'
    and the stakes at cards meant, but carrying forward to another page I
    don't understand at all," said he to himself, and after that he did not
    meddle in business affairs. But once the countess called her son and
    informed him that she had a promissory note from Anna Mikhaylovna for
    two thousand rubles, and asked him what he thought of doing with it.
    
    "This," answered Nicholas. "You say it rests with me. Well, I don't like
    Anna Mikhaylovna and I don't like Boris, but they were our friends and
    poor. Well then, this!" and he tore up the note, and by so doing caused
    the old countess to weep tears of joy. After that, young Rostov took no
    further part in any business affairs, but devoted himself with
    passionate enthusiasm to what was to him a new pursuit--the chase--for
    which his father kept a large establishment.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    The weather was already growing wintry and morning frosts congealed an
    earth saturated by autumn rains. The verdure had thickened and its
    bright green stood out sharply against the brownish strips of winter rye
    trodden down by the cattle, and against the pale-yellow stubble of the
    spring buckwheat. The wooded ravines and the copses, which at the end of
    August had still been green islands amid black fields and stubble, had
    become golden and bright-red islands amid the green winter rye. The
    hares had already half changed their summer coats, the fox cubs were
    beginning to scatter, and the young wolves were bigger than dogs. It was
    the best time of the year for the chase. The hounds of that ardent young
    sportsman Rostov had not merely reached hard winter condition, but were
    so jaded that at a meeting of the huntsmen it was decided to give them a
    three days' rest and then, on the sixteenth of September, to go on a
    distant expedition, starting from the oak grove where there was an
    undisturbed litter of wolf cubs.
    
    All that day the hounds remained at home. It was frosty and the air was
    sharp, but toward evening the sky became overcast and it began to thaw.
    On the fifteenth, when young Rostov, in his dressing gown, looked out of
    the window, he saw it was an unsurpassable morning for hunting: it was
    as if the sky were melting and sinking to the earth without any wind.
    The only motion in the air was that of the dripping, microscopic
    particles of drizzling mist. The bare twigs in the garden were hung with
    transparent drops which fell on the freshly fallen leaves. The earth in
    the kitchen garden looked wet and black and glistened like poppy seed
    and at a short distance merged into the dull, moist veil of mist.
    Nicholas went out into the wet and muddy porch. There was a smell of
    decaying leaves and of dog. Milka, a black-spotted, broad-haunched bitch
    with prominent black eyes, got up on seeing her master, stretched her
    hind legs, lay down like a hare, and then suddenly jumped up and licked
    him right on his nose and mustache. Another borzoi, a dog, catching
    sight of his master from the garden path, arched his back and, rushing
    headlong toward the porch with lifted tail, began rubbing himself
    against his legs.
    
    "O-hoy!" came at that moment, that inimitable huntsman's call which
    unites the deepest bass with the shrillest tenor, and round the corner
    came Daniel the head huntsman and head kennelman, a gray, wrinkled old
    man with hair cut straight over his forehead, Ukrainian fashion, a long
    bent whip in his hand, and that look of independence and scorn of
    everything that is only seen in huntsmen. He doffed his Circassian cap
    to his master and looked at him scornfully. This scorn was not offensive
    to his master. Nicholas knew that this Daniel, disdainful of everybody
    and who considered himself above them, was all the same his serf and
    huntsman.
    
    "Daniel!" Nicholas said timidly, conscious at the sight of the weather,
    the hounds, and the huntsman that he was being carried away by that
    irresistible passion for sport which makes a man forget all his previous
    resolutions, as a lover forgets in the presence of his mistress.
    
    "What orders, your excellency?" said the huntsman in his deep bass, deep
    as a proto-deacon's and hoarse with hallooing--and two flashing black
    eyes gazed from under his brows at his master, who was silent. "Can you
    resist it?" those eyes seemed to be asking.
    
    "It's a good day, eh? For a hunt and a gallop, eh?" asked Nicholas,
    scratching Milka behind the ears.
    
    Daniel did not answer, but winked instead.
    
    "I sent Uvarka at dawn to listen," his bass boomed out after a minute's
    pause. "He says she's moved them into the Otradnoe enclosure. They were
    howling there." (This meant that the she-wolf, about whom they both
    knew, had moved with her cubs to the Otradnoe copse, a small place a
    mile and a half from the house.)
    
    "We ought to go, don't you think so?" said Nicholas. "Come to me with
    Uvarka."
    
    "As you please."
    
    "Then put off feeding them."
    
    "Yes, sir."
    
    Five minutes later Daniel and Uvarka were standing in Nicholas' big
    study. Though Daniel was not a big man, to see him in a room was like
    seeing a horse or a bear on the floor among the furniture and
    surroundings of human life. Daniel himself felt this, and as usual stood
    just inside the door, trying to speak softly and not move, for fear of
    breaking something in the master's apartment, and he hastened to say all
    that was necessary so as to get from under that ceiling, out into the
    open under the sky once more.
    
    Having finished his inquiries and extorted from Daniel an opinion that
    the hounds were fit (Daniel himself wished to go hunting), Nicholas
    ordered the horses to be saddled. But just as Daniel was about to go
    Natasha came in with rapid steps, not having done up her hair or
    finished dressing and with her old nurse's big shawl wrapped round her.
    Petya ran in at the same time.
    
    "You are going?" asked Natasha. "I knew you would! Sonya said you
    wouldn't go, but I knew that today is the sort of day when you couldn't
    help going."
    
    "Yes, we are going," replied Nicholas reluctantly, for today, as he
    intended to hunt seriously, he did not want to take Natasha and Petya.
    "We are going, but only wolf hunting: it would be dull for you."
    
    "You know it is my greatest pleasure," said Natasha. "It's not fair; you
    are going by yourself, are having the horses saddled and said nothing to
    us about it."
    
    "'No barrier bars a Russian's path'--we'll go!" shouted Petya.
    
    "But you can't. Mamma said you mustn't," said Nicholas to Natasha.
    
    "Yes, I'll go. I shall certainly go," said Natasha decisively. "Daniel,
    tell them to saddle for us, and Michael must come with my dogs," she
    added to the huntsman.
    
    It seemed to Daniel irksome and improper to be in a room at all, but to
    have anything to do with a young lady seemed to him impossible. He cast
    down his eyes and hurried out as if it were none of his business,
    careful as he went not to inflict any accidental injury on the young
    lady.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    The old count, who had always kept up an enormous hunting establishment
    but had now handed it all completely over to his son's care, being in
    very good spirits on this fifteenth of September, prepared to go out
    with the others.
    
    In an hour's time the whole hunting party was at the porch. Nicholas,
    with a stern and serious air which showed that now was no time for
    attending to trifles, went past Natasha and Petya who were trying to
    tell him something. He had a look at all the details of the hunt, sent a
    pack of hounds and huntsmen on ahead to find the quarry, mounted his
    chestnut Donets, and whistling to his own leash of borzois, set off
    across the threshing ground to a field leading to the Otradnoe wood. The
    old count's horse, a sorrel gelding called Viflyanka, was led by the
    groom in attendance on him, while the count himself was to drive in a
    small trap straight to a spot reserved for him.
    
    They were taking fifty-four hounds, with six hunt attendants and
    whippers-in. Besides the family, there were eight borzoi kennelmen and
    more than forty borzois, so that, with the borzois on the leash
    belonging to members of the family, there were about a hundred and
    thirty dogs and twenty horsemen.
    
    Each dog knew its master and its call. Each man in the hunt knew his
    business, his place, what he had to do. As soon as they had passed the
    fence they all spread out evenly and quietly, without noise or talk,
    along the road and field leading to the Otradnoe covert.
    
    The horses stepped over the field as over a thick carpet, now and then
    splashing into puddles as they crossed a road. The misty sky still
    seemed to descend evenly and imperceptibly toward the earth, the air was
    still, warm, and silent. Occasionally the whistle of a huntsman, the
    snort of a horse, the crack of a whip, or the whine of a straggling
    hound could be heard.
    
    When they had gone a little less than a mile, five more riders with dogs
    appeared out of the mist, approaching the Rostovs. In front rode a
    fresh-looking, handsome old man with a large gray mustache.
    
    "Good morning, Uncle!" said Nicholas, when the old man drew near.
    
    "That's it. Come on!... I was sure of it," began "Uncle." (He was a
    distant relative of the Rostovs', a man of small means, and their
    neighbor.) "I knew you wouldn't be able to resist it and it's a good
    thing you're going. That's it! Come on!" (This was "Uncle's" favorite
    expression.) "Take the covert at once, for my Girchik says the Ilagins
    are at Korniki with their hounds. That's it. Come on!... They'll take
    the cubs from under your very nose."
    
    "That's where I'm going. Shall we join up our packs?" asked Nicholas.
    
    The hounds were joined into one pack, and "Uncle" and Nicholas rode on
    side by side. Natasha, muffled up in shawls which did not hide her eager
    face and shining eyes, galloped up to them. She was followed by Petya
    who always kept close to her, by Michael, a huntsman, and by a groom
    appointed to look after her. Petya, who was laughing, whipped and pulled
    at his horse. Natasha sat easily and confidently on her black Arabchik
    and reined him in without effort with a firm hand.
    
    "Uncle" looked round disapprovingly at Petya and Natasha. He did not
    like to combine frivolity with the serious business of hunting.
    
    "Good morning, Uncle! We are going too!" shouted Petya.
    
    "Good morning, good morning! But don't go overriding the hounds," said
    "Uncle" sternly.
    
    "Nicholas, what a fine dog Trunila is! He knew me," said Natasha,
    referring to her favorite hound.
    
    "In the first place, Trunila is not a 'dog,' but a harrier," thought
    Nicholas, and looked sternly at his sister, trying to make her feel the
    distance that ought to separate them at that moment. Natasha understood
    it.
    
    "You mustn't think we'll be in anyone's way, Uncle," she said. "We'll go
    to our places and won't budge."
    
    "A good thing too, little countess," said "Uncle," "only mind you don't
    fall off your horse," he added, "because--that's it, come on!--you've
    nothing to hold on to."
    
    The oasis of the Otradnoe covert came in sight a few hundred yards off,
    the huntsmen were already nearing it. Rostov, having finally settled
    with "Uncle" where they should set on the hounds, and having shown
    Natasha where she was to stand--a spot where nothing could possibly run
    out--went round above the ravine.
    
    "Well, nephew, you're going for a big wolf," said "Uncle." "Mind and
    don't let her slip!"
    
    "That's as may happen," answered Rostov. "Karay, here!" he shouted,
    answering "Uncle's" remark by this call to his borzoi. Karay was a
    shaggy old dog with a hanging jowl, famous for having tackled a big wolf
    unaided. They all took up their places.
    
    The old count, knowing his son's ardor in the hunt, hurried so as not to
    be late, and the huntsmen had not yet reached their places when Count
    Ilya Rostov, cheerful, flushed, and with quivering cheeks, drove up with
    his black horses over the winter rye to the place reserved for him,
    where a wolf might come out. Having straightened his coat and fastened
    on his hunting knives and horn, he mounted his good, sleek, well-fed,
    and comfortable horse, Viflyanka, which was turning gray, like himself.
    His horses and trap were sent home. Count Ilya Rostov, though not at
    heart a keen sportsman, knew the rules of the hunt well, and rode to the
    bushy edge of the road where he was to stand, arranged his reins,
    settled himself in the saddle, and, feeling that he was ready, looked
    about with a smile.
    
    Beside him was Simon Chekmar, his personal attendant, an old horseman
    now somewhat stiff in the saddle. Chekmar held in leash three formidable
    wolfhounds, who had, however, grown fat like their master and his horse.
    Two wise old dogs lay down unleashed. Some hundred paces farther along
    the edge of the wood stood Mitka, the count's other groom, a daring
    horseman and keen rider to hounds. Before the hunt, by old custom, the
    count had drunk a silver cupful of mulled brandy, taken a snack, and
    washed it down with half a bottle of his favorite Bordeaux.
    
    He was somewhat flushed with the wine and the drive. His eyes were
    rather moist and glittered more than usual, and as he sat in his saddle,
    wrapped up in his fur coat, he looked like a child taken out for an
    outing.
    
    The thin, hollow-cheeked Chekmar, having got everything ready, kept
    glancing at his master with whom he had lived on the best of terms for
    thirty years, and understanding the mood he was in expected a pleasant
    chat. A third person rode up circumspectly through the wood (it was
    plain that he had had a lesson) and stopped behind the count. This
    person was a gray-bearded old man in a woman's cloak, with a tall peaked
    cap on his head. He was the buffoon, who went by a woman's name,
    Nastasya Ivanovna.
    
    "Well, Nastasya Ivanovna!" whispered the count, winking at him. "If you
    scare away the beast, Daniel'll give it you!"
    
    "I know a thing or two myself!" said Nastasya Ivanovna.
    
    "Hush!" whispered the count and turned to Simon. "Have you seen the
    young countess?" he asked. "Where is she?"
    
    "With young Count Peter, by the Zharov rank grass," answered Simon,
    smiling. "Though she's a lady, she's very fond of hunting."
    
    "And you're surprised at the way she rides, Simon, eh?" said the count.
    "She's as good as many a man!"
    
    "Of course! It's marvelous. So bold, so easy!"
    
    "And Nicholas? Where is he? By the Lyadov upland, isn't he?"
    
    "Yes, sir. He knows where to stand. He understands the matter so well
    that Daniel and I are often quite astounded," said Simon, well knowing
    what would please his master.
    
    "Rides well, eh? And how well he looks on his horse, eh?"
    
    "A perfect picture! How he chased a fox out of the rank grass by the
    Zavarzinsk thicket the other day! Leaped a fearful place; what a sight
    when they rushed from the covert... the horse worth a thousand rubles
    and the rider beyond all price! Yes, one would have to search far to
    find another as smart."
    
    "To search far..." repeated the count, evidently sorry Simon had not
    said more. "To search far," he said, turning back the skirt of his coat
    to get at his snuffbox.
    
    "The other day when he came out from Mass in full uniform, Michael
    Sidorych..." Simon did not finish, for on the still air he had
    distinctly caught the music of the hunt with only two or three hounds
    giving tongue. He bent down his head and listened, shaking a warning
    finger at his master. "They are on the scent of the cubs..." he
    whispered, "straight to the Lyadov uplands."
    
    The count, forgetting to smooth out the smile on his face, looked into
    the distance straight before him, down the narrow open space, holding
    the snuffbox in his hand but not taking any. After the cry of the hounds
    came the deep tones of the wolf call from Daniel's hunting horn; the
    pack joined the first three hounds and they could be heard in full cry,
    with that peculiar lift in the note that indicates that they are after a
    wolf. The whippers-in no longer set on the hounds, but changed to the
    cry of ulyulyu, and above the others rose Daniel's voice, now a deep
    bass, now piercingly shrill. His voice seemed to fill the whole wood and
    carried far beyond out into the open field.
    
    After listening a few moments in silence, the count and his attendant
    convinced themselves that the hounds had separated into two packs: the
    sound of the larger pack, eagerly giving tongue, began to die away in
    the distance, the other pack rushed by the wood past the count, and it
    was with this that Daniel's voice was heard calling ulyulyu. The sounds
    of both packs mingled and broke apart again, but both were becoming more
    distant.
    
    Simon sighed and stooped to straighten the leash a young borzoi had
    entangled; the count too sighed and, noticing the snuffbox in his hand,
    opened it and took a pinch. "Back!" cried Simon to a borzoi that was
    pushing forward out of the wood. The count started and dropped the
    snuffbox. Nastasya Ivanovna dismounted to pick it up. The count and
    Simon were looking at him.
    
    Then, unexpectedly, as often happens, the sound of the hunt suddenly
    approached, as if the hounds in full cry and Daniel ulyulyuing were just
    in front of them.
    
    The count turned and saw on his right Mitka staring at him with eyes
    starting out of his head, raising his cap and pointing before him to the
    other side.
    
    "Look out!" he shouted, in a voice plainly showing that he had long
    fretted to utter that word, and letting the borzois slip he galloped
    toward the count.
    
    The count and Simon galloped out of the wood and saw on their left a
    wolf which, softly swaying from side to side, was coming at a quiet lope
    farther to the left to the very place where they were standing. The
    angry borzois whined and getting free of the leash rushed past the
    horses' feet at the wolf.
    
    The wolf paused, turned its heavy forehead toward the dogs awkwardly,
    like a man suffering from the quinsy, and, still slightly swaying from
    side to side, gave a couple of leaps and with a swish of its tail
    disappeared into the skirt of the wood. At the same instant, with a cry
    like a wail, first one hound, then another, and then another, sprang
    helter-skelter from the wood opposite and the whole pack rushed across
    the field toward the very spot where the wolf had disappeared. The hazel
    bushes parted behind the hounds and Daniel's chestnut horse appeared,
    dark with sweat. On its long back sat Daniel, hunched forward, capless,
    his disheveled gray hair hanging over his flushed, perspiring face.
    
    "Ulyulyulyu! ulyulyu!..." he cried. When he caught sight of the count
    his eyes flashed lightning.
    
    "Blast you!" he shouted, holding up his whip threateningly at the count.
    
    "You've let the wolf go!... What sportsmen!" and as if scorning to say
    more to the frightened and shamefaced count, he lashed the heaving
    flanks of his sweating chestnut gelding with all the anger the count had
    aroused and flew off after the hounds. The count, like a punished
    schoolboy, looked round, trying by a smile to win Simon's sympathy for
    his plight. But Simon was no longer there. He was galloping round by the
    bushes while the field was coming up on both sides, all trying to head
    the wolf, but it vanished into the wood before they could do so.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    Nicholas Rostov meanwhile remained at his post, waiting for the wolf. By
    the way the hunt approached and receded, by the cries of the dogs whose
    notes were familiar to him, by the way the voices of the huntsmen
    approached, receded, and rose, he realized what was happening at the
    copse. He knew that young and old wolves were there, that the hounds had
    separated into two packs, that somewhere a wolf was being chased, and
    that something had gone wrong. He expected the wolf to come his way any
    moment. He made thousands of different conjectures as to where and from
    what side the beast would come and how he would set upon it. Hope
    alternated with despair. Several times he addressed a prayer to God that
    the wolf should come his way. He prayed with that passionate and
    shamefaced feeling with which men pray at moments of great excitement
    arising from trivial causes. "What would it be to Thee to do this for
    me?" he said to God. "I know Thou art great, and that it is a sin to ask
    this of Thee, but for God's sake do let the old wolf come my way and let
    Karay spring at it--in sight of 'Uncle' who is watching from over there-
    -and seize it by the throat in a death grip!" A thousand times during
    that half-hour Rostov cast eager and restless glances over the edge of
    the wood, with the two scraggy oaks rising above the aspen undergrowth
    and the gully with its water-worn side and "Uncle's" cap just visible
    above the bush on his right.
    
    "No, I shan't have such luck," thought Rostov, "yet what wouldn't it be
    worth! It is not to be! Everywhere, at cards and in war, I am always
    unlucky." Memories of Austerlitz and of Dolokhov flashed rapidly and
    clearly through his mind. "Only once in my life to get an old wolf, I
    want only that!" thought he, straining eyes and ears and looking to the
    left and then to the right and listening to the slightest variation of
    note in the cries of the dogs.
    
    Again he looked to the right and saw something running toward him across
    the deserted field. "No, it can't be!" thought Rostov, taking a deep
    breath, as a man does at the coming of something long hoped for. The
    height of happiness was reached--and so simply, without warning, or
    noise, or display, that Rostov could not believe his eyes and remained
    in doubt for over a second. The wolf ran forward and jumped heavily over
    a gully that lay in her path. She was an old animal with a gray back and
    big reddish belly. She ran without hurry, evidently feeling sure that no
    one saw her. Rostov, holding his breath, looked round at the borzois.
    They stood or lay not seeing the wolf or understanding the situation.
    Old Karay had turned his head and was angrily searching for fleas,
    baring his yellow teeth and snapping at his hind legs.
    
    "Ulyulyulyu!" whispered Rostov, pouting his lips. The borzois jumped up,
    jerking the rings of the leashes and pricking their ears. Karay finished
    scratching his hindquarters and, cocking his ears, got up with quivering
    tail from which tufts of matted hair hung down.
    
    "Shall I loose them or not?" Nicholas asked himself as the wolf
    approached him coming from the copse. Suddenly the wolf's whole
    physiognomy changed: she shuddered, seeing what she had probably never
    seen before--human eyes fixed upon her--and turning her head a little
    toward Rostov, she paused.
    
    "Back or forward? Eh, no matter, forward..." the wolf seemed to say to
    herself, and she moved forward without again looking round and with a
    quiet, long, easy yet resolute lope.
    
    "Ulyulyu!" cried Nicholas, in a voice not his own, and of its own accord
    his good horse darted headlong downhill, leaping over gullies to head
    off the wolf, and the borzois passed it, running faster still. Nicholas
    did not hear his own cry nor feel that he was galloping, nor see the
    borzois, nor the ground over which he went: he saw only the wolf, who,
    increasing her speed, bounded on in the same direction along the hollow.
    The first to come into view was Milka, with her black markings and
    powerful quarters, gaining upon the wolf. Nearer and nearer... now she
    was ahead of it; but the wolf turned its head to face her, and instead
    of putting on speed as she usually did Milka suddenly raised her tail
    and stiffened her forelegs.
    
    "Ulyulyulyulyu!" shouted Nicholas.
    
    The reddish Lyubim rushed forward from behind Milka, sprang impetuously
    at the wolf, and seized it by its hindquarters, but immediately jumped
    aside in terror. The wolf crouched, gnashed her teeth, and again rose
    and bounded forward, followed at the distance of a couple of feet by all
    the borzois, who did not get any closer to her.
    
    "She'll get away! No, it's impossible!" thought Nicholas, still shouting
    with a hoarse voice.
    
    "Karay, ulyulyu!..." he shouted, looking round for the old borzoi who
    was now his only hope. Karay, with all the strength age had left him,
    stretched himself to the utmost and, watching the wolf, galloped heavily
    aside to intercept it. But the quickness of the wolf's lope and the
    borzoi's slower pace made it plain that Karay had miscalculated.
    Nicholas could already see not far in front of him the wood where the
    wolf would certainly escape should she reach it. But, coming toward him,
    he saw hounds and a huntsman galloping almost straight at the wolf.
    There was still hope. A long, yellowish young borzoi, one Nicholas did
    not know, from another leash, rushed impetuously at the wolf from in
    front and almost knocked her over. But the wolf jumped up more quickly
    than anyone could have expected and, gnashing her teeth, flew at the
    yellowish borzoi, which, with a piercing yelp, fell with its head on the
    ground, bleeding from a gash in its side.
    
    "Karay? Old fellow!..." wailed Nicholas.
    
    Thanks to the delay caused by this crossing of the wolf's path, the old
    dog with its felted hair hanging from its thigh was within five paces of
    it. As if aware of her danger, the wolf turned her eyes on Karay, tucked
    her tail yet further between her legs, and increased her speed. But here
    Nicholas only saw that something happened to Karay--the borzoi was
    suddenly on the wolf, and they rolled together down into a gully just in
    front of them.
    
    That instant, when Nicholas saw the wolf struggling in the gully with
    the dogs, while from under them could be seen her gray hair and
    outstretched hind leg and her frightened choking head, with her ears
    laid back (Karay was pinning her by the throat), was the happiest moment
    of his life. With his hand on his saddlebow, he was ready to dismount
    and stab the wolf, when she suddenly thrust her head up from among that
    mass of dogs, and then her forepaws were on the edge of the gully. She
    clicked her teeth (Karay no longer had her by the throat), leaped with a
    movement of her hind legs out of the gully, and having disengaged
    herself from the dogs, with tail tucked in again, went forward. Karay,
    his hair bristling, and probably bruised or wounded, climbed with
    difficulty out of the gully.
    
    "Oh my God! Why?" Nicholas cried in despair.
    
    "Uncle's" huntsman was galloping from the other side across the wolf's
    path and his borzois once more stopped the animal's advance. She was
    again hemmed in.
    
    Nicholas and his attendant, with "Uncle" and his huntsman, were all
    riding round the wolf, crying "ulyulyu!" shouting and preparing to
    dismount each moment that the wolf crouched back, and starting forward
    again every time she shook herself and moved toward the wood where she
    would be safe.
    
    Already, at the beginning of this chase, Daniel, hearing the ulyulyuing,
    had rushed out from the wood. He saw Karay seize the wolf, and checked
    his horse, supposing the affair to be over. But when he saw that the
    horsemen did not dismount and that the wolf shook herself and ran for
    safety, Daniel set his chestnut galloping, not at the wolf but straight
    toward the wood, just as Karay had run to cut the animal off. As a
    result of this, he galloped up to the wolf just when she had been
    stopped a second time by "Uncle's" borzois.
    
    Daniel galloped up silently, holding a naked dagger in his left hand and
    thrashing the laboring sides of his chestnut horse with his whip as if
    it were a flail.
    
    Nicholas neither saw nor heard Daniel until the chestnut, breathing
    heavily, panted past him, and he heard the fall of a body and saw Daniel
    lying on the wolf's back among the dogs, trying to seize her by the
    ears. It was evident to the dogs, the hunters, and to the wolf herself
    that all was now over. The terrified wolf pressed back her ears and
    tried to rise, but the borzois stuck to her. Daniel rose a little, took
    a step, and with his whole weight, as if lying down to rest, fell on the
    wolf, seizing her by the ears. Nicholas was about to stab her, but
    Daniel whispered, "Don't! We'll gag her!" and, changing his position,
    set his foot on the wolf's neck. A stick was thrust between her jaws and
    she was fastened with a leash, as if bridled, her legs were bound
    together, and Daniel rolled her over once or twice from side to side.
    
    With happy, exhausted faces, they laid the old wolf, alive, on a shying
    and snorting horse and, accompanied by the dogs yelping at her, took her
    to the place where they were all to meet. The hounds had killed two of
    the cubs and the borzois three. The huntsmen assembled with their booty
    and their stories, and all came to look at the wolf, which, with her
    broad-browed head hanging down and the bitten stick between her jaws,
    gazed with great glassy eyes at this crowd of dogs and men surrounding
    her. When she was touched, she jerked her bound legs and looked wildly
    yet simply at everybody. Old Count Rostov also rode up and touched the
    wolf.
    
    "Oh, what a formidable one!" said he. "A formidable one, eh?" he asked
    Daniel, who was standing near.
    
    "Yes, your excellency," answered Daniel, quickly doffing his cap.
    
    The count remembered the wolf he had let slip and his encounter with
    Daniel.
    
    "Ah, but you are a crusty fellow, friend!" said the count.
    
    For sole reply Daniel gave him a shy, childlike, meek, and amiable
    smile.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    The old count went home, and Natasha and Petya promised to return very
    soon, but as it was still early the hunt went farther. At midday they
    put the hounds into a ravine thickly overgrown with young trees.
    Nicholas standing in a fallow field could see all his whips.
    
    Facing him lay a field of winter rye, there his own huntsman stood alone
    in a hollow behind a hazel bush. The hounds had scarcely been loosed
    before Nicholas heard one he knew, Voltorn, giving tongue at intervals;
    other hounds joined in, now pausing and now again giving tongue. A
    moment later he heard a cry from the wooded ravine that a fox had been
    found, and the whole pack, joining together, rushed along the ravine
    toward the ryefield and away from Nicholas.
    
    He saw the whips in their red caps galloping along the edge of the
    ravine, he even saw the hounds, and was expecting a fox to show itself
    at any moment on the ryefield opposite.
    
    The huntsman standing in the hollow moved and loosed his borzois, and
    Nicholas saw a queer, short-legged red fox with a fine brush going hard
    across the field. The borzois bore down on it.... Now they drew close to
    the fox which began to dodge between the field in sharper and sharper
    curves, trailing its brush, when suddenly a strange white borzoi dashed
    in followed by a black one, and everything was in confusion; the borzois
    formed a star-shaped figure, scarcely swaying their bodies and with
    tails turned away from the center of the group. Two huntsmen galloped up
    to the dogs; one in a red cap, the other, a stranger, in a green coat.
    
    "What's this?" thought Nicholas. "Where's that huntsman from? He is not
    'Uncle's' man."
    
    The huntsmen got the fox, but stayed there a long time without strapping
    it to the saddle. Their horses, bridled and with high saddles, stood
    near them and there too the dogs were lying. The huntsmen waved their
    arms and did something to the fox. Then from that spot came the sound of
    a horn, with the signal agreed on in case of a fight.
    
    "That's Ilagin's huntsman having a row with our Ivan," said Nicholas'
    groom.
    
    Nicholas sent the man to call Natasha and Petya to him, and rode at a
    footpace to the place where the whips were getting the hounds together.
    Several of the field galloped to the spot where the fight was going on.
    
    Nicholas dismounted, and with Natasha and Petya, who had ridden up,
    stopped near the hounds, waiting to see how the matter would end. Out of
    the bushes came the huntsman who had been fighting and rode toward his
    young master, with the fox tied to his crupper. While still at a
    distance he took off his cap and tried to speak respectfully, but he was
    pale and breathless and his face was angry. One of his eyes was black,
    but he probably was not even aware of it.
    
    "What has happened?" asked Nicholas.
    
    "A likely thing, killing a fox our dogs had hunted! And it was my gray
    bitch that caught it! Go to law, indeed!... He snatches at the fox! I
    gave him one with the fox. Here it is on my saddle! Do you want a taste
    of this?..." said the huntsman, pointing to his dagger and probably
    imagining himself still speaking to his foe.
    
    Nicholas, not stopping to talk to the man, asked his sister and Petya to
    wait for him and rode to the spot where the enemy's, Ilagin's, hunting
    party was.
    
    The victorious huntsman rode off to join the field, and there,
    surrounded by inquiring sympathizers, recounted his exploits.
    
    The facts were that Ilagin, with whom the Rostovs had a quarrel and were
    at law, hunted over places that belonged by custom to the Rostovs, and
    had now, as if purposely, sent his men to the very woods the Rostovs
    were hunting and let his man snatch a fox their dogs had chased.
    
    Nicholas, though he had never seen Ilagin, with his usual absence of
    moderation in judgment, hated him cordially from reports of his
    arbitrariness and violence, and regarded him as his bitterest foe. He
    rode in angry agitation toward him, firmly grasping his whip and fully
    prepared to take the most resolute and desperate steps to punish his
    enemy.
    
    Hardly had he passed an angle of the wood before a stout gentleman in a
    beaver cap came riding toward him on a handsome raven-black horse,
    accompanied by two hunt servants.
    
    Instead of an enemy, Nicholas found in Ilagin a stately and courteous
    gentleman who was particularly anxious to make the young count's
    acquaintance. Having ridden up to Nicholas, Ilagin raised his beaver cap
    and said he much regretted what had occurred and would have the man
    punished who had allowed himself to seize a fox hunted by someone else's
    borzois. He hoped to become better acquainted with the count and invited
    him to draw his covert.
    
    Natasha, afraid that her brother would do something dreadful, had
    followed him in some excitement. Seeing the enemies exchanging friendly
    greetings, she rode up to them. Ilagin lifted his beaver cap still
    higher to Natasha and said, with a pleasant smile, that the young
    countess resembled Diana in her passion for the chase as well as in her
    beauty, of which he had heard much.
    
    To expiate his huntsman's offense, Ilagin pressed the Rostovs to come to
    an upland of his about a mile away which he usually kept for himself and
    which, he said, swarmed with hares. Nicholas agreed, and the hunt, now
    doubled, moved on.
    
    The way to Iligin's upland was across the fields. The hunt servants fell
    into line. The masters rode together. "Uncle," Rostov, and Ilagin kept
    stealthily glancing at one another's dogs, trying not to be observed by
    their companions and searching uneasily for rivals to their own borzois.
    
    Rostov was particularly struck by the beauty of a small, pure-bred, red-
    spotted bitch on Ilagin's leash, slender but with muscles like steel, a
    delicate muzzle, and prominent black eyes. He had heard of the swiftness
    of Ilagin's borzois, and in that beautiful bitch saw a rival to his own
    Milka.
    
    In the middle of a sober conversation begun by Ilagin about the year's
    harvest, Nicholas pointed to the red-spotted bitch.
    
    "A fine little bitch, that!" said he in a careless tone. "Is she swift?"
    
    "That one? Yes, she's a good dog, gets what she's after," answered
    Ilagin indifferently, of the red-spotted bitch Erza, for which, a year
    before, he had given a neighbor three families of house serfs. "So in
    your parts, too, the harvest is nothing to boast of, Count?" he went on,
    continuing the conversation they had begun. And considering it polite to
    return the young count's compliment, Ilagin looked at his borzois and
    picked out Milka who attracted his attention by her breadth. "That
    black-spotted one of yours is fine--well shaped!" said he.
    
    "Yes, she's fast enough," replied Nicholas, and thought: "If only a
    full-grown hare would cross the field now I'd show you what sort of
    borzoi she is," and turning to his groom, he said he would give a ruble
    to anyone who found a hare.
    
    "I don't understand," continued Ilagin, "how some sportsmen can be so
    jealous about game and dogs. For myself, I can tell you, Count, I enjoy
    riding in company such as this... what could be better?" (he again
    raised his cap to Natasha) "but as for counting skins and what one
    takes, I don't care about that."
    
    "Of course not!"
    
    "Or being upset because someone else's borzoi and not mine catches
    something. All I care about is to enjoy seeing the chase, is it not so,
    Count? For I consider that..."
    
    "A-tu!" came the long-drawn cry of one of the borzoi whippers-in, who
    had halted. He stood on a knoll in the stubble, holding his whip aloft,
    and again repeated his long-drawn cry, "A-tu!" (This call and the
    uplifted whip meant that he saw a sitting hare.)
    
    "Ah, he has found one, I think," said Ilagin carelessly. "Yes, we must
    ride up.... Shall we both course it?" answered Nicholas, seeing in Erza
    and "Uncle's" red Rugay two rivals he had never yet had a chance of
    pitting against his own borzois. "And suppose they outdo my Milka at
    once!" he thought as he rode with "Uncle" and Ilagin toward the hare.
    
    "A full-grown one?" asked Ilagin as he approached the whip who had
    sighted the hare--and not without agitation he looked round and whistled
    to Erza.
    
    "And you, Michael Nikanorovich?" he said, addressing "Uncle."
    
    The latter was riding with a sullen expression on his face.
    
    "How can I join in? Why, you've given a village for each of your
    borzois! That's it, come on! Yours are worth thousands. Try yours
    against one another, you two, and I'll look on!"
    
    "Rugay, hey, hey!" he shouted. "Rugayushka!" he added, involuntarily by
    this diminutive expressing his affection and the hopes he placed on this
    red borzoi. Natasha saw and felt the agitation the two elderly men and
    her brother were trying to conceal, and was herself excited by it.
    
    The huntsman stood halfway up the knoll holding up his whip and the
    gentlefolk rode up to him at a footpace; the hounds that were far off on
    the horizon turned away from the hare, and the whips, but not the
    gentlefolk, also moved away. All were moving slowly and sedately.
    
    "How is it pointing?" asked Nicholas, riding a hundred paces toward the
    whip who had sighted the hare.
    
    But before the whip could reply, the hare, scenting the frost coming
    next morning, was unable to rest and leaped up. The pack on leash rushed
    downhill in full cry after the hare, and from all sides the borzois that
    were not on leash darted after the hounds and the hare. All the hunt,
    who had been moving slowly, shouted, "Stop!" calling in the hounds,
    while the borzoi whips, with a cry of "A-tu!" galloped across the field
    setting the borzois on the hare. The tranquil Ilagin, Nicholas, Natasha,
    and "Uncle" flew, reckless of where and how they went, seeing only the
    borzois and the hare and fearing only to lose sight even for an instant
    of the chase. The hare they had started was a strong and swift one. When
    he jumped up he did not run at once, but pricked his ears listening to
    the shouting and trampling that resounded from all sides at once. He
    took a dozen bounds, not very quickly, letting the borzois gain on him,
    and, finally having chosen his direction and realized his danger, laid
    back his ears and rushed off headlong. He had been lying in the stubble,
    but in front of him was the autumn sowing where the ground was soft. The
    two borzois of the huntsman who had sighted him, having been the
    nearest, were the first to see and pursue him, but they had not gone far
    before Ilagin's red-spotted Erza passed them, got within a length, flew
    at the hare with terrible swiftness aiming at his scut, and, thinking
    she had seized him, rolled over like a ball. The hare arched his back
    and bounded off yet more swiftly. From behind Erza rushed the broad-
    haunched, black-spotted Milka and began rapidly gaining on the hare.
    
    "Milashka, dear!" rose Nicholas' triumphant cry. It looked as if Milka
    would immediately pounce on the hare, but she overtook him and flew
    past. The hare had squatted. Again the beautiful Erza reached him, but
    when close to the hare's scut paused as if measuring the distance, so as
    not to make a mistake this time but seize his hind leg.
    
    "Erza, darling!" Ilagin wailed in a voice unlike his own. Erza did not
    hearken to his appeal. At the very moment when she would have seized her
    prey, the hare moved and darted along the balk between the winter rye
    and the stubble. Again Erza and Milka were abreast, running like a pair
    of carriage horses, and began to overtake the hare, but it was easier
    for the hare to run on the balk and the borzois did not overtake him so
    quickly.
    
    "Rugay, Rugayushka! That's it, come on!" came a third voice just then,
    and "Uncle's" red borzoi, straining and curving its back, caught up with
    the two foremost borzois, pushed ahead of them regardless of the
    terrible strain, put on speed close to the hare, knocked it off the balk
    onto the ryefield, again put on speed still more viciously, sinking to
    his knees in the muddy field, and all one could see was how, muddying
    his back, he rolled over with the hare. A ring of borzois surrounded
    him. A moment later everyone had drawn up round the crowd of dogs. Only
    the delighted "Uncle" dismounted, and cut off a pad, shaking the hare
    for the blood to drip off, and anxiously glancing round with restless
    eyes while his arms and legs twitched. He spoke without himself knowing
    whom to or what about. "That's it, come on! That's a dog!... There, it
    has beaten them all, the thousand-ruble as well as the one-ruble
    borzois. That's it, come on!" said he, panting and looking wrathfully
    around as if he were abusing someone, as if they were all his enemies
    and had insulted him, and only now had he at last succeeded in
    justifying himself. "There are your thousand-ruble ones.... That's it,
    come on!..."
    
    "Rugay, here's a pad for you!" he said, throwing down the hare's muddy
    pad. "You've deserved it, that's it, come on!"
    
    "She'd tired herself out, she'd run it down three times by herself,"
    said Nicholas, also not listening to anyone and regardless of whether he
    were heard or not.
    
    "But what is there in running across it like that?" said Ilagin's groom.
    
    "Once she had missed it and turned it away, any mongrel could take it,"
    Ilagin was saying at the same time, breathless from his gallop and his
    excitement. At the same moment Natasha, without drawing breath, screamed
    joyously, ecstatically, and so piercingly that it set everyone's ear
    tingling. By that shriek she expressed what the others expressed by all
    talking at once, and it was so strange that she must herself have been
    ashamed of so wild a cry and everyone else would have been amazed at it
    at any other time. "Uncle" himself twisted up the hare, threw it neatly
    and smartly across his horse's back as if by that gesture he meant to
    rebuke everybody, and, with an air of not wishing to speak to anyone,
    mounted his bay and rode off. The others all followed, dispirited and
    shamefaced, and only much later were they able to regain their former
    affectation of indifference. For a long time they continued to look at
    red Rugay who, his arched back spattered with mud and clanking the ring
    of his leash, walked along just behind "Uncle's" horse with the serene
    air of a conqueror.
    
    "Well, I am like any other dog as long as it's not a question of
    coursing. But when it is, then look out!" his appearance seemed to
    Nicholas to be saying.
    
    When, much later, "Uncle" rode up to Nicholas and began talking to him,
    he felt flattered that, after what had happened, "Uncle" deigned to
    speak to him.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Toward evening Ilagin took leave of Nicholas, who found that they were
    so far from home that he accepted "Uncle's" offer that the hunting party
    should spend the night in his little village of Mikhaylovna.
    
    "And if you put up at my house that will be better still. That's it,
    come on!" said "Uncle." "You see it's damp weather, and you could rest,
    and the little countess could be driven home in a trap."
    
    "Uncle's" offer was accepted. A huntsman was sent to Otradnoe for a
    trap, while Nicholas rode with Natasha and Petya to "Uncle's" house.
    
    Some five male domestic serfs, big and little, rushed out to the front
    porch to meet their master. A score of women serfs, old and young, as
    well as children, popped out from the back entrance to have a look at
    the hunters who were arriving. The presence of Natasha--a woman, a lady,
    and on horseback--raised the curiosity of the serfs to such a degree
    that many of them came up to her, stared her in the face, and unabashed
    by her presence made remarks about her as though she were some prodigy
    on show and not a human being able to hear or understand what was said
    about her.
    
    "Arinka! Look, she sits sideways! There she sits and her skirt
    dangles.... See, she's got a little hunting horn!"
    
    "Goodness gracious! See her knife?..."
    
    "Isn't she a Tartar!"
    
    "How is it you didn't go head over heels?" asked the boldest of all,
    addressing Natasha directly.
    
    "Uncle" dismounted at the porch of his little wooden house which stood
    in the midst of an overgrown garden and, after a glance at his
    retainers, shouted authoritatively that the superfluous ones should take
    themselves off and that all necessary preparations should be made to
    receive the guests and the visitors.
    
    The serfs all dispersed. "Uncle" lifted Natasha off her horse and taking
    her hand led her up the rickety wooden steps of the porch. The house,
    with its bare, unplastered log walls, was not overclean--it did not seem
    that those living in it aimed at keeping it spotless--but neither was it
    noticeably neglected. In the entry there was a smell of fresh apples,
    and wolf and fox skins hung about.
    
    "Uncle" led the visitors through the anteroom into a small hall with a
    folding table and red chairs, then into the drawing room with a round
    birchwood table and a sofa, and finally into his private room where
    there was a tattered sofa, a worn carpet, and portraits of Suvorov, of
    the host's father and mother, and of himself in military uniform. The
    study smelt strongly of tobacco and dogs. "Uncle" asked his visitors to
    sit down and make themselves at home, and then went out of the room.
    Rugay, his back still muddy, came into the room and lay down on the
    sofa, cleaning himself with his tongue and teeth. Leading from the study
    was a passage in which a partition with ragged curtains could be seen.
    From behind this came women's laughter and whispers. Natasha, Nicholas,
    and Petya took off their wraps and sat down on the sofa. Petya, leaning
    on his elbow, fell asleep at once. Natasha and Nicholas were silent.
    Their faces glowed, they were hungry and very cheerful. They looked at
    one another (now that the hunt was over and they were in the house,
    Nicholas no longer considered it necessary to show his manly superiority
    over his sister), Natasha gave him a wink, and neither refrained long
    from bursting into a peal of ringing laughter even before they had a
    pretext ready to account for it.
    
    After a while "Uncle" came in, in a Cossack coat, blue trousers, and
    small top boots. And Natasha felt that this costume, the very one she
    had regarded with surprise and amusement at Otradnoe, was just the right
    thing and not at all worse than a swallow-tail or frock coat. "Uncle"
    too was in high spirits and far from being offended by the brother's and
    sister's laughter (it could never enter his head that they might be
    laughing at his way of life) he himself joined in the merriment.
    
    "That's right, young countess, that's it, come on! I never saw anyone
    like her!" said he, offering Nicholas a pipe with a long stem and, with
    a practiced motion of three fingers, taking down another that had been
    cut short. "She's ridden all day like a man, and is as fresh as ever!"
    
    Soon after "Uncle's" reappearance the door was opened, evidently from
    the sound by a barefooted girl, and a stout, rosy, good-looking woman of
    about forty, with a double chin and full red lips, entered carrying a
    large loaded tray. With hospitable dignity and cordiality in her glance
    and in every motion, she looked at the visitors and, with a pleasant
    smile, bowed respectfully. In spite of her exceptional stoutness, which
    caused her to protrude her chest and stomach and throw back her head,
    this woman (who was "Uncle's" housekeeper) trod very lightly. She went
    to the table, set down the tray, and with her plump white hands deftly
    took from it the bottles and various hors d'oeuvres and dishes and
    arranged them on the table. When she had finished, she stepped aside and
    stopped at the door with a smile on her face. "Here I am. I am she! Now
    do you understand 'Uncle'?" her expression said to Rostov. How could one
    help understanding? Not only Nicholas, but even Natasha understood the
    meaning of his puckered brow and the happy complacent smile that
    slightly puckered his lips when Anisya Fedorovna entered. On the tray
    was a bottle of herb wine, different kinds of vodka, pickled mushrooms,
    rye cakes made with buttermilk, honey in the comb, still mead and
    sparkling mead, apples, nuts (raw and roasted), and nut-and-honey
    sweets. Afterwards she brought a freshly roasted chicken, ham, preserves
    made with honey, and preserves made with sugar.
    
    All this was the fruit of Anisya Fedorovna's housekeeping, gathered and
    prepared by her. The smell and taste of it all had a smack of Anisya
    Fedorovna herself: a savor of juiciness, cleanliness, whiteness, and
    pleasant smiles.
    
    "Take this, little Lady-Countess!" she kept saying, as she offered
    Natasha first one thing and then another.
    
    Natasha ate of everything and thought she had never seen or eaten such
    buttermilk cakes, such aromatic jam, such honey-and-nut sweets, or such
    a chicken anywhere. Anisya Fedorovna left the room.
    
    After supper, over their cherry brandy, Rostov and "Uncle" talked of
    past and future hunts, of Rugay and Ilagin's dogs, while Natasha sat
    upright on the sofa and listened with sparkling eyes. She tried several
    times to wake Petya that he might eat something, but he only muttered
    incoherent words without waking up. Natasha felt so lighthearted and
    happy in these novel surroundings that she only feared the trap would
    come for her too soon. After a casual pause, such as often occurs when
    receiving friends for the first time in one's own house, "Uncle,"
    answering a thought that was in his visitors' minds, said:
    
    "This, you see, is how I am finishing my days... Death will come. That's
    it, come on! Nothing will remain. Then why harm anyone?"
    
    "Uncle's" face was very significant and even handsome as he said this.
    Involuntarily Rostov recalled all the good he had heard about him from
    his father and the neighbors. Throughout the whole province "Uncle" had
    the reputation of being the most honorable and disinterested of cranks.
    They called him in to decide family disputes, chose him as executor,
    confided secrets to him, elected him to be a justice and to other posts;
    but he always persistently refused public appointments, passing the
    autumn and spring in the fields on his bay gelding, sitting at home in
    winter, and lying in his overgrown garden in summer.
    
    "Why don't you enter the service, Uncle?"
    
    "I did once, but gave it up. I am not fit for it. That's it, come on! I
    can't make head or tail of it. That's for you--I haven't brains enough.
    Now, hunting is another matter--that's it, come on! Open the door,
    there!" he shouted. "Why have you shut it?"
    
    The door at the end of the passage led to the huntsmen's room, as they
    called the room for the hunt servants.
    
    There was a rapid patter of bare feet, and an unseen hand opened the
    door into the huntsmen's room, from which came the clear sounds of a
    balalayka on which someone, who was evidently a master of the art, was
    playing. Natasha had been listening to those strains for some time and
    now went out into the passage to hear better.
    
    "That's Mitka, my coachman.... I have got him a good balalayka. I'm fond
    of it," said "Uncle."
    
    It was the custom for Mitka to play the balalayka in the huntsmen's room
    when "Uncle" returned from the chase. "Uncle" was fond of such music.
    
    "How good! Really very good!" said Nicholas with some unintentional
    superciliousness, as if ashamed to confess that the sounds pleased him
    very much.
    
    "Very good?" said Natasha reproachfully, noticing her brother's tone.
    "Not 'very good' it's simply delicious!"
    
    Just as "Uncle's" pickled mushrooms, honey, and cherry brandy had seemed
    to her the best in the world, so also that song, at that moment, seemed
    to her the acme of musical delight.
    
    "More, please, more!" cried Natasha at the door as soon as the balalayka
    ceased. Mitka tuned up afresh, and recommenced thrumming the balalayka
    to the air of My Lady, with trills and variations. "Uncle" sat
    listening, slightly smiling, with his head on one side. The air was
    repeated a hundred times. The balalayka was retuned several times and
    the same notes were thrummed again, but the listeners did not grow weary
    of it and wished to hear it again and again. Anisya Fedorovna came in
    and leaned her portly person against the doorpost.
    
    "You like listening?" she said to Natasha, with a smile extremely like
    "Uncle's." "That's a good player of ours," she added.
    
    "He doesn't play that part right!" said "Uncle" suddenly, with an
    energetic gesture. "Here he ought to burst out--that's it, come on!--
    ought to burst out."
    
    "Do you play then?" asked Natasha.
    
    "Uncle" did not answer, but smiled.
    
    "Anisya, go and see if the strings of my guitar are all right. I haven't
    touched it for a long time. That's it--come on! I've given it up."
    
    Anisya Fedorovna, with her light step, willingly went to fulfill her
    errand and brought back the guitar.
    
    Without looking at anyone, "Uncle" blew the dust off it and, tapping the
    case with his bony fingers, tuned the guitar and settled himself in his
    armchair. He took the guitar a little above the fingerboard, arching his
    left elbow with a somewhat theatrical gesture, and, with a wink at
    Anisya Fedorovna, struck a single chord, pure and sonorous, and then
    quietly, smoothly, and confidently began playing in very slow time, not
    My Lady, but the well-known song: Came a maiden down the street. The
    tune, played with precision and in exact time, began to thrill in the
    hearts of Nicholas and Natasha, arousing in them the same kind of sober
    mirth as radiated from Anisya Fedorovna's whole being. Anisya Fedorovna
    flushed, and drawing her kerchief over her face went laughing out of the
    room. "Uncle" continued to play correctly, carefully, with energetic
    firmness, looking with a changed and inspired expression at the spot
    where Anisya Fedorovna had just stood. Something seemed to be laughing a
    little on one side of his face under his gray mustaches, especially as
    the song grew brisker and the time quicker and when, here and there, as
    he ran his fingers over the strings, something seemed to snap.
    
    "Lovely, lovely! Go on, Uncle, go on!" shouted Natasha as soon as he had
    finished. She jumped up and hugged and kissed him. "Nicholas, Nicholas!"
    she said, turning to her brother, as if asking him: "What is it moves me
    so?"
    
    Nicholas too was greatly pleased by "Uncle's" playing, and "Uncle"
    played the piece over again. Anisya Fedorovna's smiling face reappeared
    in the doorway and behind hers other faces...
    
    Fetching water clear and sweet, Stop, dear maiden, I entreat--
    
    played "Uncle" once more, running his fingers skillfully over the
    strings, and then he stopped short and jerked his shoulders.
    
    "Go on, Uncle dear," Natasha wailed in an imploring tone as if her life
    depended on it.
    
    "Uncle" rose, and it was as if there were two men in him: one of them
    smiled seriously at the merry fellow, while the merry fellow struck a
    naive and precise attitude preparatory to a folk dance.
    
    "Now then, niece!" he exclaimed, waving to Natasha the hand that had
    just struck a chord.
    
    Natasha threw off the shawl from her shoulders, ran forward to face
    "Uncle," and setting her arms akimbo also made a motion with her
    shoulders and struck an attitude.
    
    Where, how, and when had this young countess, educated by an emigree
    French governess, imbibed from the Russian air she breathed that spirit
    and obtained that manner which the pas de chale * would, one would have
    supposed, long ago have effaced? But the spirit and the movements were
    those inimitable and unteachable Russian ones that "Uncle" had expected
    of her. As soon as she had struck her pose, and smiled triumphantly,
    proudly, and with sly merriment, the fear that had at first seized
    Nicholas and the others that she might not do the right thing was at an
    end, and they were already admiring her.
    
    * The French shawl dance.
    
    She did the right thing with such precision, such complete precision,
    that Anisya Fedorovna, who had at once handed her the handkerchief she
    needed for the dance, had tears in her eyes, though she laughed as she
    watched this slim, graceful countess, reared in silks and velvets and so
    different from herself, who yet was able to understand all that was in
    Anisya and in Anisya's father and mother and aunt, and in every Russian
    man and woman.
    
    "Well, little countess; that's it--come on!" cried "Uncle," with a
    joyous laugh, having finished the dance. "Well done, niece! Now a fine
    young fellow must be found as husband for you. That's it--come on!"
    
    "He's chosen already," said Nicholas smiling.
    
    "Oh?" said "Uncle" in surprise, looking inquiringly at Natasha, who
    nodded her head with a happy smile.
    
    "And such a one!" she said. But as soon as she had said it a new train
    of thoughts and feelings arose in her. "What did Nicholas' smile mean
    when he said 'chosen already'? Is he glad of it or not? It is as if he
    thought my Bolkonski would not approve of or understand our gaiety. But
    he would understand it all. Where is he now?" she thought, and her face
    suddenly became serious. But this lasted only a second. "Don't dare to
    think about it," she said to herself, and sat down again smilingly
    beside "Uncle," begging him to play something more.
    
    "Uncle" played another song and a valse; then after a pause he cleared
    his throat and sang his favorite hunting song:
    
    As 'twas growing dark last night Fell the snow so soft and light...
    
    "Uncle" sang as peasants sing, with full and naive conviction that the
    whole meaning of a song lies in the words and that the tune comes of
    itself, and that apart from the words there is no tune, which exists
    only to give measure to the words. As a result of this the unconsidered
    tune, like the song of a bird, was extraordinarily good. Natasha was in
    ecstasies over "Uncle's" singing. She resolved to give up learning the
    harp and to play only the guitar. She asked "Uncle" for his guitar and
    at once found the chords of the song.
    
    After nine o'clock two traps and three mounted men, who had been sent to
    look for them, arrived to fetch Natasha and Petya. The count and
    countess did not know where they were and were very anxious, said one of
    the men.
    
    Petya was carried out like a log and laid in the larger of the two
    traps. Natasha and Nicholas got into the other. "Uncle" wrapped Natasha
    up warmly and took leave of her with quite a new tenderness. He
    accompanied them on foot as far as the bridge that could not be crossed,
    so that they had to go round by the ford, and he sent huntsmen to ride
    in front with lanterns.
    
    "Good-bye, dear niece," his voice called out of the darkness--not the
    voice Natasha had known previously, but the one that had sung As 'twas
    growing dark last night.
    
    In the village through which they passed there were red lights and a
    cheerful smell of smoke.
    
    "What a darling Uncle is!" said Natasha, when they had come out onto the
    highroad.
    
    "Yes," returned Nicholas. "You're not cold?"
    
    "No. I'm quite, quite all right. I feel so comfortable!" answered
    Natasha, almost perplexed by her feelings. They remained silent a long
    while. The night was dark and damp. They could not see the horses, but
    only heard them splashing through the unseen mud.
    
    What was passing in that receptive childlike soul that so eagerly caught
    and assimilated all the diverse impressions of life? How did they all
    find place in her? But she was very happy. As they were nearing home she
    suddenly struck up the air of As 'twas growing dark last night--the tune
    of which she had all the way been trying to get and had at last caught.
    
    "Got it?" said Nicholas.
    
    "What were you thinking about just now, Nicholas?" inquired Natasha.
    
    They were fond of asking one another that question.
    
    "I?" said Nicholas, trying to remember. "Well, you see, first I thought
    that Rugay, the red hound, was like Uncle, and that if he were a man he
    would always keep Uncle near him, if not for his riding, then for his
    manner. What a good fellow Uncle is! Don't you think so?... Well, and
    you?"
    
    "I? Wait a bit, wait.... Yes, first I thought that we are driving along
    and imagining that we are going home, but that heaven knows where we are
    really going in the darkness, and that we shall arrive and suddenly find
    that we are not in Otradnoe, but in Fairyland. And then I thought... No,
    nothing else."
    
    "I know, I expect you thought of him," said Nicholas, smiling as Natasha
    knew by the sound of his voice.
    
    "No," said Natasha, though she had in reality been thinking about Prince
    Andrew at the same time as of the rest, and of how he would have liked
    "Uncle." "And then I was saying to myself all the way, 'How well Anisya
    carried herself, how well!'" And Nicholas heard her spontaneous, happy,
    ringing laughter. "And do you know," she suddenly said, "I know that I
    shall never again be as happy and tranquil as I am now."
    
    "Rubbish, nonsense, humbug!" exclaimed Nicholas, and he thought: "How
    charming this Natasha of mine is! I have no other friend like her and
    never shall have. Why should she marry? We might always drive about
    together!"
    
    "What a darling this Nicholas of mine is!" thought Natasha.
    
    "Ah, there are still lights in the drawing-room!" she said, pointing to
    the windows of the house that gleamed invitingly in the moist velvety
    darkness of the night.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    Count Ilya Rostov had resigned the position of Marshal of the Nobility
    because it involved him in too much expense, but still his affairs did
    not improve. Natasha and Nicholas often noticed their parents conferring
    together anxiously and privately and heard suggestions of selling the
    fine ancestral Rostov house and estate near Moscow. It was not necessary
    to entertain so freely as when the count had been Marshal, and life at
    Otradnoe was quieter than in former years, but still the enormous house
    and its lodges were full of people and more than twenty sat down to
    table every day. These were all their own people who had settled down in
    the house almost as members of the family, or persons who were, it
    seemed, obliged to live in the count's house. Such were Dimmler the
    musician and his wife, Vogel the dancing master and his family, Belova,
    an old maiden lady, an inmate of the house, and many others such as
    Petya's tutors, the girls' former governess, and other people who simply
    found it preferable and more advantageous to live in the count's house
    than at home. They had not as many visitors as before, but the old
    habits of life without which the count and countess could not conceive
    of existence remained unchanged. There was still the hunting
    establishment which Nicholas had even enlarged, the same fifty horses
    and fifteen grooms in the stables, the same expensive presents and
    dinner parties to the whole district on name days; there were still the
    count's games of whist and boston, at which--spreading out his cards so
    that everybody could see them--he let himself be plundered of hundreds
    of rubles every day by his neighbors, who looked upon an opportunity to
    play a rubber with Count Rostov as a most profitable source of income.
    
    The count moved in his affairs as in a huge net, trying not to believe
    that he was entangled but becoming more and more so at every step, and
    feeling too feeble to break the meshes or to set to work carefully and
    patiently to disentangle them. The countess, with her loving heart, felt
    that her children were being ruined, that it was not the count's fault
    for he could not help being what he was--that (though he tried to hide
    it) he himself suffered from the consciousness of his own and his
    children's ruin, and she tried to find means of remedying the position.
    From her feminine point of view she could see only one solution, namely,
    for Nicholas to marry a rich heiress. She felt this to be their last
    hope and that if Nicholas refused the match she had found for him, she
    would have to abandon the hope of ever getting matters right. This match
    was with Julie Karagina, the daughter of excellent and virtuous parents,
    a girl the Rostovs had known from childhood, and who had now become a
    wealthy heiress through the death of the last of her brothers.
    
    The countess had written direct to Julie's mother in Moscow suggesting a
    marriage between their children and had received a favorable answer from
    her. Karagina had replied that for her part she was agreeable, and
    everything depend on her daughter's inclination. She invited Nicholas to
    come to Moscow.
    
    Several times the countess, with tears in her eyes, told her son that
    now both her daughters were settled, her only wish was to see him
    married. She said she could lie down in her grave peacefully if that
    were accomplished. Then she told him that she knew of a splendid girl
    and tried to discover what he thought about marriage.
    
    At other times she praised Julie to him and advised him to go to Moscow
    during the holidays to amuse himself. Nicholas guessed what his mother's
    remarks were leading to and during one of these conversations induced
    her to speak quite frankly. She told him that her only hope of getting
    their affairs disentangled now lay in his marrying Julie Karagina.
    
    "But, Mamma, suppose I loved a girl who has no fortune, would you expect
    me to sacrifice my feelings and my honor for the sake of money?" he
    asked his mother, not realizing the cruelty of his question and only
    wishing to show his noble-mindedness.
    
    "No, you have not understood me," said his mother, not knowing how to
    justify herself. "You have not understood me, Nikolenka. It is your
    happiness I wish for," she added, feeling that she was telling an
    untruth and was becoming entangled. She began to cry.
    
    "Mamma, don't cry! Only tell me that you wish it, and you know I will
    give my life, anything, to put you at ease," said Nicholas. "I would
    sacrifice anything for you--even my feelings."
    
    But the countess did not want the question put like that: she did not
    want a sacrifice from her son, she herself wished to make a sacrifice
    for him.
    
    "No, you have not understood me, don't let us talk about it," she
    replied, wiping away her tears.
    
    "Maybe I do love a poor girl," said Nicholas to himself. "Am I to
    sacrifice my feelings and my honor for money? I wonder how Mamma could
    speak so to me. Because Sonya is poor I must not love her," he thought,
    "must not respond to her faithful, devoted love? Yet I should certainly
    be happier with her than with some doll-like Julie. I can always
    sacrifice my feelings for my family's welfare," he said to himself, "but
    I can't coerce my feelings. If I love Sonya, that feeling is for me
    stronger and higher than all else."
    
    Nicholas did not go to Moscow, and the countess did not renew the
    conversation with him about marriage. She saw with sorrow, and sometimes
    with exasperation, symptoms of a growing attachment between her son and
    the portionless Sonya. Though she blamed herself for it, she could not
    refrain from grumbling at and worrying Sonya, often pulling her up
    without reason, addressing her stiffly as "my dear," and using the
    formal "you" instead of the intimate "thou" in speaking to her. The
    kindhearted countess was the more vexed with Sonya because that poor,
    dark-eyed niece of hers was so meek, so kind, so devotedly grateful to
    her benefactors, and so faithfully, unchangingly, and unselfishly in
    love with Nicholas, that there were no grounds for finding fault with
    her.
    
    Nicholas was spending the last of his leave at home. A fourth letter had
    come from Prince Andrew, from Rome, in which he wrote that he would have
    been on his way back to Russia long ago had not his wound unexpectedly
    reopened in the warm climate, which obliged him to defer his return till
    the beginning of the new year. Natasha was still as much in love with
    her betrothed, found the same comfort in that love, and was still as
    ready to throw herself into all the pleasures of life as before; but at
    the end of the fourth month of their separation she began to have fits
    of depression which she could not master. She felt sorry for herself:
    sorry that she was being wasted all this time and of no use to anyone--
    while she felt herself so capable of loving and being loved.
    
    Things were not cheerful in the Rostovs' home.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    Christmas came and except for the ceremonial Mass, the solemn and
    wearisome Christmas congratulations from neighbors and servants, and the
    new dresses everyone put on, there were no special festivities, though
    the calm frost of twenty degrees Reaumur, the dazzling sunshine by day,
    and the starlight of the winter nights seemed to call for some special
    celebration of the season.
    
    On the third day of Christmas week, after the midday dinner, all the
    inmates of the house dispersed to various rooms. It was the dullest time
    of the day. Nicholas, who had been visiting some neighbors that morning,
    was asleep on the sitting-room sofa. The old count was resting in his
    study. Sonya sat in the drawing room at the round table, copying a
    design for embroidery. The countess was playing patience. Nastasya
    Ivanovna the buffoon sat with a sad face at the window with two old
    ladies. Natasha came into the room, went up to Sonya, glanced at what
    she was doing, and then went up to her mother and stood without
    speaking.
    
    "Why are you wandering about like an outcast?" asked her mother. "What
    do you want?"
    
    "Him... I want him... now, this minute! I want him!" said Natasha, with
    glittering eyes and no sign of a smile.
    
    The countess lifted her head and looked attentively at her daughter.
    
    "Don't look at me, Mamma! Don't look; I shall cry directly."
    
    "Sit down with me a little," said the countess.
    
    "Mamma, I want him. Why should I be wasted like this, Mamma?"
    
    Her voice broke, tears gushed from her eyes, and she turned quickly to
    hide them and left the room.
    
    She passed into the sitting room, stood there thinking awhile, and then
    went into the maids' room. There an old maidservant was grumbling at a
    young girl who stood panting, having just run in through the cold from
    the serfs' quarters.
    
    "Stop playing--there's a time for everything," said the old woman.
    
    "Let her alone, Kondratevna," said Natasha. "Go, Mavrushka, go."
    
    Having released Mavrushka, Natasha crossed the dancing hall and went to
    the vestibule. There an old footman and two young ones were playing
    cards. They broke off and rose as she entered.
    
    "What can I do with them?" thought Natasha.
    
    "Oh, Nikita, please go... where can I send him?... Yes, go to the yard
    and fetch a fowl, please, a cock, and you, Misha, bring me some oats."
    
    "Just a few oats?" said Misha, cheerfully and readily.
    
    "Go, go quickly," the old man urged him.
    
    "And you, Theodore, get me a piece of chalk."
    
    On her way past the butler's pantry she told them to set a samovar,
    though it was not at all the time for tea.
    
    Foka, the butler, was the most ill-tempered person in the house. Natasha
    liked to test her power over him. He distrusted the order and asked
    whether the samovar was really wanted.
    
    "Oh dear, what a young lady!" said Foka, pretending to frown at Natasha.
    
    No one in the house sent people about or gave them as much trouble as
    Natasha did. She could not see people unconcernedly, but had to send
    them on some errand. She seemed to be trying whether any of them would
    get angry or sulky with her; but the serfs fulfilled no one's orders so
    readily as they did hers. "What can I do, where can I go?" thought she,
    as she went slowly along the passage.
    
    "Nastasya Ivanovna, what sort of children shall I have?" she asked the
    buffoon, who was coming toward her in a woman's jacket.
    
    "Why, fleas, crickets, grasshoppers," answered the buffoon.
    
    "O Lord, O Lord, it's always the same! Oh, where am I to go? What am I
    to do with myself?" And tapping with her heels, she ran quickly upstairs
    to see Vogel and his wife who lived on the upper story.
    
    Two governesses were sitting with the Vogels at a table, on which were
    plates of raisins, walnuts, and almonds. The governesses were discussing
    whether it was cheaper to live in Moscow or Odessa. Natasha sat down,
    listened to their talk with a serious and thoughtful air, and then got
    up again.
    
    "The island of Madagascar," she said, "Ma-da-gas-car," she repeated,
    articulating each syllable distinctly, and, not replying to Madame
    Schoss who asked her what she was saying, she went out of the room.
    
    Her brother Petya was upstairs too; with the man in attendance on him he
    was preparing fireworks to let off that night.
    
    "Petya! Petya!" she called to him. "Carry me downstairs."
    
    Petya ran up and offered her his back. She jumped on it, putting her
    arms round his neck, and he pranced along with her.
    
    "No, don't... the island of Madagascar!" she said, and jumping off his
    back she went downstairs.
    
    Having as it were reviewed her kingdom, tested her power, and made sure
    that everyone was submissive, but that all the same it was dull, Natasha
    betook herself to the ballroom, picked up her guitar, sat down in a dark
    corner behind a bookcase, and began to run her fingers over the strings
    in the bass, picking out a passage she recalled from an opera she had
    heard in Petersburg with Prince Andrew. What she drew from the guitar
    would have had no meaning for other listeners, but in her imagination a
    whole series of reminiscences arose from those sounds. She sat behind
    the bookcase with her eyes fixed on a streak of light escaping from the
    pantry door and listened to herself and pondered. She was in a mood for
    brooding on the past.
    
    Sonya passed to the pantry with a glass in her hand. Natasha glanced at
    her and at the crack in the pantry door, and it seemed to her that she
    remembered the light falling through that crack once before and Sonya
    passing with a glass in her hand. "Yes it was exactly the same," thought
    Natasha.
    
    "Sonya, what is this?" she cried, twanging a thick string.
    
    "Oh, you are there!" said Sonya with a start, and came near and
    listened. "I don't know. A storm?" she ventured timidly, afraid of being
    wrong.
    
    "There! That's just how she started and just how she came up smiling
    timidly when all this happened before," thought Natasha, "and in just
    the same way I thought there was something lacking in her."
    
    "No, it's the chorus from The Water-Carrier, listen!" and Natasha sang
    the air of the chorus so that Sonya should catch it. "Where were you
    going?" she asked.
    
    "To change the water in this glass. I am just finishing the design."
    
    "You always find something to do, but I can't," said Natasha. "And
    where's Nicholas?"
    
    "Asleep, I think."
    
    "Sonya, go and wake him," said Natasha. "Tell him I want him to come and
    sing."
    
    She sat awhile, wondering what the meaning of it all having happened
    before could be, and without solving this problem, or at all regretting
    not having done so, she again passed in fancy to the time when she was
    with him and he was looking at her with a lover's eyes.
    
    "Oh, if only he would come quicker! I am so afraid it will never be!
    And, worst of all, I am growing old--that's the thing! There won't then
    be in me what there is now. But perhaps he'll come today, will come
    immediately. Perhaps he has come and is sitting in the drawing room.
    Perhaps he came yesterday and I have forgotten it." She rose, put down
    the guitar, and went to the drawing room.
    
    All the domestic circle, tutors, governesses, and guests, were already
    at the tea table. The servants stood round the table--but Prince Andrew
    was not there and life was going on as before.
    
    "Ah, here she is!" said the old count, when he saw Natasha enter. "Well,
    sit down by me." But Natasha stayed by her mother and glanced round as
    if looking for something.
    
    "Mamma!" she muttered, "give him to me, give him, Mamma, quickly,
    quickly!" and she again had difficulty in repressing her sobs.
    
    She sat down at the table and listened to the conversation between the
    elders and Nicholas, who had also come to the table. "My God, my God!
    The same faces, the same talk, Papa holding his cup and blowing in the
    same way!" thought Natasha, feeling with horror a sense of repulsion
    rising up in her for the whole household, because they were always the
    same.
    
    After tea, Nicholas, Sonya, and Natasha went to the sitting room, to
    their favorite corner where their most intimate talks always began.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    "Does it ever happen to you," said Natasha to her brother, when they
    settled down in the sitting room, "does it ever happen to you to feel as
    if there were nothing more to come--nothing; that everything good is
    past? And to feel not exactly dull, but sad?"
    
    "I should think so!" he replied. "I have felt like that when everything
    was all right and everyone was cheerful. The thought has come into my
    mind that I was already tired of it all, and that we must all die. Once
    in the regiment I had not gone to some merrymaking where there was
    music... and suddenly I felt so depressed..."
    
    "Oh yes, I know, I know, I know!" Natasha interrupted him. "When I was
    quite little that used to be so with me. Do you remember when I was
    punished once about some plums? You were all dancing, and I sat sobbing
    in the schoolroom? I shall never forget it: I felt sad and sorry for
    everyone, for myself, and for everyone. And I was innocent--that was the
    chief thing," said Natasha. "Do you remember?"
    
    "I remember," answered Nicholas. "I remember that I came to you
    afterwards and wanted to comfort you, but do you know, I felt ashamed
    to. We were terribly absurd. I had a funny doll then and wanted to give
    it to you. Do you remember?"
    
    "And do you remember," Natasha asked with a pensive smile, "how once,
    long, long ago, when we were quite little, Uncle called us into the
    study--that was in the old house--and it was dark--we went in and
    suddenly there stood..."
    
    "A Negro," chimed in Nicholas with a smile of delight. "Of course I
    remember. Even now I don't know whether there really was a Negro, or if
    we only dreamed it or were told about him."
    
    "He was gray, you remember, and had white teeth, and stood and looked at
    us..."
    
    "Sonya, do you remember?" asked Nicholas.
    
    "Yes, yes, I do remember something too," Sonya answered timidly.
    
    "You know I have asked Papa and Mamma about that Negro," said Natasha,
    "and they say there was no Negro at all. But you see, you remember!"
    
    "Of course I do, I remember his teeth as if I had just seen them."
    
    "How strange it is! It's as if it were a dream! I like that."
    
    "And do you remember how we rolled hard-boiled eggs in the ballroom, and
    suddenly two old women began spinning round on the carpet? Was that real
    or not? Do you remember what fun it was?"
    
    "Yes, and you remember how Papa in his blue overcoat fired a gun in the
    porch?"
    
    So they went through their memories, smiling with pleasure: not the sad
    memories of old age, but poetic, youthful ones--those impressions of
    one's most distant past in which dreams and realities blend--and they
    laughed with quiet enjoyment.
    
    Sonya, as always, did not quite keep pace with them, though they shared
    the same reminiscences.
    
    Much that they remembered had slipped from her mind, and what she
    recalled did not arouse the same poetic feeling as they experienced. She
    simply enjoyed their pleasure and tried to fit in with it.
    
    She only really took part when they recalled Sonya's first arrival. She
    told them how afraid she had been of Nicholas because he had on a corded
    jacket and her nurse had told her that she, too, would be sewn up with
    cords.
    
    "And I remember their telling me that you had been born under a
    cabbage," said Natasha, "and I remember that I dared not disbelieve it
    then, but knew that it was not true, and I felt so uncomfortable."
    
    While they were talking a maid thrust her head in at the other door of
    the sitting room.
    
    "They have brought the cock, Miss," she said in a whisper.
    
    "It isn't wanted, Petya. Tell them to take it away," replied Natasha.
    
    In the middle of their talk in the sitting room, Dimmler came in and
    went up to the harp that stood there in a corner. He took off its cloth
    covering, and the harp gave out a jarring sound.
    
    "Mr. Dimmler, please play my favorite nocturne by Field," came the old
    countess' voice from the drawing room.
    
    Dimmler struck a chord and, turning to Natasha, Nicholas, and Sonya,
    remarked: "How quiet you young people are!"
    
    "Yes, we're philosophizing," said Natasha, glancing round for a moment
    and then continuing the conversation. They were now discussing dreams.
    
    Dimmler began to play; Natasha went on tiptoe noiselessly to the table,
    took up a candle, carried it out, and returned, seating herself quietly
    in her former place. It was dark in the room especially where they were
    sitting on the sofa, but through the big windows the silvery light of
    the full moon fell on the floor. Dimmler had finished the piece but
    still sat softly running his fingers over the strings, evidently
    uncertain whether to stop or to play something else.
    
    "Do you know," said Natasha in a whisper, moving closer to Nicholas and
    Sonya, "that when one goes on and on recalling memories, one at last
    begins to remember what happened before one was in the world..."
    
    "That is metempsychosis," said Sonya, who had always learned well, and
    remembered everything. "The Egyptians believed that our souls have lived
    in animals, and will go back into animals again."
    
    "No, I don't believe we ever were in animals," said Natasha, still in a
    whisper though the music had ceased. "But I am certain that we were
    angels somewhere there, and have been here, and that is why we
    remember...."
    
    "May I join you?" said Dimmler who had come up quietly, and he sat down
    by them.
    
    "If we have been angels, why have we fallen lower?" said Nicholas. "No,
    that can't be!"
    
    "Not lower, who said we were lower?... How do I know what I was before?"
    Natasha rejoined with conviction. "The soul is immortal--well then, if I
    shall always live I must have lived before, lived for a whole eternity."
    
    "Yes, but it is hard for us to imagine eternity," remarked Dimmler, who
    had joined the young folk with a mildly condescending smile but now
    spoke as quietly and seriously as they.
    
    "Why is it hard to imagine eternity?" said Natasha. "It is now today,
    and it will be tomorrow, and always; and there was yesterday, and the
    day before..."
    
    "Natasha! Now it's your turn. Sing me something," they heard the
    countess say. "Why are you sitting there like conspirators?"
    
    "Mamma, I don't at all want to," replied Natasha, but all the same she
    rose.
    
    None of them, not even the middle-aged Dimmler, wanted to break off
    their conversation and quit that corner in the sitting room, but Natasha
    got up and Nicholas sat down at the clavichord. Standing as usual in the
    middle of the hall and choosing the place where the resonance was best,
    Natasha began to sing her mother's favorite song.
    
    She had said she did not want to sing, but it was long since she had
    sung, and long before she again sang, as she did that evening. The
    count, from his study where he was talking to Mitenka, heard her and,
    like a schoolboy in a hurry to run out to play, blundered in his talk
    while giving orders to the steward, and at last stopped, while Mitenka
    stood in front of him also listening and smiling. Nicholas did not take
    his eyes off his sister and drew breath in time with her. Sonya, as she
    listened, thought of the immense difference there was between herself
    and her friend, and how impossible it was for her to be anything like as
    bewitching as her cousin. The old countess sat with a blissful yet sad
    smile and with tears in her eyes, occasionally shaking her head. She
    thought of Natasha and of her own youth, and of how there was something
    unnatural and dreadful in this impending marriage of Natasha and Prince
    Andrew.
    
    Dimmler, who had seated himself beside the countess, listened with
    closed eyes.
    
    "Ah, Countess," he said at last, "that's a European talent, she has
    nothing to learn--what softness, tenderness, and strength...."
    
    "Ah, how afraid I am for her, how afraid I am!" said the countess, not
    realizing to whom she was speaking. Her maternal instinct told her that
    Natasha had too much of something, and that because of this she would
    not be happy. Before Natasha had finished singing, fourteen-year-old
    Petya rushed in delightedly, to say that some mummers had arrived.
    
    Natasha stopped abruptly.
    
    "Idiot!" she screamed at her brother and, running to a chair, threw
    herself on it, sobbing so violently that she could not stop for a long
    time.
    
    "It's nothing, Mamma, really it's nothing; only Petya startled me," she
    said, trying to smile, but her tears still flowed and sobs still choked
    her.
    
    The mummers (some of the house serfs) dressed up as bears, Turks,
    innkeepers, and ladies--frightening and funny--bringing in with them the
    cold from outside and a feeling of gaiety, crowded, at first timidly,
    into the anteroom, then hiding behind one another they pushed into the
    ballroom where, shyly at first and then more and more merrily and
    heartily, they started singing, dancing, and playing Christmas games.
    The countess, when she had identified them and laughed at their
    costumes, went into the drawing room. The count sat in the ballroom,
    smiling radiantly and applauding the players. The young people had
    disappeared.
    
    Half an hour later there appeared among the other mummers in the
    ballroom an old lady in a hooped skirt--this was Nicholas. A Turkish
    girl was Petya. A clown was Dimmler. An hussar was Natasha, and a
    Circassian was Sonya with burnt-cork mustache and eyebrows.
    
    After the condescending surprise, nonrecognition, and praise, from those
    who were not themselves dressed up, the young people decided that their
    costumes were so good that they ought to be shown elsewhere.
    
    Nicholas, who, as the roads were in splendid condition, wanted to take
    them all for a drive in his troyka, proposed to take with them about a
    dozen of the serf mummers and drive to "Uncle's."
    
    "No, why disturb the old fellow?" said the countess. "Besides, you
    wouldn't have room to turn round there. If you must go, go to the
    Melyukovs'."
    
    Melyukova was a widow, who, with her family and their tutors and
    governesses, lived three miles from the Rostovs.
    
    "That's right, my dear," chimed in the old count, thoroughly aroused.
    "I'll dress up at once and go with them. I'll make Pashette open her
    eyes."
    
    But the countess would not agree to his going; he had had a bad leg all
    these last days. It was decided that the count must not go, but that if
    Louisa Ivanovna (Madame Schoss) would go with them, the young ladies
    might go to the Melyukovs', Sonya, generally so timid and shy, more
    urgently than anyone begging Louisa Ivanovna not to refuse.
    
    Sonya's costume was the best of all. Her mustache and eyebrows were
    extraordinarily becoming. Everyone told her she looked very handsome,
    and she was in a spirited and energetic mood unusual with her. Some
    inner voice told her that now or never her fate would be decided, and in
    her male attire she seemed quite a different person. Louisa Ivanovna
    consented to go, and in half an hour four troyka sleighs with large and
    small bells, their runners squeaking and whistling over the frozen snow,
    drove up to the porch.
    
    Natasha was foremost in setting a merry holiday tone, which, passing
    from one to another, grew stronger and reached its climax when they all
    came out into the frost and got into the sleighs, talking, calling to
    one another, laughing, and shouting.
    
    Two of the troykas were the usual household sleighs, the third was the
    old count's with a trotter from the Orlov stud as shaft horse, the
    fourth was Nicholas' own with a short shaggy black shaft horse.
    Nicholas, in his old lady's dress over which he had belted his hussar
    overcoat, stood in the middle of the sleigh, reins in hand.
    
    It was so light that he could see the moonlight reflected from the metal
    harness disks and from the eyes of the horses, who looked round in alarm
    at the noisy party under the shadow of the porch roof.
    
    Natasha, Sonya, Madame Schoss, and two maids got into Nicholas' sleigh;
    Dimmler, his wife, and Petya, into the old count's, and the rest of the
    mummers seated themselves in the other two sleighs.
    
    "You go ahead, Zakhar!" shouted Nicholas to his father's coachman,
    wishing for a chance to race past him.
    
    The old count's troyka, with Dimmler and his party, started forward,
    squeaking on its runners as though freezing to the snow, its deep-toned
    bell clanging. The side horses, pressing against the shafts of the
    middle horse, sank in the snow, which was dry and glittered like sugar,
    and threw it up.
    
    Nicholas set off, following the first sleigh; behind him the others
    moved noisily, their runners squeaking. At first they drove at a steady
    trot along the narrow road. While they drove past the garden the shadows
    of the bare trees often fell across the road and hid the brilliant
    moonlight, but as soon as they were past the fence, the snowy plain
    bathed in moonlight and motionless spread out before them glittering
    like diamonds and dappled with bluish shadows. Bang, bang! went the
    first sleigh over a cradle hole in the snow of the road, and each of the
    other sleighs jolted in the same way, and rudely breaking the frost-
    bound stillness, the troykas began to speed along the road, one after
    the other.
    
    "A hare's track, a lot of tracks!" rang out Natasha's voice through the
    frost-bound air.
    
    "How light it is, Nicholas!" came Sonya's voice.
    
    Nicholas glanced round at Sonya, and bent down to see her face closer.
    Quite a new, sweet face with black eyebrows and mustaches peeped up at
    him from her sable furs--so close and yet so distant--in the moonlight.
    
    "That used to be Sonya," thought he, and looked at her closer and
    smiled.
    
    "What is it, Nicholas?"
    
    "Nothing," said he and turned again to the horses.
    
    When they came out onto the beaten highroad--polished by sleigh runners
    and cut up by rough-shod hoofs, the marks of which were visible in the
    moonlight--the horses began to tug at the reins of their own accord and
    increased their pace. The near side horse, arching his head and breaking
    into a short canter, tugged at his traces. The shaft horse swayed from
    side to side, moving his ears as if asking: "Isn't it time to begin
    now?" In front, already far ahead the deep bell of the sleigh ringing
    farther and farther off, the black horses driven by Zakhar could be
    clearly seen against the white snow. From that sleigh one could hear the
    shouts, laughter, and voices of the mummers.
    
    "Gee up, my darlings!" shouted Nicholas, pulling the reins to one side
    and flourishing the whip.
    
    It was only by the keener wind that met them and the jerks given by the
    side horses who pulled harder--ever increasing their gallop--that one
    noticed how fast the troyka was flying. Nicholas looked back. With
    screams squeals, and waving of whips that caused even the shaft horses
    to gallop--the other sleighs followed. The shaft horse swung steadily
    beneath the bow over its head, with no thought of slackening pace and
    ready to put on speed when required.
    
    Nicholas overtook the first sleigh. They were driving downhill and
    coming out upon a broad trodden track across a meadow, near a river.
    
    "Where are we?" thought he. "It's the Kosoy meadow, I suppose. But no--
    this is something new I've never seen before. This isn't the Kosoy
    meadow nor the Demkin hill, and heaven only knows what it is! It is
    something new and enchanted. Well, whatever it may be..." And shouting
    to his horses, he began to pass the first sleigh.
    
    Zakhar held back his horses and turned his face, which was already
    covered with hoarfrost to his eyebrows.
    
    Nicholas gave the horses the rein, and Zakhar, stretching out his arms,
    clucked his tongue and let his horses go.
    
    "Now, look out, master!" he cried.
    
    Faster still the two troykas flew side by side, and faster moved the
    feet of the galloping side horses. Nicholas began to draw ahead. Zakhar,
    while still keeping his arms extended, raised one hand with the reins.
    
    "No you won't, master!" he shouted.
    
    Nicholas put all his horses to a gallop and passed Zakhar. The horses
    showered the fine dry snow on the faces of those in the sleigh--beside
    them sounded quick ringing bells and they caught confused glimpses of
    swiftly moving legs and the shadows of the troyka they were passing. The
    whistling sound of the runners on the snow and the voices of girls
    shrieking were heard from different sides.
    
    Again checking his horses, Nicholas looked around him. They were still
    surrounded by the magic plain bathed in moonlight and spangled with
    stars.
    
    "Zakhar is shouting that I should turn to the left, but why to the
    left?" thought Nicholas. "Are we getting to the Melyukovs'? Is this
    Melyukovka? Heaven only knows where we are going, and heaven knows what
    is happening to us--but it is very strange and pleasant whatever it is."
    And he looked round in the sleigh.
    
    "Look, his mustache and eyelashes are all white!" said one of the
    strange, pretty, unfamiliar people--the one with fine eyebrows and
    mustache.
    
    "I think this used to be Natasha," thought Nicholas, "and that was
    Madame Schoss, but perhaps it's not, and this Circassian with the
    mustache I don't know, but I love her."
    
    "Aren't you cold?" he asked.
    
    They did not answer but began to laugh. Dimmler from the sleigh behind
    shouted something--probably something funny--but they could not make out
    what he said.
    
    "Yes, yes!" some voices answered, laughing.
    
    "But here was a fairy forest with black moving shadows, and a glitter of
    diamonds and a flight of marble steps and the silver roofs of fairy
    buildings and the shrill yells of some animals. And if this is really
    Melyukovka, it is still stranger that we drove heaven knows where and
    have come to Melyukovka," thought Nicholas.
    
    It really was Melyukovka, and maids and footmen with merry faces came
    running, out to the porch carrying candles.
    
    "Who is it?" asked someone in the porch.
    
    "The mummers from the count's. I know by the horses," replied some
    voices.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Pelageya Danilovna Melyukova, a broadly built, energetic woman wearing
    spectacles, sat in the drawing room in a loose dress, surrounded by her
    daughters whom she was trying to keep from feeling dull. They were
    quietly dropping melted wax into snow and looking at the shadows the wax
    figures would throw on the wall, when they heard the steps and voices of
    new arrivals in the vestibule.
    
    Hussars, ladies, witches, clowns, and bears, after clearing their
    throats and wiping the hoarfrost from their faces in the vestibule, came
    into the ballroom where candles were hurriedly lighted. The clown--
    Dimmler--and the lady--Nicholas--started a dance. Surrounded by the
    screaming children the mummers, covering their faces and disguising
    their voices, bowed to their hostess and arranged themselves about the
    room.
    
    "Dear me! there's no recognizing them! And Natasha! See whom she looks
    like! She really reminds me of somebody. But Herr Dimmler--isn't he
    good! I didn't know him! And how he dances. Dear me, there's a
    Circassian. Really, how becoming it is to dear Sonya. And who is that?
    Well, you have cheered us up! Nikita and Vanya--clear away the tables!
    And we were sitting so quietly. Ha, ha, ha!... The hussar, the hussar!
    Just like a boy! And the legs!... I can't look at him..." different
    voices were saying.
    
    Natasha, the young Melyukovs' favorite, disappeared with them into the
    back rooms where a cork and various dressing gowns and male garments
    were called for and received from the footman by bare girlish arms from
    behind the door. Ten minutes later, all the young Melyukovs joined the
    mummers.
    
    Pelageya Danilovna, having given orders to clear the rooms for the
    visitors and arranged about refreshments for the gentry and the serfs,
    went about among the mummers without removing her spectacles, peering
    into their faces with a suppressed smile and failing to recognize any of
    them. It was not merely Dimmler and the Rostovs she failed to recognize,
    she did not even recognize her own daughters, or her late husband's,
    dressing gowns and uniforms, which they had put on.
    
    "And who is this?" she asked her governess, peering into the face of her
    own daughter dressed up as a Kazan-Tartar. "I suppose it is one of the
    Rostovs! Well, Mr. Hussar, and what regiment do you serve in?" she asked
    Natasha. "Here, hand some fruit jelly to the Turk!" she ordered the
    butler who was handing things round. "That's not forbidden by his law."
    
    Sometimes, as she looked at the strange but amusing capers cut by the
    dancers, who--having decided once for all that being disguised, no one
    would recognize them--were not at all shy, Pelageya Danilovna hid her
    face in her handkerchief, and her whole stout body shook with
    irrepressible, kindly, elderly laughter.
    
    "My little Sasha! Look at Sasha!" she said.
    
    After Russian country dances and chorus dances, Pelageya Danilovna made
    the serfs and gentry join in one large circle: a ring, a string, and a
    silver ruble were fetched and they all played games together.
    
    In an hour, all the costumes were crumpled and disordered. The corked
    eyebrows and mustaches were smeared over the perspiring, flushed, and
    merry faces. Pelageya Danilovna began to recognize the mummers, admired
    their cleverly contrived costumes, and particularly how they suited the
    young ladies, and she thanked them all for having entertained her so
    well. The visitors were invited to supper in the drawing room, and the
    serfs had something served to them in the ballroom.
    
    "Now to tell one's fortune in the empty bathhouse is frightening!" said
    an old maid who lived with the Melyukovs, during supper.
    
    "Why?" said the eldest Melyukov girl.
    
    "You wouldn't go, it takes courage..."
    
    "I'll go," said Sonya.
    
    "Tell what happened to the young lady!" said the second Melyukov girl.
    
    "Well," began the old maid, "a young lady once went out, took a cock,
    laid the table for two, all properly, and sat down. After sitting a
    while, she suddenly hears someone coming... a sleigh drives up with
    harness bells; she hears him coming! He comes in, just in the shape of a
    man, like an officer--comes in and sits down to table with her."
    
    "Ah! ah!" screamed Natasha, rolling her eyes with horror.
    
    "Yes? And how... did he speak?"
    
    "Yes, like a man. Everything quite all right, and he began persuading
    her; and she should have kept him talking till cockcrow, but she got
    frightened, just got frightened and hid her face in her hands. Then he
    caught her up. It was lucky the maids ran in just then..."
    
    "Now, why frighten them?" said Pelageya Danilovna.
    
    "Mamma, you used to try your fate yourself..." said her daughter.
    
    "And how does one do it in a barn?" inquired Sonya.
    
    "Well, say you went to the barn now, and listened. It depends on what
    you hear; hammering and knocking--that's bad; but a sound of shifting
    grain is good and one sometimes hears that, too."
    
    "Mamma, tell us what happened to you in the barn."
    
    Pelageya Danilovna smiled.
    
    "Oh, I've forgotten..." she replied. "But none of you would go?"
    
    "Yes, I will; Pelageya Danilovna, let me! I'll go," said Sonya.
    
    "Well, why not, if you're not afraid?"
    
    "Louisa Ivanovna, may I?" asked Sonya.
    
    Whether they were playing the ring and string game or the ruble game or
    talking as now, Nicholas did not leave Sonya's side, and gazed at her
    with quite new eyes. It seemed to him that it was only today, thanks to
    that burnt-cork mustache, that he had fully learned to know her. And
    really, that evening, Sonya was brighter, more animated, and prettier
    than Nicholas had ever seen her before.
    
    "So that's what she is like; what a fool I have been!" he thought gazing
    at her sparkling eyes, and under the mustache a happy rapturous smile
    dimpled her cheeks, a smile he had never seen before.
    
    "I'm not afraid of anything," said Sonya. "May I go at once?" She got
    up.
    
    They told her where the barn was and how she should stand and listen,
    and they handed her a fur cloak. She threw this over her head and
    shoulders and glanced at Nicholas.
    
    "What a darling that girl is!" thought he. "And what have I been
    thinking of till now?"
    
    Sonya went out into the passage to go to the barn. Nicholas went hastily
    to the front porch, saying he felt too hot. The crowd of people really
    had made the house stuffy.
    
    Outside, there was the same cold stillness and the same moon, but even
    brighter than before. The light was so strong and the snow sparkled with
    so many stars that one did not wish to look up at the sky and the real
    stars were unnoticed. The sky was black and dreary, while the earth was
    gay.
    
    "I am a fool, a fool! what have I been waiting for?" thought Nicholas,
    and running out from the porch he went round the corner of the house and
    along the path that led to the back porch. He knew Sonya would pass that
    way. Halfway lay some snow-covered piles of firewood and across and
    along them a network of shadows from the bare old lime trees fell on the
    snow and on the path. This path led to the barn. The log walls of the
    barn and its snow-covered roof, that looked as if hewn out of some
    precious stone, sparkled in the moonlight. A tree in the garden snapped
    with the frost, and then all was again perfectly silent. His bosom
    seemed to inhale not air but the strength of eternal youth and gladness.
    
    From the back porch came the sound of feet descending the steps, the
    bottom step upon which snow had fallen gave a ringing creak and he heard
    the voice of an old maidservant saying, "Straight, straight, along the
    path, Miss. Only, don't look back."
    
    "I am not afraid," answered Sonya's voice, and along the path toward
    Nicholas came the crunching, whistling sound of Sonya's feet in her thin
    shoes.
    
    Sonya came along, wrapped in her cloak. She was only a couple of paces
    away when she saw him, and to her too he was not the Nicholas she had
    known and always slightly feared. He was in a woman's dress, with
    tousled hair and a happy smile new to Sonya. She ran rapidly toward him.
    
    "Quite different and yet the same," thought Nicholas, looking at her
    face all lit up by the moonlight. He slipped his arms under the cloak
    that covered her head, embraced her, pressed her to him, and kissed her
    on the lips that wore a mustache and had a smell of burnt cork. Sonya
    kissed him full on the lips, and disengaging her little hands pressed
    them to his cheeks.
    
    "Sonya!... Nicholas!"... was all they said. They ran to the barn and
    then back again, re-entering, he by the front and she by the back porch.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    When they all drove back from Pelageya Danilovna's, Natasha, who always
    saw and noticed everything, arranged that she and Madame Schoss should
    go back in the sleigh with Dimmler, and Sonya with Nicholas and the
    maids.
    
    On the way back Nicholas drove at a steady pace instead of racing and
    kept peering by that fantastic all-transforming light into Sonya's face
    and searching beneath the eyebrows and mustache for his former and his
    present Sonya from whom he had resolved never to be parted again. He
    looked and recognizing in her both the old and the new Sonya, and being
    reminded by the smell of burnt cork of the sensation of her kiss,
    inhaled the frosty air with a full breast and, looking at the ground
    flying beneath him and at the sparkling sky, felt himself again in
    fairyland.
    
    "Sonya, is it well with thee?" he asked from time to time.
    
    "Yes!" she replied. "And with thee?"
    
    When halfway home Nicholas handed the reins to the coachman and ran for
    a moment to Natasha's sleigh and stood on its wing.
    
    "Natasha!" he whispered in French, "do you know I have made up my mind
    about Sonya?"
    
    "Have you told her?" asked Natasha, suddenly beaming all over with joy.
    
    "Oh, how strange you are with that mustache and those eyebrows!...
    Natasha--are you glad?"
    
    "I am so glad, so glad! I was beginning to be vexed with you. I did not
    tell you, but you have been treating her badly. What a heart she has,
    Nicholas! I am horrid sometimes, but I was ashamed to be happy while
    Sonya was not," continued Natasha. "Now I am so glad! Well, run back to
    her."
    
    "No, wait a bit.... Oh, how funny you look!" cried Nicholas, peering
    into her face and finding in his sister too something new, unusual, and
    bewitchingly tender that he had not seen in her before. "Natasha, it's
    magical, isn't it?"
    
    "Yes," she replied. "You have done splendidly."
    
    "Had I seen her before as she is now," thought Nicholas, "I should long
    ago have asked her what to do and have done whatever she told me, and
    all would have been well."
    
    "So you are glad and I have done right?"
    
    "Oh, quite right! I had a quarrel with Mamma some time ago about it.
    Mamma said she was angling for you. How could she say such a thing! I
    nearly stormed at Mamma. I will never let anyone say anything bad of
    Sonya, for there is nothing but good in her."
    
    "Then it's all right?" said Nicholas, again scrutinizing the expression
    of his sister's face to see if she was in earnest. Then he jumped down
    and, his boots scrunching the snow, ran back to his sleigh. The same
    happy, smiling Circassian, with mustache and beaming eyes looking up
    from under a sable hood, was still sitting there, and that Circassian
    was Sonya, and that Sonya was certainly his future happy and loving
    wife.
    
    When they reached home and had told their mother how they had spent the
    evening at the Melyukovs', the girls went to their bedroom. When they
    had undressed, but without washing off the cork mustaches, they sat a
    long time talking of their happiness. They talked of how they would live
    when they were married, how their husbands would be friends, and how
    happy they would be. On Natasha's table stood two looking glasses which
    Dunyasha had prepared beforehand.
    
    "Only when will all that be? I am afraid never.... It would be too
    good!" said Natasha, rising and going to the looking glasses.
    
    "Sit down, Natasha; perhaps you'll see him," said Sonya.
    
    Natasha lit the candles, one on each side of one of the looking glasses,
    and sat down.
    
    "I see someone with a mustache," said Natasha, seeing her own face.
    
    "You mustn't laugh, Miss," said Dunyasha.
    
    With Sonya's help and the maid's, Natasha got the glass she held into
    the right position opposite the other; her face assumed a serious
    expression and she sat silent. She sat a long time looking at the
    receding line of candles reflected in the glasses and expecting (from
    tales she had heard) to see a coffin, or him, Prince Andrew, in that
    last dim, indistinctly outlined square. But ready as she was to take the
    smallest speck for the image of a man or of a coffin, she saw nothing.
    She began blinking rapidly and moved away from the looking glasses.
    
    "Why is it others see things and I don't?" she said. "You sit down now,
    Sonya. You absolutely must, tonight! Do it for me.... Today I feel so
    frightened!"
    
    Sonya sat down before the glasses, got the right position, and began
    looking.
    
    "Now, Miss Sonya is sure to see something," whispered Dunyasha; "while
    you do nothing but laugh."
    
    Sonya heard this and Natasha's whisper:
    
    "I know she will. She saw something last year."
    
    For about three minutes all were silent.
    
    "Of course she will!" whispered Natasha, but did not finish... suddenly
    Sonya pushed away the glass she was holding and covered her eyes with
    her hand.
    
    "Oh, Natasha!" she cried.
    
    "Did you see? Did you? What was it?" exclaimed Natasha, holding up the
    looking glass.
    
    Sonya had not seen anything, she was just wanting to blink and to get up
    when she heard Natasha say, "Of course she will!" She did not wish to
    disappoint either Dunyasha or Natasha, but it was hard to sit still. She
    did not herself know how or why the exclamation escaped her when she
    covered her eyes.
    
    "You saw him?" urged Natasha, seizing her hand.
    
    "Yes. Wait a bit... I... saw him," Sonya could not help saying, not yet
    knowing whom Natasha meant by him, Nicholas or Prince Andrew.
    
    "But why shouldn't I say I saw something? Others do see! Besides who can
    tell whether I saw anything or not?" flashed through Sonya's mind.
    
    "Yes, I saw him," she said.
    
    "How? Standing or lying?"
    
    "No, I saw... At first there was nothing, then I saw him lying down."
    
    "Andrew lying? Is he ill?" asked Natasha, her frightened eyes fixed on
    her friend.
    
    "No, on the contrary, on the contrary! His face was cheerful, and he
    turned to me." And when saying this she herself fancied she had really
    seen what she described.
    
    "Well, and then, Sonya?..."
    
    "After that, I could not make out what there was; something blue and
    red..."
    
    "Sonya! When will he come back? When shall I see him! O, God, how afraid
    I am for him and for myself and about everything!..." Natasha began, and
    without replying to Sonya's words of comfort she got into bed, and long
    after her candle was out lay open-eyed and motionless, gazing at the
    moonlight through the frosty windowpanes.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    Soon after the Christmas holidays Nicholas told his mother of his love
    for Sonya and of his firm resolve to marry her. The countess, who had
    long noticed what was going on between them and was expecting this
    declaration, listened to him in silence and then told her son that he
    might marry whom he pleased, but that neither she nor his father would
    give their blessing to such a marriage. Nicholas, for the first time,
    felt that his mother was displeased with him and that, despite her love
    for him, she would not give way. Coldly, without looking at her son, she
    sent for her husband and, when he came, tried briefly and coldly to
    inform him of the facts, in her son's presence, but unable to restrain
    herself she burst into tears of vexation and left the room. The old
    count began irresolutely to admonish Nicholas and beg him to abandon his
    purpose. Nicholas replied that he could not go back on his word, and his
    father, sighing and evidently disconcerted, very soon became silent and
    went in to the countess. In all his encounters with his son, the count
    was always conscious of his own guilt toward him for having wasted the
    family fortune, and so he could not be angry with him for refusing to
    marry an heiress and choosing the dowerless Sonya. On this occasion, he
    was only more vividly conscious of the fact that if his affairs had not
    been in disorder, no better wife for Nicholas than Sonya could have been
    wished for, and that no one but himself with his Mitenka and his
    uncomfortable habits was to blame for the condition of the family
    finances.
    
    The father and mother did not speak of the matter to their son again,
    but a few days later the countess sent for Sonya and, with a cruelty
    neither of them expected, reproached her niece for trying to catch
    Nicholas and for ingratitude. Sonya listened silently with downcast eyes
    to the countess' cruel words, without understanding what was required of
    her. She was ready to sacrifice everything for her benefactors. Self-
    sacrifice was her most cherished idea but in this case she could not see
    what she ought to sacrifice, or for whom. She could not help loving the
    countess and the whole Rostov family, but neither could she help loving
    Nicholas and knowing that his happiness depended on that love. She was
    silent and sad and did not reply. Nicholas felt the situation to be
    intolerable and went to have an explanation with his mother. He first
    implored her to forgive him and Sonya and consent to their marriage,
    then he threatened that if she molested Sonya he would at once marry her
    secretly.
    
    The countess, with a coldness her son had never seen in her before,
    replied that he was of age, that Prince Andrew was marrying without his
    father's consent, and he could do the same, but that she would never
    receive that intriguer as her daughter.
    
    Exploding at the word intriguer, Nicholas, raising his voice, told his
    mother he had never expected her to try to force him to sell his
    feelings, but if that were so, he would say for the last time.... But he
    had no time to utter the decisive word which the expression of his face
    caused his mother to await with terror, and which would perhaps have
    forever remained a cruel memory to them both. He had not time to say it,
    for Natasha, with a pale and set face, entered the room from the door at
    which she had been listening.
    
    "Nicholas, you are talking nonsense! Be quiet, be quiet, be quiet, I
    tell you!..." she almost screamed, so as to drown his voice.
    
    "Mamma darling, it's not at all so... my poor, sweet darling," she said
    to her mother, who conscious that they had been on the brink of a
    rupture gazed at her son with terror, but in the obstinacy and
    excitement of the conflict could not and would not give way.
    
    "Nicholas, I'll explain to you. Go away! Listen, Mamma darling," said
    Natasha.
    
    Her words were incoherent, but they attained the purpose at which she
    was aiming.
    
    The countess, sobbing heavily, hid her face on her daughter's breast,
    while Nicholas rose, clutching his head, and left the room.
    
    Natasha set to work to effect a reconciliation, and so far succeeded
    that Nicholas received a promise from his mother that Sonya should not
    be troubled, while he on his side promised not to undertake anything
    without his parents' knowledge.
    
    Firmly resolved, after putting his affairs in order in the regiment, to
    retire from the army and return and marry Sonya, Nicholas, serious,
    sorrowful, and at variance with his parents, but, as it seemed to him,
    passionately in love, left at the beginning of January to rejoin his
    regiment.
    
    After Nicholas had gone things in the Rostov household were more
    depressing than ever, and the countess fell ill from mental agitation.
    
    Sonya was unhappy at the separation from Nicholas and still more so on
    account of the hostile tone the countess could not help adopting toward
    her. The count was more perturbed than ever by the condition of his
    affairs, which called for some decisive action. Their town house and
    estate near Moscow had inevitably to be sold, and for this they had to
    go to Moscow. But the countess' health obliged them to delay their
    departure from day to day.
    
    Natasha, who had borne the first period of separation from her betrothed
    lightly and even cheerfully, now grew more agitated and impatient every
    day. The thought that her best days, which she would have employed in
    loving him, were being vainly wasted, with no advantage to anyone,
    tormented her incessantly. His letters for the most part irritated her.
    It hurt her to think that while she lived only in the thought of him, he
    was living a real life, seeing new places and new people that interested
    him. The more interesting his letters were the more vexed she felt. Her
    letters to him, far from giving her any comfort, seemed to her a
    wearisome and artificial obligation. She could not write, because she
    could not conceive the possibility of expressing sincerely in a letter
    even a thousandth part of what she expressed by voice, smile, and
    glance. She wrote to him formal, monotonous, and dry letters, to which
    she attached no importance herself, and in the rough copies of which the
    countess corrected her mistakes in spelling.
    
    There was still no improvement in the countess' health, but it was
    impossible to defer the journey to Moscow any longer. Natasha's
    trousseau had to be ordered and the house sold. Moreover, Prince Andrew
    was expected in Moscow, where old Prince Bolkonski was spending the
    winter, and Natasha felt sure he had already arrived.
    
    So the countess remained in the country, and the count, taking Sonya and
    Natasha with him, went to Moscow at the end of January.
    
    BOOK EIGHT: 1811 - 12
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    After Prince Andrew's engagement to Natasha, Pierre without any apparent
    cause suddenly felt it impossible to go on living as before. Firmly
    convinced as he was of the truths revealed to him by his benefactor, and
    happy as he had been in perfecting his inner man, to which he had
    devoted himself with such ardor--all the zest of such a life vanished
    after the engagement of Andrew and Natasha and the death of Joseph
    Alexeevich, the news of which reached him almost at the same time. Only
    the skeleton of life remained: his house, a brilliant wife who now
    enjoyed the favors of a very important personage, acquaintance with all
    Petersburg, and his court service with its dull formalities. And this
    life suddenly seemed to Pierre unexpectedly loathsome. He ceased keeping
    a diary, avoided the company of the Brothers, began going to the club
    again, drank a great deal, and came once more in touch with the bachelor
    sets, leading such a life that the Countess Helene thought it necessary
    to speak severely to him about it. Pierre felt that she was right, and
    to avoid compromising her went away to Moscow.
    
    In Moscow as soon as he entered his huge house in which the faded and
    fading princesses still lived, with its enormous retinue; as soon as,
    driving through the town, he saw the Iberian shrine with innumerable
    tapers burning before the golden covers of the icons, the Kremlin Square
    with its snow undisturbed by vehicles, the sleigh drivers and hovels of
    the Sivtsev Vrazhok, those old Moscovites who desired nothing, hurried
    nowhere, and were ending their days leisurely; when he saw those old
    Moscow ladies, the Moscow balls, and the English Club, he felt himself
    at home in a quiet haven. In Moscow he felt at peace, at home, warm and
    dirty as in an old dressing gown.
    
    Moscow society, from the old women down to the children, received Pierre
    like a long-expected guest whose place was always ready awaiting him.
    For Moscow society Pierre was the nicest, kindest, most intellectual,
    merriest, and most magnanimous of cranks, a heedless, genial nobleman of
    the old Russian type. His purse was always empty because it was open to
    everyone.
    
    Benefit performances, poor pictures, statues, benevolent societies,
    gypsy choirs, schools, subscription dinners, sprees, Freemasons,
    churches, and books--no one and nothing met with a refusal from him, and
    had it not been for two friends who had borrowed large sums from him and
    taken him under their protection, he would have given everything away.
    There was never a dinner or soiree at the club without him. As soon as
    he sank into his place on the sofa after two bottles of Margaux he was
    surrounded, and talking, disputing, and joking began. When there were
    quarrels, his kindly smile and well-timed jests reconciled the
    antagonists. The masonic dinners were dull and dreary when he was not
    there.
    
    When after a bachelor supper he rose with his amiable and kindly smile,
    yielding to the entreaties of the festive company to drive off somewhere
    with them, shouts of delight and triumph arose among the young men. At
    balls he danced if a partner was needed. Young ladies, married and
    unmarried, liked him because without making love to any of them, he was
    equally amiable to all, especially after supper. "Il est charmant; il
    n'a pas de sexe," * they said of him.
    
    * "He is charming; he has no sex."
    
    Pierre was one of those retired gentlemen-in-waiting of whom there were
    hundreds good-humoredly ending their days in Moscow.
    
    How horrified he would have been seven years before, when he first
    arrived from abroad, had he been told that there was no need for him to
    seek or plan anything, that his rut had long been shaped, eternally
    predetermined, and that wriggle as he might, he would be what all in his
    position were. He could not have believed it! Had he not at one time
    longed with all his heart to establish a republic in Russia; then
    himself to be a Napoleon; then to be a philosopher; and then a
    strategist and the conqueror of Napoleon? Had he not seen the
    possibility of, and passionately desired, the regeneration of the sinful
    human race, and his own progress to the highest degree of perfection?
    Had he not established schools and hospitals and liberated his serfs?
    
    But instead of all that--here he was, the wealthy husband of an
    unfaithful wife, a retired gentleman-in-waiting, fond of eating and
    drinking and, as he unbuttoned his waistcoat, of abusing the government
    a bit, a member of the Moscow English Club, and a universal favorite in
    Moscow society. For a long time he could not reconcile himself to the
    idea that he was one of those same retired Moscow gentlemen-in-waiting
    he had so despised seven years before.
    
    Sometimes he consoled himself with the thought that he was only living
    this life temporarily; but then he was shocked by the thought of how
    many, like himself, had entered that life and that club temporarily,
    with all their teeth and hair, and had only left it when not a single
    tooth or hair remained.
    
    In moments of pride, when he thought of his position it seemed to him
    that he was quite different and distinct from those other retired
    gentlemen-in-waiting he had formerly despised: they were empty, stupid,
    contented fellows, satisfied with their position, "while I am still
    discontented and want to do something for mankind. But perhaps all these
    comrades of mine struggled just like me and sought something new, a path
    in life of their own, and like me were brought by force of
    circumstances, society, and race--by that elemental force against which
    man is powerless--to the condition I am in," said he to himself in
    moments of humility; and after living some time in Moscow he no longer
    despised, but began to grow fond of, to respect, and to pity his
    comrades in destiny, as he pitied himself.
    
    Pierre no longer suffered moments of despair, hypochondria, and disgust
    with life, but the malady that had formerly found expression in such
    acute attacks was driven inwards and never left him for a moment. "What
    for? Why? What is going on in the world?" he would ask himself in
    perplexity several times a day, involuntarily beginning to reflect anew
    on the meaning of the phenomena of life; but knowing by experience that
    there were no answers to these questions he made haste to turn away from
    them, and took up a book, or hurried off to the club or to Apollon
    Nikolaevich's, to exchange the gossip of the town.
    
    "Helene, who has never cared for anything but her own body and is one of
    the stupidest women in the world," thought Pierre, "is regarded by
    people as the acme of intelligence and refinement, and they pay homage
    to her. Napoleon Bonaparte was despised by all as long as he was great,
    but now that he has become a wretched comedian the Emperor Francis wants
    to offer him his daughter in an illegal marriage. The Spaniards, through
    the Catholic clergy, offer praise to God for their victory over the
    French on the fourteenth of June, and the French, also through the
    Catholic clergy, offer praise because on that same fourteenth of June
    they defeated the Spaniards. My brother Masons swear by the blood that
    they are ready to sacrifice everything for their neighbor, but they do
    not give a ruble each to the collections for the poor, and they
    intrigue, the Astraea Lodge against the Manna Seekers, and fuss about an
    authentic Scotch carpet and a charter that nobody needs, and the meaning
    of which the very man who wrote it does not understand. We all profess
    the Christian law of forgiveness of injuries and love of our neighbors,
    the law in honor of which we have built in Moscow forty times forty
    churches--but yesterday a deserter was knouted to death and a minister
    of that same law of love and forgiveness, a priest, gave the soldier a
    cross to kiss before his execution." So thought Pierre, and the whole of
    this general deception which everyone accepts, accustomed as he was to
    it, astonished him each time as if it were something new. "I understand
    the deception and confusion," he thought, "but how am I to tell them all
    that I see? I have tried, and have always found that they too in the
    depths of their souls understand it as I do, and only try not to see it.
    So it appears that it must be so! But I--what is to become of me?"
    thought he. He had the unfortunate capacity many men, especially
    Russians, have of seeing and believing in the possibility of goodness
    and truth, but of seeing the evil and falsehood of life too clearly to
    be able to take a serious part in it. Every sphere of work was
    connected, in his eyes, with evil and deception. Whatever he tried to
    be, whatever he engaged in, the evil and falsehood of it repulsed him
    and blocked every path of activity. Yet he had to live and to find
    occupation. It was too dreadful to be under the burden of these
    insoluble problems, so he abandoned himself to any distraction in order
    to forget them. He frequented every kind of society, drank much, bought
    pictures, engaged in building, and above all--read.
    
    He read, and read everything that came to hand. On coming home, while
    his valets were still taking off his things, he picked up a book and
    began to read. From reading he passed to sleeping, from sleeping to
    gossip in drawing rooms of the club, from gossip to carousals and women;
    from carousals back to gossip, reading, and wine. Drinking became more
    and more a physical and also a moral necessity. Though the doctors
    warned him that with his corpulence wine was dangerous for him, he drank
    a great deal. He was only quite at ease when having poured several
    glasses of wine mechanically into his large mouth he felt a pleasant
    warmth in his body, an amiability toward all his fellows, and a
    readiness to respond superficially to every idea without probing it
    deeply. Only after emptying a bottle or two did he feel dimly that the
    terribly tangled skein of life which previously had terrified him was
    not as dreadful as he had thought. He was always conscious of some
    aspect of that skein, as with a buzzing in his head after dinner or
    supper he chatted or listened to conversation or read. But under the
    influence of wine he said to himself: "It doesn't matter. I'll get it
    unraveled. I have a solution ready, but have no time now--I'll think it
    all out later on!" But the later on never came.
    
    In the morning, on an empty stomach, all the old questions appeared as
    insoluble and terrible as ever, and Pierre hastily picked up a book, and
    if anyone came to see him he was glad.
    
    Sometimes he remembered how he had heard that soldiers in war when
    entrenched under the enemy's fire, if they have nothing to do, try hard
    to find some occupation the more easily to bear the danger. To Pierre
    all men seemed like those soldiers, seeking refuge from life: some in
    ambition, some in cards, some in framing laws, some in women, some in
    toys, some in horses, some in politics, some in sport, some in wine, and
    some in governmental affairs. "Nothing is trivial, and nothing is
    important, it's all the same--only to save oneself from it as best one
    can," thought Pierre. "Only not to see it, that dreadful it!"
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    At the beginning of winter Prince Nicholas Bolkonski and his daughter
    moved to Moscow. At that time enthusiasm for the Emperor Alexander's
    regime had weakened and a patriotic and anti-French tendency prevailed
    there, and this, together with his past and his intellect and his
    originality, at once made Prince Nicholas Bolkonski an object of
    particular respect to the Moscovites and the center of the Moscow
    opposition to the government.
    
    The prince had aged very much that year. He showed marked signs of
    senility by a tendency to fall asleep, forgetfulness of quite recent
    events, remembrance of remote ones, and the childish vanity with which
    he accepted the role of head of the Moscow opposition. In spite of this
    the old man inspired in all his visitors alike a feeling of respectful
    veneration--especially of an evening when he came in to tea in his old-
    fashioned coat and powdered wig and, aroused by anyone, told his abrupt
    stories of the past, or uttered yet more abrupt and scathing criticisms
    of the present. For them all, that old-fashioned house with its gigantic
    mirrors, pre-Revolution furniture, powdered footmen, and the stern
    shrewd old man (himself a relic of the past century) with his gentle
    daughter and the pretty Frenchwoman who were reverently devoted to him
    presented a majestic and agreeable spectacle. But the visitors did not
    reflect that besides the couple of hours during which they saw their
    host, there were also twenty-two hours in the day during which the
    private and intimate life of the house continued.
    
    Latterly that private life had become very trying for Princess Mary.
    There in Moscow she was deprived of her greatest pleasures--talks with
    the pilgrims and the solitude which refreshed her at Bald Hills--and she
    had none of the advantages and pleasures of city life. She did not go
    out into society; everyone knew that her father would not let her go
    anywhere without him, and his failing health prevented his going out
    himself, so that she was not invited to dinners and evening parties. She
    had quite abandoned the hope of getting married. She saw the coldness
    and malevolence with which the old prince received and dismissed the
    young men, possible suitors, who sometimes appeared at their house. She
    had no friends: during this visit to Moscow she had been disappointed in
    the two who had been nearest to her. Mademoiselle Bourienne, with whom
    she had never been able to be quite frank, had now become unpleasant to
    her, and for various reasons Princess Mary avoided her. Julie, with whom
    she had corresponded for the last five years, was in Moscow, but proved
    to be quite alien to her when they met. Just then Julie, who by the
    death of her brothers had become one of the richest heiresses in Moscow,
    was in the full whirl of society pleasures. She was surrounded by young
    men who, she fancied, had suddenly learned to appreciate her worth.
    Julie was at that stage in the life of a society woman when she feels
    that her last chance of marrying has come and that her fate must be
    decided now or never. On Thursdays Princess Mary remembered with a
    mournful smile that she now had no one to write to, since Julie--whose
    presence gave her no pleasure was here and they met every week. Like the
    old emigre who declined to marry the lady with whom he had spent his
    evenings for years, she regretted Julie's presence and having no one to
    write to. In Moscow Princess Mary had no one to talk to, no one to whom
    to confide her sorrow, and much sorrow fell to her lot just then. The
    time for Prince Andrew's return and marriage was approaching, but his
    request to her to prepare his father for it had not been carried out; in
    fact, it seemed as if matters were quite hopeless, for at every mention
    of the young Countess Rostova the old prince (who apart from that was
    usually in a bad temper) lost control of himself. Another lately added
    sorrow arose from the lessons she gave her six year-old nephew. To her
    consternation she detected in herself in relation to little Nicholas
    some symptoms of her father's irritability. However often she told
    herself that she must not get irritable when teaching her nephew, almost
    every time that, pointer in hand, she sat down to show him the French
    alphabet, she so longed to pour her own knowledge quickly and easily
    into the child--who was already afraid that Auntie might at any moment
    get angry--that at his slightest inattention she trembled, became
    flustered and heated, raised her voice, and sometimes pulled him by the
    arm and put him in the corner. Having put him in the corner she would
    herself begin to cry over her cruel, evil nature, and little Nicholas,
    following her example, would sob, and without permission would leave his
    corner, come to her, pull her wet hands from her face, and comfort her.
    But what distressed the princess most of all was her father's
    irritability, which was always directed against her and had of late
    amounted to cruelty. Had he forced her to prostrate herself to the
    ground all night, had he beaten her or made her fetch wood or water, it
    would never have entered her mind to think her position hard; but this
    loving despot--the more cruel because he loved her and for that reason
    tormented himself and her--knew how not merely to hurt and humiliate her
    deliberately, but to show her that she was always to blame for
    everything. Of late he had exhibited a new trait that tormented Princess
    Mary more than anything else; this was his ever-increasing intimacy with
    Mademoiselle Bourienne. The idea that at the first moment of receiving
    the news of his son's intentions had occurred to him in jest--that if
    Andrew got married he himself would marry Bourienne--had evidently
    pleased him, and latterly he had persistently, and as it seemed to
    Princess Mary merely to offend her, shown special endearments to the
    companion and expressed his dissatisfaction with his daughter by
    demonstrations of love of Bourienne.
    
    One day in Moscow in Princess Mary's presence (she thought her father
    did it purposely when she was there) the old prince kissed Mademoiselle
    Bourienne's hand and, drawing her to him, embraced her affectionately.
    Princess Mary flushed and ran out of the room. A few minutes later
    Mademoiselle Bourienne came into Princess Mary's room smiling and making
    cheerful remarks in her agreeable voice. Princess Mary hastily wiped
    away her tears, went resolutely up to Mademoiselle Bourienne, and
    evidently unconscious of what she was doing began shouting in angry
    haste at the Frenchwoman, her voice breaking: "It's horrible, vile,
    inhuman, to take advantage of the weakness..." She did not finish.
    "Leave my room," she exclaimed, and burst into sobs.
    
    Next day the prince did not say a word to his daughter, but she noticed
    that at dinner he gave orders that Mademoiselle Bourienne should be
    served first. After dinner, when the footman handed coffee and from
    habit began with the princess, the prince suddenly grew furious, threw
    his stick at Philip, and instantly gave instructions to have him
    conscripted for the army.
    
    "He doesn't obey... I said it twice... and he doesn't obey! She is the
    first person in this house; she's my best friend," cried the prince.
    "And if you allow yourself," he screamed in a fury, addressing Princess
    Mary for the first time, "to forget yourself again before her as you
    dared to do yesterday, I will show you who is master in this house. Go!
    Don't let me set eyes on you; beg her pardon!"
    
    Princess Mary asked Mademoiselle Bourienne's pardon, and also her
    father's pardon for herself and for Philip the footman, who had begged
    for her intervention.
    
    At such moments something like a pride of sacrifice gathered in her
    soul. And suddenly that father whom she had judged would look for his
    spectacles in her presence, fumbling near them and not seeing them, or
    would forget something that had just occurred, or take a false step with
    his failing legs and turn to see if anyone had noticed his feebleness,
    or, worst of all, at dinner when there were no visitors to excite him
    would suddenly fall asleep, letting his napkin drop and his shaking head
    sink over his plate. "He is old and feeble, and I dare to condemn him!"
    she thought at such moments, with a feeling of revulsion against
    herself.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    In 1811 there was living in Moscow a French doctor--Metivier--who had
    rapidly become the fashion. He was enormously tall, handsome, amiable as
    Frenchmen are, and was, as all Moscow said, an extraordinarily clever
    doctor. He was received in the best houses not merely as a doctor, but
    as an equal.
    
    Prince Nicholas had always ridiculed medicine, but latterly on
    Mademoiselle Bourienne's advice had allowed this doctor to visit him and
    had grown accustomed to him. Metivier came to see the prince about twice
    a week.
    
    On December 6--St. Nicholas' Day and the prince's name day--all Moscow
    came to the prince's front door but he gave orders to admit no one and
    to invite to dinner only a small number, a list of whom he gave to
    Princess Mary.
    
    Metivier, who came in the morning with his felicitations, considered it
    proper in his quality of doctor de forcer la consigne, * as he told
    Princess Mary, and went in to see the prince. It happened that on that
    morning of his name day the prince was in one of his worst moods. He had
    been going about the house all the morning finding fault with everyone
    and pretending not to understand what was said to him and not to be
    understood himself. Princess Mary well knew this mood of quiet absorbed
    querulousness, which generally culminated in a burst of rage, and she
    went about all that morning as though facing a cocked and loaded gun and
    awaited the inevitable explosion. Until the doctor's arrival the morning
    had passed off safely. After admitting the doctor, Princess Mary sat
    down with a book in the drawing room near the door through which she
    could hear all that passed in the study.
    
    * To force the guard.
    
    At first she heard only Metivier's voice, then her father's, then both
    voices began speaking at the same time, the door was flung open, and on
    the threshold appeared the handsome figure of the terrified Metivier
    with his shock of black hair, and the prince in his dressing gown and
    fez, his face distorted with fury and the pupils of his eyes rolled
    downwards.
    
    "You don't understand?" shouted the prince, "but I do! French spy, slave
    of Buonaparte, spy, get out of my house! Be off, I tell you..."
    
    Metivier, shrugging his shoulders, went up to Mademoiselle Bourienne who
    at the sound of shouting had run in from an adjoining room.
    
    "The prince is not very well: bile and rush of blood to the head. Keep
    calm, I will call again tomorrow," said Metivier; and putting his
    fingers to his lips he hastened away.
    
    Through the study door came the sound of slippered feet and the cry:
    "Spies, traitors, traitors everywhere! Not a moment's peace in my own
    house!"
    
    After Metivier's departure the old prince called his daughter in, and
    the whole weight of his wrath fell on her. She was to blame that a spy
    had been admitted. Had he not told her, yes, told her to make a list,
    and not to admit anyone who was not on that list? Then why was that
    scoundrel admitted? She was the cause of it all. With her, he said, he
    could not have a moment's peace and could not die quietly.
    
    "No, ma'am! We must part, we must part! Understand that, understand it!
    I cannot endure any more," he said, and left the room. Then, as if
    afraid she might find some means of consolation, he returned and trying
    to appear calm added: "And don't imagine I have said this in a moment of
    anger. I am calm. I have thought it over, and it will be carried out--we
    must part; so find some place for yourself...." But he could not
    restrain himself and with the virulence of which only one who loves is
    capable, evidently suffering himself, he shook his fists at her and
    screamed:
    
    "If only some fool would marry her!" Then he slammed the door, sent for
    Mademoiselle Bourienne, and subsided into his study.
    
    At two o'clock the six chosen guests assembled for dinner.
    
    These guests--the famous Count Rostopchin, Prince Lopukhin with his
    nephew, General Chatrov an old war comrade of the prince's, and of the
    younger generation Pierre and Boris Drubetskoy--awaited the prince in
    the drawing room.
    
    Boris, who had come to Moscow on leave a few days before, had been
    anxious to be presented to Prince Nicholas Bolkonski, and had contrived
    to ingratiate himself so well that the old prince in his case made an
    exception to the rule of not receiving bachelors in his house.
    
    The prince's house did not belong to what is known as fashionable
    society, but his little circle--though not much talked about in town--
    was one it was more flattering to be received in than any other. Boris
    had realized this the week before when the commander-in-chief in his
    presence invited Rostopchin to dinner on St. Nicholas' Day, and
    Rostopchin had replied that he could not come:
    
    "On that day I always go to pay my devotions to the relics of Prince
    Nicholas Bolkonski."
    
    "Oh, yes, yes!" replied the commander-in-chief. "How is he?..."
    
    The small group that assembled before dinner in the lofty old-fashioned
    drawing room with its old furniture resembled the solemn gathering of a
    court of justice. All were silent or talked in low tones. Prince
    Nicholas came in serious and taciturn. Princess Mary seemed even quieter
    and more diffident than usual. The guests were reluctant to address her,
    feeling that she was in no mood for their conversation. Count Rostopchin
    alone kept the conversation going, now relating the latest town news,
    and now the latest political gossip.
    
    Lopukhin and the old general occasionally took part in the conversation.
    Prince Bolkonski listened as a presiding judge receives a report, only
    now and then, silently or by a brief word, showing that he took heed of
    what was being reported to him. The tone of the conversation was such as
    indicated that no one approved of what was being done in the political
    world. Incidents were related evidently confirming the opinion that
    everything was going from bad to worse, but whether telling a story or
    giving an opinion the speaker always stopped, or was stopped, at the
    point beyond which his criticism might touch the sovereign himself.
    
    At dinner the talk turned on the latest political news: Napoleon's
    seizure of the Duke of Oldenburg's territory, and the Russian Note,
    hostile to Napoleon, which had been sent to all the European courts.
    
    "Bonaparte treats Europe as a pirate does a captured vessel," said Count
    Rostopchin, repeating a phrase he had uttered several times before. "One
    only wonders at the long-suffering or blindness of the crowned heads.
    Now the Pope's turn has come and Bonaparte doesn't scruple to depose the
    head of the Catholic Church--yet all keep silent! Our sovereign alone
    has protested against the seizure of the Duke of Oldenburg's territory,
    and even..." Count Rostopchin paused, feeling that he had reached the
    limit beyond which censure was impossible.
    
    "Other territories have been offered in exchange for the Duchy of
    Oldenburg," said Prince Bolkonski. "He shifts the Dukes about as I might
    move my serfs from Bald Hills to Bogucharovo or my Ryazan estates."
    
    "The Duke of Oldenburg bears his misfortunes with admirable strength of
    character and resignation," remarked Boris, joining in respectfully.
    
    He said this because on his journey from Petersburg he had had the honor
    of being presented to the Duke. Prince Bolkonski glanced at the young
    man as if about to say something in reply, but changed his mind,
    evidently considering him too young.
    
    "I have read our protests about the Oldenburg affair and was surprised
    how badly the Note was worded," remarked Count Rostopchin in the casual
    tone of a man dealing with a subject quite familiar to him.
    
    Pierre looked at Rostopchin with naive astonishment, not understanding
    why he should be disturbed by the bad composition of the Note.
    
    "Does it matter, Count, how the Note is worded," he asked, "so long as
    its substance is forcible?"
    
    "My dear fellow, with our five hundred thousand troops it should be easy
    to have a good style," returned Count Rostopchin.
    
    Pierre now understood the count's dissatisfaction with the wording of
    the Note.
    
    "One would have thought quill drivers enough had sprung up," remarked
    the old prince. "There in Petersburg they are always writing--not notes
    only but even new laws. My Andrew there has written a whole volume of
    laws for Russia. Nowadays they are always writing!" and he laughed
    unnaturally.
    
    There was a momentary pause in the conversation; the old general cleared
    his throat to draw attention.
    
    "Did you hear of the last event at the review in Petersburg? The figure
    cut by the new French ambassador."
    
    "Eh? Yes, I heard something: he said something awkward in His Majesty's
    presence."
    
    "His Majesty drew attention to the Grenadier division and to the march
    past," continued the general, "and it seems the ambassador took no
    notice and allowed himself to reply that: 'We in France pay no attention
    to such trifles!' The Emperor did not condescend to reply. At the next
    review, they say, the Emperor did not once deign to address him."
    
    All were silent. On this fact relating to the Emperor personally, it was
    impossible to pass any judgment.
    
    "Impudent fellows!" said the prince. "You know Metivier? I turned him
    out of my house this morning. He was here; they admitted him in spite of
    my request that they should let no one in," he went on, glancing angrily
    at his daughter.
    
    And he narrated his whole conversation with the French doctor and the
    reasons that convinced him that Metivier was a spy. Though these reasons
    were very insufficient and obscure, no one made any rejoinder.
    
    After the roast, champagne was served. The guests rose to congratulate
    the old prince. Princess Mary, too, went round to him.
    
    He gave her a cold, angry look and offered her his wrinkled, clean-
    shaven cheek to kiss. The whole expression of his face told her that he
    had not forgotten the morning's talk, that his decision remained in
    force, and only the presence of visitors hindered his speaking of it to
    her now.
    
    When they went into the drawing room where coffee was served, the old
    men sat together.
    
    Prince Nicholas grew more animated and expressed his views on the
    impending war.
    
    He said that our wars with Bonaparte would be disastrous so long as we
    sought alliances with the Germans and thrust ourselves into European
    affairs, into which we had been drawn by the Peace of Tilsit. "We ought
    not to fight either for or against Austria. Our political interests are
    all in the East, and in regard to Bonaparte the only thing is to have an
    armed frontier and a firm policy, and he will never dare to cross the
    Russian frontier, as was the case in 1807!"
    
    "How can we fight the French, Prince?" said Count Rostopchin. "Can we
    arm ourselves against our teachers and divinities? Look at our youths,
    look at our ladies! The French are our Gods: Paris is our Kingdom of
    Heaven."
    
    He began speaking louder, evidently to be heard by everyone.
    
    "French dresses, French ideas, French feelings! There now, you turned
    Metivier out by the scruff of his neck because he is a Frenchman and a
    scoundrel, but our ladies crawl after him on their knees. I went to a
    party last night, and there out of five ladies three were Roman
    Catholics and had the Pope's indulgence for doing woolwork on Sundays.
    And they themselves sit there nearly naked, like the signboards at our
    Public Baths if I may say so. Ah, when one looks at our young people,
    Prince, one would like to take Peter the Great's old cudgel out of the
    museum and belabor them in the Russian way till all the nonsense jumps
    out of them."
    
    All were silent. The old prince looked at Rostopchin with a smile and
    wagged his head approvingly.
    
    "Well, good-by, your excellency, keep well!" said Rostopchin, getting up
    with characteristic briskness and holding out his hand to the prince.
    
    "Good-bye, my dear fellow.... His words are music, I never tire of
    hearing him!" said the old prince, keeping hold of the hand and offering
    his cheek to be kissed.
    
    Following Rostopchin's example the others also rose.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Princess Mary as she sat listening to the old men's talk and
    faultfinding, understood nothing of what she heard; she only wondered
    whether the guests had all observed her father's hostile attitude toward
    her. She did not even notice the special attentions and amiabilities
    shown her during dinner by Boris Drubetskoy, who was visiting them for
    the third time already.
    
    Princess Mary turned with absent-minded questioning look to Pierre, who
    hat in hand and with a smile on his face was the last of the guests to
    approach her after the old prince had gone out and they were left alone
    in the drawing room.
    
    "May I stay a little longer?" he said, letting his stout body sink into
    an armchair beside her.
    
    "Oh yes," she answered. "You noticed nothing?" her look asked.
    
    Pierre was in an agreeable after-dinner mood. He looked straight before
    him and smiled quietly.
    
    "Have you known that young man long, Princess?" he asked.
    
    "Who?"
    
    "Drubetskoy."
    
    "No, not long..."
    
    "Do you like him?"
    
    "Yes, he is an agreeable young man.... Why do you ask me that?" said
    Princess Mary, still thinking of that morning's conversation with her
    father.
    
    "Because I have noticed that when a young man comes on leave from
    Petersburg to Moscow it is usually with the object of marrying an
    heiress."
    
    "You have observed that?" said Princess Mary.
    
    "Yes," returned Pierre with a smile, "and this young man now manages
    matters so that where there is a wealthy heiress there he is too. I can
    read him like a book. At present he is hesitating whom to lay siege to--
    you or Mademoiselle Julie Karagina. He is very attentive to her."
    
    "He visits them?"
    
    "Yes, very often. And do you know the new way of courting?" said Pierre
    with an amused smile, evidently in that cheerful mood of good humored
    raillery for which he so often reproached himself in his diary.
    
    "No," replied Princess Mary.
    
    "To please Moscow girls nowadays one has to be melancholy. He is very
    melancholy with Mademoiselle Karagina," said Pierre.
    
    "Really?" asked Princess Mary, looking into Pierre's kindly face and
    still thinking of her own sorrow. "It would be a relief," thought she,
    "if I ventured to confide what I am feeling to someone. I should like to
    tell everything to Pierre. He is kind and generous. It would be a
    relief. He would give me advice."
    
    "Would you marry him?"
    
    "Oh, my God, Count, there are moments when I would marry anybody!" she
    cried suddenly to her own surprise and with tears in her voice. "Ah, how
    bitter it is to love someone near to you and to feel that..." she went
    on in a trembling voice, "that you can do nothing for him but grieve
    him, and to know that you cannot alter this. Then there is only one
    thing left--to go away, but where could I go?"
    
    "What is wrong? What is it, Princess?"
    
    But without finishing what she was saying, Princess Mary burst into
    tears.
    
    "I don't know what is the matter with me today. Don't take any notice--
    forget what I have said!"
    
    Pierre's gaiety vanished completely. He anxiously questioned the
    princess, asked her to speak out fully and confide her grief to him; but
    she only repeated that she begged him to forget what she had said, that
    she did not remember what she had said, and that she had no trouble
    except the one he knew of--that Prince Andrew's marriage threatened to
    cause a rupture between father and son.
    
    "Have you any news of the Rostovs?" she asked, to change the subject. "I
    was told they are coming soon. I am also expecting Andrew any day. I
    should like them to meet here."
    
    "And how does he now regard the matter?" asked Pierre, referring to the
    old prince.
    
    Princess Mary shook her head.
    
    "What is to be done? In a few months the year will be up. The thing is
    impossible. I only wish I could spare my brother the first moments. I
    wish they would come sooner. I hope to be friends with her. You have
    known them a long time," said Princess Mary. "Tell me honestly the whole
    truth: what sort of girl is she, and what do you think of her?--The real
    truth, because you know Andrew is risking so much doing this against his
    father's will that I should like to know..."
    
    An undefined instinct told Pierre that these explanations, and repeated
    requests to be told the whole truth, expressed ill-will on the princess'
    part toward her future sister-in-law and a wish that he should
    disapprove of Andrew's choice; but in reply he said what he felt rather
    than what he thought.
    
    "I don't know how to answer your question," he said, blushing without
    knowing why. "I really don't know what sort of girl she is; I can't
    analyze her at all. She is enchanting, but what makes her so I don't
    know. That is all one can say about her."
    
    Princess Mary sighed, and the expression on her face said: "Yes, that's
    what I expected and feared."
    
    "Is she clever?" she asked.
    
    Pierre considered.
    
    "I think not," he said, "and yet--yes. She does not deign to be
    clever.... Oh no, she is simply enchanting, and that is all."
    
    Princess Mary again shook her head disapprovingly.
    
    "Ah, I so long to like her! Tell her so if you see her before I do."
    
    "I hear they are expected very soon," said Pierre.
    
    Princess Mary told Pierre of her plan to become intimate with her future
    sister-in-law as soon as the Rostovs arrived and to try to accustom the
    old prince to her.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    Boris had not succeeded in making a wealthy match in Petersburg, so with
    the same object in view he came to Moscow. There he wavered between the
    two richest heiresses, Julie and Princess Mary. Though Princess Mary
    despite her plainness seemed to him more attractive than Julie, he,
    without knowing why, felt awkward about paying court to her. When they
    had last met on the old prince's name day, she had answered at random
    all his attempts to talk sentimentally, evidently not listening to what
    he was saying.
    
    Julie on the contrary accepted his attentions readily, though in a
    manner peculiar to herself.
    
    She was twenty-seven. After the death of her brothers she had become
    very wealthy. She was by now decidedly plain, but thought herself not
    merely as good-looking as before but even far more attractive. She was
    confirmed in this delusion by the fact that she had become a very
    wealthy heiress and also by the fact that the older she grew the less
    dangerous she became to men, and the more freely they could associate
    with her and avail themselves of her suppers, soirees, and the animated
    company that assembled at her house, without incurring any obligation. A
    man who would have been afraid ten years before of going every day to
    the house when there was a girl of seventeen there, for fear of
    compromising her and committing himself, would now go boldly every day
    and treat her not as a marriageable girl but as a sexless acquaintance.
    
    That winter the Karagins' house was the most agreeable and hospitable in
    Moscow. In addition to the formal evening and dinner parties, a large
    company, chiefly of men, gathered there every day, supping at midnight
    and staying till three in the morning. Julie never missed a ball, a
    promenade, or a play. Her dresses were always of the latest fashion. But
    in spite of that she seemed to be disillusioned about everything and
    told everyone that she did not believe either in friendship or in love,
    or any of the joys of life, and expected peace only "yonder." She
    adopted the tone of one who has suffered a great disappointment, like a
    girl who has either lost the man she loved or been cruelly deceived by
    him. Though nothing of the kind had happened to her she was regarded in
    that light, and had even herself come to believe that she had suffered
    much in life. This melancholy, which did not prevent her amusing
    herself, did not hinder the young people who came to her house from
    passing the time pleasantly. Every visitor who came to the house paid
    his tribute to the melancholy mood of the hostess, and then amused
    himself with society gossip, dancing, intellectual games, and bouts
    rimes, which were in vogue at the Karagins'. Only a few of these young
    men, among them Boris, entered more deeply into Julie's melancholy, and
    with these she had prolonged conversations in private on the vanity of
    all worldly things, and to them she showed her albums filled with
    mournful sketches, maxims, and verses.
    
    To Boris, Julie was particularly gracious: she regretted his early
    disillusionment with life, offered him such consolation of friendship as
    she who had herself suffered so much could render, and showed him her
    album. Boris sketched two trees in the album and wrote: "Rustic trees,
    your dark branches shed gloom and melancholy upon me."
    
    On another page he drew a tomb, and wrote:
    
    La mort est secourable et la mort est tranquille. Ah! contre les
    douleurs il n'y a pas d'autre asile. *
    
    * Death gives relief and death is peaceful.
    
    Ah! from suffering there is no other refuge.
    
    Julie said this was charming
    
    "There is something so enchanting in the smile of melancholy," she said
    to Boris, repeating word for word a passage she had copied from a book.
    "It is a ray of light in the darkness, a shade between sadness and
    despair, showing the possibility of consolation."
    
    In reply Boris wrote these lines:
    
    Aliment de poison d'une ame trop sensible, Toi, sans qui le bonheur me
    serait impossible, Tendre melancholie, ah, viens me consoler, Viens
    calmer les tourments de ma sombre retraite, Et mele une douceur secrete
    A ces pleurs que je sens couler. *
    
    *Poisonous nourishment of a too sensitive soul, Thou, without whom
    happiness would for me be impossible, Tender melancholy, ah, come to
    console me, Come to calm the torments of my gloomy retreat, And mingle a
    secret sweetness With these tears that I feel to be flowing.
    
    For Boris, Julie played most doleful nocturnes on her harp. Boris read
    'Poor Liza' aloud to her, and more than once interrupted the reading
    because of the emotions that choked him. Meeting at large gatherings
    Julie and Boris looked on one another as the only souls who understood
    one another in a world of indifferent people.
    
    Anna Mikhaylovna, who often visited the Karagins, while playing cards
    with the mother made careful inquiries as to Julie's dowry (she was to
    have two estates in Penza and the Nizhegorod forests). Anna Mikhaylovna
    regarded the refined sadness that united her son to the wealthy Julie
    with emotion, and resignation to the Divine will.
    
    "You are always charming and melancholy, my dear Julie," she said to the
    daughter. "Boris says his soul finds repose at your house. He has
    suffered so many disappointments and is so sensitive," said she to the
    mother. "Ah, my dear, I can't tell you how fond I have grown of Julie
    latterly," she said to her son. "But who could help loving her? She is
    an angelic being! Ah, Boris, Boris!"--she paused. "And how I pity her
    mother," she went on; "today she showed me her accounts and letters from
    Penza (they have enormous estates there), and she, poor thing, has no
    one to help her, and they do cheat her so!"
    
    Boris smiled almost imperceptibly while listening to his mother. He
    laughed blandly at her naive diplomacy but listened to what she had to
    say, and sometimes questioned her carefully about the Penza and
    Nizhegorod estates.
    
    Julie had long been expecting a proposal from her melancholy adorer and
    was ready to accept it; but some secret feeling of repulsion for her,
    for her passionate desire to get married, for her artificiality, and a
    feeling of horror at renouncing the possibility of real love still
    restrained Boris. His leave was expiring. He spent every day and whole
    days at the Karagins', and every day on thinking the matter over told
    himself that he would propose tomorrow. But in Julie's presence, looking
    at her red face and chin (nearly always powdered), her moist eyes, and
    her expression of continual readiness to pass at once from melancholy to
    an unnatural rapture of married bliss, Boris could not utter the
    decisive words, though in imagination he had long regarded himself as
    the possessor of those Penza and Nizhegorod estates and had apportioned
    the use of the income from them. Julie saw Boris' indecision, and
    sometimes the thought occurred to her that she was repulsive to him, but
    her feminine self-deception immediately supplied her with consolation,
    and she told herself that he was only shy from love. Her melancholy,
    however, began to turn to irritability, and not long before Boris'
    departure she formed a definite plan of action. Just as Boris' leave of
    absence was expiring, Anatole Kuragin made his appearance in Moscow, and
    of course in the Karagins' drawing room, and Julie, suddenly abandoning
    her melancholy, became cheerful and very attentive to Kuragin.
    
    "My dear," said Anna Mikhaylovna to her son, "I know from a reliable
    source that Prince Vasili has sent his son to Moscow to get him married
    to Julie. I am so fond of Julie that I should be sorry for her. What do
    you think of it, my dear?"
    
    The idea of being made a fool of and of having thrown away that whole
    month of arduous melancholy service to Julie, and of seeing all the
    revenue from the Penza estates which he had already mentally apportioned
    and put to proper use fall into the hands of another, and especially
    into the hands of that idiot Anatole, pained Boris. He drove to the
    Karagins' with the firm intention of proposing. Julie met him in a gay,
    careless manner, spoke casually of how she had enjoyed yesterday's ball,
    and asked when he was leaving. Though Boris had come intentionally to
    speak of his love and therefore meant to be tender, he began speaking
    irritably of feminine inconstancy, of how easily women can turn from
    sadness to joy, and how their moods depend solely on who happens to be
    paying court to them. Julie was offended and replied that it was true
    that a woman needs variety, and the same thing over and over again would
    weary anyone.
    
    "Then I should advise you..." Boris began, wishing to sting her; but at
    that instant the galling thought occurred to him that he might have to
    leave Moscow without having accomplished his aim, and have vainly wasted
    his efforts--which was a thing he never allowed to happen.
    
    He checked himself in the middle of the sentence, lowered his eyes to
    avoid seeing her unpleasantly irritated and irresolute face, and said:
    
    "I did not come here at all to quarrel with you. On the contrary..."
    
    He glanced at her to make sure that he might go on. Her irritability had
    suddenly quite vanished, and her anxious, imploring eyes were fixed on
    him with greedy expectation. "I can always arrange so as not to see her
    often," thought Boris. "The affair has been begun and must be finished!"
    He blushed hotly, raised his eyes to hers, and said:
    
    "You know my feelings for you!"
    
    There was no need to say more: Julie's face shone with triumph and self-
    satisfaction; but she forced Boris to say all that is said on such
    occasions--that he loved her and had never loved any other woman more
    than her. She knew that for the Penza estates and Nizhegorod forests she
    could demand this, and she received what she demanded.
    
    The affianced couple, no longer alluding to trees that shed gloom and
    melancholy upon them, planned the arrangements of a splendid house in
    Petersburg, paid calls, and prepared everything for a brilliant wedding.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    At the end of January old Count Rostov went to Moscow with Natasha and
    Sonya. The countess was still unwell and unable to travel but it was
    impossible to wait for her recovery. Prince Andrew was expected in
    Moscow any day, the trousseau had to be ordered and the estate near
    Moscow had to be sold, besides which the opportunity of presenting his
    future daughter-in-law to old Prince Bolkonski while he was in Moscow
    could not be missed. The Rostovs' Moscow house had not been heated that
    winter and, as they had come only for a short time and the countess was
    not with them, the count decided to stay with Marya Dmitrievna
    Akhrosimova, who had long been pressing her hospitality on them.
    
    Late one evening the Rostovs' four sleighs drove into Marya Dmitrievna's
    courtyard in the old Konyusheny street. Marya Dmitrievna lived alone.
    She had already married off her daughter, and her sons were all in the
    service.
    
    She held herself as erect, told everyone her opinion as candidly,
    loudly, and bluntly as ever, and her whole bearing seemed a reproach to
    others for any weakness, passion, or temptation--the possibility of
    which she did not admit. From early in the morning, wearing a dressing
    jacket, she attended to her household affairs, and then she drove out:
    on holy days to church and after the service to jails and prisons on
    affairs of which she never spoke to anyone. On ordinary days, after
    dressing, she received petitioners of various classes, of whom there
    were always some. Then she had dinner, a substantial and appetizing meal
    at which there were always three or four guests; after dinner she played
    a game of boston, and at night she had the newspapers or a new book read
    to her while she knitted. She rarely made an exception and went out to
    pay visits, and then only to the most important persons in the town.
    
    She had not yet gone to bed when the Rostovs arrived and the pulley of
    the hall door squeaked from the cold as it let in the Rostovs and their
    servants. Marya Dmitrievna, with her spectacles hanging down on her nose
    and her head flung back, stood in the hall doorway looking with a stern,
    grim face at the new arrivals. One might have thought she was angry with
    the travelers and would immediately turn them out, had she not at the
    same time been giving careful instructions to the servants for the
    accommodation of the visitors and their belongings.
    
    "The count's things? Bring them here," she said, pointing to the
    portmanteaus and not greeting anyone. "The young ladies'? There to the
    left. Now what are you dawdling for?" she cried to the maids. "Get the
    samovar ready!... You've grown plumper and prettier," she remarked,
    drawing Natasha (whose cheeks were glowing from the cold) to her by the
    hood. "Foo! You are cold! Now take off your things, quick!" she shouted
    to the count who was going to kiss her hand. "You're half frozen, I'm
    sure! Bring some rum for tea!... Bonjour, Sonya dear!" she added,
    turning to Sonya and indicating by this French greeting her slightly
    contemptuous though affectionate attitude toward her.
    
    When they came in to tea, having taken off their outdoor things and
    tidied themselves up after their journey, Marya Dmitrievna kissed them
    all in due order.
    
    "I'm heartily glad you have come and are staying with me. It was high
    time," she said, giving Natasha a significant look. "The old man is here
    and his son's expected any day. You'll have to make his acquaintance.
    But we'll speak of that later on," she added, glancing at Sonya with a
    look that showed she did not want to speak of it in her presence. "Now
    listen," she said to the count. "What do you want tomorrow? Whom will
    you send for? Shinshin?" she crooked one of her fingers. "The sniveling
    Anna Mikhaylovna? That's two. She's here with her son. The son is
    getting married! Then Bezukhov, eh? He is here too, with his wife. He
    ran away from her and she came galloping after him. He dined with me on
    Wednesday. As for them"--and she pointed to the girls--"tomorrow I'll
    take them first to the Iberian shrine of the Mother of God, and then
    we'll drive to the Super-Rogue's. I suppose you'll have everything new.
    Don't judge by me: sleeves nowadays are this size! The other day young
    Princess Irina Vasilevna came to see me; she was an awful sight--looked
    as if she had put two barrels on her arms. You know not a day passes now
    without some new fashion.... And what have you to do yourself?" she
    asked the count sternly.
    
    "One thing has come on top of another: her rags to buy, and now a
    purchaser has turned up for the Moscow estate and for the house. If you
    will be so kind, I'll fix a time and go down to the estate just for a
    day, and leave my lassies with you."
    
    "All right. All right. They'll be safe with me, as safe as in Chancery!
    I'll take them where they must go, scold them a bit, and pet them a
    bit," said Marya Dmitrievna, touching her goddaughter and favorite,
    Natasha, on the cheek with her large hand.
    
    Next morning Marya Dmitrievna took the young ladies to the Iberian
    shrine of the Mother of God and to Madame Suppert-Roguet, who was so
    afraid of Marya Dmitrievna that she always let her have costumes at a
    loss merely to get rid of her. Marya Dmitrievna ordered almost the whole
    trousseau. When they got home she turned everybody out of the room
    except Natasha, and then called her pet to her armchair.
    
    "Well, now we'll talk. I congratulate you on your betrothed. You've
    hooked a fine fellow! I am glad for your sake and I've known him since
    he was so high." She held her hand a couple of feet from the ground.
    Natasha blushed happily. "I like him and all his family. Now listen! You
    know that old Prince Nicholas much dislikes his son's marrying. The old
    fellow's crotchety! Of course Prince Andrew is not a child and can shift
    without him, but it's not nice to enter a family against a father's
    will. One wants to do it peacefully and lovingly. You're a clever girl
    and you'll know how to manage. Be kind, and use your wits. Then all will
    be well."
    
    Natasha remained silent, from shyness Marya Dmitrievna supposed, but
    really because she disliked anyone interfering in what touched her love
    of Prince Andrew, which seemed to her so apart from all human affairs
    that no one could understand it. She loved and knew Prince Andrew, he
    loved her only, and was to come one of these days and take her. She
    wanted nothing more.
    
    "You see I have known him a long time and am also fond of Mary, your
    future sister-in-law. 'Husbands' sisters bring up blisters,' but this
    one wouldn't hurt a fly. She has asked me to bring you two together.
    Tomorrow you'll go with your father to see her. Be very nice and
    affectionate to her: you're younger than she. When he comes, he'll find
    you already know his sister and father and are liked by them. Am I right
    or not? Won't that be best?"
    
    "Yes, it will," Natasha answered reluctantly.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Next day, by Marya Dmitrievna's advice, Count Rostov took Natasha to
    call on Prince Nicholas Bolkonski. The count did not set out cheerfully
    on this visit, at heart he felt afraid. He well remembered the last
    interview he had had with the old prince at the time of the enrollment,
    when in reply to an invitation to dinner he had had to listen to an
    angry reprimand for not having provided his full quota of men. Natasha,
    on the other hand, having put on her best gown, was in the highest
    spirits. "They can't help liking me," she thought. "Everybody always has
    liked me, and I am so willing to do anything they wish, so ready to be
    fond of him--for being his father--and of her--for being his sister--
    that there is no reason for them not to like me..."
    
    They drove up to the gloomy old house on the Vozdvizhenka and entered
    the vestibule.
    
    "Well, the Lord have mercy on us!" said the count, half in jest, half in
    earnest; but Natasha noticed that her father was flurried on entering
    the anteroom and inquired timidly and softly whether the prince and
    princess were at home.
    
    When they had been announced a perturbation was noticeable among the
    servants. The footman who had gone to announce them was stopped by
    another in the large hall and they whispered to one another. Then a
    maidservant ran into the hall and hurriedly said something, mentioning
    the princess. At last an old, cross looking footman came and announced
    to the Rostovs that the prince was not receiving, but that the princess
    begged them to walk up. The first person who came to meet the visitors
    was Mademoiselle Bourienne. She greeted the father and daughter with
    special politeness and showed them to the princess' room. The princess,
    looking excited and nervous, her face flushed in patches, ran in to meet
    the visitors, treading heavily, and vainly trying to appear cordial and
    at ease. From the first glance Princess Mary did not like Natasha. She
    thought her too fashionably dressed, frivolously gay and vain. She did
    not at all realize that before having seen her future sister-in-law she
    was prejudiced against her by involuntary envy of her beauty, youth, and
    happiness, as well as by jealousy of her brother's love for her. Apart
    from this insuperable antipathy to her, Princess Mary was agitated just
    then because on the Rostovs' being announced, the old prince had shouted
    that he did not wish to see them, that Princess Mary might do so if she
    chose, but they were not to be admitted to him. She had decided to
    receive them, but feared lest the prince might at any moment indulge in
    some freak, as he seemed much upset by the Rostovs' visit.
    
    "There, my dear princess, I've brought you my songstress," said the
    count, bowing and looking round uneasily as if afraid the old prince
    might appear. "I am so glad you should get to know one another... very
    sorry the prince is still ailing," and after a few more commonplace
    remarks he rose. "If you'll allow me to leave my Natasha in your hands
    for a quarter of an hour, Princess, I'll drive round to see Anna
    Semenovna, it's quite near in the Dogs' Square, and then I'll come back
    for her."
    
    The count had devised this diplomatic ruse (as he afterwards told his
    daughter) to give the future sisters-in-law an opportunity to talk to
    one another freely, but another motive was to avoid the danger of
    encountering the old prince, of whom he was afraid. He did not mention
    this to his daughter, but Natasha noticed her father's nervousness and
    anxiety and felt mortified by it. She blushed for him, grew still
    angrier at having blushed, and looked at the princess with a bold and
    defiant expression which said that she was not afraid of anybody. The
    princess told the count that she would be delighted, and only begged him
    to stay longer at Anna Semenovna's, and he departed.
    
    Despite the uneasy glances thrown at her by Princess Mary--who wished to
    have a tête-à-tête with Natasha--Mademoiselle Bourienne remained in the
    room and persistently talked about Moscow amusements and theaters.
    Natasha felt offended by the hesitation she had noticed in the anteroom,
    by her father's nervousness, and by the unnatural manner of the princess
    who--she thought--was making a favor of receiving her, and so everything
    displeased her. She did not like Princess Mary, whom she thought very
    plain, affected, and dry. Natasha suddenly shrank into herself and
    involuntarily assumed an offhand air which alienated Princess Mary still
    more. After five minutes of irksome, constrained conversation, they
    heard the sound of slippered feet rapidly approaching. Princess Mary
    looked frightened.
    
    The door opened and the old prince, in a dressing gown and a white
    nightcap, came in.
    
    "Ah, madam!" he began. "Madam, Countess... Countess Rostova, if I am not
    mistaken... I beg you to excuse me, to excuse me... I did not know,
    madam. God is my witness, I did not know you had honored us with a
    visit, and I came in such a costume only to see my daughter. I beg you
    to excuse me... God is my witness, I didn't know-" he repeated,
    stressing the word "God" so unnaturally and so unpleasantly that
    Princess Mary stood with downcast eyes not daring to look either at her
    father or at Natasha.
    
    Nor did the latter, having risen and curtsied, know what to do.
    Mademoiselle Bourienne alone smiled agreeably.
    
    "I beg you to excuse me, excuse me! God is my witness, I did not know,"
    muttered the old man, and after looking Natasha over from head to foot
    he went out.
    
    Mademoiselle Bourienne was the first to recover herself after this
    apparition and began speaking about the prince's indisposition. Natasha
    and Princess Mary looked at one another in silence, and the longer they
    did so without saying what they wanted to say, the greater grew their
    antipathy to one another.
    
    When the count returned, Natasha was impolitely pleased and hastened to
    get away: at that moment she hated the stiff, elderly princess, who
    could place her in such an embarrassing position and had spent half an
    hour with her without once mentioning Prince Andrew. "I couldn't begin
    talking about him in the presence of that Frenchwoman," thought Natasha.
    The same thought was meanwhile tormenting Princess Mary. She knew what
    she ought to have said to Natasha, but she had been unable to say it
    because Mademoiselle Bourienne was in the way, and because, without
    knowing why, she felt it very difficult to speak of the marriage. When
    the count was already leaving the room, Princess Mary went up hurriedly
    to Natasha, took her by the hand, and said with a deep sigh:
    
    "Wait, I must..."
    
    Natasha glanced at her ironically without knowing why.
    
    "Dear Natalie," said Princess Mary, "I want you to know that I am glad
    my brother has found happiness...."
    
    She paused, feeling that she was not telling the truth. Natasha noticed
    this and guessed its reason.
    
    "I think, Princess, it is not convenient to speak of that now," she said
    with external dignity and coldness, though she felt the tears choking
    her.
    
    "What have I said and what have I done?" thought she, as soon as she was
    out of the room.
    
    They waited a long time for Natasha to come to dinner that day. She sat
    in her room crying like a child, blowing her nose and sobbing. Sonya
    stood beside her, kissing her hair.
    
    "Natasha, what is it about?" she asked. "What do they matter to you? It
    will all pass, Natasha."
    
    "But if you only knew how offensive it was... as if I..."
    
    "Don't talk about it, Natasha. It wasn't your fault so why should you
    mind? Kiss me," said Sonya.
    
    Natasha raised her head and, kissing her friend on the lips, pressed her
    wet face against her.
    
    "I can't tell you, I don't know. No one's to blame," said Natasha--"It's
    my fault. But it all hurts terribly. Oh, why doesn't he come?..."
    
    She came in to dinner with red eyes. Marya Dmitrievna, who knew how the
    prince had received the Rostovs, pretended not to notice how upset
    Natasha was and jested resolutely and loudly at table with the count and
    the other guests.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    That evening the Rostovs went to the Opera, for which Marya Dmitrievna
    had taken a box.
    
    Natasha did not want to go, but could not refuse Marya Dmitrievna's kind
    offer which was intended expressly for her. When she came ready dressed
    into the ballroom to await her father, and looking in the large mirror
    there saw that she was pretty, very pretty, she felt even more sad, but
    it was a sweet, tender sadness.
    
    "O God, if he were here now I would not behave as I did then, but
    differently. I would not be silly and afraid of things, I would simply
    embrace him, cling to him, and make him look at me with those searching
    inquiring eyes with which he has so often looked at me, and then I would
    make him laugh as he used to laugh. And his eyes--how I see those eyes!"
    thought Natasha. "And what do his father and sister matter to me? I love
    him alone, him, him, with that face and those eyes, with his smile,
    manly and yet childlike.... No, I had better not think of him; not think
    of him but forget him, quite forget him for the present. I can't bear
    this waiting and I shall cry in a minute!" and she turned away from the
    glass, making an effort not to cry. "And how can Sonya love Nicholas so
    calmly and quietly and wait so long and so patiently?" thought she,
    looking at Sonya, who also came in quite ready, with a fan in her hand.
    "No, she's altogether different. I can't!"
    
    Natasha at that moment felt so softened and tender that it was not
    enough for her to love and know she was beloved, she wanted now, at
    once, to embrace the man she loved, to speak and hear from him words of
    love such as filled her heart. While she sat in the carriage beside her
    father, pensively watching the lights of the street lamps flickering on
    the frozen window, she felt still sadder and more in love, and forgot
    where she was going and with whom. Having fallen into the line of
    carriages, the Rostovs' carriage drove up to the theater, its wheels
    squeaking over the snow. Natasha and Sonya, holding up their dresses,
    jumped out quickly. The count got out helped by the footmen, and,
    passing among men and women who were entering and the program sellers,
    they all three went along the corridor to the first row of boxes.
    Through the closed doors the music was already audible.
    
    "Natasha, your hair!..." whispered Sonya.
    
    An attendant deferentially and quickly slipped before the ladies and
    opened the door of their box. The music sounded louder and through the
    door rows of brightly lit boxes in which ladies sat with bare arms and
    shoulders, and noisy stalls brilliant with uniforms, glittered before
    their eyes. A lady entering the next box shot a glance of feminine envy
    at Natasha. The curtain had not yet risen and the overture was being
    played. Natasha, smoothing her gown, went in with Sonya and sat down,
    scanning the brilliant tiers of boxes opposite. A sensation she had not
    experienced for a long time--that of hundreds of eyes looking at her
    bare arms and neck--suddenly affected her both agreeably and
    disagreeably and called up a whole crowd of memories, desires and
    emotions associated with that feeling.
    
    The two remarkably pretty girls, Natasha and Sonya, with Count Rostov
    who had not been seen in Moscow for a long time, attracted general
    attention. Moreover, everybody knew vaguely of Natasha's engagement to
    Prince Andrew, and knew that the Rostovs had lived in the country ever
    since, and all looked with curiosity at a fiancee who was making one of
    the best matches in Russia.
    
    Natasha's looks, as everyone told her, had improved in the country, and
    that evening thanks to her agitation she was particularly pretty. She
    struck those who saw her by her fullness of life and beauty, combined
    with her indifference to everything about her. Her black eyes looked at
    the crowd without seeking anyone, and her delicate arm, bare to above
    the elbow, lay on the velvet edge of the box, while, evidently
    unconsciously, she opened and closed her hand in time to the music,
    crumpling her program. "Look, there's Alenina," said Sonya, "with her
    mother, isn't it?"
    
    "Dear me, Michael Kirilovich has grown still stouter!" remarked the
    count.
    
    "Look at our Anna Mikhaylovna--what a headdress she has on!"
    
    "The Karagins, Julie--and Boris with them. One can see at once that
    they're engaged...."
    
    "Drubetskoy has proposed?"
    
    "Oh yes, I heard it today," said Shinshin, coming into the Rostovs' box.
    
    Natasha looked in the direction in which her father's eyes were turned
    and saw Julie sitting beside her mother with a happy look on her face
    and a string of pearls round her thick red neck--which Natasha knew was
    covered with powder. Behind them, wearing a smile and leaning over with
    an ear to Julie's mouth, was Boris' handsome smoothly brushed head. He
    looked at the Rostovs from under his brows and said something, smiling,
    to his betrothed.
    
    "They are talking about us, about me and him!" thought Natasha. "And he
    no doubt is calming her jealousy of me. They needn't trouble themselves!
    If only they knew how little I am concerned about any of them."
    
    Behind them sat Anna Mikhaylovna wearing a green headdress and with a
    happy look of resignation to the will of God on her face. Their box was
    pervaded by that atmosphere of an affianced couple which Natasha knew so
    well and liked so much. She turned away and suddenly remembered all that
    had been so humiliating in her morning's visit.
    
    "What right has he not to wish to receive me into his family? Oh, better
    not think of it--not till he comes back!" she told herself, and began
    looking at the faces, some strange and some familiar, in the stalls. In
    the front, in the very center, leaning back against the orchestra rail,
    stood Dolokhov in a Persian dress, his curly hair brushed up into a huge
    shock. He stood in full view of the audience, well aware that he was
    attracting everyone's attention, yet as much at ease as though he were
    in his own room. Around him thronged Moscow's most brilliant young men,
    whom he evidently dominated.
    
    The count, laughing, nudged the blushing Sonya and pointed to her former
    adorer.
    
    "Do you recognize him?" said he. "And where has he sprung from?" he
    asked, turning to Shinshin. "Didn't he vanish somewhere?"
    
    "He did," replied Shinshin. "He was in the Caucasus and ran away from
    there. They say he has been acting as minister to some ruling prince in
    Persia, where he killed the Shah's brother. Now all the Moscow ladies
    are mad about him! It's 'Dolokhov the Persian' that does it! We never
    hear a word but Dolokhov is mentioned. They swear by him, they offer him
    to you as they would a dish of choice sterlet. Dolokhov and Anatole
    Kuragin have turned all our ladies' heads."
    
    A tall, beautiful woman with a mass of plaited hair and much exposed
    plump white shoulders and neck, round which she wore a double string of
    large pearls, entered the adjoining box rustling her heavy silk dress
    and took a long time settling into her place.
    
    Natasha involuntarily gazed at that neck, those shoulders, and pearls
    and coiffure, and admired the beauty of the shoulders and the pearls.
    While Natasha was fixing her gaze on her for the second time the lady
    looked round and, meeting the count's eyes, nodded to him and smiled.
    She was the Countess Bezukhova, Pierre's wife, and the count, who knew
    everyone in society, leaned over and spoke to her.
    
    "Have you been here long, Countess?" he inquired. "I'll call, I'll call
    to kiss your hand. I'm here on business and have brought my girls with
    me. They say Semenova acts marvelously. Count Pierre never used to
    forget us. Is he here?"
    
    "Yes, he meant to look in," answered Helene, and glanced attentively at
    Natasha.
    
    Count Rostov resumed his seat.
    
    "Handsome, isn't she?" he whispered to Natasha.
    
    "Wonderful!" answered Natasha. "She's a woman one could easily fall in
    love with."
    
    Just then the last chords of the overture were heard and the conductor
    tapped with his stick. Some latecomers took their seats in the stalls,
    and the curtain rose.
    
    As soon as it rose everyone in the boxes and stalls became silent, and
    all the men, old and young, in uniform and evening dress, and all the
    women with gems on their bare flesh, turned their whole attention with
    eager curiosity to the stage. Natasha too began to look at it.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    The floor of the stage consisted of smooth boards, at the sides was some
    painted cardboard representing trees, and at the back was a cloth
    stretched over boards. In the center of the stage sat some girls in red
    bodices and white skirts. One very fat girl in a white silk dress sat
    apart on a low bench, to the back of which a piece of green cardboard
    was glued. They all sang something. When they had finished their song
    the girl in white went up to the prompter's box and a man with tight
    silk trousers over his stout legs, and holding a plume and a dagger,
    went up to her and began singing, waving his arms about.
    
    First the man in the tight trousers sang alone, then she sang, then they
    both paused while the orchestra played and the man fingered the hand of
    the girl in white, obviously awaiting the beat to start singing with
    her. They sang together and everyone in the theater began clapping and
    shouting, while the man and woman on the stage--who represented lovers--
    began smiling, spreading out their arms, and bowing.
    
    After her life in the country, and in her present serious mood, all this
    seemed grotesque and amazing to Natasha. She could not follow the opera
    nor even listen to the music; she saw only the painted cardboard and the
    queerly dressed men and women who moved, spoke, and sang so strangely in
    that brilliant light. She knew what it was all meant to represent, but
    it was so pretentiously false and unnatural that she first felt ashamed
    for the actors and then amused at them. She looked at the faces of the
    audience, seeking in them the same sense of ridicule and perplexity she
    herself experienced, but they all seemed attentive to what was happening
    on the stage, and expressed delight which to Natasha seemed feigned. "I
    suppose it has to be like this!" she thought. She kept looking round in
    turn at the rows of pomaded heads in the stalls and then at the seminude
    women in the boxes, especially at Helene in the next box, who--
    apparently quite unclothed--sat with a quiet tranquil smile, not taking
    her eyes off the stage. And feeling the bright light that flooded the
    whole place and the warm air heated by the crowd, Natasha little by
    little began to pass into a state of intoxication she had not
    experienced for a long while. She did not realize who and where she was,
    nor what was going on before her. As she looked and thought, the
    strangest fancies unexpectedly and disconnectedly passed through her
    mind: the idea occurred to her of jumping onto the edge of the box and
    singing the air the actress was singing, then she wished to touch with
    her fan an old gentleman sitting not far from her, then to lean over to
    Helene and tickle her.
    
    At a moment when all was quiet before the commencement of a song, a door
    leading to the stalls on the side nearest the Rostovs' box creaked, and
    the steps of a belated arrival were heard. "There's Kuragin!" whispered
    Shinshin. Countess Bezukhova turned smiling to the newcomer, and
    Natasha, following the direction of that look, saw an exceptionally
    handsome adjutant approaching their box with a self-assured yet
    courteous bearing. This was Anatole Kuragin whom she had seen and
    noticed long ago at the ball in Petersburg. He was now in an adjutant's
    uniform with one epaulet and a shoulder knot. He moved with a restrained
    swagger which would have been ridiculous had he not been so good-looking
    and had his handsome face not worn such an expression of good-humored
    complacency and gaiety. Though the performance was proceeding, he walked
    deliberately down the carpeted gangway, his sword and spurs slightly
    jingling and his handsome perfumed head held high. Having looked at
    Natasha he approached his sister, laid his well gloved hand on the edge
    of her box, nodded to her, and leaning forward asked a question, with a
    motion toward Natasha.
    
    "Mais charmante!" said he, evidently referring to Natasha, who did not
    exactly hear his words but understood them from the movement of his
    lips. Then he took his place in the first row of the stalls and sat down
    beside Dolokhov, nudging with his elbow in a friendly and offhand way
    that Dolokhov whom others treated so fawningly. He winked at him gaily,
    smiled, and rested his foot against the orchestra screen.
    
    "How like the brother is to the sister," remarked the count. "And how
    handsome they both are!"
    
    Shinshin, lowering his voice, began to tell the count of some intrigue
    of Kuragin's in Moscow, and Natasha tried to overhear it just because he
    had said she was "charmante."
    
    The first act was over. In the stalls everyone began moving about, going
    out and coming in.
    
    Boris came to the Rostovs' box, received their congratulations very
    simply, and raising his eyebrows with an absent-minded smile conveyed to
    Natasha and Sonya his fiancee's invitation to her wedding, and went
    away. Natasha with a gay, coquettish smile talked to him, and
    congratulated on his approaching wedding that same Boris with whom she
    had formerly been in love. In the state of intoxication she was in,
    everything seemed simple and natural.
    
    The scantily clad Helene smiled at everyone in the same way, and Natasha
    gave Boris a similar smile.
    
    Helene's box was filled and surrounded from the stalls by the most
    distinguished and intellectual men, who seemed to vie with one another
    in their wish to let everyone see that they knew her.
    
    During the whole of that entr'acte Kuragin stood with Dolokhov in front
    of the orchestra partition, looking at the Rostovs' box. Natasha knew he
    was talking about her and this afforded her pleasure. She even turned so
    that he should see her profile in what she thought was its most becoming
    aspect. Before the beginning of the second act Pierre appeared in the
    stalls. The Rostovs had not seen him since their arrival. His face
    looked sad, and he had grown still stouter since Natasha last saw him.
    He passed up to the front rows, not noticing anyone. Anatole went up to
    him and began speaking to him, looking at and indicating the Rostovs'
    box. On seeing Natasha Pierre grew animated and, hastily passing between
    the rows, came toward their box. When he got there he leaned on his
    elbows and, smiling, talked to her for a long time. While conversing
    with Pierre, Natasha heard a man's voice in Countess Bezukhova's box and
    something told her it was Kuragin. She turned and their eyes met. Almost
    smiling, he gazed straight into her eyes with such an enraptured
    caressing look that it seemed strange to be so near him, to look at him
    like that, to be so sure he admired her, and not to be acquainted with
    him.
    
    In the second act there was scenery representing tombstones, there was a
    round hole in the canvas to represent the moon, shades were raised over
    the footlights, and from horns and contrabass came deep notes while many
    people appeared from right and left wearing black cloaks and holding
    things like daggers in their hands. They began waving their arms. Then
    some other people ran in and began dragging away the maiden who had been
    in white and was now in light blue. They did not drag her away at once,
    but sang with her for a long time and then at last dragged her off, and
    behind the scenes something metallic was struck three times and everyone
    knelt down and sang a prayer. All these things were repeatedly
    interrupted by the enthusiastic shouts of the audience.
    
    During this act every time Natasha looked toward the stalls she saw
    Anatole Kuragin with an arm thrown across the back of his chair, staring
    at her. She was pleased to see that he was captivated by her and it did
    not occur to her that there was anything wrong in it.
    
    When the second act was over Countess Bezukhova rose, turned to the
    Rostovs' box--her whole bosom completely exposed--beckoned the old count
    with a gloved finger, and paying no attention to those who had entered
    her box began talking to him with an amiable smile.
    
    "Do make me acquainted with your charming daughters," said she. "The
    whole town is singing their praises and I don't even know them!"
    
    Natasha rose and curtsied to the splendid countess. She was so pleased
    by praise from this brilliant beauty that she blushed with pleasure.
    
    "I want to become a Moscovite too, now," said Helene. "How is it you're
    not ashamed to bury such pearls in the country?"
    
    Countess Bezukhova quite deserved her reputation of being a fascinating
    woman. She could say what she did not think--especially what was
    flattering--quite simply and naturally.
    
    "Dear count, you must let me look after your daughters! Though I am not
    staying here long this time--nor are you--I will try to amuse them. I
    have already heard much of you in Petersburg and wanted to get to know
    you," said she to Natasha with her stereotyped and lovely smile. "I had
    heard about you from my page, Drubetskoy. Have you heard he is getting
    married? And also from my husband's friend Bolkonski, Prince Andrew
    Bolkonski," she went on with special emphasis, implying that she knew of
    his relation to Natasha. To get better acquainted she asked that one of
    the young ladies should come into her box for the rest of the
    performance, and Natasha moved over to it.
    
    The scene of the third act represented a palace in which many candles
    were burning and pictures of knights with short beards hung on the
    walls. In the middle stood what were probably a king and a queen. The
    king waved his right arm and, evidently nervous, sang something badly
    and sat down on a crimson throne. The maiden who had been first in white
    and then in light blue, now wore only a smock, and stood beside the
    throne with her hair down. She sang something mournfully, addressing the
    queen, but the king waved his arm severely, and men and women with bare
    legs came in from both sides and began dancing all together. Then the
    violins played very shrilly and merrily and one of the women with thick
    bare legs and thin arms, separating from the others, went behind the
    wings, adjusted her bodice, returned to the middle of the stage, and
    began jumping and striking one foot rapidly against the other. In the
    stalls everyone clapped and shouted "bravo!" Then one of the men went
    into a corner of the stage. The cymbals and horns in the orchestra
    struck up more loudly, and this man with bare legs jumped very high and
    waved his feet about very rapidly. (He was Duport, who received sixty
    thousand rubles a year for this art.) Everybody in the stalls, boxes,
    and galleries began clapping and shouting with all their might, and the
    man stopped and began smiling and bowing to all sides. Then other men
    and women danced with bare legs. Then the king again shouted to the
    sound of music, and they all began singing. But suddenly a storm came
    on, chromatic scales and diminished sevenths were heard in the
    orchestra, everyone ran off, again dragging one of their number away,
    and the curtain dropped. Once more there was a terrible noise and
    clatter among the audience, and with rapturous faces everyone began
    shouting: "Duport! Duport! Duport!" Natasha no longer thought this
    strange. She looked about with pleasure, smiling joyfully.
    
    "Isn't Duport delightful?" Helene asked her.
    
    "Oh, yes," replied Natasha.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    During the entr'acte a whiff of cold air came into Helene's box, the
    door opened, and Anatole entered, stooping and trying not to brush
    against anyone.
    
    "Let me introduce my brother to you," said Helene, her eyes shifting
    uneasily from Natasha to Anatole.
    
    Natasha turned her pretty little head toward the elegant young officer
    and smiled at him over her bare shoulder. Anatole, who was as handsome
    at close quarters as at a distance, sat down beside her and told her he
    had long wished to have this happiness--ever since the Naryshkins' ball
    in fact, at which he had had the well-remembered pleasure of seeing her.
    Kuragin was much more sensible and simple with women than among men. He
    talked boldly and naturally, and Natasha was strangely and agreeably
    struck by the fact that there was nothing formidable in this man about
    whom there was so much talk, but that on the contrary his smile was most
    naive, cheerful, and good-natured.
    
    Kuragin asked her opinion of the performance and told her how at a
    previous performance Semenova had fallen down on the stage.
    
    "And do you know, Countess," he said, suddenly addressing her as an old,
    familiar acquaintance, "we are getting up a costume tournament; you
    ought to take part in it! It will be great fun. We shall all meet at the
    Karagins'! Please come! No! Really, eh?" said he.
    
    While saying this he never removed his smiling eyes from her face, her
    neck, and her bare arms. Natasha knew for certain that he was enraptured
    by her. This pleased her, yet his presence made her feel constrained and
    oppressed. When she was not looking at him she felt that he was looking
    at her shoulders, and she involuntarily caught his eye so that he should
    look into hers rather than this. But looking into his eyes she was
    frightened, realizing that there was not that barrier of modesty she had
    always felt between herself and other men. She did not know how it was
    that within five minutes she had come to feel herself terribly near to
    this man. When she turned away she feared he might seize her from behind
    by her bare arm and kiss her on the neck. They spoke of most ordinary
    things, yet she felt that they were closer to one another than she had
    ever been to any man. Natasha kept turning to Helene and to her father,
    as if asking what it all meant, but Helene was engaged in conversation
    with a general and did not answer her look, and her father's eyes said
    nothing but what they always said: "Having a good time? Well, I'm glad
    of it!"
    
    During one of these moments of awkward silence when Anatole's prominent
    eyes were gazing calmly and fixedly at her, Natasha, to break the
    silence, asked him how he liked Moscow. She asked the question and
    blushed. She felt all the time that by talking to him she was doing
    something improper. Anatole smiled as though to encourage her.
    
    "At first I did not like it much, because what makes a town pleasant ce
    sont les jolies femmes, * isn't that so? But now I like it very much
    indeed," he said, looking at her significantly. "You'll come to the
    costume tournament, Countess? Do come!" and putting out his hand to her
    bouquet and dropping his voice, he added, "You will be the prettiest
    there. Do come, dear countess, and give me this flower as a pledge!"
    
    * Are the pretty women.
    
    Natasha did not understand what he was saying any more than he did
    himself, but she felt that his incomprehensible words had an improper
    intention. She did not know what to say and turned away as if she had
    not heard his remark. But as soon as she had turned away she felt that
    he was there, behind, so close behind her.
    
    "How is he now? Confused? Angry? Ought I to put it right?" she asked
    herself, and she could not refrain from turning round. She looked
    straight into his eyes, and his nearness, self-assurance, and the good-
    natured tenderness of his smile vanquished her. She smiled just as he
    was doing, gazing straight into his eyes. And again she felt with horror
    that no barrier lay between him and her.
    
    The curtain rose again. Anatole left the box, serene and gay. Natasha
    went back to her father in the other box, now quite submissive to the
    world she found herself in. All that was going on before her now seemed
    quite natural, but on the other hand all her previous thoughts of her
    betrothed, of Princess Mary, or of life in the country did not once
    recur to her mind and were as if belonging to a remote past.
    
    In the fourth act there was some sort of devil who sang waving his arm
    about, till the boards were withdrawn from under him and he disappeared
    down below. That was the only part of the fourth act that Natasha saw.
    She felt agitated and tormented, and the cause of this was Kuragin whom
    she could not help watching. As they were leaving the theater Anatole
    came up to them, called their carriage, and helped them in. As he was
    putting Natasha in he pressed her arm above the elbow. Agitated and
    flushed she turned round. He was looking at her with glittering eyes,
    smiling tenderly.
    
    Only after she had reached home was Natasha able clearly to think over
    what had happened to her, and suddenly remembering Prince Andrew she was
    horrified, and at tea to which all had sat down after the opera, she
    gave a loud exclamation, flushed, and ran out of the room.
    
    "O God! I am lost!" she said to herself. "How could I let him?" She sat
    for a long time hiding her flushed face in her hands trying to realize
    what had happened to her, but was unable either to understand what had
    happened or what she felt. Everything seemed dark, obscure, and
    terrible. There in that enormous, illuminated theater where the bare-
    legged Duport, in a tinsel-decorated jacket, jumped about to the music
    on wet boards, and young girls and old men, and the nearly naked Helene
    with her proud, calm smile, rapturously cried "bravo!"--there in the
    presence of that Helene it had all seemed clear and simple; but now,
    alone by herself, it was incomprehensible. "What is it? What was that
    terror I felt of him? What is this gnawing of conscience I am feeling
    now?" she thought.
    
    Only to the old countess at night in bed could Natasha have told all she
    was feeling. She knew that Sonya with her severe and simple views would
    either not understand it at all or would be horrified at such a
    confession. So Natasha tried to solve what was torturing her by herself.
    
    "Am I spoiled for Andrew's love or not?" she asked herself, and with
    soothing irony replied: "What a fool I am to ask that! What did happen
    to me? Nothing! I have done nothing, I didn't lead him on at all. Nobody
    will know and I shall never see him again," she told herself. "So it is
    plain that nothing has happened and there is nothing to repent of, and
    Andrew can love me still. But why 'still?' O God, why isn't he here?"
    Natasha quieted herself for a moment, but again some instinct told her
    that though all this was true, and though nothing had happened, yet the
    former purity of her love for Prince Andrew had perished. And again in
    imagination she went over her whole conversation with Kuragin, and again
    saw the face, gestures, and tender smile of that bold handsome man when
    he pressed her arm.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Anatole Kuragin was staying in Moscow because his father had sent him
    away from Petersburg, where he had been spending twenty thousand rubles
    a year in cash, besides running up debts for as much more, which his
    creditors demanded from his father.
    
    His father announced to him that he would now pay half his debts for the
    last time, but only on condition that he went to Moscow as adjutant to
    the commander-in-chief--a post his father had procured for him--and
    would at last try to make a good match there. He indicated to him
    Princess Mary and Julie Karagina.
    
    Anatole consented and went to Moscow, where he put up at Pierre's house.
    Pierre received him unwillingly at first, but got used to him after a
    while, sometimes even accompanied him on his carousals, and gave him
    money under the guise of loans.
    
    As Shinshin had remarked, from the time of his arrival Anatole had
    turned the heads of the Moscow ladies, especially by the fact that he
    slighted them and plainly preferred the gypsy girls and French
    actresses--with the chief of whom, Mademoiselle George, he was said to
    be on intimate relations. He had never missed a carousal at Danilov's or
    other Moscow revelers', drank whole nights through, outvying everyone
    else, and was at all the balls and parties of the best society. There
    was talk of his intrigues with some of the ladies, and he flirted with a
    few of them at the balls. But he did not run after the unmarried girls,
    especially the rich heiresses who were most of them plain. There was a
    special reason for this, as he had got married two years before--a fact
    known only to his most intimate friends. At that time while with his
    regiment in Poland, a Polish landowner of small means had forced him to
    marry his daughter. Anatole had very soon abandoned his wife and, for a
    payment which he agreed to send to his father-in-law, had arranged to be
    free to pass himself off as a bachelor.
    
    Anatole was always content with his position, with himself, and with
    others. He was instinctively and thoroughly convinced that it was
    impossible for him to live otherwise than as he did and that he had
    never in his life done anything base. He was incapable of considering
    how his actions might affect others or what the consequences of this or
    that action of his might be. He was convinced that, as a duck is so made
    that it must live in water, so God had made him such that he must spend
    thirty thousand rubles a year and always occupy a prominent position in
    society. He believed this so firmly that others, looking at him, were
    persuaded of it too and did not refuse him either a leading place in
    society or money, which he borrowed from anyone and everyone and
    evidently would not repay.
    
    He was not a gambler, at any rate he did not care about winning. He was
    not vain. He did not mind what people thought of him. Still less could
    he be accused of ambition. More than once he had vexed his father by
    spoiling his own career, and he laughed at distinctions of all kinds. He
    was not mean, and did not refuse anyone who asked of him. All he cared
    about was gaiety and women, and as according to his ideas there was
    nothing dishonorable in these tastes, and he was incapable of
    considering what the gratification of his tastes entailed for others, he
    honestly considered himself irreproachable, sincerely despised rogues
    and bad people, and with a tranquil conscience carried his head high.
    
    Rakes, those male Magdalenes, have a secret feeling of innocence similar
    to that which female Magdalenes have, based on the same hope of
    forgiveness. "All will be forgiven her, for she loved much; and all will
    be forgiven him, for he enjoyed much."
    
    Dolokhov, who had reappeared that year in Moscow after his exile and his
    Persian adventures, and was leading a life of luxury, gambling, and
    dissipation, associated with his old Petersburg comrade Kuragin and made
    use of him for his own ends.
    
    Anatole was sincerely fond of Dolokhov for his cleverness and audacity.
    Dolokhov, who needed Anatole Kuragin's name, position, and connections
    as a bait to draw rich young men into his gambling set, made use of him
    and amused himself at his expense without letting the other feel it.
    Apart from the advantage he derived from Anatole, the very process of
    dominating another's will was in itself a pleasure, a habit, and a
    necessity to Dolokhov.
    
    Natasha had made a strong impression on Kuragin. At supper after the
    opera he described to Dolokhov with the air of a connoisseur the
    attractions of her arms, shoulders, feet, and hair and expressed his
    intention of making love to her. Anatole had no notion and was incapable
    of considering what might come of such love-making, as he never had any
    notion of the outcome of any of his actions.
    
    "She's first-rate, my dear fellow, but not for us," replied Dolokhov.
    
    "I will tell my sister to ask her to dinner," said Anatole. "Eh?"
    
    "You'd better wait till she's married...."
    
    "You know, I adore little girls, they lose their heads at once," pursued
    Anatole.
    
    "You have been caught once already by a 'little girl,'" said Dolokhov
    who knew of Kuragin's marriage. "Take care!"
    
    "Well, that can't happen twice! Eh?" said Anatole, with a good-humored
    laugh.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    The day after the opera the Rostovs went nowhere and nobody came to see
    them. Marya Dmitrievna talked to the count about something which they
    concealed from Natasha. Natasha guessed they were talking about the old
    prince and planning something, and this disquieted and offended her. She
    was expecting Prince Andrew any moment and twice that day sent a
    manservant to the Vozdvizhenka to ascertain whether he had come. He had
    not arrived. She suffered more now than during her first days in Moscow.
    To her impatience and pining for him were now added the unpleasant
    recollection of her interview with Princess Mary and the old prince, and
    a fear and anxiety of which she did not understand the cause. She
    continually fancied that either he would never come or that something
    would happen to her before he came. She could no longer think of him by
    herself calmly and continuously as she had done before. As soon as she
    began to think of him, the recollection of the old prince, of Princess
    Mary, of the theater, and of Kuragin mingled with her thoughts. The
    question again presented itself whether she was not guilty, whether she
    had not already broken faith with Prince Andrew, and again she found
    herself recalling to the minutest detail every word, every gesture, and
    every shade in the play of expression on the face of the man who had
    been able to arouse in her such an incomprehensible and terrifying
    feeling. To the family Natasha seemed livelier than usual, but she was
    far less tranquil and happy than before.
    
    On Sunday morning Marya Dmitrievna invited her visitors to Mass at her
    parish church--the Church of the Assumption built over the graves of
    victims of the plague.
    
    "I don't like those fashionable churches," she said, evidently priding
    herself on her independence of thought. "God is the same everywhere. We
    have an excellent priest, he conducts the service decently and with
    dignity, and the deacon is the same. What holiness is there in giving
    concerts in the choir? I don't like it, it's just self-indulgence!"
    
    Marya Dmitrievna liked Sundays and knew how to keep them. Her whole
    house was scrubbed and cleaned on Saturdays; neither she nor the
    servants worked, and they all wore holiday dress and went to church. At
    her table there were extra dishes at dinner, and the servants had vodka
    and roast goose or suckling pig. But in nothing in the house was the
    holiday so noticeable as in Marya Dmitrievna's broad, stern face, which
    on that day wore an invariable look of solemn festivity.
    
    After Mass, when they had finished their coffee in the dining room where
    the loose covers had been removed from the furniture, a servant
    announced that the carriage was ready, and Marya Dmitrievna rose with a
    stern air. She wore her holiday shawl, in which she paid calls, and
    announced that she was going to see Prince Nicholas Bolkonski to have an
    explanation with him about Natasha.
    
    After she had gone, a dressmaker from Madame Suppert-Roguet waited on
    the Rostovs, and Natasha, very glad of this diversion, having shut
    herself into a room adjoining the drawing room, occupied herself trying
    on the new dresses. Just as she had put on a bodice without sleeves and
    only tacked together, and was turning her head to see in the glass how
    the back fitted, she heard in the drawing room the animated sounds of
    her father's voice and another's--a woman's--that made her flush. It was
    Helene. Natasha had not time to take off the bodice before the door
    opened and Countess Bezukhova, dressed in a purple velvet gown with a
    high collar, came into the room beaming with good-humored amiable
    smiles.
    
    "Oh, my enchantress!" she cried to the blushing Natasha. "Charming! No,
    this is really beyond anything, my dear count," said she to Count Rostov
    who had followed her in. "How can you live in Moscow and go nowhere? No,
    I won't let you off! Mademoiselle George will recite at my house tonight
    and there'll be some people, and if you don't bring your lovely girls--
    who are prettier than Mademoiselle George--I won't know you! My husband
    is away in Tver or I would send him to fetch you. You must come. You
    positively must! Between eight and nine."
    
    She nodded to the dressmaker, whom she knew and who had curtsied
    respectfully to her, and seated herself in an armchair beside the
    looking glass, draping the folds of her velvet dress picturesquely. She
    did not cease chattering good-naturedly and gaily, continually praising
    Natasha's beauty. She looked at Natasha's dresses and praised them, as
    well as a new dress of her own made of "metallic gauze," which she had
    received from Paris, and advised Natasha to have one like it.
    
    "But anything suits you, my charmer!" she remarked.
    
    A smile of pleasure never left Natasha's face. She felt happy and as if
    she were blossoming under the praise of this dear Countess Bezukhova who
    had formerly seemed to her so unapproachable and important and was now
    so kind to her. Natasha brightened up and felt almost in love with this
    woman, who was so beautiful and so kind. Helene for her part was
    sincerely delighted with Natasha and wished to give her a good time.
    Anatole had asked her to bring him and Natasha together, and she was
    calling on the Rostovs for that purpose. The idea of throwing her
    brother and Natasha together amused her.
    
    Though at one time, in Petersburg, she had been annoyed with Natasha for
    drawing Boris away, she did not think of that now, and in her own way
    heartily wished Natasha well. As she was leaving the Rostovs she called
    her protegee aside.
    
    "My brother dined with me yesterday--we nearly died of laughter--he ate
    nothing and kept sighing for you, my charmer! He is madly, quite madly,
    in love with you, my dear."
    
    Natasha blushed scarlet when she heard this.
    
    "How she blushes, how she blushes, my pretty!" said Helene. "You must
    certainly come. If you love somebody, my charmer, that is not a reason
    to shut yourself up. Even if you are engaged, I am sure your fiance
    would wish you to go into society rather than be bored to death."
    
    "So she knows I am engaged, and she and her husband Pierre--that good
    Pierre--have talked and laughed about this. So it's all right." And
    again, under Helene's influence, what had seemed terrible now seemed
    simple and natural. "And she is such a grande dame, so kind, and
    evidently likes me so much. And why not enjoy myself?" thought Natasha,
    gazing at Helene with wide-open, wondering eyes.
    
    Marya Dmitrievna came back to dinner taciturn and serious, having
    evidently suffered a defeat at the old prince's. She was still too
    agitated by the encounter to be able to talk of the affair calmly. In
    answer to the count's inquiries she replied that things were all right
    and that she would tell about it next day. On hearing of Countess
    Bezukhova's visit and the invitation for that evening, Marya Dmitrievna
    remarked:
    
    "I don't care to have anything to do with Bezukhova and don't advise you
    to; however, if you've promised--go. It will divert your thoughts," she
    added, addressing Natasha.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    Count Rostov took the girls to Countess Bezukhova's. There were a good
    many people there, but nearly all strangers to Natasha. Count Rostov was
    displeased to see that the company consisted almost entirely of men and
    women known for the freedom of their conduct. Mademoiselle George was
    standing in a corner of the drawing room surrounded by young men. There
    were several Frenchmen present, among them Metivier who from the time
    Helene reached Moscow had been an intimate in her house. The count
    decided not to sit down to cards or let his girls out of his sight and
    to get away as soon as Mademoiselle George's performance was over.
    
    Anatole was at the door, evidently on the lookout for the Rostovs.
    Immediately after greeting the count he went up to Natasha and followed
    her. As soon as she saw him she was seized by the same feeling she had
    had at the opera--gratified vanity at his admiration of her and fear at
    the absence of a moral barrier between them.
    
    Helene welcomed Natasha delightedly and was loud in admiration of her
    beauty and her dress. Soon after their arrival Mademoiselle George went
    out of the room to change her costume. In the drawing room people began
    arranging the chairs and taking their seats. Anatole moved a chair for
    Natasha and was about to sit down beside her, but the count, who never
    lost sight of her, took the seat himself. Anatole sat down behind her.
    
    Mademoiselle George, with her bare, fat, dimpled arms, and a red shawl
    draped over one shoulder, came into the space left vacant for her, and
    assumed an unnatural pose. Enthusiastic whispering was audible.
    
    Mademoiselle George looked sternly and gloomily at the audience and
    began reciting some French verses describing her guilty love for her
    son. In some places she raised her voice, in others she whispered,
    lifting her head triumphantly; sometimes she paused and uttered hoarse
    sounds, rolling her eyes.
    
    "Adorable! divine! delicious!" was heard from every side.
    
    Natasha looked at the fat actress, but neither saw nor heard nor
    understood anything of what went on before her. She only felt herself
    again completely borne away into this strange senseless world--so remote
    from her old world--a world in which it was impossible to know what was
    good or bad, reasonable or senseless. Behind her sat Anatole, and
    conscious of his proximity she experienced a frightened sense of
    expectancy.
    
    After the first monologue the whole company rose and surrounded
    Mademoiselle George, expressing their enthusiasm.
    
    "How beautiful she is!" Natasha remarked to her father who had also
    risen and was moving through the crowd toward the actress.
    
    "I don't think so when I look at you!" said Anatole, following Natasha.
    He said this at a moment when she alone could hear him. "You are
    enchanting... from the moment I saw you I have never ceased..."
    
    "Come, come, Natasha!" said the count, as he turned back for his
    daughter. "How beautiful she is!" Natasha without saying anything
    stepped up to her father and looked at him with surprised inquiring
    eyes.
    
    After giving several recitations, Mademoiselle George left, and Countess
    Bezukhova asked her visitors into the ballroom.
    
    The count wished to go home, but Helene entreated him not to spoil her
    improvised ball, and the Rostovs stayed on. Anatole asked Natasha for a
    valse and as they danced he pressed her waist and hand and told her she
    was bewitching and that he loved her. During the ecossaise, which she
    also danced with him, Anatole said nothing when they happened to be by
    themselves, but merely gazed at her. Natasha lifted her frightened eyes
    to him, but there was such confident tenderness in his affectionate look
    and smile that she could not, whilst looking at him, say what she had to
    say. She lowered her eyes.
    
    "Don't say such things to me. I am betrothed and love another," she said
    rapidly.... She glanced at him.
    
    Anatole was not upset or pained by what she had said.
    
    "Don't speak to me of that! What can I do?" said he. "I tell you I am
    madly, madly, in love with you! Is it my fault that you are
    enchanting?... It's our turn to begin."
    
    Natasha, animated and excited, looked about her with wide-open
    frightened eyes and seemed merrier than usual. She understood hardly
    anything that went on that evening. They danced the ecossaise and the
    Grossvater. Her father asked her to come home, but she begged to remain.
    Wherever she went and whomever she was speaking to, she felt his eyes
    upon her. Later on she recalled how she had asked her father to let her
    go to the dressing room to rearrange her dress, that Helene had followed
    her and spoken laughingly of her brother's love, and that she again met
    Anatole in the little sitting room. Helene had disappeared leaving them
    alone, and Anatole had taken her hand and said in a tender voice:
    
    "I cannot come to visit you but is it possible that I shall never see
    you? I love you madly. Can I never...?" and, blocking her path, he
    brought his face close to hers.
    
    His large, glittering, masculine eyes were so close to hers that she saw
    nothing but them.
    
    "Natalie?" he whispered inquiringly while she felt her hands being
    painfully pressed. "Natalie?"
    
    "I don't understand. I have nothing to say," her eyes replied.
    
    Burning lips were pressed to hers, and at the same instant she felt
    herself released, and Helene's footsteps and the rustle of her dress
    were heard in the room. Natasha looked round at her, and then, red and
    trembling, threw a frightened look of inquiry at Anatole and moved
    toward the door.
    
    "One word, just one, for God's sake!" cried Anatole.
    
    She paused. She so wanted a word from him that would explain to her what
    had happened and to which she could find no answer.
    
    "Natalie, just a word, only one!" he kept repeating, evidently not
    knowing what to say and he repeated it till Helene came up to them.
    
    Helene returned with Natasha to the drawing room. The Rostovs went away
    without staying for supper.
    
    After reaching home Natasha did not sleep all night. She was tormented
    by the insoluble question whether she loved Anatole or Prince Andrew.
    She loved Prince Andrew--she remembered distinctly how deeply she loved
    him. But she also loved Anatole, of that there was no doubt. "Else how
    could all this have happened?" thought she. "If, after that, I could
    return his smile when saying good-by, if I was able to let it come to
    that, it means that I loved him from the first. It means that he is
    kind, noble, and splendid, and I could not help loving him. What am I to
    do if I love him and the other one too?" she asked herself, unable to
    find an answer to these terrible questions.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    Morning came with its cares and bustle. Everyone got up and began to
    move about and talk, dressmakers came again. Marya Dmitrievna appeared,
    and they were called to breakfast. Natasha kept looking uneasily at
    everybody with wide-open eyes, as if wishing to intercept every glance
    directed toward her, and tried to appear the same as usual.
    
    After breakfast, which was her best time, Marya Dmitrievna sat down in
    her armchair and called Natasha and the count to her.
    
    "Well, friends, I have now thought the whole matter over and this is my
    advice," she began. "Yesterday, as you know, I went to see Prince
    Bolkonski. Well, I had a talk with him.... He took it into his head to
    begin shouting, but I am not one to be shouted down. I said what I had
    to say!"
    
    "Well, and he?" asked the count.
    
    "He? He's crazy... he did not want to listen. But what's the use of
    talking? As it is we have worn the poor girl out," said Marya
    Dmitrievna. "My advice to you is finish your business and go back home
    to Otradnoe... and wait there."
    
    "Oh, no!" exclaimed Natasha.
    
    "Yes, go back," said Marya Dmitrievna, "and wait there. If your
    betrothed comes here now--there will be no avoiding a quarrel; but alone
    with the old man he will talk things over and then come on to you."
    
    Count Rostov approved of this suggestion, appreciating its
    reasonableness. If the old man came round it would be all the better to
    visit him in Moscow or at Bald Hills later on; and if not, the wedding,
    against his wishes, could only be arranged at Otradnoe.
    
    "That is perfectly true. And I am sorry I went to see him and took her,"
    said the old count.
    
    "No, why be sorry? Being here, you had to pay your respects. But if he
    won't--that's his affair," said Marya Dmitrievna, looking for something
    in her reticule. "Besides, the trousseau is ready, so there is nothing
    to wait for; and what is not ready I'll send after you. Though I don't
    like letting you go, it is the best way. So go, with God's blessing!"
    
    Having found what she was looking for in the reticule she handed it to
    Natasha. It was a letter from Princess Mary.
    
    "She has written to you. How she torments herself, poor thing! She's
    afraid you might think that she does not like you."
    
    "But she doesn't like me," said Natasha.
    
    "Don't talk nonsense!" cried Marya Dmitrievna.
    
    "I shan't believe anyone, I know she doesn't like me," replied Natasha
    boldly as she took the letter, and her face expressed a cold and angry
    resolution that caused Marya Dmitrievna to look at her more intently and
    to frown.
    
    "Don't answer like that, my good girl!" she said. "What I say is true!
    Write an answer!" Natasha did not reply and went to her own room to read
    Princess Mary's letter.
    
    Princess Mary wrote that she was in despair at the misunderstanding that
    had occurred between them. Whatever her father's feelings might be, she
    begged Natasha to believe that she could not help loving her as the one
    chosen by her brother, for whose happiness she was ready to sacrifice
    everything.
    
    "Do not think, however," she wrote, "that my father is ill-disposed
    toward you. He is an invalid and an old man who must be forgiven; but he
    is good and magnanimous and will love her who makes his son happy."
    Princess Mary went on to ask Natasha to fix a time when she could see
    her again.
    
    After reading the letter Natasha sat down at the writing table to answer
    it. "Dear Princess," she wrote in French quickly and mechanically, and
    then paused. What more could she write after all that had happened the
    evening before? "Yes, yes! All that has happened, and now all is
    changed," she thought as she sat with the letter she had begun before
    her. "Must I break off with him? Must I really? That's awful..." and to
    escape from these dreadful thoughts she went to Sonya and began sorting
    patterns with her.
    
    After dinner Natasha went to her room and again took up Princess Mary's
    letter. "Can it be that it is all over?" she thought. "Can it be that
    all this has happened so quickly and has destroyed all that went
    before?" She recalled her love for Prince Andrew in all its former
    strength, and at the same time felt that she loved Kuragin. She vividly
    pictured herself as Prince Andrew's wife, and the scenes of happiness
    with him she had so often repeated in her imagination, and at the same
    time, aglow with excitement, recalled every detail of yesterday's
    interview with Anatole.
    
    "Why could that not be as well?" she sometimes asked herself in complete
    bewilderment. "Only so could I be completely happy; but now I have to
    choose, and I can't be happy without either of them. Only," she thought,
    "to tell Prince Andrew what has happened or to hide it from him are both
    equally impossible. But with that one nothing is spoiled. But am I
    really to abandon forever the joy of Prince Andrew's love, in which I
    have lived so long?"
    
    "Please, Miss!" whispered a maid entering the room with a mysterious
    air. "A man told me to give you this-" and she handed Natasha a letter.
    
    "Only, for Christ's sake..." the girl went on, as Natasha, without
    thinking, mechanically broke the seal and read a love letter from
    Anatole, of which, without taking in a word, she understood only that it
    was a letter from him--from the man she loved. Yes, she loved him, or
    else how could that have happened which had happened? And how could she
    have a love letter from him in her hand?
    
    With trembling hands Natasha held that passionate love letter which
    Dolokhov had composed for Anatole, and as she read it she found in it an
    echo of all that she herself imagined she was feeling.
    
    "Since yesterday evening my fate has been sealed; to be loved by you or
    to die. There is no other way for me," the letter began. Then he went on
    to say that he knew her parents would not give her to him--for this
    there were secret reasons he could reveal only to her--but that if she
    loved him she need only say the word yes, and no human power could
    hinder their bliss. Love would conquer all. He would steal her away and
    carry her off to the ends of the earth.
    
    "Yes, yes! I love him!" thought Natasha, reading the letter for the
    twentieth time and finding some peculiarly deep meaning in each word of
    it.
    
    That evening Marya Dmitrievna was going to the Akharovs' and proposed to
    take the girls with her. Natasha, pleading a headache, remained at home.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    On returning late in the evening Sonya went to Natasha's room, and to
    her surprise found her still dressed and asleep on the sofa. Open on the
    table, beside her lay Anatole's letter. Sonya picked it up and read it.
    
    As she read she glanced at the sleeping Natasha, trying to find in her
    face an explanation of what she was reading, but did not find it. Her
    face was calm, gentle, and happy. Clutching her breast to keep herself
    from choking, Sonya, pale and trembling with fear and agitation, sat
    down in an armchair and burst into tears.
    
    "How was it I noticed nothing? How could it go so far? Can she have left
    off loving Prince Andrew? And how could she let Kuragin go to such
    lengths? He is a deceiver and a villain, that's plain! What will
    Nicholas, dear noble Nicholas, do when he hears of it? So this is the
    meaning of her excited, resolute, unnatural look the day before
    yesterday, yesterday, and today," thought Sonya. "But it can't be that
    she loves him! She probably opened the letter without knowing who it was
    from. Probably she is offended by it. She could not do such a thing!"
    
    Sonya wiped away her tears and went up to Natasha, again scanning her
    face.
    
    "Natasha!" she said, just audibly.
    
    Natasha awoke and saw Sonya.
    
    "Ah, you're back?"
    
    And with the decision and tenderness that often come at the moment of
    awakening, she embraced her friend, but noticing Sonya's look of
    embarrassment, her own face expressed confusion and suspicion.
    
    "Sonya, you've read that letter?" she demanded.
    
    "Yes," answered Sonya softly.
    
    Natasha smiled rapturously.
    
    "No, Sonya, I can't any longer!" she said. "I can't hide it from you any
    longer. You know, we love one another! Sonya, darling, he writes...
    Sonya..."
    
    Sonya stared open-eyed at Natasha, unable to believe her ears.
    
    "And Bolkonski?" she asked.
    
    "Ah, Sonya, if you only knew how happy I am!" cried Natasha. "You don't
    know what love is...."
    
    "But, Natasha, can that be all over?"
    
    Natasha looked at Sonya with wide-open eyes as if she could not grasp
    the question.
    
    "Well, then, are you refusing Prince Andrew?" said Sonya.
    
    "Oh, you don't understand anything! Don't talk nonsense, just listen!"
    said Natasha, with momentary vexation.
    
    "But I can't believe it," insisted Sonya. "I don't understand. How is it
    you have loved a man for a whole year and suddenly... Why, you have only
    seen him three times! Natasha, I don't believe you, you're joking! In
    three days to forget everything and so..."
    
    "Three days?" said Natasha. "It seems to me I've loved him a hundred
    years. It seems to me that I have never loved anyone before. You can't
    understand it.... Sonya, wait a bit, sit here," and Natasha embraced and
    kissed her.
    
    "I had heard that it happens like this, and you must have heard it too,
    but it's only now that I feel such love. It's not the same as before. As
    soon as I saw him I felt he was my master and I his slave, and that I
    could not help loving him. Yes, his slave! Whatever he orders I shall
    do. You don't understand that. What can I do? What can I do, Sonya?"
    cried Natasha with a happy yet frightened expression.
    
    "But think what you are doing," cried Sonya. "I can't leave it like
    this. This secret correspondence... How could you let him go so far?"
    she went on, with a horror and disgust she could hardly conceal.
    
    "I told you that I have no will," Natasha replied. "Why can't you
    understand? I love him!"
    
    "Then I won't let it come to that... I shall tell!" cried Sonya,
    bursting into tears.
    
    "What do you mean? For God's sake... If you tell, you are my enemy!"
    declared Natasha. "You want me to be miserable, you want us to be
    separated...."
    
    When she saw Natasha's fright, Sonya shed tears of shame and pity for
    her friend.
    
    "But what has happened between you?" she asked. "What has he said to
    you? Why doesn't he come to the house?"
    
    Natasha did not answer her questions.
    
    "For God's sake, Sonya, don't tell anyone, don't torture me," Natasha
    entreated. "Remember no one ought to interfere in such matters! I have
    confided in you...."
    
    "But why this secrecy? Why doesn't he come to the house?" asked Sonya.
    "Why doesn't he openly ask for your hand? You know Prince Andrew gave
    you complete freedom--if it is really so; but I don't believe it!
    Natasha, have you considered what these secret reasons can be?"
    
    Natasha looked at Sonya with astonishment. Evidently this question
    presented itself to her mind for the first time and she did not know how
    to answer it.
    
    "I don't know what the reasons are. But there must be reasons!"
    
    Sonya sighed and shook her head incredulously.
    
    "If there were reasons..." she began.
    
    But Natasha, guessing her doubts, interrupted her in alarm.
    
    "Sonya, one can't doubt him! One can't, one can't! Don't you
    understand?" she cried.
    
    "Does he love you?"
    
    "Does he love me?" Natasha repeated with a smile of pity at her friend's
    lack of comprehension. "Why, you have read his letter and you have seen
    him."
    
    "But if he is dishonorable?"
    
    "He! dishonorable? If you only knew!" exclaimed Natasha.
    
    "If he is an honorable man he should either declare his intentions or
    cease seeing you; and if you won't do this, I will. I will write to him,
    and I will tell Papa!" said Sonya resolutely.
    
    "But I can't live without him!" cried Natasha.
    
    "Natasha, I don't understand you. And what are you saying! Think of your
    father and of Nicholas."
    
    "I don't want anyone, I don't love anyone but him. How dare you say he
    is dishonorable? Don't you know that I love him?" screamed Natasha. "Go
    away, Sonya! I don't want to quarrel with you, but go, for God's sake
    go! You see how I am suffering!" Natasha cried angrily, in a voice of
    despair and repressed irritation. Sonya burst into sobs and ran from the
    room.
    
    Natasha went to the table and without a moment's reflection wrote that
    answer to Princess Mary which she had been unable to write all the
    morning. In this letter she said briefly that all their
    misunderstandings were at an end; that availing herself of the
    magnanimity of Prince Andrew who when he went abroad had given her her
    freedom, she begged Princess Mary to forget everything and forgive her
    if she had been to blame toward her, but that she could not be his wife.
    At that moment this all seemed quite easy, simple, and clear to Natasha.
    
    On Friday the Rostovs were to return to the country, but on Wednesday
    the count went with the prospective purchaser to his estate near Moscow.
    
    On the day the count left, Sonya and Natasha were invited to a big
    dinner party at the Karagins', and Marya Dmitrievna took them there. At
    that party Natasha again met Anatole, and Sonya noticed that she spoke
    to him, trying not to be overheard, and that all through dinner she was
    more agitated than ever. When they got home Natasha was the first to
    begin the explanation Sonya expected.
    
    "There, Sonya, you were talking all sorts of nonsense about him,"
    Natasha began in a mild voice such as children use when they wish to be
    praised. "We have had an explanation today."
    
    "Well, what happened? What did he say? Natasha, how glad I am you're not
    angry with me! Tell me everything--the whole truth. What did he say?"
    
    Natasha became thoughtful.
    
    "Oh, Sonya, if you knew him as I do! He said... He asked me what I had
    promised Bolkonski. He was glad I was free to refuse him."
    
    Sonya sighed sorrowfully.
    
    "But you haven't refused Bolkonski?" said she.
    
    "Perhaps I have. Perhaps all is over between me and Bolkonski. Why do
    you think so badly of me?"
    
    "I don't think anything, only I don't understand this..."
    
    "Wait a bit, Sonya, you'll understand everything. You'll see what a man
    he is! Now don't think badly of me or of him. I don't think badly of
    anyone: I love and pity everybody. But what am I to do?"
    
    Sonya did not succumb to the tender tone Natasha used toward her. The
    more emotional and ingratiating the expression of Natasha's face became,
    the more serious and stern grew Sonya's.
    
    "Natasha," said she, "you asked me not to speak to you, and I haven't
    spoken, but now you yourself have begun. I don't trust him, Natasha. Why
    this secrecy?"
    
    "Again, again!" interrupted Natasha.
    
    "Natasha, I am afraid for you!"
    
    "Afraid of what?"
    
    "I am afraid you're going to your ruin," said Sonya resolutely, and was
    herself horrified at what she had said.
    
    Anger again showed in Natasha's face.
    
    "And I'll go to my ruin, I will, as soon as possible! It's not your
    business! It won't be you, but I, who'll suffer. Leave me alone, leave
    me alone! I hate you!"
    
    "Natasha!" moaned Sonya, aghast.
    
    "I hate you, I hate you! You're my enemy forever!" And Natasha ran out
    of the room.
    
    Natasha did not speak to Sonya again and avoided her. With the same
    expression of agitated surprise and guilt she went about the house,
    taking up now one occupation, now another, and at once abandoning them.
    
    Hard as it was for Sonya, she watched her friend and did not let her out
    of her sight.
    
    The day before the count was to return, Sonya noticed that Natasha sat
    by the drawing-room window all the morning as if expecting something and
    that she made a sign to an officer who drove past, whom Sonya took to be
    Anatole.
    
    Sonya began watching her friend still more attentively and noticed that
    at dinner and all that evening Natasha was in a strange and unnatural
    state. She answered questions at random, began sentences she did not
    finish, and laughed at everything.
    
    After tea Sonya noticed a housemaid at Natasha's door timidly waiting to
    let her pass. She let the girl go in, and then listening at the door
    learned that another letter had been delivered.
    
    Then suddenly it became clear to Sonya that Natasha had some dreadful
    plan for that evening. Sonya knocked at her door. Natasha did not let
    her in.
    
    "She will run away with him!" thought Sonya. "She is capable of
    anything. There was something particularly pathetic and resolute in her
    face today. She cried as she said good-by to Uncle," Sonya remembered.
    "Yes, that's it, she means to elope with him, but what am I to do?"
    thought she, recalling all the signs that clearly indicated that Natasha
    had some terrible intention. "The count is away. What am I to do? Write
    to Kuragin demanding an explanation? But what is there to oblige him to
    reply? Write to Pierre, as Prince Andrew asked me to in case of some
    misfortune?... But perhaps she really has already refused Bolkonski--she
    sent a letter to Princess Mary yesterday. And Uncle is away...." To tell
    Marya Dmitrievna who had such faith in Natasha seemed to Sonya terrible.
    "Well, anyway," thought Sonya as she stood in the dark passage, "now or
    never I must prove that I remember the family's goodness to me and that
    I love Nicholas. Yes! If I don't sleep for three nights I'll not leave
    this passage and will hold her back by force and will and not let the
    family be disgraced," thought she.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Anatole had lately moved to Dolokhov's. The plan for Natalie Rostova's
    abduction had been arranged and the preparations made by Dolokhov a few
    days before, and on the day that Sonya, after listening at Natasha's
    door, resolved to safeguard her, it was to have been put into execution.
    Natasha had promised to come out to Kuragin at the back porch at ten
    that evening. Kuragin was to put her into a troyka he would have ready
    and to drive her forty miles to the village of Kamenka, where an
    unfrocked priest was in readiness to perform a marriage ceremony over
    them. At Kamenka a relay of horses was to wait which would take them to
    the Warsaw highroad, and from there they would hasten abroad with post
    horses.
    
    Anatole had a passport, an order for post horses, ten thousand rubles he
    had taken from his sister and another ten thousand borrowed with
    Dolokhov's help.
    
    Two witnesses for the mock marriage--Khvostikov, a retired petty
    official whom Dolokhov made use of in his gambling transactions, and
    Makarin, a retired hussar, a kindly, weak fellow who had an unbounded
    affection for Kuragin--were sitting at tea in Dolokhov's front room.
    
    In his large study, the walls of which were hung to the ceiling with
    Persian rugs, bearskins, and weapons, sat Dolokhov in a traveling cloak
    and high boots, at an open desk on which lay an abacus and some bundles of
    paper money. Anatole, with uniform unbuttoned, walked to and fro from
    the room where the witnesses were sitting, through the study to the room
    behind, where his French valet and others were packing the last of his
    things. Dolokhov was counting the money and noting something down.
    
    "Well," he said, "Khvostikov must have two thousand."
    
    "Give it to him, then," said Anatole.
    
    "Makarka" (their name for Makarin) "will go through fire and water for
    you for nothing. So here are our accounts all settled," said Dolokhov,
    showing him the memorandum. "Is that right?"
    
    "Yes, of course," returned Anatole, evidently not listening to Dolokhov
    and looking straight before him with a smile that did not leave his
    face.
    
    Dolokhov banged down the lid of his desk and turned to Anatole with an
    ironic smile:
    
    "Do you know? You'd really better drop it all. There's still time!"
    
    "Fool," retorted Anatole. "Don't talk nonsense! If you only knew... it's
    the devil knows what!"
    
    "No, really, give it up!" said Dolokhov. "I am speaking seriously. It's
    no joke, this plot you've hatched."
    
    "What, teasing again? Go to the devil! Eh?" said Anatole, making a
    grimace. "Really it's no time for your stupid jokes," and he left the
    room.
    
    Dolokhov smiled contemptuously and condescendingly when Anatole had gone
    out.
    
    "You wait a bit," he called after him. "I'm not joking, I'm talking
    sense. Come here, come here!"
    
    Anatole returned and looked at Dolokhov, trying to give him his
    attention and evidently submitting to him involuntarily.
    
    "Now listen to me. I'm telling you this for the last time. Why should I
    joke about it? Did I hinder you? Who arranged everything for you? Who
    found the priest and got the passport? Who raised the money? I did it
    all."
    
    "Well, thank you for it. Do you think I am not grateful?" And Anatole
    sighed and embraced Dolokhov.
    
    "I helped you, but all the same I must tell you the truth; it is a
    dangerous business, and if you think about it--a stupid business. Well,
    you'll carry her off--all right! Will they let it stop at that? It will
    come out that you're already married. Why, they'll have you in the
    criminal court...."
    
    "Oh, nonsense, nonsense!" Anatole ejaculated and again made a grimace.
    "Didn't I explain to you? What?" And Anatole, with the partiality dull-
    witted people have for any conclusion they have reached by their own
    reasoning, repeated the argument he had already put to Dolokhov a
    hundred times. "Didn't I explain to you that I have come to this
    conclusion: if this marriage is invalid," he went on, crooking one
    finger, "then I have nothing to answer for; but if it is valid, no
    matter! Abroad no one will know anything about it. Isn't that so? And
    don't talk to me, don't, don't."
    
    "Seriously, you'd better drop it! You'll only get yourself into a mess!"
    
    "Go to the devil!" cried Anatole and, clutching his hair, left the room,
    but returned at once and dropped into an armchair in front of Dolokhov
    with his feet turned under him. "It's the very devil! What? Feel how it
    beats!" He took Dolokhov's hand and put it on his heart. "What a foot,
    my dear fellow! What a glance! A goddess!" he added in French. "What?"
    
    Dolokhov with a cold smile and a gleam in his handsome insolent eyes
    looked at him--evidently wishing to get some more amusement out of him.
    
    "Well and when the money's gone, what then?"
    
    "What then? Eh?" repeated Anatole, sincerely perplexed by a thought of
    the future. "What then?... Then, I don't know.... But why talk
    nonsense!" He glanced at his watch. "It's time!"
    
    Anatole went into the back room.
    
    "Now then! Nearly ready? You're dawdling!" he shouted to the servants.
    
    Dolokhov put away the money, called a footman whom he ordered to bring
    something for them to eat and drink before the journey, and went into
    the room where Khvostikov and Makarin were sitting.
    
    Anatole lay on the sofa in the study leaning on his elbow and smiling
    pensively, while his handsome lips muttered tenderly to himself.
    
    "Come and eat something. Have a drink!" Dolokhov shouted to him from the
    other room.
    
    "I don't want to," answered Anatole continuing to smile.
    
    "Come! Balaga is here."
    
    Anatole rose and went into the dining room. Balaga was a famous troyka
    driver who had known Dolokhov and Anatole some six years and had given
    them good service with his troykas. More than once when Anatole's
    regiment was stationed at Tver he had taken him from Tver in the
    evening, brought him to Moscow by daybreak, and driven him back again
    the next night. More than once he had enabled Dolokhov to escape when
    pursued. More than once he had driven them through the town with gypsies
    and "ladykins" as he called the cocottes. More than once in their
    service he had run over pedestrians and upset vehicles in the streets of
    Moscow and had always been protected from the consequences by "my
    gentlemen" as he called them. He had ruined more than one horse in their
    service. More than once they had beaten him, and more than once they had
    made him drunk on champagne and Madeira, which he loved; and he knew
    more than one thing about each of them which would long ago have sent an
    ordinary man to Siberia. They often called Balaga into their orgies and
    made him drink and dance at the gypsies', and more than one thousand
    rubles of their money had passed through his hands. In their service he
    risked his skin and his life twenty times a year, and in their service
    had lost more horses than the money he had from them would buy. But he
    liked them; liked that mad driving at twelve miles an hour, liked
    upsetting a driver or running down a pedestrian, and flying at full
    gallop through the Moscow streets. He liked to hear those wild, tipsy
    shouts behind him: "Get on! Get on!" when it was impossible to go any
    faster. He liked giving a painful lash on the neck to some peasant who,
    more dead than alive, was already hurrying out of his way. "Real
    gentlemen!" he considered them.
    
    Anatole and Dolokhov liked Balaga too for his masterly driving and
    because he liked the things they liked. With others Balaga bargained,
    charging twenty-five rubles for a two hours' drive, and rarely drove
    himself, generally letting his young men do so. But with "his gentlemen"
    he always drove himself and never demanded anything for his work. Only a
    couple of times a year--when he knew from their valets that they had
    money in hand--he would turn up of a morning quite sober and with a deep
    bow would ask them to help him. The gentlemen always made him sit down.
    
    "Do help me out, Theodore Ivanych, sir," or "your excellency," he would
    say. "I am quite out of horses. Let me have what you can to go to the
    fair."
    
    And Anatole and Dolokhov, when they had money, would give him a thousand
    or a couple of thousand rubles.
    
    Balaga was a fair-haired, short, and snub-nosed peasant of about twenty-
    seven; red-faced, with a particularly red thick neck, glittering little
    eyes, and a small beard. He wore a fine, dark-blue, silk-lined cloth
    coat over a sheepskin.
    
    On entering the room now he crossed himself, turning toward the front
    corner of the room, and went up to Dolokhov, holding out a small, black
    hand.
    
    "Theodore Ivanych!" he said, bowing.
    
    "How d'you do, friend? Well, here he is!"
    
    "Good day, your excellency!" he said, again holding out his hand to
    Anatole who had just come in.
    
    "I say, Balaga," said Anatole, putting his hands on the man's shoulders,
    "do you care for me or not? Eh? Now, do me a service.... What horses
    have you come with? Eh?"
    
    "As your messenger ordered, your special beasts," replied Balaga.
    
    "Well, listen, Balaga! Drive all three to death but get me there in
    three hours. Eh?"
    
    "When they are dead, what shall I drive?" said Balaga with a wink.
    
    "Mind, I'll smash your face in! Don't make jokes!" cried Anatole,
    suddenly rolling his eyes.
    
    "Why joke?" said the driver, laughing. "As if I'd grudge my gentlemen
    anything! As fast as ever the horses can gallop, so fast we'll go!"
    
    "Ah!" said Anatole. "Well, sit down."
    
    "Yes, sit down!" said Dolokhov.
    
    "I'll stand, Theodore Ivanych."
    
    "Sit down; nonsense! Have a drink!" said Anatole, and filled a large
    glass of Madeira for him.
    
    The driver's eyes sparkled at the sight of the wine. After refusing it
    for manners' sake, he drank it and wiped his mouth with a red silk
    handkerchief he took out of his cap.
    
    "And when are we to start, your excellency?"
    
    "Well..." Anatole looked at his watch. "We'll start at once. Mind,
    Balaga! You'll get there in time? Eh?"
    
    "That depends on our luck in starting, else why shouldn't we be there in
    time?" replied Balaga. "Didn't we get you to Tver in seven hours? I
    think you remember that, your excellency?"
    
    "Do you know, one Christmas I drove from Tver," said Anatole, smilingly
    at the recollection and turning to Makarin who gazed rapturously at him
    with wide-open eyes. "Will you believe it, Makarka, it took one's breath
    away, the rate we flew. We came across a train of loaded sleighs and
    drove right over two of them. Eh?"
    
    "Those were horses!" Balaga continued the tale. "That time I'd harnessed
    two young side horses with the bay in the shafts," he went on, turning
    to Dolokhov. "Will you believe it, Theodore Ivanych, those animals flew
    forty miles? I couldn't hold them in, my hands grew numb in the sharp
    frost so that I threw down the reins--'Catch hold yourself, your
    excellency!' says I, and I just tumbled on the bottom of the sleigh and
    sprawled there. It wasn't a case of urging them on, there was no holding
    them in till we reached the place. The devils took us there in three
    hours! Only the near one died of it."
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    Anatole went out of the room and returned a few minutes later wearing a
    fur coat girt with a silver belt, and a sable cap jauntily set on one
    side and very becoming to his handsome face. Having looked in a mirror,
    and standing before Dolokhov in the same pose he had assumed before it,
    he lifted a glass of wine.
    
    "Well, good-by, Theodore. Thank you for everything and farewell!" said
    Anatole. "Well, comrades and friends..." he considered for a moment
    "...of my youth, farewell!" he said, turning to Makarin and the others.
    
    Though they were all going with him, Anatole evidently wished to make
    something touching and solemn out of this address to his comrades. He
    spoke slowly in a loud voice and throwing out his chest slightly swayed
    one leg.
    
    "All take glasses; you too, Balaga. Well, comrades and friends of my
    youth, we've had our fling and lived and reveled. Eh? And now, when
    shall we meet again? I am going abroad. We have had a good time--now
    farewell, lads! To our health! Hurrah!..." he cried, and emptying his
    glass flung it on the floor.
    
    "To your health!" said Balaga who also emptied his glass, and wiped his
    mouth with his handkerchief.
    
    Makarin embraced Anatole with tears in his eyes.
    
    "Ah, Prince, how sorry I am to part from you!
    
    "Let's go. Let's go!" cried Anatole.
    
    Balaga was about to leave the room.
    
    "No, stop!" said Anatole. "Shut the door; we have first to sit down.
    That's the way."
    
    They shut the door and all sat down.
    
    "Now, quick march, lads!" said Anatole, rising.
    
    Joseph, his valet, handed him his sabretache and saber, and they all
    went out into the vestibule.
    
    "And where's the fur cloak?" asked Dolokhov. "Hey, Ignatka! Go to
    Matrena Matrevna and ask her for the sable cloak. I have heard what
    elopements are like," continued Dolokhov with a wink. "Why, she'll rush
    out more dead than alive just in the things she is wearing; if you delay
    at all there'll be tears and 'Papa' and 'Mamma,' and she's frozen in a
    minute and must go back--but you wrap the fur cloak round her first
    thing and carry her to the sleigh."
    
    The valet brought a woman's fox-lined cloak.
    
    "Fool, I told you the sable one! Hey, Matrena, the sable!" he shouted so
    that his voice rang far through the rooms.
    
    A handsome, slim, and pale-faced gypsy girl with glittering black eyes
    and curly blue-black hair, wearing a red shawl, ran out with a sable
    mantle on her arm.
    
    "Here, I don't grudge it--take it!" she said, evidently afraid of her
    master and yet regretful of her cloak.
    
    Dolokhov, without answering, took the cloak, threw it over Matrena, and
    wrapped her up in it.
    
    "That's the way," said Dolokhov, "and then so!" and he turned the collar
    up round her head, leaving only a little of the face uncovered. "And
    then so, do you see?" and he pushed Anatole's head forward to meet the
    gap left by the collar, through which Matrena's brilliant smile was
    seen.
    
    "Well, good-by, Matrena," said Anatole, kissing her. "Ah, my revels here
    are over. Remember me to Steshka. There, good-by! Good-bye, Matrena,
    wish me luck!"
    
    "Well, Prince, may God give you great luck!" said Matrena in her gypsy
    accent.
    
    Two troykas were standing before the porch and two young drivers were
    holding the horses. Balaga took his seat in the front one and holding
    his elbows high arranged the reins deliberately. Anatole and Dolokhov
    got in with him. Makarin, Khvostikov, and a valet seated themselves in
    the other sleigh.
    
    "Well, are you ready?" asked Balaga.
    
    "Go!" he cried, twisting the reins round his hands, and the troyka tore
    down the Nikitski Boulevard.
    
    "Tproo! Get out of the way! Hi!... Tproo!..." The shouting of Balaga and
    of the sturdy young fellow seated on the box was all that could be
    heard. On the Arbat Square the troyka caught against a carriage;
    something cracked, shouts were heard, and the troyka flew along the
    Arbat Street.
    
    After taking a turn along the Podnovinski Boulevard, Balaga began to
    rein in, and turning back drew up at the crossing of the old Konyusheny
    Street.
    
    The young fellow on the box jumped down to hold the horses and Anatole
    and Dolokhov went along the pavement. When they reached the gate
    Dolokhov whistled. The whistle was answered, and a maidservant ran out.
    
    "Come into the courtyard or you'll be seen; she'll come out directly,"
    said she.
    
    Dolokhov stayed by the gate. Anatole followed the maid into the
    courtyard, turned the corner, and ran up into the porch.
    
    He was met by Gabriel, Marya Dmitrievna's gigantic footman.
    
    "Come to the mistress, please," said the footman in his deep bass,
    intercepting any retreat.
    
    "To what Mistress? Who are you?" asked Anatole in a breathless whisper.
    
    "Kindly step in, my orders are to bring you in."
    
    "Kuragin! Come back!" shouted Dolokhov. "Betrayed! Back!"
    
    Dolokhov, after Anatole entered, had remained at the wicket gate and was
    struggling with the yard porter who was trying to lock it. With a last
    desperate effort Dolokhov pushed the porter aside, and when Anatole ran
    back seized him by the arm, pulled him through the wicket, and ran back
    with him to the troyka.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    Marya Dmitrievna, having found Sonya weeping in the corridor, made her
    confess everything, and intercepting the note to Natasha she read it and
    went into Natasha's room with it in her hand.
    
    "You shameless good-for-nothing!" said she. "I won't hear a word."
    
    Pushing back Natasha who looked at her with astonished but tearless
    eyes, she locked her in; and having given orders to the yard porter to
    admit the persons who would be coming that evening, but not to let them
    out again, and having told the footman to bring them up to her, she
    seated herself in the drawing room to await the abductors.
    
    When Gabriel came to inform her that the men who had come had run away
    again, she rose frowning, and clasping her hands behind her paced
    through the rooms a long time considering what she should do. Toward
    midnight she went to Natasha's room fingering the key in her pocket.
    Sonya was sitting sobbing in the corridor. "Marya Dmitrievna, for God's
    sake let me in to her!" she pleaded, but Marya Dmitrievna unlocked the
    door and went in without giving her an answer.... "Disgusting,
    abominable... In my house... horrid girl, hussy! I'm only sorry for her
    father!" thought she, trying to restrain her wrath. "Hard as it may be,
    I'll tell them all to hold their tongues and will hide it from the
    count." She entered the room with resolute steps. Natasha lying on the
    sofa, her head hidden in her hands, and she did not stir. She was in
    just the same position in which Marya Dmitrievna had left her.
    
    "A nice girl! Very nice!" said Marya Dmitrievna. "Arranging meetings
    with lovers in my house! It's no use pretending: you listen when I speak
    to you!" And Marya Dmitrievna touched her arm. "Listen when I speak!
    You've disgraced yourself like the lowest of hussies. I'd treat you
    differently, but I'm sorry for your father, so I will conceal it."
    
    Natasha did not change her position, but her whole body heaved with
    noiseless, convulsive sobs which choked her. Marya Dmitrievna glanced
    round at Sonya and seated herself on the sofa beside Natasha.
    
    "It's lucky for him that he escaped me; but I'll find him!" she said in
    her rough voice. "Do you hear what I am saying or not?" she added.
    
    She put her large hand under Natasha's face and turned it toward her.
    Both Marya Dmitrievna and Sonya were amazed when they saw how Natasha
    looked. Her eyes were dry and glistening, her lips compressed, her
    cheeks sunken.
    
    "Let me be!... What is it to me?... I shall die!" she muttered,
    wrenching herself from Marya Dmitrievna's hands with a vicious effort
    and sinking down again into her former position.
    
    "Natalie!" said Marya Dmitrievna. "I wish for your good. Lie still, stay
    like that then, I won't touch you. But listen. I won't tell you how
    guilty you are. You know that yourself. But when your father comes back
    tomorrow what am I to tell him? Eh?"
    
    Again Natasha's body shook with sobs.
    
    "Suppose he finds out, and your brother, and your betrothed?"
    
    "I have no betrothed: I have refused him!" cried Natasha.
    
    "That's all the same," continued Marya Dmitrievna. "If they hear of
    this, will they let it pass? He, your father, I know him... if he
    challenges him to a duel will that be all right? Eh?"
    
    "Oh, let me be! Why have you interfered at all? Why? Why? Who asked you
    to?" shouted Natasha, raising herself on the sofa and looking
    malignantly at Marya Dmitrievna.
    
    "But what did you want?" cried Marya Dmitrievna, growing angry again.
    "Were you kept under lock and key? Who hindered his coming to the house?
    Why carry you off as if you were some gypsy singing girl?... Well, if he
    had carried you off... do you think they wouldn't have found him? Your
    father, or brother, or your betrothed? And he's a scoundrel, a wretch--
    that's a fact!"
    
    "He is better than any of you!" exclaimed Natasha getting up. "If you
    hadn't interfered... Oh, my God! What is it all? What is it? Sonya,
    why?... Go away!"
    
    And she burst into sobs with the despairing vehemence with which people
    bewail disasters they feel they have themselves occasioned. Marya
    Dmitrievna was to speak again but Natasha cried out:
    
    "Go away! Go away! You all hate and despise me!" and she threw herself
    back on the sofa.
    
    Marya Dmitrievna went on admonishing her for some time, enjoining on her
    that it must all be kept from her father and assuring her that nobody
    would know anything about it if only Natasha herself would undertake to
    forget it all and not let anyone see that something had happened.
    Natasha did not reply, nor did she sob any longer, but she grew cold and
    had a shivering fit. Marya Dmitrievna put a pillow under her head,
    covered her with two quilts, and herself brought her some lime-flower
    water, but Natasha did not respond to her.
    
    "Well, let her sleep," said Marya Dmitrievna as she went out of the room
    supposing Natasha to be asleep.
    
    But Natasha was not asleep; with pale face and fixed wide-open eyes she
    looked straight before her. All that night she did not sleep or weep and
    did not speak to Sonya who got up and went to her several times.
    
    Next day Count Rostov returned from his estate near Moscow in time for
    lunch as he had promised. He was in very good spirits; the affair with
    the purchaser was going on satisfactorily, and there was nothing to keep
    him any longer in Moscow, away from the countess whom he missed. Marya
    Dmitrievna met him and told him that Natasha had been very unwell the
    day before and that they had sent for the doctor, but that she was
    better now. Natasha had not left her room that morning. With compressed
    and parched lips and dry fixed eyes, she sat at the window, uneasily
    watching the people who drove past and hurriedly glancing round at
    anyone who entered the room. She was evidently expecting news of him and
    that he would come or would write to her.
    
    When the count came to see her she turned anxiously round at the sound
    of a man's footstep, and then her face resumed its cold and malevolent
    expression. She did not even get up to greet him. "What is the matter
    with you, my angel? Are you ill?" asked the count.
    
    After a moment's silence Natasha answered: "Yes, ill."
    
    In reply to the count's anxious inquiries as to why she was so dejected
    and whether anything had happened to her betrothed, she assured him that
    nothing had happened and asked him not to worry. Marya Dmitrievna
    confirmed Natasha's assurances that nothing had happened. From the
    pretense of illness, from his daughter's distress, and by the
    embarrassed faces of Sonya and Marya Dmitrievna, the count saw clearly
    that something had gone wrong during his absence, but it was so terrible
    for him to think that anything disgraceful had happened to his beloved
    daughter, and he so prized his own cheerful tranquillity, that he
    avoided inquiries and tried to assure himself that nothing particularly
    had happened; and he was only dissatisfied that her indisposition
    delayed their return to the country.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    From the day his wife arrived in Moscow Pierre had been intending to go
    away somewhere, so as not to be near her. Soon after the Rostovs came to
    Moscow the effect Natasha had on him made him hasten to carry out his
    intention. He went to Tver to see Joseph Alexeevich's widow, who had
    long since promised to hand over to him some papers of her deceased
    husband's.
    
    When he returned to Moscow Pierre was handed a letter from Marya
    Dmitrievna asking him to come and see her on a matter of great
    importance relating to Andrew Bolkonski and his betrothed. Pierre had
    been avoiding Natasha because it seemed to him that his feeling for her
    was stronger than a married man's should be for his friend's fiancee.
    Yet some fate constantly threw them together.
    
    "What can have happened? And what can they want with me?" thought he as
    he dressed to go to Marya Dmitrievna's. "If only Prince Andrew would
    hurry up and come and marry her!" thought he on his way to the house.
    
    On the Tverskoy Boulevard a familiar voice called to him.
    
    "Pierre! Been back long?" someone shouted. Pierre raised his head. In a
    sleigh drawn by two gray trotting-horses that were bespattering the
    dashboard with snow, Anatole and his constant companion Makarin dashed
    past. Anatole was sitting upright in the classic pose of military
    dandies, the lower part of his face hidden by his beaver collar and his
    head slightly bent. His face was fresh and rosy, his white-plumed hat,
    tilted to one side, disclosed his curled and pomaded hair besprinkled
    with powdery snow.
    
    "Yes, indeed, that's a true sage," thought Pierre. "He sees nothing
    beyond the pleasure of the moment, nothing troubles him and so he is
    always cheerful, satisfied, and serene. What wouldn't I give to be like
    him!" he thought enviously.
    
    In Marya Dmitrievna's anteroom the footman who helped him off with his
    fur coat said that the mistress asked him to come to her bedroom.
    
    When he opened the ballroom door Pierre saw Natasha sitting at the
    window, with a thin, pale, and spiteful face. She glanced round at him,
    frowned, and left the room with an expression of cold dignity.
    
    "What has happened?" asked Pierre, entering Marya Dmitrievna's room.
    
    "Fine doings!" answered Dmitrievna. "For fifty-eight years have I lived
    in this world and never known anything so disgraceful!"
    
    And having put him on his honor not to repeat anything she told him,
    Marya Dmitrievna informed him that Natasha had refused Prince Andrew
    without her parents' knowledge and that the cause of this was Anatole
    Kuragin into whose society Pierre's wife had thrown her and with whom
    Natasha had tried to elope during her father's absence, in order to be
    married secretly.
    
    Pierre raised his shoulders and listened open-mouthed to what was told
    him, scarcely able to believe his own ears. That Prince Andrew's deeply
    loved affianced wife--the same Natasha Rostova who used to be so
    charming--should give up Bolkonski for that fool Anatole who was already
    secretly married (as Pierre knew), and should be so in love with him as
    to agree to run away with him, was something Pierre could not conceive
    and could not imagine.
    
    He could not reconcile the charming impression he had of Natasha, whom
    he had known from a child, with this new conception of her baseness,
    folly, and cruelty. He thought of his wife. "They are all alike!" he
    said to himself, reflecting that he was not the only man unfortunate
    enough to be tied to a bad woman. But still he pitied Prince Andrew to
    the point of tears and sympathized with his wounded pride, and the more
    he pitied his friend the more did he think with contempt and even with
    disgust of that Natasha who had just passed him in the ballroom with
    such a look of cold dignity. He did not know that Natasha's soul was
    overflowing with despair, shame, and humiliation, and that it was not
    her fault that her face happened to assume an expression of calm dignity
    and severity.
    
    "But how get married?" said Pierre, in answer to Marya Dmitrievna. "He
    could not marry--he is married!"
    
    "Things get worse from hour to hour!" ejaculated Marya Dmitrievna. "A
    nice youth! What a scoundrel! And she's expecting him--expecting him
    since yesterday. She must be told! Then at least she won't go on
    expecting him."
    
    After hearing the details of Anatole's marriage from Pierre, and giving
    vent to her anger against Anatole in words of abuse, Marya Dmitrievna
    told Pierre why she had sent for him. She was afraid that the count or
    Bolkonski, who might arrive at any moment, if they knew of this affair
    (which she hoped to hide from them) might challenge Anatole to a duel,
    and she therefore asked Pierre to tell his brother-in-law in her name to
    leave Moscow and not dare to let her set eyes on him again. Pierre--only
    now realizing the danger to the old count, Nicholas, and Prince Andrew--
    promised to do as she wished. Having briefly and exactly explained her
    wishes to him, she let him go to the drawing room.
    
    "Mind, the count knows nothing. Behave as if you know nothing either,"
    she said. "And I will go and tell her it is no use expecting him! And
    stay to dinner if you care to!" she called after Pierre.
    
    Pierre met the old count, who seemed nervous and upset. That morning
    Natasha had told him that she had rejected Bolkonski.
    
    "Troubles, troubles, my dear fellow!" he said to Pierre. "What troubles
    one has with these girls without their mother! I do so regret having
    come here.... I will be frank with you. Have you heard she has broken
    off her engagement without consulting anybody? It's true this engagement
    never was much to my liking. Of course he is an excellent man, but
    still, with his father's disapproval they wouldn't have been happy, and
    Natasha won't lack suitors. Still, it has been going on so long, and to
    take such a step without father's or mother's consent! And now she's
    ill, and God knows what! It's hard, Count, hard to manage daughters in
    their mother's absence...."
    
    Pierre saw that the count was much upset and tried to change the
    subject, but the count returned to his troubles.
    
    Sonya entered the room with an agitated face.
    
    "Natasha is not quite well; she's in her room and would like to see you.
    Marya Dmitrievna is with her and she too asks you to come."
    
    "Yes, you are a great friend of Bolkonski's, no doubt she wants to send
    him a message," said the count. "Oh dear! Oh dear! How happy it all
    was!"
    
    And clutching the spare gray locks on his temples the count left the
    room.
    
    When Marya Dmitrievna told Natasha that Anatole was married, Natasha did
    not wish to believe it and insisted on having it confirmed by Pierre
    himself. Sonya told Pierre this as she led him along the corridor to
    Natasha's room.
    
    Natasha, pale and stern, was sitting beside Marya Dmitrievna, and her
    eyes, glittering feverishly, met Pierre with a questioning look the
    moment he entered. She did not smile or nod, but only gazed fixedly at
    him, and her look asked only one thing: was he a friend, or like the
    others an enemy in regard to Anatole? As for Pierre, he evidently did
    not exist for her.
    
    "He knows all about it," said Marya Dmitrievna pointing to Pierre and
    addressing Natasha. "Let him tell you whether I have told the truth."
    
    Natasha looked from one to the other as a hunted and wounded animal
    looks at the approaching dogs and sportsmen.
    
    "Natalya Ilynichna," Pierre began, dropping his eyes with a feeling of
    pity for her and loathing for the thing he had to do, "whether it is
    true or not should make no difference to you, because..."
    
    "Then it is not true that he's married!"
    
    "Yes, it is true."
    
    "Has he been married long?" she asked. "On your honor?..."
    
    Pierre gave his word of honor.
    
    "Is he still here?" she asked, quickly.
    
    "Yes, I have just seen him."
    
    She was evidently unable to speak and made a sign with her hands that
    they should leave her alone.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    Pierre did not stay for dinner, but left the room and went away at once.
    He drove through the town seeking Anatole Kuragin, at the thought of
    whom now the blood rushed to his heart and he felt a difficulty in
    breathing. He was not at the ice hills, nor at the gypsies', nor at
    Komoneno's. Pierre drove to the club. In the club all was going on as
    usual. The members who were assembling for dinner were sitting about in
    groups; they greeted Pierre and spoke of the town news. The footman
    having greeted him, knowing his habits and his acquaintances, told him
    there was a place left for him in the small dining room and that Prince
    Michael Zakharych was in the library, but Paul Timofeevich had not yet
    arrived. One of Pierre's acquaintances, while they were talking about
    the weather, asked if he had heard of Kuragin's abduction of Rostova
    which was talked of in the town, and was it true? Pierre laughed and
    said it was nonsense for he had just come from the Rostovs'. He asked
    everyone about Anatole. One man told him he had not come yet, and
    another that he was coming to dinner. Pierre felt it strange to see this
    calm, indifferent crowd of people unaware of what was going on in his
    soul. He paced through the ballroom, waited till everyone had come, and
    as Anatole had not turned up did not stay for dinner but drove home.
    
    Anatole, for whom Pierre was looking, dined that day with Dolokhov,
    consulting him as to how to remedy this unfortunate affair. It seemed to
    him essential to see Natasha. In the evening he drove to his sister's to
    discuss with her how to arrange a meeting. When Pierre returned home
    after vainly hunting all over Moscow, his valet informed him that Prince
    Anatole was with the countess. The countess' drawing room was full of
    guests.
    
    Pierre without greeting his wife whom he had not seen since his return--
    at that moment she was more repulsive to him than ever--entered the
    drawing room and seeing Anatole went up to him.
    
    "Ah, Pierre," said the countess going up to her husband. "You don't know
    what a plight our Anatole..."
    
    She stopped, seeing in the forward thrust of her husband's head, in his
    glowing eyes and his resolute gait, the terrible indications of that
    rage and strength which she knew and had herself experienced after his
    duel with Dolokhov.
    
    "Where you are, there is vice and evil!" said Pierre to his wife.
    "Anatole, come with me! I must speak to you," he added in French.
    
    Anatole glanced round at his sister and rose submissively, ready to
    follow Pierre. Pierre, taking him by the arm, pulled him toward himself
    and was leading him from the room.
    
    "If you allow yourself in my drawing room..." whispered Helene, but
    Pierre did not reply and went out of the room.
    
    Anatole followed him with his usual jaunty step but his face betrayed
    anxiety.
    
    Having entered his study Pierre closed the door and addressed Anatole
    without looking at him.
    
    "You promised Countess Rostova to marry her and were about to elope with
    her, is that so?"
    
    "Mon cher," answered Anatole (their whole conversation was in French),
    "I don't consider myself bound to answer questions put to me in that
    tone."
    
    Pierre's face, already pale, became distorted by fury. He seized Anatole
    by the collar of his uniform with his big hand and shook him from side
    to side till Anatole's face showed a sufficient degree of terror.
    
    "When I tell you that I must talk to you!..." repeated Pierre.
    
    "Come now, this is stupid. What?" said Anatole, fingering a button of
    his collar that had been wrenched loose with a bit of the cloth.
    
    "You're a scoundrel and a blackguard, and I don't know what deprives me
    from the pleasure of smashing your head with this!" said Pierre,
    expressing himself so artificially because he was talking French.
    
    He took a heavy paperweight and lifted it threateningly, but at once put
    it back in its place.
    
    "Did you promise to marry her?"
    
    "I... I didn't think of it. I never promised, because..."
    
    Pierre interrupted him.
    
    "Have you any letters of hers? Any letters?" he said, moving toward
    Anatole.
    
    Anatole glanced at him and immediately thrust his hand into his pocket
    and drew out his pocketbook.
    
    Pierre took the letter Anatole handed him and, pushing aside a table
    that stood in his way, threw himself on the sofa.
    
    "I shan't be violent, don't be afraid!" said Pierre in answer to a
    frightened gesture of Anatole's. "First, the letters," said he, as if
    repeating a lesson to himself. "Secondly," he continued after a short
    pause, again rising and again pacing the room, "tomorrow you must get
    out of Moscow."
    
    "But how can I?..."
    
    "Thirdly," Pierre continued without listening to him, "you must never
    breathe a word of what has passed between you and Countess Rostova. I
    know I can't prevent your doing so, but if you have a spark of
    conscience..." Pierre paced the room several times in silence.
    
    Anatole sat at a table frowning and biting his lips.
    
    "After all, you must understand that besides your pleasure there is such
    a thing as other people's happiness and peace, and that you are ruining
    a whole life for the sake of amusing yourself! Amuse yourself with women
    like my wife--with them you are within your rights, for they know what
    you want of them. They are armed against you by the same experience of
    debauchery; but to promise a maid to marry her... to deceive, to
    kidnap.... Don't you understand that it is as mean as beating an old man
    or a child?..."
    
    Pierre paused and looked at Anatole no longer with an angry but with a
    questioning look.
    
    "I don't know about that, eh?" said Anatole, growing more confident as
    Pierre mastered his wrath. "I don't know that and don't want to," he
    said, not looking at Pierre and with a slight tremor of his lower jaw,
    "but you have used such words to me--'mean' and so on--which as a man of
    honor I can't allow anyone to use."
    
    Pierre glanced at him with amazement, unable to understand what he
    wanted.
    
    "Though it was tête-à-tête," Anatole continued, "still I can't..."
    
    "Is it satisfaction you want?" said Pierre ironically.
    
    "You could at least take back your words. What? If you want me to do as
    you wish, eh?"
    
    "I take them back, I take them back!" said Pierre, "and I ask you to
    forgive me." Pierre involuntarily glanced at the loose button. "And if
    you require money for your journey..."
    
    Anatole smiled. The expression of that base and cringing smile, which
    Pierre knew so well in his wife, revolted him.
    
    "Oh, vile and heartless brood!" he exclaimed, and left the room.
    
    Next day Anatole left for Petersburg.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    Pierre drove to Marya Dmitrievna's to tell her of the fulfillment of her
    wish that Kuragin should be banished from Moscow. The whole house was in
    a state of alarm and commotion. Natasha was very ill, having, as Marya
    Dmitrievna told him in secret, poisoned herself the night after she had
    been told that Anatole was married, with some arsenic she had stealthily
    procured. After swallowing a little she had been so frightened that she
    woke Sonya and told her what she had done. The necessary antidotes had
    been administered in time and she was now out of danger, though still so
    weak that it was out of the question to move her to the country, and so
    the countess had been sent for. Pierre saw the distracted count, and
    Sonya, who had a tear-stained face, but he could not see Natasha.
    
    Pierre dined at the club that day and heard on all sides gossip about
    the attempted abduction of Rostova. He resolutely denied these rumors,
    assuring everyone that nothing had happened except that his brother-in-
    law had proposed to her and been refused. It seemed to Pierre that it
    was his duty to conceal the whole affair and re-establish Natasha's
    reputation.
    
    He was awaiting Prince Andrew's return with dread and went every day to
    the old prince's for news of him.
    
    Old Prince Bolkonski heard all the rumors current in the town from
    Mademoiselle Bourienne and had read the note to Princess Mary in which
    Natasha had broken off her engagement. He seemed in better spirits than
    usual and awaited his son with great impatience.
    
    Some days after Anatole's departure Pierre received a note from Prince
    Andrew, informing him of his arrival and asking him to come to see him.
    
    As soon as he reached Moscow, Prince Andrew had received from his father
    Natasha's note to Princess Mary breaking off her engagement
    (Mademoiselle Bourienne had purloined it from Princess Mary and given it
    to the old prince), and he heard from him the story of Natasha's
    elopement, with additions.
    
    Prince Andrew had arrived in the evening and Pierre came to see him next
    morning. Pierre expected to find Prince Andrew in almost the same state
    as Natasha and was therefore surprised on entering the drawing room to
    hear him in the study talking in a loud animated voice about some
    intrigue going on in Petersburg. The old prince's voice and another now
    and then interrupted him. Princess Mary came out to meet Pierre. She
    sighed, looking toward the door of the room where Prince Andrew was,
    evidently intending to express her sympathy with his sorrow, but Pierre
    saw by her face that she was glad both at what had happened and at the
    way her brother had taken the news of Natasha's faithlessness.
    
    "He says he expected it," she remarked. "I know his pride will not let
    him express his feelings, but still he has taken it better, far better,
    than I expected. Evidently it had to be...."
    
    "But is it possible that all is really ended?" asked Pierre.
    
    Princess Mary looked at him with astonishment. She did not understand
    how he could ask such a question. Pierre went into the study. Prince
    Andrew, greatly changed and plainly in better health, but with a fresh
    horizontal wrinkle between his brows, stood in civilian dress facing his
    father and Prince Meshcherski, warmly disputing and vigorously
    gesticulating. The conversation was about Speranski--the news of whose
    sudden exile and alleged treachery had just reached Moscow.
    
    "Now he is censured and accused by all who were enthusiastic about him a
    month ago," Prince Andrew was saying, "and by those who were unable to
    understand his aims. To judge a man who is in disfavor and to throw on
    him all the blame of other men's mistakes is very easy, but I maintain
    that if anything good has been accomplished in this reign it was done by
    him, by him alone."
    
    He paused at the sight of Pierre. His face quivered and immediately
    assumed a vindictive expression.
    
    "Posterity will do him justice," he concluded, and at once turned to
    Pierre.
    
    "Well, how are you? Still getting stouter?" he said with animation, but
    the new wrinkle on his forehead deepened. "Yes, I am well," he said in
    answer to Pierre's question, and smiled.
    
    To Pierre that smile said plainly: "I am well, but my health is now of
    no use to anyone."
    
    After a few words to Pierre about the awful roads from the Polish
    frontier, about people he had met in Switzerland who knew Pierre, and
    about M. Dessalles, whom he had brought from abroad to be his son's
    tutor, Prince Andrew again joined warmly in the conversation about
    Speranski which was still going on between the two old men.
    
    "If there were treason, or proofs of secret relations with Napoleon,
    they would have been made public," he said with warmth and haste. "I do
    not, and never did, like Speranski personally, but I like justice!"
    
    Pierre now recognized in his friend a need with which he was only too
    familiar, to get excited and to have arguments about extraneous matters
    in order to stifle thoughts that were too oppressive and too intimate.
    When Prince Meshcherski had left, Prince Andrew took Pierre's arm and
    asked him into the room that had been assigned him. A bed had been made
    up there, and some open portmanteaus and trunks stood about. Prince
    Andrew went to one and took out a small casket, from which he drew a
    packet wrapped in paper. He did it all silently and very quickly. He
    stood up and coughed. His face was gloomy and his lips compressed.
    
    "Forgive me for troubling you..."
    
    Pierre saw that Prince Andrew was going to speak of Natasha, and his
    broad face expressed pity and sympathy. This expression irritated Prince
    Andrew, and in a determined, ringing, and unpleasant tone he continued:
    
    "I have received a refusal from Countess Rostova and have heard reports
    of your brother-in-law having sought her hand, or something of that
    kind. Is that true?"
    
    "Both true and untrue," Pierre began; but Prince Andrew interrupted him.
    
    "Here are her letters and her portrait," said he.
    
    He took the packet from the table and handed it to Pierre.
    
    "Give this to the countess... if you see her."
    
    "She is very ill," said Pierre.
    
    "Then she is here still?" said Prince Andrew. "And Prince Kuragin?" he
    added quickly.
    
    "He left long ago. She has been at death's door."
    
    "I much regret her illness," said Prince Andrew; and he smiled like his
    father, coldly, maliciously, and unpleasantly.
    
    "So Monsieur Kuragin has not honored Countess Rostova with his hand?"
    said Prince Andrew, and he snorted several times.
    
    "He could not marry, for he was married already," said Pierre.
    
    Prince Andrew laughed disagreeably, again reminding one of his father.
    
    "And where is your brother-in-law now, if I may ask?" he said.
    
    "He has gone to Peters... But I don't know," said Pierre.
    
    "Well, it doesn't matter," said Prince Andrew. "Tell Countess Rostova
    that she was and is perfectly free and that I wish her all that is
    good."
    
    Pierre took the packet. Prince Andrew, as if trying to remember whether
    he had something more to say, or waiting to see if Pierre would say
    anything, looked fixedly at him.
    
    "I say, do you remember our discussion in Petersburg?" asked Pierre,
    "about..."
    
    "Yes," returned Prince Andrew hastily. "I said that a fallen woman
    should be forgiven, but I didn't say I could forgive her. I can't."
    
    "But can this be compared...?" said Pierre.
    
    Prince Andrew interrupted him and cried sharply: "Yes, ask her hand
    again, be magnanimous, and so on?... Yes, that would be very noble, but
    I am unable to follow in that gentleman's footsteps. If you wish to be
    my friend never speak to me of that... of all that! Well, good-by. So
    you'll give her the packet?"
    
    Pierre left the room and went to the old prince and Princess Mary.
    
    The old man seemed livelier than usual. Princess Mary was the same as
    always, but beneath her sympathy for her brother, Pierre noticed her
    satisfaction that the engagement had been broken off. Looking at them
    Pierre realized what contempt and animosity they all felt for the
    Rostovs, and that it was impossible in their presence even to mention
    the name of her who could give up Prince Andrew for anyone else.
    
    At dinner the talk turned on the war, the approach of which was becoming
    evident. Prince Andrew talked incessantly, arguing now with his father,
    now with the Swiss tutor Dessalles, and showing an unnatural animation,
    the cause of which Pierre so well understood.
    
    CHAPTER XXII
    
    That same evening Pierre went to the Rostovs' to fulfill the commission
    entrusted to him. Natasha was in bed, the count at the club, and Pierre,
    after giving the letters to Sonya, went to Marya Dmitrievna who was
    interested to know how Prince Andrew had taken the news. Ten minutes
    later Sonya came to Marya Dmitrievna.
    
    "Natasha insists on seeing Count Peter Kirilovich," said she.
    
    "But how? Are we to take him up to her? The room there has not been
    tidied up."
    
    "No, she has dressed and gone into the drawing room," said Sonya.
    
    Marya Dmitrievna only shrugged her shoulders.
    
    "When will her mother come? She has worried me to death! Now mind, don't
    tell her everything!" said she to Pierre. "One hasn't the heart to scold
    her, she is so much to be pitied, so much to be pitied."
    
    Natasha was standing in the middle of the drawing room, emaciated, with
    a pale set face, but not at all shamefaced as Pierre expected to find
    her. When he appeared at the door she grew flurried, evidently undecided
    whether to go to meet him or to wait till he came up.
    
    Pierre hastened to her. He thought she would give him her hand as usual;
    but she, stepping up to him, stopped, breathing heavily, her arms
    hanging lifelessly just in the pose she used to stand in when she went
    to the middle of the ballroom to sing, but with quite a different
    expression of face.
    
    "Peter Kirilovich," she began rapidly, "Prince Bolkonski was your
    friend--is your friend," she corrected herself. (It seemed to her that
    everything that had once been must now be different.) "He told me once
    to apply to you..."
    
    Pierre sniffed as he looked at her, but did not speak. Till then he had
    reproached her in his heart and tried to despise her, but he now felt so
    sorry for her that there was no room in his soul for reproach.
    
    "He is here now: tell him... to for... forgive me!" She stopped and
    breathed still more quickly, but did not shed tears.
    
    "Yes... I will tell him," answered Pierre; "but..."
    
    He did not know what to say.
    
    Natasha was evidently dismayed at the thought of what he might think she
    had meant.
    
    "No, I know all is over," she said hurriedly. "No, that can never be.
    I'm only tormented by the wrong I have done him. Tell him only that I
    beg him to forgive, forgive, forgive me for everything...."
    
    She trembled all over and sat down on a chair.
    
    A sense of pity he had never before known overflowed Pierre's heart.
    
    "I will tell him, I will tell him everything once more," said Pierre.
    "But... I should like to know one thing...."
    
    "Know what?" Natasha's eyes asked.
    
    "I should like to know, did you love..." Pierre did not know how to
    refer to Anatole and flushed at the thought of him--"did you love that
    bad man?"
    
    "Don't call him bad!" said Natasha. "But I don't know, don't know at
    all...."
    
    She began to cry and a still greater sense of pity, tenderness, and love
    welled up in Pierre. He felt the tears trickle under his spectacles and
    hoped they would not be noticed.
    
    "We won't speak of it any more, my dear," said Pierre, and his gentle,
    cordial tone suddenly seemed very strange to Natasha.
    
    "We won't speak of it, my dear--I'll tell him everything; but one thing
    I beg of you, consider me your friend and if you want help, advice, or
    simply to open your heart to someone--not now, but when your mind is
    clearer think of me!" He took her hand and kissed it. "I shall be happy
    if it's in my power..."
    
    Pierre grew confused.
    
    "Don't speak to me like that. I am not worth it!" exclaimed Natasha and
    turned to leave the room, but Pierre held her hand.
    
    He knew he had something more to say to her. But when he said it he was
    amazed at his own words.
    
    "Stop, stop! You have your whole life before you," said he to her.
    
    "Before me? No! All is over for me," she replied with shame and self-
    abasement.
    
    "All over?" he repeated. "If I were not myself, but the handsomest,
    cleverest, and best man in the world, and were free, I would this moment
    ask on my knees for your hand and your love!"
    
    For the first time for many days Natasha wept tears of gratitude and
    tenderness, and glancing at Pierre she went out of the room.
    
    Pierre too when she had gone almost ran into the anteroom, restraining
    tears of tenderness and joy that choked him, and without finding the
    sleeves of his fur cloak threw it on and got into his sleigh.
    
    "Where to now, your excellency?" asked the coachman.
    
    "Where to?" Pierre asked himself. "Where can I go now? Surely not to the
    club or to pay calls?" All men seemed so pitiful, so poor, in comparison
    with this feeling of tenderness and love he experienced: in comparison
    with that softened, grateful, last look she had given him through her
    tears.
    
    "Home!" said Pierre, and despite twenty-two degrees of frost Fahrenheit
    he threw open the bearskin cloak from his broad chest and inhaled the
    air with joy.
    
    It was clear and frosty. Above the dirty, ill-lit streets, above the
    black roofs, stretched the dark starry sky. Only looking up at the sky
    did Pierre cease to feel how sordid and humiliating were all mundane
    things compared with the heights to which his soul had just been raised.
    At the entrance to the Arbat Square an immense expanse of dark starry
    sky presented itself to his eyes. Almost in the center of it, above the
    Prechistenka Boulevard, surrounded and sprinkled on all sides by stars
    but distinguished from them all by its nearness to the earth, its white
    light, and its long uplifted tail, shone the enormous and brilliant
    comet of 1812--the comet which was said to portend all kinds of woes and
    the end of the world. In Pierre, however, that comet with its long
    luminous tail aroused no feeling of fear. On the contrary he gazed
    joyfully, his eyes moist with tears, at this bright comet which, having
    traveled in its orbit with inconceivable velocity through immeasurable
    space, seemed suddenly--like an arrow piercing the earth--to remain
    fixed in a chosen spot, vigorously holding its tail erect, shining and
    displaying its white light amid countless other scintillating stars. It
    seemed to Pierre that this comet fully responded to what was passing in
    his own softened and uplifted soul, now blossoming into a new life.
    
    BOOK NINE: 1812
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    From the close of the year 1811 intensified arming and concentrating of
    the forces of Western Europe began, and in 1812 these forces--millions
    of men, reckoning those transporting and feeding the army--moved from
    the west eastwards to the Russian frontier, toward which since 1811
    Russian forces had been similarly drawn. On the twelfth of June, 1812,
    the forces of Western Europe crossed the Russian frontier and war began,
    that is, an event took place opposed to human reason and to human
    nature. Millions of men perpetrated against one another such innumerable
    crimes, frauds, treacheries, thefts, forgeries, issues of false money,
    burglaries, incendiarisms, and murders as in whole centuries are not
    recorded in the annals of all the law courts of the world, but which
    those who committed them did not at the time regard as being crimes.
    
    What produced this extraordinary occurrence? What were its causes? The
    historians tell us with naive assurance that its causes were the wrongs
    inflicted on the Duke of Oldenburg, the nonobservance of the Continental
    System, the ambition of Napoleon, the firmness of Alexander, the
    mistakes of the diplomatists, and so on.
    
    Consequently, it would only have been necessary for Metternich,
    Rumyantsev, or Talleyrand, between a levee and an evening party, to have
    taken proper pains and written a more adroit note, or for Napoleon to
    have written to Alexander: "My respected Brother, I consent to restore
    the duchy to the Duke of Oldenburg"--and there would have been no war.
    
    We can understand that the matter seemed like that to contemporaries. It
    naturally seemed to Napoleon that the war was caused by England's
    intrigues (as in fact he said on the island of St. Helena). It naturally
    seemed to members of the English Parliament that the cause of the war
    was Napoleon's ambition; to the Duke of Oldenburg, that the cause of the
    war was the violence done to him; to businessmen that the cause of the
    war was the Continental System which was ruining Europe; to the generals
    and old soldiers that the chief reason for the war was the necessity of
    giving them employment; to the legitimists of that day that it was the
    need of re-establishing les bons principes, and to the diplomatists of
    that time that it all resulted from the fact that the alliance between
    Russia and Austria in 1809 had not been sufficiently well concealed from
    Napoleon, and from the awkward wording of Memorandum No. 178. It is
    natural that these and a countless and infinite quantity of other
    reasons, the number depending on the endless diversity of points of
    view, presented themselves to the men of that day; but to us, to
    posterity who view the thing that happened in all its magnitude and
    perceive its plain and terrible meaning, these causes seem insufficient.
    To us it is incomprehensible that millions of Christian men killed and
    tortured each other either because Napoleon was ambitious or Alexander
    was firm, or because England's policy was astute or the Duke of
    Oldenburg wronged. We cannot grasp what connection such circumstances
    have with the actual fact of slaughter and violence: why because the
    Duke was wronged, thousands of men from the other side of Europe killed
    and ruined the people of Smolensk and Moscow and were killed by them.
    
    To us, their descendants, who are not historians and are not carried
    away by the process of research and can therefore regard the event with
    unclouded common sense, an incalculable number of causes present
    themselves. The deeper we delve in search of these causes the more of
    them we find; and each separate cause or whole series of causes appears
    to us equally valid in itself and equally false by its insignificance
    compared to the magnitude of the events, and by its impotence--apart
    from the cooperation of all the other coincident causes--to occasion the
    event. To us, the wish or objection of this or that French corporal to
    serve a second term appears as much a cause as Napoleon's refusal to
    withdraw his troops beyond the Vistula and to restore the duchy of
    Oldenburg; for had he not wished to serve, and had a second, a third,
    and a thousandth corporal and private also refused, there would have
    been so many less men in Napoleon's army and the war could not have
    occurred.
    
    Had Napoleon not taken offense at the demand that he should withdraw
    beyond the Vistula, and not ordered his troops to advance, there would
    have been no war; but had all his sergeants objected to serving a second
    term then also there could have been no war. Nor could there have been a
    war had there been no English intrigues and no Duke of Oldenburg, and
    had Alexander not felt insulted, and had there not been an autocratic
    government in Russia, or a Revolution in France and a subsequent
    dictatorship and Empire, or all the things that produced the French
    Revolution, and so on. Without each of these causes nothing could have
    happened. So all these causes--myriads of causes--coincided to bring it
    about. And so there was no one cause for that occurrence, but it had to
    occur because it had to. Millions of men, renouncing their human
    feelings and reason, had to go from west to east to slay their fellows,
    just as some centuries previously hordes of men had come from the east
    to the west, slaying their fellows.
    
    The actions of Napoleon and Alexander, on whose words the event seemed
    to hang, were as little voluntary as the actions of any soldier who was
    drawn into the campaign by lot or by conscription. This could not be
    otherwise, for in order that the will of Napoleon and Alexander (on whom
    the event seemed to depend) should be carried out, the concurrence of
    innumerable circumstances was needed without any one of which the event
    could not have taken place. It was necessary that millions of men in
    whose hands lay the real power--the soldiers who fired, or transported
    provisions and guns--should consent to carry out the will of these weak
    individuals, and should have been induced to do so by an infinite number
    of diverse and complex causes.
    
    We are forced to fall back on fatalism as an explanation of irrational
    events (that is to say, events the reasonableness of which we do not
    understand). The more we try to explain such events in history
    reasonably, the more unreasonable and incomprehensible do they become to
    us.
    
    Each man lives for himself, using his freedom to attain his personal
    aims, and feels with his whole being that he can now do or abstain from
    doing this or that action; but as soon as he has done it, that action
    performed at a certain moment in time becomes irrevocable and belongs to
    history, in which it has not a free but a predestined significance.
    
    There are two sides to the life of every man, his individual life, which
    is the more free the more abstract its interests, and his elemental hive
    life in which he inevitably obeys laws laid down for him.
    
    Man lives consciously for himself, but is an unconscious instrument in
    the attainment of the historic, universal, aims of humanity. A deed done
    is irrevocable, and its result coinciding in time with the actions of
    millions of other men assumes an historic significance. The higher a man
    stands on the social ladder, the more people he is connected with and
    the more power he has over others, the more evident is the
    predestination and inevitability of his every action.
    
    "The king's heart is in the hands of the Lord."
    
    A king is history's slave.
    
    History, that is, the unconscious, general, hive life of mankind, uses
    every moment of the life of kings as a tool for its own purposes.
    
    Though Napoleon at that time, in 1812, was more convinced than ever that
    it depended on him, verser (ou ne pas verser) le sang de ses peuples *--
    as Alexander expressed it in the last letter he wrote him--he had never
    been so much in the grip of inevitable laws, which compelled him, while
    thinking that he was acting on his own volition, to perform for the hive
    life--that is to say, for history--whatever had to be performed.
    
    * "To shed (or not to shed) the blood of his peoples."
    
    The people of the west moved eastwards to slay their fellow men, and by
    the law of coincidence thousands of minute causes fitted in and co-
    ordinated to produce that movement and war: reproaches for the
    nonobservance of the Continental System, the Duke of Oldenburg's wrongs,
    the movement of troops into Prussia--undertaken (as it seemed to
    Napoleon) only for the purpose of securing an armed peace, the French
    Emperor's love and habit of war coinciding with his people's
    inclinations, allurement by the grandeur of the preparations, and the
    expenditure on those preparations and the need of obtaining advantages
    to compensate for that expenditure, the intoxicating honors he received
    in Dresden, the diplomatic negotiations which, in the opinion of
    contemporaries, were carried on with a sincere desire to attain peace,
    but which only wounded the self-love of both sides, and millions of
    other causes that adapted themselves to the event that was happening or
    coincided with it.
    
    When an apple has ripened and falls, why does it fall? Because of its
    attraction to the earth, because its stalk withers, because it is dried
    by the sun, because it grows heavier, because the wind shakes it, or
    because the boy standing below wants to eat it?
    
    Nothing is the cause. All this is only the coincidence of conditions in
    which all vital organic and elemental events occur. And the botanist who
    finds that the apple falls because the cellular tissue decays and so
    forth is equally right with the child who stands under the tree and says
    the apple fell because he wanted to eat it and prayed for it. Equally
    right or wrong is he who says that Napoleon went to Moscow because he
    wanted to, and perished because Alexander desired his destruction, and
    he who says that an undermined hill weighing a million tons fell because
    the last navvy struck it for the last time with his mattock. In historic
    events the so-called great men are labels giving names to events, and
    like labels they have but the smallest connection with the event itself.
    
    Every act of theirs, which appears to them an act of their own will, is
    in an historical sense involuntary and is related to the whole course of
    history and predestined from eternity.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    On the twenty-ninth of May Napoleon left Dresden, where he had spent
    three weeks surrounded by a court that included princes, dukes, kings,
    and even an emperor. Before leaving, Napoleon showed favor to the
    emperor, kings, and princes who had deserved it, reprimanded the kings
    and princes with whom he was dissatisfied, presented pearls and diamonds
    of his own--that is, which he had taken from other kings--to the Empress
    of Austria, and having, as his historian tells us, tenderly embraced the
    Empress Marie Louise--who regarded him as her husband, though he had
    left another wife in Paris--left her grieved by the parting which she
    seemed hardly able to bear. Though the diplomatists still firmly
    believed in the possibility of peace and worked zealously to that end,
    and though the Emperor Napoleon himself wrote a letter to Alexander,
    calling him Monsieur mon frere, and sincerely assured him that he did
    not want war and would always love and honor him--yet he set off to join
    his army, and at every station gave fresh orders to accelerate the
    movement of his troops from west to east. He went in a traveling coach
    with six horses, surrounded by pages, aides-de-camp, and an escort,
    along the road to Posen, Thorn, Danzig, and Konigsberg. At each of these
    towns thousands of people met him with excitement and enthusiasm.
    
    The army was moving from west to east, and relays of six horses carried
    him in the same direction. On the tenth of June, * coming up with the
    army, he spent the night in apartments prepared for him on the estate of
    a Polish count in the Vilkavisski forest.
    
    * Old style.
    
    Next day, overtaking the army, he went in a carriage to the Niemen, and,
    changing into a Polish uniform, he drove to the riverbank in order to
    select a place for the crossing.
    
    Seeing, on the other side, some Cossacks (les Cosaques) and the wide-
    spreading steppes in the midst of which lay the holy city of Moscow
    (Moscou, la ville sainte), the capital of a realm such as the Scythia
    into which Alexander the Great had marched--Napoleon unexpectedly, and
    contrary alike to strategic and diplomatic considerations, ordered an
    advance, and the next day his army began to cross the Niemen.
    
    Early in the morning of the twelfth of June he came out of his tent,
    which was pitched that day on the steep left bank of the Niemen, and
    looked through a spyglass at the streams of his troops pouring out of
    the Vilkavisski forest and flowing over the three bridges thrown across
    the river. The troops, knowing of the Emperor's presence, were on the
    lookout for him, and when they caught sight of a figure in an overcoat
    and a cocked hat standing apart from his suite in front of his tent on
    the hill, they threw up their caps and shouted: "Vive l'Empereur!" and
    one after another poured in a ceaseless stream out of the vast forest
    that had concealed them and, separating, flowed on and on by the three
    bridges to the other side.
    
    "Now we'll go into action. Oh, when he takes it in hand himself, things
    get hot... by heaven!... There he is!... Vive l'Empereur! So these are
    the steppes of Asia! It's a nasty country all the same. Au revoir,
    Beauche; I'll keep the best palace in Moscow for you! Au revoir. Good
    luck!... Did you see the Emperor? Vive l'Empereur!... preur!--If they
    make me Governor of India, Gerard, I'll make you Minister of Kashmir--
    that's settled. Vive l'Empereur! Hurrah! hurrah! hurrah! The Cossacks--
    those rascals--see how they run! Vive l'Empereur! There he is, do you
    see him? I've seen him twice, as I see you now. The little corporal... I
    saw him give the cross to one of the veterans.... Vive l'Empereur!" came
    the voices of men, old and young, of most diverse characters and social
    positions. On the faces of all was one common expression of joy at the
    commencement of the long-expected campaign and of rapture and devotion
    to the man in the gray coat who was standing on the hill.
    
    On the thirteenth of June a rather small, thoroughbred Arab horse was
    brought to Napoleon. He mounted it and rode at a gallop to one of the
    bridges over the Niemen, deafened continually by incessant and rapturous
    acclamations which he evidently endured only because it was impossible
    to forbid the soldiers to express their love of him by such shouting,
    but the shouting which accompanied him everywhere disturbed him and
    distracted him from the military cares that had occupied him from the
    time he joined the army. He rode across one of the swaying pontoon
    bridges to the farther side, turned sharply to the left, and galloped in
    the direction of Kovno, preceded by enraptured, mounted chasseurs of the
    Guard who, breathless with delight, galloped ahead to clear a path for
    him through the troops. On reaching the broad river Viliya, he stopped
    near a regiment of Polish uhlans stationed by the river.
    
    "Vivat!" shouted the Poles, ecstatically, breaking their ranks and
    pressing against one another to see him.
    
    Napoleon looked up and down the river, dismounted, and sat down on a log
    that lay on the bank. At a mute sign from him, a telescope was handed
    him which he rested on the back of a happy page who had run up to him,
    and he gazed at the opposite bank. Then he became absorbed in a map laid
    out on the logs. Without lifting his head he said something, and two of
    his aides-de-camp galloped off to the Polish uhlans.
    
    "What? What did he say?" was heard in the ranks of the Polish uhlans
    when one of the aides-de-camp rode up to them.
    
    The order was to find a ford and to cross the river. The colonel of the
    Polish uhlans, a handsome old man, flushed and, fumbling in his speech
    from excitement, asked the aide-de-camp whether he would be permitted to
    swim the river with his uhlans instead of seeking a ford. In evident
    fear of refusal, like a boy asking for permission to get on a horse, he
    begged to be allowed to swim across the river before the Emperor's eyes.
    The aide-de-camp replied that probably the Emperor would not be
    displeased at this excess of zeal.
    
    As soon as the aide-de-camp had said this, the old mustached officer,
    with happy face and sparkling eyes, raised his saber, shouted "Vivat!"
    and, commanding the uhlans to follow him, spurred his horse and galloped
    into the river. He gave an angry thrust to his horse, which had grown
    restive under him, and plunged into the water, heading for the deepest
    part where the current was swift. Hundreds of uhlans galloped in after
    him. It was cold and uncanny in the rapid current in the middle of the
    stream, and the uhlans caught hold of one another as they fell off their
    horses. Some of the horses were drowned and some of the men; the others
    tried to swim on, some in the saddle and some clinging to their horses'
    manes. They tried to make their way forward to the opposite bank and,
    though there was a ford one third of a mile away, were proud that they
    were swimming and drowning in this river under the eyes of the man who
    sat on the log and was not even looking at what they were doing. When
    the aide-de-camp, having returned and choosing an opportune moment,
    ventured to draw the Emperor's attention to the devotion of the Poles to
    his person, the little man in the gray overcoat got up and, having
    summoned Berthier, began pacing up and down the bank with him, giving
    him instructions and occasionally glancing disapprovingly at the
    drowning uhlans who distracted his attention.
    
    For him it was no new conviction that his presence in any part of the
    world, from Africa to the steppes of Muscovy alike, was enough to
    dumfound people and impel them to insane self-oblivion. He called for
    his horse and rode to his quarters.
    
    Some forty uhlans were drowned in the river, though boats were sent to
    their assistance. The majority struggled back to the bank from which
    they had started. The colonel and some of his men got across and with
    difficulty clambered out on the further bank. And as soon as they had
    got out, in their soaked and streaming clothes, they shouted "Vivat!"
    and looked ecstatically at the spot where Napoleon had been but where he
    no longer was and at that moment considered themselves happy.
    
    That evening, between issuing one order that the forged Russian paper
    money prepared for use in Russia should be delivered as quickly as
    possible and another that a Saxon should be shot, on whom a letter
    containing information about the orders to the French army had been
    found, Napoleon also gave instructions that the Polish colonel who had
    needlessly plunged into the river should be enrolled in the Legion
    d'honneur of which Napoleon was himself the head.
    
    Quos vult perdere dementat. *
    
    * Those whom (God) wishes to destroy he drives mad.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    The Emperor of Russia had, meanwhile, been in Vilna for more than a
    month, reviewing troops and holding maneuvers. Nothing was ready for the
    war that everyone expected and to prepare for which the Emperor had come
    from Petersburg. There was no general plan of action. The vacillation
    between the various plans that were proposed had even increased after
    the Emperor had been at headquarters for a month. Each of the three
    armies had its own commander-in-chief, but there was no supreme
    commander of all the forces, and the Emperor did not assume that
    responsibility himself.
    
    The longer the Emperor remained in Vilna the less did everybody--tired
    of waiting--prepare for the war. All the efforts of those who surrounded
    the sovereign seemed directed merely to making him spend his time
    pleasantly and forget that war was impending.
    
    In June, after many balls and fetes given by the Polish magnates, by the
    courtiers, and by the Emperor himself, it occurred to one of the Polish
    aides-de-camp in attendance that a dinner and ball should be given for
    the Emperor by his aides-de-camp. This idea was eagerly received. The
    Emperor gave his consent. The aides-de-camp collected money by
    subscription. The lady who was thought to be most pleasing to the
    Emperor was invited to act as hostess. Count Bennigsen, being a
    landowner in the Vilna province, offered his country house for the fete,
    and the thirteenth of June was fixed for a ball, dinner, regatta, and
    fireworks at Zakret, Count Bennigsen's country seat.
    
    The very day that Napoleon issued the order to cross the Niemen, and his
    vanguard, driving off the Cossacks, crossed the Russian frontier,
    Alexander spent the evening at the entertainment given by his aides-de-
    camp at Bennigsen's country house.
    
    It was a gay and brilliant fete. Connoisseurs of such matters declared
    that rarely had so many beautiful women been assembled in one place.
    Countess Bezukhova was present among other Russian ladies who had
    followed the sovereign from Petersburg to Vilna and eclipsed the refined
    Polish ladies by her massive, so-called Russian type of beauty. The
    Emperor noticed her and honored her with a dance.
    
    Boris Drubetskoy, having left his wife in Moscow and being for the
    present en garcon (as he phrased it), was also there and, though not an
    aide-de-camp, had subscribed a large sum toward the expenses. Boris was
    now a rich man who had risen to high honors and no longer sought
    patronage but stood on an equal footing with the highest of those of his
    own age. He was meeting Helene in Vilna after not having seen her for a
    long time and did not recall the past, but as Helene was enjoying the
    favors of a very important personage and Boris had only recently
    married, they met as good friends of long standing.
    
    At midnight dancing was still going on. Helene, not having a suitable
    partner, herself offered to dance the mazurka with Boris. They were the
    third couple. Boris, coolly looking at Helene's dazzling bare shoulders
    which emerged from a dark, gold-embroidered, gauze gown, talked to her
    of old acquaintances and at the same time, unaware of it himself and
    unnoticed by others, never for an instant ceased to observe the Emperor
    who was in the same room. The Emperor was not dancing, he stood in the
    doorway, stopping now one pair and now another with gracious words which
    he alone knew how to utter.
    
    As the mazurka began, Boris saw that Adjutant General Balashev, one of
    those in closest attendance on the Emperor, went up to him and contrary
    to court etiquette stood near him while he was talking to a Polish lady.
    Having finished speaking to her, the Emperor looked inquiringly at
    Balashev and, evidently understanding that he only acted thus because
    there were important reasons for so doing, nodded slightly to the lady
    and turned to him. Hardly had Balashev begun to speak before a look of
    amazement appeared on the Emperor's face. He took Balashev by the arm
    and crossed the room with him, unconsciously clearing a path seven yards
    wide as the people on both sides made way for him. Boris noticed
    Arakcheev's excited face when the sovereign went out with Balashev.
    Arakcheev looked at the Emperor from under his brow and, sniffing with
    his red nose, stepped forward from the crowd as if expecting the Emperor
    to address him. (Boris understood that Arakcheev envied Balashev and was
    displeased that evidently important news had reached the Emperor
    otherwise than through himself.)
    
    But the Emperor and Balashev passed out into the illuminated garden
    without noticing Arakcheev who, holding his sword and glancing
    wrathfully around, followed some twenty paces behind them.
    
    All the time Boris was going through the figures of the mazurka, he was
    worried by the question of what news Balashev had brought and how he
    could find it out before others. In the figure in which he had to choose
    two ladies, he whispered to Helene that he meant to choose Countess
    Potocka who, he thought, had gone out onto the veranda, and glided over
    the parquet to the door opening into the garden, where, seeing Balashev
    and the Emperor returning to the veranda, he stood still. They were
    moving toward the door. Boris, fluttering as if he had not had time to
    withdraw, respectfully pressed close to the doorpost with bowed head.
    
    The Emperor, with the agitation of one who has been personally
    affronted, was finishing with these words:
    
    "To enter Russia without declaring war! I will not make peace as long as
    a single armed enemy remains in my country!" It seemed to Boris that it
    gave the Emperor pleasure to utter these words. He was satisfied with
    the form in which he had expressed his thoughts, but displeased that
    Boris had overheard it.
    
    "Let no one know of it!" the Emperor added with a frown.
    
    Boris understood that this was meant for him and, closing his eyes,
    slightly bowed his head. The Emperor re-entered the ballroom and
    remained there about another half-hour.
    
    Boris was thus the first to learn the news that the French army had
    crossed the Niemen and, thanks to this, was able to show certain
    important personages that much that was concealed from others was
    usually known to him, and by this means he rose higher in their
    estimation.
    
    The unexpected news of the French having crossed the Niemen was
    particularly startling after a month of unfulfilled expectations, and at
    a ball. On first receiving the news, under the influence of indignation
    and resentment the Emperor had found a phrase that pleased him, fully
    expressed his feelings, and has since become famous. On returning home
    at two o'clock that night he sent for his secretary, Shishkov, and told
    him to write an order to the troops and a rescript to Field Marshal
    Prince Saltykov, in which he insisted on the words being inserted that
    he would not make peace so long as a single armed Frenchman remained on
    Russian soil.
    
    Next day the following letter was sent to Napoleon:
    
    Monsieur mon frere,
    
    Yesterday I learned that, despite the loyalty with which I have kept my
    engagements with Your Majesty, your troops have crossed the Russian
    frontier, and I have this moment received from Petersburg a note, in
    which Count Lauriston informs me, as a reason for this aggression, that
    Your Majesty has considered yourself to be in a state of war with me
    from the time Prince Kuragin asked for his passports. The reasons on
    which the Duc de Bassano based his refusal to deliver them to him would
    never have led me to suppose that that could serve as a pretext for
    aggression. In fact, the ambassador, as he himself has declared, was
    never authorized to make that demand, and as soon as I was informed of
    it I let him know how much I disapproved of it and ordered him to remain
    at his post. If Your Majesty does not intend to shed the blood of our
    peoples for such a misunderstanding, and consents to withdraw your
    troops from Russian territory, I will regard what has passed as not
    having occurred and an understanding between us will be possible. In the
    contrary case, Your Majesty, I shall see myself forced to repel an
    attack that nothing on my part has provoked. It still depends on Your
    Majesty to preserve humanity from the calamity of another war. I am,
    etc.,
    
    (signed) Alexander.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    At two in the morning of the fourteenth of June, the Emperor, having
    sent for Balashev and read him his letter to Napoleon, ordered him to
    take it and hand it personally to the French Emperor. When dispatching
    Balashev, the Emperor repeated to him the words that he would not make
    peace so long as a single armed enemy remained on Russian soil and told
    him to transmit those words to Napoleon. Alexander did not insert them
    in his letter to Napoleon, because with his characteristic tact he felt
    it would be injudicious to use them at a moment when a last attempt at
    reconciliation was being made, but he definitely instructed Balashev to
    repeat them personally to Napoleon.
    
    Having set off in the small hours of the fourteenth, accompanied by a
    bugler and two Cossacks, Balashev reached the French outposts at the
    village of Rykonty, on the Russian side of the Niemen, by dawn. There he
    was stopped by French cavalry sentinels.
    
    A French noncommissioned officer of hussars, in crimson uniform and a
    shaggy cap, shouted to the approaching Balashev to halt. Balashev did
    not do so at once, but continued to advance along the road at a walking
    pace.
    
    The noncommissioned officer frowned and, muttering words of abuse,
    advanced his horse's chest against Balashev, put his hand to his saber,
    and shouted rudely at the Russian general, asking: was he deaf that he
    did not do as he was told? Balashev mentioned who he was. The
    noncommissioned officer began talking with his comrades about regimental
    matters without looking at the Russian general.
    
    After living at the seat of the highest authority and power, after
    conversing with the Emperor less than three hours before, and in general
    being accustomed to the respect due to his rank in the service, Balashev
    found it very strange here on Russian soil to encounter this hostile,
    and still more this disrespectful, application of brute force to
    himself.
    
    The sun was only just appearing from behind the clouds, the air was
    fresh and dewy. A herd of cattle was being driven along the road from
    the village, and over the fields the larks rose trilling, one after
    another, like bubbles rising in water.
    
    Balashev looked around him, awaiting the arrival of an officer from the
    village. The Russian Cossacks and bugler and the French hussars looked
    silently at one another from time to time.
    
    A French colonel of hussars, who had evidently just left his bed, came
    riding from the village on a handsome sleek gray horse, accompanied by
    two hussars. The officer, the soldiers, and their horses all looked
    smart and well kept.
    
    It was that first period of a campaign when troops are still in full
    trim, almost like that of peacetime maneuvers, but with a shade of
    martial swagger in their clothes, and a touch of the gaiety and spirit
    of enterprise which always accompany the opening of a campaign.
    
    The French colonel with difficulty repressed a yawn, but was polite and
    evidently understood Balashev's importance. He led him past his soldiers
    and behind the outposts and told him that his wish to be presented to
    the Emperor would most likely be satisfied immediately, as the Emperor's
    quarters were, he believed, not far off.
    
    They rode through the village of Rykonty, past tethered French hussar
    horses, past sentinels and men who saluted their colonel and stared with
    curiosity at a Russian uniform, and came out at the other end of the
    village. The colonel said that the commander of the division was a mile
    and a quarter away and would receive Balashev and conduct him to his
    destination.
    
    The sun had by now risen and shone gaily on the bright verdure.
    
    They had hardly ridden up a hill, past a tavern, before they saw a group
    of horsemen coming toward them. In front of the group, on a black horse
    with trappings that glittered in the sun, rode a tall man with plumes in
    his hat and black hair curling down to his shoulders. He wore a red
    mantle, and stretched his long legs forward in French fashion. This man
    rode toward Balashev at a gallop, his plumes flowing and his gems and
    gold lace glittering in the bright June sunshine.
    
    Balashev was only two horses' length from the equestrian with the
    bracelets, plumes, necklaces, and gold embroidery, who was galloping
    toward him with a theatrically solemn countenance, when Julner, the
    French colonel, whispered respectfully: "The King of Naples!" It was, in
    fact, Murat, now called "King of Naples." Though it was quite
    incomprehensible why he should be King of Naples, he was called so, and
    was himself convinced that he was so, and therefore assumed a more
    solemn and important air than formerly. He was so sure that he really
    was the King of Naples that when, on the eve of his departure from that
    city, while walking through the streets with his wife, some Italians
    called out to him: "Viva il re!" * he turned to his wife with a pensive
    smile and said: "Poor fellows, they don't know that I am leaving them
    tomorrow!"
    
    * "Long live the king."
    
    But though he firmly believed himself to be King of Naples and pitied
    the grief felt by the subjects he was abandoning, latterly, after he had
    been ordered to return to military service--and especially since his
    last interview with Napoleon in Danzig, when his august brother-in-law
    had told him: "I made you King that you should reign in my way, but not
    in yours!"--he had cheerfully taken up his familiar business, and--like
    a well-fed but not overfat horse that feels himself in harness and grows
    skittish between the shafts--he dressed up in clothes as variegated and
    expensive as possible, and gaily and contentedly galloped along the
    roads of Poland, without himself knowing why or whither.
    
    On seeing the Russian general he threw back his head, with its long hair
    curling to his shoulders, in a majestically royal manner, and looked
    inquiringly at the French colonel. The colonel respectfully informed His
    Majesty of Balashev's mission, whose name he could not pronounce.
    
    "De Bal-macheve!" said the King (overcoming by his assurance the
    difficulty that had presented itself to the colonel). "Charmed to make
    your acquaintance, General!" he added, with a gesture of kingly
    condescension.
    
    As soon as the King began to speak loud and fast his royal dignity
    instantly forsook him, and without noticing it he passed into his
    natural tone of good-natured familiarity. He laid his hand on the
    withers of Balashev's horse and said:
    
    "Well, General, it all looks like war," as if regretting a circumstance
    of which he was unable to judge.
    
    "Your Majesty," replied Balashev, "my master, the Emperor, does not
    desire war and as Your Majesty sees..." said Balashev, using the words
    Your Majesty at every opportunity, with the affectation unavoidable in
    frequently addressing one to whom the title was still a novelty.
    
    Murat's face beamed with stupid satisfaction as he listened to "Monsieur
    de Bal-macheve." But royaute oblige! * and he felt it incumbent on him,
    as a king and an ally, to confer on state affairs with Alexander's
    envoy. He dismounted, took Balashev's arm, and moving a few steps away
    from his suite, which waited respectfully, began to pace up and down
    with him, trying to speak significantly. He referred to the fact that
    the Emperor Napoleon had resented the demand that he should withdraw his
    troops from Prussia, especially when that demand became generally known
    and the dignity of France was thereby offended.
    
    * "Royalty has its obligations."
    
    Balashev replied that there was "nothing offensive in the demand,
    because..." but Murat interrupted him.
    
    "Then you don't consider the Emperor Alexander the aggressor?" he asked
    unexpectedly, with a kindly and foolish smile.
    
    Balashev told him why he considered Napoleon to be the originator of the
    war.
    
    "Oh, my dear general!" Murat again interrupted him, "with all my heart I
    wish the Emperors may arrange the affair between them, and that the war
    begun by no wish of mine may finish as quickly as possible!" said he, in
    the tone of a servant who wants to remain good friends with another
    despite a quarrel between their masters.
    
    And he went on to inquiries about the Grand Duke and the state of his
    health, and to reminiscences of the gay and amusing times he had spent
    with him in Naples. Then suddenly, as if remembering his royal dignity,
    Murat solemnly drew himself up, assumed the pose in which he had stood
    at his coronation, and, waving his right arm, said:
    
    "I won't detain you longer, General. I wish success to your mission,"
    and with his embroidered red mantle, his flowing feathers, and his
    glittering ornaments, he rejoined his suite who were respectfully
    awaiting him.
    
    Balashev rode on, supposing from Murat's words that he would very soon
    be brought before Napoleon himself. But instead of that, at the next
    village the sentinels of Davout's infantry corps detained him as the
    pickets of the vanguard had done, and an adjutant of the corps
    commander, who was fetched, conducted him into the village to Marshal
    Davout.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    Davout was to Napoleon what Arakcheev was to Alexander--though not a
    coward like Arakcheev, he was as precise, as cruel, and as unable to
    express his devotion to his monarch except by cruelty.
    
    In the organism of states such men are necessary, as wolves are
    necessary in the organism of nature, and they always exist, always
    appear and hold their own, however incongruous their presence and their
    proximity to the head of the government may be. This inevitability alone
    can explain how the cruel Arakcheev, who tore out a grenadier's mustache
    with his own hands, whose weak nerves rendered him unable to face
    danger, and who was neither an educated man nor a courtier, was able to
    maintain his powerful position with Alexander, whose own character was
    chivalrous, noble, and gentle.
    
    Balashev found Davout seated on a barrel in the shed of a peasant's hut,
    writing--he was auditing accounts. Better quarters could have been found
    him, but Marshal Davout was one of those men who purposely put
    themselves in most depressing conditions to have a justification for
    being gloomy. For the same reason they are always hard at work and in a
    hurry. "How can I think of the bright side of life when, as you see, I
    am sitting on a barrel and working in a dirty shed?" the expression of
    his face seemed to say. The chief pleasure and necessity of such men,
    when they encounter anyone who shows animation, is to flaunt their own
    dreary, persistent activity. Davout allowed himself that pleasure when
    Balashev was brought in. He became still more absorbed in his task when
    the Russian general entered, and after glancing over his spectacles at
    Balashev's face, which was animated by the beauty of the morning and by
    his talk with Murat, he did not rise or even stir, but scowled still
    more and sneered malevolently.
    
    When he noticed in Balashev's face the disagreeable impression this
    reception produced, Davout raised his head and coldly asked what he
    wanted.
    
    Thinking he could have been received in such a manner only because
    Davout did not know that he was adjutant general to the Emperor
    Alexander and even his envoy to Napoleon, Balashev hastened to inform
    him of his rank and mission. Contrary to his expectation, Davout, after
    hearing him, became still surlier and ruder.
    
    "Where is your dispatch?" he inquired. "Give it to me. I will send it to
    the Emperor."
    
    Balashev replied that he had been ordered to hand it personally to the
    Emperor.
    
    "Your Emperor's orders are obeyed in your army, but here," said Davout,
    "you must do as you're told."
    
    And, as if to make the Russian general still more conscious of his
    dependence on brute force, Davout sent an adjutant to call the officer
    on duty.
    
    Balashev took out the packet containing the Emperor's letter and laid it
    on the table (made of a door with its hinges still hanging on it, laid
    across two barrels). Davout took the packet and read the inscription.
    
    "You are perfectly at liberty to treat me with respect or not,"
    protested Balashev, "but permit me to observe that I have the honor to
    be adjutant general to His Majesty...."
    
    Davout glanced at him silently and plainly derived pleasure from the
    signs of agitation and confusion which appeared on Balashev's face.
    
    "You will be treated as is fitting," said he and, putting the packet in
    his pocket, left the shed.
    
    A minute later the marshal's adjutant, de Castres, came in and conducted
    Balashev to the quarters assigned him.
    
    That day he dined with the marshal, at the same board on the barrels.
    
    Next day Davout rode out early and, after asking Balashev to come to
    him, peremptorily requested him to remain there, to move on with the
    baggage train should orders come for it to move, and to talk to no one
    except Monsieur de Castres.
    
    After four days of solitude, ennui, and consciousness of his impotence
    and insignificance--particularly acute by contrast with the sphere of
    power in which he had so lately moved--and after several marches with
    the marshal's baggage and the French army, which occupied the whole
    district, Balashev was brought to Vilna--now occupied by the French--
    through the very gate by which he had left it four days previously.
    
    Next day the imperial gentleman-in-waiting, the Comte de Turenne, came
    to Balashev and informed him of the Emperor Napoleon's wish to honor him
    with an audience.
    
    Four days before, sentinels of the Preobrazhensk regiment had stood in
    front of the house to which Balashev was conducted, and now two French
    grenadiers stood there in blue uniforms unfastened in front and with
    shaggy caps on their heads, and an escort of hussars and uhlans and a
    brilliant suite of aides-de-camp, pages, and generals, who were waiting
    for Napoleon to come out, were standing at the porch, round his saddle
    horse and his Mameluke, Rustan. Napoleon received Balashev in the very
    house in Vilna from which Alexander had dispatched him on his mission.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Though Balashev was used to imperial pomp, he was amazed at the luxury
    and magnificence of Napoleon's court.
    
    The Comte de Turenne showed him into a big reception room where many
    generals, gentlemen-in-waiting, and Polish magnates--several of whom
    Balashev had seen at the court of the Emperor of Russia--were waiting.
    Duroc said that Napoleon would receive the Russian general before going
    for his ride.
    
    After some minutes, the gentleman-in-waiting who was on duty came into
    the great reception room and, bowing politely, asked Balashev to follow
    him.
    
    Balashev went into a small reception room, one door of which led into a
    study, the very one from which the Russian Emperor had dispatched him on
    his mission. He stood a minute or two, waiting. He heard hurried
    footsteps beyond the door, both halves of it were opened rapidly; all
    was silent and then from the study the sound was heard of other steps,
    firm and resolute--they were those of Napoleon. He had just finished
    dressing for his ride, and wore a blue uniform, opening in front over a
    white waistcoat so long that it covered his rotund stomach, white
    leather breeches tightly fitting the fat thighs of his short legs, and
    Hessian boots. His short hair had evidently just been brushed, but one
    lock hung down in the middle of his broad forehead. His plump white neck
    stood out sharply above the black collar of his uniform, and he smelled
    of Eau de Cologne. His full face, rather young-looking, with its
    prominent chin, wore a gracious and majestic expression of imperial
    welcome.
    
    He entered briskly, with a jerk at every step and his head slightly
    thrown back. His whole short corpulent figure with broad thick
    shoulders, and chest and stomach involuntarily protruding, had that
    imposing and stately appearance one sees in men of forty who live in
    comfort. It was evident, too, that he was in the best of spirits that
    day.
    
    He nodded in answer to Balashav's low and respectful bow, and coming up
    to him at once began speaking like a man who values every moment of his
    time and does not condescend to prepare what he has to say but is sure
    he will always say the right thing and say it well.
    
    "Good day, General!" said he. "I have received the letter you brought
    from the Emperor Alexander and am very glad to see you." He glanced with
    his large eyes into Balashav's face and immediately looked past him.
    
    It was plain that Balashev's personality did not interest him at all.
    Evidently only what took place within his own mind interested him.
    Nothing outside himself had any significance for him, because everything
    in the world, it seemed to him, depended entirely on his will.
    
    "I do not, and did not, desire war," he continued, "but it has been
    forced on me. Even now" (he emphasized the word) "I am ready to receive
    any explanations you can give me."
    
    And he began clearly and concisely to explain his reasons for
    dissatisfaction with the Russian government. Judging by the calmly
    moderate and amicable tone in which the French Emperor spoke, Balashev
    was firmly persuaded that he wished for peace and intended to enter into
    negotiations.
    
    When Napoleon, having finished speaking, looked inquiringly at the
    Russian envoy, Balashev began a speech he had prepared long before:
    "Sire! The Emperor, my master..." but the sight of the Emperor's eyes
    bent on him confused him. "You are flurried--compose yourself!" Napoleon
    seemed to say, as with a scarcely perceptible smile he looked at
    Balashev's uniform and sword.
    
    Balashev recovered himself and began to speak. He said that the Emperor
    Alexander did not consider Kurakin's demand for his passports a
    sufficient cause for war; that Kurakin had acted on his own initiative
    and without his sovereign's assent, that the Emperor Alexander did not
    desire war, and had no relations with England.
    
    "Not yet!" interposed Napoleon, and, as if fearing to give vent to his
    feelings, he frowned and nodded slightly as a sign that Balashev might
    proceed.
    
    After saying all he had been instructed to say, Balashev added that the
    Emperor Alexander wished for peace, but would not enter into
    negotiations except on condition that... Here Balashev hesitated: he
    remembered the words the Emperor Alexander had not written in his
    letter, but had specially inserted in the rescript to Saltykov and had
    told Balashev to repeat to Napoleon. Balashev remembered these words,
    "So long as a single armed foe remains on Russian soil," but some
    complex feeling restrained him. He could not utter them, though he
    wished to do so. He grew confused and said: "On condition that the
    French army retires beyond the Niemen."
    
    Napoleon noticed Balashev's embarrassment when uttering these last
    words; his face twitched and the calf of his left leg began to quiver
    rhythmically. Without moving from where he stood he began speaking in a
    louder tone and more hurriedly than before. During the speech that
    followed, Balashev, who more than once lowered his eyes, involuntarily
    noticed the quivering of Napoleon's left leg which increased the more
    Napoleon raised his voice.
    
    "I desire peace, no less than the Emperor Alexander," he began. "Have I
    not for eighteen months been doing everything to obtain it? I have
    waited eighteen months for explanations. But in order to begin
    negotiations, what is demanded of me?" he said, frowning and making an
    energetic gesture of inquiry with his small white plump hand.
    
    "The withdrawal of your army beyond the Niemen, sire," replied Balashev.
    
    "The Niemen?" repeated Napoleon. "So now you want me to retire beyond
    the Niemen--only the Niemen?" repeated Napoleon, looking straight at
    Balashev.
    
    The latter bowed his head respectfully.
    
    Instead of the demand of four months earlier to withdraw from Pomerania,
    only a withdrawal beyond the Niemen was now demanded. Napoleon turned
    quickly and began to pace the room.
    
    "You say the demand now is that I am to withdraw beyond the Niemen
    before commencing negotiations, but in just the same way two months ago
    the demand was that I should withdraw beyond the Vistula and the Oder,
    and yet you are willing to negotiate."
    
    He went in silence from one corner of the room to the other and again
    stopped in front of Balashev. Balashev noticed that his left leg was
    quivering faster than before and his face seemed petrified in its stern
    expression. This quivering of his left leg was a thing Napoleon was
    conscious of. "The vibration of my left calf is a great sign with me,"
    he remarked at a later date.
    
    "Such demands as to retreat beyond the Vistula and Oder may be made to a
    Prince of Baden, but not to me!" Napoleon almost screamed, quite to his
    own surprise. "If you gave me Petersburg and Moscow I could not accept
    such conditions. You say I have begun this war! But who first joined his
    army? The Emperor Alexander, not I! And you offer me negotiations when I
    have expended millions, when you are in alliance with England, and when
    your position is a bad one. You offer me negotiations! But what is the
    aim of your alliance with England? What has she given you?" he continued
    hurriedly, evidently no longer trying to show the advantages of peace
    and discuss its possibility, but only to prove his own rectitude and
    power and Alexander's errors and duplicity.
    
    The commencement of his speech had obviously been made with the
    intention of demonstrating the advantages of his position and showing
    that he was nevertheless willing to negotiate. But he had begun talking,
    and the more he talked the less could he control his words.
    
    The whole purport of his remarks now was evidently to exalt himself and
    insult Alexander--just what he had least desired at the commencement of
    the interview.
    
    "I hear you have made peace with Turkey?"
    
    Balashev bowed his head affirmatively.
    
    "Peace has been concluded..." he began.
    
    But Napoleon did not let him speak. He evidently wanted to do all the
    talking himself, and continued to talk with the sort of eloquence and
    unrestrained irritability to which spoiled people are so prone.
    
    "Yes, I know you have made peace with the Turks without obtaining
    Moldavia and Wallachia; I would have given your sovereign those
    provinces as I gave him Finland. Yes," he went on, "I promised and would
    have given the Emperor Alexander Moldavia and Wallachia, and now he
    won't have those splendid provinces. Yet he might have united them to
    his empire and in a single reign would have extended Russia from the
    Gulf of Bothnia to the mouths of the Danube. Catherine the Great could
    not have done more," said Napoleon, growing more and more excited as he
    paced up and down the room, repeating to Balashev almost the very words
    he had used to Alexander himself at Tilsit. "All that, he would have
    owed to my friendship. Oh, what a splendid reign!" he repeated several
    times, then paused, drew from his pocket a gold snuffbox, lifted it to
    his nose, and greedily sniffed at it.
    
    "What a splendid reign the Emperor Alexander's might have been!"
    
    He looked compassionately at Balashev, and as soon as the latter tried
    to make some rejoinder hastily interrupted him.
    
    "What could he wish or look for that he would not have obtained through
    my friendship?" demanded Napoleon, shrugging his shoulders in
    perplexity. "But no, he has preferred to surround himself with my
    enemies, and with whom? With Steins, Armfeldts, Bennigsens, and
    Wintzingerodes! Stein, a traitor expelled from his own country;
    Armfeldt, a rake and an intriguer; Wintzingerode, a fugitive French
    subject; Bennigsen, rather more of a soldier than the others, but all
    the same an incompetent who was unable to do anything in 1807 and who
    should awaken terrible memories in the Emperor Alexander's mind....
    Granted that were they competent they might be made use of," continued
    Napoleon--hardly able to keep pace in words with the rush of thoughts
    that incessantly sprang up, proving how right and strong he was (in his
    perception the two were one and the same)--"but they are not even that!
    They are neither fit for war nor peace! Barclay is said to be the most
    capable of them all, but I cannot say so, judging by his first
    movements. And what are they doing, all these courtiers? Pfuel proposes,
    Armfeldt disputes, Bennigsen considers, and Barclay, called on to act,
    does not know what to decide on, and time passes bringing no result.
    Bagration alone is a military man. He's stupid, but he has experience, a
    quick eye, and resolution.... And what role is your young monarch
    playing in that monstrous crowd? They compromise him and throw on him
    the responsibility for all that happens. A sovereign should not be with
    the army unless he is a general!" said Napoleon, evidently uttering
    these words as a direct challenge to the Emperor. He knew how Alexander
    desired to be a military commander.
    
    "The campaign began only a week ago, and you haven't even been able to
    defend Vilna. You are cut in two and have been driven out of the Polish
    provinces. Your army is grumbling."
    
    "On the contrary, Your Majesty," said Balashev, hardly able to remember
    what had been said to him and following these verbal fireworks with
    difficulty, "the troops are burning with eagerness..."
    
    "I know everything!" Napoleon interrupted him. "I know everything. I
    know the number of your battalions as exactly as I know my own. You have
    not two hundred thousand men, and I have three times that number. I give
    you my word of honor," said Napoleon, forgetting that his word of honor
    could carry no weight--"I give you my word of honor that I have five
    hundred and thirty thousand men this side of the Vistula. The Turks will
    be of no use to you; they are worth nothing and have shown it by making
    peace with you. As for the Swedes--it is their fate to be governed by
    mad kings. Their king was insane and they changed him for another--
    Bernadotte, who promptly went mad--for no Swede would ally himself with
    Russia unless he were mad."
    
    Napoleon grinned maliciously and again raised his snuffbox to his nose.
    
    Balashev knew how to reply to each of Napoleon's remarks, and would have
    done so; he continually made the gesture of a man wishing to say
    something, but Napoleon always interrupted him. To the alleged insanity
    of the Swedes, Balashev wished to reply that when Russia is on her side
    Sweden is practically an island: but Napoleon gave an angry exclamation
    to drown his voice. Napoleon was in that state of irritability in which
    a man has to talk, talk, and talk, merely to convince himself that he is
    in the right. Balashev began to feel uncomfortable: as envoy he feared
    to demean his dignity and felt the necessity of replying; but, as a man,
    he shrank before the transport of groundless wrath that had evidently
    seized Napoleon. He knew that none of the words now uttered by Napoleon
    had any significance, and that Napoleon himself would be ashamed of them
    when he came to his senses. Balashev stood with downcast eyes, looking
    at the movements of Napoleon's stout legs and trying to avoid meeting
    his eyes.
    
    "But what do I care about your allies?" said Napoleon. "I have allies--
    the Poles. There are eighty thousand of them and they fight like lions.
    And there will be two hundred thousand of them."
    
    And probably still more perturbed by the fact that he had uttered this
    obvious falsehood, and that Balashev still stood silently before him in
    the same attitude of submission to fate, Napoleon abruptly turned round,
    drew close to Balashev's face, and, gesticulating rapidly and
    energetically with his white hands, almost shouted:
    
    "Know that if you stir up Prussia against me, I'll wipe it off the map
    of Europe!" he declared, his face pale and distorted by anger, and he
    struck one of his small hands energetically with the other. "Yes, I will
    throw you back beyond the Dvina and beyond the Dnieper, and will re-
    erect against you that barrier which it was criminal and blind of Europe
    to allow to be destroyed. Yes, that is what will happen to you. That is
    what you have gained by alienating me!" And he walked silently several
    times up and down the room, his fat shoulders twitching.
    
    He put his snuffbox into his waistcoat pocket, took it out again, lifted
    it several times to his nose, and stopped in front of Balashev. He
    paused, looked ironically straight into Balashev's eyes, and said in a
    quiet voice:
    
    "And yet what a splendid reign your master might have had!"
    
    Balashev, feeling it incumbent on him to reply, said that from the
    Russian side things did not appear in so gloomy a light. Napoleon was
    silent, still looking derisively at him and evidently not listening to
    him. Balashev said that in Russia the best results were expected from
    the war. Napoleon nodded condescendingly, as if to say, "I know it's
    your duty to say that, but you don't believe it yourself. I have
    convinced you."
    
    When Balashev had ended, Napoleon again took out his snuffbox, sniffed
    at it, and stamped his foot twice on the floor as a signal. The door
    opened, a gentleman-in-waiting, bending respectfully, handed the Emperor
    his hat and gloves; another brought him a pocket handkerchief. Napoleon,
    without giving them a glance, turned to Balashev:
    
    "Assure the Emperor Alexander from me," said he, taking his hat, "that I
    am as devoted to him as before: I know him thoroughly and very highly
    esteem his lofty qualities. I will detain you no longer, General; you
    shall receive my letter to the Emperor."
    
    And Napoleon went quickly to the door. Everyone in the reception room
    rushed forward and descended the staircase.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    After all that Napoleon had said to him--those bursts of anger and the
    last dryly spoken words: "I will detain you no longer, General; you
    shall receive my letter," Balashev felt convinced that Napoleon would
    not wish to see him, and would even avoid another meeting with him--an
    insulted envoy--especially as he had witnessed his unseemly anger. But,
    to his surprise, Balashev received, through Duroc, an invitation to dine
    with the Emperor that day.
    
    Bessieres, Caulaincourt, and Berthier were present at that dinner.
    
    Napoleon met Balashev cheerfully and amiably. He not only showed no sign
    of constraint or self-reproach on account of his outburst that morning,
    but, on the contrary, tried to reassure Balashev. It was evident that he
    had long been convinced that it was impossible for him to make a
    mistake, and that in his perception whatever he did was right, not
    because it harmonized with any idea of right and wrong, but because he
    did it.
    
    The Emperor was in very good spirits after his ride through Vilna, where
    crowds of people had rapturously greeted and followed him. From all the
    windows of the streets through which he rode, rugs, flags, and his
    monogram were displayed, and the Polish ladies, welcoming him, waved
    their handkerchiefs to him.
    
    At dinner, having placed Balashev beside him, Napoleon not only treated
    him amiably but behaved as if Balashev were one of his own courtiers,
    one of those who sympathized with his plans and ought to rejoice at his
    success. In the course of conversation he mentioned Moscow and
    questioned Balashev about the Russian capital, not merely as an
    interested traveler asks about a new city he intends to visit, but as if
    convinced that Balashev, as a Russian, must be flattered by his
    curiosity.
    
    "How many inhabitants are there in Moscow? How many houses? Is it true
    that Moscow is called 'Holy Moscow'? How many churches are there in
    Moscow?" he asked.
    
    And receiving the reply that there were more than two hundred churches,
    he remarked:
    
    "Why such a quantity of churches?"
    
    "The Russians are very devout," replied Balashev.
    
    "But a large number of monasteries and churches is always a sign of the
    backwardness of a people," said Napoleon, turning to Caulaincourt for
    appreciation of this remark.
    
    Balashev respectfully ventured to disagree with the French Emperor.
    
    "Every country has its own character," said he.
    
    "But nowhere in Europe is there anything like that," said Napoleon.
    
    "I beg your Majesty's pardon," returned Balashev, "besides Russia there
    is Spain, where there are also many churches and monasteries."
    
    This reply of Balashev's, which hinted at the recent defeats of the
    French in Spain, was much appreciated when he related it at Alexander's
    court, but it was not much appreciated at Napoleon's dinner, where it
    passed unnoticed.
    
    The uninterested and perplexed faces of the marshals showed that they
    were puzzled as to what Balashev's tone suggested. "If there is a point
    we don't see it, or it is not at all witty," their expressions seemed to
    say. So little was his rejoinder appreciated that Napoleon did not
    notice it at all and naively asked Balashev through what towns the
    direct road from there to Moscow passed. Balashev, who was on the alert
    all through the dinner, replied that just as "all roads lead to Rome,"
    so all roads lead to Moscow: there were many roads, and "among them the
    road through Poltava, which Charles XII chose." Balashev involuntarily
    flushed with pleasure at the aptitude of this reply, but hardly had he
    uttered the word Poltava before Caulaincourt began speaking of the
    badness of the road from Petersburg to Moscow and of his Petersburg
    reminiscences.
    
    After dinner they went to drink coffee in Napoleon's study, which four
    days previously had been that of the Emperor Alexander. Napoleon sat
    down, toying with his Sevres coffee cup, and motioned Balashev to a
    chair beside him.
    
    Napoleon was in that well-known after-dinner mood which, more than any
    reasoned cause, makes a man contented with himself and disposed to
    consider everyone his friend. It seemed to him that he was surrounded by
    men who adored him: and he felt convinced that, after his dinner,
    Balashev too was his friend and worshiper. Napoleon turned to him with a
    pleasant, though slightly ironic, smile.
    
    "They tell me this is the room the Emperor Alexander occupied? Strange,
    isn't it, General?" he said, evidently not doubting that this remark
    would be agreeable to his hearer since it went to prove his, Napoleon's,
    superiority to Alexander.
    
    Balashev made no reply and bowed his head in silence.
    
    "Yes. Four days ago in this room, Wintzingerode and Stein were
    deliberating," continued Napoleon with the same derisive and self-
    confident smile. "What I can't understand," he went on, "is that the
    Emperor Alexander has surrounded himself with my personal enemies. That
    I do not... understand. Has he not thought that I may do the same?" and
    he turned inquiringly to Balashev, and evidently this thought turned him
    back on to the track of his morning's anger, which was still fresh in
    him.
    
    "And let him know that I will do so!" said Napoleon, rising and pushing
    his cup away with his hand. "I'll drive all his Wurttemberg, Baden, and
    Weimar relations out of Germany.... Yes. I'll drive them out. Let him
    prepare an asylum for them in Russia!"
    
    Balashev bowed his head with an air indicating that he would like to
    make his bow and leave, and only listened because he could not help
    hearing what was said to him. Napoleon did not notice this expression;
    he treated Balashev not as an envoy from his enemy, but as a man now
    fully devoted to him and who must rejoice at his former master's
    humiliation.
    
    "And why has the Emperor Alexander taken command of the armies? What is
    the good of that? War is my profession, but his business is to reign and
    not to command armies! Why has he taken on himself such a
    responsibility?"
    
    Again Napoleon brought out his snuffbox, paced several times up and down
    the room in silence, and then, suddenly and unexpectedly, went up to
    Balashev and with a slight smile, as confidently, quickly, and simply as
    if he were doing something not merely important but pleasing to
    Balashev, he raised his hand to the forty-year-old Russian general's
    face and, taking him by the ear, pulled it gently, smiling with his lips
    only.
    
    To have one's ear pulled by the Emperor was considered the greatest
    honor and mark of favor at the French court.
    
    "Well, adorer and courtier of the Emperor Alexander, why don't you say
    anything?" said he, as if it was ridiculous, in his presence, to be the
    adorer and courtier of anyone but himself, Napoleon. "Are the horses
    ready for the general?" he added, with a slight inclination of his head
    in reply to Balashev's bow. "Let him have mine, he has a long way to
    go!"
    
    The letter taken by Balashev was the last Napoleon sent to Alexander.
    Every detail of the interview was communicated to the Russian monarch,
    and the war began...
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    After his interview with Pierre in Moscow, Prince Andrew went to
    Petersburg, on business as he told his family, but really to meet
    Anatole Kuragin whom he felt it necessary to encounter. On reaching
    Petersburg he inquired for Kuragin but the latter had already left the
    city. Pierre had warned his brother-in-law that Prince Andrew was on his
    track. Anatole Kuragin promptly obtained an appointment from the
    Minister of War and went to join the army in Moldavia. While in
    Petersburg Prince Andrew met Kutuzov, his former commander who was
    always well disposed toward him, and Kutuzov suggested that he should
    accompany him to the army in Moldavia, to which the old general had been
    appointed commander-in-chief. So Prince Andrew, having received an
    appointment on the headquarters staff, left for Turkey.
    
    Prince Andrew did not think it proper to write and challenge Kuragin. He
    thought that if he challenged him without some fresh cause it might
    compromise the young Countess Rostova and so he wanted to meet Kuragin
    personally in order to find a fresh pretext for a duel. But he again
    failed to meet Kuragin in Turkey, for soon after Prince Andrew arrived,
    the latter returned to Russia. In a new country, amid new conditions,
    Prince Andrew found life easier to bear. After his betrothed had broken
    faith with him--which he felt the more acutely the more he tried to
    conceal its effects--the surroundings in which he had been happy became
    trying to him, and the freedom and independence he had once prized so
    highly were still more so. Not only could he no longer think the
    thoughts that had first come to him as he lay gazing at the sky on the
    field of Austerlitz and had later enlarged upon with Pierre, and which
    had filled his solitude at Bogucharovo and then in Switzerland and Rome,
    but he even dreaded to recall them and the bright and boundless horizons
    they had revealed. He was now concerned only with the nearest practical
    matters unrelated to his past interests, and he seized on these the more
    eagerly the more those past interests were closed to him. It was as if
    that lofty, infinite canopy of heaven that had once towered above him
    had suddenly turned into a low, solid vault that weighed him down, in
    which all was clear, but nothing eternal or mysterious.
    
    Of the activities that presented themselves to him, army service was the
    simplest and most familiar. As a general on duty on Kutuzov's staff, he
    applied himself to business with zeal and perseverance and surprised
    Kutuzov by his willingness and accuracy in work. Not having found
    Kuragin in Turkey, Prince Andrew did not think it necessary to rush back
    to Russia after him, but all the same he knew that however long it might
    be before he met Kuragin, despite his contempt for him and despite all
    the proofs he deduced to convince himself that it was not worth stooping
    to a conflict with him--he knew that when he did meet him he would not
    be able to resist calling him out, any more than a ravenous man can help
    snatching at food. And the consciousness that the insult was not yet
    avenged, that his rancor was still unspent, weighed on his heart and
    poisoned the artificial tranquillity which he managed to obtain in
    Turkey by means of restless, plodding, and rather vainglorious and
    ambitious activity.
    
    In the year 1812, when news of the war with Napoleon reached Bucharest--
    where Kutuzov had been living for two months, passing his days and
    nights with a Wallachian woman--Prince Andrew asked Kutuzov to transfer
    him to the Western Army. Kutuzov, who was already weary of Bolkonski's
    activity which seemed to reproach his own idleness, very readily let him
    go and gave him a mission to Barclay de Tolly.
    
    Before joining the Western Army which was then, in May, encamped at
    Drissa, Prince Andrew visited Bald Hills which was directly on his way,
    being only two miles off the Smolensk highroad. During the last three
    years there had been so many changes in his life, he had thought, felt,
    and seen so much (having traveled both in the east and the west), that
    on reaching Bald Hills it struck him as strange and unexpected to find
    the way of life there unchanged and still the same in every detail. He
    entered through the gates with their stone pillars and drove up the
    avenue leading to the house as if he were entering an enchanted,
    sleeping castle. The same old stateliness, the same cleanliness, the
    same stillness reigned there, and inside there was the same furniture,
    the same walls, sounds, and smell, and the same timid faces, only
    somewhat older. Princess Mary was still the same timid, plain maiden
    getting on in years, uselessly and joylessly passing the best years of
    her life in fear and constant suffering. Mademoiselle Bourienne was the
    same coquettish, self-satisfied girl, enjoying every moment of her
    existence and full of joyous hopes for the future. She had merely become
    more self-confident, Prince Andrew thought. Dessalles, the tutor he had
    brought from Switzerland, was wearing a coat of Russian cut and talking
    broken Russian to the servants, but was still the same narrowly
    intelligent, conscientious, and pedantic preceptor. The old prince had
    changed in appearance only by the loss of a tooth, which left a
    noticeable gap on one side of his mouth; in character he was the same as
    ever, only showing still more irritability and skepticism as to what was
    happening in the world. Little Nicholas alone had changed. He had grown,
    become rosier, had curly dark hair, and, when merry and laughing, quite
    unconsciously lifted the upper lip of his pretty little mouth just as
    the little princess used to do. He alone did not obey the law of
    immutability in the enchanted, sleeping castle. But though externally
    all remained as of old, the inner relations of all these people had
    changed since Prince Andrew had seen them last. The household was
    divided into two alien and hostile camps, who changed their habits for
    his sake and only met because he was there. To the one camp belonged the
    old prince, Mademoiselle Bourienne, and the architect; to the other
    Princess Mary, Dessalles, little Nicholas, and all the old nurses and
    maids.
    
    During his stay at Bald Hills all the family dined together, but they
    were ill at ease and Prince Andrew felt that he was a visitor for whose
    sake an exception was being made and that his presence made them all
    feel awkward. Involuntarily feeling this at dinner on the first day, he
    was taciturn, and the old prince noticing this also became morosely dumb
    and retired to his apartments directly after dinner. In the evening,
    when Prince Andrew went to him and, trying to rouse him, began to tell
    him of the young Count Kamensky's campaign, the old prince began
    unexpectedly to talk about Princess Mary, blaming her for her
    superstitions and her dislike of Mademoiselle Bourienne, who, he said,
    was the only person really attached to him.
    
    The old prince said that if he was ill it was only because of Princess
    Mary: that she purposely worried and irritated him, and that by
    indulgence and silly talk she was spoiling little Prince Nicholas. The
    old prince knew very well that he tormented his daughter and that her
    life was very hard, but he also knew that he could not help tormenting
    her and that she deserved it. "Why does Prince Andrew, who sees this,
    say nothing to me about his sister? Does he think me a scoundrel, or an
    old fool who, without any reason, keeps his own daughter at a distance
    and attaches this Frenchwoman to himself? He doesn't understand, so I
    must explain it, and he must hear me out," thought the old prince. And
    he began explaining why he could not put up with his daughter's
    unreasonable character.
    
    "If you ask me," said Prince Andrew, without looking up (he was
    censuring his father for the first time in his life), "I did not wish to
    speak about it, but as you ask me I will give you my frank opinion. If
    there is any misunderstanding and discord between you and Mary, I can't
    blame her for it at all. I know how she loves and respects you. Since
    you ask me," continued Prince Andrew, becoming irritable--as he was
    always liable to do of late--"I can only say that if there are any
    misunderstandings they are caused by that worthless woman, who is not
    fit to be my sister's companion."
    
    The old man at first stared fixedly at his son, and an unnatural smile
    disclosed the fresh gap between his teeth to which Prince Andrew could
    not get accustomed.
    
    "What companion, my dear boy? Eh? You've already been talking it over!
    Eh?"
    
    "Father, I did not want to judge," said Prince Andrew, in a hard and
    bitter tone, "but you challenged me, and I have said, and always shall
    say, that Mary is not to blame, but those to blame--the one to blame--is
    that Frenchwoman."
    
    "Ah, he has passed judgment... passed judgement!" said the old man in a
    low voice and, as it seemed to Prince Andrew, with some embarrassment,
    but then he suddenly jumped up and cried: "Be off, be off! Let not a
    trace of you remain here!..."
    
    Prince Andrew wished to leave at once, but Princess Mary persuaded him
    to stay another day. That day he did not see his father, who did not
    leave his room and admitted no one but Mademoiselle Bourienne and
    Tikhon, but asked several times whether his son had gone. Next day,
    before leaving, Prince Andrew went to his son's rooms. The boy, curly-
    headed like his mother and glowing with health, sat on his knee, and
    Prince Andrew began telling him the story of Bluebeard, but fell into a
    reverie without finishing the story. He thought not of this pretty
    child, his son whom he held on his knee, but of himself. He sought in
    himself either remorse for having angered his father or regret at
    leaving home for the first time in his life on bad terms with him, and
    was horrified to find neither. What meant still more to him was that he
    sought and did not find in himself the former tenderness for his son
    which he had hoped to reawaken by caressing the boy and taking him on
    his knee.
    
    "Well, go on!" said his son.
    
    Prince Andrew, without replying, put him down from his knee and went out
    of the room.
    
    As soon as Prince Andrew had given up his daily occupations, and
    especially on returning to the old conditions of life amid which he had
    been happy, weariness of life overcame him with its former intensity,
    and he hastened to escape from these memories and to find some work as
    soon as possible.
    
    "So you've decided to go, Andrew?" asked his sister.
    
    "Thank God that I can," replied Prince Andrew. "I am very sorry you
    can't."
    
    "Why do you say that?" replied Princess Mary. "Why do you say that, when
    you are going to this terrible war, and he is so old? Mademoiselle
    Bourienne says he has been asking about you...."
    
    As soon as she began to speak of that, her lips trembled and her tears
    began to fall. Prince Andrew turned away and began pacing the room.
    
    "Ah, my God! my God! When one thinks who and what--what trash--can cause
    people misery!" he said with a malignity that alarmed Princess Mary.
    
    She understood that when speaking of "trash" he referred not only to
    Mademoiselle Bourienne, the cause of her misery, but also to the man who
    had ruined his own happiness.
    
    "Andrew! One thing I beg, I entreat of you!" she said, touching his
    elbow and looking at him with eyes that shone through her tears. "I
    understand you" (she looked down). "Don't imagine that sorrow is the
    work of men. Men are His tools." She looked a little above Prince
    Andrew's head with the confident, accustomed look with which one looks
    at the place where a familiar portrait hangs. "Sorrow is sent by Him,
    not by men. Men are His instruments, they are not to blame. If you think
    someone has wronged you, forget it and forgive! We have no right to
    punish. And then you will know the happiness of forgiving."
    
    "If I were a woman I would do so, Mary. That is a woman's virtue. But a
    man should not and cannot forgive and forget," he replied, and though
    till that moment he had not been thinking of Kuragin, all his unexpended
    anger suddenly swelled up in his heart.
    
    "If Mary is already persuading me to forgive, it means that I ought long
    ago to have punished him," he thought. And giving her no further reply,
    he began thinking of the glad vindictive moment when he would meet
    Kuragin who he knew was now in the army.
    
    Princess Mary begged him to stay one day more, saying that she knew how
    unhappy her father would be if Andrew left without being reconciled to
    him, but Prince Andrew replied that he would probably soon be back again
    from the army and would certainly write to his father, but that the
    longer he stayed now the more embittered their differences would become.
    
    "Good-bye, Andrew! Remember that misfortunes come from God, and men are
    never to blame," were the last words he heard from his sister when he
    took leave of her.
    
    "Then it must be so!" thought Prince Andrew as he drove out of the
    avenue from the house at Bald Hills. "She, poor innocent creature, is
    left to be victimized by an old man who has outlived his wits. The old
    man feels he is guilty, but cannot change himself. My boy is growing up
    and rejoices in life, in which like everybody else he will deceive or be
    deceived. And I am off to the army. Why? I myself don't know. I want to
    meet that man whom I despise, so as to give him a chance to kill and
    laugh at me!"
    
    These conditions of life had been the same before, but then they were
    all connected, while now they had all tumbled to pieces. Only senseless
    things, lacking coherence, presented themselves one after another to
    Prince Andrew's mind.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    Prince Andrew reached the general headquarters of the army at the end of
    June. The first army, with which was the Emperor, occupied the fortified
    camp at Drissa; the second army was retreating, trying to effect a
    junction with the first one from which it was said to be cut off by
    large French forces. Everyone was dissatisfied with the general course
    of affairs in the Russian army, but no one anticipated any danger of
    invasion of the Russian provinces, and no one thought the war would
    extend farther than the western, the Polish, provinces.
    
    Prince Andrew found Barclay de Tolly, to whom he had been assigned, on
    the bank of the Drissa. As there was not a single town or large village
    in the vicinity of the camp, the immense number of generals and
    courtiers accompanying the army were living in the best houses of the
    villages on both sides of the river, over a radius of six miles. Barclay
    de Tolly was quartered nearly three miles from the Emperor. He received
    Bolkonski stiffly and coldly and told him in his foreign accent that he
    would mention him to the Emperor for a decision as to his employment,
    but asked him meanwhile to remain on his staff. Anatole Kuragin, whom
    Prince Andrew had hoped to find with the army, was not there. He had
    gone to Petersburg, but Prince Andrew was glad to hear this. His mind
    was occupied by the interests of the center that was conducting a
    gigantic war, and he was glad to be free for a while from the
    distraction caused by the thought of Kuragin. During the first four
    days, while no duties were required of him, Prince Andrew rode round the
    whole fortified camp and, by the aid of his own knowledge and by talks
    with experts, tried to form a definite opinion about it. But the
    question whether the camp was advantageous or disadvantageous remained
    for him undecided. Already from his military experience and what he had
    seen in the Austrian campaign, he had come to the conclusion that in war
    the most deeply considered plans have no significance and that all
    depends on the way unexpected movements of the enemy--that cannot be
    foreseen--are met, and on how and by whom the whole matter is handled.
    To clear up this last point for himself, Prince Andrew, utilizing his
    position and acquaintances, tried to fathom the character of the control
    of the army and of the men and parties engaged in it, and he deduced for
    himself the following of the state of affairs.
    
    While the Emperor had still been at Vilna, the forces had been divided
    into three armies. First, the army under Barclay de Tolly, secondly, the
    army under Bagration, and thirdly, the one commanded by Tormasov. The
    Emperor was with the first army, but not as commander-in-chief. In the
    orders issued it was stated, not that the Emperor would take command,
    but only that he would be with the army. The Emperor, moreover, had with
    him not a commander-in-chief's staff but the imperial headquarters
    staff. In attendance on him was the head of the imperial staff,
    Quartermaster General Prince Volkonski, as well as generals, imperial
    aides-de-camp, diplomatic officials, and a large number of foreigners,
    but not the army staff. Besides these, there were in attendance on the
    Emperor without any definite appointments: Arakcheev, the ex-Minister of
    War; Count Bennigsen, the senior general in rank; the Grand Duke
    Tsarevich Constantine Pavlovich; Count Rumyantsev, the Chancellor;
    Stein, a former Prussian minister; Armfeldt, a Swedish general; Pfuel,
    the chief author of the plan of campaign; Paulucci, an adjutant general
    and Sardinian emigre; Wolzogen--and many others. Though these men had no
    military appointment in the army, their position gave them influence,
    and often a corps commander, or even the commander-in-chief, did not
    know in what capacity he was questioned by Bennigsen, the Grand Duke,
    Arakcheev, or Prince Volkonski, or was given this or that advice and did
    not know whether a certain order received in the form of advice emanated
    from the man who gave it or from the Emperor and whether it had to be
    executed or not. But this was only the external condition; the essential
    significance of the presence of the Emperor and of all these people,
    from a courtier's point of view (and in an Emperor's vicinity all became
    courtiers), was clear to everyone. It was this: the Emperor did not
    assume the title of commander-in-chief, but disposed of all the armies;
    the men around him were his assistants. Arakcheev was a faithful
    custodian to enforce order and acted as the sovereign's bodyguard.
    Bennigsen was a landlord in the Vilna province who appeared to be doing
    the honors of the district, but was in reality a good general, useful as
    an adviser and ready at hand to replace Barclay. The Grand Duke was
    there because it suited him to be. The ex-Minister Stein was there
    because his advice was useful and the Emperor Alexander held him in high
    esteem personally. Armfeldt virulently hated Napoleon and was a general
    full of self-confidence, a quality that always influenced Alexander.
    Paulucci was there because he was bold and decided in speech. The
    adjutants general were there because they always accompanied the
    Emperor, and lastly and chiefly Pfuel was there because he had drawn up
    the plan of campaign against Napoleon and, having induced Alexander to
    believe in the efficacy of that plan, was directing the whole business
    of the war. With Pfuel was Wolzogen, who expressed Pfuel's thoughts in a
    more comprehensible way than Pfuel himself (who was a harsh, bookish
    theorist, self-confident to the point of despising everyone else) was
    able to do.
    
    Besides these Russians and foreigners who propounded new and unexpected
    ideas every day--especially the foreigners, who did so with a boldness
    characteristic of people employed in a country not their own--there were
    many secondary personages accompanying the army because their principals
    were there.
    
    Among the opinions and voices in this immense, restless, brilliant, and
    proud sphere, Prince Andrew noticed the following sharply defined
    subdivisions of tendencies and parties:
    
    The first party consisted of Pfuel and his adherents--military theorists
    who believed in a science of war with immutable laws--laws of oblique
    movements, outflankings, and so forth. Pfuel and his adherents demanded
    a retirement into the depths of the country in accordance with precise
    laws defined by a pseudo-theory of war, and they saw only barbarism,
    ignorance, or evil intention in every deviation from that theory. To
    this party belonged the foreign nobles, Wolzogen, Wintzingerode, and
    others, chiefly Germans.
    
    The second party was directly opposed to the first; one extreme, as
    always happens, was met by representatives of the other. The members of
    this party were those who had demanded an advance from Vilna into Poland
    and freedom from all prearranged plans. Besides being advocates of bold
    action, this section also represented nationalism, which made them still
    more one-sided in the dispute. They were Russians: Bagration, Ermolov
    (who was beginning to come to the front), and others. At that time a
    famous joke of Ermolov's was being circulated, that as a great favor he
    had petitioned the Emperor to make him a German. The men of that party,
    remembering Suvorov, said that what one had to do was not to reason, or
    stick pins into maps, but to fight, beat the enemy, keep him out of
    Russia, and not let the army get discouraged.
    
    To the third party--in which the Emperor had most confidence--belonged
    the courtiers who tried to arrange compromises between the other two.
    The members of this party, chiefly civilians and to whom Arakcheev
    belonged, thought and said what men who have no convictions but wish to
    seem to have some generally say. They said that undoubtedly war,
    particularly against such a genius as Bonaparte (they called him
    Bonaparte now), needs most deeply devised plans and profound scientific
    knowledge and in that respect Pfuel was a genius, but at the same time
    it had to be acknowledged that the theorists are often one-sided, and
    therefore one should not trust them absolutely, but should also listen
    to what Pfuel's opponents and practical men of experience in warfare had
    to say, and then choose a middle course. They insisted on the retention
    of the camp at Drissa, according to Pfuel's plan, but on changing the
    movements of the other armies. Though, by this course, neither one aim
    nor the other could be attained, yet it seemed best to the adherents of
    this third party.
    
    Of a fourth opinion the most conspicuous representative was the
    Tsarevich, who could not forget his disillusionment at Austerlitz, where
    he had ridden out at the head of the Guards, in his casque and cavalry
    uniform as to a review, expecting to crush the French gallantly; but
    unexpectedly finding himself in the front line had narrowly escaped amid
    the general confusion. The men of this party had both the quality and
    the defect of frankness in their opinions. They feared Napoleon,
    recognized his strength and their own weakness, and frankly said so.
    They said: "Nothing but sorrow, shame, and ruin will come of all this!
    We have abandoned Vilna and Vitebsk and shall abandon Drissa. The only
    reasonable thing left to do is to conclude peace as soon as possible,
    before we are turned out of Petersburg."
    
    This view was very general in the upper army circles and found support
    also in Petersburg and from the chancellor, Rumyantsev, who, for other
    reasons of state, was in favor of peace.
    
    The fifth party consisted of those who were adherents of Barclay de
    Tolly, not so much as a man but as minister of war and commander-in-
    chief. "Be he what he may" (they always began like that), "he is an
    honest, practical man and we have nobody better. Give him real power,
    for war cannot be conducted successfully without unity of command, and
    he will show what he can do, as he did in Finland. If our army is well
    organized and strong and has withdrawn to Drissa without suffering any
    defeats, we owe this entirely to Barclay. If Barclay is now to be
    superseded by Bennigsen all will be lost, for Bennigsen showed his
    incapacity already in 1807."
    
    The sixth party, the Bennigsenites, said, on the contrary, that at any
    rate there was no one more active and experienced than Bennigsen: "and
    twist about as you may, you will have to come to Bennigsen eventually.
    Let the others make mistakes now!" said they, arguing that our
    retirement to Drissa was a most shameful reverse and an unbroken series
    of blunders. "The more mistakes that are made the better. It will at any
    rate be understood all the sooner that things cannot go on like this.
    What is wanted is not some Barclay or other, but a man like Bennigsen,
    who made his mark in 1807, and to whom Napoleon himself did justice--a
    man whose authority would be willingly recognized, and Bennigsen is the
    only such man."
    
    The seventh party consisted of the sort of people who are always to be
    found, especially around young sovereigns, and of whom there were
    particularly many round Alexander--generals and imperial aides-de-camp
    passionately devoted to the Emperor, not merely as a monarch but as a
    man, adoring him sincerely and disinterestedly, as Rostov had done in
    1805, and who saw in him not only all the virtues but all human
    capabilities as well. These men, though enchanted with the sovereign for
    refusing the command of the army, yet blamed him for such excessive
    modesty, and only desired and insisted that their adored sovereign
    should abandon his diffidence and openly announce that he would place
    himself at the head of the army, gather round him a commander-in-chief's
    staff, and, consulting experienced theoreticians and practical men where
    necessary, would himself lead the troops, whose spirits would thereby be
    raised to the highest pitch.
    
    The eighth and largest group, which in its enormous numbers was to the
    others as ninety-nine to one, consisted of men who desired neither peace
    nor war, neither an advance nor a defensive camp at the Drissa or
    anywhere else, neither Barclay nor the Emperor, neither Pfuel nor
    Bennigsen, but only the one most essential thing--as much advantage and
    pleasure for themselves as possible. In the troubled waters of
    conflicting and intersecting intrigues that eddied about the Emperor's
    headquarters, it was possible to succeed in many ways unthinkable at
    other times. A man who simply wished to retain his lucrative post would
    today agree with Pfuel, tomorrow with his opponent, and the day after,
    merely to avoid responsibility or to please the Emperor, would declare
    that he had no opinion at all on the matter. Another who wished to gain
    some advantage would attract the Emperor's attention by loudly
    advocating the very thing the Emperor had hinted at the day before, and
    would dispute and shout at the council, beating his breast and
    challenging those who did not agree with him to duels, thereby proving
    that he was prepared to sacrifice himself for the common good. A third,
    in the absence of opponents, between two councils would simply solicit a
    special gratuity for his faithful services, well knowing that at that
    moment people would be too busy to refuse him. A fourth while seemingly
    overwhelmed with work would often come accidentally under the Emperor's
    eye. A fifth, to achieve his long-cherished aim of dining with the
    Emperor, would stubbornly insist on the correctness or falsity of some
    newly emerging opinion and for this object would produce arguments more
    or less forcible and correct.
    
    All the men of this party were fishing for rubles, decorations, and
    promotions, and in this pursuit watched only the weathercock of imperial
    favor, and directly they noticed it turning in any direction, this whole
    drone population of the army began blowing hard that way, so that it was
    all the harder for the Emperor to turn it elsewhere. Amid the
    uncertainties of the position, with the menace of serious danger giving
    a peculiarly threatening character to everything, amid this vortex of
    intrigue, egotism, conflict of views and feelings, and the diversity of
    race among these people--this eighth and largest party of those
    preoccupied with personal interests imparted great confusion and
    obscurity to the common task. Whatever question arose, a swarm of these
    drones, without having finished their buzzing on a previous theme, flew
    over to the new one and by their hum drowned and obscured the voices of
    those who were disputing honestly.
    
    From among all these parties, just at the time Prince Andrew reached the
    army, another, a ninth party, was being formed and was beginning to
    raise its voice. This was the party of the elders, reasonable men
    experienced and capable in state affairs, who, without sharing any of
    those conflicting opinions, were able to take a detached view of what
    was going on at the staff at headquarters and to consider means of
    escape from this muddle, indecision, intricacy, and weakness.
    
    The men of this party said and thought that what was wrong resulted
    chiefly from the Emperor's presence in the army with his military court
    and from the consequent presence there of an indefinite, conditional,
    and unsteady fluctuation of relations, which is in place at court but
    harmful in an army; that a sovereign should reign but not command the
    army, and that the only way out of the position would be for the Emperor
    and his court to leave the army; that the mere presence of the Emperor
    paralyzed the action of fifty thousand men required to secure his
    personal safety, and that the worst commander-in-chief, if independent,
    would be better than the very best one trammeled by the presence and
    authority of the monarch.
    
    Just at the time Prince Andrew was living unoccupied at Drissa,
    Shishkov, the Secretary of State and one of the chief representatives of
    this party, wrote a letter to the Emperor which Arakcheev and Balashev
    agreed to sign. In this letter, availing himself of permission given him
    by the Emperor to discuss the general course of affairs, he respectfully
    suggested--on the plea that it was necessary for the sovereign to arouse
    a warlike spirit in the people of the capital--that the Emperor should
    leave the army.
    
    That arousing of the people by their sovereign and his call to them to
    defend their country--the very incitement which was the chief cause of
    Russia's triumph in so far as it was produced by the Tsar's personal
    presence in Moscow--was suggested to the Emperor, and accepted by him,
    as a pretext for quitting the army.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    This letter had not yet been presented to the Emperor when Barclay, one
    day at dinner, informed Bolkonski that the sovereign wished to see him
    personally, to question him about Turkey, and that Prince Andrew was to
    present himself at Bennigsen's quarters at six that evening.
    
    News was received at the Emperor's quarters that very day of a fresh
    movement by Napoleon which might endanger the army--news subsequently
    found to be false. And that morning Colonel Michaud had ridden round the
    Drissa fortifications with the Emperor and had pointed out to him that
    this fortified camp constructed by Pfuel, and till then considered a
    chef-d'oeuvre of tactical science which would ensure Napoleon's
    destruction, was an absurdity, threatening the destruction of the
    Russian army.
    
    Prince Andrew arrived at Bennigsen's quarters--a country gentleman's
    house of moderate size, situated on the very banks of the river. Neither
    Bennigsen nor the Emperor was there, but Chernyshev, the Emperor's aide-
    de-camp, received Bolkonski and informed him that the Emperor,
    accompanied by General Bennigsen and Marquis Paulucci, had gone a second
    time that day to inspect the fortifications of the Drissa camp, of the
    suitability of which serious doubts were beginning to be felt.
    
    Chernyshev was sitting at a window in the first room with a French novel
    in his hand. This room had probably been a music room; there was still
    an organ in it on which some rugs were piled, and in one corner stood
    the folding bedstead of Bennigsen's adjutant. This adjutant was also
    there and sat dozing on the rolled-up bedding, evidently exhausted by
    work or by feasting. Two doors led from the room, one straight on into
    what had been the drawing room, and another, on the right, to the study.
    Through the first door came the sound of voices conversing in German and
    occasionally in French. In that drawing room were gathered, by the
    Emperor's wish, not a military council (the Emperor preferred
    indefiniteness), but certain persons whose opinions he wished to know in
    view of the impending difficulties. It was not a council of war, but, as
    it were, a council to elucidate certain questions for the Emperor
    personally. To this semicouncil had been invited the Swedish General
    Armfeldt, Adjutant General Wolzogen, Wintzingerode (whom Napoleon had
    referred to as a renegade French subject), Michaud, Toll, Count Stein
    who was not a military man at all, and Pfuel himself, who, as Prince
    Andrew had heard, was the mainspring of the whole affair. Prince Andrew
    had an opportunity of getting a good look at him, for Pfuel arrived soon
    after himself and, in passing through to the drawing room, stopped a
    minute to speak to Chernyshev.
    
    At first sight, Pfuel, in his ill-made uniform of a Russian general,
    which fitted him badly like a fancy costume, seemed familiar to Prince
    Andrew, though he saw him now for the first time. There was about him
    something of Weyrother, Mack, and Schmidt, and many other German
    theorist-generals whom Prince Andrew had seen in 1805, but he was more
    typical than any of them. Prince Andrew had never yet seen a German
    theorist in whom all the characteristics of those others were united to
    such an extent.
    
    Pfuel was short and very thin but broad-boned, of coarse, robust build,
    broad in the hips, and with prominent shoulder blades. His face was much
    wrinkled and his eyes deep set. His hair had evidently been hastily
    brushed smooth in front of the temples, but stuck up behind in quaint
    little tufts. He entered the room, looking restlessly and angrily
    around, as if afraid of everything in that large apartment. Awkwardly
    holding up his sword, he addressed Chernyshev and asked in German where
    the Emperor was. One could see that he wished to pass through the rooms
    as quickly as possible, finish with the bows and greetings, and sit down
    to business in front of a map, where he would feel at home. He nodded
    hurriedly in reply to Chernyshev, and smiled ironically on hearing that
    the sovereign was inspecting the fortifications that he, Pfuel, had
    planned in accord with his theory. He muttered something to himself
    abruptly and in a bass voice, as self-assured Germans do--it might have
    been "stupid fellow"... or "the whole affair will be ruined," or
    "something absurd will come of it."... Prince Andrew did not catch what
    he said and would have passed on, but Chernyshev introduced him to
    Pfuel, remarking that Prince Andrew was just back from Turkey where the
    war had terminated so fortunately. Pfuel barely glanced--not so much at
    Prince Andrew as past him--and said, with a laugh: "That must have been
    a fine tactical war"; and, laughing contemptuously, went on into the
    room from which the sound of voices was heard.
    
    Pfuel, always inclined to be irritably sarcastic, was particularly
    disturbed that day, evidently by the fact that they had dared to inspect
    and criticize his camp in his absence. From this short interview with
    Pfuel, Prince Andrew, thanks to his Austerlitz experiences, was able to
    form a clear conception of the man. Pfuel was one of those hopelessly
    and immutably self-confident men, self-confident to the point of
    martyrdom as only Germans are, because only Germans are self-confident
    on the basis of an abstract notion--science, that is, the supposed
    knowledge of absolute truth. A Frenchman is self-assured because he
    regards himself personally, both in mind and body, as irresistibly
    attractive to men and women. An Englishman is self-assured, as being a
    citizen of the best-organized state in the world, and therefore as an
    Englishman always knows what he should do and knows that all he does as
    an Englishman is undoubtedly correct. An Italian is self-assured because
    he is excitable and easily forgets himself and other people. A Russian
    is self-assured just because he knows nothing and does not want to know
    anything, since he does not believe that anything can be known. The
    German's self-assurance is worst of all, stronger and more repulsive
    than any other, because he imagines that he knows the truth--science--
    which he himself has invented but which is for him the absolute truth.
    
    Pfuel was evidently of that sort. He had a science--the theory of
    oblique movements deduced by him from the history of Frederick the
    Great's wars, and all he came across in the history of more recent
    warfare seemed to him absurd and barbarous--monstrous collisions in
    which so many blunders were committed by both sides that these wars
    could not be called wars, they did not accord with the theory, and
    therefore could not serve as material for science.
    
    In 1806 Pfuel had been one of those responsible, for the plan of
    campaign that ended in Jena and Auerstadt, but he did not see the least
    proof of the fallibility of his theory in the disasters of that war. On
    the contrary, the deviations made from his theory were, in his opinion,
    the sole cause of the whole disaster, and with characteristically
    gleeful sarcasm he would remark, "There, I said the whole affair would
    go to the devil!" Pfuel was one of those theoreticians who so love their
    theory that they lose sight of the theory's object--its practical
    application. His love of theory made him hate everything practical, and
    he would not listen to it. He was even pleased by failures, for failures
    resulting from deviations in practice from the theory only proved to him
    the accuracy of his theory.
    
    He said a few words to Prince Andrew and Chernyshev about the present
    war, with the air of a man who knows beforehand that all will go wrong,
    and who is not displeased that it should be so. The unbrushed tufts of
    hair sticking up behind and the hastily brushed hair on his temples
    expressed this most eloquently.
    
    He passed into the next room, and the deep, querulous sounds of his
    voice were at once heard from there.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Prince Andrew's eyes were still following Pfuel out of the room when
    Count Bennigsen entered hurriedly, and nodding to Bolkonski, but not
    pausing, went into the study, giving instructions to his adjutant as he
    went. The Emperor was following him, and Bennigsen had hastened on to
    make some preparations and to be ready to receive the sovereign.
    Chernyshev and Prince Andrew went out into the porch, where the Emperor,
    who looked fatigued, was dismounting. Marquis Paulucci was talking to
    him with particular warmth and the Emperor, with his head bent to the
    left, was listening with a dissatisfied air. The Emperor moved forward
    evidently wishing to end the conversation, but the flushed and excited
    Italian, oblivious of decorum, followed him and continued to speak.
    
    "And as for the man who advised forming this camp--the Drissa camp,"
    said Paulucci, as the Emperor mounted the steps and noticing Prince
    Andrew scanned his unfamiliar face, "as to that person, sire..."
    continued Paulucci, desperately, apparently unable to restrain himself,
    "the man who advised the Drissa camp--I see no alternative but the
    lunatic asylum or the gallows!"
    
    Without heeding the end of the Italian's remarks, and as though not
    hearing them, the Emperor, recognizing Bolkonski, addressed him
    graciously.
    
    "I am very glad to see you! Go in there where they are meeting, and wait
    for me."
    
    The Emperor went into the study. He was followed by Prince Peter
    Mikhaylovich Volkonski and Baron Stein, and the door closed behind them.
    Prince Andrew, taking advantage of the Emperor's permission, accompanied
    Paulucci, whom he had known in Turkey, into the drawing room where the
    council was assembled.
    
    Prince Peter Mikhaylovich Volkonski occupied the position, as it were,
    of chief of the Emperor's staff. He came out of the study into the
    drawing room with some maps which he spread on a table, and put
    questions on which he wished to hear the opinion of the gentlemen
    present. What had happened was that news (which afterwards proved to be
    false) had been received during the night of a movement by the French to
    outflank the Drissa camp.
    
    The first to speak was General Armfeldt who, to meet the difficulty that
    presented itself, unexpectedly proposed a perfectly new position away
    from the Petersburg and Moscow roads. The reason for this was
    inexplicable (unless he wished to show that he, too, could have an
    opinion), but he urged that at this point the army should unite and
    there await the enemy. It was plain that Armfeldt had thought out that
    plan long ago and now expounded it not so much to answer the questions
    put--which, in fact, his plan did not answer--as to avail himself of the
    opportunity to air it. It was one of the millions of proposals, one as
    good as another, that could be made as long as it was quite unknown what
    character the war would take. Some disputed his arguments, others
    defended them. Young Count Toll objected to the Swedish general's views
    more warmly than anyone else, and in the course of the dispute drew from
    his side pocket a well-filled notebook, which he asked permission to
    read to them. In these voluminous notes Toll suggested another scheme,
    totally different from Armfeldt's or Pfuel's plan of campaign. In answer
    to Toll, Paulucci suggested an advance and an attack, which, he urged,
    could alone extricate us from the present uncertainty and from the trap
    (as he called the Drissa camp) in which we were situated.
    
    During all these discussions Pfuel and his interpreter, Wolzogen (his
    "bridge" in court relations), were silent. Pfuel only snorted
    contemptuously and turned away, to show that he would never demean
    himself by replying to such nonsense as he was now hearing. So when
    Prince Volkonski, who was in the chair, called on him to give his
    opinion, he merely said:
    
    "Why ask me? General Armfeldt has proposed a splendid position with an
    exposed rear, or why not this Italian gentleman's attack--very fine, or
    a retreat, also good! Why ask me?" said he. "Why, you yourselves know
    everything better than I do."
    
    But when Volkonski said, with a frown, that it was in the Emperor's name
    that he asked his opinion, Pfuel rose and, suddenly growing animated,
    began to speak:
    
    "Everything has been spoiled, everything muddled, everybody thought they
    knew better than I did, and now you come to me! How mend matters? There
    is nothing to mend! The principles laid down by me must be strictly
    adhered to," said he, drumming on the table with his bony fingers. "What
    is the difficulty? Nonsense, childishness!"
    
    He went up to the map and speaking rapidly began proving that no
    eventuality could alter the efficiency of the Drissa camp, that
    everything had been foreseen, and that if the enemy were really going to
    outflank it, the enemy would inevitably be destroyed.
    
    Paulucci, who did not know German, began questioning him in French.
    Wolzogen came to the assistance of his chief, who spoke French badly,
    and began translating for him, hardly able to keep pace with Pfuel, who
    was rapidly demonstrating that not only all that had happened, but all
    that could happen, had been foreseen in his scheme, and that if there
    were now any difficulties the whole fault lay in the fact that his plan
    had not been precisely executed. He kept laughing sarcastically, he
    demonstrated, and at last contemptuously ceased to demonstrate, like a
    mathematician who ceases to prove in various ways the accuracy of a
    problem that has already been proved. Wolzogen took his place and
    continued to explain his views in French, every now and then turning to
    Pfuel and saying, "Is it not so, your excellency?" But Pfuel, like a man
    heated in a fight who strikes those on his own side, shouted angrily at
    his own supporter, Wolzogen:
    
    "Well, of course, what more is there to explain?"
    
    Paulucci and Michaud both attacked Wolzogen simultaneously in French.
    Armfeldt addressed Pfuel in German. Toll explained to Volkonski in
    Russian. Prince Andrew listened and observed in silence.
    
    Of all these men Prince Andrew sympathized most with Pfuel, angry,
    determined, and absurdly self-confident as he was. Of all those present,
    evidently he alone was not seeking anything for himself, nursed no
    hatred against anyone, and only desired that the plan, formed on a
    theory arrived at by years of toil, should be carried out. He was
    ridiculous, and unpleasantly sarcastic, but yet he inspired involuntary
    respect by his boundless devotion to an idea. Besides this, the remarks
    of all except Pfuel had one common trait that had not been noticeable at
    the council of war in 1805: there was now a panic fear of Napoleon's
    genius, which, though concealed, was noticeable in every rejoinder.
    Everything was assumed to be possible for Napoleon, they expected him
    from every side, and invoked his terrible name to shatter each other's
    proposals. Pfuel alone seemed to consider Napoleon a barbarian like
    everyone else who opposed his theory. But besides this feeling of
    respect, Pfuel evoked pity in Prince Andrew. From the tone in which the
    courtiers addressed him and the way Paulucci had allowed himself to
    speak of him to the Emperor, but above all from a certain desperation in
    Pfuel's own expressions, it was clear that the others knew, and Pfuel
    himself felt, that his fall was at hand. And despite his self-confidence
    and grumpy German sarcasm he was pitiable, with his hair smoothly
    brushed on the temples and sticking up in tufts behind. Though he
    concealed the fact under a show of irritation and contempt, he was
    evidently in despair that the sole remaining chance of verifying his
    theory by a huge experiment and proving its soundness to the whole world
    was slipping away from him.
    
    The discussions continued a long time, and the longer they lasted the
    more heated became the disputes, culminating in shouts and
    personalities, and the less was it possible to arrive at any general
    conclusion from all that had been said. Prince Andrew, listening to this
    polyglot talk and to these surmises, plans, refutations, and shouts,
    felt nothing but amazement at what they were saying. A thought that had
    long since and often occurred to him during his military activities--the
    idea that there is not and cannot be any science of war, and that
    therefore there can be no such thing as a military genius--now appeared
    to him an obvious truth. "What theory and science is possible about a
    matter the conditions and circumstances of which are unknown and cannot
    be defined, especially when the strength of the acting forces cannot be
    ascertained? No one was or is able to foresee in what condition our or
    the enemy's armies will be in a day's time, and no one can gauge the
    force of this or that detachment. Sometimes--when there is not a coward
    at the front to shout, 'We are cut off!' and start running, but a brave
    and jolly lad who shouts, 'Hurrah!'--a detachment of five thousand is
    worth thirty thousand, as at Schon Grabern, while at times fifty
    thousand run from eight thousand, as at Austerlitz. What science can
    there be in a matter in which, as in all practical matters, nothing can
    be defined and everything depends on innumerable conditions, the
    significance of which is determined at a particular moment which arrives
    no one knows when? Armfeldt says our army is cut in half, and Paulucci
    says we have got the French army between two fires; Michaud says that
    the worthlessness of the Drissa camp lies in having the river behind it,
    and Pfuel says that is what constitutes its strength; Toll proposes one
    plan, Armfeldt another, and they are all good and all bad, and the
    advantages of any suggestions can be seen only at the moment of trial.
    And why do they all speak of a 'military genius'? Is a man a genius who
    can order bread to be brought up at the right time and say who is to go
    to the right and who to the left? It is only because military men are
    invested with pomp and power and crowds of sychophants flatter power,
    attributing to it qualities of genius it does not possess. The best
    generals I have known were, on the contrary, stupid or absent-minded
    men. Bagration was the best, Napoleon himself admitted that. And of
    Bonaparte himself! I remember his limited, self-satisfied face on the
    field of Austerlitz. Not only does a good army commander not need any
    special qualities, on the contrary he needs the absence of the highest
    and best human attributes--love, poetry, tenderness, and philosophic
    inquiring doubt. He should be limited, firmly convinced that what he is
    doing is very important (otherwise he will not have sufficient
    patience), and only then will he be a brave leader. God forbid that he
    should be humane, should love, or pity, or think of what is just and
    unjust. It is understandable that a theory of their 'genius' was
    invented for them long ago because they have power! The success of a
    military action depends not on them, but on the man in the ranks who
    shouts, 'We are lost!' or who shouts, 'Hurrah!' And only in the ranks
    can one serve with assurance of being useful."
    
    So thought Prince Andrew as he listened to the talking, and he roused
    himself only when Paulucci called him and everyone was leaving.
    
    At the review next day the Emperor asked Prince Andrew where he would
    like to serve, and Prince Andrew lost his standing in court circles
    forever by not asking to remain attached to the sovereign's person, but
    for permission to serve in the army.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    Before the beginning of the campaign, Rostov had received a letter from
    his parents in which they told him briefly of Natasha's illness and the
    breaking off of her engagement to Prince Andrew (which they explained by
    Natasha's having rejected him) and again asked Nicholas to retire from
    the army and return home. On receiving this letter, Nicholas did not
    even make any attempt to get leave of absence or to retire from the
    army, but wrote to his parents that he was sorry Natasha was ill and her
    engagement broken off, and that he would do all he could to meet their
    wishes. To Sonya he wrote separately.
    
    "Adored friend of my soul!" he wrote. "Nothing but honor could keep me
    from returning to the country. But now, at the commencement of the
    campaign, I should feel dishonored, not only in my comrades' eyes but in
    my own, if I preferred my own happiness to my love and duty to the
    Fatherland. But this shall be our last separation. Believe me, directly
    the war is over, if I am still alive and still loved by you, I will
    throw up everything and fly to you, to press you forever to my ardent
    breast."
    
    It was, in fact, only the commencement of the campaign that prevented
    Rostov from returning home as he had promised and marrying Sonya. The
    autumn in Otradnoe with the hunting, and the winter with the Christmas
    holidays and Sonya's love, had opened out to him a vista of tranquil
    rural joys and peace such as he had never known before, and which now
    allured him. "A splendid wife, children, a good pack of hounds, a dozen
    leashes of smart borzois, agriculture, neighbors, service by
    election..." thought he. But now the campaign was beginning, and he had
    to remain with his regiment. And since it had to be so, Nicholas Rostov,
    as was natural to him, felt contented with the life he led in the
    regiment and was able to find pleasure in that life.
    
    On his return from his furlough Nicholas, having been joyfully welcomed
    by his comrades, was sent to obtain remounts and brought back from the
    Ukraine excellent horses which pleased him and earned him commendation
    from his commanders. During his absence he had been promoted captain,
    and when the regiment was put on war footing with an increase in
    numbers, he was again allotted his old squadron.
    
    The campaign began, the regiment was moved into Poland on double pay,
    new officers arrived, new men and horses, and above all everybody was
    infected with the merrily excited mood that goes with the commencement
    of a war, and Rostov, conscious of his advantageous position in the
    regiment, devoted himself entirely to the pleasures and interests of
    military service, though he knew that sooner or later he would have to
    relinquish them.
    
    The troops retired from Vilna for various complicated reasons of state,
    political and strategic. Each step of the retreat was accompanied by a
    complicated interplay of interests, arguments, and passions at
    headquarters. For the Pavlograd hussars, however, the whole of this
    retreat during the finest period of summer and with sufficient supplies
    was a very simple and agreeable business.
    
    It was only at headquarters that there was depression, uneasiness, and
    intriguing; in the body of the army they did not ask themselves where
    they were going or why. If they regretted having to retreat, it was only
    because they had to leave billets they had grown accustomed to, or some
    pretty young Polish lady. If the thought that things looked bad chanced
    to enter anyone's head, he tried to be as cheerful as befits a good
    soldier and not to think of the general trend of affairs, but only of
    the task nearest to hand. First they camped gaily before Vilna, making
    acquaintance with the Polish landowners, preparing for reviews and being
    reviewed by the Emperor and other high commanders. Then came an order to
    retreat to Sventsyani and destroy any provisions they could not carry
    away with them. Sventsyani was remembered by the hussars only as the
    drunken camp, a name the whole army gave to their encampment there, and
    because many complaints were made against the troops, who, taking
    advantage of the order to collect provisions, took also horses,
    carriages, and carpets from the Polish proprietors. Rostov remembered
    Sventsyani, because on the first day of their arrival at that small town
    he changed his sergeant major and was unable to manage all the drunken
    men of his squadron who, unknown to him, had appropriated five barrels
    of old beer. From Sventsyani they retired farther and farther to Drissa,
    and thence again beyond Drissa, drawing near to the frontier of Russia
    proper.
    
    On the thirteenth of July the Pavlograds took part in a serious action
    for the first time.
    
    On the twelfth of July, on the eve of that action, there was a heavy
    storm of rain and hail. In general, the summer of 1812 was remarkable
    for its storms.
    
    The two Pavlograd squadrons were bivouacking on a field of rye, which
    was already in ear but had been completely trodden down by cattle and
    horses. The rain was descending in torrents, and Rostov, with a young
    officer named Ilyin, his protege, was sitting in a hastily constructed
    shelter. An officer of their regiment, with long mustaches extending
    onto his cheeks, who after riding to the staff had been overtaken by the
    rain, entered Rostov's shelter.
    
    "I have come from the staff, Count. Have you heard of Raevski's
    exploit?"
    
    And the officer gave them details of the Saltanov battle, which he had
    heard at the staff.
    
    Rostov, smoking his pipe and turning his head about as the water
    trickled down his neck, listened inattentively, with an occasional
    glance at Ilyin, who was pressing close to him. This officer, a lad of
    sixteen who had recently joined the regiment, was now in the same
    relation to Nicholas that Nicholas had been to Denisov seven years
    before. Ilyin tried to imitate Rostov in everything and adored him as a
    girl might have done.
    
    Zdrzhinski, the officer with the long mustache, spoke grandiloquently of
    the Saltanov dam being "a Russian Thermopylae," and of how a deed worthy
    of antiquity had been performed by General Raevski. He recounted how
    Raevski had led his two sons onto the dam under terrific fire and had
    charged with them beside him. Rostov heard the story and not only said
    nothing to encourage Zdrzhinski's enthusiasm but, on the contrary,
    looked like a man ashamed of what he was hearing, though with no
    intention of contradicting it. Since the campaigns of Austerlitz and of
    1807 Rostov knew by experience that men always lie when describing
    military exploits, as he himself had done when recounting them; besides
    that, he had experience enough to know that nothing happens in war at
    all as we can imagine or relate it. And so he did not like Zdrzhinski's
    tale, nor did he like Zdrzhinski himself who, with his mustaches
    extending over his cheeks, bent low over the face of his hearer, as was
    his habit, and crowded Rostov in the narrow shanty. Rostov looked at him
    in silence. "In the first place, there must have been such a confusion
    and crowding on the dam that was being attacked that if Raevski did lead
    his sons there, it could have had no effect except perhaps on some dozen
    men nearest to him," thought he, "the rest could not have seen how or
    with whom Raevski came onto the dam. And even those who did see it would
    not have been much stimulated by it, for what had they to do with
    Raevski's tender paternal feelings when their own skins were in danger?
    And besides, the fate of the Fatherland did not depend on whether they
    took the Saltanov dam or not, as we are told was the case at
    Thermopylae. So why should he have made such a sacrifice? And why expose
    his own children in the battle? I would not have taken my brother Petya
    there, or even Ilyin, who's a stranger to me but a nice lad, but would
    have tried to put them somewhere under cover," Nicholas continued to
    think, as he listened to Zdrzhinski. But he did not express his
    thoughts, for in such matters, too, he had gained experience. He knew
    that this tale redounded to the glory of our arms and so one had to
    pretend not to doubt it. And he acted accordingly.
    
    "I can't stand this any more," said Ilyin, noticing that Rostov did not
    relish Zdrzhinski's conversation. "My stockings and shirt... and the
    water is running on my seat! I'll go and look for shelter. The rain
    seems less heavy."
    
    Ilyin went out and Zdrzhinski rode away.
    
    Five minutes later Ilyin, splashing through the mud, came running back
    to the shanty.
    
    "Hurrah! Rostov, come quick! I've found it! About two hundred yards away
    there's a tavern where ours have already gathered. We can at least get
    dry there, and Mary Hendrikhovna's there."
    
    Mary Hendrikhovna was the wife of the regimental doctor, a pretty young
    German woman he had married in Poland. The doctor, whether from lack of
    means or because he did not like to part from his young wife in the
    early days of their marriage, took her about with him wherever the
    hussar regiment went and his jealousy had become a standing joke among
    the hussar officers.
    
    Rostov threw his cloak over his shoulders, shouted to Lavrushka to
    follow with the things, and--now slipping in the mud, now splashing
    right through it--set off with Ilyin in the lessening rain and the
    darkness that was occasionally rent by distant lightning.
    
    "Rostov, where are you?"
    
    "Here. What lightning!" they called to one another.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    In the tavern, before which stood the doctor's covered cart, there were
    already some five officers. Mary Hendrikhovna, a plump little blonde
    German, in a dressing jacket and nightcap, was sitting on a broad bench
    in the front corner. Her husband, the doctor, lay asleep behind her.
    Rostov and Ilyin, on entering the room, were welcomed with merry shouts
    and laughter.
    
    "Dear me, how jolly we are!" said Rostov laughing.
    
    "And why do you stand there gaping?"
    
    "What swells they are! Why, the water streams from them! Don't make our
    drawing room so wet."
    
    "Don't mess Mary Hendrikhovna's dress!" cried other voices.
    
    Rostov and Ilyin hastened to find a corner where they could change into
    dry clothes without offending Mary Hendrikhovna's modesty. They were
    going into a tiny recess behind a partition to change, but found it
    completely filled by three officers who sat playing cards by the light
    of a solitary candle on an empty box, and these officers would on no
    account yield their position. Mary Hendrikhovna obliged them with the
    loan of a petticoat to be used as a curtain, and behind that screen
    Rostov and Ilyin, helped by Lavrushka who had brought their kits,
    changed their wet things for dry ones.
    
    A fire was made up in the dilapidated brick stove. A board was found,
    fixed on two saddles and covered with a horsecloth, a small samovar was
    produced and a cellaret and half a bottle of rum, and having asked Mary
    Hendrikhovna to preside, they all crowded round her. One offered her a
    clean handkerchief to wipe her charming hands, another spread a jacket
    under her little feet to keep them from the damp, another hung his coat
    over the window to keep out the draft, and yet another waved the flies
    off her husband's face, lest he should wake up.
    
    "Leave him alone," said Mary Hendrikhovna, smiling timidly and happily.
    "He is sleeping well as it is, after a sleepless night."
    
    "Oh, no, Mary Hendrikhovna," replied the officer, "one must look after
    the doctor. Perhaps he'll take pity on me someday, when it comes to
    cutting off a leg or an arm for me."
    
    There were only three tumblers, the water was so muddy that one could
    not make out whether the tea was strong or weak, and the samovar held
    only six tumblers of water, but this made it all the pleasanter to take
    turns in order of seniority to receive one's tumbler from Mary
    Hendrikhovna's plump little hands with their short and not overclean
    nails. All the officers appeared to be, and really were, in love with
    her that evening. Even those playing cards behind the partition soon
    left their game and came over to the samovar, yielding to the general
    mood of courting Mary Hendrikhovna. She, seeing herself surrounded by
    such brilliant and polite young men, beamed with satisfaction, try as
    she might to hide it, and perturbed as she evidently was each time her
    husband moved in his sleep behind her.
    
    There was only one spoon, sugar was more plentiful than anything else,
    but it took too long to dissolve, so it was decided that Mary
    Hendrikhovna should stir the sugar for everyone in turn. Rostov received
    his tumbler, and adding some rum to it asked Mary Hendrikhovna to stir
    it.
    
    "But you take it without sugar?" she said, smiling all the time, as if
    everything she said and everything the others said was very amusing and
    had a double meaning.
    
    "It is not the sugar I want, but only that your little hand should stir
    my tea."
    
    Mary Hendrikhovna assented and began looking for the spoon which someone
    meanwhile had pounced on.
    
    "Use your finger, Mary Hendrikhovna, it will be still nicer," said
    Rostov.
    
    "Too hot!" she replied, blushing with pleasure.
    
    Ilyin put a few drops of rum into the bucket of water and brought it to
    Mary Hendrikhovna, asking her to stir it with her finger.
    
    "This is my cup," said he. "Only dip your finger in it and I'll drink it
    all up."
    
    When they had emptied the samovar, Rostov took a pack of cards and
    proposed that they should play "Kings" with Mary Hendrikhovna. They drew
    lots to settle who should make up her set. At Rostov's suggestion it was
    agreed that whoever became "King" should have the right to kiss Mary
    Hendrikhovna's hand, and that the "Booby" should go to refill and reheat
    the samovar for the doctor when the latter awoke.
    
    "Well, but supposing Mary Hendrikhovna is 'King'?" asked Ilyin.
    
    "As it is, she is Queen, and her word is law!"
    
    They had hardly begun to play before the doctor's disheveled head
    suddenly appeared from behind Mary Hendrikhovna. He had been awake for
    some time, listening to what was being said, and evidently found nothing
    entertaining or amusing in what was going on. His face was sad and
    depressed. Without greeting the officers, he scratched himself and asked
    to be allowed to pass as they were blocking the way. As soon as he had
    left the room all the officers burst into loud laughter and Mary
    Hendrikhovna blushed till her eyes filled with tears and thereby became
    still more attractive to them. Returning from the yard, the doctor told
    his wife (who had ceased to smile so happily, and looked at him in
    alarm, awaiting her sentence) that the rain had ceased and they must go
    to sleep in their covered cart, or everything in it would be stolen.
    
    "But I'll send an orderly.... Two of them!" said Rostov. "What an idea,
    doctor!"
    
    "I'll stand guard on it myself!" said Ilyin.
    
    "No, gentlemen, you have had your sleep, but I have not slept for two
    nights," replied the doctor, and he sat down morosely beside his wife,
    waiting for the game to end.
    
    Seeing his gloomy face as he frowned at his wife, the officers grew
    still merrier, and some of them could not refrain from laughter, for
    which they hurriedly sought plausible pretexts. When he had gone, taking
    his wife with him, and had settled down with her in their covered cart,
    the officers lay down in the tavern, covering themselves with their wet
    cloaks, but they did not sleep for a long time; now they exchanged
    remarks, recalling the doctor's uneasiness and his wife's delight, now
    they ran out into the porch and reported what was taking place in the
    covered trap. Several times Rostov, covering his head, tried to go to
    sleep, but some remark would arouse him and conversation would be
    resumed, to the accompaniment of unreasoning, merry, childlike laughter.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    It was nearly three o'clock but no one was yet asleep, when the
    quartermaster appeared with an order to move on to the little town of
    Ostrovna. Still laughing and talking, the officers began hurriedly
    getting ready and again boiled some muddy water in the samovar. But
    Rostov went off to his squadron without waiting for tea. Day was
    breaking, the rain had ceased, and the clouds were dispersing. It felt
    damp and cold, especially in clothes that were still moist. As they left
    the tavern in the twilight of the dawn, Rostov and Ilyin both glanced
    under the wet and glistening leather hood of the doctor's cart, from
    under the apron of which his feet were sticking out, and in the middle
    of which his wife's nightcap was visible and her sleepy breathing
    audible.
    
    "She really is a dear little thing," said Rostov to Ilyin, who was
    following him.
    
    "A charming woman!" said Ilyin, with all the gravity of a boy of
    sixteen.
    
    Half an hour later the squadron was lined up on the road. The command
    was heard to "mount" and the soldiers crossed themselves and mounted.
    Rostov riding in front gave the order "Forward!" and the hussars, with
    clanking sabers and subdued talk, their horses' hoofs splashing in the
    mud, defiled in fours and moved along the broad road planted with birch
    trees on each side, following the infantry and a battery that had gone
    on in front.
    
    Tattered, blue-purple clouds, reddening in the east, were scudding
    before the wind. It was growing lighter and lighter. That curly grass
    which always grows by country roadsides became clearly visible, still
    wet with the night's rain; the drooping branches of the birches, also
    wet, swayed in the wind and flung down bright drops of water to one
    side. The soldiers' faces were more and more clearly visible. Rostov,
    always closely followed by Ilyin, rode along the side of the road
    between two rows of birch trees.
    
    When campaigning, Rostov allowed himself the indulgence of riding not a
    regimental but a Cossack horse. A judge of horses and a sportsman, he
    had lately procured himself a large, fine, mettlesome, Donets horse,
    dun-colored, with light mane and tail, and when he rode it no one could
    outgallop him. To ride this horse was a pleasure to him, and he thought
    of the horse, of the morning, of the doctor's wife, but not once of the
    impending danger.
    
    Formerly, when going into action, Rostov had felt afraid; now he had not
    the least feeling of fear. He was fearless, not because he had grown
    used to being under fire (one cannot grow used to danger), but because
    he had learned how to manage his thoughts when in danger. He had grown
    accustomed when going into action to think about anything but what would
    seem most likely to interest him--the impending danger. During the first
    period of his service, hard as he tried and much as he reproached
    himself with cowardice, he had not been able to do this, but with time
    it had come of itself. Now he rode beside Ilyin under the birch trees,
    occasionally plucking leaves from a branch that met his hand, sometimes
    touching his horse's side with his foot, or, without turning round,
    handing a pipe he had finished to an hussar riding behind him, with as
    calm and careless an air as though he were merely out for a ride. He
    glanced with pity at the excited face of Ilyin, who talked much and in
    great agitation. He knew from experience the tormenting expectation of
    terror and death the cornet was suffering and knew that only time could
    help him.
    
    As soon as the sun appeared in a clear strip of sky beneath the clouds,
    the wind fell, as if it dared not spoil the beauty of the summer morning
    after the storm; drops still continued to fall, but vertically now, and
    all was still. The whole sun appeared on the horizon and disappeared
    behind a long narrow cloud that hung above it. A few minutes later it
    reappeared brighter still from behind the top of the cloud, tearing its
    edge. Everything grew bright and glittered. And with that light, and as
    if in reply to it, came the sound of guns ahead of them.
    
    Before Rostov had had time to consider and determine the distance of
    that firing, Count Ostermann-Tolstoy's adjutant came galloping from
    Vitebsk with orders to advance at a trot along the road.
    
    The squadron overtook and passed the infantry and the battery--which had
    also quickened their pace--rode down a hill, and passing through an
    empty and deserted village again ascended. The horses began to lather
    and the men to flush.
    
    "Halt! Dress your ranks!" the order of the regimental commander was
    heard ahead. "Forward by the left. Walk, march!" came the order from in
    front.
    
    And the hussars, passing along the line of troops on the left flank of
    our position, halted behind our uhlans who were in the front line. To
    the right stood our infantry in a dense column: they were the reserve.
    Higher up the hill, on the very horizon, our guns were visible through
    the wonderfully clear air, brightly illuminated by slanting morning
    sunbeams. In front, beyond a hollow dale, could be seen the enemy's
    columns and guns. Our advanced line, already in action, could be heard
    briskly exchanging shots with the enemy in the dale.
    
    At these sounds, long unheard, Rostov's spirits rose, as at the strains
    of the merriest music. Trap-ta-ta-tap! cracked the shots, now together,
    now several quickly one after another. Again all was silent and then
    again it sounded as if someone were walking on detonators and exploding
    them.
    
    The hussars remained in the same place for about an hour. A cannonade
    began. Count Ostermann with his suite rode up behind the squadron,
    halted, spoke to the commander of the regiment, and rode up the hill to
    the guns.
    
    After Ostermann had gone, a command rang out to the uhlans.
    
    "Form column! Prepare to charge!"
    
    The infantry in front of them parted into platoons to allow the cavalry
    to pass. The uhlans started, the streamers on their spears fluttering,
    and trotted downhill toward the French cavalry which was seen below to
    the left.
    
    As soon as the uhlans descended the hill, the hussars were ordered up
    the hill to support the battery. As they took the places vacated by the
    uhlans, bullets came from the front, whining and whistling, but fell
    spent without taking effect.
    
    The sounds, which he had not heard for so long, had an even more
    pleasurable and exhilarating effect on Rostov than the previous sounds
    of firing. Drawing himself up, he viewed the field of battle opening out
    before him from the hill, and with his whole soul followed the movement
    of the uhlans. They swooped down close to the French dragoons, something
    confused happened there amid the smoke, and five minutes later our
    uhlans were galloping back, not to the place they had occupied but more
    to the left, and among the orange-colored uhlans on chestnut horses and
    behind them, in a large group, blue French dragoons on gray horses could
    be seen.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    Rostov, with his keen sportsman's eye, was one of the first to catch
    sight of these blue French dragoons pursuing our uhlans. Nearer and
    nearer in disorderly crowds came the uhlans and the French dragoons
    pursuing them. He could already see how these men, who looked so small
    at the foot of the hill, jostled and overtook one another, waving their
    arms and their sabers in the air.
    
    Rostov gazed at what was happening before him as at a hunt. He felt
    instinctively that if the hussars struck at the French dragoons now, the
    latter could not withstand them, but if a charge was to be made it must
    be done now, at that very moment, or it would be too late. He looked
    around. A captain, standing beside him, was gazing like himself with
    eyes fixed on the cavalry below them.
    
    "Andrew Sevastyanych!" said Rostov. "You know, we could crush them...."
    
    "A fine thing too!" replied the captain, "and really..."
    
    Rostov, without waiting to hear him out, touched his horse, galloped to
    the front of his squadron, and before he had time to finish giving the
    word of command, the whole squadron, sharing his feeling, was following
    him. Rostov himself did not know how or why he did it. He acted as he
    did when hunting, without reflecting or considering. He saw the dragoons
    near and that they were galloping in disorder; he knew they could not
    withstand an attack--knew there was only that moment and that if he let
    it slip it would not return. The bullets were whining and whistling so
    stimulatingly around him and his horse was so eager to go that he could
    not restrain himself. He touched his horse, gave the word of command,
    and immediately, hearing behind him the tramp of the horses of his
    deployed squadron, rode at full trot downhill toward the dragoons.
    Hardly had they reached the bottom of the hill before their pace
    instinctively changed to a gallop, which grew faster and faster as they
    drew nearer to our uhlans and the French dragoons who galloped after
    them. The dragoons were now close at hand. On seeing the hussars, the
    foremost began to turn, while those behind began to halt. With the same
    feeling with which he had galloped across the path of a wolf, Rostov
    gave rein to his Donets horse and galloped to intersect the path of the
    dragoons' disordered lines. One Uhlan stopped, another who was on foot
    flung himself to the ground to avoid being knocked over, and a riderless
    horse fell in among the hussars. Nearly all the French dragoons were
    galloping back. Rostov, picking out one on a gray horse, dashed after
    him. On the way he came upon a bush, his gallant horse cleared it, and
    almost before he had righted himself in his saddle he saw that he would
    immediately overtake the enemy he had selected. That Frenchman, by his
    uniform an officer, was going at a gallop, crouching on his gray horse
    and urging it on with his saber. In another moment Rostov's horse dashed
    its breast against the hindquarters of the officer's horse, almost
    knocking it over, and at the same instant Rostov, without knowing why,
    raised his saber and struck the Frenchman with it.
    
    The instant he had done this, all Rostov's animation vanished. The
    officer fell, not so much from the blow--which had but slightly cut his
    arm above the elbow--as from the shock to his horse and from fright.
    Rostov reined in his horse, and his eyes sought his foe to see whom he
    had vanquished. The French dragoon officer was hopping with one foot on
    the ground, the other being caught in the stirrup. His eyes, screwed up
    with fear as if he every moment expected another blow, gazed up at
    Rostov with shrinking terror. His pale and mud-stained face--fair and
    young, with a dimple in the chin and light-blue eyes--was not an enemy's
    face at all suited to a battlefield, but a most ordinary, homelike face.
    Before Rostov had decided what to do with him, the officer cried, "I
    surrender!" He hurriedly but vainly tried to get his foot out of the
    stirrup and did not remove his frightened blue eyes from Rostov's face.
    Some hussars who galloped up disengaged his foot and helped him into the
    saddle. On all sides, the hussars were busy with the dragoons; one was
    wounded, but though his face was bleeding, he would not give up his
    horse; another was perched up behind an hussar with his arms round him;
    a third was being helped by an hussar to mount his horse. In front, the
    French infantry were firing as they ran. The hussars galloped hastily
    back with their prisoners. Rostov galloped back with the rest, aware of
    an unpleasant feeling of depression in his heart. Something vague and
    confused, which he could not at all account for, had come over him with
    the capture of that officer and the blow he had dealt him.
    
    Count Ostermann-Tolstoy met the returning hussars, sent for Rostov,
    thanked him, and said he would report his gallant deed to the Emperor
    and would recommend him for a St. George's Cross. When sent for by Count
    Ostermann, Rostov, remembering that he had charged without orders, felt
    sure his commander was sending for him to punish him for breach of
    discipline. Ostermann's flattering words and promise of a reward should
    therefore have struck him all the more pleasantly, but he still felt
    that same vaguely disagreeable feeling of moral nausea. "But what on
    earth is worrying me?" he asked himself as he rode back from the
    general. "Ilyin? No, he's safe. Have I disgraced myself in any way? No,
    that's not it." Something else, resembling remorse, tormented him. "Yes,
    oh yes, that French officer with the dimple. And I remember how my arm
    paused when I raised it."
    
    Rostov saw the prisoners being led away and galloped after them to have
    a look at his Frenchman with the dimple on his chin. He was sitting in
    his foreign uniform on an hussar packhorse and looked anxiously about
    him; The sword cut on his arm could scarcely be called a wound. He
    glanced at Rostov with a feigned smile and waved his hand in greeting.
    Rostov still had the same indefinite feeling, as of shame.
    
    All that day and the next his friends and comrades noticed that Rostov,
    without being dull or angry, was silent, thoughtful, and preoccupied. He
    drank reluctantly, tried to remain alone, and kept turning something
    over in his mind.
    
    Rostov was always thinking about that brilliant exploit of his, which to
    his amazement had gained him the St. George's Cross and even given him a
    reputation for bravery, and there was something he could not at all
    understand. "So others are even more afraid than I am!" he thought. "So
    that's all there is in what is called heroism! And did I do it for my
    country's sake? And how was he to blame, with his dimple and blue eyes?
    And how frightened he was! He thought that I should kill him. Why should
    I kill him? My hand trembled. And they have given me a St. George's
    Cross.... I can't make it out at all."
    
    But while Nicholas was considering these questions and still could reach
    no clear solution of what puzzled him so, the wheel of fortune in the
    service, as often happens, turned in his favor. After the affair at
    Ostrovna he was brought into notice, received command of an hussar
    battalion, and when a brave officer was needed he was chosen.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    On receiving news of Natasha's illness, the countess, though not quite
    well yet and still weak, went to Moscow with Petya and the rest of the
    household, and the whole family moved from Marya Dmitrievna's house to
    their own and settled down in town.
    
    Natasha's illness was so serious that, fortunately for her and for her
    parents, the consideration of all that had caused the illness, her
    conduct and the breaking off of her engagement, receded into the
    background. She was so ill that it was impossible for them to consider
    in how far she was to blame for what had happened. She could not eat or
    sleep, grew visibly thinner, coughed, and, as the doctors made them
    feel, was in danger. They could not think of anything but how to help
    her. Doctors came to see her singly and in consultation, talked much in
    French, German, and Latin, blamed one another, and prescribed a great
    variety of medicines for all the diseases known to them, but the simple
    idea never occurred to any of them that they could not know the disease
    Natasha was suffering from, as no disease suffered by a live man can be
    known, for every living person has his own peculiarities and always has
    his own peculiar, personal, novel, complicated disease, unknown to
    medicine--not a disease of the lungs, liver, skin, heart, nerves, and so
    on mentioned in medical books, but a disease consisting of one of the
    innumerable combinations of the maladies of those organs. This simple
    thought could not occur to the doctors (as it cannot occur to a wizard
    that he is unable to work his charms) because the business of their
    lives was to cure, and they received money for it and had spent the best
    years of their lives on that business. But, above all, that thought was
    kept out of their minds by the fact that they saw they were really
    useful, as in fact they were to the whole Rostov family. Their
    usefulness did not depend on making the patient swallow substances for
    the most part harmful (the harm was scarcely perceptible, as they were
    given in small doses), but they were useful, necessary, and
    indispensable because they satisfied a mental need of the invalid and of
    those who loved her--and that is why there are, and always will be,
    pseudo-healers, wise women, homeopaths, and allopaths. They satisfied
    that eternal human need for hope of relief, for sympathy, and that
    something should be done, which is felt by those who are suffering. They
    satisfied the need seen in its most elementary form in a child, when it
    wants to have a place rubbed that has been hurt. A child knocks itself
    and runs at once to the arms of its mother or nurse to have the aching
    spot rubbed or kissed, and it feels better when this is done. The child
    cannot believe that the strongest and wisest of its people have no
    remedy for its pain, and the hope of relief and the expression of its
    mother's sympathy while she rubs the bump comforts it. The doctors were
    of use to Natasha because they kissed and rubbed her bump, assuring her
    that it would soon pass if only the coachman went to the chemist's in
    the Arbat and got a powder and some pills in a pretty box for a ruble
    and seventy kopeks, and if she took those powders in boiled water at
    intervals of precisely two hours, neither more nor less.
    
    What would Sonya and the count and countess have done, how would they
    have looked, if nothing had been done, if there had not been those pills
    to give by the clock, the warm drinks, the chicken cutlets, and all the
    other details of life ordered by the doctors, the carrying out of which
    supplied an occupation and consolation to the family circle? How would
    the count have borne his dearly loved daughter's illness had he not
    known that it was costing him a thousand rubles, and that he would not
    grudge thousands more to benefit her, or had he not known that if her
    illness continued he would not grudge yet other thousands and would take
    her abroad for consultations there, and had he not been able to explain
    the details of how Metivier and Feller had not understood the symptoms,
    but Frise had, and Mudrov had diagnosed them even better? What would the
    countess have done had she not been able sometimes to scold the invalid
    for not strictly obeying the doctor's orders?
    
    "You'll never get well like that," she would say, forgetting her grief
    in her vexation, "if you won't obey the doctor and take your medicine at
    the right time! You mustn't trifle with it, you know, or it may turn to
    pneumonia," she would go on, deriving much comfort from the utterance of
    that foreign word, incomprehensible to others as well as to herself.
    
    What would Sonya have done without the glad consciousness that she had
    not undressed during the first three nights, in order to be ready to
    carry out all the doctor's injunctions with precision, and that she
    still kept awake at night so as not to miss the proper time when the
    slightly harmful pills in the little gilt box had to be administered?
    Even to Natasha herself it was pleasant to see that so many sacrifices
    were being made for her sake, and to know that she had to take medicine
    at certain hours, though she declared that no medicine would cure her
    and that it was all nonsense. And it was even pleasant to be able to
    show, by disregarding the orders, that she did not believe in medical
    treatment and did not value her life.
    
    The doctor came every day, felt her pulse, looked at her tongue, and
    regardless of her grief-stricken face joked with her. But when he had
    gone into another room, to which the countess hurriedly followed him, he
    assumed a grave air and thoughtfully shaking his head said that though
    there was danger, he had hopes of the effect of this last medicine and
    one must wait and see, that the malady was chiefly mental, but... And
    the countess, trying to conceal the action from herself and from him,
    slipped a gold coin into his hand and always returned to the patient
    with a more tranquil mind.
    
    The symptoms of Natasha's illness were that she ate little, slept
    little, coughed, and was always low-spirited. The doctors said that she
    could not get on without medical treatment, so they kept her in the
    stifling atmosphere of the town, and the Rostovs did not move to the
    country that summer of 1812.
    
    In spite of the many pills she swallowed and the drops and powders out
    of the little bottles and boxes of which Madame Schoss who was fond of
    such things made a large collection, and in spite of being deprived of
    the country life to which she was accustomed, youth prevailed. Natasha's
    grief began to be overlaid by the impressions of daily life, it ceased
    to press so painfully on her heart, it gradually faded into the past,
    and she began to recover physically.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    Natasha was calmer but no happier. She not merely avoided all external
    forms of pleasure--balls, promenades, concerts, and theaters--but she
    never laughed without a sound of tears in her laughter. She could not
    sing. As soon as she began to laugh, or tried to sing by herself, tears
    choked her: tears of remorse, tears at the recollection of those pure
    times which could never return, tears of vexation that she should so
    uselessly have ruined her young life which might have been so happy.
    Laughter and singing in particular seemed to her like a blasphemy, in
    face of her sorrow. Without any need of self-restraint, no wish to
    coquet ever entered her head. She said and felt at that time that no man
    was more to her than Nastasya Ivanovna, the buffoon. Something stood
    sentinel within her and forbade her every joy. Besides, she had lost all
    the old interests of her carefree girlish life that had been so full of
    hope. The previous autumn, the hunting, "Uncle," and the Christmas
    holidays spent with Nicholas at Otradnoe were what she recalled oftenest
    and most painfully. What would she not have given to bring back even a
    single day of that time! But it was gone forever. Her presentiment at
    the time had not deceived her--that that state of freedom and readiness
    for any enjoyment would not return again. Yet it was necessary to live
    on.
    
    It comforted her to reflect that she was not better as she had formerly
    imagined, but worse, much worse, than anybody else in the world. But
    this was not enough. She knew that, and asked herself, "What next?" But
    there was nothing to come. There was no joy in life, yet life was
    passing. Natasha apparently tried not to be a burden or a hindrance to
    anyone, but wanted nothing for herself. She kept away from everyone in
    the house and felt at ease only with her brother Petya. She liked to be
    with him better than with the others, and when alone with him she
    sometimes laughed. She hardly ever left the house and of those who came
    to see them was glad to see only one person, Pierre. It would have been
    impossible to treat her with more delicacy, greater care, and at the
    same time more seriously than did Count Bezukhov. Natasha unconsciously
    felt this delicacy and so found great pleasure in his society. But she
    was not even grateful to him for it; nothing good on Pierre's part
    seemed to her to be an effort, it seemed so natural for him to be kind
    to everyone that there was no merit in his kindness. Sometimes Natasha
    noticed embarrassment and awkwardness on his part in her presence,
    especially when he wanted to do something to please her, or feared that
    something they spoke of would awaken memories distressing to her. She
    noticed this and attributed it to his general kindness and shyness,
    which she imagined must be the same toward everyone as it was to her.
    After those involuntary words--that if he were free he would have asked
    on his knees for her hand and her love--uttered at a moment when she was
    so strongly agitated, Pierre never spoke to Natasha of his feelings; and
    it seemed plain to her that those words, which had then so comforted
    her, were spoken as all sorts of meaningless words are spoken to comfort
    a crying child. It was not because Pierre was a married man, but because
    Natasha felt very strongly with him that moral barrier the absence of
    which she had experienced with Kuragin that it never entered her head
    that the relations between him and herself could lead to love on her
    part, still less on his, or even to the kind of tender, self-conscious,
    romantic friendship between a man and a woman of which she had known
    several instances.
    
    Before the end of the fast of St. Peter, Agrafena Ivanovna Belova, a
    country neighbor of the Rostovs, came to Moscow to pay her devotions at
    the shrines of the Moscow saints. She suggested that Natasha should fast
    and prepare for Holy Communion, and Natasha gladly welcomed the idea.
    Despite the doctor's orders that she should not go out early in the
    morning, Natasha insisted on fasting and preparing for the sacrament,
    not as they generally prepared for it in the Rostov family by attending
    three services in their own house, but as Agrafena Ivanovna did, by
    going to church every day for a week and not once missing Vespers,
    Matins, or Mass.
    
    The countess was pleased with Natasha's zeal; after the poor results of
    the medical treatment, in the depths of her heart she hoped that prayer
    might help her daughter more than medicines and, though not without fear
    and concealing it from the doctor, she agreed to Natasha's wish and
    entrusted her to Belova. Agrafena Ivanovna used to come to wake Natasha
    at three in the morning, but generally found her already awake. She was
    afraid of being late for Matins. Hastily washing, and meekly putting on
    her shabbiest dress and an old mantilla, Natasha, shivering in the fresh
    air, went out into the deserted streets lit by the clear light of dawn.
    By Agrafena Ivanovna's advice Natasha prepared herself not in their own
    parish, but at a church where, according to the devout Agrafena
    Ivanovna, the priest was a man of very severe and lofty life. There were
    never many people in the church; Natasha always stood beside Belova in
    the customary place before an icon of the Blessed Virgin, let into the
    screen before the choir on the left side, and a feeling, new to her, of
    humility before something great and incomprehensible, seized her when at
    that unusual morning hour, gazing at the dark face of the Virgin
    illuminated by the candles burning before it and by the morning light
    falling from the window, she listened to the words of the service which
    she tried to follow with understanding. When she understood them her
    personal feeling became interwoven in the prayers with shades of its
    own. When she did not understand, it was sweeter still to think that the
    wish to understand everything is pride, that it is impossible to
    understand all, that it is only necessary to believe and to commit
    oneself to God, whom she felt guiding her soul at those moments. She
    crossed herself, bowed low, and when she did not understand, in horror
    at her own vileness, simply asked God to forgive her everything,
    everything, to have mercy upon her. The prayers to which she surrendered
    herself most of all were those of repentance. On her way home at an
    early hour when she met no one but bricklayers going to work or men
    sweeping the street, and everybody within the houses was still asleep,
    Natasha experienced a feeling new to her, a sense of the possibility of
    correcting her faults, the possibility of a new, clean life, and of
    happiness.
    
    During the whole week she spent in this way, that feeling grew every
    day. And the happiness of taking communion, or "communing" as Agrafena
    Ivanovna, joyously playing with the word, called it, seemed to Natasha
    so great that she felt she should never live till that blessed Sunday.
    
    But the happy day came, and on that memorable Sunday, when, dressed in
    white muslin, she returned home after communion, for the first time for
    many months she felt calm and not oppressed by the thought of the life
    that lay before her.
    
    The doctor who came to see her that day ordered her to continue the
    powders he had prescribed a fortnight previously.
    
    "She must certainly go on taking them morning and evening," said he,
    evidently sincerely satisfied with his success. "Only, please be
    particular about it.
    
    "Be quite easy," he continued playfully, as he adroitly took the gold
    coin in his palm. "She will soon be singing and frolicking about. The
    last medicine has done her a very great deal of good. She has freshened
    up very much."
    
    The countess, with a cheerful expression on her face, looked down at her
    nails and spat a little for luck as she returned to the drawing room.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    At the beginning of July more and more disquieting reports about the war
    began to spread in Moscow; people spoke of an appeal by the Emperor to
    the people, and of his coming himself from the army to Moscow. And as up
    to the eleventh of July no manifesto or appeal had been received,
    exaggerated reports became current about them and about the position of
    Russia. It was said that the Emperor was leaving the army because it was
    in danger, it was said that Smolensk had surrendered, that Napoleon had
    an army of a million and only a miracle could save Russia.
    
    On the eleventh of July, which was Saturday, the manifesto was received
    but was not yet in print, and Pierre, who was at the Rostovs', promised
    to come to dinner next day, Sunday, and bring a copy of the manifesto
    and appeal, which he would obtain from Count Rostopchin.
    
    That Sunday, the Rostovs went to Mass at the Razumovskis' private chapel
    as usual. It was a hot July day. Even at ten o'clock, when the Rostovs
    got out of their carriage at the chapel, the sultry air, the shouts of
    hawkers, the light and gay summer clothes of the crowd, the dusty leaves
    of the trees on the boulevard, the sounds of the band and the white
    trousers of a battalion marching to parade, the rattling of wheels on
    the cobblestones, and the brilliant, hot sunshine were all full of that
    summer languor, that content and discontent with the present, which is
    most strongly felt on a bright, hot day in town. All the Moscow
    notabilities, all the Rostovs' acquaintances, were at the Razumovskis'
    chapel, for, as if expecting something to happen, many wealthy families
    who usually left town for their country estates had not gone away that
    summer. As Natasha, at her mother's side, passed through the crowd
    behind a liveried footman who cleared the way for them, she heard a
    young man speaking about her in too loud a whisper.
    
    "That's Rostova, the one who..."
    
    "She's much thinner, but all the same she's pretty!"
    
    She heard, or thought she heard, the names of Kuragin and Bolkonski. But
    she was always imagining that. It always seemed to her that everyone who
    looked at her was thinking only of what had happened to her. With a
    sinking heart, wretched as she always was now when she found herself in
    a crowd, Natasha in her lilac silk dress trimmed with black lace walked-
    -as women can walk--with the more repose and stateliness the greater the
    pain and shame in her soul. She knew for certain that she was pretty,
    but this no longer gave her satisfaction as it used to. On the contrary
    it tormented her more than anything else of late, and particularly so on
    this bright, hot summer day in town. "It's Sunday again--another week
    past," she thought, recalling that she had been here the Sunday before,
    "and always the same life that is no life, and the same surroundings in
    which it used to be so easy to live. I'm pretty, I'm young, and I know
    that now I am good. I used to be bad, but now I know I am good," she
    thought, "but yet my best years are slipping by and are no good to
    anyone." She stood by her mother's side and exchanged nods with
    acquaintances near her. From habit she scrutinized the ladies' dresses,
    condemned the bearing of a lady standing close by who was not crossing
    herself properly but in a cramped manner, and again she thought with
    vexation that she was herself being judged and was judging others, and
    suddenly, at the sound of the service, she felt horrified at her own
    vileness, horrified that the former purity of her soul was again lost to
    her.
    
    A comely, fresh-looking old man was conducting the service with that
    mild solemnity which has so elevating and soothing an effect on the
    souls of the worshipers. The gates of the sanctuary screen were closed,
    the curtain was slowly drawn, and from behind it a soft mysterious voice
    pronounced some words. Tears, the cause of which she herself did not
    understand, made Natasha's breast heave, and a joyous but oppressive
    feeling agitated her.
    
    "Teach me what I should do, how to live my life, how I may grow good
    forever, forever!" she pleaded.
    
    The deacon came out onto the raised space before the altar screen and,
    holding his thumb extended, drew his long hair from under his dalmatic
    and, making the sign of the cross on his breast, began in a loud and
    solemn voice to recite the words of the prayer...
    
    "In peace let us pray unto the Lord."
    
    "As one community, without distinction of class, without enmity, united
    by brotherly love--let us pray!" thought Natasha.
    
    "For the peace that is from above, and for the salvation of our souls."
    
    "For the world of angels and all the spirits who dwell above us," prayed
    Natasha.
    
    When they prayed for the warriors, she thought of her brother and
    Denisov. When they prayed for all traveling by land and sea, she
    remembered Prince Andrew, prayed for him, and asked God to forgive her
    all the wrongs she had done him. When they prayed for those who love us,
    she prayed for the members of her own family, her father and mother and
    Sonya, realizing for the first time how wrongly she had acted toward
    them, and feeling all the strength of her love for them. When they
    prayed for those who hate us, she tried to think of her enemies and
    people who hated her, in order to pray for them. She included among her
    enemies the creditors and all who had business dealings with her father,
    and always at the thought of enemies and those who hated her she
    remembered Anatole who had done her so much harm--and though he did not
    hate her she gladly prayed for him as for an enemy. Only at prayer did
    she feel able to think clearly and calmly of Prince Andrew and Anatole,
    as men for whom her feelings were as nothing compared with her awe and
    devotion to God. When they prayed for the Imperial family and the Synod,
    she bowed very low and made the sign of the cross, saying to herself
    that even if she did not understand, still she could not doubt, and at
    any rate loved the governing Synod and prayed for it.
    
    When he had finished the Litany the deacon crossed the stole over his
    breast and said, "Let us commit ourselves and our whole lives to Christ
    the Lord!"
    
    "Commit ourselves to God," Natasha inwardly repeated. "Lord God, I
    submit myself to Thy will!" she thought. "I want nothing, wish for
    nothing; teach me what to do and how to use my will! Take me, take me!"
    prayed Natasha, with impatient emotion in her heart, not crossing
    herself but letting her slender arms hang down as if expecting some
    invisible power at any moment to take her and deliver her from herself,
    from her regrets, desires, remorse, hopes, and sins.
    
    The countess looked round several times at her daughter's softened face
    and shining eyes and prayed God to help her.
    
    Unexpectedly, in the middle of the service, and not in the usual order
    Natasha knew so well, the deacon brought out a small stool, the one he
    knelt on when praying on Trinity Sunday, and placed it before the doors
    of the sanctuary screen. The priest came out with his purple velvet
    biretta on his head, adjusted his hair, and knelt down with an effort.
    Everybody followed his example and they looked at one another in
    surprise. Then came the prayer just received from the Synod--a prayer
    for the deliverance of Russia from hostile invasion.
    
    "Lord God of might, God of our salvation!" began the priest in that
    voice, clear, not grandiloquent but mild, in which only the Slav clergy
    read and which acts so irresistibly on a Russian heart.
    
    "Lord God of might, God of our salvation! Look this day in mercy and
    blessing on Thy humble people, and graciously hear us, spare us, and
    have mercy upon us! This foe confounding Thy land, desiring to lay waste
    the whole world, rises against us; these lawless men are gathered
    together to overthrow Thy kingdom, to destroy Thy dear Jerusalem, Thy
    beloved Russia; to defile Thy temples, to overthrow Thine altars, and to
    desecrate our holy shrines. How long, O Lord, how long shall the wicked
    triumph? How long shall they wield unlawful power?
    
    "Lord God! Hear us when we pray to Thee; strengthen with Thy might our
    most gracious sovereign lord, the Emperor Alexander Pavlovich; be
    mindful of his uprightness and meekness, reward him according to his
    righteousness, and let it preserve us, Thy chosen Israel! Bless his
    counsels, his undertakings, and his work; strengthen his kingdom by
    Thine almighty hand, and give him victory over his enemy, even as Thou
    gavest Moses the victory over Amalek, Gideon over Midian, and David over
    Goliath. Preserve his army, put a bow of brass in the hands of those who
    have armed themselves in Thy Name, and gird their loins with strength
    for the fight. Take up the spear and shield and arise to help us;
    confound and put to shame those who have devised evil against us, may
    they be before the faces of Thy faithful warriors as dust before the
    wind, and may Thy mighty Angel confound them and put them to flight; may
    they be ensnared when they know it not, and may the plots they have laid
    in secret be turned against them; let them fall before Thy servants'
    feet and be laid low by our hosts! Lord, Thou art able to save both
    great and small; Thou art God, and man cannot prevail against Thee!
    
    "God of our fathers! Remember Thy bounteous mercy and loving-kindness
    which are from of old; turn not Thy face from us, but be gracious to our
    unworthiness, and in Thy great goodness and Thy many mercies regard not
    our transgressions and iniquities! Create in us a clean heart and renew
    a right spirit within us, strengthen us all in Thy faith, fortify our
    hope, inspire us with true love one for another, arm us with unity of
    spirit in the righteous defense of the heritage Thou gavest to us and to
    our fathers, and let not the scepter of the wicked be exalted against
    the destiny of those Thou hast sanctified.
    
    "O Lord our God, in whom we believe and in whom we put our trust, let us
    not be confounded in our hope of Thy mercy, and give us a token of Thy
    blessing, that those who hate us and our Orthodox faith may see it and
    be put to shame and perish, and may all the nations know that Thou art
    the Lord and we are Thy people. Show Thy mercy upon us this day, O Lord,
    and grant us Thy salvation; make the hearts of Thy servants to rejoice
    in Thy mercy; smite down our enemies and destroy them swiftly beneath
    the feet of Thy faithful servants! For Thou art the defense, the succor,
    and the victory of them that put their trust in Thee, and to Thee be all
    glory, to Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, now and forever, world without
    end. Amen."
    
    In Natasha's receptive condition of soul this prayer affected her
    strongly. She listened to every word about the victory of Moses over
    Amalek, of Gideon over Midian, and of David over Goliath, and about the
    destruction of "Thy Jerusalem," and she prayed to God with the
    tenderness and emotion with which her heart was overflowing, but without
    fully understanding what she was asking of God in that prayer. She
    shared with all her heart in the prayer for the spirit of righteousness,
    for the strengthening of the heart by faith and hope, and its animation
    by love. But she could not pray that her enemies might be trampled under
    foot when but a few minutes before she had been wishing she had more of
    them that she might pray for them. But neither could she doubt the
    righteousness of the prayer that was being read on bended knees. She
    felt in her heart a devout and tremulous awe at the thought of the
    punishment that overtakes men for their sins, and especially of her own
    sins, and she prayed to God to forgive them all, and her too, and to
    give them all, and her too, peace and happiness. And it seemed to her
    that God heard her prayer.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    From the day when Pierre, after leaving the Rostovs' with Natasha's
    grateful look fresh in his mind, had gazed at the comet that seemed to
    be fixed in the sky and felt that something new was appearing on his own
    horizon--from that day the problem of the vanity and uselessness of all
    earthly things, that had incessantly tormented him, no longer presented
    itself. That terrible question "Why?" "Wherefore?" which had come to him
    amid every occupation, was now replaced, not by another question or by a
    reply to the former question, but by her image. When he listened to, or
    himself took part in, trivial conversations, when he read or heard of
    human baseness or folly, he was not horrified as formerly, and did not
    ask himself why men struggled so about these things when all is so
    transient and incomprehensible--but he remembered her as he had last
    seen her, and all his doubts vanished--not because she had answered the
    questions that had haunted him, but because his conception of her
    transferred him instantly to another, a brighter, realm of spiritual
    activity in which no one could be justified or guilty--a realm of beauty
    and love which it was worth living for. Whatever worldly baseness
    presented itself to him, he said to himself:
    
    "Well, supposing N. N. swindled the country and the Tsar, and the
    country and the Tsar confer honors upon him, what does that matter? She
    smiled at me yesterday and asked me to come again, and I love her, and
    no one will ever know it." And his soul felt calm and peaceful.
    
    Pierre still went into society, drank as much and led the same idle and
    dissipated life, because besides the hours he spent at the Rostovs'
    there were other hours he had to spend somehow, and the habits and
    acquaintances he had made in Moscow formed a current that bore him along
    irresistibly. But latterly, when more and more disquieting reports came
    from the seat of war and Natasha's health began to improve and she no
    longer aroused in him the former feeling of careful pity, an ever-
    increasing restlessness, which he could not explain, took possession of
    him. He felt that the condition he was in could not continue long, that
    a catastrophe was coming which would change his whole life, and he
    impatiently sought everywhere for signs of that approaching catastrophe.
    One of his brother Masons had revealed to Pierre the following prophecy
    concerning Napoleon, drawn from the Revelation of St. John.
    
    In chapter 13, verse 18, of the Apocalypse, it is said:
    
    Here is wisdom. Let him that hath understanding count the number of the
    beast: for it is the number of a man; and his number is Six hundred
    threescore and six.
    
    And in the fifth verse of the same chapter:
    
    And there was given unto him a mouth speaking great things and
    blasphemies; and power was given unto him to continue forty and two
    months.
    
    The French alphabet, written out with the same numerical values as the
    Hebrew, in which the first nine letters denote units and the others
    tens, will have the following significance:
    
    a   b   c   d   e   f   g   h   i   k 1   2   3   4   5   6   7   8   9
    10 l    m    n    o    p    q    r    s 20   30   40   50   60   70   80
    90 t    u    v    w    x    y 100  110  120  130  140  150 z 160
    
    Writing the words L'Empereur Napoleon in numbers, it appears that the
    sum of them is 666, and that Napoleon was therefore the beast foretold
    in the Apocalypse. Moreover, by applying the same system to the words
    quarante-deux, * which was the term allowed to the beast that "spoke
    great things and blasphemies," the same number 666 was obtained; from
    which it followed that the limit fixed for Napoleon's power had come in
    the year 1812 when the French emperor was forty-two. This prophecy
    pleased Pierre very much and he often asked himself what would put an
    end to the power of the beast, that is, of Napoleon, and tried by the
    same system of using letters as numbers and adding them up, to find an
    answer to the question that engrossed him. He wrote the words L'Empereur
    Alexandre, La nation russe and added up their numbers, but the sums were
    either more or less than 666. Once when making such calculations he
    wrote down his own name in French, Comte Pierre Besouhoff, but the sum
    of the numbers did not come right. Then he changed the spelling,
    substituting a z for the s and adding de and the article le, still
    without obtaining the desired result. Then it occurred to him: if the
    answer to the question were contained in his name, his nationality would
    also be given in the answer. So he wrote Le russe Besuhof and adding up
    the numbers got 671. This was only five too much, and five was
    represented by e, the very letter elided from the article le before the
    word Empereur. By omitting the e, though incorrectly, Pierre got the
    answer he sought. L'russe Besuhof made 666. This discovery excited him.
    How, or by what means, he was connected with the great event foretold in
    the Apocalypse he did not know, but he did not doubt that connection for
    a moment. His love for Natasha, Antichrist, Napoleon, the invasion, the
    comet, 666, L'Empereur Napoleon, and L'russe Besuhof--all this had to
    mature and culminate, to lift him out of that spellbound, petty sphere
    of Moscow habits in which he felt himself held captive and lead him to a
    great achievement and great happiness.
    
    * Forty-two.
    
    On the eve of the Sunday when the special prayer was read, Pierre had
    promised the Rostovs to bring them, from Count Rostopchin whom he knew
    well, both the appeal to the people and the news from the army. In the
    morning, when he went to call at Rostopchin's he met there a courier
    fresh from the army, an acquaintance of his own, who often danced at
    Moscow balls.
    
    "Do, please, for heaven's sake, relieve me of something!" said the
    courier. "I have a sackful of letters to parents."
    
    Among these letters was one from Nicholas Rostov to his father. Pierre
    took that letter, and Rostopchin also gave him the Emperor's appeal to
    Moscow, which had just been printed, the last army orders, and his own
    most recent bulletin. Glancing through the army orders, Pierre found in
    one of them, in the lists of killed, wounded, and rewarded, the name of
    Nicholas Rostov, awarded a St. George's Cross of the Fourth Class for
    courage shown in the Ostrovna affair, and in the same order the name of
    Prince Andrew Bolkonski, appointed to the command of a regiment of
    Chasseurs. Though he did not want to remind the Rostovs of Bolkonski,
    Pierre could not refrain from making them happy by the news of their
    son's having received a decoration, so he sent that printed army order
    and Nicholas' letter to the Rostovs, keeping the appeal, the bulletin,
    and the other orders to take with him when he went to dinner.
    
    His conversation with Count Rostopchin and the latter's tone of anxious
    hurry, the meeting with the courier who talked casually of how badly
    things were going in the army, the rumors of the discovery of spies in
    Moscow and of a leaflet in circulation stating that Napoleon promised to
    be in both the Russian capitals by the autumn, and the talk of the
    Emperor's being expected to arrive next day--all aroused with fresh
    force that feeling of agitation and expectation in Pierre which he had
    been conscious of ever since the appearance of the comet, and especially
    since the beginning of the war.
    
    He had long been thinking of entering the army and would have done so
    had he not been hindered, first, by his membership of the Society of
    Freemasons to which he was bound by oath and which preached perpetual
    peace and the abolition of war, and secondly, by the fact that when he
    saw the great mass of Muscovites who had donned uniform and were talking
    patriotism, he somehow felt ashamed to take the step. But the chief
    reason for not carrying out his intention to enter the army lay in the
    vague idea that he was L'russe Besuhof who had the number of the beast,
    666; that his part in the great affair of setting a limit to the power
    of the beast that spoke great and blasphemous things had been
    predestined from eternity, and that therefore he ought not to undertake
    anything, but wait for what was bound to come to pass.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    A few intimate friends were dining with the Rostovs that day, as usual
    on Sundays.
    
    Pierre came early so as to find them alone.
    
    He had grown so stout this year that he would have been abnormal had he
    not been so tall, so broad of limb, and so strong that he carried his
    bulk with evident ease.
    
    He went up the stairs, puffing and muttering something. His coachman did
    not even ask whether he was to wait. He knew that when his master was at
    the Rostovs' he stayed till midnight. The Rostovs' footman rushed
    eagerly forward to help him off with his cloak and take his hat and
    stick. Pierre, from club habit, always left both hat and stick in the
    anteroom.
    
    The first person he saw in the house was Natasha. Even before he saw
    her, while taking off his cloak, he heard her. She was practicing solfa
    exercises in the music room. He knew that she had not sung since her
    illness, and so the sound of her voice surprised and delighted him. He
    opened the door softly and saw her, in the lilac dress she had worn at
    church, walking about the room singing. She had her back to him when he
    opened the door, but when, turning quickly, she saw his broad, surprised
    face, she blushed and came rapidly up to him.
    
    "I want to try to sing again," she said, adding as if by way of excuse,
    "it is, at least, something to do."
    
    "That's capital!"
    
    "How glad I am you've come! I am so happy today," she said, with the old
    animation Pierre had not seen in her for a long time. "You know Nicholas
    has received a St. George's Cross? I am so proud of him."
    
    "Oh yes, I sent that announcement. But I don't want to interrupt you,"
    he added, and was about to go to the drawing room.
    
    Natasha stopped him.
    
    "Count, is it wrong of me to sing?" she said blushing, and fixing her
    eyes inquiringly on him.
    
    "No... Why should it be? On the contrary... But why do you ask me?"
    
    "I don't know myself," Natasha answered quickly, "but I should not like
    to do anything you disapproved of. I believe in you completely. You
    don't know how important you are to me, how much you've done for me...."
    She spoke rapidly and did not notice how Pierre flushed at her words. "I
    saw in that same army order that he, Bolkonski" (she whispered the name
    hastily), "is in Russia, and in the army again. What do you think?"--she
    was speaking hurriedly, evidently afraid her strength might fail her--
    "Will he ever forgive me? Will he not always have a bitter feeling
    toward me? What do you think? What do you think?"
    
    "I think..." Pierre replied, "that he has nothing to forgive.... If I
    were in his place..."
    
    By association of ideas, Pierre was at once carried back to the day
    when, trying to comfort her, he had said that if he were not himself but
    the best man in the world and free, he would ask on his knees for her
    hand; and the same feeling of pity, tenderness, and love took possession
    of him and the same words rose to his lips. But she did not give him
    time to say them.
    
    "Yes, you... you..." she said, uttering the word you rapturously--
    "that's a different thing. I know no one kinder, more generous, or
    better than you; nobody could be! Had you not been there then, and now
    too, I don't know what would have become of me, because..."
    
    Tears suddenly rose in her eyes, she turned away, lifted her music
    before her eyes, began singing again, and again began walking up and
    down the room.
    
    Just then Petya came running in from the drawing room.
    
    Petya was now a handsome rosy lad of fifteen with full red lips and
    resembled Natasha. He was preparing to enter the university, but he and
    his friend Obolenski had lately, in secret, agreed to join the hussars.
    
    Petya had come rushing out to talk to his namesake about this affair. He
    had asked Pierre to find out whether he would be accepted in the
    hussars.
    
    Pierre walked up and down the drawing room, not listening to what Petya
    was saying.
    
    Petya pulled him by the arm to attract his attention.
    
    "Well, what about my plan? Peter Kirilych, for heaven's sake! You are my
    only hope," said Petya.
    
    "Oh yes, your plan. To join the hussars? I'll mention it, I'll bring it
    all up today."
    
    "Well, mon cher, have you got the manifesto?" asked the old count. "The
    countess has been to Mass at the Razumovskis' and heard the new prayer.
    She says it's very fine."
    
    "Yes, I've got it," said Pierre. "The Emperor is to be here tomorrow...
    there's to be an Extraordinary Meeting of the nobility, and they are
    talking of a levy of ten men per thousand. Oh yes, let me congratulate
    you!"
    
    "Yes, yes, thank God! Well, and what news from the army?"
    
    "We are again retreating. They say we're already near Smolensk," replied
    Pierre.
    
    "O Lord, O Lord!" exclaimed the count. "Where is the manifesto?"
    
    "The Emperor's appeal? Oh yes!"
    
    Pierre began feeling in his pockets for the papers, but could not find
    them. Still slapping his pockets, he kissed the hand of the countess who
    entered the room and glanced uneasily around, evidently expecting
    Natasha, who had left off singing but had not yet come into the drawing
    room.
    
    "On my word, I don't know what I've done with it," he said.
    
    "There he is, always losing everything!" remarked the countess.
    
    Natasha entered with a softened and agitated expression of face and sat
    down looking silently at Pierre. As soon as she entered, Pierre's
    features, which had been gloomy, suddenly lighted up, and while still
    searching for the papers he glanced at her several times.
    
    "No, really! I'll drive home, I must have left them there. I'll
    certainly..."
    
    "But you'll be late for dinner."
    
    "Oh! And my coachman has gone."
    
    But Sonya, who had gone to look for the papers in the anteroom, had
    found them in Pierre's hat, where he had carefully tucked them under the
    lining. Pierre was about to begin reading.
    
    "No, after dinner," said the old count, evidently expecting much
    enjoyment from that reading.
    
    At dinner, at which champagne was drunk to the health of the new
    chevalier of St. George, Shinshin told them the town news, of the
    illness of the old Georgian princess, of Metivier's disappearance from
    Moscow, and of how some German fellow had been brought to Rostopchin and
    accused of being a French "spyer" (so Count Rostopchin had told the
    story), and how Rostopchin let him go and assured the people that he was
    "not a spire at all, but only an old German ruin."
    
    "People are being arrested..." said the count. "I've told the countess
    she should not speak French so much. It's not the time for it now."
    
    "And have you heard?" Shinshin asked. "Prince Golitsyn has engaged a
    master to teach him Russian. It is becoming dangerous to speak French in
    the streets."
    
    "And how about you, Count Peter Kirilych? If they call up the militia,
    you too will have to mount a horse," remarked the old count, addressing
    Pierre.
    
    Pierre had been silent and preoccupied all through dinner, seeming not
    to grasp what was said. He looked at the count.
    
    "Oh yes, the war," he said. "No! What sort of warrior should I make? And
    yet everything is so strange, so strange! I can't make it out. I don't
    know, I am very far from having military tastes, but in these times no
    one can answer for himself."
    
    After dinner the count settled himself comfortably in an easy chair and
    with a serious face asked Sonya, who was considered an excellent reader,
    to read the appeal.
    
    "To Moscow, our ancient Capital!
    
    "The enemy has entered the borders of Russia with immense forces. He
    comes to despoil our beloved country."
    
    Sonya read painstakingly in her high-pitched voice. The count listened
    with closed eyes, heaving abrupt sighs at certain passages.
    
    Natasha sat erect, gazing with a searching look now at her father and
    now at Pierre.
    
    Pierre felt her eyes on him and tried not to look round. The countess
    shook her head disapprovingly and angrily at every solemn expression in
    the manifesto. In all these words she saw only that the danger
    threatening her son would not soon be over. Shinshin, with a sarcastic
    smile on his lips, was evidently preparing to make fun of anything that
    gave him the opportunity: Sonya's reading, any remark of the count's, or
    even the manifesto itself should no better pretext present itself.
    
    After reading about the dangers that threatened Russia, the hopes the
    Emperor placed on Moscow and especially on its illustrious nobility,
    Sonya, with a quiver in her voice due chiefly to the attention that was
    being paid to her, read the last words:
    
    "We ourselves will not delay to appear among our people in that Capital
    and in other parts of our realm for consultation, and for the direction
    of all our levies, both those now barring the enemy's path and those
    freshly formed to defeat him wherever he may appear. May the ruin he
    hopes to bring upon us recoil on his own head, and may Europe delivered
    from bondage glorify the name of Russia!"
    
    "Yes, that's it!" cried the count, opening his moist eyes and sniffing
    repeatedly, as if a strong vinaigrette had been held to his nose; and he
    added, "Let the Emperor but say the word and we'll sacrifice everything
    and begrudge nothing."
    
    Before Shinshin had time to utter the joke he was ready to make on the
    count's patriotism, Natasha jumped up from her place and ran to her
    father.
    
    "What a darling our Papa is!" she cried, kissing him, and she again
    looked at Pierre with the unconscious coquetry that had returned to her
    with her better spirits.
    
    "There! Here's a patriot for you!" said Shinshin.
    
    "Not a patriot at all, but simply..." Natasha replied in an injured
    tone. "Everything seems funny to you, but this isn't at all a joke...."
    
    "A joke indeed!" put in the count. "Let him but say the word and we'll
    all go.... We're not Germans!"
    
    "But did you notice, it says, 'for consultation'?" said Pierre.
    
    "Never mind what it's for...."
    
    At this moment, Petya, to whom nobody was paying any attention, came up
    to his father with a very flushed face and said in his breaking voice
    that was now deep and now shrill:
    
    "Well, Papa, I tell you definitely, and Mamma too, it's as you please,
    but I say definitely that you must let me enter the army, because I
    can't... that's all...."
    
    The countess, in dismay, looked up to heaven, clasped her hands, and
    turned angrily to her husband.
    
    "That comes of your talking!" said she.
    
    But the count had already recovered from his excitement.
    
    "Come, come!" said he. "Here's a fine warrior! No! Nonsense! You must
    study."
    
    "It's not nonsense, Papa. Fedya Obolenski is younger than I, and he's
    going too. Besides, all the same I can't study now when..." Petya
    stopped short, flushed till he perspired, but still got out the words,
    "when our Fatherland is in danger."
    
    "That'll do, that'll do--nonsense...."
    
    "But you said yourself that we would sacrifice everything."
    
    "Petya! Be quiet, I tell you!" cried the count, with a glance at his
    wife, who had turned pale and was staring fixedly at her son.
    
    "And I tell you--Peter Kirilych here will also tell you..."
    
    "Nonsense, I tell you. Your mother's milk has hardly dried on your lips
    and you want to go into the army! There, there, I tell you," and the
    count moved to go out of the room, taking the papers, probably to reread
    them in his study before having a nap.
    
    "Well, Peter Kirilych, let's go and have a smoke," he said.
    
    Pierre was agitated and undecided. Natasha's unwontedly brilliant eyes,
    continually glancing at him with a more than cordial look, had reduced
    him to this condition.
    
    "No, I think I'll go home."
    
    "Home? Why, you meant to spend the evening with us.... You don't often
    come nowadays as it is, and this girl of mine," said the count good-
    naturedly, pointing to Natasha, "only brightens up when you're here."
    
    "Yes, I had forgotten... I really must go home... business..." said
    Pierre hurriedly.
    
    "Well, then, au revoir!" said the count, and went out of the room.
    
    "Why are you going? Why are you upset?" asked Natasha, and she looked
    challengingly into Pierre's eyes.
    
    "Because I love you!" was what he wanted to say, but he did not say it,
    and only blushed till the tears came, and lowered his eyes.
    
    "Because it is better for me to come less often... because... No, simply
    I have business...."
    
    "Why? No, tell me!" Natasha began resolutely and suddenly stopped.
    
    They looked at each other with dismayed and embarrassed faces. He tried
    to smile but could not: his smile expressed suffering, and he silently
    kissed her hand and went out.
    
    Pierre made up his mind not to go to the Rostovs' any more.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    After the definite refusal he had received, Petya went to his room and
    there locked himself in and wept bitterly. When he came in to tea,
    silent, morose, and with tear-stained face, everybody pretended not to
    notice anything.
    
    Next day the Emperor arrived in Moscow, and several of the Rostovs'
    domestic serfs begged permission to go to have a look at him. That
    morning Petya was a long time dressing and arranging his hair and collar
    to look like a grown-up man. He frowned before his looking glass,
    gesticulated, shrugged his shoulders, and finally, without saying a word
    to anyone, took his cap and left the house by the back door, trying to
    avoid notice. Petya decided to go straight to where the Emperor was and
    to explain frankly to some gentleman-in-waiting (he imagined the Emperor
    to be always surrounded by gentlemen-in-waiting) that he, Count Rostov,
    in spite of his youth wished to serve his country; that youth could be
    no hindrance to loyalty, and that he was ready to... While dressing,
    Petya had prepared many fine things he meant to say to the gentleman-in-
    waiting.
    
    It was on the very fact of being so young that Petya counted for success
    in reaching the Emperor--he even thought how surprised everyone would be
    at his youthfulness--and yet in the arrangement of his collar and hair
    and by his sedate deliberate walk he wished to appear a grown-up man.
    But the farther he went and the more his attention was diverted by the
    ever-increasing crowds moving toward the Kremlin, the less he remembered
    to walk with the sedateness and deliberation of a man. As he approached
    the Kremlin he even began to avoid being crushed and resolutely stuck
    out his elbows in a menacing way. But within the Trinity Gateway he was
    so pressed to the wall by people who probably were unaware of the
    patriotic intentions with which he had come that in spite of all his
    determination he had to give in, and stop while carriages passed in,
    rumbling beneath the archway. Beside Petya stood a peasant woman, a
    footman, two tradesmen, and a discharged soldier. After standing some
    time in the gateway, Petya tried to move forward in front of the others
    without waiting for all the carriages to pass, and he began resolutely
    working his way with his elbows, but the woman just in front of him, who
    was the first against whom he directed his efforts, angrily shouted at
    him:
    
    "What are you shoving for, young lordling? Don't you see we're all
    standing still? Then why push?"
    
    "Anybody can shove," said the footman, and also began working his elbows
    to such effect that he pushed Petya into a very filthy corner of the
    gateway.
    
    Petya wiped his perspiring face with his hands and pulled up the damp
    collar which he had arranged so well at home to seem like a man's.
    
    He felt that he no longer looked presentable, and feared that if he were
    now to approach the gentlemen-in-waiting in that plight he would not be
    admitted to the Emperor. But it was impossible to smarten oneself up or
    move to another place, because of the crowd. One of the generals who
    drove past was an acquaintance of the Rostovs', and Petya thought of
    asking his help, but came to the conclusion that that would not be a
    manly thing to do. When the carriages had all passed in, the crowd,
    carrying Petya with it, streamed forward into the Kremlin Square which
    was already full of people. There were people not only in the square,
    but everywhere--on the slopes and on the roofs. As soon as Petya found
    himself in the square he clearly heard the sound of bells and the joyous
    voices of the crowd that filled the whole Kremlin.
    
    For a while the crowd was less dense, but suddenly all heads were bared,
    and everyone rushed forward in one direction. Petya was being pressed so
    that he could scarcely breathe, and everybody shouted, "Hurrah! hurrah!
    hurrah!" Petya stood on tiptoe and pushed and pinched, but could see
    nothing except the people about him.
    
    All the faces bore the same expression of excitement and enthusiasm. A
    tradesman's wife standing beside Petya sobbed, and the tears ran down
    her cheeks.
    
    "Father! Angel! Dear one!" she kept repeating, wiping away her tears
    with her fingers.
    
    "Hurrah!" was heard on all sides.
    
    For a moment the crowd stood still, but then it made another rush
    forward.
    
    Quite beside himself, Petya, clinching his teeth and rolling his eyes
    ferociously, pushed forward, elbowing his way and shouting "hurrah!" as
    if he were prepared that instant to kill himself and everyone else, but
    on both sides of him other people with similarly ferocious faces pushed
    forward and everybody shouted "hurrah!"
    
    "So this is what the Emperor is!" thought Petya. "No, I can't petition
    him myself--that would be too bold." But in spite of this he continued
    to struggle desperately forward, and from between the backs of those in
    front he caught glimpses of an open space with a strip of red cloth
    spread out on it; but just then the crowd swayed back--the police in
    front were pushing back those who had pressed too close to the
    procession: the Emperor was passing from the palace to the Cathedral of
    the Assumption--and Petya unexpectedly received such a blow on his side
    and ribs and was squeezed so hard that suddenly everything grew dim
    before his eyes and he lost consciousness. When he came to himself, a
    man of clerical appearance with a tuft of gray hair at the back of his
    head and wearing a shabby blue cassock--probably a church clerk and
    chanter--was holding him under the arm with one hand while warding off
    the pressure of the crowd with the other.
    
    "You've crushed the young gentleman!" said the clerk. "What are you up
    to? Gently!... They've crushed him, crushed him!"
    
    The Emperor entered the Cathedral of the Assumption. The crowd spread
    out again more evenly, and the clerk led Petya--pale and breathless--to
    the Tsar-cannon. Several people were sorry for Petya, and suddenly a
    crowd turned toward him and pressed round him. Those who stood nearest
    him attended to him, unbuttoned his coat, seated him on the raised
    platform of the cannon, and reproached those others (whoever they might
    be) who had crushed him.
    
    "One might easily get killed that way! What do they mean by it? Killing
    people! Poor dear, he's as white as a sheet!"--various voices were heard
    saying.
    
    Petya soon came to himself, the color returned to his face, the pain had
    passed, and at the cost of that temporary unpleasantness he had obtained
    a place by the cannon from where he hoped to see the Emperor who would
    be returning that way. Petya no longer thought of presenting his
    petition. If he could only see the Emperor he would be happy!
    
    While the service was proceeding in the Cathedral of the Assumption--it
    was a combined service of prayer on the occasion of the Emperor's
    arrival and of thanksgiving for the conclusion of peace with the Turks--
    the crowd outside spread out and hawkers appeared, selling kvas,
    gingerbread, and poppyseed sweets (of which Petya was particularly
    fond), and ordinary conversation could again be heard. A tradesman's
    wife was showing a rent in her shawl and telling how much the shawl had
    cost; another was saying that all silk goods had now got dear. The clerk
    who had rescued Petya was talking to a functionary about the priests who
    were officiating that day with the bishop. The clerk several times used
    the word "plenary" (of the service), a word Petya did not understand.
    Two young citizens were joking with some serf girls who were cracking
    nuts. All these conversations, especially the joking with the girls,
    were such as might have had a particular charm for Petya at his age, but
    they did not interest him now. He sat on his elevation--the pedestal of
    the cannon--still agitated as before by the thought of the Emperor and
    by his love for him. The feeling of pain and fear he had experienced
    when he was being crushed, together with that of rapture, still further
    intensified his sense of the importance of the occasion.
    
    Suddenly the sound of a firing of cannon was heard from the embankment,
    to celebrate the signing of peace with the Turks, and the crowd rushed
    impetuously toward the embankment to watch the firing. Petya too would
    have run there, but the clerk who had taken the young gentleman under
    his protection stopped him. The firing was still proceeding when
    officers, generals, and gentlemen-in-waiting came running out of the
    cathedral, and after them others in a more leisurely manner: caps were
    again raised, and those who had run to look at the cannon ran back
    again. At last four men in uniforms and sashes emerged from the
    cathedral doors. "Hurrah! hurrah!" shouted the crowd again.
    
    "Which is he? Which?" asked Petya in a tearful voice, of those around
    him, but no one answered him, everybody was too excited; and Petya,
    fixing on one of those four men, whom he could not clearly see for the
    tears of joy that filled his eyes, concentrated all his enthusiasm on
    him--though it happened not to be the Emperor--frantically shouted
    "Hurrah!" and resolved that tomorrow, come what might, he would join the
    army.
    
    The crowd ran after the Emperor, followed him to the palace, and began
    to disperse. It was already late, and Petya had not eaten anything and
    was drenched with perspiration, yet he did not go home but stood with
    that diminishing, but still considerable, crowd before the palace while
    the Emperor dined--looking in at the palace windows, expecting he knew
    not what, and envying alike the notables he saw arriving at the entrance
    to dine with the Emperor and the court footmen who served at table,
    glimpses of whom could be seen through the windows.
    
    While the Emperor was dining, Valuev, looking out of the window, said:
    
    "The people are still hoping to see Your Majesty again."
    
    The dinner was nearly over, and the Emperor, munching a biscuit, rose
    and went out onto the balcony. The people, with Petya among them, rushed
    toward the balcony.
    
    "Angel! Dear one! Hurrah! Father!..." cried the crowd, and Petya with
    it, and again the women and men of weaker mold, Petya among them, wept
    with joy.
    
    A largish piece of the biscuit the Emperor was holding in his hand broke
    off, fell on the balcony parapet, and then to the ground. A coachman in
    a jerkin, who stood nearest, sprang forward and snatched it up. Several
    people in the crowd rushed at the coachman. Seeing this the Emperor had
    a plateful of biscuits brought him and began throwing them down from the
    balcony. Petya's eyes grew bloodshot, and still more excited by the
    danger of being crushed, he rushed at the biscuits. He did not know why,
    but he had to have a biscuit from the Tsar's hand and he felt that he
    must not give way. He sprang forward and upset an old woman who was
    catching at a biscuit; the old woman did not consider herself defeated
    though she was lying on the ground--she grabbed at some biscuits but her
    hand did not reach them. Petya pushed her hand away with his knee,
    seized a biscuit, and as if fearing to be too late, again shouted
    "Hurrah!" with a voice already hoarse.
    
    The Emperor went in, and after that the greater part of the crowd began
    to disperse.
    
    "There! I said if only we waited--and so it was!" was being joyfully
    said by various people.
    
    Happy as Petya was, he felt sad at having to go home knowing that all
    the enjoyment of that day was over. He did not go straight home from the
    Kremlin, but called on his friend Obolenski, who was fifteen and was
    also entering the regiment. On returning home Petya announced resolutely
    and firmly that if he was not allowed to enter the service he would run
    away. And next day, Count Ilya Rostov--though he had not yet quite
    yielded--went to inquire how he could arrange for Petya to serve where
    there would be least danger.
    
    CHAPTER XXII
    
    Two days later, on the fifteenth of July, an immense number of carriages
    were standing outside the Sloboda Palace.
    
    The great halls were full. In the first were the nobility and gentry in
    their uniforms, in the second bearded merchants in full-skirted coats of
    blue cloth and wearing medals. In the noblemen's hall there was an
    incessant movement and buzz of voices. The chief magnates sat on high-
    backed chairs at a large table under the portrait of the Emperor, but
    most of the gentry were strolling about the room.
    
    All these nobles, whom Pierre met every day at the club or in their own
    houses, were in uniform--some in that of Catherine's day, others in that
    of Emperor Paul, others again in the new uniforms of Alexander's time or
    the ordinary uniform of the nobility, and the general characteristic of
    being in uniform imparted something strange and fantastic to these
    diverse and familiar personalities, both old and young. The old men,
    dim-eyed, toothless, bald, sallow, and bloated, or gaunt and wrinkled,
    were especially striking. For the most part they sat quietly in their
    places and were silent, or, if they walked about and talked, attached
    themselves to someone younger. On all these faces, as on the faces of
    the crowd Petya had seen in the Square, there was a striking
    contradiction: the general expectation of a solemn event, and at the
    same time the everyday interests in a boston card party, Peter the cook,
    Zinaida Dmitrievna's health, and so on.
    
    Pierre was there too, buttoned up since early morning in a nobleman's
    uniform that had become too tight for him. He was agitated; this
    extraordinary gathering not only of nobles but also of the merchant-
    class--les etats generaux (States-General)--evoked in him a whole series
    of ideas he had long laid aside but which were deeply graven in his
    soul: thoughts of the Contrat Social and the French Revolution. The
    words that had struck him in the Emperor's appeal--that the sovereign
    was coming to the capital for consultation with his people--strengthened
    this idea. And imagining that in this direction something important
    which he had long awaited was drawing near, he strolled about watching
    and listening to conversations, but nowhere finding any confirmation of
    the ideas that occupied him.
    
    The Emperor's manifesto was read, evoking enthusiasm, and then all moved
    about discussing it. Besides the ordinary topics of conversation, Pierre
    heard questions of where the marshals of the nobility were to stand when
    the Emperor entered, when a ball should be given in the Emperor's honor,
    whether they should group themselves by districts or by whole
    provinces... and so on; but as soon as the war was touched on, or what
    the nobility had been convened for, the talk became undecided and
    indefinite. Then all preferred listening to speaking.
    
    A middle-aged man, handsome and virile, in the uniform of a retired
    naval officer, was speaking in one of the rooms, and a small crowd was
    pressing round him. Pierre went up to the circle that had formed round
    the speaker and listened. Count Ilya Rostov, in a military uniform of
    Catherine's time, was sauntering with a pleasant smile among the crowd,
    with all of whom he was acquainted. He too approached that group and
    listened with a kindly smile and nods of approval, as he always did, to
    what the speaker was saying. The retired naval man was speaking very
    boldly, as was evident from the expression on the faces of the listeners
    and from the fact that some people Pierre knew as the meekest and
    quietest of men walked away disapprovingly or expressed disagreement
    with him. Pierre pushed his way into the middle of the group, listened,
    and convinced himself that the man was indeed a liberal, but of views
    quite different from his own. The naval officer spoke in a particularly
    sonorous, musical, and aristocratic baritone voice, pleasantly
    swallowing his r's and generally slurring his consonants: the voice of a
    man calling out to his servant, "Heah! Bwing me my pipe!" It was
    indicative of dissipation and the exercise of authority.
    
    "What if the Smolensk people have offahd to waise militia for the
    Empewah? Ah we to take Smolensk as our patte'n? If the noble awistocwacy
    of the pwovince of Moscow thinks fit, it can show its loyalty to our
    sov'weign the Empewah in other ways. Have we fo'gotten the waising of
    the militia in the yeah 'seven? All that did was to enwich the pwiests'
    sons and thieves and wobbahs...."
    
    Count Ilya Rostov smiled blandly and nodded approval.
    
    "And was our militia of any use to the Empia? Not at all! It only wuined
    our farming! Bettah have another conscwiption... o' ou' men will wetu'n
    neithah soldiers no' peasants, and we'll get only depwavity fwom them.
    The nobility don't gwudge theah lives--evewy one of us will go and bwing
    in more wecwuits, and the sov'weign" (that was the way he referred to
    the Emperor) "need only say the word and we'll all die fo' him!" added
    the orator with animation.
    
    Count Rostov's mouth watered with pleasure and he nudged Pierre, but
    Pierre wanted to speak himself. He pushed forward, feeling stirred, but
    not yet sure what stirred him or what he would say. Scarcely had he
    opened his mouth when one of the senators, a man without a tooth in his
    head, with a shrewd though angry expression, standing near the first
    speaker, interrupted him. Evidently accustomed to managing debates and
    to maintaining an argument, he began in low but distinct tones:
    
    "I imagine, sir," said he, mumbling with his toothless mouth, "that we
    have been summoned here not to discuss whether it's best for the empire
    at the present moment to adopt conscription or to call out the militia.
    We have been summoned to reply to the appeal with which our sovereign
    the Emperor has honored us. But to judge what is best--conscription or
    the militia--we can leave to the supreme authority...."
    
    Pierre suddenly saw an outlet for his excitement. He hardened his heart
    against the senator who was introducing this set and narrow attitude
    into the deliberations of the nobility. Pierre stepped forward and
    interrupted him. He himself did not yet know what he would say, but he
    began to speak eagerly, occasionally lapsing into French or expressing
    himself in bookish Russian.
    
    "Excuse me, your excellency," he began. (He was well acquainted with the
    senator, but thought it necessary on this occasion to address him
    formally.) "Though I don't agree with the gentleman..." (he hesitated:
    he wished to say, "Mon tres honorable preopinant"--"My very honorable
    opponent") "with the gentleman... whom I have not the honor of knowing,
    I suppose that the nobility have been summoned not merely to express
    their sympathy and enthusiasm but also to consider the means by which we
    can assist our Fatherland! I imagine," he went on, warming to his
    subject, "that the Emperor himself would not be satisfied to find in us
    merely owners of serfs whom we are willing to devote to his service, and
    chair a canon * we are ready to make of ourselves--and not to obtain
    from us any co-co-counsel."
    
    * "Food for cannon."
    
    Many persons withdrew from the circle, noticing the senator's sarcastic
    smile and the freedom of Pierre's remarks. Only Count Rostov was pleased
    with them as he had been pleased with those of the naval officer, the
    senator, and in general with whatever speech he had last heard.
    
    "I think that before discussing these questions," Pierre continued, "we
    should ask the Emperor--most respectfully ask His Majesty--to let us
    know the number of our troops and the position in which our army and our
    forces now are, and then..."
    
    But scarcely had Pierre uttered these words before he was attacked from
    three sides. The most vigorous attack came from an old acquaintance, a
    boston player who had always been well disposed toward him, Stepan
    Stepanovich Adraksin. Adraksin was in uniform, and whether as a result
    of the uniform or from some other cause Pierre saw before him quite a
    different man. With a sudden expression of malevolence on his aged face,
    Adraksin shouted at Pierre:
    
    "In the first place, I tell you we have no right to question the Emperor
    about that, and secondly, if the Russian nobility had that right, the
    Emperor could not answer such a question. The troops are moved according
    to the enemy's movements and the number of men increases and
    decreases..."
    
    Another voice, that of a nobleman of medium height and about forty years
    of age, whom Pierre had formerly met at the gypsies' and knew as a bad
    cardplayer, and who, also transformed by his uniform, came up to Pierre,
    interrupted Adraksin.
    
    "Yes, and this is not a time for discussing," he continued, "but for
    acting: there is war in Russia! The enemy is advancing to destroy
    Russia, to desecrate the tombs of our fathers, to carry off our wives
    and children." The nobleman smote his breast. "We will all arise, every
    one of us will go, for our father the Tsar!" he shouted, rolling his
    bloodshot eyes. Several approving voices were heard in the crowd. "We
    are Russians and will not grudge our blood in defense of our faith, the
    throne, and the Fatherland! We must cease raving if we are sons of our
    Fatherland! We will show Europe how Russia rises to the defense of
    Russia!"
    
    Pierre wished to reply, but could not get in a word. He felt that his
    words, apart from what meaning they conveyed, were less audible than the
    sound of his opponent's voice.
    
    Count Rostov at the back of the crowd was expressing approval; several
    persons, briskly turning a shoulder to the orator at the end of a
    phrase, said:
    
    "That's right, quite right! Just so!"
    
    Pierre wished to say that he was ready to sacrifice his money, his
    serfs, or himself, only one ought to know the state of affairs in order
    to be able to improve it, but he was unable to speak. Many voices
    shouted and talked at the same time, so that Count Rostov had not time
    to signify his approval of them all, and the group increased, dispersed,
    re-formed, and then moved with a hum of talk into the largest hall and
    to the big table. Not only was Pierre's attempt to speak unsuccessful,
    but he was rudely interrupted, pushed aside, and people turned away from
    him as from a common enemy. This happened not because they were
    displeased by the substance of his speech, which had even been forgotten
    after the many subsequent speeches, but to animate it the crowd needed a
    tangible object to love and a tangible object to hate. Pierre became the
    latter. Many other orators spoke after the excited nobleman, and all in
    the same tone. Many spoke eloquently and with originality.
    
    Glinka, the editor of the Russian Messenger, who was recognized (cries
    of "author! author!" were heard in the crowd), said that "hell must be
    repulsed by hell," and that he had seen a child smiling at lightning
    flashes and thunderclaps, but "we will not be that child."
    
    "Yes, yes, at thunderclaps!" was repeated approvingly in the back rows
    of the crowd.
    
    The crowd drew up to the large table, at which sat gray-haired or bald
    seventy-year-old magnates, uniformed and besashed almost all of whom
    Pierre had seen in their own homes with their buffoons, or playing
    boston at the clubs. With an incessant hum of voices the crowd advanced
    to the table. Pressed by the throng against the high backs of the
    chairs, the orators spoke one after another and sometimes two together.
    Those standing behind noticed what a speaker omitted to say and hastened
    to supply it. Others in that heat and crush racked their brains to find
    some thought and hastened to utter it. The old magnates, whom Pierre
    knew, sat and turned to look first at one and then at another, and their
    faces for the most part only expressed the fact that they found it very
    hot. Pierre, however, felt excited, and the general desire to show that
    they were ready to go to all lengths--which found expression in the
    tones and looks more than in the substance of the speeches--infected him
    too. He did not renounce his opinions, but felt himself in some way to
    blame and wished to justify himself.
    
    "I only said that it would be more to the purpose to make sacrifices
    when we know what is needed!" said he, trying to be heard above the
    other voices.
    
    One of the old men nearest to him looked round, but his attention was
    immediately diverted by an exclamation at the other side of the table.
    
    "Yes, Moscow will be surrendered! She will be our expiation!" shouted
    one man.
    
    "He is the enemy of mankind!" cried another. "Allow me to speak...."
    "Gentlemen, you are crushing me!..."
    
    CHAPTER XXIII
    
    At that moment Count Rostopchin with his protruding chin and alert eyes,
    wearing the uniform of a general with sash over his shoulder, entered
    the room, stepping briskly to the front of the crowd of gentry.
    
    "Our sovereign the Emperor will be here in a moment," said Rostopchin.
    "I am straight from the palace. Seeing the position we are in, I think
    there is little need for discussion. The Emperor has deigned to summon
    us and the merchants. Millions will pour forth from there"--he pointed
    to the merchants' hall--"but our business is to supply men and not spare
    ourselves... That is the least we can do!"
    
    A conference took place confined to the magnates sitting at the table.
    The whole consultation passed more than quietly. After all the preceding
    noise the sound of their old voices saying one after another, "I agree,"
    or for variety, "I too am of that opinion," and so on had even a
    mournful effect.
    
    The secretary was told to write down the resolution of the Moscow
    nobility and gentry, that they would furnish ten men, fully equipped,
    out of every thousand serfs, as the Smolensk gentry had done. Their
    chairs made a scraping noise as the gentlemen who had conferred rose
    with apparent relief, and began walking up and down, arm in arm, to
    stretch their legs and converse in couples.
    
    "The Emperor! The Emperor!" a sudden cry resounded through the halls and
    the whole throng hurried to the entrance.
    
    The Emperor entered the hall through a broad path between two lines of
    nobles. Every face expressed respectful, awe-struck curiosity. Pierre
    stood rather far off and could not hear all that the Emperor said. From
    what he did hear he understood that the Emperor spoke of the danger
    threatening the empire and of the hopes he placed on the Moscow
    nobility. He was answered by a voice which informed him of the
    resolution just arrived at.
    
    "Gentlemen!" said the Emperor with a quivering voice.
    
    There was a rustling among the crowd and it again subsided, so that
    Pierre distinctly heard the pleasantly human voice of the Emperor saying
    with emotion:
    
    "I never doubted the devotion of the Russian nobles, but today it has
    surpassed my expectations. I thank you in the name of the Fatherland!
    Gentlemen, let us act! Time is most precious..."
    
    The Emperor ceased speaking, the crowd began pressing round him, and
    rapturous exclamations were heard from all sides.
    
    "Yes, most precious... a royal word," said Count Rostov, with a sob. He
    stood at the back, and, though he had heard hardly anything, understood
    everything in his own way.
    
    From the hall of the nobility the Emperor went to that of the merchants.
    There he remained about ten minutes. Pierre was among those who saw him
    come out from the merchants' hall with tears of emotion in his eyes. As
    became known later, he had scarcely begun to address the merchants
    before tears gushed from his eyes and he concluded in a trembling voice.
    When Pierre saw the Emperor he was coming out accompanied by two
    merchants, one of whom Pierre knew, a fat otkupshchik. The other was the
    mayor, a man with a thin sallow face and narrow beard. Both were
    weeping. Tears filled the thin man's eyes, and the fat otkupshchik
    sobbed outright like a child and kept repeating:
    
    "Our lives and property--take them, Your Majesty!"
    
    Pierre's one feeling at the moment was a desire to show that he was
    ready to go all lengths and was prepared to sacrifice everything. He now
    felt ashamed of his speech with its constitutional tendency and sought
    an opportunity of effacing it. Having heard that Count Mamonov was
    furnishing a regiment, Bezukhov at once informed Rostopchin that he
    would give a thousand men and their maintenance.
    
    Old Rostov could not tell his wife of what had passed without tears, and
    at once consented to Petya's request and went himself to enter his name.
    
    Next day the Emperor left Moscow. The assembled nobles all took off
    their uniforms and settled down again in their homes and clubs, and not
    without some groans gave orders to their stewards about the enrollment,
    feeling amazed themselves at what they had done.
    
    BOOK TEN: 1812
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    Napoleon began the war with Russia because he could not resist going to
    Dresden, could not help having his head turned by the homage he
    received, could not help donning a Polish uniform and yielding to the
    stimulating influence of a June morning, and could not refrain from
    bursts of anger in the presence of Kurakin and then of Balashev.
    
    Alexander refused negotiations because he felt himself to be personally
    insulted. Barclay de Tolly tried to command the army in the best way,
    because he wished to fulfill his duty and earn fame as a great
    commander. Rostov charged the French because he could not restrain his
    wish for a gallop across a level field; and in the same way the
    innumerable people who took part in the war acted in accord with their
    personal characteristics, habits, circumstances, and aims. They were
    moved by fear or vanity, rejoiced or were indignant, reasoned, imagining
    that they knew what they were doing and did it of their own free will,
    but they all were involuntary tools of history, carrying on a work
    concealed from them but comprehensible to us. Such is the inevitable
    fate of men of action, and the higher they stand in the social hierarchy
    the less are they free.
    
    The actors of 1812 have long since left the stage, their personal
    interests have vanished leaving no trace, and nothing remains of that
    time but its historic results.
    
    Providence compelled all these men, striving to attain personal aims, to
    further the accomplishment of a stupendous result no one of them at all
    expected--neither Napoleon, nor Alexander, nor still less any of those
    who did the actual fighting.
    
    The cause of the destruction of the French army in 1812 is clear to us
    now. No one will deny that that cause was, on the one hand, its advance
    into the heart of Russia late in the season without any preparation for
    a winter campaign and, on the other, the character given to the war by
    the burning of Russian towns and the hatred of the foe this aroused
    among the Russian people. But no one at the time foresaw (what now seems
    so evident) that this was the only way an army of eight hundred thousand
    men--the best in the world and led by the best general--could be
    destroyed in conflict with a raw army of half its numerical strength,
    and led by inexperienced commanders as the Russian army was. Not only
    did no one see this, but on the Russian side every effort was made to
    hinder the only thing that could save Russia, while on the French side,
    despite Napoleon's experience and so-called military genius, every
    effort was directed to pushing on to Moscow at the end of the summer,
    that is, to doing the very thing that was bound to lead to destruction.
    
    In historical works on the year 1812 French writers are very fond of
    saying that Napoleon felt the danger of extending his line, that he
    sought a battle and that his marshals advised him to stop at Smolensk,
    and of making similar statements to show that the danger of the campaign
    was even then understood. Russian authors are still fonder of telling us
    that from the commencement of the campaign a Scythian war plan was
    adopted to lure Napoleon into the depths of Russia, and this plan some
    of them attribute to Pfuel, others to a certain Frenchman, others to
    Toll, and others again to Alexander himself--pointing to notes,
    projects, and letters which contain hints of such a line of action. But
    all these hints at what happened, both from the French side and the
    Russian, are advanced only because they fit in with the event. Had that
    event not occurred these hints would have been forgotten, as we have
    forgotten the thousands and millions of hints and expectations to the
    contrary which were current then but have now been forgotten because the
    event falsified them. There are always so many conjectures as to the
    issue of any event that however it may end there will always be people
    to say: "I said then that it would be so," quite forgetting that amid
    their innumerable conjectures many were to quite the contrary effect.
    
    Conjectures as to Napoleon's awareness of the danger of extending his
    line, and (on the Russian side) as to luring the enemy into the depths
    of Russia, are evidently of that kind, and only by much straining can
    historians attribute such conceptions to Napoleon and his marshals, or
    such plans to the Russian commanders. All the facts are in flat
    contradiction to such conjectures. During the whole period of the war
    not only was there no wish on the Russian side to draw the French into
    the heart of the country, but from their first entry into Russia
    everything was done to stop them. And not only was Napoleon not afraid
    to extend his line, but he welcomed every step forward as a triumph and
    did not seek battle as eagerly as in former campaigns, but very lazily.
    
    At the very beginning of the war our armies were divided, and our sole
    aim was to unite them, though uniting the armies was no advantage if we
    meant to retire and lure the enemy into the depths of the country. Our
    Emperor joined the army to encourage it to defend every inch of Russian
    soil and not to retreat. The enormous Drissa camp was formed on Pfuel's
    plan, and there was no intention of retiring farther. The Emperor
    reproached the commanders in chief for every step they retired. He could
    not bear the idea of letting the enemy even reach Smolensk, still less
    could he contemplate the burning of Moscow, and when our armies did
    unite he was displeased that Smolensk was abandoned and burned without a
    general engagement having been fought under its walls.
    
    So thought the Emperor, and the Russian commanders and people were still
    more provoked at the thought that our forces were retreating into the
    depths of the country.
    
    Napoleon having cut our armies apart advanced far into the country and
    missed several chances of forcing an engagement. In August he was at
    Smolensk and thought only of how to advance farther, though as we now
    see that advance was evidently ruinous to him.
    
    The facts clearly show that Napoleon did not foresee the danger of the
    advance on Moscow, nor did Alexander and the Russian commanders then
    think of luring Napoleon on, but quite the contrary. The luring of
    Napoleon into the depths of the country was not the result of any plan,
    for no one believed it to be possible; it resulted from a most complex
    interplay of intrigues, aims, and wishes among those who took part in
    the war and had no perception whatever of the inevitable, or of the one
    way of saving Russia. Everything came about fortuitously. The armies
    were divided at the commencement of the campaign. We tried to unite
    them, with the evident intention of giving battle and checking the
    enemy's advance, and by this effort to unite them while avoiding battle
    with a much stronger enemy, and necessarily withdrawing the armies at an
    acute angle--we led the French on to Smolensk. But we withdrew at an
    acute angle not only because the French advanced between our two armies;
    the angle became still more acute and we withdrew still farther, because
    Barclay de Tolly was an unpopular foreigner disliked by Bagration (who
    would come under his command), and Bagration--being in command of the
    second army--tried to postpone joining up and coming under Barclay's
    command as long as he could. Bagration was slow in effecting the
    junction--though that was the chief aim of all at headquarters--because,
    as he alleged, he exposed his army to danger on this march, and it was
    best for him to retire more to the left and more to the south, worrying
    the enemy from flank and rear and securing from the Ukraine recruits for
    his army; and it looks as if he planned this in order not to come under
    the command of the detested foreigner Barclay, whose rank was inferior
    to his own.
    
    The Emperor was with the army to encourage it, but his presence and
    ignorance of what steps to take, and the enormous number of advisers and
    plans, destroyed the first army's energy and it retired.
    
    The intention was to make a stand at the Drissa camp, but Paulucci,
    aiming at becoming commander-in-chief, unexpectedly employed his energy
    to influence Alexander, and Pfuel's whole plan was abandoned and the
    command entrusted to Barclay. But as Barclay did not inspire confidence
    his power was limited. The armies were divided, there was no unity of
    command, and Barclay was unpopular; but from this confusion, division,
    and the unpopularity of the foreign commander-in-chief, there resulted
    on the one hand indecision and the avoidance of a battle (which we could
    not have refrained from had the armies been united and had someone else,
    instead of Barclay, been in command) and on the other an ever-increasing
    indignation against the foreigners and an increase in patriotic zeal.
    
    At last the Emperor left the army, and as the most convenient and indeed
    the only pretext for his departure it was decided that it was necessary
    for him to inspire the people in the capitals and arouse the nation in
    general to a patriotic war. And by this visit of the Emperor to Moscow
    the strength of the Russian army was trebled.
    
    He left in order not to obstruct the commander-in-chief's undivided
    control of the army, and hoping that more decisive action would then be
    taken, but the command of the armies became still more confused and
    enfeebled. Bennigsen, the Tsarevich, and a swarm of adjutants general
    remained with the army to keep the commander-in-chief under observation
    and arouse his energy, and Barclay, feeling less free than ever under
    the observation of all these "eyes of the Emperor," became still more
    cautious of undertaking any decisive action and avoided giving battle.
    
    Barclay stood for caution. The Tsarevich hinted at treachery and
    demanded a general engagement. Lubomirski, Bronnitski, Wlocki, and the
    others of that group stirred up so much trouble that Barclay, under
    pretext of sending papers to the Emperor, dispatched these Polish
    adjutants general to Petersburg and plunged into an open struggle with
    Bennigsen and the Tsarevich.
    
    At Smolensk the armies at last reunited, much as Bagration disliked it.
    
    Bagration drove up in a carriage to the house occupied by Barclay.
    Barclay donned his sash and came out to meet and report to his senior
    officer Bagration.
    
    Despite his seniority in rank Bagration, in this contest of magnanimity,
    took his orders from Barclay, but, having submitted, agreed with him
    less than ever. By the Emperor's orders Bagration reported direct to
    him. He wrote to Arakcheev, the Emperor's confidant: "It must be as my
    sovereign pleases, but I cannot work with the Minister (meaning
    Barclay). For God's sake send me somewhere else if only in command of a
    regiment. I cannot stand it here. Headquarters are so full of Germans
    that a Russian cannot exist and there is no sense in anything. I thought
    I was really serving my sovereign and the Fatherland, but it turns out
    that I am serving Barclay. I confess I do not want to."
    
    The swarm of Bronnitskis and Wintzingerodes and their like still further
    embittered the relations between the commanders in chief, and even less
    unity resulted. Preparations were made to fight the French before
    Smolensk. A general was sent to survey the position. This general,
    hating Barclay, rode to visit a friend of his own, a corps commander,
    and, having spent the day with him, returned to Barclay and condemned,
    as unsuitable from every point of view, the battleground he had not
    seen.
    
    While disputes and intrigues were going on about the future field of
    battle, and while we were looking for the French--having lost touch with
    them--the French stumbled upon Neverovski's division and reached the
    walls of Smolensk.
    
    It was necessary to fight an unexpected battle at Smolensk to save our
    lines of communication. The battle was fought and thousands were killed
    on both sides.
    
    Smolensk was abandoned contrary to the wishes of the Emperor and of the
    whole people. But Smolensk was burned by its own inhabitants-who had
    been misled by their governor. And these ruined inhabitants, setting an
    example to other Russians, went to Moscow thinking only of their own
    losses but kindling hatred of the foe. Napoleon advanced farther and we
    retired, thus arriving at the very result which caused his destruction.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    The day after his son had left, Prince Nicholas sent for Princess Mary
    to come to his study.
    
    "Well? Are you satisfied now?" said he. "You've made me quarrel with my
    son! Satisfied, are you? That's all you wanted! Satisfied?... It hurts
    me, it hurts. I'm old and weak and this is what you wanted. Well then,
    gloat over it! Gloat over it!"
    
    After that Princess Mary did not see her father for a whole week. He was
    ill and did not leave his study.
    
    Princess Mary noticed to her surprise that during this illness the old
    prince not only excluded her from his room, but did not admit
    Mademoiselle Bourienne either. Tikhon alone attended him.
    
    At the end of the week the prince reappeared and resumed his former way
    of life, devoting himself with special activity to building operations
    and the arrangement of the gardens and completely breaking off his
    relations with Mademoiselle Bourienne. His looks and cold tone to his
    daughter seemed to say: "There, you see? You plotted against me, you
    lied to Prince Andrew about my relations with that Frenchwoman and made
    me quarrel with him, but you see I need neither her nor you!"
    
    Princess Mary spent half of every day with little Nicholas, watching his
    lessons, teaching him Russian and music herself, and talking to
    Dessalles; the rest of the day she spent over her books, with her old
    nurse, or with "God's folk" who sometimes came by the back door to see
    her.
    
    Of the war Princess Mary thought as women do think about wars. She
    feared for her brother who was in it, was horrified by and amazed at the
    strange cruelty that impels men to kill one another, but she did not
    understand the significance of this war, which seemed to her like all
    previous wars. She did not realize the significance of this war, though
    Dessalles with whom she constantly conversed was passionately interested
    in its progress and tried to explain his own conception of it to her,
    and though the "God's folk" who came to see her reported, in their own
    way, the rumors current among the people of an invasion by Antichrist,
    and though Julie (now Princess Drubetskaya), who had resumed
    correspondence with her, wrote patriotic letters from Moscow.
    
    "I write you in Russian, my good friend," wrote Julie in her Frenchified
    Russian, "because I have a detestation for all the French, and the same
    for their language which I cannot support to hear spoken.... We in
    Moscow are elated by enthusiasm for our adored Emperor.
    
    "My poor husband is enduring pains and hunger in Jewish taverns, but the
    news which I have inspires me yet more.
    
    "You heard probably of the heroic exploit of Raevski, embracing his two
    sons and saying: 'I will perish with them but we will not be shaken!'
    And truly though the enemy was twice stronger than we, we were
    unshakable. We pass the time as we can, but in war as in war! The
    princesses Aline and Sophie sit whole days with me, and we, unhappy
    widows of live men, make beautiful conversations over our 'charpie',
    only you, my friend, are missing..." and so on.
    
    The chief reason Princess Mary did not realize the full significance of
    this war was that the old prince never spoke of it, did not recognize
    it, and laughed at Dessalles when he mentioned it at dinner. The
    prince's tone was so calm and confident that Princess Mary
    unhesitatingly believed him.
    
    All that July the old prince was exceedingly active and even animated.
    He planned another garden and began a new building for the domestic
    serfs. The only thing that made Princess Mary anxious about him was that
    he slept very little and, instead of sleeping in his study as usual,
    changed his sleeping place every day. One day he would order his camp
    bed to be set up in the glass gallery, another day he remained on the
    couch or on the lounge chair in the drawing room and dozed there without
    undressing, while--instead of Mademoiselle Bourienne--a serf boy read to
    him. Then again he would spend a night in the dining room.
    
    On August 1, a second letter was received from Prince Andrew. In his
    first letter which came soon after he had left home, Prince Andrew had
    dutifully asked his father's forgiveness for what he had allowed himself
    to say and begged to be restored to his favor. To this letter the old
    prince had replied affectionately, and from that time had kept the
    Frenchwoman at a distance. Prince Andrew's second letter, written near
    Vitebsk after the French had occupied that town, gave a brief account of
    the whole campaign, enclosed for them a plan he had drawn and forecasts
    as to the further progress of the war. In this letter Prince Andrew
    pointed out to his father the danger of staying at Bald Hills, so near
    the theater of war and on the army's direct line of march, and advised
    him to move to Moscow.
    
    At dinner that day, on Dessalles' mentioning that the French were said
    to have already entered Vitebsk, the old prince remembered his son's
    letter.
    
    "There was a letter from Prince Andrew today," he said to Princess Mary-
    -"Haven't you read it?"
    
    "No, Father," she replied in a frightened voice.
    
    She could not have read the letter as she did not even know it had
    arrived.
    
    "He writes about this war," said the prince, with the ironic smile that
    had become habitual to him in speaking of the present war.
    
    "That must be very interesting," said Dessalles. "Prince Andrew is in a
    position to know..."
    
    "Oh, very interesting!" said Mademoiselle Bourienne.
    
    "Go and get it for me," said the old prince to Mademoiselle Bourienne.
    "You know--under the paperweight on the little table."
    
    Mademoiselle Bourienne jumped up eagerly.
    
    "No, don't!" he exclaimed with a frown. "You go, Michael Ivanovich."
    
    Michael Ivanovich rose and went to the study. But as soon as he had left
    the room the old prince, looking uneasily round, threw down his napkin
    and went himself.
    
    "They can't do anything... always make some muddle," he muttered.
    
    While he was away Princess Mary, Dessalles, Mademoiselle Bourienne, and
    even little Nicholas exchanged looks in silence. The old prince returned
    with quick steps, accompanied by Michael Ivanovich, bringing the letter
    and a plan. These he put down beside him--not letting anyone read them
    at dinner.
    
    On moving to the drawing room he handed the letter to Princess Mary and,
    spreading out before him the plan of the new building and fixing his
    eyes upon it, told her to read the letter aloud. When she had done so
    Princess Mary looked inquiringly at her father. He was examining the
    plan, evidently engrossed in his own ideas.
    
    "What do you think of it, Prince?" Dessalles ventured to ask.
    
    "I? I?..." said the prince as if unpleasantly awakened, and not taking
    his eyes from the plan of the building.
    
    "Very possibly the theater of war will move so near to us that..."
    
    "Ha ha ha! The theater of war!" said the prince. "I have said and still
    say that the theater of war is Poland and the enemy will never get
    beyond the Niemen."
    
    Dessalles looked in amazement at the prince, who was talking of the
    Niemen when the enemy was already at the Dnieper, but Princess Mary,
    forgetting the geographical position of the Niemen, thought that what
    her father was saying was correct.
    
    "When the snow melts they'll sink in the Polish swamps. Only they could
    fail to see it," the prince continued, evidently thinking of the
    campaign of 1807 which seemed to him so recent. "Bennigsen should have
    advanced into Prussia sooner, then things would have taken a different
    turn..."
    
    "But, Prince," Dessalles began timidly, "the letter mentions
    Vitebsk...."
    
    "Ah, the letter? Yes..." replied the prince peevishly. "Yes... yes..."
    His face suddenly took on a morose expression. He paused. "Yes, he
    writes that the French were beaten at... at... what river is it?"
    
    Dessalles dropped his eyes.
    
    "The prince says nothing about that," he remarked gently.
    
    "Doesn't he? But I didn't invent it myself."
    
    No one spoke for a long time.
    
    "Yes... yes... Well, Michael Ivanovich," he suddenly went on, raising
    his head and pointing to the plan of the building, "tell me how you mean
    to alter it...."
    
    Michael Ivanovich went up to the plan, and the prince after speaking to
    him about the building looked angrily at Princess Mary and Dessalles and
    went to his own room.
    
    Princess Mary saw Dessalles' embarrassed and astonished look fixed on
    her father, noticed his silence, and was struck by the fact that her
    father had forgotten his son's letter on the drawing-room table; but she
    was not only afraid to speak of it and ask Dessalles the reason of his
    confusion and silence, but was afraid even to think about it.
    
    In the evening Michael Ivanovich, sent by the prince, came to Princess
    Mary for Prince Andrew's letter which had been forgotten in the drawing
    room. She gave it to him and, unpleasant as it was to her to do so,
    ventured to ask him what her father was doing.
    
    "Always busy," replied Michael Ivanovich with a respectfully ironic
    smile which caused Princess Mary to turn pale. "He's worrying very much
    about the new building. He has been reading a little, but now"--Michael
    Ivanovich went on, lowering his voice--"now he's at his desk, busy with
    his will, I expect." (One of the prince's favorite occupations of late
    had been the preparation of some papers he meant to leave at his death
    and which he called his "will.")
    
    "And Alpatych is being sent to Smolensk?" asked Princess Mary.
    
    "Oh, yes, he has been waiting to start for some time."
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    When Michael Ivanovich returned to the study with the letter, the old
    prince, with spectacles on and a shade over his eyes, was sitting at his
    open bureau with screened candles, holding a paper in his outstretched
    hand, and in a somewhat dramatic attitude was reading his manuscript--
    his "Remarks" as he termed it--which was to be transmitted to the
    Emperor after his death.
    
    When Michael Ivanovich went in there were tears in the prince's eyes
    evoked by the memory of the time when the paper he was now reading had
    been written. He took the letter from Michael Ivanovich's hand, put it
    in his pocket, folded up his papers, and called in Alpatych who had long
    been waiting.
    
    The prince had a list of things to be bought in Smolensk and, walking up
    and down the room past Alpatych who stood by the door, he gave his
    instructions.
    
    "First, notepaper--do you hear? Eight quires, like this sample, gilt-
    edged... it must be exactly like the sample. Varnish, sealing wax, as in
    Michael Ivanovich's list."
    
    He paced up and down for a while and glanced at his notes.
    
    "Then hand to the governor in person a letter about the deed."
    
    Next, bolts for the doors of the new building were wanted and had to be
    of a special shape the prince had himself designed, and a leather case
    had to be ordered to keep the "will" in.
    
    The instructions to Alpatych took over two hours and still the prince
    did not let him go. He sat down, sank into thought, closed his eyes, and
    dozed off. Alpatych made a slight movement.
    
    "Well, go, go! If anything more is wanted I'll send after you."
    
    Alpatych went out. The prince again went to his bureau, glanced into it,
    fingered his papers, closed the bureau again, and sat down at the table
    to write to the governor.
    
    It was already late when he rose after sealing the letter. He wished to
    sleep, but he knew he would not be able to and that most depressing
    thoughts came to him in bed. So he called Tikhon and went through the
    rooms with him to show him where to set up the bed for that night.
    
    He went about looking at every corner. Every place seemed
    unsatisfactory, but worst of all was his customary couch in the study.
    That couch was dreadful to him, probably because of the oppressive
    thoughts he had had when lying there. It was unsatisfactory everywhere,
    but the corner behind the piano in the sitting room was better than
    other places: he had never slept there yet.
    
    With the help of a footman Tikhon brought in the bedstead and began
    putting it up.
    
    "That's not right! That's not right!" cried the prince, and himself
    pushed it a few inches from the corner and then closer in again.
    
    "Well, at last I've finished, now I'll rest," thought the prince, and
    let Tikhon undress him.
    
    Frowning with vexation at the effort necessary to divest himself of his
    coat and trousers, the prince undressed, sat down heavily on the bed,
    and appeared to be meditating as he looked contemptuously at his
    withered yellow legs. He was not meditating, but only deferring the
    moment of making the effort to lift those legs up and turn over on the
    bed. "Ugh, how hard it is! Oh, that this toil might end and you would
    release me!" thought he. Pressing his lips together he made that effort
    for the twenty-thousandth time and lay down. But hardly had he done so
    before he felt the bed rocking backwards and forwards beneath him as if
    it were breathing heavily and jolting. This happened to him almost every
    night. He opened his eyes as they were closing.
    
    "No peace, damn them!" he muttered, angry he knew not with whom. "Ah
    yes, there was something else important, very important, that I was
    keeping till I should be in bed. The bolts? No, I told him about them.
    No, it was something, something in the drawing room. Princess Mary
    talked some nonsense. Dessalles, that fool, said something. Something in
    my pocket--can't remember..."
    
    "Tikhon, what did we talk about at dinner?"
    
    "About Prince Michael..."
    
    "Be quiet, quiet!" The prince slapped his hand on the table. "Yes, I
    know, Prince Andrew's letter! Princess Mary read it. Dessalles said
    something about Vitebsk. Now I'll read it."
    
    He had the letter taken from his pocket and the table--on which stood a
    glass of lemonade and a spiral wax candle--moved close to the bed, and
    putting on his spectacles he began reading. Only now in the stillness of
    the night, reading it by the faint light under the green shade, did he
    grasp its meaning for a moment.
    
    "The French at Vitebsk, in four days' march they may be at Smolensk;
    perhaps are already there! Tikhon!" Tikhon jumped up. "No, no, I don't
    want anything!" he shouted.
    
    He put the letter under the candlestick and closed his eyes. And there
    rose before him the Danube at bright noonday: reeds, the Russian camp,
    and himself a young general without a wrinkle on his ruddy face,
    vigorous and alert, entering Potemkin's gaily colored tent, and a
    burning sense of jealousy of "the favorite" agitated him now as strongly
    as it had done then. He recalled all the words spoken at that first
    meeting with Potemkin. And he saw before him a plump, rather sallow-
    faced, short, stout woman, the Empress Mother, with her smile and her
    words at her first gracious reception of him, and then that same face on
    the catafalque, and the encounter he had with Zubov over her coffin
    about his right to kiss her hand.
    
    "Oh, quicker, quicker! To get back to that time and have done with all
    the present! Quicker, quicker--and that they should leave me in peace!"
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Bald Hills, Prince Nicholas Bolkonski's estate, lay forty miles east
    from Smolensk and two miles from the main road to Moscow.
    
    The same evening that the prince gave his instructions to Alpatych,
    Dessalles, having asked to see Princess Mary, told her that, as the
    prince was not very well and was taking no steps to secure his safety,
    though from Prince Andrew's letter it was evident that to remain at Bald
    Hills might be dangerous, he respectfully advised her to send a letter
    by Alpatych to the Provincial Governor at Smolensk, asking him to let
    her know the state of affairs and the extent of the danger to which Bald
    Hills was exposed. Dessalles wrote this letter to the Governor for
    Princess Mary, she signed it, and it was given to Alpatych with
    instructions to hand it to the Governor and to come back as quickly as
    possible if there was danger.
    
    Having received all his orders Alpatych, wearing a white beaver hat--a
    present from the prince--and carrying a stick as the prince did, went
    out accompanied by his family. Three well-fed roans stood ready
    harnessed to a small conveyance with a leather hood.
    
    The larger bell was muffled and the little bells on the harness stuffed
    with paper. The prince allowed no one at Bald Hills to drive with
    ringing bells; but on a long journey Alpatych liked to have them. His
    satellites--the senior clerk, a countinghouse clerk, a scullery maid, a
    cook, two old women, a little pageboy, the coachman, and various
    domestic serfs--were seeing him off.
    
    His daughter placed chintz-covered down cushions for him to sit on and
    behind his back. His old sister-in-law popped in a small bundle, and one
    of the coachmen helped him into the vehicle.
    
    "There! There! Women's fuss! Women, women!" said Alpatych, puffing and
    speaking rapidly just as the prince did, and he climbed into the trap.
    
    After giving the clerk orders about the work to be done, Alpatych, not
    trying to imitate the prince now, lifted the hat from his bald head and
    crossed himself three times.
    
    "If there is anything... come back, Yakov Alpatych! For Christ's sake
    think of us!" cried his wife, referring to the rumors of war and the
    enemy.
    
    "Women, women! Women's fuss!" muttered Alpatych to himself and started
    on his journey, looking round at the fields of yellow rye and the still-
    green, thickly growing oats, and at other quite black fields just being
    plowed a second time.
    
    As he went along he looked with pleasure at the year's splendid crop of
    corn, scrutinized the strips of ryefield which here and there were
    already being reaped, made his calculations as to the sowing and the
    harvest, and asked himself whether he had not forgotten any of the
    prince's orders.
    
    Having baited the horses twice on the way, he arrived at the town toward
    evening on the fourth of August.
    
    Alpatych kept meeting and overtaking baggage trains and troops on the
    road. As he approached Smolensk he heard the sounds of distant firing,
    but these did not impress him. What struck him most was the sight of a
    splendid field of oats in which a camp had been pitched and which was
    being mown down by the soldiers, evidently for fodder. This fact
    impressed Alpatych, but in thinking about his own business he soon
    forgot it.
    
    All the interests of his life for more than thirty years had been
    bounded by the will of the prince, and he never went beyond that limit.
    Everything not connected with the execution of the prince's orders did
    not interest and did not even exist for Alpatych.
    
    On reaching Smolensk on the evening of the fourth of August he put up in
    the Gachina suburb across the Dnieper, at the inn kept by Ferapontov,
    where he had been in the habit of putting up for the last thirty years.
    Some thirty years ago Ferapontov, by Alpatych's advice, had bought a
    wood from the prince, had begun to trade, and now had a house, an inn,
    and a corn dealer's shop in that province. He was a stout, dark, red-
    faced peasant in the forties, with thick lips, a broad knob of a nose,
    similar knobs over his black frowning brows, and a round belly.
    
    Wearing a waistcoat over his cotton shirt, Ferapontov was standing
    before his shop which opened onto the street. On seeing Alpatych he went
    up to him.
    
    "You're welcome, Yakov Alpatych. Folks are leaving the town, but you
    have come to it," said he.
    
    "Why are they leaving the town?" asked Alpatych.
    
    "That's what I say. Folks are foolish! Always afraid of the French."
    
    "Women's fuss, women's fuss!" said Alpatych.
    
    "Just what I think, Yakov Alpatych. What I say is: orders have been
    given not to let them in, so that must be right. And the peasants are
    asking three rubles for carting--it isn't Christian!"
    
    Yakov Alpatych heard without heeding. He asked for a samovar and for hay
    for his horses, and when he had had his tea he went to bed.
    
    All night long troops were moving past the inn. Next morning Alpatych
    donned a jacket he wore only in town and went out on business. It was a
    sunny morning and by eight o'clock it was already hot. "A good day for
    harvesting," thought Alpatych.
    
    From beyond the town firing had been heard since early morning. At eight
    o'clock the booming of cannon was added to the sound of musketry. Many
    people were hurrying through the streets and there were many soldiers,
    but cabs were still driving about, tradesmen stood at their shops, and
    service was being held in the churches as usual. Alpatych went to the
    shops, to government offices, to the post office, and to the Governor's.
    In the offices and shops and at the post office everyone was talking
    about the army and about the enemy who was already attacking the town,
    everybody was asking what should be done, and all were trying to calm
    one another.
    
    In front of the Governor's house Alpatych found a large number of
    people, Cossacks, and a traveling carriage of the Governor's. At the
    porch he met two of the landed gentry, one of whom he knew. This man, an
    ex-captain of police, was saying angrily:
    
    "It's no joke, you know! It's all very well if you're single. 'One man
    though undone is but one,' as the proverb says, but with thirteen in
    your family and all the property... They've brought us to utter ruin!
    What sort of governors are they to do that? They ought to be hanged--the
    brigands!..."
    
    "Oh come, that's enough!" said the other.
    
    "What do I care? Let him hear! We're not dogs," said the ex-captain of
    police, and looking round he noticed Alpatych.
    
    "Oh, Yakov Alpatych! What have you come for?"
    
    "To see the Governor by his excellency's order," answered Alpatych,
    lifting his head and proudly thrusting his hand into the bosom of his
    coat as he always did when he mentioned the prince.... "He has ordered
    me to inquire into the position of affairs," he added.
    
    "Yes, go and find out!" shouted the angry gentleman. "They've brought
    things to such a pass that there are no carts or anything!... There it
    is again, do you hear?" said he, pointing in the direction whence came
    the sounds of firing.
    
    "They've brought us all to ruin... the brigands!" he repeated, and
    descended the porch steps.
    
    Alpatych swayed his head and went upstairs. In the waiting room were
    tradesmen, women, and officials, looking silently at one another. The
    door of the Governor's room opened and they all rose and moved forward.
    An official ran out, said some words to a merchant, called a stout
    official with a cross hanging on his neck to follow him, and vanished
    again, evidently wishing to avoid the inquiring looks and questions
    addressed to him. Alpatych moved forward and next time the official came
    out addressed him, one hand placed in the breast of his buttoned coat,
    and handed him two letters.
    
    "To his Honor Baron Asch, from General-in-Chief Prince Bolkonski," he
    announced with such solemnity and significance that the official turned
    to him and took the letters.
    
    A few minutes later the Governor received Alpatych and hurriedly said to
    him:
    
    "Inform the prince and princess that I knew nothing: I acted on the
    highest instructions--here..." and he handed a paper to Alpatych.
    "Still, as the prince is unwell my advice is that they should go to
    Moscow. I am just starting myself. Inform them..."
    
    But the Governor did not finish: a dusty perspiring officer ran into the
    room and began to say something in French. The Governor's face expressed
    terror.
    
    "Go," he said, nodding his head to Alpatych, and began questioning the
    officer.
    
    Eager, frightened, helpless glances were turned on Alpatych when he came
    out of the Governor's room. Involuntarily listening now to the firing,
    which had drawn nearer and was increasing in strength, Alpatych hurried
    to his inn. The paper handed to him by the Governor said this:
    
    "I assure you that the town of Smolensk is not in the slightest danger
    as yet and it is unlikely that it will be threatened with any. I from
    the one side and Prince Bagration from the other are marching to unite
    our forces before Smolensk, which junction will be effected on the 22nd
    instant, and both armies with their united forces will defend our
    compatriots of the province entrusted to your care till our efforts
    shall have beaten back the enemies of our Fatherland, or till the last
    warrior in our valiant ranks has perished. From this you will see that
    you have a perfect right to reassure the inhabitants of Smolensk, for
    those defended by two such brave armies may feel assured of victory."
    (Instructions from Barclay de Tolly to Baron Asch, the civil governor of
    Smolensk, 1812.)
    
    People were anxiously roaming about the streets.
    
    Carts piled high with household utensils, chairs, and cupboards kept
    emerging from the gates of the yards and moving along the streets.
    Loaded carts stood at the house next to Ferapontov's and women were
    wailing and lamenting as they said good-by. A small watchdog ran round
    barking in front of the harnessed horses.
    
    Alpatych entered the innyard at a quicker pace than usual and went
    straight to the shed where his horses and trap were. The coachman was
    asleep. He woke him up, told him to harness, and went into the passage.
    From the host's room came the sounds of a child crying, the despairing
    sobs of a woman, and the hoarse angry shouting of Ferapontov. The cook
    began running hither and thither in the passage like a frightened hen,
    just as Alpatych entered.
    
    "He's done her to death. Killed the mistress!... Beat her... dragged her
    about so!..."
    
    "What for?" asked Alpatych.
    
    "She kept begging to go away. She's a woman! 'Take me away,' says she,
    'don't let me perish with my little children! Folks,' she says, 'are all
    gone, so why,' she says, 'don't we go?' And he began beating and pulling
    her about so!"
    
    At these words Alpatych nodded as if in approval, and not wishing to
    hear more went to the door of the room opposite the innkeeper's, where
    he had left his purchases.
    
    "You brute, you murderer!" screamed a thin, pale woman who, with a baby
    in her arms and her kerchief torn from her head, burst through the door
    at that moment and down the steps into the yard.
    
    Ferapontov came out after her, but on seeing Alpatych adjusted his
    waistcoat, smoothed his hair, yawned, and followed Alpatych into the
    opposite room.
    
    "Going already?" said he.
    
    Alpatych, without answering or looking at his host, sorted his packages
    and asked how much he owed.
    
    "We'll reckon up! Well, have you been to the Governor's?" asked
    Ferapontov. "What has been decided?"
    
    Alpatych replied that the Governor had not told him anything definite.
    
    "With our business, how can we get away?" said Ferapontov. "We'd have to
    pay seven rubles a cartload to Dorogobuzh and I tell them they're not
    Christians to ask it! Selivanov, now, did a good stroke last Thursday--
    sold flour to the army at nine rubles a sack. Will you have some tea?"
    he added.
    
    While the horses were being harnessed Alpatych and Ferapontov over their
    tea talked of the price of corn, the crops, and the good weather for
    harvesting.
    
    "Well, it seems to be getting quieter," remarked Ferapontov, finishing
    his third cup of tea and getting up. "Ours must have got the best of it.
    The orders were not to let them in. So we're in force, it seems.... They
    say the other day Matthew Ivanych Platov drove them into the river
    Marina and drowned some eighteen thousand in one day."
    
    Alpatych collected his parcels, handed them to the coachman who had come
    in, and settled up with the innkeeper. The noise of wheels, hoofs, and
    bells was heard from the gateway as a little trap passed out.
    
    It was by now late in the afternoon. Half the street was in shadow, the
    other half brightly lit by the sun. Alpatych looked out of the window
    and went to the door. Suddenly the strange sound of a far-off whistling
    and thud was heard, followed by a boom of cannon blending into a dull
    roar that set the windows rattling.
    
    He went out into the street: two men were running past toward the
    bridge. From different sides came whistling sounds and the thud of
    cannon balls and bursting shells falling on the town. But these sounds
    were hardly heard in comparison with the noise of the firing outside the
    town and attracted little attention from the inhabitants. The town was
    being bombarded by a hundred and thirty guns which Napoleon had ordered
    up after four o'clock. The people did not at once realize the meaning of
    this bombardment.
    
    At first the noise of the falling bombs and shells only aroused
    curiosity. Ferapontov's wife, who till then had not ceased wailing under
    the shed, became quiet and with the baby in her arms went to the gate,
    listening to the sounds and looking in silence at the people.
    
    The cook and a shop assistant came to the gate. With lively curiosity
    everyone tried to get a glimpse of the projectiles as they flew over
    their heads. Several people came round the corner talking eagerly.
    
    "What force!" remarked one. "Knocked the roof and ceiling all to
    splinters!"
    
    "Routed up the earth like a pig," said another.
    
    "That's grand, it bucks one up!" laughed the first. "Lucky you jumped
    aside, or it would have wiped you out!"
    
    Others joined those men and stopped and told how cannon balls had fallen
    on a house close to them. Meanwhile still more projectiles, now with the
    swift sinister whistle of a cannon ball, now with the agreeable
    intermittent whistle of a shell, flew over people's heads incessantly,
    but not one fell close by, they all flew over. Alpatych was getting into
    his trap. The innkeeper stood at the gate.
    
    "What are you staring at?" he shouted to the cook, who in her red skirt,
    with sleeves rolled up, swinging her bare elbows, had stepped to the
    corner to listen to what was being said.
    
    "What marvels!" she exclaimed, but hearing her master's voice she turned
    back, pulling down her tucked-up skirt.
    
    Once more something whistled, but this time quite close, swooping
    downwards like a little bird; a flame flashed in the middle of the
    street, something exploded, and the street was shrouded in smoke.
    
    "Scoundrel, what are you doing?" shouted the innkeeper, rushing to the
    cook.
    
    At that moment the pitiful wailing of women was heard from different
    sides, the frightened baby began to cry, and people crowded silently
    with pale faces round the cook. The loudest sound in that crowd was her
    wailing.
    
    "Oh-h-h! Dear souls, dear kind souls! Don't let me die! My good
    souls!..."
    
    Five minutes later no one remained in the street. The cook, with her
    thigh broken by a shell splinter, had been carried into the kitchen.
    Alpatych, his coachman, Ferapontov's wife and children and the house
    porter were all sitting in the cellar, listening. The roar of guns, the
    whistling of projectiles, and the piteous moaning of the cook, which
    rose above the other sounds, did not cease for a moment. The mistress
    rocked and hushed her baby and when anyone came into the cellar asked in
    a pathetic whisper what had become of her husband who had remained in
    the street. A shopman who entered told her that her husband had gone
    with others to the cathedral, whence they were fetching the wonder-
    working icon of Smolensk.
    
    Toward dusk the cannonade began to subside. Alpatych left the cellar and
    stopped in the doorway. The evening sky that had been so clear was
    clouded with smoke, through which, high up, the sickle of the new moon
    shone strangely. Now that the terrible din of the guns had ceased a hush
    seemed to reign over the town, broken only by the rustle of footsteps,
    the moaning, the distant cries, and the crackle of fires which seemed
    widespread everywhere. The cook's moans had now subsided. On two sides
    black curling clouds of smoke rose and spread from the fires. Through
    the streets soldiers in various uniforms walked or ran confusedly in
    different directions like ants from a ruined ant-hill. Several of them
    ran into Ferapontov's yard before Alpatych's eyes. Alpatych went out to
    the gate. A retreating regiment, thronging and hurrying, blocked the
    street.
    
    Noticing him, an officer said: "The town is being abandoned. Get away,
    get away!" and then, turning to the soldiers, shouted:
    
    "I'll teach you to run into the yards!"
    
    Alpatych went back to the house, called the coachman, and told him to
    set off. Ferapontov's whole household came out too, following Alpatych
    and the coachman. The women, who had been silent till then, suddenly
    began to wail as they looked at the fires--the smoke and even the flames
    of which could be seen in the failing twilight--and as if in reply the
    same kind of lamentation was heard from other parts of the street.
    Inside the shed Alpatych and the coachman arranged the tangled reins and
    traces of their horses with trembling hands.
    
    As Alpatych was driving out of the gate he saw some ten soldiers in
    Ferapontov's open shop, talking loudly and filling their bags and
    knapsacks with flour and sunflower seeds. Just then Ferapontov returned
    and entered his shop. On seeing the soldiers he was about to shout at
    them, but suddenly stopped and, clutching at his hair, burst into sobs
    and laughter:
    
    "Loot everything, lads! Don't let those devils get it!" he cried, taking
    some bags of flour himself and throwing them into the street.
    
    Some of the soldiers were frightened and ran away, others went on
    filling their bags. On seeing Alpatych, Ferapontov turned to him:
    
    "Russia is done for!" he cried. "Alpatych, I'll set the place on fire
    myself. We're done for!..." and Ferapontov ran into the yard.
    
    Soldiers were passing in a constant stream along the street blocking it
    completely, so that Alpatych could not pass out and had to wait.
    Ferapontov's wife and children were also sitting in a cart waiting till
    it was possible to drive out.
    
    Night had come. There were stars in the sky and the new moon shone out
    amid the smoke that screened it. On the sloping descent to the Dnieper
    Alpatych's cart and that of the innkeeper's wife, which were slowly
    moving amid the rows of soldiers and of other vehicles, had to stop. In
    a side street near the crossroads where the vehicles had stopped, a
    house and some shops were on fire. This fire was already burning itself
    out. The flames now died down and were lost in the black smoke, now
    suddenly flared up again brightly, lighting up with strange distinctness
    the faces of the people crowding at the crossroads. Black figures
    flitted about before the fire, and through the incessant crackling of
    the flames talking and shouting could be heard. Seeing that his trap
    would not be able to move on for some time, Alpatych got down and turned
    into the side street to look at the fire. Soldiers were continually
    rushing backwards and forwards near it, and he saw two of them and a man
    in a frieze coat dragging burning beams into another yard across the
    street, while others carried bundles of hay.
    
    Alpatych went up to a large crowd standing before a high barn which was
    blazing briskly. The walls were all on fire and the back wall had fallen
    in, the wooden roof was collapsing, and the rafters were alight. The
    crowd was evidently watching for the roof to fall in, and Alpatych
    watched for it too.
    
    "Alpatych!" a familiar voice suddenly hailed the old man.
    
    "Mercy on us! Your excellency!" answered Alpatych, immediately
    recognizing the voice of his young prince.
    
    Prince Andrew in his riding cloak, mounted on a black horse, was looking
    at Alpatych from the back of the crowd.
    
    "Why are you here?" he asked.
    
    "Your... your excellency," stammered Alpatych and broke into sobs. "Are
    we really lost? Master!..."
    
    "Why are you here?" Prince Andrew repeated.
    
    At that moment the flames flared up and showed his young master's pale
    worn face. Alpatych told how he had been sent there and how difficult it
    was to get away.
    
    "Are we really quite lost, your excellency?" he asked again.
    
    Prince Andrew without replying took out a notebook and raising his knee
    began writing in pencil on a page he tore out. He wrote to his sister:
    
    "Smolensk is being abandoned. Bald Hills will be occupied by the enemy
    within a week. Set off immediately for Moscow. Let me know at once when
    you will start. Send by special messenger to Usvyazh."
    
    Having written this and given the paper to Alpatych, he told him how to
    arrange for departure of the prince, the princess, his son, and the
    boy's tutor, and how and where to let him know immediately. Before he
    had had time to finish giving these instructions, a chief of staff
    followed by a suite galloped up to him.
    
    "You are a colonel?" shouted the chief of staff with a German accent, in
    a voice familiar to Prince Andrew. "Houses are set on fire in your
    presence and you stand by! What does this mean? You will answer for it!"
    shouted Berg, who was now assistant to the chief of staff of the
    commander of the left flank of the infantry of the first army, a place,
    as Berg said, "very agreeable and well en evidence."
    
    Prince Andrew looked at him and without replying went on speaking to
    Alpatych.
    
    "So tell them that I shall await a reply till the tenth, and if by the
    tenth I don't receive news that they have all got away I shall have to
    throw up everything and come myself to Bald Hills."
    
    "Prince," said Berg, recognizing Prince Andrew, "I only spoke because I
    have to obey orders, because I always do obey exactly.... You must
    please excuse me," he went on apologetically.
    
    Something cracked in the flames. The fire died down for a moment and
    wreaths of black smoke rolled from under the roof. There was another
    terrible crash and something huge collapsed.
    
    "Ou-rou-rou!" yelled the crowd, echoing the crash of the collapsing roof
    of the barn, the burning grain in which diffused a cakelike aroma all
    around. The flames flared up again, lighting the animated, delighted,
    exhausted faces of the spectators.
    
    The man in the frieze coat raised his arms and shouted:
    
    "It's fine, lads! Now it's raging... It's fine!"
    
    "That's the owner himself," cried several voices.
    
    "Well then," continued Prince Andrew to Alpatych, "report to them as I
    have told you"; and not replying a word to Berg who was now mute beside
    him, he touched his horse and rode down the side street.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    From Smolensk the troops continued to retreat, followed by the enemy. On
    the tenth of August the regiment Prince Andrew commanded was marching
    along the highroad past the avenue leading to Bald Hills. Heat and
    drought had continued for more than three weeks. Each day fleecy clouds
    floated across the sky and occasionally veiled the sun, but toward
    evening the sky cleared again and the sun set in reddish-brown mist.
    Heavy night dews alone refreshed the earth. The unreaped corn was
    scorched and shed its grain. The marshes dried up. The cattle lowed from
    hunger, finding no food on the sun-parched meadows. Only at night and in
    the forests while the dew lasted was there any freshness. But on the
    road, the highroad along which the troops marched, there was no such
    freshness even at night or when the road passed through the forest; the
    dew was imperceptible on the sandy dust churned up more than six inches
    deep. As soon as day dawned the march began. The artillery and baggage
    wagons moved noiselessly through the deep dust that rose to the very
    hubs of the wheels, and the infantry sank ankle-deep in that soft,
    choking, hot dust that never cooled even at night. Some of this dust was
    kneaded by the feet and wheels, while the rest rose and hung like a
    cloud over the troops, settling in eyes, ears, hair, and nostrils, and
    worst of all in the lungs of the men and beasts as they moved along that
    road. The higher the sun rose the higher rose that cloud of dust, and
    through the screen of its hot fine particles one could look with naked
    eye at the sun, which showed like a huge crimson ball in the unclouded
    sky. There was no wind, and the men choked in that motionless
    atmosphere. They marched with handkerchiefs tied over their noses and
    mouths. When they passed through a village they all rushed to the wells
    and fought for the water and drank it down to the mud.
    
    Prince Andrew was in command of a regiment, and the management of that
    regiment, the welfare of the men and the necessity of receiving and
    giving orders, engrossed him. The burning of Smolensk and its
    abandonment made an epoch in his life. A novel feeling of anger against
    the foe made him forget his own sorrow. He was entirely devoted to the
    affairs of his regiment and was considerate and kind to his men and
    officers. In the regiment they called him "our prince," were proud of
    him and loved him. But he was kind and gentle only to those of his
    regiment, to Timokhin and the like--people quite new to him, belonging
    to a different world and who could not know and understand his past. As
    soon as he came across a former acquaintance or anyone from the staff,
    he bristled up immediately and grew spiteful, ironical, and
    contemptuous. Everything that reminded him of his past was repugnant to
    him, and so in his relations with that former circle he confined himself
    to trying to do his duty and not to be unfair.
    
    In truth everything presented itself in a dark and gloomy light to
    Prince Andrew, especially after the abandonment of Smolensk on the sixth
    of August (he considered that it could and should have been defended)
    and after his sick father had had to flee to Moscow, abandoning to
    pillage his dearly beloved Bald Hills which he had built and peopled.
    But despite this, thanks to his regiment, Prince Andrew had something to
    think about entirely apart from general questions. Two days previously
    he had received news that his father, son, and sister had left for
    Moscow; and though there was nothing for him to do at Bald Hills, Prince
    Andrew with a characteristic desire to foment his own grief decided that
    he must ride there.
    
    He ordered his horse to be saddled and, leaving his regiment on the
    march, rode to his father's estate where he had been born and spent his
    childhood. Riding past the pond where there used always to be dozens of
    women chattering as they rinsed their linen or beat it with wooden
    beetles, Prince Andrew noticed that there was not a soul about and that
    the little washing wharf, torn from its place and half submerged, was
    floating on its side in the middle of the pond. He rode to the keeper's
    lodge. No one at the stone entrance gates of the drive and the door
    stood open. Grass had already begun to grow on the garden paths, and
    horses and calves were straying in the English park. Prince Andrew rode
    up to the hothouse; some of the glass panes were broken, and of the
    trees in tubs some were overturned and others dried up. He called for
    Taras the gardener, but no one replied. Having gone round the corner of
    the hothouse to the ornamental garden, he saw that the carved garden
    fence was broken and branches of the plum trees had been torn off with
    the fruit. An old peasant whom Prince Andrew in his childhood had often
    seen at the gate was sitting on a green garden seat, plaiting a bast
    shoe.
    
    He was deaf and did not hear Prince Andrew ride up. He was sitting on
    the seat the old prince used to like to sit on, and beside him strips of
    bast were hanging on the broken and withered branch of a magnolia.
    
    Prince Andrew rode up to the house. Several limes in the old garden had
    been cut down and a piebald mare and her foal were wandering in front of
    the house among the rosebushes. The shutters were all closed, except at
    one window which was open. A little serf boy, seeing Prince Andrew, ran
    into the house. Alpatych, having sent his family away, was alone at Bald
    Hills and was sitting indoors reading the Lives of the Saints. On
    hearing that Prince Andrew had come, he went out with his spectacles on
    his nose, buttoning his coat, and, hastily stepping up, without a word
    began weeping and kissing Prince Andrew's knee.
    
    Then, vexed at his own weakness, he turned away and began to report on
    the position of affairs. Everything precious and valuable had been
    removed to Bogucharovo. Seventy quarters of grain had also been carted
    away. The hay and the spring corn, of which Alpatych said there had been
    a remarkable crop that year, had been commandeered by the troops and
    mown down while still green. The peasants were ruined; some of them too
    had gone to Bogucharovo, only a few remained.
    
    Without waiting to hear him out, Prince Andrew asked:
    
    "When did my father and sister leave?" meaning when did they leave for
    Moscow.
    
    Alpatych, understanding the question to refer to their departure for
    Bogucharovo, replied that they had left on the seventh and again went
    into details concerning the estate management, asking for instructions.
    
    "Am I to let the troops have the oats, and to take a receipt for them?
    We have still six hundred quarters left," he inquired.
    
    "What am I to say to him?" thought Prince Andrew, looking down on the
    old man's bald head shining in the sun and seeing by the expression on
    his face that the old man himself understood how untimely such questions
    were and only asked them to allay his grief.
    
    "Yes, let them have it," replied Prince Andrew.
    
    "If you noticed some disorder in the garden," said Alpatych, "it was
    impossible to prevent it. Three regiments have been here and spent the
    night, dragoons mostly. I took down the name and rank of their
    commanding officer, to hand in a complaint about it."
    
    "Well, and what are you going to do? Will you stay here if the enemy
    occupies the place?" asked Prince Andrew.
    
    Alpatych turned his face to Prince Andrew, looked at him, and suddenly
    with a solemn gesture raised his arm.
    
    "He is my refuge! His will be done!" he exclaimed.
    
    A group of bareheaded peasants was approaching across the meadow toward
    the prince.
    
    "Well, good-by!" said Prince Andrew, bending over to Alpatych. "You must
    go away too, take away what you can and tell the serfs to go to the
    Ryazan estate or to the one near Moscow."
    
    Alpatych clung to Prince Andrew's leg and burst into sobs. Gently
    disengaging himself, the prince spurred his horse and rode down the
    avenue at a gallop.
    
    The old man was still sitting in the ornamental garden, like a fly
    impassive on the face of a loved one who is dead, tapping the last on
    which he was making the bast shoe, and two little girls, running out
    from the hot house carrying in their skirts plums they had plucked from
    the trees there, came upon Prince Andrew. On seeing the young master,
    the elder one with frightened look clutched her younger companion by the
    hand and hid with her behind a birch tree, not stopping to pick up some
    green plums they had dropped.
    
    Prince Andrew turned away with startled haste, unwilling to let them see
    that they had been observed. He was sorry for the pretty frightened
    little girl, was afraid of looking at her, and yet felt an irresistible
    desire to do so. A new sensation of comfort and relief came over him
    when, seeing these girls, he realized the existence of other human
    interests entirely aloof from his own and just as legitimate as those
    that occupied him. Evidently these girls passionately desired one thing-
    -to carry away and eat those green plums without being caught--and
    Prince Andrew shared their wish for the success of their enterprise. He
    could not resist looking at them once more. Believing their danger past,
    they sprang from their ambush and, chirruping something in their shrill
    little voices and holding up their skirts, their bare little sunburned
    feet scampered merrily and quickly across the meadow grass.
    
    Prince Andrew was somewhat refreshed by having ridden off the dusty
    highroad along which the troops were moving. But not far from Bald Hills
    he again came out on the road and overtook his regiment at its halting
    place by the dam of a small pond. It was past one o'clock. The sun, a
    red ball through the dust, burned and scorched his back intolerably
    through his black coat. The dust always hung motionless above the buzz
    of talk that came from the resting troops. There was no wind. As he
    crossed the dam Prince Andrew smelled the ooze and freshness of the
    pond. He longed to get into that water, however dirty it might be, and
    he glanced round at the pool from whence came sounds of shrieks and
    laughter. The small, muddy, green pond had risen visibly more than a
    foot, flooding the dam, because it was full of the naked white bodies of
    soldiers with brick-red hands, necks, and faces, who were splashing
    about in it. All this naked white human flesh, laughing and shrieking,
    floundered about in that dirty pool like carp stuffed into a watering
    can, and the suggestion of merriment in that floundering mass rendered
    it specially pathetic.
    
    One fair-haired young soldier of the third company, whom Prince Andrew
    knew and who had a strap round the calf of one leg, crossed himself,
    stepped back to get a good run, and plunged into the water; another, a
    dark noncommissioned officer who was always shaggy, stood up to his
    waist in the water joyfully wriggling his muscular figure and snorted
    with satisfaction as he poured the water over his head with hands
    blackened to the wrists. There were sounds of men slapping one another,
    yelling, and puffing.
    
    Everywhere on the bank, on the dam, and in the pond, there was healthy,
    white, muscular flesh. The officer, Timokhin, with his red little nose,
    standing on the dam wiping himself with a towel, felt confused at seeing
    the prince, but made up his mind to address him nevertheless.
    
    "It's very nice, your excellency! Wouldn't you like to?" said he.
    
    "It's dirty," replied Prince Andrew, making a grimace.
    
    "We'll clear it out for you in a minute," said Timokhin, and, still
    undressed, ran off to clear the men out of the pond.
    
    "The prince wants to bathe."
    
    "What prince? Ours?" said many voices, and the men were in such haste to
    clear out that the prince could hardly stop them. He decided that he
    would rather wash himself with water in the barn.
    
    "Flesh, bodies, cannon fodder!" he thought, and he looked at his own
    naked body and shuddered, not from cold but from a sense of disgust and
    horror he did not himself understand, aroused by the sight of that
    immense number of bodies splashing about in the dirty pond.
    
    On the seventh of August Prince Bagration wrote as follows from his
    quarters at Mikhaylovna on the Smolensk road:
    
    Dear Count Alexis Andreevich--(He was writing to Arakcheev but knew that
    his letter would be read by the Emperor, and therefore weighed every
    word in it to the best of his ability.)
    
    I expect the Minister (Barclay de Tolly) has already reported the
    abandonment of Smolensk to the enemy. It is pitiable and sad, and the
    whole army is in despair that this most important place has been
    wantonly abandoned. I, for my part, begged him personally most urgently
    and finally wrote him, but nothing would induce him to consent. I swear
    to you on my honor that Napoleon was in such a fix as never before and
    might have lost half his army but could not have taken Smolensk. Our
    troops fought, and are fighting, as never before. With fifteen thousand
    men I held the enemy at bay for thirty-five hours and beat him; but he
    would not hold out even for fourteen hours. It is disgraceful, a stain
    on our army, and as for him, he ought, it seems to me, not to live. If
    he reports that our losses were great, it is not true; perhaps about
    four thousand, not more, and not even that; but even were they ten
    thousand, that's war! But the enemy has lost masses...
    
    What would it have cost him to hold out for another two days? They would
    have had to retire of their own accord, for they had no water for men or
    horses. He gave me his word he would not retreat, but suddenly sent
    instructions that he was retiring that night. We cannot fight in this
    way, or we may soon bring the enemy to Moscow...
    
    There is a rumor that you are thinking of peace. God forbid that you
    should make peace after all our sacrifices and such insane retreats! You
    would set all Russia against you and every one of us would feel ashamed
    to wear the uniform. If it has come to this--we must fight as long as
    Russia can and as long as there are men able to stand...
    
    One man ought to be in command, and not two. Your Minister may perhaps
    be good as a Minister, but as a general he is not merely bad but
    execrable, yet to him is entrusted the fate of our whole country.... I
    am really frantic with vexation; forgive my writing boldly. It is clear
    that the man who advocates the conclusion of a peace, and that the
    Minister should command the army, does not love our sovereign and
    desires the ruin of us all. So I write you frankly: call out the
    militia. For the Minister is leading these visitors after him to Moscow
    in a most masterly way. The whole army feels great suspicion of the
    Imperial aide-de-camp Wolzogen. He is said to be more Napoleon's man
    than ours, and he is always advising the Minister. I am not merely civil
    to him but obey him like a corporal, though I am his senior. This is
    painful, but, loving my benefactor and sovereign, I submit. Only I am
    sorry for the Emperor that he entrusts our fine army to such as he.
    Consider that on our retreat we have lost by fatigue and left in the
    hospital more than fifteen thousand men, and had we attacked this would
    not have happened. Tell me, for God's sake, what will Russia, our mother
    Russia, say to our being so frightened, and why are we abandoning our
    good and gallant Fatherland to such rabble and implanting feelings of
    hatred and shame in all our subjects? What are we scared at and of whom
    are we afraid? I am not to blame that the Minister is vacillating, a
    coward, dense, dilatory, and has all bad qualities. The whole army
    bewails it and calls down curses upon him...
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Among the innumerable categories applicable to the phenomena of human
    life one may discriminate between those in which substance prevails and
    those in which form prevails. To the latter--as distinguished from
    village, country, provincial, or even Moscow life--we may allot
    Petersburg life, and especially the life of its salons. That life of the
    salons is unchanging. Since the year 1805 we had made peace and had
    again quarreled with Bonaparte and had made constitutions and unmade
    them again, but the salons of Anna Pavlovna and Helene remained just as
    they had been--the one seven and the other five years before. At Anna
    Pavlovna's they talked with perplexity of Bonaparte's successes just as
    before and saw in them and in the subservience shown to him by the
    European sovereigns a malicious conspiracy, the sole object of which was
    to cause unpleasantness and anxiety to the court circle of which Anna
    Pavlovna was the representative. And in Helene's salon, which Rumyantsev
    himself honored with his visits, regarding Helene as a remarkably
    intelligent woman, they talked with the same ecstasy in 1812 as in 1808
    of the "great nation" and the "great man," and regretted our rupture
    with France, a rupture which, according to them, ought to be promptly
    terminated by peace.
    
    Of late, since the Emperor's return from the army, there had been some
    excitement in these conflicting salon circles and some demonstrations of
    hostility to one another, but each camp retained its own tendency. In
    Anna Pavlovna's circle only those Frenchmen were admitted who were deep-
    rooted legitimists, and patriotic views were expressed to the effect
    that one ought not to go to the French theater and that to maintain the
    French troupe was costing the government as much as a whole army corps.
    The progress of the war was eagerly followed, and only the reports most
    flattering to our army were circulated. In the French circle of Helene
    and Rumyantsev the reports of the cruelty of the enemy and of the war
    were contradicted and all Napoleon's attempts at conciliation were
    discussed. In that circle they discountenanced those who advised hurried
    preparations for a removal to Kazan of the court and the girls'
    educational establishments under the patronage of the Dowager Empress.
    In Helene's circle the war in general was regarded as a series of formal
    demonstrations which would very soon end in peace, and the view
    prevailed expressed by Bilibin--who now in Petersburg was quite at home
    in Helene's house, which every clever man was obliged to visit--that not
    by gunpowder but by those who invented it would matters be settled. In
    that circle the Moscow enthusiasm--news of which had reached Petersburg
    simultaneously with the Emperor's return--was ridiculed sarcastically
    and very cleverly, though with much caution.
    
    Anna Pavlovna's circle on the contrary was enraptured by this enthusiasm
    and spoke of it as Plutarch speaks of the deeds of the ancients. Prince
    Vasili, who still occupied his former important posts, formed a
    connecting link between these two circles. He visited his "good friend
    Anna Pavlovna" as well as his daughter's "diplomatic salon," and often
    in his constant comings and goings between the two camps became confused
    and said at Helene's what he should have said at Anna Pavlovna's and
    vice versa.
    
    Soon after the Emperor's return Prince Vasili in a conversation about
    the war at Anna Pavlovna's severely condemned Barclay de Tolly, but was
    undecided as to who ought to be appointed commander-in-chief. One of the
    visitors, usually spoken of as "a man of great merit," having described
    how he had that day seen Kutuzov, the newly chosen chief of the
    Petersburg militia, presiding over the enrollment of recruits at the
    Treasury, cautiously ventured to suggest that Kutuzov would be the man
    to satisfy all requirements.
    
    Anna Pavlovna remarked with a melancholy smile that Kutuzov had done
    nothing but cause the Emperor annoyance.
    
    "I have talked and talked at the Assembly of the Nobility," Prince
    Vasili interrupted, "but they did not listen to me. I told them his
    election as chief of the militia would not please the Emperor. They did
    not listen to me.
    
    "It's all this mania for opposition," he went on. "And who for? It is
    all because we want to ape the foolish enthusiasm of those Muscovites,"
    Prince Vasili continued, forgetting for a moment that though at Helene's
    one had to ridicule the Moscow enthusiasm, at Anna Pavlovna's one had to
    be ecstatic about it. But he retrieved his mistake at once. "Now, is it
    suitable that Count Kutuzov, the oldest general in Russia, should
    preside at that tribunal? He will get nothing for his pains! How could
    they make a man commander-in-chief who cannot mount a horse, who drops
    asleep at a council, and has the very worst morals! A good reputation he
    made for himself at Bucharest! I don't speak of his capacity as a
    general, but at a time like this how they appoint a decrepit, blind old
    man, positively blind? A fine idea to have a blind general! He can't see
    anything. To play blindman's bluff? He can't see at all!"
    
    No one replied to his remarks.
    
    This was quite correct on the twenty-fourth of July. But on the twenty-
    ninth of July Kutuzov received the title of Prince. This might indicate
    a wish to get rid of him, and therefore Prince Vasili's opinion
    continued to be correct though he was not now in any hurry to express
    it. But on the eighth of August a committee, consisting of Field Marshal
    Saltykov, Arakcheev, Vyazmitinov, Lopukhin, and Kochubey met to consider
    the progress of the war. This committee came to the conclusion that our
    failures were due to a want of unity in the command and though the
    members of the committee were aware of the Emperor's dislike of Kutuzov,
    after a short deliberation they agreed to advise his appointment as
    commander in chief. That same day Kutuzov was appointed commander-in-
    chief with full powers over the armies and over the whole region
    occupied by them.
    
    On the ninth of August Prince Vasili at Anna Pavlovna's again met the
    "man of great merit." The latter was very attentive to Anna Pavlovna
    because he wanted to be appointed director of one of the educational
    establishments for young ladies. Prince Vasili entered the room with the
    air of a happy conqueror who has attained the object of his desires.
    
    "Well, have you heard the great news? Prince Kutuzov is field marshal!
    All dissensions are at an end! I am so glad, so delighted! At last we
    have a man!" said he, glancing sternly and significantly round at
    everyone in the drawing room.
    
    The "man of great merit," despite his desire to obtain the post of
    director, could not refrain from reminding Prince Vasili of his former
    opinion. Though this was impolite to Prince Vasili in Anna Pavlovna's
    drawing room, and also to Anna Pavlovna herself who had received the
    news with delight, he could not resist the temptation.
    
    "But, Prince, they say he is blind!" said he, reminding Prince Vasili of
    his own words.
    
    "Eh? Nonsense! He sees well enough," said Prince Vasili rapidly, in a
    deep voice and with a slight cough--the voice and cough with which he
    was wont to dispose of all difficulties.
    
    "He sees well enough," he added. "And what I am so pleased about," he
    went on, "is that our sovereign has given him full powers over all the
    armies and the whole region--powers no commander-in-chief ever had
    before. He is a second autocrat," he concluded with a victorious smile.
    
    "God grant it! God grant it!" said Anna Pavlovna.
    
    The "man of great merit," who was still a novice in court circles,
    wishing to flatter Anna Pavlovna by defending her former position on
    this question, observed:
    
    "It is said that the Emperor was reluctant to give Kutuzov those powers.
    They say he blushed like a girl to whom Joconde is read, when he said to
    Kutuzov: 'Your Emperor and the Fatherland award you this honor.'"
    
    "Perhaps the heart took no part in that speech," said Anna Pavlovna.
    
    "Oh, no, no!" warmly rejoined Prince Vasili, who would not now yield
    Kutuzov to anyone; in his opinion Kutuzov was not only admirable
    himself, but was adored by everybody. "No, that's impossible," said he,
    "for our sovereign appreciated him so highly before."
    
    "God grant only that Prince Kutuzov assumes real power and does not
    allow anyone to put a spoke in his wheel," observed Anna Pavlovna.
    
    Understanding at once to whom she alluded, Prince Vasili said in a
    whisper:
    
    "I know for a fact that Kutuzov made it an absolute condition that the
    Tsarevich should not be with the army. Do you know what he said to the
    Emperor?"
    
    And Prince Vasili repeated the words supposed to have been spoken by
    Kutuzov to the Emperor. "I can neither punish him if he does wrong nor
    reward him if he does right."
    
    "Oh, a very wise man is Prince Kutuzov! I have known him a long time!"
    
    "They even say," remarked the "man of great merit" who did not yet
    possess courtly tact, "that his excellency made it an express condition
    that the sovereign himself should not be with the army."
    
    As soon as he said this both Prince Vasili and Anna Pavlovna turned away
    from him and glanced sadly at one another with a sigh at his naivete.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    While this was taking place in Petersburg the French had already passed
    Smolensk and were drawing nearer and nearer to Moscow. Napoleon's
    historian Thiers, like other of his historians, trying to justify his
    hero says that he was drawn to the walls of Moscow against his will. He
    is as right as other historians who look for the explanation of historic
    events in the will of one man; he is as right as the Russian historians
    who maintain that Napoleon was drawn to Moscow by the skill of the
    Russian commanders. Here besides the law of retrospection, which regards
    all the past as a preparation for events that subsequently occur, the
    law of reciprocity comes in, confusing the whole matter. A good
    chessplayer having lost a game is sincerely convinced that his loss
    resulted from a mistake he made and looks for that mistake in the
    opening, but forgets that at each stage of the game there were similar
    mistakes and that none of his moves were perfect. He only notices the
    mistake to which he pays attention, because his opponent took advantage
    of it. How much more complex than this is the game of war, which occurs
    under certain limits of time, and where it is not one will that
    manipulates lifeless objects, but everything results from innumerable
    conflicts of various wills!
    
    After Smolensk Napoleon sought a battle beyond Dorogobuzh at Vyazma, and
    then at Tsarevo-Zaymishche, but it happened that owing to a conjunction
    of innumerable circumstances the Russians could not give battle till
    they reached Borodino, seventy miles from Moscow. From Vyazma Napoleon
    ordered a direct advance on Moscow.
    
    Moscou, la capitale asiatique de ce grand empire, la ville sacree des
    peuples d'Alexandre, Moscou avec ses innombrables eglises en forme de
    pagodes chinoises, * this Moscow gave Napoleon's imagination no rest. On
    the march from Vyazma to Tsarevo-Zaymishche he rode his light bay
    bobtailed ambler accompanied by his Guards, his bodyguard, his pages,
    and aides-de-camp. Berthier, his chief of staff, dropped behind to
    question a Russian prisoner captured by the cavalry. Followed by
    Lelorgne d'Ideville, an interpreter, he overtook Napoleon at a gallop
    and reined in his horse with an amused expression.
    
    * "Moscow, the Asiatic capital of this great empire, the sacred city of
    Alexander's people, Moscow with its innumerable churches shaped like
    Chinese pagodas."
    
    "Well?" asked Napoleon.
    
    "One of Platov's Cossacks says that Platov's corps is joining up with
    the main army and that Kutuzov has been appointed commander-in-chief. He
    is a very shrewd and garrulous fellow."
    
    Napoleon smiled and told them to give the Cossack a horse and bring the
    man to him. He wished to talk to him himself. Several adjutants galloped
    off, and an hour later, Lavrushka, the serf Denisov had handed over to
    Rostov, rode up to Napoleon in an orderly's jacket and on a French
    cavalry saddle, with a merry, and tipsy face. Napoleon told him to ride
    by his side and began questioning him.
    
    "You are a Cossack?"
    
    "Yes, a Cossack, your Honor."
    
    "The Cossack, not knowing in what company he was, for Napoleon's plain
    appearance had nothing about it that would reveal to an Oriental mind
    the presence of a monarch, talked with extreme familiarity of the
    incidents of the war," says Thiers, narrating this episode. In reality
    Lavrushka, having got drunk the day before and left his master
    dinnerless, had been whipped and sent to the village in quest of
    chickens, where he engaged in looting till the French took him prisoner.
    Lavrushka was one of those coarse, bare-faced lackeys who have seen all
    sorts of things, consider it necessary to do everything in a mean and
    cunning way, are ready to render any sort of service to their master,
    and are keen at guessing their master's baser impulses, especially those
    prompted by vanity and pettiness.
    
    Finding himself in the company of Napoleon, whose identity he had easily
    and surely recognized, Lavrushka was not in the least abashed but merely
    did his utmost to gain his new master's favor.
    
    He knew very well that this was Napoleon, but Napoleon's presence could
    no more intimidate him than Rostov's, or a sergeant major's with the
    rods, would have done, for he had nothing that either the sergeant major
    or Napoleon could deprive him of.
    
    So he rattled on, telling all the gossip he had heard among the
    orderlies. Much of it true. But when Napoleon asked him whether the
    Russians thought they would beat Bonaparte or not, Lavrushka screwed up
    his eyes and considered.
    
    In this question he saw subtle cunning, as men of his type see cunning
    in everything, so he frowned and did not answer immediately.
    
    "It's like this," he said thoughtfully, "if there's a battle soon, yours
    will win. That's right. But if three days pass, then after that, well,
    then that same battle will not soon be over."
    
    Lelorgne d'Ideville smilingly interpreted this speech to Napoleon thus:
    "If a battle takes place within the next three days the French will win,
    but if later, God knows what will happen." Napoleon did not smile,
    though he was evidently in high good humor, and he ordered these words
    to be repeated.
    
    Lavrushka noticed this and to entertain him further, pretending not to
    know who Napoleon was, added:
    
    "We know that you have Bonaparte and that he has beaten everybody in the
    world, but we are a different matter..."--without knowing why or how
    this bit of boastful patriotism slipped out at the end.
    
    The interpreter translated these words without the last phrase, and
    Bonaparte smiled. "The young Cossack made his mighty interlocutor
    smile," says Thiers. After riding a few paces in silence, Napoleon
    turned to Berthier and said he wished to see how the news that he was
    talking to the Emperor himself, to that very Emperor who had written his
    immortally victorious name on the Pyramids, would affect this enfant du
    Don. *
    
    * "Child of the Don."
    
    The fact was accordingly conveyed to Lavrushka.
    
    Lavrushka, understanding that this was done to perplex him and that
    Napoleon expected him to be frightened, to gratify his new masters
    promptly pretended to be astonished and awe-struck, opened his eyes
    wide, and assumed the expression he usually put on when taken to be
    whipped. "As soon as Napoleon's interpreter had spoken," says Thiers,
    "the Cossack, seized by amazement, did not utter another word, but rode
    on, his eyes fixed on the conqueror whose fame had reached him across
    the steppes of the East. All his loquacity was suddenly arrested and
    replaced by a naive and silent feeling of admiration. Napoleon, after
    making the Cossack a present, had him set free like a bird restored to
    its native fields."
    
    Napoleon rode on, dreaming of the Moscow that so appealed to his
    imagination, and "the bird restored to its native fields" galloped to
    our outposts, inventing on the way all that had not taken place but that
    he meant to relate to his comrades. What had really taken place he did
    not wish to relate because it seemed to him not worth telling. He found
    the Cossacks, inquired for the regiment operating with Platov's
    detachment and by evening found his master, Nicholas Rostov, quartered
    at Yankovo. Rostov was just mounting to go for a ride round the
    neighboring villages with Ilyin; he let Lavrushka have another horse and
    took him along with him.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    Princess Mary was not in Moscow and out of danger as Prince Andrew
    supposed.
    
    After the return of Alpatych from Smolensk the old prince suddenly
    seemed to awake as from a dream. He ordered the militiamen to be called
    up from the villages and armed, and wrote a letter to the commander-in-
    chief informing him that he had resolved to remain at Bald Hills to the
    last extremity and to defend it, leaving to the commander-in-chief's
    discretion to take measures or not for the defense of Bald Hills, where
    one of Russia's oldest generals would be captured or killed, and he
    announced to his household that he would remain at Bald Hills.
    
    But while himself remaining, he gave instructions for the departure of
    the princess and Dessalles with the little prince to Bogucharovo and
    thence to Moscow. Princess Mary, alarmed by her father's feverish and
    sleepless activity after his previous apathy, could not bring herself to
    leave him alone and for the first time in her life ventured to disobey
    him. She refused to go away and her father's fury broke over her in a
    terrible storm. He repeated every injustice he had ever inflicted on
    her. Trying to convict her, he told her she had worn him out, had caused
    his quarrel with his son, had harbored nasty suspicions of him, making
    it the object of her life to poison his existence, and he drove her from
    his study telling her that if she did not go away it was all the same to
    him. He declared that he did not wish to remember her existence and
    warned her not to dare to let him see her. The fact that he did not, as
    she had feared, order her to be carried away by force but only told her
    not to let him see her cheered Princess Mary. She knew it was a proof
    that in the depth of his soul he was glad she was remaining at home and
    had not gone away.
    
    The morning after little Nicholas had left, the old prince donned his
    full uniform and prepared to visit the commander-in-chief. His caleche
    was already at the door. Princess Mary saw him walk out of the house in
    his uniform wearing all his orders and go down the garden to review his
    armed peasants and domestic serfs. She sat by the window listening to
    his voice which reached her from the garden. Suddenly several men came
    running up the avenue with frightened faces.
    
    Princess Mary ran out to the porch, down the flower-bordered path, and
    into the avenue. A large crowd of militiamen and domestics were moving
    toward her, and in their midst several men were supporting by the
    armpits and dragging along a little old man in a uniform and
    decorations. She ran up to him and, in the play of the sunlight that
    fell in small round spots through the shade of the lime-tree avenue,
    could not be sure what change there was in his face. All she could see
    was that his former stern and determined expression had altered to one
    of timidity and submission. On seeing his daughter he moved his helpless
    lips and made a hoarse sound. It was impossible to make out what he
    wanted. He was lifted up, carried to his study, and laid on the very
    couch he had so feared of late.
    
    The doctor, who was fetched that same night, bled him and said that the
    prince had had a seizure paralyzing his right side.
    
    It was becoming more and more dangerous to remain at Bald Hills, and
    next day they moved the prince to Bogucharovo, the doctor accompanying
    him.
    
    By the time they reached Bogucharovo, Dessalles and the little prince
    had already left for Moscow.
    
    For three weeks the old prince lay stricken by paralysis in the new
    house Prince Andrew had built at Bogucharovo, ever in the same state,
    getting neither better nor worse. He was unconscious and lay like a
    distorted corpse. He muttered unceasingly, his eyebrows and lips
    twitching, and it was impossible to tell whether he understood what was
    going on around him or not. One thing was certain--that he was suffering
    and wished to say something. But what it was, no one could tell: it
    might be some caprice of a sick and half-crazy man, or it might relate
    to public affairs, or possibly to family concerns.
    
    The doctor said this restlessness did not mean anything and was due to
    physical causes; but Princess Mary thought he wished to tell her
    something, and the fact that her presence always increased his
    restlessness confirmed her opinion.
    
    He was evidently suffering both physically and mentally. There was no
    hope of recovery. It was impossible for him to travel, it would not do
    to let him die on the road. "Would it not be better if the end did come,
    the very end?" Princess Mary sometimes thought. Night and day, hardly
    sleeping at all, she watched him and, terrible to say, often watched him
    not with hope of finding signs of improvement but wishing to find
    symptoms of the approach of the end.
    
    Strange as it was to her to acknowledge this feeling in herself, yet
    there it was. And what seemed still more terrible to her was that since
    her father's illness began (perhaps even sooner, when she stayed with
    him expecting something to happen), all the personal desires and hopes
    that had been forgotten or sleeping within her had awakened. Thoughts
    that had not entered her mind for years--thoughts of a life free from
    the fear of her father, and even the possibility of love and of family
    happiness--floated continually in her imagination like temptations of
    the devil. Thrust them aside as she would, questions continually
    recurred to her as to how she would order her life now, after that.
    These were temptations of the devil and Princess Mary knew it. She knew
    that the sole weapon against him was prayer, and she tried to pray. She
    assumed an attitude of prayer, looked at the icons, repeated the words
    of a prayer, but she could not pray. She felt that a different world had
    now taken possession of her--the life of a world of strenuous and free
    activity, quite opposed to the spiritual world in which till now she had
    been confined and in which her greatest comfort had been prayer. She
    could not pray, could not weep, and worldly cares took possession of
    her.
    
    It was becoming dangerous to remain in Bogucharovo. News of the approach
    of the French came from all sides, and in one village, ten miles from
    Bogucharovo, a homestead had been looted by French marauders.
    
    The doctor insisted on the necessity of moving the prince; the
    provincial Marshal of the Nobility sent an official to Princess Mary to
    persuade her to get away as quickly as possible, and the head of the
    rural police having come to Bogucharovo urged the same thing, saying
    that the French were only some twenty-five miles away, that French
    proclamations were circulating in the villages, and that if the princess
    did not take her father away before the fifteenth, he could not answer
    for the consequences.
    
    The princess decided to leave on the fifteenth. The cares of preparation
    and giving orders, for which everyone came to her, occupied her all day.
    She spent the night of the fourteenth as usual, without undressing, in
    the room next to the one where the prince lay. Several times, waking up,
    she heard his groans and muttering, the creak of his bed, and the steps
    of Tikhon and the doctor when they turned him over. Several times she
    listened at the door, and it seemed to her that his mutterings were
    louder than usual and that they turned him over oftener. She could not
    sleep and several times went to the door and listened, wishing to enter
    but not deciding to do so. Though he did not speak, Princess Mary saw
    and knew how unpleasant every sign of anxiety on his account was to him.
    She had noticed with what dissatisfaction he turned from the look she
    sometimes involuntarily fixed on him. She knew that her going in during
    the night at an unusual hour would irritate him.
    
    But never had she felt so grieved for him or so much afraid of losing
    him. She recalled all her life with him and in every word and act of his
    found an expression of his love of her. Occasionally amid these memories
    temptations of the devil would surge into her imagination: thoughts of
    how things would be after his death, and how her new, liberated life
    would be ordered. But she drove these thoughts away with disgust. Toward
    morning he became quiet and she fell asleep.
    
    She woke late. That sincerity which often comes with waking showed her
    clearly what chiefly concerned her about her father's illness. On waking
    she listened to what was going on behind the door and, hearing him
    groan, said to herself with a sigh that things were still the same.
    
    "But what could have happened? What did I want? I want his death!" she
    cried with a feeling of loathing for herself.
    
    She washed, dressed, said her prayers, and went out to the porch. In
    front of it stood carriages without horses and things were being packed
    into the vehicles.
    
    It was a warm, gray morning. Princess Mary stopped at the porch, still
    horrified by her spiritual baseness and trying to arrange her thoughts
    before going to her father. The doctor came downstairs and went out to
    her.
    
    "He is a little better today," said he. "I was looking for you. One can
    make out something of what he is saying. His head is clearer. Come in,
    he is asking for you..."
    
    Princess Mary's heart beat so violently at this news that she grew pale
    and leaned against the wall to keep from falling. To see him, talk to
    him, feel his eyes on her now that her whole soul was overflowing with
    those dreadful, wicked temptations, was a torment of joy and terror.
    
    "Come," said the doctor.
    
    Princess Mary entered her father's room and went up to his bed. He was
    lying on his back propped up high, and his small bony hands with their
    knotted purple veins were lying on the quilt; his left eye gazed
    straight before him, his right eye was awry, and his brows and lips
    motionless. He seemed altogether so thin, small, and pathetic. His face
    seemed to have shriveled or melted; his features had grown smaller.
    Princess Mary went up and kissed his hand. His left hand pressed hers so
    that she understood that he had long been waiting for her to come. He
    twitched her hand, and his brows and lips quivered angrily.
    
    She looked at him in dismay trying to guess what he wanted of her. When
    she changed her position so that his left eye could see her face he
    calmed down, not taking his eyes off her for some seconds. Then his lips
    and tongue moved, sounds came, and he began to speak, gazing timidly and
    imploringly at her, evidently afraid that she might not understand.
    
    Straining all her faculties Princess Mary looked at him. The comic
    efforts with which he moved his tongue made her drop her eyes and with
    difficulty repress the sobs that rose to her throat. He said something,
    repeating the same words several times. She could not understand them,
    but tried to guess what he was saying and inquiringly repeated the words
    he uttered.
    
    "Mmm...ar...ate...ate..." he repeated several times.
    
    It was quite impossible to understand these sounds. The doctor thought
    he had guessed them, and inquiringly repeated: "Mary, are you afraid?"
    The prince shook his head, again repeated the same sounds.
    
    "My mind, my mind aches?" questioned Princess Mary.
    
    He made a mumbling sound in confirmation of this, took her hand, and
    began pressing it to different parts of his breast as if trying to find
    the right place for it.
    
    "Always thoughts... about you... thoughts..." he then uttered much more
    clearly than he had done before, now that he was sure of being
    understood.
    
    Princess Mary pressed her head against his hand, trying to hide her sobs
    and tears.
    
    He moved his hand over her hair.
    
    "I have been calling you all night..." he brought out.
    
    "If only I had known..." she said through her tears. "I was afraid to
    come in."
    
    He pressed her hand.
    
    "Weren't you asleep?"
    
    "No, I did not sleep," said Princess Mary, shaking her head.
    
    Unconsciously imitating her father, she now tried to express herself as
    he did, as much as possible by signs, and her tongue too seemed to move
    with difficulty.
    
    "Dear one... Dearest..." Princess Mary could not quite make out what he
    had said, but from his look it was clear that he had uttered a tender
    caressing word such as he had never used to her before. "Why didn't you
    come in?"
    
    "And I was wishing for his death!" thought Princess Mary.
    
    He was silent awhile.
    
    "Thank you... daughter dear!... for all, for all... forgive!... thank
    you!... forgive!... thank you!..." and tears began to flow from his
    eyes. "Call Andrew!" he said suddenly, and a childish, timid expression
    of doubt showed itself on his face as he spoke.
    
    He himself seemed aware that his demand was meaningless. So at least it
    seemed to Princess Mary.
    
    "I have a letter from him," she replied.
    
    He glanced at her with timid surprise.
    
    "Where is he?"
    
    "He's with the army, Father, at Smolensk."
    
    He closed his eyes and remained silent a long time. Then as if in answer
    to his doubts and to confirm the fact that now he understood and
    remembered everything, he nodded his head and reopened his eyes.
    
    "Yes," he said, softly and distinctly. "Russia has perished. They've
    destroyed her."
    
    And he began to sob, and again tears flowed from his eyes. Princess Mary
    could no longer restrain herself and wept while she gazed at his face.
    
    Again he closed his eyes. His sobs ceased, he pointed to his eyes, and
    Tikhon, understanding him, wiped away the tears.
    
    Then he again opened his eyes and said something none of them could
    understand for a long time, till at last Tikhon understood and repeated
    it. Princess Mary had sought the meaning of his words in the mood in
    which he had just been speaking. She thought he was speaking of Russia,
    or Prince Andrew, of herself, of his grandson, or of his own death, and
    so she could not guess his words.
    
    "Put on your white dress. I like it," was what he said.
    
    Having understood this Princess Mary sobbed still louder, and the doctor
    taking her arm led her out to the veranda, soothing her and trying to
    persuade her to prepare for her journey. When she had left the room the
    prince again began speaking about his son, about the war, and about the
    Emperor, angrily twitching his brows and raising his hoarse voice, and
    then he had a second and final stroke.
    
    Princess Mary stayed on the veranda. The day had cleared, it was hot and
    sunny. She could understand nothing, think of nothing and feel nothing,
    except passionate love for her father, love such as she thought she had
    never felt till that moment. She ran out sobbing into the garden and as
    far as the pond, along the avenues of young lime trees Prince Andrew had
    planted.
    
    "Yes... I... I... I wished for his death! Yes, I wanted it to end
    quicker.... I wished to be at peace.... And what will become of me? What
    use will peace be when he is no longer here?" Princess Mary murmured,
    pacing the garden with hurried steps and pressing her hands to her bosom
    which heaved with convulsive sobs.
    
    When she had completed the tour of the garden, which brought her again
    to the house, she saw Mademoiselle Bourienne--who had remained at
    Bogucharovo and did not wish to leave it--coming toward her with a
    stranger. This was the Marshal of the Nobility of the district, who had
    come personally to point out to the princess the necessity for her
    prompt departure. Princess Mary listened without understanding him; she
    led him to the house, offered him lunch, and sat down with him. Then,
    excusing herself, she went to the door of the old prince's room. The
    doctor came out with an agitated face and said she could not enter.
    
    "Go away, Princess! Go away... go away!"
    
    She returned to the garden and sat down on the grass at the foot of the
    slope by the pond, where no one could see her. She did not know how long
    she had been there when she was aroused by the sound of a woman's
    footsteps running along the path. She rose and saw Dunyasha her maid,
    who was evidently looking for her, and who stopped suddenly as if in
    alarm on seeing her mistress.
    
    "Please come, Princess... The Prince," said Dunyasha in a breaking
    voice.
    
    "Immediately, I'm coming, I'm coming!" replied the princess hurriedly,
    not giving Dunyasha time to finish what she was saying, and trying to
    avoid seeing the girl she ran toward the house.
    
    "Princess, it's God's will! You must be prepared for everything," said
    the Marshal, meeting her at the house door.
    
    "Let me alone; it's not true!" she cried angrily to him.
    
    The doctor tried to stop her. She pushed him aside and ran to her
    father's door. "Why are these people with frightened faces stopping me?
    I don't want any of them! And what are they doing here?" she thought.
    She opened the door and the bright daylight in that previously darkened
    room startled her. In the room were her nurse and other women. They all
    drew back from the bed, making way for her. He was still lying on the
    bed as before, but the stern expression of his quiet face made Princess
    Mary stop short on the threshold.
    
    "No, he's not dead--it's impossible!" she told herself and approached
    him, and repressing the terror that seized her, she pressed her lips to
    his cheek. But she stepped back immediately. All the force of the
    tenderness she had been feeling for him vanished instantly and was
    replaced by a feeling of horror at what lay there before her. "No, he is
    no more! He is not, but here where he was is something unfamiliar and
    hostile, some dreadful, terrifying, and repellent mystery!" And hiding
    her face in her hands, Princess Mary sank into the arms of the doctor,
    who held her up.
    
    In the presence of Tikhon and the doctor the women washed what had been
    the prince, tied his head up with a handkerchief that the mouth should
    not stiffen while open, and with another handkerchief tied together the
    legs that were already spreading apart. Then they dressed him in uniform
    with his decorations and placed his shriveled little body on a table.
    Heaven only knows who arranged all this and when, but it all got done as
    if of its own accord. Toward night candles were burning round his
    coffin, a pall was spread over it, the floor was strewn with sprays of
    juniper, a printed band was tucked in under his shriveled head, and in a
    corner of the room sat a chanter reading the psalms.
    
    Just as horses shy and snort and gather about a dead horse, so the
    inmates of the house and strangers crowded into the drawing room round
    the coffin--the Marshal, the village Elder, peasant women--and all with
    fixed and frightened eyes, crossing themselves, bowed and kissed the old
    prince's cold and stiffened hand.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    Until Prince Andrew settled in Bogucharovo its owners had always been
    absentees, and its peasants were of quite a different character from
    those of Bald Hills. They differed from them in speech, dress, and
    disposition. They were called steppe peasants. The old prince used to
    approve of them for their endurance at work when they came to Bald Hills
    to help with the harvest or to dig ponds, and ditches, but he disliked
    them for their boorishness.
    
    Prince Andrew's last stay at Bogucharovo, when he introduced hospitals
    and schools and reduced the quitrent the peasants had to pay, had not
    softened their disposition but had on the contrary strengthened in them
    the traits of character the old prince called boorishness. Various
    obscure rumors were always current among them: at one time a rumor that
    they would all be enrolled as Cossacks; at another of a new religion to
    which they were all to be converted; then of some proclamation of the
    Tsar's and of an oath to the Tsar Paul in 1797 (in connection with which
    it was rumored that freedom had been granted them but the landowners had
    stopped it), then of Peter Fedorovich's return to the throne in seven
    years' time, when everything would be made free and so "simple" that
    there would be no restrictions. Rumors of the war with Bonaparte and his
    invasion were connected in their minds with the same sort of vague
    notions of Antichrist, the end of the world, and "pure freedom."
    
    In the vicinity of Bogucharovo were large villages belonging to the
    crown or to owners whose serfs paid quitrent and could work where they
    pleased. There were very few resident landlords in the neighborhood and
    also very few domestic or literate serfs, and in the lives of the
    peasantry of those parts the mysterious undercurrents in the life of the
    Russian people, the causes and meaning of which are so baffling to
    contemporaries, were more clearly and strongly noticeable than among
    others. One instance, which had occurred some twenty years before, was a
    movement among the peasants to emigrate to some unknown "warm rivers."
    Hundreds of peasants, among them the Bogucharovo folk, suddenly began
    selling their cattle and moving in whole families toward the southeast.
    As birds migrate to somewhere beyond the sea, so these men with their
    wives and children streamed to the southeast, to parts where none of
    them had ever been. They set off in caravans, bought their freedom one
    by one or ran away, and drove or walked toward the "warm rivers." Many
    of them were punished, some sent to Siberia, many died of cold and
    hunger on the road, many returned of their own accord, and the movement
    died down of itself just as it had sprung up, without apparent reason.
    But such undercurrents still existed among the people and gathered new
    forces ready to manifest themselves just as strangely, unexpectedly, and
    at the same time simply, naturally, and forcibly. Now in 1812, to anyone
    living in close touch with these people it was apparent that these
    undercurrents were acting strongly and nearing an eruption.
    
    Alpatych, who had reached Bogucharovo shortly before the old prince's
    death, noticed an agitation among the peasants, and that contrary to
    what was happening in the Bald Hills district, where over a radius of
    forty miles all the peasants were moving away and leaving their villages
    to be devastated by the Cossacks, the peasants in the steppe region
    round Bogucharovo were, it was rumored, in touch with the French,
    received leaflets from them that passed from hand to hand, and did not
    migrate. He learned from domestic serfs loyal to him that the peasant
    Karp, who possessed great influence in the village commune and had
    recently been away driving a government transport, had returned with
    news that the Cossacks were destroying deserted villages, but that the
    French did not harm them. Alpatych also knew that on the previous day
    another peasant had even brought from the village of Visloukhovo, which
    was occupied by the French, a proclamation by a French general that no
    harm would be done to the inhabitants, and if they remained they would
    be paid for anything taken from them. As proof of this the peasant had
    brought from Visloukhovo a hundred rubles in notes (he did not know that
    they were false) paid to him in advance for hay.
    
    More important still, Alpatych learned that on the morning of the very
    day he gave the village Elder orders to collect carts to move the
    princess' luggage from Bogucharovo, there had been a village meeting at
    which it had been decided not to move but to wait. Yet there was no time
    to waste. On the fifteenth, the day of the old prince's death, the
    Marshal had insisted on Princess Mary's leaving at once, as it was
    becoming dangerous. He had told her that after the sixteenth he could
    not be responsible for what might happen. On the evening of the day the
    old prince died the Marshal went away, promising to return next day for
    the funeral. But this he was unable to do, for he received tidings that
    the French had unexpectedly advanced, and had barely time to remove his
    own family and valuables from his estate.
    
    For some thirty years Bogucharovo had been managed by the village Elder,
    Dron, whom the old prince called by the diminutive "Dronushka."
    
    Dron was one of those physically and mentally vigorous peasants who grow
    big beards as soon as they are of age and go on unchanged till they are
    sixty or seventy, without a gray hair or the loss of a tooth, as
    straight and strong at sixty as at thirty.
    
    Soon after the migration to the "warm rivers," in which he had taken
    part like the rest, Dron was made village Elder and overseer of
    Bogucharovo, and had since filled that post irreproachably for twenty-
    three years. The peasants feared him more than they did their master.
    The masters, both the old prince and the young, and the steward
    respected him and jestingly called him "the Minister." During the whole
    time of his service Dron had never been drunk or ill, never after
    sleepless nights or the hardest tasks had he shown the least fatigue,
    and though he could not read he had never forgotten a single money
    account or the number of quarters of flour in any of the endless
    cartloads he sold for the prince, nor a single shock of the whole corn
    crop on any single acre of the Bogucharovo fields.
    
    Alpatych, arriving from the devastated Bald Hills estate, sent for his
    Dron on the day of the prince's funeral and told him to have twelve
    horses got ready for the princess' carriages and eighteen carts for the
    things to be removed from Bogucharovo. Though the peasants paid
    quitrent, Alpatych thought no difficulty would be made about complying
    with this order, for there were two hundred and thirty households at
    work in Bogucharovo and the peasants were well to do. But on hearing the
    order Dron lowered his eyes and remained silent. Alpatych named certain
    peasants he knew, from whom he told him to take the carts.
    
    Dron replied that the horses of these peasants were away carting.
    Alpatych named others, but they too, according to Dron, had no horses
    available: some horses were carting for the government, others were too
    weak, and others had died for want of fodder. It seemed that no horses
    could be had even for the carriages, much less for the carting.
    
    Alpatych looked intently at Dron and frowned. Just as Dron was a model
    village Elder, so Alpatych had not managed the prince's estates for
    twenty years in vain. He was a model steward, possessing in the highest
    degree the faculty of divining the needs and instincts of those he dealt
    with. Having glanced at Dron he at once understood that his answers did
    not express his personal views but the general mood of the Bogucharovo
    commune, by which the Elder had already been carried away. But he also
    knew that Dron, who had acquired property and was hated by the commune,
    must be hesitating between the two camps: the masters' and the serfs'.
    He noticed this hesitation in Dron's look and therefore frowned and
    moved closer up to him.
    
    "Now just listen, Dronushka," said he. "Don't talk nonsense to me. His
    excellency Prince Andrew himself gave me orders to move all the people
    away and not leave them with the enemy, and there is an order from the
    Tsar about it too. Anyone who stays is a traitor to the Tsar. Do you
    hear?"
    
    "I hear," Dron answered without lifting his eyes.
    
    Alpatych was not satisfied with this reply.
    
    "Eh, Dron, it will turn out badly!" he said, shaking his head.
    
    "The power is in your hands," Dron rejoined sadly.
    
    "Eh, Dron, drop it!" Alpatych repeated, withdrawing his hand from his
    bosom and solemnly pointing to the floor at Dron's feet. "I can see
    through you and three yards into the ground under you," he continued,
    gazing at the floor in front of Dron.
    
    Dron was disconcerted, glanced furtively at Alpatych and again lowered
    his eyes.
    
    "You drop this nonsense and tell the people to get ready to leave their
    homes and go to Moscow and to get carts ready for tomorrow morning for
    the princess' things. And don't go to any meeting yourself, do you
    hear?"
    
    Dron suddenly fell on his knees.
    
    "Yakov Alpatych, discharge me! Take the keys from me and discharge me,
    for Christ's sake!"
    
    "Stop that!" cried Alpatych sternly. "I see through you and three yards
    under you," he repeated, knowing that his skill in beekeeping, his
    knowledge of the right time to sow the oats, and the fact that he had
    been able to retain the old prince's favor for twenty years had long
    since gained him the reputation of being a wizard, and that the power of
    seeing three yards under a man is considered an attribute of wizards.
    
    Dron got up and was about to say something, but Alpatych interrupted
    him.
    
    "What is it you have got into your heads, eh?... What are you thinking
    of, eh?"
    
    "What am I to do with the people?" said Dron. "They're quite beside
    themselves; I have already told them..."
    
    "'Told them,' I dare say!" said Alpatych. "Are they drinking?" he asked
    abruptly.
    
    "Quite beside themselves, Yakov Alpatych; they've fetched another
    barrel."
    
    "Well, then, listen! I'll go to the police officer, and you tell them
    so, and that they must stop this and the carts must be got ready."
    
    "I understand."
    
    Alpatych did not insist further. He had managed people for a long time
    and knew that the chief way to make them obey is to show no suspicion
    that they can possibly disobey. Having wrung a submissive "I understand"
    from Dron, Alpatych contented himself with that, though he not only
    doubted but felt almost certain that without the help of troops the
    carts would not be forthcoming.
    
    And so it was, for when evening came no carts had been provided. In the
    village, outside the drink shop, another meeting was being held, which
    decided that the horses should be driven out into the woods and the
    carts should not be provided. Without saying anything of this to the
    princess, Alpatych had his own belongings taken out of the carts which
    had arrived from Bald Hills and had those horses got ready for the
    princess' carriages. Meanwhile he went himself to the police
    authorities.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    After her father's funeral Princess Mary shut herself up in her room and
    did not admit anyone. A maid came to the door to say that Alpatych was
    asking for orders about their departure. (This was before his talk with
    Dron.) Princess Mary raised herself on the sofa on which she had been
    lying and replied through the closed door that she did not mean to go
    away and begged to be left in peace.
    
    The windows of the room in which she was lying looked westward. She lay
    on the sofa with her face to the wall, fingering the buttons of the
    leather cushion and seeing nothing but that cushion, and her confused
    thoughts were centered on one subject--the irrevocability of death and
    her own spiritual baseness, which she had not suspected, but which had
    shown itself during her father's illness. She wished to pray but did not
    dare to, dared not in her present state of mind address herself to God.
    She lay for a long time in that position.
    
    The sun had reached the other side of the house, and its slanting rays
    shone into the open window, lighting up the room and part of the morocco
    cushion at which Princess Mary was looking. The flow of her thoughts
    suddenly stopped. Unconsciously she sat up, smoothed her hair, got up,
    and went to the window, involuntarily inhaling the freshness of the
    clear but windy evening.
    
    "Yes, you can well enjoy the evening now! He is gone and no one will
    hinder you," she said to herself, and sinking into a chair she let her
    head fall on the window sill.
    
    Someone spoke her name in a soft and tender voice from the garden and
    kissed her head. She looked up. It was Mademoiselle Bourienne in a black
    dress and weepers. She softly approached Princess Mary, sighed, kissed
    her, and immediately began to cry. The princess looked up at her. All
    their former disharmony and her own jealousy recurred to her mind. But
    she remembered too how he had changed of late toward Mademoiselle
    Bourienne and could not bear to see her, thereby showing how unjust were
    the reproaches Princess Mary had mentally addressed to her. "Besides, is
    it for me, for me who desired his death, to condemn anyone?" she
    thought.
    
    Princess Mary vividly pictured to herself the position of Mademoiselle
    Bourienne, whom she had of late kept at a distance, but who yet was
    dependent on her and living in her house. She felt sorry for her and
    held out her hand with a glance of gentle inquiry. Mademoiselle
    Bourienne at once began crying again and kissed that hand, speaking of
    the princess' sorrow and making herself a partner in it. She said her
    only consolation was the fact that the princess allowed her to share her
    sorrow, that all the old misunderstandings should sink into nothing but
    this great grief; that she felt herself blameless in regard to everyone,
    and that he, from above, saw her affection and gratitude. The princess
    heard her, not heeding her words but occasionally looking up at her and
    listening to the sound of her voice.
    
    "Your position is doubly terrible, dear princess," said Mademoiselle
    Bourienne after a pause. "I understand that you could not, and cannot,
    think of yourself, but with my love for you I must do so.... Has
    Alpatych been to you? Has he spoken to you of going away?" she asked.
    
    Princess Mary did not answer. She did not understand who was to go or
    where to. "Is it possible to plan or think of anything now? Is it not
    all the same?" she thought, and did not reply.
    
    "You know, chere Marie," said Mademoiselle Bourienne, "that we are in
    danger--are surrounded by the French. It would be dangerous to move now.
    If we go we are almost sure to be taken prisoners, and God knows..."
    
    Princess Mary looked at her companion without understanding what she was
    talking about.
    
    "Oh, if anyone knew how little anything matters to me now," she said.
    "Of course I would on no account wish to go away from him.... Alpatych
    did say something about going.... Speak to him; I can do nothing,
    nothing, and don't want to...."
    
    "I've spoken to him. He hopes we should be in time to get away tomorrow,
    but I think it would now be better to stay here," said Mademoiselle
    Bourienne. "Because, you will agree, chere Marie, to fall into the hands
    of the soldiers or of riotous peasants would be terrible."
    
    Mademoiselle Bourienne took from her reticule a proclamation (not
    printed on ordinary Russian paper) of General Rameau's, telling people
    not to leave their homes and that the French authorities would afford
    them proper protection. She handed this to the princess.
    
    "I think it would be best to appeal to that general," she continued,
    "and I am sure that all due respect would be shown you."
    
    Princess Mary read the paper, and her face began to quiver with stifled
    sobs.
    
    "From whom did you get this?" she asked.
    
    "They probably recognized that I am French, by my name," replied
    Mademoiselle Bourienne blushing.
    
    Princess Mary, with the paper in her hand, rose from the window and with
    a pale face went out of the room and into what had been Prince Andrew's
    study.
    
    "Dunyasha, send Alpatych, or Dronushka, or somebody to me!" she said,
    "and tell Mademoiselle Bourienne not to come to me," she added, hearing
    Mademoiselle Bourienne's voice. "We must go at once, at once!" she said,
    appalled at the thought of being left in the hands of the French.
    
    "If Prince Andrew heard that I was in the power of the French! That I,
    the daughter of Prince Nicholas Bolkonski, asked General Rameau for
    protection and accepted his favor!" This idea horrified her, made her
    shudder, blush, and feel such a rush of anger and pride as she had never
    experienced before. All that was distressing, and especially all that
    was humiliating, in her position rose vividly to her mind. "They, the
    French, would settle in this house: M. le General Rameau would occupy
    Prince Andrew's study and amuse himself by looking through and reading
    his letters and papers. Mademoiselle Bourienne would do the honors of
    Bogucharovo for him. I should be given a small room as a favor, the
    soldiers would violate my father's newly dug grave to steal his crosses
    and stars, they would tell me of their victories over the Russians, and
    would pretend to sympathize with my sorrow..." thought Princess Mary,
    not thinking her own thoughts but feeling bound to think like her father
    and her brother. For herself she did not care where she remained or what
    happened to her, but she felt herself the representative of her dead
    father and of Prince Andrew. Involuntarily she thought their thoughts
    and felt their feelings. What they would have said and what they would
    have done she felt bound to say and do. She went into Prince Andrew's
    study, trying to enter completely into his ideas, and considered her
    position.
    
    The demands of life, which had seemed to her annihilated by her father's
    death, all at once rose before her with a new, previously unknown force
    and took possession of her.
    
    Agitated and flushed she paced the room, sending now for Michael
    Ivanovich and now for Tikhon or Dron. Dunyasha, the nurse, and the other
    maids could not say in how far Mademoiselle Bourienne's statement was
    correct. Alpatych was not at home, he had gone to the police. Neither
    could the architect Michael Ivanovich, who on being sent for came in
    with sleepy eyes, tell Princess Mary anything. With just the same smile
    of agreement with which for fifteen years he had been accustomed to
    answer the old prince without expressing views of his own, he now
    replied to Princess Mary, so that nothing definite could be got from his
    answers. The old valet Tikhon, with sunken, emaciated face that bore the
    stamp of inconsolable grief, replied: "Yes, Princess" to all Princess
    Mary's questions and hardly refrained from sobbing as he looked at her.
    
    At length Dron, the village Elder, entered the room and with a deep bow
    to Princess Mary came to a halt by the doorpost.
    
    Princess Mary walked up and down the room and stopped in front of him.
    
    "Dronushka," she said, regarding as a sure friend this Dronushka who
    always used to bring a special kind of gingerbread from his visit to the
    fair at Vyazma every year and smilingly offer it to her, "Dronushka, now
    since our misfortune..." she began, but could not go on.
    
    "We are all in God's hands," said he, with a sigh.
    
    They were silent for a while.
    
    "Dronushka, Alpatych has gone off somewhere and I have no one to turn
    to. Is it true, as they tell me, that I can't even go away?"
    
    "Why shouldn't you go away, your excellency? You can go," said Dron.
    
    "I was told it would be dangerous because of the enemy. Dear friend, I
    can do nothing. I understand nothing. I have nobody! I want to go away
    tonight or early tomorrow morning."
    
    Dron paused. He looked askance at Princess Mary and said: "There are no
    horses; I told Yakov Alpatych so."
    
    "Why are there none?" asked the princess.
    
    "It's all God's scourge," said Dron. "What horses we had have been taken
    for the army or have died--this is such a year! It's not a case of
    feeding horses--we may die of hunger ourselves! As it is, some go three
    days without eating. We've nothing, we've been ruined."
    
    Princess Mary listened attentively to what he told her.
    
    "The peasants are ruined? They have no bread?" she asked.
    
    "They're dying of hunger," said Dron. "It's not a case of carting."
    
    "But why didn't you tell me, Dronushka? Isn't it possible to help them?
    I'll do all I can...."
    
    To Princess Mary it was strange that now, at a moment when such sorrow
    was filling her soul, there could be rich people and poor, and the rich
    could refrain from helping the poor. She had heard vaguely that there
    was such a thing as "landlord's corn" which was sometimes given to the
    peasants. She also knew that neither her father nor her brother would
    refuse to help the peasants in need, she only feared to make some
    mistake in speaking about the distribution of the grain she wished to
    give. She was glad such cares presented themselves, enabling her without
    scruple to forget her own grief. She began asking Dron about the
    peasants' needs and what there was in Bogucharovo that belonged to the
    landlord.
    
    "But we have grain belonging to my brother?" she said.
    
    "The landlord's grain is all safe," replied Dron proudly. "Our prince
    did not order it to be sold."
    
    "Give it to the peasants, let them have all they need; I give you leave
    in my brother's name," said she.
    
    Dron made no answer but sighed deeply.
    
    "Give them that corn if there is enough of it. Distribute it all. I give
    this order in my brother's name; and tell them that what is ours is
    theirs. We do not grudge them anything. Tell them so."
    
    Dron looked intently at the princess while she was speaking.
    
    "Discharge me, little mother, for God's sake! Order the keys to be taken
    from me," said he. "I have served twenty-three years and have done no
    wrong. Discharge me, for God's sake!"
    
    Princess Mary did not understand what he wanted of her or why he was
    asking to be discharged. She replied that she had never doubted his
    devotion and that she was ready to do anything for him and for the
    peasants.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    An hour later Dunyasha came to tell the princess that Dron had come, and
    all the peasants had assembled at the barn by the princess' order and
    wished to have word with their mistress.
    
    "But I never told them to come," said Princess Mary. "I only told Dron
    to let them have the grain."
    
    "Only, for God's sake, Princess dear, have them sent away and don't go
    out to them. It's all a trick," said Dunyasha, "and when Yakov Alpatych
    returns let us get away... and please don't..."
    
    "What is a trick?" asked Princess Mary in surprise.
    
    "I know it is, only listen to me for God's sake! Ask nurse too. They say
    they don't agree to leave Bogucharovo as you ordered."
    
    "You're making some mistake. I never ordered them to go away," said
    Princess Mary. "Call Dronushka."
    
    Dron came and confirmed Dunyasha's words; the peasants had come by the
    princess' order.
    
    "But I never sent for them," declared the princess. "You must have given
    my message wrong. I only said that you were to give them the grain."
    
    Dron only sighed in reply.
    
    "If you order it they will go away," said he.
    
    "No, no. I'll go out to them," said Princess Mary, and in spite of the
    nurse's and Dunyasha's protests she went out into the porch; Dron,
    Dunyasha, the nurse, and Michael Ivanovich following her.
    
    "They probably think I am offering them the grain to bribe them to
    remain here, while I myself go away leaving them to the mercy of the
    French," thought Princess Mary. "I will offer them monthly rations and
    housing at our Moscow estate. I am sure Andrew would do even more in my
    place," she thought as she went out in the twilight toward the crowd
    standing on the pasture by the barn.
    
    The men crowded closer together, stirred, and rapidly took off their
    hats. Princess Mary lowered her eyes and, tripping over her skirt, came
    close up to them. So many different eyes, old and young, were fixed on
    her, and there were so many different faces, that she could not
    distinguish any of them and, feeling that she must speak to them all at
    once, did not know how to do it. But again the sense that she
    represented her father and her brother gave her courage, and she boldly
    began her speech.
    
    "I am very glad you have come," she said without raising her eyes, and
    feeling her heart beating quickly and violently. "Dronushka tells me
    that the war has ruined you. That is our common misfortune, and I shall
    grudge nothing to help you. I am myself going away because it is
    dangerous here... the enemy is near... because... I am giving you
    everything, my friends, and I beg you to take everything, all our grain,
    so that you may not suffer want! And if you have been told that I am
    giving you the grain to keep you here--that is not true. On the
    contrary, I ask you to go with all your belongings to our estate near
    Moscow, and I promise you I will see to it that there you shall want for
    nothing. You shall be given food and lodging."
    
    The princess stopped. Sighs were the only sound heard in the crowd.
    
    "I am not doing this on my own account," she continued, "I do it in the
    name of my dead father, who was a good master to you, and of my brother
    and his son."
    
    Again she paused. No one broke the silence.
    
    "Ours is a common misfortune and we will share it together. All that is
    mine is yours," she concluded, scanning the faces before her.
    
    All eyes were gazing at her with one and the same expression. She could
    not fathom whether it was curiosity, devotion, gratitude, or
    apprehension and distrust--but the expression on all the faces was
    identical.
    
    "We are all very thankful for your bounty, but it won't do for us to
    take the landlord's grain," said a voice at the back of the crowd.
    
    "But why not?" asked the princess.
    
    No one replied and Princess Mary, looking round at the crowd, found that
    every eye she met now was immediately dropped.
    
    "But why don't you want to take it?" she asked again.
    
    No one answered.
    
    The silence began to oppress the princess and she tried to catch
    someone's eye.
    
    "Why don't you speak?" she inquired of a very old man who stood just in
    front of her leaning on his stick. "If you think something more is
    wanted, tell me! I will do anything," said she, catching his eye.
    
    But as if this angered him, he bent his head quite low and muttered:
    
    "Why should we agree? We don't want the grain."
    
    "Why should we give up everything? We don't agree. Don't agree.... We
    are sorry for you, but we're not willing. Go away yourself, alone..."
    came from various sides of the crowd.
    
    And again all the faces in that crowd bore an identical expression,
    though now it was certainly not an expression of curiosity or gratitude,
    but of angry resolve.
    
    "But you can't have understood me," said Princess Mary with a sad smile.
    "Why don't you want to go? I promise to house and feed you, while here
    the enemy would ruin you..."
    
    But her voice was drowned by the voices of the crowd.
    
    "We're not willing. Let them ruin us! We won't take your grain. We don't
    agree."
    
    Again Princess Mary tried to catch someone's eye, but not a single eye
    in the crowd was turned to her; evidently they were all trying to avoid
    her look. She felt strange and awkward.
    
    "Oh yes, an artful tale! Follow her into slavery! Pull down your houses
    and go into bondage! I dare say! 'I'll give you grain, indeed!' she
    says," voices in the crowd were heard saying.
    
    With drooping head Princess Mary left the crowd and went back to the
    house. Having repeated her order to Dron to have horses ready for her
    departure next morning, she went to her room and remained alone with her
    own thoughts.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    For a long time that night Princess Mary sat by the open window of her
    room hearing the sound of the peasants' voices that reached her from the
    village, but it was not of them she was thinking. She felt that she
    could not understand them however much she might think about them. She
    thought only of one thing, her sorrow, which, after the break caused by
    cares for the present, seemed already to belong to the past. Now she
    could remember it and weep or pray.
    
    After sunset the wind had dropped. The night was calm and fresh. Toward
    midnight the voices began to subside, a cock crowed, the full moon began
    to show from behind the lime trees, a fresh white dewy mist began to
    rise, and stillness reigned over the village and the house.
    
    Pictures of the near past--her father's illness and last moments--rose
    one after another to her memory. With mournful pleasure she now lingered
    over these images, repelling with horror only the last one, the picture
    of his death, which she felt she could not contemplate even in
    imagination at this still and mystic hour of night. And these pictures
    presented themselves to her so clearly and in such detail that they
    seemed now present, now past, and now future.
    
    She vividly recalled the moment when he had his first stroke and was
    being dragged along by his armpits through the garden at Bald Hills,
    muttering something with his helpless tongue, twitching his gray
    eyebrows and looking uneasily and timidly at her.
    
    "Even then he wanted to tell me what he told me the day he died," she
    thought. "He had always thought what he said then." And she recalled in
    all its detail the night at Bald Hills before he had the last stroke,
    when with a foreboding of disaster she had remained at home against his
    will. She had not slept and had stolen downstairs on tiptoe, and going
    to the door of the conservatory where he slept that night had listened
    at the door. In a suffering and weary voice he was saying something to
    Tikhon, speaking of the Crimea and its warm nights and of the Empress.
    Evidently he had wanted to talk. "And why didn't he call me? Why didn't
    he let me be there instead of Tikhon?" Princess Mary had thought and
    thought again now. "Now he will never tell anyone what he had in his
    soul. Never will that moment return for him or for me when he might have
    said all he longed to say, and not Tikhon but I might have heard and
    understood him. Why didn't I enter the room?" she thought. "Perhaps he
    would then have said to me what he said the day he died. While talking
    to Tikhon he asked about me twice. He wanted to see me, and I was
    standing close by, outside the door. It was sad and painful for him to
    talk to Tikhon who did not understand him. I remember how he began
    speaking to him about Lise as if she were alive--he had forgotten she
    was dead--and Tikhon reminded him that she was no more, and he shouted,
    'Fool!' He was greatly depressed. From behind the door I heard how he
    lay down on his bed groaning and loudly exclaimed, 'My God!' Why didn't
    I go in then? What could he have done to me? What could I have lost? And
    perhaps he would then have been comforted and would have said that word
    to me." And Princess Mary uttered aloud the caressing word he had said
    to her on the day of his death. "Dear-est!" she repeated, and began
    sobbing, with tears that relieved her soul. She now saw his face before
    her. And not the face she had known ever since she could remember and
    had always seen at a distance, but the timid, feeble face she had seen
    for the first time quite closely, with all its wrinkles and details,
    when she stooped near to his mouth to catch what he said.
    
    "Dear-est!" she repeated again.
    
    "What was he thinking when he uttered that word? What is he thinking
    now?" This question suddenly presented itself to her, and in answer she
    saw him before her with the expression that was on his face as he lay in
    his coffin with his chin bound up with a white handkerchief. And the
    horror that had seized her when she touched him and convinced herself
    that that was not he, but something mysterious and horrible, seized her
    again. She tried to think of something else and to pray, but could do
    neither. With wide-open eyes she gazed at the moonlight and the shadows,
    expecting every moment to see his dead face, and she felt that the
    silence brooding over the house and within it held her fast.
    
    "Dunyasha," she whispered. "Dunyasha!" she screamed wildly, and tearing
    herself out of this silence she ran to the servants' quarters to meet
    her old nurse and the maidservants who came running toward her.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    On the seventeenth of August Rostov and Ilyin, accompanied by Lavrushka
    who had just returned from captivity and by an hussar orderly, left
    their quarters at Yankovo, ten miles from Bogucharovo, and went for a
    ride--to try a new horse Ilyin had bought and to find out whether there
    was any hay to be had in the villages.
    
    For the last three days Bogucharovo had lain between the two hostile
    armies, so that it was as easy for the Russian rearguard to get to it as
    for the French vanguard; Rostov, as a careful squadron commander, wished
    to take such provisions as remained at Bogucharovo before the French
    could get them.
    
    Rostov and Ilyin were in the merriest of moods. On the way to
    Bogucharovo, a princely estate with a dwelling house and farm where they
    hoped to find many domestic serfs and pretty girls, they questioned
    Lavrushka about Napoleon and laughed at his stories, and raced one
    another to try Ilyin's horse.
    
    Rostov had no idea that the village he was entering was the property of
    that very Bolkonski who had been engaged to his sister.
    
    Rostov and Ilyin gave rein to their horses for a last race along the
    incline before reaching Bogucharovo, and Rostov, outstripping Ilyin, was
    the first to gallop into the village street.
    
    "You're first!" cried Ilyin, flushed.
    
    "Yes, always first both on the grassland and here," answered Rostov,
    stroking his heated Donets horse.
    
    "And I'd have won on my Frenchy, your excellency," said Lavrushka from
    behind, alluding to his shabby cart horse, "only I didn't wish to
    mortify you."
    
    They rode at a footpace to the barn, where a large crowd of peasants was
    standing.
    
    Some of the men bared their heads, others stared at the new arrivals
    without doffing their caps. Two tall old peasants with wrinkled faces
    and scanty beards emerged from the tavern, smiling, staggering, and
    singing some incoherent song, and approached the officers.
    
    "Fine fellows!" said Rostov laughing. "Is there any hay here?"
    
    "And how like one another," said Ilyin.
    
    "A mo-o-st me-r-r-y co-o-m-pa...!" sang one of the peasants with a
    blissful smile.
    
    One of the men came out of the crowd and went up to Rostov.
    
    "Who do you belong to?" he asked.
    
    "The French," replied Ilyin jestingly, "and here is Napoleon himself"--
    and he pointed to Lavrushka.
    
    "Then you are Russians?" the peasant asked again.
    
    "And is there a large force of you here?" said another, a short man,
    coming up.
    
    "Very large," answered Rostov. "But why have you collected here?" he
    added. "Is it a holiday?"
    
    "The old men have met to talk over the business of the commune," replied
    the peasant, moving away.
    
    At that moment, on the road leading from the big house, two women and a
    man in a white hat were seen coming toward the officers.
    
    "The one in pink is mine, so keep off!" said Ilyin on seeing Dunyasha
    running resolutely toward him.
    
    "She'll be ours!" said Lavrushka to Ilyin, winking.
    
    "What do you want, my pretty?" said Ilyin with a smile.
    
    "The princess ordered me to ask your regiment and your name."
    
    "This is Count Rostov, squadron commander, and I am your humble
    servant."
    
    "Co-o-om-pa-ny!" roared the tipsy peasant with a beatific smile as he
    looked at Ilyin talking to the girl. Following Dunyasha, Alpatych
    advanced to Rostov, having bared his head while still at a distance.
    
    "May I make bold to trouble your honor?" said he respectfully, but with
    a shade of contempt for the youthfulness of this officer and with a hand
    thrust into his bosom. "My mistress, daughter of General in Chief Prince
    Nicholas Bolkonski who died on the fifteenth of this month, finding
    herself in difficulties owing to the boorishness of these people"--he
    pointed to the peasants--"asks you to come up to the house.... Won't
    you, please, ride on a little farther," said Alpatych with a melancholy
    smile, "as it is not convenient in the presence of...?" He pointed to
    the two peasants who kept as close to him as horseflies to a horse.
    
    "Ah!... Alpatych... Ah, Yakov Alpatych... Grand! Forgive us for Christ's
    sake, eh?" said the peasants, smiling joyfully at him.
    
    Rostov looked at the tipsy peasants and smiled.
    
    "Or perhaps they amuse your honor?" remarked Alpatych with a staid air,
    as he pointed at the old men with his free hand.
    
    "No, there's not much to be amused at here," said Rostov, and rode on a
    little way. "What's the matter?" he asked.
    
    "I make bold to inform your honor that the rude peasants here don't wish
    to let the mistress leave the estate, and threaten to unharness her
    horses, so that though everything has been packed up since morning, her
    excellency cannot get away."
    
    "Impossible!" exclaimed Rostov.
    
    "I have the honor to report to you the actual truth," said Alpatych.
    
    Rostov dismounted, gave his horse to the orderly, and followed Alpatych
    to the house, questioning him as to the state of affairs. It appeared
    that the princess' offer of corn to the peasants the previous day, and
    her talk with Dron and at the meeting, had actually had so bad an effect
    that Dron had finally given up the keys and joined the peasants and had
    not appeared when Alpatych sent for him; and that in the morning when
    the princess gave orders to harness for her journey, the peasants had
    come in a large crowd to the barn and sent word that they would not let
    her leave the village: that there was an order not to move, and that
    they would unharness the horses. Alpatych had gone out to admonish them,
    but was told (it was chiefly Karp who did the talking, Dron not showing
    himself in the crowd) that they could not let the princess go, that
    there was an order to the contrary, but that if she stayed they would
    serve her as before and obey her in everything.
    
    At the moment when Rostov and Ilyin were galloping along the road,
    Princess Mary, despite the dissuasions of Alpatych, her nurse, and the
    maids, had given orders to harness and intended to start, but when the
    cavalrymen were espied they were taken for Frenchmen, the coachman ran
    away, and the women in the house began to wail.
    
    "Father! Benefactor! God has sent you!" exclaimed deeply moved voices as
    Rostov passed through the anteroom.
    
    Princess Mary was sitting helpless and bewildered in the large sitting
    room, when Rostov was shown in. She could not grasp who he was and why
    he had come, or what was happening to her. When she saw his Russian
    face, and by his walk and the first words he uttered recognized him as a
    man of her own class, she glanced at him with her deep radiant look and
    began speaking in a voice that faltered and trembled with emotion. This
    meeting immediately struck Rostov as a romantic event. "A helpless girl
    overwhelmed with grief, left to the mercy of coarse, rioting peasants!
    And what a strange fate sent me here! What gentleness and nobility there
    are in her features and expression!" thought he as he looked at her and
    listened to her timid story.
    
    When she began to tell him that all this had happened the day after her
    father's funeral, her voice trembled. She turned away, and then, as if
    fearing he might take her words as meant to move him to pity, looked at
    him with an apprehensive glance of inquiry. There were tears in Rostov's
    eyes. Princess Mary noticed this and glanced gratefully at him with that
    radiant look which caused the plainness of her face to be forgotten.
    
    "I cannot express, Princess, how glad I am that I happened to ride here
    and am able to show my readiness to serve you," said Rostov, rising. "Go
    when you please, and I give you my word of honor that no one shall dare
    to cause you annoyance if only you will allow me to act as your escort."
    And bowing respectfully, as if to a lady of royal blood, he moved toward
    the door.
    
    Rostov's deferential tone seemed to indicate that though he would
    consider himself happy to be acquainted with her, he did not wish to
    take advantage of her misfortunes to intrude upon her.
    
    Princess Mary understood this and appreciated his delicacy.
    
    "I am very, very grateful to you," she said in French, "but I hope it
    was all a misunderstanding and that no one is to blame for it." She
    suddenly began to cry.
    
    "Excuse me!" she said.
    
    Rostov, knitting his brows, left the room with another low bow.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    "Well, is she pretty? Ah, friend--my pink one is delicious; her name is
    Dunyasha...."
    
    But on glancing at Rostov's face Ilyin stopped short. He saw that his
    hero and commander was following quite a different train of thought.
    
    Rostov glanced angrily at Ilyin and without replying strode off with
    rapid steps to the village.
    
    "I'll show them; I'll give it to them, the brigands!" said he to
    himself.
    
    Alpatych at a gliding trot, only just managing not to run, kept up with
    him with difficulty.
    
    "What decision have you been pleased to come to?" said he.
    
    Rostov stopped and, clenching his fists, suddenly and sternly turned on
    Alpatych.
    
    "Decision? What decision? Old dotard!..." cried he. "What have you been
    about? Eh? The peasants are rioting, and you can't manage them? You're a
    traitor yourself! I know you. I'll flay you all alive!..." And as if
    afraid of wasting his store of anger, he left Alpatych and went rapidly
    forward. Alpatych, mastering his offended feelings, kept pace with
    Rostov at a gliding gait and continued to impart his views. He said the
    peasants were obdurate and that at the present moment it would be
    imprudent to "overresist" them without an armed force, and would it not
    be better first to send for the military?
    
    "I'll give them armed force... I'll 'overresist' them!" uttered Rostov
    meaninglessly, breathless with irrational animal fury and the need to
    vent it.
    
    Without considering what he would do he moved unconciously with quick,
    resolute steps toward the crowd. And the nearer he drew to it the more
    Alpatych felt that this unreasonable action might produce good results.
    The peasants in the crowd were similarly impressed when they saw
    Rostov's rapid, firm steps and resolute, frowning face.
    
    After the hussars had come to the village and Rostov had gone to see the
    princess, a certain confusion and dissension had arisen among the crowd.
    Some of the peasants said that these new arrivals were Russians and
    might take it amiss that the mistress was being detained. Dron was of
    this opinion, but as soon as he expressed it Karp and others attacked
    their ex-Elder.
    
    "How many years have you been fattening on the commune?" Karp shouted at
    him. "It's all one to you! You'll dig up your pot of money and take it
    away with you.... What does it matter to you whether our homes are
    ruined or not?"
    
    "We've been told to keep order, and that no one is to leave their homes
    or take away a single grain, and that's all about it!" cried another.
    
    "It was your son's turn to be conscripted, but no fear! You begrudged
    your lump of a son," a little old man suddenly began attacking Dron--
    "and so they took my Vanka to be shaved for a soldier! But we all have
    to die."
    
    "To be sure, we all have to die. I'm not against the commune," said
    Dron.
    
    "That's it--not against it! You've filled your belly...."
    
    The two tall peasants had their say. As soon as Rostov, followed by
    Ilyin, Lavrushka, and Alpatych, came up to the crowd, Karp, thrusting
    his fingers into his belt and smiling a little, walked to the front.
    Dron on the contrary retired to the rear and the crowd drew closer
    together.
    
    "Who is your Elder here? Hey?" shouted Rostov, coming up to the crowd
    with quick steps.
    
    "The Elder? What do you want with him?..." asked Karp.
    
    But before the words were well out of his mouth, his cap flew off and a
    fierce blow jerked his head to one side.
    
    "Caps off, traitors!" shouted Rostov in a wrathful voice. "Where's the
    Elder?" he cried furiously.
    
    "The Elder.... He wants the Elder!... Dron Zakharych, you!" meek and
    flustered voices here and there were heard calling and caps began to
    come off their heads.
    
    "We don't riot, we're following the orders," declared Karp, and at that
    moment several voices began speaking together.
    
    "It's as the old men have decided--there's too many of you giving
    orders."
    
    "Arguing? Mutiny!... Brigands! Traitors!" cried Rostov unmeaningly in a
    voice not his own, gripping Karp by the collar. "Bind him, bind him!" he
    shouted, though there was no one to bind him but Lavrushka and Alpatych.
    
    Lavrushka, however, ran up to Karp and seized him by the arms from
    behind.
    
    "Shall I call up our men from beyond the hill?" he called out.
    
    Alpatych turned to the peasants and ordered two of them by name to come
    and bind Karp. The men obediently came out of the crowd and began taking
    off their belts.
    
    "Where's the Elder?" demanded Rostov in a loud voice.
    
    With a pale and frowning face Dron stepped out of the crowd.
    
    "Are you the Elder? Bind him, Lavrushka!" shouted Rostov, as if that
    order, too, could not possibly meet with any opposition.
    
    And in fact two more peasants began binding Dron, who took off his own
    belt and handed it to them, as if to aid them.
    
    "And you all listen to me!" said Rostov to the peasants. "Be off to your
    houses at once, and don't let one of your voices be heard!"
    
    "Why, we've not done any harm! We did it just out of foolishness. It's
    all nonsense... I said then that it was not in order," voices were heard
    bickering with one another.
    
    "There! What did I say?" said Alpatych, coming into his own again. "It's
    wrong, lads!"
    
    "All our stupidity, Yakov Alpatych," came the answers, and the crowd
    began at once to disperse through the village.
    
    The two bound men were led off to the master's house. The two drunken
    peasants followed them.
    
    "Aye, when I look at you!..." said one of them to Karp.
    
    "How can one talk to the masters like that? What were you thinking of,
    you fool?" added the other--"A real fool!"
    
    Two hours later the carts were standing in the courtyard of the
    Bogucharovo house. The peasants were briskly carrying out the
    proprietor's goods and packing them on the carts, and Dron, liberated at
    Princess Mary's wish from the cupboard where he had been confined, was
    standing in the yard directing the men.
    
    "Don't put it in so carelessly," said one of the peasants, a man with a
    round smiling face, taking a casket from a housemaid. "You know it has
    cost money! How can you chuck it in like that or shove it under the cord
    where it'll get rubbed? I don't like that way of doing things. Let it
    all be done properly, according to rule. Look here, put it under the
    bast matting and cover it with hay--that's the way!"
    
    "Eh, books, books!" said another peasant, bringing out Prince Andrew's
    library cupboards. "Don't catch up against it! It's heavy, lads--solid
    books."
    
    "Yes, they worked all day and didn't play!" remarked the tall, round-
    faced peasant gravely, pointing with a significant wink at the
    dictionaries that were on the top.
    
    Unwilling to obtrude himself on the princess, Rostov did not go back to
    the house but remained in the village awaiting her departure. When her
    carriage drove out of the house, he mounted and accompanied her eight
    miles from Bogucharovo to where the road was occupied by our troops. At
    the inn at Yankovo he respectfully took leave of her, for the first time
    permitting himself to kiss her hand.
    
    "How can you speak so!" he blushingly replied to Princess Mary's
    expressions of gratitude for her deliverance, as she termed what had
    occurred. "Any police officer would have done as much! If we had had
    only peasants to fight, we should not have let the enemy come so far,"
    said he with a sense of shame and wishing to change the subject. "I am
    only happy to have had the opportunity of making your acquaintance.
    Good-bye, Princess. I wish you happiness and consolation and hope to
    meet you again in happier circumstances. If you don't want to make me
    blush, please don't thank me!"
    
    But the princess, if she did not again thank him in words, thanked him
    with the whole expression of her face, radiant with gratitude and
    tenderness. She could not believe that there was nothing to thank him
    for. On the contrary, it seemed to her certain that had he not been
    there she would have perished at the hands of the mutineers and of the
    French, and that he had exposed himself to terrible and obvious danger
    to save her, and even more certain was it that he was a man of lofty and
    noble soul, able to understand her position and her sorrow. His kind,
    honest eyes, with the tears rising in them when she herself had begun to
    cry as she spoke of her loss, did not leave her memory.
    
    When she had taken leave of him and remained alone she suddenly felt her
    eyes filling with tears, and then not for the first time the strange
    question presented itself to her: did she love him?
    
    On the rest of the way to Moscow, though the princess' position was not
    a cheerful one, Dunyasha, who went with her in the carriage, more than
    once noticed that her mistress leaned out of the window and smiled at
    something with an expression of mingled joy and sorrow.
    
    "Well, supposing I do love him?" thought Princess Mary.
    
    Ashamed as she was of acknowledging to herself that she had fallen in
    love with a man who would perhaps never love her, she comforted herself
    with the thought that no one would ever know it and that she would not
    be to blame if, without ever speaking of it to anyone, she continued to
    the end of her life to love the man with whom she had fallen in love for
    the first and last time in her life.
    
    Sometimes when she recalled his looks, his sympathy, and his words,
    happiness did not appear impossible to her. It was at those moments that
    Dunyasha noticed her smiling as she looked out of the carriage window.
    
    "Was it not fate that brought him to Bogucharovo, and at that very
    moment?" thought Princess Mary. "And that caused his sister to refuse my
    brother?" And in all this Princess Mary saw the hand of Providence.
    
    The impression the princess made on Rostov was a very agreeable one. To
    remember her gave him pleasure, and when his comrades, hearing of his
    adventure at Bogucharovo, rallied him on having gone to look for hay and
    having picked up one of the wealthiest heiresses in Russia, he grew
    angry. It made him angry just because the idea of marrying the gentle
    Princess Mary, who was attractive to him and had an enormous fortune,
    had against his will more than once entered his head. For himself
    personally Nicholas could not wish for a better wife: by marrying her he
    would make the countess his mother happy, would be able to put his
    father's affairs in order, and would even--he felt it--ensure Princess
    Mary's happiness.
    
    But Sonya? And his plighted word? That was why Rostov grew angry when he
    was rallied about Princess Bolkonskaya.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    On receiving command of the armies Kutuzov remembered Prince Andrew and
    sent an order for him to report at headquarters.
    
    Prince Andrew arrived at Tsarevo-Zaymishche on the very day and at the
    very hour that Kutuzov was reviewing the troops for the first time. He
    stopped in the village at the priest's house in front of which stood the
    commander-in-chief's carriage, and he sat down on the bench at the gate
    awaiting his Serene Highness, as everyone now called Kutuzov. From the
    field beyond the village came now sounds of regimental music and now the
    roar of many voices shouting "Hurrah!" to the new commander-in-chief.
    Two orderlies, a courier and a major-domo, stood near by, some ten paces
    from Prince Andrew, availing themselves of Kutuzov's absence and of the
    fine weather. A short, swarthy lieutenant colonel of hussars with thick
    mustaches and whiskers rode up to the gate and, glancing at Prince
    Andrew, inquired whether his Serene Highness was putting up there and
    whether he would soon be back.
    
    Prince Andrew replied that he was not on his Serene Highness' staff but
    was himself a new arrival. The lieutenant colonel turned to a smart
    orderly, who, with the peculiar contempt with which a commander-in-
    chief's orderly speaks to officers, replied:
    
    "What? His Serene Highness? I expect he'll be here soon. What do you
    want?"
    
    The lieutenant colonel of hussars smiled beneath his mustache at the
    orderly's tone, dismounted, gave his horse to a dispatch runner, and
    approached Bolkonski with a slight bow. Bolkonski made room for him on
    the bench and the lieutenant colonel sat down beside him.
    
    "You're also waiting for the commander-in-chief?" said he. "They say he
    weceives evewyone, thank God!... It's awful with those sausage eaters!
    Ermolov had weason to ask to be pwomoted to be a German! Now p'waps
    Wussians will get a look in. As it was, devil only knows what was
    happening. We kept wetweating and wetweating. Did you take part in the
    campaign?" he asked.
    
    "I had the pleasure," replied Prince Andrew, "not only of taking part in
    the retreat but of losing in that retreat all I held dear--not to
    mention the estate and home of my birth--my father, who died of grief. I
    belong to the province of Smolensk."
    
    "Ah? You're Pwince Bolkonski? Vewy glad to make your acquaintance! I'm
    Lieutenant Colonel Denisov, better known as 'Vaska,'" said Denisov,
    pressing Prince Andrew's hand and looking into his face with a
    particularly kindly attention. "Yes, I heard," said he sympathetically,
    and after a short pause added: "Yes, it's Scythian warfare. It's all
    vewy well--only not for those who get it in the neck. So you are Pwince
    Andwew Bolkonski?" He swayed his head. "Vewy pleased, Pwince, to make
    your acquaintance!" he repeated again, smiling sadly, and he again
    pressed Prince Andrew's hand.
    
    Prince Andrew knew Denisov from what Natasha had told him of her first
    suitor. This memory carried him sadly and sweetly back to those painful
    feelings of which he had not thought lately, but which still found place
    in his soul. Of late he had received so many new and very serious
    impressions--such as the retreat from Smolensk, his visit to Bald Hills,
    and the recent news of his father's death--and had experienced so many
    emotions, that for a long time past those memories had not entered his
    mind, and now that they did, they did not act on him with nearly their
    former strength. For Denisov, too, the memories awakened by the name of
    Bolkonski belonged to a distant, romantic past, when after supper and
    after Natasha's singing he had proposed to a little girl of fifteen
    without realizing what he was doing. He smiled at the recollection of
    that time and of his love for Natasha, and passed at once to what now
    interested him passionately and exclusively. This was a plan of campaign
    he had devised while serving at the outposts during the retreat. He had
    proposed that plan to Barclay de Tolly and now wished to propose it to
    Kutuzov. The plan was based on the fact that the French line of
    operation was too extended, and it proposed that instead of, or
    concurrently with, action on the front to bar the advance of the French,
    we should attack their line of communication. He began explaining his
    plan to Prince Andrew.
    
    "They can't hold all that line. It's impossible. I will undertake to
    bweak thwough. Give me five hundwed men and I will bweak the line,
    that's certain! There's only one way--guewilla warfare!"
    
    Denisov rose and began gesticulating as he explained his plan to
    Bolkonski. In the midst of his explanation shouts were heard from the
    army, growing more incoherent and more diffused, mingling with music and
    songs and coming from the field where the review was held. Sounds of
    hoofs and shouts were nearing the village.
    
    "He's coming! He's coming!" shouted a Cossack standing at the gate.
    
    Bolkonski and Denisov moved to the gate, at which a knot of soldiers (a
    guard of honor) was standing, and they saw Kutuzov coming down the
    street mounted on a rather small sorrel horse. A huge suite of generals
    rode behind him. Barclay was riding almost beside him, and a crowd of
    officers ran after and around them shouting, "Hurrah!"
    
    His adjutants galloped into the yard before him. Kutuzov was impatiently
    urging on his horse, which ambled smoothly under his weight, and he
    raised his hand to his white Horse Guard's cap with a red band and no
    peak, nodding his head continually. When he came up to the guard of
    honor, a fine set of Grenadiers mostly wearing decorations, who were
    giving him the salute, he looked at them silently and attentively for
    nearly a minute with the steady gaze of a commander and then turned to
    the crowd of generals and officers surrounding him. Suddenly his face
    assumed a subtle expression, he shrugged his shoulders with an air of
    perplexity.
    
    "And with such fine fellows to retreat and retreat! Well, good-by,
    General," he added, and rode into the yard past Prince Andrew and
    Denisov.
    
    "Hurrah! hurrah! hurrah!" shouted those behind him.
    
    Since Prince Andrew had last seen him Kutuzov had grown still more
    corpulent, flaccid, and fat. But the bleached eyeball, the scar, and the
    familiar weariness of his expression were still the same. He was wearing
    the white Horse Guard's cap and a military overcoat with a whip hanging
    over his shoulder by a thin strap. He sat heavily and swayed limply on
    his brisk little horse.
    
    "Whew... whew... whew!" he whistled just audibly as he rode into the
    yard. His face expressed the relief of relaxed strain felt by a man who
    means to rest after a ceremony. He drew his left foot out of the stirrup
    and, lurching with his whole body and puckering his face with the
    effort, raised it with difficulty onto the saddle, leaned on his knee,
    groaned, and slipped down into the arms of the Cossacks and adjutants
    who stood ready to assist him.
    
    He pulled himself together, looked round, screwing up his eyes, glanced
    at Prince Andrew, and, evidently not recognizing him, moved with his
    waddling gait to the porch. "Whew... whew... whew!" he whistled, and
    again glanced at Prince Andrew. As often occurs with old men, it was
    only after some seconds that the impression produced by Prince Andrew's
    face linked itself up with Kutuzov's remembrance of his personality.
    
    "Ah, how do you do, my dear prince? How do you do, my dear boy? Come
    along..." said he, glancing wearily round, and he stepped onto the porch
    which creaked under his weight.
    
    He unbuttoned his coat and sat down on a bench in the porch.
    
    "And how's your father?"
    
    "I received news of his death, yesterday," replied Prince Andrew
    abruptly.
    
    Kutuzov looked at him with eyes wide open with dismay and then took off
    his cap and crossed himself:
    
    "May the kingdom of Heaven be his! God's will be done to us all!" He
    sighed deeply, his whole chest heaving, and was silent for a while. "I
    loved him and respected him, and sympathize with you with all my heart."
    
    He embraced Prince Andrew, pressing him to his fat breast, and for some
    time did not let him go. When he released him Prince Andrew saw that
    Kutuzov's flabby lips were trembling and that tears were in his eyes. He
    sighed and pressed on the bench with both hands to raise himself.
    
    "Come! Come with me, we'll have a talk," said he.
    
    But at that moment Denisov, no more intimidated by his superiors than by
    the enemy, came with jingling spurs up the steps of the porch, despite
    the angry whispers of the adjutants who tried to stop him. Kutuzov, his
    hands still pressed on the seat, glanced at him glumly. Denisov, having
    given his name, announced that he had to communicate to his Serene
    Highness a matter of great importance for their country's welfare.
    Kutuzov looked wearily at him and, lifting his hands with a gesture of
    annoyance, folded them across his stomach, repeating the words: "For our
    country's welfare? Well, what is it? Speak!" Denisov blushed like a girl
    (it was strange to see the color rise in that shaggy, bibulous, time-
    worn face) and boldly began to expound his plan of cutting the enemy's
    lines of communication between Smolensk and Vyazma. Denisov came from
    those parts and knew the country well. His plan seemed decidedly a good
    one, especially from the strength of conviction with which he spoke.
    Kutuzov looked down at his own legs, occasionally glancing at the door
    of the adjoining hut as if expecting something unpleasant to emerge from
    it. And from that hut, while Denisov was speaking, a general with a
    portfolio under his arm really did appear.
    
    "What?" said Kutuzov, in the midst of Denisov's explanations, "are you
    ready so soon?"
    
    "Ready, your Serene Highness," replied the general.
    
    Kutuzov swayed his head, as much as to say: "How is one man to deal with
    it all?" and again listened to Denisov.
    
    "I give my word of honor as a Wussian officer," said Denisov, "that I
    can bweak Napoleon's line of communication!"
    
    "What relation are you to Intendant General Kiril Andreevich Denisov?"
    asked Kutuzov, interrupting him.
    
    "He is my uncle, your Sewene Highness."
    
    "Ah, we were friends," said Kutuzov cheerfully. "All right, all right,
    friend, stay here at the staff and tomorrow we'll have a talk."
    
    With a nod to Denisov he turned away and put out his hand for the papers
    Konovnitsyn had brought him.
    
    "Would not your Serene Highness like to come inside?" said the general
    on duty in a discontented voice, "the plans must be examined and several
    papers have to be signed."
    
    An adjutant came out and announced that everything was in readiness
    within. But Kutuzov evidently did not wish to enter that room till he
    was disengaged. He made a grimace...
    
    "No, tell them to bring a small table out here, my dear boy. I'll look
    at them here," said he. "Don't go away," he added, turning to Prince
    Andrew, who remained in the porch and listened to the general's report.
    
    While this was being given, Prince Andrew heard the whisper of a woman's
    voice and the rustle of a silk dress behind the door. Several times on
    glancing that way he noticed behind that door a plump, rosy, handsome
    woman in a pink dress with a lilac silk kerchief on her head, holding a
    dish and evidently awaiting the entrance of the commander-in-chief.
    Kutuzov's adjutant whispered to Prince Andrew that this was the wife of
    the priest whose home it was, and that she intended to offer his Serene
    Highness bread and salt. "Her husband has welcomed his Serene Highness
    with the cross at the church, and she intends to welcome him in the
    house.... She's very pretty," added the adjutant with a smile. At those
    words Kutuzov looked round. He was listening to the general's report--
    which consisted chiefly of a criticism of the position at Tsarevo-
    Zaymishche--as he had listened to Denisov, and seven years previously
    had listened to the discussion at the Austerlitz council of war. He
    evidently listened only because he had ears which, though there was a
    piece of tow in one of them, could not help hearing; but it was evident
    that nothing the general could say would surprise or even interest him,
    that he knew all that would be said beforehand, and heard it all only
    because he had to, as one has to listen to the chanting of a service of
    prayer. All that Denisov had said was clever and to the point. What the
    general was saying was even more clever and to the point, but it was
    evident that Kutuzov despised knowledge and cleverness, and knew of
    something else that would decide the matter--something independent of
    cleverness and knowledge. Prince Andrew watched the commander-in-chief's
    face attentively, and the only expression he could see there was one of
    boredom, curiosity as to the meaning of the feminine whispering behind
    the door, and a desire to observe propriety. It was evident that Kutuzov
    despised cleverness and learning and even the patriotic feeling shown by
    Denisov, but despised them not because of his own intellect, feelings,
    or knowledge--he did not try to display any of these--but because of
    something else. He despised them because of his old age and experience
    of life. The only instruction Kutuzov gave of his own accord during that
    report referred to looting by the Russian troops. At the end of the
    report the general put before him for signature a paper relating to the
    recovery of payment from army commanders for green oats mown down by the
    soldiers, when landowners lodged petitions for compensation.
    
    After hearing the matter, Kutuzov smacked his lips together and shook
    his head.
    
    "Into the stove... into the fire with it! I tell you once for all, my
    dear fellow," said he, "into the fire with all such things! Let them cut
    the crops and burn wood to their hearts' content. I don't order it or
    allow it, but I don't exact compensation either. One can't get on
    without it. 'When wood is chopped the chips will fly.'" He looked at the
    paper again. "Oh, this German precision!" he muttered, shaking his head.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    "Well, that's all!" said Kutuzov as he signed the last of the documents,
    and rising heavily and smoothing out the folds in his fat white neck he
    moved toward the door with a more cheerful expression.
    
    The priest's wife, flushing rosy red, caught up the dish she had after
    all not managed to present at the right moment, though she had so long
    been preparing for it, and with a low bow offered it to Kutuzov.
    
    He screwed up his eyes, smiled, lifted her chin with his hand, and said:
    
    "Ah, what a beauty! Thank you, sweetheart!"
    
    He took some gold pieces from his trouser pocket and put them on the
    dish for her. "Well, my dear, and how are we getting on?" he asked,
    moving to the door of the room assigned to him. The priest's wife
    smiled, and with dimples in her rosy cheeks followed him into the room.
    The adjutant came out to the porch and asked Prince Andrew to lunch with
    him. Half an hour later Prince Andrew was again called to Kutuzov. He
    found him reclining in an armchair, still in the same unbuttoned
    overcoat. He had in his hand a French book which he closed as Prince
    Andrew entered, marking the place with a knife. Prince Andrew saw by the
    cover that it was Les Chevaliers du Cygne by Madame de Genlis.
    
    "Well, sit down, sit down here. Let's have a talk," said Kutuzov. "It's
    sad, very sad. But remember, my dear fellow, that I am a father to you,
    a second father...."
    
    Prince Andrew told Kutuzov all he knew of his father's death, and what
    he had seen at Bald Hills when he passed through it.
    
    "What... what they have brought us to!" Kutuzov suddenly cried in an
    agitated voice, evidently picturing vividly to himself from Prince
    Andrew's story the condition Russia was in. "But give me time, give me
    time!" he said with a grim look, evidently not wishing to continue this
    agitating conversation, and added: "I sent for you to keep you with me."
    
    "I thank your Serene Highness, but I fear I am no longer fit for the
    staff," replied Prince Andrew with a smile which Kutuzov noticed.
    
    Kutuzov glanced inquiringly at him.
    
    "But above all," added Prince Andrew, "I have grown used to my regiment,
    am fond of the officers, and I fancy the men also like me. I should be
    sorry to leave the regiment. If I decline the honor of being with you,
    believe me..."
    
    A shrewd, kindly, yet subtly derisive expression lit up Kutuzov's podgy
    face. He cut Bolkonski short.
    
    "I am sorry, for I need you. But you're right, you're right! It's not
    here that men are needed. Advisers are always plentiful, but men are
    not. The regiments would not be what they are if the would-be advisers
    served there as you do. I remember you at Austerlitz.... I remember,
    yes, I remember you with the standard!" said Kutuzov, and a flush of
    pleasure suffused Prince Andrew's face at this recollection.
    
    Taking his hand and drawing him downwards, Kutuzov offered his cheek to
    be kissed, and again Prince Andrew noticed tears in the old man's eyes.
    Though Prince Andrew knew that Kutuzov's tears came easily, and that he
    was particularly tender to and considerate of him from a wish to show
    sympathy with his loss, yet this reminder of Austerlitz was both
    pleasant and flattering to him.
    
    "Go your way and God be with you. I know your path is the path of
    honor!" He paused. "I missed you at Bucharest, but I needed someone to
    send." And changing the subject, Kutuzov began to speak of the Turkish
    war and the peace that had been concluded. "Yes, I have been much
    blamed," he said, "both for that war and the peace... but everything
    came at the right time. Tout vient a point a celui qui sait attendre. *
    And there were as many advisers there as here..." he went on, returning
    to the subject of "advisers" which evidently occupied him. "Ah, those
    advisers!" said he. "If we had listened to them all we should not have
    made peace with Turkey and should not have been through with that war.
    Everything in haste, but more haste, less speed. Kamenski would have
    been lost if he had not died. He stormed fortresses with thirty thousand
    men. It is not difficult to capture a fortress but it is difficult to
    win a campaign. For that, not storming and attacking but patience and
    time are wanted. Kamenski sent soldiers to Rustchuk, but I only employed
    these two things and took more fortresses than Kamenski and made them
    Turks eat horseflesh!" He swayed his head. "And the French shall too,
    believe me," he went on, growing warmer and beating his chest, "I'll
    make them eat horseflesh!" And tears again dimmed his eyes.
    
    * "Everything comes in time to him who knows how to wait."
    
    "But shan't we have to accept battle?" remarked Prince Andrew.
    
    "We shall if everybody wants it; it can't be helped.... But believe me,
    my dear boy, there is nothing stronger than those two: patience and
    time, they will do it all. But the advisers n'entendent pas de cette
    oreille, voila le mal. * Some want a thing--others don't. What's one to
    do?" he asked, evidently expecting an answer. "Well, what do you want us
    to do?" he repeated and his eye shone with a deep, shrewd look. "I'll
    tell you what to do," he continued, as Prince Andrew still did not
    reply: "I will tell you what to do, and what I do. Dans le doute, mon
    cher," he paused, "abstiens-toi" *(2)--he articulated the French proverb
    deliberately.
    
    * "Don't see it that way, that's the trouble."
    
    * (2) "When in doubt, my dear fellow, do nothing."
    
    "Well, good-by, my dear fellow; remember that with all my heart I share
    your sorrow, and that for you I am not a Serene Highness, nor a prince,
    nor a commander-in-chief, but a father! If you want anything come
    straight to me. Good-bye, my dear boy."
    
    Again he embraced and kissed Prince Andrew, but before the latter had
    left the room Kutuzov gave a sigh of relief and went on with his
    unfinished novel, Les Chevaliers du Cygne by Madame de Genlis.
    
    Prince Andrew could not have explained how or why it was, but after that
    interview with Kutuzov he went back to his regiment reassured as to the
    general course of affairs and as to the man to whom it had been
    entrusted. The more he realized the absence of all personal motive in
    that old man--in whom there seemed to remain only the habit of passions,
    and in place of an intellect (grouping events and drawing conclusions)
    only the capacity calmly to contemplate the course of events--the more
    reassured he was that everything would be as it should. "He will not
    bring in any plan of his own. He will not devise or undertake anything,"
    thought Prince Andrew, "but he will hear everything, remember
    everything, and put everything in its place. He will not hinder anything
    useful nor allow anything harmful. He understands that there is
    something stronger and more important than his own will--the inevitable
    course of events, and he can see them and grasp their significance, and
    seeing that significance can refrain from meddling and renounce his
    personal wish directed to something else. And above all," thought Prince
    Andrew, "one believes in him because he's Russian, despite the novel by
    Genlis and the French proverbs, and because his voice shook when he
    said: 'What they have brought us to!' and had a sob in it when he said
    he would 'make them eat horseflesh!'"
    
    On such feelings, more or less dimly shared by all, the unanimity and
    general approval were founded with which, despite court influences, the
    popular choice of Kutuzov as commander-in-chief was received.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    After the Emperor had left Moscow, life flowed on there in its usual
    course, and its course was so very usual that it was difficult to
    remember the recent days of patriotic elation and ardor, hard to believe
    that Russia was really in danger and that the members of the English
    Club were also sons of the Fatherland ready to sacrifice everything for
    it. The one thing that recalled the patriotic fervor everyone had
    displayed during the Emperor's stay was the call for contributions of
    men and money, a necessity that as soon as the promises had been made
    assumed a legal, official form and became unavoidable.
    
    With the enemy's approach to Moscow, the Moscovites' view of their
    situation did not grow more serious but on the contrary became even more
    frivolous, as always happens with people who see a great danger
    approaching. At the approach of danger there are always two voices that
    speak with equal power in the human soul: one very reasonably tells a
    man to consider the nature of the danger and the means of escaping it;
    the other, still more reasonably, says that it is too depressing and
    painful to think of the danger, since it is not in man's power to
    foresee everything and avert the general course of events, and it is
    therefore better to disregard what is painful till it comes, and to
    think about what is pleasant. In solitude a man generally listens to the
    first voice, but in society to the second. So it was now with the
    inhabitants of Moscow. It was long since people had been as gay in
    Moscow as that year.
    
    Rostopchin's broadsheets, headed by woodcuts of a drink shop, a potman,
    and a Moscow burgher called Karpushka Chigirin, "who--having been a
    militiaman and having had rather too much at the pub--heard that
    Napoleon wished to come to Moscow, grew angry, abused the French in very
    bad language, came out of the drink shop, and, under the sign of the
    eagle, began to address the assembled people," were read and discussed,
    together with the latest of Vasili Lvovich Pushkin's bouts rimes.
    
    In the corner room at the club, members gathered to read these
    broadsheets, and some liked the way Karpushka jeered at the French,
    saying: "They will swell up with Russian cabbage, burst with our
    buckwheat porridge, and choke themselves with cabbage soup. They are all
    dwarfs and one peasant woman will toss three of them with a hayfork."
    Others did not like that tone and said it was stupid and vulgar. It was
    said that Rostopchin had expelled all Frenchmen and even all foreigners
    from Moscow, and that there had been some spies and agents of Napoleon
    among them; but this was told chiefly to introduce Rostopchin's witty
    remark on that occasion. The foreigners were deported to Nizhni by boat,
    and Rostopchin had said to them in French: "Rentrez en vousmemes; entrez
    dans la barque, et n'en faites pas une barque de Charon." * There was
    talk of all the government offices having been already removed from
    Moscow, and to this Shinshin's witticism was added--that for that alone
    Moscow ought to be grateful to Napoleon. It was said that Mamonov's
    regiment would cost him eight hundred thousand rubles, and that Bezukhov
    had spent even more on his, but that the best thing about Bezukhov's
    action was that he himself was going to don a uniform and ride at the
    head of his regiment without charging anything for the show.
    
    * "Think it over; get into the barque, and take care not to make it a
    barque of Charon."
    
    "You don't spare anyone," said Julie Drubetskaya as she collected and
    pressed together a bunch of raveled lint with her thin, beringed
    fingers.
    
    Julie was preparing to leave Moscow next day and was giving a farewell
    soiree.
    
    "Bezukhov est ridicule, but he is so kind and good-natured. What
    pleasure is there to be so caustique?"
    
    "A forfeit!" cried a young man in militia uniform whom Julie called "mon
    chevalier," and who was going with her to Nizhni.
    
    In Julie's set, as in many other circles in Moscow, it had been agreed
    that they would speak nothing but Russian and that those who made a slip
    and spoke French should pay fines to the Committee of Voluntary
    Contributions.
    
    "Another forfeit for a Gallicism," said a Russian writer who was
    present. "'What pleasure is there to be' is not Russian!"
    
    "You spare no one," continued Julie to the young man without heeding the
    author's remark.
    
    "For caustique--I am guilty and will pay, and I am prepared to pay again
    for the pleasure of telling you the truth. For Gallicisms I won't be
    responsible," she remarked, turning to the author: "I have neither the
    money nor the time, like Prince Galitsyn, to engage a master to teach me
    Russian!"
    
    "Ah, here he is!" she added. "Quand on... No, no," she said to the
    militia officer, "you won't catch me. Speak of the sun and you see its
    rays!" and she smiled amiably at Pierre. "We were just talking of you,"
    she said with the facility in lying natural to a society woman. "We were
    saying that your regiment would be sure to be better than Mamonov's."
    
    "Oh, don't talk to me of my regiment," replied Pierre, kissing his
    hostess' hand and taking a seat beside her. "I am so sick of it."
    
    "You will, of course, command it yourself?" said Julie, directing a sly,
    sarcastic glance toward the militia officer.
    
    The latter in Pierre's presence had ceased to be caustic, and his face
    expressed perplexity as to what Julie's smile might mean. In spite of
    his absent-mindedness and good nature, Pierre's personality immediately
    checked any attempt to ridicule him to his face.
    
    "No," said Pierre, with a laughing glance at his big, stout body. "I
    should make too good a target for the French, besides I am afraid I
    should hardly be able to climb onto a horse."
    
    Among those whom Julie's guests happened to choose to gossip about were
    the Rostovs.
    
    "I hear that their affairs are in a very bad way," said Julie. "And he
    is so unreasonable, the count himself I mean. The Razumovskis wanted to
    buy his house and his estate near Moscow, but it drags on and on. He
    asks too much."
    
    "No, I think the sale will come off in a few days," said someone.
    "Though it is madness to buy anything in Moscow now."
    
    "Why?" asked Julie. "You don't think Moscow is in danger?"
    
    "Then why are you leaving?"
    
    "I? What a question! I am going because... well, because everyone is
    going: and besides--I am not Joan of Arc or an Amazon."
    
    "Well, of course, of course! Let me have some more strips of linen."
    
    "If he manages the business properly he will be able to pay off all his
    debts," said the militia officer, speaking of Rostov.
    
    "A kindly old man but not up to much. And why do they stay on so long in
    Moscow? They meant to leave for the country long ago. Natalie is quite
    well again now, isn't she?" Julie asked Pierre with a knowing smile.
    
    "They are waiting for their younger son," Pierre replied. "He joined
    Obolenski's Cossacks and went to Belaya Tserkov where the regiment is
    being formed. But now they have had him transferred to my regiment and
    are expecting him every day. The count wanted to leave long ago, but the
    countess won't on any account leave Moscow till her son returns."
    
    "I met them the day before yesterday at the Arkharovs'. Natalie has
    recovered her looks and is brighter. She sang a song. How easily some
    people get over everything!"
    
    "Get over what?" inquired Pierre, looking displeased.
    
    Julie smiled.
    
    "You know, Count, such knights as you are only found in Madame de
    Souza's novels."
    
    "What knights? What do you mean?" demanded Pierre, blushing.
    
    "Oh, come, my dear count! C'est la fable de tout Moscou. Je vous admire,
    ma parole d'honneur!" *
    
    * "It is the talk of all Moscow. My word, I admire you!"
    
    "Forfeit, forfeit!" cried the militia officer.
    
    "All right, one can't talk--how tiresome!"
    
    "What is 'the talk of all Moscow'?" Pierre asked angrily, rising to his
    feet.
    
    "Come now, Count, you know!"
    
    "I don't know anything about it," said Pierre.
    
    "I know you were friendly with Natalie, and so... but I was always more
    friendly with Vera--that dear Vera."
    
    "No, madame!" Pierre continued in a tone of displeasure, "I have not
    taken on myself the role of Natalie Rostova's knight at all, and have
    not been to their house for nearly a month. But I cannot understand the
    cruelty..."
    
    "Qui s'excuse s'accuse," * said Julie, smiling and waving the lint
    triumphantly, and to have the last word she promptly changed the
    subject. "Do you know what I heard today? Poor Mary Bolkonskaya arrived
    in Moscow yesterday. Do you know that she has lost her father?"
    
    * "Who excuses himself, accuses himself."
    
    "Really? Where is she? I should like very much to see her," said Pierre.
    
    "I spent the evening with her yesterday. She is going to their estate
    near Moscow either today or tomorrow morning, with her nephew."
    
    "Well, and how is she?" asked Pierre.
    
    "She is well, but sad. But do you know who rescued her? It is quite a
    romance. Nicholas Rostov! She was surrounded, and they wanted to kill
    her and had wounded some of her people. He rushed in and saved her...."
    
    "Another romance," said the militia officer. "Really, this general
    flight has been arranged to get all the old maids married off. Catiche
    is one and Princess Bolkonskaya another."
    
    "Do you know, I really believe she is un petit peu amoureuse du jeune
    homme." *
    
    * "A little bit in love with the young man."
    
    "Forfeit, forfeit, forfeit!"
    
    "But how could one say that in Russian?"
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    When Pierre returned home he was handed two of Rostopchin's broadsheets
    that had been brought that day.
    
    The first declared that the report that Count Rostopchin had forbidden
    people to leave Moscow was false; on the contrary he was glad that
    ladies and tradesmen's wives were leaving the city. "There will be less
    panic and less gossip," ran the broadsheet "but I will stake my life on
    it that scoundrel will not enter Moscow." These words showed Pierre
    clearly for the first time that the French would enter Moscow. The
    second broadsheet stated that our headquarters were at Vyazma, that
    Count Wittgenstein had defeated the French, but that as many of the
    inhabitants of Moscow wished to be armed, weapons were ready for them at
    the arsenal: sabers, pistols, and muskets which could be had at a low
    price. The tone of the proclamation was not as jocose as in the former
    Chigirin talks. Pierre pondered over these broadsheets. Evidently the
    terrible stormcloud he had desired with the whole strength of his soul
    but which yet aroused involuntary horror in him was drawing near.
    
    "Shall I join the army and enter the service, or wait?" he asked himself
    for the hundredth time. He took a pack of cards that lay on the table
    and began to lay them out for a game of patience.
    
    "If this patience comes out," he said to himself after shuffling the
    cards, holding them in his hand, and lifting his head, "if it comes out,
    it means... what does it mean?"
    
    He had not decided what it should mean when he heard the voice of the
    eldest princess at the door asking whether she might come in.
    
    "Then it will mean that I must go to the army," said Pierre to himself.
    "Come in, come in!" he added to the princess.
    
    Only the eldest princess, the one with the stony face and long waist,
    was still living in Pierre's house. The two younger ones had both
    married.
    
    "Excuse my coming to you, cousin," she said in a reproachful and
    agitated voice. "You know some decision must be come to. What is going
    to happen? Everyone has left Moscow and the people are rioting. How is
    it that we are staying on?"
    
    "On the contrary, things seem satisfactory, ma cousine," said Pierre in
    the bantering tone he habitually adopted toward her, always feeling
    uncomfortable in the role of her benefactor.
    
    "Satisfactory, indeed! Very satisfactory! Barbara Ivanovna told me today
    how our troops are distinguishing themselves. It certainly does them
    credit! And the people too are quite mutinous--they no longer obey, even
    my maid has taken to being rude. At this rate they will soon begin
    beating us. One can't walk in the streets. But, above all, the French
    will be here any day now, so what are we waiting for? I ask just one
    thing of you, cousin," she went on, "arrange for me to be taken to
    Petersburg. Whatever I may be, I can't live under Bonaparte's rule."
    
    "Oh, come, ma cousine! Where do you get your information from? On the
    contrary..."
    
    "I won't submit to your Napoleon! Others may if they please.... If you
    don't want to do this..."
    
    "But I will, I'll give the order at once."
    
    The princess was apparently vexed at not having anyone to be angry with.
    Muttering to herself, she sat down on a chair.
    
    "But you have been misinformed," said Pierre. "Everything is quiet in
    the city and there is not the slightest danger. See! I've just been
    reading..." He showed her the broadsheet. "Count Rostopchin writes that
    he will stake his life on it that the enemy will not enter Moscow."
    
    "Oh, that count of yours!" said the princess malevolently. "He is a
    hypocrite, a rascal who has himself roused the people to riot. Didn't he
    write in those idiotic broadsheets that anyone, 'whoever it might be,
    should be dragged to the lockup by his hair'? (How silly!) 'And honor
    and glory to whoever captures him,' he says. This is what his cajolery
    has brought us to! Barbara Ivanovna told me the mob near killed her
    because she said something in French."
    
    "Oh, but it's so... You take everything so to heart," said Pierre, and
    began laying out his cards for patience.
    
    Although that patience did come out, Pierre did not join the army, but
    remained in deserted Moscow ever in the same state of agitation,
    irresolution, and alarm, yet at the same time joyfully expecting
    something terrible.
    
    Next day toward evening the princess set off, and Pierre's head steward
    came to inform him that the money needed for the equipment of his
    regiment could not be found without selling one of the estates. In
    general the head steward made out to Pierre that his project of raising
    a regiment would ruin him. Pierre listened to him, scarcely able to
    repress a smile.
    
    "Well then, sell it," said he. "What's to be done? I can't draw back
    now!"
    
    The worse everything became, especially his own affairs, the better was
    Pierre pleased and the more evident was it that the catastrophe he
    expected was approaching. Hardly anyone he knew was left in town. Julie
    had gone, and so had Princess Mary. Of his intimate friends only the
    Rostovs remained, but he did not go to see them.
    
    To distract his thoughts he drove that day to the village of Vorontsovo
    to see the great balloon Leppich was constructing to destroy the foe,
    and a trial balloon that was to go up next day. The balloon was not yet
    ready, but Pierre learned that it was being constructed by the Emperor's
    desire. The Emperor had written to Count Rostopchin as follows:
    
    As soon as Leppich is ready, get together a crew of reliable and
    intelligent men for his car and send a courier to General Kutuzov to let
    him know. I have informed him of the matter.
    
    Please impress upon Leppich to be very careful where he descends for the
    first time, that he may not make a mistake and fall into the enemy's
    hands. It is essential for him to combine his movements with those of
    the commander-in-chief.
    
    On his way home from Vorontsovo, as he was passing the Bolotnoe Place
    Pierre, seeing a large crowd round the Lobnoe Place, stopped and got out
    of his trap. A French cook accused of being a spy was being flogged. The
    flogging was only just over, and the executioner was releasing from the
    flogging bench a stout man with red whiskers, in blue stockings and a
    green jacket, who was moaning piteously. Another criminal, thin and
    pale, stood near. Judging by their faces they were both Frenchmen. With
    a frightened and suffering look resembling that on the thin Frenchman's
    face, Pierre pushed his way in through the crowd.
    
    "What is it? Who is it? What is it for?" he kept asking.
    
    But the attention of the crowd--officials, burghers, shopkeepers,
    peasants, and women in cloaks and in pelisses--was so eagerly centered
    on what was passing in Lobnoe Place that no one answered him. The stout
    man rose, frowned, shrugged his shoulders, and evidently trying to
    appear firm began to pull on his jacket without looking about him, but
    suddenly his lips trembled and he began to cry, in the way full-blooded
    grown-up men cry, though angry with himself for doing so. In the crowd
    people began talking loudly, to stifle their feelings of pity as it
    seemed to Pierre.
    
    "He's cook to some prince."
    
    "Eh, mounseer, Russian sauce seems to be sour to a Frenchman... sets his
    teeth on edge!" said a wrinkled clerk who was standing behind Pierre,
    when the Frenchman began to cry.
    
    The clerk glanced round, evidently hoping that his joke would be
    appreciated. Some people began to laugh, others continued to watch in
    dismay the executioner who was undressing the other man.
    
    Pierre choked, his face puckered, and he turned hastily away, went back
    to his trap muttering something to himself as he went, and took his
    seat. As they drove along he shuddered and exclaimed several times so
    audibly that the coachman asked him:
    
    "What is your pleasure?"
    
    "Where are you going?" shouted Pierre to the man, who was driving to
    Lubyanka Street.
    
    "To the Governor's, as you ordered," answered the coachman.
    
    "Fool! Idiot!" shouted Pierre, abusing his coachman--a thing he rarely
    did. "Home, I told you! And drive faster, blockhead!" "I must get away
    this very day," he murmured to himself.
    
    At the sight of the tortured Frenchman and the crowd surrounding the
    Lobnoe Place, Pierre had so definitely made up his mind that he could no
    longer remain in Moscow and would leave for the army that very day that
    it seemed to him that either he had told the coachman this or that the
    man ought to have known it for himself.
    
    On reaching home Pierre gave orders to Evstafey--his head coachman who
    knew everything, could do anything, and was known to all Moscow--that he
    would leave that night for the army at Mozhaysk, and that his saddle
    horses should be sent there. This could not all be arranged that day, so
    on Evstafey's representation Pierre had to put off his departure till
    next day to allow time for the relay horses to be sent on in advance.
    
    On the twenty-fourth the weather cleared up after a spell of rain, and
    after dinner Pierre left Moscow. When changing horses that night in
    Perkhushkovo, he learned that there had been a great battle that
    evening. (This was the battle of Shevardino.) He was told that there in
    Perkhushkovo the earth trembled from the firing, but nobody could answer
    his questions as to who had won. At dawn next day Pierre was approaching
    Mozhaysk.
    
    Every house in Mozhaysk had soldiers quartered in it, and at the hostel
    where Pierre was met by his groom and coachman there was no room to be
    had. It was full of officers.
    
    Everywhere in Mozhaysk and beyond it, troops were stationed or on the
    march. Cossacks, foot and horse soldiers, wagons, caissons, and cannon
    were everywhere. Pierre pushed forward as fast as he could, and the
    farther he left Moscow behind and the deeper he plunged into that sea of
    troops the more was he overcome by restless agitation and a new and
    joyful feeling he had not experienced before. It was a feeling akin to
    what he had felt at the Sloboda Palace during the Emperor's visit--a
    sense of the necessity of undertaking something and sacrificing
    something. He now experienced a glad consciousness that everything that
    constitutes men's happiness--the comforts of life, wealth, even life
    itself--is rubbish it is pleasant to throw away, compared with
    something... With what? Pierre could not say, and he did not try to
    determine for whom and for what he felt such particular delight in
    sacrificing everything. He was not occupied with the question of what to
    sacrifice for; the fact of sacrificing in itself afforded him a new and
    joyous sensation.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    On the twenty-fourth of August the battle of the Shevardino Redoubt was
    fought, on the twenty-fifth not a shot was fired by either side, and on
    the twenty-sixth the battle of Borodino itself took place.
    
    Why and how were the battles of Shevardino and Borodino given and
    accepted? Why was the battle of Borodino fought? There was not the least
    sense in it for either the French or the Russians. Its immediate result
    for the Russians was, and was bound to be, that we were brought nearer
    to the destruction of Moscow--which we feared more than anything in the
    world; and for the French its immediate result was that they were
    brought nearer to the destruction of their whole army--which they feared
    more than anything in the world. What the result must be was quite
    obvious, and yet Napoleon offered and Kutuzov accepted that battle.
    
    If the commanders had been guided by reason, it would seem that it must
    have been obvious to Napoleon that by advancing thirteen hundred miles
    and giving battle with a probability of losing a quarter of his army, he
    was advancing to certain destruction, and it must have been equally
    clear to Kutuzov that by accepting battle and risking the loss of a
    quarter of his army he would certainly lose Moscow. For Kutuzov this was
    mathematically clear, as it is that if when playing draughts I have one
    man less and go on exchanging, I shall certainly lose, and therefore
    should not exchange. When my opponent has sixteen men and I have
    fourteen, I am only one eighth weaker than he, but when I have exchanged
    thirteen more men he will be three times as strong as I am.
    
    Before the battle of Borodino our strength in proportion to the French
    was about as five to six, but after that battle it was little more than
    one to two: previously we had a hundred thousand against a hundred and
    twenty thousand; afterwards little more than fifty thousand against a
    hundred thousand. Yet the shrewd and experienced Kutuzov accepted the
    battle, while Napoleon, who was said to be a commander of genius, gave
    it, losing a quarter of his army and lengthening his lines of
    communication still more. If it is said that he expected to end the
    campaign by occupying Moscow as he had ended a previous campaign by
    occupying Vienna, there is much evidence to the contrary. Napoleon's
    historians themselves tell us that from Smolensk onwards he wished to
    stop, knew the danger of his extended position, and knew that the
    occupation of Moscow would not be the end of the campaign, for he had
    seen at Smolensk the state in which Russian towns were left to him, and
    had not received a single reply to his repeated announcements of his
    wish to negotiate.
    
    In giving and accepting battle at Borodino, Kutuzov acted involuntarily
    and irrationally. But later on, to fit what had occurred, the historians
    provided cunningly devised evidence of the foresight and genius of the
    generals who, of all the blind tools of history were the most enslaved
    and involuntary.
    
    The ancients have left us model heroic poems in which the heroes furnish
    the whole interest of the story, and we are still unable to accustom
    ourselves to the fact that for our epoch histories of that kind are
    meaningless.
    
    On the other question, how the battle of Borodino and the preceding
    battle of Shevardino were fought, there also exists a definite and well-
    known, but quite false, conception. All the historians describe the
    affair as follows:
    
    The Russian army, they say, in its retreat from Smolensk sought out for
    itself the best position for a general engagement and found such a
    position at Borodino.
    
    The Russians, they say, fortified this position in advance on the left
    of the highroad (from Moscow to Smolensk) and almost at a right angle to
    it, from Borodino to Utitsa, at the very place where the battle was
    fought.
    
    In front of this position, they say, a fortified outpost was set up on
    the Shevardino mound to observe the enemy. On the twenty-fourth, we are
    told, Napoleon attacked this advanced post and took it, and, on the
    twenty-sixth, attacked the whole Russian army, which was in position on
    the field of Borodino.
    
    So the histories say, and it is all quite wrong, as anyone who cares to
    look into the matter can easily convince himself.
    
    The Russians did not seek out the best position but, on the contrary,
    during the retreat passed many positions better than Borodino. They did
    not stop at any one of these positions because Kutuzov did not wish to
    occupy a position he had not himself chosen, because the popular demand
    for a battle had not yet expressed itself strongly enough, and because
    Miloradovich had not yet arrived with the militia, and for many other
    reasons. The fact is that other positions they had passed were stronger,
    and that the position at Borodino (the one where the battle was fought),
    far from being strong, was no more a position than any other spot one
    might find in the Russian Empire by sticking a pin into the map at
    hazard.
    
    Not only did the Russians not fortify the position on the field of
    Borodino to the left of, and at a right angle to, the highroad (that is,
    the position on which the battle took place), but never till the twenty-
    fifth of August, 1812, did they think that a battle might be fought
    there. This was shown first by the fact that there were no entrenchments
    there by the twenty fifth and that those begun on the twenty-fifth and
    twenty-sixth were not completed, and secondly, by the position of the
    Shevardino Redoubt. That redoubt was quite senseless in front of the
    position where the battle was accepted. Why was it more strongly
    fortified than any other post? And why were all efforts exhausted and
    six thousand men sacrificed to defend it till late at night on the
    twenty-fourth? A Cossack patrol would have sufficed to observe the
    enemy. Thirdly, as proof that the position on which the battle was
    fought had not been foreseen and that the Shevardino Redoubt was not an
    advanced post of that position, we have the fact that up to the twenty-
    fifth, Barclay de Tolly and Bagration were convinced that the Shevardino
    Redoubt was the left flank of the position, and that Kutuzov himself in
    his report, written in hot haste after the battle, speaks of the
    Shevardino Redoubt as the left flank of the position. It was much later,
    when reports on the battle of Borodino were written at leisure, that the
    incorrect and extraordinary statement was invented (probably to justify
    the mistakes of a commander-in-chief who had to be represented as
    infallible) that the Shevardino Redoubt was an advanced post--whereas in
    reality it was simply a fortified point on the left flank--and that the
    battle of Borodino was fought by us on an entrenched position previously
    selected, where as it was fought on a quite unexpected spot which was
    almost unentrenched.
    
    The case was evidently this: a position was selected along the river
    Kolocha--which crosses the highroad not at a right angle but at an acute
    angle--so that the left flank was at Shevardino, the right flank near
    the village of Novoe, and the center at Borodino at the confluence of
    the rivers Kolocha and Voyna.
    
    To anyone who looks at the field of Borodino without thinking of how the
    battle was actually fought, this position, protected by the river
    Kolocha, presents itself as obvious for an army whose object was to
    prevent an enemy from advancing along the Smolensk road to Moscow.
    
    Napoleon, riding to Valuevo on the twenty-fourth, did not see (as the
    history books say he did) the position of the Russians from Utitsa to
    Borodino (he could not have seen that position because it did not
    exist), nor did he see an advanced post of the Russian army, but while
    pursuing the Russian rearguard he came upon the left flank of the
    Russian position--at the Shevardino Redoubt--and unexpectedly for the
    Russians moved his army across the Kolocha. And the Russians, not having
    time to begin a general engagement, withdrew their left wing from the
    position they had intended to occupy and took up a new position which
    had not been foreseen and was not fortified. By crossing to the other
    side of the Kolocha to the left of the highroad, Napoleon shifted the
    whole forthcoming battle from right to left (looking from the Russian
    side) and transferred it to the plain between Utitsa, Semenovsk, and
    Borodino--a plain no more advantageous as a position than any other
    plain in Russia--and there the whole battle of the twenty-sixth of
    August took place.
    
    Had Napoleon not ridden out on the evening of the twenty-fourth to the
    Kolocha, and had he not then ordered an immediate attack on the redoubt
    but had begun the attack next morning, no one would have doubted that
    the Shevardino Redoubt was the left flank of our position, and the
    battle would have taken place where we expected it. In that case we
    should probably have defended the Shevardino Redoubt--our left flank--
    still more obstinately. We should have attacked Napoleon in the center
    or on the right, and the engagement would have taken place on the
    twenty-fifth, in the position we intended and had fortified. But as the
    attack on our left flank took place in the evening after the retreat of
    our rear guard (that is, immediately after the fight at Gridneva), and
    as the Russian commanders did not wish, or were not in time, to begin a
    general engagement then on the evening of the twenty-fourth, the first
    and chief action of the battle of Borodino was already lost on the
    twenty-fourth, and obviously led to the loss of the one fought on the
    twenty-sixth.
    
    After the loss of the Shevardino Redoubt, we found ourselves on the
    morning of the twenty-fifth without a position for our left flank, and
    were forced to bend it back and hastily entrench it where it chanced to
    be.
    
    Not only was the Russian army on the twenty-sixth defended by weak,
    unfinished entrenchments, but the disadvantage of that position was
    increased by the fact that the Russian commanders--not having fully
    realized what had happened, namely the loss of our position on the left
    flank and the shifting of the whole field of the forthcoming battle from
    right to left--maintained their extended position from the village of
    Novoe to Utitsa, and consequently had to move their forces from right to
    left during the battle. So it happened that throughout the whole battle
    the Russians opposed the entire French army launched against our left
    flank with but half as many men. (Poniatowski's action against Utitsa,
    and Uvarov's on the right flank against the French, were actions
    distinct from the main course of the battle.) So the battle of Borodino
    did not take place at all as (in an effort to conceal our commanders'
    mistakes even at the cost of diminishing the glory due to the Russian
    army and people) it has been described. The battle of Borodino was not
    fought on a chosen and entrenched position with forces only slightly
    weaker than those of the enemy, but, as a result of the loss of the
    Shevardino Redoubt, the Russians fought the battle of Borodino on an
    open and almost unentrenched position, with forces only half as numerous
    as the French; that is to say, under conditions in which it was not
    merely unthinkable to fight for ten hours and secure an indecisive
    result, but unthinkable to keep an army even from complete
    disintegration and flight.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    On the morning of the twenty-fifth Pierre was leaving Mozhaysk. At the
    descent of the high steep hill, down which a winding road led out of the
    town past the cathedral on the right, where a service was being held and
    the bells were ringing, Pierre got out of his vehicle and proceeded on
    foot. Behind him a cavalry regiment was coming down the hill preceded by
    its singers. Coming up toward him was a train of carts carrying men who
    had been wounded in the engagement the day before. The peasant drivers,
    shouting and lashing their horses, kept crossing from side to side. The
    carts, in each of which three or four wounded soldiers were lying or
    sitting, jolted over the stones that had been thrown on the steep
    incline to make it something like a road. The wounded, bandaged with
    rags, with pale cheeks, compressed lips, and knitted brows, held on to
    the sides of the carts as they were jolted against one another. Almost
    all of them stared with naive, childlike curiosity at Pierre's white hat
    and green swallow-tail coat.
    
    Pierre's coachman shouted angrily at the convoy of wounded to keep to
    one side of the road. The cavalry regiment, as it descended the hill
    with its singers, surrounded Pierre's carriage and blocked the road.
    Pierre stopped, being pressed against the side of the cutting in which
    the road ran. The sunshine from behind the hill did not penetrate into
    the cutting and there it was cold and damp, but above Pierre's head was
    the bright August sunshine and the bells sounded merrily. One of the
    carts with wounded stopped by the side of the road close to Pierre. The
    driver in his bast shoes ran panting up to it, placed a stone under one
    of its tireless hind wheels, and began arranging the breech-band on his
    little horse.
    
    One of the wounded, an old soldier with a bandaged arm who was following
    the cart on foot, caught hold of it with his sound hand and turned to
    look at Pierre.
    
    "I say, fellow countryman! Will they set us down here or take us on to
    Moscow?" he asked.
    
    Pierre was so deep in thought that he did not hear the question. He was
    looking now at the cavalry regiment that had met the convoy of wounded,
    now at the cart by which he was standing, in which two wounded men were
    sitting and one was lying. One of those sitting up in the cart had
    probably been wounded in the cheek. His whole head was wrapped in rags
    and one cheek was swollen to the size of a baby's head. His nose and
    mouth were twisted to one side. This soldier was looking at the
    cathedral and crossing himself. Another, a young lad, a fair-haired
    recruit as white as though there was no blood in his thin face, looked
    at Pierre kindly, with a fixed smile. The third lay prone so that his
    face was not visible. The cavalry singers were passing close by:
    
    Ah lost, quite lost... is my head so keen, Living in a foreign land.
    
    they sang their soldiers' dance song.
    
    As if responding to them but with a different sort of merriment, the
    metallic sound of the bells reverberated high above and the hot rays of
    the sun bathed the top of the opposite slope with yet another sort of
    merriment. But beneath the slope, by the cart with the wounded near the
    panting little nag where Pierre stood, it was damp, somber, and sad.
    
    The soldier with the swollen cheek looked angrily at the cavalry
    singers.
    
    "Oh, the coxcombs!" he muttered reproachfully.
    
    "It's not the soldiers only, but I've seen peasants today, too.... The
    peasants--even they have to go," said the soldier behind the cart,
    addressing Pierre with a sad smile. "No distinctions made nowadays....
    They want the whole nation to fall on them--in a word, it's Moscow! They
    want to make an end of it."
    
    In spite of the obscurity of the soldier's words Pierre understood what
    he wanted to say and nodded approval.
    
    The road was clear again; Pierre descended the hill and drove on.
    
    He kept looking to either side of the road for familiar faces, but only
    saw everywhere the unfamiliar faces of various military men of different
    branches of the service, who all looked with astonishment at his white
    hat and green tail coat.
    
    Having gone nearly three miles he at last met an acquaintance and
    eagerly addressed him. This was one of the head army doctors. He was
    driving toward Pierre in a covered gig, sitting beside a young surgeon,
    and on recognizing Pierre he told the Cossack who occupied the driver's
    seat to pull up.
    
    "Count! Your excellency, how come you to be here?" asked the doctor.
    
    "Well, you know, I wanted to see..."
    
    "Yes, yes, there will be something to see...."
    
    Pierre got out and talked to the doctor, explaining his intention of
    taking part in a battle.
    
    The doctor advised him to apply direct to Kutuzov.
    
    "Why should you be God knows where out of sight, during the battle?" he
    said, exchanging glances with his young companion. "Anyhow his Serene
    Highness knows you and will receive you graciously. That's what you must
    do."
    
    The doctor seemed tired and in a hurry.
    
    "You think so?... Ah, I also wanted to ask you where our position is
    exactly?" said Pierre.
    
    "The position?" repeated the doctor. "Well, that's not my line. Drive
    past Tatarinova, a lot of digging is going on there. Go up the hillock
    and you'll see."
    
    "Can one see from there?... If you would..."
    
    But the doctor interrupted him and moved toward his gig.
    
    "I would go with you but on my honor I'm up to here"--and he pointed to
    his throat. "I'm galloping to the commander of the corps. How do matters
    stand?... You know, Count, there'll be a battle tomorrow. Out of an army
    of a hundred thousand we must expect at least twenty thousand wounded,
    and we haven't stretchers, or bunks, or dressers, or doctors enough for
    six thousand. We have ten thousand carts, but we need other things as
    well--we must manage as best we can!"
    
    The strange thought that of the thousands of men, young and old, who had
    stared with merry surprise at his hat (perhaps the very men he had
    noticed), twenty thousand were inevitably doomed to wounds and death
    amazed Pierre.
    
    "They may die tomorrow; why are they thinking of anything but death?"
    And by some latent sequence of thought the descent of the Mozhaysk hill,
    the carts with the wounded, the ringing bells, the slanting rays of the
    sun, and the songs of the cavalrymen vividly recurred to his mind.
    
    "The cavalry ride to battle and meet the wounded and do not for a moment
    think of what awaits them, but pass by, winking at the wounded. Yet from
    among these men twenty thousand are doomed to die, and they wonder at my
    hat! Strange!" thought Pierre, continuing his way to Tatarinova.
    
    In front of a landowner's house to the left of the road stood carriages,
    wagons, and crowds of orderlies and sentinels. The commander-in-chief
    was putting up there, but just when Pierre arrived he was not in and
    hardly any of the staff were there--they had gone to the church service.
    Pierre drove on toward Gorki.
    
    When he had ascended the hill and reached the little village street, he
    saw for the first time peasant militiamen in their white shirts and with
    crosses on their caps, who, talking and laughing loudly, animated and
    perspiring, were at work on a huge knoll overgrown with grass to the
    right of the road.
    
    Some of them were digging, others were wheeling barrowloads of earth
    along planks, while others stood about doing nothing.
    
    Two officers were standing on the knoll, directing the men. On seeing
    these peasants, who were evidently still amused by the novelty of their
    position as soldiers, Pierre once more thought of the wounded men at
    Mozhaysk and understood what the soldier had meant when he said: "They
    want the whole nation to fall on them." The sight of these bearded
    peasants at work on the battlefield, with their queer, clumsy boots and
    perspiring necks, and their shirts opening from the left toward the
    middle, unfastened, exposing their sunburned collarbones, impressed
    Pierre more strongly with the solemnity and importance of the moment
    than anything he had yet seen or heard.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    Pierre stepped out of his carriage and, passing the toiling militiamen,
    ascended the knoll from which, according to the doctor, the battlefield
    could be seen.
    
    It was about eleven o'clock. The sun shone somewhat to the left and
    behind him and brightly lit up the enormous panorama which, rising like
    an amphitheater, extended before him in the clear rarefied atmosphere.
    
    From above on the left, bisecting that amphitheater, wound the Smolensk
    highroad, passing through a village with a white church some five
    hundred paces in front of the knoll and below it. This was Borodino.
    Below the village the road crossed the river by a bridge and, winding
    down and up, rose higher and higher to the village of Valuevo visible
    about four miles away, where Napoleon was then stationed. Beyond Valuevo
    the road disappeared into a yellowing forest on the horizon. Far in the
    distance in that birch and fir forest to the right of the road, the
    cross and belfry of the Kolocha Monastery gleamed in the sun. Here and
    there over the whole of that blue expanse, to right and left of the
    forest and the road, smoking campfires could be seen and indefinite
    masses of troops--ours and the enemy's. The ground to the right--along
    the course of the Kolocha and Moskva rivers--was broken and hilly.
    Between the hollows the villages of Bezubova and Zakharino showed in the
    distance. On the left the ground was more level; there were fields of
    grain, and the smoking ruins of Semenovsk, which had been burned down,
    could be seen.
    
    All that Pierre saw was so indefinite that neither the left nor the
    right side of the field fully satisfied his expectations. Nowhere could
    he see the battlefield he had expected to find, but only fields,
    meadows, troops, woods, the smoke of campfires, villages, mounds, and
    streams; and try as he would he could descry no military "position" in
    this place which teemed with life, nor could he even distinguish our
    troops from the enemy's.
    
    "I must ask someone who knows," he thought, and addressed an officer who
    was looking with curiosity at his huge unmilitary figure.
    
    "May I ask you," said Pierre, "what village that is in front?"
    
    "Burdino, isn't it?" said the officer, turning to his companion.
    
    "Borodino," the other corrected him.
    
    The officer, evidently glad of an opportunity for a talk, moved up to
    Pierre.
    
    "Are those our men there?" Pierre inquired.
    
    "Yes, and there, further on, are the French," said the officer. "There
    they are, there... you can see them."
    
    "Where? Where?" asked Pierre.
    
    "One can see them with the naked eye... Why, there!"
    
    The officer pointed with his hand to the smoke visible on the left
    beyond the river, and the same stern and serious expression that Pierre
    had noticed on many of the faces he had met came into his face.
    
    "Ah, those are the French! And over there?..." Pierre pointed to a knoll
    on the left, near which some troops could be seen.
    
    "Those are ours."
    
    "Ah, ours! And there?..." Pierre pointed to another knoll in the
    distance with a big tree on it, near a village that lay in a hollow
    where also some campfires were smoking and something black was visible.
    
    "That's his again," said the officer. (It was the Shevardino Redoubt.)
    "It was ours yesterday, but now it is his."
    
    "Then how about our position?"
    
    "Our position?" replied the officer with a smile of satisfaction. "I can
    tell you quite clearly, because I constructed nearly all our
    entrenchments. There, you see? There's our center, at Borodino, just
    there," and he pointed to the village in front of them with the white
    church. "That's where one crosses the Kolocha. You see down there where
    the rows of hay are lying in the hollow, there's the bridge. That's our
    center. Our right flank is over there"--he pointed sharply to the right,
    far away in the broken ground--"That's where the Moskva River is, and we
    have thrown up three redoubts there, very strong ones. The left
    flank..." here the officer paused. "Well, you see, that's difficult to
    explain.... Yesterday our left flank was there at Shevardino, you see,
    where the oak is, but now we have withdrawn our left wing--now it is
    over there, do you see that village and the smoke? That's Semenovsk,
    yes, there," he pointed to Raevski's knoll. "But the battle will hardly
    be there. His having moved his troops there is only a ruse; he will
    probably pass round to the right of the Moskva. But wherever it may be,
    many a man will be missing tomorrow!" he remarked.
    
    An elderly sergeant who had approached the officer while he was giving
    these explanations had waited in silence for him to finish speaking, but
    at this point, evidently not liking the officer's remark, interrupted
    him.
    
    "Gabions must be sent for," said he sternly.
    
    The officer appeared abashed, as though he understood that one might
    think of how many men would be missing tomorrow but ought not to speak
    of it.
    
    "Well, send number three company again," the officer replied hurriedly.
    
    "And you, are you one of the doctors?"
    
    "No, I've come on my own," answered Pierre, and he went down the hill
    again, passing the militiamen.
    
    "Oh, those damned fellows!" muttered the officer who followed him,
    holding his nose as he ran past the men at work.
    
    "There they are... bringing her, coming... There they are... They'll be
    here in a minute..." voices were suddenly heard saying; and officers,
    soldiers, and militiamen began running forward along the road.
    
    A church procession was coming up the hill from Borodino. First along
    the dusty road came the infantry in ranks, bareheaded and with arms
    reversed. From behind them came the sound of church singing.
    
    Soldiers and militiamen ran bareheaded past Pierre toward the
    procession.
    
    "They are bringing her, our Protectress!... The Iberian Mother of God!"
    someone cried.
    
    "The Smolensk Mother of God," another corrected him.
    
    The militiamen, both those who had been in the village and those who had
    been at work on the battery, threw down their spades and ran to meet the
    church procession. Following the battalion that marched along the dusty
    road came priests in their vestments--one little old man in a hood with
    attendants and singers. Behind them soldiers and officers bore a large,
    dark-faced icon with an embossed metal cover. This was the icon that had
    been brought from Smolensk and had since accompanied the army. Behind,
    before, and on both sides, crowds of militiamen with bared heads walked,
    ran, and bowed to the ground.
    
    At the summit of the hill they stopped with the icon; the men who had
    been holding it up by the linen bands attached to it were relieved by
    others, the chanters relit their censers, and service began. The hot
    rays of the sun beat down vertically and a fresh soft wind played with
    the hair of the bared heads and with the ribbons decorating the icon.
    The singing did not sound loud under the open sky. An immense crowd of
    bareheaded officers, soldiers, and militiamen surrounded the icon.
    Behind the priest and a chanter stood the notabilities on a spot
    reserved for them. A bald general with a St. George's Cross on his neck
    stood just behind the priest's back, and without crossing himself (he
    was evidently a German) patiently awaited the end of the service, which
    he considered it necessary to hear to the end, probably to arouse the
    patriotism of the Russian people. Another general stood in a martial
    pose, crossing himself by shaking his hand in front of his chest while
    looking about him. Standing among the crowd of peasants, Pierre
    recognized several acquaintances among these notables, but did not look
    at them--his whole attention was absorbed in watching the serious
    expression on the faces of the crowd of soldiers and militiamen who were
    all gazing eagerly at the icon. As soon as the tired chanters, who were
    singing the service for the twentieth time that day, began lazily and
    mechanically to sing: "Save from calamity Thy servants, O Mother of
    God," and the priest and deacon chimed in: "For to Thee under God we all
    flee as to an inviolable bulwark and protection," there again kindled in
    all those faces the same expression of consciousness of the solemnity of
    the impending moment that Pierre had seen on the faces at the foot of
    the hill at Mozhaysk and momentarily on many and many faces he had met
    that morning; and heads were bowed more frequently and hair tossed back,
    and sighs and the sound men made as they crossed themselves were heard.
    
    The crowd round the icon suddenly parted and pressed against Pierre.
    Someone, a very important personage judging by the haste with which way
    was made for him, was approaching the icon.
    
    It was Kutuzov, who had been riding round the position and on his way
    back to Tatarinova had stopped where the service was being held. Pierre
    recognized him at once by his peculiar figure, which distinguished him
    from everybody else.
    
    With a long overcoat on his exceedingly stout, round-shouldered body,
    with uncovered white head and puffy face showing the white ball of the
    eye he had lost, Kutuzov walked with plunging, swaying gait into the
    crowd and stopped behind the priest. He crossed himself with an
    accustomed movement, bent till he touched the ground with his hand, and
    bowed his white head with a deep sigh. Behind Kutuzov was Bennigsen and
    the suite. Despite the presence of the commander-in-chief, who attracted
    the attention of all the superior officers, the militiamen and soldiers
    continued their prayers without looking at him.
    
    When the service was over, Kutuzov stepped up to the icon, sank heavily
    to his knees, bowed to the ground, and for a long time tried vainly to
    rise, but could not do so on account of his weakness and weight. His
    white head twitched with the effort. At last he rose, kissed the icon as
    a child does with naively pouting lips, and again bowed till he touched
    the ground with his hand. The other generals followed his example, then
    the officers, and after them with excited faces, pressing on one
    another, crowding, panting, and pushing, scrambled the soldiers and
    militiamen.
    
    CHAPTER XXII
    
    Staggering amid the crush, Pierre looked about him.
    
    "Count Peter Kirilovich! How did you get here?" said a voice.
    
    Pierre looked round. Boris Drubetskoy, brushing his knees with his hand
    (he had probably soiled them when he, too, had knelt before the icon),
    came up to him smiling. Boris was elegantly dressed, with a slightly
    martial touch appropriate to a campaign. He wore a long coat and like
    Kutuzov had a whip slung across his shoulder.
    
    Meanwhile Kutuzov had reached the village and seated himself in the
    shade of the nearest house, on a bench which one Cossack had run to
    fetch and another had hastily covered with a rug. An immense and
    brilliant suite surrounded him.
    
    The icon was carried further, accompanied by the throng. Pierre stopped
    some thirty paces from Kutuzov, talking to Boris.
    
    He explained his wish to be present at the battle and to see the
    position.
    
    "This is what you must do," said Boris. "I will do the honors of the
    camp to you. You will see everything best from where Count Bennigsen
    will be. I am in attendance on him, you know; I'll mention it to him.
    But if you want to ride round the position, come along with us. We are
    just going to the left flank. Then when we get back, do spend the night
    with me and we'll arrange a game of cards. Of course you know Dmitri
    Sergeevich? Those are his quarters," and he pointed to the third house
    in the village of Gorki.
    
    "But I should like to see the right flank. They say it's very strong,"
    said Pierre. "I should like to start from the Moskva River and ride
    round the whole position."
    
    "Well, you can do that later, but the chief thing is the left flank."
    
    "Yes, yes. But where is Prince Bolkonski's regiment? Can you point it
    out to me?"
    
    "Prince Andrew's? We shall pass it and I'll take you to him."
    
    "What about the left flank?" asked Pierre
    
    "To tell you the truth, between ourselves, God only knows what state our
    left flank is in," said Boris confidentially lowering his voice. "It is
    not at all what Count Bennigsen intended. He meant to fortify that knoll
    quite differently, but..." Boris shrugged his shoulders, "his Serene
    Highness would not have it, or someone persuaded him. You see..." but
    Boris did not finish, for at that moment Kaysarov, Kutuzov's adjutant,
    came up to Pierre. "Ah, Kaysarov!" said Boris, addressing him with an
    unembarrassed smile, "I was just trying to explain our position to the
    count. It is amazing how his Serene Highness could so foresee the
    intentions of the French!"
    
    "You mean the left flank?" asked Kaysarov.
    
    "Yes, exactly; the left flank is now extremely strong."
    
    Though Kutuzov had dismissed all unnecessary men from the staff, Boris
    had contrived to remain at headquarters after the changes. He had
    established himself with Count Bennigsen, who, like all on whom Boris
    had been in attendance, considered young Prince Drubetskoy an invaluable
    man.
    
    In the higher command there were two sharply defined parties: Kutuzov's
    party and that of Bennigsen, the chief of staff. Boris belonged to the
    latter and no one else, while showing servile respect to Kutuzov, could
    so create an impression that the old fellow was not much good and that
    Bennigsen managed everything. Now the decisive moment of battle had come
    when Kutuzov would be destroyed and the power pass to Bennigsen, or even
    if Kutuzov won the battle it would be felt that everything was done by
    Bennigsen. In any case many great rewards would have to be given for
    tomorrow's action, and new men would come to the front. So Boris was
    full of nervous vivacity all day.
    
    After Kaysarov, others whom Pierre knew came up to him, and he had not
    time to reply to all the questions about Moscow that were showered upon
    him, or to listen to all that was told him. The faces all expressed
    animation and apprehension, but it seemed to Pierre that the cause of
    the excitement shown in some of these faces lay chiefly in questions of
    personal success; his mind, however, was occupied by the different
    expression he saw on other faces--an expression that spoke not of
    personal matters but of the universal questions of life and death.
    Kutuzov noticed Pierre's figure and the group gathered round him.
    
    "Call him to me," said Kutuzov.
    
    An adjutant told Pierre of his Serene Highness' wish, and Pierre went
    toward Kutuzov's bench. But a militiaman got there before him. It was
    Dolokhov.
    
    "How did that fellow get here?" asked Pierre.
    
    "He's a creature that wriggles in anywhere!" was the answer. "He has
    been degraded, you know. Now he wants to bob up again. He's been
    proposing some scheme or other and has crawled into the enemy's picket
    line at night.... He's a brave fellow."
    
    Pierre took off his hat and bowed respectfully to Kutuzov.
    
    "I concluded that if I reported to your Serene Highness you might send
    me away or say that you knew what I was reporting, but then I shouldn't
    lose anything..." Dolokhov was saying.
    
    "Yes, yes."
    
    "But if I were right, I should be rendering a service to my Fatherland
    for which I am ready to die."
    
    "Yes, yes."
    
    "And should your Serene Highness require a man who will not spare his
    skin, please think of me.... Perhaps I may prove useful to your Serene
    Highness."
    
    "Yes... Yes..." Kutuzov repeated, his laughing eye narrowing more and
    more as he looked at Pierre.
    
    Just then Boris, with his courtierlike adroitness, stepped up to
    Pierre's side near Kutuzov and in a most natural manner, without raising
    his voice, said to Pierre, as though continuing an interrupted
    conversation:
    
    "The militia have put on clean white shirts to be ready to die. What
    heroism, Count!"
    
    Boris evidently said this to Pierre in order to be overheard by his
    Serene Highness. He knew Kutuzov's attention would be caught by those
    words, and so it was.
    
    "What are you saying about the militia?" he asked Boris.
    
    "Preparing for tomorrow, your Serene Highness--for death--they have put
    on clean shirts."
    
    "Ah... a wonderful, a matchless people!" said Kutuzov; and he closed his
    eyes and swayed his head. "A matchless people!" he repeated with a sigh.
    
    "So you want to smell gunpowder?" he said to Pierre. "Yes, it's a
    pleasant smell. I have the honor to be one of your wife's adorers. Is
    she well? My quarters are at your service."
    
    And as often happens with old people, Kutuzov began looking about
    absent-mindedly as if forgetting all he wanted to say or do.
    
    Then, evidently remembering what he wanted, he beckoned to Andrew
    Kaysarov, his adjutant's brother.
    
    "Those verses... those verses of Marin's... how do they go, eh? Those he
    wrote about Gerakov: 'Lectures for the corps inditing'... Recite them,
    recite them!" said he, evidently preparing to laugh.
    
    Kaysarov recited.... Kutuzov smilingly nodded his head to the rhythm of
    the verses.
    
    When Pierre had left Kutuzov, Dolokhov came up to him and took his hand.
    
    "I am very glad to meet you here, Count," he said aloud, regardless of
    the presence of strangers and in a particularly resolute and solemn
    tone. "On the eve of a day when God alone knows who of us is fated to
    survive, I am glad of this opportunity to tell you that I regret the
    misunderstandings that occurred between us and should wish you not to
    have any ill feeling for me. I beg you to forgive me."
    
    Pierre looked at Dolokhov with a smile, not knowing what to say to him.
    With tears in his eyes Dolokhov embraced Pierre and kissed him.
    
    Boris said a few words to his general, and Count Bennigsen turned to
    Pierre and proposed that he should ride with him along the line.
    
    "It will interest you," said he.
    
    "Yes, very much," replied Pierre.
    
    Half an hour later Kutuzov left for Tatarinova, and Bennigsen and his
    suite, with Pierre among them, set out on their ride along the line.
    
    CHAPTER XXIII
    
    From Gorki, Bennigsen descended the highroad to the bridge which, when
    they had looked at it from the hill, the officer had pointed out as
    being the center of our position and where rows of fragrant new-mown hay
    lay by the riverside. They rode across that bridge into the village of
    Borodino and thence turned to the left, passing an enormous number of
    troops and guns, and came to a high knoll where militiamen were digging.
    This was the redoubt, as yet unnamed, which afterwards became known as
    the Raevski Redoubt, or the Knoll Battery, but Pierre paid no special
    attention to it. He did not know that it would become more memorable to
    him than any other spot on the plain of Borodino.
    
    They then crossed the hollow to Semenovsk, where the soldiers were
    dragging away the last logs from the huts and barns. Then they rode
    downhill and uphill, across a ryefield trodden and beaten down as if by
    hail, following a track freshly made by the artillery over the furrows
    of the plowed land, and reached some fleches * which were still being
    dug.
    
    * A kind of entrenchment.
    
    At the fleches Bennigsen stopped and began looking at the Shevardino
    Redoubt opposite, which had been ours the day before and where several
    horsemen could be descried. The officers said that either Napoleon or
    Murat was there, and they all gazed eagerly at this little group of
    horsemen. Pierre also looked at them, trying to guess which of the
    scarcely discernible figures was Napoleon. At last those mounted men
    rode away from the mound and disappeared.
    
    Bennigsen spoke to a general who approached him, and began explaining
    the whole position of our troops. Pierre listened to him, straining each
    faculty to understand the essential points of the impending battle, but
    was mortified to feel that his mental capacity was inadequate for the
    task. He could make nothing of it. Bennigsen stopped speaking and,
    noticing that Pierre was listening, suddenly said to him:
    
    "I don't think this interests you?"
    
    "On the contrary it's very interesting!" replied Pierre not quite
    truthfully.
    
    From the fleches they rode still farther to the left, along a road
    winding through a thick, low-growing birch wood. In the middle of the
    wood a brown hare with white feet sprang out and, scared by the tramp of
    the many horses, grew so confused that it leaped along the road in front
    of them for some time, arousing general attention and laughter, and only
    when several voices shouted at it did it dart to one side and disappear
    in the thicket. After going through the wood for about a mile and a half
    they came out on a glade where troops of Tuchkov's corps were stationed
    to defend the left flank.
    
    Here, at the extreme left flank, Bennigsen talked a great deal and with
    much heat, and, as it seemed to Pierre, gave orders of great military
    importance. In front of Tuchkov's troops was some high ground not
    occupied by troops. Bennigsen loudly criticized this mistake, saying
    that it was madness to leave a height which commanded the country around
    unoccupied and to place troops below it. Some of the generals expressed
    the same opinion. One in particular declared with martial heat that they
    were put there to be slaughtered. Bennigsen on his own authority ordered
    the troops to occupy the high ground. This disposition on the left flank
    increased Pierre's doubt of his own capacity to understand military
    matters. Listening to Bennigsen and the generals criticizing the
    position of the troops behind the hill, he quite understood them and
    shared their opinion, but for that very reason he could not understand
    how the man who put them there behind the hill could have made so gross
    and palpable a blunder.
    
    Pierre did not know that these troops were not, as Bennigsen supposed,
    put there to defend the position, but were in a concealed position as an
    ambush, that they should not be seen and might be able to strike an
    approaching enemy unexpectedly. Bennigsen did not know this and moved
    the troops forward according to his own ideas without mentioning the
    matter to the commander-in-chief.
    
    CHAPTER XXIV
    
    On that bright evening of August 25, Prince Andrew lay leaning on his
    elbow in a broken-down shed in the village of Knyazkovo at the further
    end of his regiment's encampment. Through a gap in the broken wall he
    could see, beside the wooden fence, a row of thirty year-old birches
    with their lower branches lopped off, a field on which shocks of oats
    were standing, and some bushes near which rose the smoke of campfires--
    the soldiers' kitchens.
    
    Narrow and burdensome and useless to anyone as his life now seemed to
    him, Prince Andrew on the eve of battle felt agitated and irritable as
    he had done seven years before at Austerlitz.
    
    He had received and given the orders for next day's battle and had
    nothing more to do. But his thoughts--the simplest, clearest, and
    therefore most terrible thoughts--would give him no peace. He knew that
    tomorrow's battle would be the most terrible of all he had taken part
    in, and for the first time in his life the possibility of death
    presented itself to him--not in relation to any worldly matter or with
    reference to its effect on others, but simply in relation to himself, to
    his own soul--vividly, plainly, terribly, and almost as a certainty. And
    from the height of this perception all that had previously tormented and
    preoccupied him suddenly became illumined by a cold white light without
    shadows, without perspective, without distinction of outline. All life
    appeared to him like magic-lantern pictures at which he had long been
    gazing by artificial light through a glass. Now he suddenly saw those
    badly daubed pictures in clear daylight and without a glass. "Yes, yes!
    There they are, those false images that agitated, enraptured, and
    tormented me," said he to himself, passing in review the principal
    pictures of the magic lantern of life and regarding them now in the cold
    white daylight of his clear perception of death. "There they are, those
    rudely painted figures that once seemed splendid and mysterious. Glory,
    the good of society, love of a woman, the Fatherland itself--how
    important these pictures appeared to me, with what profound meaning they
    seemed to be filled! And it is all so simple, pale, and crude in the
    cold white light of this morning which I feel is dawning for me." The
    three great sorrows of his life held his attention in particular: his
    love for a woman, his father's death, and the French invasion which had
    overrun half Russia. "Love... that little girl who seemed to me brimming
    over with mystic forces! Yes, indeed, I loved her. I made romantic plans
    of love and happiness with her! Oh, what a boy I was!" he said aloud
    bitterly. "Ah me! I believed in some ideal love which was to keep her
    faithful to me for the whole year of my absence! Like the gentle dove in
    the fable she was to pine apart from me.... But it was much simpler
    really.... It was all very simple and horrible."
    
    "When my father built Bald Hills he thought the place was his: his land,
    his air, his peasants. But Napoleon came and swept him aside,
    unconscious of his existence, as he might brush a chip from his path,
    and his Bald Hills and his whole life fell to pieces. Princess Mary says
    it is a trial sent from above. What is the trial for, when he is not
    here and will never return? He is not here! For whom then is the trial
    intended? The Fatherland, the destruction of Moscow! And tomorrow I
    shall be killed, perhaps not even by a Frenchman but by one of our own
    men, by a soldier discharging a musket close to my ear as one of them
    did yesterday, and the French will come and take me by head and heels
    and fling me into a hole that I may not stink under their noses, and new
    conditions of life will arise, which will seem quite ordinary to others
    and about which I shall know nothing. I shall not exist..."
    
    He looked at the row of birches shining in the sunshine, with their
    motionless green and yellow foliage and white bark. "To die... to be
    killed tomorrow... That I should not exist... That all this should still
    be, but no me...."
    
    And the birches with their light and shade, the curly clouds, the smoke
    of the campfires, and all that was around him changed and seemed
    terrible and menacing. A cold shiver ran down his spine. He rose
    quickly, went out of the shed, and began to walk about.
    
    After he had returned, voices were heard outside the shed. "Who's that?"
    he cried.
    
    The red-nosed Captain Timokhin, formerly Dolokhov's squadron commander,
    but now from lack of officers a battalion commander, shyly entered the
    shed followed by an adjutant and the regimental paymaster.
    
    Prince Andrew rose hastily, listened to the business they had come
    about, gave them some further instructions, and was about to dismiss
    them when he heard a familiar, lisping, voice behind the shed.
    
    "Devil take it!" said the voice of a man stumbling over something.
    
    Prince Andrew looked out of the shed and saw Pierre, who had tripped
    over a pole on the ground and had nearly fallen, coming his way. It was
    unpleasant to Prince Andrew to meet people of his own set in general,
    and Pierre especially, for he reminded him of all the painful moments of
    his last visit to Moscow.
    
    "You? What a surprise!" said he. "What brings you here? This is
    unexpected!"
    
    As he said this his eyes and face expressed more than coldness--they
    expressed hostility, which Pierre noticed at once. He had approached the
    shed full of animation, but on seeing Prince Andrew's face he felt
    constrained and ill at ease.
    
    "I have come... simply... you know... come... it interests me," said
    Pierre, who had so often that day senselessly repeated that word
    "interesting." "I wish to see the battle."
    
    "Oh yes, and what do the masonic brothers say about war? How would they
    stop it?" said Prince Andrew sarcastically. "Well, and how's Moscow? And
    my people? Have they reached Moscow at last?" he asked seriously.
    
    "Yes, they have. Julie Drubetskaya told me so. I went to see them, but
    missed them. They have gone to your estate near Moscow."
    
    CHAPTER XXV
    
    The officers were about to take leave, but Prince Andrew, apparently
    reluctant to be left alone with his friend, asked them to stay and have
    tea. Seats were brought in and so was the tea. The officers gazed with
    surprise at Pierre's huge stout figure and listened to his talk of
    Moscow and the position of our army, round which he had ridden. Prince
    Andrew remained silent, and his expression was so forbidding that Pierre
    addressed his remarks chiefly to the good-natured battalion commander.
    
    "So you understand the whole position of our troops?" Prince Andrew
    interrupted him.
    
    "Yes--that is, how do you mean?" said Pierre. "Not being a military man
    I can't say I have understood it fully, but I understand the general
    position."
    
    "Well, then, you know more than anyone else, be it who it may," said
    Prince Andrew.
    
    "Oh!" said Pierre, looking over his spectacles in perplexity at Prince
    Andrew. "Well, and what do you think of Kutuzov's appointment?" he
    asked.
    
    "I was very glad of his appointment, that's all I know," replied Prince
    Andrew.
    
    "And tell me your opinion of Barclay de Tolly. In Moscow they are saying
    heaven knows what about him.... What do you think of him?"
    
    "Ask them," replied Prince Andrew, indicating the officers.
    
    Pierre looked at Timokhin with the condescendingly interrogative smile
    with which everybody involuntarily addressed that officer.
    
    "We see light again, since his Serenity has been appointed, your
    excellency," said Timokhin timidly, and continually turning to glance at
    his colonel.
    
    "Why so?" asked Pierre.
    
    "Well, to mention only firewood and fodder, let me inform you. Why, when
    we were retreating from Sventsyani we dare not touch a stick or a wisp
    of hay or anything. You see, we were going away, so he would get it all;
    wasn't it so, your excellency?" and again Timokhin turned to the prince.
    "But we daren't. In our regiment two officers were court-martialed for
    that kind of thing. But when his Serenity took command everything became
    straight forward. Now we see light..."
    
    "Then why was it forbidden?"
    
    Timokhin looked about in confusion, not knowing what or how to answer
    such a question. Pierre put the same question to Prince Andrew.
    
    "Why, so as not to lay waste the country we were abandoning to the
    enemy," said Prince Andrew with venomous irony. "It is very sound: one
    can't permit the land to be pillaged and accustom the troops to
    marauding. At Smolensk too he judged correctly that the French might
    outflank us, as they had larger forces. But he could not understand
    this," cried Prince Andrew in a shrill voice that seemed to escape him
    involuntarily: "he could not understand that there, for the first time,
    we were fighting for Russian soil, and that there was a spirit in the
    men such as I had never seen before, that we had held the French for two
    days, and that that success had increased our strength tenfold. He
    ordered us to retreat, and all our efforts and losses went for nothing.
    He had no thought of betraying us, he tried to do the best he could, he
    thought out everything, and that is why he is unsuitable. He is
    unsuitable now, just because he plans out everything very thoroughly and
    accurately as every German has to. How can I explain?... Well, say your
    father has a German valet, and he is a splendid valet and satisfies your
    father's requirements better than you could, then it's all right to let
    him serve. But if your father is mortally sick you'll send the valet
    away and attend to your father with your own unpracticed, awkward hands,
    and will soothe him better than a skilled man who is a stranger could.
    So it has been with Barclay. While Russia was well, a foreigner could
    serve her and be a splendid minister; but as soon as she is in danger
    she needs one of her own kin. But in your club they have been making him
    out a traitor! They slander him as a traitor, and the only result will
    be that afterwards, ashamed of their false accusations, they will make
    him out a hero or a genius instead of a traitor, and that will be still
    more unjust. He is an honest and very punctilious German."
    
    "And they say he's a skillful commander," rejoined Pierre.
    
    "I don't understand what is meant by 'a skillful commander,'" replied
    Prince Andrew ironically.
    
    "A skillful commander?" replied Pierre. "Why, one who foresees all
    contingencies... and foresees the adversary's intentions."
    
    "But that's impossible," said Prince Andrew as if it were a matter
    settled long ago.
    
    Pierre looked at him in surprise.
    
    "And yet they say that war is like a game of chess?" he remarked.
    
    "Yes," replied Prince Andrew, "but with this little difference, that in
    chess you may think over each move as long as you please and are not
    limited for time, and with this difference too, that a knight is always
    stronger than a pawn, and two pawns are always stronger than one, while
    in war a battalion is sometimes stronger than a division and sometimes
    weaker than a company. The relative strength of bodies of troops can
    never be known to anyone. Believe me," he went on, "if things depended
    on arrangements made by the staff, I should be there making
    arrangements, but instead of that I have the honor to serve here in the
    regiment with these gentlemen, and I consider that on us tomorrow's
    battle will depend and not on those others.... Success never depends,
    and never will depend, on position, or equipment, or even on numbers,
    and least of all on position."
    
    "But on what then?"
    
    "On the feeling that is in me and in him," he pointed to Timokhin, "and
    in each soldier."
    
    Prince Andrew glanced at Timokhin, who looked at his commander in alarm
    and bewilderment. In contrast to his former reticent taciturnity Prince
    Andrew now seemed excited. He could apparently not refrain from
    expressing the thoughts that had suddenly occurred to him.
    
    "A battle is won by those who firmly resolve to win it! Why did we lose
    the battle at Austerlitz? The French losses were almost equal to ours,
    but very early we said to ourselves that we were losing the battle, and
    we did lose it. And we said so because we had nothing to fight for
    there, we wanted to get away from the battlefield as soon as we could.
    'We've lost, so let us run,' and we ran. If we had not said that till
    the evening, heaven knows what might not have happened. But tomorrow we
    shan't say it! You talk about our position, the left flank weak and the
    right flank too extended," he went on. "That's all nonsense, there's
    nothing of the kind. But what awaits us tomorrow? A hundred million most
    diverse chances which will be decided on the instant by the fact that
    our men or theirs run or do not run, and that this man or that man is
    killed, but all that is being done at present is only play. The fact is
    that those men with whom you have ridden round the position not only do
    not help matters, but hinder. They are only concerned with their own
    petty interests."
    
    "At such a moment?" said Pierre reproachfully.
    
    "At such a moment!" Prince Andrew repeated. "To them it is only a moment
    affording opportunities to undermine a rival and obtain an extra cross
    or ribbon. For me tomorrow means this: a Russian army of a hundred
    thousand and a French army of a hundred thousand have met to fight, and
    the thing is that these two hundred thousand men will fight and the side
    that fights more fiercely and spares itself least will win. And if you
    like I will tell you that whatever happens and whatever muddles those at
    the top may make, we shall win tomorrow's battle. Tomorrow, happen what
    may, we shall win!"
    
    "There now, your excellency! That's the truth, the real truth," said
    Timokhin. "Who would spare himself now? The soldiers in my battalion,
    believe me, wouldn't drink their vodka! 'It's not the day for that!'
    they say."
    
    All were silent. The officers rose. Prince Andrew went out of the shed
    with them, giving final orders to the adjutant. After they had gone
    Pierre approached Prince Andrew and was about to start a conversation
    when they heard the clatter of three horses' hoofs on the road not far
    from the shed, and looking in that direction Prince Andrew recognized
    Wolzogen and Clausewitz accompanied by a Cossack. They rode close by
    continuing to converse, and Prince Andrew involuntarily heard these
    words:
    
    "Der Krieg muss in Raum verlegt werden. Der Ansicht kann ich nicht genug
    Preis geben," * said one of them.
    
    * "The war must be extended widely. I cannot sufficiently commend that
    view."
    
    "Oh, ja," said the other, "der Zweck ist nur den Feind zu schwächen, so
    kann man gewiss nicht den Verlust der Privat-Personen in Achtung
    nehmen." *
    
    * "Oh, yes, the only aim is to weaken the enemy, so of course one cannot
    take into account the loss of private individuals."
    
    "Oh, no," agreed the other.
    
    "Extend widely!" said Prince Andrew with an angry snort, when they had
    ridden past. "In that 'extend' were my father, son, and sister, at Bald
    Hills. That's all the same to him! That's what I was saying to you--
    those German gentlemen won't win the battle tomorrow but will only make
    all the mess they can, because they have nothing in their German heads
    but theories not worth an empty eggshell and haven't in their hearts the
    one thing needed tomorrow--that which Timokhin has. They have yielded up
    all Europe to him, and have now come to teach us. Fine teachers!" and
    again his voice grew shrill.
    
    "So you think we shall win tomorrow's battle?" asked Pierre.
    
    "Yes, yes," answered Prince Andrew absently. "One thing I would do if I
    had the power," he began again, "I would not take prisoners. Why take
    prisoners? It's chivalry! The French have destroyed my home and are on
    their way to destroy Moscow, they have outraged and are outraging me
    every moment. They are my enemies. In my opinion they are all criminals.
    And so thinks Timokhin and the whole army. They should be executed!
    Since they are my foes they cannot be my friends, whatever may have been
    said at Tilsit."
    
    "Yes, yes," muttered Pierre, looking with shining eyes at Prince Andrew.
    "I quite agree with you!"
    
    The question that had perturbed Pierre on the Mozhaysk hill and all that
    day now seemed to him quite clear and completely solved. He now
    understood the whole meaning and importance of this war and of the
    impending battle. All he had seen that day, all the significant and
    stern expressions on the faces he had seen in passing, were lit up for
    him by a new light. He understood that latent heat (as they say in
    physics) of patriotism which was present in all these men he had seen,
    and this explained to him why they all prepared for death calmly, and as
    it were lightheartedly.
    
    "Not take prisoners," Prince Andrew continued: "That by itself would
    quite change the whole war and make it less cruel. As it is we have
    played at war--that's what's vile! We play at magnanimity and all that
    stuff. Such magnanimity and sensibility are like the magnanimity and
    sensibility of a lady who faints when she sees a calf being killed: she
    is so kindhearted that she can't look at blood, but enjoys eating the
    calf served up with sauce. They talk to us of the rules of war, of
    chivalry, of flags of truce, of mercy to the unfortunate and so on. It's
    all rubbish! I saw chivalry and flags of truce in 1805; they humbugged
    us and we humbugged them. They plunder other people's houses, issue
    false paper money, and worst of all they kill my children and my father,
    and then talk of rules of war and magnanimity to foes! Take no
    prisoners, but kill and be killed! He who has come to this as I have
    through the same sufferings..."
    
    Prince Andrew, who had thought it was all the same to him whether or not
    Moscow was taken as Smolensk had been, was suddenly checked in his
    speech by an unexpected cramp in his throat. He paced up and down a few
    times in silence, but his eyes glittered feverishly and his lips
    quivered as he began speaking.
    
    "If there was none of this magnanimity in war, we should go to war only
    when it was worth while going to certain death, as now. Then there would
    not be war because Paul Ivanovich had offended Michael Ivanovich. And
    when there was a war, like this one, it would be war! And then the
    determination of the troops would be quite different. Then all these
    Westphalians and Hessians whom Napoleon is leading would not follow him
    into Russia, and we should not go to fight in Austria and Prussia
    without knowing why. War is not courtesy but the most horrible thing in
    life; and we ought to understand that and not play at war. We ought to
    accept this terrible necessity sternly and seriously. It all lies in
    that: get rid of falsehood and let war be war and not a game. As it is
    now, war is the favorite pastime of the idle and frivolous. The military
    calling is the most highly honored.
    
    "But what is war? What is needed for success in warfare? What are the
    habits of the military? The aim of war is murder; the methods of war are
    spying, treachery, and their encouragement, the ruin of a country's
    inhabitants, robbing them or stealing to provision the army, and fraud
    and falsehood termed military craft. The habits of the military class
    are the absence of freedom, that is, discipline, idleness, ignorance,
    cruelty, debauchery, and drunkenness. And in spite of all this it is the
    highest class, respected by everyone. All the kings, except the Chinese,
    wear military uniforms, and he who kills most people receives the
    highest rewards.
    
    "They meet, as we shall meet tomorrow, to murder one another; they kill
    and maim tens of thousands, and then have thanksgiving services for
    having killed so many people (they even exaggerate the number), and they
    announce a victory, supposing that the more people they have killed the
    greater their achievement. How does God above look at them and hear
    them?" exclaimed Prince Andrew in a shrill, piercing voice. "Ah, my
    friend, it has of late become hard for me to live. I see that I have
    begun to understand too much. And it doesn't do for man to taste of the
    tree of knowledge of good and evil.... Ah, well, it's not for long!" he
    added.
    
    "However, you're sleepy, and it's time for me to sleep. Go back to
    Gorki!" said Prince Andrew suddenly.
    
    "Oh no!" Pierre replied, looking at Prince Andrew with frightened,
    compassionate eyes.
    
    "Go, go! Before a battle one must have one's sleep out," repeated Prince
    Andrew.
    
    He came quickly up to Pierre and embraced and kissed him. "Good-bye, be
    off!" he shouted. "Whether we meet again or not..." and turning away
    hurriedly he entered the shed.
    
    It was already dark, and Pierre could not make out whether the
    expression of Prince Andrew's face was angry or tender.
    
    For some time he stood in silence considering whether he should follow
    him or go away. "No, he does not want it!" Pierre concluded. "And I know
    that this is our last meeting!" He sighed deeply and rode back to Gorki.
    
    On re-entering the shed Prince Andrew lay down on a rug, but he could
    not sleep.
    
    He closed his eyes. One picture succeeded another in his imagination. On
    one of them he dwelt long and joyfully. He vividly recalled an evening
    in Petersburg. Natasha with animated and excited face was telling him
    how she had gone to look for mushrooms the previous summer and had lost
    her way in the big forest. She incoherently described the depths of the
    forest, her feelings, and a talk with a beekeeper she met, and
    constantly interrupted her story to say: "No, I can't! I'm not telling
    it right; no, you don't understand," though he encouraged her by saying
    that he did understand, and he really had understood all she wanted to
    say. But Natasha was not satisfied with her own words: she felt that
    they did not convey the passionately poetic feeling she had experienced
    that day and wished to convey. "He was such a delightful old man, and it
    was so dark in the forest... and he had such kind... No, I can't
    describe it," she had said, flushed and excited. Prince Andrew smiled
    now the same happy smile as then when he had looked into her eyes. "I
    understood her," he thought. "I not only understood her, but it was just
    that inner, spiritual force, that sincerity, that frankness of soul--
    that very soul of hers which seemed to be fettered by her body--it was
    that soul I loved in her... loved so strongly and happily..." and
    suddenly he remembered how his love had ended. "He did not need anything
    of that kind. He neither saw nor understood anything of the sort. He
    only saw in her a pretty and fresh young girl, with whom he did not
    deign to unite his fate. And I?... and he is still alive and gay!"
    
    Prince Andrew jumped up as if someone had burned him, and again began
    pacing up and down in front of the shed.
    
    CHAPTER XXVI
    
    On August 25, the eve of the battle of Borodino, M. de Beausset, prefect
    of the French Emperor's palace, arrived at Napoleon's quarters at
    Valuevo with Colonel Fabvier, the former from Paris and the latter from
    Madrid.
    
    Donning his court uniform, M. de Beausset ordered a box he had brought
    for the Emperor to be carried before him and entered the first
    compartment of Napoleon's tent, where he began opening the box while
    conversing with Napoleon's aides-de-camp who surrounded him.
    
    Fabvier, not entering the tent, remained at the entrance talking to some
    generals of his acquaintance.
    
    The Emperor Napoleon had not yet left his bedroom and was finishing his
    toilet. Slightly snorting and grunting, he presented now his back and
    now his plump hairy chest to the brush with which his valet was rubbing
    him down. Another valet, with his finger over the mouth of a bottle, was
    sprinkling Eau de Cologne on the Emperor's pampered body with an
    expression which seemed to say that he alone knew where and how much Eau
    de Cologne should be sprinkled. Napoleon's short hair was wet and matted
    on the forehead, but his face, though puffy and yellow, expressed
    physical satisfaction. "Go on, harder, go on!" he muttered to the valet
    who was rubbing him, slightly twitching and grunting. An aide-de-camp,
    who had entered the bedroom to report to the Emperor the number of
    prisoners taken in yesterday's action, was standing by the door after
    delivering his message, awaiting permission to withdraw. Napoleon,
    frowning, looked at him from under his brows.
    
    "No prisoners!" said he, repeating the aide-de-camp's words. "They are
    forcing us to exterminate them. So much the worse for the Russian
    army.... Go on... harder, harder!" he muttered, hunching his back and
    presenting his fat shoulders.
    
    "All right. Let Monsieur de Beausset enter, and Fabvier too," he said,
    nodding to the aide-de-camp.
    
    "Yes, sire," and the aide-de-camp disappeared through the door of the
    tent.
    
    Two valets rapidly dressed His Majesty, and wearing the blue uniform of
    the Guards he went with firm quick steps to the reception room.
    
    De Beausset's hands meanwhile were busily engaged arranging the present
    he had brought from the Empress, on two chairs directly in front of the
    entrance. But Napoleon had dressed and come out with such unexpected
    rapidity that he had not time to finish arranging the surprise.
    
    Napoleon noticed at once what they were about and guessed that they were
    not ready. He did not wish to deprive them of the pleasure of giving him
    a surprise, so he pretended not to see de Beausset and called Fabvier to
    him, listening silently and with a stern frown to what Fabvier told him
    of the heroism and devotion of his troops fighting at Salamanca, at the
    other end of Europe, with but one thought--to be worthy of their
    Emperor--and but one fear--to fail to please him. The result of that
    battle had been deplorable. Napoleon made ironic remarks during
    Fabvier's account, as if he had not expected that matters could go
    otherwise in his absence.
    
    "I must make up for that in Moscow," said Napoleon. "I'll see you
    later," he added, and summoned de Beausset, who by that time had
    prepared the surprise, having placed something on the chairs and covered
    it with a cloth.
    
    De Beausset bowed low, with that courtly French bow which only the old
    retainers of the Bourbons knew how to make, and approached him,
    presenting an envelope.
    
    Napoleon turned to him gaily and pulled his ear.
    
    "You have hurried here. I am very glad. Well, what is Paris saying?" he
    asked, suddenly changing his former stern expression for a most cordial
    tone.
    
    "Sire, all Paris regrets your absence," replied de Beausset as was
    proper.
    
    But though Napoleon knew that de Beausset had to say something of this
    kind, and though in his lucid moments he knew it was untrue, he was
    pleased to hear it from him. Again he honored him by touching his ear.
    
    "I am very sorry to have made you travel so far," said he.
    
    "Sire, I expected nothing less than to find you at the gates of Moscow,"
    replied de Beausset.
    
    Napoleon smiled and, lifting his head absent-mindedly, glanced to the
    right. An aide-de-camp approached with gliding steps and offered him a
    gold snuffbox, which he took.
    
    "Yes, it has happened luckily for you," he said, raising the open
    snuffbox to his nose. "You are fond of travel, and in three days you
    will see Moscow. You surely did not expect to see that Asiatic capital.
    You will have a pleasant journey."
    
    De Beausset bowed gratefully at this regard for his taste for travel (of
    which he had not till then been aware).
    
    "Ha, what's this?" asked Napoleon, noticing that all the courtiers were
    looking at something concealed under a cloth.
    
    With courtly adroitness de Beausset half turned and without turning his
    back to the Emperor retired two steps, twitching off the cloth at the
    same time, and said:
    
    "A present to Your Majesty from the Empress."
    
    It was a portrait, painted in bright colors by Gerard, of the son borne
    to Napoleon by the daughter of the Emperor of Austria, the boy whom for
    some reason everyone called "The King of Rome."
    
    A very pretty curly-headed boy with a look of the Christ in the Sistine
    Madonna was depicted playing at stick and ball. The ball represented the
    terrestrial globe and the stick in his other hand a scepter.
    
    Though it was not clear what the artist meant to express by depicting
    the so-called King of Rome spiking the earth with a stick, the allegory
    apparently seemed to Napoleon, as it had done to all who had seen it in
    Paris, quite clear and very pleasing.
    
    "The King of Rome!" he said, pointing to the portrait with a graceful
    gesture. "Admirable!"
    
    With the natural capacity of an Italian for changing the expression of
    his face at will, he drew nearer to the portrait and assumed a look of
    pensive tenderness. He felt that what he now said and did would be
    historical, and it seemed to him that it would now be best for him--
    whose grandeur enabled his son to play stick and ball with the
    terrestrial globe--to show, in contrast to that grandeur, the simplest
    paternal tenderness. His eyes grew dim, he moved forward, glanced round
    at a chair (which seemed to place itself under him), and sat down on it
    before the portrait. At a single gesture from him everyone went out on
    tiptoe, leaving the great man to himself and his emotion.
    
    Having sat still for a while he touched--himself not knowing why--the
    thick spot of paint representing the highest light in the portrait,
    rose, and recalled de Beausset and the officer on duty. He ordered the
    portrait to be carried outside his tent, that the Old Guard, stationed
    round it, might not be deprived of the pleasure of seeing the King of
    Rome, the son and heir of their adored monarch.
    
    And while he was doing M. de Beausset the honor of breakfasting with
    him, they heard, as Napoleon had anticipated, the rapturous cries of the
    officers and men of the Old Guard who had run up to see the portrait.
    
    "Vive l'Empereur! Vive le roi de Rome! Vive l'Empereur!" came those
    ecstatic cries.
    
    After breakfast Napoleon in de Beausset's presence dictated his order of
    the day to the army.
    
    "Short and energetic!" he remarked when he had read over the
    proclamation which he had dictated straight off without corrections. It
    ran:
    
    Soldiers! This is the battle you have so longed for. Victory depends on
    you. It is essential for us; it will give us all we need: comfortable
    quarters and a speedy return to our country. Behave as you did at
    Austerlitz, Friedland, Vitebsk, and Smolensk. Let our remotest posterity
    recall your achievements this day with pride. Let it be said of each of
    you: "He was in the great battle before Moscow!"
    
    "Before Moscow!" repeated Napoleon, and inviting M. de Beausset, who was
    so fond of travel, to accompany him on his ride, he went out of the tent
    to where the horses stood saddled.
    
    "Your Majesty is too kind!" replied de Beausset to the invitation to
    accompany the Emperor; he wanted to sleep, did not know how to ride and
    was afraid of doing so.
    
    But Napoleon nodded to the traveler, and de Beausset had to mount. When
    Napoleon came out of the tent the shouting of the Guards before his
    son's portrait grew still louder. Napoleon frowned.
    
    "Take him away!" he said, pointing with a gracefully majestic gesture to
    the portrait. "It is too soon for him to see a field of battle."
    
    De Beausset closed his eyes, bowed his head, and sighed deeply, to
    indicate how profoundly he valued and comprehended the Emperor's words.
    
    CHAPTER XXVII
    
    On the twenty-fifth of August, so his historians tell us, Napoleon spent
    the whole day on horseback inspecting the locality, considering plans
    submitted to him by his marshals, and personally giving commands to his
    generals.
    
    The original line of the Russian forces along the river Kolocha had been
    dislocated by the capture of the Shevardino Redoubt on the twenty-
    fourth, and part of the line--the left flank--had been drawn back. That
    part of the line was not entrenched and in front of it the ground was
    more open and level than elsewhere. It was evident to anyone, military
    or not, that it was here the French should attack. It would seem that
    not much consideration was needed to reach this conclusion, nor any
    particular care or trouble on the part of the Emperor and his marshals,
    nor was there any need of that special and supreme quality called genius
    that people are so apt to ascribe to Napoleon; yet the historians who
    described the event later and the men who then surrounded Napoleon, and
    he himself, thought otherwise.
    
    Napoleon rode over the plain and surveyed the locality with a profound
    air and in silence, nodded with approval or shook his head dubiously,
    and without communicating to the generals around him the profound course
    of ideas which guided his decisions merely gave them his final
    conclusions in the form of commands. Having listened to a suggestion
    from Davout, who was now called Prince d'Eckmuhl, to turn the Russian
    left wing, Napoleon said it should not be done, without explaining why
    not. To a proposal made by General Campan (who was to attack the
    fleches) to lead his division through the woods, Napoleon agreed, though
    the so-called Duke of Elchingen (Ney) ventured to remark that a movement
    through the woods was dangerous and might disorder the division.
    
    Having inspected the country opposite the Shevardino Redoubt, Napoleon
    pondered a little in silence and then indicated the spots where two
    batteries should be set up by the morrow to act against the Russian
    entrenchments, and the places where, in line with them, the field
    artillery should be placed.
    
    After giving these and other commands he returned to his tent, and the
    dispositions for the battle were written down from his dictation.
    
    These dispositions, of which the French historians write with enthusiasm
    and other historians with profound respect, were as follows:
    
    At dawn the two new batteries established during the night on the plain
    occupied by the Prince d'Eckmuhl will open fire on the opposing
    batteries of the enemy.
    
    At the same time the commander of the artillery of the 1st Corps,
    General Pernetti, with thirty cannon of Campan's division and all the
    howitzers of Dessaix's and Friant's divisions, will move forward, open
    fire, and overwhelm with shellfire the enemy's battery, against which
    will operate:
    
    24 guns of the artillery of the Guards 30 guns of Campan's division
    
    and     8 guns of Friant's and Dessaix's divisions --
    
    in all 62 guns.
    
    The commander of the artillery of the 3rd Corps, General Fouche, will
    place the howitzers of the 3rd and 8th Corps, sixteen in all, on the
    flanks of the battery that is to bombard the entrenchment on the left,
    which will have forty guns in all directed against it.
    
    General Sorbier must be ready at the first order to advance with all the
    howitzers of the Guard's artillery against either one or other of the
    entrenchments.
    
    During the cannonade Prince Poniatowski is to advance through the wood
    on the village and turn the enemy's position.
    
    General Campan will move through the wood to seize the first
    fortification.
    
    After the advance has begun in this manner, orders will be given in
    accordance with the enemy's movements.
    
    The cannonade on the left flank will begin as soon as the guns of the
    right wing are heard. The sharpshooters of Morand's division and of the
    vice-King's division will open a heavy fire on seeing the attack
    commence on the right wing.
    
    The vice-King will occupy the village and cross by its three bridges,
    advancing to the same heights as Morand's and Gibrard's divisions, which
    under his leadership will be directed against the redoubt and come into
    line with the rest of the forces.
    
    All this must be done in good order (le tout se fera avec ordre et
    methode) as far as possible retaining troops in reserve.
    
    The Imperial Camp near Mozhaysk,
    
    September, 6, 1812.
    
    These dispositions, which are very obscure and confused if one allows
    oneself to regard the arrangements without religious awe of his genius,
    related to Napoleon's orders to deal with four points--four different
    orders. Not one of these was, or could be, carried out.
    
    In the disposition it is said first that the batteries placed on the
    spot chosen by Napoleon, with the guns of Pernetti and Fouche; which
    were to come in line with them, 102 guns in all, were to open fire and
    shower shells on the Russian fleches and redoubts. This could not be
    done, as from the spots selected by Napoleon the projectiles did not
    carry to the Russian works, and those 102 guns shot into the air until
    the nearest commander, contrary to Napoleon's instructions, moved them
    forward.
    
    The second order was that Poniatowski, moving to the village through the
    wood, should turn the Russian left flank. This could not be done and was
    not done, because Poniatowski, advancing on the village through the
    wood, met Tuchkov there barring his way, and could not and did not turn
    the Russian position.
    
    The third order was: General Campan will move through the wood to seize
    the first fortification. General Campan's division did not seize the
    first fortification but was driven back, for on emerging from the wood
    it had to reform under grapeshot, of which Napoleon was unaware.
    
    The fourth order was: The vice-King will occupy the village (Borodino)
    and cross by its three bridges, advancing to the same heights as
    Morand's and Gibrard's divisions (for whose movements no directions are
    given), which under his leadership will be directed against the redoubt
    and come into line with the rest of the forces.
    
    As far as one can make out, not so much from this unintelligible
    sentence as from the attempts the vice-King made to execute the orders
    given him, he was to advance from the left through Borodino to the
    redoubt while the divisions of Morand and Gerard were to advance
    simultaneously from the front.
    
    All this, like the other parts of the disposition, was not and could not
    be executed. After passing through Borodino the vice-King was driven
    back to the Kolocha and could get no farther; while the divisions of
    Morand and Gerard did not take the redoubt but were driven back, and the
    redoubt was only taken at the end of the battle by the cavalry (a thing
    probably unforeseen and not heard of by Napoleon). So not one of the
    orders in the disposition was, or could be, executed. But in the
    disposition it is said that, after the fight has commenced in this
    manner, orders will be given in accordance with the enemy's movements,
    and so it might be supposed that all necessary arrangements would be
    made by Napoleon during the battle. But this was not and could not be
    done, for during the whole battle Napoleon was so far away that, as
    appeared later, he could not know the course of the battle and not one
    of his orders during the fight could be executed.
    
    CHAPTER XXVIII
    
    Many historians say that the French did not win the battle of Borodino
    because Napoleon had a cold, and that if he had not had a cold the
    orders he gave before and during the battle would have been still more
    full of genius and Russia would have been lost and the face of the world
    have been changed. To historians who believe that Russia was shaped by
    the will of one man--Peter the Great--and that France from a republic
    became an empire and French armies went to Russia at the will of one
    man--Napoleon--to say that Russia remained a power because Napoleon had
    a bad cold on the twenty-fourth of August may seem logical and
    convincing.
    
    If it had depended on Napoleon's will to fight or not to fight the
    battle of Borodino, and if this or that other arrangement depended on
    his will, then evidently a cold affecting the manifestation of his will
    might have saved Russia, and consequently the valet who omitted to bring
    Napoleon his waterproof boots on the twenty-fourth would have been the
    savior of Russia. Along that line of thought such a deduction is
    indubitable, as indubitable as the deduction Voltaire made in jest
    (without knowing what he was jesting at) when he saw that the Massacre
    of St. Bartholomew was due to Charles IX's stomach being deranged. But
    to men who do not admit that Russia was formed by the will of one man,
    Peter I, or that the French Empire was formed and the war with Russia
    begun by the will of one man, Napoleon, that argument seems not merely
    untrue and irrational, but contrary to all human reality. To the
    question of what causes historic events another answer presents itself,
    namely, that the course of human events is predetermined from on high--
    depends on the coincidence of the wills of all who take part in the
    events, and that a Napoleon's influence on the course of these events is
    purely external and fictitious.
    
    Strange as at first glance it may seem to suppose that the Massacre of
    St. Bartholomew was not due to Charles IX's will, though he gave the
    order for it and thought it was done as a result of that order; and
    strange as it may seem to suppose that the slaughter of eighty thousand
    men at Borodino was not due to Napoleon's will, though he ordered the
    commencement and conduct of the battle and thought it was done because
    he ordered it; strange as these suppositions appear, yet human dignity--
    which tells me that each of us is, if not more at least not less a man
    than the great Napoleon--demands the acceptance of that solution of the
    question, and historic investigation abundantly confirms it.
    
    At the battle of Borodino Napoleon shot at no one and killed no one.
    That was all done by the soldiers. Therefore it was not he who killed
    people.
    
    The French soldiers went to kill and be killed at the battle of Borodino
    not because of Napoleon's orders but by their own volition. The whole
    army--French, Italian, German, Polish, and Dutch--hungry, ragged, and
    weary of the campaign, felt at the sight of an army blocking their road
    to Moscow that the wine was drawn and must be drunk. Had Napoleon then
    forbidden them to fight the Russians, they would have killed him and
    have proceeded to fight the Russians because it was inevitable.
    
    When they heard Napoleon's proclamation offering them, as compensation
    for mutilation and death, the words of posterity about their having been
    in the battle before Moscow, they cried "Vive l'Empereur!" just as they
    had cried "Vive l'Empereur!" at the sight of the portrait of the boy
    piercing the terrestrial globe with a toy stick, and just as they would
    have cried "Vive l'Empereur!" at any nonsense that might be told them.
    There was nothing left for them to do but cry "Vive l'Empereur!" and go
    to fight, in order to get food and rest as conquerors in Moscow. So it
    was not because of Napoleon's commands that they killed their fellow
    men.
    
    And it was not Napoleon who directed the course of the battle, for none
    of his orders were executed and during the battle he did not know what
    was going on before him. So the way in which these people killed one
    another was not decided by Napoleon's will but occurred independently of
    him, in accord with the will of hundreds of thousands of people who took
    part in the common action. It only seemed to Napoleon that it all took
    place by his will. And so the question whether he had or had not a cold
    has no more historic interest than the cold of the least of the
    transport soldiers.
    
    Moreover, the assertion made by various writers that his cold was the
    cause of his dispositions not being as well-planned as on former
    occasions, and of his orders during the battle not being as good as
    previously, is quite baseless, which again shows that Napoleon's cold on
    the twenty-sixth of August was unimportant.
    
    The dispositions cited above are not at all worse, but are even better,
    than previous dispositions by which he had won victories. His pseudo-
    orders during the battle were also no worse than formerly, but much the
    same as usual. These dispositions and orders only seem worse than
    previous ones because the battle of Borodino was the first Napoleon did
    not win. The profoundest and most excellent dispositions and orders seem
    very bad, and every learned militarist criticizes them with looks of
    importance, when they relate to a battle that has been lost, and the
    very worst dispositions and orders seem very good, and serious people
    fill whole volumes to demonstrate their merits, when they relate to a
    battle that has been won.
    
    The dispositions drawn up by Weyrother for the battle of Austerlitz were
    a model of perfection for that kind of composition, but still they were
    criticized--criticized for their very perfection, for their excessive
    minuteness.
    
    Napoleon at the battle of Borodino fulfilled his office as
    representative of authority as well as, and even better than, at other
    battles. He did nothing harmful to the progress of the battle; he
    inclined to the most reasonable opinions, he made no confusion, did not
    contradict himself, did not get frightened or run away from the field of
    battle, but with his great tact and military experience carried out his
    role of appearing to command, calmly and with dignity.
    
    CHAPTER XXIX
    
    On returning from a second inspection of the lines, Napoleon remarked:
    
    "The chessmen are set up, the game will begin tomorrow!"
    
    Having ordered punch and summoned de Beausset, he began to talk to him
    about Paris and about some changes he meant to make in the Empress'
    household, surprising the prefect by his memory of minute details
    relating to the court.
    
    He showed an interest in trifles, joked about de Beausset's love of
    travel, and chatted carelessly, as a famous, self-confident surgeon who
    knows his job does when turning up his sleeves and putting on his apron
    while a patient is being strapped to the operating table. "The matter is
    in my hands and is clear and definite in my head. When the time comes to
    set to work I shall do it as no one else could, but now I can jest, and
    the more I jest and the calmer I am the more tranquil and confident you
    ought to be, and the more amazed at my genius."
    
    Having finished his second glass of punch, Napoleon went to rest before
    the serious business which, he considered, awaited him next day. He was
    so much interested in that task that he was unable to sleep, and in
    spite of his cold which had grown worse from the dampness of the
    evening, he went into the large division of the tent at three o'clock in
    the morning, loudly blowing his nose. He asked whether the Russians had
    not withdrawn, and was told that the enemy's fires were still in the
    same places. He nodded approval.
    
    The adjutant in attendance came into the tent.
    
    "Well, Rapp, do you think we shall do good business today?" Napoleon
    asked him.
    
    "Without doubt, sire," replied Rapp.
    
    Napoleon looked at him.
    
    "Do you remember, sire, what you did me the honor to say at Smolensk?"
    continued Rapp. "The wine is drawn and must be drunk."
    
    Napoleon frowned and sat silent for a long time leaning his head on his
    hand.
    
    "This poor army!" he suddenly remarked. "It has diminished greatly since
    Smolensk. Fortune is frankly a courtesan, Rapp. I have always said so
    and I am beginning to experience it. But the Guards, Rapp, the Guards
    are intact?" he remarked interrogatively.
    
    "Yes, sire," replied Rapp.
    
    Napoleon took a lozenge, put it in his mouth, and glanced at his watch.
    He was not sleepy and it was still not nearly morning. It was impossible
    to give further orders for the sake of killing time, for the orders had
    all been given and were now being executed.
    
    "Have the biscuits and rice been served out to the regiments of the
    Guards?" asked Napoleon sternly.
    
    "Yes, sire."
    
    "The rice too?"
    
    Rapp replied that he had given the Emperor's order about the rice, but
    Napoleon shook his head in dissatisfaction as if not believing that his
    order had been executed. An attendant came in with punch. Napoleon
    ordered another glass to be brought for Rapp, and silently sipped his
    own.
    
    "I have neither taste nor smell," he remarked, sniffing at his glass.
    "This cold is tiresome. They talk about medicine--what is the good of
    medicine when it can't cure a cold! Corvisart gave me these lozenges but
    they don't help at all. What can doctors cure? One can't cure anything.
    Our body is a machine for living. It is organized for that, it is its
    nature. Let life go on in it unhindered and let it defend itself, it
    will do more than if you paralyze it by encumbering it with remedies.
    Our body is like a perfect watch that should go for a certain time; the
    watchmaker cannot open it, he can only adjust it by fumbling, and that
    blindfold.... Yes, our body is just a machine for living, that is all."
    
    And having entered on the path of definition, of which he was fond,
    Napoleon suddenly and unexpectedly gave a new one.
    
    "Do you know, Rapp, what military art is?" asked he. "It is the art of
    being stronger than the enemy at a given moment. That's all."
    
    Rapp made no reply.
    
    "Tomorrow we shall have to deal with Kutuzov!" said Napoleon. "We shall
    see! Do you remember at Braunau he commanded an army for three weeks and
    did not once mount a horse to inspect his entrenchments.... We shall
    see!"
    
    He looked at his watch. It was still only four o'clock. He did not feel
    sleepy. The punch was finished and there was still nothing to do. He
    rose, walked to and fro, put on a warm overcoat and a hat, and went out
    of the tent. The night was dark and damp, a scarcely perceptible
    moisture was descending from above. Near by, the campfires were dimly
    burning among the French Guards, and in the distance those of the
    Russian line shone through the smoke. The weather was calm, and the
    rustle and tramp of the French troops already beginning to move to take
    up their positions were clearly audible.
    
    Napoleon walked about in front of his tent, looked at the fires and
    listened to these sounds, and as he was passing a tall guardsman in a
    shaggy cap, who was standing sentinel before his tent and had drawn
    himself up like a black pillar at sight of the Emperor, Napoleon stopped
    in front of him.
    
    "What year did you enter the service?" he asked with that affectation of
    military bluntness and geniality with which he always addressed the
    soldiers.
    
    The man answered the question.
    
    "Ah! One of the old ones! Has your regiment had its rice?"
    
    "It has, Your Majesty."
    
    Napoleon nodded and walked away.
    
    At half-past five Napoleon rode to the village of Shevardino.
    
    It was growing light, the sky was clearing, only a single cloud lay in
    the east. The abandoned campfires were burning themselves out in the
    faint morning light.
    
    On the right a single deep report of a cannon resounded and died away in
    the prevailing silence. Some minutes passed. A second and a third report
    shook the air, then a fourth and a fifth boomed solemnly near by on the
    right.
    
    The first shots had not yet ceased to reverberate before others rang out
    and yet more were heard mingling with and overtaking one another.
    
    Napoleon with his suite rode up to the Shevardino Redoubt where he
    dismounted. The game had begun.
    
    CHAPTER XXX
    
    On returning to Gorki after having seen Prince Andrew, Pierre ordered
    his groom to get the horses ready and to call him early in the morning,
    and then immediately fell asleep behind a partition in a corner Boris
    had given up to him.
    
    Before he was thoroughly awake next morning everybody had already left
    the hut. The panes were rattling in the little windows and his groom was
    shaking him.
    
    "Your excellency! Your excellency! Your excellency!" he kept repeating
    pertinaciously while he shook Pierre by the shoulder without looking at
    him, having apparently lost hope of getting him to wake up.
    
    "What? Has it begun? Is it time?" Pierre asked, waking up.
    
    "Hear the firing," said the groom, a discharged soldier. "All the
    gentlemen have gone out, and his Serene Highness himself rode past long
    ago."
    
    Pierre dressed hastily and ran out to the porch. Outside all was bright,
    fresh, dewy, and cheerful. The sun, just bursting forth from behind a
    cloud that had concealed it, was shining, with rays still half broken by
    the clouds, over the roofs of the street opposite, on the dew-
    besprinkled dust of the road, on the walls of the houses, on the
    windows, the fence, and on Pierre's horses standing before the hut. The
    roar of guns sounded more distinct outside. An adjutant accompanied by a
    Cossack passed by at a sharp trot.
    
    "It's time, Count; it's time!" cried the adjutant.
    
    Telling the groom to follow him with the horses, Pierre went down the
    street to the knoll from which he had looked at the field of battle the
    day before. A crowd of military men was assembled there, members of the
    staff could be heard conversing in French, and Kutuzov's gray head in a
    white cap with a red band was visible, his gray nape sunk between his
    shoulders. He was looking through a field glass down the highroad before
    him.
    
    Mounting the steps to the knoll Pierre looked at the scene before him,
    spellbound by beauty. It was the same panorama he had admired from that
    spot the day before, but now the whole place was full of troops and
    covered by smoke clouds from the guns, and the slanting rays of the
    bright sun, rising slightly to the left behind Pierre, cast upon it
    through the clear morning air penetrating streaks of rosy, golden-tinted
    light and long dark shadows. The forest at the farthest extremity of the
    panorama seemed carved in some precious stone of a yellowish-green
    color; its undulating outline was silhouetted against the horizon and
    was pierced beyond Valuevo by the Smolensk highroad crowded with troops.
    Nearer at hand glittered golden cornfields interspersed with copses.
    There were troops to be seen everywhere, in front and to the right and
    left. All this was vivid, majestic, and unexpected; but what impressed
    Pierre most of all was the view of the battlefield itself, of Borodino
    and the hollows on both sides of the Kolocha.
    
    Above the Kolocha, in Borodino and on both sides of it, especially to
    the left where the Voyna flowing between its marshy banks falls into the
    Kolocha, a mist had spread which seemed to melt, to dissolve, and to
    become translucent when the brilliant sun appeared and magically colored
    and outlined everything. The smoke of the guns mingled with this mist,
    and over the whole expanse and through that mist the rays of the morning
    sun were reflected, flashing back like lightning from the water, from
    the dew, and from the bayonets of the troops crowded together by the
    riverbanks and in Borodino. A white church could be seen through the
    mist, and here and there the roofs of huts in Borodino as well as dense
    masses of soldiers, or green ammunition chests and ordnance. And all
    this moved, or seemed to move, as the smoke and mist spread out over the
    whole space. Just as in the mist-enveloped hollow near Borodino, so
    along the entire line outside and above it and especially in the woods
    and fields to the left, in the valleys and on the summits of the high
    ground, clouds of powder smoke seemed continually to spring up out of
    nothing, now singly, now several at a time, some translucent, others
    dense, which, swelling, growing, rolling, and blending, extended over
    the whole expanse.
    
    These puffs of smoke and (strange to say) the sound of the firing
    produced the chief beauty of the spectacle.
    
    "Puff!"--suddenly a round compact cloud of smoke was seen merging from
    violet into gray and milky white, and "boom!" came the report a second
    later.
    
    "Puff! puff!"--and two clouds arose pushing one another and blending
    together; and "boom, boom!" came the sounds confirming what the eye had
    seen.
    
    Pierre glanced round at the first cloud, which he had seen as a round
    compact ball, and in its place already were balloons of smoke floating
    to one side, and--"puff" (with a pause)--"puff, puff!" three and then
    four more appeared and then from each, with the same interval--"boom--
    boom, boom!" came the fine, firm, precise sounds in reply. It seemed as
    if those smoke clouds sometimes ran and sometimes stood still while
    woods, fields, and glittering bayonets ran past them. From the left,
    over fields and bushes, those large balls of smoke were continually
    appearing followed by their solemn reports, while nearer still, in the
    hollows and woods, there burst from the muskets small cloudlets that had
    no time to become balls, but had their little echoes in just the same
    way. "Trakh-ta-ta-takh!" came the frequent crackle of musketry, but it
    was irregular and feeble in comparison with the reports of the cannon.
    
    Pierre wished to be there with that smoke, those shining bayonets, that
    movement, and those sounds. He turned to look at Kutuzov and his suite,
    to compare his impressions with those of others. They were all looking
    at the field of battle as he was, and, as it seemed to him, with the
    same feelings. All their faces were now shining with that latent warmth
    of feeling Pierre had noticed the day before and had fully understood
    after his talk with Prince Andrew.
    
    "Go, my dear fellow, go... and Christ be with you!" Kutuzov was saying
    to a general who stood beside him, not taking his eye from the
    battlefield.
    
    Having received this order the general passed by Pierre on his way down
    the knoll.
    
    "To the crossing!" said the general coldly and sternly in reply to one
    of the staff who asked where he was going.
    
    "I'll go there too, I too!" thought Pierre, and followed the general.
    
    The general mounted a horse a Cossack had brought him. Pierre went to
    his groom who was holding his horses and, asking which was the quietest,
    clambered onto it, seized it by the mane, and turning out his toes
    pressed his heels against its sides and, feeling that his spectacles
    were slipping off but unable to let go of the mane and reins, he
    galloped after the general, causing the staff officers to smile as they
    watched him from the knoll.
    
    CHAPTER XXXI
    
    Having descended the hill the general after whom Pierre was galloping
    turned sharply to the left, and Pierre, losing sight of him, galloped in
    among some ranks of infantry marching ahead of him. He tried to pass
    either in front of them or to the right or left, but there were soldiers
    everywhere, all with the same preoccupied expression and busy with some
    unseen but evidently important task. They all gazed with the same
    dissatisfied and inquiring expression at this stout man in a white hat,
    who for some unknown reason threatened to trample them under his horse's
    hoofs.
    
    "Why ride into the middle of the battalion?" one of them shouted at him.
    
    Another prodded his horse with the butt end of a musket, and Pierre,
    bending over his saddlebow and hardly able to control his shying horse,
    galloped ahead of the soldiers where there was a free space.
    
    There was a bridge ahead of him, where other soldiers stood firing.
    Pierre rode up to them. Without being aware of it he had come to the
    bridge across the Kolocha between Gorki and Borodino, which the French
    (having occupied Borodino) were attacking in the first phase of the
    battle. Pierre saw that there was a bridge in front of him and that
    soldiers were doing something on both sides of it and in the meadow,
    among the rows of new-mown hay which he had taken no notice of amid the
    smoke of the campfires the day before; but despite the incessant firing
    going on there he had no idea that this was the field of battle. He did
    not notice the sound of the bullets whistling from every side, or the
    projectiles that flew over him, did not see the enemy on the other side
    of the river, and for a long time did not notice the killed and wounded,
    though many fell near him. He looked about him with a smile which did
    not leave his face.
    
    "Why's that fellow in front of the line?" shouted somebody at him again.
    
    "To the left!... Keep to the right!" the men shouted to him.
    
    Pierre went to the right, and unexpectedly encountered one of Raevski's
    adjutants whom he knew. The adjutant looked angrily at him, evidently
    also intending to shout at him, but on recognizing him he nodded.
    
    "How have you got here?" he said, and galloped on.
    
    Pierre, feeling out of place there, having nothing to do, and afraid of
    getting in someone's way again, galloped after the adjutant.
    
    "What's happening here? May I come with you?" he asked.
    
    "One moment, one moment!" replied the adjutant, and riding up to a stout
    colonel who was standing in the meadow, he gave him some message and
    then addressed Pierre.
    
    "Why have you come here, Count?" he asked with a smile. "Still
    inquisitive?"
    
    "Yes, yes," assented Pierre.
    
    But the adjutant turned his horse about and rode on.
    
    "Here it's tolerable," said he, "but with Bagration on the left flank
    they're getting it frightfully hot."
    
    "Really?" said Pierre. "Where is that?"
    
    "Come along with me to our knoll. We can get a view from there and in
    our battery it is still bearable," said the adjutant. "Will you come?"
    
    "Yes, I'll come with you," replied Pierre, looking round for his groom.
    
    It was only now that he noticed wounded men staggering along or being
    carried on stretchers. On that very meadow he had ridden over the day
    before, a soldier was lying athwart the rows of scented hay, with his
    head thrown awkwardly back and his shako off.
    
    "Why haven't they carried him away?" Pierre was about to ask, but seeing
    the stern expression of the adjutant who was also looking that way, he
    checked himself.
    
    Pierre did not find his groom and rode along the hollow with the
    adjutant to Raevski's Redoubt. His horse lagged behind the adjutant's
    and jolted him at every step.
    
    "You don't seem to be used to riding, Count?" remarked the adjutant.
    
    "No it's not that, but her action seems so jerky," said Pierre in a
    puzzled tone.
    
    "Why... she's wounded!" said the adjutant. "In the off foreleg above the
    knee. A bullet, no doubt. I congratulate you, Count, on your baptism of
    fire!"
    
    Having ridden in the smoke past the Sixth Corps, behind the artillery
    which had been moved forward and was in action, deafening them with the
    noise of firing, they came to a small wood. There it was cool and quiet,
    with a scent of autumn. Pierre and the adjutant dismounted and walked up
    the hill on foot.
    
    "Is the general here?" asked the adjutant on reaching the knoll.
    
    "He was here a minute ago but has just gone that way," someone told him,
    pointing to the right.
    
    The adjutant looked at Pierre as if puzzled what to do with him now.
    
    "Don't trouble about me," said Pierre. "I'll go up onto the knoll if I
    may?"
    
    "Yes, do. You'll see everything from there and it's less dangerous, and
    I'll come for you."
    
    Pierre went to the battery and the adjutant rode on. They did not meet
    again, and only much later did Pierre learn that he lost an arm that
    day.
    
    The knoll to which Pierre ascended was that famous one afterwards known
    to the Russians as the Knoll Battery or Raevski's Redoubt, and to the
    French as la grande redoute, la fatale redoute, la redoute du centre,
    around which tens of thousands fell, and which the French regarded as
    the key to the whole position.
    
    This redoubt consisted of a knoll, on three sides of which trenches had
    been dug. Within the entrenchment stood ten guns that were being fired
    through openings in the earthwork.
    
    In line with the knoll on both sides stood other guns which also fired
    incessantly. A little behind the guns stood infantry. When ascending
    that knoll Pierre had no notion that this spot, on which small trenches
    had been dug and from which a few guns were firing, was the most
    important point of the battle.
    
    On the contrary, just because he happened to be there he thought it one
    of the least significant parts of the field.
    
    Having reached the knoll, Pierre sat down at one end of a trench
    surrounding the battery and gazed at what was going on around him with
    an unconsciously happy smile. Occasionally he rose and walked about the
    battery still with that same smile, trying not to obstruct the soldiers
    who were loading, hauling the guns, and continually running past him
    with bags and charges. The guns of that battery were being fired
    continually one after another with a deafening roar, enveloping the
    whole neighborhood in powder smoke.
    
    In contrast with the dread felt by the infantrymen placed in support,
    here in the battery where a small number of men busy at their work were
    separated from the rest by a trench, everyone experienced a common and
    as it were family feeling of animation.
    
    The intrusion of Pierre's nonmilitary figure in a white hat made an
    unpleasant impression at first. The soldiers looked askance at him with
    surprise and even alarm as they went past him. The senior artillery
    officer, a tall, long-legged, pockmarked man, moved over to Pierre as if
    to see the action of the farthest gun and looked at him with curiosity.
    
    A young round-faced officer, quite a boy still and evidently only just
    out of the Cadet College, who was zealously commanding the two guns
    entrusted to him, addressed Pierre sternly.
    
    "Sir," he said, "permit me to ask you to stand aside. You must not be
    here."
    
    The soldiers shook their heads disapprovingly as they looked at Pierre.
    But when they had convinced themselves that this man in the white hat
    was doing no harm, but either sat quietly on the slope of the trench
    with a shy smile or, politely making way for the soldiers, paced up and
    down the battery under fire as calmly as if he were on a boulevard,
    their feeling of hostile distrust gradually began to change into a
    kindly and bantering sympathy, such as soldiers feel for their dogs,
    cocks, goats, and in general for the animals that live with the
    regiment. The men soon accepted Pierre into their family, adopted him,
    gave him a nickname ("our gentleman"), and made kindly fun of him among
    themselves.
    
    A shell tore up the earth two paces from Pierre and he looked around
    with a smile as he brushed from his clothes some earth it had thrown up.
    
    "And how's it you're not afraid, sir, really now?" a red-faced, broad-
    shouldered soldier asked Pierre, with a grin that disclosed a set of
    sound, white teeth.
    
    "Are you afraid, then?" said Pierre.
    
    "What else do you expect?" answered the soldier. "She has no mercy, you
    know! When she comes spluttering down, out go your innards. One can't
    help being afraid," he said laughing.
    
    Several of the men, with bright kindly faces, stopped beside Pierre.
    They seemed not to have expected him to talk like anybody else, and the
    discovery that he did so delighted them.
    
    "It's the business of us soldiers. But in a gentleman it's wonderful!
    There's a gentleman for you!"
    
    "To your places!" cried the young officer to the men gathered round
    Pierre.
    
    The young officer was evidently exercising his duties for the first or
    second time and therefore treated both his superiors and the men with
    great precision and formality.
    
    The booming cannonade and the fusillade of musketry were growing more
    intense over the whole field, especially to the left where Bagration's
    fleches were, but where Pierre was the smoke of the firing made it
    almost impossible to distinguish anything. Moreover, his whole attention
    was engrossed by watching the family circle--separated from all else--
    formed by the men in the battery. His first unconscious feeling of
    joyful animation produced by the sights and sounds of the battlefield
    was now replaced by another, especially since he had seen that soldier
    lying alone in the hayfield. Now, seated on the slope of the trench, he
    observed the faces of those around him.
    
    By ten o'clock some twenty men had already been carried away from the
    battery; two guns were smashed and cannon balls fell more and more
    frequently on the battery and spent bullets buzzed and whistled around.
    But the men in the battery seemed not to notice this, and merry voices
    and jokes were heard on all sides.
    
    "A live one!" shouted a man as a whistling shell approached.
    
    "Not this way! To the infantry!" added another with loud laughter,
    seeing the shell fly past and fall into the ranks of the supports.
    
    "Are you bowing to a friend, eh?" remarked another, chaffing a peasant
    who ducked low as a cannon ball flew over.
    
    Several soldiers gathered by the wall of the trench, looking out to see
    what was happening in front.
    
    "They've withdrawn the front line, it has retired," said they, pointing
    over the earthwork.
    
    "Mind your own business," an old sergeant shouted at them. "If they've
    retired it's because there's work for them to do farther back."
    
    And the sergeant, taking one of the men by the shoulders, gave him a
    shove with his knee. This was followed by a burst of laughter.
    
    "To the fifth gun, wheel it up!" came shouts from one side.
    
    "Now then, all together, like bargees!" rose the merry voices of those
    who were moving the gun.
    
    "Oh, she nearly knocked our gentleman's hat off!" cried the red-faced
    humorist, showing his teeth chaffing Pierre. "Awkward baggage!" he added
    reproachfully to a cannon ball that struck a cannon wheel and a man's
    leg.
    
    "Now then, you foxes!" said another, laughing at some militiamen who,
    stooping low, entered the battery to carry away the wounded man.
    
    "So this gruel isn't to your taste? Oh, you crows! You're scared!" they
    shouted at the militiamen who stood hesitating before the man whose leg
    had been torn off.
    
    "There, lads... oh, oh!" they mimicked the peasants, "they don't like it
    at all!"
    
    Pierre noticed that after every ball that hit the redoubt, and after
    every loss, the liveliness increased more and more.
    
    As the flames of the fire hidden within come more and more vividly and
    rapidly from an approaching thundercloud, so, as if in opposition to
    what was taking place, the lightning of hidden fire growing more and
    more intense glowed in the faces of these men.
    
    Pierre did not look out at the battlefield and was not concerned to know
    what was happening there; he was entirely absorbed in watching this fire
    which burned ever more brightly and which he felt was flaming up in the
    same way in his own soul.
    
    At ten o'clock the infantry that had been among the bushes in front of
    the battery and along the Kamenka streamlet retreated. From the battery
    they could be seen running back past it carrying their wounded on their
    muskets. A general with his suite came to the battery, and after
    speaking to the colonel gave Pierre an angry look and went away again
    having ordered the infantry supports behind the battery to lie down, so
    as to be less exposed to fire. After this from amid the ranks of
    infantry to the right of the battery came the sound of a drum and shouts
    of command, and from the battery one saw how those ranks of infantry
    moved forward.
    
    Pierre looked over the wall of the trench and was particularly struck by
    a pale young officer who, letting his sword hang down, was walking
    backwards and kept glancing uneasily around.
    
    The ranks of the infantry disappeared amid the smoke but their long-
    drawn shout and rapid musketry firing could still be heard. A few
    minutes later crowds of wounded men and stretcher-bearers came back from
    that direction. Projectiles began to fall still more frequently in the
    battery. Several men were lying about who had not been removed. Around
    the cannon the men moved still more briskly and busily. No one any
    longer took notice of Pierre. Once or twice he was shouted at for being
    in the way. The senior officer moved with big, rapid strides from one
    gun to another with a frowning face. The young officer, with his face
    still more flushed, commanded the men more scrupulously than ever. The
    soldiers handed up the charges, turned, loaded, and did their business
    with strained smartness. They gave little jumps as they walked, as
    though they were on springs.
    
    The stormcloud had come upon them, and in every face the fire which
    Pierre had watched kindle burned up brightly. Pierre standing beside the
    commanding officer. The young officer, his hand to his shako, ran up to
    his superior.
    
    "I have the honor to report, sir, that only eight rounds are left. Are
    we to continue firing?" he asked.
    
    "Grapeshot!" the senior shouted, without answering the question, looking
    over the wall of the trench.
    
    Suddenly something happened: the young officer gave a gasp and bending
    double sat down on the ground like a bird shot on the wing. Everything
    became strange, confused, and misty in Pierre's eyes.
    
    One cannon ball after another whistled by and struck the earthwork, a
    soldier, or a gun. Pierre, who had not noticed these sounds before, now
    heard nothing else. On the right of the battery soldiers shouting
    "Hurrah!" were running not forwards but backwards, it seemed to Pierre.
    
    A cannon ball struck the very end of the earth work by which he was
    standing, crumbling down the earth; a black ball flashed before his eyes
    and at the same instant plumped into something. Some militiamen who were
    entering the battery ran back.
    
    "All with grapeshot!" shouted the officer.
    
    The sergeant ran up to the officer and in a frightened whisper informed
    him (as a butler at dinner informs his master that there is no more of
    some wine asked for) that there were no more charges.
    
    "The scoundrels! What are they doing?" shouted the officer, turning to
    Pierre.
    
    The officer's face was red and perspiring and his eyes glittered under
    his frowning brow.
    
    "Run to the reserves and bring up the ammunition boxes!" he yelled,
    angrily avoiding Pierre with his eyes and speaking to his men.
    
    "I'll go," said Pierre.
    
    The officer, without answering him, strode across to the opposite side.
    
    "Don't fire.... Wait!" he shouted.
    
    The man who had been ordered to go for ammunition stumbled against
    Pierre.
    
    "Eh, sir, this is no place for you," said he, and ran down the slope.
    
    Pierre ran after him, avoiding the spot where the young officer was
    sitting.
    
    One cannon ball, another, and a third flew over him, falling in front,
    beside, and behind him. Pierre ran down the slope. "Where am I going?"
    he suddenly asked himself when he was already near the green ammunition
    wagons. He halted irresolutely, not knowing whether to return or go on.
    Suddenly a terrible concussion threw him backwards to the ground. At the
    same instant he was dazzled by a great flash of flame, and immediately a
    deafening roar, crackling, and whistling made his ears tingle.
    
    When he came to himself he was sitting on the ground leaning on his
    hands; the ammunition wagons he had been approaching no longer existed,
    only charred green boards and rags littered the scorched grass, and a
    horse, dangling fragments of its shaft behind it, galloped past, while
    another horse lay, like Pierre, on the ground, uttering prolonged and
    piercing cries.
    
    CHAPTER XXXII
    
    Beside himself with terror Pierre jumped up and ran back to the battery,
    as to the only refuge from the horrors that surrounded him.
    
    On entering the earthwork he noticed that there were men doing something
    there but that no shots were being fired from the battery. He had no
    time to realize who these men were. He saw the senior officer lying on
    the earth wall with his back turned as if he were examining something
    down below and that one of the soldiers he had noticed before was
    struggling forward shouting "Brothers!" and trying to free himself from
    some men who were holding him by the arm. He also saw something else
    that was strange.
    
    But he had not time to realize that the colonel had been killed, that
    the soldier shouting "Brothers!" was a prisoner, and that another man
    had been bayoneted in the back before his eyes, for hardly had he run
    into the redoubt before a thin, sallow-faced, perspiring man in a blue
    uniform rushed on him sword in hand, shouting something. Instinctively
    guarding against the shock--for they had been running together at full
    speed before they saw one another--Pierre put out his hands and seized
    the man (a French officer) by the shoulder with one hand and by the
    throat with the other. The officer, dropping his sword, seized Pierre by
    his collar.
    
    For some seconds they gazed with frightened eyes at one another's
    unfamiliar faces and both were perplexed at what they had done and what
    they were to do next. "Am I taken prisoner or have I taken him
    prisoner?" each was thinking. But the French officer was evidently more
    inclined to think he had been taken prisoner because Pierre's strong
    hand, impelled by instinctive fear, squeezed his throat ever tighter and
    tighter. The Frenchman was about to say something, when just above their
    heads, terrible and low, a cannon ball whistled, and it seemed to Pierre
    that the French officer's head had been torn off, so swiftly had he
    ducked it.
    
    Pierre too bent his head and let his hands fall. Without further thought
    as to who had taken whom prisoner, the Frenchman ran back to the battery
    and Pierre ran down the slope stumbling over the dead and wounded who,
    it seemed to him, caught at his feet. But before he reached the foot of
    the knoll he was met by a dense crowd of Russian soldiers who,
    stumbling, tripping up, and shouting, ran merrily and wildly toward the
    battery. (This was the attack for which Ermolov claimed the credit,
    declaring that only his courage and good luck made such a feat possible:
    it was the attack in which he was said to have thrown some St. George's
    Crosses he had in his pocket into the battery for the first soldiers to
    take who got there.)
    
    The French who had occupied the battery fled, and our troops shouting
    "Hurrah!" pursued them so far beyond the battery that it was difficult
    to call them back.
    
    The prisoners were brought down from the battery and among them was a
    wounded French general, whom the officers surrounded. Crowds of wounded-
    -some known to Pierre and some unknown--Russians and French, with faces
    distorted by suffering, walked, crawled, and were carried on stretchers
    from the battery. Pierre again went up onto the knoll where he had spent
    over an hour, and of that family circle which had received him as a
    member he did not find a single one. There were many dead whom he did
    not know, but some he recognized. The young officer still sat in the
    same way, bent double, in a pool of blood at the edge of the earth wall.
    The red-faced man was still twitching, but they did not carry him away.
    
    Pierre ran down the slope once more.
    
    "Now they will stop it, now they will be horrified at what they have
    done!" he thought, aimlessly going toward a crowd of stretcher bearers
    moving from the battlefield.
    
    But behind the veil of smoke the sun was still high, and in front and
    especially to the left, near Semenovsk, something seemed to be seething
    in the smoke, and the roar of cannon and musketry did not diminish, but
    even increased to desperation like a man who, straining himself, shrieks
    with all his remaining strength.
    
    CHAPTER XXXIII
    
    The chief action of the battle of Borodino was fought within the seven
    thousand feet between Borodino and Bagration's fleches. Beyond that
    space there was, on the one side, a demonstration made by the Russians
    with Uvarov's cavalry at midday, and on the other side, beyond Utitsa,
    Poniatowski's collision with Tuchkov; but these two were detached and
    feeble actions in comparison with what took place in the center of the
    battlefield. On the field between Borodino and the fleches, beside the
    wood, the chief action of the day took place on an open space visible
    from both sides and was fought in the simplest and most artless way.
    
    The battle began on both sides with a cannonade from several hundred
    guns.
    
    Then when the whole field was covered with smoke, two divisions,
    Campan's and Dessaix's, advanced from the French right, while Murat's
    troops advanced on Borodino from their left.
    
    From the Shevardino Redoubt where Napoleon was standing the fleches were
    two thirds of a mile away, and it was more than a mile as the crow flies
    to Borodino, so that Napoleon could not see what was happening there,
    especially as the smoke mingling with the mist hid the whole locality.
    The soldiers of Dessaix's division advancing against the fleches could
    only be seen till they had entered the hollow that lay between them and
    the fleches. As soon as they had descended into that hollow, the smoke
    of the guns and musketry on the fleches grew so dense that it covered
    the whole approach on that side of it. Through the smoke glimpses could
    be caught of something black--probably men--and at times the glint of
    bayonets. But whether they were moving or stationary, whether they were
    French or Russian, could not be discovered from the Shevardino Redoubt.
    
    The sun had risen brightly and its slanting rays struck straight into
    Napoleon's face as, shading his eyes with his hand, he looked at the
    fleches. The smoke spread out before them, and at times it looked as if
    the smoke were moving, at times as if the troops moved. Sometimes shouts
    were heard through the firing, but it was impossible to tell what was
    being done there.
    
    Napoleon, standing on the knoll, looked through a field glass, and in
    its small circlet saw smoke and men, sometimes his own and sometimes
    Russians, but when he looked again with the naked eye, he could not tell
    where what he had seen was.
    
    He descended the knoll and began walking up and down before it.
    
    Occasionally he stopped, listened to the firing, and gazed intently at
    the battlefield.
    
    But not only was it impossible to make out what was happening from where
    he was standing down below, or from the knoll above on which some of his
    generals had taken their stand, but even from the fleches themselves--in
    which by this time there were now Russian and now French soldiers,
    alternately or together, dead, wounded, alive, frightened, or maddened--
    even at those fleches themselves it was impossible to make out what was
    taking place. There for several hours amid incessant cannon and musketry
    fire, now Russians were seen alone, now Frenchmen alone, now infantry,
    and now cavalry: they appeared, fired, fell, collided, not knowing what
    to do with one another, screamed, and ran back again.
    
    From the battlefield adjutants he had sent out, and orderlies from his
    marshals, kept galloping up to Napoleon with reports of the progress of
    the action, but all these reports were false, both because it was
    impossible in the heat of battle to say what was happening at any given
    moment and because many of the adjutants did not go to the actual place
    of conflict but reported what they had heard from others; and also
    because while an adjutant was riding more than a mile to Napoleon
    circumstances changed and the news he brought was already becoming
    false. Thus an adjutant galloped up from Murat with tidings that
    Borodino had been occupied and the bridge over the Kolocha was in the
    hands of the French. The adjutant asked whether Napoleon wished the
    troops to cross it? Napoleon gave orders that the troops should form up
    on the farther side and wait. But before that order was given--almost as
    soon in fact as the adjutant had left Borodino--the bridge had been
    retaken by the Russians and burned, in the very skirmish at which Pierre
    had been present at the beginning of the battle.
    
    An adjutant galloped up from the fleches with a pale and frightened face
    and reported to Napoleon that their attack had been repulsed, Campan
    wounded, and Davout killed; yet at the very time the adjutant had been
    told that the French had been repulsed, the fleches had in fact been
    recaptured by other French troops, and Davout was alive and only
    slightly bruised. On the basis of these necessarily untrustworthy
    reports Napoleon gave his orders, which had either been executed before
    he gave them or could not be and were not executed.
    
    The marshals and generals, who were nearer to the field of battle but,
    like Napoleon, did not take part in the actual fighting and only
    occasionally went within musket range, made their own arrangements
    without asking Napoleon and issued orders where and in what direction to
    fire and where cavalry should gallop and infantry should run. But even
    their orders, like Napoleon's, were seldom carried out, and then but
    partially. For the most part things happened contrary to their orders.
    Soldiers ordered to advance ran back on meeting grapeshot; soldiers
    ordered to remain where they were, suddenly, seeing Russians
    unexpectedly before them, sometimes rushed back and sometimes forward,
    and the cavalry dashed without orders in pursuit of the flying Russians.
    In this way two cavalry regiments galloped through the Semenovsk hollow
    and as soon as they reached the top of the incline turned round and
    galloped full speed back again. The infantry moved in the same way,
    sometimes running to quite other places than those they were ordered to
    go to. All orders as to where and when to move the guns, when to send
    infantry to shoot or horsemen to ride down the Russian infantry--all
    such orders were given by the officers on the spot nearest to the units
    concerned, without asking either Ney, Davout, or Murat, much less
    Napoleon. They did not fear getting into trouble for not fulfilling
    orders or for acting on their own initiative, for in battle what is at
    stake is what is dearest to man--his own life--and it sometimes seems
    that safety lies in running back, sometimes in running forward; and
    these men who were right in the heat of the battle acted according to
    the mood of the moment. In reality, however, all these movements forward
    and backward did not improve or alter the position of the troops. All
    their rushing and galloping at one another did little harm, the harm of
    disablement and death was caused by the balls and bullets that flew over
    the fields on which these men were floundering about. As soon as they
    left the place where the balls and bullets were flying about, their
    superiors, located in the background, re-formed them and brought them
    under discipline and under the influence of that discipline led them
    back to the zone of fire, where under the influence of fear of death
    they lost their discipline and rushed about according to the chance
    promptings of the throng.
    
    CHAPTER XXXIV
    
    Napoleon's generals--Davout, Ney, and Murat, who were near that region
    of fire and sometimes even entered it--repeatedly led into it huge
    masses of well-ordered troops. But contrary to what had always happened
    in their former battles, instead of the news they expected of the
    enemy's flight, these orderly masses returned thence as disorganized and
    terrified mobs. The generals re-formed them, but their numbers
    constantly decreased. In the middle of the day Murat sent his adjutant
    to Napoleon to demand reinforcements.
    
    Napoleon sat at the foot of the knoll, drinking punch, when Murat's
    adjutant galloped up with an assurance that the Russians would be routed
    if His Majesty would let him have another division.
    
    "Reinforcements?" said Napoleon in a tone of stern surprise, looking at
    the adjutant--a handsome lad with long black curls arranged like Murat's
    own--as though he did not understand his words.
    
    "Reinforcements!" thought Napoleon to himself. "How can they need
    reinforcements when they already have half the army directed against a
    weak, unentrenched Russian wing?"
    
    "Tell the King of Naples," said he sternly, "that it is not noon yet,
    and I don't yet see my chessboard clearly. Go!..."
    
    The handsome boy adjutant with the long hair sighed deeply without
    removing his hand from his hat and galloped back to where men were being
    slaughtered.
    
    Napoleon rose and having summoned Caulaincourt and Berthier began
    talking to them about matters unconnected with the battle.
    
    In the midst of this conversation, which was beginning to interest
    Napoleon, Berthier's eyes turned to look at a general with a suite, who
    was galloping toward the knoll on a lathering horse. It was Belliard.
    Having dismounted he went up to the Emperor with rapid strides and in a
    loud voice began boldly demonstrating the necessity of sending
    reinforcements. He swore on his honor that the Russians were lost if the
    Emperor would give another division.
    
    Napoleon shrugged his shoulders and continued to pace up and down
    without replying. Belliard began talking loudly and eagerly to the
    generals of the suite around him.
    
    "You are very fiery, Belliard," said Napoleon, when he again came up to
    the general. "In the heat of a battle it is easy to make a mistake. Go
    and have another look and then come back to me."
    
    Before Belliard was out of sight, a messenger from another part of the
    battlefield galloped up.
    
    "Now then, what do you want?" asked Napoleon in the tone of a man
    irritated at being continually disturbed.
    
    "Sire, the prince..." began the adjutant.
    
    "Asks for reinforcements?" said Napoleon with an angry gesture.
    
    The adjutant bent his head affirmatively and began to report, but the
    Emperor turned from him, took a couple of steps, stopped, came back, and
    called Berthier.
    
    "We must give reserves," he said, moving his arms slightly apart. "Who
    do you think should be sent there?" he asked of Berthier (whom he
    subsequently termed "that gosling I have made an eagle").
    
    "Send Claparede's division, sire," replied Berthier, who knew all the
    division's regiments, and battalions by heart.
    
    Napoleon nodded assent.
    
    The adjutant galloped to Claparede's division and a few minutes later
    the Young Guards stationed behind the knoll moved forward. Napoleon
    gazed silently in that direction.
    
    "No!" he suddenly said to Berthier. "I can't send Claparede. Send
    Friant's division."
    
    Though there was no advantage in sending Friant's division instead of
    Claparede's, and even an obvious inconvenience and delay in stopping
    Claparede and sending Friant now, the order was carried out exactly.
    Napoleon did not notice that in regard to his army he was playing the
    part of a doctor who hinders by his medicines--a role he so justly
    understood and condemned.
    
    Friant's division disappeared as the others had done into the smoke of
    the battlefield. From all sides adjutants continued to arrive at a
    gallop and as if by agreement all said the same thing. They all asked
    for reinforcements and all said that the Russians were holding their
    positions and maintaining a hellish fire under which the French army was
    melting away.
    
    Napoleon sat on a campstool, wrapped in thought.
    
    M. de Beausset, the man so fond of travel, having fasted since morning,
    came up to the Emperor and ventured respectfully to suggest lunch to His
    Majesty.
    
    "I hope I may now congratulate Your Majesty on a victory?" said he.
    
    Napoleon silently shook his head in negation. Assuming the negation to
    refer only to the victory and not to the lunch, M. de Beausset ventured
    with respectful jocularity to remark that there is no reason for not
    having lunch when one can get it.
    
    "Go away..." exclaimed Napoleon suddenly and morosely, and turned aside.
    
    A beatific smile of regret, repentance, and ecstasy beamed on M. de
    Beausset's face and he glided away to the other generals.
    
    Napoleon was experiencing a feeling of depression like that of an ever-
    lucky gambler who, after recklessly flinging money about and always
    winning, suddenly just when he has calculated all the chances of the
    game, finds that the more he considers his play the more surely he
    loses.
    
    His troops were the same, his generals the same, the same preparations
    had been made, the same dispositions, and the same proclamation courte
    et energique, he himself was still the same: he knew that and knew that
    he was now even more experienced and skillful than before. Even the
    enemy was the same as at Austerlitz and Friedland--yet the terrible
    stroke of his arm had supernaturally become impotent.
    
    All the old methods that had been unfailingly crowned with success: the
    concentration of batteries on one point, an attack by reserves to break
    the enemy's line, and a cavalry attack by "the men of iron," all these
    methods had already been employed, yet not only was there no victory,
    but from all sides came the same news of generals killed and wounded, of
    reinforcements needed, of the impossibility of driving back the
    Russians, and of disorganization among his own troops.
    
    Formerly, after he had given two or three orders and uttered a few
    phrases, marshals and adjutants had come galloping up with
    congratulations and happy faces, announcing the trophies taken, the
    corps of prisoners, bundles of enemy eagles and standards, cannon and
    stores, and Murat had only begged leave to loose the cavalry to gather
    in the baggage wagons. So it had been at Lodi, Marengo, Arcola, Jena,
    Austerlitz, Wagram, and so on. But now something strange was happening
    to his troops.
    
    Despite news of the capture of the fleches, Napoleon saw that this was
    not the same, not at all the same, as what had happened in his former
    battles. He saw that what he was feeling was felt by all the men about
    him experienced in the art of war. All their faces looked dejected, and
    they all shunned one another's eyes--only a de Beausset could fail to
    grasp the meaning of what was happening.
    
    But Napoleon with his long experience of war well knew the meaning of a
    battle not gained by the attacking side in eight hours, after all
    efforts had been expended. He knew that it was a lost battle and that
    the least accident might now--with the fight balanced on such a strained
    center--destroy him and his army.
    
    When he ran his mind over the whole of this strange Russian campaign in
    which not one battle had been won, and in which not a flag, or cannon,
    or army corps had been captured in two months, when he looked at the
    concealed depression on the faces around him and heard reports of the
    Russians still holding their ground--a terrible feeling like a nightmare
    took possession of him, and all the unlucky accidents that might destroy
    him occurred to his mind. The Russians might fall on his left wing,
    might break through his center, he himself might be killed by a stray
    cannon ball. All this was possible. In former battles he had only
    considered the possibilities of success, but now innumerable unlucky
    chances presented themselves, and he expected them all. Yes, it was like
    a dream in which a man fancies that a ruffian is coming to attack him,
    and raises his arm to strike that ruffian a terrible blow which he knows
    should annihilate him, but then feels that his arm drops powerless and
    limp like a rag, and the horror of unavoidable destruction seizes him in
    his helplessness.
    
    The news that the Russians were attacking the left flank of the French
    army aroused that horror in Napoleon. He sat silently on a campstool
    below the knoll, with head bowed and elbows on his knees. Berthier
    approached and suggested that they should ride along the line to
    ascertain the position of affairs.
    
    "What? What do you say?" asked Napoleon. "Yes, tell them to bring me my
    horse."
    
    He mounted and rode toward Semenovsk.
    
    Amid the powder smoke, slowly dispersing over the whole space through
    which Napoleon rode, horses and men were lying in pools of blood, singly
    or in heaps. Neither Napoleon nor any of his generals had ever before
    seen such horrors or so many slain in such a small area. The roar of
    guns, that had not ceased for ten hours, wearied the ear and gave a
    peculiar significance to the spectacle, as music does to tableaux
    vivants. Napoleon rode up the high ground at Semenovsk, and through the
    smoke saw ranks of men in uniforms of a color unfamiliar to him. They
    were Russians.
    
    The Russians stood in serried ranks behind Semenovsk village and its
    knoll, and their guns boomed incessantly along their line and sent forth
    clouds of smoke. It was no longer a battle: it was a continuous
    slaughter which could be of no avail either to the French or the
    Russians. Napoleon stopped his horse and again fell into the reverie
    from which Berthier had aroused him. He could not stop what was going on
    before him and around him and was supposed to be directed by him and to
    depend on him, and from its lack of success this affair, for the first
    time, seemed to him unnecessary and horrible.
    
    One of the generals rode up to Napoleon and ventured to offer to lead
    the Old Guard into action. Ney and Berthier, standing near Napoleon,
    exchanged looks and smiled contemptuously at this general's senseless
    offer.
    
    Napoleon bowed his head and remained silent a long time.
    
    "At eight hundred leagues from France, I will not have my Guard
    destroyed!" he said, and turning his horse rode back to Shevardino.
    
    CHAPTER XXXV
    
    On the rug-covered bench where Pierre had seen him in the morning sat
    Kutuzov, his gray head hanging, his heavy body relaxed. He gave no
    orders, but only assented to or dissented from what others suggested.
    
    "Yes, yes, do that," he replied to various proposals. "Yes, yes: go,
    dear boy, and have a look," he would say to one or another of those
    about him; or, "No, don't, we'd better wait!" He listened to the reports
    that were brought him and gave directions when his subordinates demanded
    that of him; but when listening to the reports it seemed as if he were
    not interested in the import of the words spoken, but rather in
    something else--in the expression of face and tone of voice of those who
    were reporting. By long years of military experience he knew, and with
    the wisdom of age understood, that it is impossible for one man to
    direct hundreds of thousands of others struggling with death, and he
    knew that the result of a battle is decided not by the orders of a
    commander-in-chief, nor the place where the troops are stationed, nor by
    the number of cannon or of slaughtered men, but by that intangible force
    called the spirit of the army, and he watched this force and guided it
    in as far as that was in his power.
    
    Kutuzov's general expression was one of concentrated quiet attention,
    and his face wore a strained look as if he found it difficult to master
    the fatigue of his old and feeble body.
    
    At eleven o'clock they brought him news that the fleches captured by the
    French had been retaken, but that Prince Bagration was wounded. Kutuzov
    groaned and swayed his head.
    
    "Ride over to Prince Peter Ivanovich and find out about it exactly," he
    said to one of his adjutants, and then turned to the Duke of Wurttemberg
    who was standing behind him.
    
    "Will Your Highness please take command of the first army?"
    
    Soon after the duke's departure--before he could possibly have reached
    Semenovsk--his adjutant came back from him and told Kutuzov that the
    duke asked for more troops.
    
    Kutuzov made a grimace and sent an order to Dokhturov to take over the
    command of the first army, and a request to the duke--whom he said he
    could not spare at such an important moment--to return to him. When they
    brought him news that Murat had been taken prisoner, and the staff
    officers congratulated him, Kutuzov smiled.
    
    "Wait a little, gentlemen," said he. "The battle is won, and there is
    nothing extraordinary in the capture of Murat. Still, it is better to
    wait before we rejoice."
    
    But he sent an adjutant to take the news round the army.
    
    When Scherbinin came galloping from the left flank with news that the
    French had captured the fleches and the village of Semenovsk, Kutuzov,
    guessing by the sounds of the battle and by Scherbinin's looks that the
    news was bad, rose as if to stretch his legs and, taking Scherbinin's
    arm, led him aside.
    
    "Go, my dear fellow," he said to Ermolov, "and see whether something
    can't be done."
    
    Kutuzov was in Gorki, near the center of the Russian position. The
    attack directed by Napoleon against our left flank had been several
    times repulsed. In the center the French had not got beyond Borodino,
    and on their left flank Uvarov's cavalry had put the French to flight.
    
    Toward three o'clock the French attacks ceased. On the faces of all who
    came from the field of battle, and of those who stood around him,
    Kutuzov noticed an expression of extreme tension. He was satisfied with
    the day's success--a success exceeding his expectations, but the old
    man's strength was failing him. Several times his head dropped low as if
    it were falling and he dozed off. Dinner was brought him.
    
    Adjutant General Wolzogen, the man who when riding past Prince Andrew
    had said, "the war should be extended widely," and whom Bagration so
    detested, rode up while Kutuzov was at dinner. Wolzogen had come from
    Barclay de Tolly to report on the progress of affairs on the left flank.
    The sagacious Barclay de Tolly, seeing crowds of wounded men running
    back and the disordered rear of the army, weighed all the circumstances,
    concluded that the battle was lost, and sent his favorite officer to the
    commander in chief with that news.
    
    Kutuzov was chewing a piece of roast chicken with difficulty and glanced
    at Wolzogen with eyes that brightened under their puckering lids.
    
    Wolzogen, nonchalantly stretching his legs, approached Kutuzov with a
    half-contemptuous smile on his lips, scarcely touching the peak of his
    cap.
    
    He treated his Serene Highness with a somewhat affected nonchalance
    intended to show that, as a highly trained military man, he left it to
    Russians to make an idol of this useless old man, but that he knew whom
    he was dealing with. "Der alte Herr" (as in their own set the Germans
    called Kutuzov) "is making himself very comfortable," thought Wolzogen,
    and looking severely at the dishes in front of Kutuzov he began to
    report to "the old gentleman" the position of affairs on the left flank
    as Barclay had ordered him to and as he himself had seen and understood
    it.
    
    "All the points of our position are in the enemy's hands and we cannot
    dislodge them for lack of troops, the men are running away and it is
    impossible to stop them," he reported.
    
    Kutuzov ceased chewing and fixed an astonished gaze on Wolzogen, as if
    not understanding what was said to him. Wolzogen, noticing "the old
    gentleman's" agitation, said with a smile:
    
    "I have not considered it right to conceal from your Serene Highness
    what I have seen. The troops are in complete disorder..."
    
    "You have seen? You have seen?..." Kutuzov shouted. Frowning and rising
    quickly, he went up to Wolzogen.
    
    "How... how dare you!..." he shouted, choking and making a threatening
    gesture with his trembling arms: "How dare you, sir, say that to me? You
    know nothing about it. Tell General Barclay from me that his information
    is incorrect and that the real course of the battle is better known to
    me, the commander-in-chief, than to him."
    
    Wolzogen was about to make a rejoinder, but Kutuzov interrupted him.
    
    "The enemy has been repulsed on the left and defeated on the right
    flank. If you have seen amiss, sir, do not allow yourself to say what
    you don't know! Be so good as to ride to General Barclay and inform him
    of my firm intention to attack the enemy tomorrow," said Kutuzov
    sternly.
    
    All were silent, and the only sound audible was the heavy breathing of
    the panting old general.
    
    "They are repulsed everywhere, for which I thank God and our brave army!
    The enemy is beaten, and tomorrow we shall drive him from the sacred
    soil of Russia," said Kutuzov crossing himself, and he suddenly sobbed
    as his eyes filled with tears.
    
    Wolzogen, shrugging his shoulders and curling his lips, stepped silently
    aside, marveling at "the old gentleman's" conceited stupidity.
    
    "Ah, here he is, my hero!" said Kutuzov to a portly, handsome, dark-
    haired general who was just ascending the knoll.
    
    This was Raevski, who had spent the whole day at the most important part
    of the field of Borodino.
    
    Raevski reported that the troops were firmly holding their ground and
    that the French no longer ventured to attack.
    
    After hearing him, Kutuzov said in French:
    
    "Then you do not think, like some others, that we must retreat?"
    
    "On the contrary, your Highness, in indecisive actions it is always the
    most stubborn who remain victors," replied Raevski, "and in my
    opinion..."
    
    "Kaysarov!" Kutuzov called to his adjutant. "Sit down and write out the
    order of the day for tomorrow. And you," he continued, addressing
    another, "ride along the line and announce that tomorrow we attack."
    
    While Kutuzov was talking to Raevski and dictating the order of the day,
    Wolzogen returned from Barclay and said that General Barclay wished to
    have written confirmation of the order the field marshal had given.
    
    Kutuzov, without looking at Wolzogen, gave directions for the order to
    be written out which the former commander-in-chief, to avoid personal
    responsibility, very judiciously wished to receive.
    
    And by means of that mysterious indefinable bond which maintains
    throughout an army one and the same temper, known as "the spirit of the
    army," and which constitutes the sinew of war, Kutuzov's words, his
    order for a battle next day, immediately became known from one end of
    the army to the other.
    
    It was far from being the same words or the same order that reached the
    farthest links of that chain. The tales passing from mouth to mouth at
    different ends of the army did not even resemble what Kutuzov had said,
    but the sense of his words spread everywhere because what he said was
    not the outcome of cunning calculations, but of a feeling that lay in
    the commander-in-chief's soul as in that of every Russian.
    
    And on learning that tomorrow they were to attack the enemy, and hearing
    from the highest quarters a confirmation of what they wanted to believe,
    the exhausted, wavering men felt comforted and inspirited.
    
    CHAPTER XXXVI
    
    Prince Andrew's regiment was among the reserves which till after one
    o'clock were stationed inactive behind Semenovsk, under heavy artillery
    fire. Toward two o'clock the regiment, having already lost more than two
    hundred men, was moved forward into a trampled oatfield in the gap
    between Semenovsk and the Knoll Battery, where thousands of men perished
    that day and on which an intense, concentrated fire from several hundred
    enemy guns was directed between one and two o'clock.
    
    Without moving from that spot or firing a single shot the regiment here
    lost another third of its men. From in front and especially from the
    right, in the unlifting smoke the guns boomed, and out of the mysterious
    domain of smoke that overlay the whole space in front, quick hissing
    cannon balls and slow whistling shells flew unceasingly. At times, as if
    to allow them a respite, a quarter of an hour passed during which the
    cannon balls and shells all flew overhead, but sometimes several men
    were torn from the regiment in a minute and the slain were continually
    being dragged away and the wounded carried off.
    
    With each fresh blow less and less chance of life remained for those not
    yet killed. The regiment stood in columns of battalion, three hundred
    paces apart, but nevertheless the men were always in one and the same
    mood. All alike were taciturn and morose. Talk was rarely heard in the
    ranks, and it ceased altogether every time the thud of a successful shot
    and the cry of "stretchers!" was heard. Most of the time, by their
    officers' order, the men sat on the ground. One, having taken off his
    shako, carefully loosened the gathers of its lining and drew them tight
    again; another, rubbing some dry clay between his palms, polished his
    bayonet; another fingered the strap and pulled the buckle of his
    bandolier, while another smoothed and refolded his leg bands and put his
    boots on again. Some built little houses of the tufts in the plowed
    ground, or plaited baskets from the straw in the cornfield. All seemed
    fully absorbed in these pursuits. When men were killed or wounded, when
    rows of stretchers went past, when some troops retreated, and when great
    masses of the enemy came into view through the smoke, no one paid any
    attention to these things. But when our artillery or cavalry advanced or
    some of our infantry were seen to move forward, words of approval were
    heard on all sides. But the liveliest attention was attracted by
    occurrences quite apart from, and unconnected with, the battle. It was
    as if the minds of these morally exhausted men found relief in everyday,
    commonplace occurrences. A battery of artillery was passing in front of
    the regiment. The horse of an ammunition cart put its leg over a trace.
    "Hey, look at the trace horse!... Get her leg out! She'll fall.... Ah,
    they don't see it!" came identical shouts from the ranks all along the
    regiment. Another time, general attention was attracted by a small brown
    dog, coming heaven knows whence, which trotted in a preoccupied manner
    in front of the ranks with tail stiffly erect till suddenly a shell fell
    close by, when it yelped, tucked its tail between its legs, and darted
    aside. Yells and shrieks of laughter rose from the whole regiment. But
    such distractions lasted only a moment, and for eight hours the men had
    been inactive, without food, in constant fear of death, and their pale
    and gloomy faces grew ever paler and gloomier.
    
    Prince Andrew, pale and gloomy like everyone in the regiment, paced up
    and down from the border of one patch to another, at the edge of the
    meadow beside an oatfield, with head bowed and arms behind his back.
    There was nothing for him to do and no orders to be given. Everything
    went on of itself. The killed were dragged from the front, the wounded
    carried away, and the ranks closed up. If any soldiers ran to the rear
    they returned immediately and hastily. At first Prince Andrew,
    considering it his duty to rouse the courage of the men and to set them
    an example, walked about among the ranks, but he soon became convinced
    that this was unnecessary and that there was nothing he could teach
    them. All the powers of his soul, as of every soldier there, were
    unconsciously bent on avoiding the contemplation of the horrors of their
    situation. He walked along the meadow, dragging his feet, rustling the
    grass, and gazing at the dust that covered his boots; now he took big
    strides trying to keep to the footprints left on the meadow by the
    mowers, then he counted his steps, calculating how often he must walk
    from one strip to another to walk a mile, then he stripped the flowers
    from the wormwood that grew along a boundary rut, rubbed them in his
    palms, and smelled their pungent, sweetly bitter scent. Nothing remained
    of the previous day's thoughts. He thought of nothing. He listened with
    weary ears to the ever-recurring sounds, distinguishing the whistle of
    flying projectiles from the booming of the reports, glanced at the
    tiresomely familiar faces of the men of the first battalion, and waited.
    "Here it comes... this one is coming our way again!" he thought,
    listening to an approaching whistle in the hidden region of smoke. "One,
    another! Again! It has hit...." He stopped and looked at the ranks. "No,
    it has gone over. But this one has hit!" And again he started trying to
    reach the boundary strip in sixteen paces. A whizz and a thud! Five
    paces from him, a cannon ball tore up the dry earth and disappeared. A
    chill ran down his back. Again he glanced at the ranks. Probably many
    had been hit--a large crowd had gathered near the second battalion.
    
    "Adjutant!" he shouted. "Order them not to crowd together."
    
    The adjutant, having obeyed this instruction, approached Prince Andrew.
    From the other side a battalion commander rode up.
    
    "Look out!" came a frightened cry from a soldier and, like a bird
    whirring in rapid flight and alighting on the ground, a shell dropped
    with little noise within two steps of Prince Andrew and close to the
    battalion commander's horse. The horse first, regardless of whether it
    was right or wrong to show fear, snorted, reared almost throwing the
    major, and galloped aside. The horse's terror infected the men.
    
    "Lie down!" cried the adjutant, throwing himself flat on the ground.
    
    Prince Andrew hesitated. The smoking shell spun like a top between him
    and the prostrate adjutant, near a wormwood plant between the field and
    the meadow.
    
    "Can this be death?" thought Prince Andrew, looking with a quite new,
    envious glance at the grass, the wormwood, and the streamlet of smoke
    that curled up from the rotating black ball. "I cannot, I do not wish to
    die. I love life--I love this grass, this earth, this air...." He
    thought this, and at the same time remembered that people were looking
    at him.
    
    "It's shameful, sir!" he said to the adjutant. "What..."
    
    He did not finish speaking. At one and the same moment came the sound of
    an explosion, a whistle of splinters as from a breaking window frame, a
    suffocating smell of powder, and Prince Andrew started to one side,
    raising his arm, and fell on his chest. Several officers ran up to him.
    From the right side of his abdomen, blood was welling out making a large
    stain on the grass.
    
    The militiamen with stretchers who were called up stood behind the
    officers. Prince Andrew lay on his chest with his face in the grass,
    breathing heavily and noisily.
    
    "What are you waiting for? Come along!"
    
    The peasants went up and took him by his shoulders and legs, but he
    moaned piteously and, exchanging looks, they set him down again.
    
    "Pick him up, lift him, it's all the same!" cried someone.
    
    They again took him by the shoulders and laid him on the stretcher.
    
    "Ah, God! My God! What is it? The stomach? That means death! My God!"--
    voices among the officers were heard saying.
    
    "It flew a hair's breadth past my ear," said the adjutant.
    
    The peasants, adjusting the stretcher to their shoulders, started
    hurriedly along the path they had trodden down, to the dressing station.
    
    "Keep in step! Ah... those peasants!" shouted an officer, seizing by
    their shoulders and checking the peasants, who were walking unevenly and
    jolting the stretcher.
    
    "Get into step, Fedor... I say, Fedor!" said the foremost peasant.
    
    "Now that's right!" said the one behind joyfully, when he had got into
    step.
    
    "Your excellency! Eh, Prince!" said the trembling voice of Timokhin, who
    had run up and was looking down on the stretcher.
    
    Prince Andrew opened his eyes and looked up at the speaker from the
    stretcher into which his head had sunk deep and again his eyelids
    drooped.
    
    The militiamen carried Prince Andrew to the dressing station by the
    wood, where wagons were stationed. The dressing station consisted of
    three tents with flaps turned back, pitched at the edge of a birch wood.
    In the wood, wagons and horses were standing. The horses were eating
    oats from their movable troughs and sparrows flew down and pecked the
    grains that fell. Some crows, scenting blood, flew among the birch trees
    cawing impatiently. Around the tents, over more than five acres,
    bloodstained men in various garbs stood, sat, or lay. Around the wounded
    stood crowds of soldier stretcher-bearers with dismal and attentive
    faces, whom the officers keeping order tried in vain to drive from the
    spot. Disregarding the officers' orders, the soldiers stood leaning
    against their stretchers and gazing intently, as if trying to comprehend
    the difficult problem of what was taking place before them. From the
    tents came now loud angry cries and now plaintive groans. Occasionally
    dressers ran out to fetch water, or to point out those who were to be
    brought in next. The wounded men awaiting their turn outside the tents
    groaned, sighed, wept, screamed, swore, or asked for vodka. Some were
    delirious. Prince Andrew's bearers, stepping over the wounded who had
    not yet been bandaged, took him, as a regimental commander, close up to
    one of the tents and there stopped, awaiting instructions. Prince Andrew
    opened his eyes and for a long time could not make out what was going on
    around him. He remembered the meadow, the wormwood, the field, the
    whirling black ball, and his sudden rush of passionate love of life. Two
    steps from him, leaning against a branch and talking loudly and
    attracting general attention, stood a tall, handsome, black-haired
    noncommissioned officer with a bandaged head. He had been wounded in the
    head and leg by bullets. Around him, eagerly listening to his talk, a
    crowd of wounded and stretcher-bearers was gathered.
    
    "We kicked him out from there so that he chucked everything, we grabbed
    the King himself!" cried he, looking around him with eyes that glittered
    with fever. "If only reserves had come up just then, lads, there
    wouldn't have been nothing left of him! I tell you surely..."
    
    Like all the others near the speaker, Prince Andrew looked at him with
    shining eyes and experienced a sense of comfort. "But isn't it all the
    same now?" thought he. "And what will be there, and what has there been
    here? Why was I so reluctant to part with life? There was something in
    this life I did not and do not understand."
    
    CHAPTER XXXVII
    
    One of the doctors came out of the tent in a bloodstained apron, holding
    a cigar between the thumb and little finger of one of his small
    bloodstained hands, so as not to smear it. He raised his head and looked
    about him, but above the level of the wounded men. He evidently wanted a
    little respite. After turning his head from right to left for some time,
    he sighed and looked down.
    
    "All right, immediately," he replied to a dresser who pointed Prince
    Andrew out to him, and he told them to carry him into the tent.
    
    Murmurs arose among the wounded who were waiting.
    
    "It seems that even in the next world only the gentry are to have a
    chance!" remarked one.
    
    Prince Andrew was carried in and laid on a table that had only just been
    cleared and which a dresser was washing down. Prince Andrew could not
    make out distinctly what was in that tent. The pitiful groans from all
    sides and the torturing pain in his thigh, stomach, and back distracted
    him. All he saw about him merged into a general impression of naked,
    bleeding human bodies that seemed to fill the whole of the low tent, as
    a few weeks previously, on that hot August day, such bodies had filled
    the dirty pond beside the Smolensk road. Yes, it was the same flesh, the
    same chair a canon, the sight of which had even then filled him with
    horror, as by a presentiment.
    
    There were three operating tables in the tent. Two were occupied, and on
    the third they placed Prince Andrew. For a little while he was left
    alone and involuntarily witnessed what was taking place on the other two
    tables. On the nearest one sat a Tartar, probably a Cossack, judging by
    the uniform thrown down beside him. Four soldiers were holding him, and
    a spectacled doctor was cutting into his muscular brown back.
    
    "Ooh, ooh, ooh!" grunted the Tartar, and suddenly lifting up his swarthy
    snub-nosed face with its high cheekbones, and baring his white teeth, he
    began to wriggle and twitch his body and utter piercing, ringing, and
    prolonged yells. On the other table, round which many people were
    crowding, a tall well-fed man lay on his back with his head thrown back.
    His curly hair, its color, and the shape of his head seemed strangely
    familiar to Prince Andrew. Several dressers were pressing on his chest
    to hold him down. One large, white, plump leg twitched rapidly all the
    time with a feverish tremor. The man was sobbing and choking
    convulsively. Two doctors--one of whom was pale and trembling--were
    silently doing something to this man's other, gory leg. When he had
    finished with the Tartar, whom they covered with an overcoat, the
    spectacled doctor came up to Prince Andrew, wiping his hands.
    
    He glanced at Prince Andrew's face and quickly turned away.
    
    "Undress him! What are you waiting for?" he cried angrily to the
    dressers.
    
    His very first, remotest recollections of childhood came back to Prince
    Andrew's mind when the dresser with sleeves rolled up began hastily to
    undo the buttons of his clothes and undressed him. The doctor bent down
    over the wound, felt it, and sighed deeply. Then he made a sign to
    someone, and the torturing pain in his abdomen caused Prince Andrew to
    lose consciousness. When he came to himself the splintered portions of
    his thighbone had been extracted, the torn flesh cut away, and the wound
    bandaged. Water was being sprinkled on his face. As soon as Prince
    Andrew opened his eyes, the doctor bent over, kissed him silently on the
    lips, and hurried away.
    
    After the sufferings he had been enduring, Prince Andrew enjoyed a
    blissful feeling such as he had not experienced for a long time. All the
    best and happiest moments of his life--especially his earliest
    childhood, when he used to be undressed and put to bed, and when leaning
    over him his nurse sang him to sleep and he, burying his head in the
    pillow, felt happy in the mere consciousness of life--returned to his
    memory, not merely as something past but as something present.
    
    The doctors were busily engaged with the wounded man the shape of whose
    head seemed familiar to Prince Andrew: they were lifting him up and
    trying to quiet him.
    
    "Show it to me.... Oh, ooh... Oh! Oh, ooh!" his frightened moans could
    be heard, subdued by suffering and broken by sobs.
    
    Hearing those moans Prince Andrew wanted to weep. Whether because he was
    dying without glory, or because he was sorry to part with life, or
    because of those memories of a childhood that could not return, or
    because he was suffering and others were suffering and that man near him
    was groaning so piteously--he felt like weeping childlike, kindly, and
    almost happy tears.
    
    The wounded man was shown his amputated leg stained with clotted blood
    and with the boot still on.
    
    "Oh! Oh, ooh!" he sobbed, like a woman.
    
    The doctor who had been standing beside him, preventing Prince Andrew
    from seeing his face, moved away.
    
    "My God! What is this? Why is he here?" said Prince Andrew to himself.
    
    In the miserable, sobbing, enfeebled man whose leg had just been
    amputated, he recognized Anatole Kuragin. Men were supporting him in
    their arms and offering him a glass of water, but his trembling, swollen
    lips could not grasp its rim. Anatole was sobbing painfully. "Yes, it is
    he! Yes, that man is somehow closely and painfully connected with me,"
    thought Prince Andrew, not yet clearly grasping what he saw before him.
    "What is the connection of that man with my childhood and life?" he
    asked himself without finding an answer. And suddenly a new unexpected
    memory from that realm of pure and loving childhood presented itself to
    him. He remembered Natasha as he had seen her for the first time at the
    ball in 1810, with her slender neck and arms and with a frightened happy
    face ready for rapture, and love and tenderness for her, stronger and
    more vivid than ever, awoke in his soul. He now remembered the
    connection that existed between himself and this man who was dimly
    gazing at him through tears that filled his swollen eyes. He remembered
    everything, and ecstatic pity and love for that man overflowed his happy
    heart.
    
    Prince Andrew could no longer restrain himself and wept tender loving
    tears for his fellow men, for himself, and for his own and their errors.
    
    "Compassion, love of our brothers, for those who love us and for those
    who hate us, love of our enemies; yes, that love which God preached on
    earth and which Princess Mary taught me and I did not understand--that
    is what made me sorry to part with life, that is what remained for me
    had I lived. But now it is too late. I know it!"
    
    CHAPTER XXXVIII
    
    The terrible spectacle of the battlefield covered with dead and wounded,
    together with the heaviness of his head and the news that some twenty
    generals he knew personally had been killed or wounded, and the
    consciousness of the impotence of his once mighty arm, produced an
    unexpected impression on Napoleon who usually liked to look at the
    killed and wounded, thereby, he considered, testing his strength of
    mind. This day the horrible appearance of the battlefield overcame that
    strength of mind which he thought constituted his merit and his
    greatness. He rode hurriedly from the battlefield and returned to the
    Shevardino knoll, where he sat on his campstool, his sallow face swollen
    and heavy, his eyes dim, his nose red, and his voice hoarse,
    involuntarily listening, with downcast eyes, to the sounds of firing.
    With painful dejection he awaited the end of this action, in which he
    regarded himself as a participant and which he was unable to arrest. A
    personal, human feeling for a brief moment got the better of the
    artificial phantasm of life he had served so long. He felt in his own
    person the sufferings and death he had witnessed on the battlefield. The
    heaviness of his head and chest reminded him of the possibility of
    suffering and death for himself. At that moment he did not desire
    Moscow, or victory, or glory (what need had he for any more glory?). The
    one thing he wished for was rest, tranquillity, and freedom. But when he
    had been on the Semenovsk heights the artillery commander had proposed
    to him to bring several batteries of artillery up to those heights to
    strengthen the fire on the Russian troops crowded in front of Knyazkovo.
    Napoleon had assented and had given orders that news should be brought
    to him of the effect those batteries produced.
    
    An adjutant came now to inform him that the fire of two hundred guns had
    been concentrated on the Russians, as he had ordered, but that they
    still held their ground.
    
    "Our fire is mowing them down by rows, but still they hold on," said the
    adjutant.
    
    "They want more!..." said Napoleon in a hoarse voice.
    
    "Sire?" asked the adjutant who had not heard the remark.
    
    "They want more!" croaked Napoleon frowning. "Let them have it!"
    
    Even before he gave that order the thing he did not desire, and for
    which he gave the order only because he thought it was expected of him,
    was being done. And he fell back into that artificial realm of imaginary
    greatness, and again--as a horse walking a treadmill thinks it is doing
    something for itself--he submissively fulfilled the cruel, sad, gloomy,
    and inhuman role predestined for him.
    
    And not for that day and hour alone were the mind and conscience
    darkened of this man on whom the responsibility for what was happening
    lay more than on all the others who took part in it. Never to the end of
    his life could he understand goodness, beauty, or truth, or the
    significance of his actions which were too contrary to goodness and
    truth, too remote from everything human, for him ever to be able to
    grasp their meaning. He could not disavow his actions, belauded as they
    were by half the world, and so he had to repudiate truth, goodness, and
    all humanity.
    
    Not only on that day, as he rode over the battlefield strewn with men
    killed and maimed (by his will as he believed), did he reckon as he
    looked at them how many Russians there were for each Frenchman and,
    deceiving himself, find reason for rejoicing in the calculation that
    there were five Russians for every Frenchman. Not on that day alone did
    he write in a letter to Paris that "the battle field was superb,"
    because fifty thousand corpses lay there, but even on the island of St.
    Helena in the peaceful solitude where he said he intended to devote his
    leisure to an account of the great deeds he had done, he wrote:
    
    The Russian war should have been the most popular war of modern times:
    it was a war of good sense, for real interests, for the tranquillity and
    security of all; it was purely pacific and conservative.
    
    It was a war for a great cause, the end of uncertainties and the
    beginning of security. A new horizon and new labors were opening out,
    full of well-being and prosperity for all. The European system was
    already founded; all that remained was to organize it.
    
    Satisfied on these great points and with tranquility everywhere, I too
    should have had my Congress and my Holy Alliance. Those ideas were
    stolen from me. In that reunion of great sovereigns we should have
    discussed our interests like one family, and have rendered account to
    the peoples as clerk to master.
    
    Europe would in this way soon have been, in fact, but one people, and
    anyone who traveled anywhere would have found himself always in the
    common fatherland. I should have demanded the freedom of all navigable
    rivers for everybody, that the seas should be common to all, and that
    the great standing armies should be reduced henceforth to mere guards
    for the sovereigns.
    
    On returning to France, to the bosom of the great, strong, magnificent,
    peaceful, and glorious fatherland, I should have proclaimed her
    frontiers immutable; all future wars purely defensive, all
    aggrandizement antinational. I should have associated my son in the
    Empire; my dictatorship would have been finished, and his constitutional
    reign would have begun.
    
    Paris would have been the capital of the world, and the French the envy
    of the nations!
    
    My leisure then, and my old age, would have been devoted, in company
    with the Empress and during the royal apprenticeship of my son, to
    leisurely visiting, with our own horses and like a true country couple,
    every corner of the Empire, receiving complaints, redressing wrongs, and
    scattering public buildings and benefactions on all sides and
    everywhere.
    
    Napoleon, predestined by Providence for the gloomy role of executioner
    of the peoples, assured himself that the aim of his actions had been the
    peoples' welfare and that he could control the fate of millions and by
    the employment of power confer benefactions.
    
    "Of four hundred thousand who crossed the Vistula," he wrote further of
    the Russian war, "half were Austrians, Prussians, Saxons, Poles,
    Bavarians, Wurttembergers, Mecklenburgers, Spaniards, Italians, and
    Neapolitans. The Imperial army, strictly speaking, was one third
    composed of Dutch, Belgians, men from the borders of the Rhine,
    Piedmontese, Swiss, Genevese, Tuscans, Romans, inhabitants of the
    Thirty-second Military Division, of Bremen, of Hamburg, and so on: it
    included scarcely a hundred and forty thousand who spoke French. The
    Russian expedition actually cost France less than fifty thousand men;
    the Russian army in its retreat from Vilna to Moscow lost in the various
    battles four times more men than the French army; the burning of Moscow
    cost the lives of a hundred thousand Russians who died of cold and want
    in the woods; finally, in its march from Moscow to the Oder the Russian
    army also suffered from the severity of the season; so that by the time
    it reached Vilna it numbered only fifty thousand, and at Kalisch less
    than eighteen thousand."
    
    He imagined that the war with Russia came about by his will, and the
    horrors that occurred did not stagger his soul. He boldly took the whole
    responsibility for what happened, and his darkened mind found
    justification in the belief that among the hundreds of thousands who
    perished there were fewer Frenchmen than Hessians and Bavarians.
    
    CHAPTER XXXIX
    
    Several tens of thousands of the slain lay in diverse postures and
    various uniforms on the fields and meadows belonging to the Davydov
    family and to the crown serfs--those fields and meadows where for
    hundreds of years the peasants of Borodino, Gorki, Shevardino, and
    Semenovsk had reaped their harvests and pastured their cattle. At the
    dressing stations the grass and earth were soaked with blood for a space
    of some three acres around. Crowds of men of various arms, wounded and
    unwounded, with frightened faces, dragged themselves back to Mozhaysk
    from the one army and back to Valuevo from the other. Other crowds,
    exhausted and hungry, went forward led by their officers. Others held
    their ground and continued to fire.
    
    Over the whole field, previously so gaily beautiful with the glitter of
    bayonets and cloudlets of smoke in the morning sun, there now spread a
    mist of damp and smoke and a strange acid smell of saltpeter and blood.
    Clouds gathered and drops of rain began to fall on the dead and wounded,
    on the frightened, exhausted, and hesitating men, as if to say: "Enough,
    men! Enough! Cease... bethink yourselves! What are you doing?"
    
    To the men of both sides alike, worn out by want of food and rest, it
    began equally to appear doubtful whether they should continue to
    slaughter one another; all the faces expressed hesitation, and the
    question arose in every soul: "For what, for whom, must I kill and be
    killed?... You may go and kill whom you please, but I don't want to do
    so anymore!" By evening this thought had ripened in every soul. At any
    moment these men might have been seized with horror at what they were
    doing and might have thrown up everything and run away anywhere.
    
    But though toward the end of the battle the men felt all the horror of
    what they were doing, though they would have been glad to leave off,
    some incomprehensible, mysterious power continued to control them, and
    they still brought up the charges, loaded, aimed, and applied the match,
    though only one artilleryman survived out of every three, and though
    they stumbled and panted with fatigue, perspiring and stained with blood
    and powder. The cannon balls flew just as swiftly and cruelly from both
    sides, crushing human bodies, and that terrible work which was not done
    by the will of a man but at the will of Him who governs men and worlds
    continued.
    
    Anyone looking at the disorganized rear of the Russian army would have
    said that, if only the French made one more slight effort, it would
    disappear; and anyone looking at the rear of the French army would have
    said that the Russians need only make one more slight effort and the
    French would be destroyed. But neither the French nor the Russians made
    that effort, and the flame of battle burned slowly out.
    
    The Russians did not make that effort because they were not attacking
    the French. At the beginning of the battle they stood blocking the way
    to Moscow and they still did so at the end of the battle as at the
    beginning. But even had the aim of the Russians been to drive the French
    from their positions, they could not have made this last effort, for all
    the Russian troops had been broken up, there was no part of the Russian
    army that had not suffered in the battle, and though still holding their
    positions they had lost ONE HALF of their army.
    
    The French, with the memory of all their former victories during fifteen
    years, with the assurance of Napoleon's invincibility, with the
    consciousness that they had captured part of the battlefield and had
    lost only a quarter of their men and still had their Guards intact,
    twenty thousand strong, might easily have made that effort. The French
    who had attacked the Russian army in order to drive it from its position
    ought to have made that effort, for as long as the Russians continued to
    block the road to Moscow as before, the aim of the French had not been
    attained and all their efforts and losses were in vain. But the French
    did not make that effort. Some historians say that Napoleon need only
    have used his Old Guards, who were intact, and the battle would have
    been won. To speak of what would have happened had Napoleon sent his
    Guards is like talking of what would happen if autumn became spring. It
    could not be. Napoleon did not give his Guards, not because he did not
    want to, but because it could not be done. All the generals, officers,
    and soldiers of the French army knew it could not be done, because the
    flagging spirit of the troops would not permit it.
    
    It was not Napoleon alone who had experienced that nightmare feeling of
    the mighty arm being stricken powerless, but all the generals and
    soldiers of his army whether they had taken part in the battle or not,
    after all their experience of previous battles--when after one tenth of
    such efforts the enemy had fled--experienced a similar feeling of terror
    before an enemy who, after losing HALF his men, stood as threateningly
    at the end as at the beginning of the battle. The moral force of the
    attacking French army was exhausted. Not that sort of victory which is
    defined by the capture of pieces of material fastened to sticks, called
    standards, and of the ground on which the troops had stood and were
    standing, but a moral victory that convinces the enemy of the moral
    superiority of his opponent and of his own impotence was gained by the
    Russians at Borodino. The French invaders, like an infuriated animal
    that has in its onslaught received a mortal wound, felt that they were
    perishing, but could not stop, any more than the Russian army, weaker by
    one half, could help swerving. By impetus gained, the French army was
    still able to roll forward to Moscow, but there, without further effort
    on the part of the Russians, it had to perish, bleeding from the mortal
    wound it had received at Borodino. The direct consequence of the battle
    of Borodino was Napoleon's senseless flight from Moscow, his retreat
    along the old Smolensk road, the destruction of the invading army of
    five hundred thousand men, and the downfall of Napoleonic France, on
    which at Borodino for the first time the hand of an opponent of stronger
    spirit had been laid.
    
    BOOK ELEVEN: 1812
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    Absolute continuity of motion is not comprehensible to the human mind.
    Laws of motion of any kind become comprehensible to man only when he
    examines arbitrarily selected elements of that motion; but at the same
    time, a large proportion of human error comes from the arbitrary
    division of continuous motion into discontinuous elements. There is a
    well known, so-called sophism of the ancients consisting in this, that
    Achilles could never catch up with a tortoise he was following, in spite
    of the fact that he traveled ten times as fast as the tortoise. By the
    time Achilles has covered the distance that separated him from the
    tortoise, the tortoise has covered one tenth of that distance ahead of
    him: when Achilles has covered that tenth, the tortoise has covered
    another one hundredth, and so on forever. This problem seemed to the
    ancients insoluble. The absurd answer (that Achilles could never
    overtake the tortoise) resulted from this: that motion was arbitrarily
    divided into discontinuous elements, whereas the motion both of Achilles
    and of the tortoise was continuous.
    
    By adopting smaller and smaller elements of motion we only approach a
    solution of the problem, but never reach it. Only when we have admitted
    the conception of the infinitely small, and the resulting geometrical
    progression with a common ratio of one tenth, and have found the sum of
    this progression to infinity, do we reach a solution of the problem.
    
    A modern branch of mathematics having achieved the art of dealing with
    the infinitely small can now yield solutions in other more complex
    problems of motion which used to appear insoluble.
    
    This modern branch of mathematics, unknown to the ancients, when dealing
    with problems of motion admits the conception of the infinitely small,
    and so conforms to the chief condition of motion (absolute continuity)
    and thereby corrects the inevitable error which the human mind cannot
    avoid when it deals with separate elements of motion instead of
    examining continuous motion.
    
    In seeking the laws of historical movement just the same thing happens.
    The movement of humanity, arising as it does from innumerable arbitrary
    human wills, is continuous.
    
    To understand the laws of this continuous movement is the aim of
    history. But to arrive at these laws, resulting from the sum of all
    those human wills, man's mind postulates arbitrary and disconnected
    units. The first method of history is to take an arbitrarily selected
    series of continuous events and examine it apart from others, though
    there is and can be no beginning to any event, for one event always
    flows uninterruptedly from another.
    
    The second method is to consider the actions of some one man--a king or
    a commander--as equivalent to the sum of many individual wills; whereas
    the sum of individual wills is never expressed by the activity of a
    single historic personage.
    
    Historical science in its endeavor to draw nearer to truth continually
    takes smaller and smaller units for examination. But however small the
    units it takes, we feel that to take any unit disconnected from others,
    or to assume a beginning of any phenomenon, or to say that the will of
    many men is expressed by the actions of any one historic personage, is
    in itself false.
    
    It needs no critical exertion to reduce utterly to dust any deductions
    drawn from history. It is merely necessary to select some larger or
    smaller unit as the subject of observation--as criticism has every right
    to do, seeing that whatever unit history observes must always be
    arbitrarily selected.
    
    Only by taking infinitesimally small units for observation (the
    differential of history, that is, the individual tendencies of men) and
    attaining to the art of integrating them (that is, finding the sum of
    these infinitesimals) can we hope to arrive at the laws of history.
    
    The first fifteen years of the nineteenth century in Europe present an
    extraordinary movement of millions of people. Men leave their customary
    pursuits, hasten from one side of Europe to the other, plunder and
    slaughter one another, triumph and are plunged in despair, and for some
    years the whole course of life is altered and presents an intensive
    movement which first increases and then slackens. What was the cause of
    this movement, by what laws was it governed? asks the mind of man.
    
    The historians, replying to this question, lay before us the sayings and
    doings of a few dozen men in a building in the city of Paris, calling
    these sayings and doings "the Revolution"; then they give a detailed
    biography of Napoleon and of certain people favorable or hostile to him;
    tell of the influence some of these people had on others, and say: that
    is why this movement took place and those are its laws.
    
    But the mind of man not only refuses to believe this explanation, but
    plainly says that this method of explanation is fallacious, because in
    it a weaker phenomenon is taken as the cause of a stronger. The sum of
    human wills produced the Revolution and Napoleon, and only the sum of
    those wills first tolerated and then destroyed them.
    
    "But every time there have been conquests there have been conquerors;
    every time there has been a revolution in any state there have been
    great men," says history. And, indeed, human reason replies: every time
    conquerors appear there have been wars, but this does not prove that the
    conquerors caused the wars and that it is possible to find the laws of a
    war in the personal activity of a single man. Whenever I look at my
    watch and its hands point to ten, I hear the bells of the neighboring
    church; but because the bells begin to ring when the hands of the clock
    reach ten, I have no right to assume that the movement of the bells is
    caused by the position of the hands of the watch.
    
    Whenever I see the movement of a locomotive I hear the whistle and see
    the valves opening and wheels turning; but I have no right to conclude
    that the whistling and the turning of wheels are the cause of the
    movement of the engine.
    
    The peasants say that a cold wind blows in late spring because the oaks
    are budding, and really every spring cold winds do blow when the oak is
    budding. But though I do not know what causes the cold winds to blow
    when the oak buds unfold, I cannot agree with the peasants that the
    unfolding of the oak buds is the cause of the cold wind, for the force
    of the wind is beyond the influence of the buds. I see only a
    coincidence of occurrences such as happens with all the phenomena of
    life, and I see that however much and however carefully I observe the
    hands of the watch, and the valves and wheels of the engine, and the
    oak, I shall not discover the cause of the bells ringing, the engine
    moving, or of the winds of spring. To that I must entirely change my
    point of view and study the laws of the movement of steam, of the bells,
    and of the wind. History must do the same. And attempts in this
    direction have already been made.
    
    To study the laws of history we must completely change the subject of
    our observation, must leave aside kings, ministers, and generals, and
    study the common, infinitesimally small elements by which the masses are
    moved. No one can say in how far it is possible for man to advance in
    this way toward an understanding of the laws of history; but it is
    evident that only along that path does the possibility of discovering
    the laws of history lie, and that as yet not a millionth part as much
    mental effort has been applied in this direction by historians as has
    been devoted to describing the actions of various kings, commanders, and
    ministers and propounding the historians' own reflections concerning
    these actions.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    The forces of a dozen European nations burst into Russia. The Russian
    army and people avoided a collision till Smolensk was reached, and again
    from Smolensk to Borodino. The French army pushed on to Moscow, its
    goal, its impetus ever increasing as it neared its aim, just as the
    velocity of a falling body increases as it approaches the earth. Behind
    it were seven hundred miles of hunger-stricken, hostile country; ahead
    were a few dozen miles separating it from its goal. Every soldier in
    Napoleon's army felt this and the invasion moved on by its own momentum.
    
    The more the Russian army retreated the more fiercely a spirit of hatred
    of the enemy flared up, and while it retreated the army increased and
    consolidated. At Borodino a collision took place. Neither army was
    broken up, but the Russian army retreated immediately after the
    collision as inevitably as a ball recoils after colliding with another
    having a greater momentum, and with equal inevitability the ball of
    invasion that had advanced with such momentum rolled on for some
    distance, though the collision had deprived it of all its force.
    
    The Russians retreated eighty miles--to beyond Moscow--and the French
    reached Moscow and there came to a standstill. For five weeks after that
    there was not a single battle. The French did not move. As a bleeding,
    mortally wounded animal licks its wounds, they remained inert in Moscow
    for five weeks, and then suddenly, with no fresh reason, fled back: they
    made a dash for the Kaluga road, and (after a victory--for at Malo-
    Yaroslavets the field of conflict again remained theirs) without
    undertaking a single serious battle, they fled still more rapidly back
    to Smolensk, beyond Smolensk, beyond the Berezina, beyond Vilna, and
    farther still.
    
    On the evening of the twenty-sixth of August, Kutuzov and the whole
    Russian army were convinced that the battle of Borodino was a victory.
    Kutuzov reported so to the Emperor. He gave orders to prepare for a
    fresh conflict to finish the enemy and did this not to deceive anyone,
    but because he knew that the enemy was beaten, as everyone who had taken
    part in the battle knew it.
    
    But all that evening and next day reports came in one after another of
    unheard-of losses, of the loss of half the army, and a fresh battle
    proved physically impossible.
    
    It was impossible to give battle before information had been collected,
    the wounded gathered in, the supplies of ammunition replenished, the
    slain reckoned up, new officers appointed to replace those who had been
    killed, and before the men had had food and sleep. And meanwhile, the
    very next morning after the battle, the French army advanced of itself
    upon the Russians, carried forward by the force of its own momentum now
    seemingly increased in inverse proportion to the square of the distance
    from its aim. Kutuzov's wish was to attack next day, and the whole army
    desired to do so. But to make an attack the wish to do so is not
    sufficient, there must also be a possibility of doing it, and that
    possibility did not exist. It was impossible not to retreat a day's
    march, and then in the same way it was impossible not to retreat another
    and a third day's march, and at last, on the first of September when the
    army drew near Moscow--despite the strength of the feeling that had
    arisen in all ranks--the force of circumstances compelled it to retire
    beyond Moscow. And the troops retired one more, last, day's march, and
    abandoned Moscow to the enemy.
    
    For people accustomed to think that plans of campaign and battles are
    made by generals--as any one of us sitting over a map in his study may
    imagine how he would have arranged things in this or that battle--the
    questions present themselves: Why did Kutuzov during the retreat not do
    this or that? Why did he not take up a position before reaching Fili?
    Why did he not retire at once by the Kaluga road, abandoning Moscow? and
    so on. People accustomed to think in that way forget, or do not know,
    the inevitable conditions which always limit the activities of any
    commander in chief. The activity of a commander-in-chief does not at all
    resemble the activity we imagine to ourselves when we sit at ease in our
    studies examining some campaign on the map, with a certain number of
    troops on this and that side in a certain known locality, and begin our
    plans from some given moment. A commander-in-chief is never dealing with
    the beginning of any event--the position from which we always
    contemplate it. The commander-in-chief is always in the midst of a
    series of shifting events and so he never can at any moment consider the
    whole import of an event that is occurring. Moment by moment the event
    is imperceptibly shaping itself, and at every moment of this continuous,
    uninterrupted shaping of events the commander-in-chief is in the midst
    of a most complex play of intrigues, worries, contingencies,
    authorities, projects, counsels, threats, and deceptions and is
    continually obliged to reply to innumerable questions addressed to him,
    which constantly conflict with one another.
    
    Learned military authorities quite seriously tell us that Kutuzov should
    have moved his army to the Kaluga road long before reaching Fili, and
    that somebody actually submitted such a proposal to him. But a commander
    in chief, especially at a difficult moment, has always before him not
    one proposal but dozens simultaneously. And all these proposals, based
    on strategics and tactics, contradict each other.
    
    A commander-in-chief's business, it would seem, is simply to choose one
    of these projects. But even that he cannot do. Events and time do not
    wait. For instance, on the twenty-eighth it is suggested to him to cross
    to the Kaluga road, but just then an adjutant gallops up from
    Miloradovich asking whether he is to engage the French or retire. An
    order must be given him at once, that instant. And the order to retreat
    carries us past the turn to the Kaluga road. And after the adjutant
    comes the commissary general asking where the stores are to be taken,
    and the chief of the hospitals asks where the wounded are to go, and a
    courier from Petersburg brings a letter from the sovereign which does
    not admit of the possibility of abandoning Moscow, and the commander-in-
    chief's rival, the man who is undermining him (and there are always not
    merely one but several such), presents a new project diametrically
    opposed to that of turning to the Kaluga road, and the commander-in-
    chief himself needs sleep and refreshment to maintain his energy and a
    respectable general who has been overlooked in the distribution of
    rewards comes to complain, and the inhabitants of the district pray to
    be defended, and an officer sent to inspect the locality comes in and
    gives a report quite contrary to what was said by the officer previously
    sent; and a spy, a prisoner, and a general who has been on
    reconnaissance, all describe the position of the enemy's army
    differently. People accustomed to misunderstand or to forget these
    inevitable conditions of a commander-in-chief's actions describe to us,
    for instance, the position of the army at Fili and assume that the
    commander-in-chief could, on the first of September, quite freely decide
    whether to abandon Moscow or defend it; whereas, with the Russian army
    less than four miles from Moscow, no such question existed. When had
    that question been settled? At Drissa and at Smolensk and most palpably
    of all on the twenty-fourth of August at Shevardino and on the twenty-
    sixth at Borodino, and each day and hour and minute of the retreat from
    Borodino to Fili.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    When Ermolov, having been sent by Kutuzov to inspect the position, told
    the field marshal that it was impossible to fight there before Moscow
    and that they must retreat, Kutuzov looked at him in silence.
    
    "Give me your hand," said he and, turning it over so as to feel the
    pulse, added: "You are not well, my dear fellow. Think what you are
    saying!"
    
    Kutuzov could not yet admit the possibility of retreating beyond Moscow
    without a battle.
    
    On the Poklonny Hill, four miles from the Dorogomilov gate of Moscow,
    Kutuzov got out of his carriage and sat down on a bench by the roadside.
    A great crowd of generals gathered round him, and Count Rostopchin, who
    had come out from Moscow, joined them. This brilliant company separated
    into several groups who all discussed the advantages and disadvantages
    of the position, the state of the army, the plans suggested, the
    situation of Moscow, and military questions generally. Though they had
    not been summoned for the purpose, and though it was not so called, they
    all felt that this was really a council of war. The conversations all
    dealt with public questions. If anyone gave or asked for personal news,
    it was done in a whisper and they immediately reverted to general
    matters. No jokes, or laughter, or smiles even, were seen among all
    these men. They evidently all made an effort to hold themselves at the
    height the situation demanded. And all these groups, while talking among
    themselves, tried to keep near the commander-in-chief (whose bench
    formed the center of the gathering) and to speak so that he might
    overhear them. The commander in chief listened to what was being said
    and sometimes asked them to repeat their remarks, but did not himself
    take part in the conversations or express any opinion. After hearing
    what was being said by one or other of these groups he generally turned
    away with an air of disappointment, as though they were not speaking of
    anything he wished to hear. Some discussed the position that had been
    chosen, criticizing not the position itself so much as the mental
    capacity of those who had chosen it. Others argued that a mistake had
    been made earlier and that a battle should have been fought two days
    before. Others again spoke of the battle of Salamanca, which was
    described by Crosart, a newly arrived Frenchman in a Spanish uniform.
    (This Frenchman and one of the German princes serving with the Russian
    army were discussing the siege of Saragossa and considering the
    possibility of defending Moscow in a similar manner.) Count Rostopchin
    was telling a fourth group that he was prepared to die with the city
    train bands under the walls of the capital, but that he still could not
    help regretting having been left in ignorance of what was happening, and
    that had he known it sooner things would have been different.... A fifth
    group, displaying the profundity of their strategic perceptions,
    discussed the direction the troops would now have to take. A sixth group
    was talking absolute nonsense. Kutuzov's expression grew more and more
    preoccupied and gloomy. From all this talk he saw only one thing: that
    to defend Moscow was a physical impossibility in the full meaning of
    those words, that is to say, so utterly impossible that if any senseless
    commander were to give orders to fight, confusion would result but the
    battle would still not take place. It would not take place because the
    commanders not merely all recognized the position to be impossible, but
    in their conversations were only discussing what would happen after its
    inevitable abandonment. How could the commanders lead their troops to a
    field of battle they considered impossible to hold? The lower-grade
    officers and even the soldiers (who too reason) also considered the
    position impossible and therefore could not go to fight, fully convinced
    as they were of defeat. If Bennigsen insisted on the position being
    defended and others still discussed it, the question was no longer
    important in itself but only as a pretext for disputes and intrigue.
    This Kutuzov knew well.
    
    Bennigsen, who had chosen the position, warmly displayed his Russian
    patriotism (Kutuzov could not listen to this without wincing) by
    insisting that Moscow must be defended. His aim was as clear as daylight
    to Kutuzov: if the defense failed, to throw the blame on Kutuzov who had
    brought the army as far as the Sparrow Hills without giving battle; if
    it succeeded, to claim the success as his own; or if battle were not
    given, to clear himself of the crime of abandoning Moscow. But this
    intrigue did not now occupy the old man's mind. One terrible question
    absorbed him and to that question he heard no reply from anyone. The
    question for him now was: "Have I really allowed Napoleon to reach
    Moscow, and when did I do so? When was it decided? Can it have been
    yesterday when I ordered Platov to retreat, or was it the evening
    before, when I had a nap and told Bennigsen to issue orders? Or was it
    earlier still?... When, when was this terrible affair decided? Moscow
    must be abandoned. The army must retreat and the order to do so must be
    given." To give that terrible order seemed to him equivalent to
    resigning the command of the army. And not only did he love power to
    which he was accustomed (the honours awarded to Prince Prozorovski,
    under whom he had served in Turkey, galled him), but he was convinced
    that he was destined to save Russia and that that was why, against the
    Emperor's wish and by the will of the people, he had been chosen
    commander-in-chief. He was convinced that he alone could maintain
    command of the army in these difficult circumstances, and that in all
    the world he alone could encounter the invincible Napoleon without fear,
    and he was horrified at the thought of the order he had to issue. But
    something had to be decided, and these conversations around him which
    were assuming too free a character must be stopped.
    
    He called the most important generals to him.
    
    "My head, be it good or bad, must depend on itself," said he, rising
    from the bench, and he rode to Fili where his carriages were waiting.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    The Council of War began to assemble at two in the afternoon in the
    better and roomier part of Andrew Savostyanov's hut. The men, women, and
    children of the large peasant family crowded into the back room across
    the passage. Only Malasha, Andrew's six-year-old granddaughter whom his
    Serene Highness had petted and to whom he had given a lump of sugar
    while drinking his tea, remained on the top of the brick oven in the
    larger room. Malasha looked down from the oven with shy delight at the
    faces, uniforms, and decorations of the generals, who one after another
    came into the room and sat down on the broad benches in the corner under
    the icons. "Granddad" himself, as Malasha in her own mind called
    Kutuzov, sat apart in a dark corner behind the oven. He sat, sunk deep
    in a folding armchair, and continually cleared his throat and pulled at
    the collar of his coat which, though it was unbuttoned, still seemed to
    pinch his neck. Those who entered went up one by one to the field
    marshal; he pressed the hands of some and nodded to others. His adjutant
    Kaysarov was about to draw back the curtain of the window facing
    Kutuzov, but the latter moved his hand angrily and Kaysarov understood
    that his Serene Highness did not wish his face to be seen.
    
    Round the peasant's deal table, on which lay maps, plans, pencils, and
    papers, so many people gathered that the orderlies brought in another
    bench and put it beside the table. Ermolov, Kaysarov, and Toll, who had
    just arrived, sat down on this bench. In the foremost place, immediately
    under the icons, sat Barclay de Tolly, his high forehead merging into
    his bald crown. He had a St. George's Cross round his neck and looked
    pale and ill. He had been feverish for two days and was now shivering
    and in pain. Beside him sat Uvarov, who with rapid gesticulations was
    giving him some information, speaking in low tones as they all did.
    Chubby little Dokhturov was listening attentively with eyebrows raised
    and arms folded on his stomach. On the other side sat Count Ostermann-
    Tolstoy, seemingly absorbed in his own thoughts. His broad head with its
    bold features and glittering eyes was resting on his hand. Raevski,
    twitching forward the black hair on his temples as was his habit,
    glanced now at Kutuzov and now at the door with a look of impatience.
    Konovnitsyn's firm, handsome, and kindly face was lit up by a tender,
    sly smile. His glance met Malasha's, and the expression of his eyes
    caused the little girl to smile.
    
    They were all waiting for Bennigsen, who on the pretext of inspecting
    the position was finishing his savory dinner. They waited for him from
    four till six o'clock and did not begin their deliberations all that
    time but talked in low tones of other matters.
    
    Only when Bennigsen had entered the hut did Kutuzov leave his corner and
    draw toward the table, but not near enough for the candles that had been
    placed there to light up his face.
    
    Bennigsen opened the council with the question: "Are we to abandon
    Russia's ancient and sacred capital without a struggle, or are we to
    defend it?" A prolonged and general silence followed. There was a frown
    on every face and only Kutuzov's angry grunts and occasional cough broke
    the silence. All eyes were gazing at him. Malasha too looked at
    "Granddad." She was nearest to him and saw how his face puckered; he
    seemed about to cry, but this did not last long.
    
    "Russia's ancient and sacred capital!" he suddenly said, repeating
    Bennigsen's words in an angry voice and thereby drawing attention to the
    false note in them. "Allow me to tell you, your excellency, that that
    question has no meaning for a Russian." (He lurched his heavy body
    forward.) "Such a question cannot be put; it is senseless! The question
    I have asked these gentlemen to meet to discuss is a military one. The
    question is that of saving Russia. Is it better to give up Moscow
    without a battle, or by accepting battle to risk losing the army as well
    as Moscow? That is the question on which I want your opinion," and he
    sank back in his chair.
    
    The discussion began. Bennigsen did not yet consider his game lost.
    Admitting the view of Barclay and others that a defensive battle at Fili
    was impossible, but imbued with Russian patriotism and the love of
    Moscow, he proposed to move troops from the right to the left flank
    during the night and attack the French right flank the following day.
    Opinions were divided, and arguments were advanced for and against that
    project. Ermolov, Dokhturov, and Raevski agreed with Bennigsen. Whether
    feeling it necessary to make a sacrifice before abandoning the capital
    or guided by other, personal considerations, these generals seemed not
    to understand that this council could not alter the inevitable course of
    events and that Moscow was in effect already abandoned. The other
    generals, however, understood it and, leaving aside the question of
    Moscow, spoke of the direction the army should take in its retreat.
    Malasha, who kept her eyes fixed on what was going on before her,
    understood the meaning of the council differently. It seemed to her that
    it was only a personal struggle between "Granddad" and "Long-coat" as
    she termed Bennigsen. She saw that they grew spiteful when they spoke to
    one another, and in her heart she sided with "Granddad." In the midst of
    the conversation she noticed "Granddad" give Bennigsen a quick, subtle
    glance, and then to her joys she saw that "Granddad" said something to
    "Long-coat" which settled him. Bennigsen suddenly reddened and paced
    angrily up and down the room. What so affected him was Kutuzov's calm
    and quiet comment on the advantage or disadvantage of Bennigsen's
    proposal to move troops by night from the right to the left flank to
    attack the French right wing.
    
    "Gentlemen," said Kutuzov, "I cannot approve of the count's plan. Moving
    troops in close proximity to an enemy is always dangerous, and military
    history supports that view. For instance..." Kutuzov seemed to reflect,
    searching for an example, then with a clear, naive look at Bennigsen he
    added: "Oh yes; take the battle of Friedland, which I think the count
    well remembers, and which was... not fully successful, only because our
    troops were rearranged too near the enemy..."
    
    There followed a momentary pause, which seemed very long to them all.
    
    The discussion recommenced, but pauses frequently occurred and they all
    felt that there was no more to be said.
    
    During one of these pauses Kutuzov heaved a deep sigh as if preparing to
    speak. They all looked at him.
    
    "Well, gentlemen, I see that it is I who will have to pay for the broken
    crockery," said he, and rising slowly he moved to the table. "Gentlemen,
    I have heard your views. Some of you will not agree with me. But I," he
    paused, "by the authority entrusted to me by my Sovereign and country,
    order a retreat."
    
    After that the generals began to disperse with the solemnity and
    circumspect silence of people who are leaving, after a funeral.
    
    Some of the generals, in low tones and in a strain very different from
    the way they had spoken during the council, communicated something to
    their commander-in-chief.
    
    Malasha, who had long been expected for supper, climbed carefully
    backwards down from the oven, her bare little feet catching at its
    projections, and slipping between the legs of the generals she darted
    out of the room.
    
    When he had dismissed the generals Kutuzov sat a long time with his
    elbows on the table, thinking always of the same terrible question:
    "When, when did the abandonment of Moscow become inevitable? When was
    that done which settled the matter? And who was to blame for it?"
    
    "I did not expect this," said he to his adjutant Schneider when the
    latter came in late that night. "I did not expect this! I did not think
    this would happen."
    
    "You should take some rest, your Serene Highness," replied Schneider.
    
    "But no! They shall eat horseflesh yet, like the Turks!" exclaimed
    Kutuzov without replying, striking the table with his podgy fist. "They
    shall too, if only..."
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    At that very time, in circumstances even more important than retreating
    without a battle, namely the evacuation and burning of Moscow,
    Rostopchin, who is usually represented as being the instigator of that
    event, acted in an altogether different manner from Kutuzov.
    
    After the battle of Borodino the abandonment and burning of Moscow was
    as inevitable as the retreat of the army beyond Moscow without fighting.
    
    Every Russian might have predicted it, not by reasoning but by the
    feeling implanted in each of us and in our fathers.
    
    The same thing that took place in Moscow had happened in all the towns
    and villages on Russian soil beginning with Smolensk, without the
    participation of Count Rostopchin and his broadsheets. The people
    awaited the enemy unconcernedly, did not riot or become excited or tear
    anyone to pieces, but faced its fate, feeling within it the strength to
    find what it should do at that most difficult moment. And as soon as the
    enemy drew near the wealthy classes went away abandoning their property,
    while the poorer remained and burned and destroyed what was left.
    
    The consciousness that this would be so and would always be so was and
    is present in the heart of every Russian. And a consciousness of this,
    and a foreboding that Moscow would be taken, was present in Russian
    Moscow society in 1812. Those who had quitted Moscow already in July and
    at the beginning of August showed that they expected this. Those who
    went away, taking what they could and abandoning their houses and half
    their belongings, did so from the latent patriotism which expresses
    itself not by phrases or by giving one's children to save the fatherland
    and similar unnatural exploits, but unobtrusively, simply, organically,
    and therefore in the way that always produces the most powerful results.
    
    "It is disgraceful to run away from danger; only cowards are running
    away from Moscow," they were told. In his broadsheets Rostopchin
    impressed on them that to leave Moscow was shameful. They were ashamed
    to be called cowards, ashamed to leave, but still they left, knowing it
    had to be done. Why did they go? It is impossible to suppose that
    Rostopchin had scared them by his accounts of horrors Napoleon had
    committed in conquered countries. The first people to go away were the
    rich educated people who knew quite well that Vienna and Berlin had
    remained intact and that during Napoleon's occupation the inhabitants
    had spent their time pleasantly in the company of the charming Frenchmen
    whom the Russians, and especially the Russian ladies, then liked so
    much.
    
    They went away because for Russians there could be no question as to
    whether things would go well or ill under French rule in Moscow. It was
    out of the question to be under French rule, it would be the worst thing
    that could happen. They went away even before the battle of Borodino and
    still more rapidly after it, despite Rostopchin's calls to defend Moscow
    or the announcement of his intention to take the wonder-working icon of
    the Iberian Mother of God and go to fight, or of the balloons that were
    to destroy the French, and despite all the nonsense Rostopchin wrote in
    his broadsheets. They knew that it was for the army to fight, and that
    if it could not succeed it would not do to take young ladies and house
    serfs to the Three Hills quarter of Moscow to fight Napoleon, and that
    they must go away, sorry as they were to abandon their property to
    destruction. They went away without thinking of the tremendous
    significance of that immense and wealthy city being given over to
    destruction, for a great city with wooden buildings was certain when
    abandoned by its inhabitants to be burned. They went away each on his
    own account, and yet it was only in consequence of their going away that
    the momentous event was accomplished that will always remain the
    greatest glory of the Russian people. The lady who, afraid of being
    stopped by Count Rostopchin's orders, had already in June moved with her
    Negroes and her women jesters from Moscow to her Saratov estate, with a
    vague consciousness that she was not Bonaparte's servant, was really,
    simply, and truly carrying out the great work which saved Russia. But
    Count Rostopchin, who now taunted those who left Moscow and now had the
    government offices removed; now distributed quite useless weapons to the
    drunken rabble; now had processions displaying the icons, and now
    forbade Father Augustin to remove icons or the relics of saints; now
    seized all the private carts in Moscow and on one hundred and thirty-six
    of them removed the balloon that was being constructed by Leppich; now
    hinted that he would burn Moscow and related how he had set fire to his
    own house; now wrote a proclamation to the French solemnly upbraiding
    them for having destroyed his Orphanage; now claimed the glory of having
    hinted that he would burn Moscow and now repudiated the deed; now
    ordered the people to catch all spies and bring them to him, and now
    reproached them for doing so; now expelled all the French residents from
    Moscow, and now allowed Madame Aubert-Chalme (the center of the whole
    French colony in Moscow) to remain, but ordered the venerable old
    postmaster Klyucharev to be arrested and exiled for no particular
    offense; now assembled the people at the Three Hills to fight the French
    and now, to get rid of them, handed over to them a man to be killed and
    himself drove away by a back gate; now declared that he would not
    survive the fall of Moscow, and now wrote French verses in albums
    concerning his share in the affair--this man did not understand the
    meaning of what was happening but merely wanted to do something himself
    that would astonish people, to perform some patriotically heroic feat;
    and like a child he made sport of the momentous, and unavoidable event--
    the abandonment and burning of Moscow--and tried with his puny hand now
    to speed and now to stay the enormous, popular tide that bore him along
    with it.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Helene, having returned with the court from Vilna to Petersburg, found
    herself in a difficult position.
    
    In Petersburg she had enjoyed the special protection of a grandee who
    occupied one of the highest posts in the Empire. In Vilna she had formed
    an intimacy with a young foreign prince. When she returned to Petersburg
    both the magnate and the prince were there, and both claimed their
    rights. Helene was faced by a new problem--how to preserve her intimacy
    with both without offending either.
    
    What would have seemed difficult or even impossible to another woman did
    not cause the least embarrassment to Countess Bezukhova, who evidently
    deserved her reputation of being a very clever woman. Had she attempted
    concealment, or tried to extricate herself from her awkward position by
    cunning, she would have spoiled her case by acknowledging herself
    guilty. But Helene, like a really great man who can do whatever he
    pleases, at once assumed her own position to be correct, as she
    sincerely believed it to be, and that everyone else was to blame.
    
    The first time the young foreigner allowed himself to reproach her, she
    lifted her beautiful head and, half turning to him, said firmly: "That's
    just like a man--selfish and cruel! I expected nothing else. A woman
    sacrifices herself for you, she suffers, and this is her reward! What
    right have you, monseigneur, to demand an account of my attachments and
    friendships? He is a man who has been more than a father to me!" The
    prince was about to say something, but Helene interrupted him.
    
    "Well, yes," said she, "it may be that he has other sentiments for me
    than those of a father, but that is not a reason for me to shut my door
    on him. I am not a man, that I should repay kindness with ingratitude!
    Know, monseigneur, that in all that relates to my intimate feelings I
    render account only to God and to my conscience," she concluded, laying
    her hand on her beautiful, fully expanded bosom and looking up to
    heaven.
    
    "But for heaven's sake listen to me!"
    
    "Marry me, and I will be your slave!"
    
    "But that's impossible."
    
    "You won't deign to demean yourself by marrying me, you..." said Helene,
    beginning to cry.
    
    The prince tried to comfort her, but Helene, as if quite distraught,
    said through her tears that there was nothing to prevent her marrying,
    that there were precedents (there were up to that time very few, but she
    mentioned Napoleon and some other exalted personages), that she had
    never been her husband's wife, and that she had been sacrificed.
    
    "But the law, religion..." said the prince, already yielding.
    
    "The law, religion... What have they been invented for if they can't
    arrange that?" said Helene.
    
    The prince was surprised that so simple an idea had not occurred to him,
    and he applied for advice to the holy brethren of the Society of Jesus,
    with whom he was on intimate terms.
    
    A few days later at one of those enchanting fetes which Helene gave at
    her country house on the Stone Island, the charming Monsieur de Jobert,
    a man no longer young, with snow white hair and brilliant black eyes, a
    Jesuit a robe courte * was presented to her, and in the garden by the
    light of the illuminations and to the sound of music talked to her for a
    long time of the love of God, of Christ, of the Sacred Heart, and of the
    consolations the one true Catholic religion affords in this world and
    the next. Helene was touched, and more than once tears rose to her eyes
    and to those of Monsieur de Jobert and their voices trembled. A dance,
    for which her partner came to seek her, put an end to her discourse with
    her future directeur de conscience, but the next evening Monsieur de
    Jobert came to see Helene when she was alone, and after that often came
    again.
    
    * Lay member of the Society of Jesus.
    
    One day he took the countess to a Roman Catholic church, where she knelt
    down before the altar to which she was led. The enchanting, middle-aged
    Frenchman laid his hands on her head and, as she herself afterward
    described it, she felt something like a fresh breeze wafted into her
    soul. It was explained to her that this was la grace.
    
    After that a long-frocked abbe was brought to her. She confessed to him,
    and he absolved her from her sins. Next day she received a box
    containing the Sacred Host, which was left at her house for her to
    partake of. A few days later Helene learned with pleasure that she had
    now been admitted to the true Catholic Church and that in a few days the
    Pope himself would hear of her and would send her a certain document.
    
    All that was done around her and to her at this time, all the attention
    devoted to her by so many clever men and expressed in such pleasant,
    refined ways, and the state of dove-like purity she was now in (she wore
    only white dresses and white ribbons all that time) gave her pleasure,
    but her pleasure did not cause her for a moment to forget her aim. And
    as it always happens in contests of cunning that a stupid person gets
    the better of cleverer ones, Helene--having realized that the main
    object of all these words and all this trouble was, after converting her
    to Catholicism, to obtain money from her for Jesuit institutions (as to
    which she received indications)-before parting with her money insisted
    that the various operations necessary to free her from her husband
    should be performed. In her view the aim of every religion was merely to
    preserve certain proprieties while affording satisfaction to human
    desires. And with this aim, in one of her talks with her Father
    Confessor, she insisted on an answer to the question, in how far was she
    bound by her marriage?
    
    They were sitting in the twilight by a window in the drawing room. The
    scent of flowers came in at the window. Helene was wearing a white
    dress, transparent over her shoulders and bosom. The abbe, a well-fed
    man with a plump, clean-shaven chin, a pleasant firm mouth, and white
    hands meekly folded on his knees, sat close to Helene and, with a subtle
    smile on his lips and a peaceful look of delight at her beauty,
    occasionally glanced at her face as he explained his opinion on the
    subject. Helene with an uneasy smile looked at his curly hair and his
    plump, clean-shaven, blackish cheeks and every moment expected the
    conversation to take a fresh turn. But the abbe, though he evidently
    enjoyed the beauty of his companion, was absorbed in his mastery of the
    matter.
    
    The course of the Father Confessor's arguments ran as follows: "Ignorant
    of the import of what you were undertaking, you made a vow of conjugal
    fidelity to a man who on his part, by entering the married state without
    faith in the religious significance of marriage, committed an act of
    sacrilege. That marriage lacked the dual significance it should have
    had. Yet in spite of this your vow was binding. You swerved from it.
    What did you commit by so acting? A venial, or a mortal, sin? A venial
    sin, for you acted without evil intention. If now you married again with
    the object of bearing children, your sin might be forgiven. But the
    question is again a twofold one: firstly..."
    
    But suddenly Helene, who was getting bored, said with one of her
    bewitching smiles: "But I think that having espoused the true religion I
    cannot be bound by what a false religion laid upon me."
    
    The director of her conscience was astounded at having the case
    presented to him thus with the simplicity of Columbus' egg. He was
    delighted at the unexpected rapidity of his pupil's progress, but could
    not abandon the edifice of argument he had laboriously constructed.
    
    "Let us understand one another, Countess," said he with a smile, and
    began refuting his spiritual daughter's arguments.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Helene understood that the question was very simple and easy from the
    ecclesiastical point of view, and that her directors were making
    difficulties only because they were apprehensive as to how the matter
    would be regarded by the secular authorities.
    
    So she decided that it was necessary to prepare the opinion of society.
    She provoked the jealousy of the elderly magnate and told him what she
    had told her other suitor; that is, she put the matter so that the only
    way for him to obtain a right over her was to marry her. The elderly
    magnate was at first as much taken aback by this suggestion of marriage
    with a woman whose husband was alive, as the younger man had been, but
    Helene's imperturbable conviction that it was as simple and natural as
    marrying a maiden had its effect on him too. Had Helene herself shown
    the least sign of hesitation, shame, or secrecy, her cause would
    certainly have been lost; but not only did she show no signs of secrecy
    or shame, on the contrary, with good-natured naivete she told her
    intimate friends (and these were all Petersburg) that both the prince
    and the magnate had proposed to her and that she loved both and was
    afraid of grieving either.
    
    A rumor immediately spread in Petersburg, not that Helene wanted to be
    divorced from her husband (had such a report spread many would have
    opposed so illegal an intention) but simply that the unfortunate and
    interesting Helene was in doubt which of the two men she should marry.
    The question was no longer whether this was possible, but only which was
    the better match and how the matter would be regarded at court. There
    were, it is true, some rigid individuals unable to rise to the height of
    such a question, who saw in the project a desecration of the sacrament
    of marriage, but there were not many such and they remained silent,
    while the majority were interested in Helene's good fortune and in the
    question which match would be the more advantageous. Whether it was
    right or wrong to remarry while one had a husband living they did not
    discuss, for that question had evidently been settled by people "wiser
    than you or me," as they said, and to doubt the correctness of that
    decision would be to risk exposing one's stupidity and incapacity to
    live in society.
    
    Only Marya Dmitrievna Akhrosimova, who had come to Petersburg that
    summer to see one of her sons, allowed herself plainly to express an
    opinion contrary to the general one. Meeting Helene at a ball she
    stopped her in the middle of the room and, amid general silence, said in
    her gruff voice: "So wives of living men have started marrying again!
    Perhaps you think you have invented a novelty? You have been
    forestalled, my dear! It was thought of long ago. It is done in all the
    brothels," and with these words Marya Dmitrievna, turning up her wide
    sleeves with her usual threatening gesture and glancing sternly round,
    moved across the room.
    
    Though people were afraid of Marya Dmitrievna she was regarded in
    Petersburg as a buffoon, and so of what she had said they only noticed,
    and repeated in a whisper, the one coarse word she had used, supposing
    the whole sting of her remark to lie in that word.
    
    Prince Vasili, who of late very often forgot what he had said and
    repeated one and the same thing a hundred times, remarked to his
    daughter whenever he chanced to see her:
    
    "Helene, I have a word to say to you," and he would lead her aside,
    drawing her hand downward. "I have heard of certain projects
    concerning... you know. Well my dear child, you know how your father's
    heart rejoices to know that you... You have suffered so much.... But, my
    dear child, consult only your own heart. That is all I have to say," and
    concealing his unvarying emotion he would press his cheek against his
    daughter's and move away.
    
    Bilibin, who had not lost his reputation of an exceedingly clever man,
    and who was one of the disinterested friends so brilliant a woman as
    Helene always has--men friends who can never change into lovers--once
    gave her his view of the matter at a small and intimate gathering.
    
    "Listen, Bilibin," said Helene (she always called friends of that sort
    by their surnames), and she touched his coat sleeve with her white,
    beringed fingers. "Tell me, as you would a sister, what I ought to do.
    Which of the two?"
    
    Bilibin wrinkled up the skin over his eyebrows and pondered, with a
    smile on his lips.
    
    "You are not taking me unawares, you know," said he. "As a true friend,
    I have thought and thought again about your affair. You see, if you
    marry the prince"--he meant the younger man--and he crooked one finger,
    "you forever lose the chance of marrying the other, and you will
    displease the court besides. (You know there is some kind of
    connection.) But if you marry the old count you will make his last days
    happy, and as widow of the Grand... the prince would no longer be making
    a mesalliance by marrying you," and Bilibin smoothed out his forehead.
    
    "That's a true friend!" said Helene beaming, and again touching
    Bilibin's sleeve. "But I love them, you know, and don't want to distress
    either of them. I would give my life for the happiness of them both."
    
    Bilibin shrugged his shoulders, as much as to say that not even he could
    help in that difficulty.
    
    "Une maitresse-femme! * That's what is called putting things squarely.
    She would like to be married to all three at the same time," thought he.
    
    * A masterly woman.
    
    "But tell me, how will your husband look at the matter?" Bilibin asked,
    his reputation being so well established that he did not fear to ask so
    naive a question. "Will he agree?"
    
    "Oh, he loves me so!" said Helene, who for some reason imagined that
    Pierre too loved her. "He will do anything for me."
    
    Bilibin puckered his skin in preparation for something witty.
    
    "Even divorce you?" said he.
    
    Helene laughed.
    
    Among those who ventured to doubt the justifiability of the proposed
    marriage was Helene's mother, Princess Kuragina. She was continually
    tormented by jealousy of her daughter, and now that jealousy concerned a
    subject near to her own heart, she could not reconcile herself to the
    idea. She consulted a Russian priest as to the possibility of divorce
    and remarriage during a husband's lifetime, and the priest told her that
    it was impossible, and to her delight showed her a text in the Gospel
    which (as it seemed to him) plainly forbids remarriage while the husband
    is alive.
    
    Armed with these arguments, which appeared to her unanswerable, she
    drove to her daughter's early one morning so as to find her alone.
    
    Having listened to her mother's objections, Helene smiled blandly and
    ironically.
    
    "But it says plainly: 'Whosoever shall marry her that is divorced...'"
    said the old princess.
    
    "Ah, Maman, ne dites pas de betises. Vous ne comprenez rien. Dans ma
    position j'ai des devoirs," * said Helene changing from Russian, in
    which language she always felt that her case did not sound quite clear,
    into French which suited it better.
    
    * "Oh, Mamma, don't talk nonsense! You don't understand anything. In my
    position I have obligations."
    
    "But, my dear...."
    
    "Oh, Mamma, how is it you don't understand that the Holy Father, who has
    the right to grant dispensations..."
    
    Just then the lady companion who lived with Helene came in to announce
    that His Highness was in the ballroom and wished to see her.
    
    "Non, dites-lui que je ne veux pas le voir, que je suis furieuse contre
    lui, parce qu'il m'a manque parole." *
    
    * "No, tell him I don't wish to see him, I am furious with him for not
    keeping his word to me."
    
    "Comtesse, a tout peche misericorde," * said a fair-haired young man
    with a long face and nose, as he entered the room.
    
    * "Countess, there is mercy for every sin."
    
    The old princess rose respectfully and curtsied. The young man who had
    entered took no notice of her. The princess nodded to her daughter and
    sidled out of the room.
    
    "Yes, she is right," thought the old princess, all her convictions
    dissipated by the appearance of His Highness. "She is right, but how is
    it that we in our irrecoverable youth did not know it? Yet it is so
    simple," she thought as she got into her carriage.
    
    By the beginning of August Helene's affairs were clearly defined and she
    wrote a letter to her husband--who, as she imagined, loved her very
    much--informing him of her intention to marry N.N. and of her having
    embraced the one true faith, and asking him to carry out all the
    formalities necessary for a divorce, which would be explained to him by
    the bearer of the letter.
    
    And so I pray God to have you, my friend, in His holy and powerful
    keeping--Your friend Helene.
    
    This letter was brought to Pierre's house when he was on the field of
    Borodino.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    Toward the end of the battle of Borodino, Pierre, having run down from
    Raevski's battery a second time, made his way through a gully to
    Knyazkovo with a crowd of soldiers, reached the dressing station, and
    seeing blood and hearing cries and groans hurried on, still entangled in
    the crowds of soldiers.
    
    The one thing he now desired with his whole soul was to get away quickly
    from the terrible sensations amid which he had lived that day and return
    to ordinary conditions of life and sleep quietly in a room in his own
    bed. He felt that only in the ordinary conditions of life would he be
    able to understand himself and all he had seen and felt. But such
    ordinary conditions of life were nowhere to be found.
    
    Though shells and bullets did not whistle over the road along which he
    was going, still on all sides there was what there had been on the field
    of battle. There were still the same suffering, exhausted, and sometimes
    strangely indifferent faces, the same blood, the same soldiers'
    overcoats, the same sounds of firing which, though distant now, still
    aroused terror, and besides this there were the foul air and the dust.
    
    Having gone a couple of miles along the Mozhaysk road, Pierre sat down
    by the roadside.
    
    Dusk had fallen, and the roar of guns died away. Pierre lay leaning on
    his elbow for a long time, gazing at the shadows that moved past him in
    the darkness. He was continually imagining that a cannon ball was flying
    toward him with a terrific whizz, and then he shuddered and sat up. He
    had no idea how long he had been there. In the middle of the night three
    soldiers, having brought some firewood, settled down near him and began
    lighting a fire.
    
    The soldiers, who threw sidelong glances at Pierre, got the fire to burn
    and placed an iron pot on it into which they broke some dried bread and
    put a little dripping. The pleasant odor of greasy viands mingled with
    the smell of smoke. Pierre sat up and sighed. The three soldiers were
    eating and talking among themselves, taking no notice of him.
    
    "And who may you be?" one of them suddenly asked Pierre, evidently
    meaning what Pierre himself had in mind, namely: "If you want to eat
    we'll give you some food, only let us know whether you are an honest
    man."
    
    "I, I..." said Pierre, feeling it necessary to minimize his social
    position as much as possible so as to be nearer to the soldiers and
    better understood by them. "By rights I am a militia officer, but my men
    are not here. I came to the battle and have lost them."
    
    "There now!" said one of the soldiers.
    
    Another shook his head.
    
    "Would you like a little mash?" the first soldier asked, and handed
    Pierre a wooden spoon after licking it clean.
    
    Pierre sat down by the fire and began eating the mash, as they called
    the food in the cauldron, and he thought it more delicious than any food
    he had ever tasted. As he sat bending greedily over it, helping himself
    to large spoonfuls and chewing one after another, his face was lit up by
    the fire and the soldiers looked at him in silence.
    
    "Where have you to go to? Tell us!" said one of them.
    
    "To Mozhaysk."
    
    "You're a gentleman, aren't you?"
    
    "Yes."
    
    "And what's your name?"
    
    "Peter Kirilych."
    
    "Well then, Peter Kirilych, come along with us, we'll take you there."
    
    In the total darkness the soldiers walked with Pierre to Mozhaysk.
    
    By the time they got near Mozhaysk and began ascending the steep hill
    into the town, the cocks were already crowing. Pierre went on with the
    soldiers, quite forgetting that his inn was at the bottom of the hill
    and that he had already passed it. He would not soon have remembered
    this, such was his state of forgetfulness, had he not halfway up the
    hill stumbled upon his groom, who had been to look for him in the town
    and was returning to the inn. The groom recognized Pierre in the
    darkness by his white hat.
    
    "Your excellency!" he said. "Why, we were beginning to despair! How is
    it you are on foot? And where are you going, please?"
    
    "Oh, yes!" said Pierre.
    
    The soldiers stopped.
    
    "So you've found your folk?" said one of them. "Well, good-by, Peter
    Kirilych--isn't it?"
    
    "Good-bye, Peter Kirilych!" Pierre heard the other voices repeat.
    
    "Good-bye!" he said and turned with his groom toward the inn.
    
    "I ought to give them something!" he thought, and felt in his pocket.
    "No, better not!" said another, inner voice.
    
    There was not a room to be had at the inn, they were all occupied.
    Pierre went out into the yard and, covering himself up head and all, lay
    down in his carriage.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    Scarcely had Pierre laid his head on the pillow before he felt himself
    falling asleep, but suddenly, almost with the distinctness of reality,
    he heard the boom, boom, boom of firing, the thud of projectiles, groans
    and cries, and smelled blood and powder, and a feeling of horror and
    dread of death seized him. Filled with fright he opened his eyes and
    lifted his head from under his cloak. All was tranquil in the yard. Only
    someone's orderly passed through the gateway, splashing through the mud,
    and talked to the innkeeper. Above Pierre's head some pigeons, disturbed
    by the movement he had made in sitting up, fluttered under the dark roof
    of the penthouse. The whole courtyard was permeated by a strong peaceful
    smell of stable yards, delightful to Pierre at that moment. He could see
    the clear starry sky between the dark roofs of two penthouses.
    
    "Thank God, there is no more of that!" he thought, covering up his head
    again. "Oh, what a terrible thing is fear, and how shamefully I yielded
    to it! But they... they were steady and calm all the time, to the
    end..." thought he.
    
    They, in Pierre's mind, were the soldiers, those who had been at the
    battery, those who had given him food, and those who had prayed before
    the icon. They, those strange men he had not previously known, stood out
    clearly and sharply from everyone else.
    
    "To be a soldier, just a soldier!" thought Pierre as he fell asleep, "to
    enter communal life completely, to be imbued by what makes them what
    they are. But how cast off all the superfluous, devilish burden of my
    outer man? There was a time when I could have done it. I could have run
    away from my father, as I wanted to. Or I might have been sent to serve
    as a soldier after the duel with Dolokhov." And the memory of the dinner
    at the English Club when he had challenged Dolokhov flashed through
    Pierre's mind, and then he remembered his benefactor at Torzhok. And now
    a picture of a solemn meeting of the lodge presented itself to his mind.
    It was taking place at the English Club and someone near and dear to him
    sat at the end of the table. "Yes, that is he! It is my benefactor. But
    he died!" thought Pierre. "Yes, he died, and I did not know he was
    alive. How sorry I am that he died, and how glad I am that he is alive
    again!" On one side of the table sat Anatole, Dolokhov, Nesvitski,
    Denisov, and others like them (in his dream the category to which these
    men belonged was as clearly defined in his mind as the category of those
    he termed they), and he heard those people, Anatole and Dolokhov,
    shouting and singing loudly; yet through their shouting the voice of his
    benefactor was heard speaking all the time and the sound of his words
    was as weighty and uninterrupted as the booming on the battlefield, but
    pleasant and comforting. Pierre did not understand what his benefactor
    was saying, but he knew (the categories of thoughts were also quite
    distinct in his dream) that he was talking of goodness and the
    possibility of being what they were. And they with their simple, kind,
    firm faces surrounded his benefactor on all sides. But though they were
    kindly they did not look at Pierre and did not know him. Wishing to
    speak and to attract their attention, he got up, but at that moment his
    legs grew cold and bare.
    
    He felt ashamed, and with one arm covered his legs from which his cloak
    had in fact slipped. For a moment as he was rearranging his cloak Pierre
    opened his eyes and saw the same penthouse roofs, posts, and yard, but
    now they were all bluish, lit up, and glittering with frost or dew.
    
    "It is dawn," thought Pierre. "But that's not what I want. I want to
    hear and understand my benefactor's words." Again he covered himself up
    with his cloak, but now neither the lodge nor his benefactor was there.
    There were only thoughts clearly expressed in words, thoughts that
    someone was uttering or that he himself was formulating.
    
    Afterwards when he recalled those thoughts Pierre was convinced that
    someone outside himself had spoken them, though the impressions of that
    day had evoked them. He had never, it seemed to him, been able to think
    and express his thoughts like that when awake.
    
    "To endure war is the most difficult subordination of man's freedom to
    the law of God," the voice had said. "Simplicity is submission to the
    will of God; you cannot escape from Him. And they are simple. They do
    not talk, but act. The spoken word is silver but the unspoken is golden.
    Man can be master of nothing while he fears death, but he who does not
    fear it possesses all. If there were no suffering, man would not know
    his limitations, would not know himself. The hardest thing (Pierre went
    on thinking, or hearing, in his dream) is to be able in your soul to
    unite the meaning of all. To unite all?" he asked himself. "No, not to
    unite. Thoughts cannot be united, but to harness all these thoughts
    together is what we need! Yes, one must harness them, must harness
    them!" he repeated to himself with inward rapture, feeling that these
    words and they alone expressed what he wanted to say and solved the
    question that tormented him.
    
    "Yes, one must harness, it is time to harness."
    
    "Time to harness, time to harness, your excellency! Your excellency!"
    some voice was repeating. "We must harness, it is time to harness...."
    
    It was the voice of the groom, trying to wake him. The sun shone
    straight into Pierre's face. He glanced at the dirty innyard in the
    middle of which soldiers were watering their lean horses at the pump
    while carts were passing out of the gate. Pierre turned away with
    repugnance, and closing his eyes quickly fell back on the carriage seat.
    "No, I don't want that, I don't want to see and understand that. I want
    to understand what was revealing itself to me in my dream. One second
    more and I should have understood it all! But what am I to do? Harness,
    but how can I harness everything?" and Pierre felt with horror that the
    meaning of all he had seen and thought in the dream had been destroyed.
    
    The groom, the coachman, and the innkeeper told Pierre that an officer
    had come with news that the French were already near Mozhaysk and that
    our men were leaving it.
    
    Pierre got up and, having told them to harness and overtake him, went on
    foot through the town.
    
    The troops were moving on, leaving about ten thousand wounded behind
    them. There were wounded in the yards, at the windows of the houses, and
    the streets were crowded with them. In the streets, around carts that
    were to take some of the wounded away, shouts, curses, and blows could
    be heard. Pierre offered the use of his carriage, which had overtaken
    him, to a wounded general he knew, and drove with him to Moscow. On the
    way Pierre was told of the death of his brother-in-law Anatole and of
    that of Prince Andrew.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    On the thirteenth of August Pierre reached Moscow. Close to the gates of
    the city he was met by Count Rostopchin's adjutant.
    
    "We have been looking for you everywhere," said the adjutant. "The count
    wants to see you particularly. He asks you to come to him at once on a
    very important matter."
    
    Without going home, Pierre took a cab and drove to see the Moscow
    commander-in-chief.
    
    Count Rostopchin had only that morning returned to town from his summer
    villa at Sokolniki. The anteroom and reception room of his house were
    full of officials who had been summoned or had come for orders.
    Vasilchikov and Platov had already seen the count and explained to him
    that it was impossible to defend Moscow and that it would have to be
    surrendered. Though this news was being concealed from the inhabitants,
    the officials--the heads of the various government departments--knew
    that Moscow would soon be in the enemy's hands, just as Count Rostopchin
    himself knew it, and to escape personal responsibility they had all come
    to the governor to ask how they were to deal with their various
    departments.
    
    As Pierre was entering the reception room a courier from the army came
    out of Rostopchin's private room.
    
    In answer to questions with which he was greeted, the courier made a
    despairing gesture with his hand and passed through the room.
    
    While waiting in the reception room Pierre with weary eyes watched the
    various officials, old and young, military and civilian, who were there.
    They all seemed dissatisfied and uneasy. Pierre went up to a group of
    men, one of whom he knew. After greeting Pierre they continued their
    conversation.
    
    "If they're sent out and brought back again later on it will do no harm,
    but as things are now one can't answer for anything."
    
    "But you see what he writes..." said another, pointing to a printed
    sheet he held in his hand.
    
    "That's another matter. That's necessary for the people," said the
    first.
    
    "What is it?" asked Pierre.
    
    "Oh, it's a fresh broadsheet."
    
    Pierre took it and began reading.
    
    His Serene Highness has passed through Mozhaysk in order to join up with
    the troops moving toward him and has taken up a strong position where
    the enemy will not soon attack him. Forty eight guns with ammunition
    have been sent him from here, and his Serene Highness says he will
    defend Moscow to the last drop of blood and is even ready to fight in
    the streets. Do not be upset, brothers, that the law courts are closed;
    things have to be put in order, and we will deal with villains in our
    own way! When the time comes I shall want both town and peasant lads and
    will raise the cry a day or two beforehand, but they are not wanted yet
    so I hold my peace. An ax will be useful, a hunting spear not bad, but a
    three-pronged fork will be best of all: a Frenchman is no heavier than a
    sheaf of rye. Tomorrow after dinner I shall take the Iberian icon of the
    Mother of God to the wounded in the Catherine Hospital where we will
    have some water blessed. That will help them to get well quicker. I,
    too, am well now: one of my eyes was sore but now I am on the lookout
    with both.
    
    "But military men have told me that it is impossible to fight in the
    town," said Pierre, "and that the position..."
    
    "Well, of course! That's what we were saying," replied the first
    speaker.
    
    "And what does he mean by 'One of my eyes was sore but now I am on the
    lookout with both'?" asked Pierre.
    
    "The count had a sty," replied the adjutant smiling, "and was very much
    upset when I told him people had come to ask what was the matter with
    him. By the by, Count," he added suddenly, addressing Pierre with a
    smile, "we heard that you have family troubles and that the countess,
    your wife..."
    
    "I have heard nothing," Pierre replied unconcernedly. "But what have you
    heard?"
    
    "Oh, well, you know people often invent things. I only say what I
    heard."
    
    "But what did you hear?"
    
    "Well, they say," continued the adjutant with the same smile, "that the
    countess, your wife, is preparing to go abroad. I expect it's
    nonsense...."
    
    "Possibly," remarked Pierre, looking about him absent-mindedly. "And who
    is that?" he asked, indicating a short old man in a clean blue peasant
    overcoat, with a big snow-white beard and eyebrows and a ruddy face.
    
    "He? That's a tradesman, that is to say, he's the restaurant keeper,
    Vereshchagin. Perhaps you have heard of that affair with the
    proclamation."
    
    "Oh, so that is Vereshchagin!" said Pierre, looking at the firm, calm
    face of the old man and seeking any indication of his being a traitor.
    
    "That's not he himself, that's the father of the fellow who wrote the
    proclamation," said the adjutant. "The young man is in prison and I
    expect it will go hard with him."
    
    An old gentleman wearing a star and another official, a German wearing a
    cross round his neck, approached the speaker.
    
    "It's a complicated story, you know," said the adjutant. "That
    proclamation appeared about two months ago. The count was informed of
    it. He gave orders to investigate the matter. Gabriel Ivanovich here
    made the inquiries. The proclamation had passed through exactly sixty-
    three hands. He asked one, 'From whom did you get it?' 'From so-and-so.'
    He went to the next one. 'From whom did you get it?' and so on till he
    reached Vereshchagin, a half educated tradesman, you know, 'a pet of a
    trader,'" said the adjutant smiling. "They asked him, 'Who gave it you?'
    And the point is that we knew whom he had it from. He could only have
    had it from the Postmaster. But evidently they had come to some
    understanding. He replied: 'From no one; I made it up myself.' They
    threatened and questioned him, but he stuck to that: 'I made it up
    myself.' And so it was reported to the count, who sent for the man.
    'From whom did you get the proclamation?' 'I wrote it myself.' Well, you
    know the count," said the adjutant cheerfully, with a smile of pride,
    "he flared up dreadfully--and just think of the fellow's audacity,
    lying, and obstinacy!"
    
    "And the count wanted him to say it was from Klyucharev? I understand!"
    said Pierre.
    
    "Not at all," rejoined the adjutant in dismay. "Klyucharev had his own
    sins to answer for without that and that is why he has been banished.
    But the point is that the count was much annoyed. 'How could you have
    written it yourself?' said he, and he took up the Hamburg Gazette that
    was lying on the table. 'Here it is! You did not write it yourself but
    translated it, and translated it abominably, because you don't even know
    French, you fool.' And what do you think? 'No,' said he, 'I have not
    read any papers, I made it up myself.' 'If that's so, you're a traitor
    and I'll have you tried, and you'll be hanged! Say from whom you had
    it.' 'I have seen no papers, I made it up myself.' And that was the end
    of it. The count had the father fetched, but the fellow stuck to it. He
    was sent for trial and condemned to hard labor, I believe. Now the
    father has come to intercede for him. But he's a good-for-nothing lad!
    You know that sort of tradesman's son, a dandy and lady-killer. He
    attended some lectures somewhere and imagines that the devil is no match
    for him. That's the sort of fellow he is. His father keeps a cookshop
    here by the Stone Bridge, and you know there was a large icon of God
    Almighty painted with a scepter in one hand and an orb in the other.
    Well, he took that icon home with him for a few days and what did he do?
    He found some scoundrel of a painter..."
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    In the middle of this fresh tale Pierre was summoned to the commander in
    chief.
    
    When he entered the private room Count Rostopchin, puckering his face,
    was rubbing his forehead and eyes with his hand. A short man was saying
    something, but when Pierre entered he stopped speaking and went out.
    
    "Ah, how do you do, great warrior?" said Rostopchin as soon as the short
    man had left the room. "We have heard of your prowess. But that's not
    the point. Between ourselves, mon cher, do you belong to the Masons?" he
    went on severely, as though there were something wrong about it which he
    nevertheless intended to pardon. Pierre remained silent. "I am well
    informed, my friend, but I am aware that there are Masons and I hope
    that you are not one of those who on pretense of saving mankind wish to
    ruin Russia."
    
    "Yes, I am a Mason," Pierre replied.
    
    "There, you see, mon cher! I expect you know that Messrs. Speranski and
    Magnitski have been deported to their proper place. Mr. Klyucharev has
    been treated in the same way, and so have others who on the plea of
    building up the temple of Solomon have tried to destroy the temple of
    their fatherland. You can understand that there are reasons for this and
    that I could not have exiled the Postmaster had he not been a harmful
    person. It has now come to my knowledge that you lent him your carriage
    for his removal from town, and that you have even accepted papers from
    him for safe custody. I like you and don't wish you any harm and--as you
    are only half my age--I advise you, as a father would, to cease all
    communication with men of that stamp and to leave here as soon as
    possible."
    
    "But what did Klyucharev do wrong, Count?" asked Pierre.
    
    "That is for me to know, but not for you to ask," shouted Rostopchin.
    
    "If he is accused of circulating Napoleon's proclamation it is not
    proved that he did so," said Pierre without looking at Rostopchin, "and
    Vereshchagin..."
    
    "There we are!" Rostopchin shouted at Pierre louder than before,
    frowning suddenly. "Vereshchagin is a renegade and a traitor who will be
    punished as he deserves," said he with the vindictive heat with which
    people speak when recalling an insult. "But I did not summon you to
    discuss my actions, but to give you advice--or an order if you prefer
    it. I beg you to leave the town and break off all communication with
    such men as Klyucharev. And I will knock the nonsense out of anybody"--
    but probably realizing that he was shouting at Bezukhov who so far was
    not guilty of anything, he added, taking Pierre's hand in a friendly
    manner, "We are on the eve of a public disaster and I haven't time to be
    polite to everybody who has business with me. My head is sometimes in a
    whirl. Well, mon cher, what are you doing personally?"
    
    "Why, nothing," answered Pierre without raising his eyes or changing the
    thoughtful expression of his face.
    
    The count frowned.
    
    "A word of friendly advice, mon cher. Be off as soon as you can, that's
    all I have to tell you. Happy he who has ears to hear. Good-bye, my dear
    fellow. Oh, by the by!" he shouted through the doorway after Pierre, "is
    it true that the countess has fallen into the clutches of the holy
    fathers of the Society of Jesus?"
    
    Pierre did not answer and left Rostopchin's room more sullen and angry
    than he had ever before shown himself.
    
    When he reached home it was already getting dark. Some eight people had
    come to see him that evening: the secretary of a committee, the colonel
    of his battalion, his steward, his major-domo, and various petitioners.
    They all had business with Pierre and wanted decisions from him. Pierre
    did not understand and was not interested in any of these questions and
    only answered them in order to get rid of these people. When left alone
    at last he opened and read his wife's letter.
    
    "They, the soldiers at the battery, Prince Andrew killed... that old
    man... Simplicity is submission to God. Suffering is necessary... the
    meaning of all... one must harness... my wife is getting married... One
    must forget and understand..." And going to his bed he threw himself on
    it without undressing and immediately fell asleep.
    
    When he awoke next morning the major-domo came to inform him that a
    special messenger, a police officer, had come from Count Rostopchin to
    know whether Count Bezukhov had left or was leaving the town.
    
    A dozen persons who had business with Pierre were awaiting him in the
    drawing room. Pierre dressed hurriedly and, instead of going to see
    them, went to the back porch and out through the gate.
    
    From that time till the end of the destruction of Moscow no one of
    Bezukhov's household, despite all the search they made, saw Pierre again
    or knew where he was.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    The Rostovs remained in Moscow till the first of September, that is,
    till the eve of the enemy's entry into the city.
    
    After Petya had joined Obolenski's regiment of Cossacks and left for
    Belaya Tserkov where that regiment was forming, the countess was seized
    with terror. The thought that both her sons were at the war, had both
    gone from under her wing, that today or tomorrow either or both of them
    might be killed like the three sons of one of her acquaintances, struck
    her that summer for the first time with cruel clearness. She tried to
    get Nicholas back and wished to go herself to join Petya, or to get him
    an appointment somewhere in Petersburg, but neither of these proved
    possible. Petya could not return unless his regiment did so or unless he
    was transferred to another regiment on active service. Nicholas was
    somewhere with the army and had not sent a word since his last letter,
    in which he had given a detailed account of his meeting with Princess
    Mary. The countess did not sleep at night, or when she did fall asleep
    dreamed that she saw her sons lying dead. After many consultations and
    conversations, the count at last devised means to tranquillize her. He
    got Petya transferred from Obolenski's regiment to Bezukhov's, which was
    in training near Moscow. Though Petya would remain in the service, this
    transfer would give the countess the consolation of seeing at least one
    of her sons under her wing, and she hoped to arrange matters for her
    Petya so as not to let him go again, but always get him appointed to
    places where he could not possibly take part in a battle. As long as
    Nicholas alone was in danger the countess imagined that she loved her
    first-born more than all her other children and even reproached herself
    for it; but when her youngest: the scapegrace who had been bad at
    lessons, was always breaking things in the house and making himself a
    nuisance to everybody, that snub-nosed Petya with his merry black eyes
    and fresh rosy cheeks where soft down was just beginning to show--when
    he was thrown amid those big, dreadful, cruel men who were fighting
    somewhere about something and apparently finding pleasure in it--then
    his mother thought she loved him more, much more, than all her other
    children. The nearer the time came for Petya to return, the more uneasy
    grew the countess. She began to think she would never live to see such
    happiness. The presence of Sonya, of her beloved Natasha, or even of her
    husband irritated her. "What do I want with them? I want no one but
    Petya," she thought.
    
    At the end of August the Rostovs received another letter from Nicholas.
    He wrote from the province of Voronezh where he had been sent to procure
    remounts, but that letter did not set the countess at ease. Knowing that
    one son was out of danger she became the more anxious about Petya.
    
    Though by the twentieth of August nearly all the Rostovs' acquaintances
    had left Moscow, and though everybody tried to persuade the countess to
    get away as quickly as possible, she would not hear of leaving before
    her treasure, her adored Petya, returned. On the twenty-eighth of August
    he arrived. The passionate tenderness with which his mother received him
    did not please the sixteen-year-old officer. Though she concealed from
    him her intention of keeping him under her wing, Petya guessed her
    designs, and instinctively fearing that he might give way to emotion
    when with her--might "become womanish" as he termed it to himself--he
    treated her coldly, avoided her, and during his stay in Moscow attached
    himself exclusively to Natasha for whom he had always had a particularly
    brotherly tenderness, almost lover-like.
    
    Owing to the count's customary carelessness nothing was ready for their
    departure by the twenty-eighth of August and the carts that were to come
    from their Ryazan and Moscow estates to remove their household
    belongings did not arrive till the thirtieth.
    
    From the twenty-eighth till the thirty-first all Moscow was in a bustle
    and commotion. Every day thousands of men wounded at Borodino were
    brought in by the Dorogomilov gate and taken to various parts of Moscow,
    and thousands of carts conveyed the inhabitants and their possessions
    out by the other gates. In spite of Rostopchin's broadsheets, or because
    of them or independently of them, the strangest and most contradictory
    rumors were current in the town. Some said that no one was to be allowed
    to leave the city, others on the contrary said that all the icons had
    been taken out of the churches and everybody was to be ordered to leave.
    Some said there had been another battle after Borodino at which the
    French had been routed, while others on the contrary reported that the
    Russian army had been destroyed. Some talked about the Moscow militia
    which, preceded by the clergy, would go to the Three Hills; others
    whispered that Augustin had been forbidden to leave, that traitors had
    been seized, that the peasants were rioting and robbing people on their
    way from Moscow, and so on. But all this was only talk; in reality
    (though the Council of Fili, at which it was decided to abandon Moscow,
    had not yet been held) both those who went away and those who remained
    behind felt, though they did not show it, that Moscow would certainly be
    abandoned, and that they ought to get away as quickly as possible and
    save their belongings. It was felt that everything would suddenly break
    up and change, but up to the first of September nothing had done so. As
    a criminal who is being led to execution knows that he must die
    immediately, but yet looks about him and straightens the cap that is
    awry on his head, so Moscow involuntarily continued its wonted life,
    though it knew that the time of its destruction was near when the
    conditions of life to which its people were accustomed to submit would
    be completely upset.
    
    During the three days preceding the occupation of Moscow the whole
    Rostov family was absorbed in various activities. The head of the
    family, Count Ilya Rostov, continually drove about the city collecting
    the current rumors from all sides and gave superficial and hasty orders
    at home about the preparations for their departure.
    
    The countess watched the things being packed, was dissatisfied with
    everything, was constantly in pursuit of Petya who was always running
    away from her, and was jealous of Natasha with whom he spent all his
    time. Sonya alone directed the practical side of matters by getting
    things packed. But of late Sonya had been particularly sad and silent.
    Nicholas' letter in which he mentioned Princess Mary had elicited, in
    her presence, joyous comments from the countess, who saw an intervention
    of Providence in this meeting of the princess and Nicholas.
    
    "I was never pleased at Bolkonski's engagement to Natasha," said the
    countess, "but I always wanted Nicholas to marry the princess, and had a
    presentiment that it would happen. What a good thing it would be!"
    
    Sonya felt that this was true: that the only possibility of retrieving
    the Rostovs' affairs was by Nicholas marrying a rich woman, and that the
    princess was a good match. It was very bitter for her. But despite her
    grief, or perhaps just because of it, she took on herself all the
    difficult work of directing the storing and packing of their things and
    was busy for whole days. The count and countess turned to her when they
    had any orders to give. Petya and Natasha on the contrary, far from
    helping their parents, were generally a nuisance and a hindrance to
    everyone. Almost all day long the house resounded with their running
    feet, their cries, and their spontaneous laughter. They laughed and were
    gay not because there was any reason to laugh, but because gaiety and
    mirth were in their hearts and so everything that happened was a cause
    for gaiety and laughter to them. Petya was in high spirits because
    having left home a boy he had returned (as everybody told him) a fine
    young man, because he was at home, because he had left Belaya Tserkov
    where there was no hope of soon taking part in a battle and had come to
    Moscow where there was to be fighting in a few days, and chiefly because
    Natasha, whose lead he always followed, was in high spirits. Natasha was
    gay because she had been sad too long and now nothing reminded her of
    the cause of her sadness, and because she was feeling well. She was also
    happy because she had someone to adore her: the adoration of others was
    a lubricant the wheels of her machine needed to make them run freely--
    and Petya adored her. Above all, they were gay because there was a war
    near Moscow, there would be fighting at the town gates, arms were being
    given out, everybody was escaping--going away somewhere, and in general
    something extraordinary was happening, and that is always exciting,
    especially to the young.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    On Saturday, the thirty-first of August, everything in the Rostovs'
    house seemed topsy-turvy. All the doors were open, all the furniture was
    being carried out or moved about, and the mirrors and pictures had been
    taken down. There were trunks in the rooms, and hay, wrapping paper, and
    ropes were scattered about. The peasants and house serfs carrying out
    the things were treading heavily on the parquet floors. The yard was
    crowded with peasant carts, some loaded high and already corded up,
    others still empty.
    
    The voices and footsteps of the many servants and of the peasants who
    had come with the carts resounded as they shouted to one another in the
    yard and in the house. The count had been out since morning. The
    countess had a headache brought on by all the noise and turmoil and was
    lying down in the new sitting room with a vinegar compress on her head.
    Petya was not at home, he had gone to visit a friend with whom he meant
    to obtain a transfer from the militia to the active army. Sonya was in
    the ballroom looking after the packing of the glass and china. Natasha
    was sitting on the floor of her dismantled room with dresses, ribbons,
    and scarves strewn all about her, gazing fixedly at the floor and
    holding in her hands the old ball dress (already out of fashion) which
    she had worn at her first Petersburg ball.
    
    Natasha was ashamed of doing nothing when everyone else was so busy, and
    several times that morning had tried to set to work, but her heart was
    not in it, and she could not and did not know how to do anything except
    with all her heart and all her might. For a while she had stood beside
    Sonya while the china was being packed and tried to help, but soon gave
    it up and went to her room to pack her own things. At first she found it
    amusing to give away dresses and ribbons to the maids, but when that was
    done and what was left had still to be packed, she found it dull.
    
    "Dunyasha, you pack! You will, won't you, dear?" And when Dunyasha
    willingly promised to do it all for her, Natasha sat down on the floor,
    took her old ball dress, and fell into a reverie quite unrelated to what
    ought to have occupied her thoughts now. She was roused from her reverie
    by the talk of the maids in the next room (which was theirs) and by the
    sound of their hurried footsteps going to the back porch. Natasha got up
    and looked out of the window. An enormously long row of carts full of
    wounded men had stopped in the street.
    
    The housekeeper, the old nurse, the cooks, coachmen, maids, footmen,
    postilions, and scullions stood at the gate, staring at the wounded.
    
    Natasha, throwing a clean pocket handkerchief over her hair and holding
    an end of it in each hand, went out into the street.
    
    The former housekeeper, old Mavra Kuzminichna, had stepped out of the
    crowd by the gate, gone up to a cart with a hood constructed of bast
    mats, and was speaking to a pale young officer who lay inside. Natasha
    moved a few steps forward and stopped shyly, still holding her
    handkerchief, and listened to what the housekeeper was saying.
    
    "Then you have nobody in Moscow?" she was saying. "You would be more
    comfortable somewhere in a house... in ours, for instance... the family
    are leaving."
    
    "I don't know if it would be allowed," replied the officer in a weak
    voice. "Here is our commanding officer... ask him," and he pointed to a
    stout major who was walking back along the street past the row of carts.
    
    Natasha glanced with frightened eyes at the face of the wounded officer
    and at once went to meet the major.
    
    "May the wounded men stay in our house?" she asked.
    
    The major raised his hand to his cap with a smile.
    
    "Which one do you want, Ma'am'selle?" said he, screwing up his eyes and
    smiling.
    
    Natasha quietly repeated her question, and her face and whole manner
    were so serious, though she was still holding the ends of her
    handkerchief, that the major ceased smiling and after some reflection--
    as if considering in how far the thing was possible--replied in the
    affirmative.
    
    "Oh yes, why not? They may," he said.
    
    With a slight inclination of her head, Natasha stepped back quickly to
    Mavra Kuzminichna, who stood talking compassionately to the officer.
    
    "They may. He says they may!" whispered Natasha.
    
    The cart in which the officer lay was turned into the Rostovs' yard, and
    dozens of carts with wounded men began at the invitation of the
    townsfolk to turn into the yards and to draw up at the entrances of the
    houses in Povarskaya Street. Natasha was evidently pleased to be dealing
    with new people outside the ordinary routine of her life. She and Mavra
    Kuzminichna tried to get as many of the wounded as possible into their
    yard.
    
    "Your Papa must be told, though," said Mavra Kuzminichna.
    
    "Never mind, never mind, what does it matter? For one day we can move
    into the drawing room. They can have all our half of the house."
    
    "There now, young lady, you do take things into your head! Even if we
    put them into the wing, the men's room, or the nurse's room, we must ask
    permission."
    
    "Well, I'll ask."
    
    Natasha ran into the house and went on tiptoe through the half-open door
    into the sitting room, where there was a smell of vinegar and Hoffman's
    drops.
    
    "Are you asleep, Mamma?"
    
    "Oh, what sleep-?" said the countess, waking up just as she was dropping
    into a doze.
    
    "Mamma darling!" said Natasha, kneeling by her mother and bringing her
    face close to her mother's, "I am sorry, forgive me, I'll never do it
    again; I woke you up! Mavra Kuzminichna has sent me: they have brought
    some wounded here--officers. Will you let them come? They have nowhere
    to go. I knew you'd let them come!" she said quickly all in one breath.
    
    "What officers? Whom have they brought? I don't understand anything
    about it," said the countess.
    
    Natasha laughed, and the countess too smiled slightly.
    
    "I knew you'd give permission... so I'll tell them," and, having kissed
    her mother, Natasha got up and went to the door.
    
    In the hall she met her father, who had returned with bad news.
    
    "We've stayed too long!" said the count with involuntary vexation. "The
    club is closed and the police are leaving."
    
    "Papa, is it all right--I've invited some of the wounded into the
    house?" said Natasha.
    
    "Of course it is," he answered absently. "That's not the point. I beg
    you not to indulge in trifles now, but to help to pack, and tomorrow we
    must go, go, go!...."
    
    And the count gave a similar order to the major-domo and the servants.
    
    At dinner Petya having returned home told them the news he had heard. He
    said the people had been getting arms in the Kremlin, and that though
    Rostopchin's broadsheet had said that he would sound a call two or three
    days in advance, the order had certainly already been given for everyone
    to go armed to the Three Hills tomorrow, and that there would be a big
    battle there.
    
    The countess looked with timid horror at her son's eager, excited face
    as he said this. She realized that if she said a word about his not
    going to the battle (she knew he enjoyed the thought of the impending
    engagement) he would say something about men, honor, and the fatherland-
    -something senseless, masculine, and obstinate which there would be no
    contradicting, and her plans would be spoiled; and so, hoping to arrange
    to leave before then and take Petya with her as their protector and
    defender, she did not answer him, but after dinner called the count
    aside and implored him with tears to take her away quickly, that very
    night if possible. With a woman's involuntary loving cunning she, who
    till then had not shown any alarm, said that she would die of fright if
    they did not leave that very night. Without any pretense she was now
    afraid of everything.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    Madame Schoss, who had been out to visit her daughter, increased the
    countess' fears still more by telling what she had seen at a spirit
    dealer's in Myasnitski Street. When returning by that street she had
    been unable to pass because of a drunken crowd rioting in front of the
    shop. She had taken a cab and driven home by a side street and the
    cabman had told her that the people were breaking open the barrels at
    the drink store, having received orders to do so.
    
    After dinner the whole Rostov household set to work with enthusiastic
    haste packing their belongings and preparing for their departure. The
    old count, suddenly setting to work, kept passing from the yard to the
    house and back again, shouting confused instructions to the hurrying
    people, and flurrying them still more. Petya directed things in the
    yard. Sonya, owing to the count's contradictory orders, lost her head
    and did not know what to do. The servants ran noisily about the house
    and yard, shouting and disputing. Natasha, with the ardor characteristic
    of all she did suddenly set to work too. At first her intervention in
    the business of packing was received skeptically. Everybody expected
    some prank from her and did not wish to obey her; but she resolutely and
    passionately demanded obedience, grew angry and nearly cried because
    they did not heed her, and at last succeeded in making them believe her.
    Her first exploit, which cost her immense effort and established her
    authority, was the packing of the carpets. The count had valuable
    Gobelin tapestries and Persian carpets in the house. When Natasha set to
    work two cases were standing open in the ballroom, one almost full up
    with crockery, the other with carpets. There was also much china
    standing on the tables, and still more was being brought in from the
    storeroom. A third case was needed and servants had gone to fetch it.
    
    "Sonya, wait a bit--we'll pack everything into these," said Natasha.
    
    "You can't, Miss, we have tried to," said the butler's assistant.
    
    "No, wait a minute, please."
    
    And Natasha began rapidly taking out of the case dishes and plates
    wrapped in paper.
    
    "The dishes must go in here among the carpets," said she.
    
    "Why, it's a mercy if we can get the carpets alone into three cases,"
    said the butler's assistant.
    
    "Oh, wait, please!" And Natasha began rapidly and deftly sorting out the
    things. "These aren't needed," said she, putting aside some plates of
    Kiev ware. "These--yes, these must go among the carpets," she said,
    referring to the Saxony china dishes.
    
    "Don't, Natasha! Leave it alone! We'll get it all packed," urged Sonya
    reproachfully.
    
    "What a young lady she is!" remarked the major-domo.
    
    But Natasha would not give in. She turned everything out and began
    quickly repacking, deciding that the inferior Russian carpets and
    unnecessary crockery should not be taken at all. When everything had
    been taken out of the cases, they recommenced packing, and it turned out
    that when the cheaper things not worth taking had nearly all been
    rejected, the valuable ones really did all go into the two cases. Only
    the lid of the case containing the carpets would not shut down. A few
    more things might have been taken out, but Natasha insisted on having
    her own way. She packed, repacked, pressed, made the butler's assistant
    and Petya--whom she had drawn into the business of packing--press on the
    lid, and made desperate efforts herself.
    
    "That's enough, Natasha," said Sonya. "I see you were right, but just
    take out the top one."
    
    "I won't!" cried Natasha, with one hand holding back the hair that hung
    over her perspiring face, while with the other she pressed down the
    carpets. "Now press, Petya! Press, Vasilich, press hard!" she cried.
    
    The carpets yielded and the lid closed; Natasha, clapping her hands,
    screamed with delight and tears fell from her eyes. But this only lasted
    a moment. She at once set to work afresh and they now trusted her
    completely. The count was not angry even when they told him that Natasha
    had countermanded an order of his, and the servants now came to her to
    ask whether a cart was sufficiently loaded, and whether it might be
    corded up. Thanks to Natasha's directions the work now went on
    expeditiously, unnecessary things were left, and the most valuable
    packed as compactly as possible.
    
    But hard as they all worked till quite late that night, they could not
    get everything packed. The countess had fallen asleep and the count,
    having put off their departure till next morning, went to bed.
    
    Sonya and Natasha slept in the sitting room without undressing.
    
    That night another wounded man was driven down the Povarskaya, and Mavra
    Kuzminichna, who was standing at the gate, had him brought into the
    Rostovs' yard. Mavra Kuzminichna concluded that he was a very important
    man. He was being conveyed in a caleche with a raised hood, and was
    quite covered by an apron. On the box beside the driver sat a venerable
    old attendant. A doctor and two soldiers followed the carriage in a
    cart.
    
    "Please come in here. The masters are going away and the whole house
    will be empty," said the old woman to the old attendant.
    
    "Well, perhaps," said he with a sigh. "We don't expect to get him home
    alive! We have a house of our own in Moscow, but it's a long way from
    here, and there's nobody living in it."
    
    "Do us the honor to come in, there's plenty of everything in the
    master's house. Come in," said Mavra Kuzminichna. "Is he very ill?" she
    asked.
    
    The attendant made a hopeless gesture.
    
    "We don't expect to get him home! We must ask the doctor."
    
    And the old servant got down from the box and went up to the cart.
    
    "All right!" said the doctor.
    
    The old servant returned to the caleche, looked into it, shook his head
    disconsolately, told the driver to turn into the yard, and stopped
    beside Mavra Kuzminichna.
    
    "O, Lord Jesus Christ!" she murmured.
    
    She invited them to take the wounded man into the house.
    
    "The masters won't object..." she said.
    
    But they had to avoid carrying the man upstairs, and so they took him
    into the wing and put him in the room that had been Madame Schoss'.
    
    This wounded man was Prince Andrew Bolkonski.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    Moscow's last day had come. It was a clear bright autumn day, a Sunday.
    The church bells everywhere were ringing for service, just as usual on
    Sundays. Nobody seemed yet to realize what awaited the city.
    
    Only two things indicated the social condition of Moscow--the rabble,
    that is the poor people, and the price of commodities. An enormous crowd
    of factory hands, house serfs, and peasants, with whom some officials,
    seminarists, and gentry were mingled, had gone early that morning to the
    Three Hills. Having waited there for Rostopchin who did not turn up,
    they became convinced that Moscow would be surrendered, and then
    dispersed all about the town to the public houses and cookshops. Prices
    too that day indicated the state of affairs. The price of weapons, of
    gold, of carts and horses, kept rising, but the value of paper money and
    city articles kept falling, so that by midday there were instances of
    carters removing valuable goods, such as cloth, and receiving in payment
    a half of what they carted, while peasant horses were fetching five
    hundred rubles each, and furniture, mirrors, and bronzes were being
    given away for nothing.
    
    In the Rostovs' staid old-fashioned house the dissolution of former
    conditions of life was but little noticeable. As to the serfs the only
    indication was that three out of their huge retinue disappeared during
    the night, but nothing was stolen; and as to the value of their
    possessions, the thirty peasant carts that had come in from their
    estates and which many people envied proved to be extremely valuable and
    they were offered enormous sums of money for them. Not only were huge
    sums offered for the horses and carts, but on the previous evening and
    early in the morning of the first of September, orderlies and servants
    sent by wounded officers came to the Rostovs' and wounded men dragged
    themselves there from the Rostovs' and from neighboring houses where
    they were accommodated, entreating the servants to try to get them a
    lift out of Moscow. The major-domo to whom these entreaties were
    addressed, though he was sorry for the wounded, resolutely refused,
    saying that he dare not even mention the matter to the count. Pity these
    wounded men as one might, it was evident that if they were given one
    cart there would be no reason to refuse another, or all the carts and
    one's own carriages as well. Thirty carts could not save all the wounded
    and in the general catastrophe one could not disregard oneself and one's
    own family. So thought the major-domo on his master's behalf.
    
    On waking up that morning Count Ilya Rostov left his bedroom softly, so
    as not to wake the countess who had fallen asleep only toward morning,
    and came out to the porch in his lilac silk dressing gown. In the yard
    stood the carts ready corded. The carriages were at the front porch. The
    major-domo stood at the porch talking to an elderly orderly and to a
    pale young officer with a bandaged arm. On seeing the count the major-
    domo made a significant and stern gesture to them both to go away.
    
    "Well, Vasilich, is everything ready?" asked the count, and stroking his
    bald head he looked good-naturedly at the officer and the orderly and
    nodded to them. (He liked to see new faces.)
    
    "We can harness at once, your excellency."
    
    "Well, that's right. As soon as the countess wakes we'll be off, God
    willing! What is it, gentlemen?" he added, turning to the officer. "Are
    you staying in my house?"
    
    The officer came nearer and suddenly his face flushed crimson.
    
    "Count, be so good as to allow me... for God's sake, to get into some
    corner of one of your carts! I have nothing here with me.... I shall be
    all right on a loaded cart..."
    
    Before the officer had finished speaking the orderly made the same
    request on behalf of his master.
    
    "Oh, yes, yes, yes!" said the count hastily. "I shall be very pleased,
    very pleased. Vasilich, you'll see to it. Just unload one or two carts.
    Well, what of it... do what's necessary..." said the count, muttering
    some indefinite order.
    
    But at the same moment an expression of warm gratitude on the officer's
    face had already sealed the order. The count looked around him. In the
    yard, at the gates, at the window of the wings, wounded officers and
    their orderlies were to be seen. They were all looking at the count and
    moving toward the porch.
    
    "Please step into the gallery, your excellency," said the major-domo.
    "What are your orders about the pictures?"
    
    The count went into the house with him, repeating his order not to
    refuse the wounded who asked for a lift.
    
    "Well, never mind, some of the things can be unloaded," he added in a
    soft, confidential voice, as though afraid of being overheard.
    
    At nine o'clock the countess woke up, and Matrena Timofeevna, who had
    been her lady's maid before her marriage and now performed a sort of
    chief gendarme's duty for her, came to say that Madame Schoss was much
    offended and the young ladies' summer dresses could not be left behind.
    On inquiry, the countess learned that Madame Schoss was offended because
    her trunk had been taken down from its cart, and all the loads were
    being uncorded and the luggage taken out of the carts to make room for
    wounded men whom the count in the simplicity of his heart had ordered
    that they should take with them. The countess sent for her husband.
    
    "What is this, my dear? I hear that the luggage is being unloaded."
    
    "You know, love, I wanted to tell you... Countess dear... an officer
    came to me to ask for a few carts for the wounded. After all, ours are
    things that can be bought but think what being left behind means to
    them!... Really now, in our own yard--we asked them in ourselves and
    there are officers among them.... You know, I think, my dear... let them
    be taken... where's the hurry?"
    
    The count spoke timidly, as he always did when talking of money matters.
    The countess was accustomed to this tone as a precursor of news of
    something detrimental to the children's interests, such as the building
    of a new gallery or conservatory, the inauguration of a private theater
    or an orchestra. She was accustomed always to oppose anything announced
    in that timid tone and considered it her duty to do so.
    
    She assumed her dolefully submissive manner and said to her husband:
    "Listen to me, Count, you have managed matters so that we are getting
    nothing for the house, and now you wish to throw away all our--all the
    children's property! You said yourself that we have a hundred thousand
    rubles' worth of things in the house. I don't consent, my dear, I don't!
    Do as you please! It's the government's business to look after the
    wounded; they know that. Look at the Lopukhins opposite, they cleared
    out everything two days ago. That's what other people do. It's only we
    who are such fools. If you have no pity on me, have some for the
    children."
    
    Flourishing his arms in despair the count left the room without
    replying.
    
    "Papa, what are you doing that for?" asked Natasha, who had followed him
    into her mother's room.
    
    "Nothing! What business is it of yours?" muttered the count angrily.
    
    "But I heard," said Natasha. "Why does Mamma object?"
    
    "What business is it of yours?" cried the count.
    
    Natasha stepped up to the window and pondered.
    
    "Papa! Here's Berg coming to see us," said she, looking out of the
    window.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Berg, the Rostovs' son-in-law, was already a colonel wearing the orders
    of Vladimir and Anna, and he still filled the quiet and agreeable post
    of assistant to the head of the staff of the assistant commander of the
    first division of the Second Army.
    
    On the first of September he had come to Moscow from the army.
    
    He had nothing to do in Moscow, but he had noticed that everyone in the
    army was asking for leave to visit Moscow and had something to do there.
    So he considered it necessary to ask for leave of absence for family and
    domestic reasons.
    
    Berg drove up to his father-in-law's house in his spruce little trap
    with a pair of sleek roans, exactly like those of a certain prince. He
    looked attentively at the carts in the yard and while going up to the
    porch took out a clean pocket handkerchief and tied a knot in it.
    
    From the anteroom Berg ran with smooth though impatient steps into the
    drawing room, where he embraced the count, kissed the hands of Natasha
    and Sonya, and hastened to inquire after "Mamma's" health.
    
    "Health, at a time like this?" said the count. "Come, tell us the news!
    Is the army retreating or will there be another battle?"
    
    "God Almighty alone can decide the fate of our fatherland, Papa," said
    Berg. "The army is burning with a spirit of heroism and the leaders, so
    to say, have now assembled in council. No one knows what is coming. But
    in general I can tell you, Papa, that such a heroic spirit, the truly
    antique valor of the Russian army, which they--which it" (he corrected
    himself) "has shown or displayed in the battle of the twenty-sixth--
    there are no words worthy to do it justice! I tell you, Papa" (he smote
    himself on the breast as a general he had heard speaking had done, but
    Berg did it a trifle late for he should have struck his breast at the
    words "Russian army"), "I tell you frankly that we, the commanders, far
    from having to urge the men on or anything of that kind, could hardly
    restrain those... those... yes, those exploits of antique valor," he
    went on rapidly. "General Barclay de Tolly risked his life everywhere at
    the head of the troops, I can assure you. Our corps was stationed on a
    hillside. You can imagine!"
    
    And Berg related all that he remembered of the various tales he had
    heard those days. Natasha watched him with an intent gaze that confused
    him, as if she were trying to find in his face the answer to some
    question.
    
    "Altogether such heroism as was displayed by the Russian warriors cannot
    be imagined or adequately praised!" said Berg, glancing round at
    Natasha, and as if anxious to conciliate her, replying to her intent
    look with a smile. "'Russia is not in Moscow, she lives in the hearts of
    her sons!' Isn't it so, Papa?" said he.
    
    Just then the countess came in from the sitting room with a weary and
    dissatisfied expression. Berg hurriedly jumped up, kissed her hand,
    asked about her health, and, swaying his head from side to side to
    express sympathy, remained standing beside her.
    
    "Yes, Mamma, I tell you sincerely that these are hard and sad times for
    every Russian. But why are you so anxious? You have still time to get
    away...."
    
    "I can't think what the servants are about," said the countess, turning
    to her husband. "I have just been told that nothing is ready yet.
    Somebody after all must see to things. One misses Mitenka at such times.
    There won't be any end to it."
    
    The count was about to say something, but evidently restrained himself.
    He got up from his chair and went to the door.
    
    At that moment Berg drew out his handkerchief as if to blow his nose
    and, seeing the knot in it, pondered, shaking his head sadly and
    significantly.
    
    "And I have a great favor to ask of you, Papa," said he.
    
    "Hm..." said the count, and stopped.
    
    "I was driving past Yusupov's house just now," said Berg with a laugh,
    "when the steward, a man I know, ran out and asked me whether I wouldn't
    buy something. I went in out of curiosity, you know, and there is a
    small chiffonier and a dressing table. You know how dear Vera wanted a
    chiffonier like that and how we had a dispute about it." (At the mention
    of the chiffonier and dressing table Berg involuntarily changed his tone
    to one of pleasure at his admirable domestic arrangements.) "And it's
    such a beauty! It pulls out and has a secret English drawer, you know!
    And dear Vera has long wanted one. I wish to give her a surprise, you
    see. I saw so many of those peasant carts in your yard. Please let me
    have one, I will pay the man well, and..."
    
    The count frowned and coughed.
    
    "Ask the countess, I don't give orders."
    
    "If it's inconvenient, please don't," said Berg. "Only I so wanted it,
    for dear Vera's sake."
    
    "Oh, go to the devil, all of you! To the devil, the devil, the devil..."
    cried the old count. "My head's in a whirl!"
    
    And he left the room. The countess began to cry.
    
    "Yes, Mamma! Yes, these are very hard times!" said Berg.
    
    Natasha left the room with her father and, as if finding it difficult to
    reach some decision, first followed him and then ran downstairs.
    
    Petya was in the porch, engaged in giving out weapons to the servants
    who were to leave Moscow. The loaded carts were still standing in the
    yard. Two of them had been uncorded and a wounded officer was climbing
    into one of them helped by an orderly.
    
    "Do you know what it's about?" Petya asked Natasha.
    
    She understood that he meant what were their parents quarreling about.
    She did not answer.
    
    "It's because Papa wanted to give up all the carts to the wounded," said
    Petya. "Vasilich told me. I consider..."
    
    "I consider," Natasha suddenly almost shouted, turning her angry face to
    Petya, "I consider it so horrid, so abominable, so... I don't know what.
    Are we despicable Germans?"
    
    Her throat quivered with convulsive sobs and, afraid of weakening and
    letting the force of her anger run to waste, she turned and rushed
    headlong up the stairs.
    
    Berg was sitting beside the countess consoling her with the respectful
    attention of a relative. The count, pipe in hand, was pacing up and down
    the room, when Natasha, her face distorted by anger, burst in like a
    tempest and approached her mother with rapid steps.
    
    "It's horrid! It's abominable!" she screamed. "You can't possibly have
    ordered it!"
    
    Berg and the countess looked at her, perplexed and frightened. The count
    stood still at the window and listened.
    
    "Mamma, it's impossible: see what is going on in the yard!" she cried.
    "They will be left!..."
    
    "What's the matter with you? Who are 'they'? What do you want?"
    
    "Why, the wounded! It's impossible, Mamma. It's monstrous!... No, Mamma
    darling, it's not the thing. Please forgive me, darling.... Mamma, what
    does it matter what we take away? Only look what is going on in the
    yard... Mamma!... It's impossible!"
    
    The count stood by the window and listened without turning round.
    Suddenly he sniffed and put his face closer to the window.
    
    The countess glanced at her daughter, saw her face full of shame for her
    mother, saw her agitation, and understood why her husband did not turn
    to look at her now, and she glanced round quite disconcerted.
    
    "Oh, do as you like! Am I hindering anyone?" she said, not surrendering
    at once.
    
    "Mamma, darling, forgive me!"
    
    But the countess pushed her daughter away and went up to her husband.
    
    "My dear, you order what is right.... You know I don't understand about
    it," said she, dropping her eyes shamefacedly.
    
    "The eggs... the eggs are teaching the hen," muttered the count through
    tears of joy, and he embraced his wife who was glad to hide her look of
    shame on his breast.
    
    "Papa! Mamma! May I see to it? May I?..." asked Natasha. "We will still
    take all the most necessary things."
    
    The count nodded affirmatively, and Natasha, at the rapid pace at which
    she used to run when playing at tag, ran through the ballroom to the
    anteroom and downstairs into the yard.
    
    The servants gathered round Natasha, but could not believe the strange
    order she brought them until the count himself, in his wife's name,
    confirmed the order to give up all the carts to the wounded and take the
    trunks to the storerooms. When they understood that order the servants
    set to work at this new task with pleasure and zeal. It no longer seemed
    strange to them but on the contrary it seemed the only thing that could
    be done, just as a quarter of an hour before it had not seemed strange
    to anyone that the wounded should be left behind and the goods carted
    away but that had seemed the only thing to do.
    
    The whole household, as if to atone for not having done it sooner, set
    eagerly to work at the new task of placing the wounded in the carts. The
    wounded dragged themselves out of their rooms and stood with pale but
    happy faces round the carts. The news that carts were to be had spread
    to the neighboring houses, from which wounded men began to come into the
    Rostovs' yard. Many of the wounded asked them not to unload the carts
    but only to let them sit on the top of the things. But the work of
    unloading, once started, could not be arrested. It seemed not to matter
    whether all or only half the things were left behind. Cases full of
    china, bronzes, pictures, and mirrors that had been so carefully packed
    the night before now lay about the yard, and still they went on
    searching for and finding possibilities of unloading this or that and
    letting the wounded have another and yet another cart.
    
    "We can take four more men," said the steward. "They can have my trap,
    or else what is to become of them?"
    
    "Let them have my wardrobe cart," said the countess. "Dunyasha can go
    with me in the carriage."
    
    They unloaded the wardrobe cart and sent it to take wounded men from a
    house two doors off. The whole household, servants included, was bright
    and animated. Natasha was in a state of rapturous excitement such as she
    had not known for a long time.
    
    "What could we fasten this onto?" asked the servants, trying to fix a
    trunk on the narrow footboard behind a carriage. "We must keep at least
    one cart."
    
    "What's in it?" asked Natasha.
    
    "The count's books."
    
    "Leave it, Vasilich will put it away. It's not wanted."
    
    The phaeton was full of people and there was a doubt as to where Count
    Peter could sit.
    
    "On the box. You'll sit on the box, won't you, Petya?" cried Natasha.
    
    Sonya too was busy all this time, but the aim of her efforts was quite
    different from Natasha's. She was putting away the things that had to be
    left behind and making a list of them as the countess wished, and she
    tried to get as much taken away with them as possible.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    Before two o'clock in the afternoon the Rostovs' four carriages, packed
    full and with the horses harnessed, stood at the front door. One by one
    the carts with the wounded had moved out of the yard.
    
    The caleche in which Prince Andrew was being taken attracted Sonya's
    attention as it passed the front porch. With the help of a maid she was
    arranging a seat for the countess in the huge high coach that stood at
    the entrance.
    
    "Whose caleche is that?" she inquired, leaning out of the carriage
    window.
    
    "Why, didn't you know, Miss?" replied the maid. "The wounded prince: he
    spent the night in our house and is going with us."
    
    "But who is it? What's his name?"
    
    "It's our intended that was--Prince Bolkonski himself! They say he is
    dying," replied the maid with a sigh.
    
    Sonya jumped out of the coach and ran to the countess. The countess,
    tired out and already dressed in shawl and bonnet for her journey, was
    pacing up and down the drawing room, waiting for the household to
    assemble for the usual silent prayer with closed doors before starting.
    Natasha was not in the room.
    
    "Mamma," said Sonya, "Prince Andrew is here, mortally wounded. He is
    going with us."
    
    The countess opened her eyes in dismay and, seizing Sonya's arm, glanced
    around.
    
    "Natasha?" she murmured.
    
    At that moment this news had only one significance for both of them.
    They knew their Natasha, and alarm as to what would happen if she heard
    this news stifled all sympathy for the man they both liked.
    
    "Natasha does not know yet, but he is going with us," said Sonya.
    
    "You say he is dying?"
    
    Sonya nodded.
    
    The countess put her arms around Sonya and began to cry.
    
    "The ways of God are past finding out!" she thought, feeling that the
    Almighty Hand, hitherto unseen, was becoming manifest in all that was
    now taking place.
    
    "Well, Mamma? Everything is ready. What's the matter?" asked Natasha, as
    with animated face she ran into the room.
    
    "Nothing," answered the countess. "If everything is ready let us start."
    
    And the countess bent over her reticule to hide her agitated face. Sonya
    embraced Natasha and kissed her.
    
    Natasha looked at her inquiringly.
    
    "What is it? What has happened?"
    
    "Nothing... No..."
    
    "Is it something very bad for me? What is it?" persisted Natasha with
    her quick intuition.
    
    Sonya sighed and made no reply. The count, Petya, Madame Schoss, Mavra
    Kuzminichna, and Vasilich came into the drawing room and, having closed
    the doors, they all sat down and remained for some moments silently
    seated without looking at one another.
    
    The count was the first to rise, and with a loud sigh crossed himself
    before the icon. All the others did the same. Then the count embraced
    Mavra Kuzminichna and Vasilich, who were to remain in Moscow, and while
    they caught at his hand and kissed his shoulder he patted their backs
    lightly with some vaguely affectionate and comforting words. The
    countess went into the oratory and there Sonya found her on her knees
    before the icons that had been left here and there hanging on the wall.
    (The most precious ones, with which some family tradition was connected,
    were being taken with them.)
    
    In the porch and in the yard the men whom Petya had armed with swords
    and daggers, with trousers tucked inside their high boots and with belts
    and girdles tightened, were taking leave of those remaining behind.
    
    As is always the case at a departure, much had been forgotten or put in
    the wrong place, and for a long time two menservants stood one on each
    side of the open door and the carriage steps waiting to help the
    countess in, while maids rushed with cushions and bundles from the house
    to the carriages, the caleche, the phaeton, and back again.
    
    "They always will forget everything!" said the countess. "Don't you know
    I can't sit like that?"
    
    And Dunyasha, with clenched teeth, without replying but with an
    aggrieved look on her face, hastily got into the coach to rearrange the
    seat.
    
    "Oh, those servants!" said the count, swaying his head.
    
    Efim, the old coachman, who was the only one the countess trusted to
    drive her, sat perched up high on the box and did not so much as glance
    round at what was going on behind him. From thirty years' experience he
    knew it would be some time yet before the order, "Be off, in God's
    name!" would be given him: and he knew that even when it was said he
    would be stopped once or twice more while they sent back to fetch
    something that had been forgotten, and even after that he would again be
    stopped and the countess herself would lean out of the window and beg
    him for the love of heaven to drive carefully down the hill. He knew all
    this and therefore waited calmly for what would happen, with more
    patience than the horses, especially the near one, the chestnut Falcon,
    who was pawing the ground and champing his bit. At last all were seated,
    the carriage steps were folded and pulled up, the door was shut,
    somebody was sent for a traveling case, and the countess leaned out and
    said what she had to say. Then Efim deliberately doffed his hat and
    began crossing himself. The postilion and all the other servants did the
    same. "Off, in God's name!" said Efim, putting on his hat. "Start!" The
    postilion started the horses, the off pole horse tugged at his collar,
    the high springs creaked, and the body of the coach swayed. The footman
    sprang onto the box of the moving coach which jolted as it passed out of
    the yard onto the uneven roadway; the other vehicles jolted in their
    turn, and the procession of carriages moved up the street. In the
    carriages, the caleche, and the phaeton, all crossed themselves as they
    passed the church opposite the house. Those who were to remain in Moscow
    walked on either side of the vehicles seeing the travelers off.
    
    Rarely had Natasha experienced so joyful a feeling as now, sitting in
    the carriage beside the countess and gazing at the slowly receding walls
    of forsaken, agitated Moscow. Occasionally she leaned out of the
    carriage window and looked back and then forward at the long train of
    wounded in front of them. Almost at the head of the line she could see
    the raised hood of Prince Andrew's caleche. She did not know who was in
    it, but each time she looked at the procession her eyes sought that
    caleche. She knew it was right in front.
    
    In Kudrino, from the Nikitski, Presnya, and Podnovinsk Streets came
    several other trains of vehicles similar to the Rostovs', and as they
    passed along the Sadovaya Street the carriages and carts formed two rows
    abreast.
    
    As they were going round the Sukharev water tower Natasha, who was
    inquisitively and alertly scrutinizing the people driving or walking
    past, suddenly cried out in joyful surprise:
    
    "Dear me! Mamma, Sonya, look, it's he!"
    
    "Who? Who?"
    
    "Look! Yes, on my word, it's Bezukhov!" said Natasha, putting her head
    out of the carriage and staring at a tall, stout man in a coachman's
    long coat, who from his manner of walking and moving was evidently a
    gentleman in disguise, and who was passing under the arch of the
    Sukharev tower accompanied by a small, sallow-faced, beardless old man
    in a frieze coat.
    
    "Yes, it really is Bezukhov in a coachman's coat, with a queer-looking
    old boy. Really," said Natasha, "look, look!"
    
    "No, it's not he. How can you talk such nonsense?"
    
    "Mamma," screamed Natasha, "I'll stake my head it's he! I assure you!
    Stop, stop!" she cried to the coachman.
    
    But the coachman could not stop, for from the Meshchanski Street came
    more carts and carriages, and the Rostovs were being shouted at to move
    on and not block the way.
    
    In fact, however, though now much farther off than before, the Rostovs
    all saw Pierre--or someone extraordinarily like him--in a coachman's
    coat, going down the street with head bent and a serious face beside a
    small, beardless old man who looked like a footman. That old man noticed
    a face thrust out of the carriage window gazing at them, and
    respectfully touching Pierre's elbow said something to him and pointed
    to the carriage. Pierre, evidently engrossed in thought, could not at
    first understand him. At length when he had understood and looked in the
    direction the old man indicated, he recognized Natasha, and following
    his first impulse stepped instantly and rapidly toward the coach. But
    having taken a dozen steps he seemed to remember something and stopped.
    
    Natasha's face, leaning out of the window, beamed with quizzical
    kindliness.
    
    "Peter Kirilovich, come here! We have recognized you! This is
    wonderful!" she cried, holding out her hand to him. "What are you doing?
    Why are you like this?"
    
    Pierre took her outstretched hand and kissed it awkwardly as he walked
    along beside her while the coach still moved on.
    
    "What is the matter, Count?" asked the countess in a surprised and
    commiserating tone.
    
    "What? What? Why? Don't ask me," said Pierre, and looked round at
    Natasha whose radiant, happy expression--of which he was conscious
    without looking at her--filled him with enchantment.
    
    "Are you remaining in Moscow, then?"
    
    Pierre hesitated.
    
    "In Moscow?" he said in a questioning tone. "Yes, in Moscow. Good-bye!"
    
    "Ah, if only I were a man! I'd certainly stay with you. How splendid!"
    said Natasha. "Mamma, if you'll let me, I'll stay!"
    
    Pierre glanced absently at Natasha and was about to say something, but
    the countess interrupted him.
    
    "You were at the battle, we heard."
    
    "Yes, I was," Pierre answered. "There will be another battle
    tomorrow..." he began, but Natasha interrupted him.
    
    "But what is the matter with you, Count? You are not like yourself...."
    
    "Oh, don't ask me, don't ask me! I don't know myself. Tomorrow... But
    no! Good-bye, good-by!" he muttered. "It's an awful time!" and dropping
    behind the carriage he stepped onto the pavement.
    
    Natasha continued to lean out of the window for a long time, beaming at
    him with her kindly, slightly quizzical, happy smile.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    For the last two days, ever since leaving home, Pierre had been living
    in the empty house of his deceased benefactor, Bazdeev. This is how it
    happened.
    
    When he woke up on the morning after his return to Moscow and his
    interview with Count Rostopchin, he could not for some time make out
    where he was and what was expected of him. When he was informed that
    among others awaiting him in his reception room there was a Frenchman
    who had brought a letter from his wife, the Countess Helene, he felt
    suddenly overcome by that sense of confusion and hopelessness to which
    he was apt to succumb. He felt that everything was now at an end, all
    was in confusion and crumbling to pieces, that nobody was right or
    wrong, the future held nothing, and there was no escape from this
    position. Smiling unnaturally and muttering to himself, he first sat
    down on the sofa in an attitude of despair, then rose, went to the door
    of the reception room and peeped through the crack, returned flourishing
    his arms, and took up a book. His major-domo came in a second time to
    say that the Frenchman who had brought the letter from the countess was
    very anxious to see him if only for a minute, and that someone from
    Bazdeev's widow had called to ask Pierre to take charge of her husband's
    books, as she herself was leaving for the country.
    
    "Oh, yes, in a minute; wait... or no! No, of course... go and say I will
    come directly," Pierre replied to the major-domo.
    
    But as soon as the man had left the room Pierre took up his hat which
    was lying on the table and went out of his study by the other door.
    There was no one in the passage. He went along the whole length of this
    passage to the stairs and, frowning and rubbing his forehead with both
    hands, went down as far as the first landing. The hall porter was
    standing at the front door. From the landing where Pierre stood there
    was a second staircase leading to the back entrance. He went down that
    staircase and out into the yard. No one had seen him. But there were
    some carriages waiting, and as soon as Pierre stepped out of the gate
    the coachmen and the yard porter noticed him and raised their caps to
    him. When he felt he was being looked at he behaved like an ostrich
    which hides its head in a bush in order not to be seen: he hung his head
    and quickening his pace went down the street.
    
    Of all the affairs awaiting Pierre that day the sorting of Joseph
    Bazdeev's books and papers appeared to him the most necessary.
    
    He hired the first cab he met and told the driver to go to the
    Patriarch's Ponds, where the widow Bazdeev's house was.
    
    Continually turning round to look at the rows of loaded carts that were
    making their way from all sides out of Moscow, and balancing his bulky
    body so as not to slip out of the ramshackle old vehicle, Pierre,
    experiencing the joyful feeling of a boy escaping from school, began to
    talk to his driver.
    
    The man told him that arms were being distributed today at the Kremlin
    and that tomorrow everyone would be sent out beyond the Three Hills
    gates and a great battle would be fought there.
    
    Having reached the Patriarch's Ponds Pierre found the Bazdeevs' house,
    where he had not been for a long time past. He went up to the gate.
    Gerasim, that sallow beardless old man Pierre had seen at Torzhok five
    years before with Joseph Bazdeev, came out in answer to his knock.
    
    "At home?" asked Pierre.
    
    "Owing to the present state of things Sophia Danilovna has gone to the
    Torzhok estate with the children, your excellency."
    
    "I will come in all the same, I have to look through the books," said
    Pierre.
    
    "Be so good as to step in. Makar Alexeevich, the brother of my late
    master--may the kingdom of heaven be his--has remained here, but he is
    in a weak state as you know," said the old servant.
    
    Pierre knew that Makar Alexeevich was Joseph Bazdeev's half-insane
    brother and a hard drinker.
    
    "Yes, yes, I know. Let us go in..." said Pierre and entered the house.
    
    A tall, bald-headed old man with a red nose, wearing a dressing gown and
    with galoshes on his bare feet, stood in the anteroom. On seeing Pierre
    he muttered something angrily and went away along the passage.
    
    "He was a very clever man but has now grown quite feeble, as your honor
    sees," said Gerasim. "Will you step into the study?" Pierre nodded. "As
    it was sealed up so it has remained, but Sophia Danilovna gave orders
    that if anyone should come from you they were to have the books."
    
    Pierre went into that gloomy study which he had entered with such
    trepidation in his benefactor's lifetime. The room, dusty and untouched
    since the death of Joseph Bazdeev was now even gloomier.
    
    Gerasim opened one of the shutters and left the room on tiptoe. Pierre
    went round the study, approached the cupboard in which the manuscripts
    were kept, and took out what had once been one of the most important,
    the holy of holies of the order. This was the authentic Scotch Acts with
    Bazdeev's notes and explanations. He sat down at the dusty writing
    table, and, having laid the manuscripts before him, opened them out,
    closed them, finally pushed them away, and resting his head on his hand
    sank into meditation.
    
    Gerasim looked cautiously into the study several times and saw Pierre
    always sitting in the same attitude.
    
    More than two hours passed and Gerasim took the liberty of making a
    slight noise at the door to attract his attention, but Pierre did not
    hear him.
    
    "Is the cabman to be discharged, your honor?"
    
    "Oh yes!" said Pierre, rousing himself and rising hurriedly. "Look
    here," he added, taking Gerasim by a button of his coat and looking down
    at the old man with moist, shining, and ecstatic eyes, "I say, do you
    know that there is going to be a battle tomorrow?"
    
    "We heard so," replied the man.
    
    "I beg you not to tell anyone who I am, and to do what I ask you."
    
    "Yes, your excellency," replied Gerasim. "Will you have something to
    eat?"
    
    "No, but I want something else. I want peasant clothes and a pistol,"
    said Pierre, unexpectedly blushing.
    
    "Yes, your excellency," said Gerasim after thinking for a moment.
    
    All the rest of that day Pierre spent alone in his benefactor's study,
    and Gerasim heard him pacing restlessly from one corner to another and
    talking to himself. And he spent the night on a bed made up for him
    there.
    
    Gerasim, being a servant who in his time had seen many strange things,
    accepted Pierre's taking up his residence in the house without surprise,
    and seemed pleased to have someone to wait on. That same evening--
    without even asking himself what they were wanted for--he procured a
    coachman's coat and cap for Pierre, and promised to get him the pistol
    next day. Makar Alexeevich came twice that evening shuffling along in
    his galoshes as far as the door and stopped and looked ingratiatingly at
    Pierre. But as soon as Pierre turned toward him he wrapped his dressing
    gown around him with a shamefaced and angry look and hurried away. It
    was when Pierre (wearing the coachman's coat which Gerasim had procured
    for him and had disinfected by steam) was on his way with the old man to
    buy the pistol at the Sukharev market that he met the Rostovs.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    Kutuzov's order to retreat through Moscow to the Ryazan road was issued
    at night on the first of September.
    
    The first troops started at once, and during the night they marched
    slowly and steadily without hurry. At daybreak, however, those nearing
    the town at the Dorogomilov bridge saw ahead of them masses of soldiers
    crowding and hurrying across the bridge, ascending on the opposite side
    and blocking the streets and alleys, while endless masses of troops were
    bearing down on them from behind, and an unreasoning hurry and alarm
    overcame them. They all rushed forward to the bridge, onto it, and to
    the fords and the boats. Kutuzov himself had driven round by side
    streets to the other side of Moscow.
    
    By ten o'clock in the morning of the second of September, only the rear
    guard remained in the Dorogomilov suburb, where they had ample room. The
    main army was on the other side of Moscow or beyond it.
    
    At that very time, at ten in the morning of the second of September,
    Napoleon was standing among his troops on the Poklonny Hill looking at
    the panorama spread out before him. From the twenty-sixth of August to
    the second of September, that is from the battle of Borodino to the
    entry of the French into Moscow, during the whole of that agitating,
    memorable week, there had been the extraordinary autumn weather that
    always comes as a surprise, when the sun hangs low and gives more heat
    than in spring, when everything shines so brightly in the rare clear
    atmosphere that the eyes smart, when the lungs are strengthened and
    refreshed by inhaling the aromatic autumn air, when even the nights are
    warm, and when in those dark warm nights, golden stars startle and
    delight us continually by falling from the sky.
    
    At ten in the morning of the second of September this weather still
    held.
    
    The brightness of the morning was magical. Moscow seen from the Poklonny
    Hill lay spaciously spread out with her river, her gardens, and her
    churches, and she seemed to be living her usual life, her cupolas
    glittering like stars in the sunlight.
    
    The view of the strange city with its peculiar architecture, such as he
    had never seen before, filled Napoleon with the rather envious and
    uneasy curiosity men feel when they see an alien form of life that has
    no knowledge of them. This city was evidently living with the full force
    of its own life. By the indefinite signs which, even at a distance,
    distinguish a living body from a dead one, Napoleon from the Poklonny
    Hill perceived the throb of life in the town and felt, as it were, the
    breathing of that great and beautiful body.
    
    Every Russian looking at Moscow feels her to be a mother; every
    foreigner who sees her, even if ignorant of her significance as the
    mother city, must feel her feminine character, and Napoleon felt it.
    
    "Cette ville asiatique aux innombrables eglises, Moscou la sainte. La
    voila done enfin, cette fameuse ville! Il etait temps," * said he, and
    dismounting he ordered a plan of Moscow to be spread out before him, and
    summoned Lelorgne d'Ideville, the interpreter.
    
    * "That Asiatic city of the innumerable churches, holy Moscow! Here it
    is then at last, that famous city. It was high time."
    
    "A town captured by the enemy is like a maid who has lost her honor,"
    thought he (he had said so to Tuchkov at Smolensk). From that point of
    view he gazed at the Oriental beauty he had not seen before. It seemed
    strange to him that his long-felt wish, which had seemed unattainable,
    had at last been realized. In the clear morning light he gazed now at
    the city and now at the plan, considering its details, and the assurance
    of possessing it agitated and awed him.
    
    "But could it be otherwise?" he thought. "Here is this capital at my
    feet. Where is Alexander now, and of what is he thinking? A strange,
    beautiful, and majestic city; and a strange and majestic moment! In what
    light must I appear to them!" thought he, thinking of his troops. "Here
    she is, the reward for all those fainthearted men," he reflected,
    glancing at those near him and at the troops who were approaching and
    forming up. "One word from me, one movement of my hand, and that ancient
    capital of the Tsars would perish. But my clemency is always ready to
    descend upon the vanquished. I must be magnanimous and truly great. But
    no, it can't be true that I am in Moscow," he suddenly thought. "Yet
    here she is lying at my feet, with her golden domes and crosses
    scintillating and twinkling in the sunshine. But I shall spare her. On
    the ancient monuments of barbarism and despotism I will inscribe great
    words of justice and mercy.... It is just this which Alexander will feel
    most painfully, I know him." (It seemed to Napoleon that the chief
    import of what was taking place lay in the personal struggle between
    himself and Alexander.) "From the height of the Kremlin--yes, there is
    the Kremlin, yes--I will give them just laws; I will teach them the
    meaning of true civilization, I will make generations of boyars remember
    their conqueror with love. I will tell the deputation that I did not,
    and do not, desire war, that I have waged war only against the false
    policy of their court; that I love and respect Alexander and that in
    Moscow I will accept terms of peace worthy of myself and of my people. I
    do not wish to utilize the fortunes of war to humiliate an honored
    monarch. 'Boyars,' I will say to them, 'I do not desire war, I desire
    the peace and welfare of all my subjects.' However, I know their
    presence will inspire me, and I shall speak to them as I always do:
    clearly, impressively, and majestically. But can it be true that I am in
    Moscow? Yes, there she lies."
    
    "Qu'on m'amene les boyars," * said he to his suite.
    
    * "Bring the boyars to me."
    
    A general with a brilliant suite galloped off at once to fetch the
    boyars.
    
    Two hours passed. Napoleon had lunched and was again standing in the
    same place on the Poklonny Hill awaiting the deputation. His speech to
    the boyars had already taken definite shape in his imagination. That
    speech was full of dignity and greatness as Napoleon understood it.
    
    He was himself carried away by the tone of magnanimity he intended to
    adopt toward Moscow. In his imagination he appointed days for assemblies
    at the palace of the Tsars, at which Russian notables and his own would
    mingle. He mentally appointed a governor, one who would win the hearts
    of the people. Having learned that there were many charitable
    institutions in Moscow he mentally decided that he would shower favors
    on them all. He thought that, as in Africa he had to put on a burnoose
    and sit in a mosque, so in Moscow he must be beneficent like the Tsars.
    And in order finally to touch the hearts of the Russians--and being like
    all Frenchmen unable to imagine anything sentimental without a reference
    to ma chere, ma tendre, ma pauvre mere * --he decided that he would
    place an inscription on all these establishments in large letters: "This
    establishment is dedicated to my dear mother." Or no, it should be
    simply: Maison de ma Mere, *(2) he concluded. "But am I really in
    Moscow? Yes, here it lies before me, but why is the deputation from the
    city so long in appearing?" he wondered.
    
    * "My dear, my tender, my poor mother."
    
    * (2) "House of my Mother."
    
    Meanwhile an agitated consultation was being carried on in whispers
    among his generals and marshals at the rear of his suite. Those sent to
    fetch the deputation had returned with the news that Moscow was empty,
    that everyone had left it. The faces of those who were not conferring
    together were pale and perturbed. They were not alarmed by the fact that
    Moscow had been abandoned by its inhabitants (grave as that fact
    seemed), but by the question how to tell the Emperor--without putting
    him in the terrible position of appearing ridiculous--that he had been
    awaiting the boyars so long in vain: that there were drunken mobs left
    in Moscow but no one else. Some said that a deputation of some sort must
    be scraped together, others disputed that opinion and maintained that
    the Emperor should first be carefully and skillfully prepared, and then
    told the truth.
    
    "He will have to be told, all the same," said some gentlemen of the
    suite. "But, gentlemen..."
    
    The position was the more awkward because the Emperor, meditating upon
    his magnanimous plans, was pacing patiently up and down before the
    outspread map, occasionally glancing along the road to Moscow from under
    his lifted hand with a bright and proud smile.
    
    "But it's impossible..." declared the gentlemen of the suite, shrugging
    their shoulders but not venturing to utter the implied word--le
    ridicule...
    
    At last the Emperor, tired of futile expectation, his actor's instinct
    suggesting to him that the sublime moment having been too long drawn out
    was beginning to lose its sublimity, gave a sign with his hand. A single
    report of a signaling gun followed, and the troops, who were already
    spread out on different sides of Moscow, moved into the city through
    Tver, Kaluga, and Dorogomilov gates. Faster and faster, vying with one
    another, they moved at the double or at a trot, vanishing amid the
    clouds of dust they raised and making the air ring with a deafening roar
    of mingling shouts.
    
    Drawn on by the movement of his troops Napoleon rode with them as far as
    the Dorogomilov gate, but there again stopped and, dismounting from his
    horse, paced for a long time by the Kammer-Kollezski rampart, awaiting
    the deputation.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    Meanwhile Moscow was empty. There were still people in it, perhaps a
    fiftieth part of its former inhabitants had remained, but it was empty.
    It was empty in the sense that a dying queenless hive is empty.
    
    In a queenless hive no life is left though to a superficial glance it
    seems as much alive as other hives.
    
    The bees circle round a queenless hive in the hot beams of the midday
    sun as gaily as around the living hives; from a distance it smells of
    honey like the others, and bees fly in and out in the same way. But one
    has only to observe that hive to realize that there is no longer any
    life in it. The bees do not fly in the same way, the smell and the sound
    that meet the beekeeper are not the same. To the beekeeper's tap on the
    wall of the sick hive, instead of the former instant unanimous humming
    of tens of thousands of bees with their abdomens threateningly
    compressed, and producing by the rapid vibration of their wings an
    aerial living sound, the only reply is a disconnected buzzing from
    different parts of the deserted hive. From the alighting board, instead
    of the former spirituous fragrant smell of honey and venom, and the warm
    whiffs of crowded life, comes an odor of emptiness and decay mingling
    with the smell of honey. There are no longer sentinels sounding the
    alarm with their abdomens raised, and ready to die in defense of the
    hive. There is no longer the measured quiet sound of throbbing activity,
    like the sound of boiling water, but diverse discordant sounds of
    disorder. In and out of the hive long black robber bees smeared with
    honey fly timidly and shiftily. They do not sting, but crawl away from
    danger. Formerly only bees laden with honey flew into the hive, and they
    flew out empty; now they fly out laden. The beekeeper opens the lower
    part of the hive and peers in. Instead of black, glossy bees--tamed by
    toil, clinging to one another's legs and drawing out the wax, with a
    ceaseless hum of labor--that used to hang in long clusters down to the
    floor of the hive, drowsy shriveled bees crawl about separately in
    various directions on the floor and walls of the hive. Instead of a
    neatly glued floor, swept by the bees with the fanning of their wings,
    there is a floor littered with bits of wax, excrement, dying bees
    scarcely moving their legs, and dead ones that have not been cleared
    away.
    
    The beekeeper opens the upper part of the hive and examines the super.
    Instead of serried rows of bees sealing up every gap in the combs and
    keeping the brood warm, he sees the skillful complex structures of the
    combs, but no longer in their former state of purity. All is neglected
    and foul. Black robber bees are swiftly and stealthily prowling about
    the combs, and the short home bees, shriveled and listless as if they
    were old, creep slowly about without trying to hinder the robbers,
    having lost all motive and all sense of life. Drones, bumblebees, wasps,
    and butterflies knock awkwardly against the walls of the hive in their
    flight. Here and there among the cells containing dead brood and honey
    an angry buzzing can sometimes be heard. Here and there a couple of
    bees, by force of habit and custom cleaning out the brood cells, with
    efforts beyond their strength laboriously drag away a dead bee or
    bumblebee without knowing why they do it. In another corner two old bees
    are languidly fighting, or cleaning themselves, or feeding one another,
    without themselves knowing whether they do it with friendly or hostile
    intent. In a third place a crowd of bees, crushing one another, attack
    some victim and fight and smother it, and the victim, enfeebled or
    killed, drops from above slowly and lightly as a feather, among the heap
    of corpses. The keeper opens the two center partitions to examine the
    brood cells. In place of the former close dark circles formed by
    thousands of bees sitting back to back and guarding the high mystery of
    generation, he sees hundreds of dull, listless, and sleepy shells of
    bees. They have almost all died unawares, sitting in the sanctuary they
    had guarded and which is now no more. They reek of decay and death. Only
    a few of them still move, rise, and feebly fly to settle on the enemy's
    hand, lacking the spirit to die stinging him; the rest are dead and fall
    as lightly as fish scales. The beekeeper closes the hive, chalks a mark
    on it, and when he has time tears out its contents and burns it clean.
    
    So in the same way Moscow was empty when Napoleon, weary, uneasy, and
    morose, paced up and down in front of the Kammer-Kollezski rampart,
    awaiting what to his mind was a necessary, if but formal, observance of
    the proprieties--a deputation.
    
    In various corners of Moscow there still remained a few people aimlessly
    moving about, following their old habits and hardly aware of what they
    were doing.
    
    When with due circumspection Napoleon was informed that Moscow was
    empty, he looked angrily at his informant, turned away, and silently
    continued to walk to and fro.
    
    "My carriage!" he said.
    
    He took his seat beside the aide-de-camp on duty and drove into the
    suburb. "Moscow deserted!" he said to himself. "What an incredible
    event!"
    
    He did not drive into the town, but put up at an inn in the Dorogomilov
    suburb.
    
    The coup de theatre had not come off.
    
    CHAPTER XXI
    
    The Russian troops were passing through Moscow from two o'clock at night
    till two in the afternoon and bore away with them the wounded and the
    last of the inhabitants who were leaving.
    
    The greatest crush during the movement of the troops took place at the
    Stone, Moskva, and Yauza bridges.
    
    While the troops, dividing into two parts when passing around the
    Kremlin, were thronging the Moskva and the Stone bridges, a great many
    soldiers, taking advantage of the stoppage and congestion, turned back
    from the bridges and slipped stealthily and silently past the church of
    Vasili the Beatified and under the Borovitski gate, back up the hill to
    the Red Square where some instinct told them they could easily take
    things not belonging to them. Crowds of the kind seen at cheap sales
    filled all the passages and alleys of the Bazaar. But there were no
    dealers with voices of ingratiating affability inviting customers to
    enter; there were no hawkers, nor the usual motley crowd of female
    purchasers--but only soldiers, in uniforms and overcoats though without
    muskets, entering the Bazaar empty-handed and silently making their way
    out through its passages with bundles. Tradesmen and their assistants
    (of whom there were but few) moved about among the soldiers quite
    bewildered. They unlocked their shops and locked them up again, and
    themselves carried goods away with the help of their assistants. On the
    square in front of the Bazaar were drummers beating the muster call. But
    the roll of the drums did not make the looting soldiers run in the
    direction of the drum as formerly, but made them, on the contrary, run
    farther away. Among the soldiers in the shops and passages some men were
    to be seen in gray coats, with closely shaven heads. Two officers, one
    with a scarf over his uniform and mounted on a lean, dark-gray horse,
    the other in an overcoat and on foot, stood at the corner of Ilyinka
    Street, talking. A third officer galloped up to them.
    
    "The general orders them all to be driven out at once, without fail.
    This is outrageous! Half the men have dispersed."
    
    "Where are you off to?... Where?..." he shouted to three infantrymen
    without muskets who, holding up the skirts of their overcoats, were
    slipping past him into the Bazaar passage. "Stop, you rascals!"
    
    "But how are you going to stop them?" replied another officer. "There is
    no getting them together. The army should push on before the rest bolt,
    that's all!"
    
    "How can one push on? They are stuck there, wedged on the bridge, and
    don't move. Shouldn't we put a cordon round to prevent the rest from
    running away?"
    
    "Come, go in there and drive them out!" shouted the senior officer.
    
    The officer in the scarf dismounted, called up a drummer, and went with
    him into the arcade. Some soldiers started running away in a group. A
    shopkeeper with red pimples on his cheeks near the nose, and a calm,
    persistent, calculating expression on his plump face, hurriedly and
    ostentatiously approached the officer, swinging his arms.
    
    "Your honor!" said he. "Be so good as to protect us! We won't grudge
    trifles, you are welcome to anything--we shall be delighted! Pray!...
    I'll fetch a piece of cloth at once for such an honorable gentleman, or
    even two pieces with pleasure. For we feel how it is; but what's all
    this--sheer robbery! If you please, could not guards be placed if only
    to let us close the shop...."
    
    Several shopkeepers crowded round the officer.
    
    "Eh, what twaddle!" said one of them, a thin, stern-looking man. "When
    one's head is gone one doesn't weep for one's hair! Take what any of you
    like!" And flourishing his arm energetically he turned sideways to the
    officer.
    
    "It's all very well for you, Ivan Sidorych, to talk," said the first
    tradesman angrily. "Please step inside, your honor!"
    
    "Talk indeed!" cried the thin one. "In my three shops here I have a
    hundred thousand rubles' worth of goods. Can they be saved when the army
    has gone? Eh, what people! 'Against God's might our hands can't fight.'"
    
    "Come inside, your honor!" repeated the tradesman, bowing.
    
    The officer stood perplexed and his face showed indecision.
    
    "It's not my business!" he exclaimed, and strode on quickly down one of
    the passages.
    
    From one open shop came the sound of blows and vituperation, and just as
    the officer came up to it a man in a gray coat with a shaven head was
    flung out violently.
    
    This man, bent double, rushed past the tradesman and the officer. The
    officer pounced on the soldiers who were in the shops, but at that
    moment fearful screams reached them from the huge crowd on the Moskva
    bridge and the officer ran out into the square.
    
    "What is it? What is it?" he asked, but his comrade was already
    galloping off past Vasili the Beatified in the direction from which the
    screams came.
    
    The officer mounted his horse and rode after him. When he reached the
    bridge he saw two unlimbered guns, the infantry crossing the bridge,
    several overturned carts, and frightened and laughing faces among the
    troops. Beside the cannon a cart was standing to which two horses were
    harnessed. Four borzois with collars were pressing close to the wheels.
    The cart was loaded high, and at the very top, beside a child's chair
    with its legs in the air, sat a peasant woman uttering piercing and
    desperate shrieks. He was told by his fellow officers that the screams
    of the crowd and the shrieks of the woman were due to the fact that
    General Ermolov, coming up to the crowd and learning that soldiers were
    dispersing among the shops while crowds of civilians blocked the bridge,
    had ordered two guns to be unlimbered and made a show of firing at the
    bridge. The crowd, crushing one another, upsetting carts, and shouting
    and squeezing desperately, had cleared off the bridge and the troops
    were now moving forward.
    
    CHAPTER XXII
    
    Meanwhile, the city itself was deserted. There was hardly anyone in the
    streets. The gates and shops were all closed, only here and there round
    the taverns solitary shouts or drunken songs could be heard. Nobody
    drove through the streets and footsteps were rarely heard. The
    Povarskaya was quite still and deserted. The huge courtyard of the
    Rostovs' house was littered with wisps of hay and with dung from the
    horses, and not a soul was to be seen there. In the great drawing room
    of the house, which had been left with all it contained, were two
    people. They were the yard porter Ignat, and the page boy Mishka,
    Vasilich's grandson who had stayed in Moscow with his grandfather.
    Mishka had opened the clavichord and was strumming on it with one
    finger. The yard porter, his arms akimbo, stood smiling with
    satisfaction before the large mirror.
    
    "Isn't it fine, eh, Uncle Ignat?" said the boy, suddenly beginning to
    strike the keyboard with both hands.
    
    "Only fancy!" answered Ignat, surprised at the broadening grin on his
    face in the mirror.
    
    "Impudence! Impudence!" they heard behind them the voice of Mavra
    Kuzminichna who had entered silently. "How he's grinning, the fat mug!
    Is that what you're here for? Nothing's cleared away down there and
    Vasilich is worn out. Just you wait a bit!"
    
    Ignat left off smiling, adjusted his belt, and went out of the room with
    meekly downcast eyes.
    
    "Aunt, I did it gently," said the boy.
    
    "I'll give you something gently, you monkey you!" cried Mavra
    Kuzminichna, raising her arm threateningly. "Go and get the samovar to
    boil for your grandfather."
    
    Mavra Kuzminichna flicked the dust off the clavichord and closed it, and
    with a deep sigh left the drawing room and locked its main door.
    
    Going out into the yard she paused to consider where she should go next-
    -to drink tea in the servants' wing with Vasilich, or into the storeroom
    to put away what still lay about.
    
    She heard the sound of quick footsteps in the quiet street. Someone
    stopped at the gate, and the latch rattled as someone tried to open it.
    Mavra Kuzminichna went to the gate.
    
    "Who do you want?"
    
    "The count--Count Ilya Andreevich Rostov."
    
    "And who are you?"
    
    "An officer, I have to see him," came the reply in a pleasant, well-bred
    Russian voice.
    
    Mavra Kuzminichna opened the gate and an officer of eighteen, with the
    round face of a Rostov, entered the yard.
    
    "They have gone away, sir. Went away yesterday at vespertime," said
    Mavra Kuzminichna cordially.
    
    The young officer standing in the gateway, as if hesitating whether to
    enter or not, clicked his tongue.
    
    "Ah, how annoying!" he muttered. "I should have come yesterday.... Ah,
    what a pity."
    
    Meanwhile, Mavra Kuzminichna was attentively and sympathetically
    examining the familiar Rostov features of the young man's face, his
    tattered coat and trodden-down boots.
    
    "What did you want to see the count for?" she asked.
    
    "Oh well... it can't be helped!" said he in a tone of vexation and
    placed his hand on the gate as if to leave.
    
    He again paused in indecision.
    
    "You see," he suddenly said, "I am a kinsman of the count's and he has
    been very kind to me. As you see" (he glanced with an amused air and
    good-natured smile at his coat and boots) "my things are worn out and I
    have no money, so I was going to ask the count..."
    
    Mavra Kuzminichna did not let him finish.
    
    "Just wait a minute, sir. One little moment," said she.
    
    And as soon as the officer let go of the gate handle she turned and,
    hurrying away on her old legs, went through the back yard to the
    servants' quarters.
    
    While Mavra Kuzminichna was running to her room the officer walked about
    the yard gazing at his worn-out boots with lowered head and a faint
    smile on his lips. "What a pity I've missed Uncle! What a nice old
    woman! Where has she run off to? And how am I to find the nearest way to
    overtake my regiment, which must by now be getting near the Rogozhski
    gate?" thought he. Just then Mavra Kuzminichna appeared from behind the
    corner of the house with a frightened yet resolute look, carrying a
    rolled-up check kerchief in her hand. While still a few steps from the
    officer she unfolded the kerchief and took out of it a white twenty-
    five-ruble assignat and hastily handed it to him.
    
    "If his excellency had been at home, as a kinsman he would of course...
    but as it is..."
    
    Mavra Kuzminichna grew abashed and confused. The officer did not
    decline, but took the note quietly and thanked her.
    
    "If the count had been at home..." Mavra Kuzminichna went on
    apologetically. "Christ be with you, sir! May God preserve you!" said
    she, bowing as she saw him out.
    
    Swaying his head and smiling as if amused at himself, the officer ran
    almost at a trot through the deserted streets toward the Yauza bridge to
    overtake his regiment.
    
    But Mavra Kuzminichna stood at the closed gate for some time with moist
    eyes, pensively swaying her head and feeling an unexpected flow of
    motherly tenderness and pity for the unknown young officer.
    
    CHAPTER XXIII
    
    From an unfinished house on the Varvarka, the ground floor of which was
    a dramshop, came drunken shouts and songs. On benches round the tables
    in a dirty little room sat some ten factory hands. Tipsy and perspiring,
    with dim eyes and wide-open mouths, they were all laboriously singing
    some song or other. They were singing discordantly, arduously, and with
    great effort, evidently not because they wished to sing, but because
    they wanted to show they were drunk and on a spree. One, a tall, fair-
    haired lad in a clean blue coat, was standing over the others. His face
    with its fine straight nose would have been handsome had it not been for
    his thin, compressed, twitching lips and dull, gloomy, fixed eyes.
    Evidently possessed by some idea, he stood over those who were singing,
    and solemnly and jerkily flourished above their heads his white arm with
    the sleeve turned up to the elbow, trying unnaturally to spread out his
    dirty fingers. The sleeve of his coat kept slipping down and he always
    carefully rolled it up again with his left hand, as if it were most
    important that the sinewy white arm he was flourishing should be bare.
    In the midst of the song cries were heard, and fighting and blows in the
    passage and porch. The tall lad waved his arm.
    
    "Stop it!" he exclaimed peremptorily. "There's a fight, lads!" And,
    still rolling up his sleeve, he went out to the porch.
    
    The factory hands followed him. These men, who under the leadership of
    the tall lad were drinking in the dramshop that morning, had brought the
    publican some skins from the factory and for this had had drink served
    them. The blacksmiths from a neighboring smithy, hearing the sounds of
    revelry in the tavern and supposing it to have been broken into, wished
    to force their way in too and a fight in the porch had resulted.
    
    The publican was fighting one of the smiths at the door, and when the
    workmen came out the smith, wrenching himself free from the tavern
    keeper, fell face downward on the pavement.
    
    Another smith tried to enter the doorway, pressing against the publican
    with his chest.
    
    The lad with the turned-up sleeve gave the smith a blow in the face and
    cried wildly: "They're fighting us, lads!"
    
    At that moment the first smith got up and, scratching his bruised face
    to make it bleed, shouted in a tearful voice: "Police! Murder!...
    They've killed a man, lads!"
    
    "Oh, gracious me, a man beaten to death--killed!..." screamed a woman
    coming out of a gate close by.
    
    A crowd gathered round the bloodstained smith.
    
    "Haven't you robbed people enough--taking their last shirts?" said a
    voice addressing the publican. "What have you killed a man for, you
    thief?"
    
    The tall lad, standing in the porch, turned his bleared eyes from the
    publican to the smith and back again as if considering whom he ought to
    fight now.
    
    "Murderer!" he shouted suddenly to the publican. "Bind him, lads!"
    
    "I daresay you would like to bind me!" shouted the publican, pushing
    away the men advancing on him, and snatching his cap from his head he
    flung it on the ground.
    
    As if this action had some mysterious and menacing significance, the
    workmen surrounding the publican paused in indecision.
    
    "I know the law very well, mates! I'll take the matter to the captain of
    police. You think I won't get to him? Robbery is not permitted to
    anybody now a days!" shouted the publican, picking up his cap.
    
    "Come along then! Come along then!" the publican and the tall young
    fellow repeated one after the other, and they moved up the street
    together.
    
    The bloodstained smith went beside them. The factory hands and others
    followed behind, talking and shouting.
    
    At the corner of the Moroseyka, opposite a large house with closed
    shutters and bearing a bootmaker's signboard, stood a score of thin,
    worn-out, gloomy-faced bootmakers, wearing overalls and long tattered
    coats.
    
    "He should pay folks off properly," a thin workingman, with frowning
    brows and a straggly beard, was saying.
    
    "But he's sucked our blood and now he thinks he's quit of us. He's been
    misleading us all the week and now that he's brought us to this pass
    he's made off."
    
    On seeing the crowd and the bloodstained man the workman ceased
    speaking, and with eager curiosity all the bootmakers joined the moving
    crowd.
    
    "Where are all the folks going?"
    
    "Why, to the police, of course!"
    
    "I say, is it true that we have been beaten?" "And what did you think?
    Look what folks are saying."
    
    Questions and answers were heard. The publican, taking advantage of the
    increased crowd, dropped behind and returned to his tavern.
    
    The tall youth, not noticing the disappearance of his foe, waved his
    bare arm and went on talking incessantly, attracting general attention
    to himself. It was around him that the people chiefly crowded, expecting
    answers from him to the questions that occupied all their minds.
    
    "He must keep order, keep the law, that's what the government is there
    for. Am I not right, good Christians?" said the tall youth, with a
    scarcely perceptible smile. "He thinks there's no government! How can
    one do without government? Or else there would be plenty who'd rob us."
    
    "Why talk nonsense?" rejoined voices in the crowd. "Will they give up
    Moscow like this? They told you that for fun, and you believed it!
    Aren't there plenty of troops on the march? Let him in, indeed! That's
    what the government is for. You'd better listen to what people are
    saying," said some of the mob pointing to the tall youth.
    
    By the wall of China-Town a smaller group of people were gathered round
    a man in a frieze coat who held a paper in his hand.
    
    "An ukase, they are reading an ukase! Reading an ukase!" cried voices in
    the crowd, and the people rushed toward the reader.
    
    The man in the frieze coat was reading the broadsheet of August 31. When
    the crowd collected round him he seemed confused, but at the demand of
    the tall lad who had pushed his way up to him, he began in a rather
    tremulous voice to read the sheet from the beginning.
    
    "Early tomorrow I shall go to his Serene Highness," he read ("Sirin
    Highness," said the tall fellow with a triumphant smile on his lips and
    a frown on his brow), "to consult with him to act, and to aid the army
    to exterminate these scoundrels. We too will take part..." the reader
    went on, and then paused ("Do you see," shouted the youth victoriously,
    "he's going to clear up the whole affair for you...."), "in destroying
    them, and will send these visitors to the devil. I will come back to
    dinner, and we'll set to work. We will do, completely do, and undo these
    scoundrels."
    
    The last words were read out in the midst of complete silence. The tall
    lad hung his head gloomily. It was evident that no one had understood
    the last part. In particular, the words "I will come back to dinner,"
    evidently displeased both reader and audience. The people's minds were
    tuned to a high pitch and this was too simple and needlessly
    comprehensible--it was what any one of them might have said and
    therefore was what an ukase emanating from the highest authority should
    not say.
    
    They all stood despondent and silent. The tall youth moved his lips and
    swayed from side to side.
    
    "We should ask him... that's he himself?"... "Yes, ask him indeed!...
    Why not? He'll explain"... voices in the rear of the crowd were suddenly
    heard saying, and the general attention turned to the police
    superintendent's trap which drove into the square attended by two
    mounted dragoons.
    
    The superintendent of police, who had gone that morning by Count
    Rostopchin's orders to burn the barges and had in connection with that
    matter acquired a large sum of money which was at that moment in his
    pocket, on seeing a crowd bearing down upon him told his coachman to
    stop.
    
    "What people are these?" he shouted to the men, who were moving singly
    and timidly in the direction of his trap.
    
    "What people are these?" he shouted again, receiving no answer.
    
    "Your honor..." replied the shopman in the frieze coat, "your honor, in
    accord with the proclamation of his highest excellency the count, they
    desire to serve, not sparing their lives, and it is not any kind of
    riot, but as his highest excellence said..."
    
    "The count has not left, he is here, and an order will be issued
    concerning you," said the superintendent of police. "Go on!" he ordered
    his coachman.
    
    The crowd halted, pressing around those who had heard what the
    superintendent had said, and looking at the departing trap.
    
    The superintendent of police turned round at that moment with a scared
    look, said something to his coachman, and his horses increased their
    speed.
    
    "It's a fraud, lads! Lead the way to him, himself!" shouted the tall
    youth. "Don't let him go, lads! Let him answer us! Keep him!" shouted
    different people and the people dashed in pursuit of the trap.
    
    Following the superintendent of police and talking loudly the crowd went
    in the direction of the Lubyanka Street.
    
    "There now, the gentry and merchants have gone away and left us to
    perish. Do they think we're dogs?" voices in the crowd were heard saying
    more and more frequently.
    
    CHAPTER XXIV
    
    On the evening of the first of September, after his interview with
    Kutuzov, Count Rostopchin had returned to Moscow mortified and offended
    because he had not been invited to attend the council of war, and
    because Kutuzov had paid no attention to his offer to take part in the
    defense of the city; amazed also at the novel outlook revealed to him at
    the camp, which treated the tranquillity of the capital and its
    patriotic fervor as not merely secondary but quite irrelevant and
    unimportant matters. Distressed, offended, and surprised by all this,
    Rostopchin had returned to Moscow. After supper he lay down on a sofa
    without undressing, and was awakened soon after midnight by a courier
    bringing him a letter from Kutuzov. This letter requested the count to
    send police officers to guide the troops through the town, as the army
    was retreating to the Ryazan road beyond Moscow. This was not news to
    Rostopchin. He had known that Moscow would be abandoned not merely since
    his interview the previous day with Kutuzov on the Poklonny Hill but
    ever since the battle of Borodino, for all the generals who came to
    Moscow after that battle had said unanimously that it was impossible to
    fight another battle, and since then the government property had been
    removed every night, and half the inhabitants had left the city with
    Rostopchin's own permission. Yet all the same this information
    astonished and irritated the count, coming as it did in the form of a
    simple note with an order from Kutuzov, and received at night, breaking
    in on his beauty sleep.
    
    When later on in his memoirs Count Rostopchin explained his actions at
    this time, he repeatedly says that he was then actuated by two important
    considerations: to maintain tranquillity in Moscow and expedite the
    departure of the inhabitants. If one accepts this twofold aim all
    Rostopchin's actions appear irreproachable. "Why were the holy relics,
    the arms, ammunition, gunpowder, and stores of corn not removed? Why
    were thousands of inhabitants deceived into believing that Moscow would
    not be given up--and thereby ruined?" "To preserve the tranquillity of
    the city," explains Count Rostopchin. "Why were bundles of useless
    papers from the government offices, and Leppich's balloon and other
    articles removed?" "To leave the town empty," explains Count Rostopchin.
    One need only admit that public tranquillity is in danger and any action
    finds a justification.
    
    All the horrors of the reign of terror were based only on solicitude for
    public tranquillity.
    
    On what, then, was Count Rostopchin's fear for the tranquillity of
    Moscow based in 1812? What reason was there for assuming any probability
    of an uprising in the city? The inhabitants were leaving it and the
    retreating troops were filling it. Why should that cause the masses to
    riot?
    
    Neither in Moscow nor anywhere in Russia did anything resembling an
    insurrection ever occur when the enemy entered a town. More than ten
    thousand people were still in Moscow on the first and second of
    September, and except for a mob in the governor's courtyard, assembled
    there at his bidding, nothing happened. It is obvious that there would
    have been even less reason to expect a disturbance among the people if
    after the battle of Borodino, when the surrender of Moscow became
    certain or at least probable, Rostopchin instead of exciting the people
    by distributing arms and broadsheets had taken steps to remove all the
    holy relics, the gunpowder, munitions, and money, and had told the
    population plainly that the town would be abandoned.
    
    Rostopchin, though he had patriotic sentiments, was a sanguine and
    impulsive man who had always moved in the highest administrative circles
    and had no understanding at all of the people he supposed himself to be
    guiding. Ever since the enemy's entry into Smolensk he had in
    imagination been playing the role of director of the popular feeling of
    "the heart of Russia." Not only did it seem to him (as to all
    administrators) that he controlled the external actions of Moscow's
    inhabitants, but he also thought he controlled their mental attitude by
    means of his broadsheets and posters, written in a coarse tone which the
    people despise in their own class and do not understand from those in
    authority. Rostopchin was so pleased with the fine role of leader of
    popular feeling, and had grown so used to it, that the necessity of
    relinquishing that role and abandoning Moscow without any heroic display
    took him unawares and he suddenly felt the ground slip away from under
    his feet, so that he positively did not know what to do. Though he knew
    it was coming, he did not till the last moment wholeheartedly believe
    that Moscow would be abandoned, and did not prepare for it. The
    inhabitants left against his wishes. If the government offices were
    removed, this was only done on the demand of officials to whom the count
    yielded reluctantly. He was absorbed in the role he had created for
    himself. As is often the case with those gifted with an ardent
    imagination, though he had long known that Moscow would be abandoned he
    knew it only with his intellect, he did not believe it in his heart and
    did not adapt himself mentally to this new position of affairs.
    
    All his painstaking and energetic activity (in how far it was useful and
    had any effect on the people is another question) had been simply
    directed toward arousing in the masses his own feeling of patriotic
    hatred of the French.
    
    But when events assumed their true historical character, when expressing
    hatred for the French in words proved insufficient, when it was not even
    possible to express that hatred by fighting a battle, when self-
    confidence was of no avail in relation to the one question before
    Moscow, when the whole population streamed out of Moscow as one man,
    abandoning their belongings and proving by that negative action all the
    depth of their national feeling, then the role chosen by Rostopchin
    suddenly appeared senseless. He unexpectedly felt himself ridiculous,
    weak, and alone, with no ground to stand on.
    
    When, awakened from his sleep, he received that cold, peremptory note
    from Kutuzov, he felt the more irritated the more he felt himself to
    blame. All that he had been specially put in charge of, the state
    property which he should have removed, was still in Moscow and it was no
    longer possible to take the whole of it away.
    
    "Who is to blame for it? Who has let things come to such a pass?" he
    ruminated. "Not I, of course. I had everything ready. I had Moscow
    firmly in hand. And this is what they have let it come to! Villains!
    Traitors!" he thought, without clearly defining who the villains and
    traitors were, but feeling it necessary to hate those traitors whoever
    they might be who were to blame for the false and ridiculous position in
    which he found himself.
    
    All that night Count Rostopchin issued orders, for which people came to
    him from all parts of Moscow. Those about him had never seen the count
    so morose and irritable.
    
    "Your excellency, the Director of the Registrar's Department has sent
    for instructions... From the Consistory, from the Senate, from the
    University, from the Foundling Hospital, the Suffragan has sent...
    asking for information.... What are your orders about the Fire Brigade?
    From the governor of the prison... from the superintendent of the
    lunatic asylum..." All night long such announcements were continually
    being received by the count.
    
    To all these inquiries he gave brief and angry replies indicating that
    orders from him were not now needed, that the whole affair, carefully
    prepared by him, had now been ruined by somebody, and that that somebody
    would have to bear the whole responsibility for all that might happen.
    
    "Oh, tell that blockhead," he said in reply to the question from the
    Registrar's Department, "that he should remain to guard his documents.
    Now why are you asking silly questions about the Fire Brigade? They have
    horses, let them be off to Vladimir, and not leave them to the French."
    
    "Your excellency, the superintendent of the lunatic asylum has come:
    what are your commands?"
    
    "My commands? Let them go away, that's all.... And let the lunatics out
    into the town. When lunatics command our armies God evidently means
    these other madmen to be free."
    
    In reply to an inquiry about the convicts in the prison, Count
    Rostopchin shouted angrily at the governor:
    
    "Do you expect me to give you two battalions--which we have not got--for
    a convoy? Release them, that's all about it!"
    
    "Your excellency, there are some political prisoners, Meshkov,
    Vereshchagin..."
    
    "Vereshchagin! Hasn't he been hanged yet?" shouted Rostopchin. "Bring
    him to me!"
    
    CHAPTER XXV
    
    Toward nine o'clock in the morning, when the troops were already moving
    through Moscow, nobody came to the count any more for instructions.
    Those who were able to get away were going of their own accord, those
    who remained behind decided for themselves what they must do.
    
    The count ordered his carriage that he might drive to Sokolniki, and sat
    in his study with folded hands, morose, sallow, and taciturn.
    
    In quiet and untroubled times it seems to every administrator that it is
    only by his efforts that the whole population under his rule is kept
    going, and in this consciousness of being indispensable every
    administrator finds the chief reward of his labor and efforts. While the
    sea of history remains calm the ruler-administrator in his frail bark,
    holding on with a boat hook to the ship of the people and himself
    moving, naturally imagines that his efforts move the ship he is holding
    on to. But as soon as a storm arises and the sea begins to heave and the
    ship to move, such a delusion is no longer possible. The ship moves
    independently with its own enormous motion, the boat hook no longer
    reaches the moving vessel, and suddenly the administrator, instead of
    appearing a ruler and a source of power, becomes an insignificant,
    useless, feeble man.
    
    Rostopchin felt this, and it was this which exasperated him.
    
    The superintendent of police, whom the crowd had stopped, went in to see
    him at the same time as an adjutant who informed the count that the
    horses were harnessed. They were both pale, and the superintendent of
    police, after reporting that he had executed the instructions he had
    received, informed the count that an immense crowd had collected in the
    courtyard and wished to see him.
    
    Without saying a word Rostopchin rose and walked hastily to his light,
    luxurious drawing room, went to the balcony door, took hold of the
    handle, let it go again, and went to the window from which he had a
    better view of the whole crowd. The tall lad was standing in front,
    flourishing his arm and saying something with a stern look. The blood-
    stained smith stood beside him with a gloomy face. A drone of voices was
    audible through the closed window.
    
    "Is my carriage ready?" asked Rostopchin, stepping back from the window.
    
    "It is, your excellency," replied the adjutant.
    
    Rostopchin went again to the balcony door.
    
    "But what do they want?" he asked the superintendent of police.
    
    "Your excellency, they say they have got ready, according to your
    orders, to go against the French, and they shouted something about
    treachery. But it is a turbulent crowd, your excellency--I hardly
    managed to get away from it. Your excellency, I venture to suggest..."
    
    "You may go. I don't need you to tell me what to do!" exclaimed
    Rostopchin angrily.
    
    He stood by the balcony door looking at the crowd.
    
    "This is what they have done with Russia! This is what they have done
    with me!" thought he, full of an irrepressible fury that welled up
    within him against the someone to whom what was happening might be
    attributed. As often happens with passionate people, he was mastered by
    anger but was still seeking an object on which to vent it. "Here is that
    mob, the dregs of the people," he thought as he gazed at the crowd:
    "this rabble they have roused by their folly! They want a victim," he
    thought as he looked at the tall lad flourishing his arm. And this
    thought occurred to him just because he himself desired a victim,
    something on which to vent his rage.
    
    "Is the carriage ready?" he asked again.
    
    "Yes, your excellency. What are your orders about Vereshchagin? He is
    waiting at the porch," said the adjutant.
    
    "Ah!" exclaimed Rostopchin, as if struck by an unexpected recollection.
    
    And rapidly opening the door he went resolutely out onto the balcony.
    The talking instantly ceased, hats and caps were doffed, and all eyes
    were raised to the count.
    
    "Good morning, lads!" said the count briskly and loudly. "Thank you for
    coming. I'll come out to you in a moment, but we must first settle with
    the villain. We must punish the villain who has caused the ruin of
    Moscow. Wait for me!"
    
    And the count stepped as briskly back into the room and slammed the door
    behind him.
    
    A murmur of approbation and satisfaction ran through the crowd. "He'll
    settle with all the villains, you'll see! And you said the French...
    He'll show you what law is!" the mob were saying as if reproving one
    another for their lack of confidence.
    
    A few minutes later an officer came hurriedly out of the front door,
    gave an order, and the dragoons formed up in line. The crowd moved
    eagerly from the balcony toward the porch. Rostopchin, coming out there
    with quick angry steps, looked hastily around as if seeking someone.
    
    "Where is he?" he inquired. And as he spoke he saw a young man coming
    round the corner of the house between two dragoons. He had a long thin
    neck, and his head, that had been half shaved, was again covered by
    short hair. This young man was dressed in a threadbare blue cloth coat
    lined with fox fur, that had once been smart, and dirty hempen convict
    trousers, over which were pulled his thin, dirty, trodden-down boots. On
    his thin, weak legs were heavy chains which hampered his irresolute
    movements.
    
    "Ah!" said Rostopchin, hurriedly turning away his eyes from the young
    man in the fur-lined coat and pointing to the bottom step of the porch.
    "Put him there."
    
    The young man in his clattering chains stepped clumsily to the spot
    indicated, holding away with one finger the coat collar which chafed his
    neck, turned his long neck twice this way and that, sighed, and
    submissively folded before him his thin hands, unused to work.
    
    For several seconds while the young man was taking his place on the step
    the silence continued. Only among the back rows of the people, who were
    all pressing toward the one spot, could sighs, groans, and the shuffling
    of feet be heard.
    
    While waiting for the young man to take his place on the step Rostopchin
    stood frowning and rubbing his face with his hand.
    
    "Lads!" said he, with a metallic ring in his voice. "This man,
    Vereshchagin, is the scoundrel by whose doing Moscow is perishing."
    
    The young man in the fur-lined coat, stooping a little, stood in a
    submissive attitude, his fingers clasped before him. His emaciated young
    face, disfigured by the half-shaven head, hung down hopelessly. At the
    count's first words he raised it slowly and looked up at him as if
    wishing to say something or at least to meet his eye. But Rostopchin did
    not look at him. A vein in the young man's long thin neck swelled like a
    cord and went blue behind the ear, and suddenly his face flushed.
    
    All eyes were fixed on him. He looked at the crowd, and rendered more
    hopeful by the expression he read on the faces there, he smiled sadly
    and timidly, and lowering his head shifted his feet on the step.
    
    "He has betrayed his Tsar and his country, he has gone over to
    Bonaparte. He alone of all the Russians has disgraced the Russian name,
    he has caused Moscow to perish," said Rostopchin in a sharp, even voice,
    but suddenly he glanced down at Vereshchagin who continued to stand in
    the same submissive attitude. As if inflamed by the sight, he raised his
    arm and addressed the people, almost shouting:
    
    "Deal with him as you think fit! I hand him over to you."
    
    The crowd remained silent and only pressed closer and closer to one
    another. To keep one another back, to breathe in that stifling
    atmosphere, to be unable to stir, and to await something unknown,
    uncomprehended, and terrible, was becoming unbearable. Those standing in
    front, who had seen and heard what had taken place before them, all
    stood with wide-open eyes and mouths, straining with all their strength,
    and held back the crowd that was pushing behind them.
    
    "Beat him!... Let the traitor perish and not disgrace the Russian name!"
    shouted Rostopchin. "Cut him down. I command it."
    
    Hearing not so much the words as the angry tone of Rostopchin's voice,
    the crowd moaned and heaved forward, but again paused.
    
    "Count!" exclaimed the timid yet theatrical voice of Vereshchagin in the
    midst of the momentary silence that ensued, "Count! One God is above us
    both...." He lifted his head and again the thick vein in his thin neck
    filled with blood and the color rapidly came and went in his face.
    
    He did not finish what he wished to say.
    
    "Cut him down! I command it..." shouted Rostopchin, suddenly growing
    pale like Vereshchagin.
    
    "Draw sabers!" cried the dragoon officer, drawing his own.
    
    Another still stronger wave flowed through the crowd and reaching the
    front ranks carried it swaying to the very steps of the porch. The tall
    youth, with a stony look on his face, and rigid and uplifted arm, stood
    beside Vereshchagin.
    
    "Saber him!" the dragoon officer almost whispered.
    
    And one of the soldiers, his face all at once distorted with fury,
    struck Vereshchagin on the head with the blunt side of his saber.
    
    "Ah!" cried Vereshchagin in meek surprise, looking round with a
    frightened glance as if not understanding why this was done to him. A
    similar moan of surprise and horror ran through the crowd. "O Lord!"
    exclaimed a sorrowful voice.
    
    But after the exclamation of surprise that had escaped from Vereshchagin
    he uttered a plaintive cry of pain, and that cry was fatal. The barrier
    of human feeling, strained to the utmost, that had held the crowd in
    check suddenly broke. The crime had begun and must now be completed. The
    plaintive moan of reproach was drowned by the threatening and angry roar
    of the crowd. Like the seventh and last wave that shatters a ship, that
    last irresistible wave burst from the rear and reached the front ranks,
    carrying them off their feet and engulfing them all. The dragoon was
    about to repeat his blow. Vereshchagin with a cry of horror, covering
    his head with his hands, rushed toward the crowd. The tall youth,
    against whom he stumbled, seized his thin neck with his hands and,
    yelling wildly, fell with him under the feet of the pressing, struggling
    crowd.
    
    Some beat and tore at Vereshchagin, others at the tall youth. And the
    screams of those that were being trampled on and of those who tried to
    rescue the tall lad only increased the fury of the crowd. It was a long
    time before the dragoons could extricate the bleeding youth, beaten
    almost to death. And for a long time, despite the feverish haste with
    which the mob tried to end the work that had been begun, those who were
    hitting, throttling, and tearing at Vereshchagin were unable to kill
    him, for the crowd pressed from all sides, swaying as one mass with them
    in the center and rendering it impossible for them either to kill him or
    let him go.
    
    "Hit him with an ax, eh!... Crushed?... Traitor, he sold Christ....
    Still alive... tenacious... serves him right! Torture serves a thief
    right. Use the hatchet!... What--still alive?"
    
    Only when the victim ceased to struggle and his cries changed to a long-
    drawn, measured death rattle did the crowd around his prostrate,
    bleeding corpse begin rapidly to change places. Each one came up,
    glanced at what had been done, and with horror, reproach, and
    astonishment pushed back again.
    
    "O Lord! The people are like wild beasts! How could he be alive?" voices
    in the crowd could be heard saying. "Quite a young fellow too... must
    have been a merchant's son. What men!... and they say he's not the right
    one.... How not the right one?... O Lord! And there's another has been
    beaten too--they say he's nearly done for.... Oh, the people... Aren't
    they afraid of sinning?..." said the same mob now, looking with pained
    distress at the dead body with its long, thin, half-severed neck and its
    livid face stained with blood and dust.
    
    A painstaking police officer, considering the presence of a corpse in
    his excellency's courtyard unseemly, told the dragoons to take it away.
    Two dragoons took it by its distorted legs and dragged it along the
    ground. The gory, dust-stained, half-shaven head with its long neck
    trailed twisting along the ground. The crowd shrank back from it.
    
    At the moment when Vereshchagin fell and the crowd closed in with savage
    yells and swayed about him, Rostopchin suddenly turned pale and, instead
    of going to the back entrance where his carriage awaited him, went with
    hurried steps and bent head, not knowing where and why, along the
    passage leading to the rooms on the ground floor. The count's face was
    white and he could not control the feverish twitching of his lower jaw.
    
    "This way, your excellency... Where are you going?... This way,
    please..." said a trembling, frightened voice behind him.
    
    Count Rostopchin was unable to reply and, turning obediently, went in
    the direction indicated. At the back entrance stood his caleche. The
    distant roar of the yelling crowd was audible even there. He hastily
    took his seat and told the coachman to drive him to his country house in
    Sokolniki.
    
    When they reached the Myasnitski Street and could no longer hear the
    shouts of the mob, the count began to repent. He remembered with
    dissatisfaction the agitation and fear he had betrayed before his
    subordinates. "The mob is terrible--disgusting," he said to himself in
    French. "They are like wolves whom nothing but flesh can appease."
    "Count! One God is above us both!"--Vereshchagin's words suddenly
    recurred to him, and a disagreeable shiver ran down his back. But this
    was only a momentary feeling and Count Rostopchin smiled disdainfully at
    himself. "I had other duties," thought he. "The people had to be
    appeased. Many other victims have perished and are perishing for the
    public good"--and he began thinking of his social duties to his family
    and to the city entrusted to him, and of himself--not himself as
    Theodore Vasilyevich Rostopchin (he fancied that Theodore Vasilyevich
    Rostopchin was sacrificing himself for the public good) but himself as
    governor, the representative of authority and of the Tsar. "Had I been
    simply Theodore Vasilyevich my course of action would have been quite
    different, but it was my duty to safeguard my life and dignity as
    commander-in-chief."
    
    Lightly swaying on the flexible springs of his carriage and no longer
    hearing the terrible sounds of the crowd, Rostopchin grew physically
    calm and, as always happens, as soon as he became physically tranquil
    his mind devised reasons why he should be mentally tranquil too. The
    thought which tranquillized Rostopchin was not a new one. Since the
    world began and men have killed one another no one has ever committed
    such a crime against his fellow man without comforting himself with this
    same idea. This idea is le bien public, the hypothetical welfare of
    other people.
    
    To a man not swayed by passion that welfare is never certain, but he who
    commits such a crime always knows just where that welfare lies. And
    Rostopchin now knew it.
    
    Not only did his reason not reproach him for what he had done, but he
    even found cause for self-satisfaction in having so successfully
    contrived to avail himself of a convenient opportunity to punish a
    criminal and at the same time pacify the mob.
    
    "Vereshchagin was tried and condemned to death," thought Rostopchin
    (though the Senate had only condemned Vereshchagin to hard labor), "he
    was a traitor and a spy. I could not let him go unpunished and so I have
    killed two birds with one stone: to appease the mob I gave them a victim
    and at the same time punished a miscreant."
    
    Having reached his country house and begun to give orders about domestic
    arrangements, the count grew quite tranquil.
    
    Half an hour later he was driving with his fast horses across the
    Sokolniki field, no longer thinking of what had occurred but considering
    what was to come. He was driving to the Yauza bridge where he had heard
    that Kutuzov was. Count Rostopchin was mentally preparing the angry and
    stinging reproaches he meant to address to Kutuzov for his deception. He
    would make that foxy old courtier feel that the responsibility for all
    the calamities that would follow the abandonment of the city and the
    ruin of Russia (as Rostopchin regarded it) would fall upon his doting
    old head. Planning beforehand what he would say to Kutuzov, Rostopchin
    turned angrily in his caleche and gazed sternly from side to side.
    
    The Sokolniki field was deserted. Only at the end of it, in front of the
    almshouse and the lunatic asylum, could be seen some people in white and
    others like them walking singly across the field shouting and
    gesticulating.
    
    One of these was running to cross the path of Count Rostopchin's
    carriage, and the count himself, his coachman, and his dragoons looked
    with vague horror and curiosity at these released lunatics and
    especially at the one running toward them.
    
    Swaying from side to side on his long, thin legs in his fluttering
    dressing gown, this lunatic was running impetuously, his gaze fixed on
    Rostopchin, shouting something in a hoarse voice and making signs to him
    to stop. The lunatic's solemn, gloomy face was thin and yellow, with its
    beard growing in uneven tufts. His black, agate pupils with saffron-
    yellow whites moved restlessly near the lower eyelids.
    
    "Stop! Pull up, I tell you!" he cried in a piercing voice, and again
    shouted something breathlessly with emphatic intonations and gestures.
    
    Coming abreast of the caleche he ran beside it.
    
    "Thrice have they slain me, thrice have I risen from the dead. They
    stoned me, crucified me... I shall rise... shall rise... shall rise.
    They have torn my body. The kingdom of God will be overthrown... Thrice
    will I overthrow it and thrice re-establish it!" he cried, raising his
    voice higher and higher.
    
    Count Rostopchin suddenly grew pale as he had done when the crowd closed
    in on Vereshchagin. He turned away. "Go fas... faster!" he cried in a
    trembling voice to his coachman. The caleche flew over the ground as
    fast as the horses could draw it, but for a long time Count Rostopchin
    still heard the insane despairing screams growing fainter in the
    distance, while his eyes saw nothing but the astonished, frightened,
    bloodstained face of "the traitor" in the fur-lined coat.
    
    Recent as that mental picture was, Rostopchin already felt that it had
    cut deep into his heart and drawn blood. Even now he felt clearly that
    the gory trace of that recollection would not pass with time, but that
    the terrible memory would, on the contrary, dwell in his heart ever more
    cruelly and painfully to the end of his life. He seemed still to hear
    the sound of his own words: "Cut him down! I command it...."
    
    "Why did I utter those words? It was by some accident I said them.... I
    need not have said them," he thought. "And then nothing would have
    happened." He saw the frightened and then infuriated face of the dragoon
    who dealt the blow, the look of silent, timid reproach that boy in the
    fur-lined coat had turned upon him. "But I did not do it for my own
    sake. I was bound to act that way.... The mob, the traitor... the public
    welfare," thought he.
    
    Troops were still crowding at the Yauza bridge. It was hot. Kutuzov,
    dejected and frowning, sat on a bench by the bridge toying with his whip
    in the sand when a caleche dashed up noisily. A man in a general's
    uniform with plumes in his hat went up to Kutuzov and said something in
    French. It was Count Rostopchin. He told Kutuzov that he had come
    because Moscow, the capital, was no more and only the army remained.
    
    "Things would have been different if your Serene Highness had not told
    me that you would not abandon Moscow without another battle; all this
    would not have happened," he said.
    
    Kutuzov looked at Rostopchin as if, not grasping what was said to him,
    he was trying to read something peculiar written at that moment on the
    face of the man addressing him. Rostopchin grew confused and became
    silent. Kutuzov slightly shook his head and not taking his penetrating
    gaze from Rostopchin's face muttered softly:
    
    "No! I shall not give up Moscow without a battle!"
    
    Whether Kutuzov was thinking of something entirely different when he
    spoke those words, or uttered them purposely, knowing them to be
    meaningless, at any rate Rostopchin made no reply and hastily left him.
    And strange to say, the Governor of Moscow, the proud Count Rostopchin,
    took up a Cossack whip and went to the bridge where he began with shouts
    to drive on the carts that blocked the way.
    
    CHAPTER XXVI
    
    Toward four o'clock in the afternoon Murat's troops were entering
    Moscow. In front rode a detachment of Wurttemberg hussars and behind
    them rode the King of Naples himself accompanied by a numerous suite.
    
    About the middle of the Arbat Street, near the Church of the Miraculous
    Icon of St. Nicholas, Murat halted to await news from the advanced
    detachment as to the condition in which they had found the citadel, le
    Kremlin.
    
    Around Murat gathered a group of those who had remained in Moscow. They
    all stared in timid bewilderment at the strange, long-haired commander
    dressed up in feathers and gold.
    
    "Is that their Tsar himself? He's not bad!" low voices could be heard
    saying.
    
    An interpreter rode up to the group.
    
    "Take off your cap... your caps!" These words went from one to another
    in the crowd. The interpreter addressed an old porter and asked if it
    was far to the Kremlin. The porter, listening in perplexity to the
    unfamiliar Polish accent and not realizing that the interpreter was
    speaking Russian, did not understand what was being said to him and
    slipped behind the others.
    
    Murat approached the interpreter and told him to ask where the Russian
    army was. One of the Russians understood what was asked and several
    voices at once began answering the interpreter. A French officer,
    returning from the advanced detachment, rode up to Murat and reported
    that the gates of the citadel had been barricaded and that there was
    probably an ambuscade there.
    
    "Good!" said Murat and, turning to one of the gentlemen in his suite,
    ordered four light guns to be moved forward to fire at the gates.
    
    The guns emerged at a trot from the column following Murat and advanced
    up the Arbat. When they reached the end of the Vozdvizhenka Street they
    halted and drew in the Square. Several French officers superintended the
    placing of the guns and looked at the Kremlin through field glasses.
    
    The bells in the Kremlin were ringing for vespers, and this sound
    troubled the French. They imagined it to be a call to arms. A few
    infantrymen ran to the Kutafyev Gate. Beams and wooden screens had been
    put there, and two musket shots rang out from under the gate as soon as
    an officer and men began to run toward it. A general who was standing by
    the guns shouted some words of command to the officer, and the latter
    ran back again with his men.
    
    The sound of three more shots came from the gate.
    
    One shot struck a French soldier's foot, and from behind the screens
    came the strange sound of a few voices shouting. Instantly as at a word
    of command the expression of cheerful serenity on the faces of the
    French general, officers, and men changed to one of determined
    concentrated readiness for strife and suffering. To all of them from the
    marshal to the least soldier, that place was not the Vozdvizhenka,
    Mokhavaya, or Kutafyev Street, nor the Troitsa Gate (places familiar in
    Moscow), but a new battlefield which would probably prove sanguinary.
    And all made ready for that battle. The cries from the gates ceased. The
    guns were advanced, the artillerymen blew the ash off their linstocks,
    and an officer gave the word "Fire!" This was followed by two whistling
    sounds of canister shot, one after another. The shot rattled against the
    stone of the gate and upon the wooden beams and screens, and two
    wavering clouds of smoke rose over the Square.
    
    A few instants after the echo of the reports resounding over the stone-
    built Kremlin had died away the French heard a strange sound above their
    head. Thousands of crows rose above the walls and circled in the air,
    cawing and noisily flapping their wings. Together with that sound came a
    solitary human cry from the gateway and amid the smoke appeared the
    figure of a bareheaded man in a peasant's coat. He grasped a musket and
    took aim at the French. "Fire!" repeated the officer once more, and the
    reports of a musket and of two cannon shots were heard simultaneously.
    The gate was again hidden by smoke.
    
    Nothing more stirred behind the screens and the French infantry soldiers
    and officers advanced to the gate. In the gateway lay three wounded and
    four dead. Two men in peasant coats ran away at the foot of the wall,
    toward the Znamenka.
    
    "Clear that away!" said the officer, pointing to the beams and the
    corpses, and the French soldiers, after dispatching the wounded, threw
    the corpses over the parapet.
    
    Who these men were nobody knew. "Clear that away!" was all that was said
    of them, and they were thrown over the parapet and removed later on that
    they might not stink. Thiers alone dedicates a few eloquent lines to
    their memory: "These wretches had occupied the sacred citadel, having
    supplied themselves with guns from the arsenal, and fired" (the
    wretches) "at the French. Some of them were sabered and the Kremlin was
    purged of their presence."
    
    Murat was informed that the way had been cleared. The French entered the
    gates and began pitching their camp in the Senate Square. Out of the
    windows of the Senate House the soldiers threw chairs into the Square
    for fuel and kindled fires there.
    
    Other detachments passed through the Kremlin and encamped along the
    Moroseyka, the Lubyanka, and Pokrovka Streets. Others quartered
    themselves along the Vozdvizhenka, the Nikolski, and the Tverskoy
    Streets. No masters of the houses being found anywhere, the French were
    not billeted on the inhabitants as is usual in towns but lived in it as
    in a camp.
    
    Though tattered, hungry, worn out, and reduced to a third of their
    original number, the French entered Moscow in good marching order. It
    was a weary and famished, but still a fighting and menacing army. But it
    remained an army only until its soldiers had dispersed into their
    different lodgings. As soon as the men of the various regiments began to
    disperse among the wealthy and deserted houses, the army was lost
    forever and there came into being something nondescript, neither
    citizens nor soldiers but what are known as marauders. When five weeks
    later these same men left Moscow, they no longer formed an army. They
    were a mob of marauders, each carrying a quantity of articles which
    seemed to him valuable or useful. The aim of each man when he left
    Moscow was no longer, as it had been, to conquer, but merely to keep
    what he had acquired. Like a monkey which puts its paw into the narrow
    neck of a jug, and having seized a handful of nuts will not open its
    fist for fear of losing what it holds, and therefore perishes, the
    French when they left Moscow had inevitably to perish because they
    carried their loot with them, yet to abandon what they had stolen was as
    impossible for them as it is for the monkey to open its paw and let go
    of its nuts. Ten minutes after each regiment had entered a Moscow
    district, not a soldier or officer was left. Men in military uniforms
    and Hessian boots could be seen through the windows, laughing and
    walking through the rooms. In cellars and storerooms similar men were
    busy among the provisions, and in the yards unlocking or breaking open
    coach house and stable doors, lighting fires in kitchens and kneading
    and baking bread with rolled-up sleeves, and cooking; or frightening,
    amusing, or caressing women and children. There were many such men both
    in the shops and houses--but there was no army.
    
    Order after order was issued by the French commanders that day
    forbidding the men to disperse about the town, sternly forbidding any
    violence to the inhabitants or any looting, and announcing a roll call
    for that very evening. But despite all these measures the men, who had
    till then constituted an army, flowed all over the wealthy, deserted
    city with its comforts and plentiful supplies. As a hungry herd of
    cattle keeps well together when crossing a barren field, but gets out of
    hand and at once disperses uncontrollably as soon as it reaches rich
    pastures, so did the army disperse all over the wealthy city.
    
    No residents were left in Moscow, and the soldiers--like water
    percolating through sand--spread irresistibly through the city in all
    directions from the Kremlin into which they had first marched. The
    cavalry, on entering a merchant's house that had been abandoned and
    finding there stabling more than sufficient for their horses, went on,
    all the same, to the next house which seemed to them better. Many of
    them appropriated several houses, chalked their names on them, and
    quarreled and even fought with other companies for them. Before they had
    had time to secure quarters the soldiers ran out into the streets to see
    the city and, hearing that everything had been abandoned, rushed to
    places where valuables were to be had for the taking. The officers
    followed to check the soldiers and were involuntarily drawn into doing
    the same. In Carriage Row carriages had been left in the shops, and
    generals flocked there to select caleches and coaches for themselves.
    The few inhabitants who had remained invited commanding officers to
    their houses, hoping thereby to secure themselves from being plundered.
    There were masses of wealth and there seemed no end to it. All around
    the quarters occupied by the French were other regions still unexplored
    and unoccupied where, they thought, yet greater riches might be found.
    And Moscow engulfed the army ever deeper and deeper. When water is
    spilled on dry ground both the dry ground and the water disappear and
    mud results; and in the same way the entry of the famished army into the
    rich and deserted city resulted in fires and looting and the destruction
    of both the army and the wealthy city.
    
    The French attributed the Fire of Moscow au patriotisme feroce de
    Rostopchine, * the Russians to the barbarity of the French. In reality,
    however, it was not, and could not be, possible to explain the burning
    of Moscow by making any individual, or any group of people, responsible
    for it. Moscow was burned because it found itself in a position in which
    any town built of wood was bound to burn, quite apart from whether it
    had, or had not, a hundred and thirty inferior fire engines. Deserted
    Moscow had to burn as inevitably as a heap of shavings has to burn on
    which sparks continually fall for several days. A town built of wood,
    where scarcely a day passes without conflagrations when the house owners
    are in residence and a police force is present, cannot help burning when
    its inhabitants have left it and it is occupied by soldiers who smoke
    pipes, make campfires of the Senate chairs in the Senate Square, and
    cook themselves meals twice a day. In peacetime it is only necessary to
    billet troops in the villages of any district and the number of fires in
    that district immediately increases. How much then must the probability
    of fire be increased in an abandoned, wooden town where foreign troops
    are quartered. "Le patriotisme feroce de Rostopchine" and the barbarity
    of the French were not to blame in the matter. Moscow was set on fire by
    the soldiers' pipes, kitchens, and campfires, and by the carelessness of
    enemy soldiers occupying houses they did not own. Even if there was any
    arson (which is very doubtful, for no one had any reason to burn the
    houses--in any case a troublesome and dangerous thing to do), arson
    cannot be regarded as the cause, for the same thing would have happened
    without any incendiarism.
    
    * To Rostopchin's ferocious patriotism.
    
    However tempting it might be for the French to blame Rostopchin's
    ferocity and for Russians to blame the scoundrel Bonaparte, or later on
    to place an heroic torch in the hands of their own people, it is
    impossible not to see that there could be no such direct cause of the
    fire, for Moscow had to burn as every village, factory, or house must
    burn which is left by its owners and in which strangers are allowed to
    live and cook their porridge. Moscow was burned by its inhabitants, it
    is true, but by those who had abandoned it and not by those who remained
    in it. Moscow when occupied by the enemy did not remain intact like
    Berlin, Vienna, and other towns, simply because its inhabitants
    abandoned it and did not welcome the French with bread and salt, nor
    bring them the keys of the city.
    
    CHAPTER XXVII
    
    The absorption of the French by Moscow, radiating starwise as it did,
    only reached the quarter where Pierre was staying by the evening of the
    second of September.
    
    After the last two days spent in solitude and unusual circumstances,
    Pierre was in a state bordering on insanity. He was completely obsessed
    by one persistent thought. He did not know how or when this thought had
    taken such possession of him, but he remembered nothing of the past,
    understood nothing of the present, and all he saw and heard appeared to
    him like a dream.
    
    He had left home only to escape the intricate tangle of life's demands
    that enmeshed him, and which in his present condition he was unable to
    unravel. He had gone to Joseph Alexeevich's house, on the plea of
    sorting the deceased's books and papers, only in search of rest from
    life's turmoil, for in his mind the memory of Joseph Alexeevich was
    connected with a world of eternal, solemn, and calm thoughts, quite
    contrary to the restless confusion into which he felt himself being
    drawn. He sought a quiet refuge, and in Joseph Alexeevich's study he
    really found it. When he sat with his elbows on the dusty writing table
    in the deathlike stillness of the study, calm and significant memories
    of the last few days rose one after another in his imagination,
    particularly of the battle of Borodino and of that vague sense of his
    own insignificance and insincerity compared with the truth, simplicity,
    and strength of the class of men he mentally classed as they. When
    Gerasim roused him from his reverie the idea occurred to him of taking
    part in the popular defense of Moscow which he knew was projected. And
    with that object he had asked Gerasim to get him a peasant's coat and a
    pistol, confiding to him his intentions of remaining in Joseph
    Alexeevich's house and keeping his name secret. Then during the first
    day spent in inaction and solitude (he tried several times to fix his
    attention on the masonic manuscripts, but was unable to do so) the idea
    that had previously occurred to him of the cabalistic significance of
    his name in connection with Bonaparte's more than once vaguely presented
    itself. But the idea that he, L'russe Besuhof, was destined to set a
    limit to the power of the Beast was as yet only one of the fancies that
    often passed through his mind and left no trace behind.
    
    When, having bought the coat merely with the object of taking part among
    the people in the defense of Moscow, Pierre had met the Rostovs and
    Natasha had said to him: "Are you remaining in Moscow?... How splendid!"
    the thought flashed into his mind that it really would be a good thing,
    even if Moscow were taken, for him to remain there and do what he was
    predestined to do.
    
    Next day, with the sole idea of not sparing himself and not lagging in
    any way behind them, Pierre went to the Three Hills gate. But when he
    returned to the house convinced that Moscow would not be defended, he
    suddenly felt that what before had seemed to him merely a possibility
    had now become absolutely necessary and inevitable. He must remain in
    Moscow, concealing his name, and must meet Napoleon and kill him, and
    either perish or put an end to the misery of all Europe--which it seemed
    to him was solely due to Napoleon.
    
    Pierre knew all the details of the attempt on Bonaparte's life in 1809
    by a German student in Vienna, and knew that the student had been shot.
    And the risk to which he would expose his life by carrying out his
    design excited him still more.
    
    Two equally strong feelings drew Pierre irresistibly to this purpose.
    The first was a feeling of the necessity of sacrifice and suffering in
    view of the common calamity, the same feeling that had caused him to go
    to Mozhaysk on the twenty-fifth and to make his way to the very thick of
    the battle and had now caused him to run away from his home and, in
    place of the luxury and comfort to which he was accustomed, to sleep on
    a hard sofa without undressing and eat the same food as Gerasim. The
    other was that vague and quite Russian feeling of contempt for
    everything conventional, artificial, and human--for everything the
    majority of men regard as the greatest good in the world. Pierre had
    first experienced this strange and fascinating feeling at the Sloboda
    Palace, when he had suddenly felt that wealth, power, and life--all that
    men so painstakingly acquire and guard--if it has any worth has so only
    by reason of the joy with which it can all be renounced.
    
    It was the feeling that induces a volunteer recruit to spend his last
    penny on drink, and a drunken man to smash mirrors or glasses for no
    apparent reason and knowing that it will cost him all the money he
    possesses: the feeling which causes a man to perform actions which from
    an ordinary point of view are insane, to test, as it were, his personal
    power and strength, affirming the existence of a higher, nonhuman
    criterion of life.
    
    From the very day Pierre had experienced this feeling for the first time
    at the Sloboda Palace he had been continuously under its influence, but
    only now found full satisfaction for it. Moreover, at this moment Pierre
    was supported in his design and prevented from renouncing it by what he
    had already done in that direction. If he were now to leave Moscow like
    everyone else, his flight from home, the peasant coat, the pistol, and
    his announcement to the Rostovs that he would remain in Moscow would all
    become not merely meaningless but contemptible and ridiculous, and to
    this Pierre was very sensitive.
    
    Pierre's physical condition, as is always the case, corresponded to his
    mental state. The unaccustomed coarse food, the vodka he drank during
    those days, the absence of wine and cigars, his dirty unchanged linen,
    two almost sleepless nights passed on a short sofa without bedding--all
    this kept him in a state of excitement bordering on insanity.
    
    It was two o'clock in the afternoon. The French had already entered
    Moscow. Pierre knew this, but instead of acting he only thought about
    his undertaking, going over its minutest details in his mind. In his
    fancy he did not clearly picture to himself either the striking of the
    blow or the death of Napoleon, but with extraordinary vividness and
    melancholy enjoyment imagined his own destruction and heroic endurance.
    
    "Yes, alone, for the sake of all, I must do it or perish!" he thought.
    "Yes, I will approach... and then suddenly... with pistol or dagger? But
    that is all the same! 'It is not I but the hand of Providence that
    punishes thee,' I shall say," thought he, imagining what he would say
    when killing Napoleon. "Well then, take me and execute me!" he went on,
    speaking to himself and bowing his head with a sad but firm expression.
    
    While Pierre, standing in the middle of the room, was talking to himself
    in this way, the study door opened and on the threshold appeared the
    figure of Makar Alexeevich, always so timid before but now quite
    transformed.
    
    His dressing gown was unfastened, his face red and distorted. He was
    obviously drunk. On seeing Pierre he grew confused at first, but
    noticing embarrassment on Pierre's face immediately grew bold and,
    staggering on his thin legs, advanced into the middle of the room.
    
    "They're frightened," he said confidentially in a hoarse voice. "I say I
    won't surrender, I say... Am I not right, sir?"
    
    He paused and then suddenly seeing the pistol on the table seized it
    with unexpected rapidity and ran out into the corridor.
    
    Gerasim and the porter, who had followed Makar Alexeevich, stopped him
    in the vestibule and tried to take the pistol from him. Pierre, coming
    out into the corridor, looked with pity and repulsion at the half-crazy
    old man. Makar Alexeevich, frowning with exertion, held on to the pistol
    and screamed hoarsely, evidently with some heroic fancy in his head.
    
    "To arms! Board them! No, you shan't get it," he yelled.
    
    "That will do, please, that will do. Have the goodness--please, sir, to
    let go! Please, sir..." pleaded Gerasim, trying carefully to steer Makar
    Alexeevich by the elbows back to the door.
    
    "Who are you? Bonaparte!..." shouted Makar Alexeevich.
    
    "That's not right, sir. Come to your room, please, and rest. Allow me to
    have the pistol."
    
    "Be off, thou base slave! Touch me not! See this?" shouted Makar
    Alexeevich, brandishing the pistol. "Board them!"
    
    "Catch hold!" whispered Gerasim to the porter.
    
    They seized Makar Alexeevich by the arms and dragged him to the door.
    
    The vestibule was filled with the discordant sounds of a struggle and of
    a tipsy, hoarse voice.
    
    Suddenly a fresh sound, a piercing feminine scream, reverberated from
    the porch and the cook came running into the vestibule.
    
    "It's them! Gracious heavens! O Lord, four of them, horsemen!" she
    cried.
    
    Gerasim and the porter let Makar Alexeevich go, and in the now silent
    corridor the sound of several hands knocking at the front door could be
    heard.
    
    CHAPTER XXVIII
    
    Pierre, having decided that until he had carried out his design he would
    disclose neither his identity nor his knowledge of French, stood at the
    half-open door of the corridor, intending to conceal himself as soon as
    the French entered. But the French entered and still Pierre did not
    retire--an irresistible curiosity kept him there.
    
    There were two of them. One was an officer--a tall, soldierly, handsome
    man--the other evidently a private or an orderly, sunburned, short, and
    thin, with sunken cheeks and a dull expression. The officer walked in
    front, leaning on a stick and slightly limping. When he had advanced a
    few steps he stopped, having apparently decided that these were good
    quarters, turned round to the soldiers standing at the entrance, and in
    a loud voice of command ordered them to put up the horses. Having done
    that, the officer, lifting his elbow with a smart gesture, stroked his
    mustache and lightly touched his hat.
    
    "Bonjour, la compagnie!" * said he gaily, smiling and looking about him.
    
    * "Good day, everybody!"
    
    No one gave any reply.
    
    "Vous etes le bourgeois?" * the officer asked Gerasim.
    
    * "Are you the master here?"
    
    Gerasim gazed at the officer with an alarmed and inquiring look.
    
    "Quartier, quartier, logement!" said the officer, looking down at the
    little man with a condescending and good-natured smile. "Les francais
    sont de bons enfants. Que diable! Voyons! Ne nous fachons pas, mon
    vieux!" * added he, clapping the scared and silent Gerasim on the
    shoulder. "Well, does no one speak French in this establishment?" he
    asked again in French, looking around and meeting Pierre's eyes. Pierre
    moved away from the door.
    
    * "Quarters, quarters, lodgings! The French are good fellows. What the
    devil! There, don't let us be cross, old fellow!"
    
    Again the officer turned to Gerasim and asked him to show him the rooms
    in the house.
    
    "Master, not here--don't understand... me, you..." said Gerasim, trying
    to render his words more comprehensible by contorting them.
    
    Still smiling, the French officer spread out his hands before Gerasim's
    nose, intimating that he did not understand him either, and moved,
    limping, to the door at which Pierre was standing. Pierre wished to go
    away and conceal himself, but at that moment he saw Makar Alexeevich
    appearing at the open kitchen door with the pistol in his hand. With a
    madman's cunning, Makar Alexeevich eyed the Frenchman, raised his
    pistol, and took aim.
    
    "Board them!" yelled the tipsy man, trying to press the trigger. Hearing
    the yell the officer turned round, and at the same moment Pierre threw
    himself on the drunkard. Just when Pierre snatched at and struck up the
    pistol Makar Alexeevich at last got his fingers on the trigger, there
    was a deafening report, and all were enveloped in a cloud of smoke. The
    Frenchman turned pale and rushed to the door.
    
    Forgetting his intention of concealing his knowledge of French, Pierre,
    snatching away the pistol and throwing it down, ran up to the officer
    and addressed him in French.
    
    "You are not wounded?" he asked.
    
    "I think not," answered the Frenchman, feeling himself over. "But I have
    had a lucky escape this time," he added, pointing to the damaged plaster
    of the wall. "Who is that man?" said he, looking sternly at Pierre.
    
    "Oh, I am really in despair at what has occurred," said Pierre rapidly,
    quite forgetting the part he had intended to play. "He is an unfortunate
    madman who did not know what he was doing."
    
    The officer went up to Makar Alexeevich and took him by the collar.
    
    Makar Alexeevich was standing with parted lips, swaying, as if about to
    fall asleep, as he leaned against the wall.
    
    "Brigand! You shall pay for this," said the Frenchman, letting go of
    him. "We French are merciful after victory, but we do not pardon
    traitors," he added, with a look of gloomy dignity and a fine energetic
    gesture.
    
    Pierre continued, in French, to persuade the officer not to hold that
    drunken imbecile to account. The Frenchman listened in silence with the
    same gloomy expression, but suddenly turned to Pierre with a smile. For
    a few seconds he looked at him in silence. His handsome face assumed a
    melodramatically gentle expression and he held out his hand.
    
    "You have saved my life. You are French," said he.
    
    For a Frenchman that deduction was indubitable. Only a Frenchman could
    perform a great deed, and to save his life--the life of M. Ramballe,
    captain of the 13th Light Regiment--was undoubtedly a very great deed.
    
    But however indubitable that conclusion and the officer's conviction
    based upon it, Pierre felt it necessary to disillusion him.
    
    "I am Russian," he said quickly.
    
    "Tut, tut, tut! Tell that to others," said the officer, waving his
    finger before his nose and smiling. "You shall tell me all about that
    presently. I am delighted to meet a compatriot. Well, and what are we to
    do with this man?" he added, addressing himself to Pierre as to a
    brother.
    
    Even if Pierre were not a Frenchman, having once received that loftiest
    of human appellations he could not renounce it, said the officer's look
    and tone. In reply to his last question Pierre again explained who Makar
    Alexeevich was and how just before their arrival that drunken imbecile
    had seized the loaded pistol which they had not had time to recover from
    him, and begged the officer to let the deed go unpunished.
    
    The Frenchman expanded his chest and made a majestic gesture with his
    arm.
    
    "You have saved my life! You are French. You ask his pardon? I grant it
    you. Lead that man away!" said he quickly and energetically, and taking
    the arm of Pierre whom he had promoted to be a Frenchman for saving his
    life, he went with him into the room.
    
    The soldiers in the yard, hearing the shot, came into the passage asking
    what had happened, and expressed their readiness to punish the culprits,
    but the officer sternly checked them.
    
    "You will be called in when you are wanted," he said.
    
    The soldiers went out again, and the orderly, who had meanwhile had time
    to visit the kitchen, came up to his officer.
    
    "Captain, there is soup and a leg of mutton in the kitchen," said he.
    "Shall I serve them up?"
    
    "Yes, and some wine," answered the captain.
    
    CHAPTER XXIX
    
    When the French officer went into the room with Pierre the latter again
    thought it his duty to assure him that he was not French and wished to
    go away, but the officer would not hear of it. He was so very polite,
    amiable, good-natured, and genuinely grateful to Pierre for saving his
    life that Pierre had not the heart to refuse, and sat down with him in
    the parlor--the first room they entered. To Pierre's assurances that he
    was not a Frenchman, the captain, evidently not understanding how anyone
    could decline so flattering an appellation, shrugged his shoulders and
    said that if Pierre absolutely insisted on passing for a Russian let it
    be so, but for all that he would be forever bound to Pierre by gratitude
    for saving his life.
    
    Had this man been endowed with the slightest capacity for perceiving the
    feelings of others, and had he at all understood what Pierre's feelings
    were, the latter would probably have left him, but the man's animated
    obtuseness to everything other than himself disarmed Pierre.
    
    "A Frenchman or a Russian prince incognito," said the officer, looking
    at Pierre's fine though dirty linen and at the ring on his finger. "I
    owe my life to you and offer you my friendship. A Frenchman never
    forgets either an insult or a service. I offer you my friendship. That
    is all I can say."
    
    There was so much good nature and nobility (in the French sense of the
    word) in the officer's voice, in the expression of his face and in his
    gestures, that Pierre, unconsciously smiling in response to the
    Frenchman's smile, pressed the hand held out to him.
    
    "Captain Ramballe, of the 13th Light Regiment, Chevalier of the Legion
    of Honor for the affair on the seventh of September," he introduced
    himself, a self-satisfied irrepressible smile puckering his lips under
    his mustache. "Will you now be so good as to tell me with whom I have
    the honor of conversing so pleasantly, instead of being in the ambulance
    with that maniac's bullet in my body?"
    
    Pierre replied that he could not tell him his name and, blushing, began
    to try to invent a name and to say something about his reason for
    concealing it, but the Frenchman hastily interrupted him.
    
    "Oh, please!" said he. "I understand your reasons. You are an officer...
    a superior officer perhaps. You have borne arms against us. That's not
    my business. I owe you my life. That is enough for me. I am quite at
    your service. You belong to the gentry?" he concluded with a shade of
    inquiry in his tone. Pierre bent his head. "Your baptismal name, if you
    please. That is all I ask. Monsieur Pierre, you say.... That's all I
    want to know."
    
    When the mutton and an omelet had been served and a samovar and vodka
    brought, with some wine which the French had taken from a Russian cellar
    and brought with them, Ramballe invited Pierre to share his dinner, and
    himself began to eat greedily and quickly like a healthy and hungry man,
    munching his food rapidly with his strong teeth, continually smacking
    his lips, and repeating--"Excellent! Delicious!" His face grew red and
    was covered with perspiration. Pierre was hungry and shared the dinner
    with pleasure. Morel, the orderly, brought some hot water in a saucepan
    and placed a bottle of claret in it. He also brought a bottle of kvass,
    taken from the kitchen for them to try. That beverage was already known
    to the French and had been given a special name. They called it limonade
    de cochon (pig's lemonade), and Morel spoke well of the limonade de
    cochon he had found in the kitchen. But as the captain had the wine they
    had taken while passing through Moscow, he left the kvass to Morel and
    applied himself to the bottle of Bordeaux. He wrapped the bottle up to
    its neck in a table napkin and poured out wine for himself and for
    Pierre. The satisfaction of his hunger and the wine rendered the captain
    still more lively and he chatted incessantly all through dinner.
    
    "Yes, my dear Monsieur Pierre, I owe you a fine votive candle for saving
    me from that maniac.... You see, I have bullets enough in my body
    already. Here is one I got at Wagram" (he touched his side) "and a
    second at Smolensk"--he showed a scar on his cheek--"and this leg which
    as you see does not want to march, I got that on the seventh at the
    great battle of la Moskowa. Sacre Dieu! It was splendid! That deluge of
    fire was worth seeing. It was a tough job you set us there, my word! You
    may be proud of it! And on my honor, in spite of the cough I caught
    there, I should be ready to begin again. I pity those who did not see
    it."
    
    "I was there," said Pierre.
    
    "Bah, really? So much the better! You are certainly brave foes. The
    great redoubt held out well, by my pipe!" continued the Frenchman. "And
    you made us pay dear for it. I was at it three times--sure as I sit
    here. Three times we reached the guns and three times we were thrown
    back like cardboard figures. Oh, it was beautiful, Monsieur Pierre! Your
    grenadiers were splendid, by heaven! I saw them close up their ranks six
    times in succession and march as if on parade. Fine fellows! Our King of
    Naples, who knows what's what, cried 'Bravo!' Ha, ha! So you are one of
    us soldiers!" he added, smiling, after a momentary pause. "So much the
    better, so much the better, Monsieur Pierre! Terrible in battle...
    gallant... with the fair" (he winked and smiled), "that's what the
    French are, Monsieur Pierre, aren't they?"
    
    The captain was so naively and good-humoredly gay, so real, and so
    pleased with himself that Pierre almost winked back as he looked merrily
    at him. Probably the word "gallant" turned the captain's thoughts to the
    state of Moscow.
    
    "Apropos, tell me please, is it true that the women have all left
    Moscow? What a queer idea! What had they to be afraid of?"
    
    "Would not the French ladies leave Paris if the Russians entered it?"
    asked Pierre.
    
    "Ha, ha, ha!" The Frenchman emitted a merry, sanguine chuckle, patting
    Pierre on the shoulder. "What a thing to say!" he exclaimed. "Paris?...
    But Paris, Paris..."
    
    "Paris--the capital of the world," Pierre finished his remark for him.
    
    The captain looked at Pierre. He had a habit of stopping short in the
    middle of his talk and gazing intently with his laughing, kindly eyes.
    
    "Well, if you hadn't told me you were Russian, I should have wagered
    that you were Parisian! You have that... I don't know what, that..." and
    having uttered this compliment, he again gazed at him in silence.
    
    "I have been in Paris. I spent years there," said Pierre.
    
    "Oh yes, one sees that plainly. Paris!... A man who doesn't know Paris
    is a savage. You can tell a Parisian two leagues off. Paris is Talma, la
    Duchenois, Potier, the Sorbonne, the boulevards," and noticing that his
    conclusion was weaker than what had gone before, he added quickly:
    "There is only one Paris in the world. You have been to Paris and have
    remained Russian. Well, I don't esteem you the less for it."
    
    Under the influence of the wine he had drunk, and after the days he had
    spent alone with his depressing thoughts, Pierre involuntarily enjoyed
    talking with this cheerful and good-natured man.
    
    "To return to your ladies--I hear they are lovely. What a wretched idea
    to go and bury themselves in the steppes when the French army is in
    Moscow. What a chance those girls have missed! Your peasants, now--
    that's another thing; but you civilized people, you ought to know us
    better than that. We took Vienna, Berlin, Madrid, Naples, Rome, Warsaw,
    all the world's capitals.... We are feared, but we are loved. We are
    nice to know. And then the Emperor..." he began, but Pierre interrupted
    him.
    
    "The Emperor," Pierre repeated, and his face suddenly became sad and
    embarrassed, "is the Emperor...?"
    
    "The Emperor? He is generosity, mercy, justice, order, genius--that's
    what the Emperor is! It is I, Ramballe, who tell you so.... I assure you
    I was his enemy eight years ago. My father was an emigrant count.... But
    that man has vanquished me. He has taken hold of me. I could not resist
    the sight of the grandeur and glory with which he has covered France.
    When I understood what he wanted--when I saw that he was preparing a bed
    of laurels for us, you know, I said to myself: 'That is a monarch,' and
    I devoted myself to him! So there! Oh yes, mon cher, he is the greatest
    man of the ages past or future."
    
    "Is he in Moscow?" Pierre stammered with a guilty look.
    
    The Frenchman looked at his guilty face and smiled.
    
    "No, he will make his entry tomorrow," he replied, and continued his
    talk.
    
    Their conversation was interrupted by the cries of several voices at the
    gate and by Morel, who came to say that some Wurttemberg hussars had
    come and wanted to put up their horses in the yard where the captain's
    horses were. This difficulty had arisen chiefly because the hussars did
    not understand what was said to them in French.
    
    The captain had their senior sergeant called in, and in a stern voice
    asked him to what regiment he belonged, who was his commanding officer,
    and by what right he allowed himself to claim quarters that were already
    occupied. The German who knew little French, answered the two first
    questions by giving the names of his regiment and of his commanding
    officer, but in reply to the third question which he did not understand
    said, introducing broken French into his own German, that he was the
    quartermaster of the regiment and his commander had ordered him to
    occupy all the houses one after another. Pierre, who knew German,
    translated what the German said to the captain and gave the captain's
    reply to the Wurttemberg hussar in German. When he had understood what
    was said to him, the German submitted and took his men elsewhere. The
    captain went out into the porch and gave some orders in a loud voice.
    
    When he returned to the room Pierre was sitting in the same place as
    before, with his head in his hands. His face expressed suffering. He
    really was suffering at that moment. When the captain went out and he
    was left alone, suddenly he came to himself and realized the position he
    was in. It was not that Moscow had been taken or that the happy
    conquerors were masters in it and were patronizing him. Painful as that
    was it was not that which tormented Pierre at the moment. He was
    tormented by the consciousness of his own weakness. The few glasses of
    wine he had drunk and the conversation with this good-natured man had
    destroyed the mood of concentrated gloom in which he had spent the last
    few days and which was essential for the execution of his design. The
    pistol, dagger, and peasant coat were ready. Napoleon was to enter the
    town next day. Pierre still considered that it would be a useful and
    worthy action to slay the evildoer, but now he felt that he would not do
    it. He did not know why, but he felt a foreboding that he would not
    carry out his intention. He struggled against the confession of his
    weakness but dimly felt that he could not overcome it and that his
    former gloomy frame of mind, concerning vengeance, killing, and self-
    sacrifice, had been dispersed like dust by contact with the first man he
    met.
    
    The captain returned to the room, limping slightly and whistling a tune.
    
    The Frenchman's chatter which had previously amused Pierre now repelled
    him. The tune he was whistling, his gait, and the gesture with which he
    twirled his mustache, all now seemed offensive. "I will go away
    immediately. I won't say another word to him," thought Pierre. He
    thought this, but still sat in the same place. A strange feeling of
    weakness tied him to the spot; he wished to get up and go away, but
    could not do so.
    
    The captain, on the other hand, seemed very cheerful. He paced up and
    down the room twice. His eyes shone and his mustache twitched as if he
    were smiling to himself at some amusing thought.
    
    "The colonel of those Wurttembergers is delightful," he suddenly said.
    "He's a German, but a nice fellow all the same.... But he's a German."
    He sat down facing Pierre. "By the way, you know German, then?"
    
    Pierre looked at him in silence.
    
    "What is the German for 'shelter'?"
    
    "Shelter?" Pierre repeated. "The German for shelter is Unterkunft."
    
    "How do you say it?" the captain asked quickly and doubtfully.
    
    "Unterkunft," Pierre repeated.
    
    "Onterkoff," said the captain and looked at Pierre for some seconds with
    laughing eyes. "These Germans are first-rate fools, don't you think so,
    Monsieur Pierre?" he concluded.
    
    "Well, let's have another bottle of this Moscow Bordeaux, shall we?
    Morel will warm us up another little bottle. Morel!" he called out
    gaily.
    
    Morel brought candles and a bottle of wine. The captain looked at Pierre
    by the candlelight and was evidently struck by the troubled expression
    on his companion's face. Ramballe, with genuine distress and sympathy in
    his face, went up to Pierre and bent over him.
    
    "There now, we're sad," said he, touching Pierre's hand. "Have I upset
    you? No, really, have you anything against me?" he asked Pierre.
    "Perhaps it's the state of affairs?"
    
    Pierre did not answer, but looked cordially into the Frenchman's eyes
    whose expression of sympathy was pleasing to him.
    
    "Honestly, without speaking of what I owe you, I feel friendship for
    you. Can I do anything for you? Dispose of me. It is for life and death.
    I say it with my hand on my heart!" said he, striking his chest.
    
    "Thank you," said Pierre.
    
    The captain gazed intently at him as he had done when he learned that
    "shelter" was Unterkunft in German, and his face suddenly brightened.
    
    "Well, in that case, I drink to our friendship!" he cried gaily, filling
    two glasses with wine.
    
    Pierre took one of the glasses and emptied it. Ramballe emptied his too,
    again pressed Pierre's hand, and leaned his elbows on the table in a
    pensive attitude.
    
    "Yes, my dear friend," he began, "such is fortune's caprice. Who would
    have said that I should be a soldier and a captain of dragoons in the
    service of Bonaparte, as we used to call him? Yet here I am in Moscow
    with him. I must tell you, mon cher," he continued in the sad and
    measured tones of a man who intends to tell a long story, "that our name
    is one of the most ancient in France."
    
    And with a Frenchman's easy and naive frankness the captain told Pierre
    the story of his ancestors, his childhood, youth, and manhood, and all
    about his relations and his financial and family affairs, "ma pauvre
    mere" playing of course an important part in the story.
    
    "But all that is only life's setting, the real thing is love--love! Am I
    not right, Monsieur Pierre?" said he, growing animated. "Another glass?"
    
    Pierre again emptied his glass and poured himself out a third.
    
    "Oh, women, women!" and the captain, looking with glistening eyes at
    Pierre, began talking of love and of his love affairs.
    
    There were very many of these, as one could easily believe, looking at
    the officer's handsome, self-satisfied face, and noting the eager
    enthusiasm with which he spoke of women. Though all Ramballe's love
    stories had the sensual character which Frenchmen regard as the special
    charm and poetry of love, yet he told his story with such sincere
    conviction that he alone had experienced and known all the charm of love
    and he described women so alluringly that Pierre listened to him with
    curiosity.
    
    It was plain that l'amour which the Frenchman was so fond of was not
    that low and simple kind that Pierre had once felt for his wife, nor was
    it the romantic love stimulated by himself that he experienced for
    Natasha. (Ramballe despised both these kinds of love equally: the one he
    considered the "love of clodhoppers" and the other the "love of
    simpletons.") L'amour which the Frenchman worshiped consisted
    principally in the unnaturalness of his relation to the woman and in a
    combination of incongruities giving the chief charm to the feeling.
    
    Thus the captain touchingly recounted the story of his love for a
    fascinating marquise of thirty-five and at the same time for a charming,
    innocent child of seventeen, daughter of the bewitching marquise. The
    conflict of magnanimity between the mother and the daughter, ending in
    the mother's sacrificing herself and offering her daughter in marriage
    to her lover, even now agitated the captain, though it was the memory of
    a distant past. Then he recounted an episode in which the husband played
    the part of the lover, and he--the lover--assumed the role of the
    husband, as well as several droll incidents from his recollections of
    Germany, where "shelter" is called Unterkunft and where the husbands eat
    sauerkraut and the young girls are "too blonde."
    
    Finally, the latest episode in Poland still fresh in the captain's
    memory, and which he narrated with rapid gestures and glowing face, was
    of how he had saved the life of a Pole (in general, the saving of life
    continually occurred in the captain's stories) and the Pole had
    entrusted to him his enchanting wife (parisienne de coeur) while himself
    entering the French service. The captain was happy, the enchanting
    Polish lady wished to elope with him, but, prompted by magnanimity, the
    captain restored the wife to the husband, saying as he did so: "I have
    saved your life, and I save your honor!" Having repeated these words the
    captain wiped his eyes and gave himself a shake, as if driving away the
    weakness which assailed him at this touching recollection.
    
    Listening to the captain's tales, Pierre--as often happens late in the
    evening and under the influence of wine--followed all that was told him,
    understood it all, and at the same time followed a train of personal
    memories which, he knew not why, suddenly arose in his mind. While
    listening to these love stories his own love for Natasha unexpectedly
    rose to his mind, and going over the pictures of that love in his
    imagination he mentally compared them with Ramballe's tales. Listening
    to the story of the struggle between love and duty, Pierre saw before
    his eyes every minutest detail of his last meeting with the object of
    his love at the Sukharev water tower. At the time of that meeting it had
    not produced an effect upon him--he had not even once recalled it. But
    now it seemed to him that that meeting had had in it something very
    important and poetic.
    
    "Peter Kirilovich, come here! We have recognized you," he now seemed to
    hear the words she had uttered and to see before him her eyes, her
    smile, her traveling hood, and a stray lock of her hair... and there
    seemed to him something pathetic and touching in all this.
    
    Having finished his tale about the enchanting Polish lady, the captain
    asked Pierre if he had ever experienced a similar impulse to sacrifice
    himself for love and a feeling of envy of the legitimate husband.
    
    Challenged by this question Pierre raised his head and felt a need to
    express the thoughts that filled his mind. He began to explain that he
    understood love for a women somewhat differently. He said that in all
    his life he had loved and still loved only one woman, and that she could
    never be his.
    
    "Tiens!" said the captain.
    
    Pierre then explained that he had loved this woman from his earliest
    years, but that he had not dared to think of her because she was too
    young, and because he had been an illegitimate son without a name.
    Afterwards when he had received a name and wealth he dared not think of
    her because he loved her too well, placing her far above everything in
    the world, and especially therefore above himself.
    
    When he had reached this point, Pierre asked the captain whether he
    understood that.
    
    The captain made a gesture signifying that even if he did not understand
    it he begged Pierre to continue.
    
    "Platonic love, clouds..." he muttered.
    
    Whether it was the wine he had drunk, or an impulse of frankness, or the
    thought that this man did not, and never would, know any of those who
    played a part in his story, or whether it was all these things together,
    something loosened Pierre's tongue. Speaking thickly and with a faraway
    look in his shining eyes, he told the whole story of his life: his
    marriage, Natasha's love for his best friend, her betrayal of him, and
    all his own simple relations with her. Urged on by Ramballe's questions
    he also told what he had at first concealed--his own position and even
    his name.
    
    More than anything else in Pierre's story the captain was impressed by
    the fact that Pierre was very rich, had two mansions in Moscow, and that
    he had abandoned everything and not left the city, but remained there
    concealing his name and station.
    
    When it was late at night they went out together into the street. The
    night was warm and light. To the left of the house on the Pokrovka a
    fire glowed--the first of those that were beginning in Moscow. To the
    right and high up in the sky was the sickle of the waning moon and
    opposite to it hung that bright comet which was connected in Pierre's
    heart with his love. At the gate stood Gerasim, the cook, and two
    Frenchmen. Their laughter and their mutually incomprehensible remarks in
    two languages could be heard. They were looking at the glow seen in the
    town.
    
    There was nothing terrible in the one small, distant fire in the immense
    city.
    
    Gazing at the high starry sky, at the moon, at the comet, and at the
    glow from the fire, Pierre experienced a joyful emotion. "There now, how
    good it is, what more does one need?" thought he. And suddenly
    remembering his intention he grew dizzy and felt so faint that he leaned
    against the fence to save himself from falling.
    
    Without taking leave of his new friend, Pierre left the gate with
    unsteady steps and returning to his room lay down on the sofa and
    immediately fell asleep.
    
    CHAPTER XXX
    
    The glow of the first fire that began on the second of September was
    watched from the various roads by the fugitive Muscovites and by the
    retreating troops, with many different feelings.
    
    The Rostov party spent the night at Mytishchi, fourteen miles from
    Moscow. They had started so late on the first of September, the road had
    been so blocked by vehicles and troops, so many things had been
    forgotten for which servants were sent back, that they had decided to
    spend that night at a place three miles out of Moscow. The next morning
    they woke late and were again delayed so often that they only got as far
    as Great Mytishchi. At ten o'clock that evening the Rostov family and
    the wounded traveling with them were all distributed in the yards and
    huts of that large village. The Rostovs' servants and coachmen and the
    orderlies of the wounded officers, after attending to their masters, had
    supper, fed the horses, and came out into the porches.
    
    In a neighboring hut lay Raevski's adjutant with a fractured wrist. The
    awful pain he suffered made him moan incessantly and piteously, and his
    moaning sounded terrible in the darkness of the autumn night. He had
    spent the first night in the same yard as the Rostovs. The countess said
    she had been unable to close her eyes on account of his moaning, and at
    Mytishchi she moved into a worse hut simply to be farther away from the
    wounded man.
    
    In the darkness of the night one of the servants noticed, above the high
    body of a coach standing before the porch, the small glow of another
    fire. One glow had long been visible and everybody knew that it was
    Little Mytishchi burning--set on fire by Mamonov's Cossacks.
    
    "But look here, brothers, there's another fire!" remarked an orderly.
    
    All turned their attention to the glow.
    
    "But they told us Little Mytishchi had been set on fire by Mamonov's
    Cossacks."
    
    "But that's not Mytishchi, it's farther away."
    
    "Look, it must be in Moscow!"
    
    Two of the gazers went round to the other side of the coach and sat down
    on its steps.
    
    "It's more to the left, why, Little Mytishchi is over there, and this is
    right on the other side."
    
    Several men joined the first two.
    
    "See how it's flaring," said one. "That's a fire in Moscow: either in
    the Sushchevski or the Rogozhski quarter."
    
    No one replied to this remark and for some time they all gazed silently
    at the spreading flames of the second fire in the distance.
    
    Old Daniel Terentich, the count's valet (as he was called), came up to
    the group and shouted at Mishka.
    
    "What are you staring at, you good-for-nothing?... The count will be
    calling and there's nobody there; go and gather the clothes together."
    
    "I only ran out to get some water," said Mishka.
    
    "But what do you think, Daniel Terentich? Doesn't it look as if that
    glow were in Moscow?" remarked one of the footmen.
    
    Daniel Terentich made no reply, and again for a long time they were all
    silent. The glow spread, rising and falling, farther and farther still.
    
    "God have mercy.... It's windy and dry..." said another voice.
    
    "Just look! See what it's doing now. O Lord! You can even see the crows
    flying. Lord have mercy on us sinners!"
    
    "They'll put it out, no fear!"
    
    "Who's to put it out?" Daniel Terentich, who had hitherto been silent,
    was heard to say. His voice was calm and deliberate. "Moscow it is,
    brothers," said he. "Mother Moscow, the white..." his voice faltered,
    and he gave way to an old man's sob.
    
    And it was as if they had all only waited for this to realize the
    significance for them of the glow they were watching. Sighs were heard,
    words of prayer, and the sobbing of the count's old valet.
    
    CHAPTER XXXI
    
    The valet, returning to the cottage, informed the count that Moscow was
    burning. The count donned his dressing gown and went out to look. Sonya
    and Madame Schoss, who had not yet undressed, went out with him. Only
    Natasha and the countess remained in the room. Petya was no longer with
    the family, he had gone on with his regiment which was making for
    Troitsa.
    
    The countess, on hearing that Moscow was on fire, began to cry. Natasha,
    pale, with a fixed look, was sitting on the bench under the icons just
    where she had sat down on arriving and paid no attention to her father's
    words. She was listening to the ceaseless moaning of the adjutant, three
    houses off.
    
    "Oh, how terrible," said Sonya returning from the yard chilled and
    frightened. "I believe the whole of Moscow will burn, there's an awful
    glow! Natasha, do look! You can see it from the window," she said to her
    cousin, evidently wishing to distract her mind.
    
    But Natasha looked at her as if not understanding what was said to her
    and again fixed her eyes on the corner of the stove. She had been in
    this condition of stupor since the morning, when Sonya, to the surprise
    and annoyance of the countess, had for some unaccountable reason found
    it necessary to tell Natasha of Prince Andrew's wound and of his being
    with their party. The countess had seldom been so angry with anyone as
    she was with Sonya. Sonya had cried and begged to be forgiven and now,
    as if trying to atone for her fault, paid unceasing attention to her
    cousin.
    
    "Look, Natasha, how dreadfully it is burning!" said she.
    
    "What's burning?" asked Natasha. "Oh, yes, Moscow."
    
    And as if in order not to offend Sonya and to get rid of her, she turned
    her face to the window, looked out in such a way that it was evident
    that she could not see anything, and again settled down in her former
    attitude.
    
    "But you didn't see it!"
    
    "Yes, really I did," Natasha replied in a voice that pleaded to be left
    in peace.
    
    Both the countess and Sonya understood that, naturally, neither Moscow
    nor the burning of Moscow nor anything else could seem of importance to
    Natasha.
    
    The count returned and lay down behind the partition. The countess went
    up to her daughter and touched her head with the back of her hand as she
    was wont to do when Natasha was ill, then touched her forehead with her
    lips as if to feel whether she was feverish, and finally kissed her.
    
    "You are cold. You are trembling all over. You'd better lie down," said
    the countess.
    
    "Lie down? All right, I will. I'll lie down at once," said Natasha.
    
    When Natasha had been told that morning that Prince Andrew was seriously
    wounded and was traveling with their party, she had at first asked many
    questions: Where was he going? How was he wounded? Was it serious? And
    could she see him? But after she had been told that she could not see
    him, that he was seriously wounded but that his life was not in danger,
    she ceased to ask questions or to speak at all, evidently disbelieving
    what they told her, and convinced that say what she might she would
    still be told the same. All the way she had sat motionless in a corner
    of the coach with wide open eyes, and the expression in them which the
    countess knew so well and feared so much, and now she sat in the same
    way on the bench where she had seated herself on arriving. She was
    planning something and either deciding or had already decided something
    in her mind. The countess knew this, but what it might be she did not
    know, and this alarmed and tormented her.
    
    "Natasha, undress, darling; lie down on my bed."
    
    A bed had been made on a bedstead for the countess only. Madame Schoss
    and the two girls were to sleep on some hay on the floor.
    
    "No, Mamma, I will lie down here on the floor," Natasha replied
    irritably and she went to the window and opened it. Through the open
    window the moans of the adjutant could be heard more distinctly. She put
    her head out into the damp night air, and the countess saw her slim neck
    shaking with sobs and throbbing against the window frame. Natasha knew
    it was not Prince Andrew who was moaning. She knew Prince Andrew was in
    the same yard as themselves and in a part of the hut across the passage;
    but this dreadful incessant moaning made her sob. The countess exchanged
    a look with Sonya.
    
    "Lie down, darling; lie down, my pet," said the countess, softly
    touching Natasha's shoulders. "Come, lie down."
    
    "Oh, yes... I'll lie down at once," said Natasha, and began hurriedly
    undressing, tugging at the tapes of her petticoat.
    
    When she had thrown off her dress and put on a dressing jacket, she sat
    down with her foot under her on the bed that had been made up on the
    floor, jerked her thin and rather short plait of hair to the front, and
    began replaiting it. Her long, thin, practiced fingers rapidly
    unplaited, replaited, and tied up her plait. Her head moved from side to
    side from habit, but her eyes, feverishly wide, looked fixedly before
    her. When her toilet for the night was finished she sank gently onto the
    sheet spread over the hay on the side nearest the door.
    
    "Natasha, you'd better lie in the middle," said Sonya.
    
    "I'll stay here," muttered Natasha. "Do lie down," she added crossly,
    and buried her face in the pillow.
    
    The countess, Madame Schoss, and Sonya undressed hastily and lay down.
    The small lamp in front of the icons was the only light left in the
    room. But in the yard there was a light from the fire at Little
    Mytishchi a mile and a half away, and through the night came the noise
    of people shouting at a tavern Mamonov's Cossacks had set up across the
    street, and the adjutant's unceasing moans could still be heard.
    
    For a long time Natasha listened attentively to the sounds that reached
    her from inside and outside the room and did not move. First she heard
    her mother praying and sighing and the creaking of her bed under her,
    then Madame Schoss' familiar whistling snore and Sonya's gentle
    breathing. Then the countess called to Natasha. Natasha did not answer.
    
    "I think she's asleep, Mamma," said Sonya softly.
    
    After a short silence the countess spoke again but this time no one
    replied.
    
    Soon after that Natasha heard her mother's even breathing. Natasha did
    not move, though her little bare foot, thrust out from under the quilt,
    was growing cold on the bare floor.
    
    As if to celebrate a victory over everybody, a cricket chirped in a
    crack in the wall. A cock crowed far off and another replied near by.
    The shouting in the tavern had died down; only the moaning of the
    adjutant was heard. Natasha sat up.
    
    "Sonya, are you asleep? Mamma?" she whispered.
    
    No one replied. Natasha rose slowly and carefully, crossed herself, and
    stepped cautiously on the cold and dirty floor with her slim, supple,
    bare feet. The boards of the floor creaked. Stepping cautiously from one
    foot to the other she ran like a kitten the few steps to the door and
    grasped the cold door handle.
    
    It seemed to her that something heavy was beating rhythmically against
    all the walls of the room: it was her own heart, sinking with alarm and
    terror and overflowing with love.
    
    She opened the door and stepped across the threshold and onto the cold,
    damp earthen floor of the passage. The cold she felt refreshed her. With
    her bare feet she touched a sleeping man, stepped over him, and opened
    the door into the part of the hut where Prince Andrew lay. It was dark
    in there. In the farthest corner, on a bench beside a bed on which
    something was lying, stood a tallow candle with a long, thick, and
    smoldering wick.
    
    From the moment she had been told that morning of Prince Andrew's wound
    and his presence there, Natasha had resolved to see him. She did not
    know why she had to, she knew the meeting would be painful, but felt the
    more convinced that it was necessary.
    
    All day she had lived only in hope of seeing him that night. But now
    that the moment had come she was filled with dread of what she might
    see. How was he maimed? What was left of him? Was he like that incessant
    moaning of the adjutant's? Yes, he was altogether like that. In her
    imagination he was that terrible moaning personified. When she saw an
    indistinct shape in the corner, and mistook his knees raised under the
    quilt for his shoulders, she imagined a horrible body there, and stood
    still in terror. But an irresistible impulse drew her forward. She
    cautiously took one step and then another, and found herself in the
    middle of a small room containing baggage. Another man--Timokhin--was
    lying in a corner on the benches beneath the icons, and two others--the
    doctor and a valet--lay on the floor.
    
    The valet sat up and whispered something. Timokhin, kept awake by the
    pain in his wounded leg, gazed with wide-open eyes at this strange
    apparition of a girl in a white chemise, dressing jacket, and nightcap.
    The valet's sleepy, frightened exclamation, "What do you want? What's
    the matter?" made Natasha approach more swiftly to what was lying in the
    corner. Horribly unlike a man as that body looked, she must see him. She
    passed the valet, the snuff fell from the candle wick, and she saw
    Prince Andrew clearly with his arms outside the quilt, and such as she
    had always seen him.
    
    He was the same as ever, but the feverish color of his face, his
    glittering eyes rapturously turned toward her, and especially his neck,
    delicate as a child's, revealed by the turn-down collar of his shirt,
    gave him a peculiarly innocent, childlike look, such as she had never
    seen on him before. She went up to him and with a swift, flexible,
    youthful movement dropped on her knees.
    
    He smiled and held out his hand to her.
    
    CHAPTER XXXII
    
    Seven days had passed since Prince Andrew found himself in the ambulance
    station on the field of Borodino. His feverish state and the
    inflammation of his bowels, which were injured, were in the doctor's
    opinion sure to carry him off. But on the seventh day he ate with
    pleasure a piece of bread with some tea, and the doctor noticed that his
    temperature was lower. He had regained consciousness that morning. The
    first night after they left Moscow had been fairly warm and he had
    remained in the caleche, but at Mytishchi the wounded man himself asked
    to be taken out and given some tea. The pain caused by his removal into
    the hut had made him groan aloud and again lose consciousness. When he
    had been placed on his camp bed he lay for a long time motionless with
    closed eyes. Then he opened them and whispered softly: "And the tea?"
    His remembering such a small detail of everyday life astonished the
    doctor. He felt Prince Andrew's pulse, and to his surprise and
    dissatisfaction found it had improved. He was dissatisfied because he
    knew by experience that if his patient did not die now, he would do so a
    little later with greater suffering. Timokhin, the red-nosed major of
    Prince Andrew's regiment, had joined him in Moscow and was being taken
    along with him, having been wounded in the leg at the battle of
    Borodino. They were accompanied by a doctor, Prince Andrew's valet, his
    coachman, and two orderlies.
    
    They gave Prince Andrew some tea. He drank it eagerly, looking with
    feverish eyes at the door in front of him as if trying to understand and
    remember something.
    
    "I don't want any more. Is Timokhin here?" he asked.
    
    Timokhin crept along the bench to him.
    
    "I am here, your excellency."
    
    "How's your wound?"
    
    "Mine, sir? All right. But how about you?"
    
    Prince Andrew again pondered as if trying to remember something.
    
    "Couldn't one get a book?" he asked.
    
    "What book?"
    
    "The Gospels. I haven't one."
    
    The doctor promised to procure it for him and began to ask how he was
    feeling. Prince Andrew answered all his questions reluctantly but
    reasonably, and then said he wanted a bolster placed under him as he was
    uncomfortable and in great pain. The doctor and valet lifted the cloak
    with which he was covered and, making wry faces at the noisome smell of
    mortifying flesh that came from the wound, began examining that dreadful
    place. The doctor was very much displeased about something and made a
    change in the dressings, turning the wounded man over so that he groaned
    again and grew unconscious and delirious from the agony. He kept asking
    them to get him the book and put it under him.
    
    "What trouble would it be to you?" he said. "I have not got one. Please
    get it for me and put it under for a moment," he pleaded in a piteous
    voice.
    
    The doctor went into the passage to wash his hands.
    
    "You fellows have no conscience," said he to the valet who was pouring
    water over his hands. "For just one moment I didn't look after you...
    It's such pain, you know, that I wonder how he can bear it."
    
    "By the Lord Jesus Christ, I thought we had put something under him!"
    said the valet.
    
    The first time Prince Andrew understood where he was and what was the
    matter with him and remembered being wounded and how was when he asked
    to be carried into the hut after his caleche had stopped at Mytishchi.
    After growing confused from pain while being carried into the hut he
    again regained consciousness, and while drinking tea once more recalled
    all that had happened to him, and above all vividly remembered the
    moment at the ambulance station when, at the sight of the sufferings of
    a man he disliked, those new thoughts had come to him which promised him
    happiness. And those thoughts, though now vague and indefinite, again
    possessed his soul. He remembered that he had now a new source of
    happiness and that this happiness had something to do with the Gospels.
    That was why he asked for a copy of them. The uncomfortable position in
    which they had put him and turned him over again confused his thoughts,
    and when he came to himself a third time it was in the complete
    stillness of the night. Everybody near him was sleeping. A cricket
    chirped from across the passage; someone was shouting and singing in the
    street; cockroaches rustled on the table, on the icons, and on the
    walls, and a big fly flopped at the head of the bed and around the
    candle beside him, the wick of which was charred and had shaped itself
    like a mushroom.
    
    His mind was not in a normal state. A healthy man usually thinks of,
    feels, and remembers innumerable things simultaneously, but has the
    power and will to select one sequence of thoughts or events on which to
    fix his whole attention. A healthy man can tear himself away from the
    deepest reflections to say a civil word to someone who comes in and can
    then return again to his own thoughts. But Prince Andrew's mind was not
    in a normal state in that respect. All the powers of his mind were more
    active and clearer than ever, but they acted apart from his will. Most
    diverse thoughts and images occupied him simultaneously. At times his
    brain suddenly began to work with a vigor, clearness, and depth it had
    never reached when he was in health, but suddenly in the midst of its
    work it would turn to some unexpected idea and he had not the strength
    to turn it back again.
    
    "Yes, a new happiness was revealed to me of which man cannot be
    deprived," he thought as he lay in the semidarkness of the quiet hut,
    gazing fixedly before him with feverish wide open eyes. "A happiness
    lying beyond material forces, outside the material influences that act
    on man--a happiness of the soul alone, the happiness of loving. Every
    man can understand it, but to conceive it and enjoin it was possible
    only for God. But how did God enjoin that law? And why was the Son...?"
    
    And suddenly the sequence of these thoughts broke off, and Prince Andrew
    heard (without knowing whether it was a delusion or reality) a soft
    whispering voice incessantly and rhythmically repeating "piti-piti-
    piti," and then "titi," and then again "piti-piti-piti," and "ti-ti"
    once more. At the same time he felt that above his face, above the very
    middle of it, some strange airy structure was being erected out of
    slender needles or splinters, to the sound of this whispered music. He
    felt that he had to balance carefully (though it was difficult) so that
    this airy structure should not collapse; but nevertheless it kept
    collapsing and again slowly rising to the sound of whispered rhythmic
    music--"it stretches, stretches, spreading out and stretching," said
    Prince Andrew to himself. While listening to this whispering and feeling
    the sensation of this drawing out and the construction of this edifice
    of needles, he also saw by glimpses a red halo round the candle, and
    heard the rustle of the cockroaches and the buzzing of the fly that
    flopped against his pillow and his face. Each time the fly touched his
    face it gave him a burning sensation and yet to his surprise it did not
    destroy the structure, though it knocked against the very region of his
    face where it was rising. But besides this there was something else of
    importance. It was something white by the door--the statue of a sphinx,
    which also oppressed him.
    
    "But perhaps that's my shirt on the table," he thought, "and that's my
    legs, and that is the door, but why is it always stretching and drawing
    itself out, and 'piti-piti-piti' and 'ti-ti' and 'piti-piti-piti'...?
    That's enough, please leave off!" Prince Andrew painfully entreated
    someone. And suddenly thoughts and feelings again swam to the surface of
    his mind with peculiar clearness and force.
    
    "Yes--love," he thought again quite clearly. "But not love which loves
    for something, for some quality, for some purpose, or for some reason,
    but the love which I--while dying--first experienced when I saw my enemy
    and yet loved him. I experienced that feeling of love which is the very
    essence of the soul and does not require an object. Now again I feel
    that bliss. To love one's neighbors, to love one's enemies, to love
    everything, to love God in all His manifestations. It is possible to
    love someone dear to you with human love, but an enemy can only be loved
    by divine love. That is why I experienced such joy when I felt that I
    loved that man. What has become of him? Is he alive?...
    
    "When loving with human love one may pass from love to hatred, but
    divine love cannot change. No, neither death nor anything else can
    destroy it. It is the very essence of the soul. Yet how many people have
    I hated in my life? And of them all, I loved and hated none as I did
    her." And he vividly pictured to himself Natasha, not as he had done in
    the past with nothing but her charms which gave him delight, but for the
    first time picturing to himself her soul. And he understood her
    feelings, her sufferings, shame, and remorse. He now understood for the
    first time all the cruelty of his rejection of her, the cruelty of his
    rupture with her. "If only it were possible for me to see her once more!
    Just once, looking into those eyes to say..."
    
    "Piti-piti-piti and ti-ti and piti-piti-piti boom!" flopped the fly...
    And his attention was suddenly carried into another world, a world of
    reality and delirium in which something particular was happening. In
    that world some structure was still being erected and did not fall,
    something was still stretching out, and the candle with its red halo was
    still burning, and the same shirtlike sphinx lay near the door; but
    besides all this something creaked, there was a whiff of fresh air, and
    a new white sphinx appeared, standing at the door. And that sphinx had
    the pale face and shining eyes of the very Natasha of whom he had just
    been thinking.
    
    "Oh, how oppressive this continual delirium is," thought Prince Andrew,
    trying to drive that face from his imagination. But the face remained
    before him with the force of reality and drew nearer. Prince Andrew
    wished to return to that former world of pure thought, but he could not,
    and delirium drew him back into its domain. The soft whispering voice
    continued its rhythmic murmur, something oppressed him and stretched
    out, and the strange face was before him. Prince Andrew collected all
    his strength in an effort to recover his senses, he moved a little, and
    suddenly there was a ringing in his ears, a dimness in his eyes, and
    like a man plunged into water he lost consciousness. When he came to
    himself, Natasha, that same living Natasha whom of all people he most
    longed to love with this new pure divine love that had been revealed to
    him, was kneeling before him. He realized that it was the real living
    Natasha, and he was not surprised but quietly happy. Natasha, motionless
    on her knees (she was unable to stir), with frightened eyes riveted on
    him, was restraining her sobs. Her face was pale and rigid. Only in the
    lower part of it something quivered.
    
    Prince Andrew sighed with relief, smiled, and held out his hand.
    
    "You?" he said. "How fortunate!"
    
    With a rapid but careful movement Natasha drew nearer to him on her
    knees and, taking his hand carefully, bent her face over it and began
    kissing it, just touching it lightly with her lips.
    
    "Forgive me!" she whispered, raising her head and glancing at him.
    "Forgive me!"
    
    "I love you," said Prince Andrew.
    
    "Forgive...!"
    
    "Forgive what?" he asked.
    
    "Forgive me for what I ha-ve do-ne!" faltered Natasha in a scarcely
    audible, broken whisper, and began kissing his hand more rapidly, just
    touching it with her lips.
    
    "I love you more, better than before," said Prince Andrew, lifting her
    face with his hand so as to look into her eyes.
    
    Those eyes, filled with happy tears, gazed at him timidly,
    compassionately, and with joyous love. Natasha's thin pale face, with
    its swollen lips, was more than plain--it was dreadful. But Prince
    Andrew did not see that, he saw her shining eyes which were beautiful.
    They heard the sound of voices behind them.
    
    Peter the valet, who was now wide awake, had roused the doctor.
    Timokhin, who had not slept at all because of the pain in his leg, had
    long been watching all that was going on, carefully covering his bare
    body with the sheet as he huddled up on his bench.
    
    "What's this?" said the doctor, rising from his bed. "Please go away,
    madam!"
    
    At that moment a maid sent by the countess, who had noticed her
    daughter's absence, knocked at the door.
    
    Like a somnambulist aroused from her sleep Natasha went out of the room
    and, returning to her hut, fell sobbing on her bed.
    
    From that time, during all the rest of the Rostovs' journey, at every
    halting place and wherever they spent a night, Natasha never left the
    wounded Bolkonski, and the doctor had to admit that he had not expected
    from a young girl either such firmness or such skill in nursing a
    wounded man.
    
    Dreadful as the countess imagined it would be should Prince Andrew die
    in her daughter's arms during the journey--as, judging by what the
    doctor said, it seemed might easily happen--she could not oppose
    Natasha. Though with the intimacy now established between the wounded
    man and Natasha the thought occurred that should he recover their former
    engagement would be renewed, no one--least of all Natasha and Prince
    Andrew--spoke of this: the unsettled question of life and death, which
    hung not only over Bolkonski but over all Russia, shut out all other
    considerations.
    
    CHAPTER XXXIII
    
    On the third of September Pierre awoke late. His head was aching, the
    clothes in which he had slept without undressing felt uncomfortable on
    his body, and his mind had a dim consciousness of something shameful he
    had done the day before. That something shameful was his yesterday's
    conversation with Captain Ramballe.
    
    It was eleven by the clock, but it seemed peculiarly dark out of doors.
    Pierre rose, rubbed his eyes, and seeing the pistol with an engraved
    stock which Gerasim had replaced on the writing table, he remembered
    where he was and what lay before him that very day.
    
    "Am I not too late?" he thought. "No, probably he won't make his entry
    into Moscow before noon."
    
    Pierre did not allow himself to reflect on what lay before him, but
    hastened to act.
    
    After arranging his clothes, he took the pistol and was about to go out.
    But it then occurred to him for the first time that he certainly could
    not carry the weapon in his hand through the streets. It was difficult
    to hide such a big pistol even under his wide coat. He could not carry
    it unnoticed in his belt or under his arm. Besides, it had been
    discharged, and he had not had time to reload it. "No matter, dagger
    will do," he said to himself, though when planning his design he had
    more than once come to the conclusion that the chief mistake made by the
    student in 1809 had been to try to kill Napoleon with a dagger. But as
    his chief aim consisted not in carrying out his design, but in proving
    to himself that he would not abandon his intention and was doing all he
    could to achieve it, Pierre hastily took the blunt jagged dagger in a
    green sheath which he had bought at the Sukharev market with the pistol,
    and hid it under his waistcoat.
    
    Having tied a girdle over his coat and pulled his cap low on his head,
    Pierre went down the corridor, trying to avoid making a noise or meeting
    the captain, and passed out into the street.
    
    The conflagration, at which he had looked with so much indifference the
    evening before, had greatly increased during the night. Moscow was on
    fire in several places. The buildings in Carriage Row, across the river,
    in the Bazaar and the Povarskoy, as well as the barges on the Moskva
    River and the timber yards by the Dorogomilov Bridge, were all ablaze.
    
    Pierre's way led through side streets to the Povarskoy and from there to
    the church of St. Nicholas on the Arbat, where he had long before
    decided that the deed should be done. The gates of most of the houses
    were locked and the shutters up. The streets and lanes were deserted.
    The air was full of smoke and the smell of burning. Now and then he met
    Russians with anxious and timid faces, and Frenchmen with an air not of
    the city but of the camp, walking in the middle of the streets. Both the
    Russians and the French looked at Pierre with surprise. Besides his
    height and stoutness, and the strange morose look of suffering in his
    face and whole figure, the Russians stared at Pierre because they could
    not make out to what class he could belong. The French followed him with
    astonishment in their eyes chiefly because Pierre, unlike all the other
    Russians who gazed at the French with fear and curiosity, paid no
    attention to them. At the gate of one house three Frenchmen, who were
    explaining something to some Russians who did not understand them,
    stopped Pierre asking if he did not know French.
    
    Pierre shook his head and went on. In another side street a sentinel
    standing beside a green caisson shouted at him, but only when the shout
    was threateningly repeated and he heard the click of the man's musket as
    he raised it did Pierre understand that he had to pass on the other side
    of the street. He heard nothing and saw nothing of what went on around
    him. He carried his resolution within himself in terror and haste, like
    something dreadful and alien to him, for, after the previous night's
    experience, he was afraid of losing it. But he was not destined to bring
    his mood safely to his destination. And even had he not been hindered by
    anything on the way, his intention could not now have been carried out,
    for Napoleon had passed the Arbat more than four hours previously on his
    way from the Dorogomilov suburb to the Kremlin, and was now sitting in a
    very gloomy frame of mind in a royal study in the Kremlin, giving
    detailed and exact orders as to measures to be taken immediately to
    extinguish the fire, to prevent looting, and to reassure the
    inhabitants. But Pierre did not know this; he was entirely absorbed in
    what lay before him, and was tortured--as those are who obstinately
    undertake a task that is impossible for them not because of its
    difficulty but because of its incompatibility with their natures--by the
    fear of weakening at the decisive moment and so losing his self-esteem.
    
    Though he heard and saw nothing around him he found his way by instinct
    and did not go wrong in the side streets that led to the Povarskoy.
    
    As Pierre approached that street the smoke became denser and denser--he
    even felt the heat of the fire. Occasionally curly tongues of flame rose
    from under the roofs of the houses. He met more people in the streets
    and they were more excited. But Pierre, though he felt that something
    unusual was happening around him, did not realize that he was
    approaching the fire. As he was going along a foot path across a wide-
    open space adjoining the Povarskoy on one side and the gardens of Prince
    Gruzinski's house on the other, Pierre suddenly heard the desperate
    weeping of a woman close to him. He stopped as if awakening from a dream
    and lifted his head.
    
    By the side of the path, on the dusty dry grass, all sorts of household
    goods lay in a heap: featherbeds, a samovar, icons, and trunks. On the
    ground, beside the trunks, sat a thin woman no longer young, with long,
    prominent upper teeth, and wearing a black cloak and cap. This woman,
    swaying to and fro and muttering something, was choking with sobs. Two
    girls of about ten and twelve, dressed in dirty short frocks and cloaks,
    were staring at their mother with a look of stupefaction on their pale
    frightened faces. The youngest child, a boy of about seven, who wore an
    overcoat and an immense cap evidently not his own, was crying in his old
    nurse's arms. A dirty, barefooted maid was sitting on a trunk, and,
    having undone her pale-colored plait, was pulling it straight and
    sniffing at her singed hair. The woman's husband, a short, round-
    shouldered man in the undress uniform of a civilian official, with
    sausage-shaped whiskers and showing under his square-set cap the hair
    smoothly brushed forward over his temples, with expressionless face was
    moving the trunks, which were placed one on another, and was dragging
    some garments from under them.
    
    As soon as she saw Pierre, the woman almost threw herself at his feet.
    
    "Dear people, good Christians, save me, help me, dear friends... help
    us, somebody," she muttered between her sobs. "My girl... My daughter!
    My youngest daughter is left behind. She's burned! Ooh! Was it for this
    I nursed you.... Ooh!"
    
    "Don't, Mary Nikolievna!" said her husband to her in a low voice,
    evidently only to justify himself before the stranger. "Sister must have
    taken her, or else where can she be?" he added.
    
    "Monster! Villain!" shouted the woman angrily, suddenly ceasing to weep.
    "You have no heart, you don't feel for your own child! Another man would
    have rescued her from the fire. But this is a monster and neither a man
    nor a father! You, honored sir, are a noble man," she went on,
    addressing Pierre rapidly between her sobs. "The fire broke out
    alongside, and blew our way, the maid called out 'Fire!' and we rushed
    to collect our things. We ran out just as we were.... This is what we
    have brought away.... The icons, and my dowry bed, all the rest is lost.
    We seized the children. But not Katie! Ooh! O Lord!..." and again she
    began to sob. "My child, my dear one! Burned, burned!"
    
    "But where was she left?" asked Pierre.
    
    From the expression of his animated face the woman saw that this man
    might help her.
    
    "Oh, dear sir!" she cried, seizing him by the legs. "My benefactor, set
    my heart at ease.... Aniska, go, you horrid girl, show him the way!" she
    cried to the maid, angrily opening her mouth and still farther exposing
    her long teeth.
    
    "Show me the way, show me, I... I'll do it," gasped Pierre rapidly.
    
    The dirty maidservant stepped from behind the trunk, put up her plait,
    sighed, and went on her short, bare feet along the path. Pierre felt as
    if he had come back to life after a heavy swoon. He held his head
    higher, his eyes shone with the light of life, and with swift steps he
    followed the maid, overtook her, and came out on the Povarskoy. The
    whole street was full of clouds of black smoke. Tongues of flame here
    and there broke through that cloud. A great number of people crowded in
    front of the conflagration. In the middle of the street stood a French
    general saying something to those around him. Pierre, accompanied by the
    maid, was advancing to the spot where the general stood, but the French
    soldiers stopped him.
    
    "On ne passe pas!" * cried a voice.
    
    * "You can't pass!"
    
    "This way, uncle," cried the girl. "We'll pass through the side street,
    by the Nikulins'!"
    
    Pierre turned back, giving a spring now and then to keep up with her.
    She ran across the street, turned down a side street to the left, and,
    passing three houses, turned into a yard on the right.
    
    "It's here, close by," said she and, running across the yard, opened a
    gate in a wooden fence and, stopping, pointed out to him a small wooden
    wing of the house, which was burning brightly and fiercely. One of its
    sides had fallen in, another was on fire, and bright flames issued from
    the openings of the windows and from under the roof.
    
    As Pierre passed through the fence gate, he was enveloped by hot air and
    involuntarily stopped.
    
    "Which is it? Which is your house?" he asked.
    
    "Ooh!" wailed the girl, pointing to the wing. "That's it, that was our
    lodging. You've burned to death, our treasure, Katie, my precious little
    missy! Ooh!" lamented Aniska, who at the sight of the fire felt that she
    too must give expression to her feelings.
    
    Pierre rushed to the wing, but the heat was so great that he
    involuntarily passed round in a curve and came upon the large house that
    was as yet burning only at one end, just below the roof, and around
    which swarmed a crowd of Frenchmen. At first Pierre did not realize what
    these men, who were dragging something out, were about; but seeing
    before him a Frenchman hitting a peasant with a blunt saber and trying
    to take from him a fox-fur coat, he vaguely understood that looting was
    going on there, but he had no time to dwell on that idea.
    
    The sounds of crackling and the din of falling walls and ceilings, the
    whistle and hiss of the flames, the excited shouts of the people, and
    the sight of the swaying smoke, now gathering into thick black clouds
    and now soaring up with glittering sparks, with here and there dense
    sheaves of flame (now red and now like golden fish scales creeping along
    the walls), and the heat and smoke and rapidity of motion, produced on
    Pierre the usual animating effects of a conflagration. It had a
    peculiarly strong effect on him because at the sight of the fire he felt
    himself suddenly freed from the ideas that had weighed him down. He felt
    young, bright, adroit, and resolute. He ran round to the other side of
    the lodge and was about to dash into that part of it which was still
    standing, when just above his head he heard several voices shouting and
    then a cracking sound and the ring of something heavy falling close
    beside him.
    
    Pierre looked up and saw at a window of the large house some Frenchmen
    who had just thrown out the drawer of a chest, filled with metal
    articles. Other French soldiers standing below went up to the drawer.
    
    "What does this fellow want?" shouted one of them referring to Pierre.
    
    "There's a child in that house. Haven't you seen a child?" cried Pierre.
    
    "What's he talking about? Get along!" said several voices, and one of
    the soldiers, evidently afraid that Pierre might want to take from them
    some of the plate and bronzes that were in the drawer, moved
    threateningly toward him.
    
    "A child?" shouted a Frenchman from above. "I did hear something
    squealing in the garden. Perhaps it's his brat that the fellow is
    looking for. After all, one must be human, you know...."
    
    "Where is it? Where?" said Pierre.
    
    "There! There!" shouted the Frenchman at the window, pointing to the
    garden at the back of the house. "Wait a bit--I'm coming down."
    
    And a minute or two later the Frenchman, a black-eyed fellow with a spot
    on his cheek, in shirt sleeves, really did jump out of a window on the
    ground floor, and clapping Pierre on the shoulder ran with him into the
    garden.
    
    "Hurry up, you others!" he called out to his comrades. "It's getting
    hot."
    
    When they reached a gravel path behind the house the Frenchman pulled
    Pierre by the arm and pointed to a round, graveled space where a three-
    year-old girl in a pink dress was lying under a seat.
    
    "There is your child! Oh, a girl, so much the better!" said the
    Frenchman. "Good-bye, Fatty. We must be human, we are all mortal you
    know!" and the Frenchman with the spot on his cheek ran back to his
    comrades.
    
    Breathless with joy, Pierre ran to the little girl and was going to take
    her in his arms. But seeing a stranger the sickly, scrofulous-looking
    child, unattractively like her mother, began to yell and run away.
    Pierre, however, seized her and lifted her in his arms. She screamed
    desperately and angrily and tried with her little hands to pull Pierre's
    hands away and to bite them with her slobbering mouth. Pierre was seized
    by a sense of horror and repulsion such as he had experienced when
    touching some nasty little animal. But he made an effort not to throw
    the child down and ran with her to the large house. It was now, however,
    impossible to get back the way he had come; the maid, Aniska, was no
    longer there, and Pierre with a feeling of pity and disgust pressed the
    wet, painfully sobbing child to himself as tenderly as he could and ran
    with her through the garden seeking another way out.
    
    CHAPTER XXXIV
    
    Having run through different yards and side streets, Pierre got back
    with his little burden to the Gruzinski garden at the corner of the
    Povarskoy. He did not at first recognize the place from which he had set
    out to look for the child, so crowded was it now with people and goods
    that had been dragged out of the houses. Besides Russian families who
    had taken refuge here from the fire with their belongings, there were
    several French soldiers in a variety of clothing. Pierre took no notice
    of them. He hurried to find the family of that civil servant in order to
    restore the daughter to her mother and go to save someone else. Pierre
    felt that he had still much to do and to do quickly. Glowing with the
    heat and from running, he felt at that moment more strongly than ever
    the sense of youth, animation, and determination that had come on him
    when he ran to save the child. She had now become quiet and, clinging
    with her little hands to Pierre's coat, sat on his arm gazing about her
    like some little wild animal. He glanced at her occasionally with a
    slight smile. He fancied he saw something pathetically innocent in that
    frightened, sickly little face.
    
    He did not find the civil servant or his wife where he had left them. He
    walked among the crowd with rapid steps, scanning the various faces he
    met. Involuntarily he noticed a Georgian or Armenian family consisting
    of a very handsome old man of Oriental type, wearing a new, cloth-
    covered, sheepskin coat and new boots, an old woman of similar type, and
    a young woman. That very young woman seemed to Pierre the perfection of
    Oriental beauty, with her sharply outlined, arched, black eyebrows and
    the extraordinarily soft, bright color of her long, beautiful,
    expressionless face. Amid the scattered property and the crowd on the
    open space, she, in her rich satin cloak with a bright lilac shawl on
    her head, suggested a delicate exotic plant thrown out onto the snow.
    She was sitting on some bundles a little behind the old woman, and
    looked from under her long lashes with motionless, large, almond-shaped
    eyes at the ground before her. Evidently she was aware of her beauty and
    fearful because of it. Her face struck Pierre and, hurrying along by the
    fence, he turned several times to look at her. When he had reached the
    fence, still without finding those he sought, he stopped and looked
    about him.
    
    With the child in his arms his figure was now more conspicuous than
    before, and a group of Russians, both men and women, gathered about him.
    
    "Have you lost anyone, my dear fellow? You're of the gentry yourself,
    aren't you? Whose child is it?" they asked him.
    
    Pierre replied that the child belonged to a woman in a black coat who
    had been sitting there with her other children, and he asked whether
    anyone knew where she had gone.
    
    "Why, that must be the Anferovs," said an old deacon, addressing a
    pockmarked peasant woman. "Lord have mercy, Lord have mercy!" he added
    in his customary bass.
    
    "The Anferovs? No," said the woman. "They left in the morning. That must
    be either Mary Nikolievna's or the Ivanovs'!"
    
    "He says 'a woman,' and Mary Nikolievna is a lady," remarked a house
    serf.
    
    "Do you know her? She's thin, with long teeth," said Pierre.
    
    "That's Mary Nikolievna! They went inside the garden when these wolves
    swooped down," said the woman, pointing to the French soldiers.
    
    "O Lord, have mercy!" added the deacon.
    
    "Go over that way, they're there. It's she! She kept on lamenting and
    crying," continued the woman. "It's she. Here, this way!"
    
    But Pierre was not listening to the woman. He had for some seconds been
    intently watching what was going on a few steps away. He was looking at
    the Armenian family and at two French soldiers who had gone up to them.
    One of these, a nimble little man, was wearing a blue coat tied round
    the waist with a rope. He had a nightcap on his head and his feet were
    bare. The other, whose appearance particularly struck Pierre, was a
    long, lank, round-shouldered, fair-haired man, slow in his movements and
    with an idiotic expression of face. He wore a woman's loose gown of
    frieze, blue trousers, and large torn Hessian boots. The little
    barefooted Frenchman in the blue coat went up to the Armenians and,
    saying something, immediately seized the old man by his legs and the old
    man at once began pulling off his boots. The other in the frieze gown
    stopped in front of the beautiful Armenian girl and with his hands in
    his pockets stood staring at her, motionless and silent.
    
    "Here, take the child!" said Pierre peremptorily and hurriedly to the
    woman, handing the little girl to her. "Give her back to them, give her
    back!" he almost shouted, putting the child, who began screaming, on the
    ground, and again looking at the Frenchman and the Armenian family.
    
    The old man was already sitting barefoot. The little Frenchman had
    secured his second boot and was slapping one boot against the other. The
    old man was saying something in a voice broken by sobs, but Pierre
    caught but a glimpse of this, his whole attention was directed to the
    Frenchman in the frieze gown who meanwhile, swaying slowly from side to
    side, had drawn nearer to the young woman and taking his hands from his
    pockets had seized her by the neck.
    
    The beautiful Armenian still sat motionless and in the same attitude,
    with her long lashes drooping as if she did not see or feel what the
    soldier was doing to her.
    
    While Pierre was running the few steps that separated him from the
    Frenchman, the tall marauder in the frieze gown was already tearing from
    her neck the necklace the young Armenian was wearing, and the young
    woman, clutching at her neck, screamed piercingly.
    
    "Let that woman alone!" exclaimed Pierre hoarsely in a furious voice,
    seizing the soldier by his round shoulders and throwing him aside.
    
    The soldier fell, got up, and ran away. But his comrade, throwing down
    the boots and drawing his sword, moved threateningly toward Pierre.
    
    "Voyons, Pas de betises!" * he cried.
    
    * "Look here, no nonsense!"
    
    Pierre was in such a transport of rage that he remembered nothing and
    his strength increased tenfold. He rushed at the barefooted Frenchman
    and, before the latter had time to draw his sword, knocked him off his
    feet and hammered him with his fists. Shouts of approval were heard from
    the crowd around, and at the same moment a mounted patrol of French
    uhlans appeared from round the corner. The uhlans came up at a trot to
    Pierre and the Frenchman and surrounded them. Pierre remembered nothing
    of what happened after that. He only remembered beating someone and
    being beaten and finally feeling that his hands were bound and that a
    crowd of French soldiers stood around him and were searching him.
    
    "Lieutenant, he has a dagger," were the first words Pierre understood.
    
    "Ah, a weapon?" said the officer and turned to the barefooted soldier
    who had been arrested with Pierre. "All right, you can tell all about it
    at the court-martial." Then he turned to Pierre. "Do you speak French?"
    
    Pierre looked around him with bloodshot eyes and did not reply. His face
    probably looked very terrible, for the officer said something in a
    whisper and four more uhlans left the ranks and placed themselves on
    both sides of Pierre.
    
    "Do you speak French?" the officer asked again, keeping at a distance
    from Pierre. "Call the interpreter."
    
    A little man in Russian civilian clothes rode out from the ranks, and by
    his clothes and manner of speaking Pierre at once knew him to be a
    French salesman from one of the Moscow shops.
    
    "He does not look like a common man," said the interpreter, after a
    searching look at Pierre.
    
    "Ah, he looks very much like an incendiary," remarked the officer. "And
    ask him who he is," he added.
    
    "Who are you?" asked the interpreter in poor Russian. "You must answer
    the chief."
    
    "I will not tell you who I am. I am your prisoner--take me!" Pierre
    suddenly replied in French.
    
    "Ah, ah!" muttered the officer with a frown. "Well then, march!"
    
    A crowd had collected round the uhlans. Nearest to Pierre stood the
    pockmarked peasant woman with the little girl, and when the patrol
    started she moved forward.
    
    "Where are they taking you to, you poor dear?" said she. "And the little
    girl, the little girl, what am I to do with her if she's not theirs?"
    said the woman.
    
    "What does that woman want?" asked the officer.
    
    Pierre was as if intoxicated. His elation increased at the sight of the
    little girl he had saved.
    
    "What does she want?" he murmured. "She is bringing me my daughter whom
    I have just saved from the flames," said he. "Good-bye!" And without
    knowing how this aimless lie had escaped him, he went along with
    resolute and triumphant steps between the French soldiers.
    
    The French patrol was one of those sent out through the various streets
    of Moscow by Durosnel's order to put a stop to the pillage, and
    especially to catch the incendiaries who, according to the general
    opinion which had that day originated among the higher French officers,
    were the cause of the conflagrations. After marching through a number of
    streets the patrol arrested five more Russian suspects: a small
    shopkeeper, two seminary students, a peasant, and a house serf, besides
    several looters. But of all these various suspected characters, Pierre
    was considered to be the most suspicious of all. When they had all been
    brought for the night to a large house on the Zubov Rampart that was
    being used as a guardhouse, Pierre was placed apart under strict guard.
    
    BOOK TWELVE: 1812
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    In Petersburg at that time a complicated struggle was being carried on
    with greater heat than ever in the highest circles, between the parties
    of Rumyantsev, the French, Marya Fedorovna, the Tsarevich, and others,
    drowned as usual by the buzzing of the court drones. But the calm,
    luxurious life of Petersburg, concerned only about phantoms and
    reflections of real life, went on in its old way and made it hard,
    except by a great effort, to realize the danger and the difficult
    position of the Russian people. There were the same receptions and
    balls, the same French theater, the same court interests and service
    interests and intrigues as usual. Only in the very highest circles were
    attempts made to keep in mind the difficulties of the actual position.
    Stories were whispered of how differently the two Empresses behaved in
    these difficult circumstances. The Empress Marya, concerned for the
    welfare of the charitable and educational institutions under her
    patronage, had given directions that they should all be removed to
    Kazan, and the things belonging to these institutions had already been
    packed up. The Empress Elisabeth, however, when asked what instructions
    she would be pleased to give--with her characteristic Russian patriotism
    had replied that she could give no directions about state institutions
    for that was the affair of the sovereign, but as far as she personally
    was concerned she would be the last to quit Petersburg.
    
    At Anna Pavlovna's on the twenty-sixth of August, the very day of the
    battle of Borodino, there was a soiree, the chief feature of which was
    to be the reading of a letter from His Lordship the Bishop when sending
    the Emperor an icon of the Venerable Sergius. It was regarded as a model
    of ecclesiastical, patriotic eloquence. Prince Vasili himself, famed for
    his elocution, was to read it. (He used to read at the Empress'.) The
    art of his reading was supposed to lie in rolling out the words, quite
    independently of their meaning, in a loud and singsong voice alternating
    between a despairing wail and a tender murmur, so that the wail fell
    quite at random on one word and the murmur on another. This reading, as
    was always the case at Anna Pavlovna's soirees, had a political
    significance. That evening she expected several important personages who
    had to be made ashamed of their visits to the French theater and aroused
    to a patriotic temper. A good many people had already arrived, but Anna
    Pavlovna, not yet seeing all those whom she wanted in her drawing room,
    did not let the reading begin but wound up the springs of a general
    conversation.
    
    The news of the day in Petersburg was the illness of Countess Bezukhova.
    She had fallen ill unexpectedly a few days previously, had missed
    several gatherings of which she was usually ornament, and was said to be
    receiving no one, and instead of the celebrated Petersburg doctors who
    usually attended her had entrusted herself to some Italian doctor who
    was treating her in some new and unusual way.
    
    They all knew very well that the enchanting countess' illness arose from
    an inconvenience resulting from marrying two husbands at the same time,
    and that the Italian's cure consisted in removing such inconvenience;
    but in Anna Pavlovna's presence no one dared to think of this or even
    appear to know it.
    
    "They say the poor countess is very ill. The doctor says it is angina
    pectoris."
    
    "Angina? Oh, that's a terrible illness!"
    
    "They say that the rivals are reconciled, thanks to the angina..." and
    the word angina was repeated with great satisfaction.
    
    "The count is pathetic, they say. He cried like a child when the doctor
    told him the case was dangerous."
    
    "Oh, it would be a terrible loss, she is an enchanting woman."
    
    "You are speaking of the poor countess?" said Anna Pavlovna, coming up
    just then. "I sent to ask for news, and hear that she is a little
    better. Oh, she is certainly the most charming woman in the world," she
    went on, with a smile at her own enthusiasm. "We belong to different
    camps, but that does not prevent my esteeming her as she deserves. She
    is very unfortunate!" added Anna Pavlovna.
    
    Supposing that by these words Anna Pavlovna was somewhat lifting the
    veil from the secret of the countess' malady, an unwary young man
    ventured to express surprise that well known doctors had not been called
    in and that the countess was being attended by a charlatan who might
    employ dangerous remedies.
    
    "Your information may be better than mine," Anna Pavlovna suddenly and
    venomously retorted on the inexperienced young man, "but I know on good
    authority that this doctor is a very learned and able man. He is private
    physician to the Queen of Spain."
    
    And having thus demolished the young man, Anna Pavlovna turned to
    another group where Bilibin was talking about the Austrians: having
    wrinkled up his face he was evidently preparing to smooth it out again
    and utter one of his mots.
    
    "I think it is delightful," he said, referring to a diplomatic note that
    had been sent to Vienna with some Austrian banners captured from the
    French by Wittgenstein, "the hero of Petropol" as he was then called in
    Petersburg.
    
    "What? What's that?" asked Anna Pavlovna, securing silence for the mot,
    which she had heard before.
    
    And Bilibin repeated the actual words of the diplomatic dispatch, which
    he had himself composed.
    
    "The Emperor returns these Austrian banners," said Bilibin, "friendly
    banners gone astray and found on a wrong path," and his brow became
    smooth again.
    
    "Charming, charming!" observed Prince Vasili.
    
    "The path to Warsaw, perhaps," Prince Hippolyte remarked loudly and
    unexpectedly. Everybody looked at him, understanding what he meant.
    Prince Hippolyte himself glanced around with amused surprise. He knew no
    more than the others what his words meant. During his diplomatic career
    he had more than once noticed that such utterances were received as very
    witty, and at every opportunity he uttered in that way the first words
    that entered his head. "It may turn out very well," he thought, "but if
    not, they'll know how to arrange matters." And really, during the
    awkward silence that ensued, that insufficiently patriotic person
    entered whom Anna Pavlovna had been waiting for and wished to convert,
    and she, smiling and shaking a finger at Hippolyte, invited Prince
    Vasili to the table and bringing him two candles and the manuscript
    begged him to begin. Everyone became silent.
    
    "Most Gracious Sovereign and Emperor!" Prince Vasili sternly declaimed,
    looking round at his audience as if to inquire whether anyone had
    anything to say to the contrary. But no one said anything. "Moscow, our
    ancient capital, the New Jerusalem, receives her Christ"--he placed a
    sudden emphasis on the word her--"as a mother receives her zealous sons
    into her arms, and through the gathering mists, foreseeing the brilliant
    glory of thy rule, sings in exultation, 'Hosanna, blessed is he that
    cometh!'"
    
    Prince Vasili pronounced these last words in a tearful voice.
    
    Bilibin attentively examined his nails, and many of those present
    appeared intimidated, as if asking in what they were to blame. Anna
    Pavlovna whispered the next words in advance, like an old woman
    muttering the prayer at Communion: "Let the bold and insolent
    Goliath..." she whispered.
    
    Prince Vasili continued.
    
    "Let the bold and insolent Goliath from the borders of France encompass
    the realms of Russia with death-bearing terrors; humble Faith, the sling
    of the Russian David, shall suddenly smite his head in his bloodthirsty
    pride. This icon of the Venerable Sergius, the servant of God and
    zealous champion of old of our country's weal, is offered to Your
    Imperial Majesty. I grieve that my waning strength prevents rejoicing in
    the sight of your most gracious presence. I raise fervent prayers to
    Heaven that the Almighty may exalt the race of the just, and mercifully
    fulfill the desires of Your Majesty."
    
    "What force! What a style!" was uttered in approval both of reader and
    of author.
    
    Animated by that address Anna Pavlovna's guests talked for a long time
    of the state of the fatherland and offered various conjectures as to the
    result of the battle to be fought in a few days.
    
    "You will see," said Anna Pavlovna, "that tomorrow, on the Emperor's
    birthday, we shall receive news. I have a favorable presentiment!"
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    Anna Pavlovna's presentiment was in fact fulfilled. Next day during the
    service at the palace church in honor of the Emperor's birthday, Prince
    Volkonski was called out of the church and received a dispatch from
    Prince Kutuzov. It was Kutuzov's report, written from Tatarinova on the
    day of the battle. Kutuzov wrote that the Russians had not retreated a
    step, that the French losses were much heavier than ours, and that he
    was writing in haste from the field of battle before collecting full
    information. It followed that there must have been a victory. And at
    once, without leaving the church, thanks were rendered to the Creator
    for His help and for the victory.
    
    Anna Pavlovna's presentiment was justified, and all that morning a
    joyously festive mood reigned in the city. Everyone believed the victory
    to have been complete, and some even spoke of Napoleon's having been
    captured, of his deposition, and of the choice of a new ruler for
    France.
    
    It is very difficult for events to be reflected in their real strength
    and completeness amid the conditions of court life and far from the
    scene of action. General events involuntarily group themselves around
    some particular incident. So now the courtiers' pleasure was based as
    much on the fact that the news had arrived on the Emperor's birthday as
    on the fact of the victory itself. It was like a successfully arranged
    surprise. Mention was made in Kutuzov's report of the Russian losses,
    among which figured the names of Tuchkov, Bagration, and Kutaysov. In
    the Petersburg world this sad side of the affair again involuntarily
    centered round a single incident: Kutaysov's death. Everybody knew him,
    the Emperor liked him, and he was young and interesting. That day
    everyone met with the words:
    
    "What a wonderful coincidence! Just during the service. But what a loss
    Kutaysov is! How sorry I am!"
    
    "What did I tell about Kutuzov?" Prince Vasili now said with a prophet's
    pride. "I always said he was the only man capable of defeating
    Napoleon."
    
    But next day no news arrived from the army and the public mood grew
    anxious. The courtiers suffered because of the suffering the suspense
    occasioned the Emperor.
    
    "Fancy the Emperor's position!" said they, and instead of extolling
    Kutuzov as they had done the day before, they condemned him as the cause
    of the Emperor's anxiety. That day Prince Vasili no longer boasted of
    his protege Kutuzov, but remained silent when the commander-in-chief was
    mentioned. Moreover, toward evening, as if everything conspired to make
    Petersburg society anxious and uneasy, a terrible piece of news was
    added. Countess Helene Bezukhova had suddenly died of that terrible
    malady it had been so agreeable to mention. Officially, at large
    gatherings, everyone said that Countess Bezukhova had died of a terrible
    attack of angina pectoris, but in intimate circles details were
    mentioned of how the private physician of the Queen of Spain had
    prescribed small doses of a certain drug to produce a certain effect;
    but Helene, tortured by the fact that the old count suspected her and
    that her husband to whom she had written (that wretched, profligate
    Pierre) had not replied, had suddenly taken a very large dose of the
    drug, and had died in agony before assistance could be rendered her. It
    was said that Prince Vasili and the old count had turned upon the
    Italian, but the latter had produced such letters from the unfortunate
    deceased that they had immediately let the matter drop.
    
    Talk in general centered round three melancholy facts: the Emperor's
    lack of news, the loss of Kutaysov, and the death of Helene.
    
    On the third day after Kutuzov's report a country gentleman arrived from
    Moscow, and news of the surrender of Moscow to the French spread through
    the whole town. This was terrible! What a position for the Emperor to be
    in! Kutuzov was a traitor, and Prince Vasili during the visits of
    condolence paid to him on the occasion of his daughter's death said of
    Kutuzov, whom he had formerly praised (it was excusable for him in his
    grief to forget what he had said), that it was impossible to expect
    anything else from a blind and depraved old man.
    
    "I only wonder that the fate of Russia could have been entrusted to such
    a man."
    
    As long as this news remained unofficial it was possible to doubt it,
    but the next day the following communication was received from Count
    Rostopchin:
    
    Prince Kutuzov's adjutant has brought me a letter in which he demands
    police officers to guide the army to the Ryazan road. He writes that he
    is regretfully abandoning Moscow. Sire! Kutuzov's action decides the
    fate of the capital and of your empire! Russia will shudder to learn of
    the abandonment of the city in which her greatness is centered and in
    which lie the ashes of your ancestors! I shall follow the army. I have
    had everything removed, and it only remains for me to weep over the fate
    of my fatherland.
    
    On receiving this dispatch the Emperor sent Prince Volkonski to Kutuzov
    with the following rescript:
    
    Prince Michael Ilarionovich! Since the twenty-ninth of August I have
    received no communication from you, yet on the first of September I
    received from the commander-in-chief of Moscow, via Yaroslavl, the sad
    news that you, with the army, have decided to abandon Moscow. You can
    yourself imagine the effect this news has had on me, and your silence
    increases my astonishment. I am sending this by Adjutant-General Prince
    Volkonski, to hear from you the situation of the army and the reasons
    that have induced you to take this melancholy decision.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    Nine days after the abandonment of Moscow, a messenger from Kutuzov
    reached Petersburg with the official announcement of that event. This
    messenger was Michaud, a Frenchman who did not know Russian, but who was
    quoique etranger, russe de coeur et d'ame, * as he said of himself.
    
    * Though a foreigner, Russian in heart and soul.
    
    The Emperor at once received this messenger in his study at the palace
    on Stone Island. Michaud, who had never seen Moscow before the campaign
    and who did not know Russian, yet felt deeply moved (as he wrote) when
    he appeared before notre tres gracieux souverain * with the news of the
    burning of Moscow, dont les flammes eclairaient sa route. *(2)
    
    * Our most gracious sovereign.
    
    * (2) Whose flames illumined his route.
    
    Though the source of M. Michaud's chagrin must have been different from
    that which caused Russians to grieve, he had such a sad face when shown
    into the Emperor's study that the latter at once asked:
    
    "Have you brought me sad news, Colonel?"
    
    "Very sad, sire," replied Michaud, lowering his eyes with a sigh. "The
    abandonment of Moscow."
    
    "Have they surrendered my ancient capital without a battle?" asked the
    Emperor quickly, his face suddenly flushing.
    
    Michaud respectfully delivered the message Kutuzov had entrusted to him,
    which was that it had been impossible to fight before Moscow, and that
    as the only remaining choice was between losing the army as well as
    Moscow, or losing Moscow alone, the field marshal had to choose the
    latter.
    
    The Emperor listened in silence, not looking at Michaud.
    
    "Has the enemy entered the city?" he asked.
    
    "Yes, sire, and Moscow is now in ashes. I left it all in flames,"
    replied Michaud in a decided tone, but glancing at the Emperor he was
    frightened by what he had done.
    
    The Emperor began to breathe heavily and rapidly, his lower lip
    trembled, and tears instantly appeared in his fine blue eyes.
    
    But this lasted only a moment. He suddenly frowned, as if blaming
    himself for his weakness, and raising his head addressed Michaud in a
    firm voice:
    
    "I see, Colonel, from all that is happening, that Providence requires
    great sacrifices of us... I am ready to submit myself in all things to
    His will; but tell me, Michaud, how did you leave the army when it saw
    my ancient capital abandoned without a battle? Did you not notice
    discouragement?..."
    
    Seeing that his most gracious ruler was calm once more, Michaud also
    grew calm, but was not immediately ready to reply to the Emperor's
    direct and relevant question which required a direct answer.
    
    "Sire, will you allow me to speak frankly as befits a loyal soldier?" he
    asked to gain time.
    
    "Colonel, I always require it," replied the Emperor. "Conceal nothing
    from me, I wish to know absolutely how things are."
    
    "Sire!" said Michaud with a subtle, scarcely perceptible smile on his
    lips, having now prepared a well-phrased reply, "sire, I left the whole
    army, from its chiefs to the lowest soldier, without exception in
    desperate and agonized terror..."
    
    "How is that?" the Emperor interrupted him, frowning sternly. "Would
    misfortune make my Russians lose heart?... Never!"
    
    Michaud had only waited for this to bring out the phrase he had
    prepared.
    
    "Sire," he said, with respectful playfulness, "they are only afraid lest
    Your Majesty, in the goodness of your heart, should allow yourself to be
    persuaded to make peace. They are burning for the combat," declared this
    representative of the Russian nation, "and to prove to Your Majesty by
    the sacrifice of their lives how devoted they are...."
    
    "Ah!" said the Emperor reassured, and with a kindly gleam in his eyes,
    he patted Michaud on the shoulder. "You set me at ease, Colonel."
    
    He bent his head and was silent for some time.
    
    "Well, then, go back to the army," he said, drawing himself up to his
    full height and addressing Michaud with a gracious and majestic gesture,
    "and tell our brave men and all my good subjects wherever you go that
    when I have not a soldier left I shall put myself at the head of my
    beloved nobility and my good peasants and so use the last resources of
    my empire. It still offers me more than my enemies suppose," said the
    Emperor growing more and more animated; "but should it ever be ordained
    by Divine Providence," he continued, raising to heaven his fine eyes
    shining with emotion, "that my dynasty should cease to reign on the
    throne of my ancestors, then after exhausting all the means at my
    command, I shall let my beard grow to here" (he pointed halfway down his
    chest) "and go and eat potatoes with the meanest of my peasants, rather
    than sign the disgrace of my country and of my beloved people whose
    sacrifices I know how to appreciate."
    
    Having uttered these words in an agitated voice the Emperor suddenly
    turned away as if to hide from Michaud the tears that rose to his eyes,
    and went to the further end of his study. Having stood there a few
    moments, he strode back to Michaud and pressed his arm below the elbow
    with a vigorous movement. The Emperor's mild and handsome face was
    flushed and his eyes gleamed with resolution and anger.
    
    "Colonel Michaud, do not forget what I say to you here, perhaps we may
    recall it with pleasure someday... Napoleon or I," said the Emperor,
    touching his breast. "We can no longer both reign together. I have
    learned to know him, and he will not deceive me any more...."
    
    And the Emperor paused, with a frown.
    
    When he heard these words and saw the expression of firm resolution in
    the Emperor's eyes, Michaud--quoique etranger, russe de coeur et d'ame--
    at that solemn moment felt himself enraptured by all that he had heard
    (as he used afterwards to say), and gave expression to his own feelings
    and those of the Russian people whose representative he considered
    himself to be, in the following words:
    
    "Sire!" said he, "Your Majesty is at this moment signing the glory of
    the nation and the salvation of Europe!"
    
    With an inclination of the head the Emperor dismissed him.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    It is natural for us who were not living in those days to imagine that
    when half Russia had been conquered and the inhabitants were fleeing to
    distant provinces, and one levy after another was being raised for the
    defense of the fatherland, all Russians from the greatest to the least
    were solely engaged in sacrificing themselves, saving their fatherland,
    or weeping over its downfall. The tales and descriptions of that time
    without exception speak only of the self-sacrifice, patriotic devotion,
    despair, grief, and the heroism of the Russians. But it was not really
    so. It appears so to us because we see only the general historic
    interest of that time and do not see all the personal human interests
    that people had. Yet in reality those personal interests of the moment
    so much transcend the general interests that they always prevent the
    public interest from being felt or even noticed. Most of the people at
    that time paid no attention to the general progress of events but were
    guided only by their private interests, and they were the very people
    whose activities at that period were most useful.
    
    Those who tried to understand the general course of events and to take
    part in it by self-sacrifice and heroism were the most useless members
    of society, they saw everything upside down, and all they did for the
    common good turned out to be useless and foolish--like Pierre's and
    Mamonov's regiments which looted Russian villages, and the lint the
    young ladies prepared and that never reached the wounded, and so on.
    Even those, fond of intellectual talk and of expressing their feelings,
    who discussed Russia's position at the time involuntarily introduced
    into their conversation either a shade of pretense and falsehood or
    useless condemnation and anger directed against people accused of
    actions no one could possibly be guilty of. In historic events the rule
    forbidding us to eat of the fruit of the Tree of Knowledge is specially
    applicable. Only unconscious action bears fruit, and he who plays a part
    in an historic event never understands its significance. If he tries to
    realize it his efforts are fruitless.
    
    The more closely a man was engaged in the events then taking place in
    Russia the less did he realize their significance. In Petersburg and in
    the provinces at a distance from Moscow, ladies, and gentlemen in
    militia uniforms, wept for Russia and its ancient capital and talked of
    self-sacrifice and so on; but in the army which retired beyond Moscow
    there was little talk or thought of Moscow, and when they caught sight
    of its burned ruins no one swore to be avenged on the French, but they
    thought about their next pay, their next quarters, of Matreshka the
    vivandiere, and like matters.
    
    As the war had caught him in the service, Nicholas Rostov took a close
    and prolonged part in the defense of his country, but did so casually,
    without any aim at self-sacrifice, and he therefore looked at what was
    going on in Russia without despair and without dismally racking his
    brains over it. Had he been asked what he thought of the state of
    Russia, he would have said that it was not his business to think about
    it, that Kutuzov and others were there for that purpose, but that he had
    heard that the regiments were to be made up to their full strength, that
    fighting would probably go on for a long time yet, and that things being
    so it was quite likely he might be in command of a regiment in a couple
    of years' time.
    
    As he looked at the matter in this way, he learned that he was being
    sent to Voronezh to buy remounts for his division, not only without
    regret at being prevented from taking part in the coming battle, but
    with the greatest pleasure--which he did not conceal and which his
    comrades fully understood.
    
    A few days before the battle of Borodino, Nicholas received the
    necessary money and warrants, and having sent some hussars on in
    advance, he set out with post horses for Voronezh.
    
    Only a man who has experienced it--that is, has passed some months
    continuously in an atmosphere of campaigning and war--can understand the
    delight Nicholas felt when he escaped from the region covered by the
    army's foraging operations, provision trains, and hospitals. When--free
    from soldiers, wagons, and the filthy traces of a camp--he saw villages
    with peasants and peasant women, gentlemen's country houses, fields
    where cattle were grazing, posthouses with stationmasters asleep in
    them, he rejoiced as though seeing all this for the first time. What for
    a long while specially surprised and delighted him were the women, young
    and healthy, without a dozen officers making up to each of them; women,
    too, who were pleased and flattered that a passing officer should joke
    with them.
    
    In the highest spirits Nicholas arrived at night at a hotel in Voronezh,
    ordered things he had long been deprived of in camp, and next day, very
    clean-shaven and in a full-dress uniform he had not worn for a long
    time, went to present himself to the authorities.
    
    The commander of the militia was a civilian general, an old man who was
    evidently pleased with his military designation and rank. He received
    Nicholas brusquely (imagining this to be characteristically military)
    and questioned him with an important air, as if considering the general
    progress of affairs and approving and disapproving with full right to do
    so. Nicholas was in such good spirits that this merely amused him.
    
    From the commander of the militia he drove to the governor. The governor
    was a brisk little man, very simple and affable. He indicated the stud
    farms at which Nicholas might procure horses, recommended to him a horse
    dealer in the town and a landowner fourteen miles out of town who had
    the best horses, and promised to assist him in every way.
    
    "You are Count Ilya Rostov's son? My wife was a great friend of your
    mother's. We are at home on Thursdays--today is Thursday, so please come
    and see us quite informally," said the governor, taking leave of him.
    
    Immediately on leaving the governor's, Nicholas hired post horses and,
    taking his squadron quartermaster with him, drove at a gallop to the
    landowner, fourteen miles away, who had the stud. Everything seemed to
    him pleasant and easy during that first part of his stay in Voronezh
    and, as usually happens when a man is in a pleasant state of mind,
    everything went well and easily.
    
    The landowner to whom Nicholas went was a bachelor, an old cavalryman, a
    horse fancier, a sportsman, the possessor of some century-old brandy and
    some old Hungarian wine, who had a snuggery where he smoked, and who
    owned some splendid horses.
    
    In very few words Nicholas bought seventeen picked stallions for six
    thousand rubles--to serve, as he said, as samples of his remounts. After
    dining and taking rather too much of the Hungarian wine, Nicholas--
    having exchanged kisses with the landowner, with whom he was already on
    the friendliest terms--galloped back over abominable roads, in the
    brightest frame of mind, continually urging on the driver so as to be in
    time for the governor's party.
    
    When he had changed, poured water over his head, and scented himself,
    Nicholas arrived at the governor's rather late, but with the phrase
    "better late than never" on his lips.
    
    It was not a ball, nor had dancing been announced, but everyone knew
    that Catherine Petrovna would play valses and the ecossaise on the
    clavichord and that there would be dancing, and so everyone had come as
    to a ball.
    
    Provincial life in 1812 went on very much as usual, but with this
    difference, that it was livelier in the towns in consequence of the
    arrival of many wealthy families from Moscow, and as in everything that
    went on in Russia at that time a special recklessness was noticeable, an
    "in for a penny, in for a pound--who cares?" spirit, and the inevitable
    small talk, instead of turning on the weather and mutual acquaintances,
    now turned on Moscow, the army, and Napoleon.
    
    The society gathered together at the governor's was the best in
    Voronezh.
    
    There were a great many ladies and some of Nicholas' Moscow
    acquaintances, but there were no men who could at all vie with the
    cavalier of St. George, the hussar remount officer, the good-natured and
    well-bred Count Rostov. Among the men was an Italian prisoner, an
    officer of the French army; and Nicholas felt that the presence of that
    prisoner enhanced his own importance as a Russian hero. The Italian was,
    as it were, a war trophy. Nicholas felt this, it seemed to him that
    everyone regarded the Italian in the same light, and he treated him
    cordially though with dignity and restraint.
    
    As soon as Nicholas entered in his hussar uniform, diffusing around him
    a fragrance of perfume and wine, and had uttered the words "better late
    than never" and heard them repeated several times by others, people
    clustered around him; all eyes turned on him, and he felt at once that
    he had entered into his proper position in the province--that of a
    universal favorite: a very pleasant position, and intoxicatingly so
    after his long privations. At posting stations, at inns, and in the
    landowner's snuggery, maidservants had been flattered by his notice, and
    here too at the governor's party there were (as it seemed to Nicholas)
    an inexhaustible number of pretty young women, married and unmarried,
    impatiently awaiting his notice. The women and girls flirted with him
    and, from the first day, the people concerned themselves to get this
    fine young daredevil of an hussar married and settled down. Among these
    was the governor's wife herself, who welcomed Rostov as a near relative
    and called him "Nicholas."
    
    Catherine Petrovna did actually play valses and the ecossaise, and
    dancing began in which Nicholas still further captivated the provincial
    society by his agility. His particularly free manner of dancing even
    surprised them all. Nicholas was himself rather surprised at the way he
    danced that evening. He had never danced like that in Moscow and would
    even have considered such a very free and easy manner improper and in
    bad form, but here he felt it incumbent on him to astonish them all by
    something unusual, something they would have to accept as the regular
    thing in the capital though new to them in the provinces.
    
    All the evening Nicholas paid attention to a blue-eyed, plump and
    pleasing little blonde, the wife of one of the provincial officials.
    With the naive conviction of young men in a merry mood that other men's
    wives were created for them, Rostov did not leave the lady's side and
    treated her husband in a friendly and conspiratorial style, as if,
    without speaking of it, they knew how capitally Nicholas and the lady
    would get on together. The husband, however, did not seem to share that
    conviction and tried to behave morosely with Rostov. But the latter's
    good-natured naivete was so boundless that sometimes even he
    involuntarily yielded to Nicholas' good humor. Toward the end of the
    evening, however, as the wife's face grew more flushed and animated, the
    husband's became more and more melancholy and solemn, as though there
    were but a given amount of animation between them and as the wife's
    share increased the husband's diminished.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    Nicholas sat leaning slightly forward in an armchair, bending closely
    over the blonde lady and paying her mythological compliments with a
    smile that never left his face. Jauntily shifting the position of his
    legs in their tight riding breeches, diffusing an odor of perfume, and
    admiring his partner, himself, and the fine outlines of his legs in
    their well-fitting Hessian boots, Nicholas told the blonde lady that he
    wished to run away with a certain lady here in Voronezh.
    
    "Which lady?"
    
    "A charming lady, a divine one. Her eyes" (Nicholas looked at his
    partner) "are blue, her mouth coral and ivory; her figure" (he glanced
    at her shoulders) "like Diana's...."
    
    The husband came up and sullenly asked his wife what she was talking
    about.
    
    "Ah, Nikita Ivanych!" cried Nicholas, rising politely, and as if wishing
    Nikita Ivanych to share his joke, he began to tell him of his intention
    to elope with a blonde lady.
    
    The husband smiled gloomily, the wife gaily. The governor's good-natured
    wife came up with a look of disapproval.
    
    "Anna Ignatyevna wants to see you, Nicholas," said she, pronouncing the
    name so that Nicholas at once understood that Anna Ignatyevna was a very
    important person. "Come, Nicholas! You know you let me call you so?"
    
    "Oh, yes, Aunt. Who is she?"
    
    "Anna Ignatyevna Malvintseva. She has heard from her niece how you
    rescued her... Can you guess?"
    
    "I rescued such a lot of them!" said Nicholas.
    
    "Her niece, Princess Bolkonskaya. She is here in Voronezh with her aunt.
    Oho! How you blush. Why, are...?"
    
    "Not a bit! Please don't, Aunt!"
    
    "Very well, very well!... Oh, what a fellow you are!"
    
    The governor's wife led him up to a tall and very stout old lady with a
    blue headdress, who had just finished her game of cards with the most
    important personages of the town. This was Malvintseva, Princess Mary's
    aunt on her mother's side, a rich, childless widow who always lived in
    Voronezh. When Rostov approached her she was standing settling up for
    the game. She looked at him and, screwing up her eyes sternly, continued
    to upbraid the general who had won from her.
    
    "Very pleased, mon cher," she then said, holding out her hand to
    Nicholas. "Pray come and see me."
    
    After a few words about Princess Mary and her late father, whom
    Malvintseva had evidently not liked, and having asked what Nicholas knew
    of Prince Andrew, who also was evidently no favorite of hers, the
    important old lady dismissed Nicholas after repeating her invitation to
    come to see her.
    
    Nicholas promised to come and blushed again as he bowed. At the mention
    of Princess Mary he experienced a feeling of shyness and even of fear,
    which he himself did not understand.
    
    When he had parted from Malvintseva Nicholas wished to return to the
    dancing, but the governor's little wife placed her plump hand on his
    sleeve and, saying that she wanted to have a talk with him, led him to
    her sitting room, from which those who were there immediately withdrew
    so as not to be in her way.
    
    "Do you know, dear boy," began the governor's wife with a serious
    expression on her kind little face, "that really would be the match for
    you: would you like me to arrange it?"
    
    "Whom do you mean, Aunt?" asked Nicholas.
    
    "I will make a match for you with the princess. Catherine Petrovna
    speaks of Lily, but I say, no--the princess! Do you want me to do it? I
    am sure your mother will be grateful to me. What a charming girl she is,
    really! And she is not at all so plain, either."
    
    "Not at all," replied Nicholas as if offended at the idea. "As befits a
    soldier, Aunt, I don't force myself on anyone or refuse anything," he
    said before he had time to consider what he was saying.
    
    "Well then, remember, this is not a joke!"
    
    "Of course not!"
    
    "Yes, yes," the governor's wife said as if talking to herself. "But, my
    dear boy, among other things you are too attentive to the other, the
    blonde. One is sorry for the husband, really...."
    
    "Oh no, we are good friends with him," said Nicholas in the simplicity
    of his heart; it did not enter his head that a pastime so pleasant to
    himself might not be pleasant to someone else.
    
    "But what nonsense I have been saying to the governor's wife!" thought
    Nicholas suddenly at supper. "She will really begin to arrange a
    match... and Sonya...?" And on taking leave of the governor's wife, when
    she again smilingly said to him, "Well then, remember!" he drew her
    aside.
    
    "But see here, to tell the truth, Aunt..."
    
    "What is it, my dear? Come, let's sit down here," said she.
    
    Nicholas suddenly felt a desire and need to tell his most intimate
    thoughts (which he would not have told to his mother, his sister, or his
    friend) to this woman who was almost a stranger. When he afterwards
    recalled that impulse to unsolicited and inexplicable frankness which
    had very important results for him, it seemed to him--as it seems to
    everyone in such cases--that it was merely some silly whim that seized
    him: yet that burst of frankness, together with other trifling events,
    had immense consequences for him and for all his family.
    
    "You see, Aunt, Mamma has long wanted me to marry an heiress, but the
    very idea of marrying for money is repugnant to me."
    
    "Oh yes, I understand," said the governor's wife.
    
    "But Princess Bolkonskaya--that's another matter. I will tell you the
    truth. In the first place I like her very much, I feel drawn to her; and
    then, after I met her under such circumstances--so strangely, the idea
    often occurred to me: 'This is fate.' Especially if you remember that
    Mamma had long been thinking of it; but I had never happened to meet her
    before, somehow it had always happened that we did not meet. And as long
    as my sister Natasha was engaged to her brother it was of course out of
    the question for me to think of marrying her. And it must needs happen
    that I should meet her just when Natasha's engagement had been broken
    off... and then everything... So you see... I never told this to anyone
    and never will, only to you."
    
    The governor's wife pressed his elbow gratefully.
    
    "You know Sonya, my cousin? I love her, and promised to marry her, and
    will do so.... So you see there can be no question about-" said Nicholas
    incoherently and blushing.
    
    "My dear boy, what a way to look at it! You know Sonya has nothing and
    you yourself say your Papa's affairs are in a very bad way. And what
    about your mother? It would kill her, that's one thing. And what sort of
    life would it be for Sonya--if she's a girl with a heart? Your mother in
    despair, and you all ruined.... No, my dear, you and Sonya ought to
    understand that."
    
    Nicholas remained silent. It comforted him to hear these arguments.
    
    "All the same, Aunt, it is impossible," he rejoined with a sigh, after a
    short pause. "Besides, would the princess have me? And besides, she is
    now in mourning. How can one think of it!"
    
    "But you don't suppose I'm going to get you married at once? There is
    always a right way of doing things," replied the governor's wife.
    
    "What a matchmaker you are, Aunt..." said Nicholas, kissing her plump
    little hand.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    On reaching Moscow after her meeting with Rostov, Princess Mary had
    found her nephew there with his tutor, and a letter from Prince Andrew
    giving her instructions how to get to her Aunt Malvintseva at Voronezh.
    That feeling akin to temptation which had tormented her during her
    father's illness, since his death, and especially since her meeting with
    Rostov was smothered by arrangements for the journey, anxiety about her
    brother, settling in a new house, meeting new people, and attending to
    her nephew's education. She was sad. Now, after a month passed in quiet
    surroundings, she felt more and more deeply the loss of her father which
    was associated in her mind with the ruin of Russia. She was agitated and
    incessantly tortured by the thought of the dangers to which her brother,
    the only intimate person now remaining to her, was exposed. She was
    worried too about her nephew's education for which she had always felt
    herself incompetent, but in the depths of her soul she felt at peace--a
    peace arising from consciousness of having stifled those personal dreams
    and hopes that had been on the point of awakening within her and were
    related to her meeting with Rostov.
    
    The day after her party the governor's wife came to see Malvintseva and,
    after discussing her plan with the aunt, remarked that though under
    present circumstances a formal betrothal was, of course, not to be
    thought of, all the same the young people might be brought together and
    could get to know one another. Malvintseva expressed approval, and the
    governor's wife began to speak of Rostov in Mary's presence, praising
    him and telling how he had blushed when Princess Mary's name was
    mentioned. But Princess Mary experienced a painful rather than a joyful
    feeling--her mental tranquillity was destroyed, and desires, doubts,
    self-reproach, and hopes reawoke.
    
    During the two days that elapsed before Rostov called, Princess Mary
    continually thought of how she ought to behave to him. First she decided
    not to come to the drawing room when he called to see her aunt--that it
    would not be proper for her, in her deep mourning, to receive visitors;
    then she thought this would be rude after what he had done for her; then
    it occurred to her that her aunt and the governor's wife had intentions
    concerning herself and Rostov--their looks and words at times seemed to
    confirm this supposition--then she told herself that only she, with her
    sinful nature, could think this of them: they could not forget that
    situated as she was, while still wearing deep mourning, such matchmaking
    would be an insult to her and to her father's memory. Assuming that she
    did go down to see him, Princess Mary imagined the words he would say to
    her and what she would say to him, and these words sometimes seemed
    undeservedly cold and then to mean too much. More than anything she
    feared lest the confusion she felt might overwhelm her and betray her as
    soon as she saw him.
    
    But when on Sunday after church the footman announced in the drawing
    room that Count Rostov had called, the princess showed no confusion,
    only a slight blush suffused her cheeks and her eyes lit up with a new
    and radiant light.
    
    "You have met him, Aunt?" said she in a calm voice, unable herself to
    understand that she could be outwardly so calm and natural.
    
    When Rostov entered the room, the princess dropped her eyes for an
    instant, as if to give the visitor time to greet her aunt, and then just
    as Nicholas turned to her she raised her head and met his look with
    shining eyes. With a movement full of dignity and grace she half rose
    with a smile of pleasure, held out her slender, delicate hand to him,
    and began to speak in a voice in which for the first time new deep
    womanly notes vibrated. Mademoiselle Bourienne, who was in the drawing
    room, looked at Princess Mary in bewildered surprise. Herself a
    consummate coquette, she could not have maneuvered better on meeting a
    man she wished to attract.
    
    "Either black is particularly becoming to her or she really has greatly
    improved without my having noticed it. And above all, what tact and
    grace!" thought Mademoiselle Bourienne.
    
    Had Princess Mary been capable of reflection at that moment, she would
    have been more surprised than Mademoiselle Bourienne at the change that
    had taken place in herself. From the moment she recognized that dear,
    loved face, a new life force took possession of her and compelled her to
    speak and act apart from her own will. From the time Rostov entered, her
    face became suddenly transformed. It was as if a light had been kindled
    in a carved and painted lantern and the intricate, skillful, artistic
    work on its sides, that previously seemed dark, coarse, and meaningless,
    was suddenly shown up in unexpected and striking beauty. For the first
    time all that pure, spiritual, inward travail through which she had
    lived appeared on the surface. All her inward labor, her dissatisfaction
    with herself, her sufferings, her strivings after goodness, her
    meekness, love, and self-sacrifice--all this now shone in those radiant
    eyes, in her delicate smile, and in every trait of her gentle face.
    
    Rostov saw all this as clearly as if he had known her whole life. He
    felt that the being before him was quite different from, and better
    than, anyone he had met before, and above all better than himself.
    
    Their conversation was very simple and unimportant. They spoke of the
    war, and like everyone else unconsciously exaggerated their sorrow about
    it; they spoke of their last meeting--Nicholas trying to change the
    subject--they talked of the governor's kind wife, of Nicholas'
    relations, and of Princess Mary's.
    
    She did not talk about her brother, diverting the conversation as soon
    as her aunt mentioned Andrew. Evidently she could speak of Russia's
    misfortunes with a certain artificiality, but her brother was too near
    her heart and she neither could nor would speak lightly of him. Nicholas
    noticed this, as he noticed every shade of Princess Mary's character
    with an observation unusual to him, and everything confirmed his
    conviction that she was a quite unusual and extraordinary being.
    Nicholas blushed and was confused when people spoke to him about the
    princess (as she did when he was mentioned) and even when he thought of
    her, but in her presence he felt quite at ease, and said not at all what
    he had prepared, but what, quite appropriately, occurred to him at the
    moment.
    
    When a pause occurred during his short visit, Nicholas, as is usual when
    there are children, turned to Prince Andrew's little son, caressing him
    and asking whether he would like to be an hussar. He took the boy on his
    knee, played with him, and looked round at Princess Mary. With a
    softened, happy, timid look she watched the boy she loved in the arms of
    the man she loved. Nicholas also noticed that look and, as if
    understanding it, flushed with pleasure and began to kiss the boy with
    good natured playfulness.
    
    As she was in mourning Princess Mary did not go out into society, and
    Nicholas did not think it the proper thing to visit her again; but all
    the same the governor's wife went on with her matchmaking, passing on to
    Nicholas the flattering things Princess Mary said of him and vice versa,
    and insisting on his declaring himself to Princess Mary. For this
    purpose she arranged a meeting between the young people at the bishop's
    house before Mass.
    
    Though Rostov told the governor's wife that he would not make any
    declaration to Princess Mary, he promised to go.
    
    As at Tilsit Rostov had not allowed himself to doubt that what everybody
    considered right was right, so now, after a short but sincere struggle
    between his effort to arrange his life by his own sense of justice, and
    in obedient submission to circumstances, he chose the latter and yielded
    to the power he felt irresistibly carrying him he knew not where. He
    knew that after his promise to Sonya it would be what he deemed base to
    declare his feelings to Princess Mary. And he knew that he would never
    act basely. But he also knew (or rather felt at the bottom of his heart)
    that by resigning himself now to the force of circumstances and to those
    who were guiding him, he was not only doing nothing wrong, but was doing
    something very important--more important than anything he had ever done
    in his life.
    
    After meeting Princess Mary, though the course of his life went on
    externally as before, all his former amusements lost their charm for him
    and he often thought about her. But he never thought about her as he had
    thought of all the young ladies without exception whom he had met in
    society, nor as he had for a long time, and at one time rapturously,
    thought about Sonya. He had pictured each of those young ladies as
    almost all honest-hearted young men do, that is, as a possible wife,
    adapting her in his imagination to all the conditions of married life: a
    white dressing gown, his wife at the tea table, his wife's carriage,
    little ones, Mamma and Papa, their relations to her, and so on--and
    these pictures of the future had given him pleasure. But with Princess
    Mary, to whom they were trying to get him engaged, he could never
    picture anything of future married life. If he tried, his pictures
    seemed incongruous and false. It made him afraid.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    The dreadful news of the battle of Borodino, of our losses in killed and
    wounded, and the still more terrible news of the loss of Moscow reached
    Voronezh in the middle of September. Princess Mary, having learned of
    her brother's wound only from the Gazette and having no definite news of
    him, prepared (so Nicholas heard, he had not seen her again himself) to
    set off in search of Prince Andrew.
    
    When he received the news of the battle of Borodino and the abandonment
    of Moscow, Rostov was not seized with despair, anger, the desire for
    vengeance, or any feeling of that kind, but everything in Voronezh
    suddenly seemed to him dull and tiresome, and he experienced an
    indefinite feeling of shame and awkwardness. The conversations he heard
    seemed to him insincere; he did not know how to judge all these affairs
    and felt that only in the regiment would everything again become clear
    to him. He made haste to finish buying the horses, and often became
    unreasonably angry with his servant and squadron quartermaster.
    
    A few days before his departure a special thanksgiving, at which
    Nicholas was present, was held in the cathedral for the Russian victory.
    He stood a little behind the governor and held himself with military
    decorum through the service, meditating on a great variety of subjects.
    When the service was over the governor's wife beckoned him to her.
    
    "Have you seen the princess?" she asked, indicating with a movement of
    her head a lady standing on the opposite side, beyond the choir.
    
    Nicholas immediately recognized Princess Mary not so much by the profile
    he saw under her bonnet as by the feeling of solicitude, timidity, and
    pity that immediately overcame him. Princess Mary, evidently engrossed
    by her thoughts, was crossing herself for the last time before leaving
    the church.
    
    Nicholas looked at her face with surprise. It was the same face he had
    seen before, there was the same general expression of refined, inner,
    spiritual labor, but now it was quite differently lit up. There was a
    pathetic expression of sorrow, prayer, and hope in it. As had occurred
    before when she was present, Nicholas went up to her without waiting to
    be prompted by the governor's wife and not asking himself whether or not
    it was right and proper to address her here in church, and told her he
    had heard of her trouble and sympathized with his whole soul. As soon as
    she heard his voice a vivid glow kindled in her face, lighting up both
    her sorrow and her joy.
    
    "There is one thing I wanted to tell you, Princess," said Rostov. "It is
    that if your brother, Prince Andrew Nikolievich, were not living, it
    would have been at once announced in the Gazette, as he is a colonel."
    
    The princess looked at him, not grasping what he was saying, but cheered
    by the expression of regretful sympathy on his face.
    
    "And I have known so many cases of a splinter wound" (the Gazette said
    it was a shell) "either proving fatal at once or being very slight,"
    continued Nicholas. "We must hope for the best, and I am sure..."
    
    Princess Mary interrupted him.
    
    "Oh, that would be so dread..." she began and, prevented by agitation
    from finishing, she bent her head with a movement as graceful as
    everything she did in his presence and, looking up at him gratefully,
    went out, following her aunt.
    
    That evening Nicholas did not go out, but stayed at home to settle some
    accounts with the horse dealers. When he had finished that business it
    was already too late to go anywhere but still too early to go to bed,
    and for a long time he paced up and down the room, reflecting on his
    life, a thing he rarely did.
    
    Princess Mary had made an agreeable impression on him when he had met
    her in Smolensk province. His having encountered her in such exceptional
    circumstances, and his mother having at one time mentioned her to him as
    a good match, had drawn his particular attention to her. When he met her
    again in Voronezh the impression she made on him was not merely pleasing
    but powerful. Nicholas had been struck by the peculiar moral beauty he
    observed in her at this time. He was, however, preparing to go away and
    it had not entered his head to regret that he was thus depriving himself
    of chances of meeting her. But that day's encounter in church had, he
    felt, sunk deeper than was desirable for his peace of mind. That pale,
    sad, refined face, that radiant look, those gentle graceful gestures,
    and especially the deep and tender sorrow expressed in all her features
    agitated him and evoked his sympathy. In men Rostov could not bear to
    see the expression of a higher spiritual life (that was why he did not
    like Prince Andrew) and he referred to it contemptuously as philosophy
    and dreaminess, but in Princess Mary that very sorrow which revealed the
    depth of a whole spiritual world foreign to him was an irresistible
    attraction.
    
    "She must be a wonderful woman. A real angel!" he said to himself. "Why
    am I not free? Why was I in such a hurry with Sonya?" And he
    involuntarily compared the two: the lack of spirituality in the one and
    the abundance of it in the other--a spirituality he himself lacked and
    therefore valued most highly. He tried to picture what would happen were
    he free. How he would propose to her and how she would become his wife.
    But no, he could not imagine that. He felt awed, and no clear picture
    presented itself to his mind. He had long ago pictured to himself a
    future with Sonya, and that was all clear and simple just because it had
    all been thought out and he knew all there was in Sonya, but it was
    impossible to picture a future with Princess Mary, because he did not
    understand her but simply loved her.
    
    Reveries about Sonya had had something merry and playful in them, but to
    dream of Princess Mary was always difficult and a little frightening.
    
    "How she prayed!" he thought. "It was plain that her whole soul was in
    her prayer. Yes, that was the prayer that moves mountains, and I am sure
    her prayer will be answered. Why don't I pray for what I want?" he
    suddenly thought. "What do I want? To be free, released from Sonya...
    She was right," he thought, remembering what the governor's wife had
    said: "Nothing but misfortune can come of marrying Sonya. Muddles, grief
    for Mamma... business difficulties... muddles, terrible muddles!
    Besides, I don't love her--not as I should. O, God! release me from this
    dreadful, inextricable position!" he suddenly began to pray. "Yes,
    prayer can move mountains, but one must have faith and not pray as
    Natasha and I used to as children, that the snow might turn into sugar--
    and then run out into the yard to see whether it had done so. No, but I
    am not praying for trifles now," he thought as he put his pipe down in a
    corner, and folding his hands placed himself before the icon. Softened
    by memories of Princess Mary he began to pray as he had not done for a
    long time. Tears were in his eyes and in his throat when the door opened
    and Lavrushka came in with some papers.
    
    "Blockhead! Why do you come in without being called?" cried Nicholas,
    quickly changing his attitude.
    
    "From the governor," said Lavrushka in a sleepy voice. "A courier has
    arrived and there's a letter for you."
    
    "Well, all right, thanks. You can go!"
    
    Nicholas took the two letters, one of which was from his mother and the
    other from Sonya. He recognized them by the handwriting and opened
    Sonya's first. He had read only a few lines when he turned pale and his
    eyes opened wide with fear and joy.
    
    "No, it's not possible!" he cried aloud.
    
    Unable to sit still he paced up and down the room holding the letter and
    reading it. He glanced through it, then read it again, and then again,
    and standing still in the middle of the room he raised his shoulders,
    stretching out his hands, with his mouth wide open and his eyes fixed.
    What he had just been praying for with confidence that God would hear
    him had come to pass; but Nicholas was as much astonished as if it were
    something extraordinary and unexpected, and as if the very fact that it
    had happened so quickly proved that it had not come from God to whom he
    had prayed, but by some ordinary coincidence.
    
    This unexpected and, as it seemed to Nicholas, quite voluntary letter
    from Sonya freed him from the knot that fettered him and from which
    there had seemed no escape. She wrote that the last unfortunate events--
    the loss of almost the whole of the Rostovs' Moscow property--and the
    countess' repeatedly expressed wish that Nicholas should marry Princess
    Bolkonskaya, together with his silence and coldness of late, had all
    combined to make her decide to release him from his promise and set him
    completely free.
    
    It would be too painful to me to think that I might be a cause of sorrow
    or discord in the family that has been so good to me (she wrote), and my
    love has no aim but the happiness of those I love; so, Nicholas, I beg
    you to consider yourself free, and to be assured that, in spite of
    everything, no one can love you more than does
    
    Your Sonya
    
    Both letters were written from Troitsa. The other, from the countess,
    described their last days in Moscow, their departure, the fire, and the
    destruction of all their property. In this letter the countess also
    mentioned that Prince Andrew was among the wounded traveling with them;
    his state was very critical, but the doctor said there was now more
    hope. Sonya and Natasha were nursing him.
    
    Next day Nicholas took his mother's letter and went to see Princess
    Mary. Neither he nor she said a word about what "Natasha nursing him"
    might mean, but thanks to this letter Nicholas suddenly became almost as
    intimate with the princess as if they were relations.
    
    The following day he saw Princess Mary off on her journey to Yaroslavl,
    and a few days later left to rejoin his regiment.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    Sonya's letter written from Troitsa, which had come as an answer to
    Nicholas' prayer, was prompted by this: the thought of getting Nicholas
    married to an heiress occupied the old countess' mind more and more. She
    knew that Sonya was the chief obstacle to this happening, and Sonya's
    life in the countess' house had grown harder and harder, especially
    after they had received a letter from Nicholas telling of his meeting
    with Princess Mary in Bogucharovo. The countess let no occasion slip of
    making humiliating or cruel allusions to Sonya.
    
    But a few days before they left Moscow, moved and excited by all that
    was going on, she called Sonya to her and, instead of reproaching and
    making demands on her, tearfully implored her to sacrifice herself and
    repay all that the family had done for her by breaking off her
    engagement with Nicholas.
    
    "I shall not be at peace till you promise me this."
    
    Sonya burst into hysterical tears and replied through her sobs that she
    would do anything and was prepared for anything, but gave no actual
    promise and could not bring herself to decide to do what was demanded of
    her. She must sacrifice herself for the family that had reared and
    brought her up. To sacrifice herself for others was Sonya's habit. Her
    position in the house was such that only by sacrifice could she show her
    worth, and she was accustomed to this and loved doing it. But in all her
    former acts of self-sacrifice she had been happily conscious that they
    raised her in her own esteem and in that of others, and so made her more
    worthy of Nicholas whom she loved more than anything in the world. But
    now they wanted her to sacrifice the very thing that constituted the
    whole reward for her self-sacrifice and the whole meaning of her life.
    And for the first time she felt bitterness against those who had been
    her benefactors only to torture her the more painfully; she felt jealous
    of Natasha who had never experienced anything of this sort, had never
    needed to sacrifice herself, but made others sacrifice themselves for
    her and yet was beloved by everybody. And for the first time Sonya felt
    that out of her pure, quiet love for Nicholas a passionate feeling was
    beginning to grow up which was stronger than principle, virtue, or
    religion. Under the influence of this feeling Sonya, whose life of
    dependence had taught her involuntarily to be secretive, having answered
    the countess in vague general terms, avoided talking with her and
    resolved to wait till she should see Nicholas, not in order to set him
    free but on the contrary at that meeting to bind him to her forever.
    
    The bustle and terror of the Rostovs' last days in Moscow stifled the
    gloomy thoughts that oppressed Sonya. She was glad to find escape from
    them in practical activity. But when she heard of Prince Andrew's
    presence in their house, despite her sincere pity for him and for
    Natasha, she was seized by a joyful and superstitious feeling that God
    did not intend her to be separated from Nicholas. She knew that Natasha
    loved no one but Prince Andrew and had never ceased to love him. She
    knew that being thrown together again under such terrible circumstances
    they would again fall in love with one another, and that Nicholas would
    then not be able to marry Princess Mary as they would be within the
    prohibited degrees of affinity. Despite all the terror of what had
    happened during those last days and during the first days of their
    journey, this feeling that Providence was intervening in her personal
    affairs cheered Sonya.
    
    At the Troitsa monastery the Rostovs first broke their journey for a
    whole day.
    
    Three large rooms were assigned to them in the monastery hostelry, one
    of which was occupied by Prince Andrew. The wounded man was much better
    that day and Natasha was sitting with him. In the next room sat the
    count and countess respectfully conversing with the prior, who was
    calling on them as old acquaintances and benefactors of the monastery.
    Sonya was there too, tormented by curiosity as to what Prince Andrew and
    Natasha were talking about. She heard the sound of their voices through
    the door. That door opened and Natasha came out, looking excited. Not
    noticing the monk, who had risen to greet her and was drawing back the
    wide sleeve on his right arm, she went up to Sonya and took her hand.
    
    "Natasha, what are you about? Come here!" said the countess.
    
    Natasha went up to the monk for his blessing, and he advised her to pray
    for aid to God and His saint.
    
    As soon as the prior withdrew, Natasha took her friend by the hand and
    went with her into the unoccupied room.
    
    "Sonya, will he live?" she asked. "Sonya, how happy I am, and how
    unhappy!... Sonya, dovey, everything is as it used to be. If only he
    lives! He cannot... because... because... of" and Natasha burst into
    tears.
    
    "Yes! I knew it! Thank God!" murmured Sonya. "He will live."
    
    Sonya was not less agitated than her friend by the latter's fear and
    grief and by her own personal feelings which she shared with no one.
    Sobbing, she kissed and comforted Natasha. "If only he lives!" she
    thought. Having wept, talked, and wiped away their tears, the two
    friends went together to Prince Andrew's door. Natasha opened it
    cautiously and glanced into the room, Sonya standing beside her at the
    half-open door.
    
    Prince Andrew was lying raised high on three pillows. His pale face was
    calm, his eyes closed, and they could see his regular breathing.
    
    "O, Natasha!" Sonya suddenly almost screamed, catching her companion's
    arm and stepping back from the door.
    
    "What? What is it?" asked Natasha.
    
    "It's that, that..." said Sonya, with a white face and trembling lips.
    
    Natasha softly closed the door and went with Sonya to the window, not
    yet understanding what the latter was telling her.
    
    "You remember," said Sonya with a solemn and frightened expression. "You
    remember when I looked in the mirror for you... at Otradnoe at
    Christmas? Do you remember what I saw?"
    
    "Yes, yes!" cried Natasha opening her eyes wide, and vaguely recalling
    that Sonya had told her something about Prince Andrew whom she had seen
    lying down.
    
    "You remember?" Sonya went on. "I saw it then and told everybody, you
    and Dunyasha. I saw him lying on a bed," said she, making a gesture with
    her hand and a lifted finger at each detail, "and that he had his eyes
    closed and was covered just with a pink quilt, and that his hands were
    folded," she concluded, convincing herself that the details she had just
    seen were exactly what she had seen in the mirror.
    
    She had in fact seen nothing then but had mentioned the first thing that
    came into her head, but what she had invented then seemed to her now as
    real as any other recollection. She not only remembered what she had
    then said--that he turned to look at her and smiled and was covered with
    something red--but was firmly convinced that she had then seen and said
    that he was covered with a pink quilt and that his eyes were closed.
    
    "Yes, yes, it really was pink!" cried Natasha, who now thought she too
    remembered the word pink being used, and saw in this the most
    extraordinary and mysterious part of the prediction.
    
    "But what does it mean?" she added meditatively.
    
    "Oh, I don't know, it is all so strange," replied Sonya, clutching at
    her head.
    
    A few minutes later Prince Andrew rang and Natasha went to him, but
    Sonya, feeling unusually excited and touched, remained at the window
    thinking about the strangeness of what had occurred.
    
    They had an opportunity that day to send letters to the army, and the
    countess was writing to her son.
    
    "Sonya!" said the countess, raising her eyes from her letter as her
    niece passed, "Sonya, won't you write to Nicholas?" She spoke in a soft,
    tremulous voice, and in the weary eyes that looked over her spectacles
    Sonya read all that the countess meant to convey with these words. Those
    eyes expressed entreaty, shame at having to ask, fear of a refusal, and
    readiness for relentless hatred in case of such refusal.
    
    Sonya went up to the countess and, kneeling down, kissed her hand.
    
    "Yes, Mamma, I will write," said she.
    
    Sonya was softened, excited, and touched by all that had occurred that
    day, especially by the mysterious fulfillment she had just seen of her
    vision. Now that she knew that the renewal of Natasha's relations with
    Prince Andrew would prevent Nicholas from marrying Princess Mary, she
    was joyfully conscious of a return of that self-sacrificing spirit in
    which she was accustomed to live and loved to live. So with a joyful
    consciousness of performing a magnanimous deed--interrupted several
    times by the tears that dimmed her velvety black eyes--she wrote that
    touching letter the arrival of which had so amazed Nicholas.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    The officer and soldiers who had arrested Pierre treated him with
    hostility but yet with respect, in the guardhouse to which he was taken.
    In their attitude toward him could still be felt both uncertainty as to
    who he might be--perhaps a very important person--and hostility as a
    result of their recent personal conflict with him.
    
    But when the guard was relieved next morning, Pierre felt that for the
    new guard--both officers and men--he was not as interesting as he had
    been to his captors; and in fact the guard of the second day did not
    recognize in this big, stout man in a peasant coat the vigorous person
    who had fought so desperately with the marauder and the convoy and had
    uttered those solemn words about saving a child; they saw in him only
    No. 17 of the captured Russians, arrested and detained for some reason
    by order of the Higher Command. If they noticed anything remarkable
    about Pierre, it was only his unabashed, meditative concentration and
    thoughtfulness, and the way he spoke French, which struck them as
    surprisingly good. In spite of this he was placed that day with the
    other arrested suspects, as the separate room he had occupied was
    required by an officer.
    
    All the Russians confined with Pierre were men of the lowest class and,
    recognizing him as a gentleman, they all avoided him, more especially as
    he spoke French. Pierre felt sad at hearing them making fun of him.
    
    That evening he learned that all these prisoners (he, probably, among
    them) were to be tried for incendiarism. On the third day he was taken
    with the others to a house where a French general with a white mustache
    sat with two colonels and other Frenchmen with scarves on their arms.
    With the precision and definiteness customary in addressing prisoners,
    and which is supposed to preclude human frailty, Pierre like the others
    was questioned as to who he was, where he had been, with what object,
    and so on.
    
    These questions, like questions put at trials generally, left the
    essence of the matter aside, shut out the possibility of that essence's
    being revealed, and were designed only to form a channel through which
    the judges wished the answers of the accused to flow so as to lead to
    the desired result, namely a conviction. As soon as Pierre began to say
    anything that did not fit in with that aim, the channel was removed and
    the water could flow to waste. Pierre felt, moreover, what the accused
    always feel at their trial, perplexity as to why these questions were
    put to him. He had a feeling that it was only out of condescension or a
    kind of civility that this device of placing a channel was employed. He
    knew he was in these men's power, that only by force had they brought
    him there, that force alone gave them the right to demand answers to
    their questions, and that the sole object of that assembly was to
    inculpate him. And so, as they had the power and wish to inculpate him,
    this expedient of an inquiry and trial seemed unnecessary. It was
    evident that any answer would lead to conviction. When asked what he was
    doing when he was arrested, Pierre replied in a rather tragic manner
    that he was restoring to its parents a child he had saved from the
    flames. Why had he fought the marauder? Pierre answered that he "was
    protecting a woman," and that "to protect a woman who was being insulted
    was the duty of every man; that..." They interrupted him, for this was
    not to the point. Why was he in the yard of a burning house where
    witnesses had seen him? He replied that he had gone out to see what was
    happening in Moscow. Again they interrupted him: they had not asked
    where he was going, but why he was found near the fire? Who was he? they
    asked, repeating their first question, which he had declined to answer.
    Again he replied that he could not answer it.
    
    "Put that down, that's bad... very bad," sternly remarked the general
    with the white mustache and red flushed face.
    
    On the fourth day fires broke out on the Zubovski rampart.
    
    Pierre and thirteen others were moved to the coach house of a merchant's
    house near the Crimean bridge. On his way through the streets Pierre
    felt stifled by the smoke which seemed to hang over the whole city.
    Fires were visible on all sides. He did not then realize the
    significance of the burning of Moscow, and looked at the fires with
    horror.
    
    He passed four days in the coach house near the Crimean bridge and
    during that time learned, from the talk of the French soldiers, that all
    those confined there were awaiting a decision which might come any day
    from the marshal. What marshal this was, Pierre could not learn from the
    soldiers. Evidently for them "the marshal" represented a very high and
    rather mysterious power.
    
    These first days, before the eighth of September when the prisoners were
    had up for a second examination, were the hardest of all for Pierre.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    On the eighth of September an officer--a very important one judging by
    the respect the guards showed him--entered the coach house where the
    prisoners were. This officer, probably someone on the staff, was holding
    a paper in his hand, and called over all the Russians there, naming
    Pierre as "the man who does not give his name." Glancing indolently and
    indifferently at all the prisoners, he ordered the officer in charge to
    have them decently dressed and tidied up before taking them to the
    marshal. An hour later a squad of soldiers arrived and Pierre with
    thirteen others was led to the Virgin's Field. It was a fine day, sunny
    after rain, and the air was unusually pure. The smoke did not hang low
    as on the day when Pierre had been taken from the guardhouse on the
    Zubovski rampart, but rose through the pure air in columns. No flames
    were seen, but columns of smoke rose on all sides, and all Moscow as far
    as Pierre could see was one vast charred ruin. On all sides there were
    waste spaces with only stoves and chimney stacks still standing, and
    here and there the blackened walls of some brick houses. Pierre gazed at
    the ruins and did not recognize districts he had known well. Here and
    there he could see churches that had not been burned. The Kremlin, which
    was not destroyed, gleamed white in the distance with its towers and the
    belfry of Ivan the Great. The domes of the New Convent of the Virgin
    glittered brightly and its bells were ringing particularly clearly.
    These bells reminded Pierre that it was Sunday and the feast of the
    Nativity of the Virgin. But there seemed to be no one to celebrate this
    holiday: everywhere were blackened ruins, and the few Russians to be
    seen were tattered and frightened people who tried to hide when they saw
    the French.
    
    It was plain that the Russian nest was ruined and destroyed, but in
    place of the Russian order of life that had been destroyed, Pierre
    unconsciously felt that a quite different, firm, French order had been
    established over this ruined nest. He felt this in the looks of the
    soldiers who, marching in regular ranks briskly and gaily, were
    escorting him and the other criminals; he felt it in the looks of an
    important French official in a carriage and pair driven by a soldier,
    whom they met on the way. He felt it in the merry sounds of regimental
    music he heard from the left side of the field, and felt and realized it
    especially from the list of prisoners the French officer had read out
    when he came that morning. Pierre had been taken by one set of soldiers
    and led first to one and then to another place with dozens of other men,
    and it seemed that they might have forgotten him, or confused him with
    the others. But no: the answers he had given when questioned had come
    back to him in his designation as "the man who does not give his name,"
    and under that appellation, which to Pierre seemed terrible, they were
    now leading him somewhere with unhesitating assurance on their faces
    that he and all the other prisoners were exactly the ones they wanted
    and that they were being taken to the proper place. Pierre felt himself
    to be an insignificant chip fallen among the wheels of a machine whose
    action he did not understand but which was working well.
    
    He and the other prisoners were taken to the right side of the Virgin's
    Field, to a large white house with an immense garden not far from the
    convent. This was Prince Shcherbitov's house, where Pierre had often
    been in other days, and which, as he learned from the talk of the
    soldiers, was now occupied by the marshal, the Duke of Eckmuhl (Davout).
    
    They were taken to the entrance and led into the house one by one.
    Pierre was the sixth to enter. He was conducted through a glass gallery,
    an anteroom, and a hall, which were familiar to him, into a long low
    study at the door of which stood an adjutant.
    
    Davout, spectacles on nose, sat bent over a table at the further end of
    the room. Pierre went close up to him, but Davout, evidently consulting
    a paper that lay before him, did not look up. Without raising his eyes,
    he said in a low voice:
    
    "Who are you?"
    
    Pierre was silent because he was incapable of uttering a word. To him
    Davout was not merely a French general, but a man notorious for his
    cruelty. Looking at his cold face, as he sat like a stern schoolmaster
    who was prepared to wait awhile for an answer, Pierre felt that every
    instant of delay might cost him his life; but he did not know what to
    say. He did not venture to repeat what he had said at his first
    examination, yet to disclose his rank and position was dangerous and
    embarrassing. So he was silent. But before he had decided what to do,
    Davout raised his head, pushed his spectacles back on his forehead,
    screwed up his eyes, and looked intently at him.
    
    "I know that man," he said in a cold, measured tone, evidently
    calculated to frighten Pierre.
    
    The chill that had been running down Pierre's back now seized his head
    as in a vise.
    
    "You cannot know me, General, I have never seen you..."
    
    "He is a Russian spy," Davout interrupted, addressing another general
    who was present, but whom Pierre had not noticed.
    
    Davout turned away. With an unexpected reverberation in his voice Pierre
    rapidly began:
    
    "No, monseigneur," he said, suddenly remembering that Davout was a duke.
    "No, monseigneur, you cannot have known me. I am a militia officer and
    have not quitted Moscow."
    
    "Your name?" asked Davout.
    
    "Bezukhov."
    
    "What proof have I that you are not lying?"
    
    "Monseigneur!" exclaimed Pierre, not in an offended but in a pleading
    voice.
    
    Davout looked up and gazed intently at him. For some seconds they looked
    at one another, and that look saved Pierre. Apart from conditions of war
    and law, that look established human relations between the two men. At
    that moment an immense number of things passed dimly through both their
    minds, and they realized that they were both children of humanity and
    were brothers.
    
    At the first glance, when Davout had only raised his head from the
    papers where human affairs and lives were indicated by numbers, Pierre
    was merely a circumstance, and Davout could have shot him without
    burdening his conscience with an evil deed, but now he saw in him a
    human being. He reflected for a moment.
    
    "How can you show me that you are telling the truth?" said Davout
    coldly.
    
    Pierre remembered Ramballe, and named him and his regiment and the
    street where the house was.
    
    "You are not what you say," returned Davout.
    
    In a trembling, faltering voice Pierre began adducing proofs of the
    truth of his statements.
    
    But at that moment an adjutant entered and reported something to Davout.
    
    Davout brightened up at the news the adjutant brought, and began
    buttoning up his uniform. It seemed that he had quite forgotten Pierre.
    
    When the adjutant reminded him of the prisoner, he jerked his head in
    Pierre's direction with a frown and ordered him to be led away. But
    where they were to take him Pierre did not know: back to the coach house
    or to the place of execution his companions had pointed out to him as
    they crossed the Virgin's Field.
    
    He turned his head and saw that the adjutant was putting another
    question to Davout.
    
    "Yes, of course!" replied Davout, but what this "yes" meant, Pierre did
    not know.
    
    Pierre could not afterwards remember how he went, whether it was far, or
    in which direction. His faculties were quite numbed, he was stupefied,
    and noticing nothing around him went on moving his legs as the others
    did till they all stopped and he stopped too. The only thought in his
    mind at that time was: who was it that had really sentenced him to
    death? Not the men on the commission that had first examined him--not
    one of them wished to or, evidently, could have done it. It was not
    Davout, who had looked at him in so human a way. In another moment
    Davout would have realized that he was doing wrong, but just then the
    adjutant had come in and interrupted him. The adjutant, also, had
    evidently had no evil intent though he might have refrained from coming
    in. Then who was executing him, killing him, depriving him of life--him,
    Pierre, with all his memories, aspirations, hopes, and thoughts? Who was
    doing this? And Pierre felt that it was no one.
    
    It was a system--a concurrence of circumstances.
    
    A system of some sort was killing him--Pierre--depriving him of life, of
    everything, annihilating him.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    From Prince Shcherbatov's house the prisoners were led straight down the
    Virgin's Field, to the left of the nunnery, as far as a kitchen garden
    in which a post had been set up. Beyond that post a fresh pit had been
    dug in the ground, and near the post and the pit a large crowd stood in
    a semicircle. The crowd consisted of a few Russians and many of
    Napoleon's soldiers who were not on duty--Germans, Italians, and
    Frenchmen, in a variety of uniforms. To the right and left of the post
    stood rows of French troops in blue uniforms with red epaulets and high
    boots and shakos.
    
    The prisoners were placed in a certain order, according to the list
    (Pierre was sixth), and were led to the post. Several drums suddenly
    began to beat on both sides of them, and at that sound Pierre felt as if
    part of his soul had been torn away. He lost the power of thinking or
    understanding. He could only hear and see. And he had only one wish--
    that the frightful thing that had to happen should happen quickly.
    Pierre looked round at his fellow prisoners and scrutinized them.
    
    The two first were convicts with shaven heads. One was tall and thin,
    the other dark, shaggy, and sinewy, with a flat nose. The third was a
    domestic serf, about forty-five years old, with grizzled hair and a
    plump, well-nourished body. The fourth was a peasant, a very handsome
    man with a broad, light-brown beard and black eyes. The fifth was a
    factory hand, a thin, sallow-faced lad of eighteen in a loose coat.
    
    Pierre heard the French consulting whether to shoot them separately or
    two at a time. "In couples," replied the officer in command in a calm
    voice. There was a stir in the ranks of the soldiers and it was evident
    that they were all hurrying--not as men hurry to do something they
    understand, but as people hurry to finish a necessary but unpleasant and
    incomprehensible task.
    
    A French official wearing a scarf came up to the right of the row of
    prisoners and read out the sentence in Russian and in French.
    
    Then two pairs of Frenchmen approached the criminals and at the
    officer's command took the two convicts who stood first in the row. The
    convicts stopped when they reached the post and, while sacks were being
    brought, looked dumbly around as a wounded beast looks at an approaching
    huntsman. One crossed himself continually, the other scratched his back
    and made a movement of the lips resembling a smile. With hurried hands
    the soldiers blindfolded them, drawing the sacks over their heads, and
    bound them to the post.
    
    Twelve sharpshooters with muskets stepped out of the ranks with a firm
    regular tread and halted eight paces from the post. Pierre turned away
    to avoid seeing what was going to happen. Suddenly a crackling, rolling
    noise was heard which seemed to him louder than the most terrific
    thunder, and he looked round. There was some smoke, and the Frenchmen
    were doing something near the pit, with pale faces and trembling hands.
    Two more prisoners were led up. In the same way and with similar looks,
    these two glanced vainly at the onlookers with only a silent appeal for
    protection in their eyes, evidently unable to understand or believe what
    was going to happen to them. They could not believe it because they
    alone knew what their life meant to them, and so they neither understood
    nor believed that it could be taken from them.
    
    Again Pierre did not wish to look and again turned away; but again the
    sound as of a frightful explosion struck his ear, and at the same moment
    he saw smoke, blood, and the pale, scared faces of the Frenchmen who
    were again doing something by the post, their trembling hands impeding
    one another. Pierre, breathing heavily, looked around as if asking what
    it meant. The same question was expressed in all the looks that met his.
    
    On the faces of all the Russians and of the French soldiers and officers
    without exception, he read the same dismay, horror, and conflict that
    were in his own heart. "But who, after all, is doing this? They are all
    suffering as I am. Who then is it? Who?" flashed for an instant through
    his mind.
    
    "Sharpshooters of the 86th, forward!" shouted someone. The fifth
    prisoner, the one next to Pierre, was led away--alone. Pierre did not
    understand that he was saved, that he and the rest had been brought
    there only to witness the execution. With ever-growing horror, and no
    sense of joy or relief, he gazed at what was taking place. The fifth man
    was the factory lad in the loose cloak. The moment they laid hands on
    him he sprang aside in terror and clutched at Pierre. (Pierre shuddered
    and shook himself free.) The lad was unable to walk. They dragged him
    along, holding him up under the arms, and he screamed. When they got him
    to the post he grew quiet, as if he suddenly understood something.
    Whether he understood that screaming was useless or whether he thought
    it incredible that men should kill him, at any rate he took his stand at
    the post, waiting to be blindfolded like the others, and like a wounded
    animal looked around him with glittering eyes.
    
    Pierre was no longer able to turn away and close his eyes. His curiosity
    and agitation, like that of the whole crowd, reached the highest pitch
    at this fifth murder. Like the others this fifth man seemed calm; he
    wrapped his loose cloak closer and rubbed one bare foot with the other.
    
    When they began to blindfold him he himself adjusted the knot which hurt
    the back of his head; then when they propped him against the
    bloodstained post, he leaned back and, not being comfortable in that
    position, straightened himself, adjusted his feet, and leaned back again
    more comfortably. Pierre did not take his eyes from him and did not miss
    his slightest movement.
    
    Probably a word of command was given and was followed by the reports of
    eight muskets; but try as he would Pierre could not afterwards remember
    having heard the slightest sound of the shots. He only saw how the
    workman suddenly sank down on the cords that held him, how blood showed
    itself in two places, how the ropes slackened under the weight of the
    hanging body, and how the workman sat down, his head hanging unnaturally
    and one leg bent under him. Pierre ran up to the post. No one hindered
    him. Pale, frightened people were doing something around the workman.
    The lower jaw of an old Frenchman with a thick mustache trembled as he
    untied the ropes. The body collapsed. The soldiers dragged it awkwardly
    from the post and began pushing it into the pit.
    
    They all plainly and certainly knew that they were criminals who must
    hide the traces of their guilt as quickly as possible.
    
    Pierre glanced into the pit and saw that the factory lad was lying with
    his knees close up to his head and one shoulder higher than the other.
    That shoulder rose and fell rhythmically and convulsively, but spadefuls
    of earth were already being thrown over the whole body. One of the
    soldiers, evidently suffering, shouted gruffly and angrily at Pierre to
    go back. But Pierre did not understand him and remained near the post,
    and no one drove him away.
    
    When the pit had been filled up a command was given. Pierre was taken
    back to his place, and the rows of troops on both sides of the post made
    a half turn and went past it at a measured pace. The twenty-four
    sharpshooters with discharged muskets, standing in the center of the
    circle, ran back to their places as the companies passed by.
    
    Pierre gazed now with dazed eyes at these sharpshooters who ran in
    couples out of the circle. All but one rejoined their companies. This
    one, a young soldier, his face deadly pale, his shako pushed back, and
    his musket resting on the ground, still stood near the pit at the spot
    from which he had fired. He swayed like a drunken man, taking some steps
    forward and back to save himself from falling. An old, noncommissioned
    officer ran out of the ranks and taking him by the elbow dragged him to
    his company. The crowd of Russians and Frenchmen began to disperse. They
    all went away silently and with drooping heads.
    
    "That will teach them to start fires," said one of the Frenchmen.
    
    Pierre glanced round at the speaker and saw that it was a soldier who
    was trying to find some relief after what had been done, but was not
    able to do so. Without finishing what he had begun to say he made a
    hopeless movement with his arm and went away.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    After the execution Pierre was separated from the rest of the prisoners
    and placed alone in a small, ruined, and befouled church.
    
    Toward evening a noncommissioned officer entered with two soldiers and
    told him that he had been pardoned and would now go to the barracks for
    the prisoners of war. Without understanding what was said to him, Pierre
    got up and went with the soldiers. They took him to the upper end of the
    field, where there were some sheds built of charred planks, beams, and
    battens, and led him into one of them. In the darkness some twenty
    different men surrounded Pierre. He looked at them without understanding
    who they were, why they were there, or what they wanted of him. He heard
    what they said, but did not understand the meaning of the words and made
    no kind of deduction from or application of them. He replied to
    questions they put to him, but did not consider who was listening to his
    replies, nor how they would understand them. He looked at their faces
    and figures, but they all seemed to him equally meaningless.
    
    From the moment Pierre had witnessed those terrible murders committed by
    men who did not wish to commit them, it was as if the mainspring of his
    life, on which everything depended and which made everything appear
    alive, had suddenly been wrenched out and everything had collapsed into
    a heap of meaningless rubbish. Though he did not acknowledge it to
    himself, his faith in the right ordering of the universe, in humanity,
    in his own soul, and in God, had been destroyed. He had experienced this
    before, but never so strongly as now. When similar doubts had assailed
    him before, they had been the result of his own wrongdoing, and at the
    bottom of his heart he had felt that relief from his despair and from
    those doubts was to be found within himself. But now he felt that the
    universe had crumbled before his eyes and only meaningless ruins
    remained, and this not by any fault of his own. He felt that it was not
    in his power to regain faith in the meaning of life.
    
    Around him in the darkness men were standing and evidently something
    about him interested them greatly. They were telling him something and
    asking him something. Then they led him away somewhere, and at last he
    found himself in a corner of the shed among men who were laughing and
    talking on all sides.
    
    "Well, then, mates... that very prince who..." some voice at the other
    end of the shed was saying, with a strong emphasis on the word who.
    
    Sitting silent and motionless on a heap of straw against the wall,
    Pierre sometimes opened and sometimes closed his eyes. But as soon as he
    closed them he saw before him the dreadful face of the factory lad--
    especially dreadful because of its simplicity--and the faces of the
    murderers, even more dreadful because of their disquiet. And he opened
    his eyes again and stared vacantly into the darkness around him.
    
    Beside him in a stooping position sat a small man of whose presence he
    was first made aware by a strong smell of perspiration which came from
    him every time he moved. This man was doing something to his legs in the
    darkness, and though Pierre could not see his face he felt that the man
    continually glanced at him. On growing used to the darkness Pierre saw
    that the man was taking off his leg bands, and the way he did it aroused
    Pierre's interest.
    
    Having unwound the string that tied the band on one leg, he carefully
    coiled it up and immediately set to work on the other leg, glancing up
    at Pierre. While one hand hung up the first string the other was already
    unwinding the band on the second leg. In this way, having carefully
    removed the leg bands by deft circular motions of his arm following one
    another uninterruptedly, the man hung the leg bands up on some pegs
    fixed above his head. Then he took out a knife, cut something, closed
    the knife, placed it under the head of his bed, and, seating himself
    comfortably, clasped his arms round his lifted knees and fixed his eyes
    on Pierre. The latter was conscious of something pleasant, comforting,
    and well-rounded in these deft movements, in the man's well-ordered
    arrangements in his corner, and even in his very smell, and he looked at
    the man without taking his eyes from him.
    
    "You've seen a lot of trouble, sir, eh?" the little man suddenly said.
    
    And there was so much kindliness and simplicity in his singsong voice
    that Pierre tried to reply, but his jaw trembled and he felt tears
    rising to his eyes. The little fellow, giving Pierre no time to betray
    his confusion, instantly continued in the same pleasant tones:
    
    "Eh, lad, don't fret!" said he, in the tender singsong caressing voice
    old Russian peasant women employ. "Don't fret, friend--'suffer an hour,
    live for an age!' that's how it is, my dear fellow. And here we live,
    thank heaven, without offense. Among these folk, too, there are good men
    as well as bad," said he, and still speaking, he turned on his knees
    with a supple movement, got up, coughed, and went off to another part of
    the shed.
    
    "Eh, you rascal!" Pierre heard the same kind voice saying at the other
    end of the shed. "So you've come, you rascal? She remembers... Now, now,
    that'll do!"
    
    And the soldier, pushing away a little dog that was jumping up at him,
    returned to his place and sat down. In his hands he had something
    wrapped in a rag.
    
    "Here, eat a bit, sir," said he, resuming his former respectful tone as
    he unwrapped and offered Pierre some baked potatoes. "We had soup for
    dinner and the potatoes are grand!"
    
    Pierre had not eaten all day and the smell of the potatoes seemed
    extremely pleasant to him. He thanked the soldier and began to eat.
    
    "Well, are they all right?" said the soldier with a smile. "You should
    do like this."
    
    He took a potato, drew out his clasp knife, cut the potato into two
    equal halves on the palm of his hand, sprinkled some salt on it from the
    rag, and handed it to Pierre.
    
    "The potatoes are grand!" he said once more. "Eat some like that!"
    
    Pierre thought he had never eaten anything that tasted better.
    
    "Oh, I'm all right," said he, "but why did they shoot those poor
    fellows? The last one was hardly twenty."
    
    "Tss, tt...!" said the little man. "Ah, what a sin... what a sin!" he
    added quickly, and as if his words were always waiting ready in his
    mouth and flew out involuntarily he went on: "How was it, sir, that you
    stayed in Moscow?"
    
    "I didn't think they would come so soon. I stayed accidentally," replied
    Pierre.
    
    "And how did they arrest you, dear lad? At your house?"
    
    "No, I went to look at the fire, and they arrested me there, and tried
    me as an incendiary."
    
    "Where there's law there's injustice," put in the little man.
    
    "And have you been here long?" Pierre asked as he munched the last of
    the potato.
    
    "I? It was last Sunday they took me, out of a hospital in Moscow."
    
    "Why, are you a soldier then?"
    
    "Yes, we are soldiers of the Apsheron regiment. I was dying of fever. We
    weren't told anything. There were some twenty of us lying there. We had
    no idea, never guessed at all."
    
    "And do you feel sad here?" Pierre inquired.
    
    "How can one help it, lad? My name is Platon, and the surname is
    Karataev," he added, evidently wishing to make it easier for Pierre to
    address him. "They call me 'little falcon' in the regiment. How is one
    to help feeling sad? Moscow--she's the mother of cities. How can one see
    all this and not feel sad? But 'the maggot gnaws the cabbage, yet dies
    first'; that's what the old folks used to tell us," he added rapidly.
    
    "What? What did you say?" asked Pierre.
    
    "Who? I?" said Karataev. "I say things happen not as we plan but as God
    judges," he replied, thinking that he was repeating what he had said
    before, and immediately continued:
    
    "Well, and you, have you a family estate, sir? And a house? So you have
    abundance, then? And a housewife? And your old parents, are they still
    living?" he asked.
    
    And though it was too dark for Pierre to see, he felt that a suppressed
    smile of kindliness puckered the soldier's lips as he put these
    questions. He seemed grieved that Pierre had no parents, especially that
    he had no mother.
    
    "A wife for counsel, a mother-in-law for welcome, but there's none as
    dear as one's own mother!" said he. "Well, and have you little ones?" he
    went on asking.
    
    Again Pierre's negative answer seemed to distress him, and he hastened
    to add:
    
    "Never mind! You're young folks yet, and please God may still have some.
    The great thing is to live in harmony...."
    
    "But it's all the same now," Pierre could not help saying.
    
    "Ah, my dear fellow!" rejoined Karataev, "never decline a prison or a
    beggar's sack!"
    
    He seated himself more comfortably and coughed, evidently preparing to
    tell a long story.
    
    "Well, my dear fellow, I was still living at home," he began. "We had a
    well-to-do homestead, plenty of land, we peasants lived well and our
    house was one to thank God for. When Father and we went out mowing there
    were seven of us. We lived well. We were real peasants. It so
    happened..."
    
    And Platon Karataev told a long story of how he had gone into someone's
    copse to take wood, how he had been caught by the keeper, had been
    tried, flogged, and sent to serve as a soldier.
    
    "Well, lad," and a smile changed the tone of his voice "we thought it
    was a misfortune but it turned out a blessing! If it had not been for my
    sin, my brother would have had to go as a soldier. But he, my younger
    brother, had five little ones, while I, you see, only left a wife
    behind. We had a little girl, but God took her before I went as a
    soldier. I come home on leave and I'll tell you how it was, I look and
    see that they are living better than before. The yard full of cattle,
    the women at home, two brothers away earning wages, and only Michael the
    youngest, at home. Father, he says, 'All my children are the same to me:
    it hurts the same whichever finger gets bitten. But if Platon hadn't
    been shaved for a soldier, Michael would have had to go.' called us all
    to him and, will you believe it, placed us in front of the icons.
    'Michael,' he says, 'come here and bow down to his feet; and you, young
    woman, you bow down too; and you, grandchildren, also bow down before
    him! Do you understand?' he says. That's how it is, dear fellow. Fate
    looks for a head. But we are always judging, 'that's not well--that's
    not right!' Our luck is like water in a dragnet: you pull at it and it
    bulges, but when you've drawn it out it's empty! That's how it is."
    
    And Platon shifted his seat on the straw.
    
    After a short silence he rose.
    
    "Well, I think you must be sleepy," said he, and began rapidly crossing
    himself and repeating:
    
    "Lord Jesus Christ, holy Saint Nicholas, Frola and Lavra! Lord Jesus
    Christ, holy Saint Nicholas, Frola and Lavra! Lord Jesus Christ, have
    mercy on us and save us!" he concluded, then bowed to the ground, got
    up, sighed, and sat down again on his heap of straw. "That's the way.
    Lay me down like a stone, O God, and raise me up like a loaf," he
    muttered as he lay down, pulling his coat over him.
    
    "What prayer was that you were saying?" asked Pierre.
    
    "Eh?" murmured Platon, who had almost fallen asleep. "What was I saying?
    I was praying. Don't you pray?"
    
    "Yes, I do," said Pierre. "But what was that you said: Frola and Lavra?"
    
    "Well, of course," replied Platon quickly, "the horses' saints. One must
    pity the animals too. Eh, the rascal! Now you've curled up and got warm,
    you daughter of a bitch!" said Karataev, touching the dog that lay at
    his feet, and again turning over he fell asleep immediately.
    
    Sounds of crying and screaming came from somewhere in the distance
    outside, and flames were visible through the cracks of the shed, but
    inside it was quiet and dark. For a long time Pierre did not sleep, but
    lay with eyes open in the darkness, listening to the regular snoring of
    Platon who lay beside him, and he felt that the world that had been
    shattered was once more stirring in his soul with a new beauty and on
    new and unshakable foundations.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    Twenty-three soldiers, three officers, and two officials were confined
    in the shed in which Pierre had been placed and where he remained for
    four weeks.
    
    When Pierre remembered them afterwards they all seemed misty figures to
    him except Platon Karataev, who always remained in his mind a most vivid
    and precious memory and the personification of everything Russian,
    kindly, and round. When Pierre saw his neighbor next morning at dawn the
    first impression of him, as of something round, was fully confirmed:
    Platon's whole figure--in a French overcoat girdled with a cord, a
    soldier's cap, and bast shoes--was round. His head was quite round, his
    back, chest, shoulders, and even his arms, which he held as if ever
    ready to embrace something, were rounded, his pleasant smile and his
    large, gentle brown eyes were also round.
    
    Platon Karataev must have been fifty, judging by his stories of
    campaigns he had been in, told as by an old soldier. He did not himself
    know his age and was quite unable to determine it. But his brilliantly
    white, strong teeth which showed in two unbroken semicircles when he
    laughed--as he often did--were all sound and good, there was not a gray
    hair in his beard or on his head, and his whole body gave an impression
    of suppleness and especially of firmness and endurance.
    
    His face, despite its fine, rounded wrinkles, had an expression of
    innocence and youth, his voice was pleasant and musical. But the chief
    peculiarity of his speech was its directness and appositeness. It was
    evident that he never considered what he had said or was going to say,
    and consequently the rapidity and justice of his intonation had an
    irresistible persuasiveness.
    
    His physical strength and agility during the first days of his
    imprisonment were such that he seemed not to know what fatigue and
    sickness meant. Every night before lying down, he said: "Lord, lay me
    down as a stone and raise me up as a loaf!" and every morning on getting
    up, he said: "I lay down and curled up, I get up and shake myself." And
    indeed he only had to lie down, to fall asleep like a stone, and he only
    had to shake himself, to be ready without a moment's delay for some
    work, just as children are ready to play directly they awake. He could
    do everything, not very well but not badly. He baked, cooked, sewed,
    planed, and mended boots. He was always busy, and only at night allowed
    himself conversation--of which he was fond--and songs. He did not sing
    like a trained singer who knows he is listened to, but like the birds,
    evidently giving vent to the sounds in the same way that one stretches
    oneself or walks about to get rid of stiffness, and the sounds were
    always high-pitched, mournful, delicate, and almost feminine, and his
    face at such times was very serious.
    
    Having been taken prisoner and allowed his beard to grow, he seemed to
    have thrown off all that had been forced upon him--everything military
    and alien to himself--and had returned to his former peasant habits.
    
    "A soldier on leave--a shirt outside breeches," he would say.
    
    He did not like talking about his life as a soldier, though he did not
    complain, and often mentioned that he had not been flogged once during
    the whole of his army service. When he related anything it was generally
    some old and evidently precious memory of his "Christian" life, as he
    called his peasant existence. The proverbs, of which his talk was full,
    were for the most part not the coarse and indecent saws soldiers employ,
    but those folk sayings which taken without a context seem so
    insignificant, but when used appositely suddenly acquire a significance
    of profound wisdom.
    
    He would often say the exact opposite of what he had said on a previous
    occasion, yet both would be right. He liked to talk and he talked well,
    adorning his speech with terms of endearment and with folk sayings which
    Pierre thought he invented himself, but the chief charm of his talk lay
    in the fact that the commonest events--sometimes just such as Pierre had
    witnessed without taking notice of them--assumed in Karataev's a
    character of solemn fitness. He liked to hear the folk tales one of the
    soldiers used to tell of an evening (they were always the same), but
    most of all he liked to hear stories of real life. He would smile
    joyfully when listening to such stories, now and then putting in a word
    or asking a question to make the moral beauty of what he was told clear
    to himself. Karataev had no attachments, friendships, or love, as Pierre
    understood them, but loved and lived affectionately with everything life
    brought him in contact with, particularly with man--not any particular
    man, but those with whom he happened to be. He loved his dog, his
    comrades, the French, and Pierre who was his neighbor, but Pierre felt
    that in spite of Karataev's affectionate tenderness for him (by which he
    unconsciously gave Pierre's spiritual life its due) he would not have
    grieved for a moment at parting from him. And Pierre began to feel in
    the same way toward Karataev.
    
    To all the other prisoners Platon Karataev seemed a most ordinary
    soldier. They called him "little falcon" or "Platosha," chaffed him
    good-naturedly, and sent him on errands. But to Pierre he always
    remained what he had seemed that first night: an unfathomable, rounded,
    eternal personification of the spirit of simplicity and truth.
    
    Platon Karataev knew nothing by heart except his prayers. When he began
    to speak he seemed not to know how he would conclude.
    
    Sometimes Pierre, struck by the meaning of his words, would ask him to
    repeat them, but Platon could never recall what he had said a moment
    before, just as he never could repeat to Pierre the words of his
    favorite song: native and birch tree and my heart is sick occurred in
    it, but when spoken and not sung, no meaning could be got out of it. He
    did not, and could not, understand the meaning of words apart from their
    context. Every word and action of his was the manifestation of an
    activity unknown to him, which was his life. But his life, as he
    regarded it, had no meaning as a separate thing. It had meaning only as
    part of a whole of which he was always conscious. His words and actions
    flowed from him as evenly, inevitably, and spontaneously as fragrance
    exhales from a flower. He could not understand the value or significance
    of any word or deed taken separately.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    When Princess Mary heard from Nicholas that her brother was with the
    Rostovs at Yaroslavl she at once prepared to go there, in spite of her
    aunt's efforts to dissuade her--and not merely to go herself but to take
    her nephew with her. Whether it were difficult or easy, possible or
    impossible, she did not ask and did not want to know: it was her duty,
    not only to herself, to be near her brother who was perhaps dying, but
    to do everything possible to take his son to him, and so she prepared to
    set off. That she had not heard from Prince Andrew himself, Princess
    Mary attributed to his being too weak to write or to his considering the
    long journey too hard and too dangerous for her and his son.
    
    In a few days Princess Mary was ready to start. Her equipages were the
    huge family coach in which she had traveled to Voronezh, a semiopen
    trap, and a baggage cart. With her traveled Mademoiselle Bourienne,
    little Nicholas and his tutor, her old nurse, three maids, Tikhon, and a
    young footman and courier her aunt had sent to accompany her.
    
    The usual route through Moscow could not be thought of, and the
    roundabout way Princess Mary was obliged to take through Lipetsk,
    Ryazan, Vladimir, and Shuya was very long and, as post horses were not
    everywhere obtainable, very difficult, and near Ryazan where the French
    were said to have shown themselves was even dangerous.
    
    During this difficult journey Mademoiselle Bourienne, Dessalles, and
    Princess Mary's servants were astonished at her energy and firmness of
    spirit. She went to bed later and rose earlier than any of them, and no
    difficulties daunted her. Thanks to her activity and energy, which
    infected her fellow travelers, they approached Yaroslavl by the end of
    the second week.
    
    The last days of her stay in Voronezh had been the happiest of her life.
    Her love for Rostov no longer tormented or agitated her. It filled her
    whole soul, had become an integral part of herself, and she no longer
    struggled against it. Latterly she had become convinced that she loved
    and was beloved, though she never said this definitely to herself in
    words. She had become convinced of it at her last interview with
    Nicholas, when he had come to tell her that her brother was with the
    Rostovs. Not by a single word had Nicholas alluded to the fact that
    Prince Andrew's relations with Natasha might, if he recovered, be
    renewed, but Princess Mary saw by his face that he knew and thought of
    this.
    
    Yet in spite of that, his relation to her--considerate, delicate, and
    loving--not only remained unchanged, but it sometimes seemed to Princess
    Mary that he was even glad that the family connection between them
    allowed him to express his friendship more freely. She knew that she
    loved for the first and only time in her life and felt that she was
    beloved, and was happy in regard to it.
    
    But this happiness on one side of her spiritual nature did not prevent
    her feeling grief for her brother with full force; on the contrary, that
    spiritual tranquility on the one side made it the more possible for her
    to give full play to her feeling for her brother. That feeling was so
    strong at the moment of leaving Voronezh that those who saw her off, as
    they looked at her careworn, despairing face, felt sure she would fall
    ill on the journey. But the very difficulties and preoccupations of the
    journey, which she took so actively in hand, saved her for a while from
    her grief and gave her strength.
    
    As always happens when traveling, Princess Mary thought only of the
    journey itself, forgetting its object. But as she approached Yaroslavl
    the thought of what might await her there--not after many days, but that
    very evening--again presented itself to her and her agitation increased
    to its utmost limit.
    
    The courier who had been sent on in advance to find out where the
    Rostovs were staying in Yaroslavl, and in what condition Prince Andrew
    was, when he met the big coach just entering the town gates was appalled
    by the terrible pallor of the princess' face that looked out at him from
    the window.
    
    "I have found out everything, your excellency: the Rostovs are staying
    at the merchant Bronnikov's house, in the Square not far from here,
    right above the Volga," said the courier.
    
    Princess Mary looked at him with frightened inquiry, not understanding
    why he did not reply to what she chiefly wanted to know: how was her
    brother? Mademoiselle Bourienne put that question for her.
    
    "How is the prince?" she asked.
    
    "His excellency is staying in the same house with them."
    
    "Then he is alive," thought Princess Mary, and asked in a low voice:
    "How is he?"
    
    "The servants say he is still the same."
    
    What "still the same" might mean Princess Mary did not ask, but with an
    unnoticed glance at little seven-year-old Nicholas, who was sitting in
    front of her looking with pleasure at the town, she bowed her head and
    did not raise it again till the heavy coach, rumbling, shaking and
    swaying, came to a stop. The carriage steps clattered as they were let
    down.
    
    The carriage door was opened. On the left there was water--a great
    river--and on the right a porch. There were people at the entrance:
    servants, and a rosy girl with a large plait of black hair, smiling as
    it seemed to Princess Mary in an unpleasantly affected way. (This was
    Sonya.) Princess Mary ran up the steps. "This way, this way!" said the
    girl, with the same artificial smile, and the princess found herself in
    the hall facing an elderly woman of Oriental type, who came rapidly to
    meet her with a look of emotion. This was the countess. She embraced
    Princess Mary and kissed her.
    
    "Mon enfant!" she muttered, "je vous aime et vous connais depuis
    longtemps." *
    
    * "My child! I love you and have known you a long time."
    
    Despite her excitement, Princess Mary realized that this was the
    countess and that it was necessary to say something to her. Hardly
    knowing how she did it, she contrived to utter a few polite phrases in
    French in the same tone as those that had been addressed to her, and
    asked: "How is he?"
    
    "The doctor says that he is not in danger," said the countess, but as
    she spoke she raised her eyes with a sigh, and her gesture conveyed a
    contradiction of her words.
    
    "Where is he? Can I see him--can I?" asked the princess.
    
    "One moment, Princess, one moment, my dear! Is this his son?" said the
    countess, turning to little Nicholas who was coming in with Dessalles.
    "There will be room for everybody, this is a big house. Oh, what a
    lovely boy!"
    
    The countess took Princess Mary into the drawing room, where Sonya was
    talking to Mademoiselle Bourienne. The countess caressed the boy, and
    the old count came in and welcomed the princess. He had changed very
    much since Princess Mary had last seen him. Then he had been a brisk,
    cheerful, self-assured old man; now he seemed a pitiful, bewildered
    person. While talking to Princess Mary he continually looked round as if
    asking everyone whether he was doing the right thing. After the
    destruction of Moscow and of his property, thrown out of his accustomed
    groove he seemed to have lost the sense of his own significance and to
    feel that there was no longer a place for him in life.
    
    In spite of her one desire to see her brother as soon as possible, and
    her vexation that at the moment when all she wanted was to see him they
    should be trying to entertain her and pretending to admire her nephew,
    the princess noticed all that was going on around her and felt the
    necessity of submitting, for a time, to this new order of things which
    she had entered. She knew it to be necessary, and though it was hard for
    her she was not vexed with these people.
    
    "This is my niece," said the count, introducing Sonya--"You don't know
    her, Princess?"
    
    Princess Mary turned to Sonya and, trying to stifle the hostile feeling
    that arose in her toward the girl, she kissed her. But she felt
    oppressed by the fact that the mood of everyone around her was so far
    from what was in her own heart.
    
    "Where is he?" she asked again, addressing them all.
    
    "He is downstairs. Natasha is with him," answered Sonya, flushing. "We
    have sent to ask. I think you must be tired, Princess."
    
    Tears of vexation showed themselves in Princess Mary's eyes. She turned
    away and was about to ask the countess again how to go to him, when
    light, impetuous, and seemingly buoyant steps were heard at the door.
    The princess looked round and saw Natasha coming in, almost running--
    that Natasha whom she had liked so little at their meeting in Moscow
    long since.
    
    But hardly had the princess looked at Natasha's face before she realized
    that here was a real comrade in her grief, and consequently a friend.
    She ran to meet her, embraced her, and began to cry on her shoulder.
    
    As soon as Natasha, sitting at the head of Prince Andrew's bed, heard of
    Princess Mary's arrival, she softly left his room and hastened to her
    with those swift steps that had sounded buoyant to Princess Mary.
    
    There was only one expression on her agitated face when she ran into the
    drawing room--that of love--boundless love for him, for her, and for all
    that was near to the man she loved; and of pity, suffering for others,
    and passionate desire to give herself entirely to helping them. It was
    plain that at that moment there was in Natasha's heart no thought of
    herself or of her own relations with Prince Andrew.
    
    Princess Mary, with her acute sensibility, understood all this at the
    first glance at Natasha's face, and wept on her shoulder with sorrowful
    pleasure.
    
    "Come, come to him, Mary," said Natasha, leading her into the other
    room.
    
    Princess Mary raised her head, dried her eyes, and turned to Natasha.
    She felt that from her she would be able to understand and learn
    everything.
    
    "How..." she began her question but stopped short.
    
    She felt that it was impossible to ask, or to answer, in words.
    Natasha's face and eyes would have to tell her all more clearly and
    profoundly.
    
    Natasha was gazing at her, but seemed afraid and in doubt whether to say
    all she knew or not; she seemed to feel that before those luminous eyes
    which penetrated into the very depths of her heart, it was impossible
    not to tell the whole truth which she saw. And suddenly, Natasha's lips
    twitched, ugly wrinkles gathered round her mouth, and covering her face
    with her hands she burst into sobs.
    
    Princess Mary understood.
    
    But she still hoped, and asked, in words she herself did not trust:
    
    "But how is his wound? What is his general condition?"
    
    "You, you... will see," was all Natasha could say.
    
    They sat a little while downstairs near his room till they had left off
    crying and were able to go to him with calm faces.
    
    "How has his whole illness gone? Is it long since he grew worse? When
    did this happen?" Princess Mary inquired.
    
    Natasha told her that at first there had been danger from his feverish
    condition and the pain he suffered, but at Troitsa that had passed and
    the doctor had only been afraid of gangrene. That danger had also
    passed. When they reached Yaroslavl the wound had begun to fester
    (Natasha knew all about such things as festering) and the doctor had
    said that the festering might take a normal course. Then fever set in,
    but the doctor had said the fever was not very serious.
    
    "But two days ago this suddenly happened," said Natasha, struggling with
    her sobs. "I don't know why, but you will see what he is like."
    
    "Is he weaker? Thinner?" asked the princess.
    
    "No, it's not that, but worse. You will see. O, Mary, he is too good, he
    cannot, cannot live, because..."
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    When Natasha opened Prince Andrew's door with a familiar movement and
    let Princess Mary pass into the room before her, the princess felt the
    sobs in her throat. Hard as she had tried to prepare herself, and now
    tried to remain tranquil, she knew that she would be unable to look at
    him without tears.
    
    The princess understood what Natasha had meant by the words: "two days
    ago this suddenly happened." She understood those words to mean that he
    had suddenly softened and that this softening and gentleness were signs
    of approaching death. As she stepped to the door she already saw in
    imagination Andrew's face as she remembered it in childhood, a gentle,
    mild, sympathetic face which he had rarely shown, and which therefore
    affected her very strongly. She was sure he would speak soft, tender
    words to her such as her father had uttered before his death, and that
    she would not be able to bear it and would burst into sobs in his
    presence. Yet sooner or later it had to be, and she went in. The sobs
    rose higher and higher in her throat as she more and more clearly
    distinguished his form and her shortsighted eyes tried to make out his
    features, and then she saw his face and met his gaze.
    
    He was lying in a squirrel-fur dressing gown on a divan, surrounded by
    pillows. He was thin and pale. In one thin, translucently white hand he
    held a handkerchief, while with the other he stroked the delicate
    mustache he had grown, moving his fingers slowly. His eyes gazed at them
    as they entered.
    
    On seeing his face and meeting his eyes Princess Mary's pace suddenly
    slackened, she felt her tears dry up and her sobs ceased. She suddenly
    felt guilty and grew timid on catching the expression of his face and
    eyes.
    
    "But in what am I to blame?" she asked herself. And his cold, stern look
    replied: "Because you are alive and thinking of the living, while I..."
    
    In the deep gaze that seemed to look not outwards but inwards there was
    an almost hostile expression as he slowly regarded his sister and
    Natasha.
    
    He kissed his sister, holding her hand in his as was their wont.
    
    "How are you, Mary? How did you manage to get here?" said he in a voice
    as calm and aloof as his look.
    
    Had he screamed in agony, that scream would not have struck such horror
    into Princess Mary's heart as the tone of his voice.
    
    "And have you brought little Nicholas?" he asked in the same slow, quiet
    manner and with an obvious effort to remember.
    
    "How are you now?" said Princess Mary, herself surprised at what she was
    saying.
    
    "That, my dear, you must ask the doctor," he replied, and again making
    an evident effort to be affectionate, he said with his lips only (his
    words clearly did not correspond to his thoughts):
    
    "Merci, chere amie, d'etre venue." *
    
    * "Thank you for coming, my dear."
    
    Princess Mary pressed his hand. The pressure made him wince just
    perceptibly. He was silent, and she did not know what to say. She now
    understood what had happened to him two days before. In his words, his
    tone, and especially in that calm, almost antagonistic look could be
    felt an estrangement from everything belonging to this world, terrible
    in one who is alive. Evidently only with an effort did he understand
    anything living; but it was obvious that he failed to understand, not
    because he lacked the power to do so but because he understood something
    else--something the living did not and could not understand--and which
    wholly occupied his mind.
    
    "There, you see how strangely fate has brought us together," said he,
    breaking the silence and pointing to Natasha. "She looks after me all
    the time."
    
    Princess Mary heard him and did not understand how he could say such a
    thing. He, the sensitive, tender Prince Andrew, how could he say that,
    before her whom he loved and who loved him? Had he expected to live he
    could not have said those words in that offensively cold tone. If he had
    not known that he was dying, how could he have failed to pity her and
    how could he speak like that in her presence? The only explanation was
    that he was indifferent, because something else, much more important,
    had been revealed to him.
    
    The conversation was cold and disconnected and continually broke off.
    
    "Mary came by way of Ryazan," said Natasha.
    
    Prince Andrew did not notice that she called his sister Mary, and only
    after calling her so in his presence did Natasha notice it herself.
    
    "Really?" he asked.
    
    "They told her that all Moscow has been burned down, and that..."
    
    Natasha stopped. It was impossible to talk. It was plain that he was
    making an effort to listen, but could not do so.
    
    "Yes, they say it's burned," he said. "It's a great pity," and he gazed
    straight before him, absently stroking his mustache with his fingers.
    
    "And so you have met Count Nicholas, Mary?" Prince Andrew suddenly said,
    evidently wishing to speak pleasantly to them. "He wrote here that he
    took a great liking to you," he went on simply and calmly, evidently
    unable to understand all the complex significance his words had for
    living people. "If you liked him too, it would be a good thing for you
    to get married," he added rather more quickly, as if pleased at having
    found words he had long been seeking.
    
    Princess Mary heard his words but they had no meaning for her, except as
    a proof of how far away he now was from everything living.
    
    "Why talk of me?" she said quietly and glanced at Natasha.
    
    Natasha, who felt her glance, did not look at her. All three were again
    silent.
    
    "Andrew, would you like..." Princess Mary suddenly said in a trembling
    voice, "would you like to see little Nicholas? He is always talking
    about you!"
    
    Prince Andrew smiled just perceptibly and for the first time, but
    Princess Mary, who knew his face so well, saw with horror that he did
    not smile with pleasure or affection for his son, but with quiet, gentle
    irony because he thought she was trying what she believed to be the last
    means of arousing him.
    
    "Yes, I shall be very glad to see him. Is he quite well?"
    
    When little Nicholas was brought into Prince Andrew's room he looked at
    his father with frightened eyes, but did not cry, because no one else
    was crying. Prince Andrew kissed him and evidently did not know what to
    say to him.
    
    When Nicholas had been led away, Princess Mary again went up to her
    brother, kissed him, and unable to restrain her tears any longer began
    to cry.
    
    He looked at her attentively.
    
    "Is it about Nicholas?" he asked.
    
    Princess Mary nodded her head, weeping.
    
    "Mary, you know the Gosp..." but he broke off.
    
    "What did you say?"
    
    "Nothing. You mustn't cry here," he said, looking at her with the same
    cold expression.
    
    When Princess Mary began to cry, he understood that she was crying at
    the thought that little Nicholas would be left without a father. With a
    great effort he tried to return to life and to see things from their
    point of view.
    
    "Yes, to them it must seem sad!" he thought. "But how simple it is.
    
    "The fowls of the air sow not, neither do they reap, yet your Father
    feedeth them," he said to himself and wished to say to Princess Mary;
    "but no, they will take it their own way, they won't understand! They
    can't understand that all those feelings they prize so--all our
    feelings, all those ideas that seem so important to us, are unnecessary.
    We cannot understand one another," and he remained silent.
    
    Prince Andrew's little son was seven. He could scarcely read, and knew
    nothing. After that day he lived through many things, gaining knowledge,
    observation, and experience, but had he possessed all the faculties he
    afterwards acquired, he could not have had a better or more profound
    understanding of the meaning of the scene he had witnessed between his
    father, Mary, and Natasha, than he had then. He understood it
    completely, and, leaving the room without crying, went silently up to
    Natasha who had come out with him and looked shyly at her with his
    beautiful, thoughtful eyes, then his uplifted, rosy upper lip trembled
    and leaning his head against her he began to cry.
    
    After that he avoided Dessalles and the countess who caressed him and
    either sat alone or came timidly to Princess Mary, or to Natasha of whom
    he seemed even fonder than of his aunt, and clung to them quietly and
    shyly.
    
    When Princess Mary had left Prince Andrew she fully understood what
    Natasha's face had told her. She did not speak any more to Natasha of
    hopes of saving his life. She took turns with her beside his sofa, and
    did not cry any more, but prayed continually, turning in soul to that
    Eternal and Unfathomable, whose presence above the dying man was now so
    evident.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Not only did Prince Andrew know he would die, but he felt that he was
    dying and was already half dead. He was conscious of an aloofness from
    everything earthly and a strange and joyous lightness of existence.
    Without haste or agitation he awaited what was coming. That inexorable,
    eternal, distant, and unknown the presence of which he had felt
    continually all his life--was now near to him and, by the strange
    lightness he experienced, almost comprehensible and palpable...
    
    Formerly he had feared the end. He had twice experienced that terribly
    tormenting fear of death--the end--but now he no longer understood that
    fear.
    
    He had felt it for the first time when the shell spun like a top before
    him, and he looked at the fallow field, the bushes, and the sky, and
    knew that he was face to face with death. When he came to himself after
    being wounded and the flower of eternal, unfettered love had instantly
    unfolded itself in his soul as if freed from the bondage of life that
    had restrained it, he no longer feared death and ceased to think about
    it.
    
    During the hours of solitude, suffering, and partial delirium he spent
    after he was wounded, the more deeply he penetrated into the new
    principle of eternal love revealed to him, the more he unconsciously
    detached himself from earthly life. To love everything and everybody and
    always to sacrifice oneself for love meant not to love anyone, not to
    live this earthly life. And the more imbued he became with that
    principle of love, the more he renounced life and the more completely he
    destroyed that dreadful barrier which--in the absence of such love--
    stands between life and death. When during those first days he
    remembered that he would have to die, he said to himself: "Well, what of
    it? So much the better!"
    
    But after the night in Mytishchi when, half delirious, he had seen her
    for whom he longed appear before him and, having pressed her hand to his
    lips, had shed gentle, happy tears, love for a particular woman again
    crept unobserved into his heart and once more bound him to life. And
    joyful and agitating thoughts began to occupy his mind. Recalling the
    moment at the ambulance station when he had seen Kuragin, he could not
    now regain the feeling he then had, but was tormented by the question
    whether Kuragin was alive. And he dared not inquire.
    
    His illness pursued its normal physical course, but what Natasha
    referred to when she said: "This suddenly happened," had occurred two
    days before Princess Mary arrived. It was the last spiritual struggle
    between life and death, in which death gained the victory. It was the
    unexpected realization of the fact that he still valued life as
    presented to him in the form of his love for Natasha, and a last, though
    ultimately vanquished, attack of terror before the unknown.
    
    It was evening. As usual after dinner he was slightly feverish, and his
    thoughts were preternaturally clear. Sonya was sitting by the table. He
    began to doze. Suddenly a feeling of happiness seized him.
    
    "Ah, she has come!" thought he.
    
    And so it was: in Sonya's place sat Natasha who had just come in
    noiselessly.
    
    Since she had begun looking after him, he had always experienced this
    physical consciousness of her nearness. She was sitting in an armchair
    placed sideways, screening the light of the candle from him, and was
    knitting a stocking. She had learned to knit stockings since Prince
    Andrew had casually mentioned that no one nursed the sick so well as old
    nurses who knit stockings, and that there is something soothing in the
    knitting of stockings. The needles clicked lightly in her slender,
    rapidly moving hands, and he could clearly see the thoughtful profile of
    her drooping face. She moved, and the ball rolled off her knees. She
    started, glanced round at him, and screening the candle with her hand
    stooped carefully with a supple and exact movement, picked up the ball,
    and regained her former position.
    
    He looked at her without moving and saw that she wanted to draw a deep
    breath after stooping, but refrained from doing so and breathed
    cautiously.
    
    At the Troitsa monastery they had spoken of the past, and he had told
    her that if he lived he would always thank God for his wound which had
    brought them together again, but after that they never spoke of the
    future.
    
    "Can it or can it not be?" he now thought as he looked at her and
    listened to the light click of the steel needles. "Can fate have brought
    me to her so strangely only for me to die?... Is it possible that the
    truth of life has been revealed to me only to show me that I have spent
    my life in falsity? I love her more than anything in the world! But what
    am I to do if I love her?" he thought, and he involuntarily groaned,
    from a habit acquired during his sufferings.
    
    On hearing that sound Natasha put down the stocking, leaned nearer to
    him, and suddenly, noticing his shining eyes, stepped lightly up to him
    and bent over him.
    
    "You are not asleep?"
    
    "No, I have been looking at you a long time. I felt you come in. No one
    else gives me that sense of soft tranquillity that you do... that light.
    I want to weep for joy."
    
    Natasha drew closer to him. Her face shone with rapturous joy.
    
    "Natasha, I love you too much! More than anything in the world."
    
    "And I!"--She turned away for an instant. "Why too much?" she asked.
    
    "Why too much?... Well, what do you, what do you feel in your soul, your
    whole soul--shall I live? What do you think?"
    
    "I am sure of it, sure!" Natasha almost shouted, taking hold of both his
    hands with a passionate movement.
    
    He remained silent awhile.
    
    "How good it would be!" and taking her hand he kissed it.
    
    Natasha felt happy and agitated, but at once remembered that this would
    not do and that he had to be quiet.
    
    "But you have not slept," she said, repressing her joy. "Try to sleep...
    please!"
    
    He pressed her hand and released it, and she went back to the candle and
    sat down again in her former position. Twice she turned and looked at
    him, and her eyes met his beaming at her. She set herself a task on her
    stocking and resolved not to turn round till it was finished.
    
    Soon he really shut his eyes and fell asleep. He did not sleep long and
    suddenly awoke with a start and in a cold perspiration.
    
    As he fell asleep he had still been thinking of the subject that now
    always occupied his mind--about life and death, and chiefly about death.
    He felt himself nearer to it.
    
    "Love? What is love?" he thought.
    
    "Love hinders death. Love is life. All, everything that I understand, I
    understand only because I love. Everything is, everything exists, only
    because I love. Everything is united by it alone. Love is God, and to
    die means that I, a particle of love, shall return to the general and
    eternal source." These thoughts seemed to him comforting. But they were
    only thoughts. Something was lacking in them, they were not clear, they
    were too one-sidedly personal and brain-spun. And there was the former
    agitation and obscurity. He fell asleep.
    
    He dreamed that he was lying in the room he really was in, but that he
    was quite well and unwounded. Many various, indifferent, and
    insignificant people appeared before him. He talked to them and
    discussed something trivial. They were preparing to go away somewhere.
    Prince Andrew dimly realized that all this was trivial and that he had
    more important cares, but he continued to speak, surprising them by
    empty witticisms. Gradually, unnoticed, all these persons began to
    disappear and a single question, that of the closed door, superseded all
    else. He rose and went to the door to bolt and lock it. Everything
    depended on whether he was, or was not, in time to lock it. He went, and
    tried to hurry, but his legs refused to move and he knew he would not be
    in time to lock the door though he painfully strained all his powers. He
    was seized by an agonizing fear. And that fear was the fear of death. It
    stood behind the door. But just when he was clumsily creeping toward the
    door, that dreadful something on the other side was already pressing
    against it and forcing its way in. Something not human--death--was
    breaking in through that door, and had to be kept out. He seized the
    door, making a final effort to hold it back--to lock it was no longer
    possible--but his efforts were weak and clumsy and the door, pushed from
    behind by that terror, opened and closed again.
    
    Once again it pushed from outside. His last superhuman efforts were vain
    and both halves of the door noiselessly opened. It entered, and it was
    death, and Prince Andrew died.
    
    But at the instant he died, Prince Andrew remembered that he was asleep,
    and at the very instant he died, having made an effort, he awoke.
    
    "Yes, it was death! I died--and woke up. Yes, death is an awakening!"
    And all at once it grew light in his soul and the veil that had till
    then concealed the unknown was lifted from his spiritual vision. He felt
    as if powers till then confined within him had been liberated, and that
    strange lightness did not again leave him.
    
    When, waking in a cold perspiration, he moved on the divan, Natasha went
    up and asked him what was the matter. He did not answer and looked at
    her strangely, not understanding.
    
    That was what had happened to him two days before Princess Mary's
    arrival. From that day, as the doctor expressed it, the wasting fever
    assumed a malignant character, but what the doctor said did not interest
    Natasha, she saw the terrible moral symptoms which to her were more
    convincing.
    
    From that day an awakening from life came to Prince Andrew together with
    his awakening from sleep. And compared to the duration of life it did
    not seem to him slower than an awakening from sleep compared to the
    duration of a dream.
    
    There was nothing terrible or violent in this comparatively slow
    awakening.
    
    His last days and hours passed in an ordinary and simple way. Both
    Princess Mary and Natasha, who did not leave him, felt this. They did
    not weep or shudder and during these last days they themselves felt that
    they were not attending on him (he was no longer there, he had left
    them) but on what reminded them most closely of him--his body. Both felt
    this so strongly that the outward and terrible side of death did not
    affect them and they did not feel it necessary to foment their grief.
    Neither in his presence nor out of it did they weep, nor did they ever
    talk to one another about him. They felt that they could not express in
    words what they understood.
    
    They both saw that he was sinking slowly and quietly, deeper and deeper,
    away from them, and they both knew that this had to be so and that it
    was right.
    
    He confessed, and received communion: everyone came to take leave of
    him. When they brought his son to him, he pressed his lips to the boy's
    and turned away, not because he felt it hard and sad (Princess Mary and
    Natasha understood that) but simply because he thought it was all that
    was required of him, but when they told him to bless the boy, he did
    what was demanded and looked round as if asking whether there was
    anything else he should do.
    
    When the last convulsions of the body, which the spirit was leaving,
    occurred, Princess Mary and Natasha were present.
    
    "Is it over?" said Princess Mary when his body had for a few minutes
    lain motionless, growing cold before them. Natasha went up, looked at
    the dead eyes, and hastened to close them. She closed them but did not
    kiss them, but clung to that which reminded her most nearly of him--his
    body.
    
    "Where has he gone? Where is he now?..."
    
    When the body, washed and dressed, lay in the coffin on a table,
    everyone came to take leave of him and they all wept.
    
    Little Nicholas cried because his heart was rent by painful perplexity.
    The countess and Sonya cried from pity for Natasha and because he was no
    more. The old count cried because he felt that before long, he, too,
    must take the same terrible step.
    
    Natasha and Princess Mary also wept now, but not because of their own
    personal grief; they wept with a reverent and softening emotion which
    had taken possession of their souls at the consciousness of the simple
    and solemn mystery of death that had been accomplished in their
    presence.
    
    BOOK THIRTEEN: 1812
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    Man's mind cannot grasp the causes of events in their completeness, but
    the desire to find those causes is implanted in man's soul. And without
    considering the multiplicity and complexity of the conditions any one of
    which taken separately may seem to be the cause, he snatches at the
    first approximation to a cause that seems to him intelligible and says:
    "This is the cause!" In historical events (where the actions of men are
    the subject of observation) the first and most primitive approximation
    to present itself was the will of the gods and, after that, the will of
    those who stood in the most prominent position--the heroes of history.
    But we need only penetrate to the essence of any historic event--which
    lies in the activity of the general mass of men who take part in it--to
    be convinced that the will of the historic hero does not control the
    actions of the mass but is itself continually controlled. It may seem to
    be a matter of indifference whether we understand the meaning of
    historical events this way or that; yet there is the same difference
    between a man who says that the people of the West moved on the East
    because Napoleon wished it and a man who says that this happened because
    it had to happen, as there is between those who declared that the earth
    was stationary and that the planets moved round it and those who
    admitted that they did not know what upheld the earth, but knew there
    were laws directing its movement and that of the other planets. There
    is, and can be, no cause of an historical event except the one cause of
    all causes. But there are laws directing events, and some of these laws
    are known to us while we are conscious of others we cannot comprehend.
    The discovery of these laws is only possible when we have quite
    abandoned the attempt to find the cause in the will of some one man,
    just as the discovery of the laws of the motion of the planets was
    possible only when men abandoned the conception of the fixity of the
    earth.
    
    The historians consider that, next to the battle of Borodino and the
    occupation of Moscow by the enemy and its destruction by fire, the most
    important episode of the war of 1812 was the movement of the Russian
    army from the Ryazana to the Kaluga road and to the Tarutino camp--the
    so-called flank march across the Krasnaya Pakhra River. They ascribe the
    glory of that achievement of genius to different men and dispute as to
    whom the honor is due. Even foreign historians, including the French,
    acknowledge the genius of the Russian commanders when they speak of that
    flank march. But it is hard to understand why military writers, and
    following them others, consider this flank march to be the profound
    conception of some one man who saved Russia and destroyed Napoleon. In
    the first place it is hard to understand where the profundity and genius
    of this movement lay, for not much mental effort was needed to see that
    the best position for an army when it is not being attacked is where
    there are most provisions; and even a dull boy of thirteen could have
    guessed that the best position for an army after its retreat from Moscow
    in 1812 was on the Kaluga road. So it is impossible to understand by
    what reasoning the historians reach the conclusion that this maneuver
    was a profound one. And it is even more difficult to understand just why
    they think that this maneuver was calculated to save Russia and destroy
    the French; for this flank march, had it been preceded, accompanied, or
    followed by other circumstances, might have proved ruinous to the
    Russians and salutary for the French. If the position of the Russian
    army really began to improve from the time of that march, it does not at
    all follow that the march was the cause of it.
    
    That flank march might not only have failed to give any advantage to the
    Russian army, but might in other circumstances have led to its
    destruction. What would have happened had Moscow not burned down? If
    Murat had not lost sight of the Russians? If Napoleon had not remained
    inactive? If the Russian army at Krasnaya Pakhra had given battle as
    Bennigsen and Barclay advised? What would have happened had the French
    attacked the Russians while they were marching beyond the Pakhra? What
    would have happened if on approaching Tarutino, Napoleon had attacked
    the Russians with but a tenth of the energy he had shown when he
    attacked them at Smolensk? What would have happened had the French moved
    on Petersburg?... In any of these eventualities the flank march that
    brought salvation might have proved disastrous.
    
    The third and most incomprehensible thing is that people studying
    history deliberately avoid seeing that this flank march cannot be
    attributed to any one man, that no one ever foresaw it, and that in
    reality, like the retreat from Fili, it did not suggest itself to anyone
    in its entirety, but resulted--moment by moment, step by step, event by
    event--from an endless number of most diverse circumstances and was only
    seen in its entirety when it had been accomplished and belonged to the
    past.
    
    At the council at Fili the prevailing thought in the minds of the
    Russian commanders was the one naturally suggesting itself, namely, a
    direct retreat by the Nizhni road. In proof of this there is the fact
    that the majority of the council voted for such a retreat, and above all
    there is the well-known conversation after the council, between the
    commander in chief and Lanskoy, who was in charge of the commissariat
    department. Lanskoy informed the commander-in-chief that the army
    supplies were for the most part stored along the Oka in the Tula and
    Ryazan provinces, and that if they retreated on Nizhni the army would be
    separated from its supplies by the broad river Oka, which cannot be
    crossed early in winter. This was the first indication of the necessity
    of deviating from what had previously seemed the most natural course--a
    direct retreat on Nizhni-Novgorod. The army turned more to the south,
    along the Ryazan road and nearer to its supplies. Subsequently the
    inactivity of the French (who even lost sight of the Russian army),
    concern for the safety of the arsenal at Tula, and especially the
    advantages of drawing nearer to its supplies caused the army to turn
    still further south to the Tula road. Having crossed over, by a forced
    march, to the Tula road beyond the Pakhra, the Russian commanders
    intended to remain at Podolsk and had no thought of the Tarutino
    position; but innumerable circumstances and the reappearance of French
    troops who had for a time lost touch with the Russians, and projects of
    giving battle, and above all the abundance of provisions in Kaluga
    province, obliged our army to turn still more to the south and to cross
    from the Tula to the Kaluga road and go to Tarutino, which was between
    the roads along which those supplies lay. Just as it is impossible to
    say when it was decided to abandon Moscow, so it is impossible to say
    precisely when, or by whom, it was decided to move to Tarutino. Only
    when the army had got there, as the result of innumerable and varying
    forces, did people begin to assure themselves that they had desired this
    movement and long ago foreseen its result.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    The famous flank movement merely consisted in this: after the advance of
    the French had ceased, the Russian army, which had been continually
    retreating straight back from the invaders, deviated from that direct
    course and, not finding itself pursued, was naturally drawn toward the
    district where supplies were abundant.
    
    If instead of imagining to ourselves commanders of genius leading the
    Russian army, we picture that army without any leaders, it could not
    have done anything but make a return movement toward Moscow, describing
    an arc in the direction where most provisions were to be found and where
    the country was richest.
    
    That movement from the Nizhni to the Ryazan, Tula, and Kaluga roads was
    so natural that even the Russian marauders moved in that direction, and
    demands were sent from Petersburg for Kutuzov to take his army that way.
    At Tarutino Kutuzov received what was almost a reprimand from the
    Emperor for having moved his army along the Ryazan road, and the
    Emperor's letter indicated to him the very position he had already
    occupied near Kaluga.
    
    Having rolled like a ball in the direction of the impetus given by the
    whole campaign and by the battle of Borodino, the Russian army--when the
    strength of that impetus was exhausted and no fresh push was received--
    assumed the position natural to it.
    
    Kutuzov's merit lay, not in any strategic maneuver of genius, as it is
    called, but in the fact that he alone understood the significance of
    what had happened. He alone then understood the meaning of the French
    army's inactivity, he alone continued to assert that the battle of
    Borodino had been a victory, he alone--who as commander-in-chief might
    have been expected to be eager to attack--employed his whole strength to
    restrain the Russian army from useless engagements.
    
    The beast wounded at Borodino was lying where the fleeing hunter had
    left him; but whether he was still alive, whether he was strong and
    merely lying low, the hunter did not know. Suddenly the beast was heard
    to moan.
    
    The moan of that wounded beast (the French army) which betrayed its
    calamitous condition was the sending of Lauriston to Kutuzov's camp with
    overtures for peace.
    
    Napoleon, with his usual assurance that whatever entered his head was
    right, wrote to Kutuzov the first words that occurred to him, though
    they were meaningless.
    
    MONSIEUR LE PRINCE KOUTOUZOV: I am sending one of my adjutants-general
    to discuss several interesting questions with you. I beg your Highness
    to credit what he says to you, especially when he expresses the
    sentiment of esteem and special regard I have long entertained for your
    person. This letter having no other object, I pray God, monsieur le
    Prince Koutouzov, to keep you in His holy and gracious protection!
    
    NAPOLEON MOSCOW, OCTOBER 30, 1812
    
    Kutuzov replied: "I should be cursed by posterity were I looked on as
    the initiator of a settlement of any sort. Such is the present spirit of
    my nation." But he continued to exert all his powers to restrain his
    troops from attacking.
    
    During the month that the French troops were pillaging in Moscow and the
    Russian troops were quietly encamped at Tarutino, a change had taken
    place in the relative strength of the two armies--both in spirit and in
    number--as a result of which the superiority had passed to the Russian
    side. Though the condition and numbers of the French army were unknown
    to the Russians, as soon as that change occurred the need of attacking
    at once showed itself by countless signs. These signs were: Lauriston's
    mission; the abundance of provisions at Tarutino; the reports coming in
    from all sides of the inactivity and disorder of the French; the flow of
    recruits to our regiments; the fine weather; the long rest the Russian
    soldiers had enjoyed, and the impatience to do what they had been
    assembled for, which usually shows itself in an army that has been
    resting; curiosity as to what the French army, so long lost sight of,
    was doing; the boldness with which our outposts now scouted close up to
    the French stationed at Tarutino; the news of easy successes gained by
    peasants and guerrilla troops over the French, the envy aroused by this;
    the desire for revenge that lay in the heart of every Russian as long as
    the French were in Moscow, and (above all) a dim consciousness in every
    soldier's mind that the relative strength of the armies had changed and
    that the advantage was now on our side. There was a substantial change
    in the relative strength, and an advance had become inevitable. And at
    once, as a clock begins to strike and chime as soon as the minute hand
    has completed a full circle, this change was shown by an increased
    activity, whirring, and chiming in the higher spheres.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    The Russian army was commanded by Kutuzov and his staff, and also by the
    Emperor from Petersburg. Before the news of the abandonment of Moscow
    had been received in Petersburg, a detailed plan of the whole campaign
    had been drawn up and sent to Kutuzov for his guidance. Though this plan
    had been drawn up on the supposition that Moscow was still in our hands,
    it was approved by the staff and accepted as a basis for action. Kutuzov
    only replied that movements arranged from a distance were always
    difficult to execute. So fresh instructions were sent for the solution
    of difficulties that might be encountered, as well as fresh people who
    were to watch Kutuzov's actions and report upon them.
    
    Besides this, the whole staff of the Russian army was now reorganized.
    The posts left vacant by Bagration, who had been killed, and by Barclay,
    who had gone away in dudgeon, had to be filled. Very serious
    consideration was given to the question whether it would be better to
    put A in B's place and B in D's, or on the contrary to put D in A's
    place, and so on--as if anything more than A's or B's satisfaction
    depended on this.
    
    As a result of the hostility between Kutuzov and Bennigsen, his Chief of
    Staff, the presence of confidential representatives of the Emperor, and
    these transfers, a more than usually complicated play of parties was
    going on among the staff of the army. A was undermining B, D was
    undermining C, and so on in all possible combinations and permutations.
    In all these plottings the subject of intrigue was generally the conduct
    of the war, which all these men believed they were directing; but this
    affair of the war went on independently of them, as it had to go: that
    is, never in the way people devised, but flowing always from the
    essential attitude of the masses. Only in the highest spheres did all
    these schemes, crossings, and interminglings appear to be a true
    reflection of what had to happen.
    
    Prince Michael Ilarionovich! (wrote the Emperor on the second of October
    in a letter that reached Kutuzov after the battle at Tarutino) Since
    September 2 Moscow has been in the hands of the enemy. Your last reports
    were written on the twentieth, and during all this time not only has no
    action been taken against the enemy or for the relief of the ancient
    capital, but according to your last report you have even retreated
    farther. Serpukhov is already occupied by an enemy detachment and Tula
    with its famous arsenal so indispensable to the army, is in danger. From
    General Wintzingerode's reports, I see that an enemy corps of ten
    thousand men is moving on the Petersburg road. Another corps of several
    thousand men is moving on Dmitrov. A third has advanced along the
    Vladimir road, and a fourth, rather considerable detachment is stationed
    between Ruza and Mozhaysk. Napoleon himself was in Moscow as late as the
    twenty-fifth. In view of all this information, when the enemy has
    scattered his forces in large detachments, and with Napoleon and his
    Guards in Moscow, is it possible that the enemy's forces confronting you
    are so considerable as not to allow of your taking the offensive? On the
    contrary, he is probably pursuing you with detachments, or at most with
    an army corps much weaker than the army entrusted to you. It would seem
    that, availing yourself of these circumstances, you might advantageously
    attack a weaker one and annihilate him, or at least oblige him to
    retreat, retaining in our hands an important part of the provinces now
    occupied by the enemy, and thereby averting danger from Tula and other
    towns in the interior. You will be responsible if the enemy is able to
    direct a force of any size against Petersburg to threaten this capital
    in which it has not been possible to retain many troops; for with the
    army entrusted to you, and acting with resolution and energy, you have
    ample means to avert this fresh calamity. Remember that you have still
    to answer to our offended country for the loss of Moscow. You have
    experienced my readiness to reward you. That readiness will not weaken
    in me, but I and Russia have a right to expect from you all the zeal,
    firmness, and success which your intellect, military talent, and the
    courage of the troops you command justify us in expecting.
    
    But by the time this letter, which proved that the real relation of the
    forces had already made itself felt in Petersburg, was dispatched,
    Kutuzov had found himself unable any longer to restrain the army he
    commanded from attacking and a battle had taken place.
    
    On the second of October a Cossack, Shapovalov, who was out scouting,
    killed one hare and wounded another. Following the wounded hare he made
    his way far into the forest and came upon the left flank of Murat's
    army, encamped there without any precautions. The Cossack laughingly
    told his comrades how he had almost fallen into the hands of the French.
    A cornet, hearing the story, informed his commander.
    
    The Cossack was sent for and questioned. The Cossack officers wished to
    take advantage of this chance to capture some horses, but one of the
    superior officers, who was acquainted with the higher authorities,
    reported the incident to a general on the staff. The state of things on
    the staff had of late been exceedingly strained. Ermolov had been to see
    Bennigsen a few days previously and had entreated him to use his
    influence with the commander-in-chief to induce him to take the
    offensive.
    
    "If I did not know you I should think you did not want what you are
    asking for. I need only advise anything and his Highness is sure to do
    the opposite," replied Bennigsen.
    
    The Cossack's report, confirmed by horse patrols who were sent out, was
    the final proof that events had matured. The tightly coiled spring was
    released, the clock began to whirr and the chimes to play. Despite all
    his supposed power, his intellect, his experience, and his knowledge of
    men, Kutuzov--having taken into consideration the Cossack's report, a
    note from Bennigsen who sent personal reports to the Emperor, the wishes
    he supposed the Emperor to hold, and the fact that all the generals
    expressed the same wish--could no longer check the inevitable movement,
    and gave the order to do what he regarded as useless and harmful--gave
    his approval, that is, to the accomplished fact.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Bennigsen's note and the Cossack's information that the left flank of
    the French was unguarded were merely final indications that it was
    necessary to order an attack, and it was fixed for the fifth of October.
    
    On the morning of the fourth of October Kutuzov signed the dispositions.
    Toll read them to Ermolov, asking him to attend to the further
    arrangements.
    
    "All right--all right. I haven't time just now," replied Ermolov, and
    left the hut.
    
    The dispositions drawn up by Toll were very good. As in the Austerlitz
    dispositions, it was written--though not in German this time:
    
    "The First Column will march here and here," "the Second Column will
    march there and there," and so on; and on paper, all these columns
    arrived at their places at the appointed time and destroyed the enemy.
    Everything had been admirably thought out as is usual in dispositions,
    and as is always the case, not a single column reached its place at the
    appointed time.
    
    When the necessary number of copies of the dispositions had been
    prepared, an officer was summoned and sent to deliver them to Ermolov to
    deal with. A young officer of the Horse Guards, Kutuzov's orderly,
    pleased at the importance of the mission entrusted to him, went to
    Ermolov's quarters.
    
    "Gone away," said Ermolov's orderly.
    
    The officer of the Horse Guards went to a general with whom Ermolov was
    often to be found.
    
    "No, and the general's out too."
    
    The officer, mounting his horse, rode off to someone else.
    
    "No, he's gone out."
    
    "If only they don't make me responsible for this delay! What a nuisance
    it is!" thought the officer, and he rode round the whole camp. One man
    said he had seen Ermolov ride past with some other generals, others said
    he must have returned home. The officer searched till six o'clock in the
    evening without even stopping to eat. Ermolov was nowhere to be found
    and no one knew where he was. The officer snatched a little food at a
    comrade's, and rode again to the vanguard to find Miloradovich.
    Miloradovich too was away, but here he was told that he had gone to a
    ball at General Kikin's and that Ermolov was probably there too.
    
    "But where is it?"
    
    "Why, there, over at Echkino," said a Cossack officer, pointing to a
    country house in the far distance.
    
    "What, outside our line?"
    
    "They've put two regiments as outposts, and they're having such a spree
    there, it's awful! Two bands and three sets of singers!"
    
    The officer rode out beyond our lines to Echkino. While still at a
    distance he heard as he rode the merry sounds of a soldier's dance song
    proceeding from the house.
    
    "In the meadows... in the meadows!" he heard, accompanied by whistling
    and the sound of a torban, drowned every now and then by shouts. These
    sounds made his spirits rise, but at the same time he was afraid that he
    would be blamed for not having executed sooner the important order
    entrusted to him. It was already past eight o'clock. He dismounted and
    went up into the porch of a large country house which had remained
    intact between the Russian and French forces. In the refreshment room
    and the hall, footmen were bustling about with wine and viands. Groups
    of singers stood outside the windows. The officer was admitted and
    immediately saw all the chief generals of the army together, and among
    them Ermolov's big imposing figure. They all had their coats unbuttoned
    and were standing in a semicircle with flushed and animated faces,
    laughing loudly. In the middle of the room a short handsome general with
    a red face was dancing the trepak with much spirit and agility.
    
    "Ha, ha, ha! Bravo, Nicholas Ivanych! Ha, ha, ha!"
    
    The officer felt that by arriving with important orders at such a moment
    he was doubly to blame, and he would have preferred to wait; but one of
    the generals espied him and, hearing what he had come about, informed
    Ermolov.
    
    Ermolov came forward with a frown on his face and, hearing what the
    officer had to say, took the papers from him without a word.
    
    "You think he went off just by chance?" said a comrade, who was on the
    staff that evening, to the officer of the Horse Guards, referring to
    Ermolov. "It was a trick. It was done on purpose to get Konovnitsyn into
    trouble. You'll see what a mess there'll be tomorrow."
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    Next day the decrepit Kutuzov, having given orders to be called early,
    said his prayers, dressed, and, with an unpleasant consciousness of
    having to direct a battle he did not approve of, got into his caleche
    and drove from Letashovka (a village three and a half miles from
    Tarutino) to the place where the attacking columns were to meet. He sat
    in the caleche, dozing and waking up by turns, and listening for any
    sound of firing on the right as an indication that the action had begun.
    But all was still quiet. A damp dull autumn morning was just dawning. On
    approaching Tarutino Kutuzov noticed cavalrymen leading their horses to
    water across the road along which he was driving. Kutuzov looked at them
    searchingly, stopped his carriage, and inquired what regiment they
    belonged to. They belonged to a column that should have been far in
    front and in ambush long before then. "It may be a mistake," thought the
    old commander-in-chief. But a little further on he saw infantry
    regiments with their arms piled and the soldiers, only partly dressed,
    eating their rye porridge and carrying fuel. He sent for an officer. The
    officer reported that no order to advance had been received.
    
    "How! Not rec..." Kutuzov began, but checked himself immediately and
    sent for a senior officer. Getting out of his caleche, he waited with
    drooping head and breathing heavily, pacing silently up and down. When
    Eykhen, the officer of the general staff whom he had summoned, appeared,
    Kutuzov went purple in the face, not because that officer was to blame
    for the mistake, but because he was an object of sufficient importance
    for him to vent his wrath on. Trembling and panting the old man fell
    into that state of fury in which he sometimes used to roll on the
    ground, and he fell upon Eykhen, threatening him with his hands,
    shouting and loading him with gross abuse. Another man, Captain Brozin,
    who happened to turn up and who was not at all to blame, suffered the
    same fate.
    
    "What sort of another blackguard are you? I'll have you shot!
    Scoundrels!" yelled Kutuzov in a hoarse voice, waving his arms and
    reeling.
    
    He was suffering physically. He, the commander-in-chief, a Serene
    Highness who everybody said possessed powers such as no man had ever had
    in Russia, to be placed in this position--made the laughingstock of the
    whole army! "I needn't have been in such a hurry to pray about today, or
    have kept awake thinking everything over all night," thought he to
    himself. "When I was a chit of an officer no one would have dared to
    mock me so... and now!" He was in a state of physical suffering as if
    from corporal punishment, and could not avoid expressing it by cries of
    anger and distress. But his strength soon began to fail him, and looking
    about him, conscious of having said much that was amiss, he again got
    into his caleche and drove back in silence.
    
    His wrath, once expended, did not return, and blinking feebly he
    listened to excuses and self-justifications (Ermolov did not come to see
    him till the next day) and to the insistence of Bennigsen, Konovnitsyn,
    and Toll that the movement that had miscarried should be executed next
    day. And once more Kutuzov had to consent.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Next day the troops assembled in their appointed places in the evening
    and advanced during the night. It was an autumn night with dark purple
    clouds, but no rain. The ground was damp but not muddy, and the troops
    advanced noiselessly, only occasionally a jingling of the artillery
    could be faintly heard. The men were forbidden to talk out loud, to
    smoke their pipes, or to strike a light, and they tried to prevent their
    horses neighing. The secrecy of the undertaking heightened its charm and
    they marched gaily. Some columns, supposing they had reached their
    destination, halted, piled arms, and settled down on the cold ground,
    but the majority marched all night and arrived at places where they
    evidently should not have been.
    
    Only Count Orlov-Denisov with his Cossacks (the least important
    detachment of all) got to his appointed place at the right time. This
    detachment halted at the outskirts of a forest, on the path leading from
    the village of Stromilova to Dmitrovsk.
    
    Toward dawn, Count Orlov-Denisov, who had dozed off, was awakened by a
    deserter from the French army being brought to him. This was a Polish
    sergeant of Poniatowski's corps, who explained in Polish that he had
    come over because he had been slighted in the service: that he ought
    long ago to have been made an officer, that he was braver than any of
    them, and so he had left them and wished to pay them out. He said that
    Murat was spending the night less than a mile from where they were, and
    that if they would let him have a convoy of a hundred men he would
    capture him alive. Count Orlov-Denisov consulted his fellow officers.
    
    The offer was too tempting to be refused. Everyone volunteered to go and
    everybody advised making the attempt. After much disputing and arguing,
    Major-General Grekov with two Cossack regiments decided to go with the
    Polish sergeant.
    
    "Now, remember," said Count Orlov-Denisov to the sergeant at parting,
    "if you have been lying I'll have you hanged like a dog; but if it's
    true you shall have a hundred gold pieces!"
    
    Without replying, the sergeant, with a resolute air, mounted and rode
    away with Grekov whose men had quickly assembled. They disappeared into
    the forest, and Count Orlov-Denisov, having seen Grekov off, returned,
    shivering from the freshness of the early dawn and excited by what he
    had undertaken on his own responsibility, and began looking at the enemy
    camp, now just visible in the deceptive light of dawn and the dying
    campfires. Our columns ought to have begun to appear on an open
    declivity to his right. He looked in that direction, but though the
    columns would have been visible quite far off, they were not to be seen.
    It seemed to the count that things were beginning to stir in the French
    camp, and his keen-sighted adjutant confirmed this.
    
    "Oh, it is really too late," said Count Orlov, looking at the camp.
    
    As often happens when someone we have trusted is no longer before our
    eyes, it suddenly seemed quite clear and obvious to him that the
    sergeant was an impostor, that he had lied, and that the whole Russian
    attack would be ruined by the absence of those two regiments, which he
    would lead away heaven only knew where. How could one capture a
    commander-in-chief from among such a mass of troops!
    
    "I am sure that rascal was lying," said the count.
    
    "They can still be called back," said one of his suite, who like Count
    Orlov felt distrustful of the adventure when he looked at the enemy's
    camp.
    
    "Eh? Really... what do you think? Should we let them go on or not?"
    
    "Will you have them fetched back?"
    
    "Fetch them back, fetch them back!" said Count Orlov with sudden
    determination, looking at his watch. "It will be too late. It is quite
    light."
    
    And the adjutant galloped through the forest after Grekov. When Grekov
    returned, Count Orlov-Denisov, excited both by the abandoned attempt and
    by vainly awaiting the infantry columns that still did not appear, as
    well as by the proximity of the enemy, resolved to advance. All his men
    felt the same excitement.
    
    "Mount!" he commanded in a whisper. The men took their places and
    crossed themselves.... "Forward, with God's aid!"
    
    "Hurrah-ah-ah!" reverberated in the forest, and the Cossack companies,
    trailing their lances and advancing one after another as if poured out
    of a sack, dashed gaily across the brook toward the camp.
    
    One desperate, frightened yell from the first French soldier who saw the
    Cossacks, and all who were in the camp, undressed and only just waking
    up, ran off in all directions, abandoning cannons, muskets, and horses.
    
    Had the Cossacks pursued the French, without heeding what was behind and
    around them, they would have captured Murat and everything there. That
    was what the officers desired. But it was impossible to make the
    Cossacks budge when once they had got booty and prisoners. None of them
    listened to orders. Fifteen hundred prisoners and thirty-eight guns were
    taken on the spot, besides standards and (what seemed most important to
    the Cossacks) horses, saddles, horsecloths, and the like. All this had
    to be dealt with, the prisoners and guns secured, the booty divided--not
    without some shouting and even a little fighting among themselves--and
    it was on this that the Cossacks all busied themselves.
    
    The French, not being farther pursued, began to recover themselves: they
    formed into detachments and began firing. Orlov-Denisov, still waiting
    for the other columns to arrive, advanced no further.
    
    Meantime, according to the dispositions which said that "the First
    Column will march" and so on, the infantry of the belated columns,
    commanded by Bennigsen and directed by Toll, had started in due order
    and, as always happens, had got somewhere, but not to their appointed
    places. As always happens the men, starting cheerfully, began to halt;
    murmurs were heard, there was a sense of confusion, and finally a
    backward movement. Adjutants and generals galloped about, shouted, grew
    angry, quarreled, said they had come quite wrong and were late, gave
    vent to a little abuse, and at last gave it all up and went forward,
    simply to get somewhere. "We shall get somewhere or other!" And they did
    indeed get somewhere, though not to their right places; a few eventually
    even got to their right place, but too late to be of any use and only in
    time to be fired at. Toll, who in this battle played the part of
    Weyrother at Austerlitz, galloped assiduously from place to place,
    finding everything upside down everywhere. Thus he stumbled on Bagovut's
    corps in a wood when it was already broad daylight, though the corps
    should long before have joined Orlov-Denisov. Excited and vexed by the
    failure and supposing that someone must be responsible for it, Toll
    galloped up to the commander of the corps and began upbraiding him
    severely, saying that he ought to be shot. General Bagovut, a fighting
    old soldier of placid temperament, being also upset by all the delay,
    confusion, and cross-purposes, fell into a rage to everybody's surprise
    and quite contrary to his usual character and said disagreeable things
    to Toll.
    
    "I prefer not to take lessons from anyone, but I can die with my men as
    well as anybody," he said, and advanced with a single division.
    
    Coming out onto a field under the enemy's fire, this brave general went
    straight ahead, leading his men under fire, without considering in his
    agitation whether going into action now, with a single division, would
    be of any use or no. Danger, cannon balls, and bullets were just what he
    needed in his angry mood. One of the first bullets killed him, and other
    bullets killed many of his men. And his division remained under fire for
    some time quite uselessly.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Meanwhile another column was to have attacked the French from the front,
    but Kutuzov accompanied that column. He well knew that nothing but
    confusion would come of this battle undertaken against his will, and as
    far as was in his power held the troops back. He did not advance.
    
    He rode silently on his small gray horse, indolently answering
    suggestions that they should attack.
    
    "The word attack is always on your tongue, but you don't see that we are
    unable to execute complicated maneuvers," said he to Miloradovich who
    asked permission to advance.
    
    "We couldn't take Murat prisoner this morning or get to the place in
    time, and nothing can be done now!" he replied to someone else.
    
    When Kutuzov was informed that at the French rear--where according to
    the reports of the Cossacks there had previously been nobody--there were
    now two battalions of Poles, he gave a sidelong glance at Ermolov who
    was behind him and to whom he had not spoken since the previous day.
    
    "You see! They are asking to attack and making plans of all kinds, but
    as soon as one gets to business nothing is ready, and the enemy,
    forewarned, takes measures accordingly."
    
    Ermolov screwed up his eyes and smiled faintly on hearing these words.
    He understood that for him the storm had blown over, and that Kutuzov
    would content himself with that hint.
    
    "He's having a little fun at my expense," said Ermolov softly, nudging
    with his knee Raevski who was at his side.
    
    Soon after this, Ermolov moved up to Kutuzov and respectfully remarked:
    
    "It is not too late yet, your Highness--the enemy has not gone away--if
    you were to order an attack! If not, the Guards will not so much as see
    a little smoke."
    
    Kutuzov did not reply, but when they reported to him that Murat's troops
    were in retreat he ordered an advance, though at every hundred paces he
    halted for three quarters of an hour.
    
    The whole battle consisted in what Orlov-Denisov's Cossacks had done:
    the rest of the army merely lost some hundreds of men uselessly.
    
    In consequence of this battle Kutuzov received a diamond decoration, and
    Bennigsen some diamonds and a hundred thousand rubles, others also
    received pleasant recognitions corresponding to their various grades,
    and following the battle fresh changes were made in the staff.
    
    "That's how everything is done with us, all topsy-turvy!" said the
    Russian officers and generals after the Tarutino battle, letting it be
    understood that some fool there is doing things all wrong but that we
    ourselves should not have done so, just as people speak today. But
    people who talk like that either do not know what they are talking about
    or deliberately deceive themselves. No battle--Tarutino, Borodino, or
    Austerlitz--takes place as those who planned it anticipated. That is an
    essential condition.
    
    A countless number of free forces (for nowhere is man freer than during
    a battle, where it is a question of life and death) influence the course
    taken by the fight, and that course never can be known in advance and
    never coincides with the direction of any one force.
    
    If many simultaneously and variously directed forces act on a given
    body, the direction of its motion cannot coincide with any one of those
    forces, but will always be a mean--what in mechanics is represented by
    the diagonal of a parallelogram of forces.
    
    If in the descriptions given by historians, especially French ones, we
    find their wars and battles carried out in accordance with previously
    formed plans, the only conclusion to be drawn is that those descriptions
    are false.
    
    The battle of Tarutino obviously did not attain the aim Toll had in
    view--to lead the troops into action in the order prescribed by the
    dispositions; nor that which Count Orlov-Denisov may have had in view--
    to take Murat prisoner; nor the result of immediately destroying the
    whole corps, which Bennigsen and others may have had in view; nor the
    aim of the officer who wished to go into action to distinguish himself;
    nor that of the Cossack who wanted more booty than he got, and so on.
    But if the aim of the battle was what actually resulted and what all the
    Russians of that day desired--to drive the French out of Russia and
    destroy their army--it is quite clear that the battle of Tarutino, just
    because of its incongruities, was exactly what was wanted at that stage
    of the campaign. It would be difficult and even impossible to imagine
    any result more opportune than the actual outcome of this battle. With a
    minimum of effort and insignificant losses, despite the greatest
    confusion, the most important results of the whole campaign were
    attained: the transition from retreat to advance, an exposure of the
    weakness of the French, and the administration of that shock which
    Napoleon's army had only awaited to begin its flight.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    Napoleon enters Moscow after the brilliant victory de la Moskowa; there
    can be no doubt about the victory for the battlefield remains in the
    hands of the French. The Russians retreat and abandon their ancient
    capital. Moscow, abounding in provisions, arms, munitions, and
    incalculable wealth, is in Napoleon's hands. The Russian army, only half
    the strength of the French, does not make a single attempt to attack for
    a whole month. Napoleon's position is most brilliant. He can either fall
    on the Russian army with double its strength and destroy it; negotiate
    an advantageous peace, or in case of a refusal make a menacing move on
    Petersburg, or even, in the case of a reverse, return to Smolensk or
    Vilna; or remain in Moscow; in short, no special genius would seem to be
    required to retain the brilliant position the French held at that time.
    For that, only very simple and easy steps were necessary: not to allow
    the troops to loot, to prepare winter clothing--of which there was
    sufficient in Moscow for the whole army--and methodically to collect the
    provisions, of which (according to the French historians) there were
    enough in Moscow to supply the whole army for six months. Yet Napoleon,
    that greatest of all geniuses, who the historians declare had control of
    the army, took none of these steps.
    
    He not merely did nothing of the kind, but on the contrary he used his
    power to select the most foolish and ruinous of all the courses open to
    him. Of all that Napoleon might have done: wintering in Moscow,
    advancing on Petersburg or on Nizhni-Novgorod, or retiring by a more
    northerly or more southerly route (say by the road Kutuzov afterwards
    took), nothing more stupid or disastrous can be imagined than what he
    actually did. He remained in Moscow till October, letting the troops
    plunder the city; then, hesitating whether to leave a garrison behind
    him, he quitted Moscow, approached Kutuzov without joining battle,
    turned to the right and reached Malo-Yaroslavets, again without
    attempting to break through and take the road Kutuzov took, but retiring
    instead to Mozhaysk along the devastated Smolensk road. Nothing more
    stupid than that could have been devised, or more disastrous for the
    army, as the sequel showed. Had Napoleon's aim been to destroy his army,
    the most skillful strategist could hardly have devised any series of
    actions that would so completely have accomplished that purpose,
    independently of anything the Russian army might do.
    
    Napoleon, the man of genius, did this! But to say that he destroyed his
    army because he wished to, or because he was very stupid, would be as
    unjust as to say that he had brought his troops to Moscow because he
    wished to and because he was very clever and a genius.
    
    In both cases his personal activity, having no more force than the
    personal activity of any soldier, merely coincided with the laws that
    guided the event.
    
    The historians quite falsely represent Napoleon's faculties as having
    weakened in Moscow, and do so only because the results did not justify
    his actions. He employed all his ability and strength to do the best he
    could for himself and his army, as he had done previously and as he did
    subsequently in 1813. His activity at that time was no less astounding
    than it was in Egypt, in Italy, in Austria, and in Prussia. We do not
    know for certain in how far his genius was genuine in Egypt--where forty
    centuries looked down upon his grandeur--for his great exploits there
    are all told us by Frenchmen. We cannot accurately estimate his genius
    in Austria or Prussia, for we have to draw our information from French
    or German sources, and the incomprehensible surrender of whole corps
    without fighting and of fortresses without a siege must incline Germans
    to recognize his genius as the only explanation of the war carried on in
    Germany. But we, thank God, have no need to recognize his genius in
    order to hide our shame. We have paid for the right to look at the
    matter plainly and simply, and we will not abandon that right.
    
    His activity in Moscow was as amazing and as full of genius as
    elsewhere. Order after order and plan after plan were issued by him from
    the time he entered Moscow till the time he left it. The absence of
    citizens and of a deputation, and even the burning of Moscow, did not
    disconcert him. He did not lose sight either of the welfare of his army
    or of the doings of the enemy, or of the welfare of the people of
    Russia, or of the direction of affairs in Paris, or of diplomatic
    considerations concerning the terms of the anticipated peace.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    With regard to military matters, Napoleon immediately on his entry into
    Moscow gave General Sabastiani strict orders to observe the movements of
    the Russian army, sent army corps out along the different roads, and
    charged Murat to find Kutuzov. Then he gave careful directions about the
    fortification of the Kremlin, and drew up a brilliant plan for a future
    campaign over the whole map of Russia.
    
    With regard to diplomatic questions, Napoleon summoned Captain Yakovlev,
    who had been robbed and was in rags and did not know how to get out of
    Moscow, minutely explained to him his whole policy and his magnanimity,
    and having written a letter to the Emperor Alexander in which he
    considered it his duty to inform his Friend and Brother that Rostopchin
    had managed affairs badly in Moscow, he dispatched Yakovlev to
    Petersburg.
    
    Having similarly explained his views and his magnanimity to Tutolmin, he
    dispatched that old man also to Petersburg to negotiate.
    
    With regard to legal matters, immediately after the fires he gave orders
    to find and execute the incendiaries. And the scoundrel Rostopchin was
    punished by an order to burn down his houses.
    
    With regard to administrative matters, Moscow was granted a
    constitution. A municipality was established and the following
    announcement issued:
    
    INHABITANTS OF MOSCOW!
    
    Your misfortunes are cruel, but His Majesty the Emperor and King desires
    to arrest their course. Terrible examples have taught you how he
    punishes disobedience and crime. Strict measures have been taken to put
    an end to disorder and to re-establish public security. A paternal
    administration, chosen from among yourselves, will form your
    municipality or city government. It will take care of you, of your
    needs, and of your welfare. Its members will be distinguished by a red
    ribbon worn across the shoulder, and the mayor of the city will wear a
    white belt as well. But when not on duty they will only wear a red
    ribbon round the left arm.
    
    The city police is established on its former footing, and better order
    already prevails in consequence of its activity. The government has
    appointed two commissaries general, or chiefs of police, and twenty
    commissaries or captains of wards have been appointed to the different
    wards of the city. You will recognize them by the white ribbon they will
    wear on the left arm. Several churches of different denominations are
    open, and divine service is performed in them unhindered. Your fellow
    citizens are returning every day to their homes and orders have been
    given that they should find in them the help and protection due to their
    misfortunes. These are the measures the government has adopted to re-
    establish order and relieve your condition. But to achieve this aim it
    is necessary that you should add your efforts and should, if possible,
    forget the misfortunes you have suffered, should entertain the hope of a
    less cruel fate, should be certain that inevitable and ignominious death
    awaits those who make any attempt on your persons or on what remains of
    your property, and finally that you should not doubt that these will be
    safeguarded, since such is the will of the greatest and most just of
    monarchs. Soldiers and citizens, of whatever nation you may be, re-
    establish public confidence, the source of the welfare of a state, live
    like brothers, render mutual aid and protection one to another, unite to
    defeat the intentions of the evil-minded, obey the military and civil
    authorities, and your tears will soon cease to flow!
    
    With regard to supplies for the army, Napoleon decreed that all the
    troops in turn should enter Moscow a la maraude * to obtain provisions
    for themselves, so that the army might have its future provided for.
    
    * As looters.
    
    With regard to religion, Napoleon ordered the priests to be brought back
    and services to be again performed in the churches.
    
    With regard to commerce and to provisioning the army, the following was
    placarded everywhere:
    
    PROCLAMATION!
    
    You, peaceful inhabitants of Moscow, artisans and workmen whom
    misfortune has driven from the city, and you scattered tillers of the
    soil, still kept out in the fields by groundless fear, listen!
    Tranquillity is returning to this capital and order is being restored in
    it. Your fellow countrymen are emerging boldly from their hiding places
    on finding that they are respected. Any violence to them or to their
    property is promptly punished. His Majesty the Emperor and King protects
    them, and considers no one among you his enemy except those who disobey
    his orders. He desires to end your misfortunes and restore you to your
    homes and families. Respond, therefore, to his benevolent intentions and
    come to us without fear. Inhabitants, return with confidence to your
    abodes! You will soon find means of satisfying your needs. Craftsmen and
    industrious artisans, return to your work, your houses, your shops,
    where the protection of guards awaits you! You shall receive proper pay
    for your work. And lastly you too, peasants, come from the forests where
    you are hiding in terror, return to your huts without fear, in full
    assurance that you will find protection! Markets are established in the
    city where peasants can bring their surplus supplies and the products of
    the soil. The government has taken the following steps to ensure freedom
    of sale for them: (1) From today, peasants, husbandmen, and those living
    in the neighborhood of Moscow may without any danger bring their
    supplies of all kinds to two appointed markets, of which one is on the
    Mokhovaya Street and the other at the Provision Market. (2) Such
    supplies will be bought from them at such prices as seller and buyer may
    agree on, and if a seller is unable to obtain a fair price he will be
    free to take his goods back to his village and no one may hinder him
    under any pretense. (3) Sunday and Wednesday of each week are appointed
    as the chief market days and to that end a sufficient number of troops
    will be stationed along the highroads on Tuesdays and Saturdays at such
    distances from the town as to protect the carts. (4) Similar measures
    will be taken that peasants with their carts and horses may meet with no
    hindrance on their return journey. (5) Steps will immediately be taken
    to re-establish ordinary trading.
    
    Inhabitants of the city and villages, and you, workingmen and artisans,
    to whatever nation you belong, you are called on to carry out the
    paternal intentions of His Majesty the Emperor and King and to co-
    operate with him for the public welfare! Lay your respect and confidence
    at his feet and do not delay to unite with us!
    
    With the object of raising the spirits of the troops and of the people,
    reviews were constantly held and rewards distributed. The Emperor rode
    through the streets to comfort the inhabitants, and, despite his
    preoccupation with state affairs, himself visited the theaters that were
    established by his order.
    
    In regard to philanthropy, the greatest virtue of crowned heads,
    Napoleon also did all in his power. He caused the words Maison de ma
    Mere to be inscribed on the charitable institutions, thereby combining
    tender filial affection with the majestic benevolence of a monarch. He
    visited the Foundling Hospital and, allowing the orphans saved by him to
    kiss his white hands, graciously conversed with Tutolmin. Then, as
    Thiers eloquently recounts, he ordered his soldiers to be paid in forged
    Russian money which he had prepared: "Raising the use of these means by
    an act worthy of himself and of the French army, he let relief be
    distributed to those who had been burned out. But as food was too
    precious to be given to foreigners, who were for the most part enemies,
    Napoleon preferred to supply them with money with which to purchase food
    from outside, and had paper rubles distributed to them."
    
    With reference to army discipline, orders were continually being issued
    to inflict severe punishment for the nonperformance of military duties
    and to suppress robbery.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    But strange to say, all these measures, efforts, and plans--which were
    not at all worse than others issued in similar circumstances--did not
    affect the essence of the matter but, like the hands of a clock detached
    from the mechanism, swung about in an arbitrary and aimless way without
    engaging the cogwheels.
    
    With reference to the military side--the plan of campaign--that work of
    genius of which Thiers remarks that, "His genius never devised anything
    more profound, more skillful, or more admirable," and enters into a
    polemic with M. Fain to prove that this work of genius must be referred
    not to the fourth but to the fifteenth of October--that plan never was
    or could be executed, for it was quite out of touch with the facts of
    the case. The fortifying of the Kremlin, for which la Mosquee (as
    Napoleon termed the church of Basil the Beatified) was to have been
    razed to the ground, proved quite useless. The mining of the Kremlin
    only helped toward fulfilling Napoleon's wish that it should be blown up
    when he left Moscow--as a child wants the floor on which he has hurt
    himself to be beaten. The pursuit of the Russian army, about which
    Napoleon was so concerned, produced an unheard-of result. The French
    generals lost touch with the Russian army of sixty thousand men, and
    according to Thiers it was only eventually found, like a lost pin, by
    the skill--and apparently the genius--of Murat.
    
    With reference to diplomacy, all Napoleon's arguments as to his
    magnanimity and justice, both to Tutolmin and to Yakovlev (whose chief
    concern was to obtain a greatcoat and a conveyance), proved useless;
    Alexander did not receive these envoys and did not reply to their
    embassage.
    
    With regard to legal matters, after the execution of the supposed
    incendiaries the rest of Moscow burned down.
    
    With regard to administrative matters, the establishment of a
    municipality did not stop the robberies and was only of use to certain
    people who formed part of that municipality and under pretext of
    preserving order looted Moscow or saved their own property from being
    looted.
    
    With regard to religion, as to which in Egypt matters had so easily been
    settled by Napoleon's visit to a mosque, no results were achieved. Two
    or three priests who were found in Moscow did try to carry out
    Napoleon's wish, but one of them was slapped in the face by a French
    soldier while conducting service, and a French official reported of
    another that: "The priest whom I found and invited to say Mass cleaned
    and locked up the church. That night the doors were again broken open,
    the padlocks smashed, the books mutilated, and other disorders
    perpetrated."
    
    With reference to commerce, the proclamation to industrious workmen and
    to peasants evoked no response. There were no industrious workmen, and
    the peasants caught the commissaries who ventured too far out of town
    with the proclamation and killed them.
    
    As to the theaters for the entertainment of the people and the troops,
    these did not meet with success either. The theaters set up in the
    Kremlin and in Posnyakov's house were closed again at once because the
    actors and actresses were robbed.
    
    Even philanthropy did not have the desired effect. The genuine as well
    as the false paper money which flooded Moscow lost its value. The
    French, collecting booty, cared only for gold. Not only was the paper
    money valueless which Napoleon so graciously distributed to the
    unfortunate, but even silver lost its value in relation to gold.
    
    But the most amazing example of the ineffectiveness of the orders given
    by the authorities at that time was Napoleon's attempt to stop the
    looting and re-establish discipline.
    
    This is what the army authorities were reporting:
    
    "Looting continues in the city despite the decrees against it. Order is
    not yet restored and not a single merchant is carrying on trade in a
    lawful manner. The sutlers alone venture to trade, and they sell stolen
    goods."
    
    "The neighborhood of my ward continues to be pillaged by soldiers of the
    3rd Corps who, not satisfied with taking from the unfortunate
    inhabitants hiding in the cellars the little they have left, even have
    the ferocity to wound them with their sabers, as I have repeatedly
    witnessed."
    
    "Nothing new, except that the soldiers are robbing and pillaging--
    October 9."
    
    "Robbery and pillaging continue. There is a band of thieves in our
    district who ought to be arrested by a strong force--October 11."
    
    "The Emperor is extremely displeased that despite the strict orders to
    stop pillage, parties of marauding Guards are continually seen returning
    to the Kremlin. Among the Old Guard disorder and pillage were renewed
    more violently than ever yesterday evening, last night, and today. The
    Emperor sees with regret that the picked soldiers appointed to guard his
    person, who should set an example of discipline, carry disobedience to
    such a point that they break into the cellars and stores containing army
    supplies. Others have disgraced themselves to the extent of disobeying
    sentinels and officers, and have abused and beaten them."
    
    "The Grand Marshal of the palace," wrote the governor, "complains
    bitterly that in spite of repeated orders, the soldiers continue to
    commit nuisances in all the courtyards and even under the very windows
    of the Emperor."
    
    That army, like a herd of cattle run wild and trampling underfoot the
    provender which might have saved it from starvation, disintegrated and
    perished with each additional day it remained in Moscow. But it did not
    go away.
    
    It began to run away only when suddenly seized by a panic caused by the
    capture of transport trains on the Smolensk road, and by the battle of
    Tarutino. The news of that battle of Tarutino, unexpectedly received by
    Napoleon at a review, evoked in him a desire to punish the Russians
    (Thiers says), and he issued the order for departure which the whole
    army was demanding.
    
    Fleeing from Moscow the soldiers took with them everything they had
    stolen. Napoleon, too, carried away his own personal tresor, but on
    seeing the baggage trains that impeded the army, he was (Thiers says)
    horror-struck. And yet with his experience of war he did not order all
    the superfluous vehicles to be burned, as he had done with those of a
    certain marshal when approaching Moscow. He gazed at the caleches and
    carriages in which soldiers were riding and remarked that it was a very
    good thing, as those vehicles could be used to carry provisions, the
    sick, and the wounded.
    
    The plight of the whole army resembled that of a wounded animal which
    feels it is perishing and does not know what it is doing. To study the
    skillful tactics and aims of Napoleon and his army from the time it
    entered Moscow till it was destroyed is like studying the dying leaps
    and shudders of a mortally wounded animal. Very often a wounded animal,
    hearing a rustle, rushes straight at the hunter's gun, runs forward and
    back again, and hastens its own end. Napoleon, under pressure from his
    whole army, did the same thing. The rustle of the battle of Tarutino
    frightened the beast, and it rushed forward onto the hunter's gun,
    reached him, turned back, and finally--like any wild beast--ran back
    along the most disadvantageous and dangerous path, where the old scent
    was familiar.
    
    During the whole of that period Napoleon, who seems to us to have been
    the leader of all these movements--as the figurehead of a ship may seem
    to a savage to guide the vessel--acted like a child who, holding a
    couple of strings inside a carriage, thinks he is driving it.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Early in the morning of the sixth of October Pierre went out of the
    shed, and on returning stopped by the door to play with a little blue-
    gray dog, with a long body and short bandy legs, that jumped about him.
    This little dog lived in their shed, sleeping beside Karataev at night;
    it sometimes made excursions into the town but always returned again.
    Probably it had never had an owner, and it still belonged to nobody and
    had no name. The French called it Azor; the soldier who told stories
    called it Femgalka; Karataev and others called it Gray, or sometimes
    Flabby. Its lack of a master, a name, or even of a breed or any definite
    color did not seem to trouble the blue-gray dog in the least. Its furry
    tail stood up firm and round as a plume, its bandy legs served it so
    well that it would often gracefully lift a hind leg and run very easily
    and quickly on three legs, as if disdaining to use all four. Everything
    pleased it. Now it would roll on its back, yelping with delight, now
    bask in the sun with a thoughtful air of importance, and now frolic
    about playing with a chip of wood or a straw.
    
    Pierre's attire by now consisted of a dirty torn shirt (the only remnant
    of his former clothing), a pair of soldier's trousers which by
    Karataev's advice he tied with string round the ankles for warmth, and a
    peasant coat and cap. Physically he had changed much during this time.
    He no longer seemed stout, though he still had the appearance of
    solidity and strength hereditary in his family. A beard and mustache
    covered the lower part of his face, and a tangle of hair, infested with
    lice, curled round his head like a cap. The look of his eyes was
    resolute, calm, and animatedly alert, as never before. The former
    slackness which had shown itself even in his eyes was now replaced by an
    energetic readiness for action and resistance. His feet were bare.
    
    Pierre first looked down the field across which vehicles and horsemen
    were passing that morning, then into the distance across the river, then
    at the dog who was pretending to be in earnest about biting him, and
    then at his bare feet which he placed with pleasure in various
    positions, moving his dirty thick big toes. Every time he looked at his
    bare feet a smile of animated self-satisfaction flitted across his face.
    The sight of them reminded him of all he had experienced and learned
    during these weeks and this recollection was pleasant to him.
    
    For some days the weather had been calm and clear with slight frosts in
    the mornings--what is called an "old wives' summer."
    
    In the sunshine the air was warm, and that warmth was particularly
    pleasant with the invigorating freshness of the morning frost still in
    the air.
    
    On everything--far and near--lay the magic crystal glitter seen only at
    that time of autumn. The Sparrow Hills were visible in the distance,
    with the village, the church, and the large white house. The bare trees,
    the sand, the bricks and roofs of the houses, the green church spire,
    and the corners of the white house in the distance, all stood out in the
    transparent air in most delicate outline and with unnatural clearness.
    Near by could be seen the familiar ruins of a half-burned mansion
    occupied by the French, with lilac bushes still showing dark green
    beside the fence. And even that ruined and befouled house--which in dull
    weather was repulsively ugly--seemed quietly beautiful now, in the
    clear, motionless brilliance.
    
    A French corporal, with coat unbuttoned in a homely way, a skullcap on
    his head, and a short pipe in his mouth, came from behind a corner of
    the shed and approached Pierre with a friendly wink.
    
    "What sunshine, Monsieur Kiril!" (Their name for Pierre.) "Eh? Just like
    spring!"
    
    And the corporal leaned against the door and offered Pierre his pipe,
    though whenever he offered it Pierre always declined it.
    
    "To be on the march in such weather..." he began.
    
    Pierre inquired what was being said about leaving, and the corporal told
    him that nearly all the troops were starting and there ought to be an
    order about the prisoners that day. Sokolov, one of the soldiers in the
    shed with Pierre, was dying, and Pierre told the corporal that something
    should be done about him. The corporal replied that Pierre need not
    worry about that as they had an ambulance and a permanent hospital and
    arrangements would be made for the sick, and that in general everything
    that could happen had been foreseen by the authorities.
    
    "Besides, Monsieur Kiril, you have only to say a word to the captain,
    you know. He is a man who never forgets anything. Speak to the captain
    when he makes his round, he will do anything for you."
    
    (The captain of whom the corporal spoke often had long chats with Pierre
    and showed him all sorts of favors.)
    
    "'You see, St. Thomas,' he said to me the other day. 'Monsieur Kiril is
    a man of education, who speaks French. He is a Russian seigneur who has
    had misfortunes, but he is a man. He knows what's what.... If he wants
    anything and asks me, he won't get a refusal. When one has studied, you
    see, one likes education and well-bred people.' It is for your sake I
    mention it, Monsieur Kiril. The other day if it had not been for you
    that affair would have ended ill."
    
    And after chatting a while longer, the corporal went away. (The affair
    he had alluded to had happened a few days before--a fight between the
    prisoners and the French soldiers, in which Pierre had succeeded in
    pacifying his comrades.) Some of the prisoners who had heard Pierre
    talking to the corporal immediately asked what the Frenchman had said.
    While Pierre was repeating what he had been told about the army leaving
    Moscow, a thin, sallow, tattered French soldier came up to the door of
    the shed. Rapidly and timidly raising his fingers to his forehead by way
    of greeting, he asked Pierre whether the soldier Platoche to whom he had
    given a shirt to sew was in that shed.
    
    A week before the French had had boot leather and linen issued to them,
    which they had given out to the prisoners to make up into boots and
    shirts for them.
    
    "Ready, ready, dear fellow!" said Karataev, coming out with a neatly
    folded shirt.
    
    Karataev, on account of the warm weather and for convenience at work,
    was wearing only trousers and a tattered shirt as black as soot. His
    hair was bound round, workman fashion, with a wisp of lime-tree bast,
    and his round face seemed rounder and pleasanter than ever.
    
    "A promise is own brother to performance! I said Friday and here it is,
    ready," said Platon, smiling and unfolding the shirt he had sewn.
    
    The Frenchman glanced around uneasily and then, as if overcoming his
    hesitation, rapidly threw off his uniform and put on the shirt. He had a
    long, greasy, flowered silk waistcoat next to his sallow, thin bare
    body, but no shirt. He was evidently afraid the prisoners looking on
    would laugh at him, and thrust his head into the shirt hurriedly. None
    of the prisoners said a word.
    
    "See, it fits well!" Platon kept repeating, pulling the shirt straight.
    
    The Frenchman, having pushed his head and hands through, without raising
    his eyes, looked down at the shirt and examined the seams.
    
    "You see, dear man, this is not a sewing shop, and I had no proper
    tools; and, as they say, one needs a tool even to kill a louse," said
    Platon with one of his round smiles, obviously pleased with his work.
    
    "It's good, quite good, thank you," said the Frenchman, in French, "but
    there must be some linen left over."
    
    "It will fit better still when it sets to your body," said Karataev,
    still admiring his handiwork. "You'll be nice and comfortable...."
    
    "Thanks, thanks, old fellow.... But the bits left over?" said the
    Frenchman again and smiled. He took out an assignation ruble note and
    gave it to Karataev. "But give me the pieces that are over."
    
    Pierre saw that Platon did not want to understand what the Frenchman was
    saying, and he looked on without interfering. Karataev thanked the
    Frenchman for the money and went on admiring his own work. The Frenchman
    insisted on having the pieces returned that were left over and asked
    Pierre to translate what he said.
    
    "What does he want the bits for?" said Karataev. "They'd make fine leg
    bands for us. Well, never mind."
    
    And Karataev, with a suddenly changed and saddened expression, took a
    small bundle of scraps from inside his shirt and gave it to the
    Frenchman without looking at him. "Oh dear!" muttered Karataev and went
    away. The Frenchman looked at the linen, considered for a moment, then
    looked inquiringly at Pierre and, as if Pierre's look had told him
    something, suddenly blushed and shouted in a squeaky voice:
    
    "Platoche! Eh, Platoche! Keep them yourself!" And handing back the odd
    bits he turned and went out.
    
    "There, look at that," said Karataev, swaying his head. "People said
    they were not Christians, but they too have souls. It's what the old
    folk used to say: 'A sweating hand's an open hand, a dry hand's close.'
    He's naked, but yet he's given it back."
    
    Karataev smiled thoughtfully and was silent awhile looking at the
    pieces.
    
    "But they'll make grand leg bands, dear friend," he said, and went back
    into the shed.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    Four weeks had passed since Pierre had been taken prisoner and though
    the French had offered to move him from the men's to the officers' shed,
    he had stayed in the shed where he was first put.
    
    In burned and devastated Moscow Pierre experienced almost the extreme
    limits of privation a man can endure; but thanks to his physical
    strength and health, of which he had till then been unconscious, and
    thanks especially to the fact that the privations came so gradually that
    it was impossible to say when they began, he endured his position not
    only lightly but joyfully. And just at this time he obtained the
    tranquillity and ease of mind he had formerly striven in vain to reach.
    He had long sought in different ways that tranquillity of mind, that
    inner harmony which had so impressed him in the soldiers at the battle
    of Borodino. He had sought it in philanthropy, in Freemasonry, in the
    dissipations of town life, in wine, in heroic feats of self-sacrifice,
    and in romantic love for Natasha; he had sought it by reasoning--and all
    these quests and experiments had failed him. And now without thinking
    about it he had found that peace and inner harmony only through the
    horror of death, through privation, and through what he recognized in
    Karataev.
    
    Those dreadful moments he had lived through at the executions had as it
    were forever washed away from his imagination and memory the agitating
    thoughts and feelings that had formerly seemed so important. It did not
    now occur to him to think of Russia, or the war, or politics, or
    Napoleon. It was plain to him that all these things were no business of
    his, and that he was not called on to judge concerning them and
    therefore could not do so. "Russia and summer weather are not bound
    together," he thought, repeating words of Karataev's which he found
    strangely consoling. His intention of killing Napoleon and his
    calculations of the cabalistic number of the beast of the Apocalypse now
    seemed to him meaningless and even ridiculous. His anger with his wife
    and anxiety that his name should not be smirched now seemed not merely
    trivial but even amusing. What concern was it of his that somewhere or
    other that woman was leading the life she preferred? What did it matter
    to anybody, and especially to him, whether or not they found out that
    their prisoner's name was Count Bezukhov?
    
    He now often remembered his conversation with Prince Andrew and quite
    agreed with him, though he understood Prince Andrew's thoughts somewhat
    differently. Prince Andrew had thought and said that happiness could
    only be negative, but had said it with a shade of bitterness and irony
    as though he was really saying that all desire for positive happiness is
    implanted in us merely to torment us and never be satisfied. But Pierre
    believed it without any mental reservation. The absence of suffering,
    the satisfaction of one's needs and consequent freedom in the choice of
    one's occupation, that is, of one's way of life, now seemed to Pierre to
    be indubitably man's highest happiness. Here and now for the first time
    he fully appreciated the enjoyment of eating when he wanted to eat,
    drinking when he wanted to drink, sleeping when he wanted to sleep, of
    warmth when he was cold, of talking to a fellow man when he wished to
    talk and to hear a human voice. The satisfaction of one's needs--good
    food, cleanliness, and freedom--now that he was deprived of all this,
    seemed to Pierre to constitute perfect happiness; and the choice of
    occupation, that is, of his way of life--now that that was so
    restricted--seemed to him such an easy matter that he forgot that a
    superfluity of the comforts of life destroys all joy in satisfying one's
    needs, while great freedom in the choice of occupation--such freedom as
    his wealth, his education, and his social position had given him in his
    own life--is just what makes the choice of occupation insolubly
    difficult and destroys the desire and possibility of having an
    occupation.
    
    All Pierre's daydreams now turned on the time when he would be free. Yet
    subsequently, and for the rest of his life, he thought and spoke with
    enthusiasm of that month of captivity, of those irrecoverable, strong,
    joyful sensations, and chiefly of the complete peace of mind and inner
    freedom which he experienced only during those weeks.
    
    When on the first day he got up early, went out of the shed at dawn, and
    saw the cupolas and crosses of the New Convent of the Virgin still dark
    at first, the hoarfrost on the dusty grass, the Sparrow Hills, and the
    wooded banks above the winding river vanishing in the purple distance,
    when he felt the contact of the fresh air and heard the noise of the
    crows flying from Moscow across the field, and when afterwards light
    gleamed from the east and the sun's rim appeared solemnly from behind a
    cloud, and the cupolas and crosses, the hoarfrost, the distance and the
    river, all began to sparkle in the glad light--Pierre felt a new joy and
    strength in life such as he had never before known. And this not only
    stayed with him during the whole of his imprisonment, but even grew in
    strength as the hardships of his position increased.
    
    That feeling of alertness and of readiness for anything was still
    further strengthened in him by the high opinion his fellow prisoners
    formed of him soon after his arrival at the shed. With his knowledge of
    languages, the respect shown him by the French, his simplicity, his
    readiness to give anything asked of him (he received the allowance of
    three rubles a week made to officers); with his strength, which he
    showed to the soldiers by pressing nails into the walls of the hut; his
    gentleness to his companions, and his capacity for sitting still and
    thinking without doing anything (which seemed to them incomprehensible),
    he appeared to them a rather mysterious and superior being. The very
    qualities that had been a hindrance, if not actually harmful, to him in
    the world he had lived in--his strength, his disdain for the comforts of
    life, his absent-mindedness and simplicity--here among these people gave
    him almost the status of a hero. And Pierre felt that their opinion
    placed responsibilities upon him.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    The French evacuation began on the night between the sixth and seventh
    of October: kitchens and sheds were dismantled, carts loaded, and troops
    and baggage trains started.
    
    At seven in the morning a French convoy in marching trim, wearing shakos
    and carrying muskets, knapsacks, and enormous sacks, stood in front of
    the sheds, and animated French talk mingled with curses sounded all
    along the lines.
    
    In the shed everyone was ready, dressed, belted, shod, and only awaited
    the order to start. The sick soldier, Sokolov, pale and thin with dark
    shadows round his eyes, alone sat in his place barefoot and not dressed.
    His eyes, prominent from the emaciation of his face, gazed inquiringly
    at his comrades who were paying no attention to him, and he moaned
    regularly and quietly. It was evidently not so much his sufferings that
    caused him to moan (he had dysentery) as his fear and grief at being
    left alone.
    
    Pierre, girt with a rope round his waist and wearing shoes Karataev had
    made for him from some leather a French soldier had torn off a tea chest
    and brought to have his boots mended with, went up to the sick man and
    squatted down beside him.
    
    "You know, Sokolov, they are not all going away! They have a hospital
    here. You may be better off than we others," said Pierre.
    
    "O Lord! Oh, it will be the death of me! O Lord!" moaned the man in a
    louder voice.
    
    "I'll go and ask them again directly," said Pierre, rising and going to
    the door of the shed.
    
    Just as Pierre reached the door, the corporal who had offered him a pipe
    the day before came up to it with two soldiers. The corporal and
    soldiers were in marching kit with knapsacks and shakos that had metal
    straps, and these changed their familiar faces.
    
    The corporal came, according to orders, to shut the door. The prisoners
    had to be counted before being let out.
    
    "Corporal, what will they do with the sick man?..." Pierre began.
    
    But even as he spoke he began to doubt whether this was the corporal he
    knew or a stranger, so unlike himself did the corporal seem at that
    moment. Moreover, just as Pierre was speaking a sharp rattle of drums
    was suddenly heard from both sides. The corporal frowned at Pierre's
    words and, uttering some meaningless oaths, slammed the door. The shed
    became semidark, and the sharp rattle of the drums on two sides drowned
    the sick man's groans.
    
    "There it is!... It again!..." said Pierre to himself, and an
    involuntary shudder ran down his spine. In the corporal's changed face,
    in the sound of his voice, in the stirring and deafening noise of the
    drums, he recognized that mysterious, callous force which compelled
    people against their will to kill their fellow men--that force the
    effect of which he had witnessed during the executions. To fear or to
    try to escape that force, to address entreaties or exhortations to those
    who served as its tools, was useless. Pierre knew this now. One had to
    wait and endure. He did not again go to the sick man, nor turn to look
    at him, but stood frowning by the door of the hut.
    
    When that door was opened and the prisoners, crowding against one
    another like a flock of sheep, squeezed into the exit, Pierre pushed his
    way forward and approached that very captain who as the corporal had
    assured him was ready to do anything for him. The captain was also in
    marching kit, and on his cold face appeared that same it which Pierre
    had recognized in the corporal's words and in the roll of the drums.
    
    "Pass on, pass on!" the captain reiterated, frowning sternly, and
    looking at the prisoners who thronged past him.
    
    Pierre went up to him, though he knew his attempt would be vain.
    
    "What now?" the officer asked with a cold look as if not recognizing
    Pierre.
    
    Pierre told him about the sick man.
    
    "He'll manage to walk, devil take him!" said the captain. "Pass on, pass
    on!" he continued without looking at Pierre.
    
    "But he is dying," Pierre again began.
    
    "Be so good..." shouted the captain, frowning angrily.
    
    "Dram-da-da-dam, dam-dam..." rattled the drums, and Pierre understood
    that this mysterious force completely controlled these men and that it
    was now useless to say any more.
    
    The officer prisoners were separated from the soldiers and told to march
    in front. There were about thirty officers, with Pierre among them, and
    about three hundred men.
    
    The officers, who had come from the other sheds, were all strangers to
    Pierre and much better dressed than he. They looked at him and at his
    shoes mistrustfully, as at an alien. Not far from him walked a fat major
    with a sallow, bloated, angry face, who was wearing a Kazan dressing
    gown tied round with a towel, and who evidently enjoyed the respect of
    his fellow prisoners. He kept one hand, in which he clasped his tobacco
    pouch, inside the bosom of his dressing gown and held the stem of his
    pipe firmly with the other. Panting and puffing, the major grumbled and
    growled at everybody because he thought he was being pushed and that
    they were all hurrying when they had nowhere to hurry to and were all
    surprised at something when there was nothing to be surprised at.
    Another, a thin little officer, was speaking to everyone, conjecturing
    where they were now being taken and how far they would get that day. An
    official in felt boots and wearing a commissariat uniform ran round from
    side to side and gazed at the ruins of Moscow, loudly announcing his
    observations as to what had been burned down and what this or that part
    of the city was that they could see. A third officer, who by his accent
    was a Pole, disputed with the commissariat officer, arguing that he was
    mistaken in his identification of the different wards of Moscow.
    
    "What are you disputing about?" said the major angrily. "What does it
    matter whether it is St. Nicholas or St. Blasius? You see it's burned
    down, and there's an end of it.... What are you pushing for? Isn't the
    road wide enough?" said he, turning to a man behind him who was not
    pushing him at all.
    
    "Oh, oh, oh! What have they done?" the prisoners on one side and another
    were heard saying as they gazed on the charred ruins. "All beyond the
    river, and Zubova, and in the Kremlin.... Just look! There's not half of
    it left. Yes, I told you--the whole quarter beyond the river, and so it
    is."
    
    "Well, you know it's burned, so what's the use of talking?" said the
    major.
    
    As they passed near a church in the Khamovniki (one of the few unburned
    quarters of Moscow) the whole mass of prisoners suddenly started to one
    side and exclamations of horror and disgust were heard.
    
    "Ah, the villains! What heathens! Yes; dead, dead, so he is... And
    smeared with something!"
    
    Pierre too drew near the church where the thing was that evoked these
    exclamations, and dimly made out something leaning against the palings
    surrounding the church. From the words of his comrades who saw better
    than he did, he found that this was the body of a man, set upright
    against the palings with its face smeared with soot.
    
    "Go on! What the devil... Go on! Thirty thousand devils!..." the convoy
    guards began cursing and the French soldiers, with fresh virulence,
    drove away with their swords the crowd of prisoners who were gazing at
    the dead man.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    Through the cross streets of the Khamovniki quarter the prisoners
    marched, followed only by their escort and the vehicles and wagons
    belonging to that escort, but when they reached the supply stores they
    came among a huge and closely packed train of artillery mingled with
    private vehicles.
    
    At the bridge they all halted, waiting for those in front to get across.
    From the bridge they had a view of endless lines of moving baggage
    trains before and behind them. To the right, where the Kaluga road turns
    near Neskuchny, endless rows of troops and carts stretched away into the
    distance. These were troops of Beauharnais' corps which had started
    before any of the others. Behind, along the riverside and across the
    Stone Bridge, were Ney's troops and transport.
    
    Davout's troops, in whose charge were the prisoners, were crossing the
    Crimean bridge and some were already debouching into the Kaluga road.
    But the baggage trains stretched out so that the last of Beauharnais'
    train had not yet got out of Moscow and reached the Kaluga road when the
    vanguard of Ney's army was already emerging from the Great Ordynka
    Street.
    
    When they had crossed the Crimean bridge the prisoners moved a few steps
    forward, halted, and again moved on, and from all sides vehicles and men
    crowded closer and closer together. They advanced the few hundred paces
    that separated the bridge from the Kaluga road, taking more than an hour
    to do so, and came out upon the square where the streets of the
    Transmoskva ward and the Kaluga road converge, and the prisoners jammed
    close together had to stand for some hours at that crossway. From all
    sides, like the roar of the sea, were heard the rattle of wheels, the
    tramp of feet, and incessant shouts of anger and abuse. Pierre stood
    pressed against the wall of a charred house, listening to that noise
    which mingled in his imagination with the roll of the drums.
    
    To get a better view, several officer prisoners climbed onto the wall of
    the half-burned house against which Pierre was leaning.
    
    "What crowds! Just look at the crowds!... They've loaded goods even on
    the cannon! Look there, those are furs!" they exclaimed. "Just see what
    the blackguards have looted.... There! See what that one has behind in
    the cart.... Why, those are settings taken from some icons, by
    heaven!... Oh, the rascals!... See how that fellow has loaded himself
    up, he can hardly walk! Good lord, they've even grabbed those
    chaises!... See that fellow there sitting on the trunks.... Heavens!
    They're fighting."
    
    "That's right, hit him on the snout--on his snout! Like this, we shan't
    get away before evening. Look, look there.... Why, that must be
    Napoleon's own. See what horses! And the monograms with a crown! It's
    like a portable house.... That fellow's dropped his sack and doesn't see
    it. Fighting again... A woman with a baby, and not bad-looking either!
    Yes, I dare say, that's the way they'll let you pass... Just look,
    there's no end to it. Russian wenches, by heaven, so they are! In
    carriages--see how comfortably they've settled themselves!"
    
    Again, as at the church in Khamovniki, a wave of general curiosity bore
    all the prisoners forward onto the road, and Pierre, thanks to his
    stature, saw over the heads of the others what so attracted their
    curiosity. In three carriages involved among the munition carts, closely
    squeezed together, sat women with rouged faces, dressed in glaring
    colors, who were shouting something in shrill voices.
    
    From the moment Pierre had recognized the appearance of the mysterious
    force nothing had seemed to him strange or dreadful: neither the corpse
    smeared with soot for fun nor these women hurrying away nor the burned
    ruins of Moscow. All that he now witnessed scarcely made an impression
    on him--as if his soul, making ready for a hard struggle, refused to
    receive impressions that might weaken it.
    
    The women's vehicles drove by. Behind them came more carts, soldiers,
    wagons, soldiers, gun carriages, carriages, soldiers, ammunition carts,
    more soldiers, and now and then women.
    
    Pierre did not see the people as individuals but saw their movement.
    
    All these people and horses seemed driven forward by some invisible
    power. During the hour Pierre watched them they all came flowing from
    the different streets with one and the same desire to get on quickly;
    they all jostled one another, began to grow angry and to fight, white
    teeth gleamed, brows frowned, ever the same words of abuse flew from
    side to side, and all the faces bore the same swaggeringly resolute and
    coldly cruel expression that had struck Pierre that morning on the
    corporal's face when the drums were beating.
    
    It was not till nearly evening that the officer commanding the escort
    collected his men and with shouts and quarrels forced his way in among
    the baggage trains, and the prisoners, hemmed in on all sides, emerged
    onto the Kaluga road.
    
    They marched very quickly, without resting, and halted only when the sun
    began to set. The baggage carts drew up close together and the men began
    to prepare for their night's rest. They all appeared angry and
    dissatisfied. For a long time, oaths, angry shouts, and fighting could
    be heard from all sides. A carriage that followed the escort ran into
    one of the carts and knocked a hole in it with its pole. Several
    soldiers ran toward the cart from different sides: some beat the
    carriage horses on their heads, turning them aside, others fought among
    themselves, and Pierre saw that one German was badly wounded on the head
    by a sword.
    
    It seemed that all these men, now that they had stopped amid fields in
    the chill dusk of the autumn evening, experienced one and the same
    feeling of unpleasant awakening from the hurry and eagerness to push on
    that had seized them at the start. Once at a standstill they all seemed
    to understand that they did not yet know where they were going, and that
    much that was painful and difficult awaited them on this journey.
    
    During this halt the escort treated the prisoners even worse than they
    had done at the start. It was here that the prisoners for the first time
    received horseflesh for their meat ration.
    
    From the officer down to the lowest soldier they showed what seemed like
    personal spite against each of the prisoners, in unexpected contrast to
    their former friendly relations.
    
    This spite increased still more when, on calling over the roll of
    prisoners, it was found that in the bustle of leaving Moscow one Russian
    soldier, who had pretended to suffer from colic, had escaped. Pierre saw
    a Frenchman beat a Russian soldier cruelly for straying too far from the
    road, and heard his friend the captain reprimand and threaten to court-
    martial a noncommissioned officer on account of the escape of the
    Russian. To the noncommissioned officer's excuse that the prisoner was
    ill and could not walk, the officer replied that the order was to shoot
    those who lagged behind. Pierre felt that that fatal force which had
    crushed him during the executions, but which he had not felt during his
    imprisonment, now again controlled his existence. It was terrible, but
    he felt that in proportion to the efforts of that fatal force to crush
    him, there grew and strengthened in his soul a power of life independent
    of it.
    
    He ate his supper of buckwheat soup with horseflesh and chatted with his
    comrades.
    
    Neither Pierre nor any of the others spoke of what they had seen in
    Moscow, or of the roughness of their treatment by the French, or of the
    order to shoot them which had been announced to them. As if in reaction
    against the worsening of their position they were all particularly
    animated and gay. They spoke of personal reminiscences, of amusing
    scenes they had witnessed during the campaign, and avoided all talk of
    their present situation.
    
    The sun had set long since. Bright stars shone out here and there in the
    sky. A red glow as of a conflagration spread above the horizon from the
    rising full moon, and that vast red ball swayed strangely in the gray
    haze. It grew light. The evening was ending, but the night had not yet
    come. Pierre got up and left his new companions, crossing between the
    campfires to the other side of the road where he had been told the
    common soldier prisoners were stationed. He wanted to talk to them. On
    the road he was stopped by a French sentinel who ordered him back.
    
    Pierre turned back, not to his companions by the campfire, but to an
    unharnessed cart where there was nobody. Tucking his legs under him and
    dropping his head he sat down on the cold ground by the wheel of the
    cart and remained motionless a long while sunk in thought. Suddenly he
    burst out into a fit of his broad, good-natured laughter, so loud that
    men from various sides turned with surprise to see what this strange and
    evidently solitary laughter could mean.
    
    "Ha-ha-ha!" laughed Pierre. And he said aloud to himself: "The soldier
    did not let me pass. They took me and shut me up. They hold me captive.
    What, me? Me? My immortal soul? Ha-ha-ha! Ha-ha-ha!..." and he laughed
    till tears started to his eyes.
    
    A man got up and came to see what this queer big fellow was laughing at
    all by himself. Pierre stopped laughing, got up, went farther away from
    the inquisitive man, and looked around him.
    
    The huge, endless bivouac that had previously resounded with the
    crackling of campfires and the voices of many men had grown quiet, the
    red campfires were growing paler and dying down. High up in the light
    sky hung the full moon. Forests and fields beyond the camp, unseen
    before, were now visible in the distance. And farther still, beyond
    those forests and fields, the bright, oscillating, limitless distance
    lured one to itself. Pierre glanced up at the sky and the twinkling
    stars in its faraway depths. "And all that is me, all that is within me,
    and it is all I!" thought Pierre. "And they caught all that and put it
    into a shed boarded up with planks!" He smiled, and went and lay down to
    sleep beside his companions.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    In the early days of October another envoy came to Kutuzov with a letter
    from Napoleon proposing peace and falsely dated from Moscow, though
    Napoleon was already not far from Kutuzov on the old Kaluga road.
    Kutuzov replied to this letter as he had done to the one formerly
    brought by Lauriston, saying that there could be no question of peace.
    
    Soon after that a report was received from Dorokhov's guerrilla
    detachment operating to the left of Tarutino that troops of Broussier's
    division had been seen at Forminsk and that being separated from the
    rest of the French army they might easily be destroyed. The soldiers and
    officers again demanded action. Generals on the staff, excited by the
    memory of the easy victory at Tarutino, urged Kutuzov to carry out
    Dorokhov's suggestion. Kutuzov did not consider any offensive necessary.
    The result was a compromise which was inevitable: a small detachment was
    sent to Forminsk to attack Broussier.
    
    By a strange coincidence, this task, which turned out to be a most
    difficult and important one, was entrusted to Dokhturov--that same
    modest little Dokhturov whom no one had described to us as drawing up
    plans of battles, dashing about in front of regiments, showering crosses
    on batteries, and so on, and who was thought to be and was spoken of as
    undecided and undiscerning--but whom we find commanding wherever the
    position was most difficult all through the Russo-French wars from
    Austerlitz to the year 1813. At Austerlitz he remained last at the
    Augezd dam, rallying the regiments, saving what was possible when all
    were flying and perishing and not a single general was left in the rear
    guard. Ill with fever he went to Smolensk with twenty thousand men to
    defend the town against Napoleon's whole army. In Smolensk, at the
    Malakhov Gate, he had hardly dozed off in a paroxysm of fever before he
    was awakened by the bombardment of the town--and Smolensk held out all
    day long. At the battle of Borodino, when Bagration was killed and nine
    tenths of the men of our left flank had fallen and the full force of the
    French artillery fire was directed against it, the man sent there was
    this same irresolute and undiscerning Dokhturov--Kutuzov hastening to
    rectify a mistake he had made by sending someone else there first. And
    the quiet little Dokhturov rode thither, and Borodino became the
    greatest glory of the Russian army. Many heroes have been described to
    us in verse and prose, but of Dokhturov scarcely a word has been said.
    
    It was Dokhturov again whom they sent to Forminsk and from there to
    Malo-Yaroslavets, the place where the last battle with the French was
    fought and where the obvious disintegration of the French army began;
    and we are told of many geniuses and heroes of that period of the
    campaign, but of Dokhturov nothing or very little is said and that
    dubiously. And this silence about Dokhturov is the clearest testimony to
    his merit.
    
    It is natural for a man who does not understand the workings of a
    machine to imagine that a shaving that has fallen into it by chance and
    is interfering with its action and tossing about in it is its most
    important part. The man who does not understand the construction of the
    machine cannot conceive that the small connecting cogwheel which
    revolves quietly is one of the most essential parts of the machine, and
    not the shaving which merely harms and hinders the working.
    
    On the tenth of October when Dokhturov had gone halfway to Forminsk and
    stopped at the village of Aristovo, preparing faithfully to execute the
    orders he had received, the whole French army having, in its convulsive
    movement, reached Murat's position apparently in order to give battle--
    suddenly without any reason turned off to the left onto the new Kaluga
    road and began to enter Forminsk, where only Broussier had been till
    then. At that time Dokhturov had under his command, besides Dorokhov's
    detachment, the two small guerrilla detachments of Figner and Seslavin.
    
    On the evening of October 11 Seslavin came to the Aristovo headquarters
    with a French guardsman he had captured. The prisoner said that the
    troops that had entered Forminsk that day were the vanguard of the whole
    army, that Napoleon was there and the whole army had left Moscow four
    days previously. That same evening a house serf who had come from
    Borovsk said he had seen an immense army entering the town. Some
    Cossacks of Dokhturov's detachment reported having sighted the French
    Guards marching along the road to Borovsk. From all these reports it was
    evident that where they had expected to meet a single division there was
    now the whole French army marching from Moscow in an unexpected
    direction--along the Kaluga road. Dokhturov was unwilling to undertake
    any action, as it was not clear to him now what he ought to do. He had
    been ordered to attack Forminsk. But only Broussier had been there at
    that time and now the whole French army was there. Ermolov wished to act
    on his own judgment, but Dokhturov insisted that he must have Kutuzov's
    instructions. So it was decided to send a dispatch to the staff.
    
    For this purpose a capable officer, Bolkhovitinov, was chosen, who was
    to explain the whole affair by word of mouth, besides delivering a
    written report. Toward midnight Bolkhovitinov, having received the
    dispatch and verbal instructions, galloped off to the General Staff
    accompanied by a Cossack with spare horses.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    It was a warm, dark, autumn night. It had been raining for four days.
    Having changed horses twice and galloped twenty miles in an hour and a
    half over a sticky, muddy road, Bolkhovitinov reached Litashevka after
    one o'clock at night. Dismounting at a cottage on whose wattle fence
    hung a signboard, GENERAL STAFF, and throwing down his reins, he entered
    a dark passage.
    
    "The general on duty, quick! It's very important!" said he to someone
    who had risen and was sniffing in the dark passage.
    
    "He has been very unwell since the evening and this is the third night
    he has not slept," said the orderly pleadingly in a whisper. "You should
    wake the captain first."
    
    "But this is very important, from General Dokhturov," said
    Bolkhovitinov, entering the open door which he had found by feeling in
    the dark.
    
    The orderly had gone in before him and began waking somebody.
    
    "Your honor, your honor! A courier."
    
    "What? What's that? From whom?" came a sleepy voice.
    
    "From Dokhturov and from Alexey Petrovich. Napoleon is at Forminsk,"
    said Bolkhovitinov, unable to see in the dark who was speaking but
    guessing by the voice that it was not Konovnitsyn.
    
    The man who had wakened yawned and stretched himself.
    
    "I don't like waking him," he said, fumbling for something. "He is very
    ill. Perhaps this is only a rumor."
    
    "Here is the dispatch," said Bolkhovitinov. "My orders are to give it at
    once to the general on duty."
    
    "Wait a moment, I'll light a candle. You damned rascal, where do you
    always hide it?" said the voice of the man who was stretching himself,
    to the orderly. (This was Shcherbinin, Konovnitsyn's adjutant.) "I've
    found it, I've found it!" he added.
    
    The orderly was striking a light and Shcherbinin was fumbling for
    something on the candlestick.
    
    "Oh, the nasty beasts!" said he with disgust.
    
    By the light of the sparks Bolkhovitinov saw Shcherbinin's youthful face
    as he held the candle, and the face of another man who was still asleep.
    This was Konovnitsyn.
    
    When the flame of the sulphur splinters kindled by the tinder burned up,
    first blue and then red, Shcherbinin lit the tallow candle, from the
    candlestick of which the cockroaches that had been gnawing it were
    running away, and looked at the messenger. Bolkhovitinov was bespattered
    all over with mud and had smeared his face by wiping it with his sleeve.
    
    "Who gave the report?" inquired Shcherbinin, taking the envelope.
    
    "The news is reliable," said Bolkhovitinov. "Prisoners, Cossacks, and
    the scouts all say the same thing."
    
    "There's nothing to be done, we'll have to wake him," said Shcherbinin,
    rising and going up to the man in the nightcap who lay covered by a
    greatcoat. "Peter Petrovich!" said he. (Konovnitsyn did not stir.) "To
    the General Staff!" he said with a smile, knowing that those words would
    be sure to arouse him.
    
    And in fact the head in the nightcap was lifted at once. On
    Konovnitsyn's handsome, resolute face with cheeks flushed by fever,
    there still remained for an instant a faraway dreamy expression remote
    from present affairs, but then he suddenly started and his face assumed
    its habitual calm and firm appearance.
    
    "Well, what is it? From whom?" he asked immediately but without hurry,
    blinking at the light.
    
    While listening to the officer's report Konovnitsyn broke the seal and
    read the dispatch. Hardly had he done so before he lowered his legs in
    their woolen stockings to the earthen floor and began putting on his
    boots. Then he took off his nightcap, combed his hair over his temples,
    and donned his cap.
    
    "Did you get here quickly? Let us go to his Highness."
    
    Konovnitsyn had understood at once that the news brought was of great
    importance and that no time must be lost. He did not consider or ask
    himself whether the news was good or bad. That did not interest him. He
    regarded the whole business of the war not with his intelligence or his
    reason but by something else. There was within him a deep unexpressed
    conviction that all would be well, but that one must not trust to this
    and still less speak about it, but must only attend to one's own work.
    And he did his work, giving his whole strength to the task.
    
    Peter Petrovich Konovnitsyn, like Dokhturov, seems to have been included
    merely for propriety's sake in the list of the so-called heroes of 1812-
    -the Barclays, Raevskis, Ermolovs, Platovs, and Miloradoviches. Like
    Dokhturov he had the reputation of being a man of very limited capacity
    and information, and like Dokhturov he never made plans of battle but
    was always found where the situation was most difficult. Since his
    appointment as general on duty he had always slept with his door open,
    giving orders that every messenger should be allowed to wake him up. In
    battle he was always under fire, so that Kutuzov reproved him for it and
    feared to send him to the front, and like Dokhturov he was one of those
    unnoticed cogwheels that, without clatter or noise, constitute the most
    essential part of the machine.
    
    Coming out of the hut into the damp, dark night Konovnitsyn frowned--
    partly from an increased pain in his head and partly at the unpleasant
    thought that occurred to him, of how all that nest of influential men on
    the staff would be stirred up by this news, especially Bennigsen, who
    ever since Tarutino had been at daggers drawn with Kutuzov; and how they
    would make suggestions, quarrel, issue orders, and rescind them. And
    this premonition was disagreeable to him though he knew it could not be
    helped.
    
    And in fact Toll, to whom he went to communicate the news, immediately
    began to expound his plans to a general sharing his quarters, until
    Konovnitsyn, who listened in weary silence, reminded him that they must
    go to see his Highness.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    Kutuzov like all old people did not sleep much at night. He often fell
    asleep unexpectedly in the daytime, but at night, lying on his bed
    without undressing, he generally remained awake thinking.
    
    So he lay now on his bed, supporting his large, heavy, scarred head on
    his plump hand, with his one eye open, meditating and peering into the
    darkness.
    
    Since Bennigsen, who corresponded with the Emperor and had more
    influence than anyone else on the staff, had begun to avoid him, Kutuzov
    was more at ease as to the possibility of himself and his troops being
    obliged to take part in useless aggressive movements. The lesson of the
    Tarutino battle and of the day before it, which Kutuzov remembered with
    pain, must, he thought, have some effect on others too.
    
    "They must understand that we can only lose by taking the offensive.
    Patience and time are my warriors, my champions," thought Kutuzov. He
    knew that an apple should not be plucked while it is green. It will fall
    of itself when ripe, but if picked unripe the apple is spoiled, the tree
    is harmed, and your teeth are set on edge. Like an experienced sportsman
    he knew that the beast was wounded, and wounded as only the whole
    strength of Russia could have wounded it, but whether it was mortally
    wounded or not was still an undecided question. Now by the fact of
    Lauriston and Barthelemi having been sent, and by the reports of the
    guerrillas, Kutuzov was almost sure that the wound was mortal. But he
    needed further proofs and it was necessary to wait.
    
    "They want to run to see how they have wounded it. Wait and we shall
    see! Continual maneuvers, continual advances!" thought he. "What for?
    Only to distinguish themselves! As if fighting were fun. They are like
    children from whom one can't get any sensible account of what has
    happened because they all want to show how well they can fight. But
    that's not what is needed now.
    
    "And what ingenious maneuvers they all propose to me! It seems to them
    that when they have thought of two or three contingencies" (he
    remembered the general plan sent him from Petersburg) "they have
    foreseen everything. But the contingencies are endless."
    
    The undecided question as to whether the wound inflicted at Borodino was
    mortal or not had hung over Kutuzov's head for a whole month. On the one
    hand the French had occupied Moscow. On the other Kutuzov felt assured
    with all his being that the terrible blow into which he and all the
    Russians had put their whole strength must have been mortal. But in any
    case proofs were needed; he had waited a whole month for them and grew
    more impatient the longer he waited. Lying on his bed during those
    sleepless nights he did just what he reproached those younger generals
    for doing. He imagined all sorts of possible contingencies, just like
    the younger men, but with this difference, that he saw thousands of
    contingencies instead of two or three and based nothing on them. The
    longer he thought the more contingencies presented themselves. He
    imagined all sorts of movements of the Napoleonic army as a whole or in
    sections--against Petersburg, or against him, or to outflank him. He
    thought too of the possibility (which he feared most of all) that
    Napoleon might fight him with his own weapon and remain in Moscow
    awaiting him. Kutuzov even imagined that Napoleon's army might turn back
    through Medyn and Yukhnov, but the one thing he could not foresee was
    what happened--the insane, convulsive stampede of Napoleon's army during
    its first eleven days after leaving Moscow: a stampede which made
    possible what Kutuzov had not yet even dared to think of--the complete
    extermination of the French. Dorokhov's report about Broussier's
    division, the guerrillas' reports of distress in Napoleon's army, rumors
    of preparations for leaving Moscow, all confirmed the supposition that
    the French army was beaten and preparing for flight. But these were only
    suppositions, which seemed important to the younger men but not to
    Kutuzov. With his sixty years' experience he knew what value to attach
    to rumors, knew how apt people who desire anything are to group all news
    so that it appears to confirm what they desire, and he knew how readily
    in such cases they omit all that makes for the contrary. And the more he
    desired it the less he allowed himself to believe it. This question
    absorbed all his mental powers. All else was to him only life's
    customary routine. To such customary routine belonged his conversations
    with the staff, the letters he wrote from Tarutino to Madame de Stael,
    the reading of novels, the distribution of awards, his correspondence
    with Petersburg, and so on. But the destruction of the French, which he
    alone foresaw, was his heart's one desire.
    
    On the night of the eleventh of October he lay leaning on his arm and
    thinking of that.
    
    There was a stir in the next room and he heard the steps of Toll,
    Konovnitsyn, and Bolkhovitinov.
    
    "Eh, who's there? Come in, come in! What news?" the field marshal called
    out to them.
    
    While a footman was lighting a candle, Toll communicated the substance
    of the news.
    
    "Who brought it?" asked Kutuzov with a look which, when the candle was
    lit, struck Toll by its cold severity.
    
    "There can be no doubt about it, your Highness."
    
    "Call him in, call him here."
    
    Kutuzov sat up with one leg hanging down from the bed and his big paunch
    resting against the other which was doubled under him. He screwed up his
    seeing eye to scrutinize the messenger more carefully, as if wishing to
    read in his face what preoccupied his own mind.
    
    "Tell me, tell me, friend," said he to Bolkhovitinov in his low, aged
    voice, as he pulled together the shirt which gaped open on his chest,
    "come nearer--nearer. What news have you brought me? Eh? That Napoleon
    has left Moscow? Are you sure? Eh?"
    
    Bolkhovitinov gave a detailed account from the beginning of all he had
    been told to report.
    
    "Speak quicker, quicker! Don't torture me!" Kutuzov interrupted him.
    
    Bolkhovitinov told him everything and was then silent, awaiting
    instructions. Toll was beginning to say something but Kutuzov checked
    him. He tried to say something, but his face suddenly puckered and
    wrinkled; he waved his arm at Toll and turned to the opposite side of
    the room, to the corner darkened by the icons that hung there.
    
    "O Lord, my Creator, Thou has heard our prayer..." said he in a
    tremulous voice with folded hands. "Russia is saved. I thank Thee, O
    Lord!" and he wept.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    From the time he received this news to the end of the campaign all
    Kutuzov's activity was directed toward restraining his troops, by
    authority, by guile, and by entreaty, from useless attacks, maneuvers,
    or encounters with the perishing enemy. Dokhturov went to Malo-
    Yaroslavets, but Kutuzov lingered with the main army and gave orders for
    the evacuation of Kaluga--a retreat beyond which town seemed to him
    quite possible.
    
    Everywhere Kutuzov retreated, but the enemy without waiting for his
    retreat fled in the opposite direction.
    
    Napoleon's historians describe to us his skilled maneuvers at Tarutino
    and Malo-Yaroslavets, and make conjectures as to what would have
    happened had Napoleon been in time to penetrate into the rich southern
    provinces.
    
    But not to speak of the fact that nothing prevented him from advancing
    into those southern provinces (for the Russian army did not bar his
    way), the historians forget that nothing could have saved his army, for
    then already it bore within itself the germs of inevitable ruin. How
    could that army--which had found abundant supplies in Moscow and had
    trampled them underfoot instead of keeping them, and on arriving at
    Smolensk had looted provisions instead of storing them--how could that
    army recuperate in Kaluga province, which was inhabited by Russians such
    as those who lived in Moscow, and where fire had the same property of
    consuming what was set ablaze?
    
    That army could not recover anywhere. Since the battle of Borodino and
    the pillage of Moscow it had borne within itself, as it were, the
    chemical elements of dissolution.
    
    The members of what had once been an army--Napoleon himself and all his
    soldiers fled--without knowing whither, each concerned only to make his
    escape as quickly as possible from this position, of the hopelessness of
    which they were all more or less vaguely conscious.
    
    So it came about that at the council at Malo-Yaroslavets, when the
    generals pretending to confer together expressed various opinions, all
    mouths were closed by the opinion uttered by the simple-minded soldier
    Mouton who, speaking last, said what they all felt: that the one thing
    needful was to get away as quickly as possible; and no one, not even
    Napoleon, could say anything against that truth which they all
    recognized.
    
    But though they all realized that it was necessary to get away, there
    still remained a feeling of shame at admitting that they must flee. An
    external shock was needed to overcome that shame, and this shock came in
    due time. It was what the French called "le hourra de l'Empereur."
    
    The day after the council at Malo-Yaroslavets Napoleon rode out early in
    the morning amid the lines of his army with his suite of marshals and an
    escort, on the pretext of inspecting the army and the scene of the
    previous and of the impending battle. Some Cossacks on the prowl for
    booty fell in with the Emperor and very nearly captured him. If the
    Cossacks did not capture Napoleon then, what saved him was the very
    thing that was destroying the French army, the booty on which the
    Cossacks fell. Here as at Tarutino they went after plunder, leaving the
    men. Disregarding Napoleon they rushed after the plunder and Napoleon
    managed to escape.
    
    When les enfants du Don might so easily have taken the Emperor himself
    in the midst of his army, it was clear that there was nothing for it but
    to fly as fast as possible along the nearest, familiar road. Napoleon
    with his forty-year-old stomach understood that hint, not feeling his
    former agility and boldness, and under the influence of the fright the
    Cossacks had given him he at once agreed with Mouton and issued orders--
    as the historians tell us--to retreat by the Smolensk road.
    
    That Napoleon agreed with Mouton, and that the army retreated, does not
    prove that Napoleon caused it to retreat, but that the forces which
    influenced the whole army and directed it along the Mozhaysk (that is,
    the Smolensk) road acted simultaneously on him also.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    A man in motion always devises an aim for that motion. To be able to go
    a thousand miles he must imagine that something good awaits him at the
    end of those thousand miles. One must have the prospect of a promised
    land to have the strength to move.
    
    The promised land for the French during their advance had been Moscow,
    during their retreat it was their native land. But that native land was
    too far off, and for a man going a thousand miles it is absolutely
    necessary to set aside his final goal and to say to himself: "Today I
    shall get to a place twenty-five miles off where I shall rest and spend
    the night," and during the first day's journey that resting place
    eclipses his ultimate goal and attracts all his hopes and desires. And
    the impulses felt by a single person are always magnified in a crowd.
    
    For the French retreating along the old Smolensk road, the final goal--
    their native land--was too remote, and their immediate goal was
    Smolensk, toward which all their desires and hopes, enormously
    intensified in the mass, urged them on. It was not that they knew that
    much food and fresh troops awaited them in Smolensk, nor that they were
    told so (on the contrary their superior officers, and Napoleon himself,
    knew that provisions were scarce there), but because this alone could
    give them strength to move on and endure their present privations. So
    both those who knew and those who did not know deceived themselves, and
    pushed on to Smolensk as to a promised land.
    
    Coming out onto the highroad the French fled with surprising energy and
    unheard-of rapidity toward the goal they had fixed on. Besides the
    common impulse which bound the whole crowd of French into one mass and
    supplied them with a certain energy, there was another cause binding
    them together--their great numbers. As with the physical law of gravity,
    their enormous mass drew the individual human atoms to itself. In their
    hundreds of thousands they moved like a whole nation.
    
    Each of them desired nothing more than to give himself up as a prisoner
    to escape from all this horror and misery; but on the one hand the force
    of this common attraction to Smolensk, their goal, drew each of them in
    the same direction; on the other hand an army corps could not surrender
    to a company, and though the French availed themselves of every
    convenient opportunity to detach themselves and to surrender on the
    slightest decent pretext, such pretexts did not always occur. Their very
    numbers and their crowded and swift movement deprived them of that
    possibility and rendered it not only difficult but impossible for the
    Russians to stop this movement, to which the French were directing all
    their energies. Beyond a certain limit no mechanical disruption of the
    body could hasten the process of decomposition.
    
    A lump of snow cannot be melted instantaneously. There is a certain
    limit of time in less than which no amount of heat can melt the snow. On
    the contrary the greater the heat the more solidified the remaining snow
    becomes.
    
    Of the Russian commanders Kutuzov alone understood this. When the flight
    of the French army along the Smolensk road became well defined, what
    Konovnitsyn had foreseen on the night of the eleventh of October began
    to occur. The superior officers all wanted to distinguish themselves, to
    cut off, to seize, to capture, and to overthrow the French, and all
    clamored for action.
    
    Kutuzov alone used all his power (and such power is very limited in the
    case of any commander-in-chief) to prevent an attack.
    
    He could not tell them what we say now: "Why fight, why block the road,
    losing our own men and inhumanly slaughtering unfortunate wretches? What
    is the use of that, when a third of their army has melted away on the
    road from Moscow to Vyazma without any battle?" But drawing from his
    aged wisdom what they could understand, he told them of the golden
    bridge, and they laughed at and slandered him, flinging themselves on,
    rending and exulting over the dying beast.
    
    Ermolov, Miloradovich, Platov, and others in proximity to the French
    near Vyazma could not resist their desire to cut off and break up two
    French corps, and by way of reporting their intention to Kutuzov they
    sent him a blank sheet of paper in an envelope.
    
    And try as Kutuzov might to restrain the troops, our men attacked,
    trying to bar the road. Infantry regiments, we are told, advanced to the
    attack with music and with drums beating, and killed and lost thousands
    of men.
    
    But they did not cut off or overthrow anybody and the French army,
    closing up more firmly at the danger, continued, while steadily melting
    away, to pursue its fatal path to Smolensk.
    
    BOOK FOURTEEN: 1812
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    The Battle of Borodino, with the occupation of Moscow that followed it
    and the flight of the French without further conflicts, is one of the
    most instructive phenomena in history.
    
    All historians agree that the external activity of states and nations in
    their conflicts with one another is expressed in wars, and that as a
    direct result of greater or less success in war the political strength
    of states and nations increases or decreases.
    
    Strange as may be the historical account of how some king or emperor,
    having quarreled with another, collects an army, fights his enemy's
    army, gains a victory by killing three, five, or ten thousand men, and
    subjugates a kingdom and an entire nation of several millions, all the
    facts of history (as far as we know it) confirm the truth of the
    statement that the greater or lesser success of one army against another
    is the cause, or at least an essential indication, of an increase or
    decrease in the strength of the nation--even though it is unintelligible
    why the defeat of an army--a hundredth part of a nation--should oblige
    that whole nation to submit. An army gains a victory, and at once the
    rights of the conquering nation have increased to the detriment of the
    defeated. An army has suffered defeat, and at once a people loses its
    rights in proportion to the severity of the reverse, and if its army
    suffers a complete defeat the nation is quite subjugated.
    
    So according to history it has been found from the most ancient times,
    and so it is to our own day. All Napoleon's wars serve to confirm this
    rule. In proportion to the defeat of the Austrian army Austria loses its
    rights, and the rights and the strength of France increase. The
    victories of the French at Jena and Auerstadt destroy the independent
    existence of Prussia.
    
    But then, in 1812, the French gain a victory near Moscow. Moscow is
    taken and after that, with no further battles, it is not Russia that
    ceases to exist, but the French army of six hundred thousand, and then
    Napoleonic France itself. To strain the facts to fit the rules of
    history: to say that the field of battle at Borodino remained in the
    hands of the Russians, or that after Moscow there were other battles
    that destroyed Napoleon's army, is impossible.
    
    After the French victory at Borodino there was no general engagement nor
    any that were at all serious, yet the French army ceased to exist. What
    does this mean? If it were an example taken from the history of China,
    we might say that it was not an historic phenomenon (which is the
    historians' usual expedient when anything does not fit their standards);
    if the matter concerned some brief conflict in which only a small number
    of troops took part, we might treat it as an exception; but this event
    occurred before our fathers' eyes, and for them it was a question of the
    life or death of their fatherland, and it happened in the greatest of
    all known wars.
    
    The period of the campaign of 1812 from the battle of Borodino to the
    expulsion of the French proved that the winning of a battle does not
    produce a conquest and is not even an invariable indication of conquest;
    it proved that the force which decides the fate of peoples lies not in
    the conquerors, nor even in armies and battles, but in something else.
    
    The French historians, describing the condition of the French army
    before it left Moscow, affirm that all was in order in the Grand Army,
    except the cavalry, the artillery, and the transport--there was no
    forage for the horses or the cattle. That was a misfortune no one could
    remedy, for the peasants of the district burned their hay rather than
    let the French have it.
    
    The victory gained did not bring the usual results because the peasants
    Karp and Vlas (who after the French had evacuated Moscow drove in their
    carts to pillage the town, and in general personally failed to manifest
    any heroic feelings), and the whole innumerable multitude of such
    peasants, did not bring their hay to Moscow for the high price offered
    them, but burned it instead.
    
    Let us imagine two men who have come out to fight a duel with rapiers
    according to all the rules of the art of fencing. The fencing has gone
    on for some time; suddenly one of the combatants, feeling himself
    wounded and understanding that the matter is no joke but concerns his
    life, throws down his rapier, and seizing the first cudgel that comes to
    hand begins to brandish it. Then let us imagine that the combatant who
    so sensibly employed the best and simplest means to attain his end was
    at the same time influenced by traditions of chivalry and, desiring to
    conceal the facts of the case, insisted that he had gained his victory
    with the rapier according to all the rules of art. One can imagine what
    confusion and obscurity would result from such an account of the duel.
    
    The fencer who demanded a contest according to the rules of fencing was
    the French army; his opponent who threw away the rapier and snatched up
    the cudgel was the Russian people; those who try to explain the matter
    according to the rules of fencing are the historians who have described
    the event.
    
    After the burning of Smolensk a war began which did not follow any
    previous traditions of war. The burning of towns and villages, the
    retreats after battles, the blow dealt at Borodino and the renewed
    retreat, the burning of Moscow, the capture of marauders, the seizure of
    transports, and the guerrilla war were all departures from the rules.
    
    Napoleon felt this, and from the time he took up the correct fencing
    attitude in Moscow and instead of his opponent's rapier saw a cudgel
    raised above his head, he did not cease to complain to Kutuzov and to
    the Emperor Alexander that the war was being carried on contrary to all
    the rules--as if there were any rules for killing people. In spite of
    the complaints of the French as to the nonobservance of the rules, in
    spite of the fact that to some highly placed Russians it seemed rather
    disgraceful to fight with a cudgel and they wanted to assume a pose en
    quarte or en tierce according to all the rules, and to make an adroit
    thrust en prime, and so on--the cudgel of the people's war was lifted
    with all its menacing and majestic strength, and without consulting
    anyone's tastes or rules and regardless of anything else, it rose and
    fell with stupid simplicity, but consistently, and belabored the French
    till the whole invasion had perished.
    
    And it is well for a people who do not--as the French did in 1813--
    salute according to all the rules of art, and, presenting the hilt of
    their rapier gracefully and politely, hand it to their magnanimous
    conqueror, but at the moment of trial, without asking what rules others
    have adopted in similar cases, simply and easily pick up the first
    cudgel that comes to hand and strike with it till the feeling of
    resentment and revenge in their soul yields to a feeling of contempt and
    compassion.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    One of the most obvious and advantageous departures from the so-called
    laws of war is the action of scattered groups against men pressed
    together in a mass. Such action always occurs in wars that take on a
    national character. In such actions, instead of two crowds opposing each
    other, the men disperse, attack singly, run away when attacked by
    stronger forces, but again attack when opportunity offers. This was done
    by the guerrillas in Spain, by the mountain tribes in the Caucasus, and
    by the Russians in 1812.
    
    People have called this kind of war "guerrilla warfare" and assume that
    by so calling it they have explained its meaning. But such a war does
    not fit in under any rule and is directly opposed to a well-known rule
    of tactics which is accepted as infallible. That rule says that an
    attacker should concentrate his forces in order to be stronger than his
    opponent at the moment of conflict.
    
    Guerrilla war (always successful, as history shows) directly infringes
    that rule.
    
    This contradiction arises from the fact that military science assumes
    the strength of an army to be identical with its numbers. Military
    science says that the more troops the greater the strength. Les gros
    bataillons ont toujours raison. *
    
    * Large battalions are always victorious.
    
    For military science to say this is like defining momentum in mechanics
    by reference to the mass only: stating that momenta are equal or unequal
    to each other simply because the masses involved are equal or unequal.
    
    Momentum (quantity of motion) is the product of mass and velocity.
    
    In military affairs the strength of an army is the product of its mass
    and some unknown x.
    
    Military science, seeing in history innumerable instances of the fact
    that the size of any army does not coincide with its strength and that
    small detachments defeat larger ones, obscurely admits the existence of
    this unknown factor and tries to discover it--now in a geometric
    formation, now in the equipment employed, now, and most usually, in the
    genius of the commanders. But the assignment of these various meanings
    to the factor does not yield results which accord with the historic
    facts.
    
    Yet it is only necessary to abandon the false view (adopted to gratify
    the "heroes") of the efficacy of the directions issued in wartime by
    commanders, in order to find this unknown quantity.
    
    That unknown quantity is the spirit of the army, that is to say, the
    greater or lesser readiness to fight and face danger felt by all the men
    composing an army, quite independently of whether they are, or are not,
    fighting under the command of a genius, in two--or three-line formation,
    with cudgels or with rifles that repeat thirty times a minute. Men who
    want to fight will always put themselves in the most advantageous
    conditions for fighting.
    
    The spirit of an army is the factor which multiplied by the mass gives
    the resulting force. To define and express the significance of this
    unknown factor--the spirit of an army--is a problem for science.
    
    This problem is only solvable if we cease arbitrarily to substitute for
    the unknown x itself the conditions under which that force becomes
    apparent--such as the commands of the general, the equipment employed,
    and so on--mistaking these for the real significance of the factor, and
    if we recognize this unknown quantity in its entirety as being the
    greater or lesser desire to fight and to face danger. Only then,
    expressing known historic facts by equations and comparing the relative
    significance of this factor, can we hope to define the unknown.
    
    Ten men, battalions, or divisions, fighting fifteen men, battalions, or
    divisions, conquer--that is, kill or take captive--all the others, while
    themselves losing four, so that on the one side four and on the other
    fifteen were lost. Consequently the four were equal to the fifteen, and
    therefore 4x = 15y. Consequently x/y = 15/4. This equation does not give
    us the value of the unknown factor but gives us a ratio between two
    unknowns. And by bringing variously selected historic units (battles,
    campaigns, periods of war) into such equations, a series of numbers
    could be obtained in which certain laws should exist and might be
    discovered.
    
    The tactical rule that an army should act in masses when attacking, and
    in smaller groups in retreat, unconsciously confirms the truth that the
    strength of an army depends on its spirit. To lead men forward under
    fire more discipline (obtainable only by movement in masses) is needed
    than is needed to resist attacks. But this rule which leaves out of
    account the spirit of the army continually proves incorrect and is in
    particularly striking contrast to the facts when some strong rise or
    fall in the spirit of the troops occurs, as in all national wars.
    
    The French, retreating in 1812--though according to tactics they should
    have separated into detachments to defend themselves--congregated into a
    mass because the spirit of the army had so fallen that only the mass
    held the army together. The Russians, on the contrary, ought according
    to tactics to have attacked in mass, but in fact they split up into
    small units, because their spirit had so risen that separate
    individuals, without orders, dealt blows at the French without needing
    any compulsion to induce them to expose themselves to hardships and
    dangers.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    The so-called partisan war began with the entry of the French into
    Smolensk.
    
    Before partisan warfare had been officially recognized by the
    government, thousands of enemy stragglers, marauders, and foragers had
    been destroyed by the Cossacks and the peasants, who killed them off as
    instinctively as dogs worry a stray mad dog to death. Denis Davydov,
    with his Russian instinct, was the first to recognize the value of this
    terrible cudgel which regardless of the rules of military science
    destroyed the French, and to him belongs the credit for taking the first
    step toward regularizing this method of warfare.
    
    On August 24 Davydov's first partisan detachment was formed and then
    others were recognized. The further the campaign progressed the more
    numerous these detachments became.
    
    The irregulars destroyed the great army piecemeal. They gathered the
    fallen leaves that dropped of themselves from that withered tree--the
    French army--and sometimes shook that tree itself. By October, when the
    French were fleeing toward Smolensk, there were hundreds of such
    companies, of various sizes and characters. There were some that adopted
    all the army methods and had infantry, artillery, staffs, and the
    comforts of life. Others consisted solely of Cossack cavalry. There were
    also small scratch groups of foot and horse, and groups of peasants and
    landowners that remained unknown. A sacristan commanded one party which
    captured several hundred prisoners in the course of a month; and there
    was Vasilisa, the wife of a village elder, who slew hundreds of the
    French.
    
    The partisan warfare flamed up most fiercely in the latter days of
    October. Its first period had passed: when the partisans themselves,
    amazed at their own boldness, feared every minute to be surrounded and
    captured by the French, and hid in the forests without unsaddling,
    hardly daring to dismount and always expecting to be pursued. By the end
    of October this kind of warfare had taken definite shape: it had become
    clear to all what could be ventured against the French and what could
    not. Now only the commanders of detachments with staffs, and moving
    according to rules at a distance from the French, still regarded many
    things as impossible. The small bands that had started their activities
    long before and had already observed the French closely considered
    things possible which the commanders of the big detachments did not dare
    to contemplate. The Cossacks and peasants who crept in among the French
    now considered everything possible.
    
    On October 22, Denisov (who was one of the irregulars) was with his
    group at the height of the guerrilla enthusiasm. Since early morning he
    and his party had been on the move. All day long he had been watching
    from the forest that skirted the highroad a large French convoy of
    cavalry baggage and Russian prisoners separated from the rest of the
    army, which--as was learned from spies and prisoners--was moving under a
    strong escort to Smolensk. Besides Denisov and Dolokhov (who also led a
    small party and moved in Denisov's vicinity), the commanders of some
    large divisions with staffs also knew of this convoy and, as Denisov
    expressed it, were sharpening their teeth for it. Two of the commanders
    of large parties--one a Pole and the other a German--sent invitations to
    Denisov almost simultaneously, requesting him to join up with their
    divisions to attack the convoy.
    
    "No, bwother, I have gwown mustaches myself," said Denisov on reading
    these documents, and he wrote to the German that, despite his heartfelt
    desire to serve under so valiant and renowned a general, he had to forgo
    that pleasure because he was already under the command of the Polish
    general. To the Polish general he replied to the same effect, informing
    him that he was already under the command of the German.
    
    Having arranged matters thus, Denisov and Dolokhov intended, without
    reporting matters to the higher command, to attack and seize that convoy
    with their own small forces. On October 22 it was moving from the
    village of Mikulino to that of Shamshevo. To the left of the road
    between Mikulino and Shamshevo there were large forests, extending in
    some places up to the road itself though in others a mile or more back
    from it. Through these forests Denisov and his party rode all day,
    sometimes keeping well back in them and sometimes coming to the very
    edge, but never losing sight of the moving French. That morning,
    Cossacks of Denisov's party had seized and carried off into the forest
    two wagons loaded with cavalry saddles, which had stuck in the mud not
    far from Mikulino where the forest ran close to the road. Since then,
    and until evening, the party had watched the movements of the French
    without attacking. It was necessary to let the French reach Shamshevo
    quietly without alarming them and then, after joining Dolokhov who was
    to come that evening to a consultation at a watchman's hut in the forest
    less than a mile from Shamshevo, to surprise the French at dawn, falling
    like an avalanche on their heads from two sides, and rout and capture
    them all at one blow.
    
    In their rear, more than a mile from Mikulino where the forest came
    right up to the road, six Cossacks were posted to report if any fresh
    columns of French should show themselves.
    
    Beyond Shamshevo, Dolokhov was to observe the road in the same way, to
    find out at what distance there were other French troops. They reckoned
    that the convoy had fifteen hundred men. Denisov had two hundred, and
    Dolokhov might have as many more, but the disparity of numbers did not
    deter Denisov. All that he now wanted to know was what troops these were
    and to learn that he had to capture a "tongue"--that is, a man from the
    enemy column. That morning's attack on the wagons had been made so
    hastily that the Frenchmen with the wagons had all been killed; only a
    little drummer boy had been taken alive, and as he was a straggler he
    could tell them nothing definite about the troops in that column.
    
    Denisov considered it dangerous to make a second attack for fear of
    putting the whole column on the alert, so he sent Tikhon Shcherbaty, a
    peasant of his party, to Shamshevo to try and seize at least one of the
    French quartermasters who had been sent on in advance.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    It was a warm rainy autumn day. The sky and the horizon were both the
    color of muddy water. At times a sort of mist descended, and then
    suddenly heavy slanting rain came down.
    
    Denisov in a felt cloak and a sheepskin cap from which the rain ran down
    was riding a thin thoroughbred horse with sunken sides. Like his horse,
    which turned its head and laid its ears back, he shrank from the driving
    rain and gazed anxiously before him. His thin face with its short, thick
    black beard looked angry.
    
    Beside Denisov rode an esaul, * Denisov's fellow worker, also in felt
    cloak and sheepskin cap, and riding a large sleek Don horse.
    
    * A captain of Cossacks.
    
    Esaul Lovayski the Third was a tall man as straight as an arrow, pale-
    faced, fair-haired, with narrow light eyes and with calm self-
    satisfaction in his face and bearing. Though it was impossible to say in
    what the peculiarity of the horse and rider lay, yet at first glance at
    the esaul and Denisov one saw that the latter was wet and uncomfortable
    and was a man mounted on a horse, while looking at the esaul one saw
    that he was as comfortable and as much at ease as always and that he was
    not a man who had mounted a horse, but a man who was one with his horse,
    a being consequently possessed of twofold strength.
    
    A little ahead of them walked a peasant guide, wet to the skin and
    wearing a gray peasant coat and a white knitted cap.
    
    A little behind, on a poor, small, lean Kirghiz mount with an enormous
    tail and mane and a bleeding mouth, rode a young officer in a blue
    French overcoat.
    
    Beside him rode an hussar, with a boy in a tattered French uniform and
    blue cap behind him on the crupper of his horse. The boy held on to the
    hussar with cold, red hands, and raising his eyebrows gazed about him
    with surprise. This was the French drummer boy captured that morning.
    
    Behind them along the narrow, sodden, cutup forest road came hussars in
    threes and fours, and then Cossacks: some in felt cloaks, some in French
    greatcoats, and some with horsecloths over their heads. The horses,
    being drenched by the rain, all looked black whether chestnut or bay.
    Their necks, with their wet, close-clinging manes, looked strangely
    thin. Steam rose from them. Clothes, saddles, reins, were all wet,
    slippery, and sodden, like the ground and the fallen leaves that strewed
    the road. The men sat huddled up trying not to stir, so as to warm the
    water that had trickled to their bodies and not admit the fresh cold
    water that was leaking in under their seats, their knees, and at the
    back of their necks. In the midst of the outspread line of Cossacks two
    wagons, drawn by French horses and by saddled Cossack horses that had
    been hitched on in front, rumbled over the tree stumps and branches and
    splashed through the water that lay in the ruts.
    
    Denisov's horse swerved aside to avoid a pool in the track and bumped
    his rider's knee against a tree.
    
    "Oh, the devil!" exclaimed Denisov angrily, and showing his teeth he
    struck his horse three times with his whip, splashing himself and his
    comrades with mud.
    
    Denisov was out of sorts both because of the rain and also from hunger
    (none of them had eaten anything since morning), and yet more because he
    still had no news from Dolokhov and the man sent to capture a "tongue"
    had not returned.
    
    "There'll hardly be another such chance to fall on a transport as today.
    It's too risky to attack them by oneself, and if we put it off till
    another day one of the big guerrilla detachments will snatch the prey
    from under our noses," thought Denisov, continually peering forward,
    hoping to see a messenger from Dolokhov.
    
    On coming to a path in the forest along which he could see far to the
    right, Denisov stopped.
    
    "There's someone coming," said he.
    
    The esaul looked in the direction Denisov indicated.
    
    "There are two, an officer and a Cossack. But it is not presupposable
    that it is the lieutenant colonel himself," said the esaul, who was fond
    of using words the Cossacks did not know.
    
    The approaching riders having descended a decline were no longer
    visible, but they reappeared a few minutes later. In front, at a weary
    gallop and using his leather whip, rode an officer, disheveled and
    drenched, whose trousers had worked up to above his knees. Behind him,
    standing in the stirrups, trotted a Cossack. The officer, a very young
    lad with a broad rosy face and keen merry eyes, galloped up to Denisov
    and handed him a sodden envelope.
    
    "From the general," said the officer. "Please excuse its not being quite
    dry."
    
    Denisov, frowning, took the envelope and opened it.
    
    "There, they kept telling us: 'It's dangerous, it's dangerous,'" said
    the officer, addressing the esaul while Denisov was reading the
    dispatch. "But Komarov and I"--he pointed to the Cossack--"were
    prepared. We have each of us two pistols.... But what's this?" he asked,
    noticing the French drummer boy. "A prisoner? You've already been in
    action? May I speak to him?"
    
    "Wostov! Petya!" exclaimed Denisov, having run through the dispatch.
    "Why didn't you say who you were?" and turning with a smile he held out
    his hand to the lad.
    
    The officer was Petya Rostov.
    
    All the way Petya had been preparing himself to behave with Denisov as
    befitted a grownup man and an officer--without hinting at their previous
    acquaintance. But as soon as Denisov smiled at him Petya brightened up,
    blushed with pleasure, forgot the official manner he had been
    rehearsing, and began telling him how he had already been in a battle
    near Vyazma and how a certain hussar had distinguished himself there.
    
    "Well, I am glad to see you," Denisov interrupted him, and his face
    again assumed its anxious expression.
    
    "Michael Feoklitych," said he to the esaul, "this is again fwom that
    German, you know. He"--he indicated Petya--"is serving under him."
    
    And Denisov told the esaul that the dispatch just delivered was a
    repetition of the German general's demand that he should join forces
    with him for an attack on the transport.
    
    "If we don't take it tomowwow, he'll snatch it fwom under our noses," he
    added.
    
    While Denisov was talking to the esaul, Petya--abashed by Denisov's cold
    tone and supposing that it was due to the condition of his trousers--
    furtively tried to pull them down under his greatcoat so that no one
    should notice it, while maintaining as martial an air as possible.
    
    "Will there be any orders, your honor?" he asked Denisov, holding his
    hand at the salute and resuming the game of adjutant and general for
    which he had prepared himself, "or shall I remain with your honor?"
    
    "Orders?" Denisov repeated thoughtfully. "But can you stay till
    tomowwow?"
    
    "Oh, please... May I stay with you?" cried Petya.
    
    "But, just what did the genewal tell you? To weturn at once?" asked
    Denisov.
    
    Petya blushed.
    
    "He gave me no instructions. I think I could?" he returned, inquiringly.
    
    "Well, all wight," said Denisov.
    
    And turning to his men he directed a party to go on to the halting place
    arranged near the watchman's hut in the forest, and told the officer on
    the Kirghiz horse (who performed the duties of an adjutant) to go and
    find out where Dolokhov was and whether he would come that evening.
    Denisov himself intended going with the esaul and Petya to the edge of
    the forest where it reached out to Shamshevo, to have a look at the part
    of the French bivouac they were to attack next day.
    
    "Well, old fellow," said he to the peasant guide, "lead us to
    Shamshevo."
    
    Denisov, Petya, and the esaul, accompanied by some Cossacks and the
    hussar who had the prisoner, rode to the left across a ravine to the
    edge of the forest.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    The rain had stopped, and only the mist was falling and drops from the
    trees. Denisov, the esaul, and Petya rode silently, following the
    peasant in the knitted cap who, stepping lightly with outturned toes and
    moving noiselessly in his bast shoes over the roots and wet leaves,
    silently led them to the edge of the forest.
    
    He ascended an incline, stopped, looked about him, and advanced to where
    the screen of trees was less dense. On reaching a large oak tree that
    had not yet shed its leaves, he stopped and beckoned mysteriously to
    them with his hand.
    
    Denisov and Petya rode up to him. From the spot where the peasant was
    standing they could see the French. Immediately beyond the forest, on a
    downward slope, lay a field of spring rye. To the right, beyond a steep
    ravine, was a small village and a landowner's house with a broken roof.
    In the village, in the house, in the garden, by the well, by the pond,
    over all the rising ground, and all along the road uphill from the
    bridge leading to the village, not more than five hundred yards away,
    crowds of men could be seen through the shimmering mist. Their un-
    Russian shouting at their horses which were straining uphill with the
    carts, and their calls to one another, could be clearly heard.
    
    "Bwing the prisoner here," said Denisov in a low voice, not taking his
    eyes off the French.
    
    A Cossack dismounted, lifted the boy down, and took him to Denisov.
    Pointing to the French troops, Denisov asked him what these and those of
    them were. The boy, thrusting his cold hands into his pockets and
    lifting his eyebrows, looked at Denisov in affright, but in spite of an
    evident desire to say all he knew gave confused answers, merely
    assenting to everything Denisov asked him. Denisov turned away from him
    frowning and addressed the esaul, conveying his own conjectures to him.
    
    Petya, rapidly turning his head, looked now at the drummer boy, now at
    Denisov, now at the esaul, and now at the French in the village and
    along the road, trying not to miss anything of importance.
    
    "Whether Dolokhov comes or not, we must seize it, eh?" said Denisov with
    a merry sparkle in his eyes.
    
    "It is a very suitable spot," said the esaul.
    
    "We'll send the infantwy down by the swamps," Denisov continued.
    "They'll cweep up to the garden; you'll wide up fwom there with the
    Cossacks"--he pointed to a spot in the forest beyond the village--"and I
    with my hussars fwom here. And at the signal shot..."
    
    "The hollow is impassable--there's a swamp there," said the esaul. "The
    horses would sink. We must ride round more to the left...."
    
    While they were talking in undertones the crack of a shot sounded from
    the low ground by the pond, a puff of white smoke appeared, then
    another, and the sound of hundreds of seemingly merry French voices
    shouting together came up from the slope. For a moment Denisov and the
    esaul drew back. They were so near that they thought they were the cause
    of the firing and shouting. But the firing and shouting did not relate
    to them. Down below, a man wearing something red was running through the
    marsh. The French were evidently firing and shouting at him.
    
    "Why, that's our Tikhon," said the esaul.
    
    "So it is! It is!"
    
    "The wascal!" said Denisov.
    
    "He'll get away!" said the esaul, screwing up his eyes.
    
    The man whom they called Tikhon, having run to the stream, plunged in so
    that the water splashed in the air, and, having disappeared for an
    instant, scrambled out on all fours, all black with the wet, and ran on.
    The French who had been pursuing him stopped.
    
    "Smart, that!" said the esaul.
    
    "What a beast!" said Denisov with his former look of vexation. "What has
    he been doing all this time?"
    
    "Who is he?" asked Petya.
    
    "He's our plastun. I sent him to capture a 'tongue.'"
    
    "Oh, yes," said Petya, nodding at the first words Denisov uttered as if
    he understood it all, though he really did not understand anything of
    it.
    
    Tikhon Shcherbaty was one of the most indispensable men in their band.
    He was a peasant from Pokrovsk, near the river Gzhat. When Denisov had
    come to Pokrovsk at the beginning of his operations and had as usual
    summoned the village elder and asked him what he knew about the French,
    the elder, as though shielding himself, had replied, as all village
    elders did, that he had neither seen nor heard anything of them. But
    when Denisov explained that his purpose was to kill the French, and
    asked if no French had strayed that way, the elder replied that some
    "more-orderers" had really been at their village, but that Tikhon
    Shcherbaty was the only man who dealt with such matters. Denisov had
    Tikhon called and, having praised him for his activity, said a few words
    in the elder's presence about loyalty to the Tsar and the country and
    the hatred of the French that all sons of the fatherland should cherish.
    
    "We don't do the French any harm," said Tikhon, evidently frightened by
    Denisov's words. "We only fooled about with the lads for fun, you know!
    We killed a score or so of 'more-orderers,' but we did no harm else..."
    
    Next day when Denisov had left Pokrovsk, having quite forgotten about
    this peasant, it was reported to him that Tikhon had attached himself to
    their party and asked to be allowed to remain with it. Denisov gave
    orders to let him do so.
    
    Tikhon, who at first did rough work, laying campfires, fetching water,
    flaying dead horses, and so on, soon showed a great liking and aptitude
    for partisan warfare. At night he would go out for booty and always
    brought back French clothing and weapons, and when told to would bring
    in French captives also. Denisov then relieved him from drudgery and
    began taking him with him when he went out on expeditions and had him
    enrolled among the Cossacks.
    
    Tikhon did not like riding, and always went on foot, never lagging
    behind the cavalry. He was armed with a musketoon (which he carried
    rather as a joke), a pike and an ax, which latter he used as a wolf uses
    its teeth, with equal ease picking fleas out of its fur or crunching
    thick bones. Tikhon with equal accuracy would split logs with blows at
    arm's length, or holding the head of the ax would cut thin little pegs
    or carve spoons. In Denisov's party he held a peculiar and exceptional
    position. When anything particularly difficult or nasty had to be done--
    to push a cart out of the mud with one's shoulders, pull a horse out of
    a swamp by its tail, skin it, slink in among the French, or walk more
    than thirty miles in a day--everybody pointed laughingly at Tikhon.
    
    "It won't hurt that devil--he's as strong as a horse!" they said of him.
    
    Once a Frenchman Tikhon was trying to capture fired a pistol at him and
    shot him in the fleshy part of the back. That wound (which Tikhon
    treated only with internal and external applications of vodka) was the
    subject of the liveliest jokes by the whole detachment--jokes in which
    Tikhon readily joined.
    
    "Hallo, mate! Never again? Gave you a twist?" the Cossacks would banter
    him. And Tikhon, purposely writhing and making faces, pretended to be
    angry and swore at the French with the funniest curses. The only effect
    of this incident on Tikhon was that after being wounded he seldom
    brought in prisoners.
    
    He was the bravest and most useful man in the party. No one found more
    opportunities for attacking, no one captured or killed more Frenchmen,
    and consequently he was made the buffoon of all the Cossacks and hussars
    and willingly accepted that role. Now he had been sent by Denisov
    overnight to Shamshevo to capture a "tongue." But whether because he had
    not been content to take only one Frenchman or because he had slept
    through the night, he had crept by day into some bushes right among the
    French and, as Denisov had witnessed from above, had been detected by
    them.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    After talking for some time with the esaul about next day's attack,
    which now, seeing how near they were to the French, he seemed to have
    definitely decided on, Denisov turned his horse and rode back.
    
    "Now, my lad, we'll go and get dwy," he said to Petya.
    
    As they approached the watchhouse Denisov stopped, peering into the
    forest. Among the trees a man with long legs and long, swinging arms,
    wearing a short jacket, bast shoes, and a Kazan hat, was approaching
    with long, light steps. He had a musketoon over his shoulder and an ax
    stuck in his girdle. When he espied Denisov he hastily threw something
    into the bushes, removed his sodden hat by its floppy brim, and
    approached his commander. It was Tikhon. His wrinkled and pockmarked
    face and narrow little eyes beamed with self-satisfied merriment. He
    lifted his head high and gazed at Denisov as if repressing a laugh.
    
    "Well, where did you disappear to?" inquired Denisov.
    
    "Where did I disappear to? I went to get Frenchmen," answered Tikhon
    boldly and hurriedly, in a husky but melodious bass voice.
    
    "Why did you push yourself in there by daylight? You ass! Well, why
    haven't you taken one?"
    
    "Oh, I took one all right," said Tikhon.
    
    "Where is he?"
    
    "You see, I took him first thing at dawn," Tikhon continued, spreading
    out his flat feet with outturned toes in their bast shoes. "I took him
    into the forest. Then I see he's no good and think I'll go and fetch a
    likelier one."
    
    "You see?... What a wogue--it's just as I thought," said Denisov to the
    esaul. "Why didn't you bwing that one?"
    
    "What was the good of bringing him?" Tikhon interrupted hastily and
    angrily--"that one wouldn't have done for you. As if I don't know what
    sort you want!"
    
    "What a bwute you are!... Well?"
    
    "I went for another one," Tikhon continued, "and I crept like this
    through the wood and lay down." (He suddenly lay down on his stomach
    with a supple movement to show how he had done it.) "One turned up and I
    grabbed him, like this." (He jumped up quickly and lightly.) "'Come
    along to the colonel,' I said. He starts yelling, and suddenly there
    were four of them. They rushed at me with their little swords. So I went
    for them with my ax, this way: 'What are you up to?' says I. 'Christ be
    with you!'" shouted Tikhon, waving his arms with an angry scowl and
    throwing out his chest.
    
    "Yes, we saw from the hill how you took to your heels through the
    puddles!" said the esaul, screwing up his glittering eyes.
    
    Petya badly wanted to laugh, but noticed that they all refrained from
    laughing. He turned his eyes rapidly from Tikhon's face to the esaul's
    and Denisov's, unable to make out what it all meant.
    
    "Don't play the fool!" said Denisov, coughing angrily. "Why didn't you
    bwing the first one?"
    
    Tikhon scratched his back with one hand and his head with the other,
    then suddenly his whole face expanded into a beaming, foolish grin,
    disclosing a gap where he had lost a tooth (that was why he was called
    Shcherbaty--the gap-toothed). Denisov smiled, and Petya burst into a
    peal of merry laughter in which Tikhon himself joined.
    
    "Oh, but he was a regular good-for-nothing," said Tikhon. "The clothes
    on him--poor stuff! How could I bring him? And so rude, your honor! Why,
    he says: 'I'm a general's son myself, I won't go!' he says."
    
    "You are a bwute!" said Denisov. "I wanted to question..."
    
    "But I questioned him," said Tikhon. "He said he didn't know much.
    'There are a lot of us,' he says, 'but all poor stuff--only soldiers in
    name,' he says. 'Shout loud at them,' he says, 'and you'll take them
    all,'" Tikhon concluded, looking cheerfully and resolutely into
    Denisov's eyes.
    
    "I'll give you a hundwed sharp lashes--that'll teach you to play the
    fool!" said Denisov severely.
    
    "But why are you angry?" remonstrated Tikhon, "just as if I'd never seen
    your Frenchmen! Only wait till it gets dark and I'll fetch you any of
    them you want--three if you like."
    
    "Well, let's go," said Denisov, and rode all the way to the watchhouse
    in silence and frowning angrily.
    
    Tikhon followed behind and Petya heard the Cossacks laughing with him
    and at him, about some pair of boots he had thrown into the bushes.
    
    When the fit of laughter that had seized him at Tikhon's words and smile
    had passed and Petya realized for a moment that this Tikhon had killed a
    man, he felt uneasy. He looked round at the captive drummer boy and felt
    a pang in his heart. But this uneasiness lasted only a moment. He felt
    it necessary to hold his head higher, to brace himself, and to question
    the esaul with an air of importance about tomorrow's undertaking, that
    he might not be unworthy of the company in which he found himself.
    
    The officer who had been sent to inquire met Denisov on the way with the
    news that Dolokhov was soon coming and that all was well with him.
    
    Denisov at once cheered up and, calling Petya to him, said: "Well, tell
    me about yourself."
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    Petya, having left his people after their departure from Moscow, joined
    his regiment and was soon taken as orderly by a general commanding a
    large guerrilla detachment. From the time he received his commission,
    and especially since he had joined the active army and taken part in the
    battle of Vyazma, Petya had been in a constant state of blissful
    excitement at being grown-up and in a perpetual ecstatic hurry not to
    miss any chance to do something really heroic. He was highly delighted
    with what he saw and experienced in the army, but at the same time it
    always seemed to him that the really heroic exploits were being
    performed just where he did not happen to be. And he was always in a
    hurry to get where he was not.
    
    When on the twenty-first of October his general expressed a wish to send
    somebody to Denisov's detachment, Petya begged so piteously to be sent
    that the general could not refuse. But when dispatching him he recalled
    Petya's mad action at the battle of Vyazma, where instead of riding by
    the road to the place to which he had been sent, he had galloped to the
    advanced line under the fire of the French and had there twice fired his
    pistol. So now the general explicitly forbade his taking part in any
    action whatever of Denisov's. That was why Petya had blushed and grown
    confused when Denisov asked him whether he could stay. Before they had
    ridden to the outskirts of the forest Petya had considered he must carry
    out his instructions strictly and return at once. But when he saw the
    French and saw Tikhon and learned that there would certainly be an
    attack that night, he decided, with the rapidity with which young people
    change their views, that the general, whom he had greatly respected till
    then, was a rubbishy German, that Denisov was a hero, the esaul a hero,
    and Tikhon a hero too, and that it would be shameful for him to leave
    them at a moment of difficulty.
    
    It was already growing dusk when Denisov, Petya, and the esaul rode up
    to the watchhouse. In the twilight saddled horses could be seen, and
    Cossacks and hussars who had rigged up rough shelters in the glade and
    were kindling glowing fires in a hollow of the forest where the French
    could not see the smoke. In the passage of the small watchhouse a
    Cossack with sleeves rolled up was chopping some mutton. In the room
    three officers of Denisov's band were converting a door into a tabletop.
    Petya took off his wet clothes, gave them to be dried, and at once began
    helping the officers to fix up the dinner table.
    
    In ten minutes the table was ready and a napkin spread on it. On the
    table were vodka, a flask of rum, white bread, roast mutton, and salt.
    
    Sitting at table with the officers and tearing the fat savory mutton
    with his hands, down which the grease trickled, Petya was in an ecstatic
    childish state of love for all men, and consequently of confidence that
    others loved him in the same way.
    
    "So then what do you think, Vasili Dmitrich?" said he to Denisov. "It's
    all right my staying a day with you?" And not waiting for a reply he
    answered his own question: "You see I was told to find out--well, I am
    finding out.... Only do let me into the very... into the chief... I
    don't want a reward... But I want..."
    
    Petya clenched his teeth and looked around, throwing back his head and
    flourishing his arms.
    
    "Into the vewy chief..." Denisov repeated with a smile.
    
    "Only, please let me command something, so that I may really command..."
    Petya went on. "What would it be to you?... Oh, you want a knife?" he
    said, turning to an officer who wished to cut himself a piece of mutton.
    
    And he handed him his clasp knife. The officer admired it.
    
    "Please keep it. I have several like it," said Petya, blushing.
    "Heavens! I was quite forgetting!" he suddenly cried. "I have some
    raisins, fine ones; you know, seedless ones. We have a new sutler and he
    has such capital things. I bought ten pounds. I am used to something
    sweet. Would you like some?..." and Petya ran out into the passage to
    his Cossack and brought back some bags which contained about five pounds
    of raisins. "Have some, gentlemen, have some!"
    
    "You want a coffeepot, don't you?" he asked the esaul. "I bought a
    capital one from our sutler! He has splendid things. And he's very
    honest, that's the chief thing. I'll be sure to send it to you. Or
    perhaps your flints are giving out, or are worn out--that happens
    sometimes, you know. I have brought some with me, here they are"--and he
    showed a bag--"a hundred flints. I bought them very cheap. Please take
    as many as you want, or all if you like...."
    
    Then suddenly, dismayed lest he had said too much, Petya stopped and
    blushed.
    
    He tried to remember whether he had not done anything else that was
    foolish. And running over the events of the day he remembered the French
    drummer boy. "It's capital for us here, but what of him? Where have they
    put him? Have they fed him? Haven't they hurt his feelings?" he thought.
    But having caught himself saying too much about the flints, he was now
    afraid to speak out.
    
    "I might ask," he thought, "but they'll say: 'He's a boy himself and so
    he pities the boy.' I'll show them tomorrow whether I'm a boy. Will it
    seem odd if I ask?" Petya thought. "Well, never mind!" and immediately,
    blushing and looking anxiously at the officers to see if they appeared
    ironical, he said:
    
    "May I call in that boy who was taken prisoner and give him something to
    eat?... Perhaps..."
    
    "Yes, he's a poor little fellow," said Denisov, who evidently saw
    nothing shameful in this reminder. "Call him in. His name is Vincent
    Bosse. Have him fetched."
    
    "I'll call him," said Petya.
    
    "Yes, yes, call him. A poor little fellow," Denisov repeated.
    
    Petya was standing at the door when Denisov said this. He slipped in
    between the officers, came close to Denisov, and said:
    
    "Let me kiss you, dear old fellow! Oh, how fine, how splendid!"
    
    And having kissed Denisov he ran out of the hut.
    
    "Bosse! Vincent!" Petya cried, stopping outside the door.
    
    "Who do you want, sir?" asked a voice in the darkness.
    
    Petya replied that he wanted the French lad who had been captured that
    day.
    
    "Ah, Vesenny?" said a Cossack.
    
    Vincent, the boy's name, had already been changed by the Cossacks into
    Vesenny (vernal) and into Vesenya by the peasants and soldiers. In both
    these adaptations the reference to spring (vesna) matched the impression
    made by the young lad.
    
    "He is warming himself there by the bonfire. Ho, Vesenya! Vesenya!--
    Vesenny!" laughing voices were heard calling to one another in the
    darkness.
    
    "He's a smart lad," said an hussar standing near Petya. "We gave him
    something to eat a while ago. He was awfully hungry!"
    
    The sound of bare feet splashing through the mud was heard in the
    darkness, and the drummer boy came to the door.
    
    "Ah, c'est vous!" said Petya. "Voulez-vous manger? N'ayez pas peur, on
    ne vous fera pas de mal," * he added shyly and affectionately, touching
    the boy's hand. "Entrez, entrez." *(2)
    
    * "Ah, it's you! Do you want something to eat? Don't be afraid, they
    won't hurt you."
    
    * (2) "Come in, come in."
    
    "Merci, monsieur," * said the drummer boy in a trembling almost childish
    voice, and he began scraping his dirty feet on the threshold.
    
    * "Thank you, sir."
    
    There were many things Petya wanted to say to the drummer boy, but did
    not dare to. He stood irresolutely beside him in the passage. Then in
    the darkness he took the boy's hand and pressed it.
    
    "Come in, come in!" he repeated in a gentle whisper. "Oh, what can I do
    for him?" he thought, and opening the door he let the boy pass in first.
    
    When the boy had entered the hut, Petya sat down at a distance from him,
    considering it beneath his dignity to pay attention to him. But he
    fingered the money in his pocket and wondered whether it would seem
    ridiculous to give some to the drummer boy.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    The arrival of Dolokhov diverted Petya's attention from the drummer boy,
    to whom Denisov had had some mutton and vodka given, and whom he had had
    dressed in a Russian coat so that he might be kept with their band and
    not sent away with the other prisoners. Petya had heard in the army many
    stories of Dolokhov's extraordinary bravery and of his cruelty to the
    French, so from the moment he entered the hut Petya did not take his
    eyes from him, but braced himself up more and more and held his head
    high, that he might not be unworthy even of such company.
    
    Dolokhov's appearance amazed Petya by its simplicity.
    
    Denisov wore a Cossack coat, had a beard, had an icon of Nicholas the
    Wonder-Worker on his breast, and his way of speaking and everything he
    did indicated his unusual position. But Dolokhov, who in Moscow had worn
    a Persian costume, had now the appearance of a most correct officer of
    the Guards. He was clean-shaven and wore a Guardsman's padded coat with
    an Order of St. George at his buttonhole and a plain forage cap set
    straight on his head. He took off his wet felt cloak in a corner of the
    room, and without greeting anyone went up to Denisov and began
    questioning him about the matter in hand. Denisov told him of the
    designs the large detachments had on the transport, of the message Petya
    had brought, and his own replies to both generals. Then he told him all
    he knew of the French detachment.
    
    "That's so. But we must know what troops they are and their numbers,"
    said Dolokhov. "It will be necessary to go there. We can't start the
    affair without knowing for certain how many there are. I like to work
    accurately. Here now--wouldn't one of these gentlemen like to ride over
    to the French camp with me? I have brought a spare uniform."
    
    "I, I... I'll go with you!" cried Petya.
    
    "There's no need for you to go at all," said Denisov, addressing
    Dolokhov, "and as for him, I won't let him go on any account."
    
    "I like that!" exclaimed Petya. "Why shouldn't I go?"
    
    "Because it's useless."
    
    "Well, you must excuse me, because... because... I shall go, and that's
    all. You'll take me, won't you?" he said, turning to Dolokhov.
    
    "Why not?" Dolokhov answered absently, scrutinizing the face of the
    French drummer boy. "Have you had that youngster with you long?" he
    asked Denisov.
    
    "He was taken today but he knows nothing. I'm keeping him with me."
    
    "Yes, and where do you put the others?" inquired Dolokhov.
    
    "Where? I send them away and take a weceipt for them," shouted Denisov,
    suddenly flushing. "And I say boldly that I have not a single man's life
    on my conscience. Would it be difficult for you to send thirty or thwee
    hundwed men to town under escort, instead of staining--I speak bluntly--
    staining the honor of a soldier?"
    
    "That kind of amiable talk would be suitable from this young count of
    sixteen," said Dolokhov with cold irony, "but it's time for you to drop
    it."
    
    "Why, I've not said anything! I only say that I'll certainly go with
    you," said Petya shyly.
    
    "But for you and me, old fellow, it's time to drop these amenities,"
    continued Dolokhov, as if he found particular pleasure in speaking of
    this subject which irritated Denisov. "Now, why have you kept this lad?"
    he went on, swaying his head. "Because you are sorry for him! Don't we
    know those 'receipts' of yours? You send a hundred men away, and thirty
    get there. The rest either starve or get killed. So isn't it all the
    same not to send them?"
    
    The esaul, screwing up his light-colored eyes, nodded approvingly.
    
    "That's not the point. I'm not going to discuss the matter. I do not
    wish to take it on my conscience. You say they'll die. All wight. Only
    not by my fault!"
    
    Dolokhov began laughing.
    
    "Who has told them not to capture me these twenty times over? But if
    they did catch me they'd string me up to an aspen tree, and with all
    your chivalry just the same." He paused. "However, we must get to work.
    Tell the Cossack to fetch my kit. I have two French uniforms in it.
    Well, are you coming with me?" he asked Petya.
    
    "I? Yes, yes, certainly!" cried Petya, blushing almost to tears and
    glancing at Denisov.
    
    While Dolokhov had been disputing with Denisov what should be done with
    prisoners, Petya had once more felt awkward and restless; but again he
    had no time to grasp fully what they were talking about. "If grown-up,
    distinguished men think so, it must be necessary and right," thought he.
    "But above all Denisov must not dare to imagine that I'll obey him and
    that he can order me about. I will certainly go to the French camp with
    Dolokhov. If he can, so can I!"
    
    And to all Denisov's persuasions, Petya replied that he too was
    accustomed to do everything accurately and not just anyhow, and that he
    never considered personal danger.
    
    "For you'll admit that if we don't know for sure how many of them there
    are... hundreds of lives may depend on it, while there are only two of
    us. Besides, I want to go very much and certainly will go, so don't
    hinder me," said he. "It will only make things worse..."
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    Having put on French greatcoats and shakos, Petya and Dolokhov rode to
    the clearing from which Denisov had reconnoitered the French camp, and
    emerging from the forest in pitch darkness they descended into the
    hollow. On reaching the bottom, Dolokhov told the Cossacks accompanying
    him to await him there and rode on at a quick trot along the road to the
    bridge. Petya, his heart in his mouth with excitement, rode by his side.
    
    "If we're caught, I won't be taken alive! I have a pistol," whispered
    he.
    
    "Don't talk Russian," said Dolokhov in a hurried whisper, and at that
    very moment they heard through the darkness the challenge: "Qui vive?" *
    and the click of a musket.
    
    * "Who goes there?"
    
    The blood rushed to Petya's face and he grasped his pistol.
    
    "Lanciers du 6-me," * replied Dolokhov, neither hastening nor slackening
    his horse's pace.
    
    * "Lancers of the 6th Regiment."
    
    The black figure of a sentinel stood on the bridge.
    
    "Mot d'ordre." *
    
    * "Password."
    
    Dolokhov reined in his horse and advanced at a walk.
    
    "Dites donc, le colonel Gerard est ici?" * he asked.
    
    * "Tell me, is Colonel Gerard here?"
    
    "Mot d'ordre," repeated the sentinel, barring the way and not replying.
    
    "Quand un officier fait sa ronde, les sentinelles ne demandent pas le
    mot d'ordre..." cried Dolokhov suddenly flaring up and riding straight
    at the sentinel. "Je vous demande si le colonel est ici." *
    
    * "When an officer is making his round, sentinels don't ask him for the
    password.... I am asking you if the colonel is here."
    
    And without waiting for an answer from the sentinel, who had stepped
    aside, Dolokhov rode up the incline at a walk.
    
    Noticing the black outline of a man crossing the road, Dolokhov stopped
    him and inquired where the commander and officers were. The man, a
    soldier with a sack over his shoulder, stopped, came close up to
    Dolokhov's horse, touched it with his hand, and explained simply and in
    a friendly way that the commander and the officers were higher up the
    hill to the right in the courtyard of the farm, as he called the
    landowner's house.
    
    Having ridden up the road, on both sides of which French talk could be
    heard around the campfires, Dolokhov turned into the courtyard of the
    landowner's house. Having ridden in, he dismounted and approached a big
    blazing campfire, around which sat several men talking noisily.
    Something was boiling in a small cauldron at the edge of the fire and a
    soldier in a peaked cap and blue overcoat, lit up by the fire, was
    kneeling beside it stirring its contents with a ramrod.
    
    "Oh, he's a hard nut to crack," said one of the officers who was sitting
    in the shadow at the other side of the fire.
    
    "He'll make them get a move on, those fellows!" said another, laughing.
    
    Both fell silent, peering out through the darkness at the sound of
    Dolokhov's and Petya's steps as they advanced to the fire leading their
    horses.
    
    "Bonjour, messieurs!" * said Dolokhov loudly and clearly.
    
    * "Good day, gentlemen."
    
    There was a stir among the officers in the shadow beyond the fire, and
    one tall, long-necked officer, walking round the fire, came up to
    Dolokhov.
    
    "Is that you, Clement?" he asked. "Where the devil...?" But, noticing
    his mistake, he broke off short and, with a frown, greeted Dolokhov as a
    stranger, asking what he could do for him.
    
    Dolokhov said that he and his companion were trying to overtake their
    regiment, and addressing the company in general asked whether they knew
    anything of the 6th Regiment. None of them knew anything, and Petya
    thought the officers were beginning to look at him and Dolokhov with
    hostility and suspicion. For some seconds all were silent.
    
    "If you were counting on the evening soup, you have come too late," said
    a voice from behind the fire with a repressed laugh.
    
    Dolokhov replied that they were not hungry and must push on farther that
    night.
    
    He handed the horses over to the soldier who was stirring the pot and
    squatted down on his heels by the fire beside the officer with the long
    neck. That officer did not take his eyes from Dolokhov and again asked
    to what regiment he belonged. Dolokhov, as if he had not heard the
    question, did not reply, but lighting a short French pipe which he took
    from his pocket began asking the officer in how far the road before them
    was safe from Cossacks.
    
    "Those brigands are everywhere," replied an officer from behind the
    fire.
    
    Dolokhov remarked that the Cossacks were a danger only to stragglers
    such as his companion and himself, "but probably they would not dare to
    attack large detachments?" he added inquiringly. No one replied.
    
    "Well, now he'll come away," Petya thought every moment as he stood by
    the campfire listening to the talk.
    
    But Dolokhov restarted the conversation which had dropped and began
    putting direct questions as to how many men there were in the battalion,
    how many battalions, and how many prisoners. Asking about the Russian
    prisoners with that detachment, Dolokhov said:
    
    "A horrid business dragging these corpses about with one! It would be
    better to shoot such rabble," and burst into loud laughter, so strange
    that Petya thought the French would immediately detect their disguise,
    and involuntarily took a step back from the campfire.
    
    No one replied a word to Dolokhov's laughter, and a French officer whom
    they could not see (he lay wrapped in a greatcoat) rose and whispered
    something to a companion. Dolokhov got up and called to the soldier who
    was holding their horses.
    
    "Will they bring our horses or not?" thought Petya, instinctively
    drawing nearer to Dolokhov.
    
    The horses were brought.
    
    "Good evening, gentlemen," said Dolokhov.
    
    Petya wished to say "Good night" but could not utter a word. The
    officers were whispering together. Dolokhov was a long time mounting his
    horse which would not stand still, then he rode out of the yard at a
    footpace. Petya rode beside him, longing to look round to see whether or
    not the French were running after them, but not daring to.
    
    Coming out onto the road Dolokhov did not ride back across the open
    country, but through the village. At one spot he stopped and listened.
    "Do you hear?" he asked. Petya recognized the sound of Russian voices
    and saw the dark figures of Russian prisoners round their campfires.
    When they had descended to the bridge Petya and Dolokhov rode past the
    sentinel, who without saying a word paced morosely up and down it, then
    they descended into the hollow where the Cossacks awaited them.
    
    "Well now, good-by. Tell Denisov, 'at the first shot at daybreak,'" said
    Dolokhov and was about to ride away, but Petya seized hold of him.
    
    "Really!" he cried, "you are such a hero! Oh, how fine, how splendid!
    How I love you!"
    
    "All right, all right!" said Dolokhov. But Petya did not let go of him
    and Dolokhov saw through the gloom that Petya was bending toward him and
    wanted to kiss him. Dolokhov kissed him, laughed, turned his horse, and
    vanished into the darkness.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Having returned to the watchman's hut, Petya found Denisov in the
    passage. He was awaiting Petya's return in a state of agitation,
    anxiety, and self-reproach for having let him go.
    
    "Thank God!" he exclaimed. "Yes, thank God!" he repeated, listening to
    Petya's rapturous account. "But, devil take you, I haven't slept because
    of you! Well, thank God. Now lie down. We can still get a nap before
    morning."
    
    "But... no," said Petya, "I don't want to sleep yet. Besides I know
    myself, if I fall asleep it's finished. And then I am used to not
    sleeping before a battle."
    
    He sat awhile in the hut joyfully recalling the details of his
    expedition and vividly picturing to himself what would happen next day.
    
    Then, noticing that Denisov was asleep, he rose and went out of doors.
    
    It was still quite dark outside. The rain was over, but drops were still
    falling from the trees. Near the watchman's hut the black shapes of the
    Cossacks' shanties and of horses tethered together could be seen. Behind
    the hut the dark shapes of the two wagons with their horses beside them
    were discernible, and in the hollow the dying campfire gleamed red. Not
    all the Cossacks and hussars were asleep; here and there, amid the
    sounds of falling drops and the munching of the horses near by, could be
    heard low voices which seemed to be whispering.
    
    Petya came out, peered into the darkness, and went up to the wagons.
    Someone was snoring under them, and around them stood saddled horses
    munching their oats. In the dark Petya recognized his own horse, which
    he called "Karabakh" though it was of Ukranian breed, and went up to it.
    
    "Well, Karabakh! We'll do some service tomorrow," said he, sniffing its
    nostrils and kissing it.
    
    "Why aren't you asleep, sir?" said a Cossack who was sitting under a
    wagon.
    
    "No, ah... Likhachev--isn't that your name? Do you know I have only just
    come back! We've been into the French camp."
    
    And Petya gave the Cossack a detailed account not only of his ride but
    also of his object, and why he considered it better to risk his life
    than to act "just anyhow."
    
    "Well, you should get some sleep now," said the Cossack.
    
    "No, I am used to this," said Petya. "I say, aren't the flints in your
    pistols worn out? I brought some with me. Don't you want any? You can
    have some."
    
    The Cossack bent forward from under the wagon to get a closer look at
    Petya.
    
    "Because I am accustomed to doing everything accurately," said Petya.
    "Some fellows do things just anyhow, without preparation, and then
    they're sorry for it afterwards. I don't like that."
    
    "Just so," said the Cossack.
    
    "Oh yes, another thing! Please, my dear fellow, will you sharpen my
    saber for me? It's got bl..." (Petya feared to tell a lie, and the saber
    never had been sharpened.) "Can you do it?"
    
    "Of course I can."
    
    Likhachev got up, rummaged in his pack, and soon Petya heard the warlike
    sound of steel on whetstone. He climbed onto the wagon and sat on its
    edge. The Cossack was sharpening the saber under the wagon.
    
    "I say! Are the lads asleep?" asked Petya.
    
    "Some are, and some aren't--like us."
    
    "Well, and that boy?"
    
    "Vesenny? Oh, he's thrown himself down there in the passage. Fast asleep
    after his fright. He was that glad!"
    
    After that Petya remained silent for a long time, listening to the
    sounds. He heard footsteps in the darkness and a black figure appeared.
    
    "What are you sharpening?" asked a man coming up to the wagon.
    
    "Why, this gentleman's saber."
    
    "That's right," said the man, whom Petya took to be an hussar. "Was the
    cup left here?"
    
    "There, by the wheel!"
    
    The hussar took the cup.
    
    "It must be daylight soon," said he, yawning, and went away.
    
    Petya ought to have known that he was in a forest with Denisov's
    guerrilla band, less than a mile from the road, sitting on a wagon
    captured from the French beside which horses were tethered, that under
    it Likhachev was sitting sharpening a saber for him, that the big dark
    blotch to the right was the watchman's hut, and the red blotch below to
    the left was the dying embers of a campfire, that the man who had come
    for the cup was an hussar who wanted a drink; but he neither knew nor
    waited to know anything of all this. He was in a fairy kingdom where
    nothing resembled reality. The big dark blotch might really be the
    watchman's hut or it might be a cavern leading to the very depths of the
    earth. Perhaps the red spot was a fire, or it might be the eye of an
    enormous monster. Perhaps he was really sitting on a wagon, but it might
    very well be that he was not sitting on a wagon but on a terribly high
    tower from which, if he fell, he would have to fall for a whole day or a
    whole month, or go on falling and never reach the bottom. Perhaps it was
    just the Cossack, Likhachev, who was sitting under the wagon, but it
    might be the kindest, bravest, most wonderful, most splendid man in the
    world, whom no one knew of. It might really have been that the hussar
    came for water and went back into the hollow, but perhaps he had simply
    vanished--disappeared altogether and dissolved into nothingness.
    
    Nothing Petya could have seen now would have surprised him. He was in a
    fairy kingdom where everything was possible.
    
    He looked up at the sky. And the sky was a fairy realm like the earth.
    It was clearing, and over the tops of the trees clouds were swiftly
    sailing as if unveiling the stars. Sometimes it looked as if the clouds
    were passing, and a clear black sky appeared. Sometimes it seemed as if
    the black spaces were clouds. Sometimes the sky seemed to be rising
    high, high overhead, and then it seemed to sink so low that one could
    touch it with one's hand.
    
    Petya's eyes began to close and he swayed a little.
    
    The trees were dripping. Quiet talking was heard. The horses neighed and
    jostled one another. Someone snored.
    
    "Ozheg-zheg, Ozheg-zheg..." hissed the saber against the whetstone, and
    suddenly Petya heard an harmonious orchestra playing some unknown,
    sweetly solemn hymn. Petya was as musical as Natasha and more so than
    Nicholas, but had never learned music or thought about it, and so the
    melody that unexpectedly came to his mind seemed to him particularly
    fresh and attractive. The music became more and more audible. The melody
    grew and passed from one instrument to another. And what was played was
    a fugue--though Petya had not the least conception of what a fugue is.
    Each instrument--now resembling a violin and now a horn, but better and
    clearer than violin or horn--played its own part, and before it had
    finished the melody merged with another instrument that began almost the
    same air, and then with a third and a fourth; and they all blended into
    one and again became separate and again blended, now into solemn church
    music, now into something dazzlingly brilliant and triumphant.
    
    "Oh--why, that was in a dream!" Petya said to himself, as he lurched
    forward. "It's in my ears. But perhaps it's music of my own. Well, go
    on, my music! Now!..."
    
    He closed his eyes, and, from all sides as if from a distance, sounds
    fluttered, grew into harmonies, separated, blended, and again all
    mingled into the same sweet and solemn hymn. "Oh, this is delightful! As
    much as I like and as I like!" said Petya to himself. He tried to
    conduct that enormous orchestra.
    
    "Now softly, softly die away!" and the sounds obeyed him. "Now fuller,
    more joyful. Still more and more joyful!" And from an unknown depth rose
    increasingly triumphant sounds. "Now voices join in!" ordered Petya. And
    at first from afar he heard men's voices and then women's. The voices
    grew in harmonious triumphant strength, and Petya listened to their
    surpassing beauty in awe and joy.
    
    With a solemn triumphal march there mingled a song, the drip from the
    trees, and the hissing of the saber, "Ozheg-zheg-zheg..." and again the
    horses jostled one another and neighed, not disturbing the choir but
    joining in it.
    
    Petya did not know how long this lasted: he enjoyed himself all the
    time, wondered at his enjoyment and regretted that there was no one to
    share it. He was awakened by Likhachev's kindly voice.
    
    "It's ready, your honor; you can split a Frenchman in half with it!"
    
    Petya woke up.
    
    "It's getting light, it's really getting light!" he exclaimed.
    
    The horses that had previously been invisible could now be seen to their
    very tails, and a watery light showed itself through the bare branches.
    Petya shook himself, jumped up, took a ruble from his pocket and gave it
    to Likhachev; then he flourished the saber, tested it, and sheathed it.
    The Cossacks were untying their horses and tightening their saddle
    girths.
    
    "And here's the commander," said Likhachev.
    
    Denisov came out of the watchman's hut and, having called Petya, gave
    orders to get ready.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    The men rapidly picked out their horses in the semidarkness, tightened
    their saddle girths, and formed companies. Denisov stood by the
    watchman's hut giving final orders. The infantry of the detachment
    passed along the road and quickly disappeared amid the trees in the mist
    of early dawn, hundreds of feet splashing through the mud. The esaul
    gave some orders to his men. Petya held his horse by the bridle,
    impatiently awaiting the order to mount. His face, having been bathed in
    cold water, was all aglow, and his eyes were particularly brilliant.
    Cold shivers ran down his spine and his whole body pulsed rhythmically.
    
    "Well, is ev'wything weady?" asked Denisov. "Bwing the horses."
    
    The horses were brought. Denisov was angry with the Cossack because the
    saddle girths were too slack, reproved him, and mounted. Petya put his
    foot in the stirrup. His horse by habit made as if to nip his leg, but
    Petya leaped quickly into the saddle unconscious of his own weight and,
    turning to look at the hussars starting in the darkness behind him, rode
    up to Denisov.
    
    "Vasili Dmitrich, entrust me with some commission! Please... for God's
    sake...!" said he.
    
    Denisov seemed to have forgotten Petya's very existence. He turned to
    glance at him.
    
    "I ask one thing of you," he said sternly, "to obey me and not shove
    yourself forward anywhere."
    
    He did not say another word to Petya but rode in silence all the way.
    When they had come to the edge of the forest it was noticeably growing
    light over the field. Denisov talked in whispers with the esaul and the
    Cossacks rode past Petya and Denisov. When they had all ridden by,
    Denisov touched his horse and rode down the hill. Slipping onto their
    haunches and sliding, the horses descended with their riders into the
    ravine. Petya rode beside Denisov, the pulsation of his body constantly
    increasing. It was getting lighter and lighter, but the mist still hid
    distant objects. Having reached the valley, Denisov looked back and
    nodded to a Cossack beside him.
    
    "The signal!" said he.
    
    The Cossack raised his arm and a shot rang out. In an instant the tramp
    of horses galloping forward was heard, shouts came from various sides,
    and then more shots.
    
    At the first sound of trampling hoofs and shouting, Petya lashed his
    horse and loosening his rein galloped forward, not heeding Denisov who
    shouted at him. It seemed to Petya that at the moment the shot was fired
    it suddenly became as bright as noon. He galloped to the bridge.
    Cossacks were galloping along the road in front of him. On the bridge he
    collided with a Cossack who had fallen behind, but he galloped on. In
    front of him soldiers, probably Frenchmen, were running from right to
    left across the road. One of them fell in the mud under his horse's
    feet.
    
    Cossacks were crowding about a hut, busy with something. From the midst
    of that crowd terrible screams arose. Petya galloped up, and the first
    thing he saw was the pale face and trembling jaw of a Frenchman,
    clutching the handle of a lance that had been aimed at him.
    
    "Hurrah!... Lads!... ours!" shouted Petya, and giving rein to his
    excited horse he galloped forward along the village street.
    
    He could hear shooting ahead of him. Cossacks, hussars, and ragged
    Russian prisoners, who had come running from both sides of the road,
    were shouting something loudly and incoherently. A gallant-looking
    Frenchman, in a blue overcoat, capless, and with a frowning red face,
    had been defending himself against the hussars. When Petya galloped up
    the Frenchman had already fallen. "Too late again!" flashed through
    Petya's mind and he galloped on to the place from which the rapid firing
    could be heard. The shots came from the yard of the landowner's house he
    had visited the night before with Dolokhov. The French were making a
    stand there behind a wattle fence in a garden thickly overgrown with
    bushes and were firing at the Cossacks who crowded at the gateway.
    Through the smoke, as he approached the gate, Petya saw Dolokhov, whose
    face was of a pale-greenish tint, shouting to his men. "Go round! Wait
    for the infantry!" he exclaimed as Petya rode up to him.
    
    "Wait?... Hurrah-ah-ah!" shouted Petya, and without pausing a moment
    galloped to the place whence came the sounds of firing and where the
    smoke was thickest.
    
    A volley was heard, and some bullets whistled past, while others plashed
    against something. The Cossacks and Dolokhov galloped after Petya into
    the gateway of the courtyard. In the dense wavering smoke some of the
    French threw down their arms and ran out of the bushes to meet the
    Cossacks, while others ran down the hill toward the pond. Petya was
    galloping along the courtyard, but instead of holding the reins he waved
    both his arms about rapidly and strangely, slipping farther and farther
    to one side in his saddle. His horse, having galloped up to a campfire
    that was smoldering in the morning light, stopped suddenly, and Petya
    fell heavily on to the wet ground. The Cossacks saw that his arms and
    legs jerked rapidly though his head was quite motionless. A bullet had
    pierced his skull.
    
    After speaking to the senior French officer, who came out of the house
    with a white handkerchief tied to his sword and announced that they
    surrendered, Dolokhov dismounted and went up to Petya, who lay
    motionless with outstretched arms.
    
    "Done for!" he said with a frown, and went to the gate to meet Denisov
    who was riding toward him.
    
    "Killed?" cried Denisov, recognizing from a distance the unmistakably
    lifeless attitude--very familiar to him--in which Petya's body was
    lying.
    
    "Done for!" repeated Dolokhov as if the utterance of these words
    afforded him pleasure, and he went quickly up to the prisoners, who were
    surrounded by Cossacks who had hurried up. "We won't take them!" he
    called out to Denisov.
    
    Denisov did not reply; he rode up to Petya, dismounted, and with
    trembling hands turned toward himself the bloodstained, mud-bespattered
    face which had already gone white.
    
    "I am used to something sweet. Raisins, fine ones... take them all!" he
    recalled Petya's words. And the Cossacks looked round in surprise at the
    sound, like the yelp of a dog, with which Denisov turned away, walked to
    the wattle fence, and seized hold of it.
    
    Among the Russian prisoners rescued by Denisov and Dolokhov was Pierre
    Bezukhov.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    During the whole of their march from Moscow no fresh orders had been
    issued by the French authorities concerning the party of prisoners among
    whom was Pierre. On the twenty-second of October that party was no
    longer with the same troops and baggage trains with which it had left
    Moscow. Half the wagons laden with hardtack that had traveled the first
    stages with them had been captured by Cossacks, the other half had gone
    on ahead. Not one of those dismounted cavalrymen who had marched in
    front of the prisoners was left; they had all disappeared. The artillery
    the prisoners had seen in front of them during the first days was now
    replaced by Marshal Junot's enormous baggage train, convoyed by
    Westphalians. Behind the prisoners came a cavalry baggage train.
    
    From Vyazma onwards the French army, which had till then moved in three
    columns, went on as a single group. The symptoms of disorder that Pierre
    had noticed at their first halting place after leaving Moscow had now
    reached the utmost limit.
    
    The road along which they moved was bordered on both sides by dead
    horses; ragged men who had fallen behind from various regiments
    continually changed about, now joining the moving column, now again
    lagging behind it.
    
    Several times during the march false alarms had been given and the
    soldiers of the escort had raised their muskets, fired, and run
    headlong, crushing one another, but had afterwards reassembled and
    abused each other for their causeless panic.
    
    These three groups traveling together--the cavalry stores, the convoy of
    prisoners, and Junot's baggage train--still constituted a separate and
    united whole, though each of the groups was rapidly melting away.
    
    Of the artillery baggage train which had consisted of a hundred and
    twenty wagons, not more than sixty now remained; the rest had been
    captured or left behind. Some of Junot's wagons also had been captured
    or abandoned. Three wagons had been raided and robbed by stragglers from
    Davout's corps. From the talk of the Germans Pierre learned that a
    larger guard had been allotted to that baggage train than to the
    prisoners, and that one of their comrades, a German soldier, had been
    shot by the marshal's own order because a silver spoon belonging to the
    marshal had been found in his possession.
    
    The group of prisoners had melted away most of all. Of the three hundred
    and thirty men who had set out from Moscow fewer than a hundred now
    remained. The prisoners were more burdensome to the escort than even the
    cavalry saddles or Junot's baggage. They understood that the saddles and
    Junot's spoon might be of some use, but that cold and hungry soldiers
    should have to stand and guard equally cold and hungry Russians who
    froze and lagged behind on the road (in which case the order was to
    shoot them) was not merely incomprehensible but revolting. And the
    escort, as if afraid, in the grievous condition they themselves were in,
    of giving way to the pity they felt for the prisoners and so rendering
    their own plight still worse, treated them with particular moroseness
    and severity.
    
    At Dorogobuzh while the soldiers of the convoy, after locking the
    prisoners in a stable, had gone off to pillage their own stores, several
    of the soldier prisoners tunneled under the wall and ran away, but were
    recaptured by the French and shot.
    
    The arrangement adopted when they started, that the officer prisoners
    should be kept separate from the rest, had long since been abandoned.
    All who could walk went together, and after the third stage Pierre had
    rejoined Karataev and the gray-blue bandy-legged dog that had chosen
    Karataev for its master.
    
    On the third day after leaving Moscow Karataev again fell ill with the
    fever he had suffered from in the hospital in Moscow, and as he grew
    gradually weaker Pierre kept away from him. Pierre did not know why, but
    since Karataev had begun to grow weaker it had cost him an effort to go
    near him. When he did so and heard the subdued moaning with which
    Karataev generally lay down at the halting places, and when he smelled
    the odor emanating from him which was now stronger than before, Pierre
    moved farther away and did not think about him.
    
    While imprisoned in the shed Pierre had learned not with his intellect
    but with his whole being, by life itself, that man is created for
    happiness, that happiness is within him, in the satisfaction of simple
    human needs, and that all unhappiness arises not from privation but from
    superfluity. And now during these last three weeks of the march he had
    learned still another new, consolatory truth--that nothing in this world
    is terrible. He had learned that as there is no condition in which man
    can be happy and entirely free, so there is no condition in which he
    need be unhappy and lack freedom. He learned that suffering and freedom
    have their limits and that those limits are very near together; that the
    person in a bed of roses with one crumpled petal suffered as keenly as
    he now, sleeping on the bare damp earth with one side growing chilled
    while the other was warming; and that when he had put on tight dancing
    shoes he had suffered just as he did now when he walked with bare feet
    that were covered with sores--his footgear having long since fallen to
    pieces. He discovered that when he had married his wife--of his own free
    will as it had seemed to him--he had been no more free than now when
    they locked him up at night in a stable. Of all that he himself
    subsequently termed his sufferings, but which at the time he scarcely
    felt, the worst was the state of his bare, raw, and scab-covered feet.
    (The horseflesh was appetizing and nourishing, the saltpeter flavor of
    the gunpowder they used instead of salt was even pleasant; there was no
    great cold, it was always warm walking in the daytime, and at night
    there were the campfires; the lice that devoured him warmed his body.)
    The one thing that was at first hard to bear was his feet.
    
    After the second day's march Pierre, having examined his feet by the
    campfire, thought it would be impossible to walk on them; but when
    everybody got up he went along, limping, and, when he had warmed up,
    walked without feeling the pain, though at night his feet were more
    terrible to look at than before. However, he did not look at them now,
    but thought of other things.
    
    Only now did Pierre realize the full strength of life in man and the
    saving power he has of transferring his attention from one thing to
    another, which is like the safety valve of a boiler that allows
    superfluous steam to blow off when the pressure exceeds a certain limit.
    
    He did not see and did not hear how they shot the prisoners who lagged
    behind, though more than a hundred perished in that way. He did not
    think of Karataev who grew weaker every day and evidently would soon
    have to share that fate. Still less did Pierre think about himself. The
    harder his position became and the more terrible the future, the more
    independent of that position in which he found himself were the joyful
    and comforting thoughts, memories, and imaginings that came to him.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    At midday on the twenty-second of October Pierre was going uphill along
    the muddy, slippery road, looking at his feet and at the roughness of
    the way. Occasionally he glanced at the familiar crowd around him and
    then again at his feet. The former and the latter were alike familiar
    and his own. The blue-gray bandy legged dog ran merrily along the side
    of the road, sometimes in proof of its agility and self-satisfaction
    lifting one hind leg and hopping along on three, and then again going on
    all four and rushing to bark at the crows that sat on the carrion. The
    dog was merrier and sleeker than it had been in Moscow. All around lay
    the flesh of different animals--from men to horses--in various stages of
    decomposition; and as the wolves were kept off by the passing men the
    dog could eat all it wanted.
    
    It had been raining since morning and had seemed as if at any moment it
    might cease and the sky clear, but after a short break it began raining
    harder than before. The saturated road no longer absorbed the water,
    which ran along the ruts in streams.
    
    Pierre walked along, looking from side to side, counting his steps in
    threes, and reckoning them off on his fingers. Mentally addressing the
    rain, he repeated: "Now then, now then, go on! Pelt harder!"
    
    It seemed to him that he was thinking of nothing, but far down and deep
    within him his soul was occupied with something important and
    comforting. This something was a most subtle spiritual deduction from a
    conversation with Karataev the day before.
    
    At their yesterday's halting place, feeling chilly by a dying campfire,
    Pierre had got up and gone to the next one, which was burning better.
    There Platon Karataev was sitting covered up--head and all--with his
    greatcoat as if it were a vestment, telling the soldiers in his
    effective and pleasant though now feeble voice a story Pierre knew. It
    was already past midnight, the hour when Karataev was usually free of
    his fever and particularly lively. When Pierre reached the fire and
    heard Platon's voice enfeebled by illness, and saw his pathetic face
    brightly lit up by the blaze, he felt a painful prick at his heart. His
    feeling of pity for this man frightened him and he wished to go away,
    but there was no other fire, and Pierre sat down, trying not to look at
    Platon.
    
    "Well, how are you?" he asked.
    
    "How am I? If we grumble at sickness, God won't grant us death," replied
    Platon, and at once resumed the story he had begun.
    
    "And so, brother," he continued, with a smile on his pale emaciated face
    and a particularly happy light in his eyes, "you see, brother..."
    
    Pierre had long been familiar with that story. Karataev had told it to
    him alone some half-dozen times and always with a specially joyful
    emotion. But well as he knew it, Pierre now listened to that tale as to
    something new, and the quiet rapture Karataev evidently felt as he told
    it communicated itself also to Pierre. The story was of an old merchant
    who lived a good and God-fearing life with his family, and who went once
    to the Nizhni fair with a companion--a rich merchant.
    
    Having put up at an inn they both went to sleep, and next morning his
    companion was found robbed and with his throat cut. A bloodstained knife
    was found under the old merchant's pillow. He was tried, knouted, and
    his nostrils having been torn off, "all in due form" as Karataev put it,
    he was sent to hard labor in Siberia.
    
    "And so, brother" (it was at this point that Pierre came up), "ten years
    or more passed by. The old man was living as a convict, submitting as he
    should and doing no wrong. Only he prayed to God for death. Well, one
    night the convicts were gathered just as we are, with the old man among
    them. And they began telling what each was suffering for, and how they
    had sinned against God. One told how he had taken a life, another had
    taken two, a third had set a house on fire, while another had simply
    been a vagrant and had done nothing. So they asked the old man: 'What
    are you being punished for, Daddy?'--'I, my dear brothers,' said he, 'am
    being punished for my own and other men's sins. But I have not killed
    anyone or taken anything that was not mine, but have only helped my
    poorer brothers. I was a merchant, my dear brothers, and had much
    property. 'And he went on to tell them all about it in due order. 'I
    don't grieve for myself,' he says, 'God, it seems, has chastened me.
    Only I am sorry for my old wife and the children,' and the old man began
    to weep. Now it happened that in the group was the very man who had
    killed the other merchant. 'Where did it happen, Daddy?' he said. 'When,
    and in what month?' He asked all about it and his heart began to ache.
    So he comes up to the old man like this, and falls down at his feet!
    'You are perishing because of me, Daddy,' he says. 'It's quite true,
    lads, that this man,' he says, 'is being tortured innocently and for
    nothing! I,' he says, 'did that deed, and I put the knife under your
    head while you were asleep. Forgive me, Daddy,' he says, 'for Christ's
    sake!'"
    
    Karataev paused, smiling joyously as he gazed into the fire, and he drew
    the logs together.
    
    "And the old man said, 'God will forgive you, we are all sinners in His
    sight. I suffer for my own sins,' and he wept bitter tears. Well, and
    what do you think, dear friends?" Karataev continued, his face
    brightening more and more with a rapturous smile as if what he now had
    to tell contained the chief charm and the whole meaning of his story:
    "What do you think, dear fellows? That murderer confessed to the
    authorities. 'I have taken six lives,' he says (he was a great sinner),
    'but what I am most sorry for is this old man. Don't let him suffer
    because of me.' So he confessed and it was all written down and the
    papers sent off in due form. The place was a long way off, and while
    they were judging, what with one thing and another, filling in the
    papers all in due form--the authorities I mean--time passed. The affair
    reached the Tsar. After a while the Tsar's decree came: to set the
    merchant free and give him a compensation that had been awarded. The
    paper arrived and they began to look for the old man. 'Where is the old
    man who has been suffering innocently and in vain? A paper has come from
    the Tsar!' so they began looking for him," here Karataev's lower jaw
    trembled, "but God had already forgiven him--he was dead! That's how it
    was, dear fellows!" Karataev concluded and sat for a long time silent,
    gazing before him with a smile.
    
    And Pierre's soul was dimly but joyfully filled not by the story itself
    but by its mysterious significance: by the rapturous joy that lit up
    Karataev's face as he told it, and the mystic significance of that joy.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    "A vos places!" * suddenly cried a voice.
    
    * "To your places."
    
    A pleasant feeling of excitement and an expectation of something joyful
    and solemn was aroused among the soldiers of the convoy and the
    prisoners. From all sides came shouts of command, and from the left came
    smartly dressed cavalrymen on good horses, passing the prisoners at a
    trot. The expression on all faces showed the tension people feel at the
    approach of those in authority. The prisoners thronged together and were
    pushed off the road. The convoy formed up.
    
    "The Emperor! The Emperor! The Marshal! The Duke!" and hardly had the
    sleek cavalry passed, before a carriage drawn by six gray horses rattled
    by. Pierre caught a glimpse of a man in a three-cornered hat with a
    tranquil look on his handsome, plump, white face. It was one of the
    marshals. His eye fell on Pierre's large and striking figure, and in the
    expression with which he frowned and looked away Pierre thought he
    detected sympathy and a desire to conceal that sympathy.
    
    The general in charge of the stores galloped after the carriage with a
    red and frightened face, whipping up his skinny horse. Several officers
    formed a group and some soldiers crowded round them. Their faces all
    looked excited and worried.
    
    "What did he say? What did he say?" Pierre heard them ask.
    
    While the marshal was passing, the prisoners had huddled together in a
    crowd, and Pierre saw Karataev whom he had not yet seen that morning. He
    sat in his short overcoat leaning against a birch tree. On his face,
    besides the look of joyful emotion it had worn yesterday while telling
    the tale of the merchant who suffered innocently, there was now an
    expression of quiet solemnity.
    
    Karataev looked at Pierre with his kindly round eyes now filled with
    tears, evidently wishing him to come near that he might say something to
    him. But Pierre was not sufficiently sure of himself. He made as if he
    did not notice that look and moved hastily away.
    
    When the prisoners again went forward Pierre looked round. Karataev was
    still sitting at the side of the road under the birch tree and two
    Frenchmen were talking over his head. Pierre did not look round again
    but went limping up the hill.
    
    From behind, where Karataev had been sitting, came the sound of a shot.
    Pierre heard it plainly, but at that moment he remembered that he had
    not yet finished reckoning up how many stages still remained to
    Smolensk--a calculation he had begun before the marshal went by. And he
    again started reckoning. Two French soldiers ran past Pierre, one of
    whom carried a lowered and smoking gun. They both looked pale, and in
    the expression on their faces--one of them glanced timidly at Pierre--
    there was something resembling what he had seen on the face of the young
    soldier at the execution. Pierre looked at the soldier and remembered
    that, two days before, that man had burned his shirt while drying it at
    the fire and how they had laughed at him.
    
    Behind him, where Karataev had been sitting, the dog began to howl.
    "What a stupid beast! Why is it howling?" thought Pierre.
    
    His comrades, the prisoner soldiers walking beside him, avoided looking
    back at the place where the shot had been fired and the dog was howling,
    just as Pierre did, but there was a set look on all their faces.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    The stores, the prisoners, and the marshal's baggage train stopped at
    the village of Shamshevo. The men crowded together round the campfires.
    Pierre went up to the fire, ate some roast horseflesh, lay down with his
    back to the fire, and immediately fell asleep. He again slept as he had
    done at Mozhaysk after the battle of Borodino.
    
    Again real events mingled with dreams and again someone, he or another,
    gave expression to his thoughts, and even to the same thoughts that had
    been expressed in his dream at Mozhaysk.
    
    "Life is everything. Life is God. Everything changes and moves and that
    movement is God. And while there is life there is joy in consciousness
    of the divine. To love life is to love God. Harder and more blessed than
    all else is to love this life in one's sufferings, in innocent
    sufferings."
    
    "Karataev!" came to Pierre's mind.
    
    And suddenly he saw vividly before him a long-forgotten, kindly old man
    who had given him geography lessons in Switzerland. "Wait a bit," said
    the old man, and showed Pierre a globe. This globe was alive--a
    vibrating ball without fixed dimensions. Its whole surface consisted of
    drops closely pressed together, and all these drops moved and changed
    places, sometimes several of them merging into one, sometimes one
    dividing into many. Each drop tried to spread out and occupy as much
    space as possible, but others striving to do the same compressed it,
    sometimes destroyed it, and sometimes merged with it.
    
    "That is life," said the old teacher.
    
    "How simple and clear it is," thought Pierre. "How is it I did not know
    it before?"
    
    "God is in the midst, and each drop tries to expand so as to reflect Him
    to the greatest extent. And it grows, merges, disappears from the
    surface, sinks to the depths, and again emerges. There now, Karataev has
    spread out and disappeared. Do you understand, my child?" said the
    teacher.
    
    "Do you understand, damn you?" shouted a voice, and Pierre woke up.
    
    He lifted himself and sat up. A Frenchman who had just pushed a Russian
    soldier away was squatting by the fire, engaged in roasting a piece of
    meat stuck on a ramrod. His sleeves were rolled up and his sinewy,
    hairy, red hands with their short fingers deftly turned the ramrod. His
    brown morose face with frowning brows was clearly visible by the glow of
    the charcoal.
    
    "It's all the same to him," he muttered, turning quickly to a soldier
    who stood behind him. "Brigand! Get away!"
    
    And twisting the ramrod he looked gloomily at Pierre, who turned away
    and gazed into the darkness. A prisoner, the Russian soldier the
    Frenchman had pushed away, was sitting near the fire patting something
    with his hand. Looking more closely Pierre recognized the blue-gray dog,
    sitting beside the soldier, wagging its tail.
    
    "Ah, he's come?" said Pierre. "And Plat-" he began, but did not finish.
    
    Suddenly and simultaneously a crowd of memories awoke in his fancy--of
    the look Platon had given him as he sat under the tree, of the shot
    heard from that spot, of the dog's howl, of the guilty faces of the two
    Frenchmen as they ran past him, of the lowered and smoking gun, and of
    Karataev's absence at this halt--and he was on the point of realizing
    that Karataev had been killed, but just at that instant, he knew not
    why, the recollection came to his mind of a summer evening he had spent
    with a beautiful Polish lady on the veranda of his house in Kiev. And
    without linking up the events of the day or drawing a conclusion from
    them, Pierre closed his eyes, seeing a vision of the country in
    summertime mingled with memories of bathing and of the liquid, vibrating
    globe, and he sank into water so that it closed over his head.
    
    Before sunrise he was awakened by shouts and loud and rapid firing.
    French soldiers were running past him.
    
    "The Cossacks!" one of them shouted, and a moment later a crowd of
    Russians surrounded Pierre.
    
    For a long time he could not understand what was happening to him. All
    around he heard his comrades sobbing with joy.
    
    "Brothers! Dear fellows! Darlings!" old soldiers exclaimed, weeping, as
    they embraced Cossacks and hussars.
    
    The hussars and Cossacks crowded round the prisoners; one offered them
    clothes, another boots, and a third bread. Pierre sobbed as he sat among
    them and could not utter a word. He hugged the first soldier who
    approached him, and kissed him, weeping.
    
    Dolokhov stood at the gate of the ruined house, letting a crowd of
    disarmed Frenchmen pass by. The French, excited by all that had
    happened, were talking loudly among themselves, but as they passed
    Dolokhov who gently switched his boots with his whip and watched them
    with cold glassy eyes that boded no good, they became silent. On the
    opposite side stood Dolokhov's Cossack, counting the prisoners and
    marking off each hundred with a chalk line on the gate.
    
    "How many?" Dolokhov asked the Cossack.
    
    "The second hundred," replied the Cossack.
    
    "Filez, filez!" * Dolokhov kept saying, having adopted this expression
    from the French, and when his eyes met those of the prisoners they
    flashed with a cruel light.
    
    * "Get along, get along!"
    
    Denisov, bareheaded and with a gloomy face, walked behind some Cossacks
    who were carrying the body of Petya Rostov to a hole that had been dug
    in the garden.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    After the twenty-eighth of October when the frosts began, the flight of
    the French assumed a still more tragic character, with men freezing, or
    roasting themselves to death at the campfires, while carriages with
    people dressed in furs continued to drive past, carrying away the
    property that had been stolen by the Emperor, kings, and dukes; but the
    process of the flight and disintegration of the French army went on
    essentially as before.
    
    From Moscow to Vyazma the French army of seventy-three thousand men not
    reckoning the Guards (who did nothing during the whole war but pillage)
    was reduced to thirty-six thousand, though not more than five thousand
    had fallen in battle. From this beginning the succeeding terms of the
    progression could be determined mathematically. The French army melted
    away and perished at the same rate from Moscow to Vyazma, from Vyazma to
    Smolensk, from Smolensk to the Berezina, and from the Berezina to Vilna-
    -independently of the greater or lesser intensity of the cold, the
    pursuit, the barring of the way, or any other particular conditions.
    Beyond Vyazma the French army instead of moving in three columns huddled
    together into one mass, and so went on to the end. Berthier wrote to his
    Emperor (we know how far commanding officers allow themselves to diverge
    from the truth in describing the condition of an army) and this is what
    he said:
    
    I deem it my duty to report to Your Majesty the condition of the various
    corps I have had occasion to observe during different stages of the last
    two or three days' march. They are almost disbanded. Scarcely a quarter
    of the soldiers remain with the standards of their regiments, the others
    go off by themselves in different directions hoping to find food and
    escape discipline. In general they regard Smolensk as the place where
    they hope to recover. During the last few days many of the men have been
    seen to throw away their cartridges and their arms. In such a state of
    affairs, whatever your ultimate plans may be, the interest of Your
    Majesty's service demands that the army should be rallied at Smolensk
    and should first of all be freed from ineffectives, such as dismounted
    cavalry, unnecessary baggage, and artillery material that is no longer
    in proportion to the present forces. The soldiers, who are worn out with
    hunger and fatigue, need these supplies as well as a few days' rest.
    Many have died these last days on the road or at the bivouacs. This
    state of things is continually becoming worse and makes one fear that
    unless a prompt remedy is applied the troops will no longer be under
    control in case of an engagement.
    
    November 9: twenty miles from Smolensk.
    
    After staggering into Smolensk which seemed to them a promised land, the
    French, searching for food, killed one another, sacked their own stores,
    and when everything had been plundered fled farther.
    
    They all went without knowing whither or why they were going. Still less
    did that genius, Napoleon, know it, for no one issued any orders to him.
    But still he and those about him retained their old habits: wrote
    commands, letters, reports, and orders of the day; called one another
    sire, mon cousin, prince d'Eckmuhl, roi de Naples, and so on. But these
    orders and reports were only on paper, nothing in them was acted upon
    for they could not be carried out, and though they entitled one another
    Majesties, Highnesses, or Cousins, they all felt that they were
    miserable wretches who had done much evil for which they had now to pay.
    And though they pretended to be concerned about the army, each was
    thinking only of himself and of how to get away quickly and save
    himself.
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    The movements of the Russian and French armies during the campaign from
    Moscow back to the Niemen were like those in a game of Russian
    blindman's bluff, in which two players are blindfolded and one of them
    occasionally rings a little bell to inform the catcher of his
    whereabouts. First he rings his bell fearlessly, but when he gets into a
    tight place he runs away as quietly as he can, and often thinking to
    escape runs straight into his opponent's arms.
    
    At first while they were still moving along the Kaluga road, Napoleon's
    armies made their presence known, but later when they reached the
    Smolensk road they ran holding the clapper of their bell tight--and
    often thinking they were escaping ran right into the Russians.
    
    Owing to the rapidity of the French flight and the Russian pursuit and
    the consequent exhaustion of the horses, the chief means of
    approximately ascertaining the enemy's position--by cavalry scouting--
    was not available. Besides, as a result of the frequent and rapid change
    of position by each army, even what information was obtained could not
    be delivered in time. If news was received one day that the enemy had
    been in a certain position the day before, by the third day when
    something could have been done, that army was already two days' march
    farther on and in quite another position.
    
    One army fled and the other pursued. Beyond Smolensk there were several
    different roads available for the French, and one would have thought
    that during their stay of four days they might have learned where the
    enemy was, might have arranged some more advantageous plan and
    undertaken something new. But after a four days' halt the mob, with no
    maneuvers or plans, again began running along the beaten track, neither
    to the right nor to the left but along the old--the worst--road, through
    Krasnoe and Orsha.
    
    Expecting the enemy from behind and not in front, the French separated
    in their flight and spread out over a distance of twenty-four hours. In
    front of them all fled the Emperor, then the kings, then the dukes. The
    Russian army, expecting Napoleon to take the road to the right beyond
    the Dnieper--which was the only reasonable thing for him to do--
    themselves turned to the right and came out onto the highroad at
    Krasnoe. And here as in a game of blindman's buff the French ran into
    our vanguard. Seeing their enemy unexpectedly the French fell into
    confusion and stopped short from the sudden fright, but then they
    resumed their flight, abandoning their comrades who were farther behind.
    Then for three days separate portions of the French army--first Murat's
    (the vice-king's), then Davout's, and then Ney's--ran, as it were, the
    gauntlet of the Russian army. They abandoned one another, abandoned all
    their heavy baggage, their artillery, and half their men, and fled,
    getting past the Russians by night by making semicircles to the right.
    
    Ney, who came last, had been busying himself blowing up the walls of
    Smolensk which were in nobody's way, because despite the unfortunate
    plight of the French or because of it, they wished to punish the floor
    against which they had hurt themselves. Ney, who had had a corps of ten
    thousand men, reached Napoleon at Orsha with only one thousand men left,
    having abandoned all the rest and all his cannon, and having crossed the
    Dnieper at night by stealth at a wooded spot.
    
    From Orsha they fled farther along the road to Vilna, still playing at
    blindman's buff with the pursuing army. At the Berezina they again
    became disorganized, many were drowned and many surrendered, but those
    who got across the river fled farther. Their supreme chief donned a fur
    coat and, having seated himself in a sleigh, galloped on alone,
    abandoning his companions. The others who could do so drove away too,
    leaving those who could not to surrender or die.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    This campaign consisted in a flight of the French during which they did
    all they could to destroy themselves. From the time they turned onto the
    Kaluga road to the day their leader fled from the army, none of the
    movements of the crowd had any sense. So one might have thought that
    regarding this period of the campaign the historians, who attributed the
    actions of the mass to the will of one man, would have found it
    impossible to make the story of the retreat fit their theory. But no!
    Mountains of books have been written by the historians about this
    campaign, and everywhere are described Napoleon's arrangements, the
    maneuvers, and his profound plans which guided the army, as well as the
    military genius shown by his marshals.
    
    The retreat from Malo-Yaroslavets when he had a free road into a well-
    supplied district and the parallel road was open to him along which
    Kutuzov afterwards pursued him--this unnecessary retreat along a
    devastated road--is explained to us as being due to profound
    considerations. Similarly profound considerations are given for his
    retreat from Smolensk to Orsha. Then his heroism at Krasnoe is
    described, where he is reported to have been prepared to accept battle
    and take personal command, and to have walked about with a birch stick
    and said:
    
    "J'ai assez fait l'empereur; il est temps de faire le general," * but
    nevertheless immediately ran away again, abandoning to its fate the
    scattered fragments of the army he left behind.
    
    * "I have acted the Emperor long enough; it is time to act the general."
    
    Then we are told of the greatness of soul of the marshals, especially of
    Ney--a greatness of soul consisting in this: that he made his way by
    night around through the forest and across the Dnieper and escaped to
    Orsha, abandoning standards, artillery, and nine tenths of his men.
    
    And lastly, the final departure of the great Emperor from his heroic
    army is presented to us by the historians as something great and
    characteristic of genius. Even that final running away, described in
    ordinary language as the lowest depth of baseness which every child is
    taught to be ashamed of--even that act finds justification in the
    historians' language.
    
    When it is impossible to stretch the very elastic threads of historical
    ratiocination any farther, when actions are clearly contrary to all that
    humanity calls right or even just, the historians produce a saving
    conception of "greatness." "Greatness," it seems, excludes the standards
    of right and wrong. For the "great" man nothing is wrong, there is no
    atrocity for which a "great" man can be blamed.
    
    "C'est grand!" * say the historians, and there no longer exists either
    good or evil but only "grand" and "not grand." Grand is good, not grand
    is bad. Grand is the characteristic, in their conception, of some
    special animals called "heroes." And Napoleon, escaping home in a warm
    fur coat and leaving to perish those who were not merely his comrades
    but were (in his opinion) men he had brought there, feels que c'est
    grand, *(2) and his soul is tranquil.
    
    * "It is great."
    
    * (2) That it is great.
    
    "Du sublime (he saw something sublime in himself) au ridicule il n'y a
    qu'un pas," * said he. And the whole world for fifty years has been
    repeating: "Sublime! Grand! Napoleon le Grand!" Du sublime au ridicule
    il n'y a qu'un pas.
    
    * "From the sublime to the ridiculous is but a step."
    
    And it occurs to no one that to admit a greatness not commensurable with
    the standard of right and wrong is merely to admit one's own nothingness
    and immeasurable meanness.
    
    For us with the standard of good and evil given us by Christ, no human
    actions are incommensurable. And there is no greatness where simplicity,
    goodness, and truth are absent.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    What Russian, reading the account of the last part of the campaign of
    1812, has not experienced an uncomfortable feeling of regret,
    dissatisfaction, and perplexity? Who has not asked himself how it is
    that the French were not all captured or destroyed when our three armies
    surrounded them in superior numbers, when the disordered French, hungry
    and freezing, surrendered in crowds, and when (as the historians relate)
    the aim of the Russians was to stop the French, to cut them off, and
    capture them all?
    
    How was it that the Russian army, which when numerically weaker than the
    French had given battle at Borodino, did not achieve its purpose when it
    had surrounded the French on three sides and when its aim was to capture
    them? Can the French be so enormously superior to us that when we had
    surrounded them with superior forces we could not beat them? How could
    that happen?
    
    History (or what is called by that name) replying to these questions
    says that this occurred because Kutuzov and Tormasov and Chichagov, and
    this man and that man, did not execute such and such maneuvers...
    
    But why did they not execute those maneuvers? And why if they were
    guilty of not carrying out a prearranged plan were they not tried and
    punished? But even if we admitted that Kutuzov, Chichagov, and others
    were the cause of the Russian failures, it is still incomprehensible
    why, the position of the Russian army being what it was at Krasnoe and
    at the Berezina (in both cases we had superior forces), the French army
    with its marshals, kings, and Emperor was not captured, if that was what
    the Russians aimed at.
    
    The explanation of this strange fact given by Russian military
    historians (to the effect that Kutuzov hindered an attack) is unfounded,
    for we know that he could not restrain the troops from attacking at
    Vyazma and Tarutino.
    
    Why was the Russian army--which with inferior forces had withstood the
    enemy in full strength at Borodino--defeated at Krasnoe and the Berezina
    by the disorganized crowds of the French when it was numerically
    superior?
    
    If the aim of the Russians consisted in cutting off and capturing
    Napoleon and his marshals--and that aim was not merely frustrated but
    all attempts to attain it were most shamefully baffled--then this last
    period of the campaign is quite rightly considered by the French to be a
    series of victories, and quite wrongly considered victorious by Russian
    historians.
    
    The Russian military historians in so far as they submit to claims of
    logic must admit that conclusion, and in spite of their lyrical
    rhapsodies about valor, devotion, and so forth, must reluctantly admit
    that the French retreat from Moscow was a series of victories for
    Napoleon and defeats for Kutuzov.
    
    But putting national vanity entirely aside one feels that such a
    conclusion involves a contradiction, since the series of French
    victories brought the French complete destruction, while the series of
    Russian defeats led to the total destruction of their enemy and the
    liberation of their country.
    
    The source of this contradiction lies in the fact that the historians
    studying the events from the letters of the sovereigns and the generals,
    from memoirs, reports, projects, and so forth, have attributed to this
    last period of the war of 1812 an aim that never existed, namely that of
    cutting off and capturing Napoleon with his marshals and his army.
    
    There never was or could have been such an aim, for it would have been
    senseless and its attainment quite impossible.
    
    It would have been senseless, first because Napoleon's disorganized army
    was flying from Russia with all possible speed, that is to say, was
    doing just what every Russian desired. So what was the use of performing
    various operations on the French who were running away as fast as they
    possibly could?
    
    Secondly, it would have been senseless to block the passage of men whose
    whole energy was directed to flight.
    
    Thirdly, it would have been senseless to sacrifice one's own troops in
    order to destroy the French army, which without external interference
    was destroying itself at such a rate that, though its path was not
    blocked, it could not carry across the frontier more than it actually
    did in December, namely a hundredth part of the original army.
    
    Fourthly, it would have been senseless to wish to take captive the
    Emperor, kings, and dukes--whose capture would have been in the highest
    degree embarrassing for the Russians, as the most adroit diplomatists of
    the time (Joseph de Maistre and others) recognized. Still more senseless
    would have been the wish to capture army corps of the French, when our
    own army had melted away to half before reaching Krasnoe and a whole
    division would have been needed to convoy the corps of prisoners, and
    when our men were not always getting full rations and the prisoners
    already taken were perishing of hunger.
    
    All the profound plans about cutting off and capturing Napoleon and his
    army were like the plan of a market gardener who, when driving out of
    his garden a cow that had trampled down the beds he had planted, should
    run to the gate and hit the cow on the head. The only thing to be said
    in excuse of that gardener would be that he was very angry. But not even
    that could be said for those who drew up this project, for it was not
    they who had suffered from the trampled beds.
    
    But besides the fact that cutting off Napoleon with his army would have
    been senseless, it was impossible.
    
    It was impossible first because--as experience shows that a three-mile
    movement of columns on a battlefield never coincides with the plans--the
    probability of Chichagov, Kutuzov, and Wittgenstein effecting a junction
    on time at an appointed place was so remote as to be tantamount to
    impossibility, as in fact thought Kutuzov, who when he received the plan
    remarked that diversions planned over great distances do not yield the
    desired results.
    
    Secondly it was impossible, because to paralyze the momentum with which
    Napoleon's army was retiring, incomparably greater forces than the
    Russians possessed would have been required.
    
    Thirdly it was impossible, because the military term "to cut off" has no
    meaning. One can cut off a slice of bread, but not an army. To cut off
    an army--to bar its road--is quite impossible, for there is always
    plenty of room to avoid capture and there is the night when nothing can
    be seen, as the military scientists might convince themselves by the
    example of Krasnoe and of the Berezina. It is only possible to capture
    prisoners if they agree to be captured, just as it is only possible to
    catch a swallow if it settles on one's hand. Men can only be taken
    prisoners if they surrender according to the rules of strategy and
    tactics, as the Germans did. But the French troops quite rightly did not
    consider that this suited them, since death by hunger and cold awaited
    them in flight or captivity alike.
    
    Fourthly and chiefly it was impossible, because never since the world
    began has a war been fought under such conditions as those that obtained
    in 1812, and the Russian army in its pursuit of the French strained its
    strength to the utmost and could not have done more without destroying
    itself.
    
    During the movement of the Russian army from Tarutino to Krasnoe it lost
    fifty thousand sick or stragglers, that is a number equal to the
    population of a large provincial town. Half the men fell out of the army
    without a battle.
    
    And it is of this period of the campaign--when the army lacked boots and
    sheepskin coats, was short of provisions and without vodka, and was
    camping out at night for months in the snow with fifteen degrees of
    frost, when there were only seven or eight hours of daylight and the
    rest was night in which the influence of discipline cannot be
    maintained, when men were taken into that region of death where
    discipline fails, not for a few hours only as in a battle, but for
    months, where they were every moment fighting death from hunger and
    cold, when half the army perished in a single month--it is of this
    period of the campaign that the historians tell us how Miloradovich
    should have made a flank march to such and such a place, Tormasov to
    another place, and Chichagov should have crossed (more than knee-deep in
    snow) to somewhere else, and how so-and-so "routed" and "cut off" the
    French and so on and so on.
    
    The Russians, half of whom died, did all that could and should have been
    done to attain an end worthy of the nation, and they are not to blame
    because other Russians, sitting in warm rooms, proposed that they should
    do what was impossible.
    
    All that strange contradiction now difficult to understand between the
    facts and the historical accounts only arises because the historians
    dealing with the matter have written the history of the beautiful words
    and sentiments of various generals, and not the history of the events.
    
    To them the words of Miloradovich seem very interesting, and so do their
    surmises and the rewards this or that general received; but the question
    of those fifty thousand men who were left in hospitals and in graves
    does not even interest them, for it does not come within the range of
    their investigation.
    
    Yet one need only discard the study of the reports and general plans and
    consider the movement of those hundreds of thousands of men who took a
    direct part in the events, and all the questions that seemed insoluble
    easily and simply receive an immediate and certain solution.
    
    The aim of cutting off Napoleon and his army never existed except in the
    imaginations of a dozen people. It could not exist because it was
    senseless and unattainable.
    
    The people had a single aim: to free their land from invasion. That aim
    was attained in the first place of itself, as the French ran away, and
    so it was only necessary not to stop their flight. Secondly it was
    attained by the guerrilla warfare which was destroying the French, and
    thirdly by the fact that a large Russian army was following the French,
    ready to use its strength in case their movement stopped.
    
    The Russian army had to act like a whip to a running animal. And the
    experienced driver knew it was better to hold the whip raised as a
    menace than to strike the running animal on the head.
    
    BOOK FIFTEEN: 1812 - 13
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    When seeing a dying animal a man feels a sense of horror: substance
    similar to his own is perishing before his eyes. But when it is a
    beloved and intimate human being that is dying, besides this horror at
    the extinction of life there is a severance, a spiritual wound, which
    like a physical wound is sometimes fatal and sometimes heals, but always
    aches and shrinks at any external irritating touch.
    
    After Prince Andrew's death Natasha and Princess Mary alike felt this.
    Drooping in spirit and closing their eyes before the menacing cloud of
    death that overhung them, they dared not look life in the face. They
    carefully guarded their open wounds from any rough and painful contact.
    Everything: a carriage passing rapidly in the street, a summons to
    dinner, the maid's inquiry what dress to prepare, or worse still any
    word of insincere or feeble sympathy, seemed an insult, painfully
    irritated the wound, interrupting that necessary quiet in which they
    both tried to listen to the stern and dreadful choir that still
    resounded in their imagination, and hindered their gazing into those
    mysterious limitless vistas that for an instant had opened out before
    them.
    
    Only when alone together were they free from such outrage and pain. They
    spoke little even to one another, and when they did it was of very
    unimportant matters.
    
    Both avoided any allusion to the future. To admit the possibility of a
    future seemed to them to insult his memory. Still more carefully did
    they avoid anything relating to him who was dead. It seemed to them that
    what they had lived through and experienced could not be expressed in
    words, and that any reference to the details of his life infringed the
    majesty and sacredness of the mystery that had been accomplished before
    their eyes.
    
    Continued abstention from speech, and constant avoidance of everything
    that might lead up to the subject--this halting on all sides at the
    boundary of what they might not mention--brought before their minds with
    still greater purity and clearness what they were both feeling.
    
    But pure and complete sorrow is as impossible as pure and complete joy.
    Princess Mary, in her position as absolute and independent arbiter of
    her own fate and guardian and instructor of her nephew, was the first to
    be called back to life from that realm of sorrow in which she had dwelt
    for the first fortnight. She received letters from her relations to
    which she had to reply; the room in which little Nicholas had been put
    was damp and he began to cough; Alpatych came to Yaroslavl with reports
    on the state of their affairs and with advice and suggestions that they
    should return to Moscow to the house on the Vozdvizhenka Street, which
    had remained uninjured and needed only slight repairs. Life did not
    stand still and it was necessary to live. Hard as it was for Princess
    Mary to emerge from the realm of secluded contemplation in which she had
    lived till then, and sorry and almost ashamed as she felt to leave
    Natasha alone, yet the cares of life demanded her attention and she
    involuntarily yielded to them. She went through the accounts with
    Alpatych, conferred with Dessalles about her nephew, and gave orders and
    made preparations for the journey to Moscow.
    
    Natasha remained alone and, from the time Princess Mary began making
    preparations for departure, held aloof from her too.
    
    Princess Mary asked the countess to let Natasha go with her to Moscow,
    and both parents gladly accepted this offer, for they saw their daughter
    losing strength every day and thought that a change of scene and the
    advice of Moscow doctors would be good for her.
    
    "I am not going anywhere," Natasha replied when this was proposed to
    her. "Do please just leave me alone!" And she ran out of the room, with
    difficulty refraining from tears of vexation and irritation rather than
    of sorrow.
    
    After she felt herself deserted by Princes Mary and alone in her grief,
    Natasha spent most of the time in her room by herself, sitting huddled
    up feet and all in the corner of the sofa, tearing and twisting
    something with her slender nervous fingers and gazing intently and
    fixedly at whatever her eyes chanced to fall on. This solitude exhausted
    and tormented her but she was in absolute need of it. As soon as anyone
    entered she got up quickly, changed her position and expression, and
    picked up a book or some sewing, evidently waiting impatiently for the
    intruder to go.
    
    She felt all the time as if she might at any moment penetrate that on
    which--with a terrible questioning too great for her strength--her
    spiritual gaze was fixed.
    
    One day toward the end of December Natasha, pale and thin, dressed in a
    black woolen gown, her plaited hair negligently twisted into a knot, was
    crouched feet and all in the corner of her sofa, nervously crumpling and
    smoothing out the end of her sash while she looked at a corner of the
    door.
    
    She was gazing in the direction in which he had gone--to the other side
    of life. And that other side of life, of which she had never before
    thought and which had formerly seemed to her so far away and improbable,
    was now nearer and more akin and more comprehensible than this side of
    life, where everything was either emptiness and desolation or suffering
    and indignity.
    
    She was gazing where she knew him to be; but she could not imagine him
    otherwise than as he had been here. She now saw him again as he had been
    at Mytishchi, at Troitsa, and at Yaroslavl.
    
    She saw his face, heard his voice, repeated his words and her own, and
    sometimes devised other words they might have spoken.
    
    There he is lying back in an armchair in his velvet cloak, leaning his
    head on his thin pale hand. His chest is dreadfully hollow and his
    shoulders raised. His lips are firmly closed, his eyes glitter, and a
    wrinkle comes and goes on his pale forehead. One of his legs twitches
    just perceptibly, but rapidly. Natasha knows that he is struggling with
    terrible pain. "What is that pain like? Why does he have that pain? What
    does he feel? How does it hurt him?" thought Natasha. He noticed her
    watching him, raised his eyes, and began to speak seriously:
    
    "One thing would be terrible," said he: "to bind oneself forever to a
    suffering man. It would be continual torture." And he looked searchingly
    at her. Natasha as usual answered before she had time to think what she
    would say. She said: "This can't go on--it won't. You will get well--
    quite well."
    
    She now saw him from the commencement of that scene and relived what she
    had then felt. She recalled his long sad and severe look at those words
    and understood the meaning of the rebuke and despair in that protracted
    gaze.
    
    "I agreed," Natasha now said to herself, "that it would be dreadful if
    he always continued to suffer. I said it then only because it would have
    been dreadful for him, but he understood it differently. He thought it
    would be dreadful for me. He then still wished to live and feared death.
    And I said it so awkwardly and stupidly! I did not say what I meant. I
    thought quite differently. Had I said what I thought, I should have
    said: even if he had to go on dying, to die continually before my eyes,
    I should have been happy compared with what I am now. Now there is
    nothing... nobody. Did he know that? No, he did not and never will know
    it. And now it will never, never be possible to put it right." And now
    he again seemed to be saying the same words to her, only in her
    imagination Natasha this time gave him a different answer. She stopped
    him and said: "Terrible for you, but not for me! You know that for me
    there is nothing in life but you, and to suffer with you is the greatest
    happiness for me," and he took her hand and pressed it as he had pressed
    it that terrible evening four days before his death. And in her
    imagination she said other tender and loving words which she might have
    said then but only spoke now: "I love thee!... thee! I love, love..."
    she said, convulsively pressing her hands and setting her teeth with a
    desperate effort...
    
    She was overcome by sweet sorrow and tears were already rising in her
    eyes; then she suddenly asked herself to whom she was saying this. Again
    everything was shrouded in hard, dry perplexity, and again with a
    strained frown she peered toward the world where he was. And now, now it
    seemed to her she was penetrating the mystery.... But at the instant
    when it seemed that the incomprehensible was revealing itself to her a
    loud rattle of the door handle struck painfully on her ears. Dunyasha,
    her maid, entered the room quickly and abruptly with a frightened look
    on her face and showing no concern for her mistress.
    
    "Come to your Papa at once, please!" said she with a strange, excited
    look. "A misfortune... about Peter Ilynich... a letter," she finished
    with a sob.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    Besides a feeling of aloofness from everybody Natasha was feeling a
    special estrangement from the members of her own family. All of them--
    her father, mother, and Sonya--were so near to her, so familiar, so
    commonplace, that all their words and feelings seemed an insult to the
    world in which she had been living of late, and she felt not merely
    indifferent to them but regarded them with hostility. She heard
    Dunyasha's words about Peter Ilynich and a misfortune, but did not grasp
    them.
    
    "What misfortune? What misfortune can happen to them? They just live
    their own old, quiet, and commonplace life," thought Natasha.
    
    As she entered the ballroom her father was hurriedly coming out of her
    mother's room. His face was puckered up and wet with tears. He had
    evidently run out of that room to give vent to the sobs that were
    choking him. When he saw Natasha he waved his arms despairingly and
    burst into convulsively painful sobs that distorted his soft round face.
    
    "Pe... Petya... Go, go, she... is calling..." and weeping like a child
    and quickly shuffling on his feeble legs to a chair, he almost fell into
    it, covering his face with his hands.
    
    Suddenly an electric shock seemed to run through Natasha's whole being.
    Terrible anguish struck her heart, she felt a dreadful ache as if
    something was being torn inside her and she were dying. But the pain was
    immediately followed by a feeling of release from the oppressive
    constraint that had prevented her taking part in life. The sight of her
    father, the terribly wild cries of her mother that she heard through the
    door, made her immediately forget herself and her own grief.
    
    She ran to her father, but he feebly waved his arm, pointing to her
    mother's door. Princess Mary, pale and with quivering chin, came out
    from that room and taking Natasha by the arm said something to her.
    Natasha neither saw nor heard her. She went in with rapid steps, pausing
    at the door for an instant as if struggling with herself, and then ran
    to her mother.
    
    The countess was lying in an armchair in a strange and awkward position,
    stretching out and beating her head against the wall. Sonya and the
    maids were holding her arms.
    
    "Natasha! Natasha!..." cried the countess. "It's not true... it's not
    true... He's lying... Natasha!" she shrieked, pushing those around her
    away. "Go away, all of you; it's not true! Killed!... ha, ha, ha!...
    It's not true!"
    
    Natasha put one knee on the armchair, stooped over her mother, embraced
    her, and with unexpected strength raised her, turned her face toward
    herself, and clung to her.
    
    "Mummy!... darling!... I am here, my dearest Mummy," she kept on
    whispering, not pausing an instant.
    
    She did not let go of her mother but struggled tenderly with her,
    demanded a pillow and hot water, and unfastened and tore open her
    mother's dress.
    
    "My dearest darling... Mummy, my precious!..." she whispered
    incessantly, kissing her head, her hands, her face, and feeling her own
    irrepressible and streaming tears tickling her nose and cheeks.
    
    The countess pressed her daughter's hand, closed her eyes, and became
    quiet for a moment. Suddenly she sat up with unaccustomed swiftness,
    glanced vacantly around her, and seeing Natasha began to press her
    daughter's head with all her strength. Then she turned toward her
    daughter's face which was wincing with pain and gazed long at it.
    
    "Natasha, you love me?" she said in a soft trustful whisper. "Natasha,
    you would not deceive me? You'll tell me the whole truth?"
    
    Natasha looked at her with eyes full of tears and in her look there was
    nothing but love and an entreaty for forgiveness.
    
    "My darling Mummy!" she repeated, straining all the power of her love to
    find some way of taking on herself the excess of grief that crushed her
    mother.
    
    And again in a futile struggle with reality her mother, refusing to
    believe that she could live when her beloved boy was killed in the bloom
    of life, escaped from reality into a world of delirium.
    
    Natasha did not remember how that day passed nor that night, nor the
    next day and night. She did not sleep and did not leave her mother. Her
    persevering and patient love seemed completely to surround the countess
    every moment, not explaining or consoling, but recalling her to life.
    
    During the third night the countess kept very quiet for a few minutes,
    and Natasha rested her head on the arm of her chair and closed her eyes,
    but opened them again on hearing the bedstead creak. The countess was
    sitting up in bed and speaking softly.
    
    "How glad I am you have come. You are tired. Won't you have some tea?"
    Natasha went up to her. "You have improved in looks and grown more
    manly," continued the countess, taking her daughter's hand.
    
    "Mamma! What are you saying..."
    
    "Natasha, he is no more, no more!"
    
    And embracing her daughter, the countess began to weep for the first
    time.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    Princess Mary postponed her departure. Sonya and the count tried to
    replace Natasha but could not. They saw that she alone was able to
    restrain her mother from unreasoning despair. For three weeks Natasha
    remained constantly at her mother's side, sleeping on a lounge chair in
    her room, making her eat and drink, and talking to her incessantly
    because the mere sound of her tender, caressing tones soothed her
    mother.
    
    The mother's wounded spirit could not heal. Petya's death had torn from
    her half her life. When the news of Petya's death had come she had been
    a fresh and vigorous woman of fifty, but a month later she left her room
    a listless old woman taking no interest in life. But the same blow that
    almost killed the countess, this second blow, restored Natasha to life.
    
    A spiritual wound produced by a rending of the spiritual body is like a
    physical wound and, strange as it may seem, just as a deep wound may
    heal and its edges join, physical and spiritual wounds alike can yet
    heal completely only as the result of a vital force from within.
    
    Natasha's wound healed in that way. She thought her life was ended, but
    her love for her mother unexpectedly showed her that the essence of
    life--love--was still active within her. Love awoke and so did life.
    
    Prince Andrew's last days had bound Princess Mary and Natasha together;
    this new sorrow brought them still closer to one another. Princess Mary
    put off her departure, and for three weeks looked after Natasha as if
    she had been a sick child. The last weeks passed in her mother's bedroom
    had strained Natasha's physical strength.
    
    One afternoon noticing Natasha shivering with fever, Princess Mary took
    her to her own room and made her lie down on the bed. Natasha lay down,
    but when Princess Mary had drawn the blinds and was going away she
    called her back.
    
    "I don't want to sleep, Mary, sit by me a little."
    
    "You are tired--try to sleep."
    
    "No, no. Why did you bring me away? She will be asking for me."
    
    "She is much better. She spoke so well today," said Princess Mary.
    
    Natasha lay on the bed and in the semidarkness of the room scanned
    Princess Mary's face.
    
    "Is she like him?" thought Natasha. "Yes, like and yet not like. But she
    is quite original, strange, new, and unknown. And she loves me. What is
    in her heart? All that is good. But how? What is her mind like? What
    does she think about me? Yes, she is splendid!"
    
    "Mary," she said timidly, drawing Princess Mary's hand to herself,
    "Mary, you mustn't think me wicked. No? Mary darling, how I love you!
    Let us be quite, quite friends."
    
    And Natasha, embracing her, began kissing her face and hands, making
    Princess Mary feel shy but happy by this demonstration of her feelings.
    
    From that day a tender and passionate friendship such as exists only
    between women was established between Princess Mary and Natasha. They
    were continually kissing and saying tender things to one another and
    spent most of their time together. When one went out the other became
    restless and hastened to rejoin her. Together they felt more in harmony
    with one another than either of them felt with herself when alone. A
    feeling stronger than friendship sprang up between them; an exclusive
    feeling of life being possible only in each other's presence.
    
    Sometimes they were silent for hours; sometimes after they were already
    in bed they would begin talking and go on till morning. They spoke most
    of what was long past. Princess Mary spoke of her childhood, of her
    mother, her father, and her daydreams; and Natasha, who with a passive
    lack of understanding had formerly turned away from that life of
    devotion, submission, and the poetry of Christian self-sacrifice, now
    feeling herself bound to Princess Mary by affection, learned to love her
    past too and to understand a side of life previously incomprehensible to
    her. She did not think of applying submission and self-abnegation to her
    own life, for she was accustomed to seek other joys, but she understood
    and loved in another those previously incomprehensible virtues. For
    Princess Mary, listening to Natasha's tales of childhood and early
    youth, there also opened out a new and hitherto uncomprehended side of
    life: belief in life and its enjoyment.
    
    Just as before, they never mentioned him so as not to lower (as they
    thought) their exalted feelings by words; but this silence about him had
    the effect of making them gradually begin to forget him without being
    conscious of it.
    
    Natasha had grown thin and pale and physically so weak that they all
    talked about her health, and this pleased her. But sometimes she was
    suddenly overcome by fear not only of death but of sickness, weakness,
    and loss of good looks, and involuntarily she examined her bare arm
    carefully, surprised at its thinness, and in the morning noticed her
    drawn and, as it seemed to her, piteous face in her glass. It seemed to
    her that things must be so, and yet it was dreadfully sad.
    
    One day she went quickly upstairs and found herself out of breath.
    Unconsciously she immediately invented a reason for going down, and
    then, testing her strength, ran upstairs again, observing the result.
    
    Another time when she called Dunyasha her voice trembled, so she called
    again--though she could hear Dunyasha coming--called her in the deep
    chest tones in which she had been wont to sing, and listened attentively
    to herself.
    
    She did not know and would not have believed it, but beneath the layer
    of slime that covered her soul and seemed to her impenetrable, delicate
    young shoots of grass were already sprouting, which taking root would so
    cover with their living verdure the grief that weighed her down that it
    would soon no longer be seen or noticed. The wound had begun to heal
    from within.
    
    At the end of January Princess Mary left for Moscow, and the count
    insisted on Natasha's going with her to consult the doctors.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    After the encounter at Vyazma, where Kutuzov had been unable to hold
    back his troops in their anxiety to overwhelm and cut off the enemy and
    so on, the farther movement of the fleeing French, and of the Russians
    who pursued them, continued as far as Krasnoe without a battle. The
    flight was so rapid that the Russian army pursuing the French could not
    keep up with them; cavalry and artillery horses broke down, and the
    information received of the movements of the French was never reliable.
    
    The men in the Russian army were so worn out by this continuous marching
    at the rate of twenty-seven miles a day that they could not go any
    faster.
    
    To realize the degree of exhaustion of the Russian army it is only
    necessary to grasp clearly the meaning of the fact that, while not
    losing more than five thousand killed and wounded after Tarutino and
    less than a hundred prisoners, the Russian army which left that place a
    hundred thousand strong reached Krasnoe with only fifty thousand.
    
    The rapidity of the Russian pursuit was just as destructive to our army
    as the flight of the French was to theirs. The only difference was that
    the Russian army moved voluntarily, with no such threat of destruction
    as hung over the French, and that the sick Frenchmen were left behind in
    enemy hands while the sick Russians left behind were among their own
    people. The chief cause of the wastage of Napoleon's army was the
    rapidity of its movement, and a convincing proof of this is the
    corresponding decrease of the Russian army.
    
    Kutuzov as far as was in his power, instead of trying to check the
    movement of the French as was desired in Petersburg and by the Russian
    army generals, directed his whole activity here, as he had done at
    Tarutino and Vyazma, to hastening it on while easing the movement of our
    army.
    
    But besides this, since the exhaustion and enormous diminution of the
    army caused by the rapidity of the advance had become evident, another
    reason for slackening the pace and delaying presented itself to Kutuzov.
    The aim of the Russian army was to pursue the French. The road the
    French would take was unknown, and so the closer our troops trod on
    their heels the greater distance they had to cover. Only by following at
    some distance could one cut across the zigzag path of the French. All
    the artful maneuvers suggested by our generals meant fresh movements of
    the army and a lengthening of its marches, whereas the only reasonable
    aim was to shorten those marches. To that end Kutuzov's activity was
    directed during the whole campaign from Moscow to Vilna--not casually or
    intermittently but so consistently that he never once deviated from it.
    
    Kutuzov felt and knew--not by reasoning or science but with the whole of
    his Russian being--what every Russian soldier felt: that the French were
    beaten, that the enemy was flying and must be driven out; but at the
    same time he like the soldiers realized all the hardship of this march,
    the rapidity of which was unparalleled for such a time of the year.
    
    But to the generals, especially the foreign ones in the Russian army,
    who wished to distinguish themselves, to astonish somebody, and for some
    reason to capture a king or a duke--it seemed that now--when any battle
    must be horrible and senseless--was the very time to fight and conquer
    somebody. Kutuzov merely shrugged his shoulders when one after another
    they presented projects of maneuvers to be made with those soldiers--
    ill-shod, insufficiently clad, and half starved--who within a month and
    without fighting a battle had dwindled to half their number, and who at
    the best if the flight continued would have to go a greater distance
    than they had already traversed, before they reached the frontier.
    
    This longing to distinguish themselves, to maneuver, to overthrow, and
    to cut off showed itself particularly whenever the Russians stumbled on
    the French army.
    
    So it was at Krasnoe, where they expected to find one of the three
    French columns and stumbled instead on Napoleon himself with sixteen
    thousand men. Despite all Kutuzov's efforts to avoid that ruinous
    encounter and to preserve his troops, the massacre of the broken mob of
    French soldiers by worn-out Russians continued at Krasnoe for three
    days.
    
    Toll wrote a disposition: "The first column will march to so and so,"
    etc. And as usual nothing happened in accord with the disposition.
    Prince Eugene of Wurttemberg fired from a hill over the French crowds
    that were running past, and demanded reinforcements which did not
    arrive. The French, avoiding the Russians, dispersed and hid themselves
    in the forest by night, making their way round as best they could, and
    continued their flight.
    
    Miloradovich, who said he did not want to know anything about the
    commissariat affairs of his detachment, and could never be found when he
    was wanted--that chevalier sans peur et sans reproche * as he styled
    himself--who was fond of parleys with the French, sent envoys demanding
    their surrender, wasted time, and did not do what he was ordered to do.
    
    * Knight without fear and without reproach.
    
    "I give you that column, lads," he said, riding up to the troops and
    pointing out the French to the cavalry.
    
    And the cavalry, with spurs and sabers urging on horses that could
    scarcely move, trotted with much effort to the column presented to them-
    -that is to say, to a crowd of Frenchmen stark with cold, frost-bitten,
    and starving--and the column that had been presented to them threw down
    its arms and surrendered as it had long been anxious to do.
    
    At Krasnoe they took twenty-six thousand prisoners, several hundred
    cannon, and a stick called a "marshal's staff," and disputed as to who
    had distinguished himself and were pleased with their achievement--
    though they much regretted not having taken Napoleon, or at least a
    marshal or a hero of some sort, and reproached one another and
    especially Kutuzov for having failed to do so.
    
    These men, carried away by their passions, were but blind tools of the
    most melancholy law of necessity, but considered themselves heroes and
    imagined that they were accomplishing a most noble and honorable deed.
    They blamed Kutuzov and said that from the very beginning of the
    campaign he had prevented their vanquishing Napoleon, that he thought of
    nothing but satisfying his passions and would not advance from the Linen
    Factories because he was comfortable there, that at Krasnoe he checked
    the advance because on learning that Napoleon was there he had quite
    lost his head, and that it was probable that he had an understanding
    with Napoleon and had been bribed by him, and so on, and so on.
    
    Not only did his contemporaries, carried away by their passions, talk in
    this way, but posterity and history have acclaimed Napoleon as grand,
    while Kutuzov is described by foreigners as a crafty, dissolute, weak
    old courtier, and by Russians as something indefinite--a sort of puppet
    useful only because he had a Russian name.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    In 1812 and 1813 Kutuzov was openly accused of blundering. The Emperor
    was dissatisfied with him. And in a history recently written by order of
    the Highest Authorities it is said that Kutuzov was a cunning court
    liar, frightened of the name of Napoleon, and that by his blunders at
    Krasnoe and the Berezina he deprived the Russian army of the glory of
    complete victory over the French. *
    
    * History of the year 1812. The character of Kutuzov and reflections on
    the unsatisfactory results of the battles at Krasnoe, by Bogdanovich.
    
    Such is the fate not of great men (grands hommes) whom the Russian mind
    does not acknowledge, but of those rare and always solitary individuals
    who, discerning the will of Providence, submit their personal will to
    it. The hatred and contempt of the crowd punish such men for discerning
    the higher laws.
    
    For Russian historians, strange and terrible to say, Napoleon--that most
    insignificant tool of history who never anywhere, even in exile, showed
    human dignity--Napoleon is the object of adulation and enthusiasm; he is
    grand. But Kutuzov--the man who from the beginning to the end of his
    activity in 1812, never once swerving by word or deed from Borodino to
    Vilna, presented an example exceptional in history of self-sacrifice and
    a present consciousness of the future importance of what was happening--
    Kutuzov seems to them something indefinite and pitiful, and when
    speaking of him and of the year 1812 they always seem a little ashamed.
    
    And yet it is difficult to imagine an historical character whose
    activity was so unswervingly directed to a single aim; and it would be
    difficult to imagine any aim more worthy or more consonant with the will
    of the whole people. Still more difficult would it be to find an
    instance in history of the aim of an historical personage being so
    completely accomplished as that to which all Kutuzov's efforts were
    directed in 1812.
    
    Kutuzov never talked of "forty centuries looking down from the
    Pyramids," of the sacrifices he offered for the fatherland, or of what
    he intended to accomplish or had accomplished; in general he said
    nothing about himself, adopted no pose, always appeared to be the
    simplest and most ordinary of men, and said the simplest and most
    ordinary things. He wrote letters to his daughters and to Madame de
    Stael, read novels, liked the society of pretty women, jested with
    generals, officers, and soldiers, and never contradicted those who tried
    to prove anything to him. When Count Rostopchin at the Yauza bridge
    galloped up to Kutuzov with personal reproaches for having caused the
    destruction of Moscow, and said: "How was it you promised not to abandon
    Moscow without a battle?" Kutuzov replied: "And I shall not abandon
    Moscow without a battle," though Moscow was then already abandoned. When
    Arakcheev, coming to him from the Emperor, said that Ermolov ought to be
    appointed chief of the artillery, Kutuzov replied: "Yes, I was just
    saying so myself," though a moment before he had said quite the
    contrary. What did it matter to him--who then alone amid a senseless
    crowd understood the whole tremendous significance of what was
    happening--what did it matter to him whether Rostopchin attributed the
    calamities of Moscow to him or to himself? Still less could it matter to
    him who was appointed chief of the artillery.
    
    Not merely in these cases but continually did that old man--who by
    experience of life had reached the conviction that thoughts and the
    words serving as their expression are not what move people--use quite
    meaningless words that happened to enter his head.
    
    But that man, so heedless of his words, did not once during the whole
    time of his activity utter one word inconsistent with the single aim
    toward which he moved throughout the whole war. Obviously in spite of
    himself, in very diverse circumstances, he repeatedly expressed his real
    thoughts with the bitter conviction that he would not be understood.
    Beginning with the battle of Borodino, from which time his disagreement
    with those about him began, he alone said that the battle of Borodino
    was a victory, and repeated this both verbally and in his dispatches and
    reports up to the time of his death. He alone said that the loss of
    Moscow is not the loss of Russia. In reply to Lauriston's proposal of
    peace, he said: There can be no peace, for such is the people's will. He
    alone during the retreat of the French said that all our maneuvers are
    useless, everything is being accomplished of itself better than we could
    desire; that the enemy must be offered "a golden bridge"; that neither
    the Tarutino, the Vyazma, nor the Krasnoe battles were necessary; that
    we must keep some force to reach the frontier with, and that he would
    not sacrifice a single Russian for ten Frenchmen.
    
    And this courtier, as he is described to us, who lies to Arakcheev to
    please the Emperor, he alone--incurring thereby the Emperor's
    displeasure--said in Vilna that to carry the war beyond the frontier is
    useless and harmful.
    
    Nor do words alone prove that only he understood the meaning of the
    events. His actions--without the smallest deviation--were all directed
    to one and the same threefold end: (1) to brace all his strength for
    conflict with the French, (2) to defeat them, and (3) to drive them out
    of Russia, minimizing as far as possible the sufferings of our people
    and of our army.
    
    This procrastinator Kutuzov, whose motto was "Patience and Time," this
    enemy of decisive action, gave battle at Borodino, investing the
    preparations for it with unparalleled solemnity. This Kutuzov who before
    the battle of Austerlitz began said that it would be lost, he alone, in
    contradiction to everyone else, declared till his death that Borodino
    was a victory, despite the assurance of generals that the battle was
    lost and despite the fact that for an army to have to retire after
    winning a battle was unprecedented. He alone during the whole retreat
    insisted that battles, which were useless then, should not be fought,
    and that a new war should not be begun nor the frontiers of Russia
    crossed.
    
    It is easy now to understand the significance of these events--if only
    we abstain from attributing to the activity of the mass aims that
    existed only in the heads of a dozen individuals--for the events and
    results now lie before us.
    
    But how did that old man, alone, in opposition to the general opinion,
    so truly discern the importance of the people's view of the events that
    in all his activity he was never once untrue to it?
    
    The source of that extraordinary power of penetrating the meaning of the
    events then occuring lay in the national feeling which he possessed in
    full purity and strength.
    
    Only the recognition of the fact that he possessed this feeling caused
    the people in so strange a manner, contrary to the Tsar's wish, to
    select him--an old man in disfavor--to be their representative in the
    national war. And only that feeling placed him on that highest human
    pedestal from which he, the commander-in-chief, devoted all his powers
    not to slaying and destroying men but to saving and showing pity on
    them.
    
    That simple, modest, and therefore truly great, figure could not be cast
    in the false mold of a European hero--the supposed ruler of men--that
    history has invented.
    
    To a lackey no man can be great, for a lackey has his own conception of
    greatness.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    The fifth of November was the first day of what is called the battle of
    Krasnoe. Toward evening--after much disputing and many mistakes made by
    generals who did not go to their proper places, and after adjutants had
    been sent about with counterorders--when it had become plain that the
    enemy was everywhere in flight and that there could and would be no
    battle, Kutuzov left Krasnoe and went to Dobroe whither his headquarters
    had that day been transferred.
    
    The day was clear and frosty. Kutuzov rode to Dobroe on his plump little
    white horse, followed by an enormous suite of discontented generals who
    whispered among themselves behind his back. All along the road groups of
    French prisoners captured that day (there were seven thousand of them)
    were crowding to warm themselves at campfires. Near Dobroe an immense
    crowd of tattered prisoners, buzzing with talk and wrapped and bandaged
    in anything they had been able to get hold of, were standing in the road
    beside a long row of unharnessed French guns. At the approach of the
    commander-in-chief the buzz of talk ceased and all eyes were fixed on
    Kutuzov who, wearing a white cap with a red band and a padded overcoat
    that bulged on his round shoulders, moved slowly along the road on his
    white horse. One of the generals was reporting to him where the guns and
    prisoners had been captured.
    
    Kutuzov seemed preoccupied and did not listen to what the general was
    saying. He screwed up his eyes with a dissatisfied look as he gazed
    attentively and fixedly at these prisoners, who presented a specially
    wretched appearance. Most of them were disfigured by frost-bitten noses
    and cheeks, and nearly all had red, swollen and festering eyes.
    
    One group of the French stood close to the road, and two of them, one of
    whom had his face covered with sores, were tearing a piece of raw flesh
    with their hands. There was something horrible and bestial in the
    fleeting glance they threw at the riders and in the malevolent
    expression with which, after a glance at Kutuzov, the soldier with the
    sores immediately turned away and went on with what he was doing.
    
    Kutuzov looked long and intently at these two soldiers. He puckered his
    face, screwed up his eyes, and pensively swayed his head. At another
    spot he noticed a Russian soldier laughingly patting a Frenchman on the
    shoulder, saying something to him in a friendly manner, and Kutuzov with
    the same expression on his face again swayed his head.
    
    "What were you saying?" he asked the general, who continuing his report
    directed the commander-in-chief's attention to some standards captured
    from the French and standing in front of the Preobrazhensk regiment.
    
    "Ah, the standards!" said Kutuzov, evidently detaching himself with
    difficulty from the thoughts that preoccupied him.
    
    He looked about him absently. Thousands of eyes were looking at him from
    all sides awaiting a word from him.
    
    He stopped in front of the Preobrazhensk regiment, sighed deeply, and
    closed his eyes. One of his suite beckoned to the soldiers carrying the
    standards to advance and surround the commander-in-chief with them.
    Kutuzov was silent for a few seconds and then, submitting with evident
    reluctance to the duty imposed by his position, raised his head and
    began to speak. A throng of officers surrounded him. He looked
    attentively around at the circle of officers, recognizing several of
    them.
    
    "I thank you all!" he said, addressing the soldiers and then again the
    officers. In the stillness around him his slowly uttered words were
    distinctly heard. "I thank you all for your hard and faithful service.
    The victory is complete and Russia will not forget you! Honor to you
    forever."
    
    He paused and looked around.
    
    "Lower its head, lower it!" he said to a soldier who had accidentally
    lowered the French eagle he was holding before the Preobrazhensk
    standards. "Lower, lower, that's it. Hurrah lads!" he added, addressing
    the men with a rapid movement of his chin.
    
    "Hur-r-rah!" roared thousands of voices.
    
    While the soldiers were shouting Kutuzov leaned forward in his saddle
    and bowed his head, and his eye lit up with a mild and apparently ironic
    gleam.
    
    "You see, brothers..." said he when the shouts had ceased... and all at
    once his voice and the expression of his face changed. It was no longer
    the commander-in-chief speaking but an ordinary old man who wanted to
    tell his comrades something very important.
    
    There was a stir among the throng of officers and in the ranks of the
    soldiers, who moved that they might hear better what he was going to
    say.
    
    "You see, brothers, I know it's hard for you, but it can't be helped!
    Bear up; it won't be for long now! We'll see our visitors off and then
    we'll rest. The Tsar won't forget your service. It is hard for you, but
    still you are at home while they--you see what they have come to," said
    he, pointing to the prisoners. "Worse off than our poorest beggars.
    While they were strong we didn't spare ourselves, but now we may even
    pity them. They are human beings too. Isn't it so, lads?"
    
    He looked around, and in the direct, respectful, wondering gaze fixed
    upon him he read sympathy with what he had said. His face grew brighter
    and brighter with an old man's mild smile, which drew the corners of his
    lips and eyes into a cluster of wrinkles. He ceased speaking and bowed
    his head as if in perplexity.
    
    "But after all who asked them here? Serves them right, the bloody
    bastards!" he cried, suddenly lifting his head.
    
    And flourishing his whip he rode off at a gallop for the first time
    during the whole campaign, and left the broken ranks of the soldiers
    laughing joyfully and shouting "Hurrah!"
    
    Kutuzov's words were hardly understood by the troops. No one could have
    repeated the field marshal's address, begun solemnly and then changing
    into an old man's simplehearted talk; but the hearty sincerity of that
    speech, the feeling of majestic triumph combined with pity for the foe
    and consciousness of the justice of our cause, exactly expressed by that
    old man's good-natured expletives, was not merely understood but lay in
    the soul of every soldier and found expression in their joyous and long-
    sustained shouts. Afterwards when one of the generals addressed Kutuzov
    asking whether he wished his caleche to be sent for, Kutuzov in
    answering unexpectedly gave a sob, being evidently greatly moved.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    When the troops reached their night's halting place on the eighth of
    November, the last day of the Krasnoe battles, it was already growing
    dusk. All day it had been calm and frosty with occasional lightly
    falling snow and toward evening it began to clear. Through the falling
    snow a purple-black and starry sky showed itself and the frost grew
    keener.
    
    An infantry regiment which had left Tarutino three thousand strong but
    now numbered only nine hundred was one of the first to arrive that night
    at its halting place--a village on the highroad. The quartermasters who
    met the regiment announced that all the huts were full of sick and dead
    Frenchmen, cavalrymen, and members of the staff. There was only one hut
    available for the regimental commander.
    
    The commander rode up to his hut. The regiment passed through the
    village and stacked its arms in front of the last huts.
    
    Like some huge many-limbed animal, the regiment began to prepare its
    lair and its food. One part of it dispersed and waded knee-deep through
    the snow into a birch forest to the right of the village, and
    immediately the sound of axes and swords, the crashing of branches, and
    merry voices could be heard from there. Another section amid the
    regimental wagons and horses which were standing in a group was busy
    getting out caldrons and rye biscuit, and feeding the horses. A third
    section scattered through the village arranging quarters for the staff
    officers, carrying out the French corpses that were in the huts, and
    dragging away boards, dry wood, and thatch from the roofs, for the
    campfires, or wattle fences to serve for shelter.
    
    Some fifteen men with merry shouts were shaking down the high wattle
    wall of a shed, the roof of which had already been removed.
    
    "Now then, all together--shove!" cried the voices, and the huge surface
    of the wall, sprinkled with snow and creaking with frost, was seen
    swaying in the gloom of the night. The lower stakes cracked more and
    more and at last the wall fell, and with it the men who had been pushing
    it. Loud, coarse laughter and joyous shouts ensued.
    
    "Now then, catch hold in twos! Hand up the lever! That's it... Where are
    you shoving to?"
    
    "Now, all together! But wait a moment, boys... With a song!"
    
    All stood silent, and a soft, pleasant velvety voice began to sing. At
    the end of the third verse as the last note died away, twenty voices
    roared out at once: "Oo-oo-oo-oo! That's it. All together! Heave away,
    boys!..." but despite their united efforts the wattle hardly moved, and
    in the silence that followed the heavy breathing of the men was audible.
    
    "Here, you of the Sixth Company! Devils that you are! Lend a hand...
    will you? You may want us one of these days."
    
    Some twenty men of the Sixth Company who were on their way into the
    village joined the haulers, and the wattle wall, which was about thirty-
    five feet long and seven feet high, moved forward along the village
    street, swaying, pressing upon and cutting the shoulders of the gasping
    men.
    
    "Get along... Falling? What are you stopping for? There now..."
    
    Merry senseless words of abuse flowed freely.
    
    "What are you up to?" suddenly came the authoritative voice of a
    sergeant major who came upon the men who were hauling their burden.
    "There are gentry here; the general himself is in that hut, and you
    foul-mouthed devils, you brutes, I'll give it to you!" shouted he,
    hitting the first man who came in his way a swinging blow on the back.
    "Can't you make less noise?"
    
    The men became silent. The soldier who had been struck groaned and wiped
    his face, which had been scratched till it bled by his falling against
    the wattle.
    
    "There, how that devil hits out! He's made my face all bloody," said he
    in a frightened whisper when the sergeant major had passed on.
    
    "Don't you like it?" said a laughing voice, and moderating their tones
    the men moved forward.
    
    When they were out of the village they began talking again as loud as
    before, interlarding their talk with the same aimless expletives.
    
    In the hut which the men had passed, the chief officers had gathered and
    were in animated talk over their tea about the events of the day and the
    maneuvers suggested for tomorrow. It was proposed to make a flank march
    to the left, cut off the Vice-King (Murat) and capture him.
    
    By the time the soldiers had dragged the wattle fence to its place the
    campfires were blazing on all sides ready for cooking, the wood
    crackled, the snow was melting, and black shadows of soldiers flitted to
    and fro all over the occupied space where the snow had been trodden
    down.
    
    Axes and choppers were plied all around. Everything was done without any
    orders being given. Stores of wood were brought for the night, shelters
    were rigged up for the officers, caldrons were being boiled, and muskets
    and accouterments put in order.
    
    The wattle wall the men had brought was set up in a semicircle by the
    Eighth Company as a shelter from the north, propped up by musket rests,
    and a campfire was built before it. They beat the tattoo, called the
    roll, had supper, and settled down round the fires for the night--some
    repairing their footgear, some smoking pipes, and some stripping
    themselves naked to steam the lice out of their shirts.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    One would have thought that under the almost incredibly wretched
    conditions the Russian soldiers were in at that time--lacking warm boots
    and sheepskin coats, without a roof over their heads, in the snow with
    eighteen degrees of frost, and without even full rations (the
    commissariat did not always keep up with the troops)--they would have
    presented a very sad and depressing spectacle.
    
    On the contrary, the army had never under the best material conditions
    presented a more cheerful and animated aspect. This was because all who
    began to grow depressed or who lost strength were sifted out of the army
    day by day. All the physically or morally weak had long since been left
    behind and only the flower of the army--physically and mentally--
    remained.
    
    More men collected behind the wattle fence of the Eighth Company than
    anywhere else. Two sergeants major were sitting with them and their
    campfire blazed brighter than others. For leave to sit by their wattle
    they demanded contributions of fuel.
    
    "Eh, Makeev! What has become of you, you son of a bitch? Are you lost or
    have the wolves eaten you? Fetch some more wood!" shouted a red-haired
    and red-faced man, screwing up his eyes and blinking because of the
    smoke but not moving back from the fire. "And you, Jackdaw, go and fetch
    some wood!" said he to another soldier.
    
    This red-haired man was neither a sergeant nor a corporal, but being
    robust he ordered about those weaker than himself. The soldier they
    called "Jackdaw," a thin little fellow with a sharp nose, rose
    obediently and was about to go but at that instant there came into the
    light of the fire the slender, handsome figure of a young soldier
    carrying a load of wood.
    
    "Bring it here--that's fine!"
    
    They split up the wood, pressed it down on the fire, blew at it with
    their mouths, and fanned it with the skirts of their greatcoats, making
    the flames hiss and crackle. The men drew nearer and lit their pipes.
    The handsome young soldier who had brought the wood, setting his arms
    akimbo, began stamping his cold feet rapidly and deftly on the spot
    where he stood.
    
    "Mother! The dew is cold but clear.... It's well that I'm a
    musketeer..." he sang, pretending to hiccough after each syllable.
    
    "Look out, your soles will fly off!" shouted the red-haired man,
    noticing that the sole of the dancer's boot was hanging loose. "What a
    fellow you are for dancing!"
    
    The dancer stopped, pulled off the loose piece of leather, and threw it
    on the fire.
    
    "Right enough, friend," said he, and, having sat down, took out of his
    knapsack a scrap of blue French cloth, and wrapped it round his foot.
    "It's the steam that spoils them," he added, stretching out his feet
    toward the fire.
    
    "They'll soon be issuing us new ones. They say that when we've finished
    hammering them, we're to receive double kits!"
    
    "And that son of a bitch Petrov has lagged behind after all, it seems,"
    said one sergeant major.
    
    "I've had an eye on him this long while," said the other.
    
    "Well, he's a poor sort of soldier..."
    
    "But in the Third Company they say nine men were missing yesterday."
    
    "Yes, it's all very well, but when a man's feet are frozen how can he
    walk?"
    
    "Eh? Don't talk nonsense!" said a sergeant major.
    
    "Do you want to be doing the same?" said an old soldier, turning
    reproachfully to the man who had spoken of frozen feet.
    
    "Well, you know," said the sharp-nosed man they called Jackdaw in a
    squeaky and unsteady voice, raising himself at the other side of the
    fire, "a plump man gets thin, but for a thin one it's death. Take me,
    now! I've got no strength left," he added, with sudden resolution
    turning to the sergeant major. "Tell them to send me to hospital; I'm
    aching all over; anyway I shan't be able to keep up."
    
    "That'll do, that'll do!" replied the sergeant major quietly.
    
    The soldier said no more and the talk went on.
    
    "What a lot of those Frenchies were taken today, and the fact is that
    not one of them had what you might call real boots on," said a soldier,
    starting a new theme. "They were no more than make-believes."
    
    "The Cossacks have taken their boots. They were clearing the hut for the
    colonel and carried them out. It was pitiful to see them, boys," put in
    the dancer. "As they turned them over one seemed still alive and, would
    you believe it, he jabbered something in their lingo."
    
    "But they're a clean folk, lads," the first man went on; "he was white--
    as white as birchbark--and some of them are such fine fellows, you might
    think they were nobles."
    
    "Well, what do you think? They make soldiers of all classes there."
    
    "But they don't understand our talk at all," said the dancer with a
    puzzled smile. "I asked him whose subject he was, and he jabbered in his
    own way. A queer lot!"
    
    "But it's strange, friends," continued the man who had wondered at their
    whiteness, "the peasants at Mozhaysk were saying that when they began
    burying the dead--where the battle was you know--well, those dead had
    been lying there for nearly a month, and says the peasant, 'they lie as
    white as paper, clean, and not as much smell as a puff of powder
    smoke.'"
    
    "Was it from the cold?" asked someone.
    
    "You're a clever fellow! From the cold indeed! Why, it was hot. If it
    had been from the cold, ours would not have rotted either. 'But,' he
    says, 'go up to ours and they are all rotten and maggoty. So,' he says,
    'we tie our faces up with kerchiefs and turn our heads away as we drag
    them off: we can hardly do it. But theirs,' he says, 'are white as paper
    and not so much smell as a whiff of gunpowder.'"
    
    All were silent.
    
    "It must be from their food," said the sergeant major. "They used to
    gobble the same food as the gentry."
    
    No one contradicted him.
    
    "That peasant near Mozhaysk where the battle was said the men were all
    called up from ten villages around and they carted for twenty days and
    still didn't finish carting the dead away. And as for the wolves, he
    says..."
    
    "That was a real battle," said an old soldier. "It's the only one worth
    remembering; but since that... it's only been tormenting folk."
    
    "And do you know, Daddy, the day before yesterday we ran at them and, my
    word, they didn't let us get near before they just threw down their
    muskets and went on their knees. 'Pardon!' they say. That's only one
    case. They say Platov took 'Poleon himself twice. But he didn't know the
    right charm. He catches him and catches him--no good! He turns into a
    bird in his hands and flies away. And there's no way of killing him
    either."
    
    "You're a first-class liar, Kiselev, when I come to look at you!"
    
    "Liar, indeed! It's the real truth."
    
    "If he fell into my hands, when I'd caught him I'd bury him in the
    ground with an aspen stake to fix him down. What a lot of men he's
    ruined!"
    
    "Well, anyhow we're going to end it. He won't come here again," remarked
    the old soldier, yawning.
    
    The conversation flagged, and the soldiers began settling down to sleep.
    
    "Look at the stars. It's wonderful how they shine! You would think the
    women had spread out their linen," said one of the men, gazing with
    admiration at the Milky Way.
    
    "That's a sign of a good harvest next year."
    
    "We shall want some more wood."
    
    "You warm your back and your belly gets frozen. That's queer."
    
    "O Lord!"
    
    "What are you pushing for? Is the fire only for you? Look how he's
    sprawling!"
    
    In the silence that ensued, the snoring of those who had fallen asleep
    could be heard. Others turned over and warmed themselves, now and again
    exchanging a few words. From a campfire a hundred paces off came a sound
    of general, merry laughter.
    
    "Hark at them roaring there in the Fifth Company!" said one of the
    soldiers, "and what a lot of them there are!"
    
    One of the men got up and went over to the Fifth Company.
    
    "They're having such fun," said he, coming back. "Two Frenchies have
    turned up. One's quite frozen and the other's an awful swaggerer. He's
    singing songs...."
    
    "Oh, I'll go across and have a look...."
    
    And several of the men went over to the Fifth Company.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    The fifth company was bivouacking at the very edge of the forest. A huge
    campfire was blazing brightly in the midst of the snow, lighting up the
    branches of trees heavy with hoarfrost.
    
    About midnight they heard the sound of steps in the snow of the forest,
    and the crackling of dry branches.
    
    "A bear, lads," said one of the men.
    
    They all raised their heads to listen, and out of the forest into the
    bright firelight stepped two strangely clad human figures clinging to
    one another.
    
    These were two Frenchmen who had been hiding in the forest. They came up
    to the fire, hoarsely uttering something in a language our soldiers did
    not understand. One was taller than the other; he wore an officer's hat
    and seemed quite exhausted. On approaching the fire he had been going to
    sit down, but fell. The other, a short sturdy soldier with a shawl tied
    round his head, was stronger. He raised his companion and said
    something, pointing to his mouth. The soldiers surrounded the Frenchmen,
    spread a greatcoat on the ground for the sick man, and brought some
    buckwheat porridge and vodka for both of them.
    
    The exhausted French officer was Ramballe and the man with his head
    wrapped in the shawl was Morel, his orderly.
    
    When Morel had drunk some vodka and finished his bowl of porridge he
    suddenly became unnaturally merry and chattered incessantly to the
    soldiers, who could not understand him. Ramballe refused food and
    resting his head on his elbow lay silent beside the campfire, looking at
    the Russian soldiers with red and vacant eyes. Occasionally he emitted a
    long-drawn groan and then again became silent. Morel, pointing to his
    shoulders, tried to impress on the soldiers the fact that Ramballe was
    an officer and ought to be warmed. A Russian officer who had come up to
    the fire sent to ask his colonel whether he would not take a French
    officer into his hut to warm him, and when the messenger returned and
    said that the colonel wished the officer to be brought to him, Ramballe
    was told to go. He rose and tried to walk, but staggered and would have
    fallen had not a soldier standing by held him up.
    
    "You won't do it again, eh?" said one of the soldiers, winking and
    turning mockingly to Ramballe.
    
    "Oh, you fool! Why talk rubbish, lout that you are--a real peasant!"
    came rebukes from all sides addressed to the jesting soldier.
    
    They surrounded Ramballe, lifted him on the crossed arms of two
    soldiers, and carried him to the hut. Ramballe put his arms around their
    necks while they carried him and began wailing plaintively:
    
    "Oh, you fine fellows, my kind, kind friends! These are men! Oh, my
    brave, kind friends," and he leaned his head against the shoulder of one
    of the men like a child.
    
    Meanwhile Morel was sitting in the best place by the fire, surrounded by
    the soldiers.
    
    Morel, a short sturdy Frenchman with inflamed and streaming eyes, was
    wearing a woman's cloak and had a shawl tied woman fashion round his
    head over his cap. He was evidently tipsy, and was singing a French song
    in a hoarse broken voice, with an arm thrown round the nearest soldier.
    The soldiers simply held their sides as they watched him.
    
    "Now then, now then, teach us how it goes! I'll soon pick it up. How is
    it?" said the man--a singer and a wag--whom Morel was embracing.
    
    "Vive Henri Quatre! Vive ce roi valiant!" sang Morel, winking. "Ce
    diable a quatre..." *
    
    * "Long live Henry the Fourth, that valiant king! That rowdy devil."
    
    "Vivarika! Vif-seruvaru! Sedyablyaka!" repeated the soldier, flourishing
    his arm and really catching the tune.
    
    "Bravo! Ha, ha, ha!" rose their rough, joyous laughter from all sides.
    
    Morel, wrinkling up his face, laughed too.
    
    "Well, go on, go on!"
    
    "Qui eut le triple talent, De boire, de battre, Et d'etre un vert
    galant." *
    
    * Who had a triple talent For drinking, for fighting, And for being a
    gallant old boy...
    
    "It goes smoothly, too. Well, now, Zaletaev!"
    
    "Ke..." Zaletaev, brought out with effort: "ke-e-e-e," he drawled,
    laboriously pursing his lips, "le-trip-ta-la-de-bu-de-ba, e de-tra-va-
    ga-la" he sang.
    
    "Fine! Just like the Frenchie! Oh, ho ho! Do you want some more to eat?"
    
    "Give him some porridge: it takes a long time to get filled up after
    starving."
    
    They gave him some more porridge and Morel with a laugh set to work on
    his third bowl. All the young soldiers smiled gaily as they watched him.
    The older men, who thought it undignified to amuse themselves with such
    nonsense, continued to lie at the opposite side of the fire, but one
    would occasionally raise himself on an elbow and glance at Morel with a
    smile.
    
    "They are men too," said one of them as he wrapped himself up in his
    coat. "Even wormwood grows on its own root."
    
    "O Lord, O Lord! How starry it is! Tremendous! That means a hard
    frost...."
    
    They all grew silent. The stars, as if knowing that no one was looking
    at them, began to disport themselves in the dark sky: now flaring up,
    now vanishing, now trembling, they were busy whispering something
    gladsome and mysterious to one another.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    The French army melted away at the uniform rate of a mathematical
    progression; and that crossing of the Berezina about which so much has
    been written was only one intermediate stage in its destruction, and not
    at all the decisive episode of the campaign. If so much has been and
    still is written about the Berezina, on the French side this is only
    because at the broken bridge across that river the calamities their army
    had been previously enduring were suddenly concentrated at one moment
    into a tragic spectacle that remained in every memory, and on the
    Russian side merely because in Petersburg--far from the seat of war--a
    plan (again one of Pfuel's) had been devised to catch Napoleon in a
    strategic trap at the Berezina River. Everyone assured himself that all
    would happen according to plan, and therefore insisted that it was just
    the crossing of the Berezina that destroyed the French army. In reality
    the results of the crossing were much less disastrous to the French--in
    guns and men lost--than Krasnoe had been, as the figures show.
    
    The sole importance of the crossing of the Berezina lies in the fact
    that it plainly and indubitably proved the fallacy of all the plans for
    cutting off the enemy's retreat and the soundness of the only possible
    line of action--the one Kutuzov and the general mass of the army
    demanded--namely, simply to follow the enemy up. The French crowd fled
    at a continually increasing speed and all its energy was directed to
    reaching its goal. It fled like a wounded animal and it was impossible
    to block its path. This was shown not so much by the arrangements it
    made for crossing as by what took place at the bridges. When the bridges
    broke down, unarmed soldiers, people from Moscow and women with children
    who were with the French transport, all--carried on by vis inertiae--
    pressed forward into boats and into the ice-covered water and did not,
    surrender.
    
    That impulse was reasonable. The condition of fugitives and of pursuers
    was equally bad. As long as they remained with their own people each
    might hope for help from his fellows and the definite place he held
    among them. But those who surrendered, while remaining in the same
    pitiful plight, would be on a lower level to claim a share in the
    necessities of life. The French did not need to be informed of the fact
    that half the prisoners--with whom the Russians did not know what to do-
    -perished of cold and hunger despite their captors' desire to save them;
    they felt that it could not be otherwise. The most compassionate Russian
    commanders, those favorable to the French--and even the Frenchmen in the
    Russian service--could do nothing for the prisoners. The French perished
    from the conditions to which the Russian army was itself exposed. It was
    impossible to take bread and clothes from our hungry and indispensable
    soldiers to give to the French who, though not harmful, or hated, or
    guilty, were simply unnecessary. Some Russians even did that, but they
    were exceptions.
    
    Certain destruction lay behind the French but in front there was hope.
    Their ships had been burned, there was no salvation save in collective
    flight, and on that the whole strength of the French was concentrated.
    
    The farther they fled the more wretched became the plight of the
    remnant, especially after the Berezina, on which (in consequence of the
    Petersburg plan) special hopes had been placed by the Russians, and the
    keener grew the passions of the Russian commanders, who blamed one
    another and Kutuzov most of all. Anticipation that the failure of the
    Petersburg Berezina plan would be attributed to Kutuzov led to
    dissatisfaction, contempt, and ridicule, more and more strongly
    expressed. The ridicule and contempt were of course expressed in a
    respectful form, making it impossible for him to ask wherein he was to
    blame. They did not talk seriously to him; when reporting to him or
    asking for his sanction they appeared to be fulfilling a regrettable
    formality, but they winked behind his back and tried to mislead him at
    every turn.
    
    Because they could not understand him all these people assumed that it
    was useless to talk to the old man; that he would never grasp the
    profundity of their plans, that he would answer with his phrases (which
    they thought were mere phrases) about a "golden bridge," about the
    impossibility of crossing the frontier with a crowd of tatterdemalions,
    and so forth. They had heard all that before. And all he said--that it
    was necessary to await provisions, or that the men had no boots--was so
    simple, while what they proposed was so complicated and clever, that it
    was evident that he was old and stupid and that they, though not in
    power, were commanders of genius.
    
    After the junction with the army of the brilliant admiral and Petersburg
    hero Wittgenstein, this mood and the gossip of the staff reached their
    maximum. Kutuzov saw this and merely sighed and shrugged his shoulders.
    Only once, after the affair of the Berezina, did he get angry and write
    to Bennigsen (who reported separately to the Emperor) the following
    letter:
    
    "On account of your spells of ill health, will your excellency please be
    so good as to set off for Kaluga on receipt of this, and there await
    further commands and appointments from His Imperial Majesty."
    
    But after Bennigsen's departure, the Grand Duke Tsarevich Constantine
    Pavlovich joined the army. He had taken part in the beginning of the
    campaign but had subsequently been removed from the army by Kutuzov. Now
    having come to the army, he informed Kutuzov of the Emperor's
    displeasure at the poor success of our forces and the slowness of their
    advance. The Emperor intended to join the army personally in a few days'
    time.
    
    The old man, experienced in court as well as in military affairs--this
    same Kutuzov who in August had been chosen commander-in-chief against
    the sovereign's wishes and who had removed the Grand Duke and heir--
    apparent from the army--who on his own authority and contrary to the
    Emperor's will had decided on the abandonment of Moscow, now realized at
    once that his day was over, that his part was played, and that the power
    he was supposed to hold was no longer his. And he understood this not
    merely from the attitude of the court. He saw on the one hand that the
    military business in which he had played his part was ended and felt
    that his mission was accomplished; and at the same time he began to be
    conscious of the physical weariness of his aged body and of the
    necessity of physical rest.
    
    On the twenty-ninth of November Kutuzov entered Vilna--his "dear Vilna"
    as he called it. Twice during his career Kutuzov had been governor of
    Vilna. In that wealthy town, which had not been injured, he found old
    friends and associations, besides the comforts of life of which he had
    so long been deprived. And he suddenly turned from the cares of army and
    state and, as far as the passions that seethed around him allowed,
    immersed himself in the quiet life to which he had formerly been
    accustomed, as if all that was taking place and all that had still to be
    done in the realm of history did not concern him at all.
    
    Chichagov, one of the most zealous "cutters-off" and "breakers-up," who
    had first wanted to effect a diversion in Greece and then in Warsaw but
    never wished to go where he was sent: Chichagov, noted for the boldness
    with which he spoke to the Emperor, and who considered Kutuzov to be
    under an obligation to him because when he was sent to make peace with
    Turkey in 1811 independently of Kutuzov, and found that peace had
    already been concluded, he admitted to the Emperor that the merit of
    securing that peace was really Kutuzov's; this Chichagov was the first
    to meet Kutuzov at the castle where the latter was to stay. In undress
    naval uniform, with a dirk, and holding his cap under his arm, he handed
    Kutuzov a garrison report and the keys of the town. The contemptuously
    respectful attitude of the younger men to the old man in his dotage was
    expressed in the highest degree by the behavior of Chichagov, who knew
    of the accusations that were being directed against Kutuzov.
    
    When speaking to Chichagov, Kutuzov incidentally mentioned that the
    vehicles packed with china that had been captured from him at Borisov
    had been recovered and would be restored to him.
    
    "You mean to imply that I have nothing to eat out of.... On the
    contrary, I can supply you with everything even if you want to give
    dinner parties," warmly replied Chichagov, who tried by every word he
    spoke to prove his own rectitude and therefore imagined Kutuzov to be
    animated by the same desire.
    
    Kutuzov, shrugging his shoulders, replied with his subtle penetrating
    smile: "I meant merely to say what I said."
    
    Contrary to the Emperor's wish Kutuzov detained the greater part of the
    army at Vilna. Those about him said that he became extraordinarily slack
    and physically feeble during his stay in that town. He attended to army
    affairs reluctantly, left everything to his generals, and while awaiting
    the Emperor's arrival led a dissipated life.
    
    Having left Petersburg on the seventh of December with his suite--Count
    Tolstoy, Prince Volkonski, Arakcheev, and others--the Emperor reached
    Vilna on the eleventh, and in his traveling sleigh drove straight to the
    castle. In spite of the severe frost some hundred generals and staff
    officers in full parade uniform stood in front of the castle, as well as
    a guard of honor of the Semenov regiment.
    
    A courier who galloped to the castle in advance, in a troyka with three
    foam-flecked horses, shouted "Coming!" and Konovnitsyn rushed into the
    vestibule to inform Kutuzov, who was waiting in the hall porter's little
    lodge.
    
    A minute later the old man's large stout figure in full-dress uniform,
    his chest covered with orders and a scarf drawn round his stomach,
    waddled out into the porch. He put on his hat with its peaks to the
    sides and, holding his gloves in his hand and walking with an effort
    sideways down the steps to the level of the street, took in his hand the
    report he had prepared for the Emperor.
    
    There was running to and fro and whispering; another troyka flew
    furiously up, and then all eyes were turned on an approaching sleigh in
    which the figures of the Emperor and Volkonski could already be
    descried.
    
    From the habit of fifty years all this had a physically agitating effect
    on the old general. He carefully and hastily felt himself all over,
    readjusted his hat, and pulling himself together drew himself up and, at
    the very moment when the Emperor, having alighted from the sleigh,
    lifted his eyes to him, handed him the report and began speaking in his
    smooth, ingratiating voice.
    
    The Emperor with a rapid glance scanned Kutuzov from head to foot,
    frowned for an instant, but immediately mastering himself went up to the
    old man, extended his arms and embraced him. And this embrace too, owing
    to a long-standing impression related to his innermost feelings, had its
    usual effect on Kutuzov and he gave a sob.
    
    The Emperor greeted the officers and the Semenov guard, and again
    pressing the old man's hand went with him into the castle.
    
    When alone with the field marshal the Emperor expressed his
    dissatisfaction at the slowness of the pursuit and at the mistakes made
    at Krasnoe and the Berezina, and informed him of his intentions for a
    future campaign abroad. Kutuzov made no rejoinder or remark. The same
    submissive, expressionless look with which he had listened to the
    Emperor's commands on the field of Austerlitz seven years before settled
    on his face now.
    
    When Kutuzov came out of the study and with lowered head was crossing
    the ballroom with his heavy waddling gait, he was arrested by someone's
    voice saying:
    
    "Your Serene Highness!"
    
    Kutuzov raised his head and looked for a long while into the eyes of
    Count Tolstoy, who stood before him holding a silver salver on which lay
    a small object. Kutuzov seemed not to understand what was expected of
    him.
    
    Suddenly he seemed to remember; a scarcely perceptible smile flashed
    across his puffy face, and bowing low and respectfully he took the
    object that lay on the salver. It was the Order of St. George of the
    First Class.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Next day the field marshal gave a dinner and ball which the Emperor
    honored by his presence. Kutuzov had received the Order of St. George of
    the First Class and the Emperor showed him the highest honors, but
    everyone knew of the imperial dissatisfaction with him. The proprieties
    were observed and the Emperor was the first to set that example, but
    everybody understood that the old man was blameworthy and good-for-
    nothing. When Kutuzov, conforming to a custom of Catherine's day,
    ordered the standards that had been captured to be lowered at the
    Emperor's feet on his entering the ballroom, the Emperor made a wry face
    and muttered something in which some people caught the words, "the old
    comedian."
    
    The Emperor's displeasure with Kutuzov was specially increased at Vilna
    by the fact that Kutuzov evidently could not or would not understand the
    importance of the coming campaign.
    
    When on the following morning the Emperor said to the officers assembled
    about him: "You have not only saved Russia, you have saved Europe!" they
    all understood that the war was not ended.
    
    Kutuzov alone would not see this and openly expressed his opinion that
    no fresh war could improve the position or add to the glory of Russia,
    but could only spoil and lower the glorious position that Russia had
    gained. He tried to prove to the Emperor the impossibility of levying
    fresh troops, spoke of the hardships already endured by the people, of
    the possibility of failure and so forth.
    
    This being the field marshal's frame of mind he was naturally regarded
    as merely a hindrance and obstacle to the impending war.
    
    To avoid unpleasant encounters with the old man, the natural method was
    to do what had been done with him at Austerlitz and with Barclay at the
    beginning of the Russian campaign--to transfer the authority to the
    Emperor himself, thus cutting the ground from under the commander in
    chief's feet without upsetting the old man by informing him of the
    change.
    
    With this object his staff was gradually reconstructed and its real
    strength removed and transferred to the Emperor. Toll, Konovnitsyn, and
    Ermolov received fresh appointments. Everyone spoke loudly of the field
    marshal's great weakness and failing health.
    
    His health had to be bad for his place to be taken away and given to
    another. And in fact his health was poor.
    
    So naturally, simply, and gradually--just as he had come from Turkey to
    the Treasury in Petersburg to recruit the militia, and then to the army
    when he was needed there--now when his part was played out, Kutuzov's
    place was taken by a new and necessary performer.
    
    The war of 1812, besides its national significance dear to every Russian
    heart, was now to assume another, a European, significance.
    
    The movement of peoples from west to east was to be succeeded by a
    movement of peoples from east to west, and for this fresh war another
    leader was necessary, having qualities and views differing from
    Kutuzov's and animated by different motives.
    
    Alexander I was as necessary for the movement of the peoples from east
    to west and for the refixing of national frontiers as Kutuzov had been
    for the salvation and glory of Russia.
    
    Kutuzov did not understand what Europe, the balance of power, or
    Napoleon meant. He could not understand it. For the representative of
    the Russian people, after the enemy had been destroyed and Russia had
    been liberated and raised to the summit of her glory, there was nothing
    left to do as a Russian. Nothing remained for the representative of the
    national war but to die, and Kutuzov died.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    As generally happens, Pierre did not feel the full effects of the
    physical privation and strain he had suffered as prisoner until after
    they were over. After his liberation he reached Orel, and on the third
    day there, when preparing to go to Kiev, he fell ill and was laid up for
    three months. He had what the doctors termed "bilious fever." But
    despite the fact that the doctors treated him, bled him, and gave him
    medicines to drink, he recovered.
    
    Scarcely any impression was left on Pierre's mind by all that happened
    to him from the time of his rescue till his illness. He remembered only
    the dull gray weather now rainy and now snowy, internal physical
    distress, and pains in his feet and side. He remembered a general
    impression of the misfortunes and sufferings of people and of being
    worried by the curiosity of officers and generals who questioned him, he
    also remembered his difficulty in procuring a conveyance and horses, and
    above all he remembered his incapacity to think and feel all that time.
    On the day of his rescue he had seen the body of Petya Rostov. That same
    day he had learned that Prince Andrew, after surviving the battle of
    Borodino for more than a month had recently died in the Rostovs' house
    at Yaroslavl, and Denisov who told him this news also mentioned Helene's
    death, supposing that Pierre had heard of it long before. All this at
    the time seemed merely strange to Pierre: he felt he could not grasp its
    significance. Just then he was only anxious to get away as quickly as
    possible from places where people were killing one another, to some
    peaceful refuge where he could recover himself, rest, and think over all
    the strange new facts he had learned; but on reaching Orel he
    immediately fell ill. When he came to himself after his illness he saw
    in attendance on him two of his servants, Terenty and Vaska, who had
    come from Moscow; and also his cousin the eldest princess, who had been
    living on his estate at Elets and hearing of his rescue and illness had
    come to look after him.
    
    It was only gradually during his convalescence that Pierre lost the
    impressions he had become accustomed to during the last few months and
    got used to the idea that no one would oblige him to go anywhere
    tomorrow, that no one would deprive him of his warm bed, and that he
    would be sure to get his dinner, tea, and supper. But for a long time in
    his dreams he still saw himself in the conditions of captivity. In the
    same way little by little he came to understand the news he had been
    told after his rescue, about the death of Prince Andrew, the death of
    his wife, and the destruction of the French.
    
    A joyous feeling of freedom--that complete inalienable freedom natural
    to man which he had first experienced at the first halt outside Moscow--
    filled Pierre's soul during his convalescence. He was surprised to find
    that this inner freedom, which was independent of external conditions,
    now had as it were an additional setting of external liberty. He was
    alone in a strange town, without acquaintances. No one demanded anything
    of him or sent him anywhere. He had all he wanted: the thought of his
    wife which had been a continual torment to him was no longer there,
    since she was no more.
    
    "Oh, how good! How splendid!" said he to himself when a cleanly laid
    table was moved up to him with savory beef tea, or when he lay down for
    the night on a soft clean bed, or when he remembered that the French had
    gone and that his wife was no more. "Oh, how good, how splendid!"
    
    And by old habit he asked himself the question: "Well, and what then?
    What am I going to do?" And he immediately gave himself the answer:
    "Well, I shall live. Ah, how splendid!"
    
    The very question that had formerly tormented him, the thing he had
    continually sought to find--the aim of life--no longer existed for him
    now. That search for the aim of life had not merely disappeared
    temporarily--he felt that it no longer existed for him and could not
    present itself again. And this very absence of an aim gave him the
    complete, joyous sense of freedom which constituted his happiness at
    this time.
    
    He could not see an aim, for he now had faith--not faith in any kind of
    rule, or words, or ideas, but faith in an ever-living, ever-manifest
    God. Formerly he had sought Him in aims he set himself. That search for
    an aim had been simply a search for God, and suddenly in his captivity
    he had learned not by words or reasoning but by direct feeling what his
    nurse had told him long ago: that God is here and everywhere. In his
    captivity he had learned that in Karataev God was greater, more infinite
    and unfathomable than in the Architect of the Universe recognized by the
    Freemasons. He felt like a man who after straining his eyes to see into
    the far distance finds what he sought at his very feet. All his life he
    had looked over the heads of the men around him, when he should have
    merely looked in front of him without straining his eyes.
    
    In the past he had never been able to find that great inscrutable
    infinite something. He had only felt that it must exist somewhere and
    had looked for it. In everything near and comprehensible he had only
    what was limited, petty, commonplace, and senseless. He had equipped
    himself with a mental telescope and looked into remote space, where
    petty worldliness hiding itself in misty distance had seemed to him
    great and infinite merely because it was not clearly seen. And such had
    European life, politics, Freemasonry, philosophy, and philanthropy
    seemed to him. But even then, at moments of weakness as he had accounted
    them, his mind had penetrated to those distances and he had there seen
    the same pettiness, worldliness, and senselessness. Now, however, he had
    learned to see the great, eternal, and infinite in everything, and
    therefore--to see it and enjoy its contemplation--he naturally threw
    away the telescope through which he had till now gazed over men's heads,
    and gladly regarded the ever-changing, eternally great, unfathomable,
    and infinite life around him. And the closer he looked the more tranquil
    and happy he became. That dreadful question, "What for?" which had
    formerly destroyed all his mental edifices, no longer existed for him.
    To that question, "What for?" a simple answer was now always ready in
    his soul: "Because there is a God, that God without whose will not one
    hair falls from a man's head."
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    In external ways Pierre had hardly changed at all. In appearance he was
    just what he used to be. As before he was absent-minded and seemed
    occupied not with what was before his eyes but with something special of
    his own. The difference between his former and present self was that
    formerly when he did not grasp what lay before him or was said to him,
    he had puckered his forehead painfully as if vainly seeking to
    distinguish something at a distance. At present he still forgot what was
    said to him and still did not see what was before his eyes, but he now
    looked with a scarcely perceptible and seemingly ironic smile at what
    was before him and listened to what was said, though evidently seeing
    and hearing something quite different. Formerly he had appeared to be a
    kindhearted but unhappy man, and so people had been inclined to avoid
    him. Now a smile at the joy of life always played round his lips, and
    sympathy for others, shone in his eyes with a questioning look as to
    whether they were as contented as he was, and people felt pleased by his
    presence.
    
    Previously he had talked a great deal, grew excited when he talked, and
    seldom listened; now he was seldom carried away in conversation and knew
    how to listen so that people readily told him their most intimate
    secrets.
    
    The princess, who had never liked Pierre and had been particularly
    hostile to him since she had felt herself under obligations to him after
    the old count's death, now after staying a short time in Orel--where she
    had come intending to show Pierre that in spite of his ingratitude she
    considered it her duty to nurse him--felt to her surprise and vexation
    that she had become fond of him. Pierre did not in any way seek her
    approval, he merely studied her with interest. Formerly she had felt
    that he regarded her with indifference and irony, and so had shrunk into
    herself as she did with others and had shown him only the combative side
    of her nature; but now he seemed to be trying to understand the most
    intimate places of her heart, and, mistrustfully at first but afterwards
    gratefully, she let him see the hidden, kindly sides of her character.
    
    The most cunning man could not have crept into her confidence more
    successfully, evoking memories of the best times of her youth and
    showing sympathy with them. Yet Pierre's cunning consisted simply in
    finding pleasure in drawing out the human qualities of the embittered,
    hard, and (in her own way) proud princess.
    
    "Yes, he is a very, very kind man when he is not under the influence of
    bad people but of people such as myself," thought she.
    
    His servants too--Terenty and Vaska--in their own way noticed the change
    that had taken place in Pierre. They considered that he had become much
    "simpler." Terenty, when he had helped him undress and wished him good
    night, often lingered with his master's boots in his hands and clothes
    over his arm, to see whether he would not start a talk. And Pierre,
    noticing that Terenty wanted a chat, generally kept him there.
    
    "Well, tell me... now, how did you get food?" he would ask.
    
    And Terenty would begin talking of the destruction of Moscow, and of the
    old count, and would stand for a long time holding the clothes and
    talking, or sometimes listening to Pierre's stories, and then would go
    out into the hall with a pleasant sense of intimacy with his master and
    affection for him.
    
    The doctor who attended Pierre and visited him every day, though he
    considered it his duty as a doctor to pose as a man whose every moment
    was of value to suffering humanity, would sit for hours with Pierre
    telling him his favorite anecdotes and his observations on the
    characters of his patients in general, and especially of the ladies.
    
    "It's a pleasure to talk to a man like that; he is not like our
    provincials," he would say.
    
    There were several prisoners from the French army in Orel, and the
    doctor brought one of them, a young Italian, to see Pierre.
    
    This officer began visiting Pierre, and the princess used to make fun of
    the tenderness the Italian expressed for him.
    
    The Italian seemed happy only when he could come to see Pierre, talk
    with him, tell him about his past, his life at home, and his love, and
    pour out to him his indignation against the French and especially
    against Napoleon.
    
    "If all Russians are in the least like you, it is sacrilege to fight
    such a nation," he said to Pierre. "You, who have suffered so from the
    French, do not even feel animosity toward them."
    
    Pierre had evoked the passionate affection of the Italian merely by
    evoking the best side of his nature and taking a pleasure in so doing.
    
    During the last days of Pierre's stay in Orel his old masonic
    acquaintance Count Willarski, who had introduced him to the lodge in
    1807, came to see him. Willarski was married to a Russian heiress who
    had a large estate in Orel province, and he occupied a temporary post in
    the commissariat department in that town.
    
    Hearing that Bezukhov was in Orel, Willarski, though they had never been
    intimate, came to him with the professions of friendship and intimacy
    that people who meet in a desert generally express for one another.
    Willarski felt dull in Orel and was pleased to meet a man of his own
    circle and, as he supposed, of similar interests.
    
    But to his surprise Willarski soon noticed that Pierre had lagged much
    behind the times, and had sunk, as he expressed it to himself, into
    apathy and egotism.
    
    "You are letting yourself go, my dear fellow," he said.
    
    But for all that Willarski found it pleasanter now than it had been
    formerly to be with Pierre, and came to see him every day. To Pierre as
    he looked at and listened to Willarski, it seemed strange to think that
    he had been like that himself but a short time before.
    
    Willarski was a married man with a family, busy with his family affairs,
    his wife's affairs, and his official duties. He regarded all these
    occupations as hindrances to life, and considered that they were all
    contemptible because their aim was the welfare of himself and his
    family. Military, administrative, political, and masonic interests
    continually absorbed his attention. And Pierre, without trying to change
    the other's views and without condemning him, but with the quiet,
    joyful, and amused smile now habitual to him, was interested in this
    strange though very familiar phenomenon.
    
    There was a new feature in Pierre's relations with Willarski, with the
    princess, with the doctor, and with all the people he now met, which
    gained for him the general good will. This was his acknowledgment of the
    impossibility of changing a man's convictions by words, and his
    recognition of the possibility of everyone thinking, feeling, and seeing
    things each from his own point of view. This legitimate peculiarity of
    each individual which used to excite and irritate Pierre now became a
    basis of the sympathy he felt for, and the interest he took in, other
    people. The difference, and sometimes complete contradiction, between
    men's opinions and their lives, and between one man and another, pleased
    him and drew from him an amused and gentle smile.
    
    In practical matters Pierre unexpectedly felt within himself a center of
    gravity he had previously lacked. Formerly all pecuniary questions,
    especially requests for money to which, as an extremely wealthy man, he
    was very exposed, produced in him a state of hopeless agitation and
    perplexity. "To give or not to give?" he had asked himself. "I have it
    and he needs it. But someone else needs it still more. Who needs it
    most? And perhaps they are both impostors?" In the old days he had been
    unable to find a way out of all these surmises and had given to all who
    asked as long as he had anything to give. Formerly he had been in a
    similar state of perplexity with regard to every question concerning his
    property, when one person advised one thing and another something else.
    
    Now to his surprise he found that he no longer felt either doubt or
    perplexity about these questions. There was now within him a judge who
    by some rule unknown to him decided what should or should not be done.
    
    He was as indifferent as heretofore to money matters, but now he felt
    certain of what ought and what ought not to be done. The first time he
    had recourse to his new judge was when a French prisoner, a colonel,
    came to him and, after talking a great deal about his exploits,
    concluded by making what amounted to a demand that Pierre should give
    him four thousand francs to send to his wife and children. Pierre
    refused without the least difficulty or effort, and was afterwards
    surprised how simple and easy had been what used to appear so
    insurmountably difficult. At the same time that he refused the colonel's
    demand he made up his mind that he must have recourse to artifice when
    leaving Orel, to induce the Italian officer to accept some money of
    which he was evidently in need. A further proof to Pierre of his own
    more settled outlook on practical matters was furnished by his decision
    with regard to his wife's debts and to the rebuilding of his houses in
    and near Moscow.
    
    His head steward came to him at Orel and Pierre reckoned up with him his
    diminished income. The burning of Moscow had cost him, according to the
    head steward's calculation, about two million rubles.
    
    To console Pierre for these losses the head steward gave him an estimate
    showing that despite these losses his income would not be diminished but
    would even be increased if he refused to pay his wife's debts which he
    was under no obligation to meet, and did not rebuild his Moscow house
    and the country house on his Moscow estate, which had cost him eighty
    thousand rubles a year and brought in nothing.
    
    "Yes, of course that's true," said Pierre with a cheerful smile. "I
    don't need all that at all. By being ruined I have become much richer."
    
    But in January Savelich came from Moscow and gave him an account of the
    state of things there, and spoke of the estimate an architect had made
    of the cost of rebuilding the town and country houses, speaking of this
    as of a settled matter. About the same time he received letters from
    Prince Vasili and other Petersburg acquaintances speaking of his wife's
    debts. And Pierre decided that the steward's proposals which had so
    pleased him were wrong and that he must go to Petersburg and settle his
    wife's affairs and must rebuild in Moscow. Why this was necessary he did
    not know, but he knew for certain that it was necessary. His income
    would be reduced by three fourths, but he felt it must be done.
    
    Willarski was going to Moscow and they agreed to travel together.
    
    During the whole time of his convalescence in Orel Pierre had
    experienced a feeling of joy, freedom, and life; but when during his
    journey he found himself in the open world and saw hundreds of new
    faces, that feeling was intensified. Throughout his journey he felt like
    a schoolboy on holiday. Everyone--the stagecoach driver, the post-house
    overseers, the peasants on the roads and in the villages--had a new
    significance for him. The presence and remarks of Willarski who
    continually deplored the ignorance and poverty of Russia and its
    backwardness compared with Europe only heightened Pierre's pleasure.
    Where Willarski saw deadness Pierre saw an extraordinary strength and
    vitality--the strength which in that vast space amid the snows
    maintained the life of this original, peculiar, and unique people. He
    did not contradict Willarski and even seemed to agree with him--an
    apparent agreement being the simplest way to avoid discussions that
    could lead to nothing--and he smiled joyfully as he listened to him.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    It would be difficult to explain why and whither ants whose heap has
    been destroyed are hurrying: some from the heap dragging bits of
    rubbish, larvae, and corpses, others back to the heap, or why they
    jostle, overtake one another, and fight, and it would be equally
    difficult to explain what caused the Russians after the departure of the
    French to throng to the place that had formerly been Moscow. But when we
    watch the ants round their ruined heap, the tenacity, energy, and
    immense number of the delving insects prove that despite the destruction
    of the heap, something indestructible, which though intangible is the
    real strength of the colony, still exists; and similarly, though in
    Moscow in the month of October there was no government and no churches,
    shrines, riches, or houses--it was still the Moscow it had been in
    August. All was destroyed, except something intangible yet powerful and
    indestructible.
    
    The motives of those who thronged from all sides to Moscow after it had
    been cleared of the enemy were most diverse and personal, and at first
    for the most part savage and brutal. One motive only they all had in
    common: a desire to get to the place that had been called Moscow, to
    apply their activities there.
    
    Within a week Moscow already had fifteen thousand inhabitants, in a
    fortnight twenty-five thousand, and so on. By the autumn of 1813 the
    number, ever increasing and increasing, exceeded what it had been in
    1812.
    
    The first Russians to enter Moscow were the Cossacks of Wintzingerode's
    detachment, peasants from the adjacent villages, and residents who had
    fled from Moscow and had been hiding in its vicinity. The Russians who
    entered Moscow, finding it plundered, plundered it in their turn. They
    continued what the French had begun. Trains of peasant carts came to
    Moscow to carry off to the villages what had been abandoned in the
    ruined houses and the streets. The Cossacks carried off what they could
    to their camps, and the householders seized all they could find in other
    houses and moved it to their own, pretending that it was their property.
    
    But the first plunderers were followed by a second and a third
    contingent, and with increasing numbers plundering became more and more
    difficult and assumed more definite forms.
    
    The French found Moscow abandoned but with all the organizations of
    regular life, with diverse branches of commerce and craftsmanship, with
    luxury, and governmental and religious institutions. These forms were
    lifeless but still existed. There were bazaars, shops, warehouses,
    market stalls, granaries--for the most part still stocked with goods--
    and there were factories and workshops, palaces and wealthy houses
    filled with luxuries, hospitals, prisons, government offices, churches,
    and cathedrals. The longer the French remained the more these forms of
    town life perished, until finally all was merged into one confused,
    lifeless scene of plunder.
    
    The more the plundering by the French continued, the more both the
    wealth of Moscow and the strength of its plunderers was destroyed. But
    plundering by the Russians, with which the reoccupation of the city
    began, had an opposite effect: the longer it continued and the greater
    the number of people taking part in it the more rapidly was the wealth
    of the city and its regular life restored.
    
    Besides the plunderers, very various people, some drawn by curiosity,
    some by official duties, some by self-interest--house owners, clergy,
    officials of all kinds, tradesmen, artisans, and peasants--streamed into
    Moscow as blood flows to the heart.
    
    Within a week the peasants who came with empty carts to carry off
    plunder were stopped by the authorities and made to cart the corpses out
    of the town. Other peasants, having heard of their comrades'
    discomfiture, came to town bringing rye, oats, and hay, and beat down
    one another's prices to below what they had been in former days. Gangs
    of carpenters hoping for high pay arrived in Moscow every day, and on
    all sides logs were being hewn, new houses built, and old, charred ones
    repaired. Tradesmen began trading in booths. Cookshops and taverns were
    opened in partially burned houses. The clergy resumed the services in
    many churches that had not been burned. Donors contributed Church
    property that had been stolen. Government clerks set up their baize-
    covered tables and their pigeonholes of documents in small rooms. The
    higher authorities and the police organized the distribution of goods
    left behind by the French. The owners of houses in which much property
    had been left, brought there from other houses, complained of the
    injustice of taking everything to the Faceted Palace in the Kremlin;
    others insisted that as the French had gathered things from different
    houses into this or that house, it would be unfair to allow its owner to
    keep all that was found there. They abused the police and bribed them,
    made out estimates at ten times their value for government stores that
    had perished in the fire, and demanded relief. And Count Rostopchin
    wrote proclamations.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    At the end of January Pierre went to Moscow and stayed in an annex of
    his house which had not been burned. He called on Count Rostopchin and
    on some acquaintances who were back in Moscow, and he intended to leave
    for Petersburg two days later. Everybody was celebrating the victory,
    everything was bubbling with life in the ruined but reviving city.
    Everyone was pleased to see Pierre, everyone wished to meet him, and
    everyone questioned him about what he had seen. Pierre felt particularly
    well disposed toward them all, but was now instinctively on his guard
    for fear of binding himself in any way. To all questions put to him--
    whether important or quite trifling--such as: Where would he live? Was
    he going to rebuild? When was he going to Petersburg and would he mind
    taking a parcel for someone?--he replied: "Yes, perhaps," or, "I think
    so," and so on.
    
    He had heard that the Rostovs were at Kostroma but the thought of
    Natasha seldom occurred to him. If it did it was only as a pleasant
    memory of the distant past. He felt himself not only free from social
    obligations but also from that feeling which, it seemed to him, he had
    aroused in himself.
    
    On the third day after his arrival he heard from the Drubetskoys that
    Princess Mary was in Moscow. The death, sufferings, and last days of
    Prince Andrew had often occupied Pierre's thoughts and now recurred to
    him with fresh vividness. Having heard at dinner that Princess Mary was
    in Moscow and living in her house--which had not been burned--in
    Vozdvizhenka Street, he drove that same evening to see her.
    
    On his way to the house Pierre kept thinking of Prince Andrew, of their
    friendship, of his various meetings with him, and especially of the last
    one at Borodino.
    
    "Is it possible that he died in the bitter frame of mind he was then in?
    Is it possible that the meaning of life was not disclosed to him before
    he died?" thought Pierre. He recalled Karataev and his death and
    involuntarily began to compare these two men, so different, and yet so
    similar in that they had both lived and both died and in the love he
    felt for both of them.
    
    Pierre drove up to the house of the old prince in a most serious mood.
    The house had escaped the fire; it showed signs of damage but its
    general aspect was unchanged. The old footman, who met Pierre with a
    stern face as if wishing to make the visitor feel that the absence of
    the old prince had not disturbed the order of things in the house,
    informed him that the princess had gone to her own apartments, and that
    she received on Sundays.
    
    "Announce me. Perhaps she will see me," said Pierre.
    
    "Yes, sir," said the man. "Please step into the portrait gallery."
    
    A few minutes later the footman returned with Dessalles, who brought
    word from the princess that she would be very glad to see Pierre if he
    would excuse her want of ceremony and come upstairs to her apartment.
    
    In a rather low room lit by one candle sat the princess and with her
    another person dressed in black. Pierre remembered that the princess
    always had lady companions, but who they were and what they were like he
    never knew or remembered. "This must be one of her companions," he
    thought, glancing at the lady in the black dress.
    
    The princess rose quickly to meet him and held out her hand.
    
    "Yes," she said, looking at his altered face after he had kissed her
    hand, "so this is how we meet again. He spoke of you even at the very
    last," she went on, turning her eyes from Pierre to her companion with a
    shyness that surprised him for an instant.
    
    "I was so glad to hear of your safety. It was the first piece of good
    news we had received for a long time."
    
    Again the princess glanced round at her companion with even more
    uneasiness in her manner and was about to add something, but Pierre
    interrupted her.
    
    "Just imagine--I knew nothing about him!" said he. "I thought he had
    been killed. All I know I heard at second hand from others. I only know
    that he fell in with the Rostovs.... What a strange coincidence!"
    
    Pierre spoke rapidly and with animation. He glanced once at the
    companion's face, saw her attentive and kindly gaze fixed on him, and,
    as often happens when one is talking, felt somehow that this companion
    in the black dress was a good, kind, excellent creature who would not
    hinder his conversing freely with Princess Mary.
    
    But when he mentioned the Rostovs, Princess Mary's face expressed still
    greater embarrassment. She again glanced rapidly from Pierre's face to
    that of the lady in the black dress and said:
    
    "Do you really not recognize her?"
    
    Pierre looked again at the companion's pale, delicate face with its
    black eyes and peculiar mouth, and something near to him, long forgotten
    and more than sweet, looked at him from those attentive eyes.
    
    "But no, it can't be!" he thought. "This stern, thin, pale face that
    looks so much older! It cannot be she. It merely reminds me of her." But
    at that moment Princess Mary said, "Natasha!" And with difficulty,
    effort, and stress, like the opening of a door grown rusty on its
    hinges, a smile appeared on the face with the attentive eyes, and from
    that opening door came a breath of fragrance which suffused Pierre with
    a happiness he had long forgotten and of which he had not even been
    thinking--especially at that moment. It suffused him, seized him, and
    enveloped him completely. When she smiled doubt was no longer possible,
    it was Natasha and he loved her.
    
    At that moment Pierre involuntarily betrayed to her, to Princess Mary,
    and above all to himself, a secret of which he himself had been unaware.
    He flushed joyfully yet with painful distress. He tried to hide his
    agitation. But the more he tried to hide it the more clearly--clearer
    than any words could have done--did he betray to himself, to her, and to
    Princess Mary that he loved her.
    
    "No, it's only the unexpectedness of it," thought Pierre. But as soon as
    he tried to continue the conversation he had begun with Princess Mary he
    again glanced at Natasha, and a still-deeper flush suffused his face and
    a still-stronger agitation of mingled joy and fear seized his soul. He
    became confused in his speech and stopped in the middle of what he was
    saying.
    
    Pierre had failed to notice Natasha because he did not at all expect to
    see her there, but he had failed to recognize her because the change in
    her since he last saw her was immense. She had grown thin and pale, but
    that was not what made her unrecognizable; she was unrecognizable at the
    moment he entered because on that face whose eyes had always shone with
    a suppressed smile of the joy of life, now when he first entered and
    glanced at her there was not the least shadow of a smile: only her eyes
    were kindly attentive and sadly interrogative.
    
    Pierre's confusion was not reflected by any confusion on Natasha's part,
    but only by the pleasure that just perceptibly lit up her whole face.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    "She has come to stay with me," said Princess Mary. "The count and
    countess will be here in a few days. The countess is in a dreadful
    state; but it was necessary for Natasha herself to see a doctor. They
    insisted on her coming with me."
    
    "Yes, is there a family free from sorrow now?" said Pierre, addressing
    Natasha. "You know it happened the very day we were rescued. I saw him.
    What a delightful boy he was!"
    
    Natasha looked at him, and by way of answer to his words her eyes
    widened and lit up.
    
    "What can one say or think of as a consolation?" said Pierre. "Nothing!
    Why had such a splendid boy, so full of life, to die?"
    
    "Yes, in these days it would be hard to live without faith..." remarked
    Princess Mary.
    
    "Yes, yes, that is really true," Pierre hastily interrupted her.
    
    "Why is it true?" Natasha asked, looking attentively into Pierre's eyes.
    
    "How can you ask why?" said Princess Mary. "The thought alone of what
    awaits..."
    
    Natasha without waiting for Princess Mary to finish again looked
    inquiringly at Pierre.
    
    "And because," Pierre continued, "only one who believes that there is a
    God ruling us can bear a loss such as hers and... yours."
    
    Natasha had already opened her mouth to speak but suddenly stopped.
    Pierre hurriedly turned away from her and again addressed Princess Mary,
    asking about his friend's last days.
    
    Pierre's confusion had now almost vanished, but at the same time he felt
    that his freedom had also completely gone. He felt that there was now a
    judge of his every word and action whose judgment mattered more to him
    than that of all the rest of the world. As he spoke now he was
    considering what impression his words would make on Natasha. He did not
    purposely say things to please her, but whatever he was saying he
    regarded from her standpoint.
    
    Princess Mary--reluctantly as is usual in such cases--began telling of
    the condition in which she had found Prince Andrew. But Pierre's face
    quivering with emotion, his questions and his eager restless expression,
    gradually compelled her to go into details which she feared to recall
    for her own sake.
    
    "Yes, yes, and so...?" Pierre kept saying as he leaned toward her with
    his whole body and eagerly listened to her story. "Yes, yes... so he
    grew tranquil and softened? With all his soul he had always sought one
    thing--to be perfectly good--so he could not be afraid of death. The
    faults he had--if he had any--were not of his making. So he did
    soften?... What a happy thing that he saw you again," he added, suddenly
    turning to Natasha and looking at her with eyes full of tears.
    
    Natasha's face twitched. She frowned and lowered her eyes for a moment.
    She hesitated for an instant whether to speak or not.
    
    "Yes, that was happiness," she then said in her quiet voice with its
    deep chest notes. "For me it certainly was happiness." She paused. "And
    he... he... he said he was wishing for it at the very moment I entered
    the room...."
    
    Natasha's voice broke. She blushed, pressed her clasped hands on her
    knees, and then controlling herself with an evident effort lifted her
    head and began to speak rapidly.
    
    "We knew nothing of it when we started from Moscow. I did not dare to
    ask about him. Then suddenly Sonya told me he was traveling with us. I
    had no idea and could not imagine what state he was in, all I wanted was
    to see him and be with him," she said, trembling, and breathing quickly.
    
    And not letting them interrupt her she went on to tell what she had
    never yet mentioned to anyone--all she had lived through during those
    three weeks of their journey and life at Yaroslavl.
    
    Pierre listened to her with lips parted and eyes fixed upon her full of
    tears. As he listened he did not think of Prince Andrew, nor of death,
    nor of what she was telling. He listened to her and felt only pity for
    her, for what she was suffering now while she was speaking.
    
    Princess Mary, frowning in her effort to hold back her tears, sat beside
    Natasha, and heard for the first time the story of those last days of
    her brother's and Natasha's love.
    
    Evidently Natasha needed to tell that painful yet joyful tale.
    
    She spoke, mingling most trifling details with the intimate secrets of
    her soul, and it seemed as if she could never finish. Several times she
    repeated the same thing twice.
    
    Dessalles' voice was heard outside the door asking whether little
    Nicholas might come in to say good night.
    
    "Well, that's all--everything," said Natasha.
    
    She got up quickly just as Nicholas entered, almost ran to the door
    which was hidden by curtains, struck her head against it, and rushed
    from the room with a moan either of pain or sorrow.
    
    Pierre gazed at the door through which she had disappeared and did not
    understand why he suddenly felt all alone in the world.
    
    Princess Mary roused him from his abstraction by drawing his attention
    to her nephew who had entered the room.
    
    At that moment of emotional tenderness young Nicholas' face, which
    resembled his father's, affected Pierre so much that when he had kissed
    the boy he got up quickly, took out his handkerchief, and went to the
    window. He wished to take leave of Princess Mary, but she would not let
    him go.
    
    "No, Natasha and I sometimes don't go to sleep till after two, so please
    don't go. I will order supper. Go downstairs, we will come immediately."
    
    Before Pierre left the room Princess Mary told him: "This is the first
    time she has talked of him like that."
    
    CHAPTER XVII
    
    Pierre was shown into the large, brightly lit dining room; a few minutes
    later he heard footsteps and Princess Mary entered with Natasha. Natasha
    was calm, though a severe and grave expression had again settled on her
    face. They all three of them now experienced that feeling of awkwardness
    which usually follows after a serious and heartfelt talk. It is
    impossible to go back to the same conversation, to talk of trifles is
    awkward, and yet the desire to speak is there and silence seems like
    affectation. They went silently to table. The footmen drew back the
    chairs and pushed them up again. Pierre unfolded his cold table napkin
    and, resolving to break the silence, looked at Natasha and at Princess
    Mary. They had evidently both formed the same resolution; the eyes of
    both shone with satisfaction and a confession that besides sorrow life
    also has joy.
    
    "Do you take vodka, Count?" asked Princess Mary, and those words
    suddenly banished the shadows of the past. "Now tell us about yourself,"
    said she. "One hears such improbable wonders about you."
    
    "Yes," replied Pierre with the smile of mild irony now habitual to him.
    "They even tell me wonders I myself never dreamed of! Mary Abramovna
    invited me to her house and kept telling me what had happened, or ought
    to have happened, to me. Stepan Stepanych also instructed me how I ought
    to tell of my experiences. In general I have noticed that it is very
    easy to be an interesting man (I am an interesting man now); people
    invite me out and tell me all about myself."
    
    Natasha smiled and was on the point of speaking.
    
    "We have been told," Princess Mary interrupted her, "that you lost two
    millions in Moscow. Is that true?"
    
    "But I am three times as rich as before," returned Pierre.
    
    Though the position was now altered by his decision to pay his wife's
    debts and to rebuild his houses, Pierre still maintained that he had
    become three times as rich as before.
    
    "What I have certainly gained is freedom," he began seriously, but did
    not continue, noticing that this theme was too egotistic.
    
    "And are you building?"
    
    "Yes. Savelich says I must!"
    
    "Tell me, you did not know of the countess' death when you decided to
    remain in Moscow?" asked Princess Mary and immediately blushed, noticing
    that her question, following his mention of freedom, ascribed to his
    words a meaning he had perhaps not intended.
    
    "No," answered Pierre, evidently not considering awkward the meaning
    Princess Mary had given to his words. "I heard of it in Orel and you
    cannot imagine how it shocked me. We were not an exemplary couple," he
    added quickly, glancing at Natasha and noticing on her face curiosity as
    to how he would speak of his wife, "but her death shocked me terribly.
    When two people quarrel they are always both in fault, and one's own
    guilt suddenly becomes terribly serious when the other is no longer
    alive. And then such a death... without friends and without consolation!
    I am very, very sorry for her," he concluded, and was pleased to notice
    a look of glad approval on Natasha's face.
    
    "Yes, and so you are once more an eligible bachelor," said Princess
    Mary.
    
    Pierre suddenly flushed crimson and for a long time tried not to look at
    Natasha. When he ventured to glance her way again her face was cold,
    stern, and he fancied even contemptuous.
    
    "And did you really see and speak to Napoleon, as we have been told?"
    said Princess Mary.
    
    Pierre laughed.
    
    "No, not once! Everybody seems to imagine that being taken prisoner
    means being Napoleon's guest. Not only did I never see him but I heard
    nothing about him--I was in much lower company!"
    
    Supper was over, and Pierre who at first declined to speak about his
    captivity was gradually led on to do so.
    
    "But it's true that you remained in Moscow to kill Napoleon?" Natasha
    asked with a slight smile. "I guessed it then when we met at the
    Sukharev tower, do you remember?"
    
    Pierre admitted that it was true, and from that was gradually led by
    Princess Mary's questions and especially by Natasha's into giving a
    detailed account of his adventures.
    
    At first he spoke with the amused and mild irony now customary with him
    toward everybody and especially toward himself, but when he came to
    describe the horrors and sufferings he had witnessed he was
    unconsciously carried away and began speaking with the suppressed
    emotion of a man re-experiencing in recollection strong impressions he
    has lived through.
    
    Princess Mary with a gentle smile looked now at Pierre and now at
    Natasha. In the whole narrative she saw only Pierre and his goodness.
    Natasha, leaning on her elbow, the expression of her face constantly
    changing with the narrative, watched Pierre with an attention that never
    wandered--evidently herself experiencing all that he described. Not only
    her look, but her exclamations and the brief questions she put, showed
    Pierre that she understood just what he wished to convey. It was clear
    that she understood not only what he said but also what he wished to,
    but could not, express in words. The account Pierre gave of the incident
    with the child and the woman for protecting whom he was arrested was
    this: "It was an awful sight--children abandoned, some in the flames...
    One was snatched out before my eyes... and there were women who had
    their things snatched off and their earrings torn out..." he flushed and
    grew confused. "Then a patrol arrived and all the men--all those who
    were not looting, that is--were arrested, and I among them."
    
    "I am sure you're not telling us everything; I am sure you did
    something..." said Natasha and pausing added, "something fine?"
    
    Pierre continued. When he spoke of the execution he wanted to pass over
    the horrible details, but Natasha insisted that he should not omit
    anything.
    
    Pierre began to tell about Karataev, but paused. By this time he had
    risen from the table and was pacing the room, Natasha following him with
    her eyes. Then he added:
    
    "No, you can't understand what I learned from that illiterate man--that
    simple fellow."
    
    "Yes, yes, go on!" said Natasha. "Where is he?"
    
    "They killed him almost before my eyes."
    
    And Pierre, his voice trembling continually, went on to tell of the last
    days of their retreat, of Karataev's illness and his death.
    
    He told of his adventures as he had never yet recalled them. He now, as
    it were, saw a new meaning in all he had gone through. Now that he was
    telling it all to Natasha he experienced that pleasure which a man has
    when women listen to him--not clever women who when listening either try
    to remember what they hear to enrich their minds and when opportunity
    offers to retell it, or who wish to adopt it to some thought of their
    own and promptly contribute their own clever comments prepared in their
    little mental workshop--but the pleasure given by real women gifted with
    a capacity to select and absorb the very best a man shows of himself.
    Natasha without knowing it was all attention: she did not lose a word,
    no single quiver in Pierre's voice, no look, no twitch of a muscle in
    his face, nor a single gesture. She caught the unfinished word in its
    flight and took it straight into her open heart, divining the secret
    meaning of all Pierre's mental travail.
    
    Princess Mary understood his story and sympathized with him, but she now
    saw something else that absorbed all her attention. She saw the
    possibility of love and happiness between Natasha and Pierre, and the
    first thought of this filled her heart with gladness.
    
    It was three o'clock in the morning. The footmen came in with sad and
    stern faces to change the candles, but no one noticed them.
    
    Pierre finished his story. Natasha continued to look at him intently
    with bright, attentive, and animated eyes, as if trying to understand
    something more which he had perhaps left untold. Pierre in shamefaced
    and happy confusion glanced occasionally at her, and tried to think what
    to say next to introduce a fresh subject. Princess Mary was silent. It
    occurred to none of them that it was three o'clock and time to go to
    bed.
    
    "People speak of misfortunes and sufferings," remarked Pierre, "but if
    at this moment I were asked: 'Would you rather be what you were before
    you were taken prisoner, or go through all this again?' then for
    heaven's sake let me again have captivity and horseflesh! We imagine
    that when we are thrown out of our usual ruts all is lost, but it is
    only then that what is new and good begins. While there is life there is
    happiness. There is much, much before us. I say this to you," he added,
    turning to Natasha.
    
    "Yes, yes," she said, answering something quite different. "I too should
    wish nothing but to relive it all from the beginning."
    
    Pierre looked intently at her.
    
    "Yes, and nothing more," said Natasha.
    
    "It's not true, not true!" cried Pierre. "I am not to blame for being
    alive and wishing to live--nor you either."
    
    Suddenly Natasha bent her head, covered her face with her hands, and
    began to cry.
    
    "What is it, Natasha?" said Princess Mary.
    
    "Nothing, nothing." She smiled at Pierre through her tears. "Good night!
    It is time for bed."
    
    Pierre rose and took his leave.
    
    Princess Mary and Natasha met as usual in the bedroom. They talked of
    what Pierre had told them. Princess Mary did not express her opinion of
    Pierre nor did Natasha speak of him.
    
    "Well, good night, Mary!" said Natasha. "Do you know, I am often afraid
    that by not speaking of him" (she meant Prince Andrew) "for fear of not
    doing justice to our feelings, we forget him."
    
    Princess Mary sighed deeply and thereby acknowledged the justice of
    Natasha's remark, but she did not express agreement in words.
    
    "Is it possible to forget?" said she.
    
    "It did me so much good to tell all about it today. It was hard and
    painful, but good, very good!" said Natasha. "I am sure he really loved
    him. That is why I told him... Was it all right?" she added, suddenly
    blushing.
    
    "To tell Pierre? Oh, yes. What a splendid man he is!" said Princess
    Mary.
    
    "Do you know, Mary..." Natasha suddenly said with a mischievous smile
    such as Princess Mary had not seen on her face for a long time, "he has
    somehow grown so clean, smooth, and fresh--as if he had just come out of
    a Russian bath; do you understand? Out of a moral bath. Isn't it true?"
    
    "Yes," replied Princess Mary. "He has greatly improved."
    
    "With a short coat and his hair cropped; just as if, well, just as if he
    had come straight from the bath... Papa used to..."
    
    "I understand why he" (Prince Andrew) "liked no one so much as him,"
    said Princess Mary.
    
    "Yes, and yet he is quite different. They say men are friends when they
    are quite different. That must be true. Really he is quite unlike him--
    in everything."
    
    "Yes, but he's wonderful."
    
    "Well, good night," said Natasha.
    
    And the same mischievous smile lingered for a long time on her face as
    if it had been forgotten there.
    
    CHAPTER XVIII
    
    It was a long time before Pierre could fall asleep that night. He paced
    up and down his room, now turning his thoughts on a difficult problem
    and frowning, now suddenly shrugging his shoulders and wincing, and now
    smiling happily.
    
    He was thinking of Prince Andrew, of Natasha, and of their love, at one
    moment jealous of her past, then reproaching himself for that feeling.
    It was already six in the morning and he still paced up and down the
    room.
    
    "Well, what's to be done if it cannot be avoided? What's to be done?
    Evidently it has to be so," said he to himself, and hastily undressing
    he got into bed, happy and agitated but free from hesitation or
    indecision.
    
    "Strange and impossible as such happiness seems, I must do everything
    that she and I may be man and wife," he told himself.
    
    A few days previously Pierre had decided to go to Petersburg on the
    Friday. When he awoke on the Thursday, Savelich came to ask him about
    packing for the journey.
    
    "What, to Petersburg? What is Petersburg? Who is there in Petersburg?"
    he asked involuntarily, though only to himself. "Oh, yes, long ago
    before this happened I did for some reason mean to go to Petersburg," he
    reflected. "Why? But perhaps I shall go. What a good fellow he is and
    how attentive, and how he remembers everything," he thought, looking at
    Savelich's old face, "and what a pleasant smile he has!"
    
    "Well, Savelich, do you still not wish to accept your freedom?" Pierre
    asked him.
    
    "What's the good of freedom to me, your excellency? We lived under the
    late count--the kingdom of heaven be his!--and we have lived under you
    too, without ever being wronged."
    
    "And your children?"
    
    "The children will live just the same. With such masters one can live."
    
    "But what about my heirs?" said Pierre. "Supposing I suddenly marry...
    it might happen," he added with an involuntary smile.
    
    "If I may take the liberty, your excellency, it would be a good thing."
    
    "How easy he thinks it," thought Pierre. "He doesn't know how terrible
    it is and how dangerous. Too soon or too late... it is terrible!"
    
    "So what are your orders? Are you starting tomorrow?" asked Savelich.
    
    "No, I'll put it off for a bit. I'll tell you later. You must forgive
    the trouble I have put you to," said Pierre, and seeing Savelich smile,
    he thought: "But how strange it is that he should not know that now
    there is no Petersburg for me, and that that must be settled first of
    all! But probably he knows it well enough and is only pretending. Shall
    I have a talk with him and see what he thinks?" Pierre reflected. "No,
    another time."
    
    At breakfast Pierre told the princess, his cousin, that he had been to
    see Princess Mary the day before and had there met--"Whom do you think?
    Natasha Rostova!"
    
    The princess seemed to see nothing more extraordinary in that than if he
    had seen Anna Semenovna.
    
    "Do you know her?" asked Pierre.
    
    "I have seen the princess," she replied. "I heard that they were
    arranging a match for her with young Rostov. It would be a very good
    thing for the Rostovs, they are said to be utterly ruined."
    
    "No; I mean do you know Natasha Rostova?"
    
    "I heard about that affair of hers at the time. It was a great pity."
    
    "No, she either doesn't understand or is pretending," thought Pierre.
    "Better not say anything to her either."
    
    The princess too had prepared provisions for Pierre's journey.
    
    "How kind they all are," thought Pierre. "What is surprising is that
    they should trouble about these things now when it can no longer be of
    interest to them. And all for me!"
    
    On the same day the Chief of Police came to Pierre, inviting him to send
    a representative to the Faceted Palace to recover things that were to be
    returned to their owners that day.
    
    "And this man too," thought Pierre, looking into the face of the Chief
    of Police. "What a fine, good-looking officer and how kind. Fancy
    bothering about such trifles now! And they actually say he is not honest
    and takes bribes. What nonsense! Besides, why shouldn't he take bribes?
    That's the way he was brought up, and everybody does it. But what a
    kind, pleasant face and how he smiles as he looks at me."
    
    Pierre went to Princess Mary's to dinner.
    
    As he drove through the streets past the houses that had been burned
    down, he was surprised by the beauty of those ruins. The picturesqueness
    of the chimney stacks and tumble-down walls of the burned-out quarters
    of the town, stretching out and concealing one another, reminded him of
    the Rhine and the Colosseum. The cabmen he met and their passengers, the
    carpenters cutting the timber for new houses with axes, the women
    hawkers, and the shopkeepers, all looked at him with cheerful beaming
    eyes that seemed to say: "Ah, there he is! Let's see what will come of
    it!"
    
    At the entrance to Princess Mary's house Pierre felt doubtful whether he
    had really been there the night before and really seen Natasha and
    talked to her. "Perhaps I imagined it; perhaps I shall go in and find no
    one there." But he had hardly entered the room before he felt her
    presence with his whole being by the loss of his sense of freedom. She
    was in the same black dress with soft folds and her hair was done the
    same way as the day before, yet she was quite different. Had she been
    like this when he entered the day before he could not for a moment have
    failed to recognize her.
    
    She was as he had known her almost as a child and later on as Prince
    Andrew's fiancee. A bright questioning light shone in her eyes, and on
    her face was a friendly and strangely roguish expression.
    
    Pierre dined with them and would have spent the whole evening there, but
    Princess Mary was going to vespers and Pierre left the house with her.
    
    Next day he came early, dined, and stayed the whole evening. Though
    Princess Mary and Natasha were evidently glad to see their visitor and
    though all Pierre's interest was now centered in that house, by the
    evening they had talked over everything and the conversation passed from
    one trivial topic to another and repeatedly broke off. He stayed so long
    that Princess Mary and Natasha exchanged glances, evidently wondering
    when he would go. Pierre noticed this but could not go. He felt uneasy
    and embarrassed, but sat on because he simply could not get up and take
    his leave.
    
    Princess Mary, foreseeing no end to this, rose first, and complaining of
    a headache began to say good night.
    
    "So you are going to Petersburg tomorrow?" she asked.
    
    "No, I am not going," Pierre replied hastily, in a surprised tone and as
    though offended. "Yes... no... to Petersburg? Tomorrow--but I won't say
    good-by yet. I will call round in case you have any commissions for me,"
    said he, standing before Princess Mary and turning red, but not taking
    his departure.
    
    Natasha gave him her hand and went out. Princess Mary on the other hand
    instead of going away sank into an armchair, and looked sternly and
    intently at him with her deep, radiant eyes. The weariness she had
    plainly shown before had now quite passed off. With a deep and long-
    drawn sigh she seemed to be prepared for a lengthy talk.
    
    When Natasha left the room Pierre's confusion and awkwardness
    immediately vanished and were replaced by eager excitement. He quickly
    moved an armchair toward Princess Mary.
    
    "Yes, I wanted to tell you," said he, answering her look as if she had
    spoken. "Princess, help me! What am I to do? Can I hope? Princess, my
    dear friend, listen! I know it all. I know I am not worthy of her, I
    know it's impossible to speak of it now. But I want to be a brother to
    her. No, not that, I don't, I can't..."
    
    He paused and rubbed his face and eyes with his hands.
    
    "Well," he went on with an evident effort at self-control and coherence.
    "I don't know when I began to love her, but I have loved her and her
    alone all my life, and I love her so that I cannot imagine life without
    her. I cannot propose to her at present, but the thought that perhaps
    she might someday be my wife and that I may be missing that
    possibility... that possibility... is terrible. Tell me, can I hope?
    Tell me what I am to do, dear princess!" he added after a pause, and
    touched her hand as she did not reply.
    
    "I am thinking of what you have told me," answered Princess Mary. "This
    is what I will say. You are right that to speak to her of love at
    present..."
    
    Princess Mary stopped. She was going to say that to speak of love was
    impossible, but she stopped because she had seen by the sudden change in
    Natasha two days before that she would not only not be hurt if Pierre
    spoke of his love, but that it was the very thing she wished for.
    
    "To speak to her now wouldn't do," said the princess all the same.
    
    "But what am I to do?"
    
    "Leave it to me," said Princess Mary. "I know..."
    
    Pierre was looking into Princess Mary's eyes.
    
    "Well?... Well?..." he said.
    
    "I know that she loves... will love you," Princess Mary corrected
    herself.
    
    Before her words were out, Pierre had sprung up and with a frightened
    expression seized Princess Mary's hand.
    
    "What makes you think so? You think I may hope? You think...?"
    
    "Yes, I think so," said Princess Mary with a smile. "Write to her
    parents, and leave it to me. I will tell her when I can. I wish it to
    happen and my heart tells me it will."
    
    "No, it cannot be! How happy I am! But it can't be.... How happy I am!
    No, it can't be!" Pierre kept saying as he kissed Princess Mary's hands.
    
    "Go to Petersburg, that will be best. And I will write to you," she
    said.
    
    "To Petersburg? Go there? Very well, I'll go. But I may come again
    tomorrow?"
    
    Next day Pierre came to say good-by. Natasha was less animated than she
    had been the day before; but that day as he looked at her Pierre
    sometimes felt as if he was vanishing and that neither he nor she
    existed any longer, that nothing existed but happiness. "Is it possible?
    No, it can't be," he told himself at every look, gesture, and word that
    filled his soul with joy.
    
    When on saying good-by he took her thin, slender hand, he could not help
    holding it a little longer in his own.
    
    "Is it possible that this hand, that face, those eyes, all this treasure
    of feminine charm so strange to me now, is it possible that it will one
    day be mine forever, as familiar to me as I am to myself?... No, that's
    impossible!..."
    
    "Good-bye, Count," she said aloud. "I shall look forward very much to
    your return," she added in a whisper.
    
    And these simple words, her look, and the expression on her face which
    accompanied them, formed for two months the subject of inexhaustible
    memories, interpretations, and happy meditations for Pierre. "'I shall
    look forward very much to your return....' Yes, yes, how did she say it?
    Yes, 'I shall look forward very much to your return.' Oh, how happy I
    am! What is happening to me? How happy I am!" said Pierre to himself.
    
    CHAPTER XIX
    
    There was nothing in Pierre's soul now at all like what had troubled it
    during his courtship of Helene.
    
    He did not repeat to himself with a sickening feeling of shame the words
    he had spoken, or say: "Oh, why did I not say that?" and, "Whatever made
    me say 'Je vous aime'?" On the contrary, he now repeated in imagination
    every word that he or Natasha had spoken and pictured every detail of
    her face and smile, and did not wish to diminish or add anything, but
    only to repeat it again and again. There was now not a shadow of doubt
    in his mind as to whether what he had undertaken was right or wrong.
    Only one terrible doubt sometimes crossed his mind: "Wasn't it all a
    dream? Isn't Princess Mary mistaken? Am I not too conceited and self-
    confident? I believe all this--and suddenly Princess Mary will tell her,
    and she will be sure to smile and say: 'How strange! He must be deluding
    himself. Doesn't he know that he is a man, just a man, while I...? I am
    something altogether different and higher.'"
    
    That was the only doubt often troubling Pierre. He did not now make any
    plans. The happiness before him appeared so inconceivable that if only
    he could attain it, it would be the end of all things. Everything ended
    with that.
    
    A joyful, unexpected frenzy, of which he had thought himself incapable,
    possessed him. The whole meaning of life--not for him alone but for the
    whole world--seemed to him centered in his love and the possibility of
    being loved by her. At times everybody seemed to him to be occupied with
    one thing only--his future happiness. Sometimes it seemed to him that
    other people were all as pleased as he was himself and merely tried to
    hide that pleasure by pretending to be busy with other interests. In
    every word and gesture he saw allusions to his happiness. He often
    surprised those he met by his significantly happy looks and smiles which
    seemed to express a secret understanding between him and them. And when
    he realized that people might not be aware of his happiness, he pitied
    them with his whole heart and felt a desire somehow to explain to them
    that all that occupied them was a mere frivolous trifle unworthy of
    attention.
    
    When it was suggested to him that he should enter the civil service, or
    when the war or any general political affairs were discussed on the
    assumption that everybody's welfare depended on this or that issue of
    events, he would listen with a mild and pitying smile and surprise
    people by his strange comments. But at this time he saw everybody--both
    those who, as he imagined, understood the real meaning of life (that is,
    what he was feeling) and those unfortunates who evidently did not
    understand it--in the bright light of the emotion that shone within
    himself, and at once without any effort saw in everyone he met
    everything that was good and worthy of being loved.
    
    When dealing with the affairs and papers of his dead wife, her memory
    aroused in him no feeling but pity that she had not known the bliss he
    now knew. Prince Vasili, who having obtained a new post and some fresh
    decorations was particularly proud at this time, seemed to him a
    pathetic, kindly old man much to be pitied.
    
    Often in afterlife Pierre recalled this period of blissful insanity. All
    the views he formed of men and circumstances at this time remained true
    for him always. He not only did not renounce them subsequently, but when
    he was in doubt or inwardly at variance, he referred to the views he had
    held at this time of his madness and they always proved correct.
    
    "I may have appeared strange and queer then," he thought, "but I was not
    so mad as I seemed. On the contrary I was then wiser and had more
    insight than at any other time, and understood all that is worth
    understanding in life, because... because I was happy."
    
    Pierre's insanity consisted in not waiting, as he used to do, to
    discover personal attributes which he termed "good qualities" in people
    before loving them; his heart was now overflowing with love, and by
    loving people without cause he discovered indubitable causes for loving
    them.
    
    CHAPTER XX
    
    After Pierre's departure that first evening, when Natasha had said to
    Princess Mary with a gaily mocking smile: "He looks just, yes, just as
    if he had come out of a Russian bath--in a short coat and with his hair
    cropped," something hidden and unknown to herself, but irrepressible,
    awoke in Natasha's soul.
    
    Everything: her face, walk, look, and voice, was suddenly altered. To
    her own surprise a power of life and hope of happiness rose to the
    surface and demanded satisfaction. From that evening she seemed to have
    forgotten all that had happened to her. She no longer complained of her
    position, did not say a word about the past, and no longer feared to
    make happy plans for the future. She spoke little of Pierre, but when
    Princess Mary mentioned him a long-extinguished light once more kindled
    in her eyes and her lips curved with a strange smile.
    
    The change that took place in Natasha at first surprised Princess Mary;
    but when she understood its meaning it grieved her. "Can she have loved
    my brother so little as to be able to forget him so soon?" she thought
    when she reflected on the change. But when she was with Natasha she was
    not vexed with her and did not reproach her. The reawakened power of
    life that had seized Natasha was so evidently irrepressible and
    unexpected by her that in her presence Princess Mary felt that she had
    no right to reproach her even in her heart.
    
    Natasha gave herself up so fully and frankly to this new feeling that
    she did not try to hide the fact that she was no longer sad, but bright
    and cheerful.
    
    When Princess Mary returned to her room after her nocturnal talk with
    Pierre, Natasha met her on the threshold.
    
    "He has spoken? Yes? He has spoken?" she repeated.
    
    And a joyful yet pathetic expression which seemed to beg forgiveness for
    her joy settled on Natasha's face.
    
    "I wanted to listen at the door, but I knew you would tell me."
    
    Understandable and touching as the look with which Natasha gazed at her
    seemed to Princess Mary, and sorry as she was to see her agitation,
    these words pained her for a moment. She remembered her brother and his
    love.
    
    "But what's to be done? She can't help it," thought the princess.
    
    And with a sad and rather stern look she told Natasha all that Pierre
    had said. On hearing that he was going to Petersburg Natasha was
    astounded.
    
    "To Petersburg!" she repeated as if unable to understand.
    
    But noticing the grieved expression on Princess Mary's face she guessed
    the reason of that sadness and suddenly began to cry.
    
    "Mary," said she, "tell me what I should do! I am afraid of being bad.
    Whatever you tell me, I will do. Tell me...."
    
    "You love him?"
    
    "Yes," whispered Natasha.
    
    "Then why are you crying? I am happy for your sake," said Princess Mary,
    who because of those tears quite forgave Natasha's joy.
    
    "It won't be just yet--someday. Think what fun it will be when I am his
    wife and you marry Nicholas!"
    
    "Natasha, I have asked you not to speak of that. Let us talk about you."
    
    They were silent awhile.
    
    "But why go to Petersburg?" Natasha suddenly asked, and hastily replied
    to her own question. "But no, no, he must... Yes, Mary, He must...."
    
    FIRST EPILOGUE: 1813 - 20
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    Seven years had passed. The storm-tossed sea of European history had
    subsided within its shores and seemed to have become calm. But the
    mysterious forces that move humanity (mysterious because the laws of
    their motion are unknown to us) continued to operate.
    
    Though the surface of the sea of history seemed motionless, the movement
    of humanity went on as unceasingly as the flow of time. Various groups
    of people formed and dissolved, the coming formation and dissolution of
    kingdoms and displacement of peoples was in course of preparation.
    
    The sea of history was not driven spasmodically from shore to shore as
    previously. It was seething in its depths. Historic figures were not
    borne by the waves from one shore to another as before. They now seemed
    to rotate on one spot. The historical figures at the head of armies, who
    formerly reflected the movement of the masses by ordering wars,
    campaigns, and battles, now reflected the restless movement by political
    and diplomatic combinations, laws, and treaties.
    
    The historians call this activity of the historical figures "the
    reaction."
    
    In dealing with this period they sternly condemn the historical
    personages who, in their opinion, caused what they describe as the
    reaction. All the well-known people of that period, from Alexander and
    Napoleon to Madame de Stael, Photius, Schelling, Fichte, Chateaubriand,
    and the rest, pass before their stern judgment seat and are acquitted or
    condemned according to whether they conduced to progress or to reaction.
    
    According to their accounts a reaction took place at that time in Russia
    also, and the chief culprit was Alexander I, the same man who according
    to them was the chief cause of the liberal movement at the commencement
    of his reign, being the savior of Russia.
    
    There is no one in Russian literature now, from schoolboy essayist to
    learned historian, who does not throw his little stone at Alexander for
    things he did wrong at this period of his reign.
    
    "He ought to have acted in this way and in that way. In this case he did
    well and in that case badly. He behaved admirably at the beginning of
    his reign and during 1812, but acted badly by giving a constitution to
    Poland, forming the Holy Alliance, entrusting power to Arakcheev,
    favoring Golitsyn and mysticism, and afterwards Shishkov and Photius. He
    also acted badly by concerning himself with the active army and
    disbanding the Semenov regiment."
    
    It would take a dozen pages to enumerate all the reproaches the
    historians address to him, based on their knowledge of what is good for
    humanity.
    
    What do these reproaches mean?
    
    Do not the very actions for which the historians praise Alexander I (the
    liberal attempts at the beginning of his reign, his struggle with
    Napoleon, the firmness he displayed in 1812 and the campaign of 1813)
    flow from the same sources--the circumstances of his birth, education,
    and life--that made his personality what it was and from which the
    actions for which they blame him (the Holy Alliance, the restoration of
    Poland, and the reaction of 1820 and later) also flowed?
    
    In what does the substance of those reproaches lie?
    
    It lies in the fact that an historic character like Alexander I,
    standing on the highest possible pinnacle of human power with the
    blinding light of history focused upon him; a character exposed to those
    strongest of all influences: the intrigues, flattery, and self-deception
    inseparable from power; a character who at every moment of his life felt
    a responsibility for all that was happening in Europe; and not a
    fictitious but a live character who like every man had his personal
    habits, passions, and impulses toward goodness, beauty, and truth--that
    this character--though not lacking in virtue (the historians do not
    accuse him of that)--had not the same conception of the welfare of
    humanity fifty years ago as a present-day professor who from his youth
    upwards has been occupied with learning: that is, with books and
    lectures and with taking notes from them.
    
    But even if we assume that fifty years ago Alexander I was mistaken in
    his view of what was good for the people, we must inevitably assume that
    the historian who judges Alexander will also after the lapse of some
    time turn out to be mistaken in his view of what is good for humanity.
    This assumption is all the more natural and inevitable because, watching
    the movement of history, we see that every year and with each new
    writer, opinion as to what is good for mankind changes; so that what
    once seemed good, ten years later seems bad, and vice versa. And what is
    more, we find at one and the same time quite contradictory views as to
    what is bad and what is good in history: some people regard giving a
    constitution to Poland and forming the Holy Alliance as praiseworthy in
    Alexander, while others regard it as blameworthy.
    
    The activity of Alexander or of Napoleon cannot be called useful or
    harmful, for it is impossible to say for what it was useful or harmful.
    If that activity displeases somebody, this is only because it does not
    agree with his limited understanding of what is good. Whether the
    preservation of my father's house in Moscow, or the glory of the Russian
    arms, or the prosperity of the Petersburg and other universities, or the
    freedom of Poland or the greatness of Russia, or the balance of power in
    Europe, or a certain kind of European culture called "progress" appear
    to me to be good or bad, I must admit that besides these things the
    action of every historic character has other more general purposes
    inaccessible to me.
    
    But let us assume that what is called science can harmonize all
    contradictions and possesses an unchanging standard of good and bad by
    which to try historic characters and events; let us say that Alexander
    could have done everything differently; let us say that with guidance
    from those who blame him and who profess to know the ultimate aim of the
    movement of humanity, he might have arranged matters according to the
    program his present accusers would have given him--of nationality,
    freedom, equality, and progress (these, I think, cover the ground). Let
    us assume that this program was possible and had then been formulated,
    and that Alexander had acted on it. What would then have become of the
    activity of all those who opposed the tendency that then prevailed in
    the government--an activity that in the opinion of the historians was
    good and beneficent? Their activity would not have existed: there would
    have been no life, there would have been nothing.
    
    If we admit that human life can be ruled by reason, the possibility of
    life is destroyed.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    If we assume as the historians do that great men lead humanity to the
    attainment of certain ends--the greatness of Russia or of France, the
    balance of power in Europe, the diffusion of the ideas of the
    Revolution, general progress, or anything else--then it is impossible to
    explain the facts of history without introducing the conceptions of
    chance and genius.
    
    If the aim of the European wars at the beginning of the nineteenth
    century had been the aggrandizement of Russia, that aim might have been
    accomplished without all the preceding wars and without the invasion. If
    the aim was the aggrandizement of France, that might have been attained
    without the Revolution and without the Empire. If the aim was the
    dissemination of ideas, the printing press could have accomplished that
    much better than warfare. If the aim was the progress of civilization,
    it is easy to see that there are other ways of diffusing civilization
    more expedient than by the destruction of wealth and of human lives.
    
    Why did it happen in this and not in some other way?
    
    Because it happened so! "Chance created the situation; genius utilized
    it," says history.
    
    But what is chance? What is genius?
    
    The words chance and genius do not denote any really existing thing and
    therefore cannot be defined. Those words only denote a certain stage of
    understanding of phenomena. I do not know why a certain event occurs; I
    think that I cannot know it; so I do not try to know it and I talk about
    chance. I see a force producing effects beyond the scope of ordinary
    human agencies; I do not understand why this occurs and I talk of
    genius.
    
    To a herd of rams, the ram the herdsman drives each evening into a
    special enclosure to feed and that becomes twice as fat as the others
    must seem to be a genius. And it must appear an astonishing conjunction
    of genius with a whole series of extraordinary chances that this ram,
    who instead of getting into the general fold every evening goes into a
    special enclosure where there are oats--that this very ram, swelling
    with fat, is killed for meat.
    
    But the rams need only cease to suppose that all that happens to them
    happens solely for the attainment of their sheepish aims; they need only
    admit that what happens to them may also have purposes beyond their ken,
    and they will at once perceive a unity and coherence in what happened to
    the ram that was fattened. Even if they do not know for what purpose
    they are fattened, they will at least know that all that happened to the
    ram did not happen accidentally, and will no longer need the conceptions
    of chance or genius.
    
    Only by renouncing our claim to discern a purpose immediately
    intelligible to us, and admitting the ultimate purpose to be beyond our
    ken, may we discern the sequence of experiences in the lives of historic
    characters and perceive the cause of the effect they produce
    (incommensurable with ordinary human capabilities), and then the words
    chance and genius become superfluous.
    
    We need only confess that we do not know the purpose of the European
    convulsions and that we know only the facts--that is, the murders, first
    in France, then in Italy, in Africa, in Prussia, in Austria, in Spain,
    and in Russia--and that the movements from the west to the east and from
    the east to the west form the essence and purpose of these events, and
    not only shall we have no need to see exceptional ability and genius in
    Napoleon and Alexander, but we shall be unable to consider them to be
    anything but like other men, and we shall not be obliged to have
    recourse to chance for an explanation of those small events which made
    these people what they were, but it will be clear that all those small
    events were inevitable.
    
    By discarding a claim to knowledge of the ultimate purpose, we shall
    clearly perceive that just as one cannot imagine a blossom or seed for
    any single plant better suited to it than those it produces, so it is
    impossible to imagine any two people more completely adapted down to the
    smallest detail for the purpose they had to fulfill, than Napoleon and
    Alexander with all their antecedents.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    The fundamental and essential significance of the European events of the
    beginning of the nineteenth century lies in the movement of the mass of
    the European peoples from west to east and afterwards from east to west.
    The commencement of that movement was the movement from west to east.
    For the peoples of the west to be able to make their warlike movement to
    Moscow it was necessary: (1) that they should form themselves into a
    military group of a size able to endure a collision with the warlike
    military group of the east, (2) that they should abandon all established
    traditions and customs, and (3) that during their military movement they
    should have at their head a man who could justify to himself and to them
    the deceptions, robberies, and murders which would have to be committed
    during that movement.
    
    And beginning with the French Revolution the old inadequately large
    group was destroyed, as well as the old habits and traditions, and step
    by step a group was formed of larger dimensions with new customs and
    traditions, and a man was produced who would stand at the head of the
    coming movement and bear the responsibility for all that had to be done.
    
    A man without convictions, without habits, without traditions, without a
    name, and not even a Frenchman, emerges--by what seem the strangest
    chances--from among all the seething French parties, and without joining
    any one of them is borne forward to a prominent position.
    
    The ignorance of his colleagues, the weakness and insignificance of his
    opponents, the frankness of his falsehoods, and the dazzling and self-
    confident limitations of this man raise him to the head of the army. The
    brilliant qualities of the soldiers of the army sent to Italy, his
    opponents' reluctance to fight, and his own childish audacity and self-
    confidence secure him military fame. Innumerable so-called chances
    accompany him everywhere. The disfavor into which he falls with the
    rulers of France turns to his advantage. His attempts to avoid his
    predestined path are unsuccessful: he is not received into the Russian
    service, and the appointment he seeks in Turkey comes to nothing. During
    the war in Italy he is several times on the verge of destruction and
    each time is saved in an unexpected manner. Owing to various diplomatic
    considerations the Russian armies--just those which might have destroyed
    his prestige--do not appear upon the scene till he is no longer there.
    
    On his return from Italy he finds the government in Paris in a process
    of dissolution in which all those who are in it are inevitably wiped out
    and destroyed. And by chance an escape from this dangerous position
    presents itself in the form of an aimless and senseless expedition to
    Africa. Again so-called chance accompanies him. Impregnable Malta
    surrenders without a shot; his most reckless schemes are crowned with
    success. The enemy's fleet, which subsequently did not let a single boat
    pass, allows his entire army to elude it. In Africa a whole series of
    outrages are committed against the almost unarmed inhabitants. And the
    men who commit these crimes, especially their leader, assure themselves
    that this is admirable, this is glory--it resembles Caesar and Alexander
    the Great and is therefore good.
    
    This ideal of glory and grandeur--which consists not merely in
    considering nothing wrong that one does but in priding oneself on every
    crime one commits, ascribing to it an incomprehensible supernatural
    significance--that ideal, destined to guide this man and his associates,
    had scope for its development in Africa. Whatever he does succeeds. The
    plague does not touch him. The cruelty of murdering prisoners is not
    imputed to him as a fault. His childishly rash, uncalled-for, and
    ignoble departure from Africa, leaving his comrades in distress, is set
    down to his credit, and again the enemy's fleet twice lets him slip
    past. When, intoxicated by the crimes he has committed so successfully,
    he reaches Paris, the dissolution of the republican government, which a
    year earlier might have ruined him, has reached its extreme limit, and
    his presence there now as a newcomer free from party entanglements can
    only serve to exalt him--and though he himself has no plan, he is quite
    ready for his new role.
    
    He had no plan, he was afraid of everything, but the parties snatched at
    him and demanded his participation.
    
    He alone--with his ideal of glory and grandeur developed in Italy and
    Egypt, his insane self-adulation, his boldness in crime and frankness in
    lying--he alone could justify what had to be done.
    
    He is needed for the place that awaits him, and so almost apart from his
    will and despite his indecision, his lack of a plan, and all his
    mistakes, he is drawn into a conspiracy that aims at seizing power and
    the conspiracy is crowned with success.
    
    He is pushed into a meeting of the legislature. In alarm he wishes to
    flee, considering himself lost. He pretends to fall into a swoon and
    says senseless things that should have ruined him. But the once proud
    and shrewd rulers of France, feeling that their part is played out, are
    even more bewildered than he, and do not say the words they should have
    said to destroy him and retain their power.
    
    Chance, millions of chances, give him power, and all men as if by
    agreement co-operate to confirm that power. Chance forms the characters
    of the rulers of France, who submit to him; chance forms the character
    of Paul I of Russia who recognizes his government; chance contrives a
    plot against him which not only fails to harm him but confirms his
    power. Chance puts the Duc d'Enghien in his hands and unexpectedly
    causes him to kill him--thereby convincing the mob more forcibly than in
    any other way that he had the right, since he had the might. Chance
    contrives that though he directs all his efforts to prepare an
    expedition against England (which would inevitably have ruined him) he
    never carries out that intention, but unexpectedly falls upon Mack and
    the Austrians, who surrender without a battle. Chance and genius give
    him the victory at Austerlitz; and by chance all men, not only the
    French but all Europe--except England which does not take part in the
    events about to happen--despite their former horror and detestation of
    his crimes, now recognize his authority, the title he has given himself,
    and his ideal of grandeur and glory, which seems excellent and
    reasonable to them all.
    
    As if measuring themselves and preparing for the coming movement, the
    western forces push toward the east several times in 1805, 1806, 1807,
    and 1809, gaining strength and growing. In 1811 the group of people that
    had formed in France unites into one group with the peoples of Central
    Europe. The strength of the justification of the man who stands at the
    head of the movement grows with the increased size of the group. During
    the ten-year preparatory period this man had formed relations with all
    the crowned heads of Europe. The discredited rulers of the world can
    oppose no reasonable ideal to the insensate Napoleonic ideal of glory
    and grandeur. One after another they hasten to display their
    insignificance before him. The King of Prussia sends his wife to seek
    the great man's mercy; the Emperor of Austria considers it a favor that
    this man receives a daughter of the Caesars into his bed; the Pope, the
    guardian of all that the nations hold sacred, utilizes religion for the
    aggrandizement of the great man. It is not Napoleon who prepares himself
    for the accomplishment of his role, so much as all those round him who
    prepare him to take on himself the whole responsibility for what is
    happening and has to happen. There is no step, no crime or petty fraud
    he commits, which in the mouths of those around him is not at once
    represented as a great deed. The most suitable fete the Germans can
    devise for him is a celebration of Jena and Auerstadt. Not only is he
    great, but so are his ancestors, his brothers, his stepsons, and his
    brothers-in-law. Everything is done to deprive him of the remains of his
    reason and to prepare him for his terrible part. And when he is ready so
    too are the forces.
    
    The invasion pushes eastward and reaches its final goal--Moscow. That
    city is taken; the Russian army suffers heavier losses than the opposing
    armies had suffered in the former war from Austerlitz to Wagram. But
    suddenly instead of those chances and that genius which hitherto had so
    consistently led him by an uninterrupted series of successes to the
    predestined goal, an innumerable sequence of inverse chances occur--from
    the cold in his head at Borodino to the sparks which set Moscow on fire,
    and the frosts--and instead of genius, stupidity and immeasurable
    baseness become evident.
    
    The invaders flee, turn back, flee again, and all the chances are now
    not for Napoleon but always against him.
    
    A countermovement is then accomplished from east to west with a
    remarkable resemblance to the preceding movement from west to east.
    Attempted drives from east to west--similar to the contrary movements of
    1805, 1807, and 1809--precede the great westward movement; there is the
    same coalescence into a group of enormous dimensions; the same adhesion
    of the people of Central Europe to the movement; the same hesitation
    midway, and the same increasing rapidity as the goal is approached.
    
    Paris, the ultimate goal, is reached. The Napoleonic government and army
    are destroyed. Napoleon himself is no longer of any account; all his
    actions are evidently pitiful and mean, but again an inexplicable chance
    occurs. The allies detest Napoleon whom they regard as the cause of
    their sufferings. Deprived of power and authority, his crimes and his
    craft exposed, he should have appeared to them what he appeared ten
    years previously and one year later--an outlawed brigand. But by some
    strange chance no one perceives this. His part is not yet ended. The man
    who ten years before and a year later was considered an outlawed brigand
    is sent to an island two days' sail from France, which for some reason
    is presented to him as his dominion, and guards are given to him and
    millions of money are paid him.
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    The flood of nations begins to subside into its normal channels. The
    waves of the great movement abate, and on the calm surface eddies are
    formed in which float the diplomatists, who imagine that they have
    caused the floods to abate.
    
    But the smooth sea again suddenly becomes disturbed. The diplomatists
    think that their disagreements are the cause of this fresh pressure of
    natural forces; they anticipate war between their sovereigns; the
    position seems to them insoluble. But the wave they feel to be rising
    does not come from the quarter they expect. It rises again from the same
    point as before--Paris. The last backwash of the movement from the west
    occurs: a backwash which serves to solve the apparently insuperable
    diplomatic difficulties and ends the military movement of that period of
    history.
    
    The man who had devastated France returns to France alone, without any
    conspiracy and without soldiers. Any guard might arrest him, but by
    strange chance no one does so and all rapturously greet the man they
    cursed the day before and will curse again a month later.
    
    This man is still needed to justify the final collective act.
    
    That act is performed.
    
    The last role is played. The actor is bidden to disrobe and wash off his
    powder and paint: he will not be wanted any more.
    
    And some years pass during which he plays a pitiful comedy to himself in
    solitude on his island, justifying his actions by intrigues and lies
    when the justification is no longer needed, and displaying to the whole
    world what it was that people had mistaken for strength as long as an
    unseen hand directed his actions.
    
    The manager having brought the drama to a close and stripped the actor
    shows him to us.
    
    "See what you believed in! This is he! Do you now see that it was not he
    but I who moved you?"
    
    But dazed by the force of the movement, it was long before people
    understood this.
    
    Still greater coherence and inevitability is seen in the life of
    Alexander I, the man who stood at the head of the countermovement from
    east to west.
    
    What was needed for him who, overshadowing others, stood at the head of
    that movement from east to west?
    
    What was needed was a sense of justice and a sympathy with European
    affairs, but a remote sympathy not dulled by petty interests; a moral
    superiority over those sovereigns of the day who co-operated with him; a
    mild and attractive personality; and a personal grievance against
    Napoleon. And all this was found in Alexander I; all this had been
    prepared by innumerable so-called chances in his life: his education,
    his early liberalism, the advisers who surrounded him, and by
    Austerlitz, and Tilsit, and Erfurt.
    
    During the national war he was inactive because he was not needed. But
    as soon as the necessity for a general European war presented itself he
    appeared in his place at the given moment and, uniting the nations of
    Europe, led them to the goal.
    
    The goal is reached. After the final war of 1815 Alexander possesses all
    possible power. How does he use it?
    
    Alexander I--the pacifier of Europe, the man who from his early years
    had striven only for his people's welfare, the originator of the liberal
    innovations in his fatherland--now that he seemed to possess the utmost
    power and therefore to have the possibility of bringing about the
    welfare of his peoples--at the time when Napoleon in exile was drawing
    up childish and mendacious plans of how he would have made mankind happy
    had he retained power--Alexander I, having fulfilled his mission and
    feeling the hand of God upon him, suddenly recognizes the insignificance
    of that supposed power, turns away from it, and gives it into the hands
    of contemptible men whom he despises, saying only:
    
    "Not unto us, not unto us, but unto Thy Name!... I too am a man like the
    rest of you. Let me live like a man and think of my soul and of God."
    
    As the sun and each atom of ether is a sphere complete in itself, and
    yet at the same time only a part of a whole too immense for man to
    comprehend, so each individual has within himself his own aims and yet
    has them to serve a general purpose incomprehensible to man.
    
    A bee settling on a flower has stung a child. And the child is afraid of
    bees and declares that bees exist to sting people. A poet admires the
    bee sucking from the chalice of a flower and says it exists to suck the
    fragrance of flowers. A beekeeper, seeing the bee collect pollen from
    flowers and carry it to the hive, says that it exists to gather honey.
    Another beekeeper who has studied the life of the hive more closely says
    that the bee gathers pollen dust to feed the young bees and rear a
    queen, and that it exists to perpetuate its race. A botanist notices
    that the bee flying with the pollen of a male flower to a pistil
    fertilizes the latter, and sees in this the purpose of the bee's
    existence. Another, observing the migration of plants, notices that the
    bee helps in this work, and may say that in this lies the purpose of the
    bee. But the ultimate purpose of the bee is not exhausted by the first,
    the second, or any of the processes the human mind can discern. The
    higher the human intellect rises in the discovery of these purposes, the
    more obvious it becomes, that the ultimate purpose is beyond our
    comprehension.
    
    All that is accessible to man is the relation of the life of the bee to
    other manifestations of life. And so it is with the purpose of historic
    characters and nations.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    Natasha's wedding to Bezukhov, which took place in 1813, was the last
    happy event in the family of the old Rostovs. Count Ilya Rostov died
    that same year and, as always happens, after the father's death the
    family group broke up.
    
    The events of the previous year: the burning of Moscow and the flight
    from it, the death of Prince Andrew, Natasha's despair, Petya's death,
    and the old countess' grief fell blow after blow on the old count's
    head. He seemed to be unable to understand the meaning of all these
    events, and bowed his old head in a spiritual sense as if expecting and
    inviting further blows which would finish him. He seemed now frightened
    and distraught and now unnaturally animated and enterprising.
    
    The arrangements for Natasha's marriage occupied him for a while. He
    ordered dinners and suppers and obviously tried to appear cheerful, but
    his cheerfulness was not infectious as it used to be: on the contrary it
    evoked the compassion of those who knew and liked him.
    
    When Pierre and his wife had left, he grew very quiet and began to
    complain of depression. A few days later he fell ill and took to his
    bed. He realized from the first that he would not get up again, despite
    the doctor's encouragement. The countess passed a fortnight in an
    armchair by his pillow without undressing. Every time she gave him his
    medicine he sobbed and silently kissed her hand. On his last day,
    sobbing, he asked her and his absent son to forgive him for having
    dissipated their property--that being the chief fault of which he was
    conscious. After receiving communion and unction he quietly died; and
    next day a throng of acquaintances who came to pay their last respects
    to the deceased filled the house rented by the Rostovs. All these
    acquaintances, who had so often dined and danced at his house and had so
    often laughed at him, now said, with a common feeling of self-reproach
    and emotion, as if justifying themselves: "Well, whatever he may have
    been he was a most worthy man. You don't meet such men nowadays.... And
    which of us has not weaknesses of his own?"
    
    It was just when the count's affairs had become so involved that it was
    impossible to say what would happen if he lived another year that he
    unexpectedly died.
    
    Nicholas was with the Russian army in Paris when the news of his
    father's death reached him. He at once resigned his commission, and
    without waiting for it to be accepted took leave of absence and went to
    Moscow. The state of the count's affairs became quite obvious a month
    after his death, surprising everyone by the immense total of small debts
    the existence of which no one had suspected. The debts amounted to
    double the value of the property.
    
    Friends and relations advised Nicholas to decline the inheritance. But
    he regarded such a refusal as a slur on his father's memory, which he
    held sacred, and therefore would not hear of refusing and accepted the
    inheritance together with the obligation to pay the debts.
    
    The creditors who had so long been silent, restrained by a vague but
    powerful influence exerted on them while he lived by the count's
    careless good nature, all proceeded to enforce their claims at once. As
    always happens in such cases rivalry sprang up as to which should get
    paid first, and those who like Mitenka held promissory notes given them
    as presents now became the most exacting of the creditors. Nicholas was
    allowed no respite and no peace, and those who had seemed to pity the
    old man--the cause of their losses (if they were losses)--now
    remorselessly pursued the young heir who had voluntarily undertaken the
    debts and was obviously not guilty of contracting them.
    
    Not one of the plans Nicholas tried succeeded; the estate was sold by
    auction for half its value, and half the debts still remained unpaid.
    Nicholas accepted thirty thousand rubles offered him by his brother-in-
    law Bezukhov to pay off debts he regarded as genuinely due for value
    received. And to avoid being imprisoned for the remainder, as the
    creditors threatened, he re-entered the government service.
    
    He could not rejoin the army where he would have been made colonel at
    the next vacancy, for his mother now clung to him as her one hold on
    life; and so despite his reluctance to remain in Moscow among people who
    had known him before, and despite his abhorrence of the civil service,
    he accepted a post in Moscow in that service, doffed the uniform of
    which he was so fond, and moved with his mother and Sonya to a small
    house on the Sivtsev Vrazhek.
    
    Natasha and Pierre were living in Petersburg at the time and had no
    clear idea of Nicholas' circumstances. Having borrowed money from his
    brother-in-law, Nicholas tried to hide his wretched condition from him.
    His position was the more difficult because with his salary of twelve
    hundred rubles he had not only to keep himself, his mother, and Sonya,
    but had to shield his mother from knowledge of their poverty. The
    countess could not conceive of life without the luxurious conditions she
    had been used to from childhood and, unable to realize how hard it was
    for her son, kept demanding now a carriage (which they did not keep) to
    send for a friend, now some expensive article of food for herself, or
    wine for her son, or money to buy a present as a surprise for Natasha or
    Sonya, or for Nicholas himself.
    
    Sonya kept house, attended on her aunt, read to her, put up with her
    whims and secret ill-will, and helped Nicholas to conceal their poverty
    from the old countess. Nicholas felt himself irredeemably indebted to
    Sonya for all she was doing for his mother and greatly admired her
    patience and devotion, but tried to keep aloof from her.
    
    He seemed in his heart to reproach her for being too perfect, and
    because there was nothing to reproach her with. She had all that people
    are valued for, but little that could have made him love her. He felt
    that the more he valued her the less he loved her. He had taken her at
    her word when she wrote giving him his freedom and now behaved as if all
    that had passed between them had been long forgotten and could never in
    any case be renewed.
    
    Nicholas' position became worse and worse. The idea of putting something
    aside out of his salary proved a dream. Not only did he not save
    anything, but to comply with his mother's demands he even incurred some
    small debts. He could see no way out of this situation. The idea of
    marrying some rich woman, which was suggested to him by his female
    relations, was repugnant to him. The other way out--his mother's death--
    never entered his head. He wished for nothing and hoped for nothing, and
    deep in his heart experienced a gloomy and stern satisfaction in an
    uncomplaining endurance of his position. He tried to avoid his old
    acquaintances with their commiseration and offensive offers of
    assistance; he avoided all distraction and recreation, and even at home
    did nothing but play cards with his mother, pace silently up and down
    the room, and smoke one pipe after another. He seemed carefully to
    cherish within himself the gloomy mood which alone enabled him to endure
    his position.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    At the beginning of winter Princess Mary came to Moscow. From reports
    current in town she learned how the Rostovs were situated, and how "the
    son has sacrificed himself for his mother," as people were saying.
    
    "I never expected anything else of him," said Princess Mary to herself,
    feeling a joyous sense of her love for him. Remembering her friendly
    relations with all the Rostovs which had made her almost a member of the
    family, she thought it her duty to go to see them. But remembering her
    relations with Nicholas in Voronezh she was shy about doing so. Making a
    great effort she did however go to call on them a few weeks after her
    arrival in Moscow.
    
    Nicholas was the first to meet her, as the countess' room could only be
    reached through his. But instead of being greeted with pleasure as she
    had expected, at his first glance at her his face assumed a cold, stiff,
    proud expression she had not seen on it before. He inquired about her
    health, led the way to his mother, and having sat there for five minutes
    left the room.
    
    When the princess came out of the countess' room Nicholas met her again,
    and with marked solemnity and stiffness accompanied her to the anteroom.
    To her remarks about his mother's health he made no reply. "What's that
    to you? Leave me in peace," his looks seemed to say.
    
    "Why does she come prowling here? What does she want? I can't bear these
    ladies and all these civilities!" said he aloud in Sonya's presence,
    evidently unable to repress his vexation, after the princess' carriage
    had disappeared.
    
    "Oh, Nicholas, how can you talk like that?" cried Sonya, hardly able to
    conceal her delight. "She is so kind and Mamma is so fond of her!"
    
    Nicholas did not reply and tried to avoid speaking of the princess any
    more. But after her visit the old countess spoke of her several times a
    day.
    
    She sang her praises, insisted that her son must call on her, expressed
    a wish to see her often, but yet always became ill-humored when she
    began to talk about her.
    
    Nicholas tried to keep silence when his mother spoke of the princess,
    but his silence irritated her.
    
    "She is a very admirable and excellent young woman," said she, "and you
    must go and call on her. You would at least be seeing somebody, and I
    think it must be dull for you only seeing us."
    
    "But I don't in the least want to, Mamma."
    
    "You used to want to, and now you don't. Really I don't understand you,
    my dear. One day you are dull, and the next you refuse to see anyone."
    
    "But I never said I was dull."
    
    "Why, you said yourself you don't want even to see her. She is a very
    admirable young woman and you always liked her, but now suddenly you
    have got some notion or other in your head. You hide everything from
    me."
    
    "Not at all, Mamma."
    
    "If I were asking you to do something disagreeable now--but I only ask
    you to return a call. One would think mere politeness required it....
    Well, I have asked you, and now I won't interfere any more since you
    have secrets from your mother."
    
    "Well, then, I'll go if you wish it."
    
    "It doesn't matter to me. I only wish it for your sake."
    
    Nicholas sighed, bit his mustache, and laid out the cards for a
    patience, trying to divert his mother's attention to another topic.
    
    The same conversation was repeated next day and the day after, and the
    day after that.
    
    After her visit to the Rostovs and her unexpectedly chilly reception by
    Nicholas, Princess Mary confessed to herself that she had been right in
    not wishing to be the first to call.
    
    "I expected nothing else," she told herself, calling her pride to her
    aid. "I have nothing to do with him and I only wanted to see the old
    lady, who was always kind to me and to whom I am under many
    obligations."
    
    But she could not pacify herself with these reflections; a feeling akin
    to remorse troubled her when she thought of her visit. Though she had
    firmly resolved not to call on the Rostovs again and to forget the whole
    matter, she felt herself all the time in an awkward position. And when
    she asked herself what distressed her, she had to admit that it was her
    relation to Rostov. His cold, polite manner did not express his feeling
    for her (she knew that) but it concealed something, and until she could
    discover what that something was, she felt that she could not be at
    ease.
    
    One day in midwinter when sitting in the schoolroom attending to her
    nephew's lessons, she was informed that Rostov had called. With a firm
    resolution not to betray herself and not show her agitation, she sent
    for Mademoiselle Bourienne and went with her to the drawing room.
    
    Her first glance at Nicholas' face told her that he had only come to
    fulfill the demands of politeness, and she firmly resolved to maintain
    the tone in which he addressed her.
    
    They spoke of the countess' health, of their mutual friends, of the
    latest war news, and when the ten minutes required by propriety had
    elapsed after which a visitor may rise, Nicholas got up to say good-by.
    
    With Mademoiselle Bourienne's help the princess had maintained the
    conversation very well, but at the very last moment, just when he rose,
    she was so tired of talking of what did not interest her, and her mind
    was so full of the question why she alone was granted so little
    happiness in life, that in a fit of absent-mindedness she sat still, her
    luminous eyes gazing fixedly before her, not noticing that he had risen.
    
    Nicholas glanced at her and, wishing to appear not to notice her
    abstraction, made some remark to Mademoiselle Bourienne and then again
    looked at the princess. She still sat motionless with a look of
    suffering on her gentle face. He suddenly felt sorry for her and was
    vaguely conscious that he might be the cause of the sadness her face
    expressed. He wished to help her and say something pleasant, but could
    think of nothing to say.
    
    "Good-bye, Princess!" said he.
    
    She started, flushed, and sighed deeply.
    
    "Oh, I beg your pardon," she said as if waking up. "Are you going
    already, Count? Well then, good-by! Oh, but the cushion for the
    countess!"
    
    "Wait a moment, I'll fetch it," said Mademoiselle Bourienne, and she
    left the room.
    
    They both sat silent, with an occasional glance at one another.
    
    "Yes, Princess," said Nicholas at last with a sad smile, "it doesn't
    seem long ago since we first met at Bogucharovo, but how much water has
    flowed since then! In what distress we all seemed to be then, yet I
    would give much to bring back that time... but there's no bringing it
    back."
    
    Princess Mary gazed intently into his eyes with her own luminous ones as
    he said this. She seemed to be trying to fathom the hidden meaning of
    his words which would explain his feeling for her.
    
    "Yes, yes," said she, "but you have no reason to regret the past, Count.
    As I understand your present life, I think you will always recall it
    with satisfaction, because the self-sacrifice that fills it now..."
    
    "I cannot accept your praise," he interrupted her hurriedly. "On the
    contrary I continually reproach myself.... But this is not at all an
    interesting or cheerful subject."
    
    His face again resumed its former stiff and cold expression. But the
    princess had caught a glimpse of the man she had known and loved, and it
    was to him that she now spoke.
    
    "I thought you would allow me to tell you this," she said. "I had come
    so near to you... and to all your family that I thought you would not
    consider my sympathy misplaced, but I was mistaken," and suddenly her
    voice trembled. "I don't know why," she continued, recovering herself,
    "but you used to be different, and..."
    
    "There are a thousand reasons why," laying special emphasis on the why.
    "Thank you, Princess," he added softly. "Sometimes it is hard."
    
    "So that's why! That's why!" a voice whispered in Princess Mary's soul.
    "No, it was not only that gay, kind, and frank look, not only that
    handsome exterior, that I loved in him. I divined his noble, resolute,
    self-sacrificing spirit too," she said to herself. "Yes, he is poor now
    and I am rich.... Yes, that's the only reason.... Yes, were it not for
    that..." And remembering his former tenderness, and looking now at his
    kind, sorrowful face, she suddenly understood the cause of his coldness.
    
    "But why, Count, why?" she almost cried, unconsciously moving closer to
    him. "Why? Tell me. You must tell me!"
    
    He was silent.
    
    "I don't understand your why, Count," she continued, "but it's hard for
    me... I confess it. For some reason you wish to deprive me of our former
    friendship. And that hurts me." There were tears in her eyes and in her
    voice. "I have had so little happiness in life that every loss is hard
    for me to bear.... Excuse me, good-by!" and suddenly she began to cry
    and was hurrying from the room.
    
    "Princess, for God's sake!" he exclaimed, trying to stop her.
    "Princess!"
    
    She turned round. For a few seconds they gazed silently into one
    another's eyes--and what had seemed impossible and remote suddenly
    became possible, inevitable, and very near.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    In the winter of 1813 Nicholas married Princess Mary and moved to Bald
    Hills with his wife, his mother, and Sonya.
    
    Within four years he had paid off all his remaining debts without
    selling any of his wife's property, and having received a small
    inheritance on the death of a cousin he paid his debt to Pierre as well.
    
    In another three years, by 1820, he had so managed his affairs that he
    was able to buy a small estate adjoining Bald Hills and was negotiating
    to buy back Otradnoe--that being his pet dream.
    
    Having started farming from necessity, he soon grew so devoted to it
    that it became his favorite and almost his sole occupation. Nicholas was
    a plain farmer: he did not like innovations, especially the English ones
    then coming into vogue. He laughed at theoretical treatises on estate
    management, disliked factories, the raising of expensive products, and
    the buying of expensive seed corn, and did not make a hobby of any
    particular part of the work on his estate. He always had before his
    mind's eye the estate as a whole and not any particular part of it. The
    chief thing in his eyes was not the nitrogen in the soil, nor the oxygen
    in the air, nor manures, nor special plows, but that most important
    agent by which nitrogen, oxygen, manure, and plow were made effective--
    the peasant laborer. When Nicholas first began farming and began to
    understand its different branches, it was the serf who especially
    attracted his attention. The peasant seemed to him not merely a tool,
    but also a judge of farming and an end in himself. At first he watched
    the serfs, trying to understand their aims and what they considered good
    and bad, and only pretended to direct them and give orders while in
    reality learning from them their methods, their manner of speech, and
    their judgment of what was good and bad. Only when he had understood the
    peasants' tastes and aspirations, had learned to talk their language, to
    grasp the hidden meaning of their words, and felt akin to them did he
    begin boldly to manage his serfs, that is, to perform toward them the
    duties demanded of him. And Nicholas' management produced very brilliant
    results.
    
    Guided by some gift of insight, on taking up the management of the
    estates he at once unerringly appointed as bailiff, village elder, and
    delegate, the very men the serfs would themselves have chosen had they
    had the right to choose, and these posts never changed hands. Before
    analyzing the properties of manure, before entering into the debit and
    credit (as he ironically called it), he found out how many cattle the
    peasants had and increased the number by all possible means. He kept the
    peasant families together in the largest groups possible, not allowing
    the family groups to divide into separate households. He was hard alike
    on the lazy, the depraved, and the weak, and tried to get them expelled
    from the commune.
    
    He was as careful of the sowing and reaping of the peasants' hay and
    corn as of his own, and few landowners had their crops sown and
    harvested so early and so well, or got so good a return, as did
    Nicholas.
    
    He disliked having anything to do with the domestic serfs--the "drones"
    as he called them--and everyone said he spoiled them by his laxity. When
    a decision had to be taken regarding a domestic serf, especially if one
    had to be punished, he always felt undecided and consulted everybody in
    the house; but when it was possible to have a domestic serf conscripted
    instead of a land worker he did so without the least hesitation. He
    never felt any hesitation in dealing with the peasants. He knew that his
    every decision would be approved by them all with very few exceptions.
    
    He did not allow himself either to be hard on or punish a man, or to
    make things easy for or reward anyone, merely because he felt inclined
    to do so. He could not have said by what standard he judged what he
    should or should not do, but the standard was quite firm and definite in
    his own mind.
    
    Often, speaking with vexation of some failure or irregularity, he would
    say: "What can one do with our Russian peasants?" and imagined that he
    could not bear them.
    
    Yet he loved "our Russian peasants" and their way of life with his whole
    soul, and for that very reason had understood and assimilated the one
    way and manner of farming which produced good results.
    
    Countess Mary was jealous of this passion of her husband's and regretted
    that she could not share it; but she could not understand the joys and
    vexations he derived from that world, to her so remote and alien. She
    could not understand why he was so particularly animated and happy when,
    after getting up at daybreak and spending the whole morning in the
    fields or on the threshing floor, he returned from the sowing or mowing
    or reaping to have tea with her. She did not understand why he spoke
    with such admiration and delight of the farming of the thrifty and well-
    to-do peasant Matthew Ermishin, who with his family had carted corn all
    night; or of the fact that his (Nicholas') sheaves were already stacked
    before anyone else had his harvest in. She did not understand why he
    stepped out from the window to the veranda and smiled under his mustache
    and winked so joyfully, when warm steady rain began to fall on the dry
    and thirsty shoots of the young oats, or why when the wind carried away
    a threatening cloud during the hay harvest he would return from the
    barn, flushed, sunburned, and perspiring, with a smell of wormwood and
    gentian in his hair and, gleefully rubbing his hands, would say: "Well,
    one more day and my grain and the peasants' will all be under cover."
    
    Still less did she understand why he, kindhearted and always ready to
    anticipate her wishes, should become almost desperate when she brought
    him a petition from some peasant men or women who had appealed to her to
    be excused some work; why he, that kind Nicholas, should obstinately
    refuse her, angrily asking her not to interfere in what was not her
    business. She felt he had a world apart, which he loved passionately and
    which had laws she had not fathomed.
    
    Sometimes when, trying to understand him, she spoke of the good work he
    was doing for his serfs, he would be vexed and reply: "Not in the least;
    it never entered my head and I wouldn't do that for their good! That's
    all poetry and old wives' talk--all that doing good to one's neighbor!
    What I want is that our children should not have to go begging. I must
    put our affairs in order while I am alive, that's all. And to do that,
    order and strictness are essential.... That's all about it!" said he,
    clenching his vigorous fist. "And fairness, of course," he added, "for
    if the peasant is naked and hungry and has only one miserable horse, he
    can do no good either for himself or for me."
    
    And all Nicholas did was fruitful--probably just because he refused to
    allow himself to think that he was doing good to others for virtue's
    sake. His means increased rapidly; serfs from neighboring estates came
    to beg him to buy them, and long after his death the memory of his
    administration was devoutly preserved among the serfs. "He was a
    master... the peasants' affairs first and then his own. Of course he was
    not to be trifled with either--in a word, he was a real master!"
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    One matter connected with his management sometimes worried Nicholas, and
    that was his quick temper together with his old hussar habit of making
    free use of his fists. At first he saw nothing reprehensible in this,
    but in the second year of his marriage his view of that form of
    punishment suddenly changed.
    
    Once in summer he had sent for the village elder from Bogucharovo, a man
    who had succeeded to the post when Dron died and who was accused of
    dishonesty and various irregularities. Nicholas went out into the porch
    to question him, and immediately after the elder had given a few replies
    the sound of cries and blows were heard. On returning to lunch Nicholas
    went up to his wife, who sat with her head bent low over her embroidery
    frame, and as usual began to tell her what he had been doing that
    morning. Among other things he spoke of the Bogucharovo elder. Countess
    Mary turned red and then pale, but continued to sit with head bowed and
    lips compressed and gave her husband no reply.
    
    "Such an insolent scoundrel!" he cried, growing hot again at the mere
    recollection of him. "If he had told me he was drunk and did not see...
    But what is the matter with you, Mary?" he suddenly asked.
    
    Countess Mary raised her head and tried to speak, but hastily looked
    down again and her lips puckered.
    
    "Why, whatever is the matter, my dearest?"
    
    The looks of the plain Countess Mary always improved when she was in
    tears. She never cried from pain or vexation, but always from sorrow or
    pity, and when she wept her radiant eyes acquired an irresistible charm.
    
    The moment Nicholas took her hand she could no longer restrain herself
    and began to cry.
    
    "Nicholas, I saw it... he was to blame, but why do you... Nicholas!" and
    she covered her face with her hands.
    
    Nicholas said nothing. He flushed crimson, left her side, and paced up
    and down the room. He understood what she was weeping about, but could
    not in his heart at once agree with her that what he had regarded from
    childhood as quite an everyday event was wrong. "Is it just
    sentimentality, old wives' tales, or is she right?" he asked himself.
    Before he had solved that point he glanced again at her face filled with
    love and pain, and he suddenly realized that she was right and that he
    had long been sinning against himself.
    
    "Mary," he said softly, going up to her, "it will never happen again; I
    give you my word. Never," he repeated in a trembling voice like a boy
    asking for forgiveness.
    
    The tears flowed faster still from the countess' eyes. She took his hand
    and kissed it.
    
    "Nicholas, when did you break your cameo?" she asked to change the
    subject, looking at his finger on which he wore a ring with a cameo of
    Laocoon's head.
    
    "Today--it was the same affair. Oh, Mary, don't remind me of it!" and
    again he flushed. "I give you my word of honor it shan't occur again,
    and let this always be a reminder to me," and he pointed to the broken
    ring.
    
    After that, when in discussions with his village elders or stewards the
    blood rushed to his face and his fists began to clench, Nicholas would
    turn the broken ring on his finger and would drop his eyes before the
    man who was making him angry. But he did forget himself once or twice
    within a twelvemonth, and then he would go and confess to his wife, and
    would again promise that this should really be the very last time.
    
    "Mary, you must despise me!" he would say. "I deserve it."
    
    "You should go, go away at once, if you don't feel strong enough to
    control yourself," she would reply sadly, trying to comfort her husband.
    
    Among the gentry of the province Nicholas was respected but not liked.
    He did not concern himself with the interests of his own class, and
    consequently some thought him proud and others thought him stupid. The
    whole summer, from spring sowing to harvest, he was busy with the work
    on his farm. In autumn he gave himself up to hunting with the same
    business-like seriousness--leaving home for a month, or even two, with
    his hunt. In winter he visited his other villages or spent his time
    reading. The books he read were chiefly historical, and on these he
    spent a certain sum every year. He was collecting, as he said, a serious
    library, and he made it a rule to read through all the books he bought.
    He would sit in his study with a grave air, reading--a task he first
    imposed upon himself as a duty, but which afterwards became a habit
    affording him a special kind of pleasure and a consciousness of being
    occupied with serious matters. In winter, except for business
    excursions, he spent most of his time at home making himself one with
    his family and entering into all the details of his children's relations
    with their mother. The harmony between him and his wife grew closer and
    closer and he daily discovered fresh spiritual treasures in her.
    
    From the time of his marriage Sonya had lived in his house. Before that,
    Nicholas had told his wife all that had passed between himself and
    Sonya, blaming himself and commending her. He had asked Princess Mary to
    be gentle and kind to his cousin. She thoroughly realized the wrong he
    had done Sonya, felt herself to blame toward her, and imagined that her
    wealth had influenced Nicholas' choice. She could not find fault with
    Sonya in any way and tried to be fond of her, but often felt ill-will
    toward her which she could not overcome.
    
    Once she had a talk with her friend Natasha about Sonya and about her
    own injustice toward her.
    
    "You know," said Natasha, "you have read the Gospels a great deal--there
    is a passage in them that just fits Sonya."
    
    "What?" asked Countess Mary, surprised.
    
    "'To him that hath shall be given, and from him that hath not shall be
    taken away.' You remember? She is one that hath not; why, I don't know.
    Perhaps she lacks egotism, I don't know, but from her is taken away, and
    everything has been taken away. Sometimes I am dreadfully sorry for her.
    Formerly I very much wanted Nicholas to marry her, but I always had a
    sort of presentiment that it would not come off. She is a sterile
    flower, you know--like some strawberry blossoms. Sometimes I am sorry
    for her, and sometimes I think she doesn't feel it as you or I would."
    
    Though Countess Mary told Natasha that those words in the Gospel must be
    understood differently, yet looking at Sonya she agreed with Natasha's
    explanation. It really seemed that Sonya did not feel her position
    trying, and had grown quite reconciled to her lot as a sterile flower.
    She seemed to be fond not so much of individuals as of the family as a
    whole. Like a cat, she had attached herself not to the people but to the
    home. She waited on the old countess, petted and spoiled the children,
    was always ready to render the small services for which she had a gift,
    and all this was unconsciously accepted from her with insufficient
    gratitude.
    
    The country seat at Bald Hills had been rebuilt, though not on the same
    scale as under the old prince.
    
    The buildings, begun under straitened circumstances, were more than
    simple. The immense house on the old stone foundations was of wood,
    plastered only inside. It had bare deal floors and was furnished with
    very simple hard sofas, armchairs, tables, and chairs made by their own
    serf carpenters out of their own birchwood. The house was spacious and
    had rooms for the house serfs and apartments for visitors. Whole
    families of the Rostovs' and Bolkonskis' relations sometimes came to
    Bald Hills with sixteen horses and dozens of servants and stayed for
    months. Besides that, four times a year, on the name days and birthdays
    of the hosts, as many as a hundred visitors would gather there for a day
    or two. The rest of the year life pursued its unbroken routine with its
    ordinary occupations, and its breakfasts, lunches, dinners, and suppers,
    provided out of the produce of the estate.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    It was the eve of St. Nicholas, the fifth of December, 1820. Natasha had
    been staying at her brother's with her husband and children since early
    autumn. Pierre had gone to Petersburg on business of his own for three
    weeks as he said, but had remained there nearly seven weeks and was
    expected back every minute.
    
    Besides the Bezukhov family, Nicholas' old friend the retired General
    Vasili Dmitrich Denisov was staying with the Rostovs this fifth of
    December.
    
    On the sixth, which was his name day when the house would be full of
    visitors, Nicholas knew he would have to exchange his Tartar tunic for a
    tail coat, and put on narrow boots with pointed toes, and drive to the
    new church he had built, and then receive visitors who would come to
    congratulate him, offer them refreshments, and talk about the elections
    of the nobility; but he considered himself entitled to spend the eve of
    that day in his usual way. He examined the bailiff's accounts of the
    village in Ryazan which belonged to his wife's nephew, wrote two
    business letters, and walked over to the granaries, cattle yards and
    stables before dinner. Having taken precautions against the general
    drunkenness to be expected on the morrow because it was a great saint's
    day, he returned to dinner, and without having time for a private talk
    with his wife sat down at the long table laid for twenty persons, at
    which the whole household had assembled. At that table were his mother,
    his mother's old lady companion Belova, his wife, their three children
    with their governess and tutor, his wife's nephew with his tutor, Sonya,
    Denisov, Natasha, her three children, their governess, and old Michael
    Ivanovich, the late prince's architect, who was living on in retirement
    at Bald Hills.
    
    Countess Mary sat at the other end of the table. When her husband took
    his place she concluded, from the rapid manner in which after taking up
    his table napkin he pushed back the tumbler and wineglass standing
    before him, that he was out of humor, as was sometimes the case when he
    came in to dinner straight from the farm--especially before the soup.
    Countess Mary well knew that mood of his, and when she herself was in a
    good frame of mind quietly waited till he had had his soup and then
    began to talk to him and make him admit that there was no cause for his
    ill-humor. But today she quite forgot that and was hurt that he should
    be angry with her without any reason, and she felt unhappy. She asked
    him where he had been. He replied. She again inquired whether everything
    was going well on the farm. Her unnatural tone made him wince
    unpleasantly and he replied hastily.
    
    "Then I'm not mistaken," thought Countess Mary. "Why is he cross with
    me?" She concluded from his tone that he was vexed with her and wished
    to end the conversation. She knew her remarks sounded unnatural, but
    could not refrain from asking some more questions.
    
    Thanks to Denisov the conversation at table soon became general and
    lively, and she did not talk to her husband. When they left the table
    and went as usual to thank the old countess, Countess Mary held out her
    hand and kissed her husband, and asked him why he was angry with her.
    
    "You always have such strange fancies! I didn't even think of being
    angry," he replied.
    
    But the word always seemed to her to imply: "Yes, I am angry but I won't
    tell you why."
    
    Nicholas and his wife lived together so happily that even Sonya and the
    old countess, who felt jealous and would have liked them to disagree,
    could find nothing to reproach them with; but even they had their
    moments of antagonism. Occasionally, and it was always just after they
    had been happiest together, they suddenly had a feeling of estrangement
    and hostility, which occurred most frequently during Countess Mary's
    pregnancies, and this was such a time.
    
    "Well, messieurs et mesdames," said Nicholas loudly and with apparent
    cheerfulness (it seemed to Countess Mary that he did it on purpose to
    vex her), "I have been on my feet since six this morning. Tomorrow I
    shall have to suffer, so today I'll go and rest."
    
    And without a word to his wife he went to the little sitting room and
    lay down on the sofa.
    
    "That's always the way," thought Countess Mary. "He talks to everyone
    except me. I see... I see that I am repulsive to him, especially when I
    am in this condition." She looked down at her expanded figure and in the
    glass at her pale, sallow, emaciated face in which her eyes now looked
    larger than ever.
    
    And everything annoyed her--Denisov's shouting and laughter, Natasha's
    talk, and especially a quick glance Sonya gave her.
    
    Sonya was always the first excuse Countess Mary found for feeling
    irritated.
    
    Having sat awhile with her visitors without understanding anything of
    what they were saying, she softly left the room and went to the nursery.
    
    The children were playing at "going to Moscow" in a carriage made of
    chairs and invited her to go with them. She sat down and played with
    them a little, but the thought of her husband and his unreasonable
    crossness worried her. She got up and, walking on tiptoe with
    difficulty, went to the small sitting room.
    
    "Perhaps he is not asleep; I'll have an explanation with him," she said
    to herself. Little Andrew, her eldest boy, imitating his mother,
    followed her on tiptoe. She did not notice him.
    
    "Mary, dear, I think he is asleep--he was so tired," said Sonya, meeting
    her in the large sitting room (it seemed to Countess Mary that she
    crossed her path everywhere). "Andrew may wake him."
    
    Countess Mary looked round, saw little Andrew following her, felt that
    Sonya was right, and for that very reason flushed and with evident
    difficulty refrained from saying something harsh. She made no reply, but
    to avoid obeying Sonya beckoned to Andrew to follow her quietly and went
    to the door. Sonya went away by another door. From the room in which
    Nicholas was sleeping came the sound of his even breathing, every
    slightest tone of which was familiar to his wife. As she listened to it
    she saw before her his smooth handsome forehead, his mustache, and his
    whole face, as she had so often seen it in the stillness of the night
    when he slept. Nicholas suddenly moved and cleared his throat. And at
    that moment little Andrew shouted from outside the door: "Papa! Mamma's
    standing here!" Countess Mary turned pale with fright and made signs to
    the boy. He grew silent, and quiet ensued for a moment, terrible to
    Countess Mary. She knew how Nicholas disliked being waked. Then through
    the door she heard Nicholas clearing his throat again and stirring, and
    his voice said crossly:
    
    "I can't get a moment's peace.... Mary, is that you? Why did you bring
    him here?"
    
    "I only came in to look and did not notice... forgive me..."
    
    Nicholas coughed and said no more. Countess Mary moved away from the
    door and took the boy back to the nursery. Five minutes later little
    black-eyed three-year-old Natasha, her father's pet, having learned from
    her brother that Papa was asleep and Mamma was in the sitting room, ran
    to her father unobserved by her mother. The dark-eyed little girl boldly
    opened the creaking door, went up to the sofa with energetic steps of
    her sturdy little legs, and having examined the position of her father,
    who was asleep with his back to her, rose on tiptoe and kissed the hand
    which lay under his head. Nicholas turned with a tender smile on his
    face.
    
    "Natasha, Natasha!" came Countess Mary's frightened whisper from the
    door. "Papa wants to sleep."
    
    "No, Mamma, he doesn't want to sleep," said little Natasha with
    conviction. "He's laughing."
    
    Nicholas lowered his legs, rose, and took his daughter in his arms.
    
    "Come in, Mary," he said to his wife.
    
    She went in and sat down by her husband.
    
    "I did not notice him following me," she said timidly. "I just looked
    in."
    
    Holding his little girl with one arm, Nicholas glanced at his wife and,
    seeing her guilty expression, put his other arm around her and kissed
    her hair.
    
    "May I kiss Mamma?" he asked Natasha.
    
    Natasha smiled bashfully.
    
    "Again!" she commanded, pointing with a peremptory gesture to the spot
    where Nicholas had placed the kiss.
    
    "I don't know why you think I am cross," said Nicholas, replying to the
    question he knew was in his wife's mind.
    
    "You have no idea how unhappy, how lonely, I feel when you are like
    that. It always seems to me..."
    
    "Mary, don't talk nonsense. You ought to be ashamed of yourself!" he
    said gaily.
    
    "It seems to be that you can't love me, that I am so plain... always...
    and now... in this cond..."
    
    "Oh, how absurd you are! It is not beauty that endears, it's love that
    makes us see beauty. It is only Malvinas and women of that kind who are
    loved for their beauty. But do I love my wife? I don't love her, but...
    I don't know how to put it. Without you, or when something comes between
    us like this, I seem lost and can't do anything. Now do I love my
    finger? I don't love it, but just try to cut it off!"
    
    "I'm not like that myself, but I understand. So you're not angry with
    me?"
    
    "Awfully angry!" he said, smiling and getting up. And smoothing his hair
    he began to pace the room.
    
    "Do you know, Mary, what I've been thinking?" he began, immediately
    thinking aloud in his wife's presence now that they had made it up.
    
    He did not ask if she was ready to listen to him. He did not care. A
    thought had occurred to him and so it belonged to her also. And he told
    her of his intention to persuade Pierre to stay with them till spring.
    
    Countess Mary listened till he had finished, made some remark, and in
    her turn began thinking aloud. Her thoughts were about the children.
    
    "You can see the woman in her already," she said in French, pointing to
    little Natasha. "You reproach us women with being illogical. Here is our
    logic. I say: 'Papa wants to sleep!' but she says, 'No, he's laughing.'
    And she was right," said Countess Mary with a happy smile.
    
    "Yes, yes." And Nicholas, taking his little daughter in his strong hand,
    lifted her high, placed her on his shoulder, held her by the legs, and
    paced the room with her. There was an expression of carefree happiness
    on the faces of both father and daughter.
    
    "But you know you may be unfair. You are too fond of this one," his wife
    whispered in French.
    
    "Yes, but what am I to do?... I try not to show..."
    
    At that moment they heard the sound of the door pulley and footsteps in
    the hall and anteroom, as if someone had arrived.
    
    "Somebody has come."
    
    "I am sure it is Pierre. I will go and see," said Countess Mary and left
    the room.
    
    In her absence Nicholas allowed himself to give his little daughter a
    gallop round the room. Out of breath, he took the laughing child quickly
    from his shoulder and pressed her to his heart. His capers reminded him
    of dancing, and looking at the child's round happy little face he
    thought of what she would be like when he was an old man, taking her
    into society and dancing the mazurka with her as his old father had
    danced Daniel Cooper with his daughter.
    
    "It is he, it is he, Nicholas!" said Countess Mary, re-entering the room
    a few minutes later. "Now our Natasha has come to life. You should have
    seen her ecstasy, and how he caught it for having stayed away so long.
    Well, come along now, quick, quick! It's time you two were parted," she
    added, looking smilingly at the little girl who clung to her father.
    
    Nicholas went out holding the child by the hand.
    
    Countess Mary remained in the sitting room.
    
    "I should never, never have believed that one could be so happy," she
    whispered to herself. A smile lit up her face but at the same time she
    sighed, and her deep eyes expressed a quiet sadness as though she felt,
    through her happiness, that there is another sort of happiness
    unattainable in this life and of which she involuntarily thought at that
    instant.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Natasha had married in the early spring of 1813, and in 1820 already had
    three daughters besides a son for whom she had longed and whom she was
    now nursing. She had grown stouter and broader, so that it was difficult
    to recognize in this robust, motherly woman the slim, lively Natasha of
    former days. Her features were more defined and had a calm, soft, and
    serene expression. In her face there was none of the ever-glowing
    animation that had formerly burned there and constituted its charm. Now
    her face and body were often all that one saw, and her soul was not
    visible at all. All that struck the eye was a strong, handsome, and
    fertile woman. The old fire very rarely kindled in her face now. That
    happened only when, as was the case that day, her husband returned home,
    or a sick child was convalescent, or when she and Countess Mary spoke of
    Prince Andrew (she never mentioned him to her husband, who she imagined
    was jealous of Prince Andrew's memory), or on the rare occasions when
    something happened to induce her to sing, a practice she had quite
    abandoned since her marriage. At the rare moments when the old fire did
    kindle in her handsome, fully developed body she was even more
    attractive than in former days.
    
    Since their marriage Natasha and her husband had lived in Moscow, in
    Petersburg, on their estate near Moscow, or with her mother, that is to
    say, in Nicholas' house. The young Countess Bezukhova was not often seen
    in society, and those who met her there were not pleased with her and
    found her neither attractive nor amiable. Not that Natasha liked
    solitude--she did not know whether she liked it or not, she even thought
    that she did not--but with her pregnancies, her confinements, the
    nursing of her children, and sharing every moment of her husband's life,
    she had demands on her time which could be satisfied only by renouncing
    society. All who had known Natasha before her marriage wondered at the
    change in her as at something extraordinary. Only the old countess with
    her maternal instinct had realized that all Natasha's outbursts had been
    due to her need of children and a husband--as she herself had once
    exclaimed at Otradnoe not so much in fun as in earnest--and her mother
    was now surprised at the surprise expressed by those who had never
    understood Natasha, and she kept saying that she had always known that
    Natasha would make an exemplary wife and mother.
    
    "Only she lets her love of her husband and children overflow all
    bounds," said the countess, "so that it even becomes absurd."
    
    Natasha did not follow the golden rule advocated by clever folk,
    especially by the French, which says that a girl should not let herself
    go when she marries, should not neglect her accomplishments, should be
    even more careful of her appearance than when she was unmarried, and
    should fascinate her husband as much as she did before he became her
    husband. Natasha on the contrary had at once abandoned all her witchery,
    of which her singing had been an unusually powerful part. She gave it up
    just because it was so powerfully seductive. She took no pains with her
    manners or with delicacy of speech, or with her toilet, or to show
    herself to her husband in her most becoming attitudes, or to avoid
    inconveniencing him by being too exacting. She acted in contradiction to
    all those rules. She felt that the allurements instinct had formerly
    taught her to use would now be merely ridiculous in the eyes of her
    husband, to whom she had from the first moment given herself up
    entirely--that is, with her whole soul, leaving no corner of it hidden
    from him. She felt that her unity with her husband was not maintained by
    the poetic feelings that had attracted him to her, but by something
    else--indefinite but firm as the bond between her own body and soul.
    
    To fluff out her curls, put on fashionable dresses, and sing romantic
    songs to fascinate her husband would have seemed as strange as to adorn
    herself to attract herself. To adorn herself for others might perhaps
    have been agreeable--she did not know--but she had no time at all for
    it. The chief reason for devoting no time either to singing, to dress,
    or to choosing her words was that she really had no time to spare for
    these things.
    
    We know that man has the faculty of becoming completely absorbed in a
    subject however trivial it may be, and that there is no subject so
    trivial that it will not grow to infinite proportions if one's entire
    attention is devoted to it.
    
    The subject which wholly engrossed Natasha's attention was her family:
    that is, her husband whom she had to keep so that he should belong
    entirely to her and to the home, and the children whom she had to bear,
    bring into the world, nurse, and bring up.
    
    And the deeper she penetrated, not with her mind only but with her whole
    soul, her whole being, into the subject that absorbed her, the larger
    did that subject grow and the weaker and more inadequate did her powers
    appear, so that she concentrated them wholly on that one thing and yet
    was unable to accomplish all that she considered necessary.
    
    There were then as now conversations and discussions about women's
    rights, the relations of husband and wife and their freedom and rights,
    though these themes were not yet termed questions as they are now; but
    these topics were not merely uninteresting to Natasha, she positively
    did not understand them.
    
    These questions, then as now, existed only for those who see nothing in
    marriage but the pleasure married people get from one another, that is,
    only the beginnings of marriage and not its whole significance, which
    lies in the family.
    
    Discussions and questions of that kind, which are like the question of
    how to get the greatest gratification from one's dinner, did not then
    and do not now exist for those for whom the purpose of a dinner is the
    nourishment it affords; and the purpose of marriage is the family.
    
    If the purpose of dinner is to nourish the body, a man who eats two
    dinners at once may perhaps get more enjoyment but will not attain his
    purpose, for his stomach will not digest the two dinners.
    
    If the purpose of marriage is the family, the person who wishes to have
    many wives or husbands may perhaps obtain much pleasure, but in that
    case will not have a family.
    
    If the purpose of food is nourishment and the purpose of marriage is the
    family, the whole question resolves itself into not eating more than one
    can digest, and not having more wives or husbands than are needed for
    the family--that is, one wife or one husband. Natasha needed a husband.
    A husband was given her and he gave her a family. And she not only saw
    no need of any other or better husband, but as all the powers of her
    soul were intent on serving that husband and family, she could not
    imagine and saw no interest in imagining how it would be if things were
    different.
    
    Natasha did not care for society in general, but prized the more the
    society of her relatives--Countess Mary, and her brother, her mother,
    and Sonya. She valued the company of those to whom she could come
    striding disheveled from the nursery in her dressing gown, and with
    joyful face show a yellow instead of a green stain on baby's napkin, and
    from whom she could hear reassuring words to the effect that baby was
    much better.
    
    To such an extent had Natasha let herself go that the way she dressed
    and did her hair, her ill-chosen words, and her jealousy--she was
    jealous of Sonya, of the governess, and of every woman, pretty or plain-
    -were habitual subjects of jest to those about her. The general opinion
    was that Pierre was under his wife's thumb, which was really true. From
    the very first days of their married life Natasha had announced her
    demands. Pierre was greatly surprised by his wife's view, to him a
    perfectly novel one, that every moment of his life belonged to her and
    to the family. His wife's demands astonished him, but they also
    flattered him, and he submitted to them.
    
    Pierre's subjection consisted in the fact that he not only dared not
    flirt with, but dared not even speak smilingly to, any other woman; did
    not dare dine at the club as a pastime, did not dare spend money on a
    whim, and did not dare absent himself for any length of time, except on
    business--in which his wife included his intellectual pursuits, which
    she did not in the least understand but to which she attributed great
    importance. To make up for this, at home Pierre had the right to
    regulate his life and that of the whole family exactly as he chose. At
    home Natasha placed herself in the position of a slave to her husband,
    and the whole household went on tiptoe when he was occupied--that is,
    was reading or writing in his study. Pierre had but to show a partiality
    for anything to get just what he liked done always. He had only to
    express a wish and Natasha would jump up and run to fulfill it.
    
    The entire household was governed according to Pierre's supposed orders,
    that is, by his wishes which Natasha tried to guess. Their way of life
    and place of residence, their acquaintances and ties, Natasha's
    occupations, the children's upbringing, were all selected not merely
    with regard to Pierre's expressed wishes, but to what Natasha from the
    thoughts he expressed in conversation supposed his wishes to be. And she
    deduced the essentials of his wishes quite correctly, and having once
    arrived at them clung to them tenaciously. When Pierre himself wanted to
    change his mind she would fight him with his own weapons.
    
    Thus in a time of trouble ever memorable to him after the birth of their
    first child who was delicate, when they had to change the wet nurse
    three times and Natasha fell ill from despair, Pierre one day told her
    of Rousseau's view, with which he quite agreed, that to have a wet nurse
    is unnatural and harmful. When her next baby was born, despite the
    opposition of her mother, the doctors, and even of her husband himself--
    who were all vigorously opposed to her nursing her baby herself, a thing
    then unheard of and considered injurious--she insisted on having her own
    way, and after that nursed all her babies herself.
    
    It very often happened that in a moment of irritation husband and wife
    would have a dispute, but long afterwards Pierre to his surprise and
    delight would find in his wife's ideas and actions the very thought
    against which she had argued, but divested of everything superfluous
    that in the excitement of the dispute he had added when expressing his
    opinion.
    
    After seven years of marriage Pierre had the joyous and firm
    consciousness that he was not a bad man, and he felt this because he saw
    himself reflected in his wife. He felt the good and bad within himself
    inextricably mingled and overlapping. But only what was really good in
    him was reflected in his wife, all that was not quite good was rejected.
    And this was not the result of logical reasoning but was a direct and
    mysterious reflection.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    Two months previously when Pierre was already staying with the Rostovs
    he had received a letter from Prince Theodore, asking him to come to
    Petersburg to confer on some important questions that were being
    discussed there by a society of which Pierre was one of the principal
    founders.
    
    On reading that letter (she always read her husband's letters) Natasha
    herself suggested that he should go to Petersburg, though she would feel
    his absence very acutely. She attributed immense importance to all her
    husband's intellectual and abstract interests though she did not
    understand them, and she always dreaded being a hindrance to him in such
    matters. To Pierre's timid look of inquiry after reading the letter she
    replied by asking him to go, but to fix a definite date for his return.
    He was given four weeks' leave of absence.
    
    Ever since that leave of absence had expired, more than a fortnight
    before, Natasha had been in a constant state of alarm, depression, and
    irritability.
    
    Denisov, now a general on the retired list and much dissatisfied with
    the present state of affairs, had arrived during that fortnight. He
    looked at Natasha with sorrow and surprise as at a bad likeness of a
    person once dear. A dull, dejected look, random replies, and talk about
    the nursery was all he saw and heard from his former enchantress.
    
    Natasha was sad and irritable all that time, especially when her mother,
    her brother, Sonya, or Countess Mary in their efforts to console her
    tried to excuse Pierre and suggested reasons for his delay in returning.
    
    "It's all nonsense, all rubbish--those discussions which lead to nothing
    and all those idiotic societies!" Natasha declared of the very affairs
    in the immense importance of which she firmly believed.
    
    And she would go to the nursery to nurse Petya, her only boy. No one
    else could tell her anything so comforting or so reasonable as this
    little three-month-old creature when he lay at her breast and she was
    conscious of the movement of his lips and the snuffling of his little
    nose. That creature said: "You are angry, you are jealous, you would
    like to pay him out, you are afraid--but here am I! And I am he..." and
    that was unanswerable. It was more than true.
    
    During that fortnight of anxiety Natasha resorted to the baby for
    comfort so often, and fussed over him so much, that she overfed him and
    he fell ill. She was terrified by his illness, and yet that was just
    what she needed. While attending to him she bore the anxiety about her
    husband more easily.
    
    She was nursing her boy when the sound of Pierre's sleigh was heard at
    the front door, and the old nurse--knowing how to please her mistress--
    entered the room inaudibly but hurriedly and with a beaming face.
    
    "Has he come?" Natasha asked quickly in a whisper, afraid to move lest
    she should rouse the dozing baby.
    
    "He's come, ma'am," whispered the nurse.
    
    The blood rushed to Natasha's face and her feet involuntarily moved, but
    she could not jump up and run out. The baby again opened his eyes and
    looked at her. "You're here?" he seemed to be saying, and again lazily
    smacked his lips.
    
    Cautiously withdrawing her breast, Natasha rocked him a little, handed
    him to the nurse, and went with rapid steps toward the door. But at the
    door she stopped as if her conscience reproached her for having in her
    joy left the child too soon, and she glanced round. The nurse with
    raised elbows was lifting the infant over the rail of his cot.
    
    "Go, ma'am! Don't worry, go!" she whispered, smiling, with the kind of
    familiarity that grows up between a nurse and her mistress.
    
    Natasha ran with light footsteps to the anteroom.
    
    Denisov, who had come out of the study into the dancing room with his
    pipe, now for the first time recognized the old Natasha. A flood of
    brilliant, joyful light poured from her transfigured face.
    
    "He's come!" she exclaimed as she ran past, and Denisov felt that he too
    was delighted that Pierre, whom he did not much care for, had returned.
    
    On reaching the vestibule Natasha saw a tall figure in a fur coat
    unwinding his scarf. "It's he! It's really he! He has come!" she said to
    herself, and rushing at him embraced him, pressed his head to her
    breast, and then pushed him back and gazed at his ruddy, happy face,
    covered with hoarfrost. "Yes, it is he, happy and contented..."
    
    Then all at once she remembered the tortures of suspense she had
    experienced for the last fortnight, and the joy that had lit up her face
    vanished; she frowned and overwhelmed Pierre with a torrent of
    reproaches and angry words.
    
    "Yes, it's all very well for you. You are pleased, you've had a good
    time.... But what about me? You might at least have shown consideration
    for the children. I am nursing and my milk was spoiled.... Petya was at
    death's door. But you were enjoying yourself. Yes, enjoying..."
    
    Pierre knew he was not to blame, for he could not have come sooner; he
    knew this outburst was unseemly and would blow over in a minute or two;
    above all he knew that he himself was bright and happy. He wanted to
    smile but dared not even think of doing so. He made a piteous,
    frightened face and bent down.
    
    "I could not, on my honor. But how is Petya?"
    
    "All right now. Come along! I wonder you're not ashamed! If only you
    could see what I was like without you, how I suffered!"
    
    "You are well?"
    
    "Come, come!" she said, not letting go of his arm. And they went to
    their rooms.
    
    When Nicholas and his wife came to look for Pierre he was in the nursery
    holding his baby son, who was again awake, on his huge right palm and
    dandling him. A blissful bright smile was fixed on the baby's broad face
    with its toothless open mouth. The storm was long since over and there
    was bright, joyous sunshine on Natasha's face as she gazed tenderly at
    her husband and child.
    
    "And have you talked everything well over with Prince Theodore?" she
    asked.
    
    "Yes, capitally."
    
    "You see, he holds it up." (She meant the baby's head.) "But how he did
    frighten me... You've seen the princess? Is it true she's in love with
    that..."
    
    "Yes, just fancy..."
    
    At that moment Nicholas and Countess Mary came in. Pierre with the baby
    on his hand stooped, kissed them, and replied to their inquiries. But in
    spite of much that was interesting and had to be discussed, the baby
    with the little cap on its unsteady head evidently absorbed all his
    attention.
    
    "How sweet!" said Countess Mary, looking at and playing with the baby.
    "Now, Nicholas," she added, turning to her husband, "I can't understand
    how it is you don't see the charm of these delicious marvels."
    
    "I don't and can't," replied Nicholas, looking coldly at the baby. "A
    lump of flesh. Come along, Pierre!"
    
    "And yet he's such an affectionate father," said Countess Mary,
    vindicating her husband, "but only after they are a year old or so..."
    
    "Now, Pierre nurses them splendidly," said Natasha. "He says his hand is
    just made for a baby's seat. Just look!"
    
    "Only not for this..." Pierre suddenly exclaimed with a laugh, and
    shifting the baby he gave him to the nurse.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    As in every large household, there were at Bald Hills several perfectly
    distinct worlds which merged into one harmonious whole, though each
    retained its own peculiarities and made concessions to the others. Every
    event, joyful or sad, that took place in that house was important to all
    these worlds, but each had its own special reasons to rejoice or grieve
    over that occurrence independently of the others.
    
    For instance, Pierre's return was a joyful and important event and they
    all felt it to be so.
    
    The servants--the most reliable judges of their masters because they
    judge not by their conversation or expressions of feeling but by their
    acts and way of life--were glad of Pierre's return because they knew
    that when he was there Count Nicholas would cease going every day to
    attend to the estate, and would be in better spirits and temper, and
    also because they would all receive handsome presents for the holidays.
    
    The children and their governesses were glad of Pierre's return because
    no one else drew them into the social life of the household as he did.
    He alone could play on the clavichord that ecossaise (his only piece) to
    which, as he said, all possible dances could be danced, and they felt
    sure he had brought presents for them all.
    
    Young Nicholas, now a slim lad of fifteen, delicate and intelligent,
    with curly light-brown hair and beautiful eyes, was delighted because
    Uncle Pierre as he called him was the object of his rapturous and
    passionate affection. No one had instilled into him this love for Pierre
    whom he saw only occasionally. Countess Mary who had brought him up had
    done her utmost to make him love her husband as she loved him, and
    little Nicholas did love his uncle, but loved him with just a shade of
    contempt. Pierre, however, he adored. He did not want to be an hussar or
    a Knight of St. George like his uncle Nicholas; he wanted to be learned,
    wise, and kind like Pierre. In Pierre's presence his face always shone
    with pleasure and he flushed and was breathless when Pierre spoke to
    him. He did not miss a single word he uttered, and would afterwards,
    with Dessalles or by himself, recall and reconsider the meaning of
    everything Pierre had said. Pierre's past life and his unhappiness prior
    to 1812 (of which young Nicholas had formed a vague poetic picture from
    some words he had overheard), his adventures in Moscow, his captivity,
    Platon Karataev (of whom he had heard from Pierre), his love for Natasha
    (of whom the lad was also particularly fond), and especially Pierre's
    friendship with the father whom Nicholas could not remember--all this
    made Pierre in his eyes a hero and a saint.
    
    From broken remarks about Natasha and his father, from the emotion with
    which Pierre spoke of that dead father, and from the careful, reverent
    tenderness with which Natasha spoke of him, the boy, who was only just
    beginning to guess what love is, derived the notion that his father had
    loved Natasha and when dying had left her to his friend. But the father
    whom the boy did not remember appeared to him a divinity who could not
    be pictured, and of whom he never thought without a swelling heart and
    tears of sadness and rapture. So the boy also was happy that Pierre had
    arrived.
    
    The guests welcomed Pierre because he always helped to enliven and unite
    any company he was in.
    
    The grown-up members of the family, not to mention his wife, were
    pleased to have back a friend whose presence made life run more smoothly
    and peacefully.
    
    The old ladies were pleased with the presents he brought them, and
    especially that Natasha would now be herself again.
    
    Pierre felt the different outlooks of these various worlds and made
    haste to satisfy all their expectations.
    
    Though the most absent-minded and forgetful of men, Pierre, with the aid
    of a list his wife drew up, had now bought everything, not forgetting
    his mother--and brother-in-law's commissions, nor the dress material for
    a present to Belova, nor toys for his wife's nephews. In the early days
    of his marriage it had seemed strange to him that his wife should expect
    him not to forget to procure all the things he undertook to buy, and he
    had been taken aback by her serious annoyance when on his first trip he
    forgot everything. But in time he grew used to this demand. Knowing that
    Natasha asked nothing for herself, and gave him commissions for others
    only when he himself had offered to undertake them, he now found an
    unexpected and childlike pleasure in this purchase of presents for
    everyone in the house, and never forgot anything. If he now incurred
    Natasha's censure it was only for buying too many and too expensive
    things. To her other defects (as most people thought them, but which to
    Pierre were qualities) of untidiness and neglect of herself, she now
    added stinginess.
    
    From the time that Pierre began life as a family man on a footing
    entailing heavy expenditure, he had noticed to his surprise that he
    spent only half as much as before, and that his affairs--which had been
    in disorder of late, chiefly because of his first wife's debts--had
    begun to improve.
    
    Life was cheaper because it was circumscribed: that most expensive
    luxury, the kind of life that can be changed at any moment, was no
    longer his nor did he wish for it. He felt that his way of life had now
    been settled once for all till death and that to change it was not in
    his power, and so that way of life proved economical.
    
    With a merry, smiling face Pierre was sorting his purchases.
    
    "What do you think of this?" said he, unrolling a piece of stuff like a
    shopman.
    
    Natasha, who was sitting opposite to him with her eldest daughter on her
    lap, turned her sparkling eyes swiftly from her husband to the things he
    showed her.
    
    "That's for Belova? Excellent!" She felt the quality of the material.
    "It was a ruble an arshin, I suppose?"
    
    Pierre told her the price.
    
    "Too dear!" Natasha remarked. "How pleased the children will be and
    Mamma too! Only you need not have bought me this," she added, unable to
    suppress a smile as she gazed admiringly at a gold comb set with pearls,
    of a kind then just coming into fashion.
    
    "Adele tempted me: she kept on telling me to buy it," returned Pierre.
    
    "When am I to wear it?" and Natasha stuck it in her coil of hair. "When
    I take little Masha into society? Perhaps they will be fashionable again
    by then. Well, let's go now."
    
    And collecting the presents they went first to the nursery and then to
    the old countess' rooms.
    
    The countess was sitting with her companion Belova, playing grand-
    patience as usual, when Pierre and Natasha came into the drawing room
    with parcels under their arms.
    
    The countess was now over sixty, was quite gray, and wore a cap with a
    frill that surrounded her face. Her face had shriveled, her upper lip
    had sunk in, and her eyes were dim.
    
    After the deaths of her son and husband in such rapid succession, she
    felt herself a being accidentally forgotten in this world and left
    without aim or object for her existence. She ate, drank, slept, or kept
    awake, but did not live. Life gave her no new impressions. She wanted
    nothing from life but tranquillity, and that tranquillity only death
    could give her. But until death came she had to go on living, that is,
    to use her vital forces. A peculiarity one sees in very young children
    and very old people was particularly evident in her. Her life had no
    external aims--only a need to exercise her various functions and
    inclinations was apparent. She had to eat, sleep, think, speak, weep,
    work, give vent to her anger, and so on, merely because she had a
    stomach, a brain, muscles, nerves, and a liver. She did these things not
    under any external impulse as people in the full vigor of life do, when
    behind the purpose for which they strive that of exercising their
    functions remains unnoticed. She talked only because she physically
    needed to exercise her tongue and lungs. She cried as a child does,
    because her nose had to be cleared, and so on. What for people in their
    full vigor is an aim was for her evidently merely a pretext.
    
    Thus in the morning--especially if she had eaten anything rich the day
    before--she felt a need of being angry and would choose as the handiest
    pretext Belova's deafness.
    
    She would begin to say something to her in a low tone from the other end
    of the room.
    
    "It seems a little warmer today, my dear," she would murmur.
    
    And when Belova replied: "Oh yes, they've come," she would mutter
    angrily: "O Lord! How stupid and deaf she is!"
    
    Another pretext would be her snuff, which would seem too dry or too damp
    or not rubbed fine enough. After these fits of irritability her face
    would grow yellow, and her maids knew by infallible symptoms when Belova
    would again be deaf, the snuff damp, and the countess' face yellow. Just
    as she needed to work off her spleen so she had sometimes to exercise
    her still-existing faculty of thinking--and the pretext for that was a
    game of patience. When she needed to cry, the deceased count would be
    the pretext. When she wanted to be agitated, Nicholas and his health
    would be the pretext, and when she felt a need to speak spitefully, the
    pretext would be Countess Mary. When her vocal organs needed exercise,
    which was usually toward seven o'clock when she had had an after-dinner
    rest in a darkened room, the pretext would be the retelling of the same
    stories over and over again to the same audience.
    
    The old lady's condition was understood by the whole household though no
    one ever spoke of it, and they all made every possible effort to satisfy
    her needs. Only by a rare glance exchanged with a sad smile between
    Nicholas, Pierre, Natasha, and Countess Mary was the common
    understanding of her condition expressed.
    
    But those glances expressed something more: they said that she had
    played her part in life, that what they now saw was not her whole self,
    that we must all become like her, and that they were glad to yield to
    her, to restrain themselves for this once precious being formerly as
    full of life as themselves, but now so much to be pitied. "Memento
    mori," said these glances.
    
    Only the really heartless, the stupid ones of that household, and the
    little children failed to understand this and avoided her.
    
    CHAPTER XIII
    
    When Pierre and his wife entered the drawing room the countess was in
    one of her customary states in which she needed the mental exertion of
    playing patience, and so--though by force of habit she greeted him with
    the words she always used when Pierre or her son returned after an
    absence: "High time, my dear, high time! We were all weary of waiting
    for you. Well, thank God!" and received her presents with another
    customary remark: "It's not the gift that's precious, my dear, but that
    you give it to me, an old woman..."--yet it was evident that she was not
    pleased by Pierre's arrival at that moment when it diverted her
    attention from the unfinished game.
    
    She finished her game of patience and only then examined the presents.
    They consisted of a box for cards, of splendid workmanship, a bright-
    blue Sevres tea cup with shepherdesses depicted on it and with a lid,
    and a gold snuffbox with the count's portrait on the lid which Pierre
    had had done by a miniaturist in Petersburg. The countess had long
    wished for such a box, but as she did not want to cry just then she
    glanced indifferently at the portrait and gave her attention chiefly to
    the box for cards.
    
    "Thank you, my dear, you have cheered me up," said she as she always
    did. "But best of all you have brought yourself back--for I never saw
    anything like it, you ought to give your wife a scolding! What are we to
    do with her? She is like a mad woman when you are away. Doesn't see
    anything, doesn't remember anything," she went on, repeating her usual
    phrases. "Look, Anna Timofeevna," she added to her companion, "see what
    a box for cards my son has brought us!"
    
    Belova admired the presents and was delighted with her dress material.
    
    Though Pierre, Natasha, Nicholas, Countess Mary, and Denisov had much to
    talk about that they could not discuss before the old countess--not that
    anything was hidden from her, but because she had dropped so far
    behindhand in many things that had they begun to converse in her
    presence they would have had to answer inopportune questions and to
    repeat what they had already told her many times: that so-and-so was
    dead and so-and-so was married, which she would again be unable to
    remember--yet they sat at tea round the samovar in the drawing room from
    habit, and Pierre answered the countess' questions as to whether Prince
    Vasili had aged and whether Countess Mary Alexeevna had sent greetings
    and still thought of them, and other matters that interested no one and
    to which she herself was indifferent.
    
    Conversation of this kind, interesting to no one yet unavoidable,
    continued all through teatime. All the grown-up members of the family
    were assembled near the round tea table at which Sonya presided beside
    the samovar. The children with their tutors and governesses had had tea
    and their voices were audible from the next room. At tea all sat in
    their accustomed places: Nicholas beside the stove at a small table
    where his tea was handed to him; Milka, the old gray borzoi bitch
    (daughter of the first Milka), with a quite gray face and large black
    eyes that seemed more prominent than ever, lay on the armchair beside
    him; Denisov, whose curly hair, mustache, and whiskers had turned half
    gray, sat beside countess Mary with his general's tunic unbuttoned;
    Pierre sat between his wife and the old countess. He spoke of what he
    knew might interest the old lady and that she could understand. He told
    her of external social events and of the people who had formed the
    circle of her contemporaries and had once been a real, living, and
    distinct group, but who were now for the most part scattered about the
    world and like herself were garnering the last ears of the harvests they
    had sown in earlier years. But to the old countess those contemporaries
    of hers seemed to be the only serious and real society. Natasha saw by
    Pierre's animation that his visit had been interesting and that he had
    much to tell them but dare not say it before the old countess. Denisov,
    not being a member of the family, did not understand Pierre's caution
    and being, as a malcontent, much interested in what was occurring in
    Petersburg, kept urging Pierre to tell them about what had happened in
    the Semenovsk regiment, then about Arakcheev, and then about the Bible
    Society. Once or twice Pierre was carried away and began to speak of
    these things, but Nicholas and Natasha always brought him back to the
    health of Prince Ivan and Countess Mary Alexeevna.
    
    "Well, and all this idiocy--Gossner and Tatawinova?" Denisov asked. "Is
    that weally still going on?"
    
    "Going on?" Pierre exclaimed. "Why more than ever! The Bible Society is
    the whole government now!"
    
    "What is that, mon cher ami?" asked the countess, who had finished her
    tea and evidently needed a pretext for being angry after her meal. "What
    are you saying about the government? I don't understand."
    
    "Well, you know, Maman," Nicholas interposed, knowing how to translate
    things into his mother's language, "Prince Alexander Golitsyn has
    founded a society and in consequence has great influence, they say."
    
    "Arakcheev and Golitsyn," incautiously remarked Pierre, "are now the
    whole government! And what a government! They see treason everywhere and
    are afraid of everything."
    
    "Well, and how is Prince Alexander to blame? He is a most estimable man.
    I used to meet him at Mary Antonovna's," said the countess in an
    offended tone; and still more offended that they all remained silent,
    she went on: "Nowadays everyone finds fault. A Gospel Society! Well, and
    what harm is there in that?" and she rose (everybody else got up too)
    and with a severe expression sailed back to her table in the sitting
    room.
    
    The melancholy silence that followed was broken by the sounds of the
    children's voices and laughter from the next room. Evidently some jolly
    excitement was going on there.
    
    "Finished, finished!" little Natasha's gleeful yell rose above them all.
    
    Pierre exchanged glances with Countess Mary and Nicholas (Natasha he
    never lost sight of) and smiled happily.
    
    "That's delightful music!" said he.
    
    "It means that Anna Makarovna has finished her stocking," said Countess
    Mary.
    
    "Oh, I'll go and see," said Pierre, jumping up. "You know," he added,
    stopping at the door, "why I'm especially fond of that music? It is
    always the first thing that tells me all is well. When I was driving
    here today, the nearer I got to the house the more anxious I grew. As I
    entered the anteroom I heard Andrusha's peals of laughter and that meant
    that all was well."
    
    "I know! I know that feeling," said Nicholas. "But I mustn't go there--
    those stockings are to be a surprise for me."
    
    Pierre went to the children, and the shouting and laughter grew still
    louder.
    
    "Come, Anna Makarovna," Pierre's voice was heard saying, "come here into
    the middle of the room and at the word of command, 'One, two,' and when
    I say 'three'... You stand here, and you in my arms--well now! One,
    two!..." said Pierre, and a silence followed: "three!" and a rapturously
    breathless cry of children's voices filled the room. "Two, two!" they
    shouted.
    
    This meant two stockings, which by a secret process known only to
    herself Anna Makarovna used to knit at the same time on the same
    needles, and which, when they were ready, she always triumphantly drew,
    one out of the other, in the children's presence.
    
    CHAPTER XIV
    
    Soon after this the children came in to say good night. They kissed
    everyone, the tutors and governesses made their bows, and they went out.
    Only young Nicholas and his tutor remained. Dessalles whispered to the
    boy to come downstairs.
    
    "No, Monsieur Dessalles, I will ask my aunt to let me stay," replied
    Nicholas Bolkonski also in a whisper.
    
    "Ma tante, please let me stay," said he, going up to his aunt.
    
    His face expressed entreaty, agitation, and ecstasy. Countess Mary
    glanced at him and turned to Pierre.
    
    "When you are here he can't tear himself away," she said.
    
    "I will bring him to you directly, Monsieur Dessalles. Good night!" said
    Pierre, giving his hand to the Swiss tutor, and he turned to young
    Nicholas with a smile. "You and I haven't seen anything of one another
    yet... How like he is growing, Mary!" he added, addressing Countess
    Mary.
    
    "Like my father?" asked the boy, flushing crimson and looking up at
    Pierre with bright, ecstatic eyes.
    
    Pierre nodded, and went on with what he had been saying when the
    children had interrupted. Countess Mary sat down doing woolwork; Natasha
    did not take her eyes off her husband. Nicholas and Denisov rose, asked
    for their pipes, smoked, went to fetch more tea from Sonya--who sat
    weary but resolute at the samovar--and questioned Pierre. The curly-
    headed, delicate boy sat with shining eyes unnoticed in a corner,
    starting every now and then and muttering something to himself, and
    evidently experiencing a new and powerful emotion as he turned his curly
    head, with his thin neck exposed by his turn-down collar, toward the
    place where Pierre sat.
    
    The conversation turned on the contemporary gossip about those in power,
    in which most people see the chief interest of home politics. Denisov,
    dissatisfied with the government on account of his own disappointments
    in the service, heard with pleasure of the things done in Petersburg
    which seemed to him stupid, and made forcible and sharp comments on what
    Pierre told them.
    
    "One used to have to be a German--now one must dance with Tatawinova and
    Madame Kwudener, and wead Ecka'tshausen and the bwethwen. Oh, they
    should let that fine fellow Bonaparte loose--he'd knock all this
    nonsense out of them! Fancy giving the command of the Semenov wegiment
    to a fellow like that Schwa'tz!" he cried.
    
    Nicholas, though free from Denisov's readiness to find fault with
    everything, also thought that discussion of the government was a very
    serious and weighty matter, and the fact that A had been appointed
    Minister of This and B Governor General of That, and that the Emperor
    had said so-and-so and this minister so-and-so, seemed to him very
    important. And so he thought it necessary to take an interest in these
    things and to question Pierre. The questions put by these two kept the
    conversation from changing its ordinary character of gossip about the
    higher government circles.
    
    But Natasha, knowing all her husband's ways and ideas, saw that he had
    long been wishing but had been unable to divert the conversation to
    another channel and express his own deeply felt idea for the sake of
    which he had gone to Petersburg to consult with his new friend Prince
    Theodore, and she helped him by asking how his affairs with Prince
    Theodore had gone.
    
    "What was it about?" asked Nicholas.
    
    "Always the same thing," said Pierre, looking round at his listeners.
    "Everybody sees that things are going so badly that they cannot be
    allowed to go on so and that it is the duty of all decent men to
    counteract it as far as they can."
    
    "What can decent men do?" Nicholas inquired, frowning slightly. "What
    can be done?"
    
    "Why, this..."
    
    "Come into my study," said Nicholas.
    
    Natasha, who had long expected to be fetched to nurse her baby, now
    heard the nurse calling her and went to the nursery. Countess Mary
    followed her. The men went into the study and little Nicholas Bolkonski
    followed them unnoticed by his uncle and sat down at the writing table
    in a shady corner by the window.
    
    "Well, what would you do?" asked Denisov.
    
    "Always some fantastic schemes," said Nicholas.
    
    "Why this," began Pierre, not sitting down but pacing the room,
    sometimes stopping short, gesticulating, and lisping: "the position in
    Petersburg is this: the Emperor does not look into anything. He has
    abandoned himself altogether to this mysticism" (Pierre could not
    tolerate mysticism in anyone now). "He seeks only for peace, and only
    these people sans foi ni loi * can give it him--people who recklessly
    hack at and strangle everything--Magnitski, Arakcheev, and tutti
    quanti.... You will agree that if you did not look after your estates
    yourself but only wanted a quiet life, the harsher your steward was the
    more readily your object might be attained," he said to Nicholas.
    
    * Without faith or law.
    
    "Well, what does that lead up to?" said Nicholas.
    
    "Well, everything is going to ruin! Robbery in the law courts, in the
    army nothing but flogging, drilling, and Military Settlements; the
    people are tortured, enlightenment is suppressed. All that is young and
    honest is crushed! Everyone sees that this cannot go on. Everything is
    strained to such a degree that it will certainly break," said Pierre (as
    those who examine the actions of any government have always said since
    governments began). "I told them just one thing in Petersburg."
    
    "Told whom?"
    
    "Well, you know whom," said Pierre, with a meaning glance from under his
    brows. "Prince Theodore and all those. To encourage culture and
    philanthropy is all very well of course. The aim is excellent but in the
    present circumstances something else is needed."
    
    At that moment Nicholas noticed the presence of his nephew. His face
    darkened and he went up to the boy.
    
    "Why are you here?"
    
    "Why? Let him be," said Pierre, taking Nicholas by the arm and
    continuing. "That is not enough, I told them. Something else is needed.
    When you stand expecting the overstrained string to snap at any moment,
    when everyone is expecting the inevitable catastrophe, as many as
    possible must join hands as closely as they can to withstand the general
    calamity. Everything that is young and strong is being enticed away and
    depraved. One is lured by women, another by honors, a third by ambition
    or money, and they go over to that camp. No independent men, such as you
    or I, are left. What I say is widen the scope of our society, let the
    mot d'ordre be not virtue alone but independence and action as well!"
    
    Nicholas, who had left his nephew, irritably pushed up an armchair, sat
    down in it, and listened to Pierre, coughing discontentedly and frowning
    more and more.
    
    "But action with what aim?" he cried. "And what position will you adopt
    toward the government?"
    
    "Why, the position of assistants. The society need not be secret if the
    government allows it. Not merely is it not hostile to government, but it
    is a society of true conservatives--a society of gentlemen in the full
    meaning of that word. It is only to prevent some Pugachev or other from
    killing my children and yours, and Arakcheev from sending me off to some
    Military Settlement. We join hands only for the public welfare and the
    general safety."
    
    "Yes, but it's a secret society and therefore a hostile and harmful one
    which can only cause harm."
    
    "Why? Did the Tugendbund which saved Europe" (they did not then venture
    to suggest that Russia had saved Europe) "do any harm? The Tugendbund is
    an alliance of virtue: it is love, mutual help... it is what Christ
    preached on the Cross."
    
    Natasha, who had come in during the conversation, looked joyfully at her
    husband. It was not what he was saying that pleased her--that did not
    even interest her, for it seemed to her that was all extremely simple
    and that she had known it a long time (it seemed so to her because she
    knew that it sprang from Pierre's whole soul), but it was his animated
    and enthusiastic appearance that made her glad.
    
    The boy with the thin neck stretching out from the turn-down collar--
    whom everyone had forgotten--gazed at Pierre with even greater and more
    rapturous joy. Every word of Pierre's burned into his heart, and with a
    nervous movement of his fingers he unconsciously broke the sealing wax
    and quill pens his hands came upon on his uncle's table.
    
    "It is not at all what you suppose; but that is what the German
    Tugendbund was, and what I am proposing."
    
    "No, my fwiend! The Tugendbund is all vewy well for the sausage eaters,
    but I don't understand it and can't even pwonounce it," interposed
    Denisov in a loud and resolute voice. "I agwee that evewything here is
    wotten and howwible, but the Tugendbund I don't understand. If we're not
    satisfied, let us have a bunt of our own. That's all wight. Je suis
    vot'e homme!" *
    
    * "I'm your man."
    
    Pierre smiled, Natasha began to laugh, but Nicholas knitted his brows
    still more and began proving to Pierre that there was no prospect of any
    great change and that all the danger he spoke of existed only in his
    imagination. Pierre maintained the contrary, and as his mental faculties
    were greater and more resourceful, Nicholas felt himself cornered. This
    made him still angrier, for he was fully convinced, not by reasoning but
    by something within him stronger than reason, of the justice of his
    opinion.
    
    "I will tell you this," he said, rising and trying with nervously
    twitching fingers to prop up his pipe in a corner, but finally
    abandoning the attempt. "I can't prove it to you. You say that
    everything here is rotten and that an overthrow is coming: I don't see
    it. But you also say that our oath of allegiance is a conditional
    matter, and to that I reply: 'You are my best friend, as you know, but
    if you formed a secret society and began working against the government-
    -be it what it may--I know it is my duty to obey the government. And if
    Arakcheev ordered me to lead a squadron against you and cut you down, I
    should not hesitate an instant, but should do it.' And you may argue
    about that as you like!"
    
    An awkward silence followed these words. Natasha was the first to speak,
    defending her husband and attacking her brother. Her defense was weak
    and inapt but she attained her object. The conversation was resumed, and
    no longer in the unpleasantly hostile tone of Nicholas' last remark.
    
    When they all got up to go in to supper, little Nicholas Bolkonski went
    up to Pierre, pale and with shining, radiant eyes.
    
    "Uncle Pierre, you... no... If Papa were alive... would he agree with
    you?" he asked.
    
    And Pierre suddenly realized what a special, independent, complex, and
    powerful process of thought and feeling must have been going on in this
    boy during that conversation, and remembering all he had said he
    regretted that the lad should have heard him. He had, however, to give
    him an answer.
    
    "Yes, I think so," he said reluctantly, and left the study.
    
    The lad looked down and seemed now for the first time to notice what he
    had done to the things on the table. He flushed and went up to Nicholas.
    
    "Uncle, forgive me, I did that... unintentionally," he said, pointing to
    the broken sealing wax and pens.
    
    Nicholas started angrily.
    
    "All right, all right," he said, throwing the bits under the table.
    
    And evidently suppressing his vexation with difficulty, he turned away
    from the boy.
    
    "You ought not to have been here at all," he said.
    
    CHAPTER XV
    
    The conversation at supper was not about politics or societies, but
    turned on the subject Nicholas liked best--recollections of 1812.
    Denisov started these and Pierre was particularly agreeable and amusing
    about them. The family separated on the most friendly terms.
    
    After supper Nicholas, having undressed in his study and given
    instructions to the steward who had been waiting for him, went to the
    bedroom in his dressing gown, where he found his wife still at her
    table, writing.
    
    "What are you writing, Mary?" Nicholas asked.
    
    Countess Mary blushed. She was afraid that what she was writing would
    not be understood or approved by her husband.
    
    She had wanted to conceal what she was writing from him, but at the same
    time was glad he had surprised her at it and that she would now have to
    tell him.
    
    "A diary, Nicholas," she replied, handing him a blue exercise book
    filled with her firm, bold writing.
    
    "A diary?" Nicholas repeated with a shade of irony, and he took up the
    book.
    
    It was in French.
    
    December 4. Today when Andrusha (her eldest boy) woke up he did not wish
    to dress and Mademoiselle Louise sent for me. He was naughty and
    obstinate. I tried threats, but he only grew angrier. Then I took the
    matter in hand: I left him alone and began with nurse's help to get the
    other children up, telling him that I did not love him. For a long time
    he was silent, as if astonished, then he jumped out of bed, ran to me in
    his shirt, and sobbed so that I could not calm him for a long time. It
    was plain that what troubled him most was that he had grieved me.
    Afterwards in the evening when I gave him his ticket, he again began
    crying piteously and kissing me. One can do anything with him by
    tenderness.
    
    "What is a 'ticket'?" Nicholas inquired.
    
    "I have begun giving the elder ones marks every evening, showing how
    they have behaved."
    
    Nicholas looked into the radiant eyes that were gazing at him, and
    continued to turn over the pages and read. In the diary was set down
    everything in the children's lives that seemed noteworthy to their
    mother as showing their characters or suggesting general reflections on
    educational methods. They were for the most part quite insignificant
    trifles, but did not seem so to the mother or to the father either, now
    that he read this diary about his children for the first time.
    
    Under the date "5" was entered:
    
    Mitya was naughty at table. Papa said he was to have no pudding. He had
    none, but looked so unhappily and greedily at the others while they were
    eating! I think that punishment by depriving children of sweets only
    develops their greediness. Must tell Nicholas this.
    
    Nicholas put down the book and looked at his wife. The radiant eyes
    gazed at him questioningly: would he approve or disapprove of her diary?
    There could be no doubt not only of his approval but also of his
    admiration for his wife.
    
    Perhaps it need not be done so pedantically, thought Nicholas, or even
    done at all, but this untiring, continual spiritual effort of which the
    sole aim was the children's moral welfare delighted him. Had Nicholas
    been able to analyze his feelings he would have found that his steady,
    tender, and proud love of his wife rested on his feeling of wonder at
    her spirituality and at the lofty moral world, almost beyond his reach,
    in which she had her being.
    
    He was proud of her intelligence and goodness, recognized his own
    insignificance beside her in the spiritual world, and rejoiced all the
    more that she with such a soul not only belonged to him but was part of
    himself.
    
    "I quite, quite approve, my dearest!" said he with a significant look,
    and after a short pause he added: "And I behaved badly today. You
    weren't in the study. We began disputing--Pierre and I--and I lost my
    temper. But he is impossible: such a child! I don't know what would
    become of him if Natasha didn't keep him in hand.... Have you any idea
    why he went to Petersburg? They have formed..."
    
    "Yes, I know," said Countess Mary. "Natasha told me."
    
    "Well, then, you know," Nicholas went on, growing hot at the mere
    recollection of their discussion, "he wanted to convince me that it is
    every honest man's duty to go against the government, and that the oath
    of allegiance and duty... I am sorry you weren't there. They all fell on
    me--Denisov and Natasha... Natasha is absurd. How she rules over him!
    And yet there need only be a discussion and she has no words of her own
    but only repeats his sayings..." added Nicholas, yielding to that
    irresistible inclination which tempts us to judge those nearest and
    dearest to us. He forgot that what he was saying about Natasha could
    have been applied word for word to himself in relation to his wife.
    
    "Yes, I have noticed that," said Countess Mary.
    
    "When I told him that duty and the oath were above everything, he
    started proving goodness knows what! A pity you were not there--what
    would you have said?"
    
    "As I see it you were quite right, and I told Natasha so. Pierre says
    everybody is suffering, tortured, and being corrupted, and that it is
    our duty to help our neighbor. Of course he is right there," said
    Countess Mary, "but he forgets that we have other duties nearer to us,
    duties indicated to us by God Himself, and that though we might expose
    ourselves to risks we must not risk our children."
    
    "Yes, that's it! That's just what I said to him," put in Nicholas, who
    fancied he really had said it. "But they insisted on their own view:
    love of one's neighbor and Christianity--and all this in the presence of
    young Nicholas, who had gone into my study and broke all my things."
    
    "Ah, Nicholas, do you know I am often troubled about little Nicholas,"
    said Countess Mary. "He is such an exceptional boy. I am afraid I
    neglect him in favor of my own: we all have children and relations while
    he has no one. He is constantly alone with his thoughts."
    
    "Well, I don't think you need reproach yourself on his account. All that
    the fondest mother could do for her son you have done and are doing for
    him, and of course I am glad of it. He is a fine lad, a fine lad! This
    evening he listened to Pierre in a sort of trance, and fancy--as we were
    going in to supper I looked and he had broken everything on my table to
    bits, and he told me of it himself at once! I never knew him to tell an
    untruth. A fine lad, a fine lad!" repeated Nicholas, who at heart was
    not fond of Nicholas Bolkonski but was always anxious to recognize that
    he was a fine lad.
    
    "Still, I am not the same as his own mother," said Countess Mary. "I
    feel I am not the same and it troubles me. A wonderful boy, but I am
    dreadfully afraid for him. It would be good for him to have companions."
    
    "Well it won't be for long. Next summer I'll take him to Petersburg,"
    said Nicholas. "Yes, Pierre always was a dreamer and always will be," he
    continued, returning to the talk in the study which had evidently
    disturbed him. "Well, what business is it of mine what goes on there--
    whether Arakcheev is bad, and all that? What business was it of mine
    when I married and was so deep in debt that I was threatened with
    prison, and had a mother who could not see or understand it? And then
    there are you and the children and our affairs. Is it for my own
    pleasure that I am at the farm or in the office from morning to night?
    No, but I know I must work to comfort my mother, to repay you, and not
    to leave the children such beggars as I was."
    
    Countess Mary wanted to tell him that man does not live by bread alone
    and that he attached too much importance to these matters. But she knew
    she must not say this and that it would be useless to do so. She only
    took his hand and kissed it. He took this as a sign of approval and a
    confirmation of his thoughts, and after a few minutes' reflection
    continued to think aloud.
    
    "You know, Mary, today Elias Mitrofanych" (this was his overseer) "came
    back from the Tambov estate and told me they are already offering eighty
    thousand rubles for the forest."
    
    And with an eager face Nicholas began to speak of the possibility of
    repurchasing Otradnoe before long, and added: "Another ten years of life
    and I shall leave the children... in an excellent position."
    
    Countess Mary listened to her husband and understood all that he told
    her. She knew that when he thought aloud in this way he would sometimes
    ask her what he had been saying, and be vexed if he noticed that she had
    been thinking about something else. But she had to force herself to
    attend, for what he was saying did not interest her at all. She looked
    at him and did not think, but felt, about something different. She felt
    a submissive tender love for this man who would never understand all
    that she understood, and this seemed to make her love for him still
    stronger and added a touch of passionate tenderness. Besides this
    feeling which absorbed her altogether and hindered her from following
    the details of her husband's plans, thoughts that had no connection with
    what he was saying flitted through her mind. She thought of her nephew.
    Her husband's account of the boy's agitation while Pierre was speaking
    struck her forcibly, and various traits of his gentle, sensitive
    character recurred to her mind; and while thinking of her nephew she
    thought also of her own children. She did not compare them with him, but
    compared her feeling for them with her feeling for him, and felt with
    regret that there was something lacking in her feeling for young
    Nicholas.
    
    Sometimes it seemed to her that this difference arose from the
    difference in their ages, but she felt herself to blame toward him and
    promised in her heart to do better and to accomplish the impossible--in
    this life to love her husband, her children, little Nicholas, and all
    her neighbors, as Christ loved mankind. Countess Mary's soul always
    strove toward the infinite, the eternal, and the absolute, and could
    therefore never be at peace. A stern expression of the lofty, secret
    suffering of a soul burdened by the body appeared on her face. Nicholas
    gazed at her. "O God! What will become of us if she dies, as I always
    fear when her face is like that?" thought he, and placing himself before
    the icon he began to say his evening prayers.
    
    CHAPTER XVI
    
    Natasha and Pierre, left alone, also began to talk as only a husband and
    wife can talk, that is, with extraordinary clearness and rapidity,
    understanding and expressing each other's thoughts in ways contrary to
    all rules of logic, without premises, deductions, or conclusions, and in
    a quite peculiar way. Natasha was so used to this kind of talk with her
    husband that for her it was the surest sign of something being wrong
    between them if Pierre followed a line of logical reasoning. When he
    began proving anything, or talking argumentatively and calmly and she,
    led on by his example, began to do the same, she knew that they were on
    the verge of a quarrel.
    
    From the moment they were alone and Natasha came up to him with wide-
    open happy eyes, and quickly seizing his head pressed it to her bosom,
    saying: "Now you are all mine, mine! You won't escape!"--from that
    moment this conversation began, contrary to all the laws of logic and
    contrary to them because quite different subjects were talked about at
    one and the same time. This simultaneous discussion of many topics did
    not prevent a clear understanding but on the contrary was the surest
    sign that they fully understood one another.
    
    Just as in a dream when all is uncertain, unreasoning, and
    contradictory, except the feeling that guides the dream, so in this
    intercourse contrary to all laws of reason, the words themselves were
    not consecutive and clear but only the feeling that prompted them.
    
    Natasha spoke to Pierre about her brother's life and doings, of how she
    had suffered and lacked life during his own absence, and of how she was
    fonder than ever of Mary, and how Mary was in every way better than
    herself. In saying this Natasha was sincere in acknowledging Mary's
    superiority, but at the same time by saying it she made a demand on
    Pierre that he should, all the same, prefer her to Mary and to all other
    women, and that now, especially after having seen many women in
    Petersburg, he should tell her so afresh.
    
    Pierre, answering Natasha's words, told her how intolerable it had been
    for him to meet ladies at dinners and balls in Petersburg.
    
    "I have quite lost the knack of talking to ladies," he said. "It was
    simply dull. Besides, I was very busy."
    
    Natasha looked intently at him and went on:
    
    "Mary is so splendid," she said. "How she understands children! It is as
    if she saw straight into their souls. Yesterday, for instance, Mitya was
    naughty..."
    
    "How like his father he is," Pierre interjected.
    
    Natasha knew why he mentioned Mitya's likeness to Nicholas: the
    recollection of his dispute with his brother-in-law was unpleasant and
    he wanted to know what Natasha thought of it.
    
    "Nicholas has the weakness of never agreeing with anything not generally
    accepted. But I understand that you value what opens up a fresh line,"
    said she, repeating words Pierre had once uttered.
    
    "No, the chief point is that to Nicholas ideas and discussions are an
    amusement--almost a pastime," said Pierre. "For instance, he is
    collecting a library and has made it a rule not to buy a new book till
    he has read what he had already bought--Sismondi and Rousseau and
    Montesquieu," he added with a smile. "You know how much I..." he began
    to soften down what he had said; but Natasha interrupted him to show
    that this was unnecessary.
    
    "So you say ideas are an amusement to him...."
    
    "Yes, and for me nothing else is serious. All the time in Petersburg I
    saw everyone as in a dream. When I am taken up by a thought, all else is
    mere amusement."
    
    "Ah, I'm so sorry I wasn't there when you met the children," said
    Natasha. "Which was most delighted? Lisa, I'm sure."
    
    "Yes," Pierre replied, and went on with what was in his mind. "Nicholas
    says we ought not to think. But I can't help it. Besides, when I was in
    Petersburg I felt (I can say this to you) that the whole affair would go
    to pieces without me--everyone was pulling his own way. But I succeeded
    in uniting them all; and then my idea is so clear and simple. You see, I
    don't say that we ought to oppose this and that. We may be mistaken.
    What I say is: 'Join hands, you who love the right, and let there be but
    one banner--that of active virtue.' Prince Sergey is a fine fellow and
    clever."
    
    Natasha would have had no doubt as to the greatness of Pierre's idea,
    but one thing disconcerted her. "Can a man so important and necessary to
    society be also my husband? How did this happen?" She wished to express
    this doubt to him. "Now who could decide whether he is really cleverer
    than all the others?" she asked herself, and passed in review all those
    whom Pierre most respected. Judging by what he had said there was no one
    he had respected so highly as Platon Karataev.
    
    "Do you know what I am thinking about?" she asked. "About Platon
    Karataev. Would he have approved of you now, do you think?"
    
    Pierre was not at all surprised at this question. He understood his
    wife's line of thought.
    
    "Platon Karataev?" he repeated, and pondered, evidently sincerely trying
    to imagine Karataev's opinion on the subject. "He would not have
    understood... yet perhaps he would."
    
    "I love you awfully!" Natasha suddenly said. "Awfully, awfully!"
    
    "No, he would not have approved," said Pierre, after reflection. "What
    he would have approved of is our family life. He was always so anxious
    to find seemliness, happiness, and peace in everything, and I should
    have been proud to let him see us. There now--you talk of my absence,
    but you wouldn't believe what a special feeling I have for you after a
    separation...."
    
    "Yes, I should think..." Natasha began.
    
    "No, it's not that. I never leave off loving you. And one couldn't love
    more, but this is something special.... Yes, of course-" he did not
    finish because their eyes meeting said the rest.
    
    "What nonsense it is," Natasha suddenly exclaimed, "about honeymoons,
    and that the greatest happiness is at first! On the contrary, now is the
    best of all. If only you did not go away! Do you remember how we
    quarreled? And it was always my fault. Always mine. And what we
    quarreled about--I don't even remember!"
    
    "Always about the same thing," said Pierre with a smile. "Jealo..."
    
    "Don't say it! I can't bear it!" Natasha cried, and her eyes glittered
    coldly and vindictively. "Did you see her?" she added, after a pause.
    
    "No, and if I had I shouldn't have recognized her."
    
    They were silent for a while.
    
    "Oh, do you know? While you were talking in the study I was looking at
    you," Natasha began, evidently anxious to disperse the cloud that had
    come over them. "You are as like him as two peas--like the boy." (She
    meant her little son.) "Oh, it's time to go to him.... The milk's
    come.... But I'm sorry to leave you."
    
    They were silent for a few seconds. Then suddenly turning to one another
    at the same time they both began to speak. Pierre began with self-
    satisfaction and enthusiasm, Natasha with a quiet, happy smile. Having
    interrupted one another they both stopped to let the other continue.
    
    "No. What did you say? Go on, go on."
    
    "No, you go on, I was talking nonsense," said Natasha.
    
    Pierre finished what he had begun. It was the sequel to his complacent
    reflections on his success in Petersburg. At that moment it seemed to
    him that he was chosen to give a new direction to the whole of Russian
    society and to the whole world.
    
    "I only wished to say that ideas that have great results are always
    simple ones. My whole idea is that if vicious people are united and
    constitute a power, then honest folk must do the same. Now that's simple
    enough."
    
    "Yes."
    
    "And what were you going to say?"
    
    "I? Only nonsense."
    
    "But all the same?"
    
    "Oh nothing, only a trifle," said Natasha, smilingly still more
    brightly. "I only wanted to tell you about Petya: today nurse was coming
    to take him from me, and he laughed, shut his eyes, and clung to me. I'm
    sure he thought he was hiding. Awfully sweet! There, now he's crying.
    Well, good-by!" and she left the room.
    
    Meanwhile downstairs in young Nicholas Bolkonski's bedroom a little lamp
    was burning as usual. (The boy was afraid of the dark and they could not
    cure him of it.) Dessalles slept propped up on four pillows and his
    Roman nose emitted sounds of rhythmic snoring. Little Nicholas, who had
    just waked up in a cold perspiration, sat up in bed and gazed before him
    with wide-open eyes. He had awaked from a terrible dream. He had dreamed
    that he and Uncle Pierre, wearing helmets such as were depicted in his
    Plutarch, were leading a huge army. The army was made up of white
    slanting lines that filled the air like the cobwebs that float about in
    autumn and which Dessalles called les fils de la Vierge. In front was
    Glory, which was similar to those threads but rather thicker. He and
    Pierre were borne along lightly and joyously, nearer and nearer to their
    goal. Suddenly the threads that moved them began to slacken and become
    entangled and it grew difficult to move. And Uncle Nicholas stood before
    them in a stern and threatening attitude.
    
    "Have you done this?" he said, pointing to some broken sealing wax and
    pens. "I loved you, but I have orders from Arakcheev and will kill the
    first of you who moves forward." Little Nicholas turned to look at
    Pierre but Pierre was no longer there. In his place was his father--
    Prince Andrew--and his father had neither shape nor form, but he
    existed, and when little Nicholas perceived him he grew faint with love:
    he felt himself powerless, limp, and formless. His father caressed and
    pitied him. But Uncle Nicholas came nearer and nearer to them. Terror
    seized young Nicholas and he awoke.
    
    "My father!" he thought. (Though there were two good portraits of Prince
    Andrew in the house, Nicholas never imagined him in human form.) "My
    father has been with me and caressed me. He approved of me and of Uncle
    Pierre. Whatever he may tell me, I will do it. Mucius Scaevola burned
    his hand. Why should not the same sort of thing happen to me? I know
    they want me to learn. And I will learn. But someday I shall have
    finished learning, and then I will do something. I only pray God that
    something may happen to me such as happened to Plutarch's men, and I
    will act as they did. I will do better. Everyone shall know me, love me,
    and be delighted with me!" And suddenly his bosom heaved with sobs and
    he began to cry.
    
    "Are you ill?" he heard Dessalles' voice asking.
    
    "No," answered Nicholas, and lay back on his pillow.
    
    "He is good and kind and I am fond of him!" he thought of Dessalles.
    "But Uncle Pierre! Oh, what a wonderful man he is! And my father? Oh,
    Father, Father! Yes, I will do something with which even he would be
    satisfied...."
    
    SECOND EPILOGUE
    
    CHAPTER I
    
    History is the life of nations and of humanity. To seize and put into
    words, to describe directly the life of humanity or even of a single
    nation, appears impossible.
    
    The ancient historians all employed one and the same method to describe
    and seize the apparently elusive--the life of a people. They described
    the activity of individuals who ruled the people, and regarded the
    activity of those men as representing the activity of the whole nation.
    
    The question: how did individuals make nations act as they wished and by
    what was the will of these individuals themselves guided? the ancients
    met by recognizing a divinity which subjected the nations to the will of
    a chosen man, and guided the will of that chosen man so as to accomplish
    ends that were predestined.
    
    For the ancients these questions were solved by a belief in the direct
    participation of the Deity in human affairs.
    
    Modern history, in theory, rejects both these principles.
    
    It would seem that having rejected the belief of the ancients in man's
    subjection to the Deity and in a predetermined aim toward which nations
    are led, modern history should study not the manifestations of power but
    the causes that produce it. But modern history has not done this. Having
    in theory rejected the view held by the ancients, it still follows them
    in practice.
    
    Instead of men endowed with divine authority and directly guided by the
    will of God, modern history has given us either heroes endowed with
    extraordinary, superhuman capacities, or simply men of very various
    kinds, from monarchs to journalists, who lead the masses. Instead of the
    former divinely appointed aims of the Jewish, Greek, or Roman nations,
    which ancient historians regarded as representing the progress of
    humanity, modern history has postulated its own aims--the welfare of the
    French, German, or English people, or, in its highest abstraction, the
    welfare and civilization of humanity in general, by which is usually
    meant that of the peoples occupying a small northwesterly portion of a
    large continent.
    
    Modern history has rejected the beliefs of the ancients without
    replacing them by a new conception, and the logic of the situation has
    obliged the historians, after they had apparently rejected the divine
    authority of the kings and the "fate" of the ancients, to reach the same
    conclusion by another road, that is, to recognize (1) nations guided by
    individual men, and (2) the existence of a known aim to which these
    nations and humanity at large are tending.
    
    At the basis of the works of all the modern historians from Gibbon to
    Buckle, despite their seeming disagreements and the apparent novelty of
    their outlooks, lie those two old, unavoidable assumptions.
    
    In the first place the historian describes the activity of individuals
    who in his opinion have directed humanity (one historian considers only
    monarchs, generals, and ministers as being such men, while another
    includes also orators, learned men, reformers, philosophers, and poets).
    Secondly, it is assumed that the goal toward which humanity is being led
    is known to the historians: to one of them this goal is the greatness of
    the Roman, Spanish, or French realm; to another it is liberty, equality,
    and a certain kind of civilization of a small corner of the world called
    Europe.
    
    In 1789 a ferment arises in Paris; it grows, spreads, and is expressed
    by a movement of peoples from west to east. Several times it moves
    eastward and collides with a countermovement from the east westward. In
    1812 it reaches its extreme limit, Moscow, and then, with remarkable
    symmetry, a countermovement occurs from east to west, attracting to it,
    as the first movement had done, the nations of middle Europe. The
    counter movement reaches the starting point of the first movement in the
    west--Paris--and subsides.
    
    During that twenty-year period an immense number of fields were left
    untilled, houses were burned, trade changed its direction, millions of
    men migrated, were impoverished, or were enriched, and millions of
    Christian men professing the law of love of their fellows slew one
    another.
    
    What does all this mean? Why did it happen? What made those people burn
    houses and slay their fellow men? What were the causes of these events?
    What force made men act so? These are the instinctive, plain, and most
    legitimate questions humanity asks itself when it encounters the
    monuments and tradition of that period.
    
    For a reply to these questions the common sense of mankind turns to the
    science of history, whose aim is to enable nations and humanity to know
    themselves.
    
    If history had retained the conception of the ancients it would have
    said that God, to reward or punish his people, gave Napoleon power and
    directed his will to the fulfillment of the divine ends, and that reply
    would have been clear and complete. One might believe or disbelieve in
    the divine significance of Napoleon, but for anyone believing in it
    there would have been nothing unintelligible in the history of that
    period, nor would there have been any contradictions.
    
    But modern history cannot give that reply. Science does not admit the
    conception of the ancients as to the direct participation of the Deity
    in human affairs, and therefore history ought to give other answers.
    
    Modern history replying to these questions says: you want to know what
    this movement means, what caused it, and what force produced these
    events? Then listen:
    
    "Louis XIV was a very proud and self-confident man; he had such and such
    mistresses and such and such ministers and he ruled France badly. His
    descendants were weak men and they too ruled France badly. And they had
    such and such favorites and such and such mistresses. Moreover, certain
    men wrote some books at that time. At the end of the eighteenth century
    there were a couple of dozen men in Paris who began to talk about all
    men being free and equal. This caused people all over France to begin to
    slash at and drown one another. They killed the king and many other
    people. At that time there was in France a man of genius--Napoleon. He
    conquered everybody everywhere--that is, he killed many people because
    he was a great genius. And for some reason he went to kill Africans, and
    killed them so well and was so cunning and wise that when he returned to
    France he ordered everybody to obey him, and they all obeyed him. Having
    become an Emperor he again went out to kill people in Italy, Austria,
    and Prussia. And there too he killed a great many. In Russia there was
    an Emperor, Alexander, who decided to restore order in Europe and
    therefore fought against Napoleon. In 1807 he suddenly made friends with
    him, but in 1811 they again quarreled and again began killing many
    people. Napoleon led six hundred thousand men into Russia and captured
    Moscow; then he suddenly ran away from Moscow, and the Emperor
    Alexander, helped by the advice of Stein and others, united Europe to
    arm against the disturber of its peace. All Napoleon's allies suddenly
    became his enemies and their forces advanced against the fresh forces he
    raised. The Allies defeated Napoleon, entered Paris, forced Napoleon to
    abdicate, and sent him to the island of Elba, not depriving him of the
    title of Emperor and showing him every respect, though five years before
    and one year later they all regarded him as an outlaw and a brigand.
    Then Louis XVIII, who till then had been the laughingstock both of the
    French and the Allies, began to reign. And Napoleon, shedding tears
    before his Old Guards, renounced the throne and went into exile. Then
    the skillful statesmen and diplomatists (especially Talleyrand, who
    managed to sit down in a particular chair before anyone else and thereby
    extended the frontiers of France) talked in Vienna and by these
    conversations made the nations happy or unhappy. Suddenly the
    diplomatists and monarchs nearly quarreled and were on the point of
    again ordering their armies to kill one another, but just then Napoleon
    arrived in France with a battalion, and the French, who had been hating
    him, immediately all submitted to him. But the Allied monarchs were
    angry at this and went to fight the French once more. And they defeated
    the genius Napoleon and, suddenly recognizing him as a brigand, sent him
    to the island of St. Helena. And the exile, separated from the beloved
    France so dear to his heart, died a lingering death on that rock and
    bequeathed his great deeds to posterity. But in Europe a reaction
    occurred and the sovereigns once again all began to oppress their
    subjects."
    
    It would be a mistake to think that this is ironic--a caricature of the
    historical accounts. On the contrary it is a very mild expression of the
    contradictory replies, not meeting the questions, which all the
    historians give, from the compilers of memoirs and the histories of
    separate states to the writers of general histories and the new
    histories of the culture of that period.
    
    The strangeness and absurdity of these replies arise from the fact that
    modern history, like a deaf man, answers questions no one has asked.
    
    If the purpose of history be to give a description of the movement of
    humanity and of the peoples, the first question--in the absence of a
    reply to which all the rest will be incomprehensible--is: what is the
    power that moves peoples? To this, modern history laboriously replies
    either that Napoleon was a great genius, or that Louis XIV was very
    proud, or that certain writers wrote certain books.
    
    All that may be so and mankind is ready to agree with it, but it is not
    what was asked. All that would be interesting if we recognized a divine
    power based on itself and always consistently directing its nations
    through Napoleons, Louis-es, and writers; but we do not acknowledge such
    a power, and therefore before speaking about Napoleons, Louis-es, and
    authors, we ought to be shown the connection existing between these men
    and the movement of the nations.
    
    If instead of a divine power some other force has appeared, it should be
    explained in what this new force consists, for the whole interest of
    history lies precisely in that force.
    
    History seems to assume that this force is self-evident and known to
    everyone. But in spite of every desire to regard it as known, anyone
    reading many historical works cannot help doubting whether this new
    force, so variously understood by the historians themselves, is really
    quite well known to everybody.
    
    CHAPTER II
    
    What force moves the nations?
    
    Biographical historians and historians of separate nations understand
    this force as a power inherent in heroes and rulers. In their narration
    events occur solely by the will of a Napoleon, and Alexander, or in
    general of the persons they describe. The answers given by this kind of
    historian to the question of what force causes events to happen are
    satisfactory only as long as there is but one historian to each event.
    As soon as historians of different nationalities and tendencies begin to
    describe the same event, the replies they give immediately lose all
    meaning, for this force is understood by them all not only differently
    but often in quite contradictory ways. One historian says that an event
    was produced by Napoleon's power, another that it was produced by
    Alexander's, a third that it was due to the power of some other person.
    Besides this, historians of that kind contradict each other even in
    their statement as to the force on which the authority of some
    particular person was based. Thiers, a Bonapartist, says that Napoleon's
    power was based on his virtue and genius. Lanfrey, a Republican, says it
    was based on his trickery and deception of the people. So the historians
    of this class, by mutually destroying one another's positions, destroy
    the understanding of the force which produces events, and furnish no
    reply to history's essential question.
    
    Writers of universal history who deal with all the nations seem to
    recognize how erroneous is the specialist historians' view of the force
    which produces events. They do not recognize it as a power inherent in
    heroes and rulers, but as the resultant of a multiplicity of variously
    directed forces. In describing a war or the subjugation of a people, a
    general historian looks for the cause of the event not in the power of
    one man, but in the interaction of many persons connected with the
    event.
    
    According to this view the power of historical personages, represented
    as the product of many forces, can no longer, it would seem, be regarded
    as a force that itself produces events. Yet in most cases universal
    historians still employ the conception of power as a force that itself
    produces events, and treat it as their cause. In their exposition, an
    historic character is first the product of his time, and his power only
    the resultant of various forces, and then his power is itself a force
    producing events. Gervinus, Schlosser, and others, for instance, at one
    time prove Napoleon to be a product of the Revolution, of the ideas of
    1789 and so forth, and at another plainly say that the campaign of 1812
    and other things they do not like were simply the product of Napoleon's
    misdirected will, and that the very ideas of 1789 were arrested in their
    development by Napoleon's caprice. The ideas of the Revolution and the
    general temper of the age produced Napoleon's power. But Napoleon's
    power suppressed the ideas of the Revolution and the general temper of
    the age.
    
    This curious contradiction is not accidental. Not only does it occur at
    every step, but the universal historians' accounts are all made up of a
    chain of such contradictions. This contradiction occurs because after
    entering the field of analysis the universal historians stop halfway.
    
    To find component forces equal to the composite or resultant force, the
    sum of the components must equal the resultant. This condition is never
    observed by the universal historians, and so to explain the resultant
    forces they are obliged to admit, in addition to the insufficient
    components, another unexplained force affecting the resultant action.
    
    Specialist historians describing the campaign of 1813 or the restoration
    of the Bourbons plainly assert that these events were produced by the
    will of Alexander. But the universal historian Gervinus, refuting this
    opinion of the specialist historian, tries to prove that the campaign of
    1813 and the restoration of the Bourbons were due to other things beside
    Alexander's will--such as the activity of Stein, Metternich, Madame de
    Stael, Talleyrand, Fichte, Chateaubriand, and others. The historian
    evidently decomposes Alexander's power into the components: Talleyrand,
    Chateaubriand, and the rest--but the sum of the components, that is, the
    interactions of Chateaubriand, Talleyrand, Madame de Stael, and the
    others, evidently does not equal the resultant, namely the phenomenon of
    millions of Frenchmen submitting to the Bourbons. That Chateaubriand,
    Madame de Stael, and others spoke certain words to one another only
    affected their mutual relations but does not account for the submission
    of millions. And therefore to explain how from these relations of theirs
    the submission of millions of people resulted--that is, how component
    forces equal to one A gave a resultant equal to a thousand times A--the
    historian is again obliged to fall back on power--the force he had
    denied--and to recognize it as the resultant of the forces, that is, he
    has to admit an unexplained force acting on the resultant. And that is
    just what the universal historians do, and consequently they not only
    contradict the specialist historians but contradict themselves.
    
    Peasants having no clear idea of the cause of rain, say, according to
    whether they want rain or fine weather: "The wind has blown the clouds
    away," or, "The wind has brought up the clouds." And in the same way the
    universal historians sometimes, when it pleases them and fits in with
    their theory, say that power is the result of events, and sometimes,
    when they want to prove something else, say that power produces events.
    
    A third class of historians--the so-called historians of culture--
    following the path laid down by the universal historians who sometimes
    accept writers and ladies as forces producing events--again take that
    force to be something quite different. They see it in what is called
    culture--in mental activity.
    
    The historians of culture are quite consistent in regard to their
    progenitors, the writers of universal histories, for if historical
    events may be explained by the fact that certain persons treated one
    another in such and such ways, why not explain them by the fact that
    such and such people wrote such and such books? Of the immense number of
    indications accompanying every vital phenomenon, these historians select
    the indication of intellectual activity and say that this indication is
    the cause. But despite their endeavors to prove that the cause of events
    lies in intellectual activity, only by a great stretch can one admit
    that there is any connection between intellectual activity and the
    movement of peoples, and in no case can one admit that intellectual
    activity controls people's actions, for that view is not confirmed by
    such facts as the very cruel murders of the French Revolution resulting
    from the doctrine of the equality of man, or the very cruel wars and
    executions resulting from the preaching of love.
    
    But even admitting as correct all the cunningly devised arguments with
    which these histories are filled--admitting that nations are governed by
    some undefined force called an idea--history's essential question still
    remains unanswered, and to the former power of monarchs and to the
    influence of advisers and other people introduced by the universal
    historians, another, newer force--the idea--is added, the connection of
    which with the masses needs explanation. It is possible to understand
    that Napoleon had power and so events occurred; with some effort one may
    even conceive that Napoleon together with other influences was the cause
    of an event; but how a book, Le Contrat Social, had the effect of making
    Frenchmen begin to drown one another cannot be understood without an
    explanation of the causal nexus of this new force with the event.
    
    Undoubtedly some relation exists between all who live contemporaneously,
    and so it is possible to find some connection between the intellectual
    activity of men and their historical movements, just as such a
    connection may be found between the movements of humanity and commerce,
    handicraft, gardening, or anything else you please. But why intellectual
    activity is considered by the historians of culture to be the cause or
    expression of the whole historical movement is hard to understand. Only
    the following considerations can have led the historians to such a
    conclusion: (1) that history is written by learned men, and so it is
    natural and agreeable for them to think that the activity of their class
    supplies the basis of the movement of all humanity, just as a similar
    belief is natural and agreeable to traders, agriculturists, and soldiers
    (if they do not express it, that is merely because traders and soldiers
    do not write history), and (2) that spiritual activity, enlightenment,
    civilization, culture, ideas, are all indistinct, indefinite conceptions
    under whose banner it is very easy to use words having a still less
    definite meaning, and which can therefore be readily introduced into any
    theory.
    
    But not to speak of the intrinsic quality of histories of this kind
    (which may possibly even be of use to someone for something) the
    histories of culture, to which all general histories tend more and more
    to approximate, are significant from the fact that after seriously and
    minutely examining various religious, philosophic, and political
    doctrines as causes of events, as soon as they have to describe an
    actual historic event such as the campaign of 1812 for instance, they
    involuntarily describe it as resulting from an exercise of power--and
    say plainly that that was the result of Napoleon's will. Speaking so,
    the historians of culture involuntarily contradict themselves, and show
    that the new force they have devised does not account for what happens
    in history, and that history can only be explained by introducing a
    power which they apparently do not recognize.
    
    CHAPTER III
    
    A locomotive is moving. Someone asks: "What moves it?" A peasant says
    the devil moves it. Another man says the locomotive moves because its
    wheels go round. A third asserts that the cause of its movement lies in
    the smoke which the wind carries away.
    
    The peasant is irrefutable. He has devised a complete explanation. To
    refute him someone would have to prove to him that there is no devil, or
    another peasant would have to explain to him that it is not the devil
    but a German, who moves the locomotive. Only then, as a result of the
    contradiction, will they see that they are both wrong. But the man who
    says that the movement of the wheels is the cause refutes himself, for
    having once begun to analyze he ought to go on and explain further why
    the wheels go round; and till he has reached the ultimate cause of the
    movement of the locomotive in the pressure of steam in the boiler, he
    has no right to stop in his search for the cause. The man who explains
    the movement of the locomotive by the smoke that is carried back has
    noticed that the wheels do not supply an explanation and has taken the
    first sign that occurs to him and in his turn has offered that as an
    explanation.
    
    The only conception that can explain the movement of the locomotive is
    that of a force commensurate with the movement observed.
    
    The only conception that can explain the movement of the peoples is that
    of some force commensurate with the whole movement of the peoples.
    
    Yet to supply this conception various historians take forces of
    different kinds, all of which are incommensurate with the movement
    observed. Some see it as a force directly inherent in heroes, as the
    peasant sees the devil in the locomotive; others as a force resulting
    from several other forces, like the movement of the wheels; others again
    as an intellectual influence, like the smoke that is blown away.
    
    So long as histories are written of separate individuals, whether
    Caesars, Alexanders, Luthers, or Voltaires, and not the histories of
    all, absolutely all those who take part in an event, it is quite
    impossible to describe the movement of humanity without the conception
    of a force compelling men to direct their activity toward a certain end.
    And the only such conception known to historians is that of power.
    
    This conception is the one handle by means of which the material of
    history, as at present expounded, can be dealt with, and anyone who
    breaks that handle off, as Buckle did, without finding some other method
    of treating historical material, merely deprives himself of the one
    possible way of dealing with it. The necessity of the conception of
    power as an explanation of historical events is best demonstrated by the
    universal historians and historians of culture themselves, for they
    professedly reject that conception but inevitably have recourse to it at
    every step.
    
    In dealing with humanity's inquiry, the science of history up to now is
    like money in circulation--paper money and coin. The biographies and
    special national histories are like paper money. They can be used and
    can circulate and fulfill their purpose without harm to anyone and even
    advantageously, as long as no one asks what is the security behind them.
    You need only forget to ask how the will of heroes produces events, and
    such histories as Thiers' will be interesting and instructive and may
    perhaps even possess a tinge of poetry. But just as doubts of the real
    value of paper money arise either because, being easy to make, too much
    of it gets made or because people try to exchange it for gold, so also
    doubts concerning the real value of such histories arise either because
    too many of them are written or because in his simplicity of heart
    someone inquires: by what force did Napoleon do this?--that is, wants to
    exchange the current paper money for the real gold of actual
    comprehension.
    
    The writers of universal histories and of the history of culture are
    like people who, recognizing the defects of paper money, decide to
    substitute for it money made of metal that has not the specific gravity
    of gold. It may indeed make jingling coin, but will do no more than
    that. Paper money may deceive the ignorant, but nobody is deceived by
    tokens of base metal that have no value but merely jingle. As gold is
    gold only if it is serviceable not merely for exchange but also for use,
    so universal historians will be valuable only when they can reply to
    history's essential question: what is power? The universal historians
    give contradictory replies to that question, while the historians of
    culture evade it and answer something quite different. And as counters
    of imitation gold can be used only among a group of people who agree to
    accept them as gold, or among those who do not know the nature of gold,
    so universal historians and historians of culture, not answering
    humanity's essential question, serve as currency for some purposes of
    their own, only in universities and among the mass of readers who have a
    taste for what they call "serious reading."
    
    CHAPTER IV
    
    Having abandoned the conception of the ancients as to the divine
    subjection of the will of a nation to some chosen man and the subjection
    of that man's will to the Deity, history cannot without contradictions
    take a single step till it has chosen one of two things: either a return
    to the former belief in the direct intervention of the Deity in human
    affairs or a definite explanation of the meaning of the force producing
    historical events and termed "power."
    
    A return to the first is impossible, the belief has been destroyed; and
    so it is essential to explain what is meant by power.
    
    Napoleon ordered an army to be raised and go to war. We are so
    accustomed to that idea and have become so used to it that the question:
    why did six hundred thousand men go to fight when Napoleon uttered
    certain words, seems to us senseless. He had the power and so what he
    ordered was done.
    
    This reply is quite satisfactory if we believe that the power was given
    him by God. But as soon as we do not admit that, it becomes essential to
    determine what is this power of one man over others.
    
    It cannot be the direct physical power of a strong man over a weak one--
    a domination based on the application or threat of physical force, like
    the power of Hercules; nor can it be based on the effect of moral force,
    as in their simplicity some historians think who say that the leading
    figures in history are heroes, that is, men gifted with a special
    strength of soul and mind called genius. This power cannot be based on
    the predominance of moral strength, for, not to mention heroes such as
    Napoleon about whose moral qualities opinions differ widely, history
    shows us that neither a Louis XI nor a Metternich, who ruled over
    millions of people, had any particular moral qualities, but on the
    contrary were generally morally weaker than any of the millions they
    ruled over.
    
    If the source of power lies neither in the physical nor in the moral
    qualities of him who possesses it, it must evidently be looked for
    elsewhere--in the relation to the people of the man who wields the
    power.
    
    And that is how power is understood by the science of jurisprudence,
    that exchange bank of history which offers to exchange history's
    understanding of power for true gold.
    
    Power is the collective will of the people transferred, by expressed or
    tacit consent, to their chosen rulers.
    
    In the domain of jurisprudence, which consists of discussions of how a
    state and power might be arranged were it possible for all that to be
    arranged, it is all very clear; but when applied to history that
    definition of power needs explanation.
    
    The science of jurisprudence regards the state and power as the ancients
    regarded fire--namely, as something existing absolutely. But for
    history, the state and power are merely phenomena, just as for modern
    physics fire is not an element but a phenomenon.
    
    From this fundamental difference between the view held by history and
    that held by jurisprudence, it follows that jurisprudence can tell
    minutely how in its opinion power should be constituted and what power--
    existing immutably outside time--is, but to history's questions about
    the meaning of the mutations of power in time it can answer nothing.
    
    If power be the collective will of the people transferred to their
    ruler, was Pugachev a representative of the will of the people? If not,
    then why was Napoleon I? Why was Napoleon III a criminal when he was
    taken prisoner at Boulogne, and why, later on, were those criminals whom
    he arrested?
    
    Do palace revolutions--in which sometimes only two or three people take
    part--transfer the will of the people to a new ruler? In international
    relations, is the will of the people also transferred to their
    conqueror? Was the will of the Confederation of the Rhine transferred to
    Napoleon in 1806? Was the will of the Russian people transferred to
    Napoleon in 1809, when our army in alliance with the French went to
    fight the Austrians?
    
    To these questions three answers are possible:
    
    Either to assume (1) that the will of the people is always
    unconditionally transferred to the ruler or rulers they have chosen, and
    that therefore every emergence of a new power, every struggle against
    the power once appointed, should be absolutely regarded as an
    infringement of the real power; or (2) that the will of the people is
    transferred to the rulers conditionally, under definite and known
    conditions, and to show that all limitations, conflicts, and even
    destructions of power result from a nonobservance by the rulers of the
    conditions under which their power was entrusted to them; or (3) that
    the will of the people is delegated to the rulers conditionally, but
    that the conditions are unknown and indefinite, and that the appearance
    of several authorities, their struggles and their falls, result solely
    from the greater or lesser fulfillment by the rulers of these unknown
    conditions on which the will of the people is transferred from some
    people to others.
    
    And these are the three ways in which the historians do explain the
    relation of the people to their rulers.
    
    Some historians--those biographical and specialist historians already
    referred to--in their simplicity failing to understand the question of
    the meaning of power, seem to consider that the collective will of the
    people is unconditionally transferred to historical persons, and
    therefore when describing some single state they assume that particular
    power to be the one absolute and real power, and that any other force
    opposing this is not a power but a violation of power--mere violence.
    
    Their theory, suitable for primitive and peaceful periods of history,
    has the inconvenience--in application to complex and stormy periods in
    the life of nations during which various powers arise simultaneously and
    struggle with one another--that a Legitimist historian will prove that
    the National Convention, the Directory, and Bonaparte were mere
    infringers of the true power, while a Republican and a Bonapartist will
    prove: the one that the Convention and the other that the Empire was the
    real power, and that all the others were violations of power. Evidently
    the explanations furnished by these historians being mutually
    contradictory can only satisfy young children.
    
    Recognizing the falsity of this view of history, another set of
    historians say that power rests on a conditional delegation of the will
    of the people to their rulers, and that historical leaders have power
    only conditionally on carrying out the program that the will of the
    people has by tacit agreement prescribed to them. But what this program
    consists in these historians do not say, or if they do they continually
    contradict one another.
    
    Each historian, according to his view of what constitutes a nation's
    progress, looks for these conditions in the greatness, wealth, freedom,
    or enlightenment of citizens of France or some other country. But not to
    mention the historians' contradictions as to the nature of this program-
    -or even admitting that some one general program of these conditions
    exists--the facts of history almost always contradict that theory. If
    the conditions under which power is entrusted consist in the wealth,
    freedom, and enlightenment of the people, how is it that Louis XIV and
    Ivan the Terrible end their reigns tranquilly, while Louis XVI and
    Charles I are executed by their people? To this question historians
    reply that Louis XIV's activity, contrary to the program, reacted on
    Louis XVI. But why did it not react on Louis XIV or on Louis XV--why
    should it react just on Louis XVI? And what is the time limit for such
    reactions? To these questions there are and can be no answers. Equally
    little does this view explain why for several centuries the collective
    will is not withdrawn from certain rulers and their heirs, and then
    suddenly during a period of fifty years is transferred to the
    Convention, to the Directory, to Napoleon, to Alexander, to Louis XVIII,
    to Napoleon again, to Charles X, to Louis Philippe, to a Republican
    government, and to Napoleon III. When explaining these rapid transfers
    of the people's will from one individual to another, especially in view
    of international relations, conquests, and alliances, the historians are
    obliged to admit that some of these transfers are not normal delegations
    of the people's will but are accidents dependent on cunning, on
    mistakes, on craft, or on the weakness of a diplomatist, a ruler, or a
    party leader. So that the greater part of the events of history--civil
    wars, revolutions, and conquests--are presented by these historians not
    as the results of free transferences of the people's will, but as
    results of the ill-directed will of one or more individuals, that is,
    once again, as usurpations of power. And so these historians also see
    and admit historical events which are exceptions to the theory.
    
    These historians resemble a botanist who, having noticed that some
    plants grow from seeds producing two cotyledons, should insist that all
    that grows does so by sprouting into two leaves, and that the palm, the
    mushroom, and even the oak, which blossom into full growth and no longer
    resemble two leaves, are deviations from the theory.
    
    Historians of the third class assume that the will of the people is
    transferred to historic personages conditionally, but that the
    conditions are unknown to us. They say that historical personages have
    power only because they fulfill the will of the people which has been
    delegated to them.
    
    But in that case, if the force that moves nations lies not in the
    historic leaders but in the nations themselves, what significance have
    those leaders?
    
    The leaders, these historians tell us, express the will of the people:
    the activity of the leaders represents the activity of the people.
    
    But in that case the question arises whether all the activity of the
    leaders serves as an expression of the people's will or only some part
    of it. If the whole activity of the leaders serves as the expression of
    the people's will, as some historians suppose, then all the details of
    the court scandals contained in the biographies of a Napoleon or a
    Catherine serve to express the life of the nation, which is evident
    nonsense; but if it is only some particular side of the activity of an
    historical leader which serves to express the people's life, as other
    so-called "philosophical" historians believe, then to determine which
    side of the activity of a leader expresses the nation's life, we have
    first of all to know in what the nation's life consists.
    
    Met by this difficulty historians of that class devise some most
    obscure, impalpable, and general abstraction which can cover all
    conceivable occurrences, and declare this abstraction to be the aim of
    humanity's movement. The most usual generalizations adopted by almost
    all the historians are: freedom, equality, enlightenment, progress,
    civilization, and culture. Postulating some generalization as the goal
    of the movement of humanity, the historians study the men of whom the
    greatest number of monuments have remained: kings, ministers, generals,
    authors, reformers, popes, and journalists, to the extent to which in
    their opinion these persons have promoted or hindered that abstraction.
    But as it is in no way proved that the aim of humanity does consist in
    freedom, equality, enlightenment, or civilization, and as the connection
    of the people with the rulers and enlighteners of humanity is only based
    on the arbitrary assumption that the collective will of the people is
    always transferred to the men whom we have noticed, it happens that the
    activity of the millions who migrate, burn houses, abandon agriculture,
    and destroy one another never is expressed in the account of the
    activity of some dozen people who did not burn houses, practice
    agriculture, or slay their fellow creatures.
    
    History proves this at every turn. Is the ferment of the peoples of the
    west at the end of the eighteenth century and their drive eastward
    explained by the activity of Louis XIV, XV, and XVI, their mistresses
    and ministers, and by the lives of Napoleon, Rousseau, Diderot,
    Beaumarchais, and others?
    
    Is the movement of the Russian people eastward to Kazan and Siberia
    expressed by details of the morbid character of Ivan the Terrible and by
    his correspondence with Kurbski?
    
    Is the movement of the peoples at the time of the Crusades explained by
    the life and activity of the Godfreys and the Louis-es and their ladies?
    For us that movement of the peoples from west to east, without leaders,
    with a crowd of vagrants, and with Peter the Hermit, remains
    incomprehensible. And yet more incomprehensible is the cessation of that
    movement when a rational and sacred aim for the Crusade--the deliverance
    of Jerusalem--had been clearly defined by historic leaders. Popes,
    kings, and knights incited the peoples to free the Holy Land; but the
    people did not go, for the unknown cause which had previously impelled
    them to go no longer existed. The history of the Godfreys and the
    Minnesingers can evidently not cover the life of the peoples. And the
    history of the Godfreys and the Minnesingers has remained the history of
    Godfreys and Minnesingers, but the history of the life of the peoples
    and their impulses has remained unknown.
    
    Still less does the history of authors and reformers explain to us the
    life of the peoples.
    
    The history of culture explains to us the impulses and conditions of
    life and thought of a writer or a reformer. We learn that Luther had a
    hot temper and said such and such things; we learn that Rousseau was
    suspicious and wrote such and such books; but we do not learn why after
    the Reformation the peoples massacred one another, nor why during the
    French Revolution they guillotined one another.
    
    If we unite both these kinds of history, as is done by the newest
    historians, we shall have the history of monarchs and writers, but not
    the history of the life of the peoples.
    
    CHAPTER V
    
    The life of the nations is not contained in the lives of a few men, for
    the connection between those men and the nations has not been found. The
    theory that this connection is based on the transference of the
    collective will of a people to certain historical personages is an
    hypothesis unconfirmed by the experience of history.
    
    The theory of the transference of the collective will of the people to
    historic persons may perhaps explain much in the domain of jurisprudence
    and be essential for its purposes, but in its application to history, as
    soon as revolutions, conquests, or civil wars occur--that is, as soon as
    history begins--that theory explains nothing.
    
    The theory seems irrefutable just because the act of transference of the
    people's will cannot be verified, for it never occurred.
    
    Whatever happens and whoever may stand at the head of affairs, the
    theory can always say that such and such a person took the lead because
    the collective will was transferred to him.
    
    The replies this theory gives to historical questions are like the
    replies of a man who, watching the movements of a herd of cattle and
    paying no attention to the varying quality of the pasturage in different
    parts of the field, or to the driving of the herdsman, should attribute
    the direction the herd takes to what animal happens to be at its head.
    
    "The herd goes in that direction because the animal in front leads it
    and the collective will of all the other animals is vested in that
    leader." This is what historians of the first class say--those who
    assume the unconditional transference of the people's will.
    
    "If the animals leading the herd change, this happens because the
    collective will of all the animals is transferred from one leader to
    another, according to whether the animal is or is not leading them in
    the direction selected by the whole herd." Such is the reply historians
    who assume that the collective will of the people is delegated to rulers
    under conditions which they regard as known. (With this method of
    observation it often happens that the observer, influenced by the
    direction he himself prefers, regards those as leaders who, owing to the
    people's change of direction, are no longer in front, but on one side,
    or even in the rear.)
    
    "If the animals in front are continually changing and the direction of
    the whole herd is constantly altered, this is because in order to follow
    a given direction the animals transfer their will to the animals that
    have attracted our attention, and to study the movements of the herd we
    must watch the movements of all the prominent animals moving on all
    sides of the herd." So say the third class of historians who regard all
    historical persons, from monarchs to journalists, as the expression of
    their age.
    
    The theory of the transference of the will of the people to historic
    persons is merely a paraphrase--a restatement of the question in other
    words.
    
    What causes historical events? Power. What is power? Power is the
    collective will of the people transferred to one person. Under what
    condition is the will of the people delegated to one person? On
    condition that that person expresses the will of the whole people. That
    is, power is power: in other words, power is a word the meaning of which
    we do not understand.
    
    If the realm of human knowledge were confined to abstract reasoning,
    then having subjected to criticism the explanation of "power" that
    juridical science gives us, humanity would conclude that power is merely
    a word and has no real existence. But to understand phenomena man has,
    besides abstract reasoning, experience by which he verifies his
    reflections. And experience tells us that power is not merely a word but
    an actually existing phenomenon.
    
    Not to speak of the fact that no description of the collective activity
    of men can do without the conception of power, the existence of power is
    proved both by history and by observing contemporary events.
    
    Whenever an event occurs a man appears or men appear, by whose will the
    event seems to have taken place. Napoleon III issues a decree and the
    French go to Mexico. The King of Prussia and Bismarck issue decrees and
    an army enters Bohemia. Napoleon I issues a decree and an army enters
    Russia. Alexander I gives a command and the French submit to the
    Bourbons. Experience shows us that whatever event occurs it is always
    related to the will of one or of several men who have decreed it.
    
    The historians, in accord with the old habit of acknowledging divine
    intervention in human affairs, want to see the cause of events in the
    expression of the will of someone endowed with power, but that
    supposition is not confirmed either by reason or by experience.
    
    On the one side reflection shows that the expression of a man's will--
    his words--are only part of the general activity expressed in an event,
    as for instance in a war or a revolution, and so without assuming an
    incomprehensible, supernatural force--a miracle--one cannot admit that
    words can be the immediate cause of the movements of millions of men. On
    the other hand, even if we admitted that words could be the cause of
    events, history shows that the expression of the will of historical
    personages does not in most cases produce any effect, that is to say,
    their commands are often not executed, and sometimes the very opposite
    of what they order occurs.
    
    Without admitting divine intervention in the affairs of humanity we
    cannot regard "power" as the cause of events.
    
    Power, from the standpoint of experience, is merely the relation that
    exists between the expression of someone's will and the execution of
    that will by others.
    
    To explain the conditions of that relationship we must first establish a
    conception of the expression of will, referring it to man and not to the
    Deity.
    
    If the Deity issues a command, expresses His will, as ancient history
    tells us, the expression of that will is independent of time and is not
    caused by anything, for the Divinity is not controlled by an event. But
    speaking of commands that are the expression of the will of men acting
    in time and in relation to one another, to explain the connection of
    commands with events we must restore: (1) the condition of all that
    takes place: the continuity of movement in time both of the events and
    of the person who commands, and (2) the inevitability of the connection
    between the person commanding and those who execute his command.
    
    CHAPTER VI
    
    Only the expression of the will of the Deity, not dependent on time, can
    relate to a whole series of events occurring over a period of years or
    centuries, and only the Deity, independent of everything, can by His
    sole will determine the direction of humanity's movement; but man acts
    in time and himself takes part in what occurs.
    
    Reinstating the first condition omitted, that of time, we see that no
    command can be executed without some preceding order having been given
    rendering the execution of the last command possible.
    
    No command ever appears spontaneously, or itself covers a whole series
    of occurrences; but each command follows from another, and never refers
    to a whole series of events but always to one moment only of an event.
    
    When, for instance, we say that Napoleon ordered armies to go to war, we
    combine in one simultaneous expression a whole series of consecutive
    commands dependent one on another. Napoleon could not have commanded an
    invasion of Russia and never did so. Today he ordered such and such
    papers to be written to Vienna, to Berlin, and to Petersburg; tomorrow
    such and such decrees and orders to the army, the fleet, the
    commissariat, and so on and so on--millions of commands, which formed a
    whole series corresponding to a series of events which brought the
    French armies into Russia.
    
    If throughout his reign Napoleon gave commands concerning an invasion of
    England and expended on no other undertaking so much time and effort,
    and yet during his whole reign never once attempted to execute that
    design but undertook an expedition into Russia, with which country he
    considered it desirable to be in alliance (a conviction he repeatedly
    expressed)--this came about because his commands did not correspond to
    the course of events in the first case, but did so correspond in the
    latter.
    
    For an order to be certainly executed, it is necessary that a man should
    order what can be executed. But to know what can and what cannot be
    executed is impossible, not only in the case of Napoleon's invasion of
    Russia in which millions participated, but even in the simplest event,
    for in either case millions of obstacles may arise to prevent its
    execution. Every order executed is always one of an immense number
    unexecuted. All the impossible orders inconsistent with the course of
    events remain unexecuted. Only the possible ones get linked up with a
    consecutive series of commands corresponding to a series of events, and
    are executed.
    
    Our false conception that an event is caused by a command which precedes
    it is due to the fact that when the event has taken place and out of
    thousands of others those few commands which were consistent with that
    event have been executed, we forget about the others that were not
    executed because they could not be. Apart from that, the chief source of
    our error in this matter is due to the fact that in the historical
    accounts a whole series of innumerable, diverse, and petty events, such
    for instance as all those which led the French armies to Russia, is
    generalized into one event in accord with the result produced by that
    series of events, and corresponding with this generalization the whole
    series of commands is also generalized into a single expression of will.
    
    We say that Napoleon wished to invade Russia and invaded it. In reality
    in all Napoleon's activity we never find anything resembling an
    expression of that wish, but find a series of orders, or expressions of
    his will, very variously and indefinitely directed. Amid a long series
    of unexecuted orders of Napoleon's one series, for the campaign of 1812,
    was carried out--not because those orders differed in any way from the
    other, unexecuted orders but because they coincided with the course of
    events that led the French army into Russia; just as in stencil work
    this or that figure comes out not because the color was laid on from
    this side or in that way, but because it was laid on from all sides over
    the figure cut in the stencil.
    
    So that examining the relation in time of the commands to the events, we
    find that a command can never be the cause of the event, but that a
    certain definite dependence exists between the two.
    
    To understand in what this dependence consists it is necessary to
    reinstate another omitted condition of every command proceeding not from
    the Deity but from a man, which is, that the man who gives the command
    himself takes part in the event.
    
    This relation of the commander to those he commands is just what is
    called power. This relation consists in the following:
    
    For common action people always unite in certain combinations, in which
    regardless of the difference of the aims set for the common action, the
    relation between those taking part in it is always the same.
    
    Men uniting in these combinations always assume such relations toward
    one another that the larger number take a more direct share, and the
    smaller number a less direct share, in the collective action for which
    they have combined.
    
    Of all the combinations in which men unite for collective action one of
    the most striking and definite examples is an army.
    
    Every army is composed of lower grades of the service--the rank and
    file--of whom there are always the greatest number; of the next higher
    military rank--corporals and noncommissioned officers of whom there are
    fewer, and of still-higher officers of whom there are still fewer, and
    so on to the highest military command which is concentrated in one
    person.
    
    A military organization may be quite correctly compared to a cone, of
    which the base with the largest diameter consists of the rank and file;
    the next higher and smaller section of the cone consists of the next
    higher grades of the army, and so on to the apex, the point of which
    will represent the commander-in-chief.
    
    The soldiers, of whom there are the most, form the lower section of the
    cone and its base. The soldier himself does the stabbing, hacking,
    burning, and pillaging, and always receives orders for these actions
    from men above him; he himself never gives an order. The noncommissioned
    officers (of whom there are fewer) perform the action itself less
    frequently than the soldiers, but they already give commands. An officer
    still less often acts directly himself, but commands still more
    frequently. A general does nothing but command the troops, indicates the
    objective, and hardly ever uses a weapon himself. The commander-in-chief
    never takes direct part in the action itself, but only gives general
    orders concerning the movement of the mass of the troops. A similar
    relation of people to one another is seen in every combination of men
    for common activity--in agriculture, trade, and every administration.
    
    And so without particularly analyzing all the contiguous sections of a
    cone and of the ranks of an army, or the ranks and positions in any
    administrative or public business whatever from the lowest to the
    highest, we see a law by which men, to take associated action, combine
    in such relations that the more directly they participate in performing
    the action the less they can command and the more numerous they are,
    while the less their direct participation in the action itself, the more
    they command and the fewer of them there are; rising in this way from
    the lowest ranks to the man at the top, who takes the least direct share
    in the action and directs his activity chiefly to commanding.
    
    This relation of the men who command to those they command is what
    constitutes the essence of the conception called power.
    
    Having restored the condition of time under which all events occur, we
    find that a command is executed only when it is related to a
    corresponding series of events. Restoring the essential condition of
    relation between those who command and those who execute, we find that
    by the very nature of the case those who command take the smallest part
    in the action itself and that their activity is exclusively directed to
    commanding.
    
    CHAPTER VII
    
    When an event is taking place people express their opinions and wishes
    about it, and as the event results from the collective activity of many
    people, some one of the opinions or wishes expressed is sure to be
    fulfilled if but approximately. When one of the opinions expressed is
    fulfilled, that opinion gets connected with the event as a command
    preceding it.
    
    Men are hauling a log. Each of them expresses his opinion as to how and
    where to haul it. They haul the log away, and it happens that this is
    done as one of them said. He ordered it. There we have command and power
    in their primary form. The man who worked most with his hands could not
    think so much about what he was doing, or reflect on or command what
    would result from the common activity; while the man who commanded more
    would evidently work less with his hands on account of his greater
    verbal activity.
    
    When some larger concourse of men direct their activity to a common aim
    there is a yet sharper division of those who, because their activity is
    given to directing and commanding, take less part in the direct work.
    
    When a man works alone he always has a certain set of reflections which
    as it seems to him directed his past activity, justify his present
    activity, and guide him in planning his future actions. Just the same is
    done by a concourse of people, allowing those who do not take a direct
    part in the activity to devise considerations, justifications, and
    surmises concerning their collective activity.
    
    For reasons known or unknown to us the French began to drown and kill
    one another. And corresponding to the event its justification appears in
    people's belief that this was necessary for the welfare of France, for
    liberty, and for equality. People ceased to kill one another, and this
    event was accompanied by its justification in the necessity for a
    centralization of power, resistance to Europe, and so on. Men went from
    the west to the east killing their fellow men, and the event was
    accompanied by phrases about the glory of France, the baseness of
    England, and so on. History shows us that these justifications of the
    events have no common sense and are all contradictory, as in the case of
    killing a man as the result of recognizing his rights, and the killing
    of millions in Russia for the humiliation of England. But these
    justifications have a very necessary significance in their own day.
    
    These justifications release those who produce the events from moral
    responsibility. These temporary aims are like the broom fixed in front
    of a locomotive to clear the snow from the rails in front: they clear
    men's moral responsibilities from their path.
    
    Without such justification there would be no reply to the simplest
    question that presents itself when examining each historical event. How
    is it that millions of men commit collective crimes--make war, commit
    murder, and so on?
    
    With the present complex forms of political and social life in Europe
    can any event that is not prescribed, decreed, or ordered by monarchs,
    ministers, parliaments, or newspapers be imagined? Is there any
    collective action which cannot find its justification in political
    unity, in patriotism, in the balance of power, or in civilization? So
    that every event that occurs inevitably coincides with some expressed
    wish and, receiving a justification, presents itself as the result of
    the will of one man or of several men.
    
    In whatever direction a ship moves, the flow of the waves it cuts will
    always be noticeable ahead of it. To those on board the ship the
    movement of those waves will be the only perceptible motion.
    
    Only by watching closely moment by moment the movement of that flow and
    comparing it with the movement of the ship do we convince ourselves that
    every bit of it is occasioned by the forward movement of the ship, and
    that we were led into error by the fact that we ourselves were
    imperceptibly moving.
    
    We see the same if we watch moment by moment the movement of historical
    characters (that is, re-establish the inevitable condition of all that
    occurs--the continuity of movement in time) and do not lose sight of the
    essential connection of historical persons with the masses.
    
    When the ship moves in one direction there is one and the same wave
    ahead of it, when it turns frequently the wave ahead of it also turns
    frequently. But wherever it may turn there always will be the wave
    anticipating its movement.
    
    Whatever happens it always appears that just that event was foreseen and
    decreed. Wherever the ship may go, the rush of water which neither
    directs nor increases its movement foams ahead of it, and at a distance
    seems to us not merely to move of itself but to govern the ship's
    movement also.
    
    Examining only those expressions of the will of historical persons
    which, as commands, were related to events, historians have assumed that
    the events depended on those commands. But examining the events
    themselves and the connection in which the historical persons stood to
    the people, we have found that they and their orders were dependent on
    events. The incontestable proof of this deduction is that, however many
    commands were issued, the event does not take place unless there are
    other causes for it, but as soon as an event occurs--be it what it may--
    then out of all the continually expressed wishes of different people
    some will always be found which by their meaning and their time of
    utterance are related as commands to the events.
    
    Arriving at this conclusion we can reply directly and positively to
    these two essential questions of history:
    
    (1) What is power?
    
    (2) What force produces the movement of the nations?
    
    (1) Power is the relation of a given person to other individuals, in
    which the more this person expresses opinions, predictions, and
    justifications of the collective action that is performed, the less is
    his participation in that action.
    
    (2) The movement of nations is caused not by power, nor by intellectual
    activity, nor even by a combination of the two as historians have
    supposed, but by the activity of all the people who participate in the
    events, and who always combine in such a way that those taking the
    largest direct share in the event take on themselves the least
    responsibility and vice versa.
    
    Morally the wielder of power appears to cause the event; physically it
    is those who submit to the power. But as the moral activity is
    inconceivable without the physical, the cause of the event is neither in
    the one nor in the other but in the union of the two.
    
    Or in other words, the conception of a cause is inapplicable to the
    phenomena we are examining.
    
    In the last analysis we reach the circle of infinity--that final limit
    to which in every domain of thought man's reason arrives if it is not
    playing with the subject. Electricity produces heat, heat produces
    electricity. Atoms attract each other and atoms repel one another.
    
    Speaking of the interaction of heat and electricity and of atoms, we
    cannot say why this occurs, and we say that it is so because it is
    inconceivable otherwise, because it must be so and that it is a law. The
    same applies to historical events. Why war and revolution occur we do
    not know. We only know that to produce the one or the other action,
    people combine in a certain formation in which they all take part, and
    we say that this is so because it is unthinkable otherwise, or in other
    words that it is a law.
    
    CHAPTER VIII
    
    If history dealt only with external phenomena, the establishment of this
    simple and obvious law would suffice and we should have finished our
    argument. But the law of history relates to man. A particle of matter
    cannot tell us that it does not feel the law of attraction or repulsion
    and that that law is untrue, but man, who is the subject of history,
    says plainly: I am free and am therefore not subject to the law.
    
    The presence of the problem of man's free will, though unexpressed, is
    felt at every step of history.
    
    All seriously thinking historians have involuntarily encountered this
    question. All the contradictions and obscurities of history and the
    false path historical science has followed are due solely to the lack of
    a solution of that question.
    
    If the will of every man were free, that is, if each man could act as he
    pleased, all history would be a series of disconnected incidents.
    
    If in a thousand years even one man in a million could act freely, that
    is, as he chose, it is evident that one single free act of that man's in
    violation of the laws governing human action would destroy the
    possibility of the existence of any laws for the whole of humanity.
    
    If there be a single law governing the actions of men, free will cannot
    exist, for then man's will is subject to that law.
    
    In this contradiction lies the problem of free will, which from most
    ancient times has occupied the best human minds and from most ancient
    times has been presented in its whole tremendous significance.
    
    The problem is that regarding man as a subject of observation from
    whatever point of view--theological, historical, ethical, or
    philosophic--we find a general law of necessity to which he (like all
    that exists) is subject. But regarding him from within ourselves as what
    we are conscious of, we feel ourselves to be free.
    
    This consciousness is a source of self-cognition quite apart from and
    independent of reason. Through his reason man observes himself, but only
    through consciousness does he know himself.
    
    Apart from consciousness of self no observation or application of reason
    is conceivable.
    
    To understand, observe, and draw conclusions, man must first of all be
    conscious of himself as living. A man is only conscious of himself as a
    living being by the fact that he wills, that is, is conscious of his
    volition. But his will--which forms the essence of his life--man
    recognizes (and can but recognize) as free.
    
    If, observing himself, man sees that his will is always directed by one
    and the same law (whether he observes the necessity of taking food,
    using his brain, or anything else) he cannot recognize this never-
    varying direction of his will otherwise than as a limitation of it. Were
    it not free it could not be limited. A man's will seems to him to be
    limited just because he is not conscious of it except as free.
    
    You say: I am not free. But I have lifted my hand and let it fall.
    Everyone understands that this illogical reply is an irrefutable
    demonstration of freedom.
    
    That reply is the expression of a consciousness that is not subject to
    reason.
    
    If the consciousness of freedom were not a separate and independent
    source of self-consciousness it would be subject to reasoning and to
    experience, but in fact such subjection does not exist and is
    inconceivable.
    
    A series of experiments and arguments proves to every man that he, as an
    object of observation, is subject to certain laws, and man submits to
    them and never resists the laws of gravity or impermeability once he has
    become acquainted with them. But the same series of experiments and
    arguments proves to him that the complete freedom of which he is
    conscious in himself is impossible, and that his every action depends on
    his organization, his character, and the motives acting upon him; yet
    man never submits to the deductions of these experiments and arguments.
    Having learned from experiment and argument that a stone falls
    downwards, a man indubitably believes this and always expects the law
    that he has learned to be fulfilled.
    
    But learning just as certainly that his will is subject to laws, he does
    not and cannot believe this.
    
    However often experiment and reasoning may show a man that under the
    same conditions and with the same character he will do the same thing as
    before, yet when under the same conditions and with the same character
    he approaches for the thousandth time the action that always ends in the
    same way, he feels as certainly convinced as before the experiment that
    he can act as he pleases. Every man, savage or sage, however
    incontestably reason and experiment may prove to him that it is
    impossible to imagine two different courses of action in precisely the
    same conditions, feels that without this irrational conception (which
    constitutes the essence of freedom) he cannot imagine life. He feels
    that however impossible it may be, it is so, for without this conception
    of freedom not only would he be unable to understand life, but he would
    be unable to live for a single moment.
    
    He could not live, because all man's efforts, all his impulses to life,
    are only efforts to increase freedom. Wealth and poverty, fame and
    obscurity, power and subordination, strength and weakness, health and
    disease, culture and ignorance, work and leisure, repletion and hunger,
    virtue and vice, are only greater or lesser degrees of freedom.
    
    A man having no freedom cannot be conceived of except as deprived of
    life.
    
    If the conception of freedom appears to reason to be a senseless
    contradiction like the possibility of performing two actions at one and
    the same instant of time, or of an effect without a cause, that only
    proves that consciousness is not subject to reason.
    
    This unshakable, irrefutable consciousness of freedom, uncontrolled by
    experiment or argument, recognized by all thinkers and felt by everyone
    without exception, this consciousness without which no conception of man
    is possible constitutes the other side of the question.
    
    Man is the creation of an all-powerful, all-good, and all-seeing God.
    What is sin, the conception of which arises from the consciousness of
    man's freedom? That is a question for theology.
    
    The actions of men are subject to general immutable laws expressed in
    statistics. What is man's responsibility to society, the conception of
    which results from the conception of freedom? That is a question for
    jurisprudence.
    
    Man's actions proceed from his innate character and the motives acting
    upon him. What is conscience and the perception of right and wrong in
    actions that follows from the consciousness of freedom? That is a
    question for ethics.
    
    Man in connection with the general life of humanity appears subject to
    laws which determine that life. But the same man apart from that
    connection appears to be free. How should the past life of nations and
    of humanity be regarded--as the result of the free, or as the result of
    the constrained, activity of man? That is a question for history.
    
    Only in our self-confident day of the popularization of knowledge--
    thanks to that most powerful engine of ignorance, the diffusion of
    printed matter--has the question of the freedom of will been put on a
    level on which the question itself cannot exist. In our time the
    majority of so-called advanced people--that is, the crowd of
    ignoramuses--have taken the work of the naturalists who deal with one
    side of the question for a solution of the whole problem.
    
    They say and write and print that the soul and freedom do not exist, for
    the life of man is expressed by muscular movements and muscular
    movements are conditioned by the activity of the nerves; the soul and
    free will do not exist because at an unknown period of time we sprang
    from the apes. They say this, not at all suspecting that thousands of
    years ago that same law of necessity which with such ardor they are now
    trying to prove by physiology and comparative zoology was not merely
    acknowledged by all the religions and all the thinkers, but has never
    been denied. They do not see that the role of the natural sciences in
    this matter is merely to serve as an instrument for the illumination of
    one side of it. For the fact that, from the point of view of
    observation, reason and the will are merely secretions of the brain, and
    that man following the general law may have developed from lower animals
    at some unknown period of time, only explains from a fresh side the
    truth admitted thousands of years ago by all the religious and
    philosophic theories--that from the point of view of reason man is
    subject to the law of necessity; but it does not advance by a hair's
    breadth the solution of the question, which has another, opposite, side,
    based on the consciousness of freedom.
    
    If men descended from the apes at an unknown period of time, that is as
    comprehensible as that they were made from a handful of earth at a
    certain period of time (in the first case the unknown quantity is the
    time, in the second case it is the origin); and the question of how
    man's consciousness of freedom is to be reconciled with the law of
    necessity to which he is subject cannot be solved by comparative
    physiology and zoology, for in a frog, a rabbit, or an ape, we can
    observe only the muscular nervous activity, but in man we observe
    consciousness as well as the muscular and nervous activity.
    
    The naturalists and their followers, thinking they can solve this
    question, are like plasterers set to plaster one side of the walls of a
    church who, availing themselves of the absence of the chief
    superintendent of the work, should in an access of zeal plaster over the
    windows, icons, woodwork, and still unbuttressed walls, and should be
    delighted that from their point of view as plasterers, everything is now
    so smooth and regular.
    
    CHAPTER IX
    
    For the solution of the question of free will or inevitability, history
    has this advantage over other branches of knowledge in which the
    question is dealt with, that for history this question does not refer to
    the essence of man's free will but its manifestation in the past and
    under certain conditions.
    
    In regard to this question, history stands to the other sciences as
    experimental science stands to abstract science.
    
    The subject for history is not man's will itself but our presentation of
    it.
    
    And so for history, the insoluble mystery presented by the
    incompatibility of free will and inevitability does not exist as it does
    for theology, ethics, and philosophy. History surveys a presentation of
    man's life in which the union of these two contradictions has already
    taken place.
    
    In actual life each historic event, each human action, is very clearly
    and definitely understood without any sense of contradiction, although
    each event presents itself as partly free and partly compulsory.
    
    To solve the question of how freedom and necessity are combined and what
    constitutes the essence of these two conceptions, the philosophy of
    history can and should follow a path contrary to that taken by other
    sciences. Instead of first defining the conceptions of freedom and
    inevitability in themselves, and then ranging the phenomena of life
    under those definitions, history should deduce a definition of the
    conception of freedom and inevitability themselves from the immense
    quantity of phenomena of which it is cognizant and that always appear
    dependent on these two elements.
    
    Whatever presentation of the activity of many men or of an individual we
    may consider, we always regard it as the result partly of man's free
    will and partly of the law of inevitability.
    
    Whether we speak of the migration of the peoples and the incursions of
    the barbarians, or of the decrees of Napoleon III, or of someone's
    action an hour ago in choosing one direction out of several for his
    walk, we are unconscious of any contradiction. The degree of freedom and
    inevitability governing the actions of these people is clearly defined
    for us.
    
    Our conception of the degree of freedom often varies according to
    differences in the point of view from which we regard the event, but
    every human action appears to us as a certain combination of freedom and
    inevitability. In every action we examine we see a certain measure of
    freedom and a certain measure of inevitability. And always the more
    freedom we see in any action the less inevitability do we perceive, and
    the more inevitability the less freedom.
    
    The proportion of freedom to inevitability decreases and increases
    according to the point of view from which the action is regarded, but
    their relation is always one of inverse proportion.
    
    A sinking man who clutches at another and drowns him; or a hungry mother
    exhausted by feeding her baby, who steals some food; or a man trained to
    discipline who on duty at the word of command kills a defenseless man--
    seem less guilty, that is, less free and more subject to the law of
    necessity, to one who knows the circumstances in which these people were
    placed, and more free to one who does not know that the man was himself
    drowning, that the mother was hungry, that the soldier was in the ranks,
    and so on. Similarly a man who committed a murder twenty years ago and
    has since lived peaceably and harmlessly in society seems less guilty
    and his action more due to the law of inevitability, to someone who
    considers his action after twenty years have elapsed than to one who
    examined it the day after it was committed. And in the same way every
    action of an insane, intoxicated, or highly excited man appears less
    free and more inevitable to one who knows the mental condition of him
    who committed the action, and seems more free and less inevitable to one
    who does not know it. In all these cases the conception of freedom is
    increased or diminished and the conception of compulsion is
    correspondingly decreased or increased, according to the point of view
    from which the action is regarded. So that the greater the conception of
    necessity the smaller the conception of freedom and vice versa.
    
    Religion, the common sense of mankind, the science of jurisprudence, and
    history itself understand alike this relation between necessity and
    freedom.
    
    All cases without exception in which our conception of freedom and
    necessity is increased and diminished depend on three considerations:
    
    (1) The relation to the external world of the man who commits the deeds.
    
    (2) His relation to time.
    
    (3) His relation to the causes leading to the action.
    
    The first consideration is the clearness of our perception of the man's
    relation to the external world and the greater or lesser clearness of
    our understanding of the definite position occupied by the man in
    relation to everything coexisting with him. This is what makes it
    evident that a drowning man is less free and more subject to necessity
    than one standing on dry ground, and that makes the actions of a man
    closely connected with others in a thickly populated district, or of one
    bound by family, official, or business duties, seem certainly less free
    and more subject to necessity than those of a man living in solitude and
    seclusion.
    
    If we consider a man alone, apart from his relation to everything around
    him, each action of his seems to us free. But if we see his relation to
    anything around him, if we see his connection with anything whatever--
    with a man who speaks to him, a book he reads, the work on which he is
    engaged, even with the air he breathes or the light that falls on the
    things about him--we see that each of these circumstances has an
    influence on him and controls at least some side of his activity. And
    the more we perceive of these influences the more our conception of his
    freedom diminishes and the more our conception of the necessity that
    weighs on him increases.
    
    The second consideration is the more or less evident time relation of
    the man to the world and the clearness of our perception of the place
    the man's action occupies in time. That is the ground which makes the
    fall of the first man, resulting in the production of the human race,
    appear evidently less free than a man's entry into marriage today. It is
    the reason why the life and activity of people who lived centuries ago
    and are connected with me in time cannot seem to me as free as the life
    of a contemporary, the consequences of which are still unknown to me.
    
    The degree of our conception of freedom or inevitability depends in this
    respect on the greater or lesser lapse of time between the performance
    of the action and our judgment of it.
    
    If I examine an act I performed a moment ago in approximately the same
    circumstances as those I am in now, my action appears to me undoubtedly
    free. But if I examine an act performed a month ago, then being in
    different circumstances, I cannot help recognizing that if that act had
    not been committed much that resulted from it--good, agreeable, and even
    essential--would not have taken place. If I reflect on an action still
    more remote, ten years ago or more, then the consequences of my action
    are still plainer to me and I find it hard to imagine what would have
    happened had that action not been performed. The farther I go back in
    memory, or what is the same thing the farther I go forward in my
    judgment, the more doubtful becomes my belief in the freedom of my
    action.
    
    In history we find a very similar progress of conviction concerning the
    part played by free will in the general affairs of humanity. A
    contemporary event seems to us to be indubitably the doing of all the
    known participants, but with a more remote event we already see its
    inevitable results which prevent our considering anything else possible.
    And the farther we go back in examining events the less arbitrary do
    they appear.
    
    The Austro-Prussian war appears to us undoubtedly the result of the
    crafty conduct of Bismarck, and so on. The Napoleonic wars still seem to
    us, though already questionably, to be the outcome of their heroes'
    will. But in the Crusades we already see an event occupying its definite
    place in history and without which we cannot imagine the modern history
    of Europe, though to the chroniclers of the Crusades that event appeared
    as merely due to the will of certain people. In regard to the migration
    of the peoples it does not enter anyone's head today to suppose that the
    renovation of the European world depended on Attila's caprice. The
    farther back in history the object of our observation lies, the more
    doubtful does the free will of those concerned in the event become and
    the more manifest the law of inevitability.
    
    The third consideration is the degree to which we apprehend that endless
    chain of causation inevitably demanded by reason, in which each
    phenomenon comprehended, and therefore man's every action, must have its
    definite place as a result of what has gone before and as a cause of
    what will follow.
    
    The better we are acquainted with the physiological, psychological, and
    historical laws deduced by observation and by which man is controlled,
    and the more correctly we perceive the physiological, psychological, and
    historical causes of the action, and the simpler the action we are
    observing and the less complex the character and mind of the man in
    question, the more subject to inevitability and the less free do our
    actions and those of others appear.
    
    When we do not at all understand the cause of an action, whether a
    crime, a good action, or even one that is simply nonmoral, we ascribe a
    greater amount of freedom to it. In the case of a crime we most urgently
    demand the punishment for such an act; in the case of a virtuous act we
    rate its merit most highly. In an indifferent case we recognize in it
    more individuality, originality, and independence. But if even one of
    the innumerable causes of the act is known to us we recognize a certain
    element of necessity and are less insistent on punishment for the crime,
    or the acknowledgment of the merit of the virtuous act, or the freedom
    of the apparently original action. That a criminal was reared among male
    factors mitigates his fault in our eyes. The self-sacrifice of a father
    or mother, or self-sacrifice with the possibility of a reward, is more
    comprehensible than gratuitous self-sacrifice, and therefore seems less
    deserving of sympathy and less the result of free will. The founder of a
    sect or party, or an inventor, impresses us less when we know how or by
    what the way was prepared for his activity. If we have a large range of
    examples, if our observation is constantly directed to seeking the
    correlation of cause and effect in people's actions, their actions
    appear to us more under compulsion and less free the more correctly we
    connect the effects with the causes. If we examined simple actions and
    had a vast number of such actions under observation, our conception of
    their inevitability would be still greater. The dishonest conduct of the
    son of a dishonest father, the misconduct of a woman who had fallen into
    bad company, a drunkard's relapse into drunkenness, and so on are
    actions that seem to us less free the better we understand their cause.
    If the man whose actions we are considering is on a very low stage of
    mental development, like a child, a madman, or a simpleton--then,
    knowing the causes of the act and the simplicity of the character and
    intelligence in question, we see so large an element of necessity and so
    little free will that as soon as we know the cause prompting the action
    we can foretell the result.
    
    On these three considerations alone is based the conception of
    irresponsibility for crimes and the extenuating circumstances admitted
    by all legislative codes. The responsibility appears greater or less
    according to our greater or lesser knowledge of the circumstances in
    which the man was placed whose action is being judged, and according to
    the greater or lesser interval of time between the commission of the
    action and its investigation, and according to the greater or lesser
    understanding of the causes that led to the action.
    
    CHAPTER X
    
    Thus our conception of free will and inevitability gradually diminishes
    or increases according to the greater or lesser connection with the
    external world, the greater or lesser remoteness of time, and the
    greater or lesser dependence on the causes in relation to which we
    contemplate a man's life.
    
    So that if we examine the case of a man whose connection with the
    external world is well known, where the time between the action and its
    examination is great, and where the causes of the action are most
    accessible, we get the conception of a maximum of inevitability and a
    minimum of free will. If we examine a man little dependent on external
    conditions, whose action was performed very recently, and the causes of
    whose action are beyond our ken, we get the conception of a minimum of
    inevitability and a maximum of freedom.
    
    In neither case--however we may change our point of view, however plain
    we may make to ourselves the connection between the man and the external
    world, however inaccessible it may be to us, however long or short the
    period of time, however intelligible or incomprehensible the causes of
    the action may be--can we ever conceive either complete freedom or
    complete necessity.
    
    (1) To whatever degree we may imagine a man to be exempt from the
    influence of the external world, we never get a conception of freedom in
    space. Every human action is inevitably conditioned by what surrounds
    him and by his own body. I lift my arm and let it fall. My action seems
    to me free; but asking myself whether I could raise my arm in every
    direction, I see that I raised it in the direction in which there was
    least obstruction to that action either from things around me or from
    the construction of my own body. I chose one out of all the possible
    directions because in it there were fewest obstacles. For my action to
    be free it was necessary that it should encounter no obstacles. To
    conceive of a man being free we must imagine him outside space, which is
    evidently impossible.
    
    (2) However much we approximate the time of judgment to the time of the
    deed, we never get a conception of freedom in time. For if I examine an
    action committed a second ago I must still recognize it as not being
    free, for it is irrevocably linked to the moment at which it was
    committed. Can I lift my arm? I lift it, but ask myself: could I have
    abstained from lifting my arm at the moment that has already passed? To
    convince myself of this I do not lift it the next moment. But I am not
    now abstaining from doing so at the first moment when I asked the
    question. Time has gone by which I could not detain, the arm I then
    lifted is no longer the same as the arm I now refrain from lifting, nor
    is the air in which I lifted it the same that now surrounds me. The
    moment in which the first movement was made is irrevocable, and at that
    moment I could make only one movement, and whatever movement I made
    would be the only one. That I did not lift my arm a moment later does
    not prove that I could have abstained from lifting it then. And since I
    could make only one movement at that single moment of time, it could not
    have been any other. To imagine it as free, it is necessary to imagine
    it in the present, on the boundary between the past and the future--that
    is, outside time, which is impossible.
    
    (3) However much the difficulty of understanding the causes may be
    increased, we never reach a conception of complete freedom, that is, an
    absence of cause. However inaccessible to us may be the cause of the
    expression of will in any action, our own or another's, the first demand
    of reason is the assumption of and search for a cause, for without a
    cause no phenomenon is conceivable. I raise my arm to perform an action
    independently of any cause, but my wish to perform an action without a
    cause is the cause of my action.
    
    But even if--imagining a man quite exempt from all influences, examining
    only his momentary action in the present, unevoked by any cause--we were
    to admit so infinitely small a remainder of inevitability as equaled
    zero, we should even then not have arrived at the conception of complete
    freedom in man, for a being uninfluenced by the external world, standing
    outside of time and independent of cause, is no longer a man.
    
    In the same way we can never imagine the action of a man quite devoid of
    freedom and entirely subject to the law of inevitability.
    
    (1) However we may increase our knowledge of the conditions of space in
    which man is situated, that knowledge can never be complete, for the
    number of those conditions is as infinite as the infinity of space. And
    therefore so long as not all the conditions influencing men are defined,
    there is no complete inevitability but a certain measure of freedom
    remains.
    
    (2) However we may prolong the period of time between the action we are
    examining and the judgment upon it, that period will be finite, while
    time is infinite, and so in this respect too there can never be absolute
    inevitability.
    
    (3) However accessible may be the chain of causation of any action, we
    shall never know the whole chain since it is endless, and so again we
    never reach absolute inevitability.
    
    But besides this, even if, admitting the remaining minimum of freedom to
    equal zero, we assumed in some given case--as for instance in that of a
    dying man, an unborn babe, or an idiot--complete absence of freedom, by
    so doing we should destroy the very conception of man in the case we are
    examining, for as soon as there is no freedom there is also no man. And
    so the conception of the action of a man subject solely to the law of
    inevitability without any element of freedom is just as impossible as
    the conception of a man's completely free action.
    
    And so to imagine the action of a man entirely subject to the law of
    inevitability without any freedom, we must assume the knowledge of an
    infinite number of space relations, an infinitely long period of time,
    and an infinite series of causes.
    
    To imagine a man perfectly free and not subject to the law of
    inevitability, we must imagine him all alone, beyond space, beyond time,
    and free from dependence on cause.
    
    In the first case, if inevitability were possible without freedom we
    should have reached a definition of inevitability by the laws of
    inevitability itself, that is, a mere form without content.
    
    In the second case, if freedom were possible without inevitability we
    should have arrived at unconditioned freedom beyond space, time, and
    cause, which by the fact of its being unconditioned and unlimited would
    be nothing, or mere content without form.
    
    We should in fact have reached those two fundamentals of which man's
    whole outlook on the universe is constructed--the incomprehensible
    essence of life, and the laws defining that essence.
    
    Reason says: (1) space with all the forms of matter that give it
    visibility is infinite, and cannot be imagined otherwise. (2) Time is
    infinite motion without a moment of rest and is unthinkable otherwise.
    (3) The connection between cause and effect has no beginning and can
    have no end.
    
    Consciousness says: (1) I alone am, and all that exists is but me,
    consequently I include space. (2) I measure flowing time by the fixed
    moment of the present in which alone I am conscious of myself as living,
    consequently I am outside time. (3) I am beyond cause, for I feel myself
    to be the cause of every manifestation of my life.
    
    Reason gives expression to the laws of inevitability. Consciousness
    gives expression to the essence of freedom.
    
    Freedom not limited by anything is the essence of life, in man's
    consciousness. Inevitability without content is man's reason in its
    three forms.
    
    Freedom is the thing examined. Inevitability is what examines. Freedom
    is the content. Inevitability is the form.
    
    Only by separating the two sources of cognition, related to one another
    as form to content, do we get the mutually exclusive and separately
    incomprehensible conceptions of freedom and inevitability.
    
    Only by uniting them do we get a clear conception of man's life.
    
    Apart from these two concepts which in their union mutually define one
    another as form and content, no conception of life is possible.
    
    All that we know of the life of man is merely a certain relation of free
    will to inevitability, that is, of consciousness to the laws of reason.
    
    All that we know of the external world of nature is only a certain
    relation of the forces of nature to inevitability, or of the essence of
    life to the laws of reason.
    
    The great natural forces lie outside us and we are not conscious of
    them; we call those forces gravitation, inertia, electricity, animal
    force, and so on, but we are conscious of the force of life in man and
    we call that freedom.
    
    But just as the force of gravitation, incomprehensible in itself but
    felt by every man, is understood by us only to the extent to which we
    know the laws of inevitability to which it is subject (from the first
    knowledge that all bodies have weight, up to Newton's law), so too the
    force of free will, incomprehensible in itself but of which everyone is
    conscious, is intelligible to us only in as far as we know the laws of
    inevitability to which it is subject (from the fact that every man dies,
    up to the knowledge of the most complex economic and historic laws).
    
    All knowledge is merely a bringing of this essence of life under the
    laws of reason.
    
    Man's free will differs from every other force in that man is directly
    conscious of it, but in the eyes of reason it in no way differs from any
    other force. The forces of gravitation, electricity, or chemical
    affinity are only distinguished from one another in that they are
    differently defined by reason. Just so the force of man's free will is
    distinguished by reason from the other forces of nature only by the
    definition reason gives it. Freedom, apart from necessity, that is,
    apart from the laws of reason that define it, differs in no way from
    gravitation, or heat, or the force that makes things grow; for reason,
    it is only a momentary undefinable sensation of life.
    
    And as the undefinable essence of the force moving the heavenly bodies,
    the undefinable essence of the forces of heat and electricity, or of
    chemical affinity, or of the vital force, forms the content of
    astronomy, physics, chemistry, botany, zoology, and so on, just in the
    same way does the force of free will form the content of history. But
    just as the subject of every science is the manifestation of this
    unknown essence of life while that essence itself can only be the
    subject of metaphysics, even the manifestation of the force of free will
    in human beings in space, in time, and in dependence on cause forms the
    subject of history, while free will itself is the subject of
    metaphysics.
    
    In the experimental sciences what we know we call the laws of
    inevitability, what is unknown to us we call vital force. Vital force is
    only an expression for the unknown remainder over and above what we know
    of the essence of life.
    
    So also in history what is known to us we call laws of inevitability,
    what is unknown we call free will. Free will is for history only an
    expression for the unknown remainder of what we know about the laws of
    human life.
    
    CHAPTER XI
    
    History examines the manifestations of man's free will in connection
    with the external world in time and in dependence on cause, that is, it
    defines this freedom by the laws of reason, and so history is a science
    only in so far as this free will is defined by those laws.
    
    The recognition of man's free will as something capable of influencing
    historical events, that is, as not subject to laws, is the same for
    history as the recognition of a free force moving the heavenly bodies
    would be for astronomy.
    
    That assumption would destroy the possibility of the existence of laws,
    that is, of any science whatever. If there is even a single body moving
    freely, then the laws of Kepler and Newton are negatived and no
    conception of the movement of the heavenly bodies any longer exists. If
    any single action is due to free will, then not a single historical law
    can exist, nor any conception of historical events.
    
    For history, lines exist of the movement of human wills, one end of
    which is hidden in the unknown but at the other end of which a
    consciousness of man's will in the present moves in space, time, and
    dependence on cause.
    
    The more this field of motion spreads out before our eyes, the more
    evident are the laws of that movement. To discover and define those laws
    is the problem of history.
    
    From the standpoint from which the science of history now regards its
    subject on the path it now follows, seeking the causes of events in
    man's freewill, a scientific enunciation of those laws is impossible,
    for however man's free will may be restricted, as soon as we recognize
    it as a force not subject to law, the existence of law becomes
    impossible.
    
    Only by reducing this element of free will to the infinitesimal, that
    is, by regarding it as an infinitely small quantity, can we convince
    ourselves of the absolute inaccessibility of the causes, and then
    instead of seeking causes, history will take the discovery of laws as
    its problem.
    
    The search for these laws has long been begun and the new methods of
    thought which history must adopt are being worked out simultaneously
    with the self-destruction toward which--ever dissecting and dissecting
    the causes of phenomena--the old method of history is moving.
    
    All human sciences have traveled along that path. Arriving at
    infinitesimals, mathematics, the most exact of sciences, abandons the
    process of analysis and enters on the new process of the integration of
    unknown, infinitely small, quantities. Abandoning the conception of
    cause, mathematics seeks law, that is, the property common to all
    unknown, infinitely small, elements.
    
    In another form but along the same path of reflection the other sciences
    have proceeded. When Newton enunciated the law of gravity he did not say
    that the sun or the earth had a property of attraction; he said that all
    bodies from the largest to the smallest have the property of attracting
    one another, that is, leaving aside the question of the cause of the
    movement of the bodies, he expressed the property common to all bodies
    from the infinitely large to the infinitely small. The same is done by
    the natural sciences: leaving aside the question of cause, they seek for
    laws. History stands on the same path. And if history has for its object
    the study of the movement of the nations and of humanity and not the
    narration of episodes in the lives of individuals, it too, setting aside
    the conception of cause, should seek the laws common to all the
    inseparably interconnected infinitesimal elements of free will.
    
    CHAPTER XII
    
    From the time the law of Copernicus was discovered and proved, the mere
    recognition of the fact that it was not the sun but the earth that moves
    sufficed to destroy the whole cosmography of the ancients. By disproving
    that law it might have been possible to retain the old conception of the
    movements of the bodies, but without disproving it, it would seem
    impossible to continue studying the Ptolemaic worlds. But even after the
    discovery of the law of Copernicus the Ptolemaic worlds were still
    studied for a long time.
    
    From the time the first person said and proved that the number of births
    or of crimes is subject to mathematical laws, and that this or that mode
    of government is determined by certain geographical and economic
    conditions, and that certain relations of population to soil produce
    migrations of peoples, the foundations on which history had been built
    were destroyed in their essence.
    
    By refuting these new laws the former view of history might have been
    retained; but without refuting them it would seem impossible to continue
    studying historic events as the results of man's free will. For if a
    certain mode of government was established or certain migrations of
    peoples took place in consequence of such and such geographic,
    ethnographic, or economic conditions, then the free will of those
    individuals who appear to us to have established that mode of government
    or occasioned the migrations can no longer be regarded as the cause.
    
    And yet the former history continues to be studied side by side with the
    laws of statistics, geography, political economy, comparative philology,
    and geology, which directly contradict its assumptions.
    
    The struggle between the old views and the new was long and stubbornly
    fought out in physical philosophy. Theology stood on guard for the old
    views and accused the new of violating revelation. But when truth
    conquered, theology established itself just as firmly on the new
    foundation.
    
    Just as prolonged and stubborn is the struggle now proceeding between
    the old and the new conception of history, and theology in the same way
    stands on guard for the old view, and accuses the new view of subverting
    revelation.
    
    In the one case as in the other, on both sides the struggle provokes
    passion and stifles truth. On the one hand there is fear and regret for
    the loss of the whole edifice constructed through the ages, on the other
    is the passion for destruction.
    
    To the men who fought against the rising truths of physical philosophy,
    it seemed that if they admitted that truth it would destroy faith in
    God, in the creation of the firmament, and in the miracle of Joshua the
    son of Nun. To the defenders of the laws of Copernicus and Newton, to
    Voltaire for example, it seemed that the laws of astronomy destroyed
    religion, and he utilized the law of gravitation as a weapon against
    religion.
    
    Just so it now seems as if we have only to admit the law of
    inevitability, to destroy the conception of the soul, of good and evil,
    and all the institutions of state and church that have been built up on
    those conceptions.
    
    So too, like Voltaire in his time, uninvited defenders of the law of
    inevitability today use that law as a weapon against religion, though
    the law of inevitability in history, like the law of Copernicus in
    astronomy, far from destroying, even strengthens the foundation on which
    the institutions of state and church are erected.
    
    As in the question of astronomy then, so in the question of history now,
    the whole difference of opinion is based on the recognition or
    nonrecognition of something absolute, serving as the measure of visible
    phenomena. In astronomy it was the immovability of the earth, in history
    it is the independence of personality--free will.
    
    As with astronomy the difficulty of recognizing the motion of the earth
    lay in abandoning the immediate sensation of the earth's fixity and of
    the motion of the planets, so in history the difficulty of recognizing
    the subjection of personality to the laws of space, time, and cause lies
    in renouncing the direct feeling of the independence of one's own
    personality. But as in astronomy the new view said: "It is true that we
    do not feel the movement of the earth, but by admitting its immobility
    we arrive at absurdity, while by admitting its motion (which we do not
    feel) we arrive at laws," so also in history the new view says: "It is
    true that we are not conscious of our dependence, but by admitting our
    free will we arrive at absurdity, while by admitting our dependence on
    the external world, on time, and on cause, we arrive at laws."
    
    In the first case it was necessary to renounce the consciousness of an
    unreal immobility in space and to recognize a motion we did not feel; in
    the present case it is similarly necessary to renounce a freedom that
    does not exist, and to recognize a dependence of which we are not
    conscious.
    
    End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of War and Peace, by Leo Tolstoy
    
    *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WAR AND PEACE ***
    
    Change-Id: I20fb5323cde1f83a3d3adc98251b2f31de25ed24
    Signed-off-by: Vladimir Serbinenko <phcoder at gmail.com>
---
 src/northbridge/intel/i945/gma.c | 2 +-
 1 file changed, 1 insertion(+), 1 deletion(-)

diff --git a/src/northbridge/intel/i945/gma.c b/src/northbridge/intel/i945/gma.c
index 8b5b053..bd800b4 100644
--- a/src/northbridge/intel/i945/gma.c
+++ b/src/northbridge/intel/i945/gma.c
@@ -360,7 +360,7 @@ static int intel_gma_init(struct northbridge_intel_i945_config *conf,
 		printk(BIOS_DEBUG, "%dM UMA\n", uma_size >> 10);
 	}
 
-	for (i = 0; i < uma_size / 4; i++)
+	for (i = 0; i < (uma_size - 256) / 4; i++)
 	{
 		outl((i << 2) | 1, piobase);
 		outl(pphysbase + (i << 12) + 1, piobase + 4);



More information about the coreboot-gerrit mailing list